summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-23 00:16:01 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-23 00:16:01 -0800
commitb2bde032884e2cb69714e7155591ab341cfb4af6 (patch)
treedcc72600480f3f2e6e41cef2f17aa1e73c5e5958
parent7499efa60d7e747dfa7bf63bd16659fbd1b28192 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/65484-0.txt24833
-rw-r--r--old/65484-0.zipbin488551 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65484-h.zipbin553874 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/65484-h/65484-h.htm26506
-rw-r--r--old/65484-h/images/cover.jpgbin49293 -> 0 bytes
8 files changed, 17 insertions, 51339 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..3a37353
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #65484 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/65484)
diff --git a/old/65484-0.txt b/old/65484-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 7786b2f..0000000
--- a/old/65484-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,24833 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of A Body of Divinity, Vol. 4 of 4, by Thomas
-Ridgley
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: A Body of Divinity, Vol. 4 of 4
- wherein the doctrines of the Christian religion are explained
- and defended, being the substance of several lectures on the Assem
-
-Author: Thomas Ridgley
-
-Release Date: June 1, 2021 [eBook #65484]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-Produced by: Richard Hulse, David King, and the Online Distributed
- Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net. (This file was
- produced from images generously made available by The Internet
- Archive.)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A BODY OF DIVINITY, VOL. 4 OF
-4 ***
-
-
-
-
- A Body of Divinity
-
-
-
-
- A BODY OF DIVINITY:
-
- WHEREIN THE DOCTRINES OF THE CHRISTIAN RELIGION ARE EXPLAINED AND
- DEFENDED.
-
- BEING THE SUBSTANCE OF SEVERAL LECTURES ON THE ASSEMBLY’S LARGER
- CATECHISM.
-
- BY THOMAS RIDGLEY, D. D.
-
-
- WITH NOTES, ORIGINAL AND SELECTED,
- BY JAMES P. WILSON, D. D.
-
- IN FOUR VOLUMES.
-
- _VOL. IV._
-
- FIRST AMERICAN, FROM THE THIRD EUROPEAN EDITION.
-
-
- PHILADELPHIA:
-
- PRINTED BY AND FOR WILLIAM W. WOODWARD, CORNER OF CHESNUT AND SOUTH
- SECOND STREETS.
-
- 1815.
-
-
-
-
- THE CONTENTS OF THE FOURTH VOLUME.
-
-
-QUEST. CXXXVII, CXXXVIII, CXXXIX. An Explication of the Seventh
-Commandment. _Page_ 9
-
-
-_THE government of the affections_ 10
-
-_All uncleanness forbidden_ ibid
-
-_Polygamy was ever unlawful_ 11
-
-_The aggravations of uncleanness_ 13
-
- _The occasions of it_ 14
-
-_Of Theatres—a note_ 15
-
-
-QUEST. CXL, CXLI. An Explication of the Eighth Commandment 16
-
-
-_Of frugality and diligence_ 17
-
-_Of justice in our dealings_ 19
-
-_Of charity to the poor_ 20
-
- _To whom to be extended_ ibid
-
- _And in what proportion_ 21
-
-
-QUEST. CXLII. The Sins forbidden in the Eighth Commandment 22
-
-
-_Of theft and breach of trust_ 23
-
-_Of borrowing and not paying_ ibid
-
- _Whether_ Israel _was guilty of it_ 24
-
-_Of plunder in war and oppression_ 25
-
-_Of unjust law-suits_ 26
-
-_Of sinful usury_ 27
-
-_Restitution a duty. Objections answered_ ibid
-
-
-QUEST. CXLIII, CXLIV, CXLV. An Explication of the Ninth Commandment 28
-
-
-_The duties required_ 29
-
- _Sins forbidden_ 31
-
-_Of bearing false witness_ 32
-
-_Of lying. The definition of a lie_ 33
-
- _Its various kinds_ ibid
-
-_The midwives report, in_ Exod. i. 19. _no lie_ 34
-
-_Of_ Rahab’s _lie_, Josh. ii. 4, 5. ibid
-
-_Of_ Jacob’s _deceit, in_ Gen. xxvii. 19. 35
-
-Elijah’s _treatment of the_ Syrian _host_ 36
-
-Paul’s _answer relating to the high priest_ 37
-
-David’s _lie to_ Ahimelech, _in_ 1 Sam. xxi. 2. 38
-
- _His feigned madness at_ Gath, _ver._ 13-15. ibid
-
-_Of hypocrisy_ 39
-
-Paul _and_ Daniel _vindicated_ 40
-
-_Of reproach. It differs from reproof_ 42
-
-_Things unjustly made the matter of it_ 43
-
- _Aggravations thereof_ 44
-
- Elisha _reproached at_ Bethel Ibid
-
-_Of backbiting. Instances of it_ 48
-
-
-QUEST. CXLVI, CXLVII, CXLVIII. An Explication of the Tenth Commandment
-50
-
-
-_Contentment required in every state_ 50
-
-_Motives to it under various troubles_ 51
-
-_The corruption of Nature forbidden_ 56
-
-_Of covetousness and its aggravations_ 58
-
- _Excuses for it answered_ 59
-
-_Remedies against discontent_ 61
-
-
-QUEST. CXLIX. Of man’s inability to keep the Commandments of God 62
-
-
-_How man sins daily_ 63
-
-_Of sinful thoughts_ 64
-
-_The kinds, causes and cure of them_ ibid
-
-_Of sinful words and actions_ 66
-
-
-QUEST. CL. All sins not equally heinous 67
-
-
-QUEST. CLI. The aggravations of sin, and whence they arise 67
-
-
-_From the parties offending or offended_ 68
-
-_From the nature and quality of the offence_ 70
-
-_From the circumstances of it_ 72
-
-
-QUEST. CLII, CLIII. Of the Desert of Sin, and of the means of escaping
-God’s wrath 74
-
-
-_Wrath of God not passion_ 75
-
-_How faith and repentance are the means of salvation_ 76
-
-_Note on procrastination_ 78
-
-
-QUEST. CLIV. Of the Ordinances, or outward means of grace 79
-
-
-_Ordinances described_ ibid
-
-_By what ordinances Christ communicates his benefits_ 81
-
-_Singing God’s praises of divine institution_ 82
-
- _A gospel ordinance_ 83
-
- _To be public and united_ 84
-
-_Of musical instruments, a note_ 85
-
-_It is necessary to sing with understanding_ ibid
-
-David’s _Psalms still proper to be sung_ 89
-
- _Imprecations therein how used_ 91
-
-_Of hymns of human composure_ 95
-
-_Scripture Psalms and hymns preferable_ 96
-
-
-QUEST. CLV. How the Word is made effectual to salvation 99
-
-
-_It enlightens and convinces of sin_ 101
-
-_It humbles and drives out of self_ 102
-
-_It draws to Christ_ 103
-
-_Other instances of its efficacy_ 104
-
-
-QUEST. CLVL, CLVII. The Word of God to be read by all 106
-
-
-_The Word is to be read publicly_ 107
-
- _In families also, and in private_ 108
-
- _How the Papists oppose this_ 109
-
- _Their objections answered_ 110
-
-_Translation of scripture vindicated_ 112
-
-_How the scripture should be read_ 113
-
- _Expositions to be consulted_ 117
-
- _And various translations_ ibid
-
- _Of marginal references_ 118
-
- _Of supplemental additions_ 119
-
-_Texts to be compared with their contexts_ 121
-
-_One part of scripture illustrates another_ 122
-
-_Parallel scriptures to be compared_ 124
-
-_Rhetorical figures used in scripture_ 130
-
-_References there to different governments_ 135
-
- _To the civil affairs of_ Jews _and others_ 136
-
- _To civil and religious officers_ 139
-
-_Of_ Publicans, Pharisees, Sadducees, Samaritans 140
-
-_General rules for explaining scripture_ 144
-
-
-QUEST. CLVIII, CLIX, CLX. Of preaching and hearing the Word 146
-
-
-_The qualifications of ministers_ 147
-
- _How the word is to be preached_ 151
-
- _Diligently, plainly, faithfully_ 152
-
- _Wisely. Wherein this consists_ 154
-
- _Zealously and sincerely_ 155
-
-_Duties to be performed_ 157
-
- _Before hearing_ 158
-
- _In hearing, and after it_ 159
-
-
-QUEST. CLXI, CLXII, CLXIII, CLXIV. Of the Sacraments 160
-
-
-Sacrament. _Its meaning_ 161
-
- _Its nature and matter_ ibid
-
- _How a sign or seal_ 163
-
- _To whom to be administered_ 166
-
- _Benefits conveyed therein_ 167
-
- _How effectual to salvation_ ibid
-
- _By whom to be administered, in note_ 168
-
-_Various sacraments of old_ 171
-
- _Now but two_ 172
-
-
-QUEST. CLXV. Of Baptism. 174
-
-
-_Baptism a gospel ordinance_ ibid
-
- _Instituted by Christ_ 177
-
- _Note_, Βαπτιζω _a generic term_ 175
-
- _In whose name to be performed_ 178
-
- _What signified in it_ 179
-
- _An expectation of privileges_ 181
-
- _An acknowledgment of obligations_ ibid
-
- _The right of children to it—in a note_ 182
-
-
-QUEST. CLXVI. Of the subjects and mode of Baptism 183
-
-
-_To whom Baptism is not to be administered_ ibid
-
-_Infants of believers, their right to baptism_ 186
-
- _By covenant—a note_ 187-193
-
- _May be dedicated in faith_ 187
-
- _Are included in the covenant_ 194
-
- _Are termed holy_ 196
-
- _Were circumcised_ 198
-
- _And ought to be baptized_ 199
-
- _Objections answered, taken_
-
- _From infants’ want of grace_ 200
-
- _From the want of precept or example_ 201
-
- _From Christ’s own Baptism_ 206
-
-_Infant baptism no novelty_ 207
-
- _Practised by the ancient church_ ibid
-
-_Baptism an ordinance of dedication_ 186
-
- _An objection answered_ ibid
-
-_How believers may dedicate their infants in faith_ 187
-
- _An objection answered_ 194
-
-_Of the mode of Baptism_ 216
-
-Baptism, _the meaning of the word_ ibid
-
- _To be performed by pouring or sprinkling_ 218
-
- _Objections answered_ 219
-
- _Persons going down into the water_ 220
-
- John’s _baptizing at_ Ænon 222
-
- _Our being buried with Christ_ 225
-
-_Of the sign of the cross_ 228
-
-_Of sureties in Baptism_ ibid
-
-
-QUEST. CLXVII. How Baptism should be improved 229
-
-
-QUEST. CLXVIII, CLXIX, CLXX. Of the Lord’s supper 234
-
-
-_The Lord’s supper is a gospel ordinance_ 236
-
- _It was instituted by Christ_ ibid
-
- _By whom to be administered_ 237
-
- _Of the elements, how consecrated_ ibid
-
- _The actions to be performed_ 238
-
- _The gesture to be used_ 239
-
- _Of some Popish irregularities_ 240
-
-_Things signified in the Lord’s supper_ 242
-
-_What faith should then fix on_ 244
-
-_Qualifications of communicants_ 245, 263
-
-
-QUEST. CLXXI. Of preparation for the Lord’s supper 246
-
-
-_Of self examination_ ibid
-
- _Things to be enquired into. Our state_ 247
-
- _How this may be known_ ibid
-
- _Our sense of sin_ 248
-
- _Our wants_ 249
-
- _Our knowledge of divine things_ 251
-
- _The truth and degree of our graces_ 253
-
- _Our love to the brethren_ 255
-
- _How this may be discerned_ 256
-
-
-QUEST. CLXXII, CLXXIII. Who fit to be Communicants 258
-
-
-_Doubting Christians, their case_ 259
-
- _Encouragement for them_ ibid
-
- _Promises made to them_ 260
-
- _Advice offered them_ 262
-
-_The wicked to be kept from the Lord’s table_ 263
-
- _Objections answered_ 264
-
-
-QUEST. CLXXIV, CLXXV. Of the duties required _in_ and _after_ receiving
-the Lord’s supper 268
-
-
-_What meditations proper at this ordinance_ 269
-
- _Graces to be then exercised_ 270
-
-_We are to rejoice in Christ’s love_ 273
-
- _Properties of his love_ ibid
-
- _To renew our covenant, and how_ 275
-
- _To express a love to all saints_ 276
-
-_What behaviour unsuitable_ ibid
-
-_Vows, how to be made there_ 278
-
- _How to be fulfilled_ ibid
-
-_A frequent attendance, how encouraged_ 280
-
-
-QUEST. CLXXVI, CLXXVII. Wherein Baptism and the Lord’s supper agree, and
-wherein they differ 281-284
-
-
-QUEST. CLXXVIII. Of Prayer 285
-
-
-_Of the kinds and parts of prayer_ 287
-
- _Confession of sin the duty of all_ 288
-
- _An objection answered_ ibid
-
- _How to be performed_ 290
-
- _What sins to be confessed_ ibid
-
- _The sin of our nature_ ibid
-
- _And all actual transgressions_ 291
-
-_Thankfulness for mercies, a duty_ 293
-
- _In every age and condition of life_ ibid
-
- _For relative and personal mercies_ 294
-
-
-QUEST. CLXXIX, CLXXX, CLXXXI. To whom, and in whose name we must pray
-298
-
-
-_We are to pray to God only_ 299
-
- _What it is to pray in Christ’s name_ 300
-
- _Why we are to pray in his name_ 301
-
-
-QUEST. CLXXXII, CLXXXIII, CLXXXIV. Of the Spirit’s help in prayer; for
-whom and for what we are to pray 302
-
-
-_The Spirits assistance in prayer_ 303
-
- _What this supposes_ ibid
-
- _It respects the matter of prayer_ ibid
-
- _The inward frame of heart_ 304
-
- _And the success of the duty_ 306
-
-_Of raised affections in prayer_ 308
-
-_Persons to be prayed for, are_
-
- _The whole church militant_ 309
-
- _The ministers of Christ_ 311
-
- _Our enemies, and all men living_ 312
-
-_Purgatory a fiction_ 315
-
-_The dead are not to be prayed for_ 314
-
- _The opinion of the ancients about it_ 315
-
- _Nor they who have sinned the sin unto death_ 318
-
- _What that sin is_ ibid
-
- _Whether now committed_ 319
-
- _Doubts about it resolved_ 320
-
-_What things we are to pray for_ 322
-
-
-QUEST. CLXXXV. How we are to pray 323
-
-
-_With a suitable frame_ ibid
-
- _In the exercise of grace_ 324
-
- _What necessary thereunto_ 334
-
-_Of faith in prayer_ 329
-
- _Promises of help in prayer_ 330
-
- _Promises of God’s hearing prayer_ 331
-
-_Objections against praying answered_ 332
-
-_Love to God to be exercised in prayer_ 333
-
-_Discouragements from praying removed_ 336
-
-
-QUEST. CLXXXVI, CLXXXVII. Of the Rule for our direction in prayer 338
-
-
-_How the word of God directs herein_ 339
-
-_What expressions equivalent to promises_ 342
-
-_Promises of outward blessings_ 344
-
- _Of spiritual and temporal_ 345
-
-_Promises to the afflicted_ 346
-
- _To the depressed in prayer_ 347
-
- _Respecting ordinances_ 349
-
- _Of grace and peace_ 350
-
-_How these are of use in prayer_ 351
-
-_Reproofs are of use in prayer_ 353
-
-_So are prayers recorded in Scripture_ 354
-
-_Inferences from these directions_ 355
-
-_The Lord’s prayer a special direction_ 356
-
-
-QUEST. CLXXXVIII, CLXXXIX. The Preface of the Lord’s Prayer explained
-359
-
-
-_God, how a Father to men_ 360
-
- _First known, then addressed as such_ 362
-
- _How to be prayed to as being in heaven_ 365
-
-_Child-like dispositions required in us_ 364
-
-
-QUEST. CXC. The first Petition explained 368
-
-
-_God’s name, what meant by it_ 369
-
- _How he sanctifies it himself_ ibid
-
- _How sanctified in redemption_ 370
-
- _How under the legal dispensation_ 371
-
- _How under the gospel_ 373
-
-_What intended by_, Hallowed be thy Name 375
-
-_What to be prayed for, that we may do it_ 376
-
- _What to be deprecated to that end_ 379
-
-_When God’s name is hallowed_ 381
-
-_How, when things are disposed to his glory_ 382
-
-
-QUEST. CXCI. The second Petition explained 384
-
-
-_Of God’s providential kingdom_ 385
-
- _Of his kingdom of grace_ 386
-
-_Satan’s kingdom, how to be destroyed_ 387
-
- _How we are to pray for its destruction_ 388
-
-_Christ’s kingdom, how to be advanced_ 389
-
- _How we are to pray for its advancement_ 390
-
- _And that his kingdom of glory may come_ 394
-
-
-QUEST. CXCII, The third Petition explained 396
-
-
-_Of prayer to an unchangeable God—in note_ 397-402
-
-_Our averseness to the will of God_ 402
-
-_Of praying that his will may be done_ 403
-
-
-QUEST. CXCIII. The fourth Petition explained 407
-
-
-_What supposed in praying for daily bread_ 407
-
- _What intended in praying for bread_ 409
-
- _Why we call it ours_ 410
-
-_What we are to understand by_ this day 411
-
-_This petition respects ourselves and others_ 412
-
-
-QUEST. CXCIV. The fifth Petition explained 414
-
-
-_The case of man when charged with guilt_ 415
-
- _Pardon, none but God can give it_ 417
-
- _All are to pray for it_ 418
-
- _How God is to be considered when we pray thus_ 420
-
-_Of our forgiving others_ 425
-
- _What meant thereby_ 424
-
- _Arguments to induce thereunto_ 426
-
- _Of doing it without satisfaction_ ibid
-
- _An objection answered_ 428
-
- _When a sign of God’s forgiving us_ 429
-
-
-QUEST. CXCV. The sixth Petition explained 431
-
-
-_What this Petition supposes_ 432
-
-_How God tempts, and why_ 433
-
-_God not the cause of sin—in note_ 433-435
-
-Deliver us from evil, _how understood_ 438
-
-_Temptations arise from prosperity_ 439
-
- _From adversity_ 441
-
- _From the flesh_ 442
-
- _From Satan_ 443
-
- _When from him, and when from ourselves_ 445
-
-_Remarks upon Satan’s temptations_ 446
-
- _They increase sin_ 448
-
- _Are suited to every age_ 449
-
- _And to the tempers of men_ 451
-
- _He endeavours to prevent conviction_ 452
-
- _To hinder preaching the gospel_ 453
-
- _To prevent closing with Christ_ 454
-
- _He injects blasphemous thoughts_ 457
-
- _He tempts to despair_ 458
-
-_How we are to pray against temptation_ 461
-
-
-QUEST. CXCVI. What the conclusion of the Lord’s Prayer teacheth 465
-
-
-_The Doxology explained_ 466
-
- _The pleas contained in it_ 467
-
-_The meaning of the word_ Amen 468
-
-_Whether all should say aloud_, Amen 471
-
-
-
-
- THE _DOCTRINES_ OF THE CHRISTIAN RELIGION EXPLAINED AND DEFENDED.
-
-
- Quest. CXXXVII., CXXXVIII., CXXXIX.
-
-
- QUEST. CXXXVII. _Which is the seventh Commandment?_
-
- ANSW. The seventh Commandment is, [_Thou shalt not commit
- adultery._]
-
- QUEST. CXXXVIII. _What are the duties required in the seventh
- Commandment?_
-
- ANSW. The duties required in the seventh Commandment, are, chastity
- in body, mind, affections, words, and behaviour; and the
- preservation of it in ourselves and others; watchfulness over the
- eyes, and all the senses; temperance, keeping of chaste company,
- modesty in apparel, marriage by those that have not the gift of
- continency; conjugal love, and cohabitation, diligent labour in our
- callings, shunning all occasions of uncleanness, resisting
- temptations thereunto.
-
- QUEST. CXXXIX. _What are the sins forbidden in the seventh
- Commandment?_
-
- ANSW. The sins forbidden in the seventh Commandment, besides the
- neglect of the duties required, are, adultery, fornication, rape,
- incest, sodomy, and all unnatural lusts, all unclean imaginations,
- thoughts, purposes, and affections, all corrupt or filthy
- communications, or listening thereunto; wanton looks, impudent, or
- light behaviour; immodest apparel; prohibiting of lawful, and
- dispensing with unlawful marriages, allowing, tolerating, keeping of
- stews, and resorting to them; intangling vows of single life; undue
- delay of marriage, having more wives or husbands than one, at the
- same time; unjust divorce, or desertion; idleness, gluttony,
- drunkenness, unchaste company, lascivious songs, books, pictures,
- dancings, stage plays, and all other provocations to, or acts of
- uncleanness, either in ourselves or others.
-
-This Commandment respects, more especially, the government of the
-affections, and the keeping our minds and bodies in such an holy frame,
-that nothing impure, immodest, or contrary to the strictest chastity,
-may defile, or be a reproach to us, or insinuate itself into our
-conversation with one another. And, in order thereunto, we are to set a
-strict watch over our thoughts and actions, and avoid every thing that
-may be an occasion of this sin, and use those proper methods that may
-prevent all temptations to it. Therefore we ought to associate ourselves
-with none but those whose conversation is chaste, and such as becomes
-Christians, to abhor all words and actions that are not so much as to be
-named among persons professing godliness. As for those who cannot,
-without inconveniency, govern their affections, but are sometimes
-tempted to any thing that is inconsistent with that purity of heart and
-life, which all ought religiously to maintain, it is their duty to enter
-into a married state; which is an ordinance that God has appointed, to
-prevent the breach of this Commandment. And this leads us to consider
-the sins forbidden therein, together with the occasions thereof.
-
-I. Concerning the sins forbidden in this Commandment. And,
-
-1. Some are not only contrary to nature, but inconsistent with the least
-pretences to religion; which were abhorred by the very Heathen
-themselves, and, by the law of God, punished with death; which
-punishment, when it has not been inflicted, God has, by his immediate
-hand, testified his vengeance against sinners, by raining down fire and
-brimstone from heaven, as he did upon the inhabitants of Sodom and
-Gomorrha, Lev. xviii. 22,—25. chap. xx. 13, 15, 16. Rom. i. 24, 26, 27,
-28. Gen. xix. 24. These sins are called in this answer, incest, sodomy,
-and unnatural lusts. To which we may add, offering violence to others,
-and thereby forcing them to do what they could not even think of, but
-with abhorrence; this is called rape; and, by the law of God, the guilty
-person was punished with death, Deut. xxii. 25.
-
-2. There are other sins, whereby this Commandment is violated; which,
-though more common, are, nevertheless, such as are attended with a very
-great degree of guilt and impurity. These are either, such as are
-committed by those who are unmarried, _viz._ fornication, or by those
-who are married, as adultery; the latter of which, by the law of God,
-was punished with death, Lev. xx. 10. as contained in it several
-aggravating circumstances; inasmuch as hereby the marriage contract is
-violated; that mutual affection, which is the end of that relation
-broken; and thereby the greatest injury is done to the innocent as well
-as ruin brought on the guilty. However, both these sins agree in this,
-that they proceed from a corrupt heart; as our Saviour says, Mat. xv.
-19. and argue the person that is guilty of them, alienated from the life
-of God. And to this we may add,
-
-3. That, another sin forbidden in this Commandment is, polygamy, or a
-having more husbands, or wives, than one, at the same time; together
-with that which often accompanies it, _viz._ concubinage. It is beyond
-dispute, that many good men have been guilty of this sin, as appears by
-what is recorded, in scripture, concerning Abraham, Jacob, David, _&c._
-and we do not find that they are expressly reproved for it, which has
-given occasion to some modern writers, to think that it was not unlawful
-in those ages, but was afterwards rendered so by being prohibited under
-the gospel-dispensation[1]. This, indeed, cuts the knot of a very
-considerable difficulty; but it contains another that is equally great;
-inasmuch as hereby it does not appear to be contrary to the law of
-nature; and therefore I would rather chuse to take another method to
-solve it, viz. that many bad actions of good men are recorded in
-scripture, but not approved of, nor proposed for our imitation. Of this
-kind I must conclude the polygamy and concubinage of several holy men,
-mentioned in scripture, to have been. And that it may appear that this
-practice was not justifiable, let it be observed,
-
-(1.) That, some sin or other is often expressly mentioned, as the
-occasion hereof. Thus Abraham’s taking Hagar, was occasioned by Sarah’s
-unbelief; because the promise of her having a son was not immediately
-fulfilled, Gen. xvi. 1, 2. And Jacob’s taking Rachel to wife after Leah,
-and his own discontent arising from it, was occasioned by Laban’s unjust
-dealing with him, and his going in unto Bilhah, was occasioned by
-Rachel’s unreasonable desire of children; and his taking Zilpah, by
-Leah’s ambitious desire of having pre-eminence over Rachel, by the
-number of her children, chap. xxix, and xxx.
-
-(2.) This was generally attended with the breach of that peace, which is
-so desirable a blessing in families, and many disorders that ensued
-hereupon. Accordingly, we read of an irreconcilable quarrel that there
-was between Sarah and Hagar; and Ishmael’s hatred of Isaac, which the
-apostle calls _persecution_, Gal. iv. 39. And to this we may add, the
-contentions that were in Jacob’s family, and the envy expressed by the
-children of one of his wives, against those of another; and the
-opposition which one wife often expressed to another as that of
-Peninnah, one of the wives of Elkanah, to Hannah, the other. Therefore
-we must conclude, that Isaac’s example is rather to be followed in this
-matter, who had but one wife, and he loved her better than many of the
-patriarch’s did theirs; whose love was divided among several.
-
-_Object._ 1. If polygamy was a sin against the light of nature, it is
-strange, that it should be committed by good men; and, that they should
-live and die without repenting of it, nor be, in the least, reproved for
-it; as we do not find that they were, in scripture.
-
-_Answ._ It was indeed, a sin, which they might have known to be so, had
-they duly considered it, in all its circumstances and consequences; but
-this they did not; and therefore it was not so great a sin in them, as
-it would be in us, who have clearer discoveries of the heinous nature of
-it. Therefore, if we suppose they repented of all sin agreeably to the
-light they had, they might be saved; and this, though unrepented of, was
-no bar to their salvation, supposing they knew it not to be a sin; and
-God’s not having explicitly reproved them for it, argues only his
-forbearance, but not his approbation of it.
-
-_Object._ 2. It is farther objected, that God says, by Nathan, to David,
-_I gave thee thy master’s wives into thy bosom_, 2 Sam. xii. 8.
-therefore, that which God gives, it is not unlawful for man to receive.
-
-_Answ._ The meaning of that scripture in general, is, that God made him
-king; and then, according to the custom of the eastern kings, he took
-possession of what belonged to his predecessor, and consequently of his
-wives. Therefore God might be said to give David Saul’s wives
-providentially, in giving him the kingdom; so that they were his
-property, that he might take them for his own, according to custom, if
-he was inclined so to do. And this the kings of Judah generally did;
-though it does not follow from hence that God approved of it; in like
-manner as tyrants may be said to be raised up by God’s providence and
-permission; nevertheless, he does not approve of their tyranny.
-
-All that we shall add, under this head, to what has been suggested,
-concerning the disorders that polygamy has occasioned in families, is,
-that it is contrary to the first institution of marriage. God created
-but one woman as an help-meet for Adam; though, if ever there were any
-pretence for the necessity of one man’s having more wives, it must have
-been in that instance, in which it seemed necessary for the increase of
-the world; but he rather chose that mankind should be propagated by
-slower advances, than to give the least dispensation, or indulgence to
-polygamy, as being contrary to the law of nature, Gen. ii. 22,-24. And
-the prophet, in Mal. ii. 15. takes notice of God’s _making but one_;
-though he had _the residue of the Spirit_; and therefore could have
-given Adam more wives than one. And the reason assigned for this was,
-that _he might seek a godly seed_, i. e. that the children that should
-be born of many wives, might not be the result of the ungodly practice
-of their father, as it would be, were this contrary to the law of
-nature; which we suppose it to be. This I rather understand by _a godly
-seed_, and not that the character of _godly_ refers to the children; for
-these could not be said to be godly, or ungodly, as the consequence of
-their parents having one or more wives.
-
-There is one scripture more that I cannot wholly pass over, which, to
-me, seems a plain prohibition of polygamy, in Levit. xviii. 18. _Thou
-shalt not take a wife to her sister, to vex her, to uncover her
-nakedness, besides the other in her life-time._ This respects either
-incest or polygamy; one of which must be meant by _taking a wife to her
-sister_. Now it cannot be a prohibition of incest; because it is said,
-_Thou shalt not_ do it _in her life-time_; which plainly intimates, that
-it might be done after her death. Whereas it is certainly contrary to
-the law of God and nature, for a person to take his wife’s sister after
-her decease, as well as in her life-time. Therefore the meaning is, Thou
-shalt not take another wife to her whom thou hast married; by which
-means they will become sisters. And here is another reason assigned
-hereof, _viz._ the envy, jealousy, and vexation that would attend such a
-practice, as the taking another wife would be a means of vexing, or
-making her uneasy. And therefore the sense is, as is observed in the
-marginal reading; _Thou shalt not take one wife to another_; or, Thou
-shalt not have more wives than one. This is a plain prohibition of this
-sin; but whether some holy men, in following ages, understood the
-meaning of this law, may be questioned; and therefore they were not
-sensible of the guilt they hereby contracted. Thus we have considered
-some of the sins forbidden in this Commandment. Every particular
-instance of the breach hereof, would exceed our intended brevity, on the
-subject we are treating of. Therefore,
-
-We shall proceed to consider the aggravations, more especially, of the
-sins of fornication and adultery; which may also with just reason, be
-applied to all other unnatural lusts; which have been before considered
-as a breach of this Commandment. And,
-
-[1.] They are opposite to sanctification, even as darkness is to light,
-hell to heaven; thus the apostle opposes fornication and uncleanness, to
-it, 1 Thes. iv. 3, 7.
-
-[2.] These sins are inconsistent with that relation, we pretend to stand
-in, to Christ, as members of his body; inasmuch as we join ourselves in
-a confederacy with his profligate enemies, 1 Cor. vi. 15, 16. And to
-this we may add, that they are a dishonour to, and a defilement of our
-own bodies, which ought to be the temples of the Holy Ghost, and
-therefore should be consecrated to him.
-
-[3.] They bring guilt and ruin on two persons at once, as well as a blot
-and stain on each of their families, and a wound to religion by those
-who make any profession of it, as it _gives occasion to the enemies of
-the Lord to blaspheme_, Prov. vi. 33. 2 Sam. xii. 14.
-
-[4.] They bring with them many other sins; as they tend to vitiate the
-affections, deprave the mind, defile the conscience, and provoke God to
-give persons up to spiritual judgments, which will end in their running
-into all excess of riot.
-
-And to this we may add, that many sad consequences will ensue on the
-commission of these sins; as they tend to blast and ruin their substance
-in the world, Job xxxi. 9, 11, 12. debase and stupify the soul, and
-deprive it of wisdom, Hos. iv. 11. Prov. vi. 32. chap. vii. 22. wound
-the conscience, and expose the person who is guilty hereof, to the
-utmost hazard of perishing for ever, chap. vi. 33. chap. vii. 13, 19,
-26, 27. And if God is pleased to give him repentance, it will be
-attended with great bitterness, Eccl. vii. 26.
-
-II. We are now to consider the occasion of these sins to be avoided by
-those who would not break this Commandment, and these are,
-
-1. Intemperance, or excess in eating or drinking; the former of which is
-a making provision for the flesh, to fulfil the lusts thereof; the
-latter confounds and buries the little reason a person was master of,
-and makes him an easy prey to temptation. This was Lot’s case, who kept
-his integrity in Sodom; yet being made drunk by his daughters in Zoar,
-he committed the abominable sin of incest with them, Gen. xix. 31.
-
-2. Idleness, consisting either in the neglect of business, or indulging
-too much sleep, which occasions many temptations. Thus David first gave
-way to sloth, and then was tempted to uncleanness; and it is observed,
-that _at the time when kings go forth to battle_, 2 Sam. xi. 1, 2. and
-he ought to have been with his army in the field, he tarried at
-Jerusalem, and slept in the middle of the day; for _in the evening tide
-he arose from off his bed_; And the heinous sin he was guilty of, which
-was the greatest blemish in his life, ensued hereupon.
-
-3. Pride in apparel, or other ornaments, beyond the bounds of modesty,
-or for other ends than what God, when he clothed man at first, intended;
-when our attire is inconsistent with our circumstances in the world, or
-the character of persons professing godliness: This God reproves the
-Jews for, when grown very degenerate, and near to ruin, Isa. iii. 16,
-_&c._ _seq._ And Jezebel, when Jehu came in quest of her, _painted her
-face, and tired her head_; but this did not prevent his executing God’s
-righteous judgments upon her. All these things are mentioned as the sins
-for which Sodom was infamous; and gave occasion to those other
-abominations, which provoked God to destroy them, Ezek. xvi. 49. And to
-this we may add,
-
-4. Keeping evil company: Thus it is said of the lewd woman, _she hath
-cast down many wounded_, Prov. vii. 26. This will hasten our own ruin;
-especially if we associate ourselves with such persons out of choice:
-for it is a sign that our hearts are exceedingly depraved and alienated
-from God: Nevertheless, if Providence cast our lot amongst bad company,
-we may escape that guilt and defilement, which would otherwise ensue, if
-we bear our testimony against their sin, and are _grieved_ for it, as
-Lot was for the filthy conversation of the Sodomites, among whom he
-dwelt, 2 Pet. ii. 7, 8. Moreover, the frequenting those places where
-there are mixed dancing, masquerades, stage-plays, _&c._ which tend to
-corrupt the principles and practices, and seldom fail of defiling the
-consciences, and manners of those who attend on them: These are
-nurseries of vice, and give occasion to this sin, and many others, Prov.
-vi. 27, compared with 32.
-
-As for the remedies against it, these are, an exercising a constant
-watchfulness against all temptations thereunto, chap. viii. 9. avoiding
-all conversation with men or books which tend to corrupt the mind, and
-fill it with levity, under a pretence of improving it: But more
-especially a retaining a constant sense of God’s all-seeing eye, his
-infinite purity and vindictive justice, which will induce us to say as
-Joseph did, in the like case, _How can I do this great wickedness and
-sin against God_, Gen. xxxix. 9.[2]
-
-Footnote 1:
-
- _Vid. Grot. de jur. bell. & pacis, Lib. ii. cap. v. § 9._
-
-Footnote 2:
-
- The Theatre is said to have commenced at Athens, but to have been so
- much disapproved of, both in Greece and at Rome, that it was allowed
- no permanency till the days of Pompey. Minutius Felix derided the
- Christians for abstaining from this amusement. It is not probable
- therefore that the first Christians required any reproof in any of the
- Epistles for this vice. But every abuse of it may find its correction
- in scripture. Morals and piety may be thrown into Dialogue without
- reasonable objection. But to turn these things into play, and the
- amusement of the reprobate, cannot be justified.—There is no fairness
- in arguing from what they might be, to prove the lawfulness of plays
- in the state in which they are, always have been, and will probably
- always be. That they are, and tend to evil is proved by the avidity
- with which they are frequented by even the worst members of society.
- They are calculated to excite the affections and passions in the
- highest manner, and so to render private happiness, domestic
- enjoyments, and religious observances insipid or disgusting. The
- reiteration of scenes of impurity, illicit amours, extravagant
- passions, jealousy, and revenge, will make a silent and secret
- impression upon the mind, and if they do not promote the same
- wickedness, they will at least render the mind less abhorrent of such
- crimes. True religion requires the exclusion of such imaginations, the
- immediate banishment of such thoughts, that we should mortify and deny
- ourselves; “_Blessed are the pure in heart for they shall see God._”
- The cruelty and bloodshed frequently threatened, or resorted to in
- defence of false honour; the pomp, pride, and ambition not
- unfrequently exhibited upon the stage, must necessarily prompt to like
- feats in vindication of character, or at least lead to self-importance
- and fastidiousness; but the gospel teaches humility, self-denial,
- lowliness of mind; “_Blessed are the poor in spirit._” When such
- representations please, they prove the mind corrupt, and become an
- index of the morals of those who are entertained with such spectacles.
- The Christian duties of meekness, silence, forbearance, humility,
- bearing the cross, faith, and repentance, are either incapable of
- being transferred to the stage, or if seen there are exposed to
- contempt, and ridicule. The addresses to Deity, and prayers there
- offered, are surely Heaven-provoking blasphemies. The Theatre
- interrupts religious, domestic, and public duties; it dissipates and
- fascinates the mind; weakens conscience, grieves the Holy Spirit,
- wastes property, and time; and unqualifies both for this, and the
- world to come.
-
- Every one who attends is chargeable with the evil which obtains before
- him, for he goes voluntarily, he submits himself as to the matter of
- his amusement to others, and thus with the blessings of Providence,
- bribes the enemies of God to blaspheme him.
-
- Some men of character for morals have countenanced, and some have
- written for the stage, perhaps they calculated upon what it might be,
- and aimed to correct the evil by drawing to it the more respectable of
- society. But the great majority of men are enemies to God, these will
- only be pleased with evil, and their pleasure will always be sought,
- because interest will compel to this. This is therefore doing evil
- that good may come; if indeed it can under any circumstances be good,
- to turn even correct performances, if such there were, into publick
- amusement.
-
- After all there can be no hope of a total removal of this evil, yet we
- are on this account no more excused from bearing testimony against it,
- than from opposing other crimes which cannot be wholly prevented.
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CXL., CXLI.
-
-
- QUEST. CXL. _Which is the eighth Commandment?_
-
- ANSW. The eighth Commandment is, [_Thou shalt not steal._]
-
- QUEST. CXLI. _What are the duties required in the eighth
- Commandment?_
-
- ANSW. The duties required in the eighth Commandment are, truth,
- faithfulness, and justice in contracts, and commerce between man and
- man; rendering to every one his due; restitution of goods unlawfully
- detained from the right owners thereof; giving, and lending freely,
- according to our abilities, and the necessities of others;
- moderation of our judgments, wills, and affections, concerning
- worldly goods; a provident care and study to get, keep, use, and
- dispose those things which are necessary and convenient for the
- sustentation of our nature, and suitable to our condition; a lawful
- calling, and diligence in it; frugality, avoiding unnecessary
- law-suits, and suretyship, or other like engagements; and an
- endeavour, by all just and lawful means, to procure, preserve, and
- further the wealth and outward estate of others, as well as our own.
-
-This Commandment supposes, that God has given to every one a certain
-portion of the good things of this world, that he may lay claim to as
-his own; which no other has a right to. The general scope and design
-thereof, is to put us upon using endeavours to promote our own and our
-neighbour’s wealth and outward estate. As to what concerns ourselves, it
-respects the government of our affections, and setting due bounds to our
-desires of worldly things, that they may not exceed what the good
-providence of God has allotted for us, in order to our comfortable
-passage through this world. Thus Agar prays, _Give me neither poverty
-nor riches; feed me with food convenient for me_, Prov. xxx. 8.
-
-As to what respects our endeavours to gain the world; it requires a due
-care and diligence, to get, and keep a competency thereof; that we may
-not, through our own default, expose ourselves to those straits and
-necessities which are the consequence of sloth and negligence, chap.
-xxiii. 21. chap. xxiv. 30, 31. God may, indeed, give estates to some
-without any pains, or care to get them, Deut. vi. 10, 11. yet, even in
-this case, sloth is a sin which brings with it many hurtful lusts, that
-render riches a snare, and hindrance to their spiritual welfare:
-Therefore they, who are in prosperous circumstances in the world, ought
-not to lay aside all care and industry to improve, what they have to the
-glory of God. But, on the other hand, they who are in a low condition,
-ought to use a provident care and diligence, in order to their having a
-comfortable subsistence therein. Accordingly this Commandment obliges us
-to use all lawful endeavours to promote our own and our neighbour’s
-wealth, and outward estate.
-
-I. To promote our own wealth and estate. This we are to do,
-
-1. By frugality in our expences, avoiding profuseness; and that, either
-in giving away our substance to unfit objects, to wit, those who are in
-better circumstances than ourselves, who ought to be givers rather than
-receivers, Prov. xxii. 16. or else in making large contributions to
-support a bad cause, and in consuming our substance on our lusts.
-Likewise when we are unwarily profuse in those expences, which would be
-otherwise lawful, did they not exceed our circumstances or income in the
-world, which contains a disregard of the future estate of our families,
-and taking a method to reduce ourselves and them to poverty, 1 Tim. v.
-8. Or, if our circumstances will admit of large expenses; yet, to abound
-therein, merely out of ostentation, and at the same time, to withhold
-our liberality from the poor is inconsistent with frugality.
-
-2. We ought also to be diligent, and industrious in our calling; and, in
-order thereunto,
-
-(1.) We are wisely to make choice of such a calling, in which we may
-glorify God, and expect his blessing, in order to the promoting our
-wealth and outward estate; therefore that business is to be chosen which
-we are most capable of managing, and has in itself the fewest
-temptations attending it; especially such wherein the conscience is not
-burdened by unlawful oaths, or prostituting solemn ordinances, not
-designed by Christ as a qualification for them. Moreover, we are not to
-choose those callings wherein the gain is obtained by oppression or
-extortion, and which cannot be managed without danger of sinning; which
-will bring the blast of providence on all our undertakings. Therefore we
-are earnestly to desire God’s direction in this weighty concern, as well
-as depend on him for success therein, Eccl. ix. 11. Deut. viii. 18.
-
-(2.) When we have made choice of a lawful calling, we are to manage it
-in such a way, that we may expect the blessing of God, in order to the
-promoting our wealth and outward estate. Accordingly,
-
-[1.] Let us pursue and manage it with right and warrantable ends, to
-wit, the glory of God; and, in subordination thereunto, our providing
-for ourselves and families, that we may be in a capacity of doing good
-to others, and serving the interest of Christ in our day and generation.
-
-[2.] Let us take heed that our secular employments do not rob God of
-that time, which ought to be devoted to his worship; and that our hearts
-be not alienated from him, so that while we are labouring for the world,
-we should live without God therein.
-
-[3.] Let us take heed that we do not launch out too far, or run too
-great hazards in trade, resolving that we will be suddenly rich or poor,
-which may tend to the ruin of our own families, as well as others, 1
-Tim. vi. 9.
-
-[4.] Let us bear disappointments in our callings, with patience and
-submission to the will of God, without murmuring or repining at his wise
-and sovereign dispensations of providence herein.
-
-II. This Commandment obliges us to promote the wealth and outward estate
-of our neighbour. This we are to do, by exercising strict justice in our
-contracts and dealings with all men; and by relieving the wants and
-necessities of those who stand in need of our charity.
-
-1. As to what respects the exercise of justice in our dealings.
-
-(1.) We must take heed, that we do not exact upon, or take unreasonable
-profit of those whom we deal with, arising from the ignorance of some,
-and the necessities of others, Jer. iii. 15. Neither, must we use any
-methods to supplant and ruin others, against the laws of trade, by
-selling goods at a cheaper rate than any one can afford them, thereby
-doing damage to ourselves with a design to ruin them, who are less able
-to bear such a loss.
-
-(2.) Those goods, which we know to be faulty, are not, by false arts, or
-deceitful words, to be sold, as though they were not so, Amos viii. 6.
-And, on the other hand, the buyer is not to take advantage of the
-ignorance of the seller, as it sometimes happens; neither is he to
-pretend that it is worth less than he really thinks it to be, Prov. xx.
-14.
-
-(3.) Nothing is to be diminished in weight or measure, from what was
-bought, worse goods to be delivered than what were purchased, Amos vii.
-5. nor the _balances to be falsified by deceit_, Deut. xxv. 13, 14, 15.
-
-2. We are to promote the good of our poor distressed neighbour, in works
-of charity; and that not only by inward sympathy, or bowels of
-compassion towards him; but according to our ability, by relieving him.
-To induce us hereunto, let us consider, that outward good things are
-talents given us, with this view, that hereby we may be in a capacity of
-helping others, as well as be needing help ourselves. And when we do
-this, we may be said to improve what we have received from God, as those
-who are accountable to him for it, and testify our gratitude to him for
-outward blessings. It may also be considered, that Christ takes such
-acts of kindness, when proceeding from an unfeigned love to him, as done
-to himself, Matt. xxv. 40. Prov. xix. 17. And, to this we may add, that
-there are many special motives, taken from the objects of our charity,
-namely, the pressing necessities of some, the excelling holiness of
-others; and, in some instances, we may consider, that, by an act of
-charity, whereby we relieve one, we do good to many; or the tendency
-that this may have to promote the interest of Christ in general, when we
-relieve those that suffer for the sake of the gospel. This leads us to
-consider,
-
-(1.) Of whom works of charity are required. If this be duly weighed, we
-shall find, that scarce any are exempted from this duty, except it be
-those of whom it may be said, there are none poorer than themselves, or
-who have no more than what is absolutely necessary to support their
-families, or such as are labouring hard, to spare out of their necessary
-expenses, what will but just serve to pay their debts; or they who are
-reduced to such straits as to depend upon others, so that they can call
-nothing they have their own.
-
-Nevertheless, this duty is incumbent;
-
-[1.] On the rich, out of their abundance.
-
-[2.] On those who are in middle circumstances in the world, who have a
-sufficiency to lay out in superfluous expenses: And,
-
-[3.] Even the poor ought to give a small testimony of their gratitude to
-God, by sparing a little, if they can, out of what they get in the
-world, for those who are poorer than themselves; which, if it be but a
-few mites, it may be an acceptable sacrifice to God, Luke xxi. 2, 4.
-and, if persons have nothing before hand in the world, they ought to
-work for this end, as well as to maintain themselves and families, Eph.
-iv. 28.
-
-(2.) We are now to consider, who are to be reckoned objects of our
-charity. To which it may be answered; Not the rich, who stand in no need
-of it, from whom we may expect a sufficient requital, Luke xiv. 12, 13,
-14. nor those who are strong and healthy, but yet make a trade of
-begging, because it is an idle and sometimes a profitable way of living,
-2 Thess. iii. 10-12. But such are to be relieved, who are not able to
-work; especially if they were not reduced to poverty by their own sloth
-and negligence, but by the providence of God not succeeding their
-endeavours; and if, while they were able, they were ready to all works
-of charity themselves, 1 Tim. v. 10. and to these we may add, such who
-are related to us, either in the bonds of nature, or in a spiritual
-sense, Gal. vi. 10. This leads us to enquire,
-
-(3.) What part, or proportion of our substance, we are to apply to
-charitable uses? In answer to this, let it be considered, that the
-circumstances of persons in the world being so various, as well as their
-necessary occasions for extraordinary expenses, it is impossible to give
-a general rule, to be observed by all. However, it must be premised,
-
-[1.] That our present contributions, ought not to preclude all thoughts,
-about laying up for ourselves or families, for time to come.
-
-[2.] Whatever proportion we give of our gain in the world, some
-abatements may reasonably be made for losses in trade; especially if
-what we give was not determined, or laid aside, for that use before the
-loss happened. As to what may farther be observed concerning this
-matter, it ought to be left to the impartial determination of every one,
-who is to act, as being sensible that he is accountable to God herein.
-The apostle lays down one general rule; _Every man, according as he
-purposeth in his heart, so let him give; not grudgingly, or of
-necessity; for God loveth a cheerful giver_, 2 Cor. ix. 7. But though we
-pretend not to determine the exact proportion which ought to be given,
-_viz._ whether it be a tenth part of their profits, or more, or less;
-yet it is highly reasonable, that every one should contribute as much in
-works of charity, as he lays out in mere superfluities; or, at least,
-spare a part out of his superfluous expenses, for charitable uses. And
-there are some occasions which may call for large contributions. Thus
-_the churches in Macedonia_ are commended, not only for their _giving
-according to_, but _beyond their power_, chap. viii. 1, 2, 3. _Three_
-things may be here considered,
-
-_1st_, The extreme necessities of those whom we are bound to take care
-of; and, sometimes, the distressed circumstances of the church of God,
-in general, require larger contributions than ordinary; which was the
-occasion of the Command mentioned by our Saviour, of selling all, and
-giving to the poor, which was put in practice in the infancy of the
-church, or the first planting of the gospel, at Jerusalem.
-
-_2dly_, Extraordinary instances of the kindness of God, in prospering
-us, either in worldly or spiritual concerns, beyond our expectation,
-call for extraordinary expressions of gratitude to God, in laying by for
-the poor, 1 Cor. xvi. 2.
-
-_3dly_, When we have committed great sins, or are under very humbling
-providences, whether personal or national, as being exposed to, or
-fearing the judgments of God, which seem to be approaching; this calls
-for deep humiliation, and, together therewith, proportionable acts of
-charity.
-
-(4.) We are now to consider, with what frame of spirit works of charity
-are to be performed? To which, it may be answered, that they are to be
-performed prudently, as our own circumstances will permit, and the
-necessity of the object requires; also seasonably, not putting this duty
-off till another time, when the necessities of those, whom we are bound
-to relieve, call for present assistance, Prov. ii. 28. It is also to be
-done secretly, as not desiring to be seen of men, or commended by them
-for it, Matt. vi. 3, 4, and cheerfully, 2 Cor. ix. 7. also with
-tenderness and compassion to those whose necessities call for relief, as
-considering how soon God can reduce us to the same extremity which they
-are exposed to, who are the objects of our charity. It ought to be done
-likewise with thankfulness to God, that has made us givers, rather than
-receivers, Acts x. 35. and, as a testimony of our love to Christ,
-especially when we contribute to the necessities of his members, Matt.
-x. 42.
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CXLII.
-
-
- QUEST. CXLII. _What are the sins forbidden in the eighth
- Commandment?_
-
- ANSW. The sins forbidden in the eighth Commandment, besides the
- neglect of the duties required, are, theft, robbery, man-stealing,
- and receiving any thing that is stolen, fraudulent dealing, false
- weights and measures, removing landmarks, injustice and
- unfaithfulness in contracts between man and man, or in matters of
- trust; oppression, extortion, usury, bribery, vexatious law-suits,
- unjust inclosures, and depopulations; ingrossing commodities to
- enhance the price, unlawful callings, and all other unjust, or
- sinful ways of taking, or withholding from our neighbour what
- belongs to him, or of enriching ourselves. Covetousness, inordinate
- prizing and affecting worldly goods; distrustful and distracting
- cares and studies in getting, keeping, and using them, envying at
- the prosperity of others. As likewise idleness, prodigality,
- wasteful gaming, and all other ways whereby we do unduly prejudice
- our own outward estate; and defrauding ourselves of the due use and
- comfort of that estate which God hath given us.
-
-This Commandment forbids, in general all kind of theft; and may include
-in it that which is very seldom called by this name, to wit, the robbing
-of ourselves and families; which we may be said to do, by neglecting our
-worldly calling, or by the imprudent management thereof. Also, by
-lending larger sums of money than our circumstances will well bear, to
-those who are never like to pay it again; or, which is in effect the
-same, by being surety for such. Moreover we rob ourselves and families,
-by being profuse and excessive in our expenses; and by consuming what we
-have, while pursuing our pleasures more than business; or by gaming,
-whereby we run the risque of losing part of our substance, and thereby
-reducing ourselves, or others, to poverty. On the other hand, we rob
-ourselves and families, when, out of a design to lay up a great deal for
-the time to come, we deprive ourselves and them, of the common
-necessaries of life, which is, in effect, to starve for the present, to
-prevent our starving for the future. But, passing this by, we shall
-consider this Commandment more especially, as it respects our defrauding
-others; and this is done,
-
-I. By taking away any part of their wealth, or worldly substance. This
-is generally known by the name of theft, and that, with the greatest
-severity, in proportion to its aggravations; and they who are guilty of
-it, are, without repentance, excluded from the kingdom of God, 1 Cor.
-vi. 9, 10. However, let it be considered, that every kind of theft does
-not deserve an equal degree of punishment from men; for sometimes hereby
-the owner of what was stolen, receives but little damage; though in this
-case, some punishment, short of death, ought to be inflicted, to reform
-the wicked person, and deter him from going on in the breach of this
-Commandment, from less to greater sins.
-
-By the law of God, a simple theft was punished with restitution of
-double, and sometimes, four times as much as the damage amounted to,
-which was sustained thereby, Exod. xxii. 1, 4, 7. Yet, in other cases,
-the theft was punished with death, when it had in it some circumstances
-that aggravated it in an uncommon degree; as if an house, which ought to
-be reckoned a man’s castle, be broke open, and that, in the night-time,
-when he is in no condition of defending himself, or his worldly
-substance. In this case the law is not unjust, that punishes the thief
-with death; and this is supposed in that law which says, that he that
-kills such an one who _breaks up_ his neighbour’s house by night, shall
-have _no blood shed for him_, ver. 2. But, in other instances,
-confinement, and hard labour, may be as effectual a way to put a stop to
-this sin; and is rather to be chosen than punishment with death. Thus
-concerning this Commandment, as broken by theft.
-
-II. It is farther broken, by unfaithfulness, or breach of trust; whether
-the trust he devolved on us by nature, as that of parents towards their
-children; or by contract, as that of servants, who are entrusted with
-the goods and secrets of their masters; or, that which is founded in the
-desire and request of those who constitute persons executors to their
-wills, or guardians to orphans, under age, provided they accept of this
-trust; I say, if these violate their trust, by embezzling or squandering
-away the substance of others, defrauding them, to enrich themselves.
-This is not only theft, but perfidiousness, and highly provoking to God;
-and deserves a more severe punishment from men, than is usually
-inflicted.
-
-III. This Commandment may be said to be broken, by borrowing, and not
-paying just debts; as the Psalmist says, _The wicked borroweth and
-payeth not again_, Psal. xxxvii. 21. Nevertheless, there are some cases
-in which a man is not guilty hereof, though he borrows and does not pay,
-_viz._ If, when he borrowed, there was a probability of his being able
-to repay it; or otherwise, if he discovered his circumstances fully to
-him, of whom he borrowed, to whom it would hereby appear, whether there
-was any likelihood of paying him or not; or if he gave full conviction,
-when he borrowed, that he was able to pay, but the providence of God,
-without his own default, has rendered him unable; in this case mercy is
-to be shewn him, and he is not to be reckoned a breaker of this
-Commandment. However, a person is guilty of the breach hereof, in
-borrowing, and not paying debts.
-
-1. If the borrower pretends his circumstances to be better than they
-are, and so makes the lender believe, that, in a limited time, he shall
-be able to repay him; when, in his own conscience, he apprehends that
-there is no probability hereof.
-
-2. When a person was in such circumstances at the time of his borrowing,
-that by industry in his calling, he might be able to pay the creditor;
-but, by neglect of business, or embezzling his substance, he renders
-himself unable to pay, such an one is chargeable with the breach of this
-Commandment.
-
-3. If pity be shewn, by compounding for a part, instead of the whole
-debt, in case of present insolvency; though the debtor, in form of law,
-be discharged, with the creditor’s consent; yet the law of God and
-nature, obliges him to pay the whole debt, if providence makes him able
-hereafter; or else he can hardly be excused from the breach of this
-Commandment.
-
-This leads us to enquire, what judgment we may pass on the Israelites
-_borrowing of the Egyptians jewels of silver, and jewels of gold_; which
-we read of in Exod. xii. 35. whether they were herein guilty of the
-breach of this Commandment.
-
-_Answ._ The word[3] which we render _borrowed_, might as well be
-rendered _asked_, or _demanded_. And so we must suppose, that the
-Egyptians were so desirous that the Israelites should be gone,
-apprehending, that if they continued, they were all dead men, that they
-might have of them whatever they demanded, as necessary for this
-expedition; and, if they came back again, as they supposed they should,
-they would be obliged to return them. If this be the sense of the Hebrew
-word, there is no difficulty in the text, nor any appearance of the
-breach of this Commandment.
-
-But since the sense of the word is indeterminate, signifying to
-_demand_, as well as to _borrow_, as was before observed, God’s order
-imports the former; though they might understand it in the latter, as
-denoting a borrowing with a design to restore. Therefore, let it be
-considered,
-
-(1.) That they did this by God’s command, who has a right to take away
-the goods that one possesses, if he pleases, and give them to another;
-for he takes away nothing but his own. Now, that they had his warrant
-for borrowing or demanding these things of the Egyptians, appears from
-the second verse.
-
-(2.) The reason why God ordered them to do this, if we look beyond his
-absolute sovereignty, was, because the Israelites deserved them as
-wages, for their hard service; and this might be reckoned a reward of
-the good offices that Joseph had done to that kingdom; which had been
-long since forgotten.
-
-(3.) As to what concerns the Israelites, it is probable, they expected
-nothing else but to return again, and restore to the owners what they
-had borrowed of them, after they had sacrificed to God in the
-wilderness; at least, they were wholly passive, and disposed to follow
-the divine conduct, by the hand of Moses. And when they were in the
-wilderness, they could not restore what they had borrowed, since the
-owners thereof, as is more than probable, were drowned in the Red Sea,
-whose revenge and covetousness, as well as Pharaoh’s orders, prompted
-them to follow them. Or if some of the owners might have been heard of,
-as yet surviving, their right to what was borrowed of them, was
-forfeited, by reason of the hostile pursuit of Pharaoh and his hosts,
-which put them into a state of war.
-
-This may lead us farther to enquire, what judgment we may pass on the
-many ravages and plunders that are generally made by armies engaged in
-war; whether they may be reckoned a breach of this Commandment? And,
-
-[1.] It is beyond dispute, that, if the war be unjust, as all the blood
-that is shed, is murder, or a breach of the sixth Commandment; so all
-the damage that is done by burning of houses, or taking away the goods
-of those against whom it is carried on, is a breach of this Commandment.
-But,
-
-[2.] If we suppose the war to be just, and the damage done only to those
-who are immediately concerned in it, and that it is an expedient to
-procure peace; it is unquestionably lawful, and no breach of this
-Commandment. Thus when the Israelites were commanded to destroy the
-inhabitants of the land of Canaan, as criminals, they were admitted to
-seize on the spoil of other nations, who were remote from them, Deut.
-xx. 14, 15. when conquered by them.
-
-[3.] As for those plunders and robberies which are committed on private
-persons, who are not concerned in the war any otherwise than as subjects
-of the government, against which it is undertaken; and especially, if
-their loss has no direct tendency to procure peace; this can hardly be
-justified from being a breach of this Commandment.
-
-IV. This Commandment is also broken by oppression; whereby the rich may
-be said to rob, and even swallow up the poor, Psal. xiv. 4. Psal. x. 9.
-Micah iii. 2, 3. Now there are various ways by which persons may be said
-to oppress others.
-
-1. By engrossing those goods which are necessary for food or clothing,
-thereby to enhance the price thereof, whereby the poor are brought into
-great extremities.
-
-2. When persons enrich themselves out of the unmerciful labour exacted
-of their servants, whom they will hardly suffer to live, to eat the just
-reward of their service. Such a master was Laban to Jacob, Gen. xxxi.
-41, 42.
-
-3. When landlords turn their tenants out of their houses or farms, when
-they find that they get a comfortable subsistence by their industry,
-taking occasion from thence, to raise their rent, in proportion to the
-success God gives them therein.
-
-4. When the rich make the poor suffer by long delays, to pay their
-debts, that they may gain advantage by the improvement of that money
-which they ought to have paid them.
-
-V. A person may be said to break this Commandment, by engaging in unjust
-and vexatious law-suits. However, it is to be owned, that going to law
-is not, at all times, unjust; for it is sometimes a relief against
-oppression; and it is agreeable to the law of nature for every one to
-defend his just rights; and for this reason God appointed judges, (to
-determine such-like causes) to whom the people were to have recourse,
-that they might _shew them the sentence of judgment_, Deut. xvii. 8, 9.
-Nevertheless, we must sometimes conclude law-suits to be oppressive; as,
-
-1. When the rich make use of the law, to prevent, or prolong the payment
-of their debts, or to take away the rights of the poor, who, as they
-suppose, will rather suffer injuries than attempt to defend themselves.
-
-2. When bribes are either given or taken, with a design to pervert
-justice, 1 Sam. viii. 2. And to this we may add, that the person who
-pleads an unrighteous cause, concealing the known truth, perverting the
-sense of the law, or alleging that for law or fact, which he knows not
-to be so; and the judge who passes sentence against his conscience,
-respecting the person of the rich, and brow-beating the poor; these are
-all confederates in oppression; and such methods of proceeding, are
-beyond dispute, a breach of this Commandment.
-
-_Obj._ Our Saviour forbids going to law, though it were to recover our
-just rights; when he says, _If any man will sue thee at the law, and
-take away thy coat, let him have thy cloke also_, Matt. v. 40.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied; that some things may be omitted for
-prudential reasons, which would not otherwise be unlawful to be done.
-Our Saviour does not forbid using our endeavours, in a legal way, to
-recover our right in all cases; but more especially at that time, when
-his followers could hardly expect to meet with justice. And, it may be,
-they were oppressed by fines, or distress, laid on them, for their
-embracing Christianity; in this case he advises them, patiently to bear
-injuries, when they could hardly expect relief from their unjust judges.
-
-VI. This Commandment is broken by extortion, or oppressive usury. Thus
-it is said of the righteous man, _He putteth not out his money to
-usury_, Psal. xv. 5. The word[4] signifies _biting_ usury; which is,
-beyond dispute, unlawful. We have elsewhere considered in what cases the
-Israelites might take usury, and when not[5]. And, upon the whole, it is
-certainly unlawful, to exact more than the legal rate or worth of the
-loan of money; or to exact any usury of the poor; especially for that
-which was borrowed to supply them with the necessaries of life.
-
-Having considered in what instances this Commandment is broken, we
-proceed to shew, what a person ought to do, who has been guilty of the
-breach thereof, in any of the forementioned instances, in order to his
-making restitution for the injuries he has done to his neighbour. This
-ought always to attend the exercise of sincere repentance in those who
-have been guilty of this sin, of which we have an instance in Zaccheus,
-Luke xix. 8. and the neglect hereof will be like a worm at the root of
-ill gotten estates, and will be little better than a continual theft.
-
-_Obj._ 1. To this it is objected, that this may be a prejudice to our
-reputation, by making our crime public, which before was only known to
-ourselves.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied;
-
-1. That, what we do in this matter, is not really a reproach, but an
-honour; and it is hardly to be supposed, that he, to whom we perform so
-just and unexpected a duty, will be so barbarous as to divulge or
-improve this against us, to our disadvantage.
-
-2. There are private ways of retaliation, whereby the injured party may
-receive what is sent to him, in a way of restitution, and not know from
-whom it comes; or, good turns may be done to him, in a way of
-compensation for the damages he has received, and he not know, that they
-are done with this design; and, by this means, we disburden our
-consciences, perform a necessary duty, and, at the same time, prevent
-the supposed ill-consequences that might attend it.
-
-_Obj._ 2. It is farther objected, that sometimes the making restitution
-is impracticable; as when the person injured is dead, and we know of
-none that has a right to receive it. And sometimes we may have been
-guilty of so many instances of fraud and oppression, and, that to such a
-great number of persons, that it is next to impossible, to make
-restitution.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied; that when it is impossible for us to
-make restitution to those whom we have injured; or, when we know of none
-that survive them, who have a right to receive it, the best expedient, I
-apprehend, we can make use of, is, to give it to the poor; for, since it
-is not, in justice, our own, we do, as it were, hereby give it to the
-Lord, who is the original proprietor of all things.
-
-Footnote 3:
-
- _The Hebrew word_ שאל _which is here used, does not only signify_
- commodavit, _or_ usui dedit, _or_ accepit, _but_ petiit, _or_
- postulavit; _in the last of which senses it is to be understood, in_
- Deut. x. 12. What doth the Lord require or demand of thee, &c. _And
- in_ Judges v. 25. _where the same word is used, it is said, that_
- Sisera asked water of Jael; _not as one that was borrowing it of her,
- but as a gratuity for former kindness which he had shewn to her_.
-
-Footnote 4:
-
- _From נשך, momordit._
-
-Footnote 5:
-
- _See 3 vol. p. 422._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CXLIII., CXLIV., CXLV.
-
-
- QUEST. CXLIII. _What is the ninth Commandment?_
-
- ANSW. The ninth Commandment is, [_Thou shalt not bear false witness
- against thy neighbour_.]
-
- QUEST. CXLIV. _What are the duties required in the ninth
- Commandment?_
-
- ANSW. The duties required in the ninth Commandment are, the
- preserving and promoting of truth between man and man, and the good
- name of our neighbour as well as our own. Appearing, and standing
- for, and from the heart, sincerely, freely, clearly, and fully,
- speaking the truth, and only the truth, in matters of judgment and
- justice, and in all other things whatsoever; a charitable esteem of
- our neighbours; loving, desiring, and rejoicing in their good name,
- sorrowing for, and covering of their infirmities; freely
- acknowledging their gifts and graces; defending their innocency; a
- ready receiving of a good report, and unwillingness to admit an evil
- report concerning them, discouraging tale-bearers, flatterers, and
- slanderers; love and care of our own good name, and defending it
- when need requireth, keeping of lawful promises, studying and
- practising of whatsoever things are true, honest, lovely, and of
- good report.
-
- QUEST. CXLV. _What are the sins forbidden in the ninth Commandment?_
-
- ANSW. The sins forbidden in the ninth Commandment, are, all
- prejudicing the truth, and the good name of our neighbours as well
- as our own, especially in public judicature, giving false evidence,
- suborning false witnesses, wittingly appearing and pleading for an
- evil cause, out-facing and over-bearing the truth, passing unjust
- sentence, calling evil good, and good evil, rewarding the wicked
- according to the work of the righteous; and the righteous according
- to the work of the wicked; forgery, concealing the truth, undue
- silence in a just cause, and holding our peace when iniquity calleth
- for either a reproof from ourselves, or complaint to others;
- speaking the truth unseasonably, or maliciously to a wrong end, or
- perverting it to a wrong meaning, or in doubtful and equivocal
- expressions, to the prejudice of truth or justice, speaking untruth,
- lying, slandering, back-biting, detracting, tale-bearing,
- whispering, scoffing, reviling, rash, harsh, and partial, censuring,
- misconstruing intentions, words, and actions, flattering,
- vain-glorious boasting, thinking or speaking too highly or too
- meanly of ourselves or others, denying the gifts and graces of God,
- aggravating smaller faults, hiding, excusing, or extenuating of sins
- when called to a free confession, unnecessary discovering of
- infirmities, raising false rumours, receiving and countenancing evil
- reports, and stopping our ears against just defence, evil suspicion,
- envying or grieving at the deserved credit of any, endeavouring or
- desiring to impair it, rejoicing in their disgrace and infamy,
- scornful contempt, fond admiration, breach of lawful promises,
- neglecting such things as are of good report, and practising or not
- avoiding ourselves or not hindering, what we can in others, such
- things as procure an ill name.
-
-In this Commandment we are to consider,
-
-I. What are the duties required? These are,
-
-1. Our endeavouring to promote truth in all we say or do; and that, as
-to what either concerns ourselves, or others. As to what concerns
-ourselves, we are to fence against every thing that savours of deceit or
-hypocrisy; and, in our whole conversation, endeavour to be what we
-pretend to be; or to speak nothing but what we know, or believe to be
-true, upon good evidence, the contrary whereunto is lying. As to what
-concerns others, we must not neglect to reprove sin in them, how much
-soever our worldly interest may lie at stake. Thus Azariah reproved
-Uzziah, 2 Chron. xxvi. 18. and Elijah, Ahab; though this could not but
-be an hazardous attempt in each of them. Moreover, we must endeavour to
-undeceive others, who are mistaken; especially if the error, they are
-liable to, be of such a nature, that it endangers the loss of their
-salvation. We are also to vindicate those who are reproached by others,
-to the utmost of our power, according as the cause will admit of it.
-
-2. This Commandment obliges us, to endeavour to promote our own, and our
-neighbour’s good name.
-
-(1.) Our own good name; which consists, not in our having the applause
-of the world, but in our deserving the just esteem thereof, and in our
-being loved and valued for our usefulness to mankind in general. And
-this esteem is not to be gained by commending ourselves, or doing any
-thing, but what we engage in with a good conscience, and the fear of
-God. And in order hereto, we must, take heed that we do not contract an
-intimacy with those, whose conversation is a reproach to the gospel,
-Prov. xxviii. 7. Also we must render good for evil, and not give
-occasion to those, who watch for our halting, to insult us as to any
-thing, besides unavoidable infirmities, 1 Pet. ii. 12. Phil. iv. 8.
-
-This degree of honour in the world, we ought first to endeavour to gain,
-especially so far as it is necessary to our honouring God, and being
-useful to others. And then we must be careful to maintain our good name;
-forasmuch as the loss thereof, especially, in those who have made a
-public profession of religion, will reflect dishonour on the ways of
-God, from whence his enemies will take occasion to blaspheme, 2 Sam.
-xii. 14. But if all our endeavours to maintain our character and
-reputation are to no purpose; being, nevertheless, followed with
-reproach as well as hatred and malice, from an unjust and censorious
-world; let us look to it, that if we _suffer reproach_, it be
-_wrongfully; not as evil doers, but for keeping a good conscience in the
-sight of God_; which may be a means to make those that reproach us,
-_ashamed_, 1 Pet. iii. 16. Moreover, let us count the reproach of
-Christ, that is, for his sake, a glory, chap. iv. 14. Acts v. 41. Again,
-let us always value their good opinion most, who are Christ’s best
-friends; and expect little else but ill treatment from his enemies; and
-then we shall be less disappointed, when we are exposed to it. And let
-us not decline any thing that is our duty, in which the honour of God,
-and the welfare of his people, is concerned, for fear of reproach; but
-in this case, leave our good name in Christ’s hand; whose providence is
-concerned, for, and takes care of, the honour, as well as the wealth and
-outward estate of his people.
-
-(2.) We are to endeavour to maintain the good name of others; and in
-order thereto, we must render to them those marks of respect and honour,
-which their character, and advancement in gifts, or grace, calls for;
-yet without being guilty of servile flattery or dissimulation. And if
-they are in danger of doing any thing that may forfeit their good name,
-we are carefully to reprove them, while we have a due regard to any good
-thing that is in them, towards the Lord their God; and, in maintaining
-their good name, we are to conceal their faults, when we may do it
-without betraying the interest of Christ; and especially when the honour
-of God, and their good, is, by this means, better promoted, than by
-divulging them, 1 Pet. iv. 8. Prov. xvii. 9.
-
-However, this is not without some exceptions; and therefore it may be
-observed, that we are not to conceal the crimes committed by others.
-
-[1.] If private admonition for scandalous sins committed, prove
-ineffectual, and the discovering them to others may make the offender
-ashamed, and promote his reformation; then we are not to conceal his
-crimes, though the divulging them may lessen the esteem which others
-have of him, since it is better for him to be ashamed before men, than
-perish in his hypocrisy, Matt. xviii. 16, 17.
-
-[2.] If the crime committed be such, that shame, and the loss of his
-good name, be a just punishment due to it, we are not to conceal it,
-thereby to stop the course of justice.
-
-[3.] When the honour and good name of an innocent person cannot be
-maintained, unless by divulging the crimes of the guilty, he that, in
-this case, has forfeited his good name, ought to lose it, rather than he
-that has not.
-
-We shall close this head by considering what reason we have to endeavour
-to maintain the good name of others. To take away our neighbour’s good
-name, is to take away one of the most valuable privileges he is
-possessed of, the loss whereof may be inexpressibly detrimental to him.
-And sometimes it may affect his secular interest; so that hereby we may
-be said to take away his wealth and outward estate, and prevent his
-usefulness in that station of life in which providence has fixed him.
-Accordingly we are to express a due concern for the honour and
-reputation of others as well as ourselves. Thus concerning the duties
-required in this Commandment.
-
-II. We proceed to consider the sins forbidden therein; which are
-contained in that general expression bearing false witness: This may
-either respect ourselves or others. A person may be said to bear false
-witness against himself; and that either in thinking too highly or
-meanly of himself; in the former respect we value ourselves, or our
-supposed attainments, either in gifts or graces, too much, in which we
-are, for the most part, mistaken, and pass a wrong judgment on them, and
-are ready to say, with the church at Laodicea, _I am rich and increased
-with goods, and have need of nothing; and know not that we are wretched,
-and miserable, and poor, and blind, and naked_, Rev. iii. 17. These, on
-the one hand, mistake the common gifts of the Spirit, for grace, and
-conclude themselves to be something, when they are nothing: And, on the
-other hand, many conclude, that they have no grace, and rank themselves
-among hypocrites and unbelievers, when their hearts are right with God,
-and they have had large experience of the powerful influences of his
-Spirit, but are not sensible thereof. Thus Christ says to the church in
-Smyrna, _I know thy poverty; but thou art rich_, chap. ii. 9. In these
-respects persons may be said to bear false witness against themselves.
-
-But that which is principally forbidden in this Commandment, is, a
-person’s bearing false witness against his neighbour; and that when he
-either endeavours to deceive, or do him prejudice, as to his reputation
-in the world; the one is called lying, the other back-biting or
-slandering. As to the former of these, when we speak that which is
-contrary to what we know to be truth, with a design to deceive, this is
-what we call telling a lye; and when we act that which is contrary to
-truth, it may be deemed a practical lye; both of which are very great
-sins.
-
-1. A person is guilty of lying, when he speaks that which is contrary to
-truth, with a design to deceive: This the old prophet at Bethel did, to
-the prophet of the Lord; upon which occasion it is said, that he _lyed
-unto him_, 1 Kings xiii. 18. That this may be farther considered, let it
-be observed, that it is not barely a speaking what is contrary to truth;
-for that a person may do, and be guiltless; as,
-
-[1.] When there is some circumstance that discovers him to speak
-_ironically_; and therefore he does not appear to have a design to
-deceive those, to whom he addresses his discourse. Thus when the prophet
-Micaiah said to Ahab, _Go and prosper, for the Lord shall deliver it_,
-viz. _Ramoth-Gilead, into the hands of the kings_, chap. xxii. 15. it is
-plain that he spake the language of the false prophets, and that Ahab
-understood him in this sense, or suspected that he spake _ironically_;
-and therefore says, _How many times shall I adjure thee, that thou tell
-me nothing but that which is true?_ ver. 16. Upon which, the prophet
-tells him, without an _irony_, though in a metaphorical way, which Ahab
-easily understood; _I saw all Israel scattered upon the hills, as sheep
-that have not a shepherd: And the Lord said, These have no master, let
-them return every man to his house in peace_, ver. 17. which was an
-intimation, that, if he went up to Ramoth-Gilead, he should fall in
-battle: Upon which occasion Ahab says to Jehoshaphat, _Did I not tell
-thee, that he would prophesy no good concerning me, but evil_, ver. 18.
-by which it appears, that the prophet did not deceive him,
-notwithstanding the mode of speaking, which he at first made use of,
-without considering it as an irony, seemed to intimate as much.
-
-[2.] A person may speak that which is contrary to truth, being imposed
-on himself, without any design to deceive another. This cannot, indeed,
-according to the description before given, be properly called a lie:
-However, he may sin by asserting too positively, that which he thinks to
-be true from probable circumstances, or uncertain information;
-especially if what he reports, carries in it that which is matter of
-scandal, or censure. This was the case of Job’s friends, who did not
-tell a lie against their own consciences: Nevertheless, they were too
-peremptory in charging him with hypocrisy, without sufficient ground;
-therefore God imputes _folly_ to them, in that _they had not spoken of
-him the thing which was right_, Job xlii. 8.
-
-Here it may be enquired, whether a person, who designs not to deceive,
-nor speaks contrary to the dictates of his own conscience; yet if he
-promises to do a thing, and does it not, is guilty of lying? To which it
-may be replied,
-
-_1st_, That if a person promises to do a thing, which, at the same time
-he really designs, and afterwards uses all the endeavours he could, to
-fulfil his promise, and something unforeseen happens, in the course of
-providence, which prevents the execution thereof, he cannot, properly
-speaking, be said to be guilty of a lie; though we ought not to promise
-any thing but upon this supposition, that God enables us to perform it.
-
-_2dly_, If a person intends to do a thing, and, accordingly, promises to
-do it, but afterwards sees some justifiable reason to alter his mind, he
-is not guilty of a lie; since all creatures are supposed to be mutable.
-Thus the angels told Lot, that they would _abide in the street all
-night_; but afterwards, upon his intreaty, they _went into the house
-with him_, Gen. xix. 2,
-
-3. And our Saviour, when he walked with his disciples to Emmaus, _made
-as though he would have gone farther: But they constrained him, saying,
-abide with us; and he went in to tarry with them_, Luke xxiv. 28, 29.
-But, notwithstanding this if a person promises to do any thing that is
-of advantage to another, as the paying a just debt, _&c._ it is not a
-sufficient excuse, to clear him from the guilt of sin, if he pretends
-that he has altered his mind, supposing that it is in his power to
-fulfil it: For this is, indeed, a breach of the eighth Commandment, and
-in some respects, it will appear to him, to be a violation of this.
-
-That we may more particularly speak concerning the sin of lying which
-multitudes are chargeable with, let it be observed, that there are three
-sorts of lies,
-
-_1st_, When a person speaks that which is contrary to truth, and the
-dictates of his own conscience, with a design to cover a fault or excuse
-himself or others: This we generally call an officious lie[6].
-
-_2dly_, When a person speaks that which is contrary to the known truth,
-in a jesting way; and embellishes his discourse with his own fictions,
-designing hereby to impose on others: This they are guilty of, who
-invent false news, or tell stories for truth, which they know to be
-false. This is to lie in a jesting, ludicrous manner[7].
-
-_3dly_, There is a pernicious lie, _viz._ when a person raises and
-spreads a false report with a design to do injury to another; which is a
-complicated crime, and the worst sort of lying[8].
-
-Here there are two or three enquiries which it may not be improper to
-take notice of;
-
-(1.) Whether the midwives were guilty of an officious lie, when they
-told Pharaoh, in Exod. i. 19. that _the Hebrew women were delivered of
-their children ere they came in unto them_; concerning whom it is said,
-in the following verse, _that God dealt well with the midwives_ for this
-report, which carries in it the appearance of a lie.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied,
-
-[1.] That they seem not to have been guilty of a lie; for it is not
-improbable, that God in mercy to the Hebrew women, and their children,
-might give them uncommon strength; so that they might be delivered
-without the midwives assistance: Or,
-
-[2.] If this was not the case of all the Hebrew women, but only of some,
-or many of them, the midwives report contains only a concealing part of
-the truth, while they related in other respects, that which was matter
-of fact. Now a person is not guilty of telling a lie, who does not
-discover all that he knows. There is a vast difference between
-concealing a part of the truth, and telling that which is directly
-false. No one is obliged to tell all he knows, to one, who, he is sure,
-will make a bad use of it. This seems to be the case of the midwives;
-and therefore their action was justifiable, and commended by God, they
-being not guilty, properly speaking, of an officious lye.
-
-(2.) Another enquiry is, what judgment we must pass concerning the
-actions of Rahab, the harlot, who invented an officious lye, to save the
-spies from those who pursued them, in Josh. ii. 4, 5. it is said, _she
-took the two men and hid them_; and, at the same time, pretended, so
-those who were sent to enquire of her concerning them, that _she wist
-not whence they were_; but that they _went out of the city about the
-time of the shutting of the gate; though whither they went she knew
-not_. The main difficulty we have to account for, is what the apostle
-says, in which he seems to commend this action, in Heb. xi. 31. _By
-faith Rahab perished not with them that believed not, when she had
-received the spies with peace._
-
-_Answ._ To which it may be replied, that the apostle says, indeed, that
-she _received the spies with peace_, that is, she protected, and did not
-betray them into the hand of their enemies: But this act of faith does
-not relate directly to the lie that she invented to conceal them; for,
-doubtless, she would have been more clear from the guilt of sin, had she
-refused to give the messengers any answer relating to them, and so had
-given them leave to search for them, and left the event hereof to
-providence. This, indeed, was a very difficult duty; for it might have
-endangered her life; and her choosing to secure them and herself, by
-inventing this lie, brought with it a degree of guilt, and was an
-instance of the weakness of her faith in this respect.
-
-But, on the other hand, that faith which the apostle commends in her,
-respects some other circumstances attending this action; and,
-accordingly, it is not said, that _by faith_ she made the report to the
-messengers concerning the spies; but _she received them with peace_: And
-there are several things in which her faith was very remarkable, as,
-
-[1.] That she was confident that _the Lord would give them the land_,
-which they were contending for, Josh. ii. 9.
-
-[2.] In that she makes a just inference relating to this matter, from
-the wonders that God had wrought for them in the red sea, ver. 10. And,
-
-[3.] In that noble confession which she makes, that _the Lord their God,
-is God in heaven above, and the earth beneath_, ver. 11.
-
-[4.] Her faith appears, in that she put herself under their protection,
-and desired to take her lot with them; which was done at the hazard of
-her own life; which she might have saved, and probably, have received a
-reward, had she betrayed them. This, I conceive to be a better
-vindication of Rahab’s conduct, than that which is alleged, by some who
-suppose, that by entering into confederacy with the spies, she put
-herself into a state of war with her own country-men, and so was not
-obliged to speak truth to the men of Jericho; since this would have many
-ill consequences attending it, and give too much countenance to persons
-deceiving others, under pretence of being in a state of war with them.
-And, as to what the Papists say in her vindication, that a good design
-will justify a bad action; that it is not true in fact; and therefore
-not to be applied to her case.
-
-(3.) It might be farther enquired, what judgment ought we to pass on the
-method that Jacob took to obtain the blessing, when he told his father,
-_I am Esau, thy first-born; I have done according as thou badest me_,
-Gen. xxvii. 19. whether he was guilty of a lie herein?
-
-_Answ._ There is not the least doubt but that he was. Some, indeed,
-endeavour to excuse him, by alleging, that he had, before this, bought
-the birth-right of Esau; and, upon this account he calls himself Isaac’s
-first-born. But this will not clear him from the guilt of a lye; since
-it was an equivocation, and spoken with a design to deceive. Others own
-it to have been a lye; but extenuate it, from the consideration of God’s
-having designed the blessing for him before he was born, chap. xxv. 31.
-But these do not at all mend the matter: For, though God may permit, or
-over-rule the sinful actions of men to bring about his own purpose; yet
-this does not, in the least, extenuate their sin.
-
-That which may therefore be observed, with reference to this action of
-his, and the consequence thereof, is, that good men are sometimes liable
-to sinful infirmities, as Jacob was; who, was followed with many sore
-rebukes of providence, which made the remaining part of his life very
-uneasy.
-
-_1st_, In his living in exile twenty years, with Laban, an hard master,
-and an unjust and unnatural father-in-law.
-
-_2dly_, In the great distress that befel him in his return; occasioned
-first by Laban’s pursuit of him, and then by the tidings that he
-received of his brother Esau’s _coming out to meet him_; (being prompted
-hereto by revenge which he had long harboured in his breast) _with four
-hundred men_, from whom he expected nothing less than the destruction of
-himself, and his whole family.
-
-_3dly_, He did not obtain deliverance from the hand of God without
-_great wrestling_, chap. xxxii. 24-25. and this attended with _weeping_,
-as well as _making supplication_, Hos. xii. 4. and, though he prevailed,
-and so obtained the blessing, and therewith forgiveness of his sin; yet
-God so ordered it, that he should carry the mark thereof upon him, as
-long as he lived, by touching the hollow of his thigh, which occasioned
-an incurable lameness.
-
-(4.) Another enquiry is, whether the prophet Elijah did not tell a lie
-to the Syrian host, who were before Dothan, in quest of him, when he
-said, in 2 Kings vi. 19. _This is not the way, neither is this the city:
-Follow me, and I will bring you to the man you seek. But he led them to
-Samaria?_
-
-_Answ._ If what he says to them be duly considered, it will appear not
-to be a lie; for he told them nothing but what proved true, according to
-the import of his words; for,
-
-_1st_, He does not say, I am not the man ye seek, which would have been
-a lie; neither does he say, the man is not here: but he tells them, _I
-will lead you to the place where ye shall find him_, or have him
-discovered and presented before you.
-
-_2dly_, When he says, _This is not the way; neither is this the city_;
-he does not say, this is not the way to Dothan; neither is this the city
-so called; for then they would have been able to have convicted him of a
-lie; for they knew that they were at Dothan before they were struck with
-blindness: But the plain meaning of his words is, that this is not your
-way to find him; since the men of this city will not deliver him to you;
-but _I will lead you to the place where you shall see him_; and _so he
-led them to Samaria_, upon which their eyes were opened, and they saw
-him: So that this was not a lie. And the reason of his management was,
-that the king of Israel, and the Syrian host, might be convinced, that
-they were poor creatures in God’s hand, and that he could easily turn
-their counsels into foolishness, and cause their attempts to miscarry
-with shame, as well as disappointment.
-
-(5.) It may be farther enquired, whether the apostle Paul was guilty of
-a lie; when, being charged, in Acts xxiii. 4, 5. with _reviling God’s
-high priest_, he says, _I wist not that he was the high priest_? How was
-it possible that he should entertain any doubt concerning his being the
-high priest; which none, who were present, could, in the least,
-question?
-
-_Answ._ We may suppose, that the apostle, when he says, _I wist not that
-he was the high priest_, intends nothing else, but I do not own him to
-be the high priest, as you call him; for he is not an high priest of
-God’s appointing or approving; which, had he been, he would have acted
-more becoming that character; and then I should have had no occasion to
-have told him, _God shall smite thee, thou whited wall_; for that would
-have been a _reviling him_; since I know that scripture very well, that
-says, _Thou shalt not speak evil of the ruler of thy people_; therefore
-he intimates, that, though he was an high priest of man’s making, he was
-not one of God’s approving; and accordingly he was to be treated with
-contempt, instead of that regard which was formerly paid to the high
-priests, when they were better men, and acted more agreeable to their
-character. No one, that deserves to be called God’s high priest, would
-have ordered a prisoner, who came to be tried for his life, instead of
-making his defence, to be smitten on the mouth.
-
-But, suppose we render the words agreeably to our translation, I did not
-understand that he was the high priest, he may be vindicated from the
-charge of telling a lie, if we consider,
-
-_1st_, That this was a confused assembly, and not a regular court of
-judicature, in which the judge, or chief magistrate, is known to all, by
-the place in which he sits, or the part he acts in trying causes.
-
-_2dly_, The high priest, in courts of judicature, was not known by any
-robe or distinct habit that he wore, as judges now are; for he never
-wore any other but his common garments, which were the same that other
-people wore, except when he ministered in offering gifts and sacrifices
-in the temple. Therefore the apostle could not know him by any distinct
-garment that he wore.
-
-_3dly_, Through the corruption of the times, the high priest was changed
-almost every year, according to the will of the chief governor, who
-advanced his own friends to that dignity, and oftentimes sold it for
-money; it is therefore probable, that Ananias had not been long
-high-priest; and Paul was now a stranger at Jerusalem, and so might not
-know that he was high priest. Thus, if we take the words in this sense,
-in which they are commonly understood, the apostle may be sufficiently
-vindicated from the charge of telling a lie.
-
-(6.) It may be farther enquired, what judgment we may pass concerning
-David’s pretence, when he came to Abimelech, in 1 Sam. xxi. 2. that _the
-king commanded him a business_, _which no one was to know any thing of_;
-and that he had _appointed his servants to such and such a place_; and
-also of his _feigning himself mad_, before the king of Gath, ver. 13.
-which dissimulation can be reckoned no other than a practical lie.
-
-_Answ._ In both these instances he must be allowed to have sinned, and
-therefore not proposed as a pattern to us; and all that can be inferred
-from it is, that there is a great deal of the corruption of nature
-remaining in the best of God’s people. What he told Abimelech was
-certainly a lye; and all that he expected to gain by it, was only a
-supply of his present necessities; the consequence whereof was, the poor
-man’s losing his life, together with all the priests’, except Abiathar,
-by Saul’s inhumanity. And David seems to be truly sensible of this sin,
-as appears from Psal. xxxiv. which, as is intimated in the title
-thereof, was penned on this occasion; in which he arms others against
-it, in ver. 13. _Keep thy tongue from evil, and thy lips from speaking
-guile_: And in ver. 18. he seems to relate his own experience, when he
-says, _The Lord is nigh unto them that are of a broken heart, and saveth
-such as be of a contrite spirit._
-
-As to his behaviour before the king of Gath, which was a visible lie,
-discovered in his actions; it can, by no means, be excused from being a
-breach of this Commandment. It is, indeed, alleged by some, to extenuate
-his fault; that he was afraid that his having killed Goliah, would have
-induced Achish to take away his life; as appears from what is said in
-ver. 11, 12. Nevertheless, it may be considered as an aggravation of his
-sin,
-
-[1.] That his fear seems to have been altogether groundless; for, why
-should he suppose that the king of Gath would break through all the laws
-of arms and honour, since Goliah had been killed in a fair duel, the
-challenge having first been given by himself? why then should David fear
-that he would kill him for that, more than any other hostilities
-committed in war? Besides, it is plain from what Achish says, in ver.
-15. _Have I need of mad-men, that ye have brought this fellow to play
-the mad-man in my presence? should this fellow come into mine house?_
-that the king of Gath was so far from designing to revenge Goliah’s
-death on him, that he intended to employ him in his service, and take
-him into his house; but this mean action of his made him despised by
-all; for it seems probable, by Achish’s saying, _Have ye brought this
-fellow to play the mad-man?_ that he perceived it to be a feigned, and
-not a real distraction. And this was overruled by the providence of God,
-to let the Philistines know, that the greatest hero is but a
-low-spirited man, if his God be not with him.
-
-[2.] If we suppose that there had been just ground for his fear, the
-method taken to secure himself, contained a distrust of providence;
-which would, doubtless, have delivered him without his dissembling, or
-thus demeaning himself, or using such an indirect method in order
-thereunto. Thus concerning the violation of this Commandment, by
-speaking that which is contrary to truth.
-
-2. This Commandment is farther broken, by acting that which is contrary
-to truth; which is what we call hypocrisy: And this may be considered,
-
-(1.) As that which is a reigning sin, inconsistent with a state of
-grace; in which respect an hypocrite is opposed to a true believer. Such
-make a fair shew of religion; but it is with a design to be seen of men,
-Matt. vi. 5. They are sometimes, indeed, represented as _seeking_ God,
-and _enquiring early_, or with a kind of earnestness after him, when
-under his afflicting hand; but this is deemed no other than a
-_flattering him with their mouth, and a lying unto him with their
-tongues_; inasmuch as _their heart is not right with him_, Psal.
-lxxviii. 34,-37. And elsewhere, they are said to _love the praise of men
-more than the praise of God_, John xii. 43.
-
-(2.) It may be farther considered, as that which believers are sometimes
-chargeable with, which is an argument that they are sanctified but in
-part; but this rather respects some particular actions, and not the
-tenor of their conversation: Thus the apostle Paul charges Peter with
-dissimulation, Gal. ii. 11,-13. though he was far from deserving the
-character of an hypocrite, as to his general conversation. And our
-Saviour cautions his disciples against hypocrisy, as that which they
-were in danger of being overtaken with, Luke xii. 1. though he does not
-charge them with it as a reigning sin, as he did the Scribes and
-Pharisees, whom he compares to _painted sepulchres_, Matt. xxiii. 27,
-28. nor were they such as the apostle speaks of, whom he calls
-_double-minded men, who are unstable in all their ways_, James i. 8.
-
-As to that hypocrisy which we may call a reigning sin, this may be
-known,
-
-[1.] By a person’s accommodating himself to all those whom he converses
-with, how much soever this may tend to the dishonour of Christ and the
-gospel: And this may give us occasion to enquire,
-
-_First_, Whether the apostle Paul was in any respects, chargeable with
-this sin, when he says, in 1 Cor. ix. 20-22. _Unto the Jews, I became as
-a Jew, that I might gain the Jews; to them that are under the law, as
-under the law, that I might gain them that are under the law; to them
-that are without law, as without law, (being not without law to God, but
-under the law to Christ) that I might gain them that are without law. To
-the weak, became I as weak, that I might gain the weak; I am made all
-things to all men, that I might by all means save some._ For the
-understanding of this scripture, and vindicating the apostle from the
-charge of hypocrisy, let it be considered,
-
-_1st_, That this compliance he here speaks of, was not with a design to
-gain the applause of the world, but to serve the interest of Christ;
-neither did he connive at, or give countenance to, that false worship,
-or those sinful practices of any, that were contrary to the faith, or
-purity of the gospel. Therefore when he says, _Unto the Jews, I became
-as a Jew_; he does not intend that he gave them the least ground to
-conclude, that it was an indifferent matter, whether they adhered to, or
-laid aside the observation of the ceremonial law: For, he expressly
-tells some of the church at Galatia, who were supposed to Judaize, that
-this was contrary to the _liberty wherewith Christ_ had _made them free,
-a being again entangled with the yoke of bondage_; and that _if they
-circumcised, Christ should profit them nothing; and_, that they were
-_fallen from grace_; that is, turned aside from the faith of the gospel,
-Gal. v. 1,-4. Therefore, in this sense he did not become as a Jew, to
-the Jews. Neither did he so far comply with the Gentiles, as to give
-them ground to conclude, that the superstition and idolatry, which they
-were guilty of, was an harmless thing, and might still be practised by
-them. Therefore,
-
-_2dly_, The meaning of his compliance with the Jews or Gentiles, is
-nothing else but this; that whatever he found praise-worthy in them, he
-commended; and if, in any instances, they were addicted to their former
-rites, or modes of worship, he endeavoured to draw them off from them,
-not by a severe, and rigid behaviour as censuring, refusing to converse
-with, or reproaching them, for their weakness; but using kind and gentle
-methods, designing rather to inform than discourage them; while at the
-same time, he was far from approving of, or giving countenance to any
-thing that was sinful in them, or unbecoming the gospel.
-
-_Secondly_, From what has been before said concerning an hypocrite’s
-being one who performs religious duties with a design to be seen of men,
-as our Saviour says of the Pharisees, that _they love to stand praying
-in the synagogues, or in the corners of the streets, that they may be
-seen of men_, Matth. vi. 6. We may enquire, what may be said in
-vindication of the prophet Daniel, from the charge of hypocrisy?
-concerning whom it is said, in Dan. vi. 10. that when Darius had _signed
-a decree_ prohibiting any one from asking _a petition of any god or man,
-save of the king, he_ should _be cast into the den of lions: He went
-into his house; and his windows being open in his chamber, towards
-Jerusalem, he kneeled upon his knees three times a day, and prayed, and
-gave thanks before his God, as he did aforetime_. In answer to this we
-may observe,
-
-_1st_, That this was not done to gain the esteem or applause of men,
-which they are charged with, who are guilty of hypocrisy; but he did it
-in contempt of that vile decree of the Persian monarch.
-
-_2dly_, He did it at the peril of his life; and hereby discovered, that
-he had rather be cast into the den of lions, than give occasion to any
-to think that he complied with the king in his idolatrous decree.
-
-_3dly_, Though it is said, that _he prayed, and gave thanks before his
-God, as he did_ aforetime; yet this is not to be understood as though he
-set open his windows aforetime; so that his praying publicly at this
-time, was to shew that he was neither ashamed, nor afraid to own his
-God, whatever it cost him; therefore he was so far from being guilty of
-hypocrisy, that this is one of the most noble instances of zeal for the
-worship of the true God, that we find recorded in scripture.
-
-[2.] Hypocrisy is a reigning sin when we boast of the high attainments
-in gifts or grace, or set too great a value on ourselves, because of the
-performance of some religious duties, while we neglect others, wherein
-the principal part of true godliness consists. Thus the Pharisee _paid
-tithe of mint, annise, and cummin_, while he _omitted the weightier
-matters of the law; judgment, mercy and faith_, chap. xxiii. 23, 24.
-
-[3.] It farther consists, in exclaiming against, and censuring others,
-for lesser faults, while we allow of greater in ourselves; like those
-whom our Saviour speaks of, who _behold the mote that is in their
-brother’s eye, but consider not the beam that is in their own_, Matt.
-vii. 3, 5. or, according to that proverbial way of speaking, _strain at
-a gnat, and swallow a camel_. These are very fond of exposing the
-ignorance of others; though they have no experimental, saving knowledge
-of divine truth in themselves; or they are very forward, to blame the
-coldness and lukewarmness which they see in some, while at the same
-time, that zeal which they express in their whole conduct, is rather to
-advance themselves, than the glory of God.
-
-[4.] When persons make a gain of godliness, 1 Tim. vi. 5. or of their
-pretensions to it. Thus Balaam prophesied for a reward; and accordingly
-it is said, that he _loved the wages of unrighteousness_, 2 Pet. i. 15.
-
-5. When persons make a profession of religion, because it is uppermost,
-and are ready to despise and cast it off, when it is reproached, or they
-are like to suffer for it. Thus the Pharisees, how much soever they
-seemed to embrace Christ, when attending on John’s ministry; yet
-afterwards, when they saw that this was contrary to their secular
-interest, they were _offended in him_, and prejudiced against him; and
-therefore they say, _Have any of the rulers, or of the Pharisees,
-believed on him_, John vii. 48.
-
-This sin of hypocrisy, which is a practical lie, has a tendency to
-corrupt and vitiate all our pretensions to religion. It is like the
-_dead flie_, mentioned by Solomon, _that causeth the ointment of the
-apothecary to send forth a stinking savour_, Eccl. x. 1. and it will, in
-the end, bring on those who are guilty of it, many sore judgments; some
-of which are spiritual. Thus it is said of the Heathen, that _because,
-when they knew God, they glorified him not as God_, and _did not like to
-retain him in their knowledge; he gave them up to a reprobate mind, to
-do those things that are not convenient_, &c. Rom. i. 21, 22, 28. And as
-for the false hope, and vain confidence, which the hypocrite entertains,
-this shall leave him in despair and confusion, Job viii. 13,-15. and be
-attended with unspeakable horror of conscience, chap. xxvii. 18. Isa.
-xxxiii. 14. Upon which account such are said to _heap up wrath_, and
-bring on themselves a greater degree of condemnation than others, Job
-xxxvi. 13. Matt. xxiii. 14. Thus we have considered this Commandment as
-broken by speaking or acting that which is contrary, or prejudicial, to
-truth; which leads us,
-
-II. To consider it as forbidding our doing that which is injurious to
-our neighbour’s good name, either by words or actions; and this is done
-two ways, either before his face, or behind his back.
-
-1. Doing injury to another, by speaking against him, before his face. It
-is true, we give him hereby the liberty of vindicating himself.
-Nevertheless, if the thing be false, which is alleged against him,
-proceeding from malice and envy, it is a crime of a very heinous nature;
-and this is done,
-
-(1.) By those, who, in courts of judicature, commence; and carry on
-malicious prosecutions, in which the plaintiff, the witness, the
-advocate that manages the cause, the jury that bring in a false verdict,
-and the judge that passes sentence contrary to law, or evidence, as well
-as the dictates of his own conscience, with a design to crush and ruin
-him, who is maliciously prosecuted; these are all notoriously guilty of
-the breach of this Commandment.
-
-(2.) They may be said to do that which is injurious to our neighbour’s
-good name, who reproach them in common conversation; which is a sin too
-much committed in this licentious age, as though men were not
-accountable to God for what they speak, as well as other parts of the
-conduct of life. There are several things which persons make the subject
-of their reproach, _viz._
-
-[1.] The defect and blemishes of nature; such as lameness, blindness,
-deafness, impediment of speech, meanness of capacity, or actions, which
-proceed from a degree of distraction. Thus many suppose that the apostle
-Paul was reproached for some natural deformity in his body, or
-impediment in his speech, which is inferred from what he says, when he
-represents some as speaking to this purpose; _His letters, say they, are
-weighty and powerful; but his bodily presence is weak, and his speech
-contemptible_, 2 Cor. x. 10. And elsewhere, he commends the Galatians
-for not despising him on this account; _My temptation which was in my
-flesh, ye despised nor rejected; but ye received me as an angel of God,
-even as Christ Jesus_, Gal. iv. 14.
-
-Here we may take occasion to speak something of the childrens sin, who
-reproached Elisha for his baldness, and the punishment that ensued upon
-it; namely, his _cursing them in the name of the Lord_; and _two and
-forty_ of them being _torn in pieces by two she-bears out of the wood_,
-in 2 Kings ii. 23, 24. It may be enquired, by some, whether this was not
-too great an instance of passion in that holy man, and too severe a
-punishment inflicted; inasmuch as they who reproached him, are called
-_little children_. To this it may be answered,
-
-_1st_, That the children were not so little, as not to be able to know
-their right hand from their left, or to discern between good and evil;
-for such are not usually trusted out of their parents sight; nor would
-they have gathered themselves together in a body, or went some distance
-from the city, on purpose to insult the prophet, as it is plain they
-did, understand that he was to come there at that time. This argues that
-they were boys of sufficient age, to commit the most presumptuous sin;
-and therefore not too young to suffer such a punishment as ensued
-thereupon.
-
-_2dly_, Their sin was great, in that they mocked a grave old man, who
-ought to have been honoured for his age, and a prophet, whom they should
-have esteemed for his character; and in despising him, they despised
-God, that called and sent him.
-
-_3dly_, Bethel, where they lived, was the chief seat of idolatry, in
-which these children had been trained up; and it was a prevailing
-inclination to it, together with an hatred of the true religion, that
-occasioned their reproaching and casting contempt on the prophet.
-
-_4thly_, The manner of expression argues a great deal of profaneness,
-_Go up thou bald head_; that is, either go up to Bethel, speaking in an
-insulting way, as though they should say, You may go there, but you will
-not be regarded by them; for they value no such men as you are; or
-rather, it is as though they should say, you pretend that your
-predecessor Elijah is gone up to heaven, do you go up after him, that
-you may trouble us no longer with your prophecies; so that those
-children, though young in years, were hardened in sin; and this was not
-so much an occasional mocking of the prophet for his baldness, as a
-public contrivance, and tumultuous opposition to his ministry; which is
-a very great crime, and accordingly, was attended with a just resentment
-in the prophet, and that punishment which was inflicted as the
-consequence thereof.
-
-The aggravations of this sin of reproaching persons for their natural
-infirmities, are very great. For, it is a finding fault with the
-workmanship of the God of nature, the thinking meanly of a person for
-that which is not chargeable on him as a crime, and which he can, by no
-means redress. It is a censuring those who are, in some respects,
-objects of compassion; especially if the reproach be levelled against
-the defects of the mind, or any degree of distraction; and it argues a
-great deal of pride and unthankfulness to God, for those natural
-endowments which we have received from him, though we do not improve
-them to his glory.
-
-[2.] Some reproach persons for their sinful infirmities, and that in
-such a way, as that they are styled _fools_, who _make a mock of sin_,
-Prov. xiv. 9. This is done,
-
-_1st_, When we reflect on persons for sins committed before their
-conversion, which they have repented of, and God has forgiven; and
-accordingly they should not be now charged against them, as a matter of
-reproach. Thus the Pharisee reproached the poor penitent woman, who
-stood weeping at our Saviour’s feet, and said within himself; _If this
-man were a prophet, he would have known what manner of woman this is
-that toucheth him, for she is a sinner_, Luke vii. 37-39. which
-respected not her present, but her former condition.
-
-_2dly_, When they reproach them with levity of spirit, for the sins they
-are guilty of at present; as when the shameful actions of a drunken man
-are made the subject of laughter; which ought not to be thought of
-without regret or pity.
-
-_Object._ To this it may be objected, that sin renders a person vile,
-and is really a reproach to him; and therefore it may be charged upon
-him as such; especially since it is said, concerning the righteous man;
-_in his eyes a vile person is contemned_, Psal. xv. 4.
-
-_Answ._ We are far from asserting, that it is a sin to reprove sin, and
-shew the person who commits it his vileness, and the reason he has to
-reproach and charge himself with it, and loath himself for it;
-therefore,
-
-_1st_, The contempt that is to be cast on a vile person, does not
-consist in making him the subject of laughter, as though it was a light
-matter for him thus to dishonour God as he does; for this should
-occasion grief in all true believers, as the Psalmist says, _I beheld
-the transgressors and was grieved; because they kept not thy word_,
-Psal. cxix. 158. But,
-
-_2dly_, When the Psalmist advises to _contemn_ such an one, the meaning
-is, that we should not make him our intimate, or bosom-friend; or if he
-be in advanced circumstances, in the world, we are not to flatter him in
-his sin; whereby, especially when it is public, he forfeits that respect
-which would otherwise be due to him. In this sense we are to understand
-Mordecai’s contempt of Haman, Esther iii. 2.
-
-Here we may take occasion to distinguish, between reproving sin, and
-reproaching persons for it; the former of these is to be done with
-sorrow of heart, and compassion expressed to the sinner; as our Saviour
-reproved Jerusalem, and, at the same time, _wept over it_, Luke xix. 41,
-42. But, on the other hand, reproach is attended with hatred of, and a
-secret pleasure taken in his sin and ruin. Again, reproof for sin ought
-to be with a design to reclaim the offender; whereas reproach tends only
-to expose, exasperate, and harden him in his sin. Moreover, reproof for
-sin ought to be given with the greatest seriousness and conviction of
-the evil and danger ensuing hereupon; whereas they who reproach persons,
-charge sin on them, as being induced hereunto by their own passions,
-without any concern for the dishonour which they bring to God and
-religion hereby, or desire of their repentance and reformation.
-
-[3.] Sometimes that which is the highest ornament, and greatest
-excellency of a Christian, is turned to his reproach; more particularly,
-
-_1st_, Some have been reproached for extraordinary gifts, which God has
-been pleased to confer on them. Thus the spirit of prophecy was
-sometimes reckoned, by profane persons, the effect of distraction, 2
-Kings ix. 11. And Joseph was reproached by his brethren, in a taunting
-way, with the character of a dreamer; because of the prophetic
-intimation which he had from God, in a dream, concerning the future
-estate of his family, Gen. xxxvii. 13. And when the apostles were
-favoured with the extraordinary gift of tongues, and preached to men of
-different nations, in their own language; _Some were amazed, and others
-mocked them, and said, These men are full of new wine_, Acts ii. 13.
-
-_2dly_, Raised affections, and extraordinary instances of zeal for the
-glory of God, have been derided as though they were matter of reproach.
-Thus Michael reproached David, when he _danced before the ark_, 2 Sam.
-vi. 20. being induced hereunto by an holy zeal, and transport of joy on
-this occasion; though he was so far from reckoning it a reproach, that
-he counted that which she called vile, glorious.
-
-_3dly_, Spiritual experiences of the grace of God, have, sometimes, been
-turned by those who are strangers to them to their reproach and termed
-no other than madness. Thus when the apostle Paul related the gracious
-dealings of God with him in his first conversion, Festus charged him
-with being _beside himself_, Acts xxvi. 24.
-
-_4thly_, A person’s being made use of by God, to overthrow the kingdom
-of Satan, has been charged against him, as though it were rebellion.
-Thus the Jews tell Pilate, when he sought to release Jesus, _If thou let
-this man go, thou art not Cesar’s friend_, John xix. 12. and that
-reformation which the apostles were instrumental in making in the world,
-by preaching the gospel, is styled, _turning the world upside down_,
-Acts xvii. 6.
-
-_5thly_, Humility of mind in owning our weakness, as not being able to
-comprehend some divine mysteries contained in the gospel, is reckoned
-matter of reproach by many, who call it implicit faith, and admitting of
-the greatest absurdities in matters of religion.
-
-_6thly_, Giving glory to the Spirit, as the author of all grace and
-peace, and desiring to draw nigh to God in prayer, or engage in other
-holy duties, by his assistance, is reproached by some, as though it were
-enthusiasm, and they who desire or are favoured with this privilege,
-were pretenders to extraordinary revelation.
-
-_7thly_, A being conscientious in abstaining from those sins which
-abound in a licentious age, or reproving and bearing our testimony
-against those who are guilty of them, is reproached with the character
-of hypocrisy, preciseness, and being righteous overmuch.
-
-_8thly_, Separating from communion with a false church, and renouncing
-those doctrines which tend to pervert the gospel of Christ, is called,
-by some, heresy. Thus the Papists brand the Protestants with the
-reproachful name of heretics; to whom we may answer, that this is rather
-our glory, and confess, that _after the way which they call heresy, so
-worship we the God of our fathers_, Acts xxiv. 14.
-
-This sin is attended with many aggravations; for God reckons it as a
-contempt cast on himself, Luke x. 16. and it is a plain intimation, that
-they who are guilty of it, pretend not to be what they reproach and
-deride in others, who, if they be in the right way to heaven, these
-discover that they desire not to come hither. And, in their whole
-conduct, they act as though they were endeavouring to banish all
-religion out of the world, by methods of scorn and ridicule; which, if
-it should take effect, this earth would be but a small degree better
-than hell.
-
-However, when we are thus reproached for the sake of God and religion,
-let us not render railing for railing; but look on those who revile us,
-as objects of pity, 1 Cor. iv. 12, 13. 1 Pet. ii. 23, who do more hurt
-to themselves than they can do to us, thereby. Moreover, let us reflect
-on our own sins, which provoke God to suffer this; and beg of him that
-he would turn this reproach to his own glory, and our good. Thus David
-did, when he was unjustly and barbarously cursed and railed at by
-Shimei, 2 Sam. xvi. 10-12. We ought also to esteem religion the more,
-because of the opposition and contempt that it meets with from the
-enemies of God; which may, indeed, afford us some evidence of the truth
-and excellency thereof; as our Saviour says concerning his disciples,
-_If ye were of the world, the world would love his own; but because you
-are not of the world, but I have chosen you out of the world, therefore
-the world hateth you_, John xv. 19.
-
-Again, when we are reviled for the sake of Christ and religion, let us
-take encouragement from hence, that herein we have the same treatment
-that he, and all his saints, have met with, Heb. xii. 2, 3. chap. xi.
-36. And let us also consider that there are many promises annexed
-hereunto, Matt. v. 11, 12. 1 Pet. iv. 14. It is also an advantage to our
-character as Christians; for hereby it appears, that we are not on their
-side, who are Christ’s avowed enemies; and therefore we should reckon
-their reproach our glory, Heb. xi. 26, or, as the apostle says, _Take
-pleasure in reproaches for Christ’s sake_, 2 Cor. xii. 10. or, as it is
-said elsewhere, _Rejoice, that we are counted worthy to suffer shame for
-his name_, Acts v. 41. Thus concerning our doing injury to our
-neighbour, by speaking against him before his face. We shall now
-consider,
-
-2. The injury that is done to others by speaking against them behind
-their backs. This they are guilty of, who raise or invent false reports
-of their neighbours, or spread those which ought to be kept secret, with
-a design to take away their good name; these are called tale-bearers,
-back-biters, slanderers, who offer injuries to others, that are not in a
-capacity of defending themselves, Lev. xix. 16. These malicious reports
-are oftentimes, indeed, prefaced, with a pretence of great respect to
-the person whom they speak against. They seem very much surprised at,
-and sorry for what they are going to relate; and sometimes signify their
-hope, that it may not be true; and desire, that what they report may be
-concealed, while they make it their business themselves to divulge it.
-But this method will not secure their own reputation, while they are
-endeavouring to ruin that of another. This is done various ways;
-
-(1.) By pretending that a person is guilty of a fault which he is
-innocent of. Thus our Saviour, and John the Baptist were charged with
-immoral practices, which there was not the least shadow or pretence for,
-Matt. xi. 18, 19.
-
-(2.) By divulging a real fault which has been acknowleged and repented
-of, and therefore ought to be concealed, chap. xvii. 15. or when there
-is no pretence for making it public; but what arises from malice and
-hatred of the person.
-
-(3.) By aggravating, or presenting faults worse than they are. Thus
-Absalom’s sin in murdering Amnon, was very great; but he that brought
-tidings thereof to David, represented it worse than it was, when he
-said, that Absalom had _slain all the king’s sons_, 2 Sam. xiii. 30.
-
-(4.) By reporting the bad actions of men, and, at the same time,
-over-looking and extenuating their good ones, and so not doing them the
-justice of setting one in the balance against the other.
-
-(5.) By putting the worst and most injurious construction on actions
-that are really excellent. Thus, because our Saviour admitted Publicans
-and sinners into his presence, and did them good by his doctrine, the
-Jews reproached him as though he were a _friend of publicans and
-sinners_, Matt. xi. 19. taking the word _friend_ in the worst sense, as
-signifying an approver of them.
-
-(6.) By reporting things, to the prejudice of others, which are grounded
-on such slender evidence, that they themselves hardly believe them, or,
-at least, would not, had they not a design to make use thereof, to
-defame them. Thus Sanballat, in his letter to Nehemiah, tells him, that
-‘he and the Jews thought to rebel; and built the wall of Jerusalem, that
-he might be their king,’ Neh. vi. 6. which, it can hardly be supposed,
-that the enemy himself gave any credit to. Thus concerning the instances
-in which persons back-bite, or raise false reports on others.
-
-And, to this we may add, that as they are guilty who raise them; so are
-they who listen to, and endeavour to propagate them. It is not, indeed,
-the bare hearing of a report, which, we cannot but think to be attended
-with malice and slander, that will render us guilty; for that we may not
-be able to avoid; but it is our encouraging him that raises or spreads
-it, which renders us guilty; and, particularly, we sin when we hear
-malicious reports.
-
-[1.] If we conceal them from the party concerned therein, and so deny
-him the justice of answering what is said against him, in his own
-vindication.
-
-[2.] When we do not reprove those who make a practice of slandering and
-back-biting others, in order to our bringing them to shame and
-repentance; and, most of all, when we contract an intimacy with those
-who are guilty of this sin, and are too easy in giving credit to what
-they say, though not supported by sufficient evidence; but, on the other
-hand, carrying in it the appearance of envy and resentment. Thus
-concerning the sins forbidden in this Commandment. We shall close this
-head by proposing some remedies against it. As,
-
-_1st_, If the thing, reported to another’s prejudice, be true, we ought
-to consider, that we are not without many faults ourselves; which we
-would be unwilling, if others knew them, should be divulged. And if it
-be doubtful, we, by reporting it, may give occasion to some, to believe
-it to be true, without sufficient evidence, whereby our neighbour will
-receive real prejudice from that, which, to us, is only matter of
-surmize and conjecture. But if, on the other hand, what is reported be
-apparently false, the sin is still the greater; and the highest
-injustice is hereby offered to the innocent, while we, at the same time,
-are guilty of a known and presumptuous sin, by inventing and propagating
-it.
-
-_2dly_, Such a way of exposing men answers no good end; nor is it a
-means of reclaiming them.
-
-_3dly_, Hereby we lay ourselves open to the censure of others, and by
-endeavouring to take away our neighbour’s good name, endanger the loss
-of our own.
-
-Footnote 6:
-
- _Mendacium officiosum._
-
-Footnote 7:
-
- This is called _mendacium jocosum_.
-
-Footnote 8:
-
- This is called _mendacium pernitiosum_.
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CXLVI., CXLVII., CXLVIII.
-
-
- QUEST. CXLVI. _Which is the tenth Commandment?_
-
- ANSW. The tenth Commandment is, [_Thou shalt not covet thy
- neighbour’s house, thou shalt not covet thy neighbour’s wife, nor
- his man-servant, nor his maid-servant, nor his ox, nor his ass, nor
- any thing that is thy neighbour’s._]
-
- QUEST. CXLVII. _What are the duties required in the tenth
- Commandment?_
-
- ANSW. The duties required in the tenth Commandment are, such a full
- contentment with our own condition, and such a charitable frame of
- the whole soul toward our neighbour, as that all our inward motions
- and affections touching him tend unto and further all that good
- which is his.
-
- QUEST. CXLVIII. _What are the sins forbidden in the tenth
- Commandment?_
-
- ANSW. The sins forbidden in the tenth Commandment, are, discontent
- with our own estate; envying, and grieving at the good of our
- neighbours, together with all inordinate motions and affections to
- any thing that is his.
-
-The general design of this commandment, is, to regulate and set bounds
-to our desires; and it contains a prohibition of coveting those things,
-that belong not to us. It is not to be split into two Commandments, as
-the Papists pretend; supposing that, _Thou shalt not covet thy
-neighbour’s house_, is the ninth, and, _Thou shalt not covet thy
-neighbour’s wife_, &c. is the tenth Commandment; since these are only
-particular instances of the breach of the same Commandment, and the
-argument taken from the repetition of the words, _Thou shalt not covet_,
-is so very weak and inconclusive, that it would hardly have been made
-use of by them, had they not thought it necessary, some way or other, to
-make up the number ten; having as was observed, under a foregoing head,
-determined the second Commandment, not to be distinct from, but an
-appendix to the first[9]. But passing this by, we proceed to consider,
-
-I. The duties required therein, which may be reduced to two heads;
-
-1. Contentment with our own condition; by which we are not to understand
-that we are to give way to indolence or stupidity, but to exercise a
-composure of mind, acquiescing in the divine dispensations in every
-condition of life. Thus the apostle says, _I have learned in whatsoever
-state I am, therewith to be content_, Phil. iv. 11. And this being
-applicable to all sorts of men, we may consider it,
-
-(1.) As a grace that is to be exercised by those who are in prosperous
-circumstances in the world. Thus the apostle says, _I know how to
-abound_, ver. 12. and to be _full_, as well as to _suffer need_. We
-often find, that they who have the greatest share of the good things of
-this world, are so far from being satisfied with it, that their
-covetousness increaseth in proportion to their substance. But such ought
-to consider, that this is most unreasonable and ungrateful; and may
-justly provoke God to take away the blessing which he has given them, or
-add some circumstances thereunto, that will tend to embitter them; and
-it is a giving way to such a temper of mind as renders them really
-miserable in the midst of their abundance. But that which we shall
-principally consider, is,
-
-(2.) How this grace of contentment is to be exercised by those who are
-in an afflicted state, together with the motives and inducements leading
-thereunto. And,
-
-[1.] We will suppose persons under bodily weakness or pain, which tends
-much to embitter the comforts of life, by which means they are made
-uneasy; and, indeed, it is impossible, from the nature of the thing, for
-them not to complain, or groan under the burdens that are laid on them,
-as the Psalmist did, who speaks of himself as _weary of his groaning_,
-Psal. vi. 6. nor is it unlawful, provided they do not repine at, or find
-fault with, the methods of God’s providence, in his dealing with them.
-Nevertheless there are some things that may induce them to be contented.
-
-_1st_, When they consider, that the body gave occasion to the first
-entrance of sin into the world, and bears a part with the soul in all
-the sins committed, and guilt contracted thereby. It is therefore no
-wonder, when we find that it has its share in those miseries that attend
-it.
-
-_2dly_, Bodily diseases are our monitors, to put us in mind of the
-frailty of our present state; and therefore, since they are the
-harbingers of death, we are hereby forwarned, to prepare for it, as
-making sensible advances towards it.
-
-_3dly_, The greatest pains that we are liable to, are far short of what
-Christ endured for us; in which respect our afflictions are
-comparatively light, and a convincing proof, that they are not certain
-indications of our being rejected by God, Eccl. ix. 1.
-
-_4thly_, As God will not lay more on us than he will enable us to bear;
-so none of these afflictive dispensations shall have a tendency to
-separate the soul from Christ. Though we sometimes complain that this is
-a great interruption to the exercise of grace; yet this shall not be
-charged upon us as our fault, any otherwise than as it is the effect of
-that sin, which is the procuring cause of all affliction.
-
-_5thly_, The heavier our afflictions are at present, the more sweet and
-comfortable the heavenly rest will be, to those who have a well-grounded
-hope that they shall be brought to it, Job iii. 17. 2 Thess. i. 7. 2
-Cor. iv. 17.
-
-[2.] If our condition be low and poor in the world, we are not without
-some inducements to be content. For,
-
-_1st_, Poverty is not, in itself, a curse, or inconsistent with the love
-of God, since Christ himself submitted to it, 2 Cor. viii. 9. Matt.
-viii. 20. and his best saints have been exposed to it, and glorified
-God, more than others, under it, 2 Cor. vi. 10.
-
-_2dly_, How poor soever we are, we have more than we brought into the
-world with us, or than the richest person can carry out of it, Job i.
-21.
-
-_3dly_, They who have least of the world, have more than they deserve,
-or than God was under any obligation to give them.
-
-[3.] Suppose we are afflicted in our good name, and do not meet with
-that love and esteem from the world, which might be expected; but, on
-the other hand, are censured, reproached, and hated by those with whom
-we converse. This should not make us, beyond measure, uneasy. For,
-
-_1st_, We have reason to conclude, that the esteem of the world is
-precarious and uncertain; and they who most deserve it, have oftentimes
-the least of it. Thus our Saviour was one day followed with the caresses
-of the multitude, shouting forth their hosannah’s to him; and the next
-day the common cry was, crucify him, crucify him. And when the apostle
-Paul and Barnabas, had healed the cripple at Lystra, they could, at
-first, hardly restrain the people from offering sacrifice to them; but
-afterwards they joined with the malicious Jews in stoning them, Acts
-xiv. 18, 19. And Paul tells the Galatians, that ‘if it had been
-possible, they would have plucked out their eyes, and have given them to
-him;’ but a little after this, he complains that he was ‘become their
-enemy, because he told them the truth,’ Gal. iv. 15, 16.
-
-_2dly_, The esteem of men is no farther to be desired, than as it may
-render us useful to them; and if God is pleased to deny this to us, we
-are not to prescribe to him, what measure of respect he shall allot to
-us from the world, or usefulness in it.
-
-_3dly_, Let us consider, that we know more evil abounding in our own
-hearts than others can charge us with. Therefore, how much soever they
-are guilty of injustice to us; yet this affords us a motive to
-contentment. Besides we have not brought that honour to God that we
-ought; therefore, how just is it for him to deny us that esteem from men
-which we desire?
-
-[4.] Suppose we are afflicted in our relations; there are some motives
-to contentment. Thus if servants have masters who make their lives
-uncomfortable, by their unreasonable demands, or unjust severity, such
-ought to consider, that their faithfulness and industry will be approved
-of, by God, how much soever it may be disregarded, by men; and a
-conscientious discharge of the duties incumbent on them, in the relation
-in which they stand, will give them ground to expect a blessing from
-God, to whom they are herein said to do service, which shall not go
-unrewarded, Eph. vi. 7, 8.
-
-On the other hand, if masters are afflicted, by reason of the stubborn
-and unfaithful behaviour, or sloth and negligence, of their servants;
-let them enquire, whether this be not the consequence of their not being
-so much concerned for their spiritual welfare as they ought, or keeping
-up strict religion in their families? or, whether they have not been
-more concerned that their servants should obey them, than their great
-master, which is in heaven?
-
-Again, if parents have undutiful children, which are a grief of heart to
-them; let them consider, as a motive to contentment, whether they have
-not formerly neglected their duty to their parents, slighted their
-counsels, or disregarded their reproofs? so whether they have not reason
-to charge themselves with the iniquity of their youth? and enquire,
-whether God be not, herein, writing bitter things against them for it?
-or, whether they have not neglected to bring up their children in the
-nurture and admonition of the Lord? These considerations will fence
-against all repining thoughts at the providence of God, that has brought
-these troubles upon them. And, as a farther inducement to make them
-easy, let such consider, that if this does not altogether lie at their
-door, but, they have been faithful to their children, in praying for,
-and instructing them, God may hear their prayers, and set home their
-instructions on their hearts, when they themselves are removed out of
-the world.
-
-On the other hand, if children have wicked parents, whose conversation
-fills them with great uneasiness; let such consider, that this has been
-the case of many of God’s faithful servants; such as Hezekiah, Josiah,
-and others; and they may be assured, that they shall have no occasion to
-use that proverb, ‘The fathers have eaten sour grapes, and the
-children’s teeth are set on edge,’ Ezek. xviii. 2.
-
-[5.] If we are afflicted, by reason of the treachery and unfaithfulness
-of pretended friends, which wound us in the most tender part, Psal. lv.
-12, 13. we may be induced to be content. For,
-
-_1st_, We have no ground to expect perfection in the best of men, nor
-that their love and favour is immutable; neither is our conduct always
-such, that we do not often forfeit the respect, which we once had from
-others.
-
-_2dly_, If our friends deal deceitfully with us, or are unfaithful to
-us, without just ground; this is not without the permission of the wise
-and over-ruling providence of God, who, sometimes, orders it to take us
-off from a dependence upon men, or expecting too much happiness from
-them; which is to be sought for only in himself, Isa. ii. 22.
-
-_3dly_, This is our encouragement, when we find a change in the
-behaviour of friends towards us, that our chief happiness consists in
-the unchangeable love of God, Mal. iii. 6.
-
-[6.] When we are afflicted in the loss of friends, or near relations;
-let us consider, as a motive to contentment,
-
-_1st_, That there is no reversing or altering the decree of God, which
-fixes the bounds of men’s continuance in this world, Job xiv. 9.
-
-_2dly_, All the comfort we have in friends and relations is a peculiar
-blessing from God; and he sometimes afflicts us in the loss of them,
-that he may draw off our affections from the best creature-enjoyments,
-and we may take up our rest intirely in himself. Moreover, we had never
-any reason to look on our friends as immortal, any more than ourselves;
-and therefore ought to say as David did when he lost his child, _I shall
-go to him, but he shall not return to me_, 2 Sam. xii. 23. and so far as
-self-love is concerned herein, we have reason to give a check to the
-excess thereof, by the exercise of self-denial, and say with David, _I
-was dumb, and opened not my mouth, because thou didst it_, Psal. xxxix.
-8. or follow the example of Aaron, concerning whom it is said, that,
-when he lost two of his sons at once, by a public and awful stroke of
-divine justice, _he held his peace_, Lev. x. 3.
-
-[7.] If we are afflicted by the want of success, or the many
-disappointments that attend us, in our lawful callings, in the world, we
-have reason, notwithstanding, to be content, if we consider,
-
-_1st_, That it is the sovereign hand of God that orders our condition
-therein, as to what respects the success or disappointments that attend
-it; therefore we are not to strive against our Maker, or find fault with
-his will, who may do what he pleases with his own.
-
-_2dly_, A man’s happiness does not really consist in the abundance of
-what he possesses, Luke xii. 15. but rather in his having a heart to use
-it aright; therefore we ought to say to ourselves, as God did to Baruch,
-_Seekest thou great things for thyself? seek them not_, Jer. xlv. 5.
-
-_3dly_, The world is a scene of vanity; we have no reason to expect too
-much from it; and therefore ought not to be dejected at the loss of it;
-especially considering that such disappointments are the common lot of
-all sorts of men.
-
-_4thly_, The providence of God sometimes denies us the good things of
-this world, that we may think it our duty and interest to lay up
-treasures in heaven.
-
-[8.] Suppose we meet with afflictions, as to what relates to our
-spiritual concerns, as being under divine desertion, or decays of grace,
-or want of a sense of the love of God, or those spiritual comforts,
-which we once enjoyed from him; in this condition no believer can or
-ought to be easy, at least, stupid and unconcerned about it; but, on the
-other hand, he ought to be humbled for those sins which may give
-occasion to it, and press after the enjoyment of what he is, at present,
-deprived of: Nevertheless, contentment, as it is opposed to repining or
-quarrelling with God, is his present duty; and there are some
-inducements tending thereunto; as,
-
-_1st_, A person may have the truth of grace, when he is destitute of the
-comfortable sense thereof.
-
-_2dly_, There are some great and precious promises made to believers, in
-this condition, Isa. liv. 7, 8. Psal. cxii. 4.
-
-_3dly_, God has wise ends in this dispensation; for hereby he brings sin
-to remembrance, humbles us for it, fences against presumption and
-confidence in our own strength, Psal. xxx. 6, 7. He also puts us upon
-the exercise of suitable graces, Psal. xlii. 6. and lxxvii. 6. and when
-he is pleased to comfort us after such afflictions, we are better
-furnished to comfort others in the like case.
-
-2. The next thing required in this Commandment, is, a charitable frame
-of spirit towards our neighbour; so that all our inward motions and
-affections should lead us to promote and rejoice in his good, 1 Cor.
-xiii. 4-7. This charitable frame of spirit ought to be exercised,
-
-(1.) Towards those who excel us in gifts or graces: These they receive
-from the hand of providence, as talents to be improved; and therefore,
-if they have a greater share thereof than ourselves, more is required of
-them in proportion thereunto, Luke xii. 48. If they excel us in grace,
-we ought rather to rejoice, that though we bring but little glory to
-God, others bring more; and it will afford us an evidence of the truth
-of grace, if, while we are humbled under a sense of our own defects, we
-are thankful for the honour that is brought to God by others, Gal. i.
-23, 24. John iii. 26, 27, 28, 30.
-
-(2.) We ought to exercise a charitable frame of spirit towards those who
-are in more prosperous circumstances in the world; not envying,
-grieving, or repining at the providence of God, because their condition
-therein is better than ours. We are therefore to consider, that the most
-flourishing and prosperous condition in the world, is not always the
-best, Psal. xxxvii. 16. nor is it without many temptations that often
-attend it, 1 Tim. vi. 9. and if it be not improved to the glory of God,
-this will bring a greater weight of guilt on their consciences: Whereas,
-on the other hand, if we enjoy communion with him, and the blessings of
-the upper springs, this is much more desirable than the most prosperous
-condition in the world, without it, Psal. xvi. 5, 6. This leads us to
-consider,
-
-II. The sins forbidden in this Commandment. And these include in them,
-that corrupt fountain from whence the irregularity of our desires
-proceeds; or the streams that flow from it, which discover themselves in
-the lusts of concupiscence in various instances, as well as in our being
-discontented with our own estate.
-
-1. As to the former of these, to wit, the corruption of nature; this
-must be considered as contrary to the law of God, and consequently
-forbidden in this Commandment. The Pelagians and Papists, indeed,
-pretend that the law of God only respects the corruption of our actions
-which is to be checked and restrained thereby; and not the internal
-habits or principle from whence they proceed; accordingly they take an
-estimate hereof from human laws, which only respect the overt acts of
-sin, and not those internal inclinations and dispositions which persons
-have to commit it: But when we speak of the divine laws, we must not
-take our plan from thence; for though man can only judge of outward
-actions, God judgeth the heart; and therefore that sin which reigns
-there, cannot but be, in the highest degree, offensive to him; and
-though the corruption of our nature cannot be altogether prevented or
-extirpated, by any prescription in the divine law; yet, this is the
-means which God takes, to reprove and humble us for it, Rom. vii. 9.
-
-_Object._ It is objected that the apostle James, in chap. i. 15.
-distinguishes between lust and sin; _when lust hath conceived it
-bringeth forth sin_; therefore the corruption of nature is not properly
-sin; and, consequently not forbidden by the law.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied; that lust may be distinguished from
-sin, as the habit or corrupt principle is from the act which it
-produces; and therefore, the apostle’s meaning in this scripture is,
-that lust, or irregular desires, are first conceived in the heart; and
-then actual sins proceed from them in the life; and both of them are
-abhorred by God, and contrary to his law: And they seem to be forbidden,
-in particular, in this tenth Commandment.
-
-Here we may observe the various methods that corrupt nature takes, in
-order to its producing and bringing forth sinful actions. First, the
-temptation is offered, either by Satan, or the world, with a specious
-pretence of some advantage which may arise from our compliance with it;
-and, at the same time we consider not whether it be lawful or unlawful;
-and regard not the threatnings that should deter us from it. And, we
-sometimes take occasion, from the pernicious examples of the falls and
-miscarriages of others, to venture on the commission of the same sins;
-pretending that they are, many of them, more acquainted with scripture,
-than we are; and there seems to be no ill consequence attending their
-commission of those sins: therefore, why may we not give way to them?
-And also, that many, who have had more fortitude and resolution than we
-can pretend to, have been overcome by the same temptations; therefore it
-is in vain for us to strive against them.
-
-Again, corrupt nature sometimes fills the soul with a secret dislike of
-the strictness and purity of the law of God; and, at other times, it
-suggests that there are some dispensations allowed, in compliance with
-the frailty of nature; and therefore, we may venture on the commission
-of some sins; At length we take up a resolution that we will try the
-experiment, whatever be the consequence thereof. Thus lust brings forth
-sin; which, after it has been, for some time indulged, is committed with
-greediness, and persisted in with resolution; and, in the end, brings
-forth death. And this leads us to consider,
-
-2. The irregularity of those actions, which proceed from the corruption
-of our nature, which are sometimes, called the lusts of concupiscence;
-whereby, without the least shew of justice, we endeavour to possess
-ourselves of those things which belong to our neighbour. Thus Ahab was
-restless in his own spirit, till he had got Naboth’s vineyard into his
-hand; and, in order thereto, joined in a conspiracy, to take away his
-life, 1 Kings xxi. 4. And David coveted his neighbour’s wife; which was
-one of the greatest blemishes in his life, and brought with it a long
-train of miseries, that attended him in the following part of his reign,
-2 Sam. xii. 9-12. And Achan coveted those goods which belonged not to
-him, the _wedge of gold_, and the _Babylonish garment_, Josh. vii. 21.
-which sin proved his ruin.
-
-This sin of covetousness arises from a being discontented with our
-present condition, so that whatever measure of the blessings of
-providence we enjoy, we are notwithstanding, filled with disquietude of
-mind, because we are destitute of what we are lusting after. This must
-be considered as a sin that is attended with very great aggravations.
-For,
-
-(1.) It unfits us for the performance of holy duties; prevents the
-exercise of those graces, which are necessary in order thereunto; and,
-on the other hand, exposes us to manifold temptations, whereby we are
-rendered an easy prey to our spiritual enemies.
-
-(2.) It is altogether unlike the temper of the blessed Jesus, who
-expressed an entire resignation to the divine will, under the greatest
-sufferings, John xviii. 11. Luke xxi. 42. And, indeed, it is a very
-great reproach to religion, in general, and a discouragement to those
-who are setting their faces towards it, who will be ready to conclude,
-from our example, that the consolations of God are small, or that there
-is not enough in the promises of the covenant of grace, to quiet our
-spirits under their present uneasiness.
-
-(3.) It is to act as though we expected, or desired our portion in this
-world, or looked no farther than these present things; which is contrary
-to the practice of the best of God’s saints, 2 Cor. iv. 18.
-
-(4.) It tends to cast the utmost contempt on the many mercies we have
-received or enjoy, at present, which are, as it were, forgotten in
-unthankfulness; and it is a setting aside those blessings which the
-gospel gives us to expect.
-
-(5.) It argues an unwillingness to be at God’s disposal, and a leaning
-to our own understandings, as though we knew better than him, what was
-most conducive to our present and future happiness; and therefore, it is
-a tempting God, and grieving his Holy Spirit, which has a tendency to
-provoke him to _turn to be our enemy_, and _fight against us_, Isa.
-lxiii. 10.
-
-(6.) It deprives us of the present sweetness of other mercies; renders
-every providence, in our apprehension, afflictive; and those burdens
-which would otherwise be light, almost insupportable.
-
-(7.) If God is pleased to give us what we were discontented and uneasy
-for the want of, he often sends some great affliction with it: Thus
-Rachel, in a discontented frame, says, _Give me children, or else I
-die_, Gen. xxx. 1. she had, indeed, in some respects, her desire of
-children; but died in travail with one of them, chap. xxxv. 19.
-
-(8.) It is a sin, which they, who are guilty of, will find it very
-difficult to be brought to a thorough conviction of the guilt which they
-contract hereby, or a true repentance for it: Thus Jonah, when under a
-discontented and uneasy frame of spirit, justified himself, and, as it
-were, defied God to do his worst against him; so that when this matter
-was charged upon his conscience; _Dost thou well to be angry?_ he
-replied, in a very insolent manner, _I do well to be angry, even unto
-death_, Jonah iv. 9. The justifying ourselves under such a frame of
-spirit, cannot but be highly provoking to God; and whatever we may be
-prone to allege in our own behalf, will rather aggravate, than extenuate
-the crime.
-
-There are several things which a discontented person is apt to allege in
-his own vindication, which have a tendency only to enhance his guilt.
-As,
-
-[1.] When he pretends that his natural temper leads him to be uneasy, so
-that he cannot, by any means, subdue his passions, or submit to the
-disposing providence of God.
-
-To which it may be replied; that the corruption of our nature, and its
-proneness to sin, is no just excuse for, but rather an aggravation of
-it; whereby it appears to be more deeply rooted in our hearts; and,
-indeed, our natural inclinations to any sin are increased, by indulging
-it. Therefore, in this case, we ought rather to be importunate with God,
-for that grace which may have a tendency to restrain the inordinacy of
-our affections, and render us willing to acquiesce in the divine
-dispensations, than to paliate and excuse our sin; which only aggravates
-the guilt thereof.
-
-[2.] Some, in excuse for their discontented and uneasy frame of spirit,
-allege; that the injuries which have been offered to them, ought to be
-resented, that they are such as they are not able to bear; and not to
-show themselves uneasy under them, would be to encourage persons to
-insult and trample on them.
-
-But to this it may be replied; that while we complain of injuries done
-us by men, and are prone to meditate revenge against them, we do not
-consider the great dishonour that we bring to God, and how much we
-deserve to be made the monuments of his fury, so that we should not
-obtain forgiveness from him, who are so prone to resent lesser injuries
-done to us by our fellow-creatures, Matt. xviii. 23. _& seq._
-
-[3.] Others excuse their discontent, by alleging the greatness of their
-afflictions; that their burden is almost insupportable, so that they are
-pressed out of measure, above strength, and are ready to say with Job,
-_Even to day is my complaint bitter; my stroke is heavier than my
-groaning_, Job xxiii. 2.
-
-But to this it may be replied; that our afflictions are not so great as
-our sins, which are the procuring cause thereof; nor are they greater
-than some that befal others, who are better than ourselves; and, indeed,
-by indulging a discontented frame of spirit, we render them heavier than
-they would otherwise be.
-
-[4.] Some pretend, that they are discontented and uneasy because the
-affliction they are under, was altogether unexpected; and therefore they
-were unprovided for, and so less able to bear it. To this it may be
-replied;
-
-_1st_, That a Christian ought daily to expect afflictions in this
-miserable and sinful world, at least, so far as not to be unprovided
-for, or think it strange that he should be exercised with them, 1 Pet.
-iv. 12.
-
-_2dly_, We have received many unlooked for mercies; and therefore, why
-should we be uneasy because we meet with unexpected afflictions, and not
-rather set the one against the other.
-
-_4thly_, Some of God’s best children have oftentimes been surprized with
-afflictive providences, and yet have been enabled to exercise
-contentment under them. Thus the messengers who brought Job heavy and
-unexpected tidings of one affliction immediately following another, Job
-i. 13, & _seq._ did not overthrow his faith, or make him discontented
-under the hand of God; for, notwithstanding all this, he _worshipped_
-and _blessed the name of the Lord_, ver. 20, 21.
-
-[5.] Others allege, that the change which is made in their circumstances
-in the world, from a prosperous to an afflicted condition of life, is so
-great, and lies with such weight upon their spirits, that it is
-impossible for them to be easy under it. But to this it may be answered,
-
-_1st_, That when God gave us the good things we are deprived of, he
-reserved to himself the liberty of taking them away when he pleased, as
-designing hereby, to shew his absolute sovereignty over us; and
-therefore, before this affliction befel us, it was our duty, according
-to the apostle’s advice, to _rejoice as though we rejoiced not_, and to
-_use the world as not abusing it_, 1 Cor. vii. 30. and not to think it
-strange, that we should be deprived of it, inasmuch as _the fashion_
-thereof _passeth away_.
-
-_2dly_, The greater variety of conditions in which we have been, or are,
-in the world, afford more abundant experience of those dealings of God
-with us, which are designed as an ordinance for our faith; and
-therefore, instead of being discontented under them, we ought rather to
-be put hereupon, on the exercise of those graces that are suitable to
-the change of our condition, as the apostle says, _I know both how to be
-abased, and I know how to abound_, Phil. iv. 12.
-
-[6.] Some allege, that they have the greatest reason to be discontented,
-because of the influence which their afflictions have on their spiritual
-concerns, as they tend to interrupt their communion with God; and they
-are often ready to fear, that these are indications of his wrath, and,
-as it were, the beginning of sorrows; which leads them to the very brink
-of despair.
-
-To this it may be replied; that it is certain nothing more sharpens the
-edge of afflictions, or has a greater tendency to make us uneasy under
-them, than such thoughts as these; and not to be sensible hereof, would
-be an instance of the greatest stupidity; yet let us consider,
-
-_1st_, That if our fears are ill-grounded, as they sometimes are, the
-uneasiness that arises from them is unwarrantable.
-
-_2dly_, If we have too much ground for them, we are to make use of the
-remedy that God has provided; accordingly we are to have recourse by
-faith, to the blood of Jesus, for forgiveness; and this ought to be
-accompanied with the exercise of true repentance, and godly sorrow for
-sin, without giving way to those despairing apprehensions, that
-sometimes arise from a sense of the greatness of the guilt thereof, as
-though it set us out of the reach of mercy; which will add an
-insupportable weight to our burden; and,
-
-_3dly_, If under the afflicting hand of God, we are rendered unfit for
-holy duties, and have no communion with him therein; this may be owing,
-not to the affliction, but that discontented, uneasy frame of spirit
-which we too much indulge under it. Therefore we are not to allege this
-as an excuse for that murmuring, repining frame of spirit which we are
-too apt to discover while exercised therewith.
-
-The last thing to be considered is, the remedies against this sin of
-being discontented with our present condition; and these are,
-
-_1st_, A due sense of that undoubted right which God has to dispose of
-us, and our condition in this world, as he pleases; inasmuch as we are
-his own, Matt. xx. 15.
-
-_2dly_, Uneasiness under the hand of God, or repining at his dealings,
-when he thinks fit to deprive us of the blessings we once enjoyed, is
-not the way to recover the possession of them; but the best expedient
-for us to regain them, or some other blessings that are more than an
-equivalent for them, is our exercising an entire resignation to the will
-of God, and concluding that all his dispensations are holy, just, and
-good.
-
-_3dly_, Let us consider, that God oftentimes designs to make us better
-by the sharpest trials, which are an ordinance to bring us nearer to
-himself. Thus David says, _Before I was afflicted, I went astray; but
-now have I kept thy word_, Psal. cxix. 67.
-
-_4thly_, We ought to consider that God’s design in these dispensations
-is, to _try our faith_, and that it _may found afterwards unto praise,
-honour, and glory_, as it will be, with respect to every true believer,
-_at the appearing of Jesus Christ_, 1 Pet. i. 7. And to this we may add,
-
-_5thly_, That there are many promises of the presence of God, which have
-not only a tendency to afford relief against uneasiness or dejection of
-spirit; but to give us the greatest encouragement under the sorest
-afflictions; particularly, that comprehensive promise, _I will never
-leave thee, nor forsake thee_, Heb. xiii. 5.
-
-Footnote 9:
-
- _See Page 509._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CXLIX.
-
-
- QUEST. CXLIX. _Is any man able perfectly to keep the Commandments of
- God?_
-
- ANSW. No man is able, either in himself, or by any grace received in
- this life, perfectly to keep the Commandments of God, but doth daily
- break them in thought, word, and deed.
-
-Having considered man’s duty and obligation to keep the Commandments of
-God; we are now led to speak of him as unable to keep them; and, on the
-other hand, chargeable with the daily breach thereof, which is an
-argument of the imperfection of this present state. We have, under a
-foregoing answer[10], endeavoured to prove that the work of
-sanctification is imperfect in this life; so that all the boasts of the
-Pelagians, and others, who defend the possibility of attaining
-perfection therein, are vain and unwarrantable. We have also considered
-the reasons why God orders that it should be so. And therefore we shall,
-without enlarging so much on this subject, as otherwise we might have
-done, principally take notice of what is to be observed in this answer,
-under two general heads.
-
-I. In what respects, and with what limitations, man is said to be unable
-to keep the Commandments of God; and, accordingly it is said, that no
-man is able, perfectly, to keep them. By which we are to understand, as
-it is observed in the Shorter Catechism[11], no mere man, whereby our
-Saviour is excepted, who yielded perfect obedience in our nature. This
-is farther explained, with another limitation, namely, that no man is
-able to do this since the fall; to denote that man, in his state of
-innocency, was able, perfectly to keep the Commandments of God. For he
-was made upright, and had the image of God instamped on his soul; which
-consisted in knowledge, righteousness, and holiness, Eccl. vii. 29. Gen.
-i. 27. having the law of God written in his heart, and power to fulfil
-it[12]. And, indeed, to suppose the contrary, would be a reflection upon
-the divine government, and would argue man to have been created under a
-natural necessity of sinning, and perishing; which is contrary to the
-goodness, holiness, and justice of God. It is farther observed, that no
-man is able, in this life, thus to keep God’s Commandments, which
-contains an intimation that the glorified saints, in heaven, will be
-enabled to yield perfect obedience; notwithstanding the many
-imperfections they are now liable to. Moreover, as man is not able, of
-himself, or without the aids of divine grace, to obey God; so he is not
-to expect such assistance from him as shall enable him to obey him
-perfectly. There is no doubt but the grace of God could free us from all
-the remainders of sin in this world, as well as in our passing from it
-to heaven; but we have no ground to conclude that it will. For,
-
-1. _The whole creation_ is liable to the curse,[13] (which was
-consequent upon man’s first apostasy from God,) under which it
-_groaneth_, unto this day, Rom. viii. 22, 23. and shall not be delivered
-from it, till the scene of time, and things shall be changed, and the
-saints shall be fully possessed of what they are now waiting for, to
-wit, the _adoption_, or _the redemption of their bodies_.
-
-2. God is pleased to deny his people that perfection of holiness here,
-which they shall attain to hereafter, that he may give them daily
-occasion to exercise the duties of self-denial, mortification of sin,
-faith, and repentance, which redound to his own glory, and their
-spiritual advantage. This leads us,
-
-II. To consider that we daily break the Commandments of God, in thought,
-word, and deed.
-
-1. In thought; to wit, when the mind is conversant about sinful objects,
-in such away, as that it contracts defilement. It is a sign that the
-wickedness of man is very great, when, _every imagination of the
-thoughts of his heart is only evil_, and that _continually_, Gen. vi. 5.
-Now the sinfulness of the thoughts of men, consists in four things;
-
-(1.) When they chuse, delight in, and are daily conversant about things
-that are vain, empty of what is good, and have no tendency to the glory
-of God, or the spiritual advantage either of ourselves or others. The
-least vain thought which contains an excursion from our duty to God,
-brings some degree of guilt with it; but when the mind is wholly taken
-up with vanity, so that it is turned aside from, or takes no delight in
-those things that are of the highest importance, this will have a
-tendency to vitiate the mind, and alienate it from the life of God.
-
-(2.) The thoughts of men may be said to be sinful, when they are not
-fixed, or intensely set, on God and divine things, when engaged in holy
-duties; and that either, when worldly cares or business, how lawful
-soever they may be at other times, have a tendency to divert our
-thoughts from them, being altogether inconsistent therewith. Or when our
-minds are conversant about spiritual things unseasonably, so as to be
-diverted from our present design; as, when we are joining with others in
-prayer, instead of bearing a part with them, in having the same exercise
-of faith, and other graces, which supposes that our thoughts are
-employed about the same object with theirs, we are meditating on some
-other divine subject, foreign to the present occasion.
-
-(3.) Our thoughts may be said to be sinful, when they are conversant
-about spiritual things, without suitable affections, and, consequently,
-meditating on them as common things, in which we are not much concerned;
-as when we are destitute of those holy desires after, or delight in God,
-when drawing nigh to him in holy duties, which his law requires. And
-this will more evidently appear, when, by comparing the frame of our
-spirit therein, with what we observe it to be in other instances, we
-find, that our affections are easily raised, when engaged in matters of
-less importance, but stupid, and unconcerned about our eternal welfare,
-in holy duties; which is accompanied with hardness of heart and
-impenitency, and sometimes with uneasiness and weariness, as though they
-were a burden to us.
-
-On the other hand, our affections may be raised in these duties, and yet
-we be chargeable with a sinfulness of thought therein; as,
-
-[1.] When the affections are raised by things of less importance, while
-other things that are more affecting, are not regarded. As, supposing a
-person is meditating on Christ’s sufferings, and he is very much
-affected with, and enraged at the treachery of Judas, that betrayed him,
-or the barbarity of the Jews, that crucified him; but not in the least
-with the sin of the world, that was the occasion of it, or the greatness
-of his love, that moved him to submit to it.
-
-[2.] When our affections are raised in holy duties, and this is all that
-we depend upon, for justification and acceptance in the sight of God,
-vainly supposing that our tears will wash away our sins, being destitute
-of faith in the blood of Christ.
-
-[3.] When we are concerned about the misery consequent on our sins, but
-are not in the least inclined to hate them, nor grieved at the dishonour
-brought to the name of God thereby.
-
-This leads us to consider the causes hereof, and remedies against it. If
-we do not find that our affections are raised in these religious
-exercises, as they have been in times past, we ought to enquire into the
-reason thereof; whether this be not attended with some great
-backslidings from God, which might first occasion it. Sometimes it
-proceeds from a neglect of holy duties, either public or private; at
-other times, from presumptuous sins, committed, or continued in, with
-impenitency. And we often find, that our being too much embarrassed
-with, or immoderately engaged in our pursuit of the profits or pleasures
-of this world, stupifies and damps our affections, as to religious
-matters, so that they are seldom or never raised therein.
-
-As to the remedies against this stupid and unaffected frame of spirit;
-we must not only repent of, but abstain from those sins, that have been
-the occasion thereof; meditate on those subjects, that are most suitable
-to our case, which have a tendency to enflame our love to Christ, and
-desire after him, and our zeal for his glory; and often confess and
-bewail our stupidity and unbecoming behaviour in holy duties; earnestly
-imploring the powerful influence of the Spirit of God, to bring us into,
-and keep us in a right frame of spirit for them.
-
-(4.) We have reason to charge ourselves with sin, when guilty of
-blasphemous thoughts; as,
-
-_1st_, When we have, by degrees, brought on ourselves a disregard of
-God, either by living in the neglect of holy duties, or allowing
-ourselves in the practice of known sins.
-
-_2dly_, When, before we were followed with these thoughts, we have found
-that we gave way to some doubts about the divine perfections; or,
-through the ignorance, pride and vanity of our minds, have contracted an
-habitual disregard to, or neglect of that holy reverence with which we
-ought to meditate on them.
-
-_3dly_, When we can hear those execrable oaths or curses, by which some
-profanely blaspheme the name of God, without expressing our resentment
-with the utmost abhorrence and detestation.
-
-_4thly_, When we find, that being followed with blasphemous thoughts,
-our hearts are too prone to give in to them, as though they were the
-sentiments of our mind; whereby we do, as it were, consent to them,
-instead of rejecting them with the utmost aversion.
-
-But, on the other hand, blasphemous thoughts are not always to be
-charged on us as a sin. Sometimes they are chargeable on Satan, who
-herein acts according to his character, as God’s open enemy; and
-endeavours to instil into us the same ideas that he himself has. These
-thoughts may be charged on him; when they are hastily injected into our
-minds, not being the result of choice or deliberation; but are a kind of
-violence offered to our imagination, and, we cannot but discover the
-greatest detestation of them, as well as of that enemy of souls, from
-whom they take their rise; and when, at the same time, we are enabled to
-exercise the contrary graces, and betake ourselves to God with faith and
-prayer, that he would rebuke the Devil, and preserve our consciences
-undefiled, under this sore temptation, which we cannot but reckon one of
-the greatest afflictions that befal us in the world. Thus concerning the
-sinfulness of our thoughts.
-
-2. We are farther said, daily to break the Commandments of God in word.
-Thus the apostle James speaks of the _tongue_ as _an unruly evil full of
-deadly poison_, James iii. 8. Evil-speaking, as was before observed
-concerning the sinfulness of our thoughts, is attended with a greater or
-less degree of guilt, as the vanity of the mind, and the wickedness of
-the heart, more or less discovers itself therein. Our Saviour speaks of
-the accountableness of man in the day of judgment, for every _idle
-word_, Matt. xii. 36. to denote, that there is no sin so small, but what
-is displeasing to an holy God, a violation of his law, and brings with
-it a degree of guilt, in proportion to the nature thereof. These indeed,
-are the lowest instances of the sinfulness of words. There are others
-that are of so heinous a nature, that they can hardly be reckoned
-consistent with true godliness. _viz._ defaming, and malicious words;
-which are sometimes compared to a _sword_, or _arrows_, Psal. lvii. 4.
-or to a _serpent’s tongue_, that leaves a sting and poison behind it,
-Psal. cxl. 3. Again, the sinfulness of our words extends itself yet
-farther, as they are directed against the blessed God; when persons _set
-their mouth against the heavens, and their tongue walketh through the
-earth_, Psal. lxxiii. 9. when they give themselves the liberty to talk
-profanely about sacred things, and openly blaspheme the name and
-perfections of God. This degree of impiety, indeed, all are not
-chargeable with. Nevertheless, we may say, should God mark the iniquity
-of our words, as well as of our thoughts, who could stand?
-
-3. We are said to break the Commandments of God, by deeds, _i. e._ by
-committing those sins which are contrived in the heart, and uttered with
-our tongues. These have been considered under their respective heads, as
-a violation of each of the ten Commandments, or doing those things that
-are forbidden therein; and therefore we pass them over in this place,
-and proceed to speak concerning the aggravations of sin.
-
-Footnote 10:
-
- _See Quest. LXXVIII. Vol. III. 170._
-
-Footnote 11:
-
- _See Quest. LXXXII._
-
-Footnote 12:
-
- _See Vol. II. 44._
-
-Footnote 13:
-
- Κτίσις these mean the animal part of man.
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CL.
-
-
- QUEST. CL. _Are all transgressions of the law of God equally heinous
- in themselves, and in the sight of God?_
-
- ANSW. All transgressions of the law of God are not equally heinous.
- But some sins in themselves, and by reason of several aggravations,
- are more heinous in the sight of God than others.
-
-Though all sins be objectively infinite, and equally opposite to the
-holiness of God; yet there are some circumstances attending them, which
-are of that pernicious tendency, that they render one sin more heinous
-than another; so that it is not to be thought of, without the greatest
-horror and resentment; as well as expose the sinner to a sorer
-condemnation, if it be not forgiven. These are such as strike at the
-very essentials of religion, and tend, as much as in us lies, to sap the
-foundation thereof; as when men deny the being and perfections of God,
-and practically disown their obligation, to yield obedience to him. And
-some sins against the second table, which more immediately respect our
-neighbour, are more heinous than others, in proportion to the degree of
-injury done him thereby. Thus the taking away the life of another, is
-more injurious, and consequently more aggravated than barely the hating
-of him; which is, nevertheless, a very great crime. Moreover, the same
-sin, whether against the Commandments of the first or second table, may
-be said to be more or less heinous, in proportion to the degree of
-obstinacy, deliberation, malice, or enmity against God, with which it is
-committed; but these things will more evidently appear under the
-following answer; which we proceed to consider,
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLI.
-
-
- QUEST. CLI. _What are those aggravations which make some sins more
- heinous than others?_
-
- ANSW. Sins receive their aggravations,
-
- I. From the persons offending, if they be of riper age, greater
- experience, or grace, eminent for profession, gifts, place, office;
- guides to others, and whose example is likely to be followed by
- others.
-
-Sins are greater than otherwise they would be when committed by those
-whose age and experience ought to have taught them better. Thus Elihu
-says, _A multitude of years should teach wisdom_, Job xxxii. 7. Many
-things would be a reproach to such persons, which are more agreeable to
-the character of children, than those who are advanced in age. Again, if
-they have had large experience of the grace of God, and been eminent for
-their profession, or gifts conferred on them. These circumstances will
-render the same sin more aggravated; for where much is given, an
-improvement is expected in proportion thereunto; and where great
-pretensions are made to religion, the acting disagreeable thereunto,
-enhances the guilt, and renders the sin more heinous. Again, if the
-person offending be in an eminent station, or office in the world, or
-the church; so that he is either a guide to others, or the eyes of many
-are upon him, who will be apt to follow and receive prejudice by his
-example. When such an one commits a public and open sin, it is more
-aggravated than if it had been committed by another. Thus God bids the
-prophet Ezekiel _see what the ancients of the house of Israel do in the
-dark, every man in the chambers of his imagery_, Ezek. viii. 12. And the
-prophet Jeremiah speaks of those who ought to have been guides to the
-people, _viz._ the priests and the prophets, Jer. xxiii. 11. 14. who
-transgressed against the Lord; and charges this on them as an
-extraordinary instance of wickedness; which their character in the
-world, and the church rendered more heinous, though it was exceeding
-heinous in itself.
-
- II. Sins receive their aggravations, from the parties offended; if
- immediately against God, his attributes, and worship, against
- Christ, and his grace; the holy Spirit, his witness, and workings,
- against superiors, men of eminency, and such as we stand especially
- related and engaged unto; against any of the saints, particularly
- weak brethren, the souls of them, or any other, and the common good
- of all or many.
-
-There is no sin but what may be said to be committed against God; yet,
-
-1. Some are more immediately against him, as they carry in them a
-contempt of his attributes and worship; whereby his name and ordinances
-are profaned, and the glory that is instamped thereon, little set by,
-Mal. i. 3, 4. Other sins reflect dishonour on our Lord Jesus Christ; and
-that either on his person, when we conclude him to be, or, at least, act
-as if he were no other than a mere creature; or, on his offices; when we
-refuse to receive instruction from him as a prophet, or depend on his
-righteousness as a priest, in order to our justification and acceptance,
-in the sight of God; or to submit to him as a King, who is able to
-subdue us to himself, and defend us from the assaults of our spiritual
-enemies; or when we despise his grace, and neglect that salvation which
-he has purchased, and offers in the gospel, Heb. ii. 3.
-
-Again, our sins are aggravated when they are committed against the
-person of the Holy Ghost; when we deny him to be a divine Person, or the
-author of the work of regeneration, as supposing that grace takes its
-rise from ourselves, rather than him; or when we do not desire to be led
-by the Spirit, or seek his divine influence in order thereunto. But, on
-the other hand, resist his holy motions and impressions, and act
-contrary to those convictions which he is pleased to grant us; by which
-means we are said to _grieve_ and _quench the spirit_, Eph. iv. 7. 1
-Thess. v. 19. Also, when we reject and set ourselves against the witness
-of the Spirit, and that, either by concluding, that assurance of our
-interest in the love of God, may be attained without it, and reckon all
-pretences to it no better than enthusiasm; or, when on the other hand,
-we suppose that the Spirit witnesses with our spirits, that we are the
-children of God, without regard had to the work of sanctification, that
-always accompanies, and is an evidence thereof; whereby we take that
-comfort to ourselves which does not proceed from the Spirit of holiness.
-
-2. Sins are aggravated as committed more immediately or directly against
-men, and particularly those, to whom we stand related in the bonds of
-nature, or, who have laid us under the strongest obligations, by acts of
-friendship to us. This is applicable to inferiors, who ought to pay a
-deference to their superiors; those sins that are committed by such,
-contain the highest instance of ingratitude, and are contrary to the
-laws or dictates of nature, and therefore aggravated in proportion
-thereunto.
-
-Moreover, if they are committed against the saints; this is reckoned, by
-God, an instance of contempt cast on himself, (whose image they are said
-to bear;) much more, if we oppose them as saints, Luke xvi. 16. Matt.
-xii. 6. And though we do not proceed to this degree of wickedness, our
-crime is said to be greatly aggravated, when we lay a stumbling-block
-before those who are weak in the faith, which may tend to discourage
-them in the ways of God; and, by this means, we do what in us lies, to
-_destroy those for whom Christ died_, Rom. xiv. 15. 1 Cor. viii. 11.
-This is an injury done, not so much to their bodies, as their souls;
-which are wounded, and brought into great perplexity thereby.
-
-However, we must distinguish between an offence given, and unjustly
-taken; or, it is one thing for persons to be offended at that which is
-our indispensible duty, in which case we are not to regard the
-sentiments of those who attempt to discourage us from, or censure us for
-the performance of it; and our giving offence in things that are in
-themselves indifferent, and might, without any prejudice, be avoided; in
-which case a compliance with the party offended, seems to be our duty;
-especially if the offence takes its rise from conscience, rather, than
-humour and corruption; and our not complying with him herein, would tend
-very much to discourage and weaken his hands in the ways of God; and
-therefore may be reckoned an aggravation of this sin.
-
-Moreover, it is a farther aggravation of sin committed, when it appears
-to be contrary to the common good of all men. This guilt may be said to
-be contracted by them who endeavour to hinder the success of preaching
-of the gospel, 1 Thess. ii. 15. or otherwise, when the sin of one man
-brings down the judgments of God on a whole church or body of people; of
-this kind was Achan’s sin, Josh. vii. 20, 21, 25.
-
- III. Sins are aggravated from the nature and quality of the offence;
- if it be against the express letter of the law, break many
- commandments, contain in it many sins; if not only conceived in the
- heart, but breaks forth in words and actions, scandalize others, and
- admit of no reparation; if against means, mercies, judgments, light
- of nature, conviction of conscience; public or private admonition,
- censures of the church, civil punishments, and our prayers,
- purposes, promises; vows, covenants, and engagements to God or men;
- if done deliberately, wilfully, presumptuously, impudently,
- boastingly, maliciously, frequently, obstinately, with delight,
- continuance, or relapsing after repentance.
-
-1. Sin is aggravated when it is committed against the express letter of
-the law, so that there remains no manner of doubt, whether it be a sin
-or duty. To venture on the commission of what plainly appears to be
-unlawful, is to sin with great boldness and presumption, whereby the
-crime is very much aggravated, Rom. i. 32.
-
-2. When it contains a breach of several of the Commandments; and
-therefore it may be reckoned a complicated crime. Of this kind was the
-sin of David, in the matter of Uriah; in which he was guilty of murder,
-adultery, dissimulation, injustice, _&c._ Also Ahab’s sin against
-Naboth; which included in it not only covetousness, but perjury, murder,
-oppression, and injustice.
-
-3. Sins are more aggravated, when they break forth in words, or outward
-actions, than if they were only conceived in the heart. It is true, sin
-in the heart has some peculiar aggravations, as it takes deeper root,
-becomes habitual, and is entertained with a secret delight and pleasure,
-and as it is the source and fountain, from whence actual sins proceed.
-Nevertheless, when that, which was before conceived in the heart, is
-discovered by words or actions, this adds a farther aggravation to it,
-as it brings a more public dishonour to God, and often-times a greater
-injury to men.
-
-4. Sins are farther aggravated, when they are of such a nature, that it
-is impossible for us to repair the injuries done thereby, or make
-restitution for them. Thus nothing can compensate for our taking away
-the life of another, or for our casting a reproach on the holy ways of
-God; and thereby endeavouring to bring his gospel into contempt; or,
-when we entice others to sin, by which means we turn them aside from
-God, and endeavour to ruin their souls; which is an injury that we
-cannot, by any means, repair; and therefore the crime is exceedingly
-aggravated.
-
-5. If the sin committed be contrary to the very light of nature, such as
-would be offensive, even to the Heathen, 1 Cor. v. 1.
-
-6. Sins receive their aggravations, when committed against means,
-mercies, and judgments; as when we break through all the fences which
-are set to prevent them; and the grace of God, revealed in the gospel,
-is not only ineffectual, to preserve from sin, though designed for that
-end, Tit. ii. 11, 12. but turned into lasciviousness, Jude, ver. 4. When
-mercies are misimproved, undervalued, and, as it were, trampled on, Rom.
-ii. 4. Isa. i. 3, Deut. xxii. 6. and judgments, whether threatened or
-inflicted are not regarded, nor were claimed thereby.
-
-7. Sins are farther aggravated, when they are committed against the
-checks and convictions of conscience; which is a judge and a reprover
-within our own breasts. This is an offering violence to ourselves, and
-making many bold advances towards judicial blindness, hardness of heart,
-and a total apostacy.
-
-8. When the sins committed are against public or private admonitions,
-censures of the church or civil punishments, which are God’s ordinance
-to bring men to repentance; and if they prove ineffectual, to answer
-that end, they will be left more stupid than they were before.
-
-9. Sins are farther aggravated, when they are contrary to our own
-prayers, vows, covenants, and promises made either to God or men. When
-we confess sin, or pretend to humble ourselves before God in prayer, and
-yet, at other times, indulge the same sins, and are proud,
-self-conceited, and exalt ourselves against him; or when we pray for
-strength against corruption, or grace to perform holy duties, when, in
-reality, we have no love to, nor desire after them; or when we praise
-him for mercies received, while we are habitually unthankful, and
-forgetful of his benefits. Moreover, when we are very forward to make
-vows, covenants, or engagements, to be the Lord’s; whereby we often lay
-a snare for ourselves, from some circumstances that attend this action;
-and more especially from our disregarding it afterwards.
-
-10. Sins are aggravated from the manner of our committing them, _viz._
-If they are done deliberately, with fore-thought or contrivance: As when
-persons are said to devise mischief upon their beds; and then as to
-their conversation, to set themselves against that which is good, Psal.
-xxxiv. 5. Again, if it be done wilfully, that is, with the full bent of
-the will, making it the matter of our choice, and resolving to commit
-it, whatever it cost us. When we do it presumptuously, either when we
-take encouragement hereunto from the grace of God, Rom. vi. 1. or when
-his hand is lifted up against us, or when we see his judgments falling
-very heavy upon others, and are not disposed to take warning thereby;
-but grow more hardened and stupid than before.
-
-Again, when sin is committed maliciously impudently, and obstinately;
-this argues a rooted hatred against God. Or, when it is committed with
-delight arising either from the thoughts we entertain thereof, before we
-commit it; or the pleasure we take in what we have done, afterwards.
-Again, when we boast of what we have done, which is to glory in our
-shame, Psal. x. 3. and lii. 1. when we do, as it were, value ourselves
-for having got rid of the prejudices of education, and all former
-convictions of sin, that so we may go on therein with less disturbance.
-And when persons boast of their over-reaching others in their way of
-dealing in the world, Prov. xx. 14. which they very often do in their
-secret thoughts, when they are ashamed to let the world know how remote
-they are from the practice of that justice, that ought to be between man
-and man. Again sins are aggravated when they are frequently committed,
-or when we relapse into the same sin, after having pretended to repent
-of it, 2 Pet. ii. 20,-22. Matt. xii. 43,-45.
-
- IV. Sins are aggravated from circumstances of time, and place; if on
- the Lord’s-day, or other times of divine worship, or immediately
- before, or after these, or other helps, to prevent or remedy such
- miscarriages, if in public, or in the presence of others who are
- thereby likely to be provoked or defiled.
-
-When sins are committed by us on the Lord’s-day, it is a profaning that
-time which he has sanctified for his service, and so renders us guilty
-of a double crime; or, when they are committed at any other time, which
-we occasionally set apart for divine worship; or, in those seasons, when
-God calls for fasting and mourning for our own sins, or those that are
-publicly committed in the world, Isa. xxii. 12,-14. or, at other times,
-when we have lately received signal deliverances, either personal or
-national, Psal. cvi. 7. or, when they are committed immediately before
-or after we have engaged in holy duties; the former renders us very
-unfit for them; the latter will effectually take away all those
-impressions, which have been made on our spirits therein.
-
-Again, sins receive aggravation from the place in which they are
-committed: As for instance, if they are committed in those places, in
-which the name of God is more immediately called on, which if visible,
-will afford great matter of scandal to some, and an ill example to
-others; and if secretly committed, will tend to defile our souls, and
-argue us guilty of great hypocrisy. Moreover, when we commit those sins,
-which are generally abhorred in the place where providence has cast our
-lot: This is to render ourselves a stain and dishonour to those with
-whom we converse. Thus the prophet speaks of some, who, _in the land of
-uprightness_, will _deal unjustly_, Isa. xxvi. 10. and especially when
-they are committed in the presence of others, who are likely to be
-provoked or defiled thereby; by which means we contract the guilt of
-other men’s sins, as well as our own; and are doubly guilty, in that we
-are, in many respects, the cause of their transgressing.
-
-There are several instances in which we may be said to contract the
-guilt of other men’s sins, which I shall only mention briefly, _viz._
-when superiors lay their commands on inferiors, or oblige them to do
-that which is in itself sinful; or, when we advise those who stand upon
-a level with us, to commit sin, or give our consent to the commission of
-it, Acts vii. 58. chap. vii. 1. Again, when inferiors flatter superiors,
-or commend them for their sin: Thus when Herod had courted the applause
-of the people, by the oration which he made to them; they, on the other
-hand, flattered him, when they _gave a shout, saying, It is the voice of
-a god, and not of a man_, chap. xii. 22. Again, when we have recourse to
-those places, where sin is usually committed, and desire to associate
-ourselves with them, whose conversation is a reproach to religion, Prov.
-xiii. 20. or, when we are sharers, or partakers, with others, in their
-unlawful gains; first encouraging, abetting, and helping them therein;
-and then dividing the spoil with them, chap. i. 23,-25. Again, when we
-connive at sin committed; or, if it be in our power, do not restrain or
-hinder the commission of it; or, when we conceal it, when the farther
-progress thereof might be prevented by our divulging it. Again, when we
-provoke persons to sin. And hereby draw forth their corruptions; and
-when we extenuate sin, whether committed by ourselves or others; which
-is a degree of vindicating, or pleading for it. And lastly, when we do
-not mourn for, or pray against those sins which are publicly committed
-in the world, that are like to bring down national judgments[14].
-
-Footnote 14:
-
- These several heads, concerning the aggravations of sin, are contained
- in three or four lines, which are helpful to our memories. Most of the
- heads of this answer, are contained in that verse, _Quis?_ _Quid?_
- _Ubi?_ _Quibus auxiliis?_ _Cur?_ _Quomodo?_ _Quando?_ And those that
- relate to our contracting the guilt of other men’s sins, in the
- following lines; _Jussu._ _Consilio._ _Consensu._ _Palpo._ _Recursu._
- _Participans._ _Nutans._ _Non obstans._ _Non manifestans._
- _Incessans._ _Minuens._ _Non mærens._ _Solicitansve._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLII., CLIII.
-
-
- QUEST. CLII. _What doth every sin deserve at the hands of God?_
-
- ANSW. Every sin, even the least, being against the sovereignty,
- goodness, and holiness of God, and, against his righteous law,
- deserveth his wrath and curse, both in this life, and that which is
- to come, and cannot be expiated, but by the blood of Christ.
-
- QUEST. CLIII. _What doth God require of us, that may escape his
- wrath and curse due to us by reason of the transgression of the
- law._
-
- ANSW. That we may escape the wrath and curse of God due to us by
- reason of the transgression of the law, he requireth of us
- repentance toward God, and faith toward our Lord Jesus Christ, and
- the diligent use of the outward means whereby Christ communicates to
- us the benefits of his mediation.
-
-In the former of these answers, we have an account of then demerit of
-sin; in the latter, we have the character and disposition of those who
-have ground to conclude that they shall be delivered from the wrath and
-curse of God due to it. We have already considered one sin as greater
-than another, by reason of several circumstances that tend to enhance
-the guilt of those who commit them: Nevertheless, there is no sin so
-small but it has this aggravation in it, that it is a violation of the
-law of God, and is opposite to his holiness; and therefore it cannot but
-render the sinner guilty in his sight; and guilt is that whereby a
-person is liable to suffer punishment in proportion to the offence
-committed: Therefore it follows, that there is no ground for that
-distinction which the Papists make between _mortal_ and _venial_ sins;
-whereof the former, they suppose, deserves the wrath and curse of God
-both in this and another world; but as for the latter, namely, _venial_
-sins, they conclude that they may be atoned for by human satisfactions,
-or penances; and that they are, in their own nature, so small, that they
-do not deserve eternal punishment. This is an opinion highly derogatory
-to the glory of God, and opens a door to licentiousness, in a variety of
-instances; the contrary to which, is contained in the answer we are now
-explaining.
-
-For the understanding whereof, let it be considered; that it is one
-thing for a sin to deserve the wrath and curse of God, and another thing
-for the sinner to be liable and exposed to it. The former of these
-arises from the heinous nature of sin, and is inseparable from it; the
-latter is inconsistent with a justified state. Nothing can take away the
-guilt of sin, but the atonement made by Christ; and that forgiveness or
-freedom from condemnation, which God is pleased to bestow as the
-consequence thereof, Rom. viii. 1, 33. It is this that discharges a
-believer from a liableness to the wrath and curse of God. Though one sin
-be greater than another, by reason of various circumstances that attend,
-or are contained in it, as was observed under the last answer: yet the
-least sin must be concluded to be objectively infinite, as it is
-committed against a God of infinite perfection, since all offences are
-great in proportion to the dignity of the person against whom they are
-committed. Thus the same sin that is committed against an inferior, or
-an equal, which deserves a less degree of punishment, if it be committed
-against a king, may be so circumstanced, as that it will be deemed a
-capital offence, and render the criminal guilty of high treason; though,
-at the same time, no real injury is done to, but only attempted against
-him. In like manner we must conclude, that though it be out of our own
-power to injure or detract from the essential glory of the great God;
-yet every offence committed against him is great, in proportion to his
-infinite excellency; and is therefore said to deserve his wrath and
-curse. Wrath or anger, when applied to God, is not to be considered as a
-passion in him, as it is in men; but denotes his will to punish sin
-committed, which takes its first rise from the holiness of his nature,
-which is infinitely opposite to it. And the degree of punishment that he
-designs to inflict, is contained in his law; which, as it denounces
-threatnings against those who violate it, the sinner is hereby said to
-be exposed to the curse or condemning sentence thereof, agreeably to the
-rules of justice, and the nature of the offence. This is what we are to
-understand, in this answer, by sin’s deserving the wrath and curse of
-God.
-
-And this is farther considered, as what extends itself to this life, and
-that which is to come. Punishments inflicted in this life, are but the
-beginning of miseries; but they are sometimes inexpressibly great, as
-the Psalmist says, _Who knoweth the power of thine anger? even according
-to thy fear, so is thy wrath_, Psal. xc. 11. Sometimes there is but a
-very short interval between sin and the punishment; as in the case of
-Nadab and Abihu, Korah, and his company, Achan, and many others;
-whereas, at other times, it is long deferred; nevertheless, it will fall
-with great weight, at last, on the offender. Thus God sometimes punishes
-the sin of youth in old age; and when a greater degree of guilt has been
-contracted, writes bitter things against them, Job xiii. 26. But the
-greatest degree of punishment is reserved for sinners in another world;
-which is styled _the wrath to come_, 1 Thess. i. 10. But these things
-having been insisted on in some foregoing answers[15], we shall add no
-more on that head; but proceed to what is farther observed, viz. that
-this punishment cannot be expiated any otherwise than by the blood of
-Christ. This is fitly inserted after the account we have had of man’s
-liableness to the wrath of God, by reason of sin: for when we have an
-afflicting sense of the guilt we have exposed ourselves to, nothing else
-will afford us relief.
-
-The next thing to be considered is, how it may be removed, or by what
-means the justice of God may be satisfied, and an atonement made for
-sin. This is said to be done no other way but by the blood of Christ, as
-has been considered elsewhere, under a foregoing answer; in which we
-endeavoured to prove the necessity of Christ’s making satisfaction, and
-the price that he paid in order thereto[16]. We have also considered the
-fruits and effects thereof, as it has a tendency to remove the guilt of
-sin, and procure for us a right to eternal life:[17] Therefore, we shall
-pass over the consideration thereof in this place; only we may observe,
-that, since this can be brought about by no other means but Christ’s
-satisfaction; it is not inconsistent with what is contained in the
-following words, if rightly understood by us, to assert that God
-requires of us, repentance, faith, and a diligent attendance on the
-outward means of grace; though we must not conclude them to be the
-procuring cause of our justification, or a means to expiate sin. They
-are certainly very much unacquainted with the way of salvation by
-Christ, as well as the great defects of their repentance and faith, who
-suppose, that God is hereby induced to pardon our sins, or deliver us
-from the wrath we have deserved thereby; nevertheless, we are not to
-think, that impenitent unbelieving sinners have a right to determine
-that they are in a justified state, or have ground to claim an interest
-in the benefits of Christ’s redemption. Therefore, these graces are
-necessary to evince our interest in what he has done and suffered for
-us, and they are inseparably connected with salvation; though they do
-not give us a right and title to eternal life, as Christ’s righteousness
-doth. We have, in two foregoing answers, given a particular account of
-repentance and faith. Concerning repentance, we have observed, that it
-is a special saving grace, wrought in us by the Holy Spirit, and have
-shewn in what way he works it; and also the difference between legal and
-evangelical repentance, as the former is often found in those who are
-destitute of the latter. We have considered the various acts of
-repentance unto life[18]; what the objects and acts of saving faith are;
-and how it differs from that which is not so; and the use of this grace,
-in the whole conduct of our lives, and how it gives life and vigour to
-all other graces, and enables us to perform duties in a right
-manner[19]. Therefore we shall not insist on this subject at present,
-but only speak of repentance and faith as means appointed by God, in
-order to our attaining compleat salvation.
-
-The means conducive hereunto, are either internal or external; the
-former of these are inseparably connected with salvation; so that
-_none_, who repent and _believe, shall perish_, John iii. 16. These
-graces, together with all others, that accompany or flow from them, are
-the fruits and effects of Christ’s mediation; and therefore they are
-sometimes called saving graces. As they are wrought in the hearts of
-believers, and have a reference to salvation; they may be truly styled
-internal means of salvation; and, as such, they are distinguished from
-those outward and ordinary means of grace, by which God is pleased to
-work them. And these are the ordinances which we are diligently to
-attend on, in hopes of attaining those graces under them, till God is
-pleased to give success to our endeavours, and work grace under these
-means; the efficacy whereof, is wholly owing to his power, and is to be
-resolved into his sovereign will.
-
-This may be fitly illustrated by what is said concerning the poor,
-_impotent_, _blind_, _halt_, and _withered_ persons, _waiting_ at the
-_pool of Bethesda_, for the _angels troubling the water_; after which,
-he that _first stepped in, was made whole_, John v. 2-4. Nevertheless,
-we do not find that every one who waited there embraced the first
-opportunity, and received a cure; for some were obliged to wait many
-years; and if they were made whole at last, they had no reason to think
-their labour lost. This may be applied to those who have the means of
-grace. Many sit under them who receive no saving advantage thereby, till
-God is pleased, in his accepted time, to work those graces which render
-these ordinances effectual to salvation. This blessed success attending
-them, is from God; he could, indeed, save his people without them, as he
-converted Paul, when going to Damascus, with a design to persecute the
-church there; being not only unacquainted with, but prejudiced against
-the means of grace. But this is not God’s ordinary method. He has put an
-honour on his own institutions, so as to render it necessary for us to
-pray, wait and hope for saving blessings, in attending on them. Thus
-when he promises to _put his Spirit_ within his people, and _cause them
-walk in his statutes_, he adds; yet _for this will I be enquired of by
-the house of Israel, to do it for them_, Ezek. xxxvi. 27, 37.
-accordingly we are commanded to _seek the Lord while he may be found,
-and to call upon him while he is near_, Isa. lv. 6. Hereby we testify
-our approbation of that method which he has ordained for the application
-of redemption; and by our perseverance therein, as determining not to
-leave off waiting till we have obtained the blessing expected, we
-proclaim the valuableness thereof, and subscribe to the sovereignty of
-God, in dispensing those blessings to his people, which they stand in
-need of, as well as pray and hope for them in his own time and way. Thus
-we are to wait on the means of grace.
-
-And it is farther observed, that this is to be done with diligence; not
-in a careless and indifferent manner, as though we neither expected nor
-desired much advantage from them. This implies in it an embracing every
-opportunity, and observing those special seasons, in which God is
-pleased, in his gospel, to hold forth the golden sceptre of grace; as
-also our having earnest desires and raised expectations of obtaining
-that grace from him which he encourages us to wait and hope for[20].
-Which leads us to speak particularly concerning those outward means, as
-contained in the following answer.
-
-Footnote 15:
-
- _See Vol. II. Quest. XXVIII, XXIX, and Vol. III. Quest. LXXXIX._
-
-Footnote 16:
-
- _See Vol. II. Quest. XLIV. Page 273-290._
-
-Footnote 17:
-
- _See Quest. LXX, LXXI. Vol. III. p. 66-96. and what was said under
- those answers, to explain the doctrine of justification._
-
-Footnote 18:
-
- _See Quest. LXXVI. Vol. III. p. 166._
-
-Footnote 19:
-
- _See Quest. LXXII., LXXIII. Vol. III. p. 98._
-
-Footnote 20:
-
- To affect to honour the mercy of God, by supposing this is sufficient
- for all our sins, however persevered in, is to disparage his truth
- which has proposed terms of mercy, connected our salvation with them,
- and pronounced them exclusive. It is to imagine that Deity shall
- change his purposes; it is an affront to his wisdom to suppose that
- after he has placed us in a state of probation and made us
- accountable, no retribution should be made. It indicates insincerity,
- and not a real regard for the divine glory, to set up such a
- substitute for the gospel scheme of salvation.
-
- To excuse sin by alleging our impotency to good, is disingenuous;
- because the party can be conscious of no obstacle, unless his own
- inclinations to evil can be so denominated. This excuse casts the
- blame on God. To persist in sin under such pretences, is _to do evil
- that good may come_, which, the Apostle of the Gentiles declares
- renders condemnation just; it is to sin _that grace may abound_.
-
- To defer the acceptation of offered mercy, and put off the work of
- repentance, is unwise, as it is heaping sorrows against the day of
- bitterness; it is imprudent, because it is to remain at enmity with
- Him upon whom we depend, and to be liable at every moment of this
- uncertain life to be involved in everlasting despair. It is evidence
- of a very sordid mind to prefer the base gratifications of the senses,
- to the refined pleasures of virtue, and the beauty, peace, and
- comforts of holiness.
-
- If the procrastination proceed from a dread of the labour of acquiring
- the knowledge of the truth, this will be increased by every hour’s
- delay, as the mind becomes thereby the less susceptible of religious
- impressions. The time in which the work should be accomplished also
- becomes the shorter; like a traveler, who has mistaken his course, the
- impenitent has every step to tread back again, and his time is
- proportionally curtailed. The truths of natural science flatter our
- pride and ambition, but those of religion humble and crucify them; the
- latter, being opposed to the carnal mind, disgust; if such disgust
- produce a delay of conversion, the truths which have once excited such
- aversion will be more likely afterwards to do it, because the mind by
- once having rejected them has become more sensual, and opposed to
- moral good.
-
- The cares and business of life not merely pre-occupy the mind, and
- exclude the thoughts of religion, but augment our addictedness to
- earthly objects, and render progressively the mind more insensible to
- lessons of piety. In old age avarice or sensuality are often at the
- highest pitch; the man has become more impatient and irritable,
- tenacious even of his errours, and averse to changes, no change can be
- looked for but the great one, when the messenger arrives, who brings a
- scythe in his hand.
-
- To defer conversion till death, that its terrors may dissolve the
- charms of the world, besides the hazard of surprise, is unreasonable,
- as it supposes mercy when we have persisted in rebellion as long as we
- can; it is to expect that God’s Spirit shrill always strive with man;
- it is highly presumptuous; and it exposes also to self-deception, as
- religion in that late hour must be the effect of necessity, and
- destitute of the fruits and proofs of holiness.
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLIV.
-
-
- QUEST. CLIV. _What are the outward means whereby Christ communicates
- to us the benefits of his mediation?_
-
- ANSW. The outward and ordinary means whereby Christ communicates to
- his church the benefits of his mediation, are, all his ordinances;
- especially the word, sacraments, and prayer; all which are made
- effectual to the elect for salvation.
-
-In explaining this answer, we shall consider,
-
-I. What we are to understand by the ordinances, which are here styled
-outward and ordinary means of grace. The first idea contained in them
-is, that they are religious duties, prescribed by God, as an instituted
-method, in which he will be worshipped by his creatures; but that which
-more especially denominates them to be ordinances, is, the promise which
-he has annexed to them of his special presence, and the encouragement
-that he has given to his people in attending on them, to hope for those
-blessings that accompany salvation. As God works grace by, and under
-them, they are called means of grace; and because he seldom works grace
-without first inclining persons to attend on him therein, and wait for
-his salvation; therefore they are called the ordinary means of grace;
-and because they have not in themselves a tendency to work grace,
-without the inward and powerful influences of the Holy Spirit,
-accompanying them, they are distinguished from it, and accordingly
-styled the outward means of grace.
-
-That which may be observed concerning the ordinances as thus described,
-is,
-
-1. That they may be engaged in, pursuant to a divine appointment;
-therefore no creature hath a warrant to enjoin any modes of worship,
-pretending that this will be acceptable, or well-pleasing to God; since
-he alone, who is the object of worship, has a right to prescribe the way
-in which he will be worshipped. To do this would be an instance of
-profaneness and bold presumption; and the worship performed pursuant
-thereunto would be _in vain_; as our Saviour says concerning that which
-has no higher a sanction than _the commandments of men_, Matt. xv. 9.
-and whatever pretence of religion there may be therein, God looks upon
-such worshippers as well as those whose prescriptions they follow
-herein, with the utmost contempt, and will punish them for, rather than
-encourage them in it. Thus the prophet reproves Israel, as being guilty
-of defection from God, who engaged in that worship which he had not
-ordained, when he says, _The statutes of Omri are kept, and all the
-works of the house of Ahab, and ye walk in their counsels, that I should
-make thee a desolation, and the inhabitants thereof an hissing.
-Therefore shall ye bear the reproach of my people_, Mic. vi. 16. And
-Jeroboam is often branded with this character, that _he made Israel to
-sin_, for instituting ordinances of divine worship, and _setting up
-calves in Dan and Bethel, making an house of high places, and priests of
-the lowest of the people_, and appointing sacred times, in which they
-should perform this worship; all which were of his own devising, and
-became a snare to the people, Exod. xx. 24. It is certain, that such
-appointments cannot be reckoned means of grace, or pledges of God’s
-presence; and it would redound to his dishonour, should he be obliged to
-communicate the benefits of Christ’s redemption hereby, to any who,
-(under a pretence of worshipping him in a way of their own devising,)
-offer the highest affront to him.
-
-2. If God is pleased to reveal his will concerning the way in which we
-are to worship him, and hope for his presence, it is our indispensable
-duty to comply with it, and implore his acceptance of us herein; and be
-importunate with him, that he would put a glory on his own institutions,
-and grant us his special presence and grace, that we may be enabled to
-perform whatever duty he enjoins, in such a manner, that the most
-valuable ends may be answered, and our spiritual edification and
-salvation promoted thereby.
-
-3. Though we consider the ordinances as instituted means of grace; yet,
-a bare attendance on them will not, of itself, confer grace, as is very
-evident from the declining state of religion, in those who engage in the
-external part of it, and attend upon all the ordinances of God’s
-appointment, and yet remain destitute of saving grace; who are stupid
-under the awakening calls of the gospel, and regard not the invitations
-given therein, to adhere stedfastly to Jesus Christ, whom in words they
-profess to own, though in works they deny him. This is a convincing
-evidence, that it is God alone, who appointed those ordinances, that can
-make them effectual to salvation. Thus concerning the nature of an
-ordinance, and in what respect it may be called an outward and ordinary
-means of grace. We are now,
-
-II. To consider what are those ordinances by which Christ communicates
-to us the benefits of his mediation. These may be considered,
-
-1. As engaged in by particular persons, as subservient to their
-spiritual welfare, in order to the beginning or carrying on the work of
-grace in their souls; such as meditation about divine subjects,
-self-examination, and all other duties, which are performed by them in
-their private retirement, in hope of having communion with God therein.
-Or,
-
-2. There are other ordinances which God has given to worshipping
-assemblies, which are founded in that general promise, _In all places
-where I record my name, I will come unto thee, and I will bless thee_,
-Exod. xx. 24. Those mentioned in this answer, are the words, sacraments
-and prayer; of which the sacraments are particularly given to the
-churches; the word and prayer, to all who are favoured with the
-gospel-dispensation. And to these we may add, singing the praises of
-God; which, though it be not particularly mentioned in this answer, is,
-nevertheless, a duty wherein we may expect to meet with his presence and
-blessing; and accordingly is an ordinance which God makes effectual to
-promote our salvation. Therefore, before we enter on the subject-matter
-of the following answers, we shall speak something concerning this duty,
-as an ordinance which he has instituted; together with the way and
-manner in which it is to be performed. And,
-
-(1.) We may enquire what ground we have to reckon it among the
-ordinances of God. This must not be taken for granted, but proved;
-because there are many who deny it to be so. That it was an ordinance
-enjoined to, and practised by the church, under the Old
-Testament-dispensation, appears from the many songs and psalms given, by
-divine inspiration, to be used by the church, in their solemn acts of
-worship; some of which were not only sung by particular persons; but the
-whole church is represented as joining therein with united voices. Thus
-when Pharaoh’s host was drowned in the red sea, it is said, _Moses and
-the children of Israel sang_ the song that was given by divine
-inspiration for that purpose, contained in Exod. xv. And when he was
-inspired with that song, in Deut. xxxii. he was commanded, in chap.
-xxxi. _to write it for them, and teach it to them, and put it in their
-mouths_; that they might sing it in their public worship; which he did
-accordingly, ver. 22. And from the days of David, when public worship
-was more settled than it had been before; and many things relating to
-the order, beauty and harmony thereof, brought into the church by divine
-direction, then there was an order of men called _Singers_, who were to
-preside over, and set forward the work. And there was also a book of
-psalms, given by divine inspiration, for the use of the church therein,
-that they might not be at a loss as to the subject-matter of praise in
-this ordinance; as may be inferred from the style thereof, the words
-being often put in the plural number; which argues, that they were to be
-sung, not by one person in the church, but by the whole congregation, in
-their solemn and public acts of worship; and accordingly we often find
-the whole multitude of them exhorted to sing the praises of God. Thus it
-is said in Psal. xxx. 4. _Sing unto the Lord, O ye saints of his, and
-give thanks at the remembrance of his holiness._ And elsewhere, _Sing
-aloud unto God our strength. Make a joyful noise unto the God of Jacob.
-Take a psalm_, &c. _For this was a statute for Israel, and a law of the
-God of Jacob_, Psal. lxxxi. 1, 2, 3, 4. And sometimes the church are
-represented as exciting one another to this duty. Thus it is said, _O
-come let us sing unto the Lord; let us make a joyful noise to the rock
-of our salvation. Let us come before his presence with thanksgiving, and
-make a joyful noise unto him with psalms_, Psal. xcv. 1, 2.
-
-And it may be observed, that how much soever the use of musical
-instruments, which were in this worship may be concluded to be
-particularly adapted to that dispensation, as they were typical of that
-spiritual joy, which the gospel church should obtain by Christ; yet the
-ordinance of singing remains a duty, as founded on the moral law; and
-accordingly we find, that the practice hereof was recommended, not only
-to the Jews, but to all nations. Thus it is said, _Make a joyful noise
-unto the Lord all the earth_, Psal. xcviii. 4. And he speaks to this
-purpose, when he presses this duty upon _all lands_, whom he exhorts to
-_serve him with gladness; and to come before the Lord with singing_,
-Psal. c. 1, 2. And besides, it seems to be preferred before some other
-parts of worship, which were merely ceremonial. Thus the Psalmist says,
-_I will praise the name of God with a song. This also shall please the
-Lord better than an ox or bullock_, Psal. lxix. 30, 31. that is, God is
-more glorified hereby than he is by the external rites of ceremonial
-worship; especially when abstracted from those acts of faith, which add
-an excellency and glory to them.
-
-And this leads us to consider it as an ordinance practised by the New
-Testament-church. Some had songs given in to them by inspiration; as the
-virgin Mary, Zacharias, and Simeon, Luke i. 46, 47, & _seq._ chap. ii.
-28, & _seq._ and sometimes the members of particular churches had a
-psalm given in by extraordinary revelation, 1 Cor. xiv. 26. and we can
-hardly suppose this to have been without a design that it should be sung
-in the church for their edification; especially considering it as an
-extraordinary dispensation of the Spirit: And, as the singing of a psalm
-in the church, is an act of public worship, it is reasonable to suppose,
-that the whole assembly joined together therein; and therefore this
-ordinance was not only practised by them, but had also a divine
-sanction, in that the Spirit was the author of the psalm that was sung:
-And we sometimes read of the church’s singing an hymn, which was no
-other than a psalm or spiritual song, at the Lord’s-supper: Thus our
-Saviour, in the close of that ordinance, sung an hymn with his
-disciples, that small church with whom he then communicated, Mark xiv.
-26. And at another time, when he was _come nigh to the descent of the
-mount of olives_, it is said, that _the multitude of the disciples began
-to rejoice, and to praise God with a loud voice_, Luke xxix. 37. where,
-by _the multitude of the disciples_, we must understand all that
-followed him, who had, at that time, a conviction in their consciences,
-that he was the Messiah, from the miracles which they had seen him work;
-and we have an account of the short hymn which they sang; _Blessed be
-the king that cometh in the name of the Lord; peace in heaven, and glory
-in the highest_, Luke xix. 38. This was not, indeed, sung in a
-church-assembly; however, it was with a _loud voice_, and herein they
-gave glory to God: And though some of the Pharisees were offended at it,
-ver. 39. yet our Saviour, in the following words, vindicates their
-practice herein; which argues, that it was a branch of religious
-worship, performed by them at that time; and a duty approved of by him.
-All that I would infer from hence, is, that our Saviour gave countenance
-to the singing the praises of God, with united voices. Therefore it
-follows, that we ought, on all occasions, to do the same thing; and
-consequently, singing is an ordinance, whereby the church ought to
-glorify God, and shew forth his praise. Thus we have considered singing
-to be an ordinance, or a branch of instituted worship.
-
-(2.) There are several things in which this ordinance agrees with some
-others; particularly with prayer in all the parts thereof; and with
-reading and preaching of the word. That it has something in common with
-prayer, appears from the subject-matter of several of the psalms of
-David; some of which are called prayers, and accordingly they contain in
-them several petitions, for blessings that the church stood in need of,
-together with various instances of confession of sin, as well as
-thanksgiving for mercies received. As to the agreement of this
-ordinance, with preaching or reading the word; that, I think, may be
-inferred in general, from one of the ends thereof, mentioned by the
-apostle, namely, in that we are herein to _teach and admonish one
-another_, Col. iii. 16. This is what the Psalmist styles _talking of all
-his wondrous works_, Psal. cv. 1, 2. And elsewhere, the church are said
-to _speak to_ themselves, or to _one another_ in this duty, Eph. v. 19.
-This may be observed in the subject-matter of some of the psalms, in
-which the Psalmist is represented as speaking to the church, and they as
-making their reply to him: Thus he advises them to _lift up their hands
-in the sanctuary, and bless the Lord_, Psal. cxxxiv. 2. and answer him,
-_The Lord that made heaven and earth bless thee out of Zion_, ver. 3.
-The name may be observed in many other psalms, in which there is a
-frequent change of the person speaking; and the subject-matter of the
-whole book contains many admonitions or cautions necessary to be
-observed by others, which they who sing, direct and apply to each other.
-Again, this ordinance agrees with preaching and reading the word, in
-that we are, in singing the praises of God, to take notice of, or
-celebrate the dispensations of his providence, either in a way of
-judgment or mercy; of this we have many instances in the book of Psalms,
-as is very evident in all those that are properly historical.
-
-(3.) We must, notwithstanding, suppose singing to be a distinct
-ordinance from preaching, prayer, or reading the word; for it is
-mentioned in scripture, as such; and that wherein it principally
-differs, is, that it is designed to raise the affections: and it is
-certain, that the modulation, or tone of the voice, has oftentimes a
-tendency so to do. And because the performing religious worship, with
-raised affections, is a great duty and privilege; therefore God has
-appointed this as an ordinance, in some degree conducive to answer that
-end.
-
-_Obj._ 1. If the tone of the voice be to be reckoned an ordinance, to
-raise the affections; then vocal or instrumental music may be deemed
-sufficient to answer this end, without making use of those words in
-singing, which God has ordained, whereby it may be denominated a
-religious duty.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied; that to have the affections raised,
-is no branch of religion, unless they are excited by those ideas of
-divine things, in which it principally consists: Therefore, that which
-is a means of raising the affections, may not have a tendency to excite
-religious affections; and, consequently, it is not barely singing, but
-celebrating the praises of God therein, with raised affections, that is
-the duty and ordinance which we ought to engage in: These two,
-therefore, must be connected together; and if God is pleased, not only
-to instruct us as to the matter about which our faith is to be
-conversant, but to give us an ordinance conducive to the exciting our
-affections therein, it must be reckoned an additional advantage, and an
-help to our praising him in a becoming manner.
-
-_Obj._ 2. Those arguments that have been taken from the practice of the
-Old Testament-church, to prove singing an ordinance, may, with equal
-justice, be alleged to prove the use of instrumental music therein;
-since we very often read of their _praising_ God with the _sound of the
-trumpet, psaltery, harp, organ_, and other musical instruments, Psal.
-cl. 3, 4, 5. which is the principal argument brought for the use of them
-by those who defend this practice, and conclude it an help for
-devotion.[21]
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied; that though we often read of music
-being used in singing the praises of God under the Old Testament; yet if
-what has been said concerning its being a type of that spiritual joy
-which attends our praising God for the privilege of that redemption
-which Christ has purchased be true; then this objection will appear to
-have no weight, since this type is abolished, together with the
-ceremonial law. And it may be farther observed, that though we read of
-the use of music, in the temple-service, yet it does not sufficiently
-appear, that it was ever used, in the Jewish synagogues; wherein the
-mode of worship more resembled that which is, at present, performed by
-us in our public assemblies. But that which may sufficiently determine
-this matter, is, that, we have no precept or precedent for it in the New
-Testament, either from the practice of Christ, or his apostles. And
-inasmuch as this is alleged, by some, to overthrow the ordinance of
-singing, who pretend, that it ought to be no more used by us than the
-harp, organ, or other musical instruments: It might as well be objected,
-that, because incense, which was used under the ceremonial law, together
-with prayer in the temple, Luke i. 9, 10. is not now offered by us;
-therefore prayer ought to be laid aside; which is, as all own, a duty
-founded on the moral law.
-
-(4.) In singing those psalms or songs, which are given by divine
-inspiration, we are not to consider the subject-matter thereof, as
-always expressive of the frame of our own spirits, or denoting the
-dispensations of providence, which we, or the church of God are, at
-present exercised with. This is necessary in order to our singing with
-understanding; and it may be inferred from what is observed under the
-second of those heads, before laid down, relating to the agreement which
-there is between singing and reading any of David’s psalms.
-
-It must be allowed by all, that we ought to have the same acts of faith
-in one, as we have in the other. This is evident from all composures in
-prose or verse, whether divine or human. If the subject-matter be
-historical, whatever the form be in which it is laid down, the principal
-things to be considered are, those matters of fact which are therein
-related. If an history be written in prose, and the same should be
-turned into verse; its being laid down in the form of a poem, though it
-adds something of beauty to the mode of expression, yet the ideas, that
-are conveyed thereby, or the historical representation of things, are
-the same as though they had not been written in verse. It may be, the
-reading the same history in verse, may add something of pleasure and
-delight to those ideas which we have of it, in like manner as singing,
-according to the third head before mentioned, is a distinct ordinance
-from reading (though the matter be the same, as it respects the exciting
-the affections;) yet this does not give us different ideas of it; much
-less are we to take occasion from thence, to apply those things to
-ourselves that are spoken of others; unless parallel circumstances
-require it. If this rule be not observed, I do not see how we can sing
-many of the psalms of David. Sometimes the subject-matter thereof is not
-agreeable to every age of life, or the universal experience of
-particular persons. It would be very preposterous for a child, in
-singing those words, _I have been young, and now am old; yet have I not
-seen the righteous forsaken, nor his seed begging bread_, Psal. xxxvii.
-25. or what is elsewhere said; _Now also, when I am old and gray-headed,
-O God, forsake me not_, Psal. lxxi. 18. to apply them, in particular to
-himself. And when some other psalms are sung in a public assembly, in
-which God’s people are represented as dejected, disconsolate, and, as it
-were, sinking in the depths of despair; as when the Psalmist says, _My
-soul refused to be comforted. I remembered God, and was troubled; I
-complained, and my spirit was overwhelmed_, Psal. lxxvii. 2, 3. and
-elsewhere, _I am counted with them that go down into the pit. Thy wrath
-lieth hard upon me. While I suffer thy terrors, I am distracted_, Psal.
-lxxxviii. 4, 7, 15. This cannot be applied to every particular person in
-a worshipping assembly; as denoting that frame of spirit in which he is,
-at present, any more than those expressions which we meet with
-elsewhere, which speak of a believer, as having full assurance of God’s
-love to him, and his right and title to eternal life; as when it is
-said, _Thou shalt guide me with thy counsel, and afterward receive me to
-glory_, Psal. lxxiii. 24. can be applied to those who are in a dejected,
-despairing, or unbelieving frame of spirit.
-
-And those psalms which contain an historical account of some particular
-dispensations of providence towards the church of old, cannot be applied
-to it in every age, or to the circumstances of every believer; as when
-it is said, _By the rivers of Babylon there we sat down; yea, we wept
-when we remembered Zion_, Psal. cxxxvii. 1. This is not to be considered
-as what is expressive of our own case, when we are, in the present day,
-singing that psalm, Or, when, on the other hand, the church is
-represented as praising God for particular deliverances, as in Psal.
-cvii. or expressing its triumphs in the victories obtained over its
-enemies, as in Psal. cxlix. these are not to be applied, by particular
-persons, to themselves; especially at all times. And when the Psalmist
-makes use of those phrases which are adapted to the ceremonial law, as
-when he speaks of _binding the sacrifice with cords, even unto the horns
-of the altar_, Psal. cxviii. 27. or elsewhere, of their _offering
-bullocks upon it_, Psal. li. 19. this cannot be taken in a literal
-sense, when applied to the gospel-state. And when we are exhorted to
-_praise God with the psaltery_, &c. Psal. cl. we are to express those
-acts of faith which are agreeable to the present gospel-dispensation,
-which we are under; and the general rule, which is applicable to all
-psalms of the like nature, is, that with the same frame of spirit with
-which we read them, we ought to sing them. Sometimes we are to consider
-the subject-matter of them, as containing an account of those
-providences which we are liable to, rather than those which we are, at
-present, under; or what we desire, or fear, rather than experience; and
-improve them so as to excite those graces which ought to be exercised in
-like circumstances, when it shall please God to bring us under them.
-With this frame of spirit the psalms of David are to be sung, as well as
-read; otherwise we shall be obliged to exclude several of them as not
-fit to be used in gospel-worship, which I would assert nothing that
-should give the least countenance to,[22] any more than I would affirm
-that such-like psalms are not to be read in public assemblies.
-
-_Obj._ 1. To what has been said concerning our using David’s psalms in
-singing the praises of God, it is objected, that some of them contain
-such imprecation, or desires, that God would destroy his enemies, Psal.
-lv. 15. and lix. 13-15. and lxix. 22-25, 27, 28. as are inconsistent
-with the spirit of the gospel, or that love which we are, therein,
-obliged to express towards our enemies, agreeably to the command and
-practice of the holy Jesus, Matt. v. 44, 46. Luke xxiii. 34.
-
-Before I proceed to a direct answer to this objection, it may be
-observed, that this is generally alleged, by the Deists, with a design
-to cast a reproach on divine revelation; and from hence they take
-occasion, outrageously to inveigh against David, as though he was of a
-malicious and implacable spirit; upon which account they will hardly
-allow him to have been a good man, since these, and such-like
-imprecations of the wrath of God on the church’s enemies, are reckoned
-by them no other than the effects of his passion and hatred of them; and
-therefore it is a preposterous thing to suppose, that his psalms were
-given by divine inspiration.
-
-And there are others, to wit, some among the Socinians, who give a
-different turn to such-like expressions; and pretend, that under the Old
-Testament dispensation, it was not unlawful for persons to hate their
-enemies, or curse, or imprecate the wrath of God upon them, whereas, our
-Saviour thought fit, under the New Testament-dispensation, to command
-what was directly contrary thereunto. That it was formerly lawful, they
-argue from what is said in Matt. v. 43. _Ye have heard that it hath been
-said, Thou shalt love thy neighbour, and hate thine enemy._ And the new
-Commandment which he substituted in the room thereof, is contained in
-the following words, in which he obliges them, to _love their enemies_,
-&c. But this is a gross mistake of the sense of that scripture, which
-speaks of _hating_ their _enemies_; since our Saviour does not, in
-mentioning it, design to refer to any thing said in the Old Testament,
-but only to expose the corrupt gloss of the Scribes and Pharisees, given
-on some passages contained therein. Therefore, we must conclude, that it
-was equally unlawful to hate our enemies before, as it is now, under the
-gospel-dispensation. These things I could not but premise, before we
-come to a direct answer to this objection; and, if what is contained
-therein were true, it would certainly be unlawful to sing David’s
-psalms; yet, at the same time, it would be a very difficult matter, to
-substitute any hymns and songs in their room, which would be altogether
-unexceptionable; and then the ordinance of singing would be effectually
-overthrown.
-
-_Answ._ But to this it may be replied; that the words being spoken by
-David, under divine inspiration, some of those scriptures referred to,
-may, agreeably to the rules of grammar, be understood as a prediction of
-those judgments which God would execute on his implacable enemies;
-especially when the word, that is supposed in the objection, to contain
-the form of an imprecation, is put in the _future tense_, as it often
-is. And if it be put in the _imperative mood_, as in other places, in
-which it is said, _Let death seize on them; let them go down quick into
-hell; let them be blotted out of the book of the living_; this mode of
-speaking, especially when applied to God, contains an intimation of what
-he would do, or the wrath which he would pour forth, as a punishment of
-sin, committed, persisted in, and not repented of. And, indeed, in one
-of these psalms, _viz._ Psal. lxix. in which the righteous judgments of
-God are denounced against sinners, the Psalmist plainly speaks in the
-person of our Saviour, to whom the 9th and 21st verses are expressly
-applied in the New Testament, John ii. 17. Matt. xxvii. 34. Therefore,
-when he says, ver. 22. _Let their table become a snare_, the meaning is,
-that God would deny some of his furious and implacable enemies, that
-grace, which alone could prevent their waxing worse and worse under
-outward prosperity. And when he says, ver. 23. _Let their eyes be
-darkened_; the meaning is, they shall be given up to judicial blindness,
-as the Jews were; the providence of God permitting, though not effecting
-it. And when it is said, ver. 23. _Pour out thine indignation upon
-them_, it is an intimation that this should come to pass. And, in ver.
-25. _Let their habitation be desolate_; the meaning is, that the land,
-in which they dwelt, should be destitute of its former inhabitants, and
-so contains a prediction of the desolate state of the Jewish nation,
-after they were destroyed, and driven out of their country by the
-Romans. And when he farther says, _Add iniquity to their iniquity_; this
-may be accounted for consistently with the divine perfections, and the
-sense thereof is not liable to any just exception; as has been observed
-elsewhere. This I only mention, to shew that it is not necessary to
-suppose that these imprecations are always to be understood as what will
-warrant, or give countenance to private persons to wish, or pray for the
-destruction of their enemies.
-
-Moreover, if the evil denounced be of a temporal nature; as when the
-Psalmist is represented as desiring that his enemies may be _consumed as
-the stubble before the wind_, or as _the wood that fire burneth_, Psal.
-lxxxiii. 13, 14. these are not the desires of one who meditates private
-revenge, or wishes to see the ruin of those whom he hates. But they
-contain the language of the church of God in general, as acquiescing in
-his righteous judgments, which should be poured forth on those that hate
-him, and persecute his people; and, if either the church must be ruined,
-or those that set themselves against it, removed out of the way, they
-cannot but desire the latter, rather than the former. If such
-expressions be thus understood, there would be no sufficient reason for
-that exception that is taken against the book of the psalms; nor will
-any one have just occasion to lay aside a part of them, as what cannot
-be sung by a Christian congregation.
-
-_Object._ 2. It is farther objected, that if singing could be proved to
-be an ordinance, to be used by particular persons; it will not follow
-from thence, that the whole congregation ought to join with their voices
-together. It is sufficient if one person sings, and others make melody
-in their hearts; whereas, united voices in singing, will occasion
-confusion in the worship of God; and, when a mixed multitude join in
-this ordinance, it can hardly be supposed that they, all of them, sing
-with the spirit, and with the understanding also. Therefore, if one
-should sing, it is sufficient for them who are qualified to join in this
-ordinance, to say, Amen; or, to have their hearts engaged therein; as
-they have who join in public prayer, in which, one is the mouth of the
-whole assembly.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied;
-
-[1.] That to insinuate that singing with united voices, is confusion, is
-to cast a great reproach on that worship which we often read of in
-scripture, which was performed in this manner. Thus Moses and the
-children of Israel sang the praises of God upon the occasion of their
-deliverance from the Egyptians, in Exod. xvi. 1. which was certainly an
-act of public worship, not performed by Moses alone, but by the whole
-congregation.
-
-And, in the New Testament, there is a very remarkable example of singing
-with united voices, our Saviour himself being present, Mark xiv. 26.
-thus it is said, that he and his disciples _sang an hymn_. The word is
-in the plural number[23]; therefore they all joined with their voices in
-singing; and some observe, that it is not without design that it is
-said, _He_, that is, Christ, _blessed the bread_, and _He gave thanks_,
-Mat. xxvi. 26, 27. they only joining with him in their hearts, as the
-congregation joins with the minister, who is their mouth in public
-prayer. But when he speaks of the ordinance of singing, they all join
-with their voices therein; and therefore, the word, as was but now
-observed, is in the plural number, ver. 30.
-
-[2.] As to that part of the objection, which respects the congregation’s
-joining in the heart, with one that sings with the voice, in like manner
-as we do in prayer; let it be considered, that though he that joins with
-the heart, with another that prays, may be said to perform the duty of
-prayer, though he does not express his desires with his own voice; yet
-joining with the heart, while one only sings, cannot properly speaking,
-be called singing; much less singing with the voice, or singing with a
-loud voice, as it is often expressed in scripture. The apostle, indeed,
-speaks of _singing and making melody in our hearts, to the Lord_, Eph.
-v. 19. which, in some measure, seems to favour the objection. And it is
-inferred from hence, that, if one sings with the voice, others may make
-melody in the heart. But I take the meaning of that scripture to be
-this; the apostle is pressing the church to sing, that is, to make
-melody to the Lord; and, that this ordinance may be performed in a right
-manner, the heart ought to go along with the voice; hereby intimating,
-that there ought not only to be a melodious sound, by which the praises
-of God are sung, but, together with this, suitable acts of faith ought
-to be put forth, whereby we worship him with our hearts, as well as our
-voices. This does not therefore prove, that the melody here spoken of,
-only respects the frame of spirit, as excluding the use of the voice in
-singing.
-
-[3.] As to what is objected against the inexpediency of joining in
-singing, with a mixed multitude, in which, some must be supposed to want
-two necessary qualifications for singing, namely, the Spirit and
-understanding; this is to join in the external ordinance, where there is
-no harmony, as to the internal frame of spirit, or the exercise of
-faith, which alone makes it pleasing to God.
-
-To this it may be replied; that, if a mixed multitude may join together
-in prayer, and particularly the Psalms of David, may be read in the
-public congregation; though, perhaps, there are many present who do not
-understand the meaning of every particular phrase used therein: yet it
-does not follow, that because we do not fully understand the Psalms of
-David, therefore they ought not to be sung by us. We have before
-observed, that there is no essential difference, especially as to what
-concerns the frame of our spirit, between singing and reading[24].
-Therefore it follows, that whatever psalm may be read, may be sung. He
-that is not qualified for the latter is not qualified for the former.
-The apostle, indeed, speaks of his _praying_ and _singing with the
-Spirit_, as well as _with the understanding_; but the meaning of that
-is, that we ought to desire the efficacious influences of the Spirit,
-and press after the knowledge of the meaning of the words we use, either
-in prayer or singing; yet the defect of our understanding, or having a
-less degree thereof than others, or, than we ought to have, does not
-exempt us from a right to engage in this ordinance. Therefore, we are
-not to refuse to join with those in singing the praises of God, whom we
-would not exclude from our society, if we were reading any of the Psalms
-of David in public.
-
-(5.) We are now to consider the matter to be sung. There are very few
-who allow singing to be an ordinance, that will deny it to be our duty
-to sing the Psalms of David, and other spiritual songs, which we
-frequently meet with in scripture. Some, indeed, have contested the
-expediency of a Christian assembly’s making use of several Old
-Testament-phrases, that are contained therein. And others have alleged,
-that the phrase ought to be altered in many instances, (especially in
-those which have a peculiar reference to the Psalmist’s personal
-circumstances,) and others substituted in their room, which are matter
-of universal experience. But, if what has been said under the last head,
-be true, this argument will appear to have less weight in it; inasmuch
-as all the arguments that are brought in defence of making these
-alterations in the Psalms, as they are to be sung by us, will equally
-hold good, as applicable to the ordinance of reading them, and, it may
-be, will as much evince the necessity of altering the phrase of
-scripture, in several other parts thereof, as well as in these, if what
-has been said under the second head be allowed of. For it will follow
-from thence, that if some psalms are not to be sung by a Christian
-assembly, in the words in which they were at first delivered, and
-consequently are not to be read by them; because the phrase thereof is
-not agreeable to the state of the Christian church; and therefore it is
-to be altered, when applied to our present use; the same may be said
-concerning other parts of scripture; and then the word of God, as it was
-at first given to us, is no more to be read, than to be sung by us[25].
-
-As to what is objected concerning the inexpediency of our making use of
-those words, and applying them to our case, in our devotions, that David
-used in his, with a peculiar view to his own condition. What has been
-said under the fourth head, relating to the frame of spirit with which
-the psalms are to be sung, will very much weaken the force of it; and
-this is what, in a great measure, determines my sentiments as to the
-ordinance of conjoint singing, as well as the matter of it; for, I am
-well persuaded, that if the words were to be considered as our own, (as
-they ought to be, when joining with another, who is our mouth, to God in
-prayer,) there are very few psalms, or hymns of human composure, that
-can be sung by a mixed assembly. But as a divine veneration ought to be
-paid to the psalms, and they are to be read with those acts of faith
-which are the main ingredients in our devotions; we are to sing them
-with the same view, only with this difference; as making use of the tone
-of the voice, as a farther help to the raising our affections therein,
-as has been before observed.
-
-The next thing to be considered is, what version of the Psalms is to
-have the preference in our esteem, as it is subservient to the design of
-this ordinance. It is not my business, under this head, to criticise on
-the various versions of the Psalms; nor can it be supposed, that I have
-a regard to those poetical beauties in which one version exceeds
-another; for then I should be inclined to think some of them, which I do
-not make use of in the ordinance of singing, much preferable to others,
-for the exactness of their style and composure. But when I am singing
-the praises of God, in, or as near as I can to, the words of David, or
-any other inspired writer; that which I principally regard is, the
-agreeableness of the version to the original; and then they may be sung
-with the same frame of spirit with which they are to be read; and I am
-not obliged in singing, to consider the words as expressive of my own
-frame of spirit, any more than I am in reading them. But if the
-composure cannot properly be called a version, but an imitation of
-David’s Psalms, then I make use of it in the ordinance of singing, with
-the same view as I would an hymn; of which, more hereafter[26].
-
-The versions which, I think, come nearest to the original, are the
-New-England and the Scots; the latter of which, I think, much preferable
-to the former; inasmuch as the sentences are not so transposed in this,
-as in the other, and the lines are much more smooth and pleasant to be
-read. I should be very glad to see a version more perfect, that comes as
-near the sense of the original, and excels it in the beauty or elegancy
-of style. And it would be a very great advantage if some marginal notes
-were added, as a comment upon it; which would be a help to our right
-understanding thereof.
-
-I shall now give my thoughts concerning the singing of hymns. These,
-according to the common acceptation of the word, are distinguished from
-psalms, and they generally denote a human composure, fitted for singing;
-the matter whereof, contains some divine subjects, in words agreeable
-to, or deduced from scripture. The arguments that are generally brought
-in defence thereof, are, that though scripture be a rule of faith, from
-whence all the knowledge of divine things is primarily deduced; and
-therefore it has the preference, as to the excellency and authority
-thereof, to any other composure; yet it is not only lawful, but
-necessary to express our faith in the doctrines contained therein, in
-other words, as we do in prayer or preaching. Therefore, if it be a duty
-to praise God with the voice, it is not unlawful to praise him in words
-agreeable to scripture, as well as in the express words thereof;
-accordingly it is argued, that both may be proved to be a duty, _viz._
-praising God in the words of David, and by other songs contained in
-scripture, and praising him in words agreeable thereunto, though of
-human composure. This is the best method of reasoning that I have met
-with in defence of the lawfulness of singing hymns, not as opposed to,
-or excluding David’s Psalms, but as used occasionally, as providence
-directs us; that so our acknowledgments of benefits received, may be
-insisted on with greater enlargement than they are in the book of
-Psalms; wherein, though it may be, there is something adapted to every
-case, yet the particular occasion of our praise is not so largely
-contained in the same section or paragraph; and therefore an hymn may be
-composed on that occasion, in order to our praising God thereby. But,
-when on the other hand, persons seem to prefer hymns to David’s Psalms,
-and substitute them in the room thereof, I cannot but disapprove of
-their practice.
-
-A late writer[27] speaks on this subject with a great deal of
-moderation; when, though he proves that scripture psalms should be
-preferred before all others, and more ordinarily sung; yet he thinks
-that hymns of human composure, ought not wholly to be excluded, provided
-they be exactly agreeable to, and as much as may be, the words of holy
-scripture. There are other writers whom I pay equal deference to, who
-have concisely, though with a considerable degree of judgment, proved
-singing to be a gospel-ordinance[28], who argue against singing of
-_hymns_: and, indeed, what they say in opposition to those who defend
-the practice thereof from Eph. v. 19. and Col. iii. 16. wherein _hymns_
-are supposed to be distinct from _psalms and spiritual songs_; and,
-consequently, that we are to understand thereby human composures,
-agreeable to scripture, as by psalms and spiritual songs, we are to
-understand those which are contained in the very words of scripture,
-seems very just. And herein they speak agreeably to the mind of several
-judicious and learned men, who assert that these three words signify
-nothing else but those psalms or songs that are contained in
-scripture[29]. The question in debate with me, is not whether the
-psalms, hymns, or spiritual songs, that are contained in scripture, are
-designed to be a directory for gospel-worship; for that, I think, all
-ought to allow; but, whether it be lawful to sing a human composure that
-is agreeable to scripture, either as to the words or sense thereof;
-especially when the subject-matter of our praise is not laid down so
-largely in one particular section of scripture, as we desire to express
-it. In this case, if we were to connect several parts of scripture
-together, so that the design of enlarging on a particular subject might
-be answered thereby; it would render it less necessary to compose an
-hymn in other words. But, inasmuch as the occasions of praise are very
-large and extensive, and therefore it may be thought expedient, to adore
-the divine perfections, in our own words in singing, in like manner as
-we do in prayer, considering the one to be a moral duty as well as the
-other; I will not pretend to maintain the unlawfulness of singing hymns
-of human composure, though some of much superior learning and judgment
-have done it.
-
-I would, however, always pay the greatest deference to those divine
-composures, which are given as the principal rule for our procedure
-herein. Nevertheless, I cannot but express my dislike of several hymns
-that I have often heard sung; in some of which the heads of the sermon
-have been comprised; and others, which are printed, are so very mean and
-injudicious, and, it may be, in some respects, not very agreeable to the
-analogy of faith, that I cannot, in the least, approve of them. But if
-we have ground to conclude the composure, as to the matter thereof, and
-mode of expression, unexceptionable, and adapted to raise the
-affections, as well as excite suitable acts of faith in extolling the
-praises of God, it gives me no more disgust, though it be not in
-scripture-words, than praying or preaching do when the matter is
-agreeable thereunto. Yet, inasmuch as when we confess sin, acknowledge
-mercies received, or desire those blessings that are suited to our case,
-we always suppose, that the words, which he, who is the mouth of the
-congregation, uses, ought to be such, in which all can join with him
-(and in this, the reading one of David’s prayers, and putting up a
-prayer in the congregation, differ as to a very considerable
-circumstance in each of them) the same ought to be observed in hymns.
-But, if an _hymn_ be so composed, as that all that sing it are
-represented as signifying their having experienced those things which
-belong not to them, or as blessing God for what they never received:
-this, I conceive, would be an unwarrantable method of singing hymns of
-human composure, as much as if the expressions were used in public
-prayer. There are, indeed, many hymns which have in them a great vein of
-piety and devotion, but are not adapted to the experience of the whole
-assembly that sings them; therefore, though they may join in signing
-some hymns, I do not think they can well join in singing all;
-notwithstanding the subject-matter of them may be agreeable to the
-analogy of faith; and this principally depends upon what we have before
-laid down, concerning the difference between making use of a divine and
-human composure, in the former of which, the words are not always to be
-considered as our own, or expressive of the frame of our own spirits;
-whereas this is universally true, with respect to the latter.
-
-Thus concerning the ordinance of singing; which we cannot but think
-included among those whereby Christ communicates to his church, the
-benefits of his mediation. And this leads us to consider the other
-ordinances, which are particularly insisted on in the remaining part of
-this work. And that which next comes under our consideration, is the
-word read and preached.
-
-Footnote 21:
-
- I come now to say somewhat of the antiquity of Musical Instruments.
- But that these were not used in the Christian Church in the primitive
- times, is attested by all the ancient writers with one consent. Hence
- they figuratively explain all the places of the Old Testament, which
- speak of Musical Instruments; as I might easily shew by a thousand
- testimonies, out of _Clement_ of _Alexandria_, _Basil_, _Ambrose_,
- _Jerom_, _Augustine_, _Chrysostom_, and many others. I can hardly
- forbear laughing, when I meet with some of their allegorical
- interpretations. Thus an Instrument with ten strings, according to
- them, signifies the Ten Commandments, as the unknown author of the
- Commentary upon the _Psalms_, among _Jerom’s_ works, often explains
- it, _In_ Ps. xxxii. 2. xliii. 4, &c. But the pleasantest fancy is the
- explication of those words: _Praise him with stringed Instruments and
- Organs_. Ps. cl. 4. “That the guts being twisted by reason of
- abstinence from food, and so all carnal desires being subdued, men are
- found fit for the kingdom of God, to sing his praises.” But
- _Chrysostom_ talks more handsomly; “As the _Jews_ praised God with all
- kind of Instruments; so we are commanded to praise him with all the
- members of our bodies, our eyes, _&c._” _In_ Ps. cl. And _Clement_ of
- _Alexandria_ talks much to the same purpose. Pædag. _lib. ii. c. 4_.
-
- Besides, the ancients thought it unlawful to use those Instruments in
- God’s worship. Thus the unknown author of a Treatise, among _Justin
- Martyr’s_ works: “_Q._ If songs were invented by unbelievers with a
- design of deceiving, and were appointed for those under the Law,
- because of the childishness of their minds; why do they, who have
- received the perfect instructions of grace, which are most contrary to
- the foresaid customs, nevertheless sing in the Churches, just as they
- did, who were children under the Law? _Answ._ Plain Singing is not
- childish, but only the Singing with lifeless Organs, with Dancing and
- Cym-bals, _&c._ Whence the use of such Instruments, and other things
- fit for children, is laid aside, and Plain Singing only retained.”
- Resp. ad Orthodox. _Q._ 107.
-
- _Chrysostom_ seems to have been of the same mind, and to have thought,
- the use of such Instruments was rather allowed the _Jews_ in
- consideration of their weakness, than prescribed and commanded. _In_
- Ps. cl. But that he was mistaken, and that Musical Instruments were
- not only allowed the _Jews_, as he thought, and _Isidorus_ of
- _Pelusium_, (whose testimony I shall mention presently) but were
- prescribed by God, may appear from the Texts of Scripture I have
- before referred to.
-
- _Clement_, as I have mentioned already, thought these things fitter
- for beasts, than for men. And though _Basil_ highly commends, and
- stifly defends the way of Singing by turns; yet he thought musical
- Instruments unprofitable and hurtful. He calls them, _the inventions
- of_ Jubal _of the race of_ Cain. And a little after, he thus expresses
- himself: “_Laban_ was a lover of the harp, and of music, with which he
- would have sent away _Jacob_: _If thou hadst told me_, said he, _I
- would have sent thee away with mirth, and musical instruments, and an
- Harp_. But the Patriarch avoided that music, as being a thing that
- would hinder his regarding the works of the Lord, and his considering
- the works of his hands.” Comment. in Is. _c._ v. _p._ 956, 957. And a
- little before, he says thus “In such vain arts, as the playing upon
- the Harp, or Pipe, or dancing, as soon as the action ceases, the work
- itself vanishes. So that really, according to the Apostle’s
- expression, _The end of these things is destruction_.” _page_ 955.
-
- _Isidore_ of _Pelusium_, who lived since _Basil_, held, music was
- allowed the _Jews_ by God, in a way of condescension to their
- childishness: “If God” _says he_, “bore with bloody sacrifices,
- because of men’s childishness at that time; why should you wonder, he
- bore with the music of an harp and a psaltery?” Epist. lib. 2. _ep._
- 176.
-
- Nay, there are some ecclesiastical officers in the Church of
- _England_, who, for their very profession and employment, would have
- been kept from the communion of the Church, except they desisted from
- it. So we are informed by the _Apostolical Constitutions_: “If any
- come to the mystery of godliness, being a player upon a pipe, a lute,
- or an harp; let him leave it off, or be rejected.” _Lib._ viii. _c._
- 32.
-
- From what has been said, it appears, no musical instruments were used
- in the pure times of the Church. It became Antichristian, before they
- were received. _Bellarmine_ himself does not deny, they were late
- brought into the Church. “The second ceremony,” _says he_, “are the
- Musical Instruments, which began to be used in the service of the
- Church, in the time of Pope _Vitalian_, about the year 660, as
- _Platina_ relates out of the _Pontifical_; or, as _Aimonius_ rather
- thinks, _lib._ iv. _De gestis Francorum_, _c._ 114. after the year
- 820, in the time or _Lewis_ the Pious.” De Missa, _lib._ ii. _c._ 15.
- Item, De bon. Oper. _lib._ i. c. 17.
-
- Dr. _N._ would hardly have denied, the Church of _Rome_ was become
- Antichristian, when they were first brought in; even though we should
- allow _Bellarmine’s_ first date of them to be the true one. But a
- Reformed Divine may well be ashamed of that antiquity, that does not
- exceed the rise of Antichrist. But I am fully satisfied both
- _Bellarmine’s_ dates are false, and that instrumental music, in the
- worship of God, is much later than either of those accounts allow. For
- as to _Platina_, he seems to suspect the truth of what he wrote:
- “_Vitalian_,” _says he_, “being careful about the worship of God, made
- an ecclesiastical rule, and ordered the singing, with the addition (as
- some think) of organs.” In Vital. Again, _Bellarmine’s Aimonius_ is
- not the true _Aimonius_. For (as Dr. _Cave_ says) _Aimonius of
- Fleury_, who wrote, _De gestis Francorum_, flourished about the year
- 1000; and his History, which begins at the destruction of _Troy_, is
- brought down as far as the coronation of King _Pipin_, or to the year
- 752. For what comes after that, and makes up the fifth book, and the
- latter part of the fourth, is the continuation of another hand. Hist.
- Liter. _p._ 597.
-
- Farther, that these instruments were not used in God’s worship, in
- _Thomas Aquinas’s_ time, that is, about the year 1250, he himself is
- witness. “In the old Law,” _says he_, “God was praised both with
- musical instruments and human voices, and according to that _Psalm_
- xxxiii. _Praise the Lord with harp, sing unto him with the psaltery,
- and an instrument of ten strings._ But the Church does not use musical
- instruments to praise God, lest she should seem to judaize. Therefore,
- by parity of reason, she should not use singing.” Secunda secundæ
- Questio 91, _art._ 4. & _conclus._ 4. The like objection is made by
- our author. But _Thomas_ answers: “As to this objection, we must say,
- as the philosopher, _Lib._ viii. _Polit._ that Pipes are not to be
- used for teaching, nor any artificial instruments, as the harp, or the
- like: but whatever will make the hearers good men. For these musical
- instruments rather delight the mind, than form it to any good
- disposition. But under the Old Testament such instruments were used,
- partly because the people were harder and more carnal; upon which
- account they were to be stirred up by these instruments, as likewise
- by earthly promises; and partly because these bodily instruments were
- typical of something.” Upon which place Cardinal _Cajetan_ gives us
- this Comment: “’Tis to be observed, the Church did not use organs in
- _Thomas’s_ time. Whence, even to this day, the Church of _Rome_ does
- not use them in the Pope’s presence. And truly it will appear, that
- musical instruments are not to be suffered in the ecclesiastical
- offices we meet together to perform, for the sake of receiving
- internal instruction from God; and so much the rather are they to be
- excluded, because God’s internal discipline exceeds all human
- disciplines, which rejected these kind of instruments.” _Cit._ Hoffm.
- Lex. voce _Musica_.
-
- If any one objects the practice of some foreign churches, I answer
- with Mr. _Hickman_: “They are laid aside by most of the reformed
- churches; nor would they be retained among the _Lutherans_, unless
- they had forsaken their own _Luther_; who, by the confession of
- Eckard, reckoned _organs among the ensigns of Baal_. That they still
- continue in some of the _Dutch_ churches, is against the minds of the
- Pastors. For in the National Synod at _Middleburg_, in the year 1581,
- and in the Synod of _Holland_ and _Zealand_, in the year 1594, it was
- resolved, _That they would endeavour to obtain of the magistrate the
- laying aside of organs, and the singing with them in the churches,
- even out of the time of worship, either before or after sermons_: so
- far are those Synods from bearing with them in the worship itself.”
- _Apol. p._ 139.
-
- The Church of _England_ herself had formerly no very good opinion of
- these musical instruments; as may appear by her Homilies: “Lastly,
- God’s vengeance hath been, and is daily provoked, because much wicked
- people pass nothing to resort unto the church; either for that they
- are so sore blinded, that they understand nothing of God or godliness,
- and care not with devilish malice to offend their neighbours; or else
- for that they see the church altogether scoured of such gay gazing
- sights, as their gross phantasie was greatly delighted with; because
- they see the false religion abandoned, and the true restored, which
- seemeth an unsavory thing to their unsavory taste, as may appear by
- this that a woman said to her neighbour: Alas! gossip, what shall we
- now do at church, since all the Saints are taken away; since all the
- goodly sights we were wont to have are gone; since we cannot hear the
- like piping, singing, Chaunting, and playing upon the organs that we
- could before? But, dearly beloved, we ought greatly to rejoice and
- give God thanks, that our churches are delivered out of all those
- things, which displeased God so sore, and filthily defiled his holy
- house, and his place of prayer.” Hom. of the place and time of prayer,
- _part._ 2. p. 131.
-
- A great number also of the Clergy in the first convocation of Queen
- _Elizabeth_ in 1562, earnestly laboured to have organs, and that
- pompous theatrical way of singing laid aside, and missed the carrying
- it but by one vote, as I observe elsewhere. And in this Archbishop
- _Parker_ concurred with them, or at least did not oppose them.
-
- I will add one or two testimonies of Papists against this cathedral
- way of worship. The first shall be _Polydorus Virgilius_.
-
- Having taken notice of _Austine’s_ dislike of that way of singing in
- his time, he thus proceeds: “But in our time, it seems much less
- useful to the commonwealth, now our singers make such a noise in our
- churches, that nothing can be heard, beside the sound of the voice;
- and they who come there (that is all that are in the city) are
- satisfied with the concert of music, which their ears itch for, and
- never mind the sense of the words. So that we are come to that pass,
- that in the opinion of the common people, the whole affair of
- religious worship is lodged in these singers; although, generally
- speaking, there is no sort of men more loose or wicked: and yet a good
- part of the people run to church, as to a theatre, to hear them bawl:
- they hire and encourage them; and look upon them alone as ornaments to
- the house of God. Wherefore, without doubt, it would be for the
- interest of religion, either to cast these jackdaws out of the
- churches; or else to teach them when they sing, they should do it
- rather in the manner of reading, than bawling; as _Austine_ says
- _Athanasius_ ordered, _&c._” De Invent. Rer. _lib._ vi. _c._ 2. _p._
- 379.
-
- Next hear the judgment of _Erasmus_: “Let a man be more covetous than
- _Crassus_, more foul-mouthed than _Zoilus_, he shall be reckoned a
- pious man, if he sings those prayers well, though he understands
- nothing of them. But what, I beseech you, must they think of Christ,
- who can believe he is delighted with such a noise of men’s voices? Not
- content with this, we have brought into our churches a certain operose
- and theatrical music; such a confused disorderly chattering of some
- words, as I hardly think was ever heard in any of the _Grecian_ or
- _Roman_ theatres. The church rings with the noise of trumpets, pipes
- and dulcimers; and human voices strive to bear their part with
- them.—Men run to church as to a theatre, to have their ears tickled.
- And for this end organ-makers are hired with great salaries, and a
- company of boys, who waste all their time in learning these whining
- tones. Pray now compute how many poor people in great extremity might
- be maintained by the salaries of those singers.” In 1 Cor. xiv. 19.
-
- Lastly, _Lindanus_ says: “Who will compare the Music of this present
- age, with that which was formerly used? Whatever is sung now,
- signifies little for informing the people; which ’tis certain the
- ancients always designed.” Panopl. _lib._ iv. _c._ 73.
-
- PIERCE’S VINDICATION.
-
-Footnote 22:
-
- The first hymns of Gospel churches, were neither rythm, nor metre; and
- there was no version of David’s psalms, that could be sung before
- Calvin’s time.
-
-Footnote 23:
-
- Ὑμνήσαντε.
-
-Footnote 24:
-
- There is a difference between praising God, and instructing men.
-
-Footnote 25:
-
- The first christians composed and set to music their hymns.
-
-Footnote 26:
-
- Grotius thought the first Gospel hymns were extemporary. Basnage from
- Tertullian says; “neither the prayers they made to God, nor the hymns
- which they sung to his honour were reduced to rule; every one drew
- them from the Holy Scriptures, or from his own treasure, according to
- his genius.” A council of 70 bishops, A. D. 272. charged among other
- things against Paulus bishop of Antioch, that he abolished the Psalms,
- which were sung _in gloriam Christi_.—When the Ariam sang the doxology
- _Glory be to the Father_, the orthodox added, _and to the Son and
- Spirit_. Vide Dr. Latta, and Mr. Tod, on Psalmody.
-
-Footnote 27:
-
- _See Mr. Richard Allein’s essay on singing, chap. iv. who seems, in my
- opinion, in the whole of his short performance, to argue with a
- considerable degree of candor and judgment._
-
-Footnote 28:
-
- _See Sidenham’s gospel ordinance concerning singing, &c. and Hitchen’s
- scripture proof for singing, &c._
-
-Footnote 29:
-
- _It cannot be denied that the Psalms of David are called indifferently
- by these three names, psalms, hymns, and songs שיר, מזמר, תהלה,
- ψαλμὸς, ὑμνὴ, ὀδη, and sometimes the same psalm is called a song or
- psalm, as in the title of Psalm. lxv. or a song of a psalm [as the
- LXX. render it, ὀδη ψαλμοῦ.] And in Psalm cv. 2. when it is said, Sing
- unto him, sing psalms unto him; שירו לו זמרו לו the former word
- signifies to sing a spiritual song; the latter to sing a psalm; or, as
- the Septuagint render the same word, in 1 Chron. xvi. 9. an hymn
- [Ἀσατε αυτω και υμνησατε.] See Sidenham’s gospel-ordinance, &c. chap.
- ii. and Ainsworth on the title of Psalm liii. whom he therein refers
- to._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLX.
-
-
- QUEST. CLV. _How is the word made effectual to salvation?_
-
- ANSW. The Spirit of God maketh the reading, but especially the
- preaching of the word, an effectual means of enlightening,
- convincing, and humbling sinners, of driving them out of themselves,
- and drawing them unto Christ, of conforming them to his image, and
- subduing them to his will, of strengthening them against temptations
- and corruptions, of building them up in grace, and establishing
- their heart in holiness and comfort through faith unto salvation.
-
-Having had an account, in the foregoing answer, of the ordinances by
-which Christ communicates the benefits of redemption to his church, and
-what they are; as also, that singing the praises of God is one of those
-ordinances. We are now to consider another ordinance that is made
-effectual to salvation, _viz._ the word read, or preached. We have,
-under some foregoing answers, had occasion to speak of the word of God
-as contained in the scriptures of the Old and New Testament, and
-considered it as the only rule of faith and obedience, and as having all
-the properties that are necessary thereunto, so that we may depend upon
-it as a perfect and infallible revelation of all things necessary to be
-believed and done, in order to our enjoying God here, and attaining
-eternal life hereafter[30]. And now we are to consider the word as made
-the subject of our study and enquiry; without which it would be of no
-use to us. Accordingly we may observe in this answer,
-
-I. Something supposed; namely, that the word of God is to be read by us,
-and explained by those who are qualified and called hereunto, by whom it
-is to be preached. We are not, indeed, to conclude, that the
-explications of fallible men, how much soever they are fitted to preach
-the gospel, are of equal authority with the sacred oracles, as
-transmitted to us by those who received them, by infallible inspiration
-from the Spirit of God; and therefore, the text is much more to be
-depended on than the comment upon it; the truth whereof is to be tried
-thereby, Isa. viii. 20. 1 Thess. v. 21. Acts xvii. 11. Nevertheless,
-this is to be reckoned a great blessing, which God is pleased to bestow
-upon his church, in order to our understanding and making a right use of
-the written word. Accordingly, preaching, as well as the reading of the
-word, is an ordinance which the Spirit of God makes subservient to the
-salvation of them that believe; and in order thereunto, it is farther
-supposed, that the word is to be read by us, and we are to attend to the
-preaching thereof; to neglect either of which, is to despise our own
-souls, and deprive ourselves of the advantage of God’s instituted means
-of grace. Therefore, we are not to content ourselves, barely, with the
-reading of the word of God, in our closets or families; but we must
-embrace all opportunities, in which we may hear it preached in a public
-manner, one being no less an ordinance of God than the other.
-
-_Obj._ It is objected, by some, that they know as much as ministers can
-teach them; at least, they know enough, if they could but practise it.
-
-_Answ._ This objection, sometimes, savours of pride and self-conceit, in
-those who suppose themselves to understand more, of the doctrines of the
-gospel, than they really do; and it can hardly be said, concerning the
-greatest number of professors, that they either know as much as they
-ought, or that it is not possible for them to make advances in
-knowledge, by a diligent attendance on an able and faithful ministry.
-However, that we may give the utmost scope to the objection, we will
-allow, that some Christians know more than many ministers, who are less
-skilful than others in the word of truth. Nevertheless, it must be
-observed that there are other ends of hearing the word, besides barely
-the gaining of knowledge, viz. the bringing the doctrines of the gospel
-to our remembrance, John xvi. 26. and their being impressed on our
-affections; and for this reason the wisest and best of men have not
-thought it below them, to attend upon the ministry of those who knew
-less than themselves. Our Saviour was an hearer of the word before he
-entered on his public ministry, Luke ii. 46. and though it might, I
-think, truly be said of him, that though he was but twelve years old, he
-knew more than the doctors, in the midst of whom he sat, in the temple,
-yet he _heard and asked them questions_. And David, though he professes
-himself to have _more understanding than all his teachers_, Psal. cxix.
-99. yet he was glad to embrace all opportunities, to go up into the
-house of the Lord; this being God’s appointed means for a believer’s
-making advances in grace.
-
-II. There are several things particularly mentioned in this answer, in
-which the Spirit of God makes the word, read or preached, effectual to
-salvation.
-
-1. Hereby the mind is enlightened and furnished with the knowledge of
-divine truths, which is a very great privilege, for as faith is
-inseparably connected with salvation; the knowledge of the doctrines of
-the gospel is necessary to faith; and this is said to _come by hearing_,
-Rom. x. 17. Acts viii. 30, 31. However, we must not content ourselves
-with a bare assent to what is revealed in the word of God; but must duly
-weigh the tendency thereof, to our sanctification and consolation, and
-admire the beauty, excellency, and glory that there is in the great
-doctrines of the gospel, as the divine perfections shine forth therein,
-to the utmost. We must also duly consider the importance of those
-doctrines that are contained therein, and how they are to be improved by
-us, to our spiritual advantage; and when we find our hearts filled with
-love to Jesus Christ, in proportion to those greater measures of light,
-that he is pleased to impart to us, so that we grow in grace as well as
-in the knowledge of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, 2 Pet. iii. 18.
-then the word may be said to be made effectual to our salvation, as our
-minds are very much enlightened and improved in the knowledge of those
-things that lead thereunto.
-
-2. The word is made effectual to bring us under conviction, by which
-means we see ourselves sinful and miserable creatures; particularly we
-are hereby led to see those depths of wickedness that are in our hearts,
-by nature, which otherwise could not be sufficiently discerned by us,
-much less improved to our spiritual advantage, Jer. xvii. 9. Rom. vii.
-9. Would we take a view of the manifold sins committed in our lives,
-with all their respective aggravations, so as to lay to heart the guilt
-that we have contracted hereby, or, if we would be effected with the
-consideration of the misery that will ensue hereupon; as that, hereby,
-we not only deserve the wrath and curse of God, but without an interest
-in forgiving grace, are bound to conclude ourselves liable to it: These
-things we are led into by the word of God. And if we would know whether
-these convictions of sin are such as have a more immediate reference to
-salvation; let us enquire, whether they are attended with that grief and
-sorrow of heart for the intrinsic evil that there is in sin, as well as
-the sad consequences thereof? Psal. xxxviii. 18. compared with ver. 4.
-or, whether, when we have taken this view thereof, we are farther led to
-enquire after the remedy, and seek forgiveness through the blood of
-Christ, and strength against those corruptions that we have ground to
-charge ourselves with, which have so much prevailed over us? Acts xvi.
-30. Psal. xix. 13. xxv. 11. Jer. viii. 22.
-
-3. The word is made effectual to salvation, when what is contained
-therein tends to humble and lay us low at the foot of God; when we
-acknowledge, that all his judgments are right, or whatever punishments
-have been inflicted, pursuant to the threatenings which he has
-denounced, have been less than our iniquities deserve, Ezra ix. 13. And
-when we receive reproofs for sins committed, with a particular
-application thereof to ourselves, and are sensible of the guilt we have
-contracted thereby.
-
-But that we may make a right use of the word, to answer this great end,
-let us consider, what humbling considerations are contained therein,
-that may have a tendency to answer this end.
-
-(1.) The word of God represents to us that infinite distance that there
-is between him and us; so that the best of creatures are, in his sight,
-as nothing, Isa. xl. 17. _less than nothing, and vanity_. Herein we
-behold God as infinitely perfect, and men as very imperfect, and unlike
-to him; and in particular, we behold him as a God of infinite holiness,
-spotless purity, and ourselves as impure, polluted creatures; which is a
-very humbling consideration, Prov. xxx. 2. Isa. lxiv. 6.
-
-(2.) The word of God discovers to us the deceitfulness and desperate
-wickedness that there is in our hearts, whereby we are naturally
-inclined to rebel against him; and should, had it not been for his
-preventing and renewing grace, have run with the vilest of men, in all
-excess of riot. It also leads us into the knowledge of the various kinds
-of sin, which we have ground to charge ourselves with, in the course of
-our lives; the frequent omission of those duties which are required of
-us; our great neglect of relative duties, in the station in which God
-has fixed us; and the injury we have done to others hereby, whom we have
-caused to stumble, or fall by our example, or, at least, by our
-unconcernedness about their spiritual welfare. It also discovers to us
-the various aggravations of sins committed, as they are against light,
-love, mercies, and manifold engagements, which we are laid under; and
-the great contempt which we have cast on the blessed Jesus, in
-disregarding, or not improving, the benefits of his mediation. All these
-things duly considered, have a tendency to humble us, and we are led
-into the discovery hereof by the word of God.
-
-4. The word of God is made effectual to salvation, as it has a tendency
-to drive sinners out of themselves, and to draw them to Jesus Christ. On
-the one hand, it shews them the utter impossibility of their saving
-themselves, by doing any thing that may bring them into a justified
-state, and so render them accepted in the sight of God; and, on the
-other hand, it draws or leads them to Christ, whom they are enabled to
-behold by faith, as discovered in the gospel, to be a merciful and
-all-sufficient Saviour. The former of these is not only antecedent, but
-necessary to the latter: For, so long as we fancy that we have a
-sufficiency in ourselves, to recommend us to God, and procure for us a
-right and title to eternal life, we shall never think of committing our
-souls into Christ’s hand, in order to our obtaining salvation from him
-in his own way. Thus the prophet brings in a self-conceited people as
-saying, _We are lords, we will come no more to thee_, Jer. ii. 31. No
-one will seek help or safety from Christ, who is not sensible of his own
-weakness, and being in the utmost danger without him. The first thing
-then that the Spirit of God does in the souls of men, when he makes the
-word effectual to salvation, is, his leading them into a humble sense of
-their utter inability to do what is spiritually good, or acceptable to
-God, or to make atonement for the sins that they have committed against
-him; that so they might be brought into a justified state. It is,
-indeed, an hard matter to convince the sinner of this; for he is very
-prone to be full of himself, sometimes to glory with the Pharisee, Luke
-xviii. 11. in some religious duties he performs; at other times in his
-abstaining from those gross enormities that others are chargeable with:
-Or, if he will own himself to have exceeded many in sin; yet he is ready
-to think, that, by some expedient or other, he shall be able to make
-atonement for it. This sets him at a great distance from Christ; as it
-is said, _They that be whole need not a physician, but they that are
-sick_, Matt. ix. 12. So these do not see their need of a Saviour, till
-they are convinced that they have nothing in themselves that can afford
-any relief to them, so as to deliver them from the guilt of sin, and the
-misery that will ensue thereupon. On this account our Saviour observes,
-that _publicans and harlots go into the kingdom of God_, chap. xxi. 31.
-_i. e._ are more easily made sensible of their need of Christ, being
-convinced of sin, when the _chief priests and elders_, who thought they
-had a righteousness of their own to justify them, and therefore refused
-to comply with the method of the gospel, in having recourse to Christ
-alone for this privilege.
-
-Now the word of God is made use of by the Spirit, to drive the sinner
-out of these strong holds, and to shew him that he cannot, by any means
-recover himself out of that state of sin and misery, into which he is
-plunged. It is a very hard thing for a person to be convinced of the
-truth of what our Saviour says, viz. _That which is highly esteemed
-amongst men, is an abomination in the sight of God_, Luke xvi. 15. when
-it is put in the room of Christ and his righteousness. This is one of
-the great ends to which the word is made subservient when rendered
-effectual to salvation.
-
-Moreover, the word of God draws the soul to Christ, so that it is
-persuaded and induced, from gospel-motives, to come to him; and, at the
-same time, enabled so to do by the almighty power of God, without which
-he cannot come to him, John vi. 44. the former draws objectively, the
-latter subjectively and internally.
-
-As to what the gospel does in order hereunto, let it be considered, that
-it sets before us the excellency and glory of Christ, as our great
-Mediator; represents him as a divine person, and, consequently, the
-object of faith, and as such, _able to save, to the uttermost, them that
-come unto God by him_, Heb. vi. 25. It considers him as having purchased
-salvation for his people; so that they may obtain forgiveness through
-his blood. It also discovers him as not only able, but willing to save
-all that come to him by faith; so that he will in no wise cast them out,
-John vi. 37. It also represents him as having a right to us; we are his
-by purchase; and therefore it is our indispensible duty to give up
-ourselves unto him. It also makes known to us the greatness of his love,
-as the highest inducement hereunto; the freeness, riches and
-extensiveness of his grace, as ready to embrace the chief of sinners,
-and pass by all the injuries that they have done against him, and as
-giving them the utmost assurance, that, having loved them in the world,
-he will love them to the end. Thus Christ is set forth in the gospel;
-and when it is made effectual to salvation, the soul is induced, or, as
-it were, constrained hereby, to love him, and yield the obedience of
-faith unto him in all things.
-
-5. The word is made of use by the Spirit, as a means to conform the soul
-to the image of God, and subdue it to his will. The image of God in man,
-is defaced by sin; so that he is not only rendered unlike, but averse to
-him, stripped of all his beauty, and become abominable and filthy in his
-sight; and, as long as he remains so, is unmeet for communion with, or
-obtaining salvation from him. Now, when the Spirit of God communicates
-special grace to sinners, he instamps this image afresh upon the soul,
-which he renews in knowledge, righteousness, and holiness, sanctifies
-all the powers and faculties thereof, and subdues the will, so that it
-yields a cheerful obedience to the will of God, and delights in his law
-after the inward man; and its language is, _Speak, Lord, for thy servant
-heareth_. This change the Spirit of God works in the heart, by his
-internal efficacious influence; as has been formerly observed, when we
-considered the work of conversion and sanctification, as brought about
-by him[31]. And this effect is also ascribed to the word as a moral
-instrument thereof; so that it is not attained without it, it being,
-indeed, the principal end of the preaching the gospel; as the apostle
-says, _The weapons of our warfare are not carnal, but mighty through
-God, to the pulling down of strong holds, casting down imaginations, and
-every high thing that exalteth itself against the knowledge of God_, 2
-Cor. x. 4, 5. and bringing into captivity every thought to the obedience
-of Christ.
-
-6. The word is farther said to be made effectual to salvation, as hereby
-we are strengthened against temptation, and corruption. By the former,
-those objects are presented to us that have a tendency to alienate our
-affections from God; by the latter, these temptations are complied with,
-and the affections entangled in the snare that is laid for them, Satan,
-or the world, present the bait, and corrupt nature is easily allured and
-taken by it. The tempter uses many wiles and stratagems to ensnare us,
-and our own hearts are deceitful above all things, and without much
-difficulty, turned aside thereby; and so led captive by Satan at his
-will. But when the Spirit of God makes the word effectual to salvation,
-he takes occasion hereby to detect the fallacy; lays open the design of
-our spiritual enemies, and the pernicious tendency thereof; and
-internally fortifies the soul against them, whereby it is _kept from the
-paths of the destroyer_, Psal. xvii. 4. and this he does by presenting
-other and better objects to engage our affections, and leading us into
-the knowledge of those glorious truths, that may prevent a sinful
-compliance with the solicitations of the devil. And, according to the
-nature of the temptation that may occur, we are directed to the precepts
-or promises contained in the word of God; which, being duly improved by
-us, have a tendency to keep the heart steady, and fixed in the ways of
-God.
-
-7. The word of God is made effectual by the Spirit, as he thereby builds
-the soul up in grace, and establishes it in holiness and comfort,
-through faith unto salvation. The work of grace is not immediately
-brought to perfection, but is, in a progressive way, making advances
-towards it; and therefore we are first made holy by the renovation of
-our hearts and lives, and made partakers of those spiritual consolations
-that accompany or flow from the work of sanctification; and then we are
-built up in holiness and comfort, whereby we go from strength to
-strength, and are more and more established in the ways of God; and this
-is done by the preaching of the word, whereby we are said to _grow in
-grace, and the knowledge of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ_, 2 Pet.
-iii. 18. so that every step we take in our way to heaven, from the time
-that our faces are first turned towards it, we are enabled hereby to go
-on safely and comfortably, till the work of grace is perfected in glory.
-
-Footnote 30:
-
- _See Vol. I. 48. 69. Quest. III. and IV._
-
-Footnote 31:
-
- _See Quest. LXVII, LXVIII. Vol. III. p. 16._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLVI., CLVII.
-
-
- QUEST. CLVI. _Is the word of God to be read by all?_
-
- ANSW. Although all are not to be permitted to read the word publicly
- to the congregation, yet all sorts of people are bound to read it
- apart by themselves, and with their families, to which end the holy
- scriptures are to be translated out of the original, into vulgar
- languages.
-
- QUEST. CLVII. _How is the word of God to be read?_
-
- ANSW. The holy scriptures are to be read, with an high and reverend
- esteem of them; with a firm persuasion that they are the very word
- of God, and that he only can enable us to understand them, with
- desire to know, believe, and obey the will of God revealed in them,
- with diligence and attention to the matter and scope of them; with
- meditation, application, self-denial, and prayer.
-
-The word’s being made effectual to salvation, which was the subject last
-insisted on, not only supposes that we read it as translated into vulgar
-languages, but that we understand what we read, in order to our applying
-it to our particular case, and improving it for our spiritual advantage.
-These things are next to be considered as contained in the answers we
-are now to explain. Accordingly,
-
-I. We have an account, in the former of them, of the obligation that all
-persons are under to read, or at least, attend to the reading of the
-word of God; more particularly,
-
-1. It is to be read publicly in the congregation, by those who are
-appointed for that purpose. This is evident, inasmuch as the church, and
-all the public worship that is performed therein, is founded on the
-doctrines contained in scripture; and every one who would be made wise
-to salvation, ought to be well acquainted with it; and the reading it
-publicly, as a part of that worship that is performed in the church, is
-not only a testimony of the high esteem that we have for it; but it will
-be of great use to those, who, through a sinful neglect to read it in
-families, and their not being disposed to do this in their private
-retirement; or, through the stupidity of their hearts, and the many
-incumbrances of worldly business, will not allow themselves time for
-this necessary duty, by reason whereof they remain strangers to those
-great and important truths contained therein.
-
-That this is a duty appears from the charge that the apostle gives, that
-the epistle which he wrote to the church at Thessalonica, should _be
-read unto all the holy brethren_, 1 Thess. v. 27. And he gives the like
-charge to the church at Colosse, Col. iv. 16. And to this we may add,
-that the scripture is not only to be read, but explained; which is the
-principal design of the preaching thereof. This is no new practice; for
-the Old Testament was not only read, but explained in the synagogues
-_every Sabbath-day_; which is called, by a metonymy, a _reading Moses_,
-Acts xv. 21. _viz._ explaining the law that was given by him. Thus Ezra
-_stood upon a pulpit of wood, opened the book in the sight of all the
-people_; and he, with some other of his brethren that assisted him
-herein, _read in the book in the law of God distinctly, and gave the
-sense, and caused them to understand the reading_, that is, the meaning
-thereof, Neh. viii. 4,-8. In like manner our Saviour _went into the
-synagogue the Sabbath-day_, and _stood up_ and _read_, that part of the
-holy scriptures, taken from the prophecy of Isaiah; which, when he had
-done, he applied it to himself, and shewed them how _it was fulfilled in
-their ears_, Luke iv. 16,-24. So that it is supposed that the word is to
-be publicly read.
-
-The only thing in this answer, that needs explaining is, what is meant
-by those words, all are not to be permitted to read the word publicly to
-the congregation. We are not to suppose that there is an order of men
-that Christ has appointed to be readers in the church, distinct from
-ministers; therefore the meaning of this expression may be, that all are
-not to read the word of God together, in a public assembly, with a loud
-voice; for that would tend rather to confusion than edification. Nor
-ought any to be appointed to do it, but such as are grave, pious, and
-able to read it distinctly, for the edification of others. And who is so
-fit for this work, as the minister whose office is not only to read, but
-explain it in the ordinary course of his ministry?
-
-2. The word of God is to be read in our families; which is absolutely
-necessary for the propagating religion therein. This, indeed, is
-shamefully neglected; which is one great reason of the ignorance and
-decay of piety in the rising generation; and the neglect hereof is
-contrary to God’s command, Deut. vi. 6, 7. as well as the example of
-those who are highly commended for this practice; as Abraham was for
-_commanding his children, and his household after him, that they should
-keep the way of the Lord_, Gen. xviii. 19. Psal. lxxviii. 3, 4.
-
-3. The word of God ought to be read by every one, in private; and that
-not only occasionally, but frequently as one of the great businesses of
-life. Thus God says to Joshua, Josh. i. 8. _This book of the law shall
-not depart out of thy mouth; but thou shalt meditate therein day and
-night_, Psal. i. 2. And our Saviour commands the Jews to _search the
-scriptures_, John v. 39. and, in some of his discourses with them,
-though he was sensible that they were a degenerate people; yet he takes
-it for granted, that they had not altogether laid aside this duty, Matt.
-xii. 5. chap. xxi. 42. Luke vi. 3. This practice, especially where the
-word of God has not only been read, but the meaning thereof sought
-after, and attended to with great diligence, is commended as a peculiar
-excellency in Christians, who are, in this respect, styled more _noble_
-than others, who are defective in this duty, Acts xvii. 11.
-
-Now it appears, that it is the duty of every one to read the word of
-God, inasmuch as it is given us with this design. If God is pleased, as
-it were, to send us an epistle from heaven, it is a very great instance
-of contempt cast on it, as well as on the divine condescension expressed
-therein, for us to neglect to read it. Does he impart his mind to us
-herein, and is it not our indispensable duty, to pay the utmost regard
-thereto? Rev. i. 11. compared with chap. ii. 29. Moreover, our own
-advantage should be a farther inducement to us, to read the word of God;
-since his design in giving it, was, that we might believe, and that
-believing, we may attain life, through the name of Christ, John xx. 31.
-Rom. x. 17. chap. xv. 4. It is sometimes compared to a _sword_, for our
-defence, against our spiritual enemies, Eph. vi. 17. and is therefore
-designed for use; otherwise it is no advantage for us. It is elsewhere
-compared to a _lamp to our feet_, Psal. cxix. 105. which is not designed
-for an ornament, but to guide us in the right way; therefore we must
-attend to its direction. It is also compared to _food_, whereby we are
-said to be _nourished up in the words of faith and good doctrine_, and
-_as new-born babes_ we are exhorted, to _desire the sincere milk of the
-word, that we may grow thereby_, 1 Pet. ii. 2. but this end cannot be
-attained, unless it be read and applied by us to our own necessities.
-
-This leads us to take notice of the opposition that the Papists make
-hereunto, inasmuch as they deny the common people the liberty of reading
-the scriptures in their own language, without leave given them from the
-bishop, or some other spiritual guides, who are authorized to allow or
-deny this privilege, as they think fit; but without this, the reading of
-it is strictly prohibited. And, as an instance of their opposition to
-it, they have sometimes burnt whole impressions of the Bible, in the
-open market-place; as well as expressed their contempt hereof, by
-burning particular copies of scripture, or dragging them through the
-streets, throwing them in the kennels, and stamping them under feet, or
-tearing them in pieces, as though it was the vilest book in the world;
-and some have been burned for reading it. And, that it may be brought
-into the utmost contempt, they have cast the most injurious reproaches
-upon it, by calling it a bending rule, a nose of wax, a dumb judge. And
-some have blasphemed it, by saying, that it has no more authority than
-Esop’s fables; and have compared the psalms of David to profane ballads.
-And, they pretend, by all this, to consult the good of the people, that
-they may not be misled thereby.
-
-That which they generally allege in vindication of this practice, is,
-that they do not so much oppose the reading the scripture, as the
-reading those translations of it, which have been made by Protestants;
-and that it is our Bible, not that which they allow to be the word of
-God, that they treat with such injurious contempt.
-
-But to this it may be replied; that the objections they bring against
-scripture, are not taken so much from such passages thereof, which they
-pretend to be falsely translated; but their design is, plainly, to keep
-the people in ignorance, that they may not, as the consequence of their
-reading it, imbibe those doctrines, that will, as they pretend, turn
-them aside from the faith of the church; and therefore, they usually
-maintain, that the common people ought to be kept in ignorance, as an
-expedient to excite devotion; and that, by this means, they will be the
-more humble, and pay a greater deference to those unwritten traditions
-that are propagated by them, and pretended to be of equal authority with
-scripture, which the common people must take up with instead of it. And,
-indeed, the consequence hereof, is agreeable to their desire; for they
-appear to be grossly ignorant, and think themselves bound to believe
-whatever their leaders pretend to be true, without exercising a judgment
-of discretion, or endeavouring to know the mind of God relating
-thereunto.
-
-That which they generally allege in opposing the common people’s reading
-the Bible, is, that it contains _some things_ in it that are _hard to be
-understood_; as the apostle Peter expresses it, in 2 Pet. iii. 16.
-_which they that are unlearned and unstable wrest, as they do also the
-other scriptures, unto their destruction_.
-
-But to this it may be replied; that it must be allowed that some things
-contained in scripture, are hard to be understood; inasmuch as the
-gospel contains some mysteries which finite wisdom cannot comprehend;
-and the great doctrines of the gospel, are sometimes unintelligible by
-us, by reason of the ignorance and alienation of our minds from the life
-of God, as well as from the imperfections of this present state, in
-which we know but in part. Notwithstanding, they, who with diligence and
-humility, desire, and earnestly seek after the knowledge of those truths
-that are more immediately subservient to their salvation, shall find
-that their labour is not lost; but in following on to know the Lord,
-shall know as much of him as is necessary to their glorifying and
-enjoying him, as the prophet says, _Then shall ye know if ye follow on
-to know the Lord_, Hos. vi. 3. It is to be owned, that there are some
-depths in scripture, that cannot be fathomed by a finite understanding;
-which should tend to raise our admiration, and put us upon adoring the
-unsearchable wisdom of God, as well as an humble confession that _we are
-but of yesterday, and know_, comparatively, _nothing_, Job viii. 9. Yet
-there are many doctrines that we may attain to a clear knowledge of, and
-improve, to the glory of God, in the conduct of our lives. Thus the
-prophet speaks of an _high way_, that is called _the way of holiness_;
-concerning which it is said, that _way-faring men_, who walk therein,
-_though fools_, that is, such as have the meanest capacity, as to other
-things, _shall not err therein_, Isa. xxxv. 8. that is, they who humbly
-desire the teaching of the Spirit, whereby they may be made acquainted
-with the mind and will of God, shall not be led out of the way by any
-thing that he has revealed to his people in his word. It is very
-injurious to the sacred oracles to infer, that because some things are
-hard to be understood, therefore all that read them, must necessarily
-wrest them to their own destruction. And besides, the apostle does not
-say, that all do so, but only those who are _unlearned and unstable_;
-_unlearned_, that is, altogether unacquainted with the doctrines of the
-gospel, as not making them the matter of their study and enquiry; and
-_unstable_, that is, such as give way to scepticism, or they whose faith
-is not built on the right foundation, but are inclined to turn aside
-from the truth, with every wind of doctrine. This God’s people may hope
-to be kept from, while they study the holy scriptures, and earnestly
-desire to be made wise thereby unto salvation.
-
-As to what the Papists farther allege against the common people’s being
-permitted to read the scriptures, because, as they pretend, this will
-make them proud, and induce them to enquire into those things that do
-not belong to them, whereby they will soon think themselves wiser than
-their teachers; and that it has been the occasion of all the heresies
-that are in the world.
-
-To this it may be answered, that whatever ill consequences attend a
-person’s reading of scripture, these are not to be ascribed to the use,
-but the abuse of it. Will any one say, that we ought to abstain from
-eating and drinking, because some are guilty of excess therein, by
-gluttony and drunkenness? No more ought we to abstain from reading the
-scriptures, because some make a wrong use of them. But, inasmuch as it
-is supposed that hereby some, through pride, will think themselves wiser
-than their teachers; this, we will allow, they may do, without passing a
-wrong judgment on themselves; and it is injurious treatment of mankind,
-to keep the world in ignorance, that they may not detect the fallacies,
-or expose the errors of those who pretend to be their guides in matters
-of faith.
-
-As to what is farther alleged, that the reading of scripture has been
-the occasion of many heresies in the world, I am rather inclined to
-think, that this ought to be charged on the neglect thereof, or, at
-least, on their not studying them with diligence, and an humble
-dependence on God for his blessing to attend it.
-
-It may be observed, that whatever reasons are assigned for their denying
-the people the liberty of reading the scriptures, these seem to carry in
-them a pretence of great kindness to them, that they may not, hereby, be
-led out of the way, and do themselves hurt by this means; as it is a
-dangerous thing to put a knife, or a sword, into a child’s, or madman’s
-hand; by which they suppose the common people to be ignorant, and would
-keep them so. But, whatever reasons they assign, the true reason why
-they so much oppose the reading of scripture is this, because it detects
-and exposes the absurdity of many doctrines that are imbibed by them,
-which will not bear to be tried by it. If they can but persuade their
-votaries, that whatever is handed down by tradition, as a rule of faith,
-is to be received, without the least hesitation, though contrary to the
-mind of God in scripture, they are not like to meet with any opposition
-from them, let them advance doctrines never so absurd, or contrary to
-reason.
-
-If it be enquired, whether they universally prohibit the reading of
-scripture? It must be allowed, that the Vulgar Latin version thereof may
-be read by any one that understands it, without falling under their
-censure. But this they are sensible of, that the greatest part of the
-common people cannot understand it; and if they do, it is so corrupt a
-translation, that it seems plainly calculated to give countenance to the
-errors that they advance[32]. So that it appears from their whole
-management herein, that their design is to deprive mankind of the
-greatest blessings which God has granted to them; and to discourage
-persons from the performance of a duty, which is so absolutely necessary
-to promote the interest of God and religion in the world. Therefore we
-must conclude, that it is an invaluable privilege that we are not only
-permitted, but commanded to read the scriptures, as translated into that
-language that is generally understood by us.
-
-And this leads us to consider the inference that is deduced from hence,
-contained in the latter part of the answer which we are explaining,
-_viz._ that the scriptures are to be translated out of the original into
-vulgar languages. This is evident, inasmuch as reading signifies
-nothing, where the words are not understood; and every private Christian
-is not obliged to addict himself to the study of the languages in which
-the scriptures were written; and it is, indeed, a work of so much pains
-and difficulty, that few have opportunity, or inclination, to apply
-themselves, to any considerable purpose, to the study thereof.
-Therefore, the words of scripture must be rendered intelligible to all,
-and consequently, translated into a language they understand.
-
-This may be argued from the care of providence, that the scriptures
-should be delivered, at first, to the Jews, in their own language; as
-the greatest part of the Old Testament was written in Hebrew, and those
-few sections or chapters in Ezra and Daniel, that were written in the
-Chaldee language, were not inserted till they understood that
-language[33]. And, when the world generally understood the Greek tongue,
-so that there was no necessity for the common people to learn it in
-schools, and the Hebrew was not understood by those nations, for whom
-the gospel was designed; it pleased God to deliver the New Testament in
-the Greek language. So that it is beyond dispute that he intended, that
-the scriptures should not only be read, but understood by the common
-people. And when the gospel was sent to various nations of different
-languages, the Spirit of God, by an extraordinary and miraculous
-dispensation, furnished the apostles to speak to every one in their own
-language, by bestowing on them the gift of tongues; which would have
-been needless, if it were not necessary for persons to read or hear the
-holy scriptures with understanding.
-
-II. We are now to consider, how the word of God is to be read, that we
-may understand, and improve what is contained therein to our spiritual
-advantage; and in order thereunto, there are several directions given in
-the latter of the answers we are explaining.
-
-1. We must read the scriptures with an high and reverent esteem of them,
-arising from a firm persuasion, that they are the word of God. That they
-are so, has been proved by several arguments[34]; therefore we will
-suppose them that read them, to be persuaded of the truth thereof; and
-this will beget an high and reverent esteem of them. The perfections of
-God, and particularly his wisdom, sovereignty, and goodness, shine forth
-with equal glory in his word, as they do in any of his works; and
-therefore it has a preference to all human composures; in that whatever
-is revealed therein, is to be admired and depended on for its unerring
-wisdom and infallible verity; so that it is impossible for them, who
-understand and improve it, to be turned aside thereby, from the way of
-truth. We are also to consider the use that God makes of it, to
-propagate his kingdom and interest in the world. It is by this means
-that he convinces men of sin, and discovers to them the way of obtaining
-forgiveness of it, and victory over it, and thoroughly furnishes them
-unto every good work, 2 Tim. iii. 16. For this reason the wisest and
-best of men have expressed the highest esteem and value for it. The
-Psalmist mentions the love he had to it, as a person that was in a
-rapture; _O how love I thy law! it is my meditation all the day_, Psal.
-cxix. 97. And elsewhere he speaks of it as _more to be desired than
-gold, yea, than much fine gold; sweeter also than honey and the honey
-comb_, Psal. xix. 16. which argues the high veneration he had for it.
-This we all ought to have; otherwise we may sometimes be tempted to read
-it with prejudice, and thereby, through the corruption of our nature, be
-prone to cavil at it, as we sometimes do at those writings that are
-merely human, which savour of the weakness and imperfection of their
-authors, and consequently, it will be impossible for us to receive any
-saving advantage thereby.
-
-2. We must, in reading the word of God, be sensible that he alone can
-enable us to understand it. To read the scriptures and not understand
-them, will be of no advantage to us; therefore it is supposed, that we
-are endeavouring to have our minds rightly informed and furnished with
-the knowledge of divine truths: But by reason of the corruption,
-ignorance, and depravity of our natures, this cannot be attained without
-a peculiar blessing from God attending our endeavours; therefore we
-ought to glorify him, by dependence on him, for this privilege, (as
-being sensible that all spiritual wisdom is from him,) if we would see a
-beauty and glory in those things that are revealed therein, and be
-thoroughly established in the doctrines of the gospel, so as not to be
-in danger of being turned aside from them; or, especially, if we would
-improve them to our being made wise unto salvation, we must consider
-this as the gift of God. It is he alone who can enable us to understand
-his word aright; this is evident, inasmuch as it is necessary that there
-be an internal illumination, as well as an external revelation, which is
-the subject-matter of our studies and enquiries. Thus our Saviour not
-only repeated the words of those scriptures that concerned himself, to
-the two disciples going to Emmaus; but he _opened their understandings,
-that they might understand them_, Luke xxiv. 45. Without this, a person
-may have the brightest parts, and most penetrating judgment in other
-respects, and yet be unacquainted with the mind of God in his word, and
-inclined to embrace those doctrines that are contrary to it; and
-especially if God is not pleased to succeed our endeavours, we shall
-remain destitute of the experimental knowledge of divine truths, which
-is absolutely necessary to salvation.
-
-3. We must read the word of God with a desire to know, believe, and obey
-his will, contained therein. If we do not desire to know, or understand
-the meaning of scripture, it will remain no better than a sealed book to
-us; and, instead of receiving thereby, we shall be ready to entertain
-prejudices against it, till we lay it aside, with the utmost dislike;
-and, as the consequence thereof, we shall be utterly estranged from the
-life of God, through the ignorance and vanity of our minds. We must also
-read the word of God with a desire to have our faith established
-thereby, that our feet may be set upon a rock, and we may be delivered
-from all manner of doubts and hesitations, with respect to those
-important truths which are revealed therein; and we ought to desire, not
-only to believe, but yield a constant and cheerful obedience to every
-thing that God requires of us therein.
-
-4. Our reading the word of God ought to be accompanied with meditation,
-and the exercise of self-denial. Our thoughts should be wholly taken up
-with the subject-matter thereof, and that with the greatest intenseness,
-as those who are studiously, and with the greatest earnestness, pressing
-after the knowledge of those doctrines that are of the highest
-importance, that our profiting herein may appear to ourselves and
-others, 1 Tim. iv. 15.
-
-As to the exercise of self-denial, all those perverse reasonings which
-our carnal minds are prone to suggest against the subject-matter of
-divine revelation, are to be laid aside. If we are resolved to believe
-nothing but what we can comprehend, we ought to consider that the gospel
-contains unsearchable mysteries, that surpass finite wisdom; therefore
-we must be content to acknowledge, that we know but in part. There is a
-deference to be paid to the wisdom of God, that eminently appears in
-every thing which he has discovered to us in his word; so that we must
-adore the divine perfections that are displayed therein, whilst we
-retain an humble sense of the imperfection of our own knowledge. Our
-reason is not to be considered as useless; but we must desire that it
-may be sanctified, and inclined to receive whatever God is pleased to
-impart. We are also to exercise the grace of self-denial, with respect
-to the obstinacy of our wills; whereby they are naturally disinclined to
-acquiesce in, approve of, and yield obedience to the law of God, so that
-we may be entirely satisfied, that every thing that he commands in his
-word, is holy, just, and good.
-
-5. The word of God is to be read with fervent prayer; as the apostle
-says, _If any man lack wisdom, let him ask of God, that giveth to all
-men liberally, and upbraideth not, and it shall be given him_, James i.
-5. The advantage we expect hereby, is as was before observed, his gift;
-and therefore we are humbly to supplicate him for it. There are many
-things in his word that are hard to be understood; therefore we ought to
-say, whenever we take the scriptures into, our hands, as the Psalmist
-does, _Open thou mine eyes that I may behold wondrous things out of thy
-law_, Psal. cxix. 18. We may, in this case, humbly acknowledge the
-weakness of our capacities and the blindness of our minds, which renders
-it necessary for us to desire to be instructed by him, in the way of
-truth. We may also plead, that his design in giving us this word, was,
-that it may be a lamp to our feet, and a light to our paths; therefore
-we dread the thoughts of walking in darkness, when there is such a clear
-discovery of those things which are so glorious and necessary to be
-known. We may also plead, that our Lord Jesus is revealed to his people
-as the prophet of his church; and that whatever office he is invested
-with, he delights to execute it, as his glory is concerned therein;
-therefore we trust, and hope that he will lead us, by his Spirit into
-his truth. We may also plead the impossibility of our attaining the
-knowlege of divine things, without his assistance; and how much it would
-redound to his glory, as well as our own comfort and advantage, if he
-will be pleased to lead us into the saving knowlege of the truth, as it
-is in him: This we cannot but importunately desire, as being sensible of
-the sad consequences of our being destitute of it; inasmuch as we should
-remain in darkness, though favoured with the light of the gospel.
-
-6. The word of God is to be read with diligence and attention to the
-matter and scope thereof. We have hitherto been directed in this answer,
-to apply ourselves to the reading of scripture, with that frame of
-spirit which becometh Christians, who desire to know the mind and will
-of God therein, viz. that we ought to have our minds disengaged from
-those prejudices which would hinder our receiving any advantage from it,
-and to exercise those graces that the nature and importance of the duty
-requires; that we ought to depend upon God, and address ourselves to him
-by faith and prayer for the knowlege of those divine truths contained
-therein. But, in this last head, we are led to speak of some other
-methods conducive to our understanding the scriptures; which are the
-effects of diligence and attendance to the sense of the words thereof,
-and the scope and design of them.
-
-This being an useful head, I shall take occasion to enlarge on it more
-than I have done on the former, and to add some other things, which may
-serve as a farther means to direct us, how we may read the scriptures
-with understanding. I might here observe, that they who are well
-acquainted with the languages in which they were written, and are able
-to make just remarks on the words, phrases, and particles used therein,
-some of which cannot be expressed in another language without losing
-much of their native beauty and significancy, these have certainly the
-advantage of all others: But since this cannot be done by the greatest
-part of mankind, who are strangers to the Greek and Hebrew languages;
-they must have recourse to some other helps for the attaining this
-valuable end. And in order thereunto,
-
-(1.) It will be of great use for them to consult those expositions,
-which we have of the whole, or some particular parts of scripture; of
-which some are more large, others concise; some critical, others
-practical. I shall forbear making any remarks tending to depreciate the
-performance of some, or extol the judgment of others; only this must be
-observed, that many have passed over some difficulties of scripture,
-which omission has given a degree of disgust to the more inquisitive
-part of Christians: But this may be attributed in some instances, to a
-commendable modesty, which we find not only in those that have written
-in our own, but in other languages; whereby they tacitly confess, either
-that they could not solve the difficulty; or, that it was better to
-leave it undetermined, than to attempt a solution, which, at best, would
-amount to little more than a probable conjecture. It may also be
-observed, that others, who have commented on scripture, seem to be
-prepossessed with a particular scheme of doctrine, which, if duly
-considered, is not very defensible; and they are obliged, sometimes, to
-strain the sense thereof, that it may appear to speak agreeably to their
-own sentiments; however, their expositions, in other respects, may be
-used with great advantage.
-
-To this we may add, that the word preached, being designed to lead us
-into the knowledge of scripture-doctrines, we ought to attend upon, and
-improve it, as a means conducive thereto, and to bless God for the great
-helps and advantages we have to attain it; but more of this will be
-considered under some following answers relating to the preaching and
-hearing the word:[35] therefore we proceed to consider,
-
-(2.) That we ought to make the best use we can of those translations of
-scripture, that we have in our own language; which, if we compare
-together, we shall find, not only that the style in which one is
-written, differs from that of another, agreeably to the respective times
-in which they were written; but they differ very much in the sense they
-give of many places of scripture; which may easily be accounted for from
-the various acceptations of the same Hebrew or Greek word, as may be
-observed in all other languages; and there are other difficulties
-relating to the propriety of translating some particular phrases, or the
-various senses in which several particles made use of, are to be
-understood. However, by comparing these translations together, they who
-are unacquainted with the original, will be sometimes led into a sense
-more agreeable to the context and the analogy of faith, by one of them,
-than by another. But we will suppose the English reader to confine
-himself to the translation that is generally used by us; which, as it
-cannot be supposed to be of equal authority with the original, nor yet
-so perfect, as that it is impossible to be corrected, as to every word
-or phrase contained therein; yet I would be far from taking occasion
-from hence to depreciate it, or say any thing that may stagger the faith
-of any, as though we were in danger of being led aside thereby, from the
-way of truth, as some have pretended, who plead for the necessity of a
-new translation of the Bible; whereas it is much to be feared, that if
-any such thing should be attempted, it would deviate more from the sense
-of the Holy Ghost, than that which we now have, and have reason to bless
-God for, which, I cannot but think, comes as near the original as most
-that are extant. We shall therefore consider how this may be used to the
-best advantage, for our understanding the mind of God therein. And here
-we shall observe,
-
-[1.] That there is another translation of words referred to in the
-margin of our Bibles; which will sometimes give very great light to the
-sense of the text, and appear more emphatical, and rather to be
-acquiesced in. I shall give a short specimen of some texts of scripture,
-that may be illustrated this way; in which the marginal reading differs
-from the words it refers to: Thus it is said, in Job iv. 18. _He put no
-trust in his servants, and his angels he charged folly_: In the margin,
-it is observed, that the words may be read, _He put no trust in his
-servants, nor in his angels in whom he put light_; which denotes the
-excellency of their nature, and the wisdom with which they are endowed:
-Nevertheless, God put no trust in them, not having thought fit to make
-use of them in creating the world, nor committing the government thereof
-to them.
-
-Again, in Isaiah liii. 3. it is said, _We hid, as it were, our faces
-from him_, speaking of our Saviour; but in the margin, it is, _He hid,
-as it were, his face from us_; which implies, that, as he bore our
-grief, so he was charged with our guilt; and accordingly is represented,
-as having his face covered, as an emblem hereof; or else it denotes his
-concealing or veiling his glory, as he, who was really in the form of
-God, appeared in the form of a servant.
-
-Again, in Jer. xlii. 20. the prophet reproving the people, says, _Ye
-dissembled in your hearts, when ye sent me unto the Lord your God,
-saying, Pray for us_; but, in the margin, it is, _You have used deceit
-against your souls_; which contains a farther illustration of the sense
-of the words; as it not only denotes their hypocrisy, but the
-consequence thereof, to wit, their destruction; which agrees very well
-with the threatning denounced in verse 22. that they should _die by the
-sword, the famine, and by the pestilence_. And the same prophet in chap.
-x. 14. speaking of idolaters, says, _Every man is brutish in his
-knowlege_; but in the margin it is, _Every man is more brutish than to
-know_; in which their stupidity is rather assigned to their ignorance
-than their knowlege.
-
-Again, in Zechariah xii. 5. it is said in the text, _The governors of
-Judah shall say in their hearts, The inhabitants of Jerusalem shall be
-my strength in the Lord of hosts their God_; but in the margin it is,
-_The governors of Judah shall say, There is strength to me, and to the
-inhabitants of Jerusalem, in the Lord of hosts_; and this reading seems
-more agreeable to what follows; which contains several promises of
-deliverance and salvation, which God would work for the inhabitants of
-Jerusalem; So that we are not to suppose them saying, _Jerusalem shall
-be our strength_; but, the _Lord of hosts_, who is a safe-guard to it,
-as well as to the governors of Judah.
-
-Again, in Acts xvii. 23. it is said in the text, _As I passed by, and
-beheld your devotions_; but, in the margin it is, _The gods whom you
-worship_, or, the things ye pay divine honour to; which is very
-agreeable to the context, and the design of the apostle therein. Again,
-in chap. xxii. 29. it is said in the text, _that they departed from him,
-which should have examined him_, meaning Paul, in the margin it is,
-_tortured him_; which is agreeable to the Roman custom of scourging, and
-thereby tormenting one that was under examination for supposed crimes.
-
-Again, in Gal. i. 14. the apostle says, _I profited in the Jews
-religion, above many my equals_; in the margin it is, _My equals in
-years_; which seems much more agreeable to the apostle’s design.
-
-Again, in Heb. ii. 7. it is said in the text, _Thou madest him_, viz.
-our Saviour, _a little lower than the angels_; in the margin it is, _A
-little while inferior to them_; as referring to his state of
-humiliation; which continued comparatively, but a little while.
-
-[2.] In order to our making a right use of our English translation, that
-we may understand the mind of God contained therein, let it be farther
-observed, that by reason of the conciseness of the Hebrew and Greek
-texts, there are several words left out, which must be supplied, to
-complete the sense thereof; which are inserted in an _Italic_ character.
-And it will not be difficult for us to determine whether the insertion
-be just or no; when we consider that the translators often take their
-direction herein from some words, either expressed or understood in the
-context; as in Heb. viii. 7. it is said, _If the first_ covenant _had
-been faultless_, &c. where the word _covenant_ is inserted; as it is
-also in verse 13. because it is expressly mentioned, in verses 8, 9, 10.
-
-Again, in chap. x. 6. it is said, in _sacrifices for sin thou hadst no
-pleasure_. The word _sacrifices_ is supplied from the foregoing verse;
-and, for the same reason, _offerings_ might as well have been supplied,
-as in ver. 8. And, in ver. 25. we are commanded to _exhort one another_;
-where _one another_ is supplied from the foregoing verse.
-
-Again, in 1 Pet. iv. 16. it is said, _If any man suffer as a Christian,
-let him not be ashamed_; where the words, _any man suffer_, are inserted
-as agreeable to what is mentioned, ver. 15.
-
-And, in Eph. ii. 1. _You hath he quickened who were dead in trespasses
-and sins_; the words, _hath he quickened_, are supplied from ver. 5. and
-our translators might as well have added, _you hath he quickened
-together with him_, viz. Christ. These things I only mention as a
-specimen of the insertions, to complete the sense in our translation;
-and we shall find, that the words supplied in other scriptures, are for
-the most part, sufficiently just; but if they be not so, they are
-subject to correction, without the least imputation of altering the
-words of scripture, while we are endeavouring to give the true sense
-thereof; and we may be allowed, without perverting of the sacred
-writings, sometimes, to supply other words instead of them, which may
-seem more agreeable to the mind of the Holy Ghost therein. Thus, in Eph.
-vi. 12. it is said, _We wrestle against spiritual wickedness in high
-places_. The word _places_, is supplied by our translators; and, in the
-margin, it is observed, that it might as well be rendered _heavenly
-places_. Now because there is no spiritual wickedness in heavenly
-places, therefore they choose, without regard to the proper sense of the
-Greek word, to render it _high places_. Whereas, in chap. iii. 10. where
-there is no appearance of such an objection, they render the same word,
-_heavenly places_; though, I think, the words in both those scriptures,
-might better be rendered _in what concerns heavenly things_.
-
-Again, in 2 Cor. vi. 1. it is said, _We, as workers together with him,
-beseech you_, &c. where, _with him_, is supplied to complete the sense;
-but, I think, it might better have been left out, and then the sense
-would have been, ministers, are _workers together with one another_, and
-not _together with God_; they are honoured to be employed by God, as
-moral instruments, which he makes use of; but they have no other
-casuality in bringing about the work of grace. The principal reason why
-the words _with him_, are supplied, is because it seems agreeable to the
-apostle’s mode of speaking, in 1 Cor. iii. 9. _We are workers together
-with God_; but, I think, those words might better be rendered,
-_labourers together of God_[36]; or we are jointly engaged in his work;
-therefore there is no reason from hence to supply the words _with him_,
-in the text but now referred to.
-
-(3.) If we would understand the sense of a particular text of scripture,
-we must consider its connexion with the context. Accordingly we must
-observe,
-
-_1st_, The scope, design, or argument insisted on, in the paragraph, in
-which it is contained. Thus in Rom. viii. the apostle’s design in
-general, is to prove that there is _no condemnation to them which are in
-Christ Jesus_, and to shew who they are, that may conclude themselves to
-be interested in this privilege; together with the many blessings that
-are connected with, or flow from it, which the subject matter of that
-chapter principally relates to.
-
-And, in Heb. i. the apostle’s principal design is, to prove the
-excellency and glory of Christ, as Mediator, above the angels, as he
-intimates ver. 4. which argument is principally insisted on, and
-illustrated, in the following part of the chapter.
-
-And, in chap. xi. his design is, to give an account of the great things
-the Old Testament church were enabled to do, and suffer, by faith, of
-which, there is an induction of particulars in several parts of it.
-
-And, in Rom. v. the apostle insists on the doctrine of original sin, and
-shews how sin and death first entered into the world, and by what means
-we may expect to be delivered from it; and so takes occasion to compare
-Adam and Christ together, as two distinct heads and representatives of
-those who were included in the respective covenants which mankind were
-under; by the former of which, sin reigned unto death, and, by the
-latter, grace and righteousness, unto eternal life.
-
-Again, in chap. vii. especially from ver. 5. the general argument
-insisted on, is, the conflict and opposition there is between sin and
-grace, and the manner in which corrupt nature discovers itself in the
-souls of the regenerate, together with the disturbance and uneasiness
-that it constantly gives them. And, in Psal. lxxxviii. we have an
-account of the distress that a soul is in, when under divine desertion,
-and brought to the very brink of despair. And, in Psal. lxxii. under the
-type of the glory of Solomon’s kingdom, and the advantages his subjects
-should receive thereby, the glory and excellency of Christ’s kingdom is
-illustrated, together with the gospel-state, and blessings thereof. And,
-in Psal. li. David represents a true penitent as addressing himself to
-God for forgiveness; though particularly applied to his own case, after
-he had sinned in the matter of Uriah. Again, the general argument in
-Isa. liii. is to set forth the sufferings of Christ, whereby he made
-satisfaction for sin, together with the glory redounding to himself, and
-the advantages that believers derive from it.
-
-_2dly_, We must consider the method made use of in managing the
-argument; whether by a close way of reasoning and consequences deduced
-from premises, or, by an explication of what was designed to inform the
-judgment, and laid down before in a general proposition. Or, whether the
-principal design of the paragraph be, to regulate the conduct of our
-lives, awaken our consciences out of a stupid frame, or excite in us
-becoming affections, agreeable to the subject-matter thereof. And, we
-are to observe how every part of it is adapted to answer these ends.
-
-_3dly_, We are to consider who is the person speaking, or spoken to;
-whether they are the words of God, the church, or the inspired writer;
-and, whether they are directed to particular persons, or to all men in
-general? Here we may often observe, that in the same paragraph there is
-an _apostrophe_, or turning the discourse from one person to another.
-Nothing is more common than this in the poetical writings of scripture.
-Thus, in the Psalms of David, sometimes God is represented as speaking
-to man, and then man as speaking to, or concerning God, as we may
-observe, in Psal. cxxxvii. 1-4. there is a relation of the church’s
-troubles in Babylon; and, in verses 5 and 6. the Psalmist addresses his
-discourse to the church; _If I forget thee, O Jerusalem, let my right
-hand forget her cunning_. And, in ver. 7. he speaks to God, praying that
-he would _remember the children of Edom, in the day of Jerusalem; who
-said, Raze it, raze it, even to the foundation thereof_. And, in ver. 8,
-9. he turns his discourse to Babylon, as a nation destined to
-destruction.
-
-Again, in Psal. ii. he speaks concerning the _rage_ of the _Heathen_,
-against Christ and his church, and that disappointment and ruin that
-they should meet with for it. And, in ver. 6. he represents God the
-Father as speaking concerning Christ; _yet have I set my King upon my
-holy hill of Zion_. And, in ver. 7, 8. Christ is brought in as speaking
-or making mention of the _decree_ of God relating to his character and
-office, as Mediator, and the success of his kingdom, as extended to the
-_uttermost parts of the earth_, pursuant to his intercession, which was
-founded on his satisfaction. And, in ver. 10-12, the Psalmist turns his
-discourse to those persecuting powers, or the kings of the earth, whom
-he had spoken of in the former part of the Psalm, and instructs them
-what methods they should take to escape God’s righteous vengeance.
-Such-like change of persons speaking, or spoken to, may be observed in
-many of the Psalms, Psal. xvi. 1, _&c._ and cxxxiv.
-
-And throughout the whole book of Canticles, there is an inter-changeable
-discourse between Christ and his church, which is sometimes called his
-_spouse_, at other times his _sister_; sometimes he speaks to the
-church, and at other times of it. And, in other places, the church is
-represented as speaking to him, or to the _daughters of Jerusalem_,
-namely, those professors of religion, that had little more than a form
-of godliness.[37]
-
-Again, we often find, that there is a change with respect to the persons
-speaking, spoken to, or of, in the writings of the prophets, as well as
-in the poetical writings; as may be observed in Isa. lxiii. throughout
-the whole chapter. And, in Micah vii. 18, 19, 20. there is a change of
-persons in almost every sentence; _Who is a God like unto thee that
-pardoneth iniquity_, &c. _He retaineth not his anger for ever; he will
-subdue our iniquities; and thou wilt cast all our sins into the depths
-of the sea. Thou wilt perform the truth to Jacob, and the mercy to
-Abraham, which thou hast sworn unto our fathers from the days of old._
-
-_4thly_, We are farther to consider the occasion of what is laid down in
-any chapter, paragraph, or book of scripture, which we desire to
-understand. Thus the particular occasion of the book of Lamentations,
-was the approaching ruin of Judah, and the miseries that they should be
-exposed to when Jerusalem was besieged by the Chaldeans; as appears by
-the subject-matter thereof; though, it may be, that which was the more
-immediate occasion of its being delivered at that time, was, that the
-prophet might lament the death of good Josiah, 2 Chron. xxxv. 25. which,
-probably, he had a peculiar eye to, when he says, _The crown is fallen
-from our head_, Lam. v. 16. as well as the destruction of the whole
-nation, which would ensue soon after it, in which their civil and
-religious liberties would be invaded by their enemies, who would oppress
-and lead them captive.
-
-And the principal occasion of the apostle’s writing the epistle to the
-Galatians, was, that he might establish some among them, in the faith of
-the gospel, who were so much disposed to turn aside from him that called
-them, and embrace another scheme of religion that was subversive of it;
-as he observes, in chap. i. 6. where, by this _other gospel_, which he
-dissuades them from turning aside unto, we are to understand those
-doctrines that they had imbibed from those false teachers who endeavour
-either to re-establish the observation of the ceremonial law, or to put
-them upon seeking righteousness and life, from their observing the
-precepts of the moral law, which tended to overthrow the doctrine of
-justification by Christ’s righteousness; which is a subject often
-insisted on by the apostle, both in this and his other epistles.
-
-This method of enquiring into the occasion of what is mentioned in
-particular paragraphs of scripture, will often give light to some things
-contained therein. Thus we read, in Matt. xxi. 23-27. that the _chief
-priests and elders_ ask our Saviour this question, _By what authority
-dost thou these things?_ which, had it proceeded from an humble mind,
-desirous to be convinced by his reply to it; or, had he not often, in
-their hearing, asserted the authority by which he did those things, he
-would, doubtless, have told them, that he received a commission to do
-them from the Father; and, that every miracle which he wrought, was, as
-it were, a confirming seal annexed to it. But our Saviour, knowing the
-design of the question, and the character of the persons that asked it,
-he does not think fit to make any reply to it, rather chusing to put
-them to silence, by proposing another question to them, which he knew
-they would not be forward to answer, relating to the baptism of John,
-_viz._ whether it was _from heaven_, or _of men_. And this was certainly
-the best method he could have taken; for he dealt with them as
-cavillers, who were to be put to silence, and made ashamed at the same
-time.
-
-(4.) In order to our understanding the sense of scripture, we must, so
-far as it is possible, compare the phrases, or modes of expression, as
-well as the subject insisted on, with what occurs in other parallel
-places. Thus, in several of the historical parts of scripture, we have
-the same history, or, at least, many things tending to illustrate it; as
-the history of the reign of the kings of Judah and Israel, is the
-principal subject of the book of Kings and Chronicles; one of which
-often refers to, as well as explains the other, and, by comparing them
-together, we shall find, that one gives light to the other. Thus it is
-said, in 2 Kings xii. 2. that _Jehoash did that which was right, in the
-sight of the Lord all his days, wherein Jehoiada the priest instructed
-him_; by which it is intimated, that, after the death of Jehoiada, he
-did that which was evil in the sight of the Lord; but this is not
-particularly mentioned in this chapter, which principally insists on
-that part of his reign which was commendable. But if we compare it with
-2 Chron. xxiv. we have an account of his reign after the death of
-Jehoiada, how he _set up idolatry_, ver. 17, 18. being instigated
-hereunto by his princes that flattered, or, as it is expressed, _made
-obeisance unto him_, and disregarded the prophets sent to testify
-against these practices; and how he _stoned Zachariah in the court of
-the house of the Lord_, for his faithful reproof and prophetic
-intimation of the consequence of the idolatry, in which he shewed the
-greatest ingratitude, and forgetfulness of the good things that had been
-done for him by his father, who set him on his throne. We have an
-account of the time when the Syrians came up against him, and how they
-overcame him with a small company of men; and, that _the Lord delivered
-a very great host into their hand, because they had forsaken the Lord
-God of their fathers_, ver. 23, 24.
-
-Again, in the book of Kings, we have but a short history of the reign of
-Azariah, otherwise called Uzziah, and of his being _smitten by the Lord,
-so that he was a leper until the day of his death, and dwelt in a
-several house_, 2 Kings xv. 1-5. but in 2 Chron. xxvi. there is a larger
-account of him, as successful in war, and of the honour and riches that
-he gained thereby; and also we have a particular account of the reason
-of the Lord’s smiting him with leprosy, namely, for his invading a
-branch of the priest’s office.
-
-Again, in the history of the reign of Manasseh, in 2 Kings xxi. we have
-only an account of the vile and abominable part thereof; whereas, in 2
-Chron. xxxiii. we have not only an account of his wickedness, but of his
-repentance, together with the affliction that occasioned it, ver. 12-19.
-
-Moreover, when we read the prophetic writings, we must, for our better
-understanding them, compare them with the particular history of the
-reign of those kings, in whose time they prophesied, and the state of
-the church at that time, their alliances or wars with neighbouring
-princes, and the sins that they were guilty of, which gave occasion to
-their being sometimes insulted, and overcome by them, till their ruin
-was completed in being carried captive into Babylon. Thus when we read
-Isa. vii. which gives an account of Rezin, king of Syria, and Pekah, the
-son of Remaliah, against Ahaz, and contains a prediction of their
-miscarriage in this attempt; and also, that the king of Asyria should be
-hired to assist Ahaz, but should, instead thereof, deal deceitfully with
-him, so that he should deprive Judah of their ornaments, and impoverish,
-instead of being helpful to them. This we have a farther explication of
-in the history of Ahaz’s reign, in 2 Kings xvi. and 2 Chron. xxviii.[38]
-
-Again, we ought to compare the account of Sennacherib’s invading Judah,
-and the blasphemous insult of Rabshakeh sent for that purpose, together
-with his defeat, and the remarkable hand of God that brought this about,
-as an encouragement of Hezekiah’s piety, in the xxxvith and xxxviith
-chapters of Isaiah, with the historal account of the same thing, in 2
-Kings xviii. and xix. and 2 Chron. xxxii.
-
-Again, we must compare the Psalms of David with his life, or the state
-of the church, which is particularly referred to in some of them; which
-may be very much illustrated from other scriptures, that have relation
-to the same dispensations of providence, or contain an historical
-account thereof. As for those psalms that were penned on particular
-occasions, mentioned in the respective titles prefixed to them, these
-will be better understood if we compare the subject-matter thereof with
-the history they refer to. Moreover, we shall often find, that when the
-same thing is mentioned in different places of scripture, there is
-something added in one, which farther illustrates what is contained in
-the other. Thus, in the account we have of the life of Joseph, in Gen.
-xxxix. 20. it is said, that he was _put into the prison, the place where
-the king’s prisoners were bound_; and, in chap. xli. 14. that he was
-kept in the _dungeon_, which is the worst part of the prison. But the
-Psalmist speaking of the same matter, in Psal. cv. 18. adds, that his
-_feet were hurt with fetters_, and he was _laid in iron_; which contains
-a farther illustration of the history of his troubles.
-
-Again, when we read in Numb. xi. 31, 32. of God’s _feeding Israel_, upon
-their murmuring in the desert, for want of flesh, _with quails in great
-abundance_; this is mentioned elsewhere, in Psal. lxxviii. 27. in which
-we have an account, that these quails were a sort of _feathered fowl_,
-which could not have been so well understood by the sense of the Hebrew
-word, which we render _quails_[39]. We have also an account, in Exod.
-xvii. 6. of God’s supplying them with _water out of the rock in Horeb_;
-and if we compare this with Psal. cv. 41. we shall find that this water
-issued from thence in so large a stream, that it was like a _river_. And
-the apostle Paul gives farther light to it, when he says, speaking in a
-figurative way, that _the rock followed them_, 1 Cor. x. 4. that is, the
-water that ran from it like a river, did not flow in a right line; but,
-by a continued miracle, changed its course, as they altered their
-stations, in their various removes from place to place in the
-wilderness. And he also adds, that God designed this to be a type of
-Christ.
-
-I might also observe, that there were many things in the life of David,
-after his expulsion from Saul’s court, that would argue him an usurper;
-inasmuch as he did not barely fly to secure his life, which he might
-lawfully do, as a private person; but he raised a small army; and
-accordingly it is said, in 2 Sam. xxii. 2. that every one that was ‘in
-distress, or in debt, or discontented, gathered themselves unto him; and
-he became a captain over him; and there were with him about four hundred
-men.’ And Jonathan, who was heir apparent to the crown, is forced to
-capitulate with, and take an oath of him, that he would grant him his
-life, as concluding, that he would be king after his father’s death, 1
-Sam. xx. 14, 15. compared with the 42. and Saul’s jealousy hereof, which
-was attended with rage, amounting to a kind of destraction, was not
-altogether without ground; as he intimates to him, when he tells him,
-‘Behold, I know well that thou shalt surely be king,’ chap. xxiv. 20.
-and accordingly, in the following verses, he makes him ‘swear to him,
-that he would not cut off his seed after him, or destroy his name out of
-his father’s house.’ Now this could hardly be justified, if we did not
-consider what we read in another part of scripture, that, before that
-time, God had taken away the kingdom from Saul, and anointed David to be
-king in his stead, in 1 Sam. xvi. 13. though he had not the actual
-possession of it till after Saul’s death.
-
-I might farther observe, that when we read the account contained in the
-books of Moses, of the ceremonial law, and the various rites and
-ordinances of divine service contained therein, or meet with any
-expressions in the Old Testament that refer to it; these ought to be
-compared with several things that are recorded in the writings of the
-apostle Paul, and, particularly, a very considerable part of his epistle
-to the Hebrews[40], in which we have an account of the signification
-thereof, as ordained to be types of the gospel-dispensation. And,
-indeed, there are many scriptures of the Old Testament, which will be
-better understood by comparing them with others that refer to them in
-the New. Thus it is said, in Isa. xvi. 23. _Unto me every knee shall
-bow_; which appears to be very agreeable to what is said concerning our
-Saviour, in Phil. ii. 10. and it is not only spoken of the divine honour
-that should be paid to him; but it relates, in a peculiar manner, to
-that glory which all shall ascribe to him, when they stand before his
-tribunal, as appears by comparing it with Rom. xiv. 10, 11.
-
-Again, when we read, in Isa. vi. 10. of God’s sending the prophet to
-_make the heart of the people fat, and their ears heavy, and shut their
-eyes, lest they see with their eyes, and hear with their ears, and
-understand with their hearts, and convert, and be healed_. It is not to
-be supposed that God is represented hereby as the author of their sin;
-which will plainly appear, if we compare it with Matt. xiii. 15. in
-which this text is cited, and farther explained, as it is said, _This
-people’s heart is waxed fat, and their eyes have they closed, lest they
-should see with their eyes_, &c. And it is also referred to, and
-explained in the same sense as charging their sin, and the consequence
-thereof upon themselves, in Acts xxviii. 26, 27. By this method of
-comparing the Old and New Testament together, we shall be led to see the
-beautiful harmony of the scriptures, and how the predictions thereof
-have been accomplished; which will tend very much to establish our faith
-in the truth of the Christian religion, that is founded on them. But
-this having been insisted on elsewhere[41], we pass it over at present,
-and proceed to consider,
-
-That there are several places, in the New Testament, which being
-compared together, will give light to one another. Thus, in the four
-Evangelists, which contain the history of the life and death of Christ,
-we may observe, that some things are left out, or but briefly hinted at
-in one of them, which are more largely insisted on in another. Thus we
-read, in Matt. xii. 14, 15. that ‘the Pharisees went out and held a
-counsel against our Saviour, how they might destroy him;’ upon which
-occasion ‘he withdrew himself from thence. And great multitudes followed
-him, and he healed them all.’ But Mark, chap. iii. 17, _& seq._ speaking
-concerning the same thing, intimates that the Herodians were joined with
-the Pharisees in this conspiracy; and that he ‘withdrew himself to the
-sea,’ _viz._ of Tiberias; where he ordered that ‘a small ship should
-wait on him, lest the multitude should throng him.’ And we have also an
-account of several places from whence they came, namely, Galilee,
-Jerusalem, Idumea, and from beyond Jordan, and they about Tyre and
-Sidon, so that a great part of them were Gentiles; and this gives light
-to what follows in Matt. xii. 18, 21. in which it is intimated, that
-this was an accomplishment of what was _foretold by the prophet Isaias_,
-that he should _shew judgment to the Gentiles_; and that, _in his name
-should the Gentiles trust_; therefore he wrought miracles for their
-conviction that he was the Messias.
-
-Again, it is said, in Matt. xiii. 12. ‘Whosoever hath, to him shall be
-given, and he shall have more abundance. But whosoever hath not from him
-shall be taken away, even that he hath.’ Some will be ready to enquire,
-how can that which he hath be said to be taken away, when he is supposed
-to have nothing? or, how can a person be said to lose that which he
-never had? But if compare this with a parallel scripture, in Luke viii.
-18. there it is said, _Whosoever hath not, from him shall be taken, even
-that which he seemeth to have_; or, as it is in the margin, _that which
-he thinketh he hath_. Now, though a man cannot lose grace, that had it
-not; yet an hypocrite, who seems to have it, may lose that which he
-supposeth himself to have.
-
-This method of comparing the four Evangelists together, is attempted by
-several divines; and, among them, a late writer, who is deservedly
-esteemed by all the reformed churches[42], thinks, that the inscription,
-on the cross of Christ, can hardly be determined, without what is said
-of it, by all the four Evangelists. Mark says these words were written,
-_The king of the Jews_, Mark xv. 26. and Luke says, _This is the king of
-the Jews_, Luke xxiii. 38. and Matthew adds another word, _This is
-Jesus, the king of the Jews_, Matt. xxvii. 37. and John expresses it
-thus, _Jesus of Nazareth, the king of the Jews_, John xix. 19. So that,
-by comparing them all together, and supplying those words from one,
-which are left out by others of them, we must conclude, that the
-inscription was, _This is Jesus of Nazareth, the king of the Jews_.
-
-Again, as the Acts of the Apostles contains a brief history of the first
-planting the gospel-church, and of the travels and ministry of the
-apostle Paul, in particular; this ought to be compared with some things,
-occasionally mentioned in his epistles, which will give farther light to
-them. Thus the apostle says, in 1 Cor. xv. 8. _Last of all, he was seen
-of me also, as one born out of due time_; and speaks of himself in ver.
-9. as the _least of the apostles, not meet to be called an apostle;
-because he persecuted the church of God_. This ought to be compared with
-Acts ix. 1-6. which gives an account of him as a persecutor before his
-conversion, and shews how our Saviour was seen of him; which is not to
-be taken in the same sense as he was seen by the rest of the apostles,
-before his ascension into heaven; but of his being seen of him, after
-his ascension, when, on this occasion, he appeared to him. And, if this
-be compared with 1 Cor. ix. 1. he considers this sight of Jesus as a
-necessary qualification for the apostleship; therefore, when he speaks
-of himself as _born out of due time_, he means, called to, and qualified
-for the apostleship, out of due time; that is, not at the same time in
-which the other apostles were, but by this extraordinary dispensation of
-providence.
-
-Again, when the apostle, in 1 Thes. ii. 2. speaks of his having been
-_shamefully entreated at Philippi_. This will be better understood if we
-compare it with Acts xvi. 16, 21, 22, _& seq._ And when he tells the
-Thessalonians, in the following words, _that we were bold in our God, to
-speak unto you the gospel of God with much contention_; this should be
-compared with Acts xvii. 1, _& seq._ Many instances of the like nature
-might be given, by which, the usefulness of comparing one scripture with
-another, would farther appear. But, I design this only as a specimen, to
-assist us in the application of this direction; which a diligent
-enquirer into the sense of scripture, will be able, in reading it, to
-make farther improvements upon.
-
-(5.) In order to our understanding the scriptures, we must take notice
-of the several figurative modes of speaking that are used therein. As,
-
-_1st_, The part is often put for the whole[43]. Thus the soul, which is
-one constituent part of man, is sometimes put for the whole man; as in
-Gen. xlvi. 26. we read of the souls that came with Jacob into Egypt;
-and, in Rom. xii. 1. the body is put for the whole man; _I beseech you,
-brethren, by the mercies of God, that you present your bodies_, that is,
-yourselves, _a living sacrifice to God_. So the blood of Christ, which
-is often spoken of, in scripture, as that by which we are redeemed,
-justified, and saved, is to be taken for the whole of his obedience and
-sufferings, both in life and death, to which our salvation is to be
-ascribed, as well as to the effusion of his blood.
-
-_2dly_, The thing containing, is put for that which is contained
-therein[44]; so the cup in the Lord’s supper, is put for the wine, 1
-Cor. xi. 25. And the thing signified is put for the sign thereof. Thus
-when it is said, _This is my body_, ver. 24. the meaning is, this bread
-is a sign of my body, to wit, of the sufferings endured therein.
-
-_3dly_, Places are, by way of anticipation, called by those names, which
-in reality, were not given them, or, which they were not commonly known
-by, till some time after. Thus it is said, that, as soon as Israel had
-passed over Jordan, they _encamped in Gilgal_, Josh. iv. 19. that is, in
-the place which was afterwards so called; for it is said, that it was
-called Gilgal because there they were circumcised; and so the _reproach
-of Egypt_, occasioned by the neglect of that ordinance, _was rolled
-away_, chap. v. 9. Again, it is said, _The kings that came up against
-Sodom_, when Lot was taken prisoner, _had smitten all the country of the
-Amalekites_, Gen. xiv. 7. whereas, the country that was afterwards known
-by that name, could not be so called at that time; since Amalek, from
-whom it took its name, was not born till some ages after, he being of
-the posterity of Esau, chap. xxxvi. 11.
-
-_4thly_, The time past, or present, is often, especially in the
-prophetic writings, put for the time to come; which denotes the certain
-performance of the prediction, as much as though it were actually
-accomplished. Thus it is said, _He_, that is, our Saviour, _is despised
-and rejected of men; he hath born our griefs, he was wounded for our
-transgressions_, Isa. liii. 4, 5. And elsewhere, _The people that walked
-in darkness have seen a great light_, chap. ix. 2. and _unto us a child
-is born_, chap. v. 9. _&c._
-
-_5thly_, One of the senses is sometimes put for another. Thus it is
-said, _I turned to see the voice that spake to me_, Rev. i. 12. where
-seeing is put for hearing, or, understanding the meaning of the voice
-that spake.
-
-_6thly_, Positive assertions are sometimes taken in a comparitive sense.
-Thus God says to Samuel, the people in asking a king, _have not rejected
-thee, but me_, 1 Sam. viii. 7. that is, they have cast more contempt on
-me than they have on thee, _q. d._ they have offered a greater affront
-to my government, who condescended to be their king; though they have
-been uneasy under thine administration, as appointed to be their judge.
-And, in Psal. li. 4. David says, _Against thee, thee only, have I
-sinned_. Whereas he had sinned against Uriah and Bathsheba, as having
-murdered the one, and tempted the other to commit adultery with him; he
-had sinned against the army, whom he occasioned to fall in battle,
-pursuant to the orders he gave Joab, with a design to destroy Uriah; yet
-says he, _against thee, thee only, have I sinned_; that is, the greatest
-aggravation of my sin is, that it contains rebellion against thee. And
-elsewhere, God says, _I desired mercy, and not sacrifice_, Hos. vi. 6.
-that is, more than sacrifice.
-
-_7thly_, There are several hyperbolical ways of speaking in scripture,
-whereby more is expressed than what is generally understood. Thus the
-vessel in the temple, in which things were washed, which was ten cubits
-from one brim to the other, is called _a molten Sea_, 1 Kings vii. 23.
-because it contained a great quantity of water; though, indeed, it was
-very small, if compared with the dimensions of the sea: And in 1 Kings
-x. 27, it is said, that Solomon _made silver to be in Jerusalem, as
-stones; and cedars as the sycamore-trees, which are in the vale for
-abundance_. Silver was not, strictly speaking, as plentiful as stones;
-but it implies, that there were vast treasures thereof, heaped up by the
-king, and many of his subjects, and no lack of it in any one. And, in
-Judges xx. 16. it is said, there were _some of the Benjamites
-left-handed, every one_ of whom _could sling stones at an hair-breadth,
-and not miss_; which only signifies that they had an uncommon expertness
-in this matter; and when we read of some of the cities in the land of
-Canaan, that were _great, and walled up to heaven_, Deut. i. 28. it only
-denotes that their walls were very high: And, in Kings i. 43. it is said
-upon the occasion of Solomon’s being anointed king, that _the people
-rejoiced with great joy; so that the earth rent with the sound of them_;
-the meaning of which is only this, that the shouts of the people were so
-great, that if the concussion of the air, that was made thereby, could
-have rent the earth, this would have done it.
-
-_8thly_, We sometimes find ironical expressions, and sarcasms used in
-scripture, with a design to expose the wickedness and folly of men.
-Thus, when our first parents sinned by adhering to the suggestions of
-Satan, who told them, that they _should be as gods, knowing good and
-evil_, Gen. iii. 5. God says in an ironical way, _Behold the man is
-become as one of us, to know good and evil, &c._ ver. 22. And the
-prophet Elijah exposes Baal’s worshippers; and Micaiah, Ahab’s false
-prophets, by using a sarcastic way of speaking, 1 Kings xviii. 27. and
-chap. xxii. 15. And Job uses the same figurative way of speaking, when
-he reproves the bitter invectives, and false reasonings of his friends;
-_No doubt but ye are the people, and wisdom shall die with you_, Job
-xii. 2. And Solomon uses the same way of address, when he says,
-_Rejoice, O young man, in thy youth, and let thy heart cheer thee in the
-days of youth, and walk in the ways of thy heart, and in the sight of
-thine eyes: But know thou, that for all these things God bring thee into
-Judgment_, Eccl. xi. 9. And, the man that trusts in his own
-righteousness for justification, is also exposed in the same way,
-‘Behold, all ye that kindle a fire, that compass yourselves about with
-sparks; walk in the light of your fire, and in the sparks that ye have
-kindled: This shall ye have of mine hand, ye shall lie down in sorrow,’
-Isa. l. 11. And when our Saviour says to his disciples, having found
-them asleep, in Matt. xxvi. 45, 46. ‘Sleep on now, and take your rest;
-behold the hour is at hand, and the Son of man is betrayed into the
-hands of sinners,’ it is plain from the following words, that he uses
-this figurative way of speaking; for he immediately adds, without an
-irony, _Rise, let us be going_.
-
-This, some think to be the method of speaking which our Saviour makes
-use of, when he reproves his disciples for that fond conceit that they
-had, that his kingdom was of this world; and contending sometimes among
-themselves, who should be greatest therein: Upon which occasion he bids
-them make provision for war; and take care to secure those two things
-that are necessary thereunto, money and arms: Thus he says, in Luke
-xxii. 36. ‘He that hath a purse, let him take it; and he that hath no
-sword, let him sell his garment, and buy one;’ they did not, indeed,
-immediately perceive that he spake in an ironical way; and therefore
-replied, in ver. 38. _Lord, behold here are two swords_: Upon which he
-says, still carrying on the irony, _It is enough_. So that, whether they
-understood his meaning or no, it seems to be this; if you are disposed
-to contend who shall be greatest, as though my kingdom were of a
-temporal nature, and to be erected and maintained by force of arms, do
-you think you have sufficient treasure to hire forces to join with you,
-or buy arms for that purpose? or, do you imagine that you have courage
-enough to attack the Roman empire, and gain it by force? You say, you
-have two swords, can you suppose that these are enough? what a
-ludicrious and indifferent figure would you make, if you expected to
-come off conquerors by this means? No, they that take the sword shall
-perish with the sword; for my kingdom is not of this world: So that all
-the advantages and honours that you are to expect therein, are of a
-spiritual nature. This seems rather to be the meaning of this scripture,
-than that which the Papists generally acquiesce in, namely, that by the
-_two_ swords, are meant the civil and ecclesiastical; both which, as
-they pretend, are put into the Pope’s hands.
-
-9thly, The scripture often makes use of a figurative way of speaking,
-generally called an _hendyadis_, whereby one complex idea, is expressed
-by two words, which is very common in the Hebrew language. Thus in Jer.
-xxix. 11. when God promises his people, that he would _give_ them _an
-expected end_, intending hereby their deliverance from the Babylonish
-captivity; the words, if literally translated, ought to be rendered, as
-it is observed in the margin, _an end and expectation_; whereas, our
-translators were apprized that there is such a figurative way of
-speaking contained in them, and therefore they render them, _an expected
-end_: And this figure is sometimes used in the New Testament; as when
-our Saviour tells his disciples, in Luke xxi. 15. _I will give you a
-mouth and wisdom_; that is, I will give you ability to express
-yourselves with so much wisdom, _that all your adversaries shall not be
-able to gain-say_ it. And some think, that there is the same way of
-speaking used in John iii. 5. ‘Except a man be born of water, and of the
-Spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God;’ that is, except a man
-be born of the Holy Spirit, or regenerated, which is signified by being
-born of water, he cannot, &c.
-
-_10thly_, Nothing is more common than for the Holy Ghost, in scripture
-to make use of metaphors, which are a very elegant way of representing
-things, by comparing them with, and illustrating them by others, and
-borrowing such modes of speaking from them, as may add a very
-considerable beauty to them. Thus repentance and godly sorrow, together
-with the blessed privileges which shall hereafter attend them, are
-compared to sowing and reaping, in Psal. cxxvi. 5, 6. ‘They that sow in
-tears, shall reap in joy. He that goeth forth and weepeth, bearing
-precious seed, shall doubtless come again with rejoicing, bringing his
-sheaves with him.’ And the prophet sets forth the labour and pains which
-Israel had taken in sin; and exhorts them, by a metaphor taken from
-husbandry, to be as industrious in pursuing what would turn to a better
-account, in Hos. x. 12, 13. where he speaks of their having _plowed
-wickedness, and reaped iniquity_; and advises them to _sow to themselves
-in righteousness, and reap in mercy_; which, as he farther adds, they
-should do by _seeking the Lord_; and _it is time_, says he, _to seek_
-him, _till he come and rain righteousness upon you_; which is necessary
-to a plenteous harvest of blessings, which you may hope for in so doing.
-And, in chap. vii. 4. he reproves their adulteries by a metaphor, taken
-from _an oven heated by the baker_; and their hypocrisy by another,
-taken from _a cake not turned_, ver. 8. and their being weakened, and
-almost ruined hereby, he compares to the _gray hairs_ of those who are
-bowed down under the infirmities of age, ver. 9. and for their cowardice
-and seeking help from other nations, and not from God, he calls them _a
-silly dove without an heart_, ver. 11.
-
-And we may observe, that there is oftentimes a chain of metaphors in the
-same paragraph. Of this kind is that elegant description of old age,
-sickness, and death, which Solomon gives, in exhorting persons to
-_remember their Creator in the days of their youth_, Eccl. xii. 1-6.
-_while the sun, or the light, or the moon, or the stars be not
-darkened_; by which, it is probable, he intends the impairing the
-intellect, the loss of those sprightly parts which once they had, or, of
-the memory and judgment; upon which account men are sometimes said to,
-out-live themselves. And he speaks of _the keepers of the house
-trembling_; that is, the hands and arms, designed for the defence of the
-body, being seized with paralytic disorders; _the strong men bowing
-themselves_; that is, those parts which are designed to support the body
-being weakened, and needing a staff to bear up themselves; _the grinders
-ceasing because they are few_, signifies the loss of teeth; _and they
-that look out of the windows being darkened_, a decay of sight; their
-_rising up at the voice of the bird_, implies their loss of one of the
-main props of nature, to wit, sleep; so that they may rise early in the
-morning, when the birds begin to sing, because their beds will not
-afford them rest: _And the daughters of music being brought low_,
-denotes a decay of the voice and hearing, and being not affected with
-those sounds which were once most delightful to them. _The almond-tree
-flourishing_, plainly signifies the hoary head; _the grashopper_ being
-_a burden_, is either a proverbial speech, importing a want of courage,
-strength, and resolution to bear the smallest pressures; or, as others
-understand it, their stooping, when bowed down with old age. _The silver
-cord loosed_, or, _the golden bowl broken at the fountain, or the wheel
-broken at the cistern_, signifies a decay of the animal spirits, a
-laxation of the nerves, the irregular circulation of the blood, or the
-universal stoppage thereof; and then the frame of nature is broken, and
-man _returns to the dust_[45].
-
-In the New Testament there are several metaphors used; some of which are
-taken from the Isthmian and Olympic games, practised by the Greeks and
-Romans. Thus the apostle Paul compares the Christian life to _a race_ in
-which _many run_; but they do not all _receive the prize_, 1 Cor. ix.
-24. And, in ver. 25. he alludes to another exercise, to wit, wrestling;
-and recommends temperance as what was practised by them, as a means for
-their obtaining the crown. And, ver. 26. he uses a metaphor, taken from
-another of the games, to wit, fighting, in hope of victory; by which he
-illustrates his zeal in the discharge of his ministry. And in Heb. xii.
-1. he speaks of the Christian _race_, and the necessity of _laying aside
-every weight_, to wit, allowed sins, which would retard our course, or
-hinder us in the way to heaven. And in Phil. iii. 13, 14. he speaks of
-himself both as a minister and a Christian, as ‘forgetting those things
-which are behind, and reaching forth unto those things which are
-before,’ and, ‘pressing towards the mark, for the prize of the high
-calling of God in Christ Jesus;’ where he plainly alludes to the
-purpose, industry, and earnestness of those who run in a race. And, in
-Eph. vi. 11-16. he speaks of the difficulties, temptations, and
-opposition that believers are exposed to, in the Christian life; and
-advises them, to _put on the whole armour of God_; and so carries on the
-metaphor or allegory, by alluding to the various pieces of armour, which
-soldiers make use of when engaged in battle, to illustrate the methods
-we ought to take, that we may come off conquerors at last.
-
-(6.) It will be very useful, in order to our understanding scripture,
-for us to know some things, relating to the different forms of civil
-government, and the various changes made therein, among the Jews, and
-other nations, with whom they were conversant. At first we find, that
-distinct families had the administration of civil affairs committed unto
-them, and the heads thereof were, as it were, the chief magistrates, who
-had the exercise of civil power, in some instances; especially if it did
-not interfere with that of the country wherein they lived. Some think,
-indeed, that it extended to the punishing capital crimes with death; and
-that Judah, who was the head of a branch of Jacob’s family, when he
-passes this sentence concerning Tamar, in Gen. xxxviii. 24. _Bring her
-forth, and let her be burnt_, does it as a civil magistrate: But, if it
-be not deemed a rash and unjustifiable expression in him, when he says,
-_Let her be brought forth, and burnt_, we must suppose the meaning to
-be, let her first be confined till she is delivered of her child, and
-then tried by the civil magistrate, the consequence whereof will be, her
-being burnt, when found guilty of the adultery that was charged upon
-her. So that it does not appear that the heads of families, when
-sojourning in other countries, had a power distinct from that of the
-government under which they lived, to punish offenders with death;
-though, I think, it is beyond dispute, that they had a government in
-their own families, that extended, in many respects, to civil affairs,
-as well as obliged them to observe those religious duties which God
-required of them.
-
-It may be farther observed, that this government extended so far, as
-that the Patriarchs, or heads of families, had, sometimes, a power of
-making war, or entering into confederacies with neighbouring princes,
-for their own safety, or recovering their rights when invaded. Thus when
-Lot and the Sodomites, were taken prisoners by the four kings that came
-up against them, we read, in Gen. xiv. 13, 14. that Abraham called in
-the assistance of some of his neighbours, with whom he was in
-confederacy, and _armed his trained servants, three hundred and
-eighteen, born in his house_, and rescued him, and the men of Sodom from
-the hands of those that had taken them prisoners.
-
-We have little more light as to this matter, so long as the government
-continued domestic, and the church in the condition of sojourners: But,
-when they were increased to a great nation, their civil, as well as
-religious government, was settled, by divine direction, under the hand
-of Moses, in the wilderness. The first form thereof, was a theocracy, in
-which God gave them laws in an immediate way; condescended to satisfy
-them, as to some things, which they enquired of him about; gave them
-particular intimations how they should manage their affairs of war and
-peace; and appeared for them in giving them victory over their enemies,
-in a very extraordinary, and sometimes, miraculous way. But, besides
-this great honour that God put on them, he established a form of
-government among them, in which they were divided into _thousands_,
-_hundreds_, _fifties_, and _tens_, Exod. xviii. 31. Deut. i. 15. each of
-which divisions had their respective captain or governor; who are,
-sometimes, styled the _nobles of the children of Israel_, Exod. xxiv.
-11. And these governors were generally heads of considerable families
-among them; which were also divided in the same way, into thousands,
-fifties, and tens, in proportion to the largeness thereof; thus Gideon,
-speaking of his family, in Judges vi. 25. calls it, as the Hebrew word
-signifies, his _thousand_. And, in the same manner, their armies were
-divided, when engaged in war; thus when Jesse sent David with a present,
-into the army, to his brethren, he bade him deliver it to the _captain
-over their thousand_, 1 Sam. xvii. 18. and chap. xviii. 13. And we read,
-that Saul made David his _captain over a thousand_; which is the same
-with what we, in our modern way of speaking, call a commanding officer
-over a regiment of soldiers. Again, when David’s soldiers went out to
-war against Absalom, it is said, _They came out by hundreds and by
-thousands_, 2 Sam. xviii. 4. each distinct company, or regiment, having
-their commanding officer.
-
-Thus the government was settled as to civil and military affairs, in
-such a way, that the head of the respective division, had a power of
-judging in lesser matters. But since there were some affairs of the
-greatest importance to be transacted in the form of their government, by
-divine direction, God appointed seventy men of the children of Israel,
-to assist Moses in those matters, in which they had more immediately to
-do with him; and accordingly he _gave them the Spirit_, Numb. xi. 16,
-17. that is, the extraordinary inspiration of the Spirit; whereby he
-communicated his mind and will to them. This was the first rise of the
-Sanhedrim; and these had a power of judging in civil matters, throughout
-all the ages of the church till the Jews were made tributary to the
-Romans; and after that, this body of men were as vile and contemptible
-as they had before been honourable in the eyes of just and good men, as
-appears by their tumultuous and unprecedented behaviour in the trial of
-our Saviour, and the malicious prosecutions, set on foot by them,
-against the apostles, without any pretence or form of law.
-
-After the death of Joshua, and the elders that survived him, there was
-an alteration in the form of government, occasioned by the oppression
-which they were liable to from their enemies, who insulted, vexed, and
-sometimes plundered them of their substance. Then God raised up judges,
-who first procured peace for them, by success in war; and afterwards
-governed them; though without the character or ensigns of royal dignity.
-And, this government not being successive, they were, on the death of
-their respective judges, brought into great confusion, every one doing
-that which was right in his own eyes, till another judge was raised up,
-as some future emergency required it. Thus the posture of their affairs
-continued, as the apostle observes, _about the space of four hundred and
-fifty years_, Acts xiii. 20. and then it was altered, when, through
-their unsettled temper, they desired a king, in conformity to the custom
-of the nations round about them; which thing was displeasing to God:
-nevertheless, he granted them their request, 1 Sam. viii. 5-7. and so
-the government became regal. And then followed a succession of kings,
-set over the whole nation, till the division between Judah and Israel;
-when they became two distinct kingdoms, and so continued, till their
-respective captivity. These things being duly considered, will give
-great light to several things contained in scripture; especially as to
-what relates to the civil affairs of the church of God.
-
-And, for our farther understanding thereof, it will be necessary that we
-take a view of the government of other nations, with whom they were
-often conversant. We read almost of as many kings in scripture, as there
-were cities in several of those countries which lay round about them;
-thus, in Gen. xxxvi. we read of many dukes and kings, (whose power was
-much the same) who descended from Esau. These had very small dominions,
-each of them being, as it is probable, the chief governor of one city,
-or, at most, of a little tract of land round about it; and, indeed,
-besides the Assyrian, and other monarchies, that were of a very large
-extent, and had none who stood in competition with them, under that
-character, while they subsisted; all other kingdoms were very small;
-therefore four kings were obliged to enter into a confederacy, to make
-war with Sodom, and the four neighbouring cities, which a very
-inconsiderable army might, without much difficulty, have subdued, Gen.
-xiv. 1, _&c._ One of them, indeed, is called king of nations; not as
-though he had large dominions, but because he was the chief governor of
-a mixed people, from divers nations, who were settled together in one
-distinct colony; and the king of Shinar, there spoken of, is not the
-king of Babylon, who was too potent a prince to have stood in need of
-others to join with him in this expedition; but it was a petty king, who
-reigned in some city near Babylon, and was tributary to the Assyrian
-empire. These four kings, with all their forces, were so few in number,
-that Abraham was not afraid to attack them; which he did with success.
-
-Again, we read, that in Joshua’s time, the kings in the land of Canaan,
-whom he subdued, had, each of them, very small dominions, consisting of
-but one capital city, with a few villages round about it. Thus we read
-of thirty one kings that reigned in that country, which was not so big
-as a fourth part of the kingdom of England, Josh. xii. And afterwards
-most of these kingdoms were swallowed up by the Assyrian empire. Thus
-the king of Assyria, as Rabshakeh boasts, had entirely conquered the
-kings of Hamath, Arphad, Gozan, and Haran, with several others, 2 Kings
-xix. 12, 13. these had very small dominions, and therefore were easily
-subdued by forces so much superior to any that they could raise. Egypt,
-indeed, was more formidable; and therefore we often read in scripture of
-Israel’s having recourse to them for help, and are blamed for trusting
-in them more than God: And, in Arabia, there were some kings who had
-large dominions, as appears by the vast armies that they raised: Thus
-_Zerah the Ethiopian came forth against Asa, with a thousand thousand
-men_, 2 Chron. xvi. 19. Nevertheless, the church of God was able to
-stand its ground; for, whether the neighbouring kings were many of them,
-confederate against them, or the armies they raised, exceeding numerous,
-like the sand on the sea shore; they had safety and protection, as well
-as success in war, from the care and blessing of providence; of which we
-have an account in the history of scripture relating thereunto.
-
-(7.) It will be of some advantage, in order to our understanding the
-sense of scripture, for us to enquire into the meaning of those civil
-and religious offices and characters, by which several persons are
-described, both in the Old and New Testament. Concerning the Priests and
-Levites, we have had occasion frequently to insist on their call and
-office: Among the former of these, one is styled _high-priest_; who was
-not only the chief minister in holy things under the Jewish
-dispensation; but presided over the other priests in all those things
-that respected the temple-service. There was also another priest, who
-had pre-eminence over his brethren, that was next to the high-priest in
-office, who seems to be referred to, in 2 Kings xxv. 18. where we read
-of _Seriah, the chief priest, and Zephaniah the second priest_. This
-office is not often mentioned in scripture, but is frequently spoken of
-by Jewish writers: They call him, who was employed therein, as the
-author of the Chaldee paraphrase does on that text, the Sagan: And, some
-think, that this office was first instituted in Numb. iii. 32. in which
-Eleazar, the son of Aaron the priest was to be _chief over the chief of
-the Levites, and to have the oversight of them, that kept the charge of
-the sanctuary_: And elsewhere, we read of Zadok and Abiathar, being, by
-way of eminency, _priests at the same time_, 2 Sam. xv. 35. by which, it
-is probable, we are to understand, as many expositors do, that one was
-the _high priest_, the other the _Sagan_; who was to perform the office
-that belonged to the high priest in all the branches thereof, if he
-should happen to be incapacitated for it.
-
-Besides these, there were others who were styled _chief-priests_, as
-being the heads of their respective classes, and presided over them when
-they came to Jerusalem, to minister in their courses. There was also the
-president of the Sanhedrim, who is generally reckoned one of the chief
-priests. Moreover, when any one was by the arbitrary will of the
-governors, in the degenerate and declining state of the Jewish church,
-deposed from the high-priesthood, barely to make way for another
-favourite to enjoy that honour, he was, though divested of his office,
-nevertheless called chief priest. This will give light to several
-scriptures in the New Testament, in which we often read of many chief
-priests at the same time, See Luke iii. 2. Mark xiv. 53.
-
-Again, as to the Levites, these were not only appointed to be the high
-priest’s ministers in offering gifts and sacrifices in the temple; but
-many of them were engaged in other offices; some in instructing the
-people, in the respective cities where they dwelt, who were to resort to
-them for that purpose, or in synagogues, erected for this branch of
-public worship. Others were employed as judges in determining civil or
-ecclesiastical, matters.
-
-Again, we often read, in scripture, of Scribes: These were of two sorts;
-some were employed only in civil matters; and we sometimes read of one
-person, in particular, who was appointed to be the king’s scribe. Thus
-in David’s reign, we read of Shemaiah the scribe, and in Hezekiah’s of
-Shebna, 1 Chron. xxiv. 6. 2 Kings xviii. 18. This seems to have been a
-civil officer, not much unlike a secretary of state among us; and we
-seldom find mention made of more than one scribe at a time, except in
-Solomon’s reign in which there were two, 1 Kings iv. 4.
-
-But besides this, we often read of scribes who were engaged in other
-works; thus it is generally supposed, that many of them were employed in
-transcribing the whole, or some parts of scripture, for the use of those
-who employed them therein, and gratified them for it; which was
-necessary for the propagating religion in those ages, in which printing
-was not known.
-
-There were others who explained the law to the people. Thus Ezra is
-styled, _a ready scribe in the law of Moses_, Ezra, vii. 6. This was an
-honourable and useful employment, faithfully managed by him and many
-others, in the best ages of the church. But, in our Saviour’s time,
-there were scribes who pretended to expound the law, and instruct the
-people; but the doctrines they propagated, were very contrary to the
-mind of the Holy Ghost in Moses’s writings; and their way of preaching
-was very empty and unprofitable: Upon which occasion it is said, that
-our Lord _taught as one having authority, and not as the scribes_, Matt.
-vii. 29.
-
-Moreover, we sometimes read in the New-Testament, of Lawyers, against
-whom our Saviour denounces woes, for opposing him and his gospel. This
-is supposed by some, to be only a different name given to the scribes;
-inasmuch as they practised the law in public courts of judicature, and
-pleaded causes in the Sanhedrin, or taught in their schools or religious
-assemblies; both which the scribes did. And the evangelist Matthew,
-speaking concerning a lawyer, who asked our Saviour a question, _Which
-is the great commandment_, chap. xxii. 35, 36. Mark mentioning the same
-thing, calls him _one of the scribes_, Mark xii. 28. So that the same
-thing, for substance, seems to be intended by both of them; or if there
-was any difference between them, as others suppose there was, from what
-is said in Luke xi. 44, 45. that when our Saviour had been reproving the
-scribes and Pharisees, _One of the lawyers said unto him, thus saying
-thou reproachest us also_, where they speak as though they were distinct
-from them: yet it is evident from hence, that however they might be
-distinguished from them, in other respects, they agreed with them as
-engaged in expounding the law, and herein are said to lade _men with
-heavy burdens and grievous to be born_; which they themselves would _not
-touch with one of their fingers_.
-
-As for those civil officers which we read of in the Old Testament before
-the captivity, especially in David and Solomon’s reign, they were either
-such as were set over the tribute, the principal of which was at the
-head of the treasury, 1 Kings iv. 6. and others were employed under
-them, to see that the taxes were duly levied and paid: These are called
-receivers, Isa. xxxiii. 18. Others were employed in keeping and
-adjusting the public records, of which, one was the chief; who, by way
-of eminence, is called the recorder: And others were appointed to manage
-the king’s domestic affairs, of which, the chief was _set over the
-household_, 2 Kings xviii. 18. Another is said to be _set over the
-host_, 1 Kings iv. 4. who either had the chief command of the army, or
-else was appointed to muster and determine who should go to war, or be
-excused from it. And there is another officer we read of once in
-scripture, _viz._ he that _counted the towers_, Isa. xxxiii. 18. whose
-business seems to have been to survey and keep the fortifications in
-repair; but these not being so frequently mentioned in scripture as
-others, we pass them over, and proceed more especially to consider some
-characters of persons we meet with in the New Testament.
-
-There was one sort of officers who were concerned in exacting the public
-revenues, after the Jews were made tributary to the Roman empire: These
-are called publicans; the chief of which were generally persons of great
-honour and substance, who sometimes farmed a branch of the revenue, and
-they were, for the most part, Romans of noble extract, of whom we have
-an account in Cicero[46], and other heathen writers; but there is no
-mention of them in scripture. This honourable post was never conferred
-on the Jews; nevertheless, we read of Zaccheus, who is said to have been
-one _of the chief among the publicans_, though a Jew, Luke xix. 2. the
-meaning of which is, that he was the chief officer in a particular port,
-who had other publicans under him; whose business was, constantly to
-attend at the ports, and take an account of the taxes that were to be
-paid there, by those of whom they were exacted. Of this latter sort was
-Matthew, who is called the publican, _i. e._ one of the lowest officers
-concerned in the revenue, Matt. x. 3. compared with chap. ix. 9. These
-were usually very profligate in their morals, and inclined to oppress
-those of whom they received taxes, probably to gain advantage to
-themselves; and were universally hated by the Jews.
-
-There was another sort of men often mentioned in the New Testament, that
-made the greatest pretensions to religion, but were most remote from it,
-and justly branded with the character of hypocrites, to wit, the
-Pharisees, who made themselves popular by their external shew of piety.
-There is not, indeed, the least hint of there being such a sect amongst
-the Jews before the captivity; though, it is true, the prophet Isaiah,
-Isa. lxv. 5. speaks of a sort of people that much resembled them, which
-said, _Stand by thyself, come not near to me, for I am holier than
-thou_; from whence, it seems, that there were some of like principles in
-his day; unless we suppose that this scripture had its accomplishment
-when the sect of the Pharisees appeared in the world in a following age;
-which was not long after the reign of Alexander the great[47], between
-two and three hundred years before our Saviour’s time. They are
-generally described in scripture, as pretending to be more expert than
-all others in the knowledge of the law; but, in reality, making it void,
-by establishing those oral traditions, which were contrary to the true
-intent and meaning thereof, and, as setting up their own righteousness,
-and depending on the performance of some lesser duties of the law, as
-that from whence they expected a right to eternal life. These were the
-greatest enemies, in their conduct, as well as their doctrines, to
-Christ, and his gospel.
-
-There was another sect that joined with the Pharisees, in persecuting
-and opposing our Saviour; though otherwise they did not, in the least,
-accord with one another; and these were the Sadducees, who appeared in
-the world about the same time with the Pharisees: These were men
-generally reputed as profligate in their morals, and for that reason, as
-much hated by the common people, as the Pharisees were caressed by them.
-They adhered to the Philosophy of Epicurus; and took occasion, from
-thence to deny the resurrection, angels, and spirits, as they are said
-to do in scripture, Acts xxiii. 8. It is true they did not desire to be
-thought irreligious, though they were really so; yet our Saviour
-describes them, as well as the Pharisees, as _hypocrites_, and
-inveterate enemies of the gospel.
-
-There was another sort of people sometimes mentioned in the New
-Testament, _viz._ the Samaritans, who separated from the Jews, out of a
-private pique, and built a distinct temple on mount Gerizzim[48]; and
-for this they were excommunicated by the Jews, and universally hated, so
-that there was no intercourse between them, John iv. 9, especially in
-those things in which one might be said to be obliged to the other:
-These did very much corrupt the worship of God, so that Christ charges
-them with _worshipping they knew not what_, ver. 12. and it is observed
-concerning them, after the ten tribes were carried captive into Assyria,
-and they who were left in the land _feared not the Lord_, that he _sent
-lions amongst them_, 2 Kings xvii. 25. upon which occasion a priest was
-dismissed by the king of Assyria, under pretence of _instructing them in
-the manner of the God of the land_; and he erected a strange medly of
-religion, consisting partly of those corruptions therein, which had been
-practised by the Israelites for some ages past, and partly of the
-Heathen idolatry, which they brought from Assyria; upon which account it
-is said, _They feared the Lord, and served their own gods after the
-manner of the nations whom they carried away from thence_, 2 Kings xvii.
-33.
-
-There is another sort of men, mentioned in the New Testament, who are
-called Herodians: These seem to have been a political rather than a
-religious sect. Some of the Fathers, indeed, think that they were so
-called because they complimented Herod with the character of the
-Messiah[49], who, as they supposed, would be a very flourishing prince,
-who was to reign over them, according to the ancient prediction of the
-patriarch Jacob, after _the sceptre was departed from Judah_: But this
-seems to be a very improbable conjecture; for _Herod the Great_ was
-dead, before we read any thing of the Herodians in scripture: And the
-Jews had an opinion, about this time, that the Messiah should never die,
-John xii. 34. Therefore, the most probable opinion is, that these
-Herodians were, in their first rise, the favourites and courtiers of
-Herod, and disposed to give into any alterations that he was inclined to
-make in the religious or civil affairs of the Jews[50]. By what is said
-concerning them in scripture, it is supposed, that they were, for thy
-most part, Sadducees; for if we compare Matt. xvi. 6. with Mark viii.
-15. our Saviour warns his disciples upon the same occasion, to wit,
-their having _forgot to take bread_, to _beware of the leaven of the
-Pharisees and of the Sadducees_; as the former evangelist expresses it,
-and _of the leaven of Herod_, viz. the Herodians, as it is in the
-latter: Now, though these Herodians, or court-parasites, might take
-their first rise in the reign of Herod the Great; yet there was a party
-of men succeeded them, who held the same principles, and were disposed
-to compliment their governors with their civil and religious rights; but
-they more especially distinguished themselves, by their propagating
-principles of loyalty among the people: And, whereas the Jews, under a
-pretence that they were a free nation, were very unwilling to give
-tribute to Cesar, (though they would not venture their lives as Judas of
-Galilee, and some others had done, by refusing it;) these Herodians laid
-it down as an article of their faith, that they ought to pay tribute to
-Cesar; and therefore, when they came with this question to our Saviour,
-_Is it lawful to give tribute to Cesar, or not?_ Matt. xxii. 17. he soon
-discovered their hypocrisy, and knew the design of that question as he
-might easily do from their being Herodians. Thus concerning the various
-characters of persons mentioned in scripture, as subservient to our
-understanding thereof.
-
-(8.) After all these helps for the understanding the sense of scripture,
-there is one more which is universally to be observed; namely, that no
-sense is to be given of any text, but what is agreeable to the analogy
-of faith, has a tendency to advance the divine perfections, stain the
-pride of all flesh, in the sight of God, and, promote practical
-godliness in all its branches.
-
-_1st_, Scripture must be explained agreeably to the analogy of faith. It
-is supposed that there is something we depend on, which we can prove to
-be the faith of scripture, or demonstrably founded upon it: This we are
-bound to adhere to; otherwise we must be charged with scepticism, and
-concluded not to know where to set our feet in matters of religion. Now,
-so far as our faith herein is founded on scripture, every sense we give
-of it must be agreeable thereunto; otherwise we do as it were suppose
-that the word of God in one place destroys what, in another, it
-establishes, which would be a great reflection on that which is the
-standard and rule of our faith. I do not hereby intend, that our
-sentiments are to be a rule of faith to others, any farther than as they
-are evidently contained in, or deduced from scripture: Yet that which we
-believe, as thinking it to be the sense of scripture, is so far a rule
-to us, that, whatever sense we give of any other scripture, must be
-agreeable to it; or else, we must be content to acknowledge, that we are
-mistaken in some of those things which we called articles of faith, as
-founded thereon.
-
-_2dly_, No sense given of scripture, must be contrary to the divine
-perfections: Thus, when human passions are ascribed to God, such as
-grief, fear, desire, wrath, fury, indignation, _&c._ these are not to be
-explained, as when the same passions are ascribed to men, in which sense
-they argue weakness and imperfection. And when any phrase of scripture
-seems to represent him defective in power; as in Jer. xiv. 9. ‘Why
-shouldst thou be as a man astonied, as a mighty man that cannot save?’
-we are to understand it as a charge that would be unjustly brought
-against God, if he did not appear in the behalf of his people, by those
-who are disposed to reproach and find fault with the dispensations of
-his providence: But, since we have taken occasion, in explaining many
-scriptures and doctrines founded upon them, to apply this rule; I shall
-content myself, at present, with the bare mentioning of it.
-
-_3dly_, We are to explain scripture in such a way, as that it may have a
-tendency to promote practical godliness in all its branches; which is
-the main end and design thereof. Many instances might be given, in which
-this rule is to be applied; as when we are said, in Rom. vii. 14. _not_
-to be _under the law, but under grace_; we are not to understand this as
-though we were discharged from an obligation to yield obedience to
-whatever God commands; but either, as denoting our being delivered from
-the condemning sentence of the law; or, from the ceremonial law, to
-which the gospel-dispensation, which is a display of the grace of God,
-is always opposed. And when it is said in Eccl. vii. 16. ‘Be not
-righteous overmuch, neither make thyself overwise: Why shouldst thou
-destroy thyself?’ We are not to understand thereby, that there is any
-danger of being too holy, or strict in the performance of religious
-duties; but as forbidding an hypocritical appearing to be more righteous
-than we are, or entertaining a proud and vain-glorious conceit of our
-own righteousness, because we perform some duties of religion.
-
-Again, there are other scriptures which are sometimes perverted, as
-though they intimated, that prayer, or other religious duties, were not
-incumbent on wicked men; as when it is said, in Prov. xxi. 27. _The
-sacrifice of the wicked is an abomination to the Lord_: And, chap.
-xxviii. 9. that his prayer is so, or that he has nothing to do with
-those duties; because it is said to such, in Psal. l. 16. _What hast
-thou to do to declare my statutes, or, that thou shouldst take my
-covenant in thy mouth._ But these scriptures do not imply, that they are
-not obliged to perform religious duties; but, that it is contrary to the
-holiness of God, and a great provocation to him when they regard not the
-frame of spirit with which they perform them, who draw nigh to him with
-their lips, when their heart is far from him, or lay claim to the
-blessings of the covenant of grace, while continuing in open hostility
-against him. To apply this rule fully, would be to go through the whole
-scripture, and to shew how all the great doctrines of religion which are
-founded upon it, are conformed thereunto; But this we have endeavoured
-to do in all those instances in which we have had occasion to give the
-sense thereof; and therefore shall content ourselves with this brief
-specimen, and leave it to every one to improve upon it in his daily
-meditations, in enquiring into the sense of scripture, in order to his
-being farther established in that religion which is founded thereon.
-
-Footnote 32:
-
- _Many instances of this might be produced, viz. Gen. iii. 15. instead
- of, it shall bruise thy head, they render it she; by which they
- understand the Virgin Mary, shall bruise thy head, that is, the
- serpent’s. And, Gen. xlviii. 16. instead of, my name shall be named on
- them, which are the words of Jacob, concerning Joseph’s sons; it is
- rendered, my name shall be invoked, or called upon by them; which
- favours the doctrine of invocation of saints. And, in Psal. xcix. 5.
- instead of exalt the Lord thy God, and worship at his holy hill, they
- read, worship his footstool; which gives countenance to their error of
- paying divine adoration to places or things. And, in Heb. xi. 21.
- instead of, Jacob worshipped leaning on the top of his staff, they
- render it, he worshipped the top of his staff. And, in Heb. xiii. 16.
- instead of, with such sacrifices God is well pleased, they render it,
- with such sacrifices God is merited; which they make use of to
- establish the merit of good works._
-
-Footnote 33:
-
- _There is indeed, one verse in Jeremiah, chap. x. 11. that is written
- in Chaldee; which, it is probable, they did not, at that time, well
- understand; but the prophet, by this, intimates to them, that they
- should be carried into a country where that language should be used;
- and therefore the Holy Ghost furnishes them with a message, that they
- were to deliver to the Chaldeans, from the Lord, in their own
- language. The gods, that have not made the heavens and the earth, even
- they shall perish from the earth, and from these heavens._
-
-Footnote 34:
-
- _See Vol. I. Quest. IV. p. 69, & seq._
-
-Footnote 35:
-
- _See Quest. CLIX, CLX._
-
-Footnote 36:
-
- Θεοῦ και ἐσμεν συνεργο.
-
-Footnote 37:
-
- Vide T. Williams on the Song of Solomon.
-
-Footnote 38:
-
- Vide Table of the Order of the Prophecies. Vol. I. p. 55.
-
-Footnote 39:
-
- _The word is שלו, which being neither a root to any other word, nor
- derived from any other root, by which the sense of Hebrew words is
- generally known, nor found any where in scripture, excepting in those
- two or three places which refer to this particular dispensation of
- providence; it is an hard matter to determine the sense of it, without
- comparing these two scriptures together.—It occurs Numb. xi. 31, 32.
- Exod. xvi. 13. Psa. cv. 40._
-
-Footnote 40:
-
- _See the epistle to the Hebrews, chap. v. to the x. inclusive, and 2
- Cor. x. 1-6._
-
-Footnote 41:
-
- _See Vol. I. p. 78._
-
-Footnote 42:
-
- _See Lightfoot’s Harmony of the Four Evangelists. And his Harmony of
- the New Testament, Vol. I. p. 268._
-
-Footnote 43:
-
- _This is called Synecdoche._
-
-Footnote 44:
-
- _This is called a Metonymy._
-
-Footnote 45:
-
- _See more of this in an ingenious discourse on this subject by Smith
- in Solomon’s portraiture of old age._
-
-Footnote 46:
-
- _Vid. Cic. in Orat. pro Planc. florem equitum Romanorum ornamentum
- civitatis, firmamentum reipublicæ publicanorum ordine contineri. And
- in his oration, ad Quintum Fratrem, he has many things concerning the
- dignity of the publicans, and their advantage to the commonwealth:
- accordingly he says, Si publicanis adversemur ordinem do nobis optime
- meritum, & per nos cum republica conjunctum, & a nobis, & a republica
- disjungimus. And, in his familiar epistles, Lib. xix. Epist. x. he
- calls them, Ordinem sibi semper commendatissimum; & ad Atticum, Lib.
- vii. Epist. vii. he says, Cæsari amicissimos fuisse publicanos._
-
-Footnote 47:
-
- _See Joseph. Antiquit. Lib. xiii. Cap. ix. And we have an account of
- their pride and insolence in the same author, chap. xviii. and of the
- great disturbance that they made in civil governments, if chief
- magistrates did not please them._
-
-Footnote 48:
-
- _See Joseph. Antiquit. Lib. xi. Cap. viii._
-
-Footnote 49:
-
- _See Tertull. in præscrip. adv. Hær. Cap. xlv. and Epiphanius, in Hær.
- Cap. xx._
-
-Footnote 50:
-
- _That Herod was disposed to make alterations in the Jews religion, by
- adding to it a mixture of several rites and ceremonies, taken from the
- Heathen, is affirmed by some. See Cunæus de Rep. Hœb. Lib. i Cap. xvi.
- who quotes Josephus as saying, that he altered the ancient laws of
- their country._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLVIII., CLIX., CLX.
-
-
- QUEST. CLVIII. _By whom is the word of God to be preached?_
-
- ANSW. The word of God is to be preached only by such as are
- sufficiently gifted, and also duly approved and called to that
- office.
-
- QUEST. CLIX. _How is the word of God to be preached by those that
- are called thereto?_
-
- ANSW. They that are called to labour in the ministry of the word,
- are to preach sound doctrine, diligently; in season, and out of
- season; plainly, not in the enticing words of man’s wisdom, but in
- demonstration of the spirit, and power, faithfully, making known the
- whole council of God; wisely, applying themselves to the necessities
- and capacities of the hearers; zealously, with fervent love to God,
- and the souls of his people; sincerely, aiming at his glory, and
- their conversion, edification, and salvation.
-
- QUEST. CLX. _What is required of those that hear the word preached?_
-
- ANSW. It is required of those that hear the word preached, that they
- attend upon it with diligence, preparation, and prayer, examine what
- they hear, by the scripture, receive the truth with faith, love,
- meekness, and readiness of mind, as the word of God; meditate, and
- confer of it; hide it in their heart, and bring forth the fruit of
- it in their lives.
-
-Having considered, what method we are to take, in our private station,
-or capacity, to understand the word of God; we have great reason to be
-thankful, that he has ordained that it should be publicly preached, or
-explained, as a farther means conducive to this end. And accordingly we
-are led, in these answers, to shew, who they are that God has called to
-this work; and how such ought to perform it; and with what frame of
-spirit we ought to attend on it.
-
-I. The persons by whom the word of God is to be preached; and these are
-only such, whom he has qualified with gifts sufficient for it; and they
-ought also to be duly approved of, when called hereunto, by those among
-whom the providence of God directs them to exercise their ministry.
-
-1. Concerning the qualifications which are necessary, in those that are
-employed in preaching the gospel. Here it is to be observed in general,
-that they must be sufficiently gifted for it; which is so evident, that
-it would be unreasonable for any one to deny it, since no one is to
-attempt any thing that he is not able to perform; especially if it be a
-work of the highest importance, and the unskilful managing thereof may
-have a tendency to do prejudice to, rather than advance the interest of
-Christ. It would be a reflection on the wisdom of a master, to employ
-his servant in a work that he has no capacity for, or entrust him with
-an affair that is like to miscarry in his hands. In like manner, we are
-not to suppose that God calls any to preach the gospel, but those whom
-he has, in some measure, furnished for it; though, it is true, the best
-may say, as the apostle does, _We are not sufficient of ourselves, to
-think any thing as of ourselves; but our sufficiency is of God_: Yet he
-adds, that they who are employed by him in this work, are made _able
-ministers of the New-Testament_, 2 Cor. iii. 5, 6. It is, indeed, a
-difficult matter to determine who are sufficiently gifted for it; the
-work being so great and our natural and acquired endowments very small,
-if compared with it. But that we may briefly consider this matter, it
-may be observed,
-
-(1.) That some qualifications are moral, without which, they who preach
-the gospel, would be a reproach to it. These respect, more especially,
-the conversation of those who are engaged in this work, which ought to
-be blameless and exemplary; not only inoffensive, but such as they, whom
-they are called to instruct, may safely copy after. Thus the apostle
-makes a solemn appeal, when he says, _Ye are witnesses, and God also,
-how holily, and justly, and unblameably we behaved ourselves among you
-that believe_, 1 Thess. ii. 10. And he advises the Corinthians to be
-_followers of him_, 1 Cor. iv. 16. and commends the church elsewhere,
-for conforming themselves to his example, so far as it was agreeable to
-that of our Saviour, 1 Thess. i. 6. in which respect alone the best of
-men are to be followed, 1 Cor. xi. 1. Now this supposes that they have
-that which we call the moral qualifications, necessary to the work of
-the ministry, without which, a person will do more hurt, by his example,
-than he can do good by his doctrine; inasmuch as he will lay a
-stumbling-block in the way of Christians, who would be ready to say, as
-the apostle does to some of those who were teachers among the Jews;
-_Thou which teachest another, teachest thou not thyself?_ Rom. ii. 21.
-or, dost thou live in the practice of those crimes, which thou
-condemnest in others, and exhortest them to avoid? This qualification
-therefore, must be supposed to be necessary; and, indeed, an
-experimental knowledge of divine truths, will greatly furnish them to
-communicate the same to others, and spirit them, with zeal, in using
-their utmost endeavours, that they may be made partakers of the same
-experiences which they themselves, have been favoured with.
-Nevertheless, we are not to suppose that this alone will warrant a
-person’s engaging in the work of the ministry; for then every one who
-has experienced the grace of God, might attempt it, how unable soever he
-be to manage it to the glory of God, and the edification of the church.
-Therefore,
-
-(2.) There are other qualifications more directly subservient hereunto.
-These the apostle speaks of, when he describes a gospel-minister as one
-who is _apt to teach_, 1 Tim. iii. 2. and able _rightly to divide the
-word of truth_, 2 Tim. ii. 15. and, by _sound doctrine_, to exhort and
-_convince gainsayers_, Tit. i. 9. They who take upon them to explain
-scripture, and apply it to the consciences of men, ought, certainly,
-with great diligence and hard study, to use their utmost endeavours to
-understand it. And to this we may add, that they ought to be able to
-reason, or infer just consequences from it; whereby they may appear to
-be well versed in those great doctrines, on which our faith and religion
-is founded. This, indeed, must be confessed to be a work of difficulty;
-and, they who think themselves best furnished in this respect, will have
-reason to conclude, as the apostle says, that they _know but in part,
-and prophesy in part_, 1 Cor. xiii. 9.
-
-To this we may add, that there are various parts of learning, that may
-be reckoned, in some respects, ornamental, which would tend to secure
-him that preaches the gospel from contempt; and others, that are more
-immediately subservient to our understanding scripture, namely, a being
-well acquainted with those languages, in which the Old and New Testament
-were written, and able to make critical remarks on the style and mode of
-expression used in each of them, and a being conversant in the writings
-of those, whether in our own or other languages, who have clearly and
-judiciously explained the doctrines of the gospel, or led us into the
-knowledge of those things that have a tendency to illustrate them. And,
-inasmuch as preaching contains in it an address to the judgments and
-consciences of men, I cannot but reckon it a qualification necessary in
-order hereunto, that all those parts of learning that have a tendency to
-enlarge the reasoning faculties, or help us to see the connexion or
-dependence of one thing upon another, should be attended to, that we may
-hereby be fitted to convey our ideas with judgment and method. These
-qualifications are to be acquired. We pass by those that are natural, to
-wit, a sufficient degree of parts, and such an elocution as is necessary
-for those who are to speak to the edification of an audience, without
-which all other endeavours to furnish themselves for this work, will be
-to very little purpose.
-
-2. They, by whom the word of God is to be preached, are to be duly
-approved and called to that office. A person may think himself qualified
-for it without sufficient ground; therefore this matter ought to be
-submitted to the judgment of others, by whose approbation he is to
-engage in this work. The first thing that is to be enquired into, is;
-whether he is called to it by God, not only by his providence, which
-opens a door for his preaching the gospel, but by the success which he
-is pleased to grant to his endeavours, in order to his being duly
-qualified for it? Notwithstanding, since persons may be mistaken, and
-think they have a divine call hereunto, when they have not; it is
-necessary that they should be approved by those who are sufficient
-judges of this matter, that they may not be exposed to temptation, so as
-to engage in a work which they are not deemed sufficient for. Not that
-it is in the power of ministers, or churches, especially according to
-the present situation of things, to hinder an unqualified person who has
-too high thoughts of his own abilities, from preaching to a number of
-people that is disposed to hear him; yet no one is bound or ought, in
-prudence, or faithfulness to God or man, to own any to be a minister,
-whose gifts do not render him fit to be approved; nor, on the other
-hand, can any judgment be passed on this matter, without sufficient
-acquaintance or conversation with him, that thereby it may be known
-whether he be a workman that needeth not to be ashamed, and able rightly
-to divide the word of truth.
-
-Here, I think, there is some difference between the approbation that
-ought to be passed on those who first engage in the work of preaching,
-and the call to the pastoral office; the latter supposes the former; and
-therefore a person ought first to be approved of, as fit to preach the
-gospel, in the opinion of those who are allowed to be competent judges
-hereof, which is necessary to his entrance on that work with reputation
-and acceptance; without which, he is to stand and fall to his own
-master, and acquiesce in the approbation of those who are willing to sit
-under his ministry; while others are not bound (as being destitute of
-sufficient evidence) to conclude him furnished for, or called to it.
-
-As to the call to the pastoral office; though no one has a right to
-impose pastors on churches; yet it is the indispensible duty of every
-church not barely to enquire; whether the person, whom they have a
-desire to call to that office, be such an one as is approved by the
-greater number of them; but, whether the step they are taking herein, is
-such as has a tendency to secure their reputation as a church of Christ,
-without exposing them to the just blame and censure of others, who are
-in the same faith and order with themselves? that they may do nothing
-that is in the least offensive, or that has a tendency to weaken the
-interest of Christ in his churches. It is true, no one can put a stop to
-their proceeding, if they are resolved to set over them one that is not
-only scandalous in his conversation, but inclined to preach what is
-subversive of the fundamental articles of our faith; yet they cannot
-hereby act as a church that has obtained mercy from God to be faithful,
-or engage in this important work with judgment. It is therefore
-expedient, that churches should set over them ministers approved by
-others as sound in the faith, as well as reckoned, by themselves, able
-to preach to their edification; and, in order hereunto, it is expedient
-that some ministers, and members of other churches, should be present at
-their investiture in that office, to which they have called them, not
-barely as being witnesses of their faith and order, in common with the
-whole assembly, but as testifying hereby their approbation of their
-proceedings, and giving ground to the world to conclude, that that
-person, whom they have called, is owned by others, as well as
-themselves.
-
-And, in order thereunto, it is necessary that ministers, who are to join
-in begging the blessing of God on their proceedings, and giving a word
-of exhortation to them, should be satisfied concerning the fitness of
-him whom the church has called to that office; which is supposed by
-their being present, and bearing their respective parts therein. This, I
-think, is intended by that expression of the apostle, in which he
-advises Timothy, _to lay hands suddenly on no man; nor to be partaker of
-other men’s sins; but to keep himself pure_, 1 Tim. v. 22. that is,
-without guilt, as being active in approving those that he ought not to
-approve of. I do not, by this, take the power out of the hands of the
-church, of setting a pastor over themselves; but only hereby argue the
-expediency of their consulting the honour of the gospel herein, and
-acting so, as that they may have the approbation of other churches in
-that solemnity.
-
-II. We are now to consider how the word of God is to be preached by
-those who are qualified, approved, and called thereunto; and that, both
-as to doctrines to be insisted on, and the manner in which they are to
-be delivered.
-
-1. What they are to preach, ought to be sound doctrine, and that not
-barely what is deemed to be so by him that preaches it; since there is
-scarce any one but thinks himself sound in the faith, how remote soever
-his sentiments may be from the true intent and meaning of the word of
-God. But hereby we understand those doctrines which are so called by the
-apostle, Tit. i. 9. such as are agreeable to that _form of sound words_
-which is transmitted to us by divine inspiration, 2 Tim. i. 13. _the
-doctrine which is according to godliness_, 1 Tim. vi. 3. as having a
-tendency to recommend and promote it. This is styled elsewhere, _The
-faith once delivered to the saints_; which is not only to be preached,
-but _earnestly contended for_, Jude, ver. 3. These are such doctrines as
-have a tendency to advance the glory of God, and do good to the souls of
-men, that are relished and savoured by sincere Christians, who know the
-truth, as it is in Jesus; and are _nourished up_, as the apostle says,
-_in the words of faith and of good doctrine_, 1 Tim. iv. 6. This, as it
-has a peculiar reference to the gospel, and the way of salvation
-contained therein, is called _preaching Christ_, Col. i. 18. or a
-_determining to know nothing_; that is, to appear to know, or to
-discover nothing, _save Jesus Christ and him crucified_, 1 Cor. ii. 2.
-or deliver nothing but what tends to set forth the person and offices of
-Christ, either directly, or in its remote tendency thereunto. Our
-Saviour advises the church, to _take heed what they hear_, Mark iv. 24.
-as signifying, that we are to receive no doctrines but what are
-agreeable to the gospel. And this is a sufficient intimation that such
-only are to be preached, the contrary to which method of preaching, the
-apostle calls _perverting the gospel of Christ_; and adds, that _though
-we, or an angel from heaven, preach any other gospel than that which we
-have preached, let him be accursed_, Gal. i. 7, 8. These are the only
-doctrines that God will own, because they tend to set forth his
-perfections, as they were at first communicated by him for that end.
-
-2. We are now to consider the manner in which these doctrines are to be
-preached. This is laid down in several heads,
-
-(1.) Diligently and constantly, in season and out of season, considering
-this work as the main business of life, that which a minister is to
-_give himself wholly to_, 1 Tim. iv. 15. and all his studies are to be
-subservient to this end. He is to rejoice in all opportunities, in which
-he may lead those whom he is called to minister to, in the way to
-heaven, and be willing to lay out his strength, and those abilities
-which God has given him, to his glory. Thus the apostle says, _I would
-very gladly spend, and be spent for you_, 2 Cor. xii. 14. This argues,
-that the word is not barely to be preached occasionally, as though it
-were to be hid from the world, or only imparted, when the leisure or
-inclination of those who are called thereto, will admit of it. The
-character which the apostle gives of gospel-ministers, is, that they
-_watch for the souls of those to whom they minister_; that is, they wait
-for the best and fittest seasons to inculcate divine truths to them.
-This is particularly expressed _by preaching the word_, and _being
-instant in season, and out of season, reproving, rebuking, and exhorting
-with all long-suffering and doctrine_, 2 Tim. iv. 2. which implies, that
-it ought to be preached, not only on that day, which God has sanctified
-for public worship, of which preaching is a part; but on all occasions,
-when they are apprehensive that the people are desirous to receive and
-hear it.
-
-(2.) It is to be preached plainly. Thus the apostle says, _We use great
-plainness of speech_, 2 Cor. iii. 12. This method of preaching is
-inconsistent with the using unintelligible expressions: which neither
-they nor their hearers well understand. The style ought to be familiar,
-and adapted to the meanest capacities; which may be done without
-exposing it to contempt. And it is particularly observed, that it ought
-not to be, _in the enticing words of man’s wisdom, but in demonstration
-of the Spirit and of power_; as the apostle says concerning his method
-of preaching, 1 Cor. ii. 14. The great design hereof, is, not to please
-the ear with well turned periods, or rhetorical expressions, or an
-affectation of shewing skill in human learning, in those instances in
-which it is not directly adapted to edification, or rendered subservient
-to the explaining of scripture. A demonstrative way of preaching, is
-not, indeed, opposed to this plainness that is here intended but it is
-the _demonstration of the Spirit_; which, though it differs from that
-which the apostles were favoured with (who were led into the doctrines
-they preached, by immediate inspiration;) yet we are to endeavour to
-prove, by strength of argument, that what we deliver is agreeable to the
-mind and will of God therein; and yet to do this with that plainness of
-address, as those who desire to awaken the consciences of men, and give
-them the fullest conviction, proving from the scripture, that what we
-say is true. This account the apostle gives of his ministry, 2 Cor. iv.
-2. as what was most adapted to answer the valuable ends thereof.
-
-(3.) The word of God is to be preached faithfully; which supposes that
-they who are called to this work, have the souls of those whom they
-preach to, committed to their care; so that, if they perish for want of
-due instruction, they are, for this neglect, found guilty before God.
-Thus God says to the prophet, _Son of man, I have made thee a watchman
-to the house Israel_, Ezek. iii. 17, &c. and therefore he was to _give
-them warning_, which, if he did, he _delivered his_ own _soul_; but if
-not, God intimates to him that _their blood should be required at his
-hand_. This supposes that they are accountable to God for the doctrines
-they deliver; for which reason the apostle speaks of them, as _stewards
-of the mysteries of God_, of whom it was _required that_ they should _be
-found faithful_, 1 Cor. iv. 1, 2. and, as a particular instance thereof,
-he makes a solemn appeal to the elders of the church of Ephesus, that he
-had _kept back nothing that was profitable unto them_, nor _shunned to
-declare all the counsel of God_, Acts xx. 27. This faithfulness in the
-exercise of the ministry, is opposed to their having respect of persons
-from some obligation which they are laid under to them, or the prospect
-of some advantage that they expect from them, which makes them sparing
-in reproving those who are blame-worthy, for fear of giving offence, or
-losing their friendship. It is also opposed to preaching those doctrines
-which are suited to the humours and corruptions of men, and neglecting
-to insist on the most necessary and important truths; because they
-apprehend that they will be entertained with disgust. This is to act as
-though their main design were to please men rather than God. And it is
-very remote from the conduct of the prophet Isaiah; who, when he was
-informed that the people desired that the _prophets_ would _prophesy
-smooth things_ to them, and _cause the holy one of Israel to cease from
-before them_, Isa. xxx. 10, 11. he takes occasion to represent God as
-the holy one of Israel, in the following words, and to denounce the
-judgments which he would bring upon them, how unwilling soever they were
-to receive this doctrine from him.
-
-And, to this we may add, that they are to be reckoned no other than
-unfaithful in their method of preaching, who, under a pretence of
-pressing the observance of moral duties, set aside the great doctrines
-of faith in Christ, and justification by his righteousness, which is the
-only foundation of our acceptance in his sight. Concerning which we may
-say, without being supposed to have light thoughts of moral virtue; that
-the one ought, in no wise to exclude the other. Neither can they be
-reckoned faithful, who shun to declare those important truths, on which
-the glory of God, and the comfort of his people depend; and therefore,
-if morality be rightly preached, it ought to be inculcated from
-evangelical motives, and connected with other truths that have a
-tendency more directly to set forth the Mediator’s glory; which ought
-not to be laid aside as controverted doctrines, which all cannot
-acquiesce in, as supposing that the tempers, or rather the ignorance and
-corruption of men, will not bear them.
-
-(4.) The word of God is to be preached wisely. This wisdom consists,
-
-[1.] In the choice of those subjects, that have the greatest tendency to
-promote the interest of Christ, and the good of mankind in general.
-There are many doctrines which must be allowed to be true, that are not
-of equal importance with others; nor so much adapted to promote the work
-of salvation, and the glory of God therein. There are some doctrines
-which the apostle calls _the present truth_, 2 Pet. i. 12. in which he
-instructs those to whom he writes. Accordingly, those truths are to be
-frequently inculcated, which are most opposite to the dictates of
-corrupt nature and carnal reason; because of their holiness,
-spirituality, beauty, and glory. Again, those doctrines are to be
-explained and supported by the most solid and judicious methods of
-reasoning, which are very much perverted and undermined by the subtle
-enemies of our salvation. And whatever truth is necessary to be known,
-as subservient to godliness, which multitudes are ignorant of, this is
-to be frequently insisted on, that they may not be destroyed for lack of
-knowledge; and those duties, which we are most prone to neglect, in
-which the life and power of religion discovers itself, these are to be
-inculcated as a means to promote practical godliness.
-
-[2.] The wisdom of those that preach the gospel farther appears, in
-suiting their discourses to the capacities of their hearers; of whom, it
-must be supposed,
-
-_1st_, That some are ignorant and weak in the faith who cannot easily
-take in those truths that are, with much more ease, apprehended and
-received by others; for their sake the word of God is to be preached
-with the greatest plainness and familiarity of style. Thus the apostle
-speaks of some who needed to be _fed with milk_, being _unskilful in the
-word of righteousness_, and, as it were, _babes_ in knowledge, Heb. v.
-12-14. whereas others, that he compares to _strong men_, were fed with
-_meat_, that was agreeable to them. By which he doth not intend, as I
-apprehend, a difference of doctrines, as though some were to have
-nothing preached to them but moral duties: while others were to have the
-doctrines of justification, and faith in Christ, &c. preached to them;
-but rather a different way of managing them, respecting the closeness
-and connexion of those methods of reasoning by which they are
-established which some are better able to improve and receive advantage
-by, than others.
-
-_2dly_, Some must be supposed to be wavering, and in danger of being
-perverted from the faith of the gospel; for their sakes the most strong
-and cogent arguments are to be made use of, and well managed, in order
-to their establishment therein, and those objections that are generally
-brought against it, answered.
-
-_3dly_, Others are lukewarm and indifferent in matters of religion;
-these need to have awakening truths, insisted on with great seriousness
-and affection, suited to the occasion thereof.
-
-_4thly_, Others are assaulted with temptations, and subject to many
-doubts and fears, about the state of their souls, and the truth of
-grace; or, it may be, their consciences are burdened with some scruples,
-about the lawfulness or expediency of things, and some hesitation of
-mind, whether what they engage in is a sin or duty. Now, that the word
-may be adapted to their condition, the wiles of Satan are to be
-discovered, cases of conscience resolved, evidences of the truth of
-grace, or the marks of sincerity and hypocrisy are to be plainly laid
-down, and the fulness, freeness, and riches of divine grace, through a
-Mediator, to be set forth as the only expedient to fence them against
-their doubts and fears, and keep them from, giving way to despair.
-
-_5thly_, The word of God is to be preached zealously, with fervent love
-to God, and the souls of his people. Thus it is said, in Acts xviii. 25.
-concerning Apollos, that _being fervent in the Spirit, he spake and
-taught diligently in the things of the Lord_. This zeal doth not consist
-in a passionate, furious address, arising from personal pique and
-prejudice; or, in exposing men for their weakness; or expressing an
-undue resentment of some injuries received from them; but it is such a
-zeal, that is consistent with fervent love to God, and the souls of men.
-The love which is to be expressed to God, discovers itself, in the
-concern they have for the advancing his truth, name, and glory, and the
-promoting his interest in the world, which is infinitely preferable to
-all other interests; and their love to the souls of men induceth them to
-preach to them, as considering that they have not only the same nature
-in common with themselves, in which they must either be happy or
-miserable, for ever: But they are liable to the same infirmities,
-difficulties, dangers, and spiritual enemies, which should incline those
-that preach the gospel, to express the greatest sympathy with them in
-their troubles, while they are using their utmost endeavours to help
-them in their way to heaven. They are to be considered as being, by
-nature, in a lost, undone condition; and the success of the gospel, as
-being the only means to prevent their perishing for ever. And, with
-respect to those, in whom the word of God is made effectual for their
-conversion, ministers are to endeavour to build them up in their holy
-faith, as those who, they hope, will be their _crown of rejoicing in the
-presence of our Lord Jesus Christ, at his coming_, 1 Thess. ii. 19.
-
-_6thly_, The word is to be preached sincerely, aiming at the glory of
-God, and the conversion, edification, and salvation of his people.
-Accordingly,
-
-_1st_, Ministers must firmly believe the doctrines they deliver, and not
-preach them because they are the generally-received opinion of the
-churches; for that is hardly consistent with sincerity; at least, it
-argues a great deal of weakness, or want of judgment, as though they
-were wavering about those important truths, which they think in
-compliance with custom, they are obliged to communicate.
-
-_2dly_, They must have no by and unwarrantable ends in preaching,
-namely, the gaining the esteem of men, or promoting their own secular
-interest. Though what the apostle says be true, that the _labourer is
-worthy of his hire_, and, _they that preach the gospel, must live of the
-gospel_, 1 Cor. ix. 14. Yet this ought not to be the principal end
-inducing them hereunto; for that is like what is threatened against the
-remains of the house of Eli, who were exposed to such a servile and
-mercenary temper, as to _crouch for a piece of silver; and to say, put
-me, I pray thee, into one of the priest’s offices, that I may eat a
-piece of bread_, 1 Sam. ii. 36. The glory of God is to be the principal
-end of the ministry; and, accordingly, they are to endeavour to approve
-themselves to him in the whole of their conduct therein. Thus the
-apostle speaks of himself, as _not seeking to please men; which, if I
-do_, says he, _I should not be the servant of Christ_, Gal. i. 10. This
-method of preaching will be a means to beget, in the minds of men, the
-highest esteem of him. And, more especially, the glory of God is to be
-set forth as it shines in the face of Jesus Christ, or discovers itself
-in the work of salvation, brought about by him. This is the only
-expedient to render the preaching of the gospel conducive to answer the
-most valuable ends.
-
-And, inasmuch as next to the glory of God, the conversion, edification,
-and salvation of men, is to be aimed at; such a method of preaching is
-to be used, as is best adapted hereunto. Therefore,
-
-(_1st_,) In order to the promoting the conversion of sinners, they are
-to be led into a sense of their guilt and misery, while in an
-unconverted state; together with the necessity of their believing on
-Christ, to the salvation of the soul; as also the methods prescribed in
-the gospel for their recovery, and escaping the wrath they are liable
-to. They are to be made acquainted with the gospel-call, in which
-sinners are invited to come to Christ, and his willingness to receive
-all that repent and believe in him. And, since this is the peculiar work
-of the Spirit, they are to pray and hope for his grace, to give success
-to his ordinances, in which they wait for his salvation. And if God is
-pleased to set home these truths on the consciences of men, and enable
-them to comply with this call, then the word is preached in a right
-manner, and their labour is not in vain in the Lord.
-
-(_2dly_,) As for those who are converted, their farther establishment,
-and edification in Christ is designed, together with the increase of the
-work of grace that is begun in them. Accordingly they are to be told of
-the imperfection of their present state, and what is still lacking to
-fill up the measure of their faith and obedience; and they are to be
-warned of the assaults that they are like to meet with from their
-spiritual enemies, of the wiles and devices of Satan, to interrupt the
-actings of grace, overthrow their confidence, or disturb their peace.
-They are also to be directed how they may improve the redemption
-purchased by Christ, for the mortifying of sin, obtaining the victory
-over temptation, and increasing their faith in him. And, in addressing
-themselves to them, they are to explain difficult scriptures, that they
-may grow in knowledge, and discover to them the evidences of the
-strength and weakness of grace, tending to promote the one, and prevent
-the other. Also, the promises of the gospel are to be applied to them
-for their encouragement, and they excited to go on in the ways of God,
-depending on, and deriving strength from Christ, for the carrying on the
-work that is begun in them. This leads us to consider what is contained
-in the last of the answers we are explaining, _viz._
-
-III. What is the hearer’s duty, who desires to receive spiritual
-advantage by the word preached; and this respects his behaviour before,
-in, and after his hearing the word.
-
-1. Before we hear the word, we are to endeavour to prepare ourselves for
-the solemn work which we are to engage in, duly considering how we need
-instruction, or, at least, to have truths brought to our remembrance,
-and impressed on our hearts; as also, that this is an ordinance which
-God has instituted for that purpose; and, as it is instamped with his
-authority, so we may depend on it, that his eye will be upon us, to
-observe our frame of spirit under the word. And we ought to have an
-awful sense of his perfections, to excite in us an holy reverence, and
-the exercise of other graces, necessary to our engaging in this duty, in
-a right manner; and inasmuch as these are God’s gift, we are to be very
-importunate with him in prayer for them. And, among other things, we are
-to desire that he would assist his ministers in preaching the word; so
-that what shall be delivered by them, may be agreeable to his mind and
-will; and, that this may be done in such a way, that it may recommend
-itself to the consciences of those that hear it; that their
-understandings may be enlightened, and they enabled to receive it with
-faith and love; and that all those corruptions, or temptations, that
-hinder the success thereof, may be prevented. These, and such-like
-things are to be desired of God in prayer; not only for ourselves in
-particular, but for all those who shall be engaged with us in this
-ordinance.
-
-We might here consider the arguments or pleas that we may make use of,
-with relation hereunto, viz. such as are taken from those promises which
-God has made of his presence with his people, when engaged in public
-worship, Exod. xx. 24. Matt. xviii. 20. We may also plead the
-insufficiency of man’s instructions, without the Spirit’s teaching, or
-leading us into all truth; and that Christ has promised that his Spirit
-shall be given to his people for this end, John xvi. 13, 14. We may also
-plead our own inability to hear the word of God in a right manner, and
-the violent efforts that are made by our corrupt nature, to hinder our
-receiving advantage by it, and what endeavours Satan often uses in
-conjunction with it, by which means, as our Saviour expresses it in the
-parable, Matt. xiii. 19. he _catches away_ that seed which was sown in
-the heart; whereby it will become unfruitful. And to this we may add,
-the afflictive sense we have of the ill consequences which will attend
-our hearing the word, and not profiting by it, whereby the soul is left
-worse than it was before; as the apostle says, that he was, in the
-course of his ministry, to some, the _saviour of death unto death_, 2
-Cor. ii. 16. We may also plead the glory that will redound to God, by
-the displays of his grace, in making the word effectual to salvation,
-and the great honour he hereby puts on his own institution, inasmuch as,
-herein, he sets his seal thereunto. We may also plead that this is God’s
-usual way in which he dispenses his grace, and accordingly he has
-encouraged us, to hope and wait for it therein; and, that multitudes of
-his saints, both in earth and heaven, have experienced his presence with
-them under the word; whereby they were first enabled to believe in
-Christ, and afterwards established more and more in that grace, which
-they were made partakers of at first from him. Therefore we hope and
-trust that we may be admitted to participate of the same privilege.
-
-2. There are several duties required of us in hearing the word;
-particularly we are to try the doctrines that are delivered, whether
-they are agreeable unto, and founded on scripture, that we may not be
-imposed upon by the errors of men, instead of the truths of God.
-Moreover, we are to endeavour to exercise those graces that are suitable
-to the work we are engaged in; and, as the apostle says, _mix the word
-with faith_, 2 Cor. ii. 16. and express the highest love and esteem for
-the glorious truths which are contained therein, discovering the
-greatest readiness to yield obedience to every thing God commands, and
-thankfulness for whatever he has promised to us. Moreover we are to hear
-the word with a particular application of it to our own condition,
-whether it be in a way of admonition, reproof, exhortation or
-encouragement, and to see how much we are concerned to improve it, to
-our spiritual advantage.
-
-3. We are now to consider those duties which are to be performed by us,
-after we have heard the word preached. Some of these require privacy or
-retirement from the world; by which means we may meditate on, digest,
-and apply what we have heard; and, together with this, examine
-ourselves, and thereby take a view of our behaviour, whilst we have been
-engaged in public worship, in order to our being humbled for sins
-committed, or thankful for grace received. But this having been
-particularly considered under another answer, relating to our
-sanctifying the Sabbath in the evening thereof[51], I shall pass it over
-at present.
-
-There is another duty incumbent on us, after we have heard the word,
-which may conduce to the spiritual advantage of others, as it is to be
-the subject of our conversation; upon which account we are to take
-occasion to observe the excellency, beauty, and glory of divine truths,
-that are communicated in scripture: We are to hear the word, not merely
-as critics, making our remarks on the elegancy of style, the fluency of
-expression, or other gifts, which we are ready to applaud in the
-preacher, on the one hand, nor exposing and censuring the defects which
-we have observed in his method of address, on the other. We are rather
-to take notice of the suitableness of the truths delivered to the
-condition of mankind in general, or our own in particular, and observe
-how consonant the word preached has been to the holy scriptures, the
-standard of truth, and the agreement thereof, with the experiences of
-God’s people. We are also to take occasion from hence, to enquire into
-the meaning of scripture, especially some particular texts that have
-been insisted on, or, in some measure, explained, in the preaching of
-the word, in order to our farther information and improvement in the
-knowledge of divine things.
-
-The last thing that is observed in this answer, is, that after having
-heard the word of God, we are to endeavour to bring forth the fruit of
-it in our lives: This consists in a conversation becoming the gospel;
-and being induced hereby to _deny ungodliness and worldly lusts, and to
-live soberly, righteously, and godly in this present world_, Tit. ii.
-13. And we ought to express a becoming zeal for divine truths, defending
-them when opposed, and endeavouring to establish others therein; that so
-we may recommend religion to them, as that which is the most solid
-foundation for peace, and leads to universal holiness, that hereby we
-may adorn the doctrine of God, our Saviour, in all things.
-
-Footnote 51:
-
- _See Vol. III. p. 495._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLXI., CLXII., CLXIII., CLXIV.
-
-
- QUEST. CLXI. _How doth the sacraments become effectual means of
- salvation?_
-
- ANSW. The sacraments become effectual means of salvation; not by any
- power in themselves, or any virtue derived from the piety and
- intention of him by whom they are administered; but only by the
- working of the Holy Ghost, and the blessing of Christ, by whom they
- are instituted.
-
- QUEST. CLXII. _What is a sacrament?_
-
- ANSW. A sacrament is an holy ordinance, instituted by Christ in his
- church, to signify, seal, and exhibit, unto those that are within
- the covenant of grace, the benefits of his mediation; to strengthen
- and increase their faith, and all other graces; to oblige them to
- obedience; to testify and cherish their love and communion one with
- another, and to distinguish them from those that are without.
-
- QUEST. CLXIII. _What are the parts of a sacrament?_
-
- ANSW. The parts of a sacrament are two; the one an outward and
- sensible sign, used according to Christ’s own appointment; the
- other, an inward and spiritual grace, thereby signified.
-
- QUEST. CLXIV. _How many sacraments hath Christ instituted in his
- church, under the New Testament?_
-
- ANSW. Under the New Testament Christ hath instituted in his church
- only two sacraments; Baptism, and the Lord’s Supper.
-
-It has pleased God, in setting forth the glory of his wisdom and
-sovereignty to impart his mind and will to man, various ways, besides
-the discovery which he makes of himself in the dispensations of his
-providence. These are, more especially, reducible to two general heads,
-viz. his making it known by words, which is the more plain and common
-way by which we are led into the knowledge of divine truths; or else, by
-visible signs, which are sometimes called types, figures, or sacraments.
-The former of these we have already insisted on; the latter we now
-proceed to consider. And, in order hereunto, we are first to explain the
-nature, and shew what are the parts of a sacrament, as we have an
-account thereof in the two last of these answers; and then consider, how
-the sacraments become effectual means of salvation, as contained in the
-first, of them.
-
-I. Concerning the nature and parts of a sacrament: In order to our
-understanding whereof, we shall consider,
-
-1. The meaning of the word. It is certain, that the word _sacrament_ is
-not to be found in scripture, though the thing intended thereby, is
-expressed in other words; and, for this reason, some have scrupled the
-use of it, and choose rather to make use of other phrases more agreeable
-to the scripture mode of speaking: But, though we are not to hold any
-doctrine that is not founded on scripture; yet those which are contained
-therein, may be explained in our own words, provided they are consonant
-thereunto. The Greek church knew nothing of the word _sacrament_, it
-being of a Latin original; but, instead thereof, used the word
-_mystery_; thereby signifying, that there is in the sacraments, besides
-the outward and visible signs, some secret or hidden mystery signified
-thereby. The Latin church used the word _sacrament_, not only as
-signifying something that is sacred; but as denoting, that thereby they
-were bound as with an oath, to be the Lord’s; as the Psalmist says, _I
-have sworn, and I will perform it, that I will keep thy righteous
-judgments_, Psal. cxix. 106. and God, by the prophet, says, _Unto me
-every knee shall bow, and every tongue shall swear_, Isa. xlv. 23.
-
-The word Sacrament was used, indeed, by the Romans, to signify that oath
-which the soldiers took, to be true and faithful to their general, and
-to fight courageously under his banner; but the primitive Christians
-signified hereby, that, when they were called to suffer for Christ,
-which was, as it were, a fighting under his banner, they did in this
-ordinance, as it were, take an oath to him, expressing their obligation
-not to desert his cause. Now, since this is agreeable to the end and
-design of a sacrament, whatever be the first original of the use of the
-word, I think we have no reason to scruple the using of it, though it be
-not found in scripture: Nevertheless, Christians ought not to contend,
-or be angry with one another about this matter, it being of no great
-importance, if we adhere stedfastly to the explication given thereof in
-scripture.[52]
-
-2. We shall now consider the nature of a sacrament, as described in one
-of the answers we are explaining. And here,
-
-(1.) It is observed, concerning it, that it is an holy ordinance,
-instituted by Christ. What we are to understand by an ordinance, and its
-being founded on a divine institution, which is our only warrant to
-engage therein, has been before considered; and, indeed, every duty that
-is to be performed by God’s express command, which he has designed to be
-a pledge of his presence, and a means of grace, is a branch of religious
-worship, and may be truly styled an holy ordinance. Now, that the
-sacraments are founded on Christ’s institution, is very evident from
-scripture. Thus he commanded his apostles, to _baptize all nations_,
-Matt. xxviii. 19. and, as to the sacrament of the Lord’s supper, he
-commanded them to _do_ what is contained therein, _in remembrance of
-him_, Matt. xxvi. 26, 27. compared with 1 Cor. xi. 24, 25.
-
-(2.) The persons, for whom the sacraments were instituted, are the
-church, who stand in an external covenant-relation to God, and, as the
-apostle says, are _called to be saints_, Rom. i. 7. It is to them, more
-especially, that Christ, when he ascended up on high, gave ministers, as
-a token of his regard to them, that hereby they may be edified, who are
-styled _his body_, Eph. iv. 16. And, though these ministers are
-authorized to preach the gospel to all nations, which is necessary for
-the gathering churches out of the world; yet they are never ordered to
-administer the sacraments to all nations, nor, indeed, to any,
-especially the sacrament of the Lord’s supper, till they profess
-subjection to Christ, and thereby join together in the fellowship of the
-gospel. As the sacraments under the Old Testament dispensation, were to
-be administered to none but the church of the Jews, the only people in
-the world that professed the true religion; so, under the gospel
-dispensation, none have a right to sacraments but those who are therein
-professedly devoted to him.
-
-3. We are now to consider the matter of the sacraments, which is set
-forth in general terms; and it is also called in one of the answers we
-are explaining, the parts of a sacrament; these are an outward and
-visible sign, and an inward and spiritual grace, signified thereby; or,
-as it is otherwise expressed, it signifies, seals, and exhibits to those
-who are within the covenant of grace, the benefits of Christ’s
-mediation. These words are often used, but not so well explained as
-might be desired.
-
-(1.) It is called a sign, in which, by a visible action, some spiritual
-benefits are signified: This is undoubtedly true; and it is a reproach
-cast on God’s holy institutions, in some who deny sacraments to be
-divine ordinances, when they style them all carnal ordinances, beggarly
-elements, or a re-establishing the ceremonial law, without
-distinguishing between significant signs, that were formerly ordinances
-to the Jewish church, but are now abolished; and those that Christ hath
-given to the gospel church. In this idea of the sacraments, we must
-consider, that they agree, in some things, with the preaching of the
-word; namely, that hereby Christ and his benefits, are set forth as
-objects of our faith; and the same ends are desired and attained by
-both, _viz._ our being affected with, and making a right improvement of
-the blessings purchased by him, together with our enjoying communion
-with him; and they are, both of them, sacred ordinances, instituted by
-Christ, and therefore to be attended on in an holy manner: But, on the
-other hand, they differ, with respect to the way or means by which
-Christ and his benefits are set forth; inasmuch, as in the preaching of
-the word, there is a narration of what he hath done and suffered; and,
-upon this account the apostle says, _Faith cometh by hearing, and
-hearing by the word of God_, Rom. x. 17. whereas, in the sacraments,
-there is a representation thereof by signs; in which case we may apply
-the words of the prophet, _Mine eye afflicteth mine heart_, Lam. iii.
-51. as there is the external symbol of Christ’s dying love, which is an
-inducement to us to love him again. They also differ, in that the
-sacraments are not only designed to instruct; but, by our act and deed,
-we signify our engagement to be the Lord’s.
-
-(2.) The sacraments are also said to seal the blessings that they
-signify; and accordingly they are called, not only signs, but seals. It
-is a difficult matter to explain, and clearly to state the difference
-between these two words, or to shew what is contained in a seal, that is
-not in a sign: Some think that it is a distinction without a difference.
-The principal ground which most divines proceed upon, when they
-distinguish between them is, what we read in Rom. iv. 11. in which the
-apostle, speaking concerning Abraham, says, _he received the sign of
-circumcision, a seal of the righteousness of faith_[53]. But the same
-thing might have been affirmed concerning it, or any other significant
-ordinance, if the words sign and seal were supposed to be of the like
-import; for it is not said he received the ordinance of circumcision,
-which is not only a sign, but a seal; but he received that which was a
-sign, or a seal of the blessing about which his faith was conversant.
-However, that we may explain this matter, without laying aside those
-words that are commonly used and distinguished in treating on this
-subject, it may be observed, that a sign is generally understood as
-importing any thing that hath a tendency to signify or confirm something
-that is transacted, or designed to be published, and made visible:
-Accordingly some signs have a natural tendency to signify the things
-intended by them; as the regular beating of the pulse is a sign of
-health, smoke the sign of fire. And other things not only signify, but
-represent that which they give us an idea of, by some similitude that
-there is therein, as the picture doth its original. Other things only
-signify as they are ordained or designed for that use, by custom or
-appointment; thus, in civil matters, a staff is a sign of power to
-exercise an office; the seal of a bond, or conveyance, is the sign of a
-right that is therein conveyed, or made over to another to possess: It
-is in this respect that the sacraments are signs of the covenant of
-grace: They do not naturally represent Christ and his benefits; but they
-signify them, by divine appointment.
-
-But, on the other hand, a seal, according to the most common acceptation
-of the word, imports a confirming sign[54]: Yet we must take heed that
-we do not, in compliance with custom, contain more in our ideas of this
-word, than is agreeable to the analogy of faith: Therefore, let it be
-considered, that the principal method God hath taken for the confirming
-our faith in the benefits of Christ’s redemption, is, his own truth and
-faithfulness, whereby the heirs of salvation _have strong consolation_,
-Heb. iv. 17, 18. or else the internal testimony of the Spirit of God in
-our hearts. The former is an objective means of confirmation, and the
-latter a subjective; and this the apostle calls our _being established
-in Christ, and sealed, having the earnest of the Spirit in our hearts_,
-2 Cor. i. 21, 23.
-
-This is not the sense in which we are to understand the word as applied
-to the sacraments; since if we call them confirming seals, we intend
-nothing else hereby, but that God has, to the promises that are given to
-us in his word, added these ordinances; not only to bring to mind this
-great doctrine, that Christ has redeemed his people by his blood; but to
-assure them, that they who believe in him, shall be made partakers of
-this blessing; so that these ordinances are a pledge thereof to them, in
-which respect God has set his seal, whereby, in an objective way, he
-gives believers to understand, that Christ, and his benefits, are
-theirs; and they are obliged, at the same time, by faith, as well as in
-an external and visible manner, to signify their compliance with his
-covenant, which we may call their setting to their seal that God is
-true; as we may allude to that expression of our Saviour, _He that hath
-received his testimony, hath set to his seal that God is true_, John
-iii. 33. The sacraments are God’s seals, as they are ordinances given by
-him for the confirmation of our faith, that he would be our
-covenant-God; and they are our seals, or we set our seal thereunto, when
-we visibly profess, which ought to be done also by faith, that we give
-up ourselves to him, to be his people, and desire to be made partakers
-of the benefits which Christ hath purchased, in his own way. Thus
-concerning the sacraments, as being signs and seals of the covenant of
-grace.
-
-There is another expression, used in this answer, that needs a little
-explication; namely, when the sacraments are said, not only to signify
-and seal, but to exhibit the benefits of Christ’s mediation. _To
-exhibit_, sometimes signifies to shew, or present to our view; which
-word, if it be so understood in this place, imports the same as when it
-is said, that the sacraments are signs or seals thereof, or significant
-ordinances for the directing and exciting our faith, as conversant about
-what we are to understand thereby. Again, _to exhibit_, sometimes
-signifies to give, communicate, or convey; and because it is not only
-distinguished from signifying and sealing in the definition which we
-have of a sacrament in the Shorter Catechism; but is described as that
-by which Christ and his benefits are applied unto believers; therefore,
-I am inclined to think, that it is in this latter sense that the word is
-to be taken in the answer which we are explaining; and if so, we must
-distinguish between Christ’s benefits being conveyed, made over,
-exhibited, or applied, by the gift of divine grace, through the
-effectual working of the Spirit; and this being done by an ordinance, as
-an external means of grace; accordingly I am bound to conclude, that as
-the Spirit of God gives these blessings to believers, who engage in a
-right manner therein; so this grace is represented, and God’s people
-have ground to expect, as far as an ordinance can be the means thereof,
-that they shall be made partakers of these benefits.
-
-We may also observe, that, though the sacraments are appointed to
-signify to all that partake of them, that Christ has purchased salvation
-for his people; or, that the work of redemption is brought to
-perfection: Yet it is they alone that engage herein by faith, who can
-look upon them as signs or seals to confirm their faith, that they have
-a right to the benefits of Christ’s redemption, as not only signified,
-but exhibited or applied to them: In this sense the sacraments are signs
-to them that believe, in such a way as they are to no others.
-
-4. We are now to consider the persons to whom the sacraments are given;
-and these are described as those who are within the covenant of grace.
-To be within the covenant of grace, implies in it, either a being
-externally in covenant with God, or a being internally and spiritually
-so, as interested in the saving blessings thereof.
-
-(1.) They who are externally in covenant, are such as are visibly so;
-who are called by his name, professedly devote themselves to him, and
-lay claim to him as their God: These, if they are no otherwise in
-covenant, are said to be in Christ, as the branch which beareth no
-fruit, is said to be in the vine, John xv. 2. like those whom the
-prophet speaks of, when he says, _Hear ye this, O house of Jacob, which
-are called by the name of Israel, which swear by the name of the Lord,
-and make mention of the God of Israel, but not in truth nor in
-righteousness_, Isa. xlviii. 1. they have, indeed, the ordinances which
-must be reckoned a very great privilege; they have the external
-overtures of divine grace, the convictions and strivings of the Spirit;
-and accordingly they are, in God’s way, in which he is sometimes pleased
-to work special grace, which, when he does, they may conclude themselves
-to have more than the external blessings of the covenant, which is what
-we are next to consider: Therefore,
-
-(2.) Others are internally or spiritually in covenant, children of God
-by faith: These are such as are true and real members of Jesus Christ,
-by a federal or conjugal union with him: They have the same mind as was
-in him, and receive vital influences from him, being made partakers of
-the Spirit. They have, not only professedly, but by faith, embraced him
-in all his offices, surrendered up themselves unto him, to be entirely
-his; their understandings to be guided and directed, their wills and
-affections to be governed by him, and are desirous to be disposed of by
-him, in the whole conduct of their lives. And, as to the privileges
-which they partake of, they have not merely a supposed, but a real
-interest in all the benefits which Christ hath purchased, have a right
-to his special care and love, which will render them safe and happy,
-both here and hereafter.
-
-Now, with respect to both these; they are, each of them, supposed to
-attend on the sacraments: The former, indeed, have not a right to the
-saving blessings signified thereby, and therefore, if they know
-themselves to be strangers to the covenant of promise, they profess, by
-engaging in this ordinance, to lay claim to that which they have no
-right to: However, if this be not discernible in their conversation,
-which is blameless in the eye of the world, men, who are not judges of
-their hearts, have no warrant to exclude them from the sacraments. But,
-on the other hand, they who are savingly, or internally in covenant,
-have not only a right to those ordinances in common with others; but
-Christ and his benefits, as was before observed, are exhibited and
-applied to them, as they have ground to conclude, by faith, that they
-have an interest in all the blessings which he has purchased.
-
-5. We are now to consider, what those benefits are that Christ
-communicates to his people in the sacraments, which are signified
-thereby: These are either,
-
-(1.) Such as are common to the whole church, which are relative and
-external, rather than internal, as hereby they are distinguished from
-those that are without. These are advantages, though not of a saving
-nature: Thus the apostle says, _What advantage hath the Jew, or, what
-profit is there in circumcision_, Rom. iii. 1, 2. To which he replies,
-_much every way_, or in many respects, _q. d._ it is an honour which God
-has put on the church, as taking them into a visible relation to
-himself, and giving them the means of grace, in which they are more
-favoured than the rest of the world: Or,
-
-(2.) There are those benefits of Christ’s mediation, which are more
-especially applicable to believers; and, in this respect, God makes
-every ordinance, and the sacraments in particular, subservient to the
-increase of their faith, and all other graces. As faith is wrought under
-the word, it is farther established and increased by the Lord’s supper,
-as will be considered under a following answer; and as they have herein
-an occasion to exercise their mutual love to one another, so they have
-communion with Christ, which has a tendency to carry on the work of
-grace begun in the soul, and farther to enhance their love to Christ,
-who is eminently set forth and signified herein; and, from the view they
-have of their interest in him, arises a stronger motive and inducement
-to hate all sin, that tends to dishonour him, in the whole course of
-their lives. We are now to consider,
-
-II. How the sacraments become effectual means of salvation; or from
-whence their efficacy is derived, to answer that great end.
-
-1. Negatively. They do not become effectual means of salvation by any
-power in themselves to answer this end; for we are not to suppose, that
-they are more than ordinances, by which God works those graces which we
-receive under them; which it is his prerogative alone to confer. Again,
-it is farther observed, that this privilege is not derived from the
-piety or intention of them by whom the sacraments are administered; who,
-though they are styled _stewards of the mysteries of God_, 1 Cor. iv. 1.
-as persons to whom the administration thereof is committed; yet they
-have not the least power to confer that grace which is Christ’s gift and
-work: Thus the apostle says, _Who then is Paul, or who is Apollos, but
-ministers by whom ye believed, even as the Lord gave unto every man_,
-chap. iii. 5.[55]
-
-This is contrary to what the Papists maintain, who suppose that the
-efficacy of the sacraments arises, partly from an internal virtue which
-there is in them, to confer grace, (which they illustrate by a
-far-fetched similitude, taken from the virtue which there is in food, to
-nourish the body, which is nothing to the purpose, since no external act
-of religion can have a tendency to nourish the soul, without the
-internal efficacious grace of the Spirit accompanying it;) and partly
-from the design or intention of the priest that administers them, as
-they are consecrated and designed, by him, for that end.
-
-There is also an absurd notion which is maintained by some Protestants,
-as well as the Papists, _viz._ that the sacrament of baptism,
-administered to infants, washes away the guilt of original sin, and
-gives them a right and title to heaven, so that by virtue thereof they
-are saved, if they happen to die before they commit actual sin: But this
-account of the manner in which the sacraments become effectual to
-salvation, is absurd to the last degree; for it puts a sanctifying and
-saving virtue into that which is no more than an outward and ordinary
-means of grace. And as to what respects the efficacy of the sacraments,
-arising from the intention of him that administers them; that is, to lay
-the whole stress of our salvation on the secret design of men, in whose
-power it is supposed to be, to render or prevent these ordinances from
-being means of grace; which is in the highest degree derogatory to the
-glory of God.
-
-2. Positively. The sacraments become effectual means of salvation only
-by the working of the Holy Ghost, and the blessing of Christ, by whom
-they were instituted. As, _without Christ we can do nothing_, John xv.
-5. so without his blessing we can receive nothing. Ordinances are only
-the channel through which grace is conveyed; but Christ is the author
-and finisher of faith; and this he does by his Spirit, when he brings
-the heart into a good frame, and excites suitable acts of faith and love
-in those who are engaged in those ordinances, and maintains the lively
-impressions thereof, which have a tendency to promote the work of grace
-in the whole conduct of their lives.
-
-III. We proceed to consider, what sacraments Christ has instituted under
-the New Testament-dispensation. It hath pleased God, in every age of the
-world, to instruct his people by sacramental signs, as an addition to
-those other ways, in which he communicates his mind and will to them.
-Even our first parents, in their state of innocency, had the tree of
-life; which was a sacrament or ordinance for their faith, that if they
-retained their integrity, and performed the conditions of the covenant
-which they were under, they might hereby be led into a farther
-conviction that they should certainly attain the blessings promised
-therein: And, some think, that the tree of knowledge, of good and evil,
-was another sacramental sign, whereby they were given to understand,
-that if they sinned, they should die. And paradise, in which they were
-placed, was a sacrament, or a kind of type of the heavenly state;
-inasmuch as there is an allusion to it in that promise, _to him that
-overcometh, will I give to eat of the tree of life, that is in the midst
-of the paradise of God_, Rev. ii. 7. and heaven is, in another place
-called paradise, Luke xxiii. 43. Others think the Sabbath was a
-sacramental sign to our first parents, of that eternal sabbatism which
-they should celebrate in a better world, in case they yielded perfect
-obedience as being the condition of the covenant they were under.
-However, I desire not to be too peremptory as to this matter; it is
-enough to my present purpose, to consider the tree of life as a
-sacrament; whereby it appears, that God instituted such signs from the
-beginning of the world: But this having been insisted on elsewhere[56],
-we pass it over, and proceed to consider,
-
-That, after the fall of man, there were sacramental signs, instituted as
-ordinances for the faith of the church in the promised Messiah;
-especially sacrifices, which signified their expectation that he would
-make atonement for sin, by the shedding of his blood. Under the
-ceremonial law there was a large body of sacramental ordinances, or
-institutions, otherwise called, types of Christ, and the way of
-salvation by him; some of which were occasional; as manna, the water of
-the rock, and the brazen serpent in the wilderness, _&c._ others were
-standing ordinances in the church, as long as the ceremonial law
-continued; as circumcision, the passover, and many things contained in
-the temple-service. These were the sacraments under the Old Testament:
-But, having taken occasion to speak something concerning them
-elsewhere[57], I shall confine myself to those sacraments which Christ
-has instituted under the New Testament; which are only two, baptism, and
-the Lord’s supper.
-
-The Papists, indeed, have added five more to them, though without a
-divine warrant; to give countenance to which, they pervert the sense of
-some scriptures, occasionally brought for that purpose. One of the
-sacraments which they have added, is, what they call _holy orders_;
-whereby they authorize persons to perform the office of priests, or
-deacons: This they do by the imposition of hands, and at the same time
-pretend to confer the Holy Ghost: The former, they suppose to be the
-sign, the latter the thing signified; but this was not designed to be a
-sacrament given to the church; for the sacraments are ordinances that
-belong to all believers, and not only ministers. And, as for the
-imposition of hands, whether it be considered as an ancient form of
-praying for a blessing on persons, or as used in setting others apart to
-an office; it seems principally to have respect to these extraordinary
-gifts, which they expected to qualify them for the discharge thereof;
-which gifts being now ceased, the imposition of hands cannot be reckoned
-a sacramental sign; and the blessing conferred, to wit, the Holy Ghost,
-from whom they received those extraordinary gifts, is no longer to be
-signified thereby.
-
-Another sacrament which the Papists add, is that of _confirmation_; by
-which they pretend, that children, who, in baptism, were made members of
-Christ, are strengthened and confirmed in the faith; and receive the
-Holy Ghost, in order to their performing their baptismal vow: But,
-whatever engagement they are laid under, by this ordinance, it is God
-alone that can confirm or strengthen, and enable them to walk answerable
-thereunto; which is a grace not in the power of man to bestow, nor can
-it be by any ordinance.
-
-Another sacrament they speak of, is _pennance_; in which, after
-auricular confession made to the priest, and some external marks of
-sorrow expressed by the penitent, he is to perform some difficult
-service enjoined, which they call pennance; whereby he makes
-satisfaction for his sins, upon which, he is absolved from them. But
-this is an abominable practice, by which persons are rather hardened in
-sin, than delivered from it. It is derogatory to Christ’s satisfaction,
-and has not the least appearance of a sacrament, or ordinance of God’s
-appointment.
-
-Another sacrament that they have added, is _extreme unction_; taken from
-James v. 14, 15. where the apostle speaks of sick persons being
-_anointed with oil in the name of the Lord_; and it is said, _the prayer
-of faith shall save the sick, and the Lord shall raise him up_; and, if
-he has committed _sins_, they shall be _forgiven him_. But to this it
-may be replied, that though this practice of anointing the sick with
-oil, was observed in the first age of the church, while the miraculous
-gift of healing was continued; yet it is now ceased; therefore no such
-significant sign is to be used. And, as for forgiveness of sins,
-mentioned by the apostle that seems not to have been conferred by the
-use of that sign; but it was humbly expected and hoped for, as an answer
-of prayer: It is therefore a very preposterous thing to reckon this
-among the sacraments, under the gospel dispensation.
-
-Another Sacrament that the Papists add, is that of _matrimony_; for
-which, they have very little shadow of reason; but, because, they
-suppose, the apostle calls it _a great mystery_, Eph. v. 32. which word,
-the Greek church used to signify a sacrament: But he does not intend
-hereby, that marriage is a mystery; but the union between Christ and his
-church, which is illustrated by the conjugal union, is so called[58];
-and, indeed, it is not an ordinance given to the church, but to mankind
-in general, heathens as well as Christians. Therefore nothing can be
-more absurd than to suppose, that it is one of the sacraments Christ
-hath instituted in the gospel-church; and, according to their opinion,
-the priests are excluded from this sacrament, inasmuch as they are
-forbidden to marry, as the laity are excluded from the sacrament of holy
-orders; so that when they pretend to add to those institutions, which
-Christ hath given to the church, or invent sacraments, which he hath not
-ordained, they betray not only their own folly, but bold presumption;
-therefore we must conclude, that there are only two sacraments that
-Christ hath given to his church, to wit, baptism, and the Lord’s supper;
-which are particularly considered in some following answers.
-
-Footnote 52:
-
- Sacrament is the word used by the Vulgate for mystery, and this is a
- much more probable meaning of the term as used by the early
- christians.
-
-Footnote 53:
-
- Και σημειον ελαβε περιτομης, σφραγιδα της δικαιοσυνης της πίστεως.
-
-Footnote 54:
-
- _When these two are distinguished by divines, the one is generally
- called, signum significans; the other signum confirmans; or, the
- former is said, significare; the latter, obsignare._
-
-Footnote 55:
-
- It were to be wished, the inspired books had been more generally
- honoured, as the only sufficient rule of judgment, by those who have
- wrote in favor of episcopacy, upon the plan of a DIVINE RIGHT; and the
- rather, as they speak of it, not merely as an institution of the
- gospel, but an essentially necessary one: insomuch, that gospel
- ordinances will be invalid, unless administered by those, who have
- been episcopally vested with holy orders.
-
- In a matter of such momentous concern, they would not have acted an
- unworthy part, if they had confined their pleas to the sacred
- writings; producing such passages from them as speak to the point, not
- implicitly and darkly; but in peremptory and express terms, so as to
- leave no reasonable room for hesitation or doubt. It would be
- dishonourary to the BIBLE, and a gross reflection on the penman of it,
- to call that an “appointment of Christ,” and an “essentially
- necessary” one, which is not contained in this sacred volume, and with
- such clearness and precision, that sober and impartial inquirers may
- readily perceive it to be there, without foreign help to assist their
- sight. And yet, such help is made necessary by episcopal writers. They
- scarce ever fail of turning us to the FATHERS in vindication of their
- cause; hereby virtually reflecting disgrace on the scriptures, as
- though they were insufficient, simply of themselves, to bring this
- controversy to an issue.
-
- In order to reconcile the appeal that is so often made to the FATHERS
- with that honour which is due to the scriptures, the episcopalian plea
- is, that they consider these fathers, not as _judges_, but _witnesses_
- only in their cause. But what are they brought to witness? Is it, that
- episcopacy is an institution of Jesus Christ? If this is witnessed to
- in the sacred books, of which we, having these in our hands, are as
- good judges as they, it is sufficient. There is no need of any foreign
- testimony. If it is not, no other testimony can supply this defect.
- Are these fathers cited as witnesses to what was the practice in their
- day? This is now generally the pretence. They may, say the
- episcopalians, be properly appealed to, in order to know the truth of
- FACT in the ages in which they lived. And if, from their unanimous
- testimony, even from the first days of Christianity, it appears, that
- GOVERNING and ordaining AUTHORITY was exercised by Bishops ONLY, in
- distinction from Presbyters, and as an order in the church above them,
- it would argue great arrogance, if not obstinate perverseness, to
- dispute the divine original of episcopacy. But we must be excused,
- however perverse we may be accounted, if we cannot bring ourselves to
- think, that the practice of the church, since the apostles’ days,
- however universal, will justify our receiving that as an institution
- of Christ, and an essentially important one, which he himself hath not
- clearly and evidently made so, either in his own person, or by those
- inspired writers, whom he commissioned and instructed to declare his
- will: nor can we believe the great Author of christianity would have
- put the professors of it to the difficult, I may say, as to most of
- them, the impossible task of collecting any thing essential to their
- salvation from the voluminous records of antiquity. We are rather
- persuaded, he has ordered every article that is necessary, either in
- point of faith or practice, to be so fairly and legibly wrote by the
- sacred penman, as that there should be no need of having recourse to
- the ancient Fathers as WITNESSES, any more than judges, to ascertain
- his mind. To suppose the contrary, would, in reality of construction,
- substitute TRADITION the rule of essential truth, in the room of the
- SCRIPTURES, which were “given by inspiration of God;” or, at least
- make the former so much a part of this rule, as that the latter,
- without it, would not be sufficiently complete. Such dishonour ought
- not to be cast on the one only standard of the real mind of Christ.
-
- The Bishop, in whose defence an appeal is made to antiquity, is not
- related, by his office, to a single congregation of christians only,
- with one or more Presbyters belonging to it; but his charge is a
- diocess, consisting of a number of congregations, greater or less,
- with their respective Presbyters. The inquiry therefore is, whether it
- be an UNIVERSALLY ATTESTED FACT, that episcopacy, in this sense, took
- place in, and through, the two first ages? A Bishop, at the head of a
- number of congregations, greater or less, is an officer in the church
- of Christ quite different from the pastor of a single congregation;
- though he should be called Bishop, as being the HEAD-PRESBYTER, or
- vested with the character of PRIMUS INTER PARES. It should be
- particularly noted, which of these kinds of episcopacy has the voice
- of the specified antiquity in its favour. It is willingly left with
- every man of common understanding, after he has gone over the
- following testimonies, to say, whether he thinks, that Bishops, after
- the DIOCESAN-MODE, were known in the first ages of the church?
-
- The Bishop, for whom the fathers are called in as WITNESSES, is an
- officer in the church of an ORDER SUPERIOR to that of Presbyters, and
- as distinct from it as the order of Presbyters is from that of
- Deacons; the pretence being this, that Presbyters were thought to
- have, in primitive times, no more right to meddle with the peculiar
- work of Bishops, than Deacons have to concern themselves with the
- peculiar work of Presbyters. The question therefore is, Whether it
- will appear from the following evidence, to be at all a FACT, much
- less an UNIVERSALLY known, and certainly attested one, that there were
- Bishops, in this sense, in any church, in any part of the christian
- world, within the two first centuries?
-
- The Bishop, in whose favour the ancient Fathers are said universally
- to speak, is one to whom the EXCLUSIVE RIGHT OF GOVERNMENT has been
- committed by the appointment of Jesus Christ, or his apostles as
- commissioned by him. Says the famous Bishop Hoadly, treating of the
- government of the church, as belonging to Bishops only, in the above
- appropriated sense, “And here—I think I may say, that we have as
- universal and as unanimous a testimony of all writers, and historians
- from the apostles’ days, as could reasonably be expected or desired:
- every one, who speaks of the government of the church, in any place,
- witnessing, that episcopacy was the settled form; and every one, who
- hath occasion to speak of the original of it, tracing it up to the
- apostles’ days, and fixing it upon their decree.—Were there only
- testimonies to be produced, that this was the government of the church
- in all ages, it would be but reasonable to conclude it of apostolical
- institution;—but when we find the same persons witnessing, not only
- that it was episcopal, but that it was of apostolical institution, and
- delivered down from the beginning as such, this adds weight to the
- matter, and makes it more undoubted. So that here are two points to
- which they bear witness, that this was the government of the church in
- their days, and that it was of apostolical institution. And in these
- there is such a constancy and unanimity, that even St. Jerom himself
- traces up episcopacy to the very apostles, and makes it of their
- institution.”—He adds, “All churches and christians, as far as we
- know, seem to have been agreed, in this point, amidst all their other
- differences, as universally as can well be imagined.” One would
- suppose, from the peremptory manner in which this citation is
- expressed, that the FACT it affirms was so evidently clear, as to
- leave no room for the least doubt. Those, who may think it worth while
- to look over the _testimonies_ brought to view, in the following
- pages, will perhaps, by critically observing their real and just
- import, be surprized, that any man of learning, who professes a regard
- to truth, should speak of it, and with such a degree of assurance, as
- the UNIVERSAL DECLARATION OF ALL AGES from the apostles, that
- episcopacy, in the impleaded sense, was the “form of government in the
- church in their day,” and that it was by “apostolical institution;”
- especially, if they should not be able to find, as it is certain they
- will not, so much as a single witness, for two hundred years, whose
- evidence is clear, direct, express, and full, in affirming, either
- that this was the form of government in the church, or that it was
- ever instituted by Christ, or his apostles: so far is it from the
- truth, that this is a FACT UNANIMOUSLY and CONSTANTLY TESTIFIED TO,
- even from the beginning, and through all ages.
-
- The Bishop, for the support of whose claims antiquity is repaired to,
- is one with whom the SOLE POWER of ORDINATION is lodged; insomuch,
- that he only can convey holy orders conformably to the appointment of
- Jesus Christ; and should Presbyters presume to do this, they would
- take that upon them which they have no more a right to, than Deacons
- have to baptise, or administer the Lord’s supper. This part of the
- UNANIMOUS report of ALL AGES concerning the EXCLUSIVE RIGHT of Bishops
- deserves most of all the special notice of the reader; and he is
- particularly desired, as he goes along, to point out to himself, for
- his own satisfaction; or to others, for their information, any one
- among all the testimonies he will have placed before his view, that
- plainly and directly affirms the RIGHT OF ORDINATION to be peculiar to
- Bishops as a distinct order from Presbyters, and superior to them; or
- that this right was ever thus exercised by them. If he should not be
- able to do this, as unquestionably he will not, how strange must that
- affirmation appear, which says in the most positive terms, not only
- that this is FACT, but a fact CONSTANTLY and UNANIMOUSLY witnessed to
- by the fathers, in ALL AGES from the days of the apostles.
-
- The Bishop, in whose defence antiquity is pleaded, is vested with the
- power of CONFIRMATION, according to the mode of the church of England;
- and it is appropriated to him as his right in distinction from all
- others. But I need not assure the reader, he will in vain look to find
- it a FACT, within the two first ages, that Bishops were either vested
- with, or ever exercised this power. For he must come down below these
- ages, before a word is said, by any one of the fathers, relative to
- this superstitious practice. Tertullian is the first that mentions it;
- and he mentions likewise some other corruptions, which had got mingled
- with christianity in that day.
-
- In short, the question in debate, so far as it relates to FACT, is,
- not whether there were officers in the christian church, known by the
- name of Bishops in the apostolic age, and down along through the two
- first centuries? We join with the episcopalians in affirming this to
- be a truth universally testified to in those times: but the proper
- question is, what is FACT with reference to the ORDER of these
- Bishops, and the POWERS PECULIAR TO THEIR OFFICE, and as EXERCISED by
- them in it? The name of Bishop is one thing, and the POWER claimed
- for, or exercised by him, is another. The dispute is, not about the
- name, but the power appropriated to it. This therefore should be
- heedfully attended to by all, in their examination of the evidences
- that will be produced; and they may, in this way, clearly and
- satisfactorily determine, each one for himself, whether it be at all
- an attested FACT, much less a CONSTANT and UNANIMOUSLY ATTESTED ONE,
- from the apostles days, and down along through the two first ages, as
- well as after ones, that Bishops were vested with, and did actually
- exercise, the above specified powers, which are at this day claimed
- for them, as the appropriate work of their office by divine
- appointment?
-
- CHAUNCY’S VIEW OF EPISCOPACY.
-
-Footnote 56:
-
- _See vol. II. page 86._
-
-Footnote 57:
-
- _See vol. III. page 424-426. and vol. II. page 205._
-
-Footnote 58:
-
- _See Vol. III. p. 12._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLXV.
-
-
- QUEST. CLXV. _What is baptism?_
-
- ANSW. Baptism is a sacrament of the New Testament, wherein Christ
- hath ordained the washing with water, in the name of the Father, and
- of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost, to be a sign and seal of
- ingrafting into himself, of remission of sins by his blood, and
- regeneration by his Spirit; of adoption and resurrection unto
- everlasting life; and whereby the parties baptized are solemnly
- admitted into the visible church, and enter into an open and
- professed engagement, to be wholly and only the Lord’s.
-
-The method in which we shall endeavour to explain this answer shall be,
-
-I. To prove that baptism is a sacrament of the New Testament, instituted
-by Christ, in which there is to be, some way or other, the application
-of water.
-
-II. That this is to be performed in the name of the Father, of the Son,
-and of the Holy Ghost. And,
-
-III. What is signified therein, and what engagements are laid upon the
-person baptized.
-
-I. To prove that baptism is a sacrament of the New Testament, instituted
-by Christ, in which there is to be, some way or other, the application
-of water. Here let it be considered,
-
-1. That there must be the application of water; and that either by
-dipping the person that is to be baptized into the water, or by pouring
-or sprinkling water upon him; otherwise it doth not answer the proper
-and literal sense of the word _baptize_.[59] It is true, we sometimes
-find the word used in a metaphorical sense; as when our Saviour speaks
-of the _baptism_ that he _was to be baptized with_, Matt. xx. 22. Luke
-xii. 50. whereby he intends the sufferings he was to endure in shedding
-his blood upon the cross: And it is elsewhere taken, by a metonymy, for
-the conferring the extraordinary gifts of the Holy Ghost, which they
-were given to expect after Christ’s ascension into heaven, and the
-apostles were first made partakers of at the day of Pentecost, which
-immediately followed it; wherein there appeared unto them cloven
-tongues, like as of fire, that sat upon each of them, as a sign that
-they should be filled with the Holy Ghost, and speak with other tongues,
-and be enflamed with a holy zeal for Christ’s glory and interest; which
-was accordingly fulfilled, and seems to be the sense of the word
-baptism, as taken in this figurative sense; but we understand the word
-in the most proper sense thereof; and therefore suppose that it must be
-performed with water.
-
-As to what respects the mode of baptism, or the application of water,
-whether the water is to be applied to the person baptized, or he put
-into it, that, I purposely wave the consideration of, till we are led to
-speak concerning the subjects of baptism, that we may insist on the
-several matters in controversy, between those that maintain, and others
-that deny infant baptism, together, which we shall have occasion to do
-under the next answer: Whereas, I am ready to persuade myself, that what
-I shall advance under this, together with that which respects the
-improvement of baptism, will not be much contested by those who are in a
-different way of thinking, with respect to the subjects of baptism, and
-the mode of administering it.
-
-2. We are now to consider, that baptism is a sacrament of the New
-Testament; and therefore it differs from those baptisms, or washings,
-that were frequently practised under the Old Testament dispensation;
-concerning which, the apostle says, that it _stood in meats and drinks,
-and divers washings_, Heb. ix. 10. or _baptisms_[60]. Thus we read of
-many instances in which persons were washed under the ceremonial law:
-This was an ordinance used in the consecration of persons to holy
-offices; as it is said, that _Aaron and his sons_ were to be _brought to
-the door of the tabernacle of the congregation, and washed with water_,
-Exod. xxix. 4. and Lev. viii. 6. when they were consecrated to be
-priests. Again, when they ministered in holy things, or came near unto
-the altar, it is said, they _washed, as the Lord commanded Moses_, Exod.
-xl. 32. for this reason the laver was set between the tent of the
-congregation and the altar, and water put therein to wash in; and they
-washed their hands and their feet therein, ver. 30, 31. And this
-ceremony was used by them, when they were subject to divers
-uncleannesses; thus, in the method of cleansing the leper, he was to
-_wash himself_, and, _after that_ might _come into the camp_, Lev. xvi.
-8, 9. The same thing was to be done by those who were liable to
-uncleannesses of another nature, Deut. xxii. 10, 11.
-
-These ceremonial washings, when applied to persons, seem to be ordained
-to signify their consecration, or dedication, to God, in some of the
-instances before mentioned; and in others, they signified the means
-which God had ordained to cleanse the soul from moral impurity; which
-was denoted by the ceremonial uncleannesses which they desired to be
-purified from. These ordinances, indeed, expired together with the rest
-of the ceremonial law: Nevertheless, it is very evident, from the
-institution of gospel-baptism, that the sign is retained; though there
-are some circumstances in the thing signified thereby, in which it
-differs from those baptisms which were formerly used by the Jewish
-church. They were hereby devoted to God, to observe that peculiar mode
-of worship which he prescribed by the hand of his servant Moses; we are
-devoted to God, as those who hereby signify our obligation to walk
-according to the rules prescribed by Christ in the gospel. They also
-used this ordinance, to signify the cleansing virtue of the blood of
-Jesus, who was to come, and the Spirit that was to be poured forth, as
-consequent thereupon; we use it to signify or express our faith in what
-Christ has accomplished, and in the grace which the Spirit works
-pursuant thereunto; therefore we call it an ordinance of the New
-Testament.
-
-3. Baptism was instituted by Christ. This is evident from the commission
-he gave to his apostles, not only to preach the gospel to all nations,
-but to _baptize them in the name of the Father, of the Son, and of the
-Holy Ghost_, Matt. xxviii. 19.[61] and this he appointed to be a
-standing ordinance in the church, throughout all the ages thereof; on
-which account he promises, in the following words, that he will _be
-with_ his ministers, in fulfilling the commission that he gave them to
-execute, _unto the end of the world_: Therefore, we must conclude, that
-it is a standing ordinance in the church, and not designed to be
-observed only during the first age thereof, till Christianity
-universally obtained. This we assert in opposition to the Socinians, who
-suppose, that baptism was, indeed, instituted by Christ; but the design
-hereof, was only to be an external badge, or sign, of the heathens
-embracing the Christian religion, as they were formerly initiated into
-the Jewish church by that ceremonial washing that was then in use: But
-the contrary to this will appear from what we shall have occasion to
-speak to, under a following head, when we consider what baptism was a
-sign and seal of; which is equally applicable to the church in our day,
-as it was to those who lived in the first planting thereof.
-
-II. It is farther observed, that baptism is to be performed in the name
-of the Father, of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost. This contains in it a
-professed acknowledgment, in this solemn act of dedication of the divine
-Trinity; and accordingly it is an act of religious worship, in which
-God’s right to the persons baptized, is publicly owned, and an
-intimation given, that all saving blessings, which are desired or
-expected in this ordinance, are given by the Father, through a Mediator,
-purchased by the Son, and applied by the Holy Spirit. This includes in
-it much more than a being baptized by the authority of these divine
-persons; which is all that some of the Antitrinitarians will allow to be
-meant by, in their name: For though no ordinance can be rightly
-performed but by a divine warrant, yet this warrant is equally extended
-to the administering, or engaging in any other ordinance; and therefore,
-a being baptized in the name of the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost,
-signifies more than this; namely, a person’s being dedicated to them; in
-which dedication, a solemn profession is made, that they have a right to
-all religious worship, which we are obliged to perform as well as that
-all our hope of salvation is from them: Therefore, some think, that this
-idea, which is principally intended in the form of baptism, would be
-better expressed, if the words of institution[62] were rendered _into
-the name_ of the Father, &c. as it is rendered elsewhere, Gal. iii. 27.
-where the apostle is speaking of a person’s being _baptized into
-Christ_[63], and explains it as denoting a _putting on Christ_; or a
-professing, as it is said, ver. 29. that _we are Christ’s_. Thus they
-who are baptized in the name of the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, are
-denoted hereby, to be professedly their servants and subjects; under an
-indispensible obligation to put their trust in, and hope for, all saving
-blessings from them, according to the tenor of the gospel.
-
-It is enquired, by some, whether it be absolutely necessary, in the
-administration of this ordinance, explicitly to make mention of the name
-of the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost? and some assert, that it is not;
-because we read of persons being _baptized in the name of Jesus_, in
-Acts xix. 5. without any mention of the name of the Father, or Holy
-Ghost; and in chap. viii. 16. the same thing is mentioned, as it is
-said, _They were baptized in the name of the Lord Jesus_. But to this it
-may be replied, that it does not appear, that this was the express form
-of words used in baptizing those that are here mentioned; but it only
-argues, that the ordinance was administered, and that Christ’s name and
-glory was proclaimed therein: So that, though the other divine persons
-are not particularly mentioned, it does not follow from thence, that
-they did not adhere to the express words of institution, which were
-given to the apostles; it might as well be argued, that John did not
-baptize in the name of any of the Divine persons; since when we read of
-his baptism, it is said, _I baptize you with water_; but it does not
-thence follow, that he did not baptize them in the name of God; inasmuch
-as he plainly confesses that _God sent him to baptize with water_, John
-i. 33.
-
-But, that this matter may be set in a just light, we must distinguish
-between a person’s omitting to mention the Son or Holy Ghost, in the
-form of baptism, as denying them to be divine persons, (in which case
-the ordinance is invalid;) and his doing this for no other reason, but
-because he thinks that we are not to be tied up to a particular form of
-words, but may sometimes baptize in the name of the Father, Son, and
-Holy Ghost; and, at other times, in the name of Jesus: In this case, I
-will not say that the ordinance is invalid; but yet, his manner of
-administering it, will be highly offensive to many serious Christians,
-and can hardly be reckoned an instance of faithfulness to Christ; who
-has, by an express command, intimated what words are to be used therein.
-
-III. We are now to consider, what is signified in baptism, and what
-engagements are laid on the person baptized. There are some, especially
-among the Socinians, who maintain, that it is only an external, or
-visible badge of Christianity in general, signifying a person’s right to
-be called a Christian, or a professor of that religion, which was
-instituted by our Saviour; and their design herein seems to be, that
-they might evade the force of the argument which we bring to prove the
-divinity of the Son and Spirit, from their being the object of that
-religious worship, which according to our explication thereof, is
-contained in it. Did they intend, by being a Christian, the same thing
-as we do, namely, a subjection to Christ, as a divine person, or a
-professed obligation which we are laid under, to worship God the Father,
-through the Son, by the Spirit, we should have no contention with them
-about this matter: But since we are not agreed as to the meaning of
-being a Christian, especially, since they intend no more hereby than our
-being obliged to adhere to a certain scheme of religious worship
-prescribed by Christ, of what kind soever it be, in like manner as a
-person is called a Mahometan, because he embraces Mahomet’s Alcoran as a
-rule of faith, we cannot think this general account of baptism, as an
-external badge of Christianity, to be a sufficient explication of what
-is intended by it as a sign, or significant ordinance.
-
-There are several things mentioned in this answer, of which, it is said,
-to be a sign and seal, _viz._ of our engrafting into Christ, and
-obtaining remission of sins by his blood, of our regeneration by his
-Spirit, our adoption, and resurrection unto eternal life, which include
-in them all the benefits of Christ’s mediation; which have been
-particularly explained under some foregoing answers: But there is one
-that contains in it all the rest; and accordingly it is generally
-expressed, by divines, as that which is a sign and seal of the covenant
-of grace, and all the duties, obligations, and privileges that are
-either enjoined or bestowed therein. What this covenant is, together
-with the blessings thereof, and how the grace of God is manifested
-therein, has been likewise considered under some foregoing answers[65].
-Therefore all that I shall now add concerning it, is, that it contains
-all the promises in which our salvation is included, of which there is
-one that comprehends all the rest, whereby it is often expressed,
-namely, that God will be a God unto his people, Gen. xiv. 1. _their
-shield, and exceeding great reward_, chap. xvii. And elsewhere that he
-will _put his laws into their minds, and write them in their hearts, and
-will be to them a God; and they shall be to him a people_, Heb. viii.
-10. There are very great privileges contained in this relation, namely,
-our being under the special care and protection of Christ, having a
-right to what he has purchased, and that inheritance which he has laid
-up in heaven for his children, their enjoying communion with him here,
-and being made happy with him hereafter.
-
-Now the main thing to be considered, is, how baptism is a sign and seal
-thereof? To this it may be answered, that we are not to suppose that
-this, or any other ordinance, confers the grace of the covenant, as the
-Papists pretend[66]; for it is, at most, but a significant sign or seal
-thereof; whereas, the grace of the covenant is the thing signified
-thereby. There are, as has been before observed two ways, by which
-persons may be said to be in covenant with God, namely, professedly, or
-visibly, which is the immediate intent and design of this ordinance; and
-there is a being in covenant, as laying hold on the grace of the
-covenant, when we give up ourselves to Christ, by faith; and, as the
-consequence thereof, lay claim to the blessings of his redemption. Now
-baptism is a sign and seal of the covenant of grace in both these
-senses, though in different respects. The ordinance itself is a
-professed dedication to God, or an acknowledgment that the person
-baptized is obliged to be the Lord’s; and signifies his right to the
-external blessings of the covenant of grace, which are contained in the
-gospel-dispensation. There is also more than this contained in a
-person’s being given to God in baptism, whether it be by himself as in
-those who are baptized when adult; or by his parents, as in the case of
-infants, in that the person who dedicates, expresses his faith in
-Christ, the Mediator of the covenant, and hopes for the saving blessings
-which he has purchased for his people. It is one thing, for this
-ordinance to confer these blessings, and another, for it to be an
-instituted means, in which we express our faith and hope, that these
-blessings shall be bestowed, the person being devoted to God with that
-view.
-
-There are other two things that are more especially signified in
-baptism, namely, privileges expected, and obligations acknowledged.
-
-1. The privileges expected are such as accompany salvation, which are
-the special gift of the Holy Ghost, _viz._ the taking away the guilt and
-pollution of sin, and our being made partakers of all the blessings that
-Christ hath purchased, and God the Father, in him, has promised to the
-heirs of salvation. I do not say, that all who are baptized are made
-partakers of these privileges; but they are given up to God, or give up
-themselves to him in this ordinance, in hope of obtaining them.
-
-2. Here is a public profession, or acknowledgment of our obligation to
-be the Lord’s. This is, from the nature of the thing, implied in its
-being a dedication to God. When we make a surrender of ourselves to him,
-we do hereby declare, that we are willing to be his servants and
-subjects, and entirely at his disposal: This is contained in a fiducial
-act of self-dedication to God, and cannot be done by one in the behalf
-of another: And, it is to be feared, that many, who give up themselves
-to God in this ordinance, when adult, though they make a profession of
-their faith, yet do not give up themselves by faith; but that is only
-known to the heart-searching God: Nevertheless, as we express our faith
-and hope, in this ordinance, concerning the privileges but now
-mentioned; so we, in this act of dedication, confess, that God has a
-right to us, and that it is our indispensible duty to be his, so that
-hereby we are, either by our own consent, as in self-dedication,
-professedly the Lord’s; or this is acknowledged by those who have a
-right to dedicate, and thereby to signify this obligation; which,
-because it is highly just and reasonable, the persons devoted are
-obliged to stand to, or else are brought under a great degree of guilt,
-in not being stedfast in God’s covenant.
-
-There is one thing more mentioned in this answer, namely, that the
-person baptized, is solemnly admitted into the visible church, which I
-rather choose to pass over; since it is hard to understand what some
-mean by the visible church, and a person’s becoming a member thereof by
-baptism. We have elsewhere considered the difficulties that are
-contained in the description of the visible church; together with the
-qualifications for, and admission of persons into church-communion.[67]
-If, by being admitted into the visible church, we are to understand that
-a person has a right to all the ordinances of the church by baptism,
-without being admitted afterwards into it by mutual consent; this is
-contrary to the faith and practice of most of the reformed churches. And
-if, on the other hand, they mean hereby, that here is a public
-declaration of our hope, that the person baptized shall be made partaker
-of those privileges which Christ has purchased for, and given to his
-church: This is no more than what has been already explained in our
-considering the baptismal expectations and obligations; but, whether
-this can be properly called an admission into the church, I rather leave
-to be determined by those who better understand what they mean, when
-they say that this is done in baptism, than I do.[68]
-
-Footnote 59:
-
- Βαπτιζω, has been said to signify immergo and _exclusively_ when
- applied to sacred baptism. And this is necessary to establish
- immersion as the only mode. The question is not, therefore, whether
- Βαπτιζω, sometimes signifies to immerse, but _whether it never
- signifies any thing else_. This can be proved, it is presumed, by no
- Lexicographer, and no version of the New Testament. In the New
- Testament it is taken in different senses, for example we read of a
- Baptism with _the Holy Ghost and with fire_. It is therefore a
- _generic_ term and not _specific_, as _immerse_ cannot be substituted
- for it in all places. If a specific Greek term signifying to _plunge_
- had occasionally been used for it, in the New Testament, yet baptism
- being in our Saviour’s commission to his disciples, should not have
- been confined to one mode, but this is never the case. The numerous
- admissions of our divines, that Βαπτιζω, primarily signifies to
- _immerse_, and which are disingenuously collected to impose on the
- ignorant; do not weaken our cause, as they did neither influence the
- practice nor sentiments of those who used them.
-
- If Βαπτιζω, signifies to _immerse totally_, or _partially_; to dip, to
- cleanse, or purify, &c. it leaves the mode to our convenience or
- choice; and reason also accords, that the mode is unimportant with
- respect to moral defilement.—Porphery has “Βαπτιζεται μεχρι κεφαλης.”
- The oracle said “Βαπτιζη _him as a bottle_” (of leather, which could
- swim) “_but it is not lawful to plunge him wholly under water_.”
- Strabo says, “Βαπτιζομενων _up to the waist_.” Aristotle says
- “Βαπτεικαι ανθιζει τηνχειρα,” _it stains and renders florid the hand_.
- Aristophanes says, “Βαπτομενος Βραχειοις,” _stained with tawny
- colours_. Homer says, “¨Εβαπτετο δ᾽᾽ αιματι λιμνω,” _And the fountain
- was tinged with blood_. Rev. xix. 13. “Ιματων Βεβαμενον αιματι.”
- Isaiah xxi. 4. “_Fearfulness_ Βαπτιζει _me_.”
-
-Footnote 60:
-
- Διαφοροις βαπτισμοις.
-
-Footnote 61:
-
- The promulgation of this command marks a new and important era in the
- history of the church and of the world. These words may be considered
- as the public and formal abrogation of the Mosaic economy; and the
- authoritative annunciation of the new order of things under the
- gospel.
-
- The first communications of divine truth, through Adam and Noah, were
- made indiscriminately to the human family; but, in both instances, the
- precious deposit was generally adulterated, and nearly lost. The
- wisdom of God, therefore, saw it to be necessary to select and
- separate from the idolatrous world, a particular family which might
- serve as a repository of the divine oracles and institutions; until
- that ‘_Seed of the woman_’ should come, of whom it was predicted, that
- he should ‘_bruise the serpent’s head_:’ and that _‘seed of Abraham’
- in whom all the families of the earth should be blessed_.
-
- But when JESUS CHRIST, _our great high-priest of good things to come,
- had, through the eternal Spirit, offered himself without spot to God,
- to bear the sins of many_; and had _by this one offering of his own
- body, perfected them that are sanctified_, the service of the first
- tabernacle was set aside, and as to any utility, or divine authority,
- ceased forever; as an emblem of which, the veil of the temple was rent
- in twain from the top to the bottom, at the very moment of expiation;
- when Christ our high-priest, by sheding his vital blood and pouring
- out his soul unto death, _offered his one great sacrifice for sins_.
-
- So great, however, was the power of early and national prejudice, that
- the apostles did not, for some time, understand the extent of their
- commission. They had, before, been sent on a short mission, on which
- occasion it was ordered, that they should not go _into the way of the
- Gentiles_, nor even _enter into any city of the Samaritans_; and they
- seem to have thought, that by going _into all the world_, and
- _preaching to every creature_, no more was intended, than that they
- should go to the seed of Abraham now widely dispersed among the
- nations. But this veil was soon removed, by a particular revelation
- made to Peter in a vision; and by the calling of Paul to the
- apostleship, who, from the beginning, received commission to go to the
- Gentiles, and was, in a peculiar manner, designated and directed, _to
- preach among the Gentiles the unsearchable riches of Christ_.
-
- DR. ALEXANDER’S MISSIONARY SERMON.
-
-Footnote 62:
-
- Εις τὸ ὁνομα.
-
-Footnote 63:
-
- Εις Χριστόν.
-
-Footnote 65:
-
- _See vol. II. Quest. XXXI, XXXII. Page 167, & 185._
-
-Footnote 66:
-
- _There is a common aphorism among them, that the sacraments, and
- baptism in particular, confer grace, ex opere operato._
-
-Footnote 67:
-
- _See vol. II. page 166-216._
-
-Footnote 68:
-
- The Gospel is glad tidings of great joy, not a system of new and
- terrifying restrictions and exclusions; so far from retracting
- formerly conceded privileges, and confining the church within narrower
- limits, it publishes peace and salvation, and invites the whole human
- family to participate in these blessings. It must either be referred
- to the impressions it has made, or to uninterrupted usage that females
- have, by a general consent, been deemed to possess an unquestionable
- right to approach the holy communion, though neither precept for it is
- found, nor an example of it recorded in the Scriptures. This baptism
- of infants was still less necessary to be enjoined by, and less likely
- to have been noticed in the short history given us of apostolical
- transactions.
-
- He who gave parental affection, and is the Lord of his church under
- every dispensation, conferred on children at an early age of the world
- the privilege of sharing with their parents in the seals of grace, and
- bearing the tokens of his covenant. Jewish christians having
- themselves experienced such benignity, and been given to the same God,
- whom they now served under brighter displays of his eternal and
- unchangeable love, could not have expected, that, an entrance into the
- milder gospel-church would have been denied to the seed whom God had
- given them, and whom they had devoted to him not only in prayer, but
- in that ordinance which he had appointed for the purpose. An ordinance
- which being now obsolete was supplied by another, apparently as proper
- for their children as themselves. Because infants are incapable of
- repenting and believing, these duties were not required nor expected
- of them, either under the old, or new dispensation; but though
- incapable of actual sin, and therefore free from obligations of
- obedience unto the law, yet their nature is not pure, and consequently
- needs the sanctifying influence of divine grace, which can correct the
- latent enmity, and renew the soul. They are capable, therefore, of
- spiritual blessings, and may consequently be members of the invisible
- church, and received into the church triumphant. The obvious
- reasonableness of the privilege of being received with their parents
- into the society of the worshippers of God, a privilege publicly known
- to have been conferred by the great Head of the church, equally
- prevented the supposition of an implied repeal, and the necessity of a
- renewal of the right.
-
- If indeed there had been a different religion introduced; if
- christians were not engrafted into the old stock; if they worshipped
- some other than the God of Israel; if there was another moral law,
- another Christ than he whose day the fathers anticipated, and another
- faith; this privilege of receiving infants into the church might have
- been interrupted; and in that case unless expressly again enjoined, it
- ought not to have been regarded in practice. But if the christian
- religion is founded upon the prophets; if the peculiarities of the
- Jewish worship were but shadows of gospel things; if both were
- directed to the same glory of God and salvation of men; if they both
- enjoined the same holiness and presented the same object of faith; if
- those who were saved under the Old Testament shall be associated with
- those who are saved under the New; the privileges formerly granted to
- children will remain the same; and it is not wonderful that the first
- christian should obey the dictates of parental tenderness; and that
- desiring the salvation of their children as well as their own, should
- cause their households to be baptized as well as themselves. To have
- affirmed in the gospel history expressly, that children were a part of
- the household, could have answered no purpose in the first days of
- christianity, but would have been thought repetitions and unmeaning
- until modern times. In the fifth, in the third and even so early as in
- the second century, the baptism of infants was the established usage
- of the church, and it was then thought, and not disputed, to have been
- the practice of the apostles themselves.
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLXVI.
-
-
- QUEST. CLXVI. _Unto whom is baptism to be administered?_
-
- _Answ._ Baptism is not to be administered to any that are out of the
- visible church, and so strangers from the covenant of promise, till
- they profess their faith in Christ, and obedience to him; but
- infants descending from parents, either both, or but one of them,
- professing faith in Christ, and obedience to him, are in that
- respect within the covenant, and to be baptised.
-
-In this answer, which principally respects the subjects of baptism, we
-have,
-
-I. An account of those who are excluded from this privilege, _viz._ such
-as are out of the visible church, and so strangers from the covenant of
-promise. The visible church is here considered in the most large and
-less proper acceptation of the word, as denoting all who profess the
-true religion; and in this respect is opposed to the Jews and heathen,
-and those who, though they live in a Christian nation, are grossly
-ignorant of the gospel, and act as though they thought that it did not
-belong to them, not seeing themselves obliged to make any profession
-thereof: These may be ranked among infidels, as much as the heathen
-themselves; and, according to this sense of the word, are not members of
-the visible church; and, consequently, while they remain so, are not to
-be admitted to baptism. This is agreeable to the sentiments and practice
-of most of the reformed churches; and it cannot but be reckoned highly
-reasonable, by all who consider baptism as an ordinance in which a
-public profession is made of the person’s being devoted to God the
-Father, Son, and Holy Ghost; and, if he be considered as adult (and of
-such we are now speaking) there is a signification, and thereby a
-profession made, that he gives up himself to God; and, if the ordinance
-be rightly applied, there must be an harmony between the inward design
-of the person dedicating, and the true intent and meaning of the
-external sign thereof; which, by divine appointment, is a visible
-declaration of his adhering by faith, to the Father, Son, and Holy
-Ghost, and embracing that salvation which takes its rise from them. This
-therefore must be done by faith; or else the ordinance is engaged in
-after an hypocritical manner; which will tend to God’s dishonour, and
-the prejudice rather than the advantage of him, to whom it is
-administered.
-
-II. We are now to consider the necessity of their making a profession of
-their faith in Christ, and obedience to him, who being adult, are
-admitted to baptism. It was supposed, under the last head, that if there
-be not an harmony between the internal frame of spirit, in the person
-baptized, and the intent of the external sign thereof, the ordinance is
-not rightly applied to him, inasmuch as he pretends to dedicate himself
-to God; but, in reality does not do this by faith: And now it may be
-farther considered, that it is necessary that he should make it appear,
-that he is a believer, by a profession of his faith; otherwise, he that
-administers the ordinance, together with the assembly, who are present
-at the same time, cannot conclude that they are performing a service
-that is acceptable to God; therefore, for their sakes, as well as his
-own, the person to be baptized, ought to make a profession of his
-subjection to Christ, as what is signified in this ordinance.
-
-This is agreeable to the words of institution, in Matt. xxviii. 19. _Go
-ye therefore, and teach all nations, baptizing them_, &c. and in Mark
-xvi. 15. _Go ye into all the world, and preach the gospel to every
-creature; he that believeth and is baptized, shall be saved_, &c. I am
-sensible that some, who have defended infant-baptism, or rather
-attempted to answer objection taken from this, and such like scriptures
-against it, have endeavoured to prove the Greek word[69] signifies,
-_make_ persons _disciples_; and accordingly it is a metaphor taken from
-the practice of a person’s being put under the care of one who is
-qualified to instruct him, whose disciple he is said to be, in order to
-his being taught by him; and therefore they suppose, that we are made
-disciples by baptism, and afterwards to be _taught to observe all things
-whatsoever Christ hath commanded_; and this is taken notice of in the
-marginal reading of our Bibles; which supposes that the word may be
-rendered, _make disciples of all nations_: But, I cannot think this
-sense of the word so defensible, or agreeable to the design of our
-Saviour, as that of our translation, _viz._ _Go teach all nations_;
-which agrees with the words of the other evangelist, _Go preach the
-gospel to every creature_: And besides, while we have recourse to this
-sense to defend infant-baptism, we do not rightly consider that this
-cannot be well applied to adult-baptism, which the apostles were first
-to practise; for it cannot be said concerning the heathen, that they are
-first to be taken under Christ’s care by baptism, and then instructed in
-the doctrines of the gospel, by his ministers[70].[71]
-
-Moreover, a profession of faith in those who are baptized when adult, is
-agreeable to the practice of the Christian church in the first planting
-thereof: Thus it is said, in Acts ii. 41. _They that gladly received the
-word were baptized_: And this might also be observed in the account we
-have of the jailor and the Eunuch’s being first converted, and then
-baptized, in Acts xvi. 31-33. chap. viii. 37, 38. But, if it be retorted
-upon us, as though we were giving up the cause of infant-baptism, it
-must be observed, that this does not, in the least, affect it; for when
-our Saviour gave forth his commission to the apostles, to teach or
-preach the gospel to all nations, and baptize them, it is to be
-supposed, that their ministry was to be exercised among the adult, and
-that these then were utter strangers to Christ and his gospel; therefore
-it would have been a preposterous thing to put them upon devoting
-themselves to him, before they were persuaded to believe in him: neither
-could they devote their children till they had first dedicated
-themselves to him, and this leads us to consider,
-
-III. The right of infants to baptism, provided they, who are required to
-dedicate them to God therein, are believers; and particularly, that such
-may be baptized who descend from parents of whom only one is a believer.
-This will appear,
-
-1. If we consider baptism as an ordinance of dedication: Accordingly,
-let it be observed,
-
-(1.) That it is the indispensible duty of believers, to devote
-themselves and all they have, to God, which is founded in the law of
-nature, and is the result of God’s right to us and ours. Whatever we
-have received from him, is to be surrendered or given up to him; whereby
-we own him to be the proprietor of all things, and our dependence upon
-him for them, and that they are to be improved to his glory. This is, in
-a particular manner, to be applied to our infant-seed, whom it is our
-duty to devote to the Lord, as we receive them from him: However, there
-is this difference between the dedication of persons, from that of
-things, to God, that we are to devote them to him, in hope of their
-obtaining the blessings which they are capable of, at present, or shall
-stand in need of from him, hereafter. This, I think, is allowed, by all
-Christians. Nothing is more common, than for some who cannot see that it
-is their duty to baptize their children, to dedicate or devote them to
-God, by faith and prayer; which they do in a very solemn manner; and
-that with expectation of spiritual blessings, as an encouragement of
-their faith, so far as they apprehend them capable of receiving them.
-
-(2.) We shall now consider, that baptism, in the general idea thereof,
-is an ordinance of dedication or consecration of persons to God. If this
-be not allowed of, I cannot see how it can be performed by faith, in the
-name of the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost; or how this can be a visible
-putting on of Christ, as the apostle styles it, Gal. iii. 27.
-
-_Object._ This proposition would not be denied, if baptism were to be
-considered as an ordinance of self-dedication, but then it would
-effectually overthrow the doctrine of infant-baptism; for since infants
-cannot devote themselves to God in this ordinance, therefore it is not
-to be applied to them.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied, that as there is no other medium,
-which, I apprehend, can be made use of to prove that the solemn acts of
-consecration or dedication to God in baptism, is to be made only by
-ourselves, but what is taken from a supposition of the matter in
-controversy, by those who assert that infants are not to be baptized: So
-if this method of reasoning be allowed of, we might as well say, on the
-other hand; infants are to be baptized; therefore baptism is not an
-ordinance of self-dedication, since they cannot devote themselves to
-God; and that would militate against what, I think, is allowed of by
-all, that baptism, when applied to the adult, is an ordinance of
-self-dedication. That which I would therefore more directly assert, in
-answer to this objection is, that baptism is an ordinance of dedication,
-either of ourselves, or others; provided the person who dedicates, has a
-right to that which he devotes to God, and can do it by faith. When I
-do, as it were, pass over my right to another, there is nothing required
-in order hereunto, but that I can lawfully do it, considering it as my
-property; and this is no less to be doubted concerning the infant-seed
-of believers than I can question, whether an adult person has a right to
-himself, when he gives up himself to God in this ordinance.[72]
-
-(3.) It follows, from the last head, that parents, who have a right to
-their infant-seed, may devote them to God in baptism, provided they can
-do it by faith; and therefore a profession of faith, is only necessary
-in those who are active, in this ordinance, not in them that are merely
-passive. This we are obliged to maintain against those who often
-intimate that children are not to be baptized, because they are not
-capable of believing: Or when it is replied hereunto, that they are
-capable of having the seeds of faith, though not the acts thereof; this
-is generally reckoned insufficient to support our argument, by those who
-are on the other side of the question; inasmuch as it cannot well be
-determined, what infants have the seeds of faith, and what not; and, I
-think those arguments which are generally brought to prove that the
-infants of believing parents, as such, have the seeds of faith, on the
-account whereof they are to be baptized can hardly be defended; because
-many good men have wicked children.
-
-Therefore what we insist on in this argument, is, that believing parents
-may give up their children to God in baptism, in hope of their obtaining
-the blessings of the covenant,[73] whether they are able to conclude
-that they have the seeds of grace or no; they may devote them to God in
-hope of regeneration; though they cannot know them to be regenerate, as
-all ordinances are to be performed with this view, that they may be
-rendered effectual means of grace. And from hence it may be inferred, as
-is observed in this answer, that infants descending from parents, either
-both, or but one of them, professing faith in Christ, are to be
-baptized; since one parent has as much a right to the child as the
-other: Therefore, the unbelief of one does not exclude the other from
-giving it up to God by faith, in hope of its obtaining the saving
-blessings of the covenant of grace. 1 Cor. vii. 14.
-
-2. The right of the infant-seed of believers to baptism, may be farther
-proved, from their being capable of the privileges signified therein;
-and under an indispensable obligation to perform the duties which they,
-who dedicate them to God, make a public profession of, as agreeable to
-the design of this ordinance. None are to be excluded from any of those
-ordinances, which Christ has given to the church, but they who are
-either in a natural or a moral sense, to be deemed incapable subjects
-thereof. Some, indeed, are incapable of engaging in ordinances, by
-reason of a natural unmeetness for them, as infants are not to be
-admitted to the Lord’s supper, as being under a natural incapacity; and,
-ignorant and profane persons are not to be admitted to it, as being
-under a moral incapacity; and, for the same reason, a wicked man, when
-adult, is not a proper subject of baptism: But if there be neither of
-these bars to exclude persons, they are not to be denied the advantage
-of any ordinance. This, I think will be allowed by all; and therefore,
-the only thing I need prove is, that infants are not incapable of the
-principal things signified in baptism. That they are not incapable of
-being dedicated to God, has been proved under the last head; and now we
-shall consider several privileges that are signified therein, which they
-are equally capable of; as,
-
-(1.) Baptism is an external sign of that faith and hope which he has,
-that dedicates a person to God, that the person dedicated, shall obtain
-the saving blessings of the covenant of grace; Now, that infants are
-capable of these blessings, none will deny, who suppose them capable of
-salvation. If we suppose infants not to have regenerating grace, which
-is neither to be affirmed or denied, it being a matter, at present,
-unknown to us; yet they are capable of having it, for the reason but now
-assigned; and though they cannot at present, put forth any acts of
-grace, they will be capable thereof, as soon as they are able to discern
-between good and evil.
-
-They are not excluded by their infant-state, from being under Christ’s
-special care; which is, doubtless, to be extended to elect infants as
-well as others; and they are capable of being discharged from the guilt
-of original sin, though not of laying claim to this privilege, which
-they may be enabled to do afterwards. Now, if infants are capable of
-these privileges, certainly the person who dedicates them to God, (who
-has a right to do it, inasmuch as they are his property, and he is able
-to do it by faith) may devote them to him, with the exercise of this
-grace, and a fiducial expectation that they shall obtain these
-privileges: And, indeed, when we engage in this ordinance, we ought to
-expect some saving blessings, as the consequence hereof, as much as when
-we engage in any other ordinance of divine appointment.
-
-_Object._ It is objected to this, that though a person may devote his
-child to God in hope of his obtaining saving blessings; yet he cannot
-exercise any act of faith, that he shall obtain them: Therefore though
-he may perform this duty with a degree of hope, or, at least, with a
-desire hereof; yet he cannot do it by faith: Therefore, if children are
-to be devoted to God by faith, they are not the subjects of this
-ordinance.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied, that some things may be said to be
-done by faith, when we have not a certain ground to expect the saving
-fruits and effects thereof. Suppose an infant was expiring and the
-tender parent concerned about its salvation, whether he has a certain
-expectation that it shall be saved or no; yet he may, and ought to be
-earnest with God by faith and prayer, that the child may be happy when
-taken out of the world; and, if he finds that he has the lively exercise
-of faith, with respect to this matter, this will afford him some degree
-of hope, that God, who excited this grace in him, will own it by giving
-the blessings which he desires; which is the only comfort that a parent
-can take in the loss of his infant-seed: And, may there not be this act
-of faith, when he dedicates him to God in baptism? Did we assert that
-giving up our children to God by faith, necessarily infers their
-obtaining saving blessings, the objection would have some force in it;
-or if there could be no faith exercised, without our being certainly
-persuaded that this should have a saving effect; then it might be
-argued, that because we are not certain that infants shall be saved,
-therefore we cannot give them up to God by faith: But if there may be
-faith, where there is not this certain persuasion, or any ground by
-which this matter may be determined, then, I think, it will follow, that
-infants may be devoted to God by faith, as well as with a desire of
-their obtaining saving blessings, and, consequently, this objection does
-not take away the force of our argument. We are far from supposing that
-baptismal dedication necessarily infers these saving blessings, or is
-inseparably connected with them, so that the one cannot be without the
-other. Therefore, it is sufficient to our purpose, to suppose that they
-are capable of those blessings which faith desires, and, it may be,
-hopes for; and, consequently, of those things which are principally
-signified in baptism.
-
-(2.) Infants are under an indispensable obligation to perform the duties
-which are incumbent on those who are given up to God in baptism, and
-signified thereby. This respects some things future, (they being, at
-present, incapable of performing any duty) and, indeed, obligations to
-perform duties may respect the time to come, as well as the time
-present; as when a person is bound to pay a just debt, this obligation
-is valid though it is not expected that it should be immediately paid.
-Thus infants are professedly bound, when given up to God, to be the
-Lord’s: Whether ever they will give up themselves to him by faith, or
-no, is unknown to us, nevertheless, the obligation will take place as
-soon as they are capable of doing good or evil. Therefore it follows,
-that the parent may bind his child to be the Lord’s, inasmuch as the
-obligation is just, as being founded in God’s right to obedience, and
-when he has laid his child under it in this ordinance, he ought
-afterwards strictly to charge him to stand to it, as he would not
-contract double guilt; not only in neglecting to perform an
-indispensable duty, but to pay that debt of obedience which has been so
-solemnly acknowledged in this ordinance. These arguments taken from the
-nature and design of the ordinance of baptism, give me the fullest
-conviction concerning our warrant to apply it to infants: But there is
-one more which is not wholly to be passed over, _viz._
-
-(3). It appears, that the infant-seed of believers, are to be
-consecrated or devoted to God in baptism, because they are included in
-the covenant wherein God has promised that he will be a God to his
-people, and to their seed; who are, upon this account, styled _holy_
-Ezra. ix. 2. And it is said concerning Israel, that _they are the seed
-of the blessed of the Lord, and their off-spring with them_, Isa. lxv.
-23. the _branch_ is said to be _holy_, together with _the root_, Rom.
-xi. 16. and _the children of the promise are counted for the seed_,
-chap. ix. 8. that is included in that covenant in which God promised
-that he would be a God to children, together with their parents, as he
-says to Abraham; _I will establish my covenant between me and thee, and
-to thy seed after thee, to be a God unto thee, and to thy seed after
-thee_, Gen. xvii. 7. And, in this sense, I think, we are to understand
-the apostle’s words, in 1 Cor. vii. 14.[74] _The unbelieving husband is
-sanctified by the believing wife, and the unbelieving wife by the
-believing husband; else were your children unclean, but now are they
-holy._ By these, and other expressions of the like-nature, we are not to
-understand the special saving grace of regeneration and sanctification;
-for that is not a privilege that descends from parents to children by
-birth, as our Saviour says, _We are born not of blood, nor of the will
-of the flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God_, John i. 13.
-Therefore, when some, who are on the other side of the question, think
-that we intend hereby the saving blessings of the covenant, or that
-holiness which is an internal qualification or meetness for heaven, they
-do not rightly understand our meaning. Some, indeed, may have given
-occasion to conclude that they intend this, who speak of the grace of
-regeneration as conferred in baptism; and assert, that it intitles
-persons to salvation, if they happen to die before they are adult:
-Whereas, if afterward they appear to be in an unconverted state, by the
-wickedness of their conversation, they are said to fall from that grace.
-This is what I do not well understand; nor do I intend, when I speak of
-the infants of believers as an holy seed, that they are all internally
-regenerate or sanctified from the womb; but they are included in the
-external dispensation of the covenant of grace; which must be reckoned a
-greater advantage than if they had descended from Indians, who are
-strangers to it.
-
-I am sensible, indeed, that they who deny infant-baptism, suppose that
-the holiness of the children spoken of by the apostle in the scripture
-but now referred to, who descended from parents, of whom one only was a
-believer, implies nothing else but their being legitimate: But that does
-not seem to be his meaning; inasmuch as marriage is an ordinance of the
-law of nature, which all, without distinction, have a right to, heathens
-as much as Christians; and the children of the one, are as legitimate as
-those of the other. Therefore, there is something else intended by their
-being holy, namely, the same thing that is meant in those other
-scriptures that we but now referred to, as taken for an external
-relative holiness, whereby God must be supposed to have a greater regard
-to them than to others who are styled unclean; and, if this does not
-infer, as was before observed, their being internally regenerate or
-sanctified: yet it is not a word without an idea affixed to it:
-Therefore we must understand thereby, an holiness in the lowest sense of
-the word; as children, are said to be _an heritage of the Lord, and the
-fruit of the womb his reward_, Psal. cxxxvii. 7. or, it denotes the
-obligation they are laid under, by the privilege of their descending
-from believing parents, to adhere to their fathers’ God; which
-obligation is professed or acknowledged, when they are dedicated to him
-in baptism, as has been before observed; and this is the use which I
-would make of this account which we have of them in scripture, to prove
-their right to be devoted to God in this ordinance.
-
-And, I think, we do not assert this without some warrant from scripture;
-for when God told Abraham, in the promise but now mentioned, that he
-would be _a God unto him, and to his seed_, which is the foundation of
-their federal holiness; this is assigned as a reason why they should be
-devoted to God in circumcision, Gen. xvii. 10. for we cannot but
-conclude circumcision, as we do baptism, to have been an ordinance of
-dedication or separation to God: And, in Acts ii. 39. when the apostle
-had been pressing those Jews, amongst the mixed multitude, to whom he
-had preached, to _repent and be baptized_; and encouraged them to hope
-for the _gift of the Holy Ghost_; he assigns this as a reason, namely,
-that _the promise was to them and to their children_, which refers to
-the promise of the covenant made with Abraham, and his seed; and it
-immediately follows, _and to them that are afar off_, that is, the
-Gentiles, who might claim this promise, when they believed, whom the
-apostle calls elsewhere, _children of the promise, as Isaac was_, Gal.
-iv. 28. These who are styled, before conversion, a people _afar off_,
-were after it reckoned the spiritual seed of Abraham, and so had a right
-to the blessings of the covenant, that God would be a God to them; and,
-by a parity of reason, in the same sense in which the seed of Abraham
-were children of the promise, the seed of all other believers are to be
-reckoned so, till by their own act and deed, they renounce this external
-covenant relation: Now, from hence it may be inferred, that if they
-stand in this relation, to God, this is publicly to be owned; and
-accordingly they are to be given up to him in baptism, as there is
-therein a professed declaration thereof.
-
-As to what was but now inferred from the infant-seed of believers under
-the Old Testament having a right to circumcision, because they were
-included in the covenant which God made with their fathers, that
-therefore they have a right to baptism; this is not to be wholly passed
-over; though, I am sensible, they who deny infant-baptism, will not
-allow of the consequence. Some have argued, in opposition to it, that
-circumcision was ordained to be a sign and seal of that covenant of
-peculiarity, which God made with the Jewish church, or of those
-blessings which they were made partakers of, as a nation excelling
-others, in name, honour, and glory: But this, I think, comes far short
-of what the apostle says on that subject, _viz_. that it was _a seal of
-the righteousness of faith_, Rom. iv. 11. And, indeed, when we call that
-dispensation a covenant of peculiarity, we intend nothing else thereby,
-but some external privileges annexed to the saving blessings of the
-covenant of grace; and therefore, Abraham’s faith was conversant on both
-of them; the righteousness of faith, which respected his own salvation,
-and that of his spiritual seed; and those privileges of a lower nature,
-which they who were, in other respects, his seed, were made partakers
-of, by virtue of the covenant, in which God promised that he would be a
-God to him, and to his seed. Moreover, it is generally denied, by those
-who are on the other side of the question, that baptism comes in the
-room of circumcision. This therefore remains to be proved, in order to
-our establishing the consequence, that since children were to be devoted
-unto God by circumcision under the law, they are to be devoted unto him
-by baptism, under the gospel-dispensation.
-
-Now, that this may appear, let it be considered, that God has
-substituted some ordinances, under the gospel-dispensation, in the room
-of others, which were formerly observed under the ceremonial law. Thus
-the Lord’s supper is instituted in the room of the passover; otherwise
-the apostle would never have alluded to one when he speaks of the other,
-and says, _Christ, our passover, is sacrificed for us; therefore let us
-keep the feast_, &c. 1 Cor. v. 7, 8. And we have as much ground to
-conclude, that baptism comes in the room of circumcision, as we have
-that any gospel-ordinance comes in the room of another, that belonged to
-the ceremonial law, from what the apostle says, _in whom ye are
-circumcised by the circumcision made without hands, buried with him in
-baptism_, Col. ii. 11, 12. where he speaks of the thing signified by
-circumcision and baptism, as being the same, namely, our communion with
-Christ in his death; so that the thing signified by baptism, is styled,
-as it were, a spiritual circumcision: Therefore, since these two
-ordinances, signify the same thing for substance, and are set one
-against the other in this scripture, we may, I think, infer from thence,
-that baptism comes in the room of circumcision.
-
-And, it is farther argued, that baptism being the only initiating
-ordinance, at present, as circumcision was of old; so that the first
-visible profession that was made, especially by any significant
-ordinance, that they were the Lord’s, was made therein, which is what we
-understand by an initiating ordinance under the gospel, as circumcision
-was under the law, then it follows, that it comes in the room thereof;
-or else no other ordinance does: But if it be said, that no ordinance
-comes in the room of circumcision, then the privileges of the church
-under this present dispensation, would be, in a very disadvantageous
-circumstance, less than they were under the former; and if infants
-received any advantage by being devoted to God by circumcision of old,
-but are not to be devoted to him by baptism now, their condition is much
-worse than that of those who were the children of such as lived under
-the legal dispensation; whereas, on the other hand, God has not, under
-this present dispensation, abridged the church of its privileges, but
-rather increased them.
-
-_Obj._ 1. It is objected, that infants have no right to baptism, because
-they cannot believe and repent, since these graces are often mentioned
-in scripture, as a necessary qualification of those who have a right to
-this ordinance, as might be sufficiently proved from those scriptures in
-which persons are said first to believe and repent, and then to be
-baptized; and, in order thereunto, _the gospel_ was first to be
-_preached_, according to our Saviour’s direction, Mark xvi. 15, 16. And
-we read of persons _gladly receiving_ it, and _then_ being _baptized_,
-Acts. ii. 41. therefore Philip would not baptize the Eunuch till he
-professed his faith in Christ, chap. viii. 37, 38. Moreover, this is
-called an ordinance of repentance, as none have a right to it, but those
-who repent: Thus it is said, _John preached the baptism of repentance
-for the remission of sins_, Mark i. 4. and elsewhere, that he _baptized
-with the baptism of repentance, saying to the people, that they should
-believe on him which should come after him, that is, on Christ Jesus_,
-Acts. xix. 4.
-
-_Answ._ We do not deny the necessity of faith and repentance to baptism,
-in them who are adult, as appears by those concessions which have been
-made under a foregoing head; in which we considered, that none are to be
-baptized if adult, till they profess faith in Christ and obedience to
-him; and this ought to be accompanied with repentance, otherwise it is
-not true and genuine; therefore we freely owned also, that the gospel
-was to be preached by the apostles, to those who were immediately
-concerned in their ministry, before they were either to be baptized
-themselves, or their infant-seed. Nevertheless this does not overthrow
-the doctrine of infant-baptism, since that, as has been before proved,
-depends upon different qualifications. Faith is, no doubt, necessary in
-the person that dedicates, or devotes to God: But, if what has been said
-concerning the obligation which every one that is able to dedicate his
-child to God by faith, is under, to do it, (as much as he that is able
-to dedicate himself to him by faith, when adult, is bound to do it,) be
-true; then we are to have regard only to the faith of him that
-dedicates, and to hope for the saving privileges of faith and
-repentance, and all other graces, as divine blessings to be bestowed on
-the person devoted to God, as the great end which we have in view in
-this solemn action.[75]
-
-_Obj._ 2. There is another objection which is concluded, by some, to be
-unanswerable, _viz._ that there is neither precept, nor example in the
-New Testament, that gives the least countenance to our baptizing
-infants; therefore it cannot be reckoned a scripture doctrine, and
-consequently is not from heaven, but of men.[76]
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied, that consequences justly deduced from
-scripture, are equally binding with the words or examples contained
-therein. If this be not allowed of, we shall hardly be able to prove
-many doctrines which we reckon not only to be true, but of great
-importance. It would be endless to enter into a detail of particulars,
-to illustrate and confirm this matter; and I cannot but think it
-unnecessary, since they who deny infant-baptism, do not deny the
-validity of just scripture-consequences.[77]
-
-Therefore, all that I need say to this is, that if the method we have
-taken to prove infant-baptism, appears to be just; and if the premises
-be true, the conclusion deduced from them, must be allowed of; namely,
-that the infants of believing parents are to be baptized, though this be
-not contained in so many express words in scripture: And, I cannot but
-think that the objection would equally hold good against Christ’s dying
-for infants, as well as others, or of their being capable of
-justification, regeneration, and the saving blessings of the covenant of
-grace; and it might as well be inferred from hence, that they are not to
-be devoted to God in other instances, besides that of baptism; or that
-we have not the least ground to expect their salvation; for it would be
-as hard a matter to find this contained in express words of scripture,
-as that which is the matter in controversy, to wit, that they are to be
-baptized.
-
-Here I cannot but take notice of the method which the learned Dr.
-Lightfoot takes to account for the silence of scripture, as to this
-matter[78], which is, for substance, as follows, _viz._ that baptism was
-well enough known to the Jews, as practised by them under the ceremonial
-law; by which he means the ordinance in general, as including in it a
-consecration to God, to worship him in that way which he then
-instituted; and accordingly they are said to have been _baptized into
-Moses_. He also adds, that the apostle speaking concerning this matter,
-as referring to what was done _in the cloud, and the sea_, 1 Cor. x. 2.
-supposes that the whole congregation, of which the infants which they
-had in their arms, were a part, were solemnly devoted to God at that
-time; which, I cannot but conclude to be more agreeable to the sense of
-the word _baptize_, than that which some critics give, who suppose that
-nothing is intended by it, but their being wet, or sprinkled with the
-water of the sea, as they passed through it; for that was only an
-occasional baptism, which could not be well avoided. But, if I may be
-allowed a little to alter or improve on his method of reasoning, I
-rather think, that the apostle’s meaning is, that the whole congregation
-was _baptized into Moses_, soon after they were delivered from the
-Egyptians, while they were encamped at the sea-shore; at which time,
-God, for their security, spread a cloud for a covering to them; and
-then, as the kind hand of Providence had led the way, and brought them
-under a renewed engagement, they hereupon expressed their gratitude and
-obligation to be God’s people, by this universal dedication to him in
-baptism. But to return to the author but now mentioned; he adds, that
-when Jacob was delivered from Laban, and set about the work of reforming
-his household, he ordered them, not only to _put away the strange gods
-that were among them_, but _to be clean_, Gen. xxxv. 2. by which, as he
-observes, the Jews confess, that baptism, or a dedication to God by
-washing, is intended. He also observes, that the ordinance of baptism in
-general, before Christ instituted gospel-baptism, was so well known by
-the Jewish church, that they no sooner heard that John baptized, but
-they came to his baptism; and they did not ask him, why dost thou make
-use of this rite of baptizing? but, what is thy warrant, or, _who sent
-thee to baptize_? He further adds, that both John and Christ took up
-baptism as they found it in the Jewish church; by which he means the
-ordinance in general, without regard to some circumstances, in which
-Christ’s baptism differed from that which was practised under the
-ceremonial law; and this was, as he observes, applied by the Jewish
-church to infants as well as grown persons; therefore, our Saviour had
-no occasion, (when he instituted this ordinance with those
-circumstances, agreeable to the gospel-state, in which it differs from
-the baptism which was before practised,) to command them to baptize all
-nations, that is, all who were the subjects of baptism, and infants in
-particular.
-
-_Obj._ 3. It is further objected, that our Saviour was not baptized in
-his infancy; therefore his example is to be followed, and, consequently,
-no one is to be baptized till he be adult.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied, that every circumstance or action in
-the life of Christ, is not designed to be an example to us; and, indeed,
-there were some things signified in his baptism, that are not in ours,
-inasmuch as in its application to him, it did not signify his being
-cleansed from the guilt and power of sin. The only thing wherein that
-which was signified in his baptism, agrees with ours, is in that he
-devoted himself unto God, not as expecting salvation through a Mediator
-as we do, but as denoting his consent to engage in the work that he came
-into the world about; which he now began to perform in a public manner,
-which he fulfilled in the course of his ministry, while he went about
-doing good. Now it was not convenient that this should be done in his
-infancy; for though the work of redemption began from that time; yet his
-proving himself to be the Messiah, especially his doing this in a public
-manner, did not take place till he was thirty years of age, and then he
-was baptized, that this might be an ordinance for the faith of his
-church, that he was engaged in the work of our redemption. Moreover, it
-must be considered, that John’s baptism, which circumstantially differed
-from that which was practised in the Jewish church, as well as our
-Saviour’s, was not instituted till the year before Christ was baptized;
-therefore he could not be baptized agreeably to the alteration that was
-made in baptism at this time, had he been baptized in his infancy.
-
-_Obj._ 4. It is further objected, that infant baptism is a novelty, and
-not practised by the church in the earliest ages thereof from the
-apostles’ time.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied, that if this could be proved to be
-true, I should regard arguments deduced from scripture-consequences,
-much more than the sense of antiquity to determine this matter. The
-principal use of the writings of the Fathers, in my opinion, is to lead
-us into the knowledge of what relates to the historical account of the
-affairs of the church in their respective ages. The main thing supposed
-in this objection is, that infant-baptism was not practised in the early
-ages of the church; the contrary to which will appear, if we consider
-some things mentioned by the Fathers concerning this matter: Thus Justin
-Martyr says, we have not received the carnal but circumcision by
-spiritual baptism; and all persons are, in like manner, enjoined to
-receive it, as they were to receive circumcision of old, wherein he
-refers to that of the apostle, in Coloss. ii. 11, 12. _We are
-circumcised with the circumcision made without hands, buried with him in
-baptism_; and, consequently, he supposes that baptism comes in the room
-of circumcision, as has been observed elsewhere; and he likewise speaks
-of their being brought to the water, and there regenerated; by which he
-means, baptized, in the same manner as we are, in the name of the
-Father, our Lord and Saviour, and the Holy Ghost[79]. And Cyprian, in a
-council, wherein there were sixty-six bishops convened, delivered it not
-only as his opinion, but supposes it to have been received by them all,
-that infants ought to be baptized before the eighth day, in answer to a
-question under debate, whether the time in which this ordinance was to
-be performed ought to be the same with that in which children were
-circumcised under the law[80]. And, Irenæus[81], speaks of Christ’s
-sanctifying and saving persons of every age, infants not excepted; and
-therefore they are to be regenerated; by which he means, baptized; as
-the Fathers often put the thing signified for the sign: And Gregory
-Nazianzen speaks to the same purpose[82], that baptism may be performed
-as circumcision was, on the eighth day; but that it ought not to be
-omitted any longer, than till the children are two, or three years old.
-And to this I might add, the testimony of Augustin; who asserts, that it
-had been practised by the church, in foregoing ages, from our Saviour’s
-time; which, had it not been matter of fact, he would, doubtless, have
-been disproved by Pelagius, and his other antagonists[83].
-
-It is further objected, by those who deny infant-baptism, that the
-practice of many in the ancient church, who deferred baptism till they
-were adult, argues, that they did not think it lawful for any to be
-baptized in infancy. Thus Constantine the great, as Eusebius observes,
-was not baptized till a little before his death: And, it is well known,
-that Gregory Nazianzen, and Chrysostom, Ambrose, Augustin, and others of
-the Fathers, were not baptized till they came to a state of manhood; and
-Tertullian, who lived in the second century, exhorts persons to defer
-baptism, and adds, that it is the safest way to delay the baptism of
-infants, till they are capable of engaging for themselves, being arrived
-to years of discretion[84].[85] But to this it may be answered, that
-particular instances, or the sentiments of some of the Fathers are not
-sufficient to prove that infant-baptism was not practised by the ancient
-church. As to what is alleged concerning Constantine’s not being
-baptized till a little before his death, and Gregory Nazianzen,
-Chrysostom, _&c._ not till they were adult: This may be accounted for,
-by supposing that their parents did not embrace the Christian religion
-while they were infants: and, if that were true, they ought not to be
-baptized till they could give up themselves to God by faith: This a late
-learned writer attempts to prove[86]. Moreover, some who have been
-converted, have neglected baptism, out of a scruple they have had of
-their unfitness for it, as many, in our day, do the Lord’s supper; and
-others, it may he, might have neglected to baptize their infants, or to
-be baptized themselves, till they apprehended themselves near to death,
-as being misled by a false supposition, which was imbibed by several,
-that baptism washed away sin; therefore, the nearer they were to their
-end, the more prepared they would be, by this ordinance, for a better
-world. However, whether it was neglected for this, or any other reason,
-it does not much affect the argument we are maintaining, our design
-being principally to prove, that it was practised in the early ages of
-the church; and, in what instances soever it was omitted, it was not
-because they denied that the infants of believing parents had a right to
-it. As to several things mentioned by the authors before cited, and
-others that treat on that subject, whereby they seem to maintain the
-absolute necessity thereof, to wash away the pollution of sin; or, when
-they assert, that it is as necessary to salvation as regenerating grace,
-we have nothing to say as to this method of reasoning: However, whatever
-they speak in defence of it, is a sufficient evidence that it is not a
-practice of late invention.
-
-As to what respects Tertullian’s advice to defer baptism till persons
-were capable to engage for themselves; this caution argues, that it was
-practised by some, which is the principal thing designed to be proved.
-And the reason assigned by him for the neglect of baptism, being this,
-because the sureties, who undertook to instruct them in the doctrines of
-religion, often promised more than they made conscience of performing,
-and so brought themselves into a snare thereby; therefore, for their
-sakes, infant-baptism, which could not be administered without sureties,
-had better be delayed; this only proves that he was against
-infant-baptism for some prudential reasons, as it was attended with this
-inconvenience, not that he thought it was in itself unlawful to be
-practised by them. From hence we may conclude, that the objection taken
-from infant-baptism, being supposed to be a novelty, does not weaken the
-cause we are maintaining[87]. Thus concerning the subjects of baptism.
-
-We are now to consider the mode thereof, or what we are to understand by
-the word baptism. It is said, in the foregoing answer, to be the washing
-with water, in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy
-Ghost. There has been a great dispute in the world, concerning the
-meaning of the word βαπτιζω, by which this ordinance is expressed; from
-whence arises the different mode of the administration thereof. Some
-think, that it only signifies the putting a person, or thing, into the
-water, whereby it is covered, or, as it were, buried in it; which is
-otherwise expressed by the word dipping. Others (whose opinion I cannot
-but acquiesce in) conclude that it may as well be performed by the
-application of water, though it be in a different manner, either by
-pouring or sprinkling; and accordingly, that it signifies the using the
-means of cleansing by the application of water, whatever be the form or
-mode thereof. This argument depends very much upon the sense in which
-the word is applied to the action intended thereby, either in scripture
-or other writers. And, inasmuch as the sense thereof, as used in
-scripture, and other writings, is well explained by the learned and
-judicious Dr. Owen, agreeably to the sense we have given of the word; I
-have no occasion to make any other critical remarks upon it, by
-referring to those writings in which the word is found[88].
-
-But, since the greatest number of christians are not so well versed in
-the Greek language, as to be able to judge whether those methods of
-reasoning that are taken from the use of the word which we render
-_baptize_, are sufficiently conclusive: And, when it is asserted, that
-many who are undoubtedly very good masters of the Greek tongue, have
-determined that it signifies all manner of washing with water, as well
-as dipping into it, this will be reckoned, by them, a very fruitless and
-unprofitable subject; however, we are obliged to mention it, because
-great stress is usually laid on the sense of this word, to establish
-that mode of baptism which is always used by those who are on the other
-side of the question.
-
-I shall take leave to add, to what that learned author, but now quoted,
-refers to, has observed on this subject; that it does not appear to me
-that the word Βαπτιζω always signifies to wash, by dipping into water,
-but by the application of water some other way; because it is sometimes
-applied to those things which were too large and cumbersome, and
-therefore could not well be cleansed that way. Thus it is said, in Mark
-vii. 4. that _the Pharisees_ not only _held the washing_, or, as it is
-in the Greek, _the baptism of cups and pots, and brazen vessels_, which
-might, indeed, be washed by immersion, but of _tables_, or, as it may be
-rendered, of _beds_, or those seats on which the Jews, according to the
-custom of the eastern nations, lay at their ease, when they eat their
-meals. These, I conceive were washed some other way, different from that
-of dipping or plunging in water; And if it was possible that they might
-be washed that way, yet the word may be applied to innumerable things,
-that cannot be baptized by immersion: Therefore, the general sense that
-we have given of it, that it signifies to wash, whether by dipping into
-the water, or by the application of water to the thing washed, may
-justify our practice, with respect to the mode of baptism, commonly used
-by us.
-
-_Object._ 1. It is objected hereunto, that the mode used by us, is not
-properly baptism, but rantism; or, that to sprinkle, or pour, is not to
-baptize.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied, that this method of begging the
-question in controversy, is never reckoned a fair way of arguing. If
-baptism be a using the means of cleansing, by the application of water,
-which is the thing we contend for, then the word _baptize_ may as well
-be applied to it as to any other mode of washing. That which may be
-further replied to this objection is, that if the thing signified by the
-action of baptizing, namely, the blood of Jesus, together with those
-gifts and graces of the Spirit, which are applied to those to whom God
-makes this a saving ordinance, be sometimes set forth by sprinkling or
-pouring clean water upon a person, then it cannot be well concluded,
-that sprinkling, or pouring, is not baptizing, though it differ very
-much from that which they who contend with us about this matter
-generally call baptizing. That sprinkling or pouring, is sometimes used
-in scripture, to signify the conferring of those spiritual gifts and
-graces which are signified in baptism, is very evident; inasmuch as it
-is said in John i. 17. _The blood of Jesus Christ his Son, cleanseth us
-from all sin_; and this is called _the blood of sprinkling_, in Heb.
-xii. 24. 1 Pet. i. 2. Therefore, in a spiritual sense, sprinkling is
-called cleansing from sin; and the graces of the Spirit conferred in
-regeneration, are represented in Ezek. xxxvi. 25-27. by _sprinkling
-clean water_; which mode of speaking would never be used, were not
-sprinkling a means of cleansing. And, some think, that the apostle when
-he speaks of our _drawing near to God, having our bodies washed with
-pure water_, Heb. x. 22, intends the ordinance of baptism; yet it
-alludes to the ceremonial cleansings that were under the law, which were
-often done by sprinkling: Therefore we cannot but assert, that
-sprinkling water in baptism, is as much cleansing as any other mode used
-therein.
-
-Moreover, sometimes the thing signified in baptism, is represented by a
-metaphor taken from pouring; which, if our mode of baptizing be just,
-will not seem disagreeable to it; and, it may be, the explication is
-taken from it, as the conferring the Holy Ghost, which they who were
-baptized were given to expect, is often called _pouring out the Spirit_,
-Acts ii. 17, 18. chap. viii. 38.
-
-_Obj._ There is another objection which is concluded by many, to be
-unanswerable, viz. that when we read of baptism in the New Testament,
-the person baptized is said to _go down into the water_. Thus the Eunich
-did, chap. viii. 38. and immediately after this, he is said to _come up
-out of the water_; which can be applied, as is supposed, to no other
-mode of baptism but that of immersion.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied, that the whole strength of this
-objection depends upon the sense that is given of the Greek particles,
-which we often render _into_, and _out of_[90]. But this will have no
-weight with any but those who are unacquainted with the Greek language,
-since it is so well known to all that understand it, that the former of
-these particles often signifies _to_, as well as _into_; and the latter
-_from_, as well as _out of_; as innumerable instances might easily be
-given, was it needful, from scripture, and other Greek authors, in which
-the words are applied to those things, that according to the natural
-signification thereof, cannot be understood as denoting _into_, or _out
-of_. There is one scripture which no one can suppose is to be taken in
-any other sense but what is agreeable to our present purpose, _viz._
-Mat. xvii. 27. wherein our Saviour bids Peter _Go to the sea[91], and
-cast an hook, and take the fish that first cometh thence_, &c. where, by
-_go to the sea_, we can understand nothing else, but go to the
-sea-shore; and yet the word is the same with that which is, in some
-other places, rendered _into_. There are other scriptures in which
-persons are said to _go to the mountain_, or some other places, wherein
-it would be very improper to say, that they went into the place; though
-the word be the same with that which in other instances we render
-_into_. And the word[92] which is sometimes rendered _out of_, is
-frequently rendered _from_, and can be understood in no other sense: As
-when it is said, in Luke xi. 31. _The queen of the south came from the
-utmost parts of the earth, to hear the wisdom of Solomon_; which cannot
-be understood of her coming _out of_, but _from_ thence. But, this
-matter being so well known to all that read the New Testament in the
-original, it is needless for me to give any other instances.[93]
-
-As to what concerns the Eunuch’s _going into the water_, I cannot think
-any thing else is intended by it, but that he descended or lighted down
-from his chariot, to the water, that is, by a metonymy, to the
-water-side, in order to his being baptized by Philip. It is no uncommon
-mode of speaking, to say, that a person goes down to the river-side, to
-take water, or to the well, to draw it; therefore, this is no strain on
-the sense of the word; and I am the rather inclined to give into this
-opinion, because some modern travellers, taking notice of the place
-where this was done, intimate, that it was only a spring of water; and
-therefore without sufficient depth to plunge the body in: And some
-ancient writers, who lived between three and four hundred years after
-our Saviour’s time, as Jerom and Eusebius, intimate the same thing. If
-it be said, that these may be mistaken as to the place, inasmuch as the
-particular spot of ground in which this water was, is not mentioned in
-scripture: I will not lay much stress upon it; however, I cannot but
-observe, that it is represented by a diminutive expression, as it is
-said, they _came to a certain water_, that is, probably, a brook, which
-was by the way-side; not a river, or a great collection of water. And it
-is further observed, that Philip, as well as the Eunuch, _went down into
-the water_; though none suppose that he was plunged in the water;
-therefore it does not certainly appear, from the sense of the word, that
-the Eunuch was, unless the matter in controversy be taken for granted,
-that baptism can be performed in no other way, but by plunging.
-
-Moreover, _to go down to the water_, does not always signify in other
-scriptures, going down to the bottom of the water; as when the Psalmist,
-in Psal. cvii. 23. speaks of them that _go down to the sea in ships_, he
-does not mean them that go down to the bottom of it; therefore, going
-down to the water does not always signify being plunged in it. As for
-what is said concerning Philip and the eunuch’s _coming up out of the
-water_, it may very fairly be understood of their returning from the
-water-side, and the eunuch’s going up again into his chariot. Moreover,
-I cannot but think, that in this, and all other places, where persons
-are said to _come up out of the water_, it denotes an action performed
-with design, and the perfect exercise of the understanding in him that
-does it; which seems not agreeable to one who is at the bottom of the
-water, and cannot well come up from thence, unless by the help of him
-that baptized him. The sense of the words, _coming out of the water_, is
-agreeable to what is said concerning our Saviour at his baptism, in
-Matt. iii. 16. _Jesus went up straightway out of the water_; which seems
-to be a mistake in our translation; where the words απὸ τοῦ ὑδαλος, have
-been rendered, _from the water_; which is of the same import with the
-sense of the Greek particle ἐκ when a person is said to _come up out of
-the water_.
-
-_Obj._ 3. It seems very evident, that John the Baptist used no other
-mode but that of immersion; because he chose those places to exercise
-this part of his ministry in, that were well supplied with water,
-sufficient for this purpose. Accordingly, we first read of his removing
-from the _wilderness of Judea_, in which he _preached the doctrine of
-repentance_; and told the people, that _the kingdom of heaven_, that is,
-the gospel-state, which was to begin with the appearing of the Messiah,
-_was at hand_; and then we read of his removing to the banks of the
-river Jordan, for the conveniency of baptizing those who came to him for
-that purpose: And, after that, we read of another station in which he
-resided, _viz._ _Enon, near to Salim_; and this reason is assigned;
-_because there was much water there_, John iii. 23. Now, if he had
-baptized by sprinkling, or pouring a little water on the face, he had no
-need to remove out of the _wilderness of Judea_: For, whatever scarcity
-of water there might be there, it was no difficult matter for him to be
-supplied with enough to serve his occasion, had this been his mode of
-baptizing.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied, that though John removed to Jordan
-and Ænon, that he might be well supplied with water, as he daily wanted
-large quantities thereof; yet it doth not necessarily follow from hence,
-that this was done for the sake of immersion therein: And it doth not
-sufficiently appear to me, that Ænon afforded water deep enough for a
-person to be baptized in it after this manner; for it seems to be but a
-small tract of land, in which it is hardly probable, that there were
-many lakes, or rivers of water contained; which is as much as can be
-said concerning a well watered country. Therefore, I think, the
-words[94] ought to have been rendered _many waters_; by which we are to
-understand, as Dr. Lightfoot observes, that it was a place of
-springs[95], or small brooks of water. This place John chose, that he
-might be supplied with water for his use; but it doth not, I think,
-necessarily, follow from hence, that he baptized by immersion; Besides,
-if there had been a great collection of waters there, there would have
-been some indications thereof at this day; which, I believe, it would be
-hard to prove that there are.
-
-As to the other part of the objection, that it was a very easy matter
-for him to have been supplied with water in the wilderness of Judea, to
-baptize by sprinkling or pouring, by his having it brought to him in
-vessels for that purpose: It may be replied, that if he had only poured
-water on the head or face, there is no need to suppose that he was so
-sparing of it, as not to use above a spoonful, especially when it was so
-easy a matter for him, by his removing to another station, to be better
-supplied. If there was but a little water poured on every one that came
-to be baptized by him, it would require a very great quantity of water
-to baptize the vast multitudes that came to him; inasmuch as it is said,
-that _Jerusalem, and all Judea, and all the region round about Jordan,
-were baptized of him_: It is one thing for a little water to be brought
-in a bason to baptize a person or two, and another thing for this to be
-done in the case under our present consideration. Moreover, it is
-certain, that in hot countries, and particularly in Judea; and more
-especially in the wilderness thereof, there was a very great scarcity of
-water; accordingly we read, sometimes, that water was so valuable a
-thing, that it was reckoned a very considerable part of a man’s estate:
-Thus Isaac was envied by the Philistines, for all the wells his father’s
-servants had digged; and then we read of their stopping them up, and his
-digging other wells; and also of the strife between the herdsmen of
-Gerar, and his herdsmen, for the possession thereof, Gen. xxvi. 14,-20.
-And we read, in Gen. xxi. 14,-16. that when Abraham sent Hagar away from
-him with Ishmael, he gave her _bread_, and a _bottle of water_; and
-_when the water was spent in the bottle, she cast the child under one of
-the shrubs_, despairing of his life; which she need not have done, if
-water was so easy to come by as it is supposed in this objection. It is
-certain, that a person may travel many miles without finding water to
-quench his thirst, in those desert places. This farther appears from
-Samson’s being _ready to die for thirst_, after the great victory he had
-obtained over the Philistines, on which occasion God wrought a miracle
-to supply him, Judges xv. 18, 19, which can hardly be accounted for, if
-there had been so great plenty of water in that country, as there is in
-ours; this then, I apprehend to be the reason of John’s removal to
-Jordan and Ænon; therefore it doth not necessarily prove that his design
-was to baptize in that way that is pleaded for by those on the other
-side of the question.
-
-Moreover, as it doth not sufficiently appear to me, from any thing
-contained in the objection, that John used immersion in baptism, so it
-seems most agreeable, to some circumstances that attended it, to
-conclude that he did not; inasmuch as there was no conveniency for the
-change of their garments, nor servants appointed to help them therein;
-which seems necessary to answer this occasion. And some have supposed,
-that it might endanger the health of those who were infirm among them,
-and John’s much more, who was obliged to stand many days together in the
-water, or, at least, the greatest part thereof, while he was
-administering this ordinance. And they who were baptized must
-immediately retire when the ordinance was over, or it would endanger
-their health; unless we have recourse to a dispensation of providence,
-that is next to miraculous: Though I am sensible, some say, that none
-ever suffered hereby in our day; which, if the observation be true, is a
-kind providence that they ought to be thankful for.
-
-But if, after all that has been said on this matter, it will not be
-allowed that baptism signifies any thing else but dipping in water: Then
-I might farther allege, that this might be done by dipping the face,
-which is the principal part of the body, without plunging the whole
-body; and this might answer the design of the ordinance as well as the
-other; since it is not the quantity used in a sacramental sign that is
-so much to be regarded, as the action performed, together with the
-matter of it; if the smallest piece of bread, and a spoonful of wine are
-used in the Lord’s supper, this is generally reckoned as well adapted to
-answer the design of the ordinance, as if a great quantity of each were
-received by every one that partakes of it. Now, as to what concerns our
-present argument, the washing a part of the body is deemed sufficient to
-signify the thing intended, as much as though the whole body had been
-washed. Thus when our Saviour washed his disciples’ feet, and told
-Peter, _If_ he _washed him not, he had no part in him_, John xiii. 5.
-wherein (by the way) we may observe, that he calls washing his feet,
-washing him, by a synecdoche, for a part of the whole; upon which
-occasion Peter replies, _not my feet only, but also my hands and my
-head_; and Jesus answered, _He that is washed needeth not, save to wash
-his feet, but is clean every whit_, ver. 10. by which, I think, he
-intends, that this signifies that cleansing, which is the spiritual
-meaning thereof, as much as though the whole body had been washed with
-water; for though one design hereof might be to teach them humility, and
-brotherly kindness; yet it also signifies their being washed or cleansed
-by his blood and Spirit.
-
-_Obj._ 4. There is another objection on which very much stress is
-generally laid, which I should not do justice to the cause I am
-maintaining, if I should wholly pass it over, taken from what the
-apostle says, in Rom. vi. 3, 4, 5. _so many of us as were baptized into
-Christ Jesus, were baptized into his death: Therefore we were buried
-with him by baptism[96] into death; that, like as Christ was raised up
-from the dead by the glory of the Father, even so we also should walk in
-newness of life. For if we have been planted together in the likeness of
-his death, we shall be also in the likeness of his resurrection._ From
-whence it is argued, that there ought to be a similitude between the
-sign and the thing signified; and, consequently, that baptism should be
-performed in such a way, that, by being covered with water, there might
-be a resemblance of Christ’s burial; and by being lifted up out of the
-water, a resemblance of his resurrection: Therefore this ordinance doth
-not only signify the using the means of cleansing with water, but the
-mode, namely, being plunged, or, as it were, buried in water.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied, that it is not agreeable to the
-nature of a sacramental sign, in any other instance; that there should
-be an analogy between the thing done, and what is signified thereby, any
-otherwise than by divine appointment. Accordingly we observed, in the
-foregoing answer, that a sacrament has not a natural tendency to signify
-Christ, and his benefits; as the eating bread and drinking wine doth not
-signify the body and blood of Christ, any otherwise than as this
-signification is annexed by our Saviour, to the action performed; the
-same, I think, may be applied to baptism; especially our consecration,
-and dedication to God therein; and if any other external sign had been
-instituted, to signify the blessings of the covenant of grace, we should
-have been as much obliged to make use of it as we were of water.
-Therefore, I conceive, the apostle, in this scripture, mentioned in the
-objection, doth not refer to our being buried in water, or taken out of
-it, as a natural sign of Christ’s burial and resurrection; but our
-having communion with him in his burial and resurrection. This, I think,
-would hardly be denied by many, on the other side of the question, did
-not the objection, but now mentioned, and the cause they maintain,
-render it expedient for them to understand the words in another sense.
-This is all that I shall say with respect to this matter in controversy,
-as to the subjects and mode of baptism; in which, as I should have been
-unfaithful, had I said less to it; so I have not the least inclination
-to treat those that differ from me in an unfriendly way, as having a
-just sense of their harmony with us, especially a great part of them, in
-those doctrines that have a more immediate reference to our salvation.
-
-We shall now proceed to consider, that as there are some who appear to
-be grossly ignorant of the thing signified in baptism, who seem to
-engage in it, as though it were not a divine institution, concluding it
-to be little more than an external rite or form to be used in giving the
-child a name, being induced hereto rather by custom, than a sense of the
-obligation they are under, to give up their children to God by faith
-therein; so there are others who attribute too much to it, when they
-assert, that infants are hereby regenerated; and that if they die before
-they commit actual sin, they are undoubtedly saved, inasmuch as they are
-hereby made members of Christ, children of God, and heirs of the kingdom
-of heaven: This seems to be an ascribing that to the ordinance, which is
-rather expected or desired, than conferred thereby.
-
-As for the child’s being signed with the sign of the cross, signifying
-hereby that he should not be ashamed to confess the faith of Christ
-crucified, but manfully to fight under his banner against sin, the
-world, and the devil; how much soever this may be a branch of that
-baptismal obligation, which he is professedly under; yet I cannot see
-what warrant persons have to make use of this external sign and symbol,
-which can be reckoned no other than an ordinance for their faith, though
-destitute of a divine institution.
-
-There is also another thing practised by some in baptism, that is
-greatly abused, namely, the requiring that some should be appointed as
-sureties for the child, by whom it is personated; and they engage, in a
-solemn manner, in its behalf, that it shall fulfil the obligation that
-it is laid under, which is not only more than what is in their power to
-perform; but it is to be feared, that the greatest part of these
-sureties hardly think themselves obliged to shew any concern about them
-afterward. And that which is farther exceptionable in this matter, is
-that the parents, who are more immediately obliged to give up their
-children to God, seem to be, as it were, excluded from having any hand
-in this matter.
-
-I have nothing to except against the first rise of this practice; which
-was in the second century, when the church was under persecution; and
-the design thereof was laudable and good, namely, that if the parents
-should die before the child came of age; whereby it would be in danger
-of being seized on by the Heathen, and trained up in their superstitious
-and idolatrous mode of worship, the sureties promised, that, in this
-case, they would deal with it as though it were their own child, and,
-bring it up in the Christian religion; which kind and pious concern for
-its welfare, might have been better expressed at some other time than in
-baptism, lest this should be thought an appendix to that ordinance:
-However, through the goodness of God, the children of believing parents
-are not reduced to those hazardous circumstances; and therefore the
-obligation to do this, is less needful; but to vow, and not perform, is
-not only useless to the child, but renders that only a matter of form,
-which they promise to do in this sacred ordinance.
-
-The only thing that I shall add under this answer, is, that if we have
-been baptized, either in our infancy, or when adult, we are obliged, in
-faithfulness, as we value our own souls, to improve it to the glory of
-God, and our spiritual welfare in the whole conduct of our lives. And
-this leads us to what is contained in the following answer.
-
-Footnote 69:
-
- Μαθητεισατε.
-
-Footnote 70:
-
- _Vid Whitby in Loc._
-
-Footnote 71:
-
- This then is a repetition; go, _teach_, baptize, _teach_. This
- commission was to _disciple_ the world, baptizing and teaching are the
- specification, and are participles agreeing with the nomination.
-
- It is no inference from the position of baptizing before teaching are
- that adults might be first baptized. This was the institution of the
- ordinance of baptism as well as the apostolic commission; yet it
- neither contains any direction either as to the mode or subjects;
- because Christ spoke to Jews, who knew that adult proselytes were
- carefully examined, whilst infants were circumcised with their parents
- without such examination. They also knew the various modes of
- religious purifications among the Jews; both John the Baptist, and
- they having under that dispensation baptized. Neither is faith
- essential to the validity of baptism, nor is the profession of it
- required of such as are incapable of making it.
-
-Footnote 72:
-
- To be brought into the visible church, is a high privilege, of which
- infants are as capable now, as under the former dispensation. Consent
- is not necessary; for infants receive inheritances. _This is by force
- of municipal laws._ But are not the laws of God of equal
- force?—_Baptism implies obligations, which can be founded only on
- consent._ Then it will follow that infants are not bound by human
- laws, for they have not assented to the social compact; they are under
- no obligation to obey parents, guardians, or masters, because they
- either did not choose them, or were incompetent to make such choice;
- they are not bound by the laws of God himself, which is this very
- case, because they have not consented to his authority; and if they
- never consent, they will be always free equally from all obligations,
- and all sin. Such are the consequences of the above objection.
-
-Footnote 73:
-
- The dictates of nature, uncontrouled by revelation, are the will of
- Christ, and our rule of duty. The _will of Christ_, expressed in these
- dictates, requires us to benefit our children as they are capable.
- _Baptism_, as the initiatory seal of God’s covenant, is a _benefit_ of
- which infants are _capable_.—This evidence is not _eclipsed_, but
- _brightened_, by scripture authority, as we shall see in the sequel of
- this chapter.
-
- Let the reader carefully notice, that we do not suppose, by insisting
- on this argument, the insufficiency of _direct scripture_ evidence:
- for _this_ has been frequently urged with advantage, to satisfy
- persons of the best dispositions and abilities. That is, reader, “some
- of the most eminent Pœdobaptists that ever filled the Professor’s
- chair, or that ever yet adorned the Protestant pulpit.” But since our
- opponents insist, that what has been so often urged, is not
- conclusive; and _modestly_ affirm, it is only calculated to catch “the
- eye of a _superficial_ observer;” they are desired once more
- impartially to weigh this reasoning, and then, if they are able, to
- refute it. Let them know, however, that hackneyed phrases without
- meaning—principles taken upon trust—and empty declamation—must not be
- palmed on us instead of solid arguments.
-
- Were it necessary, it would be easy to shew, that the principles above
- urged are no _novelty_; but are perfectly agreeable to experience,—and
- to the practical judgment of the most serious Pœdobaptists, both
- illiterate and learned. But waving this, we proceed next to another
- corroborating proof of the main proposition.
-
- What we contend for is. That it is the _will of Christ_ we should
- _baptize_ our infant children. In proof of this we have shewn, first,
- that the _dictates of right reason_ require us to _benefit_ them, and
- consequently to _baptize_ them; as baptism is always a benefit when
- administered to _capable_ subjects. We come, secondly, to shew—That
- God has constantly approved of _this principle_, in all _preceding_
- dispensations. In other words—That the _principle_ of the last
- argument is so far from being _weakened_ by scripture evidence, that
- the Lord’s _approbation_ of _it_, in his conduct towards the offspring
- of his professing people, in all the dispensations of true religion,
- is abundantly _illustrated_ and _confirmed_.
-
- Mr. B’s misapplied but favourite maxim—“Positive laws imply their
- negative,” has no force in the baptismal controversy, until he
- demonstrates, in opposition to what is advanced, that the dictates of
- right reason must be _smothered_, or else, that revelation
- countermands their influence. But to _demonstrate_ the former, in
- matters about which, on the supposition, scripture is silent, is no
- easy task. And the difficulty will be _increased_ in proportion as the
- sacred oracles corroborate reason’s verdict. Let us now appeal to
- these oracles.
-
- We appeal to that period of the church, and dispensation of grace,
- which extended from Adam to Noah. The inspired narrative of this long
- space of time is very short: on which we make the following remarks.
- We then assert,
-
- Whatever exhibition of grace was made to antediluvian _parents_, was
- constantly made to their _offspring_; and consequently whatever seals
- of grace were granted to the former, must equally appertain to the
- latter if not voluntary _rejectors_ of them. Therefore, all such
- parents had a _revealed_ warrant to regard their offspring as entitled
- to the _seals_ of the covenant, in _like manner_ as themselves,
- according to their capacity. For,
-
- All allow that Gen. iii. 15. contains the promulgation of gospel
- grace; nor are we authorised to question the interest of _children_
- therein with their parents, without an express contravention. For, it
- were _unnatural_ for a parent to _confine_ such a _benefit_ to his own
- person to the exclusion of his children, who are not only parts of his
- family but of _himself_. To which we may add, that the phrase _thy
- seed_, though principally referring to the Messiah, respected Eve’s
- _natural seed_ as sharers in common with herself in the exhibition of
- mercy; and we suppose not less so than her _husband_. For this
- application of the phrase _thy seed_, compare Gen. xvii. 7. and Gal.
- iii. 16. Again,
-
- It is generally agreed, that not only the institution of _sacrifices_,
- but also the _coats_ of skin, (Gen. iii. 21.) were _emblematic_ of
- covenant blessings; and not only so, in common with mere types, but
- _seals_ of the covenant, as earnests and pledges of exhibited favour.
- “Who will deny,” says Witsius, “that God’s cloathing our first parents
- was a _symbolical_ act? Do not Christ’s own words (Rev. iii. 18.) very
- clearly allude to this?” As for _sacrifices_, they were slain at God’s
- command after the promulgation of the covenant. For, if Abel _offered
- by faith_, (Heb xi. 4.) it presupposes the divine _institution_ of
- them. And this institution, most probably, took place when God—taking
- occasion from the insufficiency of the aprons of fig-leaves, which the
- fallen pair sewed together, to cover the shame of their
- nakedness—himself cloathed them with coats of skins. And most divines
- agree, that it is very probable, these were the skins of those beasts
- which were slain for _sacrifices_. However, God gave testimony to
- these oblations of the ancient patriarchs, that they were _acceptable_
- to him; but this cannot be supposed without admitting them to be
- _divinely instituted_. Besides, a distinction of _clean_ and _unclean_
- animals was observed before the deluge; which was not from _nature_,
- but the mere divine pleasure; and may we not add, with a particular
- respect to _sacrifices_? Now,
-
- If, according to Witsius and others, these _skins of beasts_, and
- _sacrifices_, were appointed _seals of the righteousness of faith_; I
- would ask—Was the _covenant_ directed for the use of their _seed in
- common_ with the parents, and not the _seal_ in like manner? For, if
- the seals be affixed to the covenant for _confirmation_ of its
- contents, as well as, in another view, for signification; I would fain
- know, by what rule of construction we can infer, that the covenant
- _itself_ belongs to the parents and their seed _in common_, while the
- _confirmation_ of it belongs _exclusively_ to the former? Is it not
- contrary to _custom_ and _unreasonable_ to conclude, that a charter of
- privileges, or a testamentary instrument, (which by the way express
- the nature of the covenant) belongs to a man and his heirs _alike_,
- but the confirming seal respects the former _only_; while on the
- supposition, the sovereign, or the testator, has given _no ground_ for
- such partiality? Besides,
-
- If the covenant itself be a benefit to the persons to whom it is
- directed, as it certainly is in _every_ dispensation of it, it follows
- that the _confirmation_ of it is so; for parents, therefore, to _deny_
- their offspring all the share in such common benefits they are capable
- of, without a divine warrant, is _unnatural_, and an act of
- _injustice_. We may therefore conclude—that from Adam to Noah, the
- _covenant_ and its _seals_ appertained to _infants_ in common with
- their parents.
-
- We appeal next to that period of the church which extended from Noah
- to Abraham: On which we observe,
-
- Whatever benefits and privileges belonged to the former dispensation,
- continue to flow on to the present, if not _expressly_ repealed; for
- the change of a dispensation _of itself_, is no adequate cause of
- their abrogation. That would be as unreasonable as to suppose that the
- bare change from night to day was, _of itself_, an adequate cause of a
- man’s being disinherited. Or we may as well say, that the abstract
- notion of an epoch in chronology has a real influence on the sequence
- of events. Whatever covenant privileges, therefore, belonged to Noah
- and his family _before_ the deluge, if not expressly repealed, must
- belong to them _after_ the deluge. But,
-
- So far were these privileges from being abridged at this period, that
- they were greatly enlarged and confirmed, by additional discoveries.
- For thus we read, Gen. vi. 18. _But with thee will I establish my
- covenant; and thou shall come into the ark, thou, and thy sons, and
- thy wife, and thy sons’ wives with thee._ Again, chap. vii. 1. _And
- the Lord said unto Noah, Come thou, and all thy house into the ark;
- for thee have I seen righteous before me in this generation._ And
- again, chap. viii. 20. _And Noah builded an altar unto the Lord; and
- took of every clean beast, and of every clean fowl, and offered
- burnt-offerings on the altar._ Once more, chap. ix. 8, 9, 12, 13. _And
- God spake unto Noah, and to his sons with him, saying, And I, behold,
- I establish my covenant with you, and with your seed after you. And
- God said, This is the token of the covenant I do set my bow in the
- cloud._ Hence we further learn,
-
- That the covenant or divine charter, first given to Noah, _included_
- the preceding; it was the _same covenant_ with _additional grants_:
- for the Lord says, “I will _establish_ my covenant.” Lest Noah should
- infer that the drowning of the world in wrath disannulled the well
- known covenant, God dissipates his fears, by saying, “I will
- _establish_ my covenant.”
-
- On Noah’s _account_, or _as belonging_ to him, _all his house_ or
- family was privileged. The privilege is,—“Come thou, and _all thy
- house_ into the ark.” The ground and reason of that privilege—“_for
- thee have I seen righteous_.” It is true, the natural dictates of
- reason and affection, whereby a _father pitieth his children_, and
- whereby an infidel _careth for his own, especially those of his own
- house_, would have prompted this righteous person to bring _all his
- family_, (except any adults _refused_ compliance) into the ark, (_the
- like figure whereunto is baptism_, as an inspired teacher assures us,
- 1 Pet. iii. 21.) yet the Lord was pleased to brighten his evidence and
- strengthen his obligations of duty by express revelation.
-
- After the flood the institution of _sacrifices_ continued as the seal
- of the _first_ part of the covenant; and the _rainbow_ was instituted
- as the seal of the _additional_ part, or, as Pareus calls it,
- “_appendix_ of the covenant of grace.” And here it is worthy of
- notice, that as the first exhibition of the covenant and its seals
- respected the offspring of _fœderati_, and the _renewal_ or
- _establishment_ of it to Noah retained that privilege in full force:
- so also the _appendix_ of the covenant comprehended his _seed_.
-
- Respecting this appendix of the covenant of which the rainbow was the
- seal, though we suppose, with Witsius, it was not formally and
- precisely the covenant of grace; yet we observe, with the same
- excellent author, “it does not seem consistent with the divine
- perfections, to make such a covenant with every living creature, but
- on _supposition_ of a covenant of grace, and having a _respect_ to
- it.” And as this covenant, in its universality, implied the covenant
- of grace, we are not to deny, but the promises of it were also
- _sealed_ to Noah and his seed by the rainbow. See Rev. iv. 3. x. 8.
-
- It is observable, finally, that Noah his _sons_, and _their seed_ were
- _fœderati_, in this ratification of the covenant; consequently
- whatever _seals_ of the covenant belonged to Noah, belonged to _his
- sons_, and _their seed_, while non-dissentients.
-
- Appeal we next to a very important period of sacred history, viz. From
- Abraham to Moses. On this also we make the following remarks.
-
- The Abrahamic covenant _included_ the preceding dispensations, on the
- general principle—that grants and privileges continue in force until
- _repealed_. Which repealing, if it be not either _express_, or arise
- from the nature of the case, in itself _plain_, can have no binding
- influence, that is to say, no existence at all: except we maintain,
- that we are _bound_ to resign an important good without an assignable
- cause; which is in fact to maintain that we ought to _deny_ that to
- be, which is.
-
- I suppose it will be granted, that the _principal blessing_ exhibited
- in the foregoing dispensations was _the righteousness of faith_; the
- great importance of which to the human race, in every age of the
- world, no one will deny who considers things _as they are_. This
- covenant, therefore, was in force to Abraham _prior_ to what is called
- the Abrahamic dispensation; and in this connexion we might mention Lot
- and his family. But, behold,
-
- A most explicit ratification of it, with _superadded_ favours, Gen.
- xii. 3.—_In thee shall all families of the earth be blessed. And I
- will_ establish my covenant _between me and thee, and thy_ seed _after
- thee in their generations, for an everlasting covenant_; To be a God
- unto thee and to thy seed after thee. _ver._ 10. _This is my covenant
- which ye shall keep between me and you_, and thy seed _after thee_:
- every man-_child among you shall be_ circumcised, _ver._ 12. _He that
- is_ eight days old _shall be circumcised among you, every_ man-_child
- in your generations; he that is born in the house_, or bought with
- money of any stranger, _which is not of thy seed_. _ver._ 24-27. _And
- Abraham was_ ninety years old and nine, _when he was circumcised in
- the flesh of his foreskin. And Ishmael his son was_ thirteen years
- old, _when he was circumcised in the flesh of his foreskin. In the_
- self-same day _was Abraham circumcised, and Ishmael his son. And_ all
- the men of his house, _born in the house, and_ bought with money of
- the stranger, _were circumcised with him_. Hence we learn,
-
- The _nature_ and _extent_ of the _Abrahamic covenant or promise_.
- Whatever _blessings_ are _promised_ to ruined man, must be _in virtue_
- of the covenant of grace. All promised blessings, therefore, must
- _imply_ an _exhibition_ of _gospel grace_. And the glad tidings of
- salvation through Christ preached to the _gentile world_, is expressly
- called—_The blessing of Abraham_ (Gal. iii. 14.) Not that this _link_
- is the _first_ in the chain of exhibited mercy to the fallen race _in
- general_, or with an universal and unlimited aspect, if the reasoning
- in the last sections be just: but for its _explicitness_, and
- _precious_ (because expressly diffusive) intendment, it may be justly
- termed a _golden link_. In this respect Abraham may well be
- styled—_The Father of us all_; not to the disavowal of Noah, with whom
- the covenant was before ratified, or Eve, who received the _first_
- intimation of it, and who in _this_ respect eminently may be
- called—_The mother of all living_. The _covenant_ of grace, in its
- external manifestation, containing _an exhibition of exceeding great
- and precious promises_ to every human being on the face of the globe,
- to whom providence directs the joyful news, may be compared to a
- flowing stream: it proceeds ultimately from the immense ocean of
- sovereign grace in Christ; its _first_ visible source we trace to
- paradise, where it rises in a small spring, and glides on to Noah.
- During this part of its progress, there were but few comparatively who
- participated of its cleansing and healing virtues, though none were
- debarred from it. This continuing to glide along, without
- interruption, (notwithstanding God’s awful visitation of a corrupt
- world by the deluge) we discern through the person of Noah _another_
- source, whence is poured forth a second stream which empties itself
- into the former channel. The streams thus _united_ become a river,
- which flows on to Abraham—a river to which _all_ are invited, but
- _few_ come, and these made willing by the omnipotent energy of _divine
- influence_ which observes the laws of another—a _hidden_ dispensation,
- running parallel as it were with the former; which was also the case
- in the preceding period. Then, through the highly honoured person of
- Abraham we behold another mighty spring copiously pouring forth the
- waters of salvation, and again uniting itself to the former river; and
- from him to Christ, with a wide majestic flow, it proceeds along the
- consecrated channel of the Jewish nation; gradually increasing by the
- accession of other streams, till it arrives at the Saviour’s finished
- work; where, impatient of confinement, it breaks over its banks on
- every side, and the healing waters flow to the most distant
- regions—_That the blessing of Abraham might come upon the Gentiles_.
- (Gal. iii. 14, 8. compared with Gen. xii. 3. xviii. 18. xxii. 18.)
- Paul expressly says, that “the _Gospel_” (even the very same as the
- New Testament contains—_salvation by Grace_) “was preached to
- Abraham:” And (Heb. iv. 2.) it was preached to his unbelieving
- descendants in the wilderness.
-
- As it is _natural_ to expect, that whatever exhibition of privileges
- the parents enjoyed should be extended to their children, in common
- with themselves; so we find that _in fact_ they are _expressly
- included_ in _this_ dispensation as well as the preceding. The
- covenant is established between God and Abraham’s _seed, in the very
- same sense_ as with Abraham _himself_; the essence of which is—_to be
- a God to him and his seed_. And lest it should be objected that the
- term _seed_ refers to his _adult posterity_ who should tread in his
- steps, to the exclusion of infants, all doubt is dissipated by the
- appointment of applying the _seal_ of the covenant in early infancy.
-
- _Sacrifices_ continuing in full force to _seal_ the covenant, till the
- divine oblation should be made; and the _bow_ of the covenant
- continuing as a token and _seal_ of it, until the Messiah’s _second_
- coming; at the commencement of this period is given an _additional_
- seal—_circumcision_. The very _nature_ of the rite shews that all
- _females_ are excluded from being the subjects of it; as well as the
- discriminating specification—_every man-child_. Here observe in
- general, that children, in this rite, have the same privileges as
- their parents. The males are treated as Abraham, and the females as
- Sarah: _These_ therefore, had the covenant sealed in the same manner
- as their honoured mother. Again: though Sarah and her sex were not the
- _subjects_ of this rite, they were constant _witnesses_ to the
- institution; and therefore there was an important sense in which
- circumcision was a seal to Sarah and her daughters; a sense analagous
- to that in which sacrifices were.
-
- Every domestic head being, in truth, a prophet, priest, and king, in
- his own family; a question must arise, Whether the covenant and its
- seals are restricted to the parent head of the family, and his
- children, or else extended to the _other domestics_? Nor would the
- question be unimportant; for his _instructions_, his _prayers_, and
- _commands_, answerable to his three-fold office, must be directed
- accordingly. To this question right reason replies: If the covenant
- and its seals are _beneficial_ to all capable subjects, benevolence
- requires that they should be extended to the other _non-dissenting_
- members—except forbidden by indisputable authority. This is the voice
- of reason; and we find that this is the voice of God. The privilege is
- common to the seed, and _to him that is born in the house, or bought
- with money of any stranger_, which is not of the seed, Gen. xvii. 12.
-
- It has been objected, “that the covenant with Abraham was a covenant
- of _peculiarity_ only, and that circumcision was no more than a token
- of _that_ covenant;” but if so, as Mr. Henry observes, “how came it
- that all _proselytes_, of what nation soever, even _the strangers_,
- were to be circumcised; though not being of any of the tribes, they
- had no part or lot in the land of Canaan? The extending the seal of
- circumcision to _proselyted strangers_, and to _their seed_, was a
- plain indication, that the New Testament administration of the
- covenant of grace would reach, not to the covenanters only, but their
- _seed_.” But it has been proved that circumcision _sealed_ to Abraham
- and his seed _the righteousness of faith_; and therefore it does not
- affect the point in debate to contend that temporal promises were
- sealed _also_.
-
- We next appeal to the long and interesting period from Moses to
- Christ, On which let the following observations be considered.
-
- Whatever appertained to the Abrahamic covenant was not disannulled by
- the Mosaic dispensation. This St. Paul asserts in plain terms, Gal.
- iii. 17.
-
- It may not be amiss to take notice, before we proceed, of Job’s
- family; who, being as is generally supposed, cotemporary with Moses,
- and unconnected with his history, deserves a previous regard. Of him
- it is said, that “he _sanctified_ his children, and rose up early in
- the morning, and _offered burnt-offerings_, according to the _number
- of them all_—Thus did Job _continually_,” or, all the days. (Job i.
- 5.) On this I would only observe, let the _sanctifying_ be what it
- may, the _sacrifices_ must have been of divine institution; and used
- by Job, being an eminently righteous man, as the _seals_ of the
- covenant of grace; with respect to his children _separately_.
-
- Superadded to the foregoing seals of the covenant, is the _passover_;
- a divine rite of the nature of a sacrifice, instituted in memory of
- Israel’s deliverance out of Egypt, representing and sealing spiritual
- blessings. “As to the _guests_, says Witsius, they were, first, all
- native _Israelites_, who were not excluded by legal uncleanness. For
- _all the congregation of Israel_ is commanded to solemnize the
- passover. And, next, the _Proselytes_ circumcised and become Jews;
- whether bondmen born in the house or bought with money, &c. Exod. xii.
- 48. _When a_ stranger _will sojourn with thee, and keep the passover
- to the Lord, let_ all his males _be circumcised, and then let him come
- near and keep it, and he shall be as one that is born in the land_.”
- On this passage in Exodus, Dr. Jennings observes these two things;
- “_First_, That when a man thus became a Proselyte, _all his males_
- were to be circumcised _as well as himself_, whereby his _children_
- were admitted into the visible church of God, _in his right_, as their
- father. _Secondly_, That upon this, he should be _entitled to all the
- privileges_ and immunities of the Jewish church and nation as well as
- be subject to the whole law: He should be as one born in the land.” In
- short; not only men and women, but also young children partook of this
- ordinance, _as soon as they were capable_ of answering the revealed
- design of it, for—no _positive_ rule was given them on this head, like
- that of circumcision. It is manifest that since the injunction
- respected not only individuals of such a description, but also
- families _as such_, every member without exception had a _legal right_
- to the ordinance; and nothing prevented _infants_ from a
- participation, but what lay in the _natural_ incapacity to answer the
- design of it.
-
- “Besides the _ordinary_ and _universal_ sacraments of _circumcision_
- and the _passover_, some _extraordinary_ symbols of divine grace were
- granted to the Israelites in the wilderness, which in the New
- Testament are applied to Christ and his benefits, and said to have the
- same signification with our sacraments. And they are in order
- these—The _passage_ in the cloud _through the Red Sea_—the _manna_
- which was rained from heaven—The _water_ issuing out of the _rock_—and
- the _brazen serpent_ erected by Moses for the cure of the Israelites.”
- To this we may add, among other things, with the author now referred
- to—the clear and familiar display of the _divine majesty_—and the
- adumbration of divine mysteries daily _sealed_ by religious
- _ceremonies_. Our subject does not call for an investigation of these
- particulars, but I would remark in general, that the principle for
- which we contend, is so far from being weakened, that it is abundantly
- corroborated by the inspired testimony of every dispensation, and the
- Mosaic in particular—That it is a common dictate of right reason,
- children should from their earliest infancy share in their parents’
- privileges, as far as they are capable, when no positive authority
- contravenes it.
-
- From the preceding induction of sacred evidence in favour of children
- being sharers of the seals of grace in common with their parents, we
- conclude, that for the space of four thousand years, that is to say,
- _from the creation to Christ_, it was a rule _universally_ incumbent
- on parents to treat their children as entitled to religious privileges
- _equally_ with themselves, according to their capacity.—And as a
- counterpart of what was observed of privileges, we may remark that, in
- virtue of the same uniform principle, often when the parents were
- punished with excommunication or death, their infant children were
- included with them. As might be instanced in—the deluge—the
- destruction of Sodom and Gomorrah—the case of Achan the Son of Zerah
- (Josh. vii. 24.)—the matter of Korah, Dathan, and Abiram—the case of
- the conquered nations (Deut. xx. 16, 17.)—and many more instances,
- down to the destruction of Jerusalem. Far be it from us to suppose,
- that the parents’ crimes and impenitence made their suffering children
- incapable of _mercy_—that mercy which proceeds on an invisible plan,
- and belongs to a purely spiritual dispensation. Yet, that children,
- during their _dependence_ on their parents, should share equally with
- them in judgment and mercies externally, is the effect of an all-wise
- constitution coeval with mankind.
-
- DR. WILLIAMS ON BAPTISM.
-
-Footnote 74:
-
- Tertullian observes on this passage, that if either parent were
- christians,, the children were enrolled in Jesus Christ by early
- baptism. And it fairly implies infant baptism in the days of Paul.
- For, having declared that the unbelieving partner was not to be
- divorced according to the law of Moses, which held the heathen to be
- unclean; he pronounces the unbelievers set apart by such marriage to
- God, as far as regarded that marriage; and in proof of this he refers
- to a fact as known to the Corinthians, namely that the children of
- such marriages were received into the church, and treated as holy,
- that is devoted to God. Now if the children of such marriages were not
- treated as heathens, but owned by the church, and this could be in no
- other way than by receiving them by baptism, there can be no doubt,
- that this was the case when both parents were believers.—Ακαθαρτος &
- αλιος never mean _illegitimate_ and _legitimate_; and if they did,
- this would be no proof that the unbelieving party was consecrated to
- God, so as that the children should be clean and devoted to him.
-
-Footnote 75:
-
- All these scriptures which require faith, that is, the credible
- profession of it, to precede baptism, are certainly directed only to
- those who are at years capable of it, and not to infants. These
- scriptures do not exclude infants whose claim is through the
- church-membership of their parents, by which they are not “_unclean_,”
- 1 Cor. vii. 14. but _holy_, entitled to the promises made to the seed
- of Abraham; and also by virtue of the commission to disciple _all
- nations_, of which they are a part as much as their believing parents;
- and by the practical exposition of that commission in the universal
- baptism of infants in the christian churches for the first four
- hundred years.
-
-Footnote 76:
-
- It may be objected, “If the preceding account be true, that baptism is
- not an institution _merely positive_, as much so as any enacted under
- the Mosaic dispensation; then the present economy hath no institutions
- at all of that kind.” This objection supposes,
-
- 1. That precepts of a positive nature under the Mosaic dispensation,
- were absolutely so in all their circumstances; so as not to leave any
- thing to be inferred by the person or persons concerned, in the
- discharge of the duty enjoined.—But if these things were so, if the
- Jewish ritual was so express as to leave nothing to be determined by
- inference, one might well wonder whence could spring so many _Targums_
- and _Talmuds_, so many voluminous works intended to explain and
- illustrate the various circumstances attending the performance of
- these _positive duties_ among others. Are not these _unprescribed
- circumstances_ of ritual worship, and other positive injunctions, what
- in a great degree swell the interpretations of the _Rabbins_?—The
- truth is, that there were many precepts under the Jewish economy
- positive in a _considerable degree_, relative to the _subject_ as well
- as the mode of an institute, and respecting the former, it was
- sometimes particularly scrupulous, for reasons already assigned; but
- it does not follow that ANY ONE of these were so strictly positive, as
- not to take some things for _granted_ respecting the circumstances of
- the duty, such as national custom, the common dictates of sense and
- reason, traditionary knowledge, the general principles of the law of
- nature, &c. And it should not be forgotten, that the administrator of
- the Jewish rites had the subjects distinguished and characterized in a
- _sensible manner_, which qualification was to be determined by the
- same sort of evidence as any _facts_ in common life; but the
- administrator of the Christian rites has no such grounds to proceed
- on; his commission is of a _discretionary_ nature, arising from the
- nature and design of the institutions themselves, as before shewn.
-
- 2. The objection again supposes, that there is some _excellency_ in an
- institution being merely and absolutely positive, more than in one of
- a mixed nature. But this supposition is vain and erroneous. For what
- conceivable superior excellency can there be in any precept or duty on
- account of its _positiveness_? Were there any force in the objection,
- it would imply that the Christian dispensation is _less excellent_
- than the Mosaic; as having fewer positive rites, and their proportion
- of positiveness being also smaller. And it would also imply, that the
- reasonable duties of prayer and praise, as founded on the law of
- nature, as well as more fully enjoined by revelation, were _less
- excellent_ than baptism and the Lord’s supper; and it would follow,
- that the services of the church triumphant are in their own nature
- _less excellent_ than those of the church militant; which are
- consequences from the force of the objection equally genuine and
- absurd. Our Lord’s answer respecting the first and great commandment,
- shews at once that what is the most _important_ duty, is also the most
- _natural_, and therefore the most remote from what is merely positive;
- and that is the _love of God_. This matter has been fully shewn
- before. In one word, the spirit of the objection is truly pharisaic.
-
- Some may perhaps object, “that this has been always admitted as true,
- that baptism and the Lord’s supper are positive institutions of the
- New Testament; and that many pædobaptists have availed themselves of
- this fort, in ascertaining the nature and enforcing the obligation of
- the latter, and particularly bishop Hoadly. And as his lordship’s
- principle, in his _Plain Account of the Sacrament of the Lord’s
- Supper_, has been deemed unanswerable, Mr. Foot, Dr. Stennett, and
- others, have taken but the same method in treating about baptism.” To
- this I reply,
-
- That, as principles taken upon trust, dignified titles, and lawn
- sleeves, are light as a feather in the scale of argument; so, on the
- other hand, I am satisfied the bishop of Winchester’s positions, taken
- in a sound sense, nay, the _only_ consistent sense in which they can
- be taken, are evidently true and important. The sum is this; that all
- positive duties, or duties made such by institution alone, depend
- entirely upon the will and declaration of the person who institutes or
- ordains them, with respect to the real design and end of them, and
- consequently, to the due manner of performing them. This is strictly
- true, _in the degree that any duties are positive_, but no further.
- And to denominate a precept or duty _positive_, though but _partially_
- so, I have no objection, for the sake of distinguishing them from such
- as are merely moral, and evidently founded on the reason and nature of
- things. “Except we observe this caution,” as bishop Butler observes,
- “we shall be in danger of running into endless confusion.”
-
- It may be said, “If we resign this maxim, that a positive precept or
- duty excludes all moral reasoning, analogy and inference, we open a
- door to numberless innovations, and deprive ourselves of a necessary
- barrier against the encroachments of popery, &c.” In reply to this
- specious objection let it be observed,
-
- 1. That this maxim, whatever confidence our opponents place in it, is
- a very _insufficient_ barrier for the defence of truth, if the
- objection implies, that it is calculated to defend truth against
- error, and not error against truth as well. For it is notorious, that
- there is hardly any extravagance, in the whole compass of the
- distinguishing peculiarities of religious practice, that is not
- barricadoed by this very maxim. If _Protestants_ use it against
- Papists, _Papists_ in their turn use it against Protestants. If the
- Quakers are pursued and foiled when they occasionally quit this fort,
- they soon rally their controversial forces, and, entrenching
- themselves behind the strength of this maxim, become again victorious.
- Whence passive obedience and non-resistance? Whence an opposition to
- all _forensic_ swearing, in common with profane? Whence the Quakers’
- nonconformity to what other serious Christians consider as lawful?
- Their peculiar mode of salutation and address? Their method of
- conducting religious worship? The little stress they lay on the
- observance of the christian Sabbath? &c. Whence the popish absurd
- figment of transubstantiation, apostolical succession, extreme
- unction? &c.—On the contrary,
-
- 2. Not to distinguish between the _positiveness_ and _morality_ of a
- precept, ordinance or duty, and not to ascertain their respective
- _degrees_; and to deny that the _latter_ distinction admits of moral
- reasoning, inference and analogy, open a wide door to _bigotry_, and
- numberless glaring abuses of the sacred oracles. By rejecting the
- analogy of faith and the _design_ of scripture herein, we give the
- most effectual encouragement to every senseless intrusion. And what is
- still more remarkable is, that the _more firmly_ any one adheres to
- the undistinguishing positive scheme, in reference to any christian
- ordinance whatever, the more closely will he be allied to the interest
- of genuine bigotry. For it has a direct tendency to make the
- unprescribed circumstances of a positive rite, _essential_ to the rite
- itself, and consequently to make that necessary and essential which
- the institutor has not made so. How far this is applicable to the
- antipædobaptist’s cause, will be further considered.—The doctrine that
- teaches the propriety of yielding our reason to positive institutions
- _as such_, or in the _degree_ they are so, is just and proper, as
- founded on the sovereign, absolute and manifest authority of the
- Supreme Legislator; and in this view it has been of singular service
- in refuting the cavils of deistical impiety. But to carry the
- principle any further, tends to betray the cause of christianity into
- the hands of infidels, and to breed unhallowed party zeal and
- uncharitable animosities among its sincerest professors. “For who are
- most likely to put weapons into the hands of _infidels_; they, who
- seem to discard _reason_ in the investigation of truth, or they, whose
- researches are founded on her most vigorous exertions, and most
- rational decisions?—They, who make scripture bow to their preconceived
- notions, in direct opposition to the dictates of reason and common
- sense, or they, whose arguments are founded on a _coalition_ of
- scripture and right reason?” Once more,
-
- 3. The objection, as it includes Mr. B.’s favourite maxim, and tends
- to oppose the distinction above stated, involves a great inconsistence
- with itself. For on what principle, except what they affect to
- discard, do our opponents retain _some_ of the positive rites of the
- New Testament and reject _others_? Why regard _baptism_ and the
- _eucharist_ as of standing obligation; while the _pedilavium_ and
- _feasts of charity_ (the _former_ enjoined expressly by our Lord, and
- _both_ practised by the disciples of the apostolic age, see John xiii.
- 14, 15. 1 Tim. v. 10. Jude 12.) are judged unworthy of continuance?
- Why receive _females_ to communion, or adopt the _first_ day of the
- week for the christian sabbath? How can they justify their conduct in
- these matters, these circumstances of _positive_ institutions, without
- undermining their own avowed hypothesis? With regard to the sabbath,
- indeed, the antipædobaptists are divided among themselves; while some
- are content with the _first_ day of the week, others observe the
- _seventh_. On this point Dr. S. is very open and ingenious; Mr.
- Addington appeals to an objecting antipædobaptist, “whether he does
- not think himself sufficiently authorized to keep the christian
- sabbath, though Christ has no where said in so many words, _Remember
- the first day of the week to keep it holy_?” To this the Dr. replies,
- “There is, I acknowledge, some weight in this objection: and all I can
- say to it is, that not having yet met with any passage in the New
- Testament that appears to me to have repealed the fourth commandment,
- and to have required the observation of the first day, I cannot think
- myself sufficiently authorized to renounce that, and to keep this.” If
- the doctor is professedly an observer of the Jewish sabbath, he is
- consistent with himself, however different from so great a part of the
- christian world; if _not_, he and his tenet are at variance: analogy
- and inferential reasoning have got the better of the positive system,
- which nevertheless must not be resigned, for fear of worse
- consequences.
-
- Another objection much insisted on is, “If our Lord has left any thing
- to be _inferred_ relative to the _subject_ and _mode_ of baptism,
- being a positive institute; or if he has not delivered himself
- _expressly_ and _clearly_ in every thing, respecting the question
- _who_ are to be baptized, and the manner _how_; it implies a reflexion
- on his wisdom and goodness.” But this objection is impertinent on
- different accounts. For,
-
- 1. Its force is derived from the supposition that the Institutor was
- somehow _obliged_ to make his will known to men by _one_ method only.
- But is the Great Supreme under any such obligations to his absolutely
- dependent creatures? What should we say of a philosopher, who, having
- to judge of any important phenomenon in physics, should quarrel with
- the author of nature, because he had not confined his method of
- information to _one_ source only, to the exclusion of all others? That
- his evidence, for instance, was not confined to the information of
- _sense_, to the exclusion of _reason_ and _analogy_? Or what should we
- say of a person, who having to decide on the truth and reality of a
- miracle, should impeach the wisdom and goodness of his Maker, because
- he did not appeal to _one_ sense only of his dependent and unworthy
- creatures, that of _seeing_, for instance, to the exclusion of that of
- _hearing_? The answer is plain, and the application easy.
-
- 2. The objection is guilty of another impertinence, nearly allied to
- the former: it unreasonably requires _positive_ evidence for what is
- discoverable by _other_ means. It is demonstrable, and I think has
- been demonstrated, that the qualifications of the subjects of baptism
- (the _mode_ also will be examined in its place) is what cannot
- possibly be determined by any positive rule whatever as such, but must
- be resolved to the _discretionary_ nature of the commission, or the
- supposed _wisdom_ and _prudence_ of the administrators, in common with
- other parts of the same commission, such as the choice of an
- _audience_, the choice of a concionatory _subject_, &c. Preach the
- _gospel_ to _every creature_, is a part of the commission, but the
- execution has no _positive_ rule. Nor does this commission of
- preaching the _gospel_ prohibit preaching the _law_, for a lawful use,
- or any branch of natural religion, notwithstanding Mr. B.’s excluding
- standard, that “positive laws imply their negatives.” In like manner,
- the commission to baptize _believers_, and the _taught_, we contend
- and prove, does not mean to include _all sorts_ of believers and
- taught persons, but such of them as the administrators judge fit,
- according to the rules of christian prudence and discretion. And we
- further insist, as shall be more fully shewn hereafter, that the terms
- of the commission, _believers_ and _taught_, stand _opposed_, not to
- _non-believers_ and _untaught_, but to _unbelievers_ and persons
- _perversely ignorant_. What, therefore, falls _necessarily_ to the
- province of inferential reasoning, is impertinently referred to a
- positive standard.
-
- 3. The objection implies an _ungrateful_ reflexion on the Institutor’s
- wisdom and goodness, contrary to what it pretends to avoid. And this
- it does, by counteracting and vilifying those natural dictates of
- reason, prudence and common sense, that our all-wise and beneficent
- Creator has given us—his _goodness_, in not suspending their
- operations, but leaving them in full force, as to these circumstances
- of positive duties—his _wisdom_, in grafting what is positive of his
- laws on these common principles—and finally, the favourable
- circumstance of his diminishing the degree of positiveness in New
- Testament institutions, as well as their number.
-
- Let us now recapitulate what has been said in this chapter—From an
- investigation of the _nature_ of positive precepts and duties, as
- distinguished from _moral_ ones, together with their _comparative_
- obligations and importance, we have seen, that, in any case of
- supposed competition, the _latter_ claims an undoubted _preference_.
- We have also seen, that nothing but absolute, decisive, _discernible
- authority_ can turn the scale in favor of the _former_, or, indeed,
- place any law or duty in the rank of POSITIVE. Moreover, it has been
- shewn, that every duty resulting from any discernible _moral
- relation_, must needs be classed among _moral duties_; that some
- things appertaining to the very _essence_ of baptism, on our
- opponents’ own principles, are of moral consideration; particularly
- the qualifications of proper subjects; consequently, that baptism is
- an ordinance of a _mixed nature_, partly positive and partly moral. Of
- all which an unavoidable consequence is, that our opponents’ outcry
- against all _moral_ and _analogical reasons_ in our enquiries
- respecting the subjects and mode of baptism, is impertinent and
- absurd, and to a demonstration contradictory to their own avowed
- principles.
-
- DR. WILLIAMS ON BAPTISM.
-
-Footnote 77:
-
- The commission to disciples _baptizing all nations_ is both a
- positive and express authority for the baptism of the infants of such
- as are themselves discipled.
-
-Footnote 78:
-
- _See his works: vol. II. pag. 1129, 1132, 1133._
-
-Footnote 79:
-
- _Vid. Just. Martyr, Quest. & Resp. Quest. CII. & ejusd. Apol. II._
-
-Footnote 80:
-
- _Vid. Cyp. in Epist. ad Fid. Lib. iii. Epi. viii._
-
-Footnote 81:
-
- _Vid. Iren. Lib. ii. xxxix._
-
-Footnote 82:
-
- _Vid. Ejusd. Orat. xl._
-
-Footnote 83:
-
- _Vid. Augustin. de peccat. merit. & remiss. Lib. i. Cap. xxviii.
- parvulos baptizandos esse concedunt qui contra autoritatem universæ
- ecclesiæ proculdubio per dominum, & Apostolos traditam venire non
- possunt; and in Sermon. x. de verbis Apostol, speaking concerning
- infant-baptism, he says, Nemo vobis susurret doctrinas alienas. Hoc
- ecclesia semper habuit. semper tenuit; hoc a majorum fide percepit:
- hoc usque in finem perseveranter custodit._
-
-Footnote 84:
-
- _Vid. Tertul. Lib. de Baptism, Cap. xviii._
-
-Footnote 85:
-
- It is very remarkable, that in those ages and countries, _where_ the
- _mode_ of dipping has been, or still is, the most prevalent, _there
- infant-baptism_ has been the most generally practised, and _there_ the
- _mode_ of baptizing has not been deemed essential. Instead, therefore,
- of finding _all_ these people Baptists, but _very few, if any_, of
- that denomination, are to be found among them. Dr. Wall, who was
- himself an advocate for dipping, tells us, “that all christians in the
- world, _who never owned the pope’s authority_, do now, and ever did,
- dip their infants, in the ordinary use.” They always baptized their
- infants; and, ordinarily, by dipping, but not universally, for they,
- occasionally, sprinkled them. The mode of dipping was of ordinary use;
- but the practice of infant-baptism, in those churches who _were never
- under the influence of popery_, appears to have been _universal_, both
- in ancient and modern times.
-
- We do not pretend to rest the proof of infants’ right to baptism upon
- historical evidence, relative to the ancient practice of the church in
- this respect. However, if it should appear, that the churches, soon
- after the apostles, did admit the infant children of believing parents
- to baptism—if no account can be produced, of any church that rejected
- them—if no individual can be named, who pretended that the practice
- was unlawful, or an innovation—these facts will certainly furnish a
- very weighty argument in favour of the aforesaid doctrine.
-
- Baptism is an important transaction of a public nature. Those
- christians, who lived and wrote in the earliest times after the
- apostles, must have known what _their_ practice was, with reference to
- the infant children of believers. The testimony of these ancient
- writers, as historians or witnesses, respecting this plain matter of
- fact, justly claims our most impartial and attentive consideration. It
- is not, however, my intention to write a complete history of
- infant-baptism. A history of this kind has been written a century ago,
- by Dr. Wall, a very correct and judicious historian. This history is
- highly approved and recommended by the best judges, being a work of
- great merit, candour and impartiality.
-
- On February 9th, 1705, the clergy of England, assembled in general
- convention, “_ordered_, that the thanks of this house be given to Mr.
- Wall, vicar of Shoreham in Kent, for the learned and excellent book he
- hath lately written concerning infant-baptism; and that a committee be
- appointed to acquaint him with the same.” Dr. Atterbury, a leading
- member in said convention, says, “that the history of infant-baptism
- was a book, for which the author deserved the thanks, not of the
- English clergy alone, but of all the Christian churches.” Mr. Whiston
- also, a very learned man, well acquainted with the writings of the
- Fathers of the four first centuries, and a professed Baptist, in his
- address to the people of that denomination, declares to them, “that
- Dr. Wall’s history of _infant-baptism_, as to facts, appeared to him
- most accurately done, and might be depended on by the Baptists
- themselves.” _Mem. of his life_, part 2, page 461.
-
- The aforesaid history is still extant in two volumes. The same author
- has since published another volume, which is a defence of the two
- former volumes, against the reflections of Dr. Gale and others. In
- these publications, he has favoured us with the testimony and sayings
- of the ancient Fathers, with respect to infant-baptism, a few of which
- I shall produce, as authorities on the present occasion.
-
- Justin Martyr, who wrote about forty years after the apostolic age,
- says, “We have not received the carnal but spiritual circumcision, by
- baptism. And it is enjoined on all persons to receive it in the same
- way.” He here evidently considers baptism as being in the place of
- circumcision, and, consequently, like that ancient rite, designed for
- infants as well as for adults. In one of his apologies for the
- christians, he observes, “Several persons among us, of sixty or
- seventy years old, who were made disciples to Christ from their
- childhood, do continue uncorrupt.”—_Who were made disciples._—Take
- notice; for he makes use of the very same word that was used in the
- commission given to the apostles. _Disciple all nations, baptizing
- them_, &c. Now, if infant children were made disciples, they were
- undoubtedly baptized. Justin wrote about 105 years after the ascension
- of Christ. Those persons whom he mentions were then 70 years old; and
- consequently born and made disciples, in the times of the apostles.
-
- Irenæus, who wrote about sixty-seven years after the apostles, and was
- then an aged man, says, concerning Christ, “he came to save all
- persons who by him are regenerated (or baptized) unto God, _infants_,
- little ones, youths and elderly persons.” He speaks of _infants_ and
- _little ones_ as being regenerated. It is evident from his own words
- that he had reference to their baptism; for he tells us, “When Christ
- gave his apostles the command of _regenerating_ unto God, he said, go
- and teach all nations _baptizing_ them.” The ancient Fathers as
- customarily used the word regeneration for baptism, as the church of
- England now use the word christening. Justin Martyr, whose name and
- testimony we have already mentioned, speaking of some particular
- persons who had been baptized, says, “they are regenerated in the same
- way of regeneration, in which we have been regenerated, for they are
- _washed with water in the_ name of the Father, and of the Son, and of
- _the Holy Ghost_.” In this short sentence, the word regeneration, or
- regenerated, is put for baptism no less than three times.
-
- It is a matter of _no_ importance in the present dispute, whether the
- primitive Fathers used the aforesaid word properly or improperly. We
- certainly know in what sense they did use it, and this is all the
- information needed. I would however repeat a former observation, viz.
- that by a common figure, the thing signified is often substituted for
- the sign, and the sign for the thing signified. Thus, the Abrahamic
- covenant is sometimes put, by God himself, for circumcision; and
- circumcision, the sign and token thereof, is sometimes put for the
- covenant. Accordingly, baptism has been put for regeneration; and
- regeneration, for baptism.
-
- We have already shown, that the Jews were in the habit of baptizing
- the Gentile proselytes, even before the time of John and of Christ.
- They considered these proselytes as being, by baptism, born the
- children of Abraham; and therefore expressed their baptism, by
- regeneration. Accordingly, Christ and his apostles, on some particular
- occasions, adopted a similar language. Our Saviour said to Nicodemus,
- _except one be born again—except he be born of water and of the
- Spirit, he cannot enter the kingdom of God_. By this new birth, Christ
- evidently had reference to water baptism, as truly as to the renewing
- of the Holy Ghost. The apostle Paul styles baptism, _the washing of
- regeneration_. The ancients commonly expressed baptism with water, by
- regeneration; for they considered this external sacrament as a sign of
- internal, spiritual renovation and purification, Irenæus expressly
- calls baptism regeneration, and says that _infants_ were
- _regenerated_, that, is baptized. His testimony is plain and full; and
- cannot be doubted by any person acquainted with the phraseology and
- writings of the Fathers. He mentions not only old persons and youths,
- but also little ones, and even infants. This Irenæus was bishop of
- Lyons in France. According to Mr. Dodwell, he was born before the
- death of St. John—was brought up in Asia, where that apostle had lived
- and died. He was acquainted with Polycarp; and in his younger years,
- had often heard him preach. Polycarp was John’s disciple, had been
- chosen by him to be bishop of Smyrna—and probably that angel of the
- church, so highly commended in the 2d chapter of Rev. Irenæus, and
- those Christians who lived in an age so near the apostles, and in a
- place where one of them had so lately resided, could not be
- ignorant—they must have known what the apostolic practice was, with
- respect to infant-baptism—a matter of the most notorious and public
- nature.
-
- Dr. Lathrop observes, “that Tertullian, who flourished about one
- hundred years after the apostles, gives a plain testimony, that the
- church admitted infants to baptism in his time. It is true, he advises
- to _delay_ their baptism; not because it was _unlawful_, for he allows
- of it in cases of necessity; but because the _sponsors_ were often
- brought into a snare; and because he imagined that sins, committed
- _after baptism_, were next to unpardonable. He accordingly advises
- that unmarried persons be kept from this ordinance, until they either
- marry or are confirmed in continence. His advising to a delay,
- supposes that infant-baptism was practised, for otherwise there would
- have been no room for the advice. He does not speak of it as an
- _innovation_, which he would certainly have done, had it _begun_ to
- have been practised in his time. His words rather imply the contrary.
- His speaking of _sponsors_, who engaged for the education of the
- infants that were baptized, shows that there had been such a custom.
- And his asking, ‘why that innocent age _made such haste_ to baptism,’
- supposes that infants had usually been baptized, soon after their
- birth. So that he fully enough witnesses to the _fact_, that it had
- been the practice of the church to baptize infants. And his advice to
- delay their baptism, till they were grown up and married, was one of
- those odd and singular notions for which this father was very
- remarkable.”
-
- This quotation agrees well with the account given of Tertullian, by
- Dr. Wall and other approved writers. Tertullian was evidently a man of
- abilities and learning, and in some respects an useful writer. His
- integrity and veracity were never questioned. But as has been hinted,
- he held to some strange and peculiar notions. He was not deemed
- perfectly orthodox by the ancient Christians. Being a person of warm
- imagination, he expressed himself, very strongly, on different
- subjects, at different times; and some have thought, in a manner that
- was not consistent. Some of the later Baptists have even pretended
- that he denied infant-baptism. But these considerations do not
- disqualify him as a witness in the present case. Instead of
- invalidating, they serve to confirm his testimony.
-
- Dr. Gill says, that Tertullian is the first man who _mentions_
- infant-baptism, and speaks against it; and infers that it had not come
- into use before his time. To this, Mr. Clark, in his answer, replies,
- “So he is the first man, I suppose, that mentions the baptism of
- unmarried people, virgins, and widows, and speaks against it, and as
- earnestly pleads for its delay till the danger of temptation is past;
- till marriage, or the abatement of lust. But will it thence follow,
- that the baptism of such unmarried persons did not obtain in the
- church till Tertullian’s time? Or that it then first began to be in
- use? Our author might as reasonably have inferred the latter opinion,
- as the former. But the very words, in which he expresses his advice
- against baptizing infants, plainly imply that it was a common
- practice. After all, what is it that Tertullian has said against
- infant-baptism? He has given it as his judgment, that it would be more
- profitable to defer their baptism, until they come to riper years, and
- were able to understand something of its nature and design; but he
- does not like the anti-pædobaptists, condemn it as unlawful; which he
- would have done, if it had been a novel practice—an innovation,
- contrary to the rule of scripture, or without the approbation or
- direction of the apostles. On the contrary, he allows it in case of
- necessity, of sickness, and danger of death. Dr. Gill, instead of
- saying, that Tertullian was the first man who mentioned
- infant-baptism, and spoke against it, ought to have said, that he was
- the _only man_, in all antiquity, whose writings have come down to us,
- who has said any thing at all against the practice of baptizing
- infants.” The very advice, however, which he gave, plainly shows, that
- infant-baptism was then commonly practised. He does not intimate, that
- the practice was of human invention, or not authorized by the
- apostles. His private opinion, with respect to the expediency of
- delaying baptism in several cases, and the reasons which he offered,
- are nothing to us. We have only cited him as a voucher to an ancient
- fact; and the testimony which he has given affords clear and
- incontestable proof of said fact, viz. that infants were baptized in
- his times.
-
- Origen, who flourished in the beginning of the third century, and was
- for some time contemporary with Tertullian, in his 8th homily on
- Levit. 12, observes, “David, speaking concerning the pollution of
- infants, says, _I was conceived in iniquity, and in sin did my mother
- bring me forth_. Let it be considered what is the reason, that whereas
- the baptism of the church is given for forgiveness, infants also, by
- the usage of the church, are baptized; when if there were nothing in
- infants, which wanted forgiveness and mercy, the grace of baptism
- would be needless to them. And again, infants are baptized for the
- remission of sin. Of what sin? Or when have they sinned? Or how can
- any reason of the laver hold good in their case? But according to that
- sense before mentioned, none is free from pollution, though his life
- be only the length of one day upon the earth. It is for this reason
- that infants are baptized, because by the sacrament of baptism, our
- pollution is taken away.” In another treatise, he says, “the church
- had a tradition, or command from the apostles, to give baptism to
- infants! for they, to whom the divine mysteries were committed, knew
- that there is, in all persons, the natural pollution of sin, which
- ought to be washed away by water and the spirit; by reason of which
- pollution, the body itself is also called _the body of sin_, &c. &c.”
-
- These testimonies of Origen are full and unequivocal. They put the
- matter in debate beyond all reasonable doubt, if any credit can be
- given to them; and no reason appears, why they should not be credited.
- It is true, they are taken from Latin translations. Origen wrote in
- the Greek language. But the fidelity of the translators and
- authenticity of these passages, have been sufficiently vindicated by
- Dr. Wall, even to the entire satisfaction of all impartial enquirers.
- None will object, but those persons who are disposed to cavil.
-
- I perceive that you have admitted the aforesaid facts; but have made
- an unusual outcry against the tradition and order from the apostles,
- mentioned by Origen. There is, I suspect, more policy and popularity
- in your remarks, than real weight. It will not do for us to turn those
- weapons against the ancient Fathers and holy apostles, which the
- protestants have used with so much success, in their disputes with the
- Papists.
-
- Let us hear what St. Paul says, with respect to traditions. 2 Thess.
- ii. 15. “Therefore, brethren, _stand fast, and hold the traditions_
- which ye have been taught, whether _by word_, or our epistle.” And in
- the 3d chap. 6th verse, he says, “Now we _command_ you, brethren, in
- the name of our Lord Jesus Christ, that ye withdraw yourselves from
- every brother that walketh disorderly, and not after the _tradition_
- which he received of us.” So also in 1 Corin. 11th chap. 2d verse.
- “Now I praise you, brethren, that ye remember me in all things, and
- keep the _ordinances_ (the _traditions_, paradoseis) as I delivered
- them to you.” The apostle was here speaking of christian ordinances,
- which he calls _traditions_. The original word signifies _traditions_,
- and is so rendered by our translators in the other aforecited
- passages.
-
- Thus, sir, you see in what a solemn manner—_in the name of Christ_,
- the holy apostle charged the primitive christians, _to hold and keep
- the_ traditions—not merely such as had been written by the pen of
- inspiration, but also those which were delivered to them _by word_, or
- in an oral and verbal manner, and with particular reference to the
- rules and ordinances of the gospel. The traditions and commandments of
- mere men, which pretend to divine authority, are to be rejected. But
- those traditions are not to be treated with sneer and ridicule, which
- were delivered by the apostles to the primitive christians—recorded
- and authenticated by the ancient Fathers—and transmitted down to us,
- by the faithful historian.
-
- Origen has expressly informed us, that infant-baptism was practised in
- his time. With respect to this matter of fact, Origen was certainly a
- competent witness; and he had every opportunity, and advantage for
- knowing what had been the practice of his predecessors and even of the
- apostles. Many of the ancient Fathers were illiterate, and descended
- from heathen parents; and being the first of their family who embraced
- christianity, must have been baptized when adults. But Origen was one
- of the most learned men of the age. He was born and educated at
- Alexandria in Egypt, but travelled into Rome, and Greece, and
- Capadocia, and Arabia. He resided for some time in several of the most
- eminent churches, and spent the greatest part of his life in Syria and
- Palestine. His ancestors were christians. Eusebius tells us, that his
- forefathers had been christians, for several generations. His father
- was martyred, in the persecution under Severus.
-
- It is very remarkable, that his pedigree should have been so
- accurately ascertained. The occasion was this: Porphyry, a great enemy
- to christianity, had represented the christians as being an ignorant
- people, destitute of science; but not being able to conceal the repute
- of Origen, for his uncommon skill in human literature, pretended that
- he had been at first a heathen, and had learned their philosophy. In
- order to confute this falsehood, Eusebius enquired into his ancestry,
- and set forth his christian descent.
-
- Origen was born in the year of our Lord 185, that is, eighty-five
- years after the apostles. He was seventeen years old when his father
- suffered martyrdom. He had himself, undoubtedly, been baptized in his
- infancy; and must have been informed concerning the practice of the
- apostles, respecting the baptizing of infants; for his grandfather, or
- at least his great-grandfather, lived in the apostolic times, and they
- both were christians. This is the man, who has expressly declared,
- that infants were baptized in his day, and that the church was
- directed by an order or tradition from the apostles, to baptize them.
- His circumstances were such as afforded him all the necessary and
- suitable means for obtaining information. We have no reason to suspect
- his credibility as a witness; and nothing can be more unreasonable,
- than to reject or treat his testimony with contempt. It is a
- circumstance worthy of our _very particular notice_, that Origen and
- the other ancient Fathers do not speak of infant-baptism as being a
- practice that was denied or opposed by any one. They mention it as a
- practice generally known and approved, and for the purpose of
- illustrating and confirming other points that were then disputed.
-
- I shall now produce the testimony of the blessed martyr Cyprian, who
- was for some time contemporary with Origen; and next to him, the most
- noted Christian writer of that age. Cyprian was constituted bishop or
- minister of Carthage, in the year 248, and Origen died in the year
- 252. The testimony of this ancient saint, to which I now have an
- immediate reference, was occasioned by a question proposed to him, by
- one Fidus, a _presbyter_, or minister in the country, viz. Whether _an
- infant might be baptized before he was eight days old_? The reason of
- his doubt, it seems, was an article in the law respecting
- circumcision, which, under the Old Testament dispensation, required
- that infants should be circumcised on the eighth day from their birth.
- Pursuant to the aforesaid question, an ecclesiastical council of
- sixty-six bishops, having convened at Carthage, A. D. 253, Cyprian
- proposed a resolution of the following import, viz. “that an infant
- might be baptized on the second or third day, or at any time after its
- birth; and that circumcision, besides being a sacramental rite, had
- something in it of a typical nature; and particularly, in the
- circumstance of being administered on the eighth day, which ceased at
- the coming of Christ, who has given us baptism, the spiritual
- circumcision; in which ordinance, we are not thus restricted, with
- respect to the age or time of administration.” To this resolution the
- council agreed unanimously; as it appears from the testimony of
- Cyprian in his epistle to Fidus, from which I shall extract a few
- paragraphs, in order to show the sentiments of those venerable and
- ancient saints relative to infant-baptism.—The inscription is as
- follows:
-
- “Cyprian and the rest of the colleagues, who are present in council,
- in number sixty-six, to Fidus our brother,
-
- “Greeting.
-
- “As to the case of infants, whereas _you judge that they must not be
- baptized within two or three days after they are born; and that the
- law of the ancient circumcision is to be observed; so that you think
- none should be baptized and sanctified, until the eighth day after
- their birth_; we were all in our assembly of a quite different
- opinion. For in this matter, with respect to that which you thought
- fitting to be done, there was not one of your mind. But all of us
- rather judged, that the grace and mercy of God is not to be denied to
- any person born. For whereas our Lord in his gospel, _the Son of Man
- came not to destroy men’s souls_ (or lives) _but to save them_.—That
- the eighth day, appointed to be observed in the Jewish circumcision,
- was a type going before in a shadow, or resemblance, but on Christ’s
- coming was fulfilled in the substance; for because the eighth day,
- that is the next after the Sabbath, was to be the day on which the
- Lord was to rise from the dead, and quicken us, and give us the
- spiritual circumcision. This eighth day, that is, the next to the
- Sabbath, or the Lord’s day, went before in the type, which type ceased
- when the substance came, and the spiritual circumcision was given to
- us. So that we judge, no person is to be hindered from obtaining the
- grace, (that is _of baptism_) by the law which is now established; and
- that the spiritual circumcision ought not to be restrained by the
- circumcision which was according to the flesh; but that all are to be
- admitted to the grace of Christ; since Peter, speaking in the Acts of
- the apostles, says, _the Lord hath shown me that no person is to be
- called common or unclean_. This, therefore, dear brother, was our
- opinion in the assembly, that it is not for us to hinder any person
- from baptism, and from the grace of God, who is merciful, and kind,
- and affectionate to all. Which rule, as it holds for all, so we think
- it is more especially to be observed in reference to infants, and
- those that are newly born, to whom our help and the divine mercy is
- rather to be granted, because by their weeping and wailing at their
- first entrance into the world, they do intimate nothing so much as
- that they implore compassion,” &c.
-
- Saint Ambrose, who wrote about 274 years after the apostles, declares
- expressly, “that infant-baptism was practised in his time, and in the
- time of the apostles.”
-
- Saint Chrysostom observes, “that persons may be baptized either in
- their infancy, in middle age, or in old age.”—He tells us, infants
- were baptized, although they had no sin; and that the sign of the
- cross was made upon their foreheads at baptism.—Saint Hierome says,
- “if infants be not baptized, the sin of omitting their baptism is laid
- to the parent’s charge.”—Saint Austin, who wrote at the same time,
- about 280 years after the apostles, speaks “of infant-baptism as one
- of those practices which was not _instituted by any council_, but had
- _always_ been in use.” The _whole church of Christ_, he informs us,
- _had constantly held_ that infants were baptized for the forgiveness
- of sin.—That he “had _never read or heard_ of _any Christian,
- Catholic_ or _sectary_, who held otherwise.”—“That no christian, of
- any sort, ever denied it to be useful or necessary.” “If any one,”
- saith he, “should ask for divine authority in this matter, though
- that, which the whole church practises, and which has not been
- instituted by councils, but was ever in use, may be believed, very
- reasonably, to be a thing delivered or ordered by the apostles, yet we
- may, besides, take a true estimate, how much the sacrament of baptism
- does avail infants, by the circumcision which God’s former people
- received.”
-
- No one of these ancient Fathers ever wrote directly in favour of, or
- against, infant-baptism. In their various discourses and writings,
- they often mention it, occasionally and transiently, when discoursing
- on some other subject.—They mention it as a general practice of
- universal notoriety, about which there was no controversy, in order to
- confute some prevailing heresy, or establish certain doctrines, that
- were then disputed. Similar testimonies might easily be produced from
- the writings of many other ancient witnesses, but this would
- unnecessarily add to the prolixity of the present work. I will
- therefore conclude, by stating very briefly, the incontestible and
- conclusive evidence in proof of infant-baptism, arising out of the
- well-known Pelagian controversy respecting original sin, which
- happened about three hundred years after the apostles.
-
- Pelagius held, that infants were born free from any natural and sinful
- defilements. The chief opposers of him and his adherents were Saint
- Hierome, and Saint Austin, who constantly urged, very closely, in all
- their writings upon the subject, the following argument, viz. “_That
- infants are, by all christians, acknowledged to stand in need of
- baptism, which must be in them for original sin, since they have no
- other_.” “If they have no sin, why are they then baptized, according
- to the rule of the church, _for the forgiveness of sins? Why are they
- washed in the laver of regeneration, if they have no pollution?_”
- Pelagius, and also Celestius, one of his principal abettors, were
- extremely puzzled and embarrassed with this argument. They knew not
- how to evade or surmount its force, but by involving themselves in
- greater absurdities and difficulties. Some persons aggravated the
- supposed error, by charging upon them the denial of infant-baptism, as
- a consequence that followed from their tenet. Pelagius disclaimed the
- slanderous imputation with abhorrence, declaring that he was accused
- falsely. In the confession of faith, Pelagius then exhibited, which
- Dr. Wall has recited, he owns, “_that baptism ought to be administered
- to infants, with the same sacramental words which are used in the case
- of adult persons_.”—He vindicates himself in the strongest terms,
- saying, “_that men slander him as if he denied the sacrament of
- baptism to infants, and did promise the kingdom of heaven to any
- person without the redemption of Christ; and affirms that he never
- heard of any, not even the most impious heretic, that would say such a
- thing of infants_.” Now these difficulties would have been instantly
- removed, and the battery, which so greatly annoyed them, been
- demolished at once, by only denying that infants were to be baptized.
- But they did not suggest or entertain any doubt at all respecting this
- doctrine. Pelagius readily avowed, in the most explicit manner, the
- incontested right, and the established immemorial practice of
- infant-baptism. Celestius also confessed, “that infants were to be
- baptized according to the _rule of the universal church_.”
-
- One of these men was born and educated in Britain, and the other in
- Ireland. They both lived a long time at Rome, the centre of the world
- and place to which all people resorted. Celestius settled at
- Jerusalem, and Pelagius travelled over all the principal churches of
- Europe, Asia and Africa. If there had been any number of churches, or
- a single church, in any part of the world, not only in that but in the
- two preceding ages, who denied the baptism of infants, these learned,
- sagacious persons must have known or heard of it; and certainly they
- would have mentioned it, in order to check the triumph of their
- opponents, and to wrest from them that argument, by which, above all
- others, they were most grievously pressed. It is evident there was no
- society of Baptists then in the world, nor had there been any of that
- denomination, within the memory of man. The confession of Pelagius and
- Celestius amounts almost to demonstration. It proves, beyond all
- reasonable doubt, that infant-baptism had universally obtained, and
- had always been practised among christians, even from the apostolic
- times.
-
- Dr. Wall, who enjoyed the best advantages for being acquainted with
- the history of infant-baptism, and who made this the principal subject
- of his studies and enquiries, briefly sums up the evidence on both
- sides, in the following words: “Lastly, for the first four hundred
- years, there appears only one man, Tertullian, who advised the _delay_
- of infant-baptism in some cases, and one Gregory, who did _perhaps_
- practise such _delay_ in the case of his own children; but no society
- of men so thinking or so practising; or any one man saying it was
- unlawful to baptize infants. So in the next seven hundred years, there
- is not so much as _one_ man to be found, who either spoke for or
- practised any such delay, but all the contrary. And when about the
- year 1130, one sect among the Waldenses or Albigenses declared against
- the baptizing of infants, _as being incapable of salvation_, the main
- body of that people rejected their opinion; and they of them who held
- that opinion, quickly dwindled away and disappeared, there being no
- more persons heard of, holding that tenet, until the rising of the
- German anti-pædobaptists in the year 1522.”
-
- REED’S APOLOGY.
-
-Footnote 86:
-
- _See Wall’s History of Infant-Baptism, Part II. page 52-86._
-
-Footnote 87:
-
- _They that would see more on this subject may consult G. J. Voss, de
- baptismo disput. xiv. Forbes. instruct. hist. theol. Lib. x. cap. v.
- and Wall’s history of infant-baptism, vol. I._
-
-Footnote 88:
-
- See Dr. Owen’s complete Collection of Sermons, page 580, 581. of
- dipping; in which he observes, that βαπτω, when used in these
- scriptures, Luke xvi. 24. and John xiii. 26. is translated to _dip_;
- and in Rev. xix. 13. where we read of a _vesture dipped in blood_; it
- is better rendered _stained_, by sprinkling blood upon it; and all
- these scriptures denote only a touching one part of the body, and not
- plunging. In other authors, it signifies, _tingo_, _immergo_, _lavo_,
- _abluo_; but in no author it ever signifies to dip, but only in order
- to washing, or as the means of washing. As for the Hebrew word טבל,
- rendered, by the LXX. in Gen. xxxvii. 31. by μολύνω, _to stain by
- sprinkling_, or otherwise mostly by βαπτω: In 2 Kings v. 14. they
- render it by βαπτιζω, and no where else: In ver. 10. Elisha commands
- Naaman to _wash_; and accordingly, ver. 14. pursuant to this order, it
- is said, he _dipped himself seven times_; the word is ויטבל; which the
- LXX. render εβαπτισατω; and in Exod. xii. 22. where the word טבל is
- used, which we render _dip_, speaking concerning the dipping the bunch
- of hyssop in the blood, the LXX. render it by the word βαπτω: And, in
- I Sam. xiv. 27; it is said, that Jonathan dipped the end of his rod in
- an honey-comb; the word here is also ויטבל, and the LXX. render it
- εβαψεν; in which place it cannot be understood of his dipping it by
- plunging: And in Lev. iv. 6. 17. and chap. ix. 9. the priest is said
- to dip his finger in the blood, which only intends his touching the
- blood, so as to sprinkle it; and therefore does not signify plunging.
-
- This learned author likewise observes, that βαπτιζω signifies to wash;
- as instances out of all authors may be given; and he particularly
- mentions Suidas, Hesychius, Julius Pollux, and Phavorinus and
- Eustachius. And he further adds, that it is first used in the
- scripture, in Mark i. 8. John i. 33. and to the same purpose, Acts i.
- 5. in which place it signifies to pour; for the expression is
- equivocal; _I baptize you with water, but he shall baptize you with
- the Holy Ghost_: which is an accomplishment of that promise, that _the
- Holy Ghost should be poured on them_. As for other places, in Mark
- vii. 2. 4. νίπτω, which signifies to _wash_, and is so translated, is
- explained in the words immediately following, as signifying _to
- baptize_. And, in Luke xi. 38. it is said, that the Pharisee marvelled
- that our Saviour had not _washed before dinner_: The word in the Greek
- is ἐβαπτισθη, to whom he replies in the following verse, _Ye Pharisees
- make clean the outside_, &c. so that the word, βαπτιζω signifies there
- to _cleanse_, or to use the means of cleansing.
-
- He also observes, that though the original and natural signification
- of the word imports, to _dip_, to _plunge_, to _dye_; yet it also
- signifies to _wash_ or _cleanse_: Nevertheless, he thinks that it is
- so far from signifying nothing else but to _dip_ or _plunge_, that
- when it is to be understood in that sense, the words ought to be
- εμβάπτω, or εμβαπτιζω, rather than βαπτω, or βαπτίζω; and also that it
- no where signifies to _dip_, but as denoting a mode of, and in order
- to washing; and that it signifies to _wash_, in all good authors. He
- also refers to Scapula and Stephanus, as translating the word βαπτιζω
- by _lavo_, or _abluo_; and Suidas, as rendering it by _madefacio_,
- _lavo_, _abluo_, _purgo_, _mundo_: And he speaks of some authors, that
- he had searched in every place wherein they mention baptism, and that
- he found not one word to the purpose; and therefore concludes, that he
- was obliged to say, and was ready to make it good, that no honest man,
- who understands the Greek tongue, can deny the word to signify to
- _wash_, as well as to _dip_.[89]
-
-Footnote 89:
-
- Dr. Wall, in the appendix of his reply to Dr. Gale, mentions a
- remarkable instance, in which the mode of wetting or of applying water
- was certainly that of pouring, and not that of dipping. It is as
- follows:—St. Origen, when commenting on the Baptism of John, enquires
- thus of the Pharisees; “How could you think that Elias, when he should
- come, would _baptize_, who did not in Ahab’s time _baptize_ the wood
- upon the altar, which was to be washed before it was burnt by the
- Lord’s appearing in fire? But he ordered the priest to do that; not
- once only, but he says, do it the second time; and they did it the
- second time. And do it the third time; and they did it the third time.
- Therefore, how could it be likely that this man, who did not then
- _baptize_, but assigned that work to others, would himself _baptize_,
- when he should, according to the prophecy of Malachi, again appear
- here on earth?”
-
- We find in the first book of Kings, xviii. 33, that the order given by
- Elijah was to fill four barrels with water, and _pour_ it on the wood
- and on the burnt offering. This _pouring of water_, Origen, that
- accurate scholar, who lived in the second century, and was well
- acquainted with the Greek classics, and Greek Testament, calls
- baptizing. In the very same sentence, he makes use of the Greek word
- _Baptizo_ four times; twice with express reference to the _Baptism_ of
- John; and twice with express reference to that _Baptism_ which took
- place in the days of the Prophet Elijah; which baptism, we are
- expressly told, was not performed by _dipping_ the wood and sacrifice
- into water, but by _pouring_ water upon them.
-
- It is also evident, even from the frequent use of the word baptizo, by
- heathen authors, that it does not always signify a total immersion.
- Mr. Walker tells us, “that Porphyrie mentions a river in India, into
- which if an offender enters, or attempts to pass through it, he is
- immediately _baptized_ up to his head:” (_baptizetai mechri
- Kephales_.) Here a person is said to be baptized, although his head
- did not go under, but remained above the water. This certainly was not
- a total immersion.
-
- “He also instances a case from Mr. Sydenham, as delivered by the
- oracle (viz. _askos baptize, dunai de toi ou themis esti_.”) In which
- instance, if _dunai_ signifies to plunge wholly under water, as it
- certainly does, then _baptize_ must signify something less than a
- total immersion.—“_Baptize him as a bottle, but it is not lawful to
- plunge him wholly under the water._” The baptism here described,
- resembles that of a blown bladder or bottle of leather, which when put
- into the water, will not sink to the bottom, but swim upon the top.
-
- The same critical author mentions an instance from Schrevelii’s and
- Robertson’s Lexicons, 19th chapter, in which case, the primitive word
- _bapto_ signifies a wetting with water, that was certainly less, and
- very different from a total dipping or immersion. The sentence is
- this. (“_Baptei men askon, udor de ugron dunei pote._”) “_He indeed
- baptizeth a bladder or bottle, but it never goeth under the liquid
- water._”
-
- To these instances, we might add a well known case, taken from a poem
- attributed to Homer, called the battle of the frogs and the mice, in
- which the lake is said to be _baptized_ by the blood of a frog.
- (_Ebapteto de aimati limne porphureo._) This lake was not _dipped_
- into the blood of a frog; it was only _bespattered_ and tinged
- therewith.
-
- We could easily multiply authorities if it were necessary. It appears
- undeniably evident from the Greek classicks, and from learned writers
- and commentators, both ancient and modern, that the word _baptizo_ has
- other significations besides that of a total dipping or immersion.
-
- The most celebrated and respectable Lexicographers and criticks have
- often translated baptizo into the following Latin words, viz.
- _baptizo_, _mergo_, _immergo_, _tingo_, _intingo_, _lave_, _abluo_,
- _madefacio_, _purgo_, _mundo_. No one, I presume, will pretend that
- all these words are mentioned as being perfectly synonimous—of the
- same meaning exactly. And certainly if the word baptizo signify any
- thing less or different from a total immersion, then persons may be
- baptized in some other mode.
-
- Besides, if it had been the intention of Christ and of his Apostles,
- to specify the mode, or to have restricted all christians to one and
- the same mode of baptizing, they might, for this purpose, have
- selected from the Greek language words of the most unequivocal and
- definite signification. If it had been their intention to specify the
- mode of _sprinkling_, they might have used the word _Rantizo_; if the
- mode of _pouring_, they might have used the word _Ekcheo_; if that
- mode of _bathing_ or _washing_, which is performed by the application
- of water with friction or rubbing, they might have used the word
- _Louo_; and if it had been their intention to specify the mode of
- _dipping_, they might have used the word _Dupto_ or _Duno_, &c.
-
- REED’S APOLOGY.
-
-Footnote 90:
-
- Ἐις and ἐκ.
-
-Footnote 91:
-
- Ἐις τὴν Θαλασσαν.
-
-Footnote 92:
-
- Ἐκ.
-
-Footnote 93:
-
- _If any one has a mind to see how these particles ἐις and ἐκ, are used
- in the New Testament, he may consult Schmid. concord. in voc. ἐις and
- ἐκ, where there are a great number of places mentioned, in which these
- words are used; and, it will hardly be thought, by any impartial
- reader, that the greatest part of them can be rendered by, into or out
- of; but rather to, or from._
-
-Footnote 94:
-
- Γδατκ πολλα.
-
-Footnote 95:
-
- _See Lightfoot’s works, Vol. I. Page 500._
-
-Footnote 96:
-
- In Col. ii. 12. and context, is a succession of figures, designed, in
- different ways, to illustrate and enforce the same fact. Verse 11. “In
- whom also ye are circumcised with the circumcision, _made without
- hands_, in putting off the body of the sins of the flesh by the
- circumcision of Christ.” That is, in putting off the old man, you are
- circumcised without hands; the work is effected by the Holy Spirit—You
- are born again, which is spiritual circumcision. “Circumcision is that
- of the _heart_.” This renewing of the Holy Spirit consists in putting
- off the body of sin, in renouncing sin, and reforming the life. Or, we
- are “buried with him in baptism.” As the burial of Jesus Christ gave
- evidence, that he had really died, the just for the unjust; that he
- had yielded himself a sacrifice for sin; so we in our spiritual
- circumcision or baptism, the figure now used, show ourselves to be
- really dead to sin, crucified in the lusts of our minds. As Christ,
- when buried, was dead and separated from the world; so in regeneration
- we become separate from sin. We are new creatures, having put off the
- old man. We are buried from the wicked indulgences and pursuits of the
- world.
-
- The death, burial, and resurrection of Christ, are, not only causes,
- but types and symbols to represent the death of our sins, our putting
- off the old man, and becoming new creatures.
-
- No reference is made in the text to the water of baptism, any more
- than to the knife of circumcision in the preceding verse. The writer
- is speaking of that baptism, and of that alone, in which we “are risen
- with Christ, through the faith, which is the operation of God.” This
- certainly can be nothing less than _spiritual_ baptism, or
- regeneration; for the most violent advocate for dipping, or plunging,
- or burying, will not pretend, that this, necessarily, is connected
- with “faith;” he will allow it may be _possible_ for a man to be
- plunged and buried in _water_, and yet not have “the faith, which is
- the operation of God.” If he allow this, and allow this he must and
- will, then our text is no support of his cause. It cannot be water
- baptism which is mentioned.
-
- Were not this the fact, nothing could be inferred respecting the
- _mode_ of baptism. It would then only signify that, as Christ was
- buried and separated from the world; so we in baptism are buried and
- separated from a world of sin. The zeal for the literal construction
- of this figure may, perhaps, be extinguished by indulging it in other
- instances. St. Paul says, “I am crucified with Christ.” Would any
- person suppose from this, that he had been led to Calvary, nailed to
- the cross, and pierced by the soldier’s spear? Christians are said to
- be “circumcised in Christ.” Does any one infer from this that all
- Christians experience the bloody rite of the Jews? Or, because
- Christians “are partakers of Christ’s sufferings,” are all christians,
- therefore, betrayed by Judas, spit upon, buffeted, and crowned with
- thorns? Or, because St. Paul says the Philippians were his “_crown_,”
- were they, therefore, formed into a crown of honor, and worn as a
- badge of future glory? Or, because the sacrament represents the
- sufferings and death of Christ, are all worthy communicants crucified?
- Were our baptist brethren consistent with themselves, such would be
- their explanation of these passages of scripture.
-
- It immediately follows our text; “wherein also you were risen with him
- through the faith of the operation of God, who hath raised him from
- the dead.” Wherein, or in which baptism “we are risen,” actually
- “risen with Christ by the faith” which God gives to the new creature.
- You, who have this spiritual baptism, rise like Christ above the
- selfish motives, and sensual pursuits of a fallen world. You seek the
- kingdom of God; you aspire after divine good.
-
- Persons, born again, like Jesus Christ, separate their hearts from the
- world, and rise to a divine life. That this is the only true
- construction of the text, may be inferred from a corresponding
- passage, Rom. vi. 4. “Therefore we are buried with him by baptism into
- death, that like as Christ was raised from the dead by the glory of
- the Father, even so we also should walk in newness of life.” By
- spiritual baptism we partake the privileges of Christ’s death. By
- dying to sin ourselves, as we do in the new birth, we resemble Jesus
- Christ in his death, who died “to make an end of sin.” As Christ was
- raised from the grave; so we, not in water baptism, but in
- regeneration or spiritual baptism, are “raised” to walk in newness of
- life. Old things are done away; _all_ things are become new. If we
- have experienced this spiritual baptism, we shall have the Spirit of
- Christ, We shall be separate from the world of sin, as Christ was in
- the grave, and we shall like him rise to a holy, a new life. We obey a
- new master, seek a new way of salvation, act from new motives, to
- accomplish new designs; we choose new companions, experience new
- sorrows, and new joys. As if buried, we are separate from our former
- lives.
-
- St. John says, “He [Christ] shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost and
- with _fire_.” The Selucians and Hermians understood this literally,
- and maintained that material fire was necessary in the administration
- of baptism. Valentinus, like our baptists, rebaptized those, who had
- received baptism out of the sect, and _drew them through the fire_.
- Herculian, cited by Clemens Alexandrinus, says that some applied a red
- hot iron to the ears of the baptized. St. Paul says, we are buried
- with Christ in baptism. This also has been understood literally; but
- such persons forget that to be consistent, on their plan, they should
- continue “buried” three days and three nights, the time Christ lay in
- the earth. Should any object that this would drown them, the baptist,
- in his way of treating figures, would have an easy answer, and readily
- prove that drowning was the very design of baptism. Rom. vi. 4. “We
- are buried with him by baptism into his death.” We are not merely
- buried, for this is only a part, any more than sprinkling; but we are
- buried to death, “buried into his death.” Thus he has scripture for
- drowning all whom he baptizes, and precisely as much scripture for
- drowning, as for burying. The very same passage, might he say, which
- commands burying, commands drowning, commands “death.”
-
- In the present mode of plunging, the resemblance is almost entirely
- lost. What is the difference between laying a dead body in a rock,
- covering it with a great stone; sealing it in a solemn manner; all
- things continuing in this state, three days and three nights, what is
- the resemblance between this, and suddenly plunging a living body into
- water, and instantly lifting it out of the water? What possible
- likeness is there between a _living person_ in the _water_, and a
- _dead body_ in a _rock_? The similitude is little better than that of
- the blind man, who supposed the light of the sun was like the noise of
- a cannon. We have accordingly endeavoured to show in the introduction,
- that the elegant scholar, the christian orator of Tarsus, had no
- thought of any such resemblance; his object was to show, that in
- regeneration or spiritual baptism, which is followed “with newness of
- life,” or, a new life, “through faith which is the operation of God,”
- we are dead and buried to sin, and raised or made alive to God, as
- Christ was. The evident design of the text is to illustrate the
- preceding verse, which speaks of spiritual circumcision made without
- hands. This _baptism_ is that by which we are _raised with Christ_;
- but in water baptism we are not always raised with Christ. If men are
- plunged they may generally be raised from the water; but this has no
- necessary connexion with “rising with Christ.” This baptism is also
- effected “through faith which is the operation of God;” but a man may
- be raised out of an ocean of water, every day of his life, and remain
- destitute of faith; therefore, the text has no reference to water
- baptism.
-
- REV. E. PARISH’S SERMON.
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLXVII.
-
-
- QUEST. CLXVII. _How is baptism to be improved by us?_
-
- ANSW. The needful, but much neglected duty of improving our baptism,
- is to be performed by us all our life long; especially in the time
- of temptation, and when we are present at the administration of it
- to others, by serious and thankful consideration of the nature of
- it, and of the ends for which Christ instituted it, the privileges
- and benefits conferred and sealed thereby, and our solemn vow made
- therein, by being humbled for our sinful defilement, our falling
- short of, and walking contrary to the grace of baptism and our
- engagements, by growing up to assurance of pardon of sin, and of all
- other blessings sealed to us in that sacrament, by drawing strength
- from the death and resurrection of Christ, into whom we are
- baptized, for the mortifying of sin, and quickening of grace, and by
- endeavouring to live by faith, to have our conversation in holiness
- and righteousness, as those that have therein given up their names
- to Christ, and to walk in brotherly love, as being baptized by the
- same Spirit, into one body.
-
-In this answer we may observe,
-
-I. That our baptism, together with the engagements which we are therein
-laid under to be the Lord’s, is to be improved by us; though this duty
-be too much neglected. That it ought to be improved is evident, inasmuch
-as it is an ordinance, or means of grace, for our attaining spiritual
-blessings; therefore we are not only guilty of a sinful neglect, but we
-lose the advantage that might be expected thereby, if we do not improve
-it so as to answer the valuable end thereof; and when we consider it as
-a professed dedication to God, as has been before observed, or a bond
-and obligation laid on us, to be entirely, and for ever, his, it cannot
-but be reckoned the highest affront offered to the divine Majesty, and a
-being unstedfast in his covenant, for us practically to disown the
-engagement, or, in effect, to deny his right to us. Now, it is farther
-observed, that this duty is much neglected, and the reason hereof is,
-
-1. Because many have very low thoughts of this ordinance, and understand
-not the spiritual intent or meaning thereof, nor what it is to improve
-it. These reckon it no more than an external rite, established by
-custom, and commonly observed in a Christian nation, without duly
-weighing the end and design for which it was instituted, or what is
-signified thereby.
-
-2. Others suppose, that there is nothing in it but a public declaration,
-that the person baptized is made a Christian, or has that character put
-upon him; but they know not what it is to be a Christian indeed, being
-utter strangers to the life and power of religion, and the spiritual
-blessings hoped for, or, through the grace of God, consequent upon our
-baptismal dedication.
-
-3. Others have, indeed, right apprehensions of the sign and the thing
-signified thereby, yet through the prevalency of corruption, and the
-pride and deceitfulness of their hearts, they do not fiducially give up
-themselves to God, nor desire the spiritual and saving blessings of the
-covenant of grace. These therefore do not improve their baptism; and, it
-is to be feared, that this is the condition and character of the
-greatest number of professors: Which leads us to consider,
-
-II. How baptism is to be improved by us, and that in several cases,
-
-1. When we are present, at the administration of it to others. We are
-not, indeed, at that time, so immediately concerned in the ordinance, as
-the person who is publicly devoted to God therein. Nevertheless, we are
-not to behave ourselves as unconcerned spectators; and therefore,
-
-(1.) We are to join herein with suitable acts of faith and prayer, as
-the nature of the ordinance calls for them, and to adore the persons of
-the Godhead whose name and glory is mentioned therein. And we are to
-apply ourselves to God, for the grace of the covenant, that is signified
-thereby, that he would be our God, as well as the God of the person who
-is particularly given up to him in baptism. We are also to bewail the
-universal depravity of human nature, and that guilt which we bring with
-us into the world, which is signified in infant-baptism; and this,
-together with the habits of sin, which we have contracted, is confessed
-by those who are baptized when adult, which we cannot but see a great
-deal of, in our daily experience. We ought also to entertain becoming
-thoughts of the virtue of the blood of Christ, and of the power of the
-Holy Ghost, which alone can take away the guilt of sin, and render this
-ordinance effectual to salvation; which we are not only to desire with
-respect to the person baptized, but that we ourselves may be made
-partakers of that grace, which we equally stand in need of.
-
-(2.) We ought to confess before God, with sorrow and shame, how
-defective we have been, as to the improvement of our baptismal
-engagements; so that, though we have been devoted to him, our hearts and
-affections have been very prone to depart from him; and we ought to
-adore and acknowledge the goodness and faithfulness of God, in that,
-though we have been unstedfast in his covenant, through the treachery
-and deceitfulness of our hearts; yet he has been ever mindful thereof,
-and made good the promises contained therein, to all his servants who
-have put their trust in him.
-
-2. Our baptism is to be improved by us in the time of temptation, in
-order to our resisting it, and preventing our being entangled and
-overcome thereby.
-
-(1.) If the temptation takes its rise from the world, or we are thereby
-induced to lay aside, or be remiss in our duty to God, from the
-prosperous circumstances in which we are therein, we should consider,
-that in having been devoted to God in our infancy, or given up ourselves
-professedly to him, when adult, it has been intimated and acknowledged,
-that he is our portion, better to us than all we can enjoy in the world;
-and therefore we ought to acquiesce in him as such, and say, _Whom have
-I in heaven but thee; and there is none_, or nothing, _upon the earth
-that I desire besides thee_, Psal. lxxiii. 25.
-
-Moreover, if we are tempted to be uneasy, and repine at the providence
-of God, by reason of the many evils that befal us in the world, we ought
-to consider, that when we were given up to God, this implied in it an
-obligation to be content to be at his disposal, and to be satisfied with
-whatever he allots for us, as not questioning the care and justice of
-his providence, in which we were under an indispensable obligation to
-acquiesce. Therefore when God tries us, by bringing us under various
-afflictions, our baptismal engagement obliges us to say, It is the Lord,
-let him do with us what seemeth good in his sight.
-
-(2.) If we are exposed to the temptations of Satan, or those inward
-suggestions, whereby sinful objects are presented to our thoughts, and a
-false gloss put upon them, to induce us to a compliance therewith, we
-are to improve our baptismal engagement, by considering that it contains
-a solemn acknowledgment of God’s right to us, exclusive of all others:
-therefore, we cannot but dread the thoughts of submitting to be vassals
-to Satan, which is, in effect, to disown that allegiance which we owe to
-God, and to say, that other lords shall have dominion over us. This will
-have a tendency to induce us to adhere stedfastly to God, as the result
-of our having been devoted to him in this ordinance.
-
-And if we are afraid of being ensnared by those wiles and methods of
-deceit, which Satan often makes use of, that are not always discerned by
-us, we are to consider ourselves as having been devoted to Christ; and,
-pursuant thereunto, if we have, in any instance, improved this solemn
-transaction, we have given up ourselves to him, in hope of being under
-his protection, and interested in his intercession, so that though we
-are _sifted as wheat_, our _faith_ may _not fail_, Luke xxii. 31, 32.
-
-Moreover, when we are assaulted, and, as it were, wounded with Satan’s
-fiery darts, whereby great discouragements are thrown in our way, the
-guilt of sin magnified, as though it were unpardonable, and the stain
-and pollution thereof such, as can never be washed away: And when we are
-ready to conclude from hence, that our state is hopeless, and the
-comforts we once enjoyed, irrecoverably lost; this is, indeed, an
-afflictive case. Nevertheless, our baptism is to be improved by us, as
-considering that remission of sins was the blessing desired and hoped
-for, inasmuch as it was signified thereby; so that we are to be sensible
-that the blood of Christ cleanseth from all sin; and that, as we were
-given up to him, in hope of obtaining this privilege, and have been
-enabled since then, to give up ourselves to him by faith, and therein to
-improve our baptismal engagement; we therefore trust, that he will
-appear for us, rebuke the adversary, establish our comforts, and enable
-us to walk as those, who desire to recommend his grace to others, that
-they may be encouraged to adhere to him, by the comfortable sense which
-we have of his love shed abroad in our hearts, by the Holy Ghost.
-
-3. Our baptismal engagement is to be improved by us, before and after we
-are brought into a converted state.
-
-(1.) Unregenerate persons are to improve it, as it should afford them
-matter of deep humiliation, that though they have been devoted to God,
-and thereby were called by his name, and made partakers of the external
-blessings of his covenant; yet they have been alienated from the life of
-God, and strangers to the internal saving blessings thereof. There was a
-profession made, in baptism, that they stood in need of Christ’s
-mediation, to deliver them from the guilt of sin, and of being cleansed
-from the pollution thereof, which is of a spreading nature; but they
-have, notwithstanding, given way to it; and, how _pure_ soever they have
-been _in their own eyes, are not yet washed from their filthiness_,
-Prov. xxx. 12. Now such may take occasion from hence to plead earnestly
-with God for converting grace; which is the only means whereby they may
-know that he has accepted of their solemn dedication to him; or that
-they are not only born of water, but of the Spirit; and are made
-partakers of the thing signified in baptism, without which, the external
-sign will not afford any saving advantage. We may also plead with God,
-that as we are professedly his, he would assert his own right to us,
-overcome us to himself, and make us _willing in the day of his power_,
-Psal. cx. 3.
-
-(2.) Our baptismal engagement is constantly to be improved by us, if we
-are brought into a state of grace, in order to the growth and increase
-thereof; especially if we are sensible of great declension therein, or
-that it is not, in all respects with us, as it once was; if we are
-sensible of deadness and stupidity, in holy duties, and stand in need of
-being quickened, excited, and brought into a lively frame of spirit, or
-to be restored after great back-slidings; if we would have sin
-mortified, and the secret workings thereof in our heart subdued, we
-ought to consider, that having been _baptized into Jesus Christ_, we
-were _baptized into his death_; and that we are obliged hereby to _walk
-in newness of life_; therefore _sin should not reign in our mortal
-bodies_, Rom. vi. 3, 4, 12. And as we hope and trust, that we are made
-partakers of the saving blessings signified in this ordinance, we desire
-to improve the relation we stand in to Christ, as his people, as a
-matter of encouragement, that when we are oppressed, he will undertake
-for us.
-
-If we are destitute of assurance of his love, and our interest in him,
-we are to improve the consideration of our being his, not only by
-professed dedication, but by a fiducial adherence to him; this will
-encourage us to hope that he will enable us to walk holily and
-comfortably before him, and lift up the light of his countenance upon
-us, as our reconciled God and Father.
-
-And, in the whole course of our conversation it will be of use, for the
-promoting the life of faith, which consists in an entire dependance on
-him, as those who are sensible that we can do nothing without him, to
-consider, that when we were first devoted to him, it was acknowledged,
-and from the time, wherein we have been enabled to give up ourselves to
-him by faith, we have been always sensible that we stand in need of
-daily supplies of grace from him, as all our springs are in him.
-Moreover, our baptismal engagement is to be improved, as it is an
-inducement to us to have our conversation in holiness and righteousness;
-whereby practical religion will be promoted in all its branches, when we
-consider that we are not our own, and therefore dare not think of living
-as we list, or serving divers lusts and pleasures, but that we are
-obliged to make his revealed will (whose we are, and whom we desire to
-serve,) the rule of all our actions.
-
-And lastly, we ought to walk in brotherly love, as being _baptized by
-the Spirit into one body_, 1 Cor. xii. 13. They who are partakers of the
-saving blessings signified by baptism, have ground to conclude
-themselves members of Christ’s mystical body, or the invisible church,
-of which he is the head. This is a spiritual baptism, being the effect
-of divine power, and the special work of the Holy Ghost; and certainly
-this will be an inducement to all who are partakers thereof, to walk
-together in brotherly love, as those who are favoured with the same
-privileges, and hope to enjoy that complete blessedness, in which they,
-who are before devoted to Christ, shall be for ever with him. Thus
-concerning the ordinance of baptism.
-
-And now we are led to speak concerning the sacrament of the Lord’s
-supper, which is considered either absolutely in itself, or as compared
-with baptism. And accordingly it is enquired; wherein they agree, or
-differ. In considering the nature of the Lord’s supper, it is farther
-enquired; how they, who are to partake of it, ought to prepare
-themselves for it before they engage therein? And there are also two
-cases of conscience answered; the one respecting those who are not
-satisfied concerning their meetness for it; the other respecting those
-who ought to be kept from it. We have also an account of the duties of
-communicants, while they are engaged in this ordinance; or those that
-are incumbent on them, after they have attended on it. These things are
-particularly insisted on in several following answers, which we are now
-led to consider.
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLXVIII., CLXIX., CLXX.
-
-
- QUEST. CLXVIII. _What is the Lord’s Supper?_
-
- ANSW. The Lord’s supper is a sacrament of the New Testament, wherein
- by giving and receiving bread and wine, according to the appointment
- of Jesus Christ, his death is shewed forth; and they that worthily
- communicate, feed upon his body and blood, to their spiritual
- nourishment and growth in grace, have their union and communion with
- him confirmed, testify and renew their thankfulness, and engagement
- to God, and their mutual love and fellowship each with other, as
- members of the same mystical body.
-
- QUEST. CLXIX. _How hath Christ appointed bread and wine to be given
- and received in the sacrament of the Lord’s supper?_
-
- ANSW. Christ hath appointed the ministers of his word, in the
- administration of this sacrament of the Lord’s supper, to set apart
- the bread and wine from common use, by the word of institution,
- thanksgiving, and prayer, to take and break the bread, and to give
- both the bread, and the wine to the communicants, who are, by the
- same appointment, to take, and eat the bread, and to drink the wine,
- in thankful remembrance, that the body of Christ was broken and
- given, and his blood shed for them.
-
- QUEST. CLXX. _How do they that worthily communicate in the Lord’s
- supper, feed upon the body and blood of Christ therein?_
-
- ANSW. As the body and blood of Christ are not corporally or carnally
- present in, with, or under the bread and wine in the Lord’s supper,
- and yet are spiritually present to the faith of the receiver, no
- less truly and really than the elements themselves are to their
- outward senses; so they that worthily communicate in the sacrament
- of the Lord’s supper, do therein feed upon the body and blood of
- Christ, not after a corporal, or carnal, but in a spiritual manner,
- yet truly and really, while by faith they receive and apply unto
- themselves Christ crucified, and all the benefits of his death.
-
-There are several things contained in these answers, _viz._
-
-I. The general description of this ordinance, as it is called a
-sacrament of the New Testament; in which we shall be led to speak
-concerning the person by whom it was instituted in common with other
-ordinances; and that is our Lord Jesus Christ.
-
-II. We shall consider the persons by whom it is to be administered,
-namely, the ministers, or pastors of particular churches; inasmuch as it
-is an ordinance given only to those who are in church-communion.
-
-III. We have an account of the matter thereof, or the outward elements,
-to wit, bread and wine.
-
-IV. We shall consider the ministers act, antecedent to the church’s
-partaking of this ordinance, in setting apart the elements from a common
-to a sacred use; which is to be done by the word and prayer, joined with
-thanksgiving.
-
-V. We have an account of the actions, both of the minister and people;
-the one breaks the bread, and pours out the wine. In order to their
-being distributed among those who are to receive them; the other, to
-wit, the communicants, partake of them, and join with him in eating the
-bread, and drinking the wine.
-
-VI. We are to consider what is signified hereby, namely, the body and
-blood of Christ; which are not supposed to be corporally and carnally,
-but spiritually present to the faith of the receivers, upon which
-account they may be said to feed upon the body and blood of Christ, and
-apply the benefits of his death to themselves.
-
-VII. We have an account of the persons who hope to enjoy these
-privileges, and partake of the Lord’s supper in a right manner; these
-are said worthily to communicate; as also the ends which they ought to
-have in view, namely, their spiritual nourishment, and growth in grace,
-their enjoying communion with Christ; and that love that they are
-obliged to express to each other, as members of the same mystical body.
-
-I. It is an ordinance of the New Testament, instituted by our Saviour.
-That it is an ordinance, is evident, in that it is founded on a divine
-command; as appears from the words of institution, in Matt. xxvi. 26,
-27. _Take eat, this is my body; and he took the cup, and gave it to
-them, saying, Drink ye all of it_, &c. And this is also intimated by the
-apostle, when, speaking particularly concerning it, as also the manner
-in which it is to be performed, he says, _I have received of the Lord,
-that which also I delivered unto you_, 1 Cor. xi. 23. Moreover, there is
-a blessing annexed to our partaking of it in a right manner; which may
-plainly be inferred from the apostle’s distinguishing those who receive
-it _worthily_, from others that receive it _unworthily_, or in an
-unbecoming manner; of whom the former are said to _come together for the
-better_, the latter _for the worse_, ver. 17. and to partake of the
-Lord’s supper for the better, is to partake of it for our spiritual
-advantage, which supposes, that there are some blessings annexed to it,
-which render it not only a duty, but an ordinance, or means of grace.
-And, that it is a gospel-ordinance of the New Testament, appears from
-the time of its being instituted by our Saviour, as well as the end and
-design thereof. It is particularly intimated, that Christ instituted
-this ordinance immediately before his last sufferings, as a memorial of
-his dying love. Thus the apostle says, _The same night in which he was
-betrayed, he took bread_, ver. 23. And that it was designed to continue
-as a standing ordinance in the church throughout all ages, appears from
-what he farther adds, _As often as ye eat this bread, and drink this
-cup, ye do shew the Lord’s death, till he come_, ver. 26.
-
-The contrary to this is maintained by some modern enthusiasts, who
-deny it to be an ordinance, as they also do baptism; concluding that
-no ceremony, or significant sign, is consistent with the
-gospel-dispensation. And as for what the apostle says concerning our
-_shewing forth the Lord’s death till he come_, they suppose, that
-hereby is meant, till he comes by the effusion of the Spirit; and
-therefore, if it was an ordinance at first, it ceased to be so when
-the Spirit was poured forth on the church, in the beginning of the
-gospel-dispensation. To this it may be replied,
-
-1. That ceremonial institutions are not inconsistent with the
-gospel-dispensation, inasmuch as they may not be designed to signify
-some benefits to be procured by Christ, as they did, which were
-instituted under the ceremonial law; but they may be considered as
-rememorative signs of the work of redemption, which has been brought to
-perfection by him.
-
-2. When the apostle, in the scripture but now mentioned, says, that _we
-shew the Lord’s death till he come_, it cannot be meant concerning his
-coming in the plentiful effusion of the Spirit; inasmuch as this
-privilege was conferred on the church in the apostle’s days, at the same
-time, when he speaks of their shewing forth his death. Therefore,
-doubtless, he intends thereby Christ’s second coming, when this, and all
-other ordinances, which are now observed in the church, as adapted to
-the present imperfect state thereof, shall cease; we must therefore
-conclude from hence, that it was designed to be continued in the church
-in all ages, as it is at this day.
-
-II. We are to consider the persons by whom this ordinance is to be
-administered; and these are only such as are lawfully called, and set
-apart to the pastoral office, whose work is to feed the church, not only
-by the preaching of the word, but by the administration of the
-sacraments, which are ordinances for their faith, in which they are said
-to receive, and spiritually feed upon Christ and his benefits; upon
-which account God promises to _give his people pastors according to his
-own heart, who should feed them with knowledge and understanding_, Jer.
-iii. 15. Now that none but these are appointed to administer this
-ordinance, is evident in that they, who partake of it, are said to have
-communion with him, and with one another therein, for their mutual
-edification and spiritual advantage; therefore it doth not belong to
-mankind in general, but the church in particular. And, to prevent
-confusion therein, Christ has appointed one, or more proper officers in
-his churches, to whom the management of this work is committed; who are
-called hereunto, by the providence of God, and the consent and desire of
-the church, to whom they are to minister.
-
-III. We are now to consider the matter, or the outward elements to be
-used in the Lord’s supper; and these are bread and wine. Thus it is
-said, _Jesus took bread_, Matt. xxvi. 26. and _he also took the cup_;
-which, by a metonymy, is put for the wine: For, our Saviour referring to
-this action, speaks of his _drinking the fruit of the vine_, ver. 29. As
-for the bread that is to be used in this ordinance, there was a very
-warm debate between the Latin and Greek church concerning it; the
-former, as the Papists do at this day, concluding it absolutely
-necessary, that it should be unleavened bread, inasmuch as that kind of
-bread was used by our Lord, when he first instituted it, which was at
-the time of the passover, when no leaven was to be found in their
-houses. And they make it also a significant sign of the sincerity and
-truth with which the Lord’s supper ought to be eaten; for which, they
-refer to what the apostle says, in 1 Cor. v. 8. _Let as keep the feast,
-not with old leaven, neither with the leaven of malice and wickedness;
-but with the unleavened bread of sincerity and truth._ But this seems
-only to be an allusion to the use of unleavened bread in the passover;
-which, it may be, might have a typical reference to that sincerity and
-truth with which all the ordinances of God are to be engaged in; but it
-does not sufficiently appear that he intends hereby that the bread used
-in the Lord’s supper should be of this kind, or, that it was designed to
-signify the frame of spirit with which this ordinance is to be
-celebrated.
-
-On the other hand, the Greek church thought that the bread ought to be
-leavened, according to our common practice at this day, it being the
-same that was used at other times. And this seems most eligible, as it
-puts a just difference between the bread used in the passover, which was
-a part of the ceremonial law, and a gospel-institution, that is distinct
-from it. But, I think, there is no need to debate either side of the
-question with too much warmth, it being a matter of no great importance.
-As for the wine that is to be used in this ordinance, it is a necessary
-part thereof; and therefore the Papists are guilty of sacrilege in
-withholding the cup from the common people[97].
-
-IV. We are now to consider what the minister is to do, antecedent to the
-church’s partaking of the Lord’s supper: He is to set apart the outward
-elements of bread and wine from a common, to this particular holy use.
-Upon which account it may be said to be _sanctified by the word of God
-and prayer_, 1 Tim. iv. 5. The words of institution contain an
-intimation that these elements are to be used in this ordinance, by
-Christ’s appointment; without which, no significant sign could be used
-in any religious matters. And, as for prayer, this is agreeable to
-Christ’s practice; for, he _took bread and blessed it_, or prayed for a
-blessing on it; and as the apostle expresses it; this was accompanied
-with thanksgiving, as he says; _When he had given thanks he brake it_,
-Matt. xxvi. 26. 1 Cor. xi. 24. which is agreeable to the nature and
-design of the ordinance, as herein we pray for the best of blessings,
-and express our thankfulness to him for the benefits of Christ’s
-redemption.
-
-Here I cannot but observe how the Papists pervert this ordinance in the
-manner of consecrating the bread, which the priest does only by
-repeating these words in Latin; _This is my body_; and from thence they
-take occasion to advance the absurd doctrine of transubstantiation; and
-suppose, that, by these words pronounced, the bread is changed into the
-body and blood of Christ; which they assert, contrary to all sense and
-reason, as well as the end and design of the ordinance; and from hence
-it will follow, that man has a power to make the body and blood of
-Christ; and another consequence thereof, will be, that the human nature
-of Christ is omnipresent, which is inconsistent with a finite nature,
-and those properties that belong to it as such; from whence it is to be
-concluded, that it is no where else but in heaven; and it involves in it
-the greatest contradiction to suppose that it is bread, and having all
-the qualities thereof; and yet our senses must be so far imposed on, as
-that we must believe that it is not so, but Christ’s body. It also
-supposes, that Christ has as many bodies as there are wafers in the
-world; which is a monstrous absurdity. It likewise confounds the sign
-with the thing signified, and is very opposite to the sense of those
-words of scripture, _This is my body_; which implies no more, than that
-the bread, which is the same in itself, after the words of consecration,
-as it was before, is an external symbol of Christ’s body, that is, of
-the sufferings which he endured therein for his people.
-
-V. We are now to consider the actions both of the minister and the
-church, when engaged in this ordinance, _viz._ breaking, distributing,
-eating the bread, pouring forth, and drinking the wine, for the ends
-appointed by Christ, in instituting this ordinance. Whether our Saviour
-gave the bread and wine to every one of the disciples in particular, is
-not sufficiently determined by the words of institution: For, though
-Matthew and Mark say, _He gave the bread and the cup to the disciples_,
-Matt. xxvi. 26, 27. and Mark xiv. 22, 23. Yet Luke speaking either
-concerning the cup used in the passover, or that in the Lord’s supper,
-represents our Saviour as saying to his disciples, _Take this and divide
-it among yourselves_, Luke xxii. 17. which seems to intimate that he
-distributed it to one or more of them, to be conveyed to the rest, that
-they might divide it among themselves; which is agreeable to the
-practice of several of the reformed churches in our day, and seems most
-expedient in case the number of the communicants is very great, and the
-elements cannot be so conveniently given by the pastor into the hand of
-every one.
-
-Here I may observe how the Papists pervert this part of the Lord’s
-supper; inasmuch as they will not permit the common people to touch the
-bread with their hands, lest they should defile it; but the priest puts
-it into their mouths; for which purpose it is made up into small, round
-wafers; and the people are ordered to take great care that they do not
-use their teeth in chewing it; for that would be, as it were, a
-crucifying Christ afresh, as offering a kind of violence to what they
-call his body. But these things are so very absurd and unscriptural,
-that they confute themselves. And their consecrating a wafer to be
-reserved in a case prepared for that purpose, and set upon the altar in
-the church, to be worshipped by all that come near it, savours of gross
-superstition and idolatry.
-
-We may farther observe, that they deny the people the cup in this
-ordinance, but not the priests; for what reason, it is hard to
-determine. And, they mix the wine with water; which, though it does not
-seem to be agreeable to Christ’s institution, yet it was often practised
-by the ancient church, from whence they took it; and their making this a
-sacramental sign of Christ’s divine and human nature, united together in
-one person, is much more unwarrantable; nor can I approve of what others
-suppose, viz. that it signifies the blood and water that came out of his
-side when he was pierced on the cross. And, I can hardly think some
-Protestants altogether free from the charge of superstition, when they
-so tenaciously adhere to the use of red wine, as bearing some small
-resemblance to the colour of Christ’s blood; for which reason others
-chuse to bear their testimony against this ungrounded opinion, by the
-using of white wine, without supposing that any thing is signified by it
-more than by red; and others chuse to use one sort at one time, and
-another at another, to signify that this is an indifferent matter; and
-these, I think, are most in the right.
-
-Moreover, the practice of the Papists, and some others, in receiving the
-Lord’s supper fasting, to the end that the consecrated bread may not be
-mixed with undigested food, is not only unwarrantable, but
-superstitious, as well as contrary to what we read concerning our
-Saviour and his apostles partaking of the Lord’s supper in the first
-institution thereof, immediately after having eaten the passover, and to
-what the apostle suggests, when he reproves the church at Corinth, for
-eating and drinking to excess immediately before they partook of the
-Lord’s supper; upon which occasion he advises them _to eat and drink_
-(though with moderation) _in their own houses_, 1 Cor. xi. 21, 22.
-
-Again, the administring the Lord’s supper privately, as the Papists and
-others do, to sick people, seems to be contrary to the design of its
-being a church-ordinance; and when, to give countenance to this
-practice, it is styled, as by the former of these, a viaticum, or means
-to convey the soul, if it should soon after depart out of the body, to
-heaven, they are much more remote from our Saviour’s design in
-instituting this ordinance; neither do they rightly understand the sense
-of the scripture, from whence they infer the necessity thereof, _except
-ye eat the flesh of the Son of man, and drink his blood, ye have no life
-in you_, John vi. 53. when they apply it to this purpose.
-
-There is another thing that must not be wholly passed over, viz. the
-various gestures used in receiving the Lord’s supper. The Papists not
-only receive it kneeling; but, they allege, that they ought to do so, as
-being obliged to adore the body and blood of Christ, which, as they
-absurdly suppose, is really present, inasmuch as the bread is
-transubstantiated, or turned into it. And the Lutherans, with equal
-absurdity assert, that the body of Christ, is really, though invisibly,
-present in the bread; which is what they call consubstantiation. Some
-other Protestants, indeed, plead for the receiving it kneeling, as
-supposing Christ to be spiritually, though not corporally, present
-therein; and therefore they do not worship the bread and wine, but our
-Saviour; which, they suppose, they ought to do with this becoming
-reverence.
-
-What I would take leave to say, in answer to this, is, that we humbly
-hope and trust, that Christ, according to his promise, is present with
-his people in all his ordinances; yet, it is not supposed that we are
-obliged to engage in every one of them kneeling. But that which
-determines the faith and practice of all other reformed churches, who do
-not use this gesture in the Lord’s supper, is, because it is contrary to
-the example of our Saviour and his apostles, when it was first
-celebrated; which ought to be a rule to the churches in all succeeding
-ages.
-
-If it be said, that this is a gesture most agreeable to prayer, or, at
-least, that sitting is not so. To this it may be replied, that it is not
-an ordinance principally or only designed for prayer; for, whatever
-prayers we put up to God therein, are short, ejaculatory, and mixed with
-other meditations, which may be performed with an awful reverence of the
-divine majesty, such as we ought to have in other acts of religious
-worship, though we do not use that gesture of kneeling. And besides, we
-think ourselves obliged to receive the Lord’s supper sitting, that being
-a table gesture in use among us, in like manner as that which our
-Saviour and his apostles used, was among the eastern nations.
-
-As for the reformed Gallican churches, they receive it for the most
-part, standing; which, being a medium between both extremes, they
-suppose to be most eligible. But this not being a table-gesture, nor, in
-that respect, conformed to that which was used by our Saviour and his
-apostles, I cannot think it warrantable. Nevertheless, when the gesture
-of standing or sitting is made a significant sign as some do the former,
-of our being servants, ready to obey the will of Christ our great Lord
-and Master; or, as others explain it, as signifying our being travellers
-to the heavenly country; and the latter, _viz._ sitting, of our
-familiarity, or communion with Christ. These are rather the result of
-human invention, than founded on a divine institution, since we have not
-the least account in scripture, of these things being signified thereby.
-This leads us to consider,
-
-VI. The thing signified in this ordinance, and in what respect Christ is
-said to be present therein, together with the benefits expected from
-him, as we are said to feed upon him by faith for our spiritual
-nourishment and growth in grace. I cannot but think that the general
-design hereof, is not much unlike to that which was ordained under the
-ceremonial law, in which, after the sacrifice was offered, part of it
-was reserved to be _eaten in the holy place_, Lev. vi. 16. which was a
-significant feast upon a sacrifice. In like manner, the Lord’s supper,
-which comes in the room of the passover, is ordained to be a feast on
-Christ’s sacrifice; so the apostle styles it, when he says, _Christ, our
-passover, is sacrificed for us: Therefore let us keep the feast_, &c. 1
-Cor. v. 7, 8. The fiducial application of Christ, and the benefits of
-his death, is the principal thing to be considered in this
-gospel-festival. However, there are some cautions necessary to be
-observed with respect to the things signified therein, as what may be
-useful to us that our faith may be exercised in a right manner.
-Therefore let it be considered,
-
-1. That though the Lord’s supper was instituted in commemoration of
-Christ’s love, expressed in his death, which was the last and most
-bitter part of his sufferings for our redemption. Yet he did not design
-hereby to exclude his other sufferings in life; nor, indeed, his whole
-course of obedience from his incarnation to his death; since it is very
-evident that the death of Christ is often considered in scripture, by a
-synecdoche, as denoting the whole course of obedience, both active and
-passive, which is the matter of our justification; and therefore is to
-be the object on which our faith is to be conversant in the Lord’s
-supper, as well as his sufferings in, or immediately before his death.
-
-2. When Christ’s sufferings upon the cross are said to be signified by
-the bread and wine; we are not to conclude that these sufferings are to
-be so distinctly or separately considered, as that the bread broken, is
-designed to signify the pains that he endured upon the cross, when his
-body was as it were broken, its tendons, nerves, and fibres snapped
-asunder, and his joints dislocated, by being stretched thereon; and the
-wine poured forth, to signify the shedding his blood when his hands and
-feet were pierced with the nails, and his side with the spear, as some
-suppose; since all these things are to be made the subjects of our
-affectionate meditation in every part of this ordinance, while we are
-taken up with the contemplation of his last sufferings. And this seems
-to give countenance to the practice of many of the reformed churches, in
-consecrating and distributing the bread and wine together; though it is
-true, many think, on the other hand, that the elements are to be
-separately consecrated, as well as distributed, it being most agreeable
-to what is said concerning Christ’s blessing the bread, and giving it to
-his disciples, and afterwards taking the cup, and giving it to them,
-Matt. xxvi. 26, 27. However, if this be allowed of, it is not necessary
-for us to infer from hence, that each of these elements are designed to
-signify some distinct parts of Christ’s sufferings on the cross, but
-only that the ordinance is to be still continued, the whole including in
-it two external and visible signs to be used, each of which signify the
-means whereby he procured our redemption; and, indeed, when the wine is
-poured forth, and set apart for another part of this ordinance, we are
-not so much to enter on a new subject in our meditation, though the sign
-be different from that of the bread, as to proceed in thinking on, and
-improving the love of Christ, in his _humbling himself, and becoming
-obedient unto death, even the death of the cross_, Phil. ii. 8. and all
-this is signified by this sign, as well as the other, neither of which
-are adapted to this end, otherwise than by divine appointment.
-
-3. We must take heed that we do not make more significant signs in the
-bread and wine than Christ has done; as some suppose, that almost every
-ingredient or action used in making them, is to be applied to signify
-some things that he has done or suffered for our redemption. It is a
-very great liberty that some take in expatiating on this subject, and
-applying it to this ordinance. We have a specimen hereof contained in an
-hymn, composed to be sung as a thanksgiving after the receiving the
-Lord’s supper[98]; in which the corn, as first living and growing, and
-afterwards cut down, and by threshing, separated from the husk, and then
-ground in the mill, and baked in the oven, are all made significant
-signs of the sufferings and torments which our Saviour endured. And the
-corn being united in one loaf, is made a sign of the union between
-Christ and his church. In like manner the grapes being gathered,
-pressed, and made into wine, is supposed to signify our spiritual joy,
-arising from Christ’s shedding his blood. And, as many grapes make one
-vine, so believers should be united by faith and love. What lengths is
-it possible for the wit and fancy of men to run, when they have a
-fruitful invention, and are disposed to make significant signs, and
-apply them to this ordinance without a divine warrant!
-
-4. When we meditate on Christ’s sufferings, our faith is not to rest in,
-or principally be fixed on the grievousness of them, as Dr. Goodwin
-observes[99]; so that we should only endeavour hereby to have our hearts
-moved to a relenting, and compassion expressed towards him, and
-indignation against the Jews that crucified him, together with an
-admiring of his noble and heroical love herein; so that if persons can
-get their hearts thus affected, they judge and account this to be grace;
-whereas, it is no more than what the like tragical story of some great
-and noble personage (full of heroical virtues and ingenuity; yet
-inhumanly and ungratefully used) doth ordinarily work in ingenuous
-spirits, who read or hear of it; which, when it reacheth no higher, it
-is so far from being faith, that it is but a carnal and fleshly
-devotion; and Christ himself, at his suffering, found fault with, as not
-being spiritual, when he says, _Daughters of Jerusalem weep not for me,
-but for yourselves and for your children_, Luke xxiii. 28. that is, not
-so much for this, when you see me thus unworthily handled by those for
-whom I die, as for yourselves.
-
-Moreover, he farther adds, that it was not the malice of the Jews, the
-falseness of Judas, the fearfulness of Pilate, the iniquity of the times
-he fell into, that wrought our Saviour’s death; God the Father had an
-higher design herein: And this our faith is constantly to be conversant
-about, considering it as the result of an eternal agreement between the
-Father and the Son, and of that covenant which he came into the world to
-fulfil; and his being made sin for us, to take away our sins by the
-atonement which he made hereby. And, besides this, we may add, that the
-highest and most affecting consideration in Christ’s sufferings, ought
-to contain in it the idea of his being a divine person, which is the
-only thing that argued them sufficient to answer the great ends designed
-thereby, as it rendered them of infinite value; and it was upon this
-account that his condescension expressed herein, might truly be said to
-be infinite. These things, I say, we are principally to rest in, when we
-meditate on Christ’s sufferings in this ordinance; though the other,
-which are exceedingly moving and affecting in their kind, are not to be
-passed over; since the Holy Ghost has, for this end, given a particular
-account thereof in the gospels, not barely as an historical relation of
-what was done to him, but as a convincing evidence of the greatness of
-his love to us.
-
-Thus concerning Christ’s death, shewed forth or signified in this
-ordinance. We are farther, under this head, to consider how he is
-present, and they who engage in it aright feed on his body and blood by
-faith. We are not to suppose that Christ is present in a corporal way,
-so that we should be said to partake of his body in a literal sense; but
-he being a divine person, and consequently omnipresent; and having
-promised his presence with his church in all ages, and places, when met
-together in his name; in this respect he is present with them, in like
-manner as he is in other ordinances, to supply their wants, hear their
-prayers, and strengthen them against corruption and temptation, and
-remove their guilt by the application of his blood, which is presented
-as an object for their contemplation in a more peculiar manner in this
-ordinance.
-
-As for our feeding on, or being nourished by the body and blood of
-Christ, these are metaphorical expressions, taken from, and adapted to
-the nature and quality of the bread and wine by which it is signified;
-but that which we are to understand hereby, is, our graces being farther
-strengthened and established, and we enabled to exercise them with
-greater vigour and delight; and this derived from Christ, and
-particularly founded on his death. And, when we are said to feed upon
-him, in order hereunto, it denotes the application of what he has done
-and suffered, to ourselves; and, in order hereunto, we are to bring our
-sins, with all the guilt that attends them, as it were, to the foot of
-the cross of Christ, confess and humble our souls for them before him,
-and by faith plead the virtue of his death, in order to our obtaining
-forgiveness, and, at the same time, renew our dedication to him, while
-hoping and praying for the blessings and privileges of the covenant of
-grace, which were purchased by him.
-
-Moreover, there is another thing signified in this ordinance, as a
-farther end for which it was instituted, namely, in that we are to have
-communion with one another, and thereby express our mutual love, as
-members of Christ’s mystical body, who have the same end in view, and
-make use of the same means, _viz._ Christ crucified, as we attend on the
-same ordinance in which this is set forth, and having the same common
-necessities, infirmities and corruptions, and the same encouragements
-for our faith. Therefore we ought to sympathize with one another, and,
-by faith and prayer, be helpful to them, with whom we join in this
-ordinance, while we are representing our own case in common with theirs,
-before the Lord. This leads us to consider,
-
-VII. What ought to be the qualifications of those who have a right to,
-and are obliged to partake of the Lord’s supper: These are expressed in
-general terms by the apostle, by _discerning the Lord’s body_, 1 Cor.
-xi. 29. Now this a person cannot do, who is ignorant of the design of
-his death; therefore there must be some degree of knowledge in those who
-are qualified for this ordinance. There must also be an afflictive sense
-of the weight and burden of the guilt of those sins which are daily
-committed by us, and an apprehension arising from thence, of our need of
-the merits of Christ, to take them away, and that his death is designed
-to answer this end. And, that this may be done for our real advantage,
-as we are said to feed on Christ by faith; it is supposed, that this
-grace is wrought in us, or, that we are effectually called out of a
-state of unregeneracy, to partake of gracious communion with Christ;
-whereby we may be said to be fitted to have fellowship with him in this
-ordinance, and so partake of it in a right manner, for our spiritual
-nourishment and growth in grace.
-
-Footnote 97:
-
- _This was done by the council at Constance, A. D. 1415, before which
- time there were, indeed, several disputes about the matter or form of
- the cup, in which the wine was contained; but it was never taken away
- from the common people till then._
-
-Footnote 98:
-
- _This hymn is inserted after Sternhold and Hopkin’s version of the
- Psalms._
-
-Footnote 99:
-
- _See Dr. Goodwin’s Christ set forth, § 2. Chap. ii._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLXXI.
-
-
- QUEST. CLXXI. _How are they that receive the sacrament of the Lord’s
- supper, to prepare themselves before they come unto it?_
-
- ANSW. They that receive the sacrament of the Lord’s supper, are,
- before they come, to prepare themselves thereunto, by examining
- themselves, of their being in Christ, of their sins, and wants, of
- the truth and measure of their knowledge, faith, repentance, love to
- God and the brethren, charity to all men, forgiving those that have
- done them wrong, of their desires after Christ, and of their new
- obedience; and by renewing the exercise of these graces, by serious
- meditation, and fervent prayer.
-
-The Lord’s supper being a sacred and solemn ordinance, it ought not to
-be engaged in without due preparation before-hand, in those who partake
-of it. The duties mentioned in this answer, which are preparatory for
-it, are self-examination, the renewing the exercise of those graces
-which are necessary to our partaking of it aright, serious meditation on
-the work we are going about, and fervent prayer for the presence and
-blessing of God therein.
-
-I. Concerning the duty of self-examination; in order hereunto, we must
-retire from the hurries and incumbrances of the world, that our minds
-may be disengaged from them, and not filled with distracting thoughts,
-which will be an hindrance to us in our enquiries into the state of our
-souls. We must also resolve to deal impartially with ourselves, and
-consider what really makes against us, as matter of sorrow, shame, and
-humiliation, as well as those things that are encouraging, and occasions
-of thanksgiving to God. We must also endeavour to be acquainted with the
-word of God, to which our actions and behaviour are to be applied;
-whereby we are to determine the goodness or badness of our state in
-general, or the frame of spirit in which we are, in particular.
-
-Now there are several things, concerning which we are to examine
-ourselves before we come to the Lord’s supper.
-
-1. Whether we are in Christ or no? since persons must be first in him
-before they can have spiritual communion with him. There are some
-things, which, if we find in ourselves, would give us ground to
-determine that we are not in Christ; particularly,
-
-That man is not in Christ who is an utter stranger to his person,
-natures, offices, and the design of his coming into the world; together
-with the spiritual benefits purchased by his death. Neither is he in
-Christ, who never saw his need of him, or that there is no hope of
-salvation without him. Again, he is not in Christ, who obstinately
-refuses to submit to his government, lives in a wilful contempt of his
-laws, resolutely persists in the commission of known sins, or in the
-total neglect of known duties. Again, he is not in Christ, who is
-ashamed of his doctrine, his gospel, his cross, which a true believer
-counts his glory; as the apostle says, _God forbid that I should glory,
-save in the cross of Jesus Christ_, Gal. vi. 14. He must also be
-reckoned out of Christ, who is stupid and presumptuous; and, though,
-probably, he may hope to be saved by him, yet desires not to have
-communion with him, but expects to be made partaker of his benefits
-without faith; or if he pretends to have faith, it is only an assent to
-some truths, without being accompanied with repentance, and other graces
-which are inseparably connected with that faith which is saving.
-
-But, on the other hand, we may know that we are in Christ, if we can
-truly say,
-
-(1.) That we have received a new nature from him, from whence proceed
-renewed actions, which discover themselves in the whole course of our
-lives; _If any man be in Christ, he is a new creature: Old things are
-passed away, behold, all things are become new_, 2 Cor. v. 17.
-
-(2.) We must enquire, whether we endeavour constantly to adhere to his
-revealed will, not barely as the result of some sudden conviction; but
-as making it the main business of life, to approve ourselves to him in
-well doing, as our Saviour says, _If ye continue in my word, then ye are
-my disciples indeed_, John viii. 31.
-
-(3.) Converse with Christ in ordinance, is another evidence of our being
-in him: For, as a man is said to be known by the company he keeps, or
-delights to be in; so a true Christian is known, as the apostle says, by
-his _having fellowship with the Father, and with his son Jesus Christ_,
-1 John i. 3.
-
-(4.) We must enquire, whether we have a great concern for the glory and
-interest in our own souls, and an earnest desire that his name may be
-known and magnified in the world; and this accompanied with our using
-the utmost endeavours in our various stations and capacities in order
-thereunto?
-
-2. The next thing that we are to examine ourselves about, before we come
-to the Lord’s supper, is, what sense we have of sin? whether we are
-truly humbled for, and desirous to be delivered from it? It is not
-sufficient for us to take a general view of ourselves as sinners, in
-common with the rest of mankind, without being duly affected with it;
-but we must consider the various aggravations of sin, with a particular
-application thereof to ourselves; and how much we have exceeded many
-others therein, either before or since we were called by the grace of
-God, by which means we may take occasion to say, as the apostle does
-concerning himself, that we are _the chief of sinners_, 1 Tim. i. 15.
-and a sense of the guilt hereof, when duly considered, will give us
-occasion to lie very low at the foot of God. We are also to take notice
-of our natural propensity and inclination to sin, and the various ways
-by which this has discovered itself in our actions; and accordingly we
-are to enquire,
-
-(1.) Whether we have sinned knowingly, wilfully, presumptuously, and
-obstinately? or, whether we have been surprised into it, or ensnared by
-some sudden unforeseen temptation, and committed it without the full
-bent of our wills? whether we have striven against it, or given way to
-it, and suffered ourselves to be prevailed upon without making
-resistance?
-
-(2.) We must enquire, whether we have continued in sin, or unfeignedly
-repented of it? whether sin sits light or heavy on our consciences? or,
-if our consciences are burdened with it, whether we seek relief against
-it in that way which Christ has prescribed in the gospel?
-
-(3.) We must enquire, whether there are not some sins that more
-frequently and easily beset us? what they are, and whether we are daily
-watchful against them, and use our utmost endeavours to avoid them?
-
-(4.) We must also enquire, whether we have not frequently relapsed into
-the same sin which we have resolved against at various times, and, in
-particular, at the Lord’s table, and hereby broke our engagements; and
-if so, whether we did not rely too much on our own strength, when we
-made those resolutions against sin?
-
-(5.) We are to enquire, whether sin gets ground upon us, whereby grace
-is weakened? or, whether, though we commit it, we find its strength
-abated, and we enabled, in some measure, to mortify it, though we do not
-wholly abstain from it? as the apostle says, _That which I do, I allow
-not; but what I hate, that do I_, Rom. vii. 15.
-
-(6.) We are also to enquire, whether our sins have not carried in them a
-great neglect of Christ, his blood, his grace, his benefits, as not
-thinking of them, admiring or prizing them above all things, nor laying
-hold on them by faith, and so not making a right use of his dying love,
-which is signified in the Lord’s supper.
-
-3. We are to examine ourselves, before we come to the Lord’s table, what
-particular wants we have to be supplied. Our Saviour is to be considered
-in this ordinance, not only as signified by the external elements; but
-as present with his people when met together in his name, with earnest
-expectation of enjoying communion with him: And, as he is appointed to
-apply, as well as purchase redemption for us, we must consider him as
-having his hands full of spiritual blessings, to impart to his
-necessitous people, who come to him for them: Therefore they ought
-before they go, to enquire, not only, as has been before observed, what
-are their sins which are to be confessed and bewailed before him, but
-what it is more especially, that they stand in need of from him? The
-question that Christ will ask them, when they come there, is, what is
-thy petition, and what is thy request? what are those wants which thou
-desirest a supply of? Accordingly, we are before-hand to enquire,
-whether, though we have some little hope that we have experienced the
-grace of God in truth, yet we do not want a full assurance of our
-interest in Christ, _that we may know that we have eternal life_, 1 John
-v. 13. together with the joy of faith accompanying the actings thereof?
-and, whether we do not want enlargement of heart, and raised affections
-in holy duties? which the Psalmist seems to intend, when he says, _Bring
-my soul out of prison, that I may praise thy name_, Psal. cxlii. 7.
-
-Again, whether we do not want many experiences, which we have formerly
-had, of the grace of God, and his special presence in holy duties; or
-have not occasion to say with Job, _O that it were as in months past, as
-in the days when God preserved me: When his candle shined upon my head,
-and, by his light I walked through darkness_, Job xxix. 2, 3. Moreover,
-we are to enquire, whether we do not want a greater degree of
-establishment in the great doctrines of the gospel; or to be kept steady
-in a time of temptation? and, whether we do not want a greater degree of
-zeal for the honour of God, in a day in which many professors are
-lukewarm? as our Saviour observes concerning the church of Laodicea,
-_That they were neither cold nor hot_, Rev. iii. 15. or, whether we do
-not want together with this zeal, a compassion to the souls of others,
-who make shipwreck of faith, not having a good conscience, which may
-induce us, as the apostle says, _In meekness to instruct those that
-oppose themselves, if God peradventure will give them repentance to the
-acknowledging of the truth?_ 2 Tim. ii. 25. and, whether we are duly
-affected with the degeneracy of the age wherein we live, and are not too
-negligent in bearing our testimony against the errors advanced therein?
-or, whether we understand the meaning of those various dispensations of
-providence, which we are under, and what is our present duty in
-compliance therewith? These things are of a more general nature, and to
-be made the subject of our enquiry, whenever we draw nigh to Christ in
-any ordinance in which we hope for a supply of our wants.
-
-But there are other things which we ought to have a more particular
-regard to in our enquiries, when we are to engage in the ordinance of
-the Lord’s supper.
-
-(1.) In order to our partaking of it aright, we are to enquire, whether
-we do not want a clear and distinct apprehension of the covenant of
-grace, and the seals thereof, and how we are to act faith in a way of
-self-dedication, and how we ought to renew our covenant engagements with
-God, which we are more especially called to do therein?
-
-(2.) Whether we do not want a broken heart, suitably affected with the
-dying love of Jesus Christ, which is signified therein, that we may
-_look on him who was pierced, and mourn_, Zech. xii. 10.
-
-(3.) Whether we do not want to be led into the true way of improving
-Christ crucified, to answer all those accusations that are brought in
-against us, either by Satan or our own consciences, and how this is an
-expedient for the taking away the guilt and power of sin?
-
-(4.) Whether we do not want to be made more like to Christ, and
-conformed to his death, that, while we behold him represented as dying
-for us, we may _reckon ourselves as dead to sin_, and to the world; and
-_that our old man is crucified with him, that the body of sin might be
-destroyed, that henceforth we should not serve sin_? Rom. vi. 6. 10.
-
-(5.) Whether we do not want an abiding impression of the love of Christ,
-and a greater stedfastness in our resolution, to adhere to him; that so,
-whatever grace we may be enabled to act, by strength derived from him,
-may be maintained and exercised, not only at that time, but when we are
-more immediately engaged in that ordinance?
-
-These things we are to examine ourselves concerning, that we may spread
-our wants before the Lord at his table. And to induce us hereunto, we
-may consider, that our corrupt nature is very prone to think ourselves
-better than we really are; so that, how indigent and distressed soever
-we may be, we are ready to conclude, with the church of the Laodiceans,
-that _we are rich and increased with goods, and have need of nothing_,
-Rev. iii. 17.
-
-Moreover, if we are not truly sensible of our necessities, we shall not
-value Christ’s fulness, or the rich provisions he has made for his
-people, and is pleased to dispense in this ordinance; as it is said,
-_The whole need not a physician, but they that are sick_, Matt. ix. 12.
-and we must consider, that a great part of our work therein, consists in
-ejaculatory prayer, which we shall not be able to put up in a right
-manner, if we are not sensible of our wants; and one reason why we are
-so often at a loss in prayer, or go out of the presence of God empty,
-is, because our hearts are not enlarged therein, which they cannot be,
-unless we are affected with a sense of our necessities.
-
-Now, to encourage us to examine ourselves concerning them, before we
-partake of the Lord’s supper, let us consider that Christ invites us to
-draw nigh to him therein; that he may take occasion to communicate the
-blessings of his redemption, which are signified thereby; that he may
-supply our wants, satisfy our desires, surmount our difficulties, and
-apply to us the great and precious promises of the covenant of grace,
-which are to be sought for at his hands, by faith and prayer, which
-supposes the performance of this duty of self-examination, with respect
-to the blessings that we stand in need of from him.
-
-4. We are, before we partake of the Lord’s supper, to examine ourselves
-concerning the truth and measure of our knowledge in divine things;
-inasmuch as without the knowledge hereof, the heart cannot be good, nor
-any spiritual duty engaged in, in a right manner. As for a perfect
-comprehensive knowledge of divine truths, that is not to be expected, by
-reason of the weakness of our capacities, and the imperfection of this
-present state; wherein, as the apostle says, _we see_ but _through a
-glass darkly_, or, as it is said elsewhere, _We are but of yesterday,
-and know_, comparatively, _nothing_, Job viii. 9.
-
-However, there is a degree of knowledge, which is not only attainable,
-but necessary to our right engaging in this ordinance; and this does not
-consist barely in our knowing that there is a God, or that he is to be
-worshipped, or that there was such a person as our Saviour, who lived in
-the world, was crucified, rose again from the dead, ascended into
-heaven, and shall come again to judge the quick and the dead: For a
-person may have a general notion of all these things, and yet be
-unacquainted with the end and design of Christ’s death, and the
-blessings and privileges of the covenant of grace, which he procured
-thereby, or with the claim that a person may lay by faith, to them;
-without which, there is not a sufficient knowledge, such as the apostle
-calls _a discerning the Lord’s body_, 1 Cor. xi. 29. which we ought to
-do in this ordinance.
-
-Now, that knowledge of divine truths, which ought not only to be pressed
-after, but, we are to examine ourselves, whether we have, in some
-measure attained to, respects,
-
-(1.) The person of Christ, as God-man, Mediator, and the offices which
-he executes as such; and more particularly, the manner and end of his
-executing his priestly office, in which he offered himself as a
-sacrifice for sin, which we are more especially to commemorate in this
-ordinance.
-
-(2.) We must have an affecting sense or knowledge of the guilt of sin;
-and, as a relief against it, must be acquainted with the doctrine of the
-free grace of God, displayed in the gospel, and founded in the blood of
-Jesus, whereby sin is pardoned. We are also to be fully convinced of the
-almighty power of the Holy Ghost, whereby alone it can be subdued, and
-of the method he takes therein to make the redemption purchased by
-Christ, effectual to answer that end.
-
-(3.) We are to endeavour, in some measure, to know God as our Father,
-and covenant-God in Christ, who bestows on his people the rich and
-splendid entertainment of his house, and satisfies them with the
-abundance of his goodness, pursuant to what Christ has purchased. And we
-must also know what it is to deal with him as those who see themselves
-obliged herein to devote themselves to him as their God; and what large
-expectations they may have from him, whom he has avouched to be his
-peculiar people; and how this is a foundation of that humble boldness
-with which they are encouraged to come _unto the throne of grace, that
-they may obtain mercy, and find grace to help in time of need_, Heb. iv.
-16.
-
-Moreover, we are not only to enquire, whether we are apprehensive of the
-excellency, glory, and suitableness of those great things, that are
-revealed in the gospel, to answer our particular exigencies, and render
-us happy in the enjoyment of God; but whether the knowledge hereof makes
-a due impression on our hearts, is of a transforming nature, and has a
-tendency to regulate the conduct of our lives, and put us on the
-application of these great things to ourselves?
-
-As to the degree of our knowledge we must enquire, whether it be only a
-single apprehension that the doctrines of the gospel are true, or, at
-most, contains in it some general ideas of their being excellent and
-worthy of the highest esteem; but whether we can prove them to be true,
-and render a reason of our faith, without which, it may, indeed, be
-rightly placed as to its object? But it cannot be said to be deeply
-rooted; and therefore it is exposed to greater danger of being foiled,
-weakened, or overthrown by temptation. We must also enquire, whether we
-grow in knowledge in proportion to those opportunities or means of grace
-that we are favoured with, which the apostle calls _growing in grace,
-and in the knowledge of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ_, 2 Pet. iii.
-18.
-
-5. We are to examine ourselves concerning the truth and degree of our
-faith, and other graces that are inseparably connected with it. As for
-faith, we are to enquire, whether it be a living, or what the apostle
-calls a _dead faith_, James ii. 17, 18. as being alone, and destitute of
-those good works which ought to proceed from it? Whether it only
-contains in it an assent to the truth of divine revelation; or, whether
-it puts us upon a closure with Christ, embracing him in all his offices,
-and trusting in him for all those benefits which he has purchased by his
-blood? We must also enquire, what fruits or effects it produces, and
-what other graces accompany or flow from it? Whether it inclines us to
-set the highest value on Christ, as being in our esteem, altogether
-lovely; and gives us low thoughts of ourselves, as having nothing but
-what we depend on him for, or derive from him? Whether it be attended
-with some degree of holiness in heart and life, as the apostle speaks of
-the _heart’s being purified by faith_, Acts xv. 9. Again, whether it be
-such a faith as _overcomes the world_, 1 John v. 14. and prevents our
-being easily turned aside from God, by the snares that we may meet with
-in it? Whether we are inclined hereby, to confess ourselves to be
-_strangers and pilgrims on the earth_, Heb. xi. 13. and _desire a better
-country_, ver. 16.
-
-There are many other fruits and effects of faith, which the apostle
-mentions in Heb. xi. by which we may examine ourselves concerning the
-truth and sincerity of this grace; and there are several graces
-mentioned in this answer, which are connected with faith, concerning
-which, we must enquire, whether they are found in us, particularly
-repentance, which must of necessity be exercised in this ordinance as
-well as faith; inasmuch as by the one, we behold Christ’s glory, and, by
-the other, we take a view of sins deformity? And it is such a
-repentance, as inclines us not only to hate sin, but forsake and turn
-from it, as seeing the detestable and odious nature of it, in what
-Christ endured to make satisfaction for it.
-
-But since faith and repentance have been particularly considered under a
-foregoing answer, together with the nature, properties, and effects
-thereof[100]; we shall pass them over, and consider the graces of love
-to God, desire after Christ, and our using endeavours to approve
-ourselves his servants and subjects, by constant acts of obedience to
-him: These things are to be the subject-matter of our enquiry, before we
-engage in this ordinance. It is very suitable to the occasion, to
-enquire, whether we love Christ or no; inasmuch as we are to behold and
-be affected with the most amazing instance of love, which he has
-expressed to us; Let us therefore enquire, whether our love to him be
-superlative, far exceeding that which we bear to all creatures, how
-valuable soever they may be to us, how nearly soever we may be related
-to them, or whatever engagements we may be laid under to esteem and
-value them.
-
-We may also try the sincerity of our love to God, by enquiring, whether
-it puts us on performing the most difficult duties for his sake, with
-the greatest cheerfulness? And, whether we are hereby encouraged to bear
-the most afflictive evils with patience; because it is his pleasure that
-we should be exercised therewith, 1 Sam. iii. 18. Let us also enquire,
-whether we love him with all our heart, or, whether our love is divided
-betwixt him and the creature, whereby our affections are often drawn
-aside from him? And, whether it puts us upon improving our time,
-strength, and all our other talents to his glory? Whether we have no
-interest separate from his, which we cannot but prefer to our chief joy?
-whether this be the very end of living? As the apostle says, _For me to
-live is Christ_, Phil. i. 21. and, whether we are earnestly desirous to
-bring others to him, not only by recommending his glory to them in
-words; but by expressing the esteem and value we have for him, in the
-whole course of our conversation? Whether we are hereby inclined to hate
-every thing that he hates; as the Psalmist says, _Ye that love the Lord
-hate evil_, Psal. xcviii. 10. and whether we make those things the
-object of our choice that he delights in?
-
-Moreover, we are to enquire, whether we have had any communion with him
-in ordinances, and particularly in this ordinance at other times? And
-when he is pleased to withhold this privilege from us in any degree,
-that hereby we may see that all our comforts flow from him; or, when he
-has a design to humble us for those sins that provoke him to depart from
-us, whether we are earnestly desirous of his return, and cannot be
-satisfied with any thing short of him?
-
-As for our desires after Christ, which we are farther to examine
-ourselves about, we must enquire, whether, that, which moves or inclines
-us to desire him, be the view we have of the glory of his person, and
-the delight that arises from our contemplating his divine excellencies;
-or whether we desire him, only for the sake of his benefits, or, that he
-might deliver us from the wrath to come? Whether we desire Christ only
-when his service is attended with the esteem of men, or, as a means to
-gain some worldly advantage from them? Or, whether we desire to adhere
-to him, when we are called to suffer reproach, or even the loss of all
-things for his sake; which will be a convincing evidence of the
-sincerity of our desires after, and, consequently, of our love to him?
-
-And, we are farther to enquire, whether our love to Christ, and desire
-after him, discovers itself by renewed acts of obedience to him;
-particularly, whether our obedience be universal or partial, constant or
-wavering, performed with delight and pleasure or with some reluctancy?
-And, whether it puts us upon universal holiness, as being induced
-hereunto by gospel-motives? Thus concerning our examining ourselves
-about our faith, repentance, love to Christ, desire after him, and our
-endeavour to yield obedience to him in all things.
-
-The next thing we are to examine ourselves concerning, is, whether we
-have such a love to the brethren, and charity to all men, whereby we are
-disposed to exercise forgiveness to those that have done us any
-injuries? The Lord’s-supper being an ordinance of mutual fellowship, we
-are obliged to behave ourselves towards one another as members of the
-same body, subjects of the same Lord, engaged in the same religious
-exercise; and consequently, are obliged to love one another, whereby it
-will appear, that we are Christ’s disciples, John xiii. 35. This love
-consists in our desiring and endeavouring to promote the spiritual
-interest of each other, to the end that Christ herein may be glorified;
-and it includes in it that charity that casts a veil over their failures
-and defects, and our forgiving those injuries which they have, at
-anytime, done to us. This frame of spirit is certainly becoming the
-nature of the ordinance, in which we hope to be made partakers of the
-fruits and effects of Christ’s love, and to obtain forgiveness from him,
-of all the injuries we have done against him; therefore it is very
-necessary for us to enquire,
-
-[1.] Concerning our love to the brethren, whether it be such as is a
-distinguishing character of those who are Christ’s friends and
-followers; or which, as the apostle expresses it, will afford an
-evidence to us, that we are _passed from death to life_, 1 John iii. 14.
-And, in order to our discovering this, let us examine ourselves, whether
-we love the brethren, because we behold the image of God in them? Which
-is, in effect, to love and _glorify God in them_, Gal. i. 24. Again,
-whether our love to men leads us to desire and endeavour to be reckoned
-a common good to all, according to the utmost of our ability? As it is
-said of Mordecai, that _he was accepted of the multitude of his
-brethren, seeking the wealth of his people, and speaking peace to all
-his seed_, Esther x. 8.
-
-Again, we are to enquire, whether our love be more especially to the
-souls of men, as well as their outward concerns? This consists in our
-using all suitable endeavours to bring them under conviction of sin, by
-faithful and well-timed reproofs; the contrary to which, or our refusing
-to rebuke our _neighbour or brother_, and thereby _suffering sin upon
-him_, is reckoned no other than an _hating_ of him, Lev. xix. 17. We are
-also to express our love to the souls of men, by endeavouring to
-persuade them to believe in Christ, if they are in an unconverted state,
-or to walk as becomes his gospel, if they have been made partakers of
-the grace thereof: Thus the apostle expresses his love to those to whom
-he writes, when he says, _I travail in birth again till Christ be formed
-in you_, Gal. iv. 19. and elsewhere, he signifies to another of the
-churches, how _affectionately desirous_ he was _of them_; which made him
-_willing, not only to impart the gospel of God, but his own soul;
-because they were dear unto him_, 1 Thes. ii. 8.
-
-Again, we must enquire, whether our love puts us upon choosing such to
-be our associates that truly fear the Lord; whom we count, as the
-Psalmist expresses it, _The excellent, in whom is all our delight_?
-Psal. xvi. 3. and, on the other hand, whether we avoid the society of,
-or intimacy with, those that are Christ’s open enemies; the contrary to
-which, good Jehoshaphat was reproved for by the prophet, when he says,
-_Shouldest thou help the ungodly, and love them that hate the Lord?_ 2
-Chron. xix. 2. Again, let us enquire, whether our love to men is then
-expressed when it is most needed? As it is said, _A friend loveth at all
-times, and a brother is born for adversity_, Prov. xvii. 17. Again,
-whether we are inclined to all those acts of charity which covereth a
-multitude of faults? As the apostle describes it, that it _suffereth
-long, and is kind; envieth not; vaunteth not itself; is not puffed up;
-doth not behave itself unseemly; seeketh not her own, is not easily
-provoked, thinketh no evil, rejoiceth not in iniquity, but rejoiceth in
-the truth: Beareth all things, believeth all things, hopeth all things,
-and endureth all things_, 1 Cor. xiii. 4,-8.
-
-[2.] We are to enquire, whether our love to men be expressed in
-forgiving injuries; which is a frame of spirit absolutely necessary for
-our engaging in any ordinance; as our Saviour says, _If thou bring thy
-gift to the altar, and there rememberest that thy brother hath ought
-against thee_, Matt. v. 23, 24. that is, if there be a misunderstanding
-between you, whoever be the aggressor, or gave the first occasion for
-it, _leave there thy gift before the altar, and go thy way, first be
-reconciled to thy brother_; that is, do whatever is in thy power in
-order thereunto, and _then come and offer thy gift_. And this is more
-necessary when we engage in this ordinance, in which we hope to obtain
-forgiveness of the many offences which we have committed against God;
-and accordingly the apostle says, _Let us keep the feast, not with old
-leaven, neither with the leaven of malice and wickedness, but with the
-unleavened bread of sincerity and truth_, 1 Cor. v. 8. It is no
-difficult matter for us to know whether we are disposed to forgive those
-who have injured us; therefore the principal thing we are to examine
-ourselves about, is, whether we do this with a right frame of spirit, as
-considering how prone we are to do those things ourselves, which may
-render it necessary for us to be forgiven, both by God and man? and
-whether, as the consequence hereof, though we were before this, inclined
-to over-look those graces which are discernable in them; yet now we can
-love them as brethren, and glorify God for what they have experienced,
-and be earnestly solicitous for their salvation as well as our own? Thus
-concerning the first duty mentioned in this answer, _viz._ our examining
-ourselves before we engage in this ordinance. We now proceed to consider
-some other duties mentioned therein, _viz._
-
-II. The renewing the exercise of those graces, which are necessary to
-our right engaging in it, whereby the sincerity and truth thereof may be
-discerned: Therefore, since faith, repentance, and several other graces,
-ought to be exercised in this ordinance, it is necessary for us to give
-a specimen thereof, before we engage in it. As the artificer first tries
-the instrument he is to make use of in some curious work before he uses
-it, so the truth and sincerity of our faith is to be tried before it be
-exercised in this ordinance.
-
-There is another duty preparatory to the Lord’s Supper, mentioned in
-this answer, _viz._ serious meditation, that so we may not engage in it
-without considering the greatness of the Majesty with whom we have to
-do, together with our own vileness and unworthiness to approach his
-presence: We must also consider his power, wisdom, and goodness, to
-encourage us to hope for those supplies of grace from him, which we
-stand in need of; and we are to have an awful sense of his omnipresence
-and omniscience, as he is an heart-searching God, to excite in us an
-holy reverence, and prevent the wandering of our thoughts and affections
-from him, or any unbecoming behaviour in his presence; and, more
-particularly we are to consider, before-hand, the end and design of
-Christ’s instituting this ordinance, _viz._ that his dying love to
-sinners might be signified and shewed forth, as an encouragement to our
-faith, and an inducement to thanksgiving and praise, as the nature of
-the thing calls for it.
-
-After all this it is farther observed, that we are to endeavor to
-prepare for this ordinance by fervent prayer, as being sensible, that
-when we have done our best, we shall be too much unprepared for it,
-unless we have the special assistance of God, when engaging in it; to
-which I may apply Hezekiah’s words, _The good Lord pardon every one that
-prepareth his heart to seek God, the Lord God of his father; though he
-be not cleansed according to the cleansing of the sanctuary_, 2 Chron.
-xxx. 18, 19. And we are to be earnest with him, that he would give us a
-believing view of Christ crucified, and especially of our interest in
-him; that we may be able to say as the apostle does, _He loved me, and
-gave himself for me_, Gal. ii. 20. and that he would apply to us those
-blessings which he has purchased by his death, which we desire to wait
-upon him for, when engaging in this ordinance, that our drawing nigh to
-him therein may redound to his glory and our spiritual advantage.
-
-Footnote 100:
-
- _See Quest. LXXII. Vol. III. page 97, & seq. and Quest. LXXVI, LXXXV,
- LXXXVII._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLXXII., CLXXIII.
-
-
- QUEST. CLXXII. _May one who doubteth of his being in Christ, and of
- his due preparation, come to the Lord’s Supper?_
-
- ANSW. One who doubteth of his being in Christ, or of his due
- preparation to the sacrament of the Lord’s Supper, may have true
- interest in Christ, though he be not assured thereof; and in God’s
- account, hath it, if he be duly affected with the apprehension of
- the want of it, and unfeignedly desires to be found in Christ, and
- to depart from iniquity, in which case (because promises are made,
- and this sacrament is appointed for the relief even of weak and
- doubting Christians,) he is to bewail his unbelief; and labour to
- have his doubts resolved, and so doing, he may, and ought to come to
- the Lord’s Supper, that he may be farther strengthened.
-
- QUEST. CLXXIII. _May any who profess the faith, and desire to come
- to the Lord’s Supper, be kept from it?_
-
- ANSW. Such as are found to be ignorant, or scandalous,
- notwithstanding their profession of the faith, and desire to come to
- the Lord’s Supper, may, and ought to be kept from that sacrament by
- the power which Christ hath left in his church, until they receive
- instruction, and manifest their reformation.
-
-In these answers we have an account of those who are the subjects of
-this ordinance and ought to partake of it, or of those who must be kept
-from it: the former respects, more especially doubting Christians, who
-desire to receive satisfaction, whether they ought to engage in it or
-no; the latter respects those who are ready to presume that they are
-qualified for it, and ought to partake of it; though, indeed, they are
-to be excluded from it.
-
-I. As to the case of one who doubteth of his being in Christ, and duly
-prepared for the Lord’s Supper: Here are several things that may afford
-matter of encouragement to him; and accordingly it is observed,
-
-1. That though this be a matter of doubt to him, as being destitute of
-assurance of his being in Christ; yet he may be mistaken in the judgment
-which he passes concerning himself: since assurance, as has been before
-observed, is not of the essence of saving faith[101]. For a person may
-rely on, or give up himself to Christ, by a direct act of faith, who
-cannot at the same time, take the comfort that would otherwise arise
-from thence, that Christ has loved him, and given himself for him. Many
-have reason to complain of the weakness of their faith, and the great
-resistance and disturbance which they meet with from the corruption of
-nature: And others, who have assurance, at present, of their interest in
-Christ, may afterwards, through divine desertion, lose the comfortable
-sense thereof; so that we must not conclude, that every doubting
-believer is destitute of faith. Such are to be tenderly dealt with, and
-not discouraged from attending on that ordinance, which others, who
-converse with them, cannot but think they have a right to, and are
-habitually prepared for; though they themselves very much question,
-whether they are actually meet for it, as being apprehensive that they
-cannot exercise those graces, that are necessary to their partaking of
-this ordinance in a right manner. However, it is observed,
-
-(1.) That there are some things, which, if duly considered by such an
-one, would afford him, ground of hope; though it may be, he cannot
-sufficiently improve them to his own comfort. As,
-
-[1.] If he be truly affected with his want of assurance, and, as the
-result thereof, is filled with uneasiness in his own mind, laments his
-condition, and can take no comfort in any outward enjoyments, while
-destitute of it; and, if he be importunate with God in prayer, that he
-would lift up the light of his countenance upon him, and grant him the
-exercise, as well as the joy of faith. Moreover, if he frequently
-examines himself with impartiality, and an earnest desire to be
-satisfied, as to his state; and if, notwithstanding this, he still walks
-in darkness, and his doubts and fears prevail against him, he has some
-ground to conclude, that he is better than he apprehends himself to be,
-if he be truly humbled for those sins that may be reckoned the procuring
-cause thereof, and determines to be still waiting, till God shall be
-pleased to discover to him his interest in forgiving grace, and thereby
-resolve his doubts, and expel his fears, which render him so very
-uneasy.
-
-[2.] A person has some ground of hope, if he can say, that he
-unfeignedly desires Christ and grace above all things, and can find
-satisfaction in nothing short of him; in this respect it may be said,
-that Christ is precious to him, as he is to them that believe. And to
-this we may add, that if he desires to forsake all sin, as being
-offensive, and contrary to him; so that when he commits it, he can
-readily say with the apostle, _That which I do I allow not of; for what
-I would, that do I not; but what I hate that do I_; and from hence he
-concludes himself _wretched_; and earnestly desires to be _delivered
-from the body of this death_, Rom. vii. 15, 24.
-
-(2.) There are some promises which a weak Christian may lay hold on for
-his encouragement; as,
-
-_1st_, If the guilt of sin lies as an heavy burden upon him, and is the
-occasion of his doubts about his being in Christ; there are promises of
-forgiveness, Mich. vii. 18, 19. Isa. lv. 7, 8.
-
-_2dly_, If he complains of the power of sin, and its prevalency over
-him, there is a promise that is suited to his case, in Rom. vi. 14. ‘Sin
-shall not have dominion over you; for ye are not under the law, but
-under grace.’
-
-_3dly_, If satan’s temptations are very grievous to him, and such as he
-can hardly resist, there are promises suited to this case, in 1 Cor. x.
-13. that ‘God will not suffer his people to be tempted above that they
-are able, but will, with the temptation, make a way to escape;’ and in
-Rom. xvi. 20. ‘The God of peace shall bruise Satan under your feet
-shortly.’
-
-_4thly_, If he wants enlargement, and raised affections in prayer, or
-other religious duties; which is very discouraging to him, that promise
-may afford him some relief, in Zech. xii. 10. ‘I will pour upon the
-house of David, and upon the inhabitants of Jerusalem, the spirit of
-grace and of supplication.’ And, in Psal. x. 17. ‘Lord, thou hast heard
-the desire of the humble: Thou wilt prepare their heart, thou wilt cause
-thine ear to hear.’
-
-_5thly_ If our doubts arise from frequent backslidings, and relapses
-into sin, we may apply that promise in Psal. xxiii. 3. _He restoreth my
-soul_, &c. And, Hos. xiv. 4. ‘I will heal their backsliding, I will love
-them freely; for mine anger is turned away from them:’ And in Isa. lvii.
-17, 18. in which it is supposed, that God was wroth, and hid himself
-from his people for their iniquity; and they are described as _going on
-frowardly in the way of their heart_; yet God says, ‘I have seen his
-ways, and will heal him: I will lead him also, and restore comforts to
-him, and to his mourners:’ And, in Hos. xi. 7-9. where God’s people are
-described as bent to backslide from him; yet he determines not to
-destroy them, but says, in a very moving way, ‘How shall I give thee up
-Ephraim? How shall I deliver thee Israel, _&c._ Mine heart is turned
-within me, my repentings are kindled together? I will not execute the
-fierceness of mine anger; I will not return to destroy Ephraim; for I am
-God and not man, the holy One in the midst of thee.’
-
-_6thly_, If we want communion with God, or his presence with us in his
-ordinances; which makes us conclude that we are not in Christ: Let us
-consider what is said in Isa. xlv. 19. ‘I said not unto the seed of
-Jacob, Seek ye me in vain:’ And, in chap. liv. 7, 8. ‘For a small moment
-have I forsaken thee, but with great mercies will I gather thee. In a
-little wrath I hid my face from thee, for a moment; but with everlasting
-kindness will I have mercy on thee.’
-
-_7thly_, If we are under frequent convictions, but they soon wear off,
-which occasions us to fear that we never experienced a thorough work of
-conversion, let us consider, Isa. lxvi. 9. ‘Shall I bring to the birth,
-and not cause to bring forth, saith the Lord?’ And, in Zech. iv. 10.
-‘Who hath despised the day of small things?’ And, in Isa. lxv. 8. ‘As
-the new wine is found in the cluster, and one saith, Destroy it not, for
-a blessing is in it; So will I do for my servants sake, that I may not
-destroy them all.’
-
-_8thly_, If we are in a withering and declining condition, and want
-reviving; or, if we complain of barrenness under the means of grace, so
-that we may attend upon them, as we apprehend, to very little purpose;
-there are some promises that are suited to this case, as Hos. xiv. 7, 8.
-Isa. xlviii. 17.
-
-_9thly_, If our doubts arise from the hardness of our hearts, so that we
-cannot mourn for sin as we ought to do, or would do, let us consider
-what God has promised in Ezek. vii. 16. Deut. xxx. 6. Acts v. 31.
-
-_10thly_, If we are under the visible tokens of God’s displeasure, so
-that we are ready to conclude, that he distributes terrors to us in his
-anger; and, as the consequence thereof, we walk in darkness, and are far
-from peace: There are many promises that are suited to this case, as
-Jer. iii. 5. Psal. ciii. 8,-10. Isa. xii. 1. Joel ii. 13. Isa. l. 10.
-Psal. lxxix. 15. and xlii. 11.
-
-2. We have a further account how such, who are at present, discouraged
-from coming to the Lord’s table, ought to manage themselves in this
-case. And here it is observed, that they ought to bewail their unbelief,
-to labour to have their doubts resolved; and, instead of being
-discouraged, they should come to the Lord’s supper, to be further
-strengthened. This advice is not given to stupid sinners, or such as are
-unconcerned about their state, or never had the least ground to conclude
-that they have had communion with God in any ordinance; and, especially
-if their distress of conscience arises rather from a slavish fear of the
-wrath of God, than a filial fear of him; or, if they are more concerned
-about the dreadful consequences of sin, than the intrinsic evil that is
-in it, I say, this advice is not given to such, but those, as before
-described, who lament after the Lord, earnestly seek him, though they
-cannot, at present, find him; and have fervent desires of his presence,
-though no sensible enjoyment thereof, and appear to have some small
-degrees of grace, though it be very weak: In this case a few words of
-advice ought to be given to them; particularly,
-
-(1.) That they should take heed of giving way to any hard thoughts of
-God; but, on the other hand, lay the whole blame hereof on themselves.
-Thus God says by the prophet, “Hast thou not procured this unto thyself,
-in that thou hast forsaken the Lord thy God, when he led thee by the
-way?” Jer. ii. 17.
-
-(2.) They should give glory to, depend on, and seek relief from the Holy
-Spirit, the Comforter, who glorifies himself by sealing believers unto
-the day of redemption; and, together with this, bestows those comforts
-on them which they stand in need of.
-
-(3.) They must endeavour, to their utmost, to act grace, and so go
-forward in the ways of God, though they do not go on comfortably, and
-not say, “why should I wait on the Lord any longer?” Are they sometimes
-afraid they shall not arrive safely to the end of their race, they
-should nevertheless resolve not to give out, or to run no longer in it;
-and because their way is attended with darkness, or hedged up with
-thorns, they should not determine, for that reason, to go backward, as
-though they had never set their faces heaven-ward.
-
-(4.) They ought to lie at God’s foot, acknowledging their unworthiness
-of that peace which they desire, but are destitute of, and plead for his
-special presence, that would give an happy turn to the frame of their
-spirits, as that which they prefer to all the enjoyments of life; as the
-Psalmist says, ‘There be many that say, Who will shew us any good? Lord,
-lift thou up the light of thy countenance upon us,’ Psal. iv. 6.
-
-(5.) It would be adviseable for such to contract an intimacy, and
-frequently converse with experienced Christians, who know the depths of
-Satan, and the deceitfulness of the heart of man, and the methods of
-divine grace in restoring comforts to those who are, at present,
-destitute of them, agreeably to what they themselves have experienced in
-the like case, 2 Cor. i. 4.
-
-(6.) They ought, as a farther means for the strengthening of their
-faith, and establishing their comforts, to wait on God in the ordinance
-of the Lord’s supper, hoping for Christ’s presence therein; in which
-many have found that they have been enlivened, quickened, and comforted,
-while others, through the neglect hereof, have had their doubts and
-fears increased. And this leads us to consider,
-
-II. What is contained in the latter of the answers we are explaining,
-which is applicable to those who desire to come to the Lord’s supper,
-but are to be kept from it. Here it is taken for granted, that all are
-not to be admitted to this ordinance, though it may be, they make a
-general profession of the Christian faith, and are not willing that any
-should question their right to it. These are described in this answer,
-
-1. As being ignorant of the great doctrines of the gospel, and,
-consequently, unacquainted with Christ, whom they never truly applied
-themselves to, nor received by faith; and therefore they cannot improve
-this ordinance aright, or have communion with Christ therein.
-
-2. They are to be excluded from the Lord’s supper, who are scandalous or
-immoral in their practice, whatever pretensions they make to the
-character of Christians: These are described by the apostle, as persons
-who _profess that they know God; but in works they deny him, being
-abominable and disobedient and unto every good work reprobate_, Tit. i.
-16. Such ought not to have communion with those whom the apostle
-describes as _called to be saints_, Rom. i. 7. nor can they partake of
-this ordinance aright, since they are not apprized of the end and design
-thereof, nor are they able, as the apostle expresses it, to _discern the
-Lord’s body_, 1 Cor. ix. 27. for, if they are strangers to themselves,
-how can they apply the benefits of Christ’s redemption to their own
-case? and, if they neglect the preparatory duty of self-examination, so
-that they do not know their own wants, how can they go to Christ in this
-ordinance for a supply thereof? or, if they do not desire the spiritual
-blessings of the covenant of grace, what right can they have to make use
-of the seals thereof? and if they are openly and visibly of another
-family, under the dominion of the powers of darkness, what right have
-they to the privileges which Christ has purchased for those who are
-members of his family, and spiritually united to him?
-
-_Object._ 1. To what has been said concerning those that are to be
-excluded from this ordinance, it is objected, that it appears, that both
-good and bad have a right to it, from what our Saviour says in the
-parable of the wheat and the tares, in Mat. xiii. 29. both which are
-said to _grow together until the harvest_, when the reapers will be sent
-to _gather first the tares, and bind them in bundles to burn them, and
-the wheat into the barn_: So that hypocrites, and sincere Christians,
-are to continue together in the same church, and, consequently to
-partake of the same ordinances.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied; this is not the sense of the parable;
-for our Saviour explains it otherwise, when he says in ver. 38. _The
-field is the world: the good seed are the children of the kingdom, but
-the tares are the children of the wicked one._ And from hence we may
-infer, that good and bad men are, through the forbearance of God,
-suffered to live together in the world; but it gives no countenance to
-this supposition, that the wicked ought to be joined with the godly as
-members of the same church: Not but that hypocrites may, and often do
-intrude themselves into the churches of Christ; yet since this is not
-known to them, they are not to blame for it, the heart of man being
-known to God alone; and the judgment that we are to pass concerning
-those who are admitted into church-fellowship, or to the Lord’s supper
-in particular, is to be founded on that credible profession which they
-make; in which, though it be possible for them to deceive others, yet
-the guilt and ill consequence thereof, will only affect themselves.
-
-_Object._ 2. It is further objected, that Judas was at the Lord’s supper
-when it was first instituted by our Saviour, though he knew him to be an
-hypocrite and a traitor, and that he would speedily execute what he had
-designed against his life; and if so, then all ought to be admitted to
-this ordinance. And the reason that is generally assigned why he was
-there at that time, is, because it is said, in Luke xxii. 14. _When the
-hour was come, he sat down, and his twelve apostles with him_; and
-afterwards we read, in ver. 19. that _he took bread and brake it_, &c.
-_and also the cup after supper_, &c. ver. 20. and then it is said, in
-ver. 21. _Behold the hand of him that betrayeth me is with me on the
-table_. This is supposed, by some, to have been spoken by Christ when
-they were eating the Lord’s supper; from whence it may be concluded that
-Judas was there.
-
-_Answ._ But to this it may be replied; that it seems much more probable
-that he was not there when the Lord’s supper was administered though he
-joined with Christ and the other apostles in eating the passover; for we
-must consider,
-
-(1.) That the passover and the Lord’s supper were celebrated, one
-immediately after the other, at the same table, or sitting; therefore
-the hand of Judas might be with Christ on the table, in the former,
-though not in the latter: So that, though these words, _the hand of him
-that betrayeth me, is with me on the table_, are inserted after the
-account of both these ordinances being concluded; yet we have ground to
-suppose, they were spoken while they were eating the passover, when
-Judas was present.
-
-(2.) It appears yet more probable that he was not present at the Lord’s
-supper, from the account which John gives of this matter, in chap. xiii.
-21. wherein our Saviour tells them, that _one of them should betray
-him_: and, in ver. 26. he discovers that he meant Judas, by giving him
-the sop; and in ver. 30. it is said, that _having received the sop, he
-went immediately out_. Now it is certain there was no sop in the Lord’s
-supper, as there was in the passover, inasmuch as there was no flesh
-therein: Therefore Judas went out when they were eating the passover,
-before they began to partake of the Lord’s supper; being, as we may
-reasonably suppose, in a rage that his hypocrisy should be detected, and
-he marked out as a traitor, who was, before this, reckoned as good a man
-as any of them: Therefore we have not sufficient ground from hence to
-conclude, that wicked men ought to be admitted to partake of the Lord’s
-supper.
-
-_Object._ 3. For Christians to exclude any from the Lord’s supper, would
-argue a great deal of pride, or vain-glorious boasting, and it is, as it
-were, to say to them who are excluded, “Stand off, for we are holier
-than you.”
-
-_Answ._ 1. A believer may with thankfulness, acknowledge the
-distinguishing grace of God vouchsafed to him, and not to others; and,
-at the same time, bless him, that he has given him a right to the
-privilege of his house, which all are not admitted to partake of,
-without doing this in a boasting way; he may say with the apostle in 1
-Cor. xv. 10. _By the grace of God I am what I am_; and yet at the same
-time, deal faithfully with those who are destitute of this grace; he may
-bless God for the right which he hopes he has to this ordinance, and yet
-it is not his duty to admit them to it who have no right.
-
-2. It is one thing not to admit persons who are unqualified to this
-ordinance, and another thing to despise them upon this account. Our
-business is not to reproach them, but to treat them with meekness; if
-peradventure God may give them repentance to the acknowledgment of the
-truth, that hereby they may appear to have a right to it.
-
-_Object._ 4. If wicked men are to be excluded from one ordinance which
-Christ has instituted in his church, they may, for the same reason be
-excluded from all; and so they may as well be debarred the privilege of
-hearing the word, and joining with the church in public prayer.
-
-_Answ._ There is not the same reason for excluding wicked men from
-hearing the word, or joining in prayer with the church, as there is for
-refusing to admit them to partake of the Lord’s supper. For prayer, and
-preaching the word, are God’s appointed means for the working the grace
-of faith, instructing the ignorant, awakening the stupid and secure
-sinner, and putting him on complying with that method of salvation which
-God has prescribed in the gospel, and embracing Christ as offered
-therein: Whereas, on the other hand, the Lord’s supper is an ordinance
-which supposes the soul to have, before this, received Christ by faith;
-and therefore he is therein to feed upon him, and to take comfort from
-what he has done and suffered for him, as conducive to the farther
-mortification of indwelling sin; which supposes that he has had, before
-this, some experience of the grace of God in truth. Thus concerning the
-exclusion of ignorant or immoral persons, as being not qualified for the
-Lord’s supper.
-
-And here we may farther observe, that they who bring these and such-like
-objections, with a design to open the door of the church so wide, that
-all may be received into it, and partake of those ordinances by which it
-is more particularly distinguished from the world, are very ready, in
-defence of their own cause, to charge others with being too severe in
-their censures, and refusing to admit any into church-communion, unless
-they can tell the very time in which they were converted, and the means
-by which this work was begun, and carried on; and this they are obliged
-to do in so public a manner, as that many are denied the privilege of
-partaking of this ordinance, for a mere circumstance; which is an
-extreme as much to be avoided as the receiving unqualified persons to
-the Lord’s supper.
-
-But it may be replied to this, that since this charge is rather the
-result of surmize than founded on sufficient evidence, it deserves to
-have less notice taken of it: However, this I would say in answer to it,
-that I never knew it to be the practice of any church of Christ, to
-exclude persons from its communion, because they knew not the time or
-means of their conversion; which may be sometimes occasioned by their
-having been favored with the blessing of a religious education and
-restraining grace from their childhood, so that they have not run those
-lengths in sin which others have done; and therefore the change which is
-wrought in conversion, especially as to what concerns the time and
-manner thereof, is less discernible. Sometimes the work has been begun
-with a less degree of the terrors of conscience, under a sense of the
-guilt of sin, and the condemning sentence of the law, than others have
-experienced: These have been drawn with the cords of love, and the grace
-of God has descended upon them insensibly, like the dew upon the grass;
-and therefore all that can be perceived by them, or that is to be
-required of them as a necessary qualification for their being admitted
-to the ordinances and privileges which belong to believers, is their
-discovering those fruits of faith which are discernible in the
-conversation of such as have experienced the grace of God in truth.
-
-As to the other part of the charge, in which some churches are pretended
-to insist on such terms of communion as are merely circumstantial, so as
-to refuse to receive any that cannot comply with them: This is to be
-answered by those who appear to be liable to it. All that I shall
-therefore add under this head, is, that since a visible profession of
-faith in Christ is to be made, as necessary to constitute a visible
-church, and the conversation of those who make it, ought to be
-apparently agreeable thereunto: And inasmuch as none are obliged to make
-any thing known to the church, that contains the least appearance of
-dishonour or reflection on their character in the world; but are only
-required to testify and give a proof of their steady adherence to
-Christ, and their desire to embrace him in all his offices, as well as
-worship him in all his ordinances; this cannot justly be reckoned an
-unnecessary circumstance or making that a term of communion which Christ
-has not made, and thereby excluding those who have a right to the Lord’s
-supper.
-
-And now we have considered the terms of communion, and the
-qualifications for it, as well as the spiritual privileges that are to
-be expected by those who have a right to it. I cannot but observe, how
-this is abused, and practically disowned, by those who engage in this
-ordinance merely as a qualification for a civil employment. A person may
-certainly be a good member of a commonwealth, and very fit to be
-entrusted with the administration of the civil affairs thereof, who has
-little or nothing to say concerning his experiences of the grace of God.
-To assert, that a right to a civil employment is founded on the same
-qualifications that give a person a right to partake of the Lord’s
-supper, would be to advance, not only that which is indefensible, but
-what would be almost universally denied, unless it could be proved, that
-all might partake of it, the contrary to which, we have endeavoured to
-maintain.
-
-Moreover, when Christ instituted this ordinance, his people were in no
-expectation of bearing any part in the civil government; therefore this
-was most remote from the first intent and design thereof: And we often
-find that this is a temptation to men to profane this ordinance, and
-lays a burden on the consciences of those who know themselves unprepared
-for it, who had little or nothing in view but the securing their secular
-interest; by which means it is to be feared, that many of them eat and
-drink unworthily, and, instead of receiving advantage by it, bring their
-consciences under such entanglements, that they cannot easily extricate
-themselves from. Thus concerning those who are to be admitted to be
-partakers of the Lord’s Supper, though doubting of their meetness for
-it, and others being excluded, who have no right to it.
-
-The last thing observed in this answer, is, that they who are not, at
-present, deemed fit for this ordinance, may afterwards be admitted to it
-when they have received instruction, and manifested a thorough
-reformation; or when, by their diligent attendance on other ordinances,
-or means of grace, accompanied with the divine blessing, that, which at
-present disqualifies them, being removed, they may humbly and thankfully
-wait on God therein, and hope for his presence and blessing; and then
-the church will have reason, as well as themselves, to bless God for
-that grace which they have experienced, whereby they may come to it for
-the better, and not for the worse.
-
-Footnote 101:
-
- _See Quest. lxxxi. Vol. III. page 268._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLXXIV., CLXXV.
-
-
- QUEST. CLXXIV. _What is required of them that receive the sacrament
- of the Lord’s Supper, in the time of the administration of it?_
-
- ANSW. It is required of them that receive the sacrament of the
- Lord’s Supper, that during the time of the administration of it,
- with all holy reverence and attention they wait upon God in that
- ordinance, diligently observe the sacramental elements and actions,
- heedfully discern the Lord’s body, and affectionately meditate on
- his death and sufferings, and thereby stir up themselves to a
- vigorous exercise of their graces, in judging themselves and
- sorrowing for sin, in hungering and thirsting after Christ, feeding
- on him by faith, receiving of his fulness, trusting in his merits,
- rejoicing in his love, giving thanks for his grace, in renewing of
- their covenant with God, and love to all the saints.
-
- QUEST. CLXXV. _What is the duty of Christians after they have
- received the sacrament of the Lord’s Supper?_
-
- _Answ._ The duty of Christians after they have received the
- sacrament of the Lord’s Supper, is, seriously to consider how they
- have behaved themselves therein, and with what success; if they find
- quickening and comfort, to bless God for it, beg the continuance of
- it, watch against relapses, fulfil their vows, and encourage
- themselves to a frequent attendance on that ordinance; but if they
- find no present benefit, more exactly to review their preparation
- to, and carriage at the sacrament; in both which, if they can
- approve themselves to God and their own consciences, they are to
- wait for the fruit of it in due time; but if they see they have
- failed in either, they are to be humbled, and to attend upon it
- afterward with more care and diligence.
-
-These two answers respect our behaviour in, and after our engaging in
-this ordinance.
-
-I. We are to consider with what frame of spirit we are to engage
-therein; how our meditations are to be employed, and what graces are to
-be exercised.
-
-1. Here is something observed, which is common to it with all other
-ordinances, _viz._ that we are to wait on God with an holy reverence
-arising from a becoming sense of his divine perfections, and the
-infinite distance we stand in from him; and we are to impress on our
-souls an awful sense of his omniscience and omnipresence; whereby he
-knows with what frame of spirit we draw nigh to him, better than this is
-known to ourselves; and highly resents every thing that is contrary to
-his holiness, or unbecoming the character of those who are worshipping
-at his footstool.
-
-2. There are other things peculiar to this ordinance, that are necessary
-in order to our engaging in it in a right manner; as,
-
-(1.) We are diligently to observe the sacramental elements and actions,
-which contain the external part of the duty required of us. The bread
-and wine, together with the actions to be performed in our receiving
-them by Christ’s appointment, are, as has been before observed,
-significant and instructive signs of his death, and the benefits which
-he has procured for us thereby, that are to be attended to, and brought
-to our remembrance in this ordinance.
-
-Moreover, we are to consider, that though the blessings of the covenant
-of grace are signified thereby, as they are instituted, not natural
-signs thereof; yet the gospel, in which we have an account of what
-Christ did, and suffered for us, is a large and sufficient explication
-hereof for the direction of our faith, when conversant about them.
-
-(2.) We are affectionately to meditate on the sufferings and death of
-Christ, which are signified thereby. Meditation is a great part of the
-work we are to be engaged in, and the death of Christ is the principal
-subject thereof; accordingly we are to consider his condescending love
-in giving his life a ransom for us; and, in order to our being affected
-therewith, and to excite our admiration and thankfulness for it, we must
-contemplate the divine excellency and glory of his Person; which adds an
-infinite value to every part of his obedience and sufferings. We must
-also consider the kind of death he died; which is called his being
-_wounded_, _bruised_, Isa. liii. 5. _cut off_ Dan. ix. 26. and is
-represented as that which had the external mark of the curse of God
-annexed to it; upon which account he is said to have been made a curse
-for us, Gal. iii. 13.
-
-We are also to consider the character of the persons for whom he laid
-down his life; who are described as being _without strength_, or ability
-to do what is good, and _ungodly_, and so open enemies to him, Rom. v.
-6, 8, 10. and therefore there was nothing in us that could induce him to
-do this for us. We are also to consider, that he died in our room and
-stead, as _bearing our griefs, and carrying our sorrows_, Isa. liii. 4.
-and being _delivered for our offences_, Rom. iv. 25. And we are also to
-consider the great ends designed thereby, as God is hereby glorified,
-his holiness and justice in demanding and receiving a full satisfaction
-for sin, illustrated in the highest degree; so that he declares himself
-_well-pleased_ in what Christ has done and suffered, Matt. iii. 17. and
-_well-pleased_ likewise, as the prophet expresses it, _for his
-righteousness’ sake_, Isa. xlii. 21. We are also to consider the great
-advantage that we hope to receive thereby, as _being justified by his
-blood, we shall be saved from wrath through him_, Rom. v. 9. This is
-therefore the highest inducement to us, to give up ourselves entirely to
-him.
-
-3. We are, in this ordinance, to stir up ourselves to a vigorous
-exercise of those graces that the nature of the ordinance requires: And
-accordingly we are,
-
-(1.) To judge ourselves; as the apostle says, _If we would judge
-ourselves, we should not be judged_, 1 Cor. xi. 31. and this we ought to
-do, by accusing, condemning, and passing sentence against ourselves, for
-those sins which we have committed against Christ, whereby we were
-plunged into the utmost depths of misery, in which we should for ever
-have continued, had he not redeemed us by his blood. We are also to
-acknowledge our desert of God’s wrath and curse; so that _if he should
-mark iniquity, we could not stand_, Psal. cxxx. 3. and this sense of sin
-ought to be particular, including in it those transgressions which are
-known to none but God and ourselves; as we ought to make a particular
-application of the blood of Christ for the forgiveness thereof. This is
-certainly very suitable to the nature of the ordinance we are engaged
-in, wherein Christ is set forth as a sacrifice for sin, and we are led,
-at the same time, to be duly affected with our malady, and the great
-remedy God has provided; which will have a tendency to enhance our
-praise and thankfulness to him, who loved us, and gave himself for us.
-
-(2.) We are to exercise a godly sorrow for sin, which is the ground of
-all that distress and misery which we are liable to: This ought to take
-its rise from the corruption of nature, from whence all actual sins
-proceed; and we are to bewail our sins of omission, as well as
-commission; our neglect to perform duties that are incumbent on us, as
-well as those sins that have been committed by us with the greatest
-presumption, deliberation, wilfulness, and obstinacy, which contain in
-them the highest ingratitude and contempt of the blood of Christ, and
-the method of salvation by him. And this sorrow for sin ought to produce
-those good effects of praying and striving against it, endeavouring to
-return to God, from whom we have backslidden. The apostle calls it,
-_sorrowing after a godly sort_; and speaks of it as attended with
-_carefulness_, that we may avoid it for the future; _clearing of
-ourselves_, so that we may either be encouraged to hope that we have not
-committed the sins which we are ready to charge ourselves with, or, that
-the guilt thereof is taken away by the atonement that Christ has made
-for us. It ought also to produce an holy _indignation_, and a kind of
-revenge against sin, as that which has been so prejudicial to us; as
-likewise a _fear_ of offending; a _zeal_ for the glory of God, whom we
-have dishonoured; and a _vehement desire_ of those blessings which we
-have hereby forfeited. This sorrow for sin ought to proceed from an
-inward loathing and abhorrence of it; and the degree thereof ought to
-bear some proportion to its respective aggravations, and the dishonour
-we have brought to God thereby; which would be an effectual means to
-incline us to abhor ourselves, and repent in dust and ashes.
-
-This is very agreeable to the nature of the ordinance we are engaged in,
-since nothing tends more to enhance the vile and heinous nature of sin,
-than the consideration of its having crucified the Lord of glory; which
-is to be the immediate subject of our meditation therein. We read that
-Christ, in his last sufferings, was _exceeding sorrowful, even unto
-death_, Matt. xxvi. 38. which could not proceed from the afflictive view
-that he had of the pains and indignities he was to suffer in his
-crucifixion; for that would argue him to have a less degree of holy
-courage and resolution than some of the martyrs have expressed when they
-have endured extreme torments, and most ignominious reproaches for his
-sake: Therefore his sorrow proceeded from the afflictive sense that he
-had of the guilt of our sins which he bore. If therefore he not only
-suffered, but his soul was exceeding sorrowful for our sins; this ought
-to excite in us the exercise of that grace in this ordinance, in which
-it is brought to our remembrance.
-
-(3.) We are to hunger and thirst after Christ; which implies in it an
-ardent desire of having communion with him: Thus the church says, _With
-my soul have I desired thee in the night; yea, with my spirit will I
-seek thee early_, Isa. xxvi. 9. and the Psalmist compares this to the
-hunted _hart_, that is ready to die for thirst, which _pants after the
-water-brooks_, Psal. xlii. 1. This arises from a deep sense of our need
-of Christ, and farther supplies of grace from him, and is attended with
-a firm resolution that nothing short of him shall satisfy us, as not
-being adapted to supply our wants. Such a frame of spirit is agreeable
-to the ordinance we are engaged in, since Christ is therein represented
-as having purchased, and being ready to apply to his people, those
-blessings which are of a satisfying and comforting nature.
-
-(4.) We are to feed on Christ by faith, and thereby receive of his
-fulness, as he is frequently represented in scripture, under the
-metaphor of _food_: Thus he styles himself, _The bread of life_, John
-vi. 35. and the blessings he bestows, are called, ‘The meat which
-perisheth not, but endureth to everlasting life,’ ver. 27. and the
-gospel-dispensation is set forth by a ‘feast of fat things, a feast of
-wines on the lees, of fat things full of marrow, of wines on the lees
-well refined,’ Isa. xxv. 6. Thus our Saviour also represents it in the
-parable, Matt. xxii. 4. in which he commands his servants to invite
-those that were bidden to the marriage-feast, by telling them what
-things he had prepared for their entertainment, as an encouragement to
-their faith. Thus we are to consider that fulness of grace that is in
-Christ, (when drawing nigh to him in this ordinance,) of merit, for our
-justification, of strength to enable us to mortify sin, and resist
-temptations, of wisdom to direct us in all emergencies and difficulties,
-of peace and comfort, to revive and encourage us under all our doubts
-and fears, and to give us suitable relief when we are ready to faint
-under the burdens we complain of. All these blessings are to be
-apprehended and applied by faith, otherwise we cannot conclude that they
-belong to us; and nothing can be more adapted to this ordinance, wherein
-Christ is represented as having all those blessings to bestow, which he
-has purchased by his blood, and these are signified or shewed forth
-therein.
-
-(5.) We are, in this ordinance, to trust in the merits of Christ, or to
-exercise an entire confidence in him, who, by his death, has purchased
-for us all spiritual and saving blessings. This ought to be attended
-with an humble sense of our own unworthiness, as being _less than the
-least of all God’s mercies_, Gen. xxxii. 10. and as deserving nothing
-but his fierce wrath for our iniquities. And, since he has paid a full
-and satisfactory price of redemption for us, and thereby procured the
-blessings that we had forfeited, which have a tendency to make us
-completely happy, we ought to lay the whole stress of our salvation on
-him, as being sensible that _he is able to save to the uttermost, all
-that come unto God by him_, Heb. xii. 25.
-
-(6.) We are to rejoice in Christ’s love, which is infinitely greater
-than what can be in the heart of one creature towards another: This love
-of Christ has several properties;
-
-_1st_, It doth not consist merely in his desiring our good, or wishing
-that we were happy, but in making us so; nor does it only consist in his
-sympathizing with us in our miseries, but delivering us from them, and
-discovering himself as our refuge and strength, a very present help in
-trouble.
-
-_2dly_, As Christ’s love to his people did not take its motive at first
-from any beauty or excellency which he found in them who were deformed,
-polluted, and worthy to be abhorred by him, but afterwards adorned and
-_made comely through his comeliness put upon them_, Ezek. xvi. 14. so
-when they forfeit his love by their frequent backslidings, and deserve
-to be cast off by him, it is nevertheless unchangeably fixed upon them,
-inasmuch as _having loved his own which were in the world, he loved them
-unto the end_, John xiii. 1.
-
-_3dly_, Christ’s love is infinitely condescending, which arises not only
-from that infinite distance which there is between him and his people,
-but from his remembring them in their low estate, having compassion on
-them whom no eye pitied, and saving them when they were in the utmost
-depths of despair and misery, _saying to them when they were in their
-blood, live_, Ezek. xvi. 6.
-
-_4thly_, It is not like the love of strangers, which contents itself
-with some general endeavours to do good to them whom they design not to
-contract an intimacy with, but it is attended with the highest acts of
-friendship and communion, imparting his secrets to them, as he promises
-_to love, and manifest himself to them_, John xiv. 21. and tells his
-disciples, ‘Henceforth I call you not servants; for the servant knoweth
-not what his lord doeth: But I have called you friends; for all things
-that I have heard of my Father, I have made known unto you,’ chap. xv.
-15.
-
-_5thly_, It is such a love as forgives all former injuries, and upbraids
-not his people for what they have done against him, either before or
-since they believed in him. Thus God is said to ‘pardon the iniquity,
-and pass by the transgression of the remnant of his heritage,’ and ‘to
-cast all their sins into the depths of the sea,’ Micah vii. 18, 19. and
-‘to blot out their transgressions for his own sake, and not to remember
-their sins,’ Isa. xliii. 25.
-
-_6thly_, It is such a love as affords us all seasonable and necessary
-help in times of our greatest straights and difficulties, Psal. xlvi. 1.
-and makes provision for our future necessities; as he tells his
-disciples, _I go to prepare a place for you_, John xiv. 2. that they
-might be assured of being happy in another world; and accordingly he
-expresses himself in his mediatorial prayer, ‘Father, I will that these
-whom thou hast given me, may be with me where I am, that they may behold
-my glory,’ John xvii. 24.
-
-_7thly_, It is such a love, as puts him upon reckoning all injuries done
-against his people, as though they were done against himself, and the
-kindnesses expressed to them, as though they were expressed to him, as
-it is said, _He that toucheth you, toucheth the apple of his eye_, Zech.
-ii. 8. and, _he that despiseth you, despiseth me_, Luke x. 16. And, when
-he takes notice of those expressions of kindness, which his people had
-shewn to one another, he says, _Inasmuch as ye have done it unto one of
-the least of these my brethren, ye have done it unto me_, Mat. xxv. 40.
-
-_8thly_, It is such a love as inclines him to interpose himself between
-his people and all danger, whereby he prevents their being overcome by
-their enemies; and indeed, he not only hazarded, but as _a good shepherd
-gave his life for his sheep_, John x. 11.
-
-This is that love which is to be the subject of our meditation in this
-ordinance; accordingly we are first to endeavour, to make out our
-interest in him, by faith, which will be evinced by those acts of love
-to him that flow from it, and then we may rejoice in it as a constant
-spring of peace and blessedness.
-
-(7.) The next grace to be exercised in this ordinance, is thankfulness,
-adoring and praising him that he has been pleased to extend compassion
-to us in bestowing those blessings, which are the result of his
-discriminating grace, the instances whereof are various, _viz._ as he
-delivers us from the ruin that sin would have inevitably brought upon
-us, prevents us with the blessings of goodness, and restrains the
-breaking forth of our corruptions, which would otherwise have inclined
-us to commit the vilest abominations; and, more especially, as he renews
-our nature, changes our hearts, creates us unto good works, and then
-quickens and excites that grace in us which his own hand wrought, and
-comforts us when our spirits are overwhelmed with sorrow, whereby he
-enables us to go on in his way rejoicing, and so carries on the work
-which he has begun in us, till it be completed in glory. There is
-nothing that we have, either in hand or hope, but what will afford
-matter for the exercise of this grace; and more particularly, our hearts
-ought to be excited hereunto from the consideration of the benefits that
-are signified in this ordinance; especially if we are enabled to receive
-them by faith.
-
-(8.) We are, at the Lord’s supper, to renew our covenant with God. That
-this may be rightly understood, we must consider what it is for a
-believer to enter into covenant with God, which he is supposed to have
-done before this; and that consists not in our promising that we will do
-these things that are out of our power, or, that we will exercise those
-graces, which none but God, who works in his people, both to will and to
-do, can enable us to put forth; but it consists in our making a
-surrender of ourselves to Christ, and depending on him for the supply of
-all our spiritual wants, humbly hoping and trusting that he will enable
-us to adhere stedfastly to him, working in us all that grace which he
-requires of us; which blessing if he is pleased to grant us, we shall be
-enabled to perform all the duties that are incumbent on us, how
-difficult soever they may be. This is an unexceptionable way of entering
-into covenant with God, as it contains an acknowledgement of our own
-inability to do that which is good without him, and desire to give the
-glory of all to him; on whom we stedfastly rely, that we may obtain
-mercy from him to be faithful.
-
-Moreover, to renew our covenant, is to declare, that through his grace,
-we are inclined stedfastly to adhere to our solemn dedication to him,
-not, in the least, repenting of what we did therein; and, that we have
-as much reason to depend on his assistance now, as we had at first,
-since grace is carried on, as well as begun by him alone; and
-accordingly, while we express our earnest desire to be stedfast in his
-covenant, we depend on his promise that he will never fail us, nor
-forsake us: And we take this occasion, more especially, to renew our
-dedication to him, as it is very agreeable to the nature of this
-ordinance, in which we have the external symbols of his love to us,
-which lays us under the highest obligation thereunto.
-
-(9.) We are, in this ordinance, to shew our readiness to exercise a
-Christian love to all saints; which consists, more especially, in our
-earnest desire that all grace and peace may abound in them, as in our
-own souls; that hereby we may have occasion to glorify God together, and
-shew our mutual concern for the spiritual welfare of each other. We are
-to bless God for the grace they are enabled to exercise, though, it may
-be, we cannot exercise it in the same degree ourselves: And, as for
-others, we are to sympathize with them in their weaknesses, grieve for
-their falls and miscarriages; and be very ready to make abatements for
-those frailties and infirmities that we behold in them, which we
-ourselves are sometimes liable to, especially if they are not
-inconsistent with grace, in which case we should cast a mantle of love
-over them, not knowing but we may be exposed to, and fall by the same
-temptations.
-
-This love is to be expressed, more especially in this ordinance;
-inasmuch as we are to consider all saints as members of Christ’s
-mystical body, children of the same God and Father, partakers of the
-same grace with us, fellow travellers to the same heavenly country,
-where we hope to meet with them at last, though now they are liable to
-the same difficulties with ourselves, and exposed to those assaults and
-temptations that we often meet with from our spiritual enemies. This
-expression of our love, though it be more immediately and directly
-extended to the same society, that joins in communion with us; yet it is
-not to be confined within such narrow limits, but includes in it the
-highest esteem for all who are sanctified in Christ Jesus, called to be
-saints, though their place of abode be remote from, and they are not
-known to us in the flesh.
-
-II. We are now to consider the duty of Christians after they have
-received the sacrament of the Lord’s supper; and that consists in
-enquiring, how they have behaved themselves therein? and, whether they
-have any ground to conclude, that they have been favoured with the
-special presence of God in this ordinance, whereby it has been made a
-means of grace to them?
-
-As to the former of these enquiries relating to the frame of our
-spirits, while engaging in this solemn duty, we shall sometimes find,
-that it has been such as affords matter for deep humiliation and
-self-abasement, in the sight of God, when we reflect upon it;
-particularly,
-
-1. When our minds and affections have been conversant about those
-things, which are altogether unsuitable to the work we have been engaged
-in, and, instead of conversing with Christ in this ordinance, we have
-had our thoughts and meditations most taken up with worldly matters; or,
-if they have, indeed, been conversant about religious affairs, yet we
-may, in some measure, see reason to blame ourselves, if these have been
-altogether foreign to the great end and design of the ordinance we have
-been engaged in. There are many portions of scripture, or heads of
-divinity founded upon it, which we may employ our thoughts about at
-other times, with great advantage; yet they may not be altogether
-suitable, or adapted to our receiving spiritual advantage by, or making
-a right improvement of Christ crucified, as the nature of this ordinance
-requires.
-
-2. They behave themselves unbecomingly, in this ordinance, who meditate
-on the thing signified therein, to wit, the dying love of Jesus Christ,
-as though they were unconcerned spectators, having only an historical
-faith, and content themselves with the bare knowledge of what relates to
-the life and death of Christ, without considering the end and design
-thereof, _viz._ that he might make atonement for sin, or their
-particular concern herein, so as to improve it, as an expedient for the
-taking away the guilt and power thereof in their own souls.
-
-3. We may reflect on our behaviour in this ordinance, when we have given
-way to deadness and stupidity, without using those endeavours that are
-necessary for the exciting our affections; when a subject so affecting
-as Christ’s pouring out his soul unto death, being wounded for our
-transgressions, despised and rejected of men, bleeding and dying on the
-cross, and, in the midst of his sufferings, crying out, _My God, my God,
-why hast thou forsaken me_, has not had an efficacy to raise our
-affections, any more than if it were a common subject?
-
-4. We have reason to blame our behaviour in this ordinance, when we have
-attended on it with a resolution to continue in any known sin, without
-being earnest with God to mortify it, or desiring strength and grace
-from Christ, in order thereunto, and improving his death for that end.
-Thus we have reason, sometimes, to reflect on our behaviour at the
-Lord’s supper, with grief, and sorrow of heart, as what has been
-disagreeable to the nature of the ordinance we have been engaged in.
-
-But, on the other hand, we may, sometimes, in taking a view of our
-behaviour therein, find matter of encouragement, when, abating for human
-frailties, and the imperfection of grace, that inseparably attends this
-present state, we can say, to the glory of God, that we have, in some
-measure, behaved ourselves as we ought to do. Thus when we have found,
-that our hearts have been duly affected with the love of Christ, and we
-have had the exercise of those graces that are suitable thereunto; and
-if we can say, that we have had some communion with him, and have not
-been altogether destitute of his quickening and comforting presence, and
-the witness of his Spirit with ours, that we are the children of God;
-then we may conclude, that we have engaged in this ordinance in a right
-manner. And if we have found that it has been thus with us, we are to
-bless God for it, as considering that he alone can excite grace in us,
-who wrought it at first. And we are farther to consider, that such-like
-acts of grace will be a good evidence of the truth and sincerity
-thereof; whereby our comforts may be more established, and we enabled to
-walk more closely and thankfully with God, by the communication of those
-graces that he is pleased to bestow upon us in this ordinance.
-
-Moreover, if we have had experience of the presence of God therein, and
-have been brought into a good frame, we ought to beg the continuance
-thereof. The best frame of spirit will be no longer abiding, than it
-pleases God to keep up the lively exercise of faith and other graces;
-and this, being so valuable a blessing, is to be sought for by fervent
-prayer and supplication, that our good frames may not be like the
-morning cloud, or early dew, that soon passes away: This will discover,
-that we set a value upon them, and glorify God as the author of them;
-and it is the best expedient for our walking with God at other times, as
-well as when engaged in holy ordinances.
-
-Again, it is farther observed, that they, who have been quickened and
-comforted, when partaking of the Lord’s supper, ought to watch against
-relapses into those sins, that formerly they have been overtaken with,
-but now see reason to abhor. This we ought to do, because, though we are
-sometimes brought into a good frame, yet still we have deceitful hearts,
-that, before we are aware, may betray us into the commission of those
-sins which have occasioned great distress to us in times past; and, to
-this we may add, the endeavours of Satan to ensnare us by his wiles; so,
-that when we think ourselves the safest, we may be exposed to the
-greatest dangers. When we have been least apprehensive of our return to
-our former sins, and, it may be, have been too secure in our opinion,
-while confiding too much to our own strength, we have lost those good
-frames, and our troubles have been renewed thereby: Therefore, it is our
-duty to watch against the secret workings of corrupt nature, and the
-first motions of sin in our hearts, while we earnestly implore help from
-God, that we may be kept from our own iniquities; namely, those sins
-that we have formerly committed, or that more easily beset us than any
-other.
-
-The next duty incumbent on us, after we have received the Lord’s supper,
-is, to fulfil our vows: This will be better unstood, if compared with
-what was before observed concerning sacramental vows or covenants: which
-ought not to contain in them a making promises, especially in our own
-strength, that we will be found in the exercise of those graces which
-are the special gift and effects of God’s almighty power. Therefore, I
-always, when occasionally mentioning making religious vows, consider
-them principally as containing an express declaration, that we are under
-an indispensable obligation to perform those duties, and put forth those
-acts of grace which are incumbent on us, as those who desire to approve
-ourselves Christ’s faithful servants, whom he has taken into a
-covenant-relation with himself. We also declare, that without help from
-God we can do nothing: This help we implore from him, at the same time
-when we devote, or give up ourselves to him; so that we do this, hoping
-and trusting that he will bestow upon us that grace which is out of our
-own power; which, if he will be pleased to do, we determine that he
-shall have all the glory that arises from it. This is most agreeable to
-the sense of the Latin word[102]; from whence the word _vow_ is derived;
-and, I think, it is much rather to be acquiesced in, than that general
-description which some give to it, when they exhort those who are
-engaged in this ordinance, first to confess those sins which they have
-committed since they were last at the Lord’s table, so far as they occur
-to their memories; and, as a means of their obtaining forgiveness, to
-make a solemn vow, or promise, that they will abstain from them for the
-future, and walk more agreeably to the engagements which they are laid
-under: This they do without an humble sense of the treachery of their
-own hearts, or their need of strength from God, to perform any thing
-that is good; and afterwards, they are as little inclined to fulfil
-their own promises, as they were before forward to make them, with too
-much reliance on their own strength; and, by this means, they bring
-themselves into the greatest perplexities, and go on, as it were, in a
-round of making solemn vows and resolutions, and then breaking them, and
-afterwards renewing them again: Whereas, when we intend nothing by our
-vowing, but a confessing that what others promise in their own strength,
-we see ourselves obliged to do; and, at the same time, depend on Christ
-for strength to enable us to perform it, and give up ourselves to him,
-as his covenant-people, in hope thereof; this is the safest way of
-vowing, inasmuch as it redounds most to the honour of God, and contains
-every thing in it that may put us upon using our utmost endeavours to
-perform the duties that are incumbent on us, and, at the same time, we
-express our unfeigned desire to glorify him as the God and Author of
-that grace, which is necessary thereunto. And, in this sense I would
-understand what we are exhorted to in the answers we are explaining,
-when it is said, in one of them, that while we are receiving the Lord’s
-supper, we ought to renew our covenant with God; and after we have
-received it, we are to fulfil our vows, as it is expressed in the other;
-as the former includes in it such a dedication to God as has been but
-now considered; the latter, to wit, the fulfilling our vows, implies in
-it a doing every thing that is in our power, in order thereunto; and, at
-the same time, a waiting on God to give success to our endeavours, and
-to work in us that which is well-pleasing in his sight, without which we
-can do nothing.
-
-After we have waited on the Lord in this ordinance, we are to encourage
-ourselves to a frequent attendance thereon; especially if we have ground
-to conclude, that we have had any sensible communications of his grace
-vouchsafed to us therein. As this is an honour which God puts on his own
-institutions, it is certainly an encouragement to us, to persevere in
-waiting on him therein. Thus the Psalmist says, _Because he hath
-inclined his ear unto me, therefore I call upon him as long as I live_,
-Psal. cxvi. 2. This will effectually remove all those doubts and
-scruples that discourage us from engaging in this ordinance, lest we
-should not behave ourselves in a right manner therein, fearing that we
-are not sufficiently prepared for it, and therefore shall be disowned by
-Christ, when we engage in it: I say, this we are fenced against, by
-having experienced his quickening and comforting presence therein.
-
-But, suppose we have not met with this desirable blessing, which the
-best believers do not experience in a like degree, at all times; then we
-ought, after we have received the Lord’s Supper, to endeavour to find
-out the particular cause of God’s withdrawing his special presence from
-us, and what is that root of bitterness which springs up and troubles
-us. It may be, he withholds this privilege from us in a way of
-sovereignty, that we may hereby learn that our comforts are not at our
-own disposal; or, that they are not the necessary result of our
-attendance on ordinances, but arise from the divine blessing
-accompanying them. This, God, it may be, withholds from us for the trial
-of our graces; and that we may see how needful it is for us to wait for
-those spiritual comforts, which, at present, he withholds from us; as
-the prophet says, _Therefore will the Lord wait, that he may be gracious
-unto you, and therefore will he be exalted, that he may have mercy upon
-you; for the Lord is a God of judgment; blessed are they that wait for
-him_, Isa. xxx. 18.
-
-But since we may, for the most part, apprehend some particular reason
-why God denies us his quickening, and comforting presence, arising from
-sins of omission or commission, antecedent to, or whilst we have been
-engaged in this ordinance: We must enquire,
-
-(1.) Whether there has not been some defect, as to preparatory duties?
-and particularly, whether we have duly examined ourselves before we came
-to the Lord’s table, concerning our knowledge of Christ, and the
-benefits of his redemption; or, especially, of our being enabled to
-improve them by faith? and, whether we have examined ourselves
-concerning the sense we have of the guilt of sin, and the need we stand
-in of Christ’s righteousness, to take it away, and accordingly resolved
-to wait on him in this ordinance, with earnest desires of obtaining this
-privilege.
-
-(2.) We must enquire, whether our behaviour when we have been engaged in
-this ordinance, has not been, in some measure, unbecoming the
-spirituality and importance thereof? whether we have not spared, or
-indulged, some secret corruption, that has broke forth therein? or,
-whether we have not given way to some temptation, that has then beset
-us? whether we have not depended on our own righteousness, for the
-taking away the guilt of sin, and procuring for us acceptance in the
-sight of God? or, whether we have not engaged in this ordinance, in our
-own strength, and by this self-confidence, provoked him to withdraw from
-us; which, if we have, it will afford matter of deep humiliation in his
-sight, and call for repentance and reformation, if we would be fenced
-against this inconvenience, which, at present we labour under; and then
-we may hope that we shall be enabled to wait on him in this ordinance,
-in such a way, that we may have those comfortable experiences of grace
-from him, which will be an evidence that we have waited on him for the
-better, and not for the worse.
-
-Footnote 102:
-
- _Voveo._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLXXVI., CLXXVII.
-
-
- QUEST. CLXXVI. _Wherein do the sacraments of Baptism and the Lord’s
- Supper agree?_
-
- ANSW. The sacraments of baptism and the Lord’s Supper, agree, in
- that the author of both is God, the spiritual part of both is Christ
- and his benefits; both are seals of the same covenant, are to be
- dispensed by ministers of the gospel, and by none other, and to be
- continued in the church of Christ, until his second coming.
-
- QUEST. CLXXVII. _Wherein do the sacraments of Baptism and the Lord’s
- Supper differ?_
-
- ANSW. The sacraments of baptism and the Lord’s supper differ, in
- that baptism is to be administered but once with water, to be a sign
- and seal of our regeneration, and ingrafting into Christ, and that
- even to infants, whereas the Lord’s supper is to be administered
- often, in the elements of bread and wine, to represent and exhibit
- Christ as spiritual nourishment to the soul, and to confirm our
- continuance and growth in him, and that only to such as are of years
- and ability to examine themselves.
-
-These two answers contain little more than a recapitulation of some
-things, that have been occasionally mentioned, in explaining the nature
-of these ordinances; and therefore we shall very briefly insist on them.
-
-I. Concerning those things wherein the sacraments of baptism and the
-Lord’s supper agree; accordingly,
-
-1. It is observed, that God is the Author of both. This may be inferred
-from what has been said concerning their being holy ordinances, or means
-of grace; in which we are to expect his presence and blessing to make
-them effectual to salvation: This we cannot do without engaging in them
-by his own warrant, which he has been pleased to give us, as appears
-from his word, and the experience of many believers, who have found
-sensible advantage thereby; so that the effects of his power and grace,
-that have been produced in their hearts, when engaged therein, afford a
-convincing evidence that God is the Author thereof. This, as to what
-concerns baptism, respects more especially, the baptism of those that
-are adult; for when infants are baptized, though God can, and sometimes
-does, as is more than probable, own this ordinance, by regenerating them
-at that time; yet this cannot be known by us, unless it be inferred,
-from those extraordinary communications of grace which they may
-experience, who are enabled, by faith to give up their children to God
-therein.
-
-2. Baptism and the Lord’s supper farther agree, in that Christ, and his
-benefits are signified by both of them: for they are, each of them,
-ordinances for our faith, as they are signs and seals of the covenant of
-grace, in which Christ, and the benefits of his redemption, are set
-forth: Thus the apostle says, with respect to baptism, _So many of as
-were baptized into Jesus Christ, were baptized into his death, buried
-with him by baptism into death_, Rom. vi. 3, 4. accordingly we have
-communion with Christ as crucified, dying and buried, and, after this,
-rising again from the dead, whereby he brought the work of redemption to
-perfection: These things are signified; and thus our faith is to make
-use of this sign in baptism; and the apostle says the same thing with
-respect to the Lord’s Supper: _As often as ye eat this bread, and drink
-this cup, ye do shew the Lord’s death till he come_, 1 Cor. xi. 26.
-
-3. Baptism and the Lord’s supper, are farther observed to agree, in that
-they are to be dispensed by none but the ministers of the gospel. Under
-the Old Testament-dispensation, where all the parts of the
-temple-service were significant signs of Christ, and the benefits of the
-covenant of grace; these were to be administered by none but those who
-were qualified, called, and lawfully set apart to that work, as the
-apostle says, _No man taketh this honour unto himself, but he that is
-called of God, as was Aaron_, Heb. v. 4. And we may conclude, that the
-moral reason of the thing extends itself to the administration of the
-seals of the covenant, under the gospel-dispensation. It is certain,
-that some must be appointed, or set apart to this work, otherwise it
-would belong to every body, and consequently there would be no
-determinate administrators of these ordinances, who might be said to
-have a special call thereunto, from God and man. It may also be inferred
-from those scriptures that speak of _pastors after God’s own heart_, who
-are to _feed_ his people _with knowledge and understanding_, as being
-his special _gift_, Jer. iii. 15. and from what the apostle says,
-concerning gospel-ministers, whether extraordinary or ordinary, as being
-Christ’s _gift_, when he _ascended up on high_, Eph. iv. 8, 11.
-
-4. It is farther observed, that these two ordinances agree, in that they
-are both to be continued in the church, until Christ’s second coming.
-Though we look and hope for more of the presence of God therein, and a
-greater effusion of his Spirit, to make them more effectual, and render
-the church more bright and glorious, as being favoured with greater
-degrees of the communications of divine grace; yet we have no ground to
-expect new ordinances, or a new dispensation to succeed this we are
-under, till Christ’s second and most glorious coming; therefore this is
-called, _The last time_, 1 John ii. 18. Upon which account the apostle
-says, that _the ends of the world are come upon us_, 1 Cor. x. 11. by
-which we are to understand, that the present dispensation of the gospel
-that we are under, is the last we are to expect till Christ’s second
-coming.
-
-And this also appears, from the promise which Christ has given of his
-presence with his ministers and churches, when faithfully engaging in
-these ordinances, as he says, _Lo, I am with you always, even unto the
-end of the world_, Matt. xxviii. 20. And, as his _death_, as was before
-observed, is to be _shewed forth till he come_, 1 Cor. xi. 26. this
-proves that the Lord’s supper is also to be continued in the church till
-then. This I would the rather observe, inasmuch as it is contrary to
-what some maintain, who, while they hope for a greater effusion of the
-Spirit, and a more glorious state of the church in the latter day, are
-ready to extend their thoughts too far, they conclude that it will be a
-new dispensation, as the ordinances which the church is favoured with,
-at present, shall cease, particularly baptism and the Lord’s Supper;
-which we can by no means approve of.
-
-II. We are now to consider wherein the sacraments of baptism and the
-Lord’s supper differ.
-
-1. It is observed that they differ, in that baptism is to be
-administered but once; whereas, the Lord’s supper is to be administered
-often. This appears from two different circumstances contained in them.
-As for baptism, it signifies our first ingrafting into, or putting on
-Christ; and when denominated from the thing signified thereby, it is
-called, the _washing of regeneration, and the renewing of the Holy
-Ghost_, Titus iii. 5. which is hoped for in this ordinance; accordingly
-it is considered as our first solemn dedication to Christ; and, as this
-is signified thereby, it is called an initiating ordinance, in which we
-are bound to be the Lord’s; which bond holds good as long as we live,
-and therefore needs not to be signified, sealed, or confirmed by our
-being baptized a second time: But, on the other hand, the Lord’s supper
-signifies our feeding or living upon Christ, and receiving daily
-supplies of grace from him, as our necessities require: Therefore this
-ordinance differs from baptism as it is often to be engaged in.
-
-2. They differ, in that the former as has been before proved, is not
-only to be applied to the adult, if they have not been baptized before,
-but to the infants of believing parents, which the Lord’s supper is not.
-In baptism, the person dedicated may be considered as being passive, and
-so devoted to God by the faith of another, who has a right to do this:
-But none are to partake of the Lord’s supper but those who have such a
-degree of knowledge, that they are able to discern the Lord’s body, and
-capable of performing that duty which the apostle recommends as
-necessary thereunto, when he says, _Let a man examine himself, and so
-let him eat of that bread, and drink of that cup_, 1 Cor. xi. 28.
-
-I am sensible that some of the ancient church, and particularly Cyprian,
-in the third century, have pleaded for, and practised the administration
-of the Lord’s supper to infants, being led into this mistake, by
-supposing what does not sufficiently appear, _viz._ that infants among
-the Jews ate the passover, because whole families are said to eat it.
-But this does not appear to include infants; for whom another sort of
-food was designed: neither could they reap any advantage by it, not
-being capable of discerning the thing signified, or feeding on Christ,
-the true Paschal Lamb; which could be done no otherwise than by faith.
-
-Others were led into this mistake from the wrong sense they gave of that
-scripture, in which Christ says, _Except ye eat the flesh of the Son of
-man, and drink his blood, ye have no life in you_, John vi. 53. thinking
-that our Saviour meant hereby, the bread and wine in the Lord’s supper.
-Therefore this ordinance was absolutely necessary to salvation; upon
-which account they thought that it ought to be extended to infants, as a
-means of their obtaining it. But it is certain this cannot be the
-meaning of that scripture, since the Lord’s supper was not instituted,
-or known in the church, when our Saviour spake these words: Therefore,
-he intends nothing else thereby but the fiducial application of Christ’s
-death, as an expedient for our obtaining eternal life.
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLXXVIII.
-
-
- QUEST. CLXXVIII. _Which is Prayer?_
-
- ANSW. Prayer is an offering up of our desires unto God, in the name
- of Christ, by the help of his Spirit, with confession of our sins,
- and thankful acknowledgment of his mercies.
-
-Having considered the things that are to be believed and done; what
-remains is, to enquire concerning those things that are to be prayed
-for, and how this great duty of prayer is to be performed. This is
-necessary to be insisted on, inasmuch as we are obliged to yield
-obedience to the revealed will of God; nevertheless, by reason of our
-depravity and weakness, we can do nothing that is good without his
-assistance, which is not to be expected, unless it be humbly desired of
-him; and this is what we generally call _prayer_; which being performed
-by creatures who are not only indigent, but unworthy, this is to be
-acknowledged, and accordingly we are, in prayer, to confess sin as the
-principal ground and reason of this unworthiness. And, inasmuch as God
-has been pleased to encourage us to hope, that we shall not seek his
-face in vain, who, in many instances is pleased to grant returns of
-prayer; this obliges us to draw nigh to him with thanksgiving. These
-things are particularly contained in the answer we are explaining; and
-the method in which we shall endeavour to speak to it, is to consider,
-
-I. What, prayer supposes; and that is,
-
-1. That we are dependent and indigent creatures, have many wants to be
-supplied, sins to be forgiven, miseries, under which we need pity and
-relief, and weaknesses, under which we want to be strengthened and
-assisted in the performance of the duties that are incumbent on us. From
-hence it may be inferred, that though our Lord Jesus Christ is often
-represented as praying to God, this is an action performed by him in his
-human nature; in which alone he could be said to be indigent, who, in
-his divine nature, is all-sufficient.
-
-2. It supposes that God, who is the object of prayer, is regarded by us,
-not only as able, but willing to help us; and that he has encouraged us
-to draw nigh to him for relief: And therefore it is a duty that more
-especially belongs to those who are favoured with the hope of the
-gospel.
-
-II. We shall now shew how prayer is to be considered, as to the various
-kinds hereof; and accordingly we are represented as drawing nigh to God,
-with an humble sense of our secret sins and wants, which none but God
-and our own consciences are privy to. This kind of prayer our Saviour
-intends, when he says, _Thou, when thou prayest, enter into thy closet,
-and when thou hast shut thy door, pray to thy Father which is in secret,
-and thy Father which seeth in secret, shall reward thee openly_, Mat.
-vi. 6. and we have an instance hereof in himself; inasmuch, as it is
-said, that _when he had sent the multitudes away, he went up into a
-mountain apart to pray_, chap. xiv. 23. also, _Peter went up upon the
-house-top to pray_, Acts x. 9. in which, being retired from the world,
-he had a greater liberty to pour forth his soul unto God.
-
-Moreover, we are to join with others in performing this duty, in which
-we confess those sins, and implore a supply of those wants that are
-common to all who are engaged therein: This our Saviour encourages us to
-do, when he says, _If two of you shall agree on earth, as touching any
-thing that they shall ask, it shall be done for them of my Father which
-is in heaven. For where two or three are gathered together in my name,
-there am I in the midst of them_, Mat. xviii. 19, 20. This is a branch
-of social worship, and is to be performed by every family apart, whereof
-we have an example in Cornelius, concerning whom it is said, that he was
-_a devout man, and feared God with all his house, and prayed to him
-always_; and that he did this, at certain times, _in his house_, Acts x.
-2. compared with ver. 30. Moreover, this duty is to be performed
-publicly in the church, or any worshipping assembly met together for
-that purpose: Of this we have an instance in the apostle Paul, who, when
-he had called for the elders of the church at Ephesus, designing to take
-his leave of them, after an affectionate discourse, and suitable advice
-given to them, he _kneeled down and prayed with them all_, chap. xx. 36.
-
-Again, prayer may be considered as that for which a stated time is set
-apart by us, either alone, or with others; or, that which is occasional,
-short, and ejaculatory, consisting in a secret lifting up of our hearts
-to God, and may be done when we are engaged in other business of a
-different nature, without being a let or hindrance to it: Thus it is
-said that _Nehemiah prayed_, when he has going to _deliver the cup into
-the king’s hand_, between the king’s asking him a question, and his
-returning him an answer to it; which seems to be the meaning of what is
-said in Neh. ii. 4, 5. _Then the king said unto me; for what dost thou
-make request? so I prayed to the God of heaven, and I said unto the
-king_, &c. These ejaculatory prayers are either such as we put up to God
-while engaged in worldly business for direction, assistance, or success
-therein; or when attending on the word read or preached, or any other
-holy duties, in which we lift up our hearts to him for his presence
-therein.
-
-III. The next thing to be considered, is, the various parts of prayer;
-and these are three, _viz._ Confession of sin; petition for a supply of
-our wants; and thanksgiving for mercies received. Confession of sin
-supposes that we are guilty, and deserve punishment from God; petition
-supposes, that we are miserable and helpless; and thanksgiving implies,
-a disposition to own God, the author of all the good we enjoy or hope
-for, and includes in it a due sense of those undeserved favours we have
-received from him.
-
-From this general account of the duty of prayer, and the parts thereof,
-we may infer,
-
-1. That the two former of them, namely, confession of sin, and petition
-for relief, under the various miseries and distresses which we are
-liable to, is only applicable to those who are in a sinful and imperfect
-state, as believers are in this world. As for glorified saints in
-heaven, they have no sins to be confessed, nor any miseries under which
-they need help and pity. As for that part of prayer which consists of
-thanksgiving for mercies already received, that, indeed, is agreeable to
-a perfect state, and is represented as the constant work of glorified
-saints: Thus the Psalmist says, _The heavens_, that is, the inhabitants
-thereof, _shall praise thy wonders, O Lord, thy faithfulness also in the
-congregation of the saints_, Psal. lxxxix. 5.
-
-2. Sinners, who have lost their day of grace, against whom the door of
-hope and mercy is shut, who are enduring the punishment of sin in hell,
-these are not properly the subjects of prayer; concerning whom it may be
-said, not only that they cannot pray, being destitute of those graces
-that are necessary thereunto; but having no interest in a Mediator, or
-in the promises of the covenant of grace, which are a warrant and
-encouragement for the performance of this duty.
-
-3. In this world, wherein we enjoy the means of grace, none are the
-subjects of prayer but man. The Psalmist, indeed, speaks of God’s
-_giving to the beast his food, and to the young ravens which cry_, Psal.
-cxlvii. 9. and elsewhere it is said, _He provideth for the raven his
-food, when his young ones cry unto God_, Job. xxxviii. 41. The meaning
-of which is, not that brute creatures formally address themselves to God
-for a supply of their wants, having no idea of a divine being; but,
-that, when they complain for want of food, the providence of God
-supplies them, though they know not the hand from whence it comes.
-
-4. Though it be the duty of all men in the world to pray; yet none can
-do this by faith, and, consequently, in an acceptable manner, but
-believers, concerning whom the apostle says, _Ye have received the
-spirit of adoption, whereby they cry, Abba, Father_, Rom. viii. 15.
-
-As for the first part of prayer, _viz._ petition, or supplication. This
-will be particularly considered under several following answers, and
-especially those that contain an explication of the Lord’s prayer; which
-is a directory for what we are to ask of God: Therefore we shall, at
-present, only consider the other two parts of prayer, _viz._ confession
-of sin, and thanksgiving for mercies.
-
-(1.) Concerning confession of sin; and accordingly,
-
-[1.] We shall prove, that it is an indispensable duty incumbent on all
-men; and that, not only on those who are in a state of unregeneracy, and
-consequently under the dominion of sin, but on believers themselves, who
-are in a justified state. This will appear, if we consider, that not to
-confess sin, is, in effect, to justify ourselves in the commission of
-it; and, as it were, to deny that which is so well known to the
-heart-searching God, as well as to our own consciences. It also contains
-in it a charging God with injustice, when he inflicts on us the
-punishment that is due to it; which is contrary to what Ezra says;
-_Thou, our God, hast punished us less than our iniquities deserve_, Ezra
-ix. 13.
-
-Moreover, none was ever truly humbled in the sight of God, or obtained
-mercy and forgiveness of sin, but he was first brought to confess it
-with suitable affection, and brokenness of heart; which are ingredients
-in true repentance: Thus it is said, _He looketh upon men, and if any
-say, I have sinned, and perverted that which was right, and it profited
-me not; he will deliver his soul from going into the pit, and his life
-shall see the light_, Job xxxiii. 27, 28. It is also said elsewhere, _He
-that covereth his sins shall not prosper: But whoso confesseth and
-forsaketh them shall have mercy_, Prov. xxviii. 13. This duty is so
-evident, that, one would think, no one, who duly considers what he is,
-or how contrary his actions are to the revealed will of God, should have
-the front to deny it: However, it is well known, that many seem
-designedly to wave all confession of sin in prayer; and, others argue
-against it, more especially, as to what concerns the case of believers:
-Accordingly,
-
-_Object._ It is objected, that believers ought not to confess sin; since
-that is inconsistent with a justified state: It is, in effect, to plead
-guilty, though God has taken away the guilt of sin, by forgiving it for
-the sake of the atonement which Christ has made: It is a laying open the
-wound that God hath healed and closed up, or bringing to remembrance
-that which he hath said, _he will remember no more_, Heb. x. 67. and it
-is contrary to the grace of God, who hath said, none shall _lay any
-thing to the charge of_ his _elect_, since _it is God that justifieth_,
-Rom. viii. 33. for a believer to lay any thing to his own charge, which
-he does when he confesses sin.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied;
-
-_1st_, That we must distinguish between a believer’s desert of
-punishment or condemnation, and his being actually punished by God, as a
-sin-revenging judge, according as his iniquities deserve. That a
-believer shall not eventually fall under condemnation, is true, because
-his sins are forgiven; and with respect to such, the apostle says,
-_There is now no condemnation to them which are in Christ Jesus_, ver.
-1. Nevertheless, though he be in a justified state, and, as the
-consequence hereof, shall be undoubtedly saved; yet, according to the
-tenor of his own actions, he being a sinner, contracts guilt in the
-sight of God; and, a desert of punishment is inseparably connected with
-every sin, though a person may be in a justified state who commits it.
-It is one thing to be liable to condemnation, and another thing to
-deserve to be condemned: The former of these is, indeed, inconsistent
-with a justified state; but the latter is not: And it is in this sense
-that we are to understand the Psalmist’s words, _If thou, Lord, shouldst
-mark iniquities, O Lord, who shall stand_, Psal. cxxx. 3. And,
-accordingly, the best believer on earth, though he have a full assurance
-of his being forgiven by God; yet, inasmuch as he is a sinner, he is
-obliged to confess that he deserves to be cast off by him, or, if God
-should deal with him according to what he finds in him, without looking
-upon him as he is in Christ, his head and surety, he would be undone and
-lost for ever.
-
-_2dly_, Believers are daily sinning, and therefore contracting fresh
-guilt; as it is said, _There is not a just man upon earth that doeth
-good and sinneth not_, Eccl. vii. 20. and, indeed their sin is sometimes
-so great, that they grieve the Holy Spirit, wound their own consciences,
-and act very disagreeably to their character as believers. This
-therefore ought to be confessed with shame and self-abhorrence; as the
-prophet says, _That thou mayest remember and be confounded, and never
-open thy mouth anymore, because of thy shame; when I am pacified towards
-thee for all that thou hast done, saith the Lord God_, Ezek. xvi. 63.
-Moreover, it is certain that believers, when they have had a discovery
-that their sin was pardoned, have, at the same time, confessed it with
-great humility. Thus, immediately after Nathan had reproved David for
-his sin, and told him, upon his repentance, that _the Lord had put it
-away_, 2 Sam. xii. 13. yet he makes a penitent confession of it before
-God, and says, _Against thee, thee only have I sinned, and done this
-evil in thy sight_, Psal. li. 4.
-
-[2.] We shall now consider with what frame of spirit sin is to be
-confessed; and this ought to be done,
-
-_1st_, With a due sense of the infinite evil thereof, as it reflects
-dishonour on the divine perfections; and particularly as it is opposite
-to the holiness and purity of God, and a contempt cast on his law, which
-expressly forbids it, and a disregarding the threatenings denounced
-thereby against those who violate it, and renders us liable to his
-wrath, as a sin-revenging Judge, pursuant to the intrinsic demerit
-thereof: And therefore it is justly styled _an evil thing and bitter_;
-the only thing that can be called a moral evil; and it is certainly
-bitter in the consequences thereof.
-
-_2dly_, We are to confess sin with humility, shame, confusion of face,
-and self-abhorrence; and that more especially, by reason of the vile
-ingratitude there is in it, as committed by those who are under the
-greatest engagements to the contrary duties.
-
-_3dly_, Sin is to be confessed with the hope of obtaining forgiveness
-through the blood of Christ, as laying hold on the promises of mercy,
-which are made to those who confess and forsake it, Prov. xxviii. 13.
-and, with an earnest desire, to be delivered from the prevailing power
-thereof, by strength derived from Christ.
-
-[3.] We shall now consider what sins we are to confess before God; and
-these are, either the sin of our nature, or those actual transgressions
-that proceed from it.
-
-_1st_, The sin of our nature. As fallen creatures, we are destitute of
-the image of God; and, having contracted corrupt habits, by repeated
-acts of rebellion against him, all the powers and faculties of our souls
-are vitiated thereby, and we not only indisposed and disinclined to what
-is good, but naturally bent to backslide from God, and to commit the
-greatest abominations, if destitute of his preventing, restraining, or
-renewing grace: Thus the apostle says, _I know that in me, (that is, in
-my flesh) dwelleth no good thing_, Rom. vii. 18. And this is to be
-considered as what has universally defiled and depraved our nature; and
-therefore we ought to cry out with the leper, _Unclean, unclean_, Lev.
-xiii. 45. or, as the prophet say, _From the sole of the foot even unto
-the head, there is no soundness in us, but wounds, and bruises, and
-putrifying sores_, Isa. i. 6. We are to consider it as that which
-insinuates itself into our best duties; and it is like the fly in the
-precious ointment; and it is of such a nature, that when we have been
-enabled to gain some advantage against it, it will afterwards recover
-strength. Notwithstanding all our endeavours to the contrary. It is like
-an incurable disease in the body, which, though we endeavour to keep it
-under for a while, yet it will prevail again, till the frame of nature
-is demolished, and thereby all diseases cured at once: Nevertheless,
-when we confess and are humbled for this propensity, that is in our
-nature to sin, we are to pray and hope, that the prevailing power
-thereof may be so far weakened, that, by the principle of grace,
-implanted in regeneration, and excited by the Spirit, in promoting the
-work of sanctification, though it dwells in us it may not entirely have
-dominion over us, or we be thereby denominated the servants of sin.
-
-_2dly_, We are to confess the many actual sins that we daily commit,
-with all their respective aggravations; sins of omission and commission,
-both of which are contained in the apostle’s confession; _The good that
-I would do, I do not; but the evil which I would not, that I do_, Rom.
-vii. 19. Our sinful neglects of duty are numberless; we are to confess
-our not having redeemed our time, but spent it in those trifles and vain
-amusements that profit not; particularly if we have misimproved the very
-flower and best part of our time and strength, and not remembered our
-Creator in the days of our youth. This Job reckons the principal ground
-and reason of the evils that befal him in his advanced age, when he
-says, _Thou writest bitter things against me; and makest me to possess
-the iniquities of my youth,_ Job xiii. 26. And we are humbly to confess
-our not having improved, and, thereby, lost many opportunities for
-extraordinary service, either to do, or to get good: Thus the prophet
-says, _Yea, the stork the heaven knoweth her appointed times, and the
-turtle, and the crane, and the swallow observe the time of their coming,
-but my people know not the judgment of the Lord_, Jer. viii. 7. We are
-also to confess our neglecting to comply with the calls and invitations
-of the gospel; upon which account we are said, _to receive the grace of
-God in vain,_ 2 Cor. vi. 1. _or not to know the time of our visitation,_
-Luke xix. 44. but when God has _called, we have refused; when he has
-stretched out his hand, no man regarded, but have set at nought all his
-counsel, and would none of his reproof_, Prov. i. 24, 25. We are also to
-confess our neglect of public and secret duties, or worshipping of God
-in a careless indifferent manner; as the prophet represents the people,
-saying, _Behold, what a weariness is it, and ye have snuffed at it,
-saith the Lord of Hosts; and ye have brought that which was torn, and
-the lame and the sick; should I accept this at your hands?_ Mal. i. 13.
-We are also to confess our neglect of relative duties, in not
-instructing those under our care, nor reproving them for sin committed,
-nor sympathizing with the afflicted, nor warning those who are going out
-of God’s way; by which means a multitude of sins might have been
-prevented, whereby many have been ruined through our sinful neglect.
-
-As for sins of commission, which are also to be confessed; these are
-either such as were committed before or after our conversion to God; the
-former of which contain a disowning his authority, or right to
-obedience; the latter, an ungrateful disregard to, or forgetfulness of
-the greatest benefits received from him. We are also to confess those
-sins which are contrary to the moral law, or the very light of nature;
-which we are often guilty of: And, that we may be furnished with matter,
-and give scope to our thoughts and affections therein, it may be of use
-for us to consider the sins forbidden under each of the Ten
-Commandments, which have been before particularly insisted on. We ought
-also to confess the various aggravations of sin; and, to assist us
-therein, those things that are contained in a foregoing answer[103], may
-be of some use to us, especially if we make a particular application
-thereof to our own case, and observe how far we have reason to fall
-under a sense of guilt, or charge ourselves with crimes of the like
-nature.
-
-Moreover, we are to confess the sins we have committed against the
-engagements or grace of the gospel; the low thoughts we have sometimes
-had of the person of Christ, his love to us, or the benefits we have
-been made partakers of from him, while we have been ready to say, as the
-daughters of Jerusalem are represented speaking, _What is thy beloved
-more than another beloved,_ Cant. v. 9. and how much we have hardened
-our hearts against him, refusing to submit to his yoke, or bear his
-cross; how often we have been ashamed of his cause and interest,
-especially when called to suffer reproach for it. Have we not sometimes
-questioned the truth of his promises, refused to submit to his
-righteousness, and depend upon it alone for justification, while we have
-had too high thoughts of ourselves, glorying and valuing ourselves upon
-the performance of some moral duties, which we have put in the room of
-Christ?
-
-We ought to confess how much we have opposed him in all his offices; not
-depending on him as a prophet to lead us in the way of truth and peace,
-but have leaned to our own understanding, and therefore have been left
-to pervert, disbelieve, or, at least, entertain some doubts about the
-great doctrines of the gospel; or, if our minds have been rightly
-informed therein, yet we have not made a practical improvement thereof,
-for our spiritual advantage. Have we not opposed him as a priest, and
-neglected to set a due value on that atonement he has made for sin, not
-improving his intercession for us, who is entered into the holy place,
-made without hands, to encourage us to come boldly to the throne of
-grace? Have we not also refused to submit to him as king of saints, or
-seek protection from him against the assaults of our spiritual enemies?
-These things are to be confessed by us in prayer; and that with such a
-sense of our own guilt, that we ought to acknowledge ourselves to be,
-(as the apostle says concerning himself,) _the chief of sinners,_ 1 Tim.
-i. 15.
-
-I am sensible that many will be ready to conclude, that much of what has
-been said concerning sins to be confessed, is applicable to none but
-those that are in a state of unregeneracy; and, among them, few can say,
-that they are the chief of sinners, unless they have been notoriously
-vile and scandalous in the eye of the world; and that the apostle Paul,
-when he applies this to himself, has a peculiar reference to what he was
-before his conversion.
-
-But to this it may be replied; that it is impossible we should know so
-much of the sins of others, together with their respective aggravations,
-as we may of those that have been committed by ourselves. And if we have
-not been left to commit those gross and scandalous sins, which we have
-beheld in them with abhorrence, this is not owing to ourselves, but the
-grace of God, by which we are what we are; which, if we had been
-destitute of, we should have been as bad as the worst of men; and if our
-hearts have been renewed and changed thereby, so that we are kept from
-committing those sins that are inconsistent with a state of grace; yet
-there are very heinous aggravations attending those we have reason to
-charge ourselves with; whereby we have acted contrary to the experience
-we have had of the efficacious influence of the Holy Spirit, and have
-been guilty of very great ingratitude against him, that has laid us
-under the highest obligations. Thus concerning confession of sin, when
-drawing nigh to God in the duty of prayer.
-
-(2.) We are now to consider another part of prayer, namely, that we are
-therein thankfully to acknowledge the mercies of God: Thus the Psalmist
-says, _Enter into his gates with thanksgiving, and into his courts with
-praise; be thankful unto him, and bless his name,_ Psal. c. 4. And
-elsewhere, _I will offer to thee the sacrifice of thanksgiving; and will
-call upon the name of the Lord,_ Psal. cxvi. 17. that is, I will join
-prayer and praise together. Nothing is more obvious, than that favours
-received ought to be acknowledged; otherwise we are guilty of that
-ingratitude which is one of the vilest crimes. Not to acknowledge what
-we receive from God, is, in effect, to deny our obligation to him; which
-will provoke him to withhold from us those other mercies which we stand
-in need of.
-
-This duty ought to be performed at all times, and on all occasions: Thus
-the apostle says, _In every thing by prayer and supplication with
-thanksgiving, let your request be made known unto God,_ Phil. iv. 6.
-This is evident, in that there is no condition of life but what has some
-mixture of mercy in it; and that this may be more particularly
-considered, we may observe, that the mercies we receive from God, are
-either outward or spiritual, common or special; the former of these he
-gives to all without distinction; as it is said, _The Lord is good to
-all, and his tender mercies are over all his works,_ Psal. cxlv. 9. And
-elsewhere, he is _kind unto the unthankful, and to the evil,_ Luke vi.
-35. _and maketh his sun to rise on the evil and on the good, and sendeth
-rain on the just and on the unjust,_ Matt. v. 45. The latter sort of
-mercies he bestows on the heirs of salvation, in a covenant-way, as the
-purchase of the blood of Christ, and a pledge of farther blessings which
-he has reserved in store for them: There are mercies which we have in
-hand, or in possession, and others which we have in hope or in
-reversion: Thus the apostle speaks of the _hope_ which is _laid up for_
-the saints _in heaven,_ Col. i. 3, 5. which he _thanks_ God for in his
-prayer for the church.
-
-Again, the mercies of God may be considered either as personal or
-relative; the former we are more immediately the subjects of; the latter
-affect us so far as we stand related to others, for whose welfare we are
-greatly concerned, and whose happiness makes a very considerable
-addition to our own.
-
-[1.] We are to express our thankfulness to God for personal mercies; and
-accordingly we are to bless him for the advantages of nature, which are
-the effects of divine goodness: Thus the Psalmist says, _I will praise
-thee; for I am fearfully and wonderfully made,_ Psal. cxxxix. 14. Though
-the human nature falls very short of what it was at first, when the
-image of God was perfectly enstamped on all the powers and faculties of
-the soul; and it is not what it shall be when brought to a state of
-perfection in heaven: Yet there are many natural endowments which we
-have received from God, as a means for our glorifying him, and answering
-the end of our being, in the whole conduct of our lives: And,
-
-_1st_, As to what concerns the blessings of providence, which we have
-received in every age of life. In our childhood and youth we have great
-reason to be thankful, if we have had the invaluable blessing of a
-religious education, and have been kept or delivered from the pernicious
-influence of bad examples, from whence that age of life oftentimes
-receives such a tincture as tends to vitiate the soul, and open the way
-for all manner of sin, which will afterwards insinuate itself into, and
-prevail, like an infectious distemper, over all the powers and faculties
-thereof. What reason have we to bless God if we have been favoured with
-restraining or preventing grace, whereby we have been kept from youthful
-lusts, which are destructive to multitudes, and lay a foundation for
-their future ruin; and especially if it has pleased God to bring us
-under early convictions of sin; so that we have experienced in that age
-of life, the hopeful beginnings of a work of grace, which is an effect
-of more than common providence! We ought to take notice, with great
-thankfulness, of the methods of divine grace, if we have been early led
-into the knowledge of the first principles of the oracles of God,
-especially if they have made such an impression on our hearts, that we
-can say, with good Obadiah, _I thy servant, fear the Lord from my
-youth,_ 1 Kings xviii. 12.
-
-Again, we are to express our thankfulness for the mercies which we have
-received in our advanced age, when arrived to a state of manhood; and
-accordingly are to bless him for directing and ordering our settlement
-in the world, in those things more especially that relate to our secular
-callings and employments therein, and the advantages of suitable society
-in those families in which our lot has been cast, as well as the many
-instances of divine goodness in our own. We ought also to bless him for
-succeeding our industry and endeavours used, to promote our comfort and
-happiness in the world, together with that degree of usefulness which it
-has pleased God to favour us with, therein. We ought also to bless him
-for carrying us through many difficulties that lay in our way, some of
-which we have been almost ready to think insurmountable; as also for
-bringing us under the means of grace, in which the providence of God is
-more remarkable, in those who have not been favoured with a religious
-education in their childhood; and more especially if these means have
-been made effectual to answer the highest and most valuable ends.
-
-There are other mercies which some have reason to bless God for, who are
-arrived to old age, which is the last stage of life, wherein the frame
-of nature is declining and hastening apace to a dissolution. These, I
-say, have reason to be thankful, if they have not, as it were, outlived
-themselves, wholly lost their memory and judgment, by which means they
-would have been brought back again, as it were, to the state of
-childhood, as some have been; or, if old age be not pressed down beyond
-measure, with pain and bodily diseases, or a multitude of cares and
-troubles about outward circumstances in the world, which would tend to
-embitter the small remains of life, which has not much strength of
-nature to bear up under great troubles, nor can those methods be made
-use of, whereby others, without much difficulty, are able to extricate
-themselves out of them: But they, of all others, have most reason to
-bless God, who can look back on a long series of usefulness, in
-proportion to the number of years they have lived; so that that promise
-is fulfilled to them, _They shall still bring forth fruit in old age;
-they shall be fat and flourishing_, Psal. xcii. 14. This is more than a
-common mercy, and therefore requires a greater degree of thankfulness,
-when it may be said of them, _The hoary head is a crown of glory, being
-found in the way of righteousness_, Prov. xvi. 31. and grace keeps equal
-pace with age; and they have nothing to do but to wait for a release,
-from a careful, vain, uneasy life to heaven. Thus concerning the
-occasions we have for thankfulness in every age of life.
-
-_2dly_, We are now to consider the reason that we have to be thankful in
-the various circumstances or conditions of life; particularly,
-
-_1st_, When we have a great measure of outward prosperity, which is more
-than many enjoy; which calls for a proportionable degree of
-thankfulness, especially if it be sanctified and sweetened with a sense
-of God’s special love, so that it is a pledge and earnest of better
-things reserved for us hereafter. When we have the good things of this
-life for our conveniency, that our passage through the world may be more
-easy and comfortable to us; and yet we have ground to hope that this is
-not our portion, or that we are not like those whom the Psalmist speaks
-of, and calls _the men of the world, who have their portion in this
-life_, Psal. xvii. 14. or, like the rich man in the parable, to whom it
-was said, _Son, remember that thou in thy life-time receivedst thy good
-things_, Luke xvi. 25. We have reason to bless God when outward
-prosperity is a means of our glorifying him, and being more serviceable
-to promote his interest, and not a snare or occasion of sin, when it is
-not like the _prosperity of fools_, which has a tendency to _destroy
-them_, Prov. i. 32. or when what is said concerning that murmuring
-generation of men, whom the Psalmist speaks of, that _lusted exceedingly
-in the wilderness, and tempted God in the desert_: so that though _he
-gave them their request, he sent leanness into their soul_, is not
-applicable to us, Psal. cvi. 14, 15. Again, when we enjoy the outward
-blessings of providence, and, at the same time, live above them; so that
-our hearts are not too much set upon them; but we are willing to part
-with them, when God is about to deprive us of them, or take us from
-them; and when outward enjoyments are helps, and not hindrances to us in
-our way to heaven. These are inducements to the greatest thankfulness,
-and ought to be acknowledged to the glory of God.
-
-_2dly_, We have reason to be thankful, though it pleases God to follow
-us with many afflictions and adverse providences in the world: These are
-not, indeed, to be reckoned blessings in themselves; nevertheless, they
-are not inconsistent with a thankful frame of spirit; especially,
-
-_1st_, When we take occasion from hence to be affected with the vanity,
-emptiness, and uncertainty of all outward comforts, which perish in the
-using.
-
-_2dly_, When afflictive providences have a tendency to humble and make
-us submissive to the divine will, so that we are hereby led to have a
-deep sense of sin, the procuring cause thereof. Thus Ephraim speaks of
-his being chastised by God, and, at the same time, _ashamed and
-confounded_, as _bearing the reproach_ of former sins committed by him,
-Jer. xxxi. 18, 19. or, when those sins, which before prevailed, are
-hereby prevented, and we enabled to mortify them: Thus the Psalmist
-says, _Before I was afflicted, I went astray; but now I have kept thy
-word_, Psal. cxix. 67. And when God is pleased to cause his grace to
-abound as outward troubles abound. 2 Cor. iv. 16. and when the want of
-outward mercies makes us see the worth of them, and puts us upon
-improving every instance of the divine goodness, as a great inducement
-to thankfulness.
-
-_3dly_, We have reason to be thankful under afflictions, when we have a
-comfortable hope that they are evidences of our being God’s children,
-interested in his special love, Heb. xii. 7. so that we have ground to
-conclude, that he is hereby training us up, and making us more meet for
-the heavenly inheritance, so that we can say with the apostle, _Our
-light affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh for us a far more
-exceeding and eternal weight of glory_, 2 Cor. iv. 17.
-
-[2.] We are to express our thankfulness for those mercies which we call
-relative, or for the blessings that others enjoy, in whose welfare we
-are more immediately concerned. As it is the duty of every one to desire
-the good of all men; so we ought to bless God for the mercies bestowed
-on others as well as ourselves. The relation we stand in to others, is
-either more general or extensive, and, in this respect, it may include
-in it all mankind; and accordingly we are to be thankful for the mercies
-which our fellow-creatures receive from the hand of God, inasmuch as
-hereby the divine perfections are magnified: And, as for those who
-receive the blessings that accompany salvation, the ends of Christ’s
-death, and the dispensation of the gospel, are hereby attained; and
-whatever mercies God bestows on others, we bless him for them, as taking
-encouragement to hope that he will bestow the same blessings upon us,
-when we stand in need of them.
-
-As for those who are related to us in the bonds of nature, or as members
-of the family to which we belong, for whose welfare we are more
-immediately concerned, we may, in some measure, reckon the mercies they
-enjoy, our own, and therefore should be induced to bless God, and be
-thankful for them, as well as for those which we receive in our
-persons.—There is also another relation, which is more large and
-extensive, namely, that which we stand in to all the members of Christ’s
-mystical body, whom the apostle calls _the household of faith_, Gal. vi.
-10. and, as such, supposes them to be entitled to our more special
-regard: Accordingly we are to express our thankfulness to God, in
-prayer, for all the mercies they receive, especially those that are of a
-spiritual nature; inasmuch as herein Christ is glorified, and his
-interest advanced, which ought to be dearer to us than any thing that
-relates to our own private or personal interest, as the Psalmist speaks
-of his preferring Jerusalem’s welfare above _his chief joy_, Psal.
-cxxxvii. 6. And that which farther inclines us to do this, is, because
-we hope that we shall be made partakers of the same blessings, whereby
-others will have occasion to bless God on our behalf. Thus concerning
-the inducements we have to thankfulness for blessings received, either
-by ourselves or others.
-
-I shall conclude this head by considering, that thankfulness, which
-ought to be a great ingredient in prayer, is always to be accompanied
-with the exercise of other graces, whereby we are disposed to adore and
-magnify the divine perfections that are displayed in the distribution of
-those favours which we bless him for; together with an humble sense of
-our own unworthiness of the least of those mercies which we enjoy, and
-an earnest desire that we may be enabled, not only to do this in words,
-but to express our thankfulness to him by such a frame of spirit as is
-agreeable thereto.
-
-There are two things more, contained in the answer we have been
-explaining, without the due consideration whereof, the duty of prayer
-would be very imperfectly handled, namely, its being an offering up of
-our desires to God in the name of Christ, and by the help of the Spirit:
-But since these are particularly insisted on in some following answers,
-I have purposely waved the consideration of them at present.
-
-Footnote 103:
-
- _See Quest._ CLI.
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLXXIX., CLXXX., CLXXXI.
-
-
- QUEST. CLXXIX. _Are we to pray unto God only?_
-
- ANSW. God only being able to search the hearts, hear the requests,
- pardon the sins, and only to be believed in, and worshipped with
- religious worship, prayer, which is a special part thereof, is to be
- made by all to him alone, and to none other.
-
- QUEST. CLXXX. _What is it to pray the name of Christ?_
-
- ANSW. To pray in the name of Christ is in obedience to his command,
- and in confidence on his promises to ask mercy for his sake, not by
- bare mentioning of his name, but by drawing our encouragement to
- pray, and our boldness, strength, and hope of acceptance in prayer,
- from Christ and his mediation.
-
- QUEST. CLXXXI. _Why are we to pray in the name of Christ?_
-
- ANSW. The sinfulness of man, and his distance from God by reason
- thereof, being so great as that we can have no access into his
- presence without a Mediator; and there being none in heaven or earth
- appointed to, or fit for that glorious work, but Christ alone; we
- are to pray in no other name but his only.
-
-In these answers we have a farther explication of what is briefly laid
-down in the last; and that, more especially, as to what respects the
-object of prayer; and the method prescribed in the gospel, relating to
-our drawing nigh to God, through a mediator, which is called praying in
-the name of Christ; together with the reason hereof.
-
-I. It is observed, that prayer is to be made to God alone, and to none
-other. This appears,
-
-1. Because it is an act of religious worship, which is due to none but
-God; as our Saviour says, _Thou shalt worship the Lord thy God, and him
-only shalt thou serve_, Matt. iv. 10.—This can be denied by none who
-are, in any measure, acquainted either with natural or revealed
-religion; in which we are obliged to extol, adore, and admire those
-divine perfections which are displayed in the works of nature and grace,
-and to seek that help from him, and those supplies of grace that we
-stand in need of to make us completely blessed, which supposes him to be
-infinitely perfect and all-sufficient. Now to ascribe this divine glory
-to a creature, either directly, or by consequence, is, in effect, to say
-that he is equal with God, and thereby to rob him of that glory that is
-due to him alone, to seek that from the creature, that none but God can
-give, or to ascribe any of the perfections of the divine nature to it,
-is the highest affront that can be offered to the divine Majesty. Now as
-prayer without adoration and invocation, is destitute of those
-ingredients which render it an act of religious worship; so to address
-ourselves, in such a way, to any one but God, is an instance of such
-profaneness and idolatry, as is not to be mentioned without the greatest
-detestation.
-
-2. Prayer is to be made only to God, inasmuch as he only is able to
-search the heart, which is a glory peculiar to himself, in which he is
-distinguished from all creatures, 1 Kings viii. 39. Acts i. 24. It is
-the heart that is principally to be regarded in prayer: If this be not
-right with God, there is no glory that we can ascribe to him, that will
-be reckoned any better than _flattering him with our mouth_, and _lying
-to him with our tongues_, Psal. lxxviii. 36, 37. as the Psalmist says:
-Therefore, the inward frame of our spirit, and the principle, or spring
-from whence all religious duties proceed, being only known to God,
-prayer is only to be directed to him.
-
-3. He alone can hear our requests, pardon our sins, and fulfil our
-desires. Prayer, when addressed to God, is not like that in which we
-desire those favours from men, which are of a lower nature, whereby some
-particular wants are supplied, in those respects in which one creature
-may be of advantage to another; but when we pray to God, we seek those
-blessings which are the effects of infinite power and goodness, such as
-may make us completely happy, both in this and a better world. Moreover,
-we are to implore forgiveness of sin from him in prayer; which is a
-blessing none can bestow but God, Mark ii. 7. for as his law is the rule
-by which the goodness or badness of actions are determined; and the
-threatening which he has annexed to it, is that which renders us liable
-to that punishment sin deserves; so it is he alone that can remit the
-debt of punishment, which we are liable to, and give us a right and
-title to forfeited blessings; which being the principal thing that we
-are to seek for in prayer, this argues that none but God is the object
-thereof.
-
-4. God alone is to be believed in: Accordingly prayer, if it be
-acceptable to him, must be performed by faith. Thus the apostle says,
-_How shall they call on him, in whom they have not believed?_ Rom. x.
-14. There must be a firm persuasion that he can grant us the blessings
-we ask for; herein faith addresses itself to him as God all-sufficient;
-and is persuaded that he will fulfil all his promises, as a God of
-infinite faithfulness; and accordingly we are to give up ourselves
-entirely to him as our proprietor and bountiful benefactor, the only
-fountain of blessedness, and object of religious worship: This is to be
-done by faith in prayer, and consequently it is to be directed to God
-only.
-
-II. We are now to consider what it is to pray in the name of Christ:
-This doth not consist barely in a mentioning his name; which many do
-when they ask for favours for his sake, without a due regard to the
-method God has ordained; in which we are to draw nigh to him by Christ
-our great Mediator, who is to be glorified as the person by whom we are
-to have access to God the Father as the fountain of all the blessings,
-which are communicated to us in this method of divine grace. To come to
-God in Christ’s name, includes in it the whole work of faith, as to what
-it has to plead with, or hope for, from him, through a Mediator, in that
-way which he has prescribed to us in the gospel. And this more
-especially consists in our making a right use of what Christ has done
-and suffered for us, as the foundation of our hope, that God will be
-pleased to grant us what he has purchased thereby; which contains the
-sum of all that we can desire, when drawing nigh to him in prayer. Here
-let it be considered,
-
-1. That the thoughts of having to do with an absolute God, cannot but
-fill us with the utmost distress and confusion, when we consider
-ourselves as guilty sinners, and God, out of Christ, as a sin-revenging
-Judge, a consuming fire, Heb. xii. 29. in which case we may well say, as
-our first parent did, immediately after his fall, _I heard thy voice and
-I was afraid_, Gen. iii. 10.
-
-2. God is obliged, in honour, as a God of infinite holiness, to separate
-and banish sinners from his comfortable presence, they being liable to
-the curse and condemning sentence of the law; by reason whereof his
-terror makes them afraid, and his dread falls upon them; nevertheless,
-
-3. They have, in the gospel, not only an invitation to come, but a
-discovery of that great Mediator, whom God has ordained to conduct his
-people into his presence, having procured liberty of access to him, or,
-as the apostle expresses it, _boldness to enter into the holiest by his
-blood, by a new and living way, which he has consecrated for us through
-the vail, that is to say, his flesh_, Heb. x. 19, 20. and he has, for
-this end, erected a throne of grace, and encouraged us to come to it,
-and given many great and precious promises, whereby we may hope for
-acceptance in his sight; these being all established in Christ, and the
-blessings contained therein procured by his blood, and having liberty,
-in coming, to plead what he has done and suffered, as what was designed
-to be the foundation of our hope of obtaining mercy, we are said to come
-and make our supplications to God in the name of Christ.
-
-III. We are now to consider the reason why we are to pray in the name of
-Christ; and that we have in one of the answers we are explaining. In
-which it is observed; that man, by sin, is set at such a distance from
-God, that he cannot, by any means, come into his presence. God cannot
-look upon him with any delight or complacency; inasmuch as his guilt
-renders him the object of his abhorrence; and he cannot do any thing
-which has a tendency to reconcile God to him, and therefore he is
-speechless, and can ask for no blessing at his hand. And it is farther
-observed, that there is none in heaven or earth, that is, no mere
-creature, that is fit for that glorious work; none has a sufficiency of
-merit to present to God, whereby he may be said to make atonement for
-sin; or, as Job expresses it, there is _no days-man that might lay his
-hand on both_ parties, Job ix. 33. that is, able to deal with God in
-paying a ransom; which he may, in honour accept of; or with man, by
-encouraging him to hope that he shall obtain the blessings which he
-stands in need of; and bringing him into such a frame, that he may draw
-nigh to God in a right manner. This is only owing to our Lord Jesus
-Christ; and he does it as our great Mediator, who alone is fit to manage
-this important work; therefore we are to pray to God, only in his name,
-who is, by divine appointment, an advocate with the Father, pleading our
-cause before his throne, and thereby giving us ground of encouragement,
-that our persons shall be accepted, and our prayers answered upon his
-account, who is the only Mediator of redemption and intercession, in
-whom God is well pleased, and gives a believer ground to conclude that
-he shall not seek his face in vain.
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLXXXII., CLXXXIII., CLXXXIV.
-
-
- QUEST. CLXXXII. _How doth the Spirit help us to pray?_
-
- ANSW. We not knowing what to pray for as we ought, the Spirit
- helpeth our infirmities, by enabling us to understand both for whom,
- and what, and how prayer is to be made, and by working and
- quickening in our hearts (although not in all persons, not at all
- times in the same measure) those apprehensions, affections, and
- graces, which are requisite for the right performance of that duty.
-
- QUEST. CLXXXIII. _For whom are we to pray?_
-
- ANSW. We are to pray for the whole church of Christ, upon earth, for
- magistrates and ministers, for ourselves, our brethren, yea, our
- enemies, and for all sorts of men living, or that shall live
- hereafter, but not for the dead, nor for those that are known to
- have sinned the sin unto death.
-
- QUEST. CLXXXIV. _For what things are we to pray?_
-
- ANSW. We are to pray for all things tending to the glory of God, the
- welfare of the church, our own, or other’s good, but not for any
- thing that is unlawful.
-
-As there is no duty that we can perform in a right manner, without help
-obtained from God—And the same may be said, in particular, concerning
-that of prayer: Accordingly we are led,
-
-I. To speak of the help that the Spirit of God is pleased to afford
-believers, in order to their engaging aright in this duty. Here we may
-observe,
-
-1. That it is supposed that we know not what to pray for as we ought, or
-how to bring our souls into a prepared frame for this duty, without the
-Spirit’s assistance.
-
-(1.) We are oftentimes at a loss with respect to the matter of prayer;
-and this may be said to proceed from our being unacquainted with
-ourselves, and not duly sensible of our wants, weaknesses, or secret
-faults: Sometimes we cannot determine whether we are in a state of grace
-or no; or, if we are, whether it is increasing or declining; or, if we
-have ground to complain by reason of the hidings of God’s face, and our
-want of communion with him, we are oftentimes hard put to it to find out
-what is that secret sin which is the occasion of it; nor are we
-sufficiently apprized of the wiles of Satan, or the danger we are in of
-being ensnared or overcome thereby. Moreover, we are oftentimes not able
-to know how to direct our prayers to God aright, as we know not what is
-most conducive to his glory, or what it is that he requires of us,
-either in obedience to his commanding will, or in submission to his
-providential will. Hence it arises, that many good men, in scripture,
-have asked for some things which have been in themselves unlawful,
-through the weakness of their faith, and the prevalency of their
-corruption: Thus some have desired, that God would call them out of this
-world by death, being impatient under the many troubles they met with
-therein; accordingly we read concerning Elijah, that ‘he requested for
-himself that he might die, and said, It is enough; now, O Lord, take
-away my life; for I am not better than my fathers,’ 1 Kings xix. 4. and
-Job says, ‘O that I might have my request! and that God would grant me
-the thing that I long for! Even that it would please God to destroy me;
-that he would let loose his hand, and cut me off,’ Job vi. 8, 9. And
-Jonah says, ‘O Lord, I beseech thee, take my life from me; for it is
-better for me to die than to live,’ Jonah iv. 3. And Moses, though he
-had the character of the meekest man upon earth, and doubtless excelled
-all others in his day, in those graces which he had received from God,
-as well as in the great honours conferred on him; yet he puts up a most
-unbecoming prayer, both as to the matter and manner thereof; as it is
-observed, that he said unto the Lord, ‘Wherefore hast thou afflicted thy
-servant? and wherefore have I not found favour in thy sight, that thou
-layest the burden of all this people upon me? Have I conceived all this
-people? have I begotten them, that thou shouldest say unto me, Carry
-them in thy bosom (as a nursing-father beareth the sucking child) unto
-the land which thou swarest unto their fathers? Whence should I have
-flesh to give unto all this people? for they weep unto me, saying, Give
-us flesh, that we may eat. I am not able to bear all this people alone,
-because it is too heavy for me. And if thou deal thus with me, kill me,
-I pray thee, out of hand, if I have found favour in thy sight; and let
-me not see my wretchedness,’ Numb. xi. 11-15. And, in another instance,
-he asks for a thing which he knew before hand, that God would not grant
-him, when he says, ‘I pray thee, let me go over and see the good land
-that is beyond Jordan, that goodly mountain, and Lebanon:’ Upon which
-God says, ‘Let it suffice thee, speak no more unto me of this matter,’
-Deut. iii. 25, 26.—Many instances of the like nature are mentioned in
-scripture; and, indeed, nothing is more obvious from daily experience,
-that what the apostle James observes, that persons ‘ask and receive not,
-because they ask amiss,’ James iv. 3. or what the apostle Paul says, ‘We
-know not what we should pray for as we ought,’ Rom. viii. 26.
-
-(2.) We are, at other times, straitened in our affections, and so know
-not how to ask any thing with a suitable frame of spirit: It is certain
-we cannot excite our affections, or especially put forth those graces
-which are to be exercised in prayer, when we please. Our hearts are
-sometimes dead, cold, and inclined to wander from God in this duty; and,
-at other times, we pray with a kind of indifferency, as though it was of
-no great importance whether our prayer were answered or no. How seldom
-do we express that importunity in this duty which Jacob did, ‘I will not
-let thee go, except thou bless me?’ Gen. xxxii. 26. And as for those
-graces that are to be exercised in prayer, we often want that reverence,
-and those high and awful thoughts of the divine Majesty, which we ought
-to have, who draw nigh to a God of infinite perfection; nor, on the
-other hand, do we express those low and humble thoughts of ourselves, as
-our own meanness, the imperfection of our best performances, and the
-infinite distance which we stand at from God, ought to suggest; and to
-this we may add, that we are often destitute of that love to Christ, and
-trust in him, which are necessary to the right performance of this duty,
-as also of that hope of being heard, which is a very great encouragement
-to it.
-
-2. We are now to enquire wherein the Spirit is said to help our
-infirmities; and this may be considered as adapted to that two-fold
-necessity which we are often under, respecting the matter or frame of
-spirit with which this duty is to be performed.
-
-(1.) The Spirit helps our infirmities, with respect to the matter of
-prayer. This is not in the least derogatory to his divine glory, if he
-is pleased to condescend thus to converse with man, and it is not
-contrary to the nature of things; for the Spirit, being a divine Person,
-searches the heart, and can impress those ideas on the souls of his
-people, whereby they may be led into the knowledge of those things that
-they ought to ask in prayer, with as much facility as any one can convey
-his ideas to another by words. If it was impossible for God to do this,
-his providence could not be conversant about intelligent creatures, any
-otherwise than in an objective way, in which it would not differ from
-that which may be attributed to finite spirits. And it would have been
-impossible for God to have imparted his mind and will by extraordinary
-revelation, (without which, it could not have been known) if he may not,
-though it be in an ordinary way, communicate those ideas to the souls of
-his people, whereby they may be furnished with matter for prayer.
-
-I am not pleading for extraordinary revelation; for that is to expect a
-blessing that God does not now give to his people: But I only argue from
-the greater to the less; whereby it may appear, that it is not
-impossible, or absurd, from the nature of the thing, or contrary to the
-divine perfections, for God to impress the thoughts of men in an
-ordinary way; since he formerly did this in an extraordinary, as will be
-allowed by all, who are not disposed to deny and set aside revealed
-religion. Moreover, there was such a thing in the apostle’s days, as
-being led by the Spirit, which was distinguished from his miraculous and
-extraordinary influences, as a Spirit of inspiration; otherwise, it is
-certain, he would not have assigned this as a character of the children
-of God, which he does, Rom. viii. 14. And when our Saviour promises his
-people the _Spirit to guide them into all truth_, John xvi. 13. I cannot
-think that this only respected the apostles, or their being led into the
-truths that they were to impart to the church by divine inspiration; but
-it seems to be a privilege that belongs to all believers: Therefore, we
-conclude, that it is no absurdity to suppose that he may assist his
-people, as to what concerns the matter of their prayers, or suggest to
-them those becoming thoughts which they have in prayer, when drawing
-nigh to God in a right manner.
-
-Some have enquired, whether we may conclude that the Spirit of God
-furnishes his people with words in prayer, distinct from his impressing
-ideas on their minds? This I would be very cautious in determining, lest
-I should hereby not put a just difference between this assistance of the
-Spirit, that believers hope for, and that which the prophets of old
-received by inspiration. I dare not say, that the Spirit’s work consists
-in furnishing believers with proper expressions, with which their ideas
-are clothed, when they engage in this duty, but rather with those
-suitable arguments and apprehensions of divine things, which are more
-immediately subservient thereunto: Accordingly the apostle, speaking of
-the Spirit’s assisting believers, when they know not what to pray for as
-they ought, says, that he does this _with groanings that cannot be
-uttered_: that is, he impresses on their souls those divine breathings
-after things spiritual and heavenly, which they sometimes,
-notwithstanding, want words to express; though, at the same time, the
-frame of their spirits may be under a divine influence, which God is
-said to know the meaning of, when he graciously hears and answers their
-prayers, how imperfect soever they may be, as to the mode of expression.
-
-(2.) The Spirit helps our infirmities by giving us a suitable frame of
-spirit, and exciting those graces which are to be exercised in this duty
-of prayer. This the Psalmist calls, _preparing their hearts_; which God
-does, and then _causes his ear to hear_, Psal. x. 17. which is a very
-desirable blessing; and, in order to our understanding it aright, let it
-be considered,
-
-[1.] That we cannot, without the Spirit’s assistance, bring our hearts
-into a right frame for prayer; and that is the reason why we engage in
-this duty, in such a manner as gives great uneasiness to us when we
-reflect upon it; so that when we pretend to draw nigh to God, we can
-hardly say that we worship him as God, but become vain in our
-imaginations; and the corruption of our nature discovers itself more at
-this time than it does on other occasions; and Satan uses his utmost
-endeavours to distract and disturb our thoughts, and take off the edge
-of our affections; whereby we seem not really to desire those things
-which, with our lips, we ask at the hand of God. As for an unregenerate
-man, he has not a principle of grace, and therefore cannot pray in
-faith, or with the exercise of those other graces which he is destitute
-of; and the believer is renewed but in part, and therefore, if the
-Spirit is not pleased to excite the principle of grace which he has
-implanted, he is very much indisposed for this duty, which cannot be
-performed aright without his assistance.
-
-[2.] We are, nevertheless, to use our utmost endeavours, in order
-thereunto, hoping for a blessing from God to succeed them. Accordingly,
-we are to meditate on the divine perfections, and the evil of sin, which
-is contrary thereunto; whereby we are rendered guilty, defiled, and
-unworthy to come into the presence of God; yet we consider ourselves as
-invited to come to him in the gospel, and encouraged by his promise and
-grace, to cast ourselves before his footstool, in hope of obtaining
-mercy from him.
-
-We are also to examine ourselves, that we may know what sins are to be
-confessed by us, and what are those necessities which will afford matter
-for petition or supplication in prayer, together with the mercies we
-have received; which are to be thankfully acknowledged therein. We are
-also to consider the many encouragements which we have, to draw nigh to
-God in this duty, taken from his being ready to pardon our iniquities,
-heal our backslidings, help our infirmities, and grant us undeserved
-favours. We must also impress on our souls a due sense of the
-spirituality of the duty we are to engage in, and that we have to do
-with the heart-searching God, who will be worshipped with reverence and
-holy fear; and therefore we are to endeavour to excite all the powers
-and faculties of our souls, to engage in this duty in such a way that we
-may hereby glorify his name, and hope to receive a gracious answer from
-him.
-
-[3.] When we have used our utmost endeavours to bring ourselves into a
-praying frame, yet we must depend on the Holy Spirit to give success
-thereunto, that we may be enabled to exercise those graces that are more
-especially his gift and work: And, in order thereunto,
-
-_1st_, We must give glory to him as the author of regeneration, since no
-grace can be exercised in this duty but what proceeds from a right
-principle, or a nature renewed, and internally sanctified, and disposed
-for the performance hereof; which is his work, as the _Spirit of grace
-and of supplication_, Zech. xii. 10.
-
-_2dly_, As we are to draw nigh to God in this duty, as a reconciled God
-and Father, if we hope to be accepted by him; so we are to consider,
-that this is the peculiar work of the Spirit, whereby we are _enabled to
-cry, Abba, Father_, Rom. viii. 15. Gal. iv. 6. This will not only
-dispose us to perform this duty in a right manner, so as to enable us to
-pray in faith; but it will afford us ground of hope that our prayers
-will be heard and answered by him.
-
-_3dly_, Inasmuch as we often are straitened in our spirits, which is a
-great hindrance to us in this duty, we must consider it as a peculiar
-blessing and gift of the Holy Ghost, to have our hearts enlarged; which
-the Psalmist intends, when he says, _Bring my soul out of prison, that I
-may praise thy name_, Psal. cxlii. 7. and it is a peculiar branch of
-that liberty which he is pleased to bestow on his people, under the
-gospel-dispensation; as the apostle says, _Where the Spirit of the Lord
-is, there is liberty_, 2 Cor. iii. 17. And by this means our affections
-will be raised, and we enabled to pour out our souls before him.
-
-This may give us occasion to enquire concerning the difference that
-there is between raised affections in prayer, which unregenerate persons
-sometimes have, from external motives; and those which the Spirit
-excites in us as a peculiar blessing, whereby he assists us in the
-discharge of this duty. There are several things in which they differ;
-as,
-
-_1st_, The former of these oftentimes proceeds from a slavish fear and
-dread of the wrath of God; the latter from a love to, and desire after
-him, which arises from the view we have of his glory, as our covenant
-God, in and through a Mediator.
-
-_2dly_, Raised affections in unregenerate persons, are seldom found, but
-when they are under some pressing affliction, in which case, as the
-prophet says, _They will seek God early_, Hos. v. 15. but when this is
-removed, the affections grow stupid, cold, and indifferent, as they were
-before his afflicting hand was laid upon them: Whereas, on the other
-hand, a believer will find his heart drawn forth after God and divine
-things, when he is not sensible of any extraordinary affliction that
-gives vent to his passions; or he finds, that as afflictions tend to
-excite some graces in the exercise whereof his affections are moved, so
-when it pleases God to deliver him from them, his affections are still
-raised while other graces are exercised agreeably thereunto.
-
-_3dly_, Raised affections, in unregenerate men, for the most part, carry
-them forth in the pursuit of those temporal blessings which they stand
-in need of: Thus when Esau sought the blessing carefully with tears, it
-was that outward prosperity which was contained therein, that he had
-principally in view, as disdaining that his brother Jacob should be
-preferred before him; or, as it is said, _made his Lord, and his
-brethren given him for servants_, Gen. xxvii. 37. but he had no regard
-to the spiritual or saving blessings contained therein: Whereas, a
-believer is most concerned for, and affected with those blessings that
-immediately accompany salvation, or contain in them the special love of
-God, or communion with him, which he prefers to all other things: Thus
-the Psalmist says, _There be many that say, Who will shew us any good?
-Lord, lift thou up the light of thy countenance upon us_, Psal. iv. 6.
-And to this we may add,
-
-_4thly_, Whatever raised affections unregenerate persons may have, they
-want a broken heart, an humble sense of sin, and an earnest desire that
-it may be subdued and mortified; they are destitute of self-denial, and
-other graces of the like nature, which, in some degree, are found in a
-believer, when assisted by the Spirit, in performing the duty of prayer
-in a right manner.
-
-From what has been said concerning the Spirit’s assistance in prayer, we
-may infer,
-
-_1st_, That there is a great difference between the gift and the grace
-of prayer: The former may be attained by the improvement of our natural
-abilities, and is oftentimes of use to others who join with us therein;
-whereas the latter is a peculiar blessing from the Spirit of God, and an
-evidence of the truth of grace.
-
-_2dly_, They who deny that the Spirit has any hand in the work of grace,
-and consequently disown his assistance in prayer, cannot be said to give
-him that glory that is due to him, and therefore must be supposed to be
-destitute of his assistance, and very deficient as to this duty.
-
-_3dly_, Let us not presume on the Spirit’s assistance in prayer, while
-we continue in a course of grieving him, and quenching his holy motions.
-
-_4thly_, Let us desire raised affections, as a great blessing from God,
-and yet not be discouraged from engaging in prayer, though we want them;
-since this grace, as well as all others, is dispensed in a way of
-sovereignty: And if he is pleased, for wise ends, to withhold his
-assistance; yet we must not say, why should I wait on the Lord any
-longer?
-
-_5thly_, If we would pray in the Spirit, or experience his help, to
-perform this duty in a right manner, let us endeavour to walk in the
-Spirit, and to maintain a spiritual, holy, self-denying frame, at all
-times, if we would not be destitute of it, when we engage in this duty.
-This leads us to consider,
-
-II. The persons for whom we are to pray; and on the other hand, who are
-not to be prayed for.
-
-1. As to the former of those: It is observed,
-
-(1.) That we are to pray for the whole church of Christ upon earth; by
-which we are to understand, all those that profess the faith of the
-gospel, especially such whose practice is agreeable to their profession;
-and in particular, all those religious societies who consent to walk in
-those ordinances whereby they testify their subjection to Christ, as
-king of saints. The particular members of which these societies consist,
-are, for the most part, unknown to us; so that we cannot pray for them
-by name, or as being acquainted with the condition and circumstances in
-which they are; yet they are not to be wholly disregarded, or excluded
-from the benefit of our prayers: Thus the apostle speaks of the _great
-conflict he had_, not only _for them at Laodicea; but, for as many as
-had not seen his face in the flesh_, Col. ii. 1. This is a peculiar
-branch of the communion of saints, and it is accompanied with those
-earnest desires which we have, that God may be glorified in them, and by
-them, as well as ourselves; particularly we are to pray,
-
-[1.] That they may be united together in love to God and to one another,
-John xvii. 21. That this may be attended with all those other graces and
-comforts which are an evidence of their interest in Christ.
-
-[2.] That they may have the special presence of God with them in all his
-ordinances, which will be a visible testimony of his regard to them, and
-an honour put on his own institutions, as well as an accomplishment of
-what he promised to his apostles just before he ascended into heaven,
-that he would _be with them always even unto the end of the world_, Mat.
-xxviii. 20.
-
-[3.] That they may be supported under the burdens, difficulties and
-persecutions which they meet with, either from the powers of darkness or
-wicked men, for Christ’s sake, that so the promise may be made good to
-them, that _the gates of hell shall not prevail against them_, chap.
-xvi. 18.
-
-[4.] That there may be added to particular churches out of the world,
-many such as shall be saved, Acts ii. 47. which shall be an argument of
-the success of the gospel: And when we pray, that God would magnify his
-grace in bringing sinners home to himself, we are to pray for the
-accomplishment of those promises that respect the conversion of the
-Jews: Thus the apostle says, _Brethren, my heart’s desire and prayer to
-God for Israel is, that they might be saved_, Rom. x. 1. and, that there
-may be a greater spread of the gospel throughout the most remote and
-dark parts of the earth, among whom Christ is, at present, unknown: This
-the apostle calls _The fulness of the Gentiles coming in_, chap. xi. 25.
-and it is agreeable to what is foretold by the prophet Isaiah, in chap.
-lx. which seems not as yet to have had its full accomplishment.
-
-[5.] We are to pray that the life of faith and holiness may be daily
-promoted in all the faithful members of the church of Christ, that they
-may be enabled more and more to adorn the doctrine of God, our Saviour,
-and be abundantly satisfied, and delighted with the fruits and effects
-of his redeeming love.
-
-[6.] That God would accept of those sacrifices of prayer and praise that
-are daily offered to him by faith, in the blood of Christ, in every
-worshipping assembly, which will redound to the advantage of all the
-servants of Christ, whom they think themselves obliged to make mention
-of in their prayers, as well as to the glory of God, which is owned and
-advanced thereby.
-
-[7.] That the children of believers, who are devoted to God, may be
-under his special care and protection, that they may follow the
-footsteps of the flock, and fill up the places of those who are called
-off the stage of this world; that so there may be a constant supply of
-those who shall bear a testimony to Christ and his gospel in the rising
-generation.
-
-[8.] That the members of every particular church of Christ may acquit
-themselves so as that they may honour him in the eyes of the world, and
-be supported and carried safely through this waste howling wilderness,
-till they arrive at that better country for which they are bound; and
-that they may not be foiled or overcome while they are in their militant
-state, but may be joined with the church triumphant in heaven.
-
-(2.) We are to pray for magistrates. This is not only included in the
-general exhortation given us to _pray for all men_; but they are
-particularly mentioned by the apostle, and it is intimated that it is
-_good and acceptable in the sight of God our Saviour,_ 1 Tim. ii. 1-3.
-This also may be argued from hence, that magistracy is God’s ordinance,
-Rom. xiii. 1, 2. and there is no ordinance which is enstamped with the
-divine authority, though it may principally respect civil affairs; but
-we are to pray that God would succeed and prosper it, that it may answer
-the valuable ends for which it was appointed.
-
-Now there are several things that we are to pray for in the behalf of
-magistrates, _viz._ that they may approve themselves rulers after God’s
-own heart, to _fulfil all his will,_ Acts xii. 26. as was said of David;
-that their counsels and conduct may be ordered for his glory, and the
-good of his church; that they may not be a _terror_ to good _works;_
-namely, to persons that perform them, but _to the evil_; and so _may not
-bear the sword in vain,_ Rom. xiii. 3, 4. Accordingly we are to pray,
-that they may be a public blessing to all their subjects, and herein
-that promise may be fulfilled; _Kings shall be thy nursing-fathers, and
-their queens thy nursing-mothers,_ Isa. xlix. 23. and, as an instance
-hereof, that under them _we may lead a quiet and peaceable life,
-godliness and honesty,_ 1 Tim. ii. 2. And, as to what concerns their
-subjects, that their authority may not be abused and trampled on by
-them, on the one hand, while they take occasion to offend with impunity;
-nor be dreaded as grievous to others who feel the weight thereof, in
-instances of injustice and oppression.
-
-(3.) We are to pray for ministers. This is a necessary duty, inasmuch as
-their work is exceeding great and difficult; so that the apostle might
-well say, _Who is sufficient for these things,_ 2 Cor. ii. 16. And,
-indeed, besides the difficulties that attend the work itself, there are
-others that they meet with, arising from the unstable temper of
-professed friends, who sometimes, as the apostle says, _become their
-enemies for telling them the truth,_ Gal. iv. 16. or from the restless
-malice and violent opposition of open enemies; which evidently takes its
-rise from that inveterate hatred that they bear to Christ and his
-gospel. Moreover, as they have difficulties in the discharge of the work
-they are called to, so they must give an account to God for their
-faithfulness therein; and it is of the highest importance that they do
-this _with joy, and not with grief,_ Heb. xiii. 17, 18. as the apostle
-speaks; and immediately he intreats the church’s prayers, as that which
-was necessary in order hereunto. Now there are several things which
-ought to be the subject-matter of our prayers, with respect to
-ministers.
-
-[1.] That God would send forth a supply or succession of them, to answer
-the church’s necessities; inasmuch as _the harvest is plenteous_, as our
-Saviour observes, _but the labourers are few,_ Matt. xi. 37, 38.
-
-[2.] That they may answer the character which the apostle gives of a
-faithful minister; and accordingly _study to shew themselves approved
-unto God, workmen that need not to be ashamed, rightly dividing the word
-of truth,_ 2 Tim. ii. 15.
-
-[3.] That they may be directed and enabled to impart those truths that
-are substantial, edifying, and suitable to the circumstances and
-condition of their hearers.
-
-[4.] That they may be spirited with zeal, and love to souls, in the
-whole course of their ministry; that the glory of God, and the
-advancement of his truth may lie nearest their hearts, and a tender
-concern and compassion for the souls of men, may incline them to use
-their utmost endeavours, as the apostle speaks, _to save them with fear,
-pulling them out of the fire,_ Jude, ver. 23.
-
-[5.] That their endeavours may be attended with success, which, in some
-measure, may give them a comfortable hope that they are called,
-accepted, and approved of by God, which, from the nature of the thing
-will tend to their own advantage, who make this the subject of our
-earnest prayers on their behalf; and, indeed, the neglect of performing
-this duty, may, in some measure, be assigned as one reason why the word
-is often preached with very little success; so that this ought to be
-performed, not barely as an act of favour, but as a duty that redounds
-to our own advantage.
-
-(4.) We are to pray, not only for ourselves and our brethren, but for
-our enemies. That we are to pray for ourselves, none ever denied, how
-much so ever many live in the neglect of this duty; and as for our
-obligation to pray for our brethren, that is founded in the law of
-nature; which obliges us to love them as ourselves, and, consequently,
-to desire their welfare, together with our own.
-
-However, it may be enquired, what we are to understand by our brethren,
-for whom we are to express this great concern in our supplications to
-God? For the understanding of which, let it be considered, that, besides
-those who are called _brethren_, in the most known acceptation of the
-word, as Jacob’s sons tell Joseph, _We be twelve brethren, sons of one
-father,_ Gen. xlii. 32. it is sometimes taken, in scripture, for any
-near kinsman: Thus Abraham and Lot are called _brethren_, chap. xiii. 8.
-though they were not sons of the same father, for Lot was Abraham’s
-brother’s son, chap. xi. 31. this is a very common acceptation of the
-word in scripture. Again, it is sometimes taken in a more large sense,
-for those who are members of the same church: Thus the apostle calls
-those that belonged to the church at Colosse, _the saints and faithful
-brethren in Christ,_ Col. i. 2. and sometimes they who are of the same
-nation, are called brethren: Thus it is said, _When Moses was full forty
-years old, it came into his heart to visit his brethren the children, of
-Israel,_ Acts vii. 23. And it is sometimes taken for those who make
-profession of the same religion with ourselves; and also for those who
-are kind and friendly to us: Thus it is said, _A friend loveth at all
-times, and a brother is born for adversity,_ Prov. xvii. 17. and,
-indeed, the word is sometimes taken in the largest sense that can be, as
-comprizing in it all mankind, who have the same nature with ourselves, 1
-John iv. 21. These are objects of love, and therefore our prayers are,
-especially in proportion to the nearness of the relation they stand in
-to us, to be directed to God on their behalf. Some, indeed, are allied
-to us by stronger bonds than others; but none, who are entitled to our
-love, pity, and compassion, are to be wholly excluded from our prayers.
-
-This will farther appear, if we consider that we are also to pray for
-our enemies, as the law of nature obliges us to do good for evil; and
-consequently, as our Saviour says, we are to _pray for them which
-despitefully use us, and persecute us,_ Matt. v. 44. We are not, indeed,
-to pray for them, that they may obtain their wicked and unjust designs
-against us; or that they may have power and opportunity to hurt us; for
-that is contrary to the principle of self-preservation, which is
-impressed on our nature; but we are to pray for them.
-
-[1.] That however they carry it to us they may be made Christ’s friends,
-their hearts changed, and they enabled to serve his interest; that they,
-together with ourselves, may be partakers of everlasting salvation;
-therefore it is a vile thing, and altogether inconsistent with the
-spirit of a christian, to desire the ruin, much more the damnation of
-any one, as many wickedly and profanely do.
-
-[2.] We are to pray that their corruptions may be subdued, their tempers
-softened, and their hearts changed; so that they may be sensible of, and
-lay aside their unjust resentments against us. And,
-
-[3.] If they are under any distress or misery, we are not to insult or
-take pleasure in beholding it, but to pity them, and to pray for their
-deliverance, as much as though they were not enemies to us.
-
-(5.) We are to pray not only for all sorts of men now living; according
-to what is contained in the last head, but for those that shall live
-hereafter. This includes in it an earnest desire that the interest of
-Christ may be propagated from generation to generation; and his kingdom
-and glory advanced in the world until his second coming: Thus the
-Psalmist says, _He will regard the prayer of the destitute, and not
-despise their prayer: This shall be written for the generation to come;
-and the people which shall be created, shall praise the Lord_, Psal.
-cii. 17, 18. and our Saviour says, _Neither pray I for these alone, but
-for them also which shall believe on me through their word_, John xvii,
-20.
-
-2. We are now to consider those who are excluded from our prayers; and
-these are either such as are dead, or those who have sinned the sin unto
-death.
-
-(1.) We are not to pray for the dead. This is asserted in opposition to
-what was maintained and practised by some in the early ages of the
-church, and paved the way for those abuses and corruptions which are
-practised by the church of Rome, at this day, who first prayed for the
-dead, and afterwards proceeded farther in praying for them. The first
-step that was taken leading hereunto, seems to have been their being
-guilty of great excesses in the large encomiums they made in their
-public anniversary orations, in commemoration of the martyrs and
-confessors, who had suffered in the cause of christianity. This was done
-at first, with a good design, viz. to excite those who survived, to
-imitate them in their virtues, and to express their love to the cause
-for which they suffered; but afterwards they went beyond the bounds of
-decency in magnifying and extolling them; and then they proceeded yet
-farther, in praying for them; This is often excused, by some modern
-writers, from the respect they bear to them, who first practised it;
-though it can hardly be vindicated from the charge of will-worship,
-since no countenance is given to it in scripture.
-
-That which is generally alleged in their behalf, is, that they supposed
-the souls of believers did not immediately enter into heaven, but were
-sequestered, or disposed of in some place inferior to it, which they
-sometimes call _paradise_, or _Abraham’s bosom_, where they are to
-continue till their souls are re-united to their bodies. Whether this
-place be above or below the earth, all are not agreed; but their mistake
-arises from their misunderstanding those scriptures which describe
-heaven under these metaphorical characters of _paradise_, or _Abraham’s
-bosom_[104]. Here they suppose that they are, indeed, delivered from the
-afflictions and miseries of this present life; but yet not possessed of
-perfect blessedness in God’s immediate presence. Therefore they
-conclude, that there was some room for prayer, that the degree of
-happiness which they were possessed of, might be continued, or rather,
-that it might in the end, be perfected, when they are raised from the
-dead, and admitted to partake of the heavenly blessedness.
-
-Others thought, that at death, the sentence was not peremptorily past
-either on the righteous or the wicked, so that there was room left for
-them to pray for the increase of the happiness of the one, or of the
-mitigation of the torment of the other; and therefore, in different
-respects, they prayed for all, both good and bad, especially for those
-who were within the pale or inclosure of the church; and above all, for
-such as were useful to, and highly esteemed by it.
-
-The principal thing that is said in vindication of this practice (for
-what has been but now mentioned, as the ground and reason thereof, will
-by no means justify it) is, that though the souls of believers are in
-heaven; yet their happiness will not be, in all respects, complete, till
-the day of judgment: Therefore, in their prayers, they chiefly had
-regard to the consummation of their blessedness at Christ’s second
-coming, together with the continuance thereof, till then; without
-supposing that they received any other advantage thereby. And, inasmuch
-as this is not a matter of uncertainty, they farther observe, that many
-things are to be prayed for, which shall certainly come to pass, whether
-we pray for them or no; _e. g._ the gathering of the whole number of the
-elect, and the coming of Christ’s kingdom of glory: Therefore they
-suppose, that the advantage principally redounds to those who put up
-prayers to God for them, as hereby they express their faith in the
-doctrine of the resurrection, and the future blessedness of the saints,
-and the communion that there is between the church militant and
-triumphant.
-
-This is the fairest colour that can be put upon that ancient practice of
-the church, and the many instances that we meet with, in the writings of
-the Fathers, concerning their prayers for the dead[105].
-
-Thus concerning the practice of the church, before we read of the
-fictitious place which the Papists call _purgatory_; where they fancy,
-that separate souls endure some degrees of torment, and are relieved by
-the prayers of their surviving friends; which was not known to the
-church before the seventh century; and is without any foundation from
-scripture, as has been before observed under a foregoing answer[106].
-Now since this was formerly defended, and is now practised by the
-Papists, the contrary doctrine is asserted in this answer, _viz._ that
-we are not to pray for the dead; and that this may farther appear, let
-it be considered,
-
-That the state of every man is unalterably fixed, at death; so that
-nothing remains which can be called an addition to the happiness of the
-one, or the misery of the other, but what is the result of the re-union
-of the soul and body at the resurrection; and therefore to pray that the
-saints may have greater degrees of glory conferred upon them, or sinners
-a release from that state of misery in which they are, is altogether
-ungrounded; and therefore such prayers must be concluded to be unlawful.
-
-That the state of man is fixed at death is sufficiently evident from
-scripture: Thus our Saviour, in the parable of the _rich man_ and
-_Lazarus_, speaks of the one as immediately _carried by the angels into
-Abraham’s bosom_, Luke xvi. 22, _&c._ (by which, notwithstanding what
-some ancient writers have asserted to the contrary, we are to understand
-heaven;) and the other as being in a place of _torments_, without any
-hope or probability of the least mitigation thereof; whereby hell, not
-purgatory is intended: And the apostle says, _It is appointed unto men
-once to die, and after this the judgment_, Heb. ix. 27, by which he
-intends, that all men must leave the world; and when they are parted
-from it, their state is determined by Christ; though this is not done in
-so public and visible a manner, as it will be in the general judgment:
-If therefore the state of men be unalterably fixed at death; it may be
-justly inferred from thence, that there is no room for any one to put up
-prayers to God on their behalf: Prayer must have some proof on which it
-relies, otherwise it cannot be addressed to God by faith; or, as the
-apostle expresses it, _nothing wavering_, James i. 6. Now, if we have no
-ground to conclude that our prayers shall be heard and answered; or have
-any doubt in our spirits whether the thing prayed for be agreeable to
-the will of God; such a prayer cannot be put up in faith, and therefore
-is not lawful.
-
-_Obj._ 1. The Papists, in defence of the contrary doctrine, are very
-much at a loss for scriptures to support it: However, there is one,
-taken from a passage in the apocryphal writings, in which Judas
-Maccabeus, and his company, are represented as praying and offering a
-sin-offering, and thereby making reconciliation for the dead, _i. e._
-some that had been slain in battle, 2 Maccab. xii. 43,-45.
-
-_Answ._ The reply that some make to this, is, that the prayers for the
-dead here spoken of, are of a different nature from those which the
-Papists make use of in the behalf of those whom they pretend to be in
-purgatory, or, that they prayed for nothing but what some of the
-Fathers, as before-mentioned did, _viz._ that they might be raised from
-the dead, whereby they expressed their faith in the doctrine of the
-resurrection: But, I think there is a better reply may be given to it,
-namely, that the argument is not taken from any inspired writing; and
-therefore no more credit is to be given to it than any other human
-composure, in which some things are true, and others false: And as for
-this book in particular, the author himself plainly intimates that he
-did not receive it by divine inspiration; for he says, _If I have done
-well, and as it is fitting the story, it is that which I desired; but if
-slenderly and meanly, it is that which I could attain unto_, chap. xv.
-38. which is very honestly said; but not like an inspired writer, and
-therefore nothing that is said therein is a sufficient proof of any
-important article of faith or practice, such as that is, which we are
-now defending.
-
-_Obj._ 2. It is farther objected, that the apostle Paul puts up a short
-and affectionate prayer for Onesiphorus, in 2 Tim. i. 18. _The Lord
-grant unto him, that he may find mercy of the Lord in that day_;
-whereas, it is concluded by some, that, at the time the apostle wrote
-this epistle, Onesiphorus was dead, since there are two petitions put
-up, one in this verse for him, and another in ver. 16. for _his house_;
-and in chap. iv. 19. when he salutes some of his friends, according to
-his custom, he makes mention of the _household of Onesiphorus_, not of
-him. This turn Grotius himself gives of this scripture[107]. And the
-Papists greedily embrace it, as it gives countenance to their practice
-of praying for the dead.
-
-_Answ._ It is but a weak foundation that this argument is built on; for
-though Paul salutes his household, and not himself, in the close of this
-epistle, it does not follow from hence, that he was dead; for he might
-be absent from his family at this time, as he often was, when engaged in
-public service, as being sent by the church, as their messenger, to
-enquire concerning the progress and success of the gospel in other
-parts; or to carry relief to those who were suffering in Christ’s cause:
-It may be, the apostle might be informed that he was then in his way to
-Rome, where he was himself a prisoner when he wrote this epistle; and if
-so, it would not have been proper to send salutations to him, whom he
-expected shortly to see, while, at the same time, he testified the great
-love he bore to him and all his family, as being a man of uncommon zeal
-for the interest of Christ and religion.
-
-(2.) They are not to be prayed for who have sinned the sin unto death.
-This sin we read of, as what excludes persons from forgiveness, in
-scripture, Matt. xii. 32. in which such things are said concerning it,
-as should make us fear and tremble, not only lest we should be left to
-commit it, but give way to those sins which border upon it; and there is
-enough expressed therein to encourage us to hope that we have not
-committed it; which is the principal thing to be insisted on, when we
-treat on this subject in our public discourses, or any are tempted to
-fear, lest they are guilty of it. Here let it be observed, that though
-it be called _the sin unto death_, we are not to suppose that it is one
-particular act of sin, but rather a course or complication of sins,
-wherein there are many ingredients of the most heinous nature. And,
-
-[1.] That it cannot be committed by any but those who have been favoured
-with gospel light; for it always contains in it a rejection of the
-gospel, which supposes the revelation or preaching thereof.
-
-[2.] It is not merely a rejecting the gospel, though attended with
-sufficient objective evidence, in those who have not had an inward
-conviction of the truth thereof, or whose opposition to it proceeds
-principally from ignorance, as the apostle says concerning himself, that
-_though he was a blasphemer, a persecutor, and injurious; yet he
-obtained mercy, because he did it ignorantly, in unbelief_, 1 Tim. i.
-13.
-
-[3.] It is a rejecting the gospel which we once professed to embrace,
-and therefore carries in it the nature of apostacy: Thus the Scribes and
-Pharisees, when they attended on John’s ministry, professed their
-willingness to adhere to Christ, and afterwards, when he first appeared
-publicly in the world, they were convinced in their consciences, by the
-miracles which he wrought, that he was the Messiah; though, after this
-they were offended in him, and ashamed to own him, because of the
-humbled state and condition in which he appeared in the world; for which
-reason, they, in particular, were charged with this sin in the scripture
-before-mentioned.
-
-[4.] It also contains in it a rejecting of Christ and the known truth,
-out of envy, and this attended with reviling, persecuting, and using
-their utmost endeavours to extirpate and banish it out of the world, and
-beget in the minds of men the greatest detestation of it: Thus the Jews
-are said to _deliver Christ out of envy_, Matt. xxvii, 18. and with the
-same spirit they persecuted the gospel.
-
-[5.] Such as are guilty of this sin, have no conviction in their
-consciences of any crime committed herein; but stop their ears against
-all reproof, and set themselves, with the greatest hatred and malice,
-against those, who, with faithfulness, admonish them to the contrary.
-
-[6.] They go out of the way of God’s ordinances, and wilfully exclude
-themselves from the means of grace, which they treat with the utmost
-contempt, and use all those endeavours that are in their power, that
-others may be deprived of them.
-
-[7.] This condition they not only live but die in; so that their
-apostacy is not only total, but final.
-
-However, I cannot but observe, that some are of opinion that this sin
-cannot be now committed, because we have not the dispensation of
-miracles, whereby the Christian religion was incontestibly proved, in
-our Saviour’s and the apostles’ time: And the main thing in which it
-consisted in the scripture before-mentioned, in Matt. xii. was, in that
-the Pharisees were charged with saying, that Christ _cast out devils by
-Beelzebub, the prince of the devils_; whereby they intimate that those
-miracles, which they had before been convinced of the truth of, as being
-wrought by the finger of God, were wrought by the devil: which supposes
-that they were eye-witnesses to such-like miracles wrought, which we
-cannot be: Therefore it is concluded by some, that this sin cannot now
-be committed; inasmuch as the dispensation of miracles is ceased. But
-this method of reasoning will not appear so strong and conclusive, if we
-consider, that though, it is true, the gospel is not now confirmed to us
-by miracles; yet we have no less ground to believe that the christian
-religion was confirmed by this means, than if we had been present at the
-working of these miracles. Nevertheless, though it should be alleged,
-that this ingredient cannot, in every circumstance, be contained in the
-sin against the Holy Ghost, in our day; yet there are other things
-included in the description of it, before-mentioned, in which it
-principally consists, that bear a very great resemblance to that sin
-which we have been considering: As for instance, if persons have
-formerly believed Christ to be the Messiah, and been persuaded that this
-was incontestibly proved by the miracles which he wrought, and
-accordingly, were inclined to adhere to him, and embrace the gospel,
-wherein his person and glory are set forth; and yet have afterwards
-apostatized from this profession; and if this had been attended with
-envy and malice against Christ; and if they have treated the evidence
-which they once acknowledged, the Christian religion, to have been
-undeniably supported by, with contempt and blasphemy; and have totally
-rejected that faith which they once professed, arising from carnal
-policy, and the love of this world; and when this is attended with
-judicial hardness of heart, blindness of mind, and strong delusions,
-together with a rooted hatred of all religion, and a malicious
-persecution of those that embrace it; This is what we cannot but
-conclude to bear a very great resemblance to that which, in scripture,
-is called the unpardonable sin; and it is a most deplorable case, which
-should be so far improved by us, as that we should use the utmost
-caution, that we may not give way to those sins which bear the least
-resemblance to it: Nevertheless, doubting christians are to take heed
-that they do not apply this account that has been given of it to
-themselves, so as to lead them to despair; which is not the design of
-any description thereof, which we have in scripture. Now that these may
-be fortified against such-like objections, let it be considered,
-
-_1st_, That it is one thing peremptorily to determine that it is
-impossible for any one to commit this sin in our day, since the
-dispensation of miracles is ceased, (which is, in effect, to suppose
-that we can have no evidence for the truth of the Christian religion,
-but what is founded on occular demonstration; such as they who saw
-Christ’s miracles;) and another thing to determine concerning particular
-persons, that they are guilty of this sin. It is certain that this
-matter might be determined with special application to particular
-persons in our Saviour’s and the apostles’ time, when there was among
-other extraordinary gifts, that of discerning of spirits; and
-consequently it might be known, whether they who apostatized from the
-faith of the gospel, had before this, received a full conviction of the
-truth thereof; and it might then be known, by extraordinary revelation,
-that God would never give them repentance, and therefore their apostacy
-would be final; and, it is more than probable, that this was supposed by
-the apostle, when he speaks of some that had committed this sin, who are
-not to be prayed for: But these things cannot be known by us; therefore
-I would not advise any one to forbear to pray for the worst of sinners,
-who seem most to resemble those that are charged with this sin, this
-matter not being certainly known by us.
-
-_2dly_, That which is principally to be considered for the encouragement
-of those who are afraid that they have committed this sin, is, that
-persons certainly know that they have not committed it, though they are
-in an unregenerate state; as,
-
-_1st_, When _they have not had opportunity_, or those means that are
-necessary to attain the knowledge of the truth, and so remain ignorant
-thereof; or if they have had sufficient means to know it, they have not
-committed this sin, _if they desire and resolve to wait on God in his
-ordinances_, in order to their receiving good thereby.
-
-_2dly_, They _who are under conviction of sin_, disapprove of, and _have
-some degree of sorrow and shame for it_, may certainly conclude that
-they have not committed the sin against the Holy Ghost.
-
-_3dly_, If persons have reason to think that their hearts are hardened
-through the deceitfulness of sin, and that they are greatly backslidden
-from God; yet they ought not to conclude that they have committed this
-sin, _if they are afraid lest they should be given up to a perpetual
-backsliding_, or dread nothing more than a total and a final apostacy;
-upon which account they are induced to pray against it, and to _desire a
-broken heart, and that faith, which, at present, they do not
-experience_. In this case, though their state be dangerous, yet they
-ought not to determine against themselves, that they have committed the
-sin unto death.
-
-The use which we ought to make of this awful doctrine, and the hope that
-there is that we have not committed this sin is,
-
-1. That we should _take heed that we do not give way to wilful
-impenitency, and a contempt of the means of grace_, lest we should
-provoke God to give us up to judicial hardness of heart, so as to make
-sad advances towards the commission thereof: Let us take heed that we do
-not sin against the light and conviction of our own consciences, _and
-wilfully neglect and oppose the means of grace_, which, whether it be
-the sin unto death or no, is certainly a crime of the most heinous and
-dangerous tendency.
-
-2. Let doubting christians _take heed that they do not give way to
-Satan’s suggestions_, tempting them to conclude that they have committed
-this sin; which they are sometimes afraid that they have, though they
-might determine that they have not, did they duly weigh what has been
-but now observed concerning this matter.
-
-3. _Let us bless God, that yet there is a door of hope, and resolve by
-his grace_, that we will always wait on him in the ordinances which he
-has appointed, till he shall be pleased to give us ground to conclude
-better things concerning ourselves, even things that accompany
-salvation. This leads us to consider,
-
-III. What we are to pray for; particularly,
-
-1. For those things which concern the glory of God. And that we may know
-what they are, we are to enquire; whether, if God should give us what we
-ask for, it would have a tendency to set forth any of his divine
-perfections, and thereby render him amiable and adorable in the eyes of
-his creatures, so that in answering our prayers, he would act becoming
-himself? We are also to take an estimate of this matter, from the
-intimation he has given us hereof in his word, in which we may observe,
-not only whether he has given us leave, but commands and encourages us
-to ask for it; more especially, whether he has promised to give it to
-us; and, whether our receiving the blessing we ask for, has a tendency
-to fit us for his service, that hereby praise that waits for him, may be
-ascribed to him.
-
-2. We are to pray for those things which concern our own good, or the
-good of others. These are particularly insisted on in the Lord’s prayer,
-which is explained in the following answers; therefore it is sufficient
-for us, at present, to consider the good we are to pray for in general,
-namely, temporal blessings, which are the effects of divine bounty,
-concerning which, our Saviour says, _Your heavenly Father knoweth that
-ye have need of these things_, Mat. vi. 32. We are also to pray for
-spiritual blessings, such as forgiveness of sin, strength against it,
-and the sanctifying influences of the Spirit, to produce in us holiness
-of heart and life; as also, for deliverance from, and victory over our
-spiritual enemies. We are also to pray for the consolations of the holy
-Ghost, arising from assurance of the love of God, whereby we may have
-peace and joy in believing; and for all those blessings which may make
-us happy in a better world.
-
-3. We are to pray for those things which are lawful to be asked of God;
-and accordingly,
-
-(1.) The things we pray for, must be such as it is possible for us to
-receive, and particularly such as God has determined to bestow, or given
-us ground to expect, in this present world: Therefore we are not to pray
-for those blessings to be applied here, which he has reserved for the
-heavenly state; such as a perfect freedom from sin, tribulation or
-temptation, or our enjoying the immediate views of the glory of God:
-These things are to be desired in that time and order, in which God has
-determined to bestow them; therefore we are to wait for them till we
-come to heaven, and, at present, we are to desire only to be made
-partakers of those privileges which he gives to his children in their
-way thither.
-
-(2.) We are not to pray that God would inflict evils on others, to
-satisfy our private revenge for injuries done us; since this is, in
-itself, unlawful, and unbecoming a Christian frame of spirit, and
-contrary to that duty which was before considered, of our praying for
-our very enemies, and seeking their good.
-
-(3.) We are not to ask for outward blessings without setting bounds to
-our desires thereof; nor are we to ask for them unseasonably, or for
-wrong ends. We are not to pray for them as though they were our chief
-good and happiness, or of equal importance with things that are more
-immediately conducive to our spiritual advantage; and therefore,
-whatever measure of importunity we express in praying for them, it is
-not to be inconsistent with an entire submission to the divine will, as
-being satisfied that God knows what is best for us; or, whether that
-which we desire, will, in the end, prove good or hurtful to us; much
-less ought we to ask for outward blessings, that we may abuse, and, as
-the apostle James speaks, _Consume them upon our lusts_, James iv. 3.
-
-Footnote 104:
-
- _See page 317._
-
-Footnote 105:
-
- _That several of the Fathers practised and pleaded for praying for the
- dead, is evident from what Cyprian says, Epist. xxxix. concerning the
- church’s offering sacrifices, by which he means prayers for the
- martyrs; among whom, he particularly mentions Laurentius and Ignatius,
- on the yearly return of those days, on which the memorial of their
- martyrdom was celebrated. And Eusebius, in the life of Constantine,
- Lib. iv. Cap. lxxi. when speaking concerning the funeral obsequies
- performed for that monarch, says, that a great number of people, with
- tears and lamentations poured forth prayers to God for the emperor’s
- soul. And Gregory Nazianzen prayed for his brother Cæsarius after his
- death. Vid. Ejusd in Fun. Cæsar, Orat. x. Also Ambrose prayed for the
- religious emperors, Valentinian and Gratian, and for Theodosius, and
- for his brother Satyrus. Vid. Ejusd. de obit. Valentin. Theodos. &
- Satyr. And Augustin speaks of his praying for his mother Monica, after
- her decease, in Confess. Lib. ix. Cap. xiii. And Epiphanius defends
- this practice with so much warmth, that he can hardly forbear charging
- the denial hereof as one of Aerius’s heresies. Vid. Epiphan. hæeres.
- lxxv. And some Popish writers, when defending their praying for the
- dead, have, with more malice than reason, charged the Protestants with
- being Aerians, upon this account._
-
-Footnote 106:
-
- _See Quest. lxxxvi. page 313._
-
-Footnote 107:
-
- _Vid. Grot. in loc._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLXXXV.
-
-
- QUEST. CLXXXV. _How are we to pray?_
-
- ANSW. We are to pray with an awful apprehension of the Majesty of
- God, and deep sense of our own unworthiness, necessities, and sins,
- with penitent, thankful, and enlarged hearts, with understanding,
- faith, sincerity, fervency, love, and perseverance, waiting upon
- him, with humble submission to his will.
-
-This answer respects the manner of performing this duty, and the frame
-of spirit with which we are to draw nigh to God. Accordingly,
-
-1. We are to pray with an awful apprehension of the Majesty of God;
-otherwise our behaviour would be highly resented by him, and reckoned no
-other than a thinking him altogether such an one as ourselves. Some of
-the divine perfections have a more immediate tendency to excite an holy
-reverence; accordingly we are to consider him as omnipresent, and
-omniscient, to whom our secret thoughts, and the principle from whence
-our actions proceed, are better known than they can be to themselves. We
-are to conceive of him as a God of infinite holiness; and therefore he
-cannot but be highly displeased with that worship that is opposite
-thereunto, as proceeding from a conscience defiled with sin, or
-performed in an unholy manner. Thus the prophet says, _Thou art of purer
-eyes than to behold evil, and canst not look on iniquity_, Hab. i. 13.
-that is, thou canst not behold it without the utmost detestation; and
-therefore, _if we regard it in our heart, he will not hear_ our prayers,
-Psal. lxvi. 18. We are also to have a due sense of the spirituality of
-his nature, that we may worship him in a spiritual manner; therefore we
-are not to entertain any carnal conceptions, or frame any ideas of him,
-like those we have of finite or corporeal beings; nor are we to think it
-sufficient, that our external mien and deportment have been grave, and
-carried in it a shew of reverence, when our hearts have not, at the same
-time, been engaged in this duty, or disposed to give him the glory that
-is due to his name. We are also to draw nigh to him with a due sense of
-those perfections that tend to encourage us to perform this duty, with
-hope of finding acceptance in his sight. Therefore we are to conceive of
-him, as a God of infinite goodness, mercy, and faithfulness, with whom
-is plenteous redemption, in and through a Mediator, which is suitable to
-our condition, as indigent, miserable, and guilty sinners; and a God of
-infinite power, who is _able to do exceeding abundantly above all we are
-able to ask or think_, Eph. iii. 20.
-
-2. We are to pray to God with an humble sense of our own unworthiness.
-This is the necessary result of those high conceptions we have of his
-divine excellency and greatness; whereby we are led to consider
-ourselves as infinitely below him; and, indeed, the best of creatures
-are induced hereby to worship him with the greatest humility: Thus the
-Seraphim are represented in that vision, which the prophet Isaiah had of
-them, as ministering to, and attending upon our Lord Jesus, when sitting
-on a throne on his temple; as _covering their faces and their feet with
-their wings_, denoting their unworthiness to behold his glory, or to be
-employed by him in his service, Isa. vi. 1-4. But when we take a view of
-his infinite holiness, and our own impurity, this should be an
-inducement to us to draw nigh to him, with the greatest humility: As
-dependent creatures, we have nothing but what we derive from him; as
-frail dying creatures, we wither away, and are brought to nothing, Job
-xiii. 25. Job compares this to a leaf that is easily broken, and driven
-to and fro, or to the dry stubble, that can make no resistance against
-the wind that pursues it; and the Psalmist, speaking of man in general,
-says, _Lord, what is man, that thou takest knowledge of him; or the son
-of man, that thou makest account of him?_ Psal. civ. 3. And elsewhere it
-is said, _What is man, that thou shouldest magnify him, and that thou
-shouldest set thine heart upon him?_ Job vii. 17. These are humbling
-considerations; but we shall be led into a farther sense of our own
-unworthiness, when we consider ourselves as sinful creatures, worthy to
-be abhorred by God; therefore he might justly reject us, and refuse to
-answer our prayers. But since this humble frame of spirit is so
-necessary for the right performance of this duty, let us farther
-observe, as an inducement hereunto.
-
-(1.) That the greatest glory we can bring to God can make no addition to
-his infinite perfections: Thus it is said, _Can a man be profitable unto
-God, as he that is wise may be profitable unto himself? Is it any
-pleasure, that is, any advantage, to the Almighty, that thou art
-righteous? or is it gain to him, that thou makest thy ways perfect?_ Job
-xxiii. 2, 3. And elsewhere, _If thou be righteous, what givest thou him,
-or what receiveth he of thy hand?_ ch. xxxv. 7. denoting that it is
-impossible for us, by any thing we can do or suffer for his sake, to
-make him more glorious than he would have been in himself, had we never
-had a being: Therefore, if there is nothing by which we can lay any
-obligations on God, we have reason to address ourselves to him with a
-sense of our own unworthiness.
-
-(2.) We are so far from meriting any good thing from the hand of God,
-that by our repeated transgressions, notwithstanding the daily mercies
-we receive from him, we give farther proofs of our great unworthiness;
-and, indeed, if we are enabled to do any thing in obedience to his will,
-this is not from ourselves; yea, it is contrary to the dictates of
-corrupt nature, and must be ascribed to him as the author of it.
-
-(3.) If we could do the greatest service to God by espousing his cause,
-and promoting his interest in the world; it is no more than what we are
-bound to do; and, at the same time we must consider, that _it is God
-that worketh in_ us, _both to will and to do of his good pleasure_,
-Phil. ii. 13.
-
-(4.) The best believers recorded in scripture, have entertained a
-constant, humble sense of their own unworthiness: Thus Abraham, when he
-stood before the Lord, making supplications in the behalf of Sodom,
-expresses himself thus, _Behold, now I have taken upon me to speak unto
-the Lord, who am but dust and ashes_. And Jacob says, _I am not worthy
-of the least of all thy mercies, and of all the truth which thou hast
-shewed unto thy servant_, Gen. xxxii. 10. And they who have been most
-zealous for, and made eminently useful in promoting Christ’s interest in
-the world, have had an humble sense of their own unworthiness; as the
-apostle says concerning himself, _I am the least of the apostles, that
-am not meet to be called an apostle_, 1 Cor. xv. 9. And he immediately
-adds, _By the grace of God I am what I am_, ver. 10. And elsewhere he
-styles himself, _less than the least of all saints_, Eph. iii. 8.
-
-We have another instance of humility in prayer, in the Psalmist’s words,
-_I am a worm, and no man_, Psal. xxii. 6. which, so far as they have any
-reference to his own case, may give us occasion to infer, that the most
-advanced circumstances, in which any are in the world, are not
-inconsistent with humility, when drawing nigh to God in prayer; but if
-we consider him speaking in the person of Christ, as several expressions
-of this Psalm argue him to do, and cannot well be taken in any other
-sense[108]; then we have herein the most remarkable instance of the
-humble address that was used by Christ in his human nature, when drawing
-nigh to God in prayer; which is certainly a great motive to induce us to
-engage in this duty with the utmost humility.
-
-3. We are to draw nigh to God in prayer, with a sense of our
-necessities, and the sins that we have committed against him.
-Accordingly, we are to consider ourselves as indigent creatures, who are
-stripped and deprived of that glory, and those bright ornaments which
-were put on man at first in his state of innocency; destitute of the
-divine image, and all those things that are necessary to our happiness,
-unless he is pleased to supply these wants, forgive our iniquities, and
-grant us communion with himself; which things we are to draw nigh to him
-in prayer for. We are also, in this duty, to have a sense of sin, _viz._
-the guilt that we contract thereby, and the punishment we have exposed
-ourselves to, that we may see our need of drawing nigh to God in
-Christ’s righteousness; and also of the stain and pollution thereof,
-which may induce us to fall down before the footstool of the throne of
-grace, with the greatest degree of self-abhorrence. We are also to
-consider how we are enslaved to sin, how much we have been, and how
-prone we are at all times, to _serve divers lusts and pleasures_, Tit.
-iii. 3. and to _walk according to the course of this world, according to
-the prince of the power of the air, the spirit that now worketh in the
-children of disobedience_, Eph. ii. 2.
-
-Moreover, we are to consider sin as deeply rooted in our hearts,
-debasing our affections, and captivating our wills. If we are in an
-unconverted state, we are to look upon it as growing and encreasing in
-us, rendering us more and more indisposed for what is good, by which
-means we are set at a farther distance from God and holiness: On the
-other hand, if we have ground to hope we are made partakers of
-converting grace, then we have acted contrary to the highest
-obligations, and been guilty of the greatest ingratitude. These things
-we are to endeavour to be affected with, when drawing nigh to God in
-prayer, in order to our performing this duty aright.
-
-4. There are several graces that are to be exercised in prayer;
-
-(1.) Repentance: This is necessary, because we are sinners; and as such,
-are to come into the presence of God with confession, joined with
-supplication which must be made with a penitent frame of spirit; the
-contrary to which, is a tacit approbation of sin, and a kind of
-resolution to adhere to it, which is very unbecoming those who are
-pleading for forgiveness: Accordingly, when God promised that he would
-_pour out upon the house of David, and upon the inhabitants of
-Jerusalem, the spirit of grace and of supplications_, he adds, that
-_they shall look upon him, whom they have pierced, and mourn for him_,
-or for it, _as one mourneth for his only son; and shall be in
-bitterness, as one that is in bitterness for his first-born_: And that
-this shall be done by _every family apart, and their wives apart_, Zech.
-xii. 10. _& seq._ So when _the priests, the ministers of the Lord_, are
-commanded to _pray_, that _he_ would _spare his people_; they, are, at
-the same time, to _weep between the porch and the altar, to rent their
-hearts, and turn unto the Lord their God_, Joel ii. 13. 17. And when
-Israel is advised to _take with them words_, and instructed how they
-should pray, they are exhorted to _turn unto the Lord_; to repent of
-their seeking help from Assyria and Egypt, and of that abominable
-idolatry which they had been guilty of, Hos. xiv. 1, 2, 3, 8.
-
-Now there are several subjects very proper for our meditation; which
-may, through the divine blessing accompanying it, excite this grace,
-when we are engaged in the duty of prayer; particularly the multitude of
-transgressions which are charged on the consciences of men by the law,
-that _every mouth may be stopped, and all the world become guilty before
-God_, Rom. iii. 19. and especially the ingratitude which we have reason
-to accuse ourselves of, and our contempt of Christ, and the way of
-salvation by him, which is discovered in the gospel; and our having done
-many things in the course of our lives, which fill us with shame and
-sorrow, whenever we come into the presence of God, to pour out our
-hearts before him in this duty.
-
-(2.) The next grace to be exercised in prayer is, thankfulness, in which
-respect prayer and praise ought to be joined together: Thus the Psalmist
-says, _Praise waiteth for thee O God, in Zion, and unto thee shall the
-vow be performed, O thou that hearest prayer_, Psal. lxv. 1, 2. That
-this is a part of prayer has been observed under a foregoing answer; in
-which we considered the many blessings that we have reason to be
-thankful for. I shall only add, at present, that it is matter of
-thankfulness, that we have liberty of access to God, in hope of
-obtaining mercy from him, as sitting on a throne of grace, who might
-have been forever banished from his presence, or have been brought
-before his judgment-seat as criminals, doomed to everlasting
-destruction.
-
-Moreover, we are to bless him, not only that we have leave to come
-before him, but have often experienced that he has heard, and answered
-our prayers, and therein has fulfilled that promise, _I said not to the
-seed of Jacob, seek ye me in vain_, Isa. xlv. 19. And that we may be
-brought into a thankful frame, we ought to consider,
-
-[1.] The worth of every mercy; especially those that are spiritual, or
-accompany salvation; and this we may judge of by the price that was paid
-for it, which is no less than the blood of Jesus; which the apostle not
-only styles _precious_, but speaks of it as infinitely preferable to
-every thing that is _corruptible_, 1 Pet. i. 18, 19. And we may, in some
-measure, take an estimate thereof by the worth and excellency of the
-soul, and as it is conducive to promote its eternal welfare.
-
-[2.] We are also to consider every saving blessing, as the fruit and
-result of everlasting love, and as the consequence of God’s eternal
-design, in having chosen those, who are the objects thereof, to
-salvation in Christ, Jer. xxxi. 3. Eph. i. 3, 4. We must also consider
-these mercies as discriminating, whereby God distinguishes his people
-from the world, and herein glorifies the riches of his grace, in those
-who deserve to have been, for ever, the monuments of his wrath: We might
-here consider, as an inducement to this grace of thankfulness, the
-aggravations of the sin of ingratitude.
-
-_1st_, It is a virtual disowning our obligation to, or dependence on
-God, from whom we receive all mercies, and a behaving ourselves in such
-a manner as though we were not beholden to him for them, or could be
-happy without him; as though we were self-sufficient, and did not look
-upon him as the fountain of blessedness.
-
-_2dly_, It is a refusing to give him the glory of his wisdom, power,
-goodness, and faithfulness, which are eminently displayed in the
-blessings that he bestows.
-
-_3dly_, It is disagreeable to the large expectations we have of those
-blessings he has reserved for his people, or promised to them, or that
-hope which he has laid up for them in heaven. Therefore we cannot but
-conclude that ingratitude argues a person destitute of that holiness
-which eminently discovers itself in the exercise of the contrary grace:
-Accordingly the apostle joins these two characters together, when
-speaking of the vilest of men, whom he styles, _unthankful, unholy_, 2
-Tim. iii. 2.
-
-(3.) Another grace, to be exercised in prayer, is faith. This implies an
-habitual disposition of soul, proceeding from a principle of
-regenerating grace, whereby we are led to commit ourselves, and all our
-concerns, into Christ’s hand, depending on his merits and mediation for
-the supply of all our wants, considering him as having purchased, and as
-being authorized to apply, all the benefits of the covenant of grace,
-which are the subject-matter of our supplications to him. More
-particularly, faith exerts and discovers itself in prayer,
-
-[1.] By encouraging the soul, and giving it an holy boldness to draw
-nigh to God, notwithstanding our great unworthiness. If we are afraid to
-come into the presence of an holy God, and, destruction from him is a
-terror to us, if the threatnings he has denounced against sinners, such
-as we know ourselves to be, discourage us from drawing nigh to him, so
-that we are ready to say with Job, ‘Therefore am I troubled at his
-presence; when I consider, I am afraid of him,’ Job xxiii. 15. If his
-almighty power, that can easily sink us into perdition, overwhelms our
-spirits, and fills us with the utmost distress and confusion, so that we
-cannot draw nigh to him in prayer, considering him as an absolute God;
-we are encouraged by faith, to look upon him as our covenant God, and
-Father in Christ; and then all his divine perfections will afford relief
-to us. His sin-revenging justice is regarded by faith, as that which is
-fully satisfied by Christ’s obedience and sufferings; and therefore will
-not demand that satisfaction at our hands, which it has already received
-from our surety, who was ‘made sin for us’ though he ‘knew no sin, that
-we might be made the righteousness of God in him,’ 2 Cor. v. 21. His
-infinite power is no longer looked upon, as engaged to destroy us, but
-rather to succour us under all our weakness; and therefore, as Job says,
-‘He will not plead against us with his great power; no, but he will put
-strength in us,’ Job xxiii. 6. We consider it as ready to support us
-under the heaviest pressures, and so enable us to perform the most
-difficult duties, and to overcome all our spiritual enemies, who would
-be otherwise too strong for us: So that this attribute is so far from
-discouraging us from drawing nigh to God in prayer, that, by faith, we
-behold it as delighting to exert and glorify itself, in doing those
-great things for us which we have in view, when we engage in this duty.
-
-[2.] Faith discovers itself in prayer, by enabling us to plead, and
-apply to ourselves, the great and precious promises which God has given
-to his people in the gospel. As prayer cannot subsist without a promise,
-so we are enabled, by faith, to apprehend and plead the promises, and to
-say, ‘Remember the word unto thy servant, upon which thou hast caused me
-to hope,’ Psal. cxix. 49. And hereby we look upon God as ready to bestow
-the blessings which he has promised, and his faithfulness as engaged to
-make them good. Accordingly the Psalmist says, ‘Hear my prayer, O Lord,
-give ear to my supplications; in thy faithfulness answer me, and in thy
-righteousness,’ Psal. cxliii. 1. There is nothing that we want, or ought
-to pray for, but there are some promises, contained in the word of God,
-which faith improves and takes encouragement from in this duty: And
-since what we pray for, respects either temporal, or spiritual, and
-eternal blessings, these are looked upon by faith as promised; as the
-apostle says, _godliness has the promise of the life that now is, and of
-that which is to come_, 1 Tim. iv. 18. This might be very largely
-insisted on, and many instances given hereof, which are contained in
-scripture; but I shall more especially consider those promises which
-respect God’s enabling us to pray, and his hearing and answering our
-prayers, which faith lays hold on, and improves, in order to our
-performing this duty in a right manner.
-
-_1st_, There are promises of the Spirit’s assistance to enable us to
-pray. This the apostle calls his _making intercession for us, according
-to the will of God_, in Rom. viii. 27. And our Saviour says, in Luke
-xii. 13. _If ye then, being evil, know how to give good gifts to your
-children, how much more shall your heavenly Father give the Holy Spirit
-to them that ask him?_
-
-_2dly_, There are other promises that respect God’s hearing and
-answering prayer. Thus it is said, in Psal. lxxxvi. 7. _In the day of my
-trouble I will call upon thee for thou wilt answer me_: And elsewhere in
-Psal. cii. 17. _God will regard the prayer of the destitute and not
-despise their prayer._ This is considered as being of a very large
-extent: Thus our Saviour says, in John xvi. 23. _Whatsoever ye ask the
-Father in my name, he will give it you_: And in chap. xv. 7. _If ye
-abide in me, and my words abide in you, ye shall ask what ye will, and
-it shall be done unto you_: Which universal expressions of God’s giving
-believers _what they will_, are to be understood of his granting their
-lawful and regular desires; and, indeed, faith will never ask any thing
-but what tends to the glory of God, and that with an entire submission
-to his will; though it is far otherwise with respect to those prayers
-that are not put up in faith.
-
-Moreover God has promised to hear and answer all kinds of prayer,
-provided they proceed from this grace; particularly, united prayers in
-the assemblies of his saints, as he says to Solomon, after the
-dedication of the temple, in 2 Chron. vii. 15. _Mine eyes shall be open,
-and mine ears attent unto the prayer that is made in this place_; and
-those prayers that are put up to God in families, where a small number
-are joined together; though it be but _two or three_, Christ has
-promised to be _in the midst of them_, xviii. 20. not only to assist
-them in this duty, but to give them what they ask for. There are also
-promises made to secret prayer: Thus when our Saviour encourages his
-people to _pray to their Father, which is in secret_, he tells them, _My
-Father which seeth in secret, shall reward thee openly_, chap. vi. 6.
-
-Here it will be enquired, whether it be necessary in order to our
-praying by faith, that we be assured, at all times, that our prayer
-shall be heard.
-
-To this it may be answered,
-
-_1st_, That it is not our duty to believe that every prayer shall be
-heard; for God heareth not sinners, that is, those who are under the
-reigning power of sin, and consequently are destitute of the grace of
-faith; nor will he hear those _prayers_ that _proceed from feigned
-lips_: Thus it is said, _If I regard iniquity in my heart, the Lord will
-not hear me_, Psal. lxvi. 18.
-
-_2dly_, It is not the duty of those who have the truth of grace, to
-believe that their prayer shall be heard, when, by reason of their
-infirmity, or the weakness of their faith, they ask for that which is
-unlawful, and not redounding to the glory of God and their real good.
-
-_3dly_, If what we pray for may be for the glory of God, and redound to
-our advantage; yet it is not our duty to determine, with too great
-peremptoriness, that he will certainly grant what we ask for,
-immediately, or in that particular way which we desire; since he may
-answer prayer, and yet do it in his own time and way.
-
-_4thly_, It is not our duty to believe assuredly, that God will give us
-all those temporal blessings that we ask for; especially if they be not
-absolutely necessary for us, since he may answer such-like prayers in
-value, though not in kind, and so give spiritual blessings, instead of
-those temporal ones, which we pray for; in which case none will say,
-that he is unfaithful to his promise, though we have not those blessings
-in kind that we desire: Therefore it is our duty, and the great concern
-of faith in prayer, to be assured, that as God knows what is best for
-us, so he will make good his promises, in such a way, that we shall have
-no reason to conclude ourselves to have been disappointed, or that we
-have asked in faith, but have not obtained.
-
-I am sensible that there is a difficulty in the mode of expression used
-by the apostle James, in chap. i. 6, 7. _But let him ask in faith,
-nothing wavering; for let not that man think that he shall receive any
-thing of the Lord_: By which, the apostle does not intend, that he who
-doubts whether his prayer shall be answered, cannot be said, in any
-sense, to pray in faith; for, as assurance of our salvation is not of
-the essence of faith, so that faith cannot subsist without it; in like
-manner assurance, or a firm persuasion that the very thing we ask shall
-be given, is not such an essential ingredient in prayer, as that we
-should determine, that for want of it, we shall receive nothing that is
-good from the Lord. Therefore, I conceive, that the apostle, by
-_wavering_ in this text, rather respects our being in doubt about the
-object of faith; or else our not being stedfast in the grace of faith,
-but praying with hypocrisy, as he illustrates it by the similitude taken
-from a _wave driven with the wind_; which sometimes moves one way, at
-other times the contrary; and he farther explains it, when he says, in
-ver. 8. _a double-minded man, is unstable in all his ways_; so that the
-person, whom he describes as wavering is the same with a _double-minded
-man_, or an hypocrite: Such an one cannot ask in faith; therefore the
-apostle does not hereby intend that no one can exercise this grace in
-prayer, but he that has a full assurance that his prayer shall be
-answered, in that particular way and manner as he expects.
-
-_Obj._ 1. It is objected by some, that they have no faith; therefore
-since this grace must be exercised in prayer, they are very often
-discouraged from performing the duty of prayer.
-
-_Answ._ That though the want of a prepared frame of spirit, for any duty
-affords matter of humiliation, yet it is no excuse for the neglect
-thereof; and as for prayer in particular, we are to wait on God therein,
-for a prepared frame of spirit, that by this means, we may draw nigh to
-him in a right manner, as well as for a gracious answer from him.
-
-[2.] If we cannot bring glory to God by a fiducial pleading of the
-promises, or applying them to ourselves; we must endeavour to glorify
-him by confessing our guilt and unworthiness, and acknowledging that all
-our help is in him.
-
-[3.] It is possible for us to have some acts of faith in prayer, when we
-are not sensible thereof, and at the same time, bewail our want of this
-grace.
-
-[4.] If none were to pray but those who have faith, then it would follow
-that none must pray for the first grace, which supposes a person to be
-in an unregenerate state; nevertheless, such are obliged to perform this
-duty, as well as they can, and therein to hope for that grace which may
-enable them to do it as they ought.[109]
-
-_Obj._ 2. It is objected by others, that though they dare not lay aside
-the duty of prayer, yet, inasmuch as they do not experience those
-graces, which are necessary for the right performance thereof, nor any
-returns of prayer, they have no satisfaction in their own spirits.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied;
-
-_1st_, That there may be faith in prayer, and yet no immediate answer
-thereof. God herein acts in a way of sovereignty, whereby he will have
-his people know that if he grants their requests, it shall be in his own
-time and way. Therefore it is their duty to wait for him till he is
-pleased to manifest himself as a God hearing prayer, and thereby
-removing the discouragements that, at present, they labour under.
-
-_2dly_, There are other ways by which the truth of grace is to be judged
-of, besides our having sensible answers of prayer. Sometimes, indeed,
-God may give many intimations of his acceptance of us, though, at
-present we know it not.
-
-(3.) The next grace to be exercised in prayer, is, love to God: This
-implies in it an earnest desire of his presence, delight in him, or
-taking pleasure in contemplating his perfections as the most glorious
-and amiable object. Desire supposes him, in some measure, withdrawn from
-us; or that we are not possessed of that complete blessedness, which is
-to be enjoyed in him; and delight supposes him present, and, in some
-degree, manifesting himself unto us. Now love to God, in both these
-respects, is to be exercised in prayer. Is he in any measure withdrawn
-from us? we are, with the greatest earnestness to long for his return to
-us, whose loving-kindness is better than life. Is he graciously pleased,
-in any degree, to manifest himself to us as the fountain of all we enjoy
-or hope for? this will have a tendency to excite our delight in him, and
-induce us to conclude that our happiness consists in the enjoyment of
-him. These graces are to be exercised at all times, but more especially
-in prayer, which is an offering up of our desires to God; in which we
-first press after the enjoyment of himself, and then of his benefits.
-And, as we are to bless and praise him for the discoveries we have of
-his glory, in and through our Lord Jesus Christ, in order to the
-securing our spiritual good and advantage; this is to express that
-delight in him, which is the highest instance of love.
-
-(4.) Another grace to be exercised in prayer, is submission to the will
-of God; whereby we leave ourselves and our petitions in his hand, as
-being sensible that he knows what is best for us. This does not include
-in it a being indifferent whether our prayers are heard or no; for that
-is to contradict what we express with our lips, by the frame of our
-spirits. Whatever may be concluded to be lawful for us to ask, as
-redounding to our advantage, and is expressly promised by God, that we
-ought to request at his hand, in prayer; and if we pray for it, we
-cannot but desire that our prayer may be heard and answered; and this is
-not opposed to that submission to the divine will, which we are speaking
-of, provided we leave it to God to do what he thinks best for us, being
-content that the way and manner of his answering us, as well as the time
-of his bestowing those blessings which we want, together with the degree
-thereof; especially if they are such as are of a temporal nature, ought
-to be resolved into his sovereign will. Thus concerning the graces that
-we are to exercise in prayer.
-
-There are other things mentioned in this answer, which are necessary to
-our exercising those graces, _viz._ our minds being enlightened, our
-hearts enlarged, and our having sincerity in the inward part.
-
-[1.] There must be some degree of understanding, since ignorance is so
-far from being, as the Papists pretend, the mother of devotion, that it
-is inconsistent with the exercise of those graces, with which we ought
-to draw nigh to God in prayer. The affections, indeed, may be moved,
-where there is but a very little knowledge of the doctrines of the
-gospel; but they will, at the same time, be misled; and this can no more
-be called religious devotion than the words or actions of one that is in
-a phrenzy, can be called rational; therefore, as prayer is unacceptable
-without the exercise of grace, so grace cannot be exercised without the
-knowledge of the truth, as derived from the sacred treasury of
-scripture.
-
-Here we might consider, that we must know something of God who is the
-object of prayer, as well as of all other acts of religious worship. We
-must also know something of Christ the Mediator, through whom we have
-access to, as well as acceptance with him; and something of the work and
-glory of the Holy Ghost, on whom we are to depend for his assistance in
-presenting our supplications to God. We must know our necessities,
-otherwise we cannot tell what to ask for; and also the promises of the
-gospel, otherwise we cannot be encouraged to hope for an answer.
-
-[2.] In order to our exercising grace in prayer, we must have some
-degree of enlargedness of heart; that is, when every thing that tends to
-contract our affections, abate the ferfency of our spirits, or hinder
-that importunity which we ought to express for the best of blessings, is
-removed. Now our hearts may be said to be enlarged in prayer.
-
-_1st_, When we draw nigh to God in this duty with delight and earnest
-longing after his presence, and an interest in his love, which we reckon
-preferable to all other blessings.
-
-_2dly_, When we are affected with a becoming sense of his glorious
-perfections, and our own nothingness, in order to our adoring him, and
-coming before him with the greatest humility.
-
-_3dly_, When we have suitable promises given in, and are enabled to
-plead them with a degree of hope, arising from the goodness and
-faithfulness of God, that he will fulfil them; and that more especially
-as we draw nigh to him as to a covenant-God.
-
-_4thly_, When our thoughts and affections are engaged without wandering,
-weariness, or lukewarmness, and filled with importunity, agreeable to
-the importance of the duty, and our absolute need of the blessings we
-pray for.
-
-[3.] In order to our exercising those graces, which are necessary for
-our drawing nigh to God aright in prayer, we must have sincerity of
-heart: This includes in it much more than what is generally so called,
-as opposed to dissimulation, in those who perform some good actions
-merely to be seen of men, or who take up religion to answer some base
-and vile end, which they have in view; in which respect a sincere person
-is one that is no dissembler: But that sincerity, which we are speaking
-of, consists in a person’s acting from a principle of grace implanted in
-regeneration; or when a person can appeal to God, as Job does, _Thou
-knowest that I am not wicked_, Job x. 7. that is, that there is no
-reigning sin, whereby my heart is alienated from, or set against thee. A
-sincere person is such an one as our Saviour describes, when he speaks
-of Nathaniel, and gives him this character, _Behold an Israelite indeed,
-in whom is no guile_, John i. 48. In this case a person’s heart and
-actions go together; and he may truly say, as David does, _attend unto
-my cry, give ear unto my prayer, that goeth not out of feigned lips_,
-Psal. xvii. 1. Thus concerning the graces that are to be exercised in
-prayer, and what is necessary in order thereunto.
-
-What is farther observed concerning this duty, is, that we are to
-persevere in prayer; resolving not to desist from waiting on God
-therein, whatever seeming discouragements may, at present, lie in our
-way. Prayer is not a duty to be performed only at some certain times, as
-the prophet speaks of those who, _in their affliction will seek God
-early_, Hos. v. 15. or, as the mariners in Jonah, who _cried, every man
-unto his god_, in a storm; though it is probable, they seldom prayed at
-other times, Jon. i. 5. But we are to _pray always with all prayer and
-supplication, and_ to _watch thereunto with all perseverance_, Eph. vi.
-18. that is, we ought always to endeavour to be in a praying frame, and,
-on all occasions, to lift up our hearts to God for direction,
-assistance, and success in every thing we do, agreeable to his will, and
-for a supply of those wants which daily recur upon us.
-
-_1st_, By reason of the deadness and stupidity of our spirits, which we
-cannot bring into a suitable frame for the discharge of this duty; and
-therefore we are ready to conclude, that while we draw nigh to God with
-our lips, our hearts are far from him. This is, indeed, a very
-afflictive case; but we ought not from hence, to take occasion to lay
-aside the duty but rather depend on the assistance of the Spirit, to
-enable us to perform it in a right manner.
-
-_2dly_, Another discouraging circumstance is, God’s denying us sensible
-returns of prayer, which he may do for various reasons. Sometimes he
-sees those defects that we are guilty of in prayer, which he is obliged
-to testify his displeasure against; and this he sometimes does by hiding
-himself, or, as it were, withdrawing from us, and, in all appearance,
-shutting out our prayers, that we may take occasion to search out the
-secret sin that lies at the root thereof; which we must confess and be
-humbled for. Thus when Joshua, after a small defeat, which Israel had
-received by the men of Ai, fell upon his face, and spread the matter
-before the Lord in prayer, God condescends to tell him the reason of it;
-‘Get thee up, wherefore liest thou thus upon thy face? Israel hath
-sinned, and they have also transgressed my covenant which I commanded
-them; for they have even taken of the accursed thing; therefore could
-they not stand before their enemies,’ Josh. vii. 10-12. And when the sin
-was discovered, and Achan, who troubled them punished, what he asked for
-was granted. Again, God may deny an immediate answer to prayer, out of
-his mere sovereignty, that hereby we may know, that it is not for us to
-prescribe to him the time or way in which he shall dispense those
-benefits, which are not owing to our merit, but his free grace.
-
-_3dly_, Sometimes we pray, but do not use other means, which God has
-appointed for the obtaining the blessing! Thus, when Israel was
-disheartened, being pursued by Pharaoh and his host, and did not care to
-move out of their places, Moses addresses himself to God in prayer, and
-_the Lord said unto him, Wherefore criest thou unto me? speak unto the
-children of Israel, that they go forward_; and then he ordered him to
-_lift up his rod, and stretch it over the sea, and divide it, that they
-might go through the midst thereof on dry ground_, Exod. xiv. 15, 16. We
-are not only to pray, but to use other means that God has appointed;
-without which, we cannot expect that prayer should be answered. Thus
-Hezekiah, when sick, prayed to God, who assured him, that he had heard
-his prayers, and would heal him; nevertheless, he was to use the means
-which God had ordered, by _taking a lump of figs and laying it on the
-boil_; which he did accordingly, and was restored to health, Isa.
-xxxviii. 21. Do we pray for a comfortable subsistence in the world? we
-must, if we expect that God should answer us, use industry in our
-callings, as well as own him by prayer and supplications. Do we pray for
-any of the graces of the Spirit in order to the beginning or carrying on
-the work of sanctification? we must, at the same time, attend on the
-means of grace, which God has ordained for that purpose: Or, do we pray
-for assurance of the love of God, and that spiritual comfort which is
-the result thereof? we must be diligent in the performance of the work
-of self-examination; or else we are not to expect that God will answer
-our prayers.
-
-_4thly_, Sometimes God delays to answer our prayers, because we have not
-given him the glory of former mercies; or else he designs hereby to try
-our patience, whether we are not only inclined to wait upon him, but to
-wait for him; as the prophet says, _I will stand upon my watch, and set
-me upon the tower, and will watch to see what he will say unto me, and
-what I shall answer when I am reproved_, Hab. ii. 1. So the Psalmist
-says, _As the eye of servants look unto the hands of their masters, and
-the eyes of a maiden unto the hands of her mistress; so our eyes wait
-upon the Lord our God, until that he have mercy upon us_, Psal. cxxiii.
-2. And elsewhere the Psalmist, though he was in great _depths_, and
-stood in need of an immediate answer, when he cried unto the Lord; yet
-he determines to _wait for him_, and _hope in his word_; that is, while
-he is expecting a mercy, he does not despair of having it in the end,
-because he depends on God’s word of promise; but yet he resolves to
-_wait as those that watch for the morning_, Psal. cxxx. 1, 5, 6, which
-contains a mixture of two graces, namely, patiently waiting, and yet
-earnestly desiring the blessing expected. This is our indispensable
-duty, whereby we glorify God, as being sensible that it is not for us to
-prescribe to him, when he should fulfil our desires: Whereas we should
-say, with Jacob, _I will not let thee go, except thou bless me_, Gen.
-xxxii. 26. I will persevere in prayer till thou art pleased to give me
-all the blessings I stand in need of, and bring me into that state in
-which I shall be satisfied with thy goodness, and my imperfect prayers
-turned into endless praises.
-
-Footnote 108:
-
- _Many suppose that all those Psalms, in which some particular
- expressions are referred to in the New Testament, as having their
- accomplishment in Christ, are to be understood as containing a double
- reference, namely, to David, as denoting his particular case, and to
- Christ, of whom he was an eminent type. But as for Psalm xxii. there
- are several expressions in it, not only applied to Christ in the New
- Testament; but they cannot well be understood of any other but him. In
- the first verse he uses the same words that were uttered by Christ on
- the cross, Matt. xxvii. 46. My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me?
- and in ver. 8. he trusted in the Lord that he would deliver him; let
- him deliver him: This was an expression used by those who mocked and
- derided him, Matt. xxvii. 41, 45. And what is said in verses 14, 17.
- All my bones are out of joint; I may tell them, they look and stare
- upon me; does not seem to be applicable to David, from any thing said
- concerning him elsewhere; but they are a lively representation of the
- torment a person endures, when hanging on a cross, as our Saviour did;
- which has a tendency to disjoint the bones, and cause them to stick
- out. And when it is said, ver. 16, 18. they pierced my hands and my
- feet; and they part my garments among them, and cast lots upon my
- vesture; the former was fulfilled in Christ’s being nailed to the
- cross, and his side pierced with a spear; and the latter is expressly
- referred to as fulfilled in the parting of Christ’s garments, and
- casting lots upon his vesture, Matt. xxvii. 35. as an accomplishment
- of what was foretold, by the royal prophet in this Psalm. These
- expressions cannot, in the least, be applied to David, but are to be
- understood of our Saviour; therefore, we may conclude that those words
- in ver. 6. I am a worm, &c. are particularly applied to him._
-
-Footnote 109:
-
- What under one aspect is grace, under another is duty.
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLXXXVI., CLXXXVII.
-
-
- QUEST. CLXXXVI. _What rule hath God given for our direction in the
- duty of prayer?_
-
- ANSW. The whole word of God is of use to direct us in the duty of
- praying; but the special rule of direction, is that form of prayer,
- which our Saviour Christ taught his disciples, commonly called the
- Lord’s prayer.
-
- QUEST. CLXXXVII. _How is the Lord’s prayer to be used?_
-
- ANSW. The Lord’s prayer is not only for direction, as a pattern,
- according to which we are to make other prayers, but may also be
- used as a prayer, so that it be done with understanding, faith,
- reverence, and other graces necessary to the right performance of
- the duty.
-
-As to what is said in the former of these answers, concerning the word
-of God, being a rule for our direction in prayer, it may be observed,
-
-I. That we need some direction in order to our performing this duty; for
-man is naturally a stranger both to God and himself. He knows but little
-of the glorious perfections of the divine nature, and is not duly
-sensible of the guilt which he contracts, or of the mercies which he
-receives; and without the knowledge hereof, we shall be at a loss as to
-the matter of the duty which we are to engage in. It is certain, many
-have a general notion of religion, or of some moral duties, which they
-are sensible of their being obliged to perform: Nevertheless, they
-cannot address themselves to God in such a manner as he requires; so
-that it may truly be said of them, that _they cannot order their speech
-by reason of darkness_, Job xxxvii. 19. We find that the disciples
-themselves, who were intimately conversant with Christ, and, as it must
-be supposed, often joined with him in prayer, were, notwithstanding, at
-a loss, as to this duty; and therefore they say, _Lord teach us to pray,
-as John also taught his disciples_, Luke xi. 1.
-
-II. It is farther observed, that the word of God is to be made use of
-for our direction in prayer. This is evident, inasmuch as we are to ask
-for nothing but what is agreeable to his revealed will, which is
-contained therein; and no one, who is well acquainted with it, will have
-reason to say, that he wants sufficient matter for prayer. This is a
-very useful head, and therefore we shall consider several things which
-occur to us in scripture; which ought to be improved, in order to our
-direction and assistance in the performance of this duty. And,
-
-1. The historical parts of scripture, which contain an account of the
-providences of God in the world, and the church, may be of use for our
-direction in prayer, as we are to pray, not only for ourselves, but for
-others: Therefore his former dealings with his people, will furnish us
-with matter accommodated to our present observation of the necessities
-of the church of God in our day: Accordingly we find,
-
-(1.) That the sins which a professing people have committed, have been
-followed with many terrible instances of the divine wrath and vengeance:
-Thus we have an account, of the universal apostacy of the world from
-God, which occasioned their being destroyed by a flood; and the
-unnatural lusts of the inhabitants of Sodom, for which they were
-consumed by fire from heaven; and of the idolatry and other abominations
-committed by the Israelites, for which it is said, that _God was wroth,
-and greatly abhorred them_; upon which they were exposed to many
-temporal and spiritual judgments, so that, as the Psalmist says, _he
-forsook the tabernacle of Shiloh, the tent which he placed among men;
-and delivered his strength into captivity, and his glory into the
-enemies hand_, Psal. lxxviii. 59-61. From hence we may take occasion to
-enquire, whether we have not been guilty of sins equally great, and, it
-may be, of the same kind, which are to be confessed, and the judgments
-which have ensued to be deprecated by us? And when we read in the New
-Testament, of some flourishing churches, planted by the apostles, in the
-beginning of the gospel dispensation, that have nothing left but a sad
-remembrance of the privileges which they once enjoyed; in whom, what
-Christ says, concerning his removing _his candlestick out of its place_,
-was soon fulfilled, Rev. iii. 15. This is of use for our direction in
-prayer, that he would keep his church and people from running into the
-same sins, and exposing themselves to the same judgments.
-
-(2.) We have an account, in scripture, of the church’s increase and
-preservation, notwithstanding the darkest dispensations of providence,
-and the most violent persecutions which it has met with from its
-enemies. When it was in hard bondage, and severely dealt with, in Egypt,
-it is observed, that the more the Egyptians _afflicted them, the more
-they multiplied and grew_, Exod. i. 12. and when they have, in all
-appearance, been nearest to ruin, God has opened a door for their
-deliverance, and oftentimes done great things in their behalf, which
-they looked not for. We have also an historical account, in scripture,
-of God’s owning and encouraging his people, so long as they have kept
-close to him; and of his visiting their iniquities with a rod, when
-backsliding from him; and, indeed, whatever we read concerning the
-providences of God towards particular believers in the Old or New
-Testament, the same may be observed therein, which is of very great use
-for our direction in prayer; and accordingly their experiences are
-recorded for our instruction, and their necessities, that we may know
-what to pray for, as far as there is an agreement between the account we
-have of them, and what we find in ourselves.
-
-2. The word of God, as it is a rule of faith, contains those great
-doctrines, without the knowledge whereof, we cannot pray aright. Thus we
-have an account in scripture, not only of the Being and perfections of
-God, which may be known by the light of nature, but of those glorious
-truths which cannot be known but by divine revelation: And,
-
-(1.) Of the personal glory of the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost; of the
-Father’s giving all spiritual blessings to his people, in and through a
-Mediator; and the Son is considered as invested in this office and
-character, and, as God incarnate procuring for us, by his obedience and
-death, forgiveness of sins, and a right to eternal life. We have also an
-account of the Holy Ghost, as being a divine person, and therefore equal
-with the Father and Son; yet as subservient to them in his method of
-acting, as the application of redemption attains the end of the purchase
-thereof, in like manner as the purchase of it was a means to bring about
-that _purpose and grace which was given us in Christ before the world
-began_, 2 Tim. i. 9. These doctrines are necessary to direct us in those
-things which respect the distinct glory which we are to give to the
-Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, and the method in which we are to hope for
-the blessings which we ask for in prayer. Thus the apostle, speaking of
-this duty, supposes that we are acquainted with this doctrine, when he
-says, _Through him_, that is, Christ, _we have an access by one Spirit
-unto the Father_, Eph. ii. 18.
-
-(2.) In the word of God, we have not only an account of the works of
-nature and providence, or God’s being the Creator and Governor of the
-world, which we have some knowledge of, in a method of reasoning from
-the divine perfections; but we have an account therein of those works
-which have an immediate reference to our salvation, and that special
-providence in which God expresses a greater regard to the heirs of
-salvation than to all the world besides: When we draw nigh to God in
-prayer, we are not barely to consider him as the God to whom we owe our
-being, as men, but our well-being as christians, delivered from that
-ruin which we brought on ourselves, by our apostacy from him; and also,
-_what is the exceeding greatness of his power to us-ward, who believe,
-according to the working of his mighty power, which he wrought in
-Christ, when he raised him from the dead_, chap. i. 18, 19. as the
-apostle expresses it in that affectionate prayer put up for the church
-at Ephesus. And when we survey the works of providence, we are not
-barely to think of God as the Governor of the world in general, but to
-consider what have been those special acts of providence, by which he
-has governed man before and since the fall, and to consider the first
-covenant as made with him in innocency; and the covenant of grace, as
-being a dispensation of grace, established in and with Christ, as the
-Head of the elect, in order to their being delivered from that state of
-sin and misery into which they had brought themselves. These doctrines
-will be of use for our direction in prayer, as hereby we are led to
-acknowledge our fallen state, what we were by nature, and what we should
-have been, had we been left in that state; and hereby we are also led to
-adore the riches of God’s grace, as he brings the greatest good to his
-saints out of the greatest evil.
-
-(3.) The word of God gives us a distinct account of the offices in which
-Christ is invested, as they are suited to the necessities of his people,
-which is a means for our direction concerning what we are to ask for,
-with a particular relation to each of them, and the hope we have that he
-will grant our request. As he is appointed by the Father, to be our High
-Priest, to make atonement for sin; our Advocate, to plead our cause; our
-Prophet, to lead us in the way of salvation; and our King, to subdue us
-to himself, and defend us from the assaults of our spiritual enemies. So
-we are, in our prayers, to improve these discoveries which we have
-thereof, as a means to direct us in those things which are the
-subject-matter both of prayer and praise.
-
-4. The word of God is of use for our direction in prayer, as we have an
-account therein of those duties which are to be performed by us as men,
-or christians, in every condition of life, and in all those relations
-which we stand in to one another. As for that which is matter of duty in
-general, or that obedience which we owe to God, this cannot be performed
-but by his assistance; which is humbly to be asked in prayer: And
-accordingly we are to say as one does, Lord, work in me that which thou
-requirest, and then require what thou pleasest. Here we might shew how
-all the duties which God has commanded, may be of use to direct us in
-prayer: that hereby we may be led to apply ourselves to him, that he
-would enable us to perform them; and all the sins forbidden in
-scripture, may be of use to instruct us what to deprecate, when we pray
-that God would keep us from our own iniquities, and what we are to
-confess before him, and implore the forgiveness of; and all those
-commands which respect instituted worship, _viz._ our attendance on the
-ordinances, or the exercise of various graces therein, in the whole
-course of our conversation: These are of use for our direction in
-prayer, as hereby we know what to ask for, with relation thereunto; and
-particularly as to what concerns the advantage we hope to receive, under
-the means of grace, whenever we draw nigh to God in the way which he has
-appointed.
-
-5. As the word of God contains many promises and predictions, together
-with their accomplishment, for the encouragement of our faith and hope
-in prayer, it is of use to direct us in the performance of this duty. As
-for the predictions that are fulfilled, so far as they respect the
-blessings which God designed to bestow on his church, they are
-equivalent to promises, and we are to take occasion from thence, to
-adore and magnify his faithfulness; and hope that whatever remains to be
-done for us, or his people in general, shall, in like manner, have its
-accomplishment, which will afford matter of encouragement to us in
-addressing ourselves to him for it.
-
-The promises which are contained in scripture, are also a motive and
-inducement to prayer. These are a declaration of God’s will to give the
-blessings, which he sees necessary for us, and therefore are of great
-use in order to our performing this duty aright. Thus God gives an
-intimation of the great things that he will do for, or bestow upon his
-people, when he says, in Jer. xxxi. 33. _I will put my law in their
-inward parts, and write it in their hearts, and will be their God, and
-they shall be people_: and there are many expressions of the like
-nature, which contain the form of a promise. But besides these, there
-are others which are equivalent to, and may be applied by us in like
-manner as though they were laid down in the same form, as the promises
-generally are; as,
-
-(1.) When God is said, in his word, to be able to do his people good, or
-bestow some particular blessings upon them, this gives them ground to
-conclude, that he will do it, or that his power shall be engaged in
-their behalf: Thus God is said, in Jude, ver. 24. to be _able to keep_
-them _from falling, and to present them faultless before the presence of
-his glory with exceeding joy_. And elsewhere it is said, 2 Cor. ix. 8.
-that _God is able to make all grace abound towards_ his people, _that_
-they _always having all-sufficiency in all things, may abound to every
-good work_: This is the same as though it had been said, that he would
-do this for them.
-
-(2.) When God is said to glorify any of his perfections in giving those
-blessings that his people want, this is also equivalent to a promise:
-Thus, in Exod. xxxiv. 4, 6. when _the Lord passed by before Moses, and
-proclaimed the Lord God, merciful and gracious, long-suffering, and
-abundant in goodness and truth_, &c. it is the same as though he had
-said that he would shew mercy to them, since the design thereof is to
-encourage them to hope for it.
-
-(3.) Whatever blessings are said to be purchased by Christ as our
-Redeemer, or prayed for by him as our Advocate, these may be included in
-the number of promised blessings; for they will certainly be applied by
-him, who will not lose what he has purchased by his blood, and is never
-denied what he asks for.
-
-(4.) The universal experience of believers, relating to the blessings
-that accompany salvation, contains the nature, though not the form, of a
-promise; and therefore, when this is recorded in scripture, for the
-encouragement of others, in all succeeding ages, it is as much to be
-applied by us when we are in like circumstances as though it were more
-directly promised to us: Thus when God’s faithful servants are said, 1
-Pet. i. 5. to be _kept by the power of God, through faith unto
-salvation_; or, when the Psalmist says, in Psal. xxxvii. 25. _I have
-been young, and now am old; yet have I not seen the righteous forsaken,
-nor his seed begging bread_; these, and such-like expressions, are to be
-applied by us as promises.
-
-(5.) That which is proposed to us, or which we are to have in view, as
-the end of our attending on ordinances, is equivalent to a promise; and
-accordingly, when we are commanded or encouraged to hope and pray for
-any spiritual blessings, when waiting upon God therein, in such a way as
-he requires, it is the same thing as though he had said, that he would
-give us those blessings. If a believer is thirsty, and encouraged to
-come to the waters; or if he wants grace or peace, and is told that
-these are to be attained in ordinances, the bare intimation that we are
-to seek these blessings in such a way is equivalent to a promise.
-
-(6.) God’s seeing our distress or knowing our wants, is sometimes to be
-understood in scripture, as containing the nature of a promise, relating
-to the supply thereof: Thus our Saviour tells his disciples, in Matt.
-vi. 32. _Your heavenly Father knoweth that ye have need of all these
-things_; which is the same as though he had told them, that God had
-promised or designed to bestow those outward blessings upon them: And
-when he designed, or promised to deliver his people out of the bondage,
-in which they were in Egypt, he says, _I have surely seen the affliction
-of my people: I know their sorrows_, &c. Exod. iii. 7. Thus concerning
-the manner in which the promises are laid down in scripture.
-
-We shall now consider how they are to be made use of in order to our
-direction and encouragement in prayer. And here it may be observed, that
-the promises either respect outward, or spiritual blessings, both of
-which we are to pray for: Thus the apostle says, in 1 Tim. iv. 8.
-_Godliness has the promise of the life that now is, and of that which is
-to come_; the former respects the temporal dispensations of providence;
-the latter, grace and glory, or the things that accompany salvation.
-
-[1.] We shall consider the promises that respect temporal or outward
-blessings which we are obliged to pray for, as we stand in need of them.
-These are of various kinds;
-
-_1st_, There are promises of health and strength, whereby our passage
-through this world may be made easy and comfortable, and we better
-enabled to glorify God therein: Thus it is said, in Prov. iii. 7, 8.
-_Fear the Lord, and depart from evil. It shall be health to thy navel,
-and marrow to thy bones._ And in Psal. ciii. 5. _Who satisfieth thy
-mouth with good things; so that thy youth is renewed like the eagles._
-
-_2dly_, There are promises of food and raiment, or the necessary
-provisions and conveniences of life, in Psal. xxxvii. 3. _Trust in the
-Lord, and do good; so shalt thou dwell in the land, and verily thou
-shalt be fed._ And in Deut. x. 18. _He doth execute the judgment of the
-fatherless and widow, and loveth the stranger, in giving him food and
-raiment._
-
-_3dly_, There are promises of comfort and peace in our dwellings, in Job
-v. 24. ‘Thou shalt know that thy tabernacle shall be in peace; and thou
-shalt visit thy habitation, and shalt not sin.’ And, in Psal. xci. 10.
-‘There shall no evil befal thee, neither shall any plague come nigh thy
-dwelling.’ And in Psal. cxxi. 8. ‘The Lord shalt preserve thy going out,
-and thy coming in, from this time forth and forevermore.’
-
-_4thly_, There are promises of quiet and composed rest by night, on our
-beds, in Job xi. 18, 19. _Thou shalt take thy rest in safety: Also thou
-shalt lie down, and none shall make thee afraid._ And in Prov. iii. 24.
-_When thou liest down, thou shalt not be afraid; yea, thou shalt lie
-down, and thy sleep shall be sweet._
-
-_5thly_, There are promises of success, and a blessing to attend us in
-our worldly callings, in Psal. cxxviii. 2. _Thou shalt eat the labour of
-thine hands: Happy shalt thou be, and it shall be well with thee._ And
-in Deut. xxviii. 4, 5, 12. ‘Blessed shall be the fruit of thy body, and
-the fruit of thy ground, the fruit of thy cattle, and the increase of
-thy kine, and the flocks of thy sheep. Blessed shall be thy basket and
-thy store. The Lord shall open unto thee his good treasure, the heaven
-to give the rain unto thy land, in his season, and to bless all the work
-of thine hand: And thou shalt lend unto many nations, and shalt not
-borrow.’ And in Psal. i. 3. ‘He shall be like a tree, planted by the
-rivers of water, that bringeth forth his fruit in his season; his leaf
-also shall not wither, and whatsoever he doth shall prosper.’
-
-_6thly_, There are promises of an intail of blessings on our families,
-in Psal. cxxviii. 3. ‘Thy wife shall be as a fruitful vine, by the sides
-of thine house; thy children like olive-plants round about thy table.’
-And, in Psal. ciii. 17. ‘The mercy of the Lord is from everlasting to
-everlasting, upon them that fear him; and his righteousness unto
-children’s children.’ And, in Psal. cii. 28. ‘The children of thy
-servants shall continue, and their seed shall be established before
-thee.’ And, in Psal. xlv. 16. ‘Instead of thy fathers shall be thy
-children, whom thou mayest make princes in all the earth.’
-
-I might have mentioned many more promises of outward blessings, which
-God will bestow on his people, though with this limitation, so far as it
-may be for his glory, and their real good, viz. such as respect riches,
-as in Psal. cxii. 3. ‘Wealth and riches shall be in his house; and his
-righteousness endureth for ever;’ or honours, as in 1 Sam. ii. 30. and
-these accompanied with long life; as, in Prov. iii. 17. ‘Length of days
-are in her right hand; and in her left hand riches and honour.’ And, in
-Psal. xxxiv. 12, 13. ‘What man is he that desireth life, and loveth many
-days, that he may see good? Keep thy tongue from evil, and thy lips from
-speaking guile;’ or, if God does not think fit to give them this, he
-will take them out of the world in mercy, and gather them into a better,
-to prevent their seeing the evil he designs to bring on the inhabitants
-thereof, Isa. lvii. 1. ‘The righteous is taken away from the evil to
-come.’ He has also promised some blessings that respect their good name,
-in Zeph. iii. 20. ‘I will make you a name and a praise among all people
-of the earth.’ And in Prov. x. 7. ‘The memory of the just is blessed.’
-But that which I shall principally add concerning these and such-like
-outward blessings, is, that God has not only promised, that he will give
-them to his people, but that he will sanctify them to them for their
-spiritual advantage, and enable them to improve them aright to his
-glory, which will render them more sweet and desirable to them. Thus God
-has promised,
-
-_1st_, That he will free his people, who enjoy outward good things, from
-the sorrow which is oftentimes mixed therewith, and tends greatly to
-imbitter them, in Prov. x. 22. ‘The blessing of the Lord maketh rich,
-and he addeth no sorrow with it.’ He has also promised to give them
-inward peace, together with outward prosperity, in Psal. xxxvii. 11.
-‘The meek shall inherit the earth; and shall delight themselves in the
-abundance of peace.’
-
-_2dly_, He has promised to give them spiritual and heavenly blessings,
-together with the good things of this life, in Job xxii. 24-26. ‘Thou
-shalt lay up gold as dust, and the gold of Ophir as the stones of the
-brooks. Yea, the Almighty shall be thy defence, and thou shalt have
-plenty of silver: For then shalt thou have thy delight in the Almighty,
-and shalt lift up thy face unto God.’ And in Psal. xxiii. 5, 6. ‘Thou
-preparest a table before me in the presence of mine enemies; thou
-anointest mine head with oil, my cup runneth over. Surely goodness and
-mercy shall follow me all the days of my life; and I will, or, I shall,
-dwell in the house of the Lord for ever.’
-
-_3dly_, God has promised together with outward blessings, to give a
-thankful heart, whereby his people may be enabled to give him the glory
-thereof, in Deut. viii. 10. ‘When thou hast eaten and art full, then
-thou shalt bless the Lord thy God, for the good land which he hath given
-thee.’ And, in Joel ii. 26. ‘Ye shall eat in plenty, and be satisfied,
-and praise the name of the Lord your God, that hath dealt wondrously
-with you; and my people shall never be ashamed.’
-
-_4thly_, He has not only promised that he will confer outward good
-things on his people, but that he will make them blessings to others,
-and thereby enable them to lay out what he gives them for their good, to
-support his cause and gospel in the world; and to relieve those that are
-in distress, in Gen. xii. 2. ‘I will bless thee, and make thy name
-great; and thou shalt be a blessing.’ And, in Deut. xxvi. 11. ‘Thou
-shalt rejoice in every good thing which the Lord thy God hath given unto
-thee and unto thine house, thou and the Levite, and the stranger that is
-among you.’ These promises more especially respect those who are in a
-prosperous condition in the world.
-
-But there are others which are made to believers, in an afflicted state;
-and, indeed, there is scarce any affliction which they are liable to,
-but what has some special promises annexed to it. Accordingly,
-
-(1.) There are promises made to them when lying on a sick bed, in Psal.
-xli. 5. ‘The Lord will strengthen him upon the bed of languishing; thou
-wilt make all his bed in his sickness.’ And, in Deut. vii. 15. ‘The Lord
-will take from thee all sickness, and will put none of the evil diseases
-of Egypt (which thou knowest) upon thee; but will lay them upon all that
-hate thee.’ And, in Exod. xxiii. 25. ‘I will take sickness away from the
-midst of thee.’
-
-(2.) There are other promises made to believers, when poor and low in
-this world, in Psal. cxxxii. 15. ‘I will abundantly bless her provision;
-I will satisfy her poor with bread.’
-
-(3.) There are other promises that respect God’s giving a full
-compensation for all the losses which his people have sustained for
-Christ’s sake, in Matt. xix. 29. ‘Every one that hath forsaken houses,
-or brethren, or sisters, or father, or mother, or wife, or children, or
-lands for my name’s sake, shall receive an hundred-fold, and shall
-inherit life everlasting.’ And, in chap. x. 39. ‘He that findeth his
-life shall lose it; and he that loseth his life for my name’s sake shall
-find it.’
-
-(4.) There are other promises made to believers under oppression, in
-Psal. xii. 5. ‘For the oppression of the poor, for the sighing of the
-needy, now will I arise (saith the Lord) I will set him in safety from
-him that puffeth at him.’ And in Hos. xiv. 3. ‘In thee the fatherless
-findeth mercy.’ And, in Psal. lxviii. 5. ‘A father of the fatherless,
-and a judge of the widows, is God in his holy habitation.’
-
-(5.) There are other promises made to believers, when reviled and
-persecuted for righteousness’ sake, Matt. v. 11, 12, ‘Blessed are ye
-when men shall revile you, and persecute you, and shall say all manner
-of evil against you falsely for my sake. Rejoice and be exceeding glad;
-for great is your reward in heaven.’ And, in 1 Pet. iv. 19. ‘Wherefore
-let them that suffer according to the will of God, commit the keeping of
-their souls to him in well-doing, as unto a faithful Creator.’
-
-(6.) There are promises made to God’s people, when they are in distress,
-and, at present, see no way of escape: Thus when Jeremiah was shut up in
-the court of the prison, he had this promise given him, in Jer. xxxiii.
-3. ‘Call unto me, and I will answer thee, and shew thee great and mighty
-things, which thou knowest not.’
-
-(7.) God has made promises suited to the condition of his people, when
-their lot is cast in perilous times: Thus it is said, in Isa. xliii. 2.
-_When thou passest through the waters, I will be with thee; and through
-the rivers, they shall not overflow thee: When thou walkest through the
-fire, thou shalt not be burnt; neither shall the flame kindle upon
-thee._
-
-Now there are several mercies which God has promised to his people,
-under the various afflictions which we are exposed to, as,
-
-(_1st_,) Sometimes he promises to prevent the afflictions which we are
-most afraid of, in Psal. cxxi. 7. ‘The Lord shall preserve thee from all
-evils; he shall preserve thy soul.’ And, in Job v. 19. ‘He shall deliver
-thee in six troubles; yea, in seven there shall no evil touch thee.’
-
-(_2d_,) He has promised to preserve his people from, or defend them in,
-a time of trouble, in Gen. xv. 1. ‘Fear not Abram: I am thy shield, and
-thy exceeding great reward.’ And, in Ezek. xi. 16. ‘Thus saith the Lord;
-although I have cast them far off among the heathen; and although I have
-scattered them among the countries, yet will I be to them a little
-sanctuary in the countries where they shall come.’
-
-(_3d_,) He has promised to moderate their afflictions, in Isa. xxvii. 8.
-‘In measure when it shooteth forth, thou wilt debate with it; he stayeth
-his rough wind in the day of his east wind.’ And, in Jer. xlvi. 28.
-‘Fear thou not, O Jacob, my servant, saith the Lord, for I am with thee,
-for I will make a full end of all the nations whither I have driven
-thee, but I will not make a full end of thee, but correct thee in
-measure; yet I will not leave thee wholly unpunished.’
-
-(_4th_,) He has also promised, that if need be, he will shorten the
-affliction, in Psal. cxxv. 3. ‘The rod of the wicked shall not rest upon
-the lot of the righteous; lest the righteous put forth their hands unto
-iniquity.’ And, in Mark xiii. 19, 20. ‘In those days shall be affliction
-such as was not from the beginning of the creation: And except that the
-Lord had shortened those days, no flesh could be saved; but for the
-elect’s sake, whom he hath chosen, he hath shortened the days.’
-
-(_5th_,) God has also promised his people that he will enable them to
-bear those afflictions which he lays upon them, in Psal. xxxvii. 24.
-‘Though he fall, he shall not be utterly cast down; for the Lord
-upholdeth him with his hand.’ And, in 2 Cor. xii. 9. ‘He said unto me,
-My grace is sufficient for thee; for my strength is made perfect in
-weakness.’
-
-(_6th._) He has promised to shew his people the particular sin that is
-the cause of the affliction, that they may be humbled for it, in Job
-xxxvi. 8, 9. ‘If they be bound in fetters, and be holden in cords of
-affliction; then he sheweth them their work and their transgressions
-that they have exceeded.’
-
-(_7th._) He has promised to bring good to them out of their afflictions,
-in Isa. xxvii. 9. ‘By this therefore shall the iniquity of Jacob be
-purged, and this is all the fruit to take away his sin.’ And in Psal.
-xcvii. 11. ‘light is sown for the righteous, and gladness for the
-upright in heart.’ And in Zech. xiii. 9. ‘I will bring the third part
-through the fire, and will refine them as silver is refined, and will
-try them as gold is tried: They shall call on my name, and I will hear
-them: I will say, that it is my people; and they shall say, Thou art my
-God.’ Thus concerning the promises that more especially respect outward
-blessings which God bestows on his people.
-
-[2.] There are other promises contained in scripture, that relate more
-especially to spiritual blessings, which are of great use to us, when we
-are asking them of God in prayer.
-
-_1st_, There are promises that relate more especially to the ordinances
-or means of grace: These are various,
-
-1. Some respect the duty of prayer, and also the event and success that
-shall attend it, in God’s giving gracious returns, or answers thereof,
-in Psal. xci. 15. ‘He shall call upon me, and I will answer him.’ And in
-Jer. xxix. 12, 13. ‘Then shall ye call upon me, and ye shall go and pray
-unto me, and I will hearken unto you. And ye shall seek me, and find me,
-when ye shall search for me with all your heart.’ And, in Psal. l. 15.
-‘Call upon me, in the day of trouble, I will deliver thee, and thou
-shalt glorify me.’
-
-2. Another ordinance to which promises are also annexed, is meditation
-about spiritual things, in Prov. xiv. 22. ‘Mercy and truth shall be to
-them that devise good.’ And, in Josh. i. 8. ‘This book of the law shall
-not depart out of thy mouth, but thou shalt meditate therein day and
-night, that thou mayest observe to do according to all that is written
-therein; for then thou shalt make thy way prosperous, and then thou
-shalt have good success.’ There are also promises made to those who read
-the word of God, to wit, that he will make known his words to them, so
-that they may understand them, Prov. i. 23. ‘Turn you at my reproof:
-Behold, I will pour out my Spirit unto you, I will make known my words
-unto you.’
-
-3. There are promises made to those who attend on the public worship of
-God, in Psal. xxxvi. 8, 9. ‘They shall be abundantly satisfied with the
-fatness of thy house; and thou shalt make them drink of the river of thy
-pleasures.’ And, in Psal. cxxviii. 5. ‘The Lord shall bless thee out of
-Zion; and thou shalt see the good of Jerusalem all the days of thy
-life.’
-
-4. There are promises made to religious fasting on special occasions, as
-in Mat. vi. 17. ‘When thou fastest, anoint thine head, and wash thy
-face; that thou appear not unto men to fast, but unto thy Father which
-is in secret, and thy Father which seeth in secret, shall reward thee
-openly.’
-
-5. There are promises made to alms-giving, in Prov. xi. 25. ‘The liberal
-soul shall be made fat; and he that watereth shall be watered also
-himself.’ And, in Eccl. xi. 1. ‘Cast thy bread upon the waters; for thou
-shalt find it after many days.’—And in 2 Cor. ix. 6, 7, 8. ‘He which
-soweth bountifully shall also reap bountifully: God loveth a cheerful
-giver, and is able to make all grace abound, _&c._’
-
-6. There are promises made to believers, when they appear in the behalf
-of truth, at those times when it is opposed and perverted, that by this
-means it may not be run down, nor they confounded, or put to silence by
-its enemies, Luke xxi. 15. ‘I will give you a mouth and wisdom, which
-all your adversaries shall not be able to gainsay, nor resist.’
-
-7. There are promises made to the religious and strict observation and
-sanctification of the Lord’s day, Isa. lvi. 2. ‘Blessed is the man that
-doth this; that keepeth the Sabbath from polluting it, and keepeth his
-hand from doing any evil.’
-
-_2dly_, There are promises, contained in scripture, which respect God’s
-giving his people special grace, together with that joy, peace and
-comfort that flows from it, which will be of great use to them, in order
-to their engaging aright in the duty of prayer.
-
-1. There are promises of the grace of faith, and others that are made to
-it; as it is said, in John vi. 37. ‘All that the Father giveth to me
-shall come to me; and him that cometh to me I will in no wise cast out.’
-And, in Eph. ii. 8. ‘By grace are ye saved, through faith; and that not
-of yourselves; it is the gift of God.’
-
-2. There are promises of the grace of repentance, in Rom. xi. 26. ‘There
-shall come out of Zion the deliverer, and shall turn away ungodliness
-from Jacob.’ And, in Ezek. xx. 43. ‘Ye shall remember your ways, and all
-your doings, wherein ye have been defiled, and ye shall lothe yourselves
-in your own sight, for all your evils that ye have committed.’
-
-3. There are promises of love to God: Thus in Gal. v. 2. ‘The fruit of
-the Spirit is love.’ And, 2 Tim. i. 7. ‘God hath not given us the spirit
-of fear, but of power and love, and of a sound mind.’ And, in Rom. v. 5.
-‘Hope maketh not ashamed, because the love of God is shed abroad in our
-hearts, by the Holy Ghost which is given unto us.’ And, in 2 Thes. iii.
-5. ‘The Lord direct your hearts into the love of God, and into the
-patient waiting for Christ.’
-
-4. Another grace promised is an holy filial fear of God, in Jer. xxx.
-39, 40. ‘I will give them one heart, and one way, that they may fear
-them for ever, for the good of them, and of their children after them.
-And I will make an everlasting covenant with them, that I will not turn
-away from them to do them good; but I will put my fear in their hearts,
-that they shall not depart from me.’ And, in Hos. iii. 5. ‘They shall
-fear the Lord and his goodness.’
-
-5. Obedience to God’s commands, which is an indispensable duty, is also
-considered as a promised blessing, in Deut. xxx. 8. ‘Thou shalt return
-and obey the voice of the Lord, and do all his commandments which I
-command thee this day.’
-
-Moreover, as there are promises of the graces of the Spirit, so the
-comforts that flow from thence are also promised: Thus it is said in
-Isa. li. 12. _I, even I, am he that comforteth you._ And, in chap. xl.
-1. _Comfort ye, comfort ye my people: Speak ye comfortably to
-Jerusalem_, &c. more particularly,
-
-(1.) There are promises of peace of conscience, which is a great branch
-of those spiritual comforts which God gives his people ground to expect:
-Thus it is said in Isa. lvii. 18, 19. ‘I will restore comforts unto him,
-and to his mourners. I create the fruit of the lips; peace, peace to him
-that is afar off, and to him that is near, saith the Lord.’ And, in
-chap. xxvi. 4. ‘Thou wilt keep him in perfect peace, whose mind is
-stayed on thee; because he trusteth in thee.’
-
-(2.) God has promised a good hope of eternal life, in 2 Thes. ii. 16.
-‘Now our Lord Jesus Christ himself, and God, even our Father, who hath
-loved us, and hath given us everlasting consolation, and good hope
-through grace, comfort your hearts.’ And, in Rom. xv. 4. ‘Whatsoever
-things were written aforetime were written for our learning; that we
-through patience and comfort of the scriptures, might have hope.’
-
-(3.) God has promised spiritual joy to his people, in Psal. lxiv. 10.
-‘The righteous shall be glad in the Lord, and shall trust in him; and
-all the upright in heart shall glory.’ And, in Psal. xcvii. 11, 12.
-‘Light is sown for the righteous, and gladness for the upright in heart.
-Rejoice in the Lord ye righteous; and give thanks at the remembrance of
-his holiness.’
-
-Here we shall consider a believer, when drawing nigh to God in prayer,
-as depressed and bowed in his own spirit, and hardly able to speak a
-word to him in his own behalf, as the Psalmist says, in Psal. lxxvii. 3,
-4. _I complained and my spirit was overwhelmed. I am so troubled that I
-cannot speak_; and how he may receive great advantage from those
-promises which he will find in the word of God; as,
-
-(_1st_,) When he complains of the wickedness, hardness and perverseness
-of his heart; in this case God has promised, in Ezek. xi. 19. ‘I will
-put a new spirit within you, and I will take the stony heart out of your
-flesh, and will give you an heart of flesh.’ And, in Jer. xxiii. 29. ‘Is
-not my word like a fire, saith the Lord, and like a hammer that breaketh
-the rock in pieces.’
-
-(_2d_,) When a believer is sensible of his ignorance, or, at least, that
-his knowledge of divine truths bears no proportion to the means of
-grace, which he has been favoured with, and that he is often destitute
-of spiritual wisdom, to direct his way, and carry him through the
-difficulties he often meets with, as to what concerns his temporal or
-spiritual affairs: There are promises suited to this case, in Prov. ii.
-3-6. ‘If thou criest after knowledge, and liftest up thy voice for
-understanding; if thou seekest her as silver, and searchest for her, as
-for hid treasures; then shalt thou understand the fear of the Lord; and
-find the knowledge of God.’ And in James i. 5. ‘If any of you lack
-wisdom, let him ask of God, that giveth to all men liberally and
-upbraideth not; and it shall be given him.’
-
-(_3d_,) If they complain of the weakness of their memories, that they
-cannot retain the truths of God when they hear them; Christ has
-promised, in John xiv. 26. that the Holy Ghost shall _teach_ them _all
-things, and bring all things to their remembrance_.
-
-(_4th_,) If they complain of their unthankfulness, or that they have not
-hearts disposed to praise God for the mercies they receive, he has
-promised, in Isa. 21. _This people have I formed for myself, they shall
-shew forth my praise._ And, in Psal. cxl. 14. _Surely the righteous
-shall give thanks unto thy name, the upright shall dwell in thy
-presence._
-
-(_5th_,) There are many who are not altogether destitute of hope that
-they have the truth of grace, but yet are filled with trouble, as
-apprehending that they do not make those advances, in grace, as they
-ought, but seem to be at a stand, which they can reckon little other
-than going backward, and they dread the consequences thereof; such may
-take encouragement from those promises that respect a believer’s growing
-in grace; as it is said, in John viii. 7. _Though thy beginning was
-small, yet thy latter end shall greatly increase._ And, in Isa. xl. 29,
-31. _He giveth power to the faint; and to them that have no might, he
-increaseth strength. They that wait upon the Lord shall renew their
-strength; they shall mount up with wings as eagles, they shall run and
-not be weary, and they shall walk and not faint._ And if they complain
-of their unprofitableness under the means of grace, and not receiving
-any spiritual advantage by the various dispensations of providence which
-they are under; there is a promise adapted to this case, in Isa. xlviii.
-17. _Thus saith the Lord thy Redeemer, the holy One of Israel, I am the
-Lord thy God, which teacheth thee to profit, which leadeth thee by the
-way that thou shouldest go._
-
-(_6th_) Are they afraid that they shall fall away after having made a
-long profession of religion? There is a promise which our Saviour
-himself took encouragement from, though never liable to any fear of this
-nature, which a believer may apply to himself, as affording relief
-against these fears and discouragements, in Psal. xvi. 8. ‘I have set
-the Lord always before me; because he is at my right hand, I shall not
-be moved.’ And there is another which is more directly applicable to
-this case, in 1 Cor. i. 8. ‘Who shall also confirm you unto the end that
-ye may be blameless in the day of our Lord Jesus Christ.’ And if he is
-fallen, and, at the same time, afraid that he shall never be able to
-rise again, and recover what he has lost, there is another promise in
-Psal. xxxvi. 24, 28. ‘Though he fall, he shall not be utterly cast down;
-for the Lord upholdeth him with his hand. The Lord loveth judgment, and
-forsaketh not his saints:’ And God also says, in Heb. xiii. 5. ‘I will
-never leave thee, nor forsake thee.’
-
-(_7th_,) If a believer be under divine desertion, which he may be, and
-yet kept from apostacy; if he is mourning after the Lord, and earnestly
-desiring that he would return to him; he may take encouragement from
-that promise in Psal. xlii. 5. ‘Why art thou cast down, O my soul; and
-why art thou disquieted in me? hope thou in God, for I shall yet praise
-him for the help of his countenance.’ And, in Jer. xxxi. 13, 14. ‘Then
-shall the virgin rejoice in the dance, both young men and old together:
-For I will turn their mourning into joy, and will comfort them, and make
-them rejoice from their sorrow. And I will satiate the soul of the
-priests with fatness, and my people shall be satisfied with my goodness,
-saith the Lord.’
-
-(_8th_,) Is he cast down under a sense of the guilt of sin, and afraid
-of the punishment that will ensue? there are many promises in the word
-of God that respect the forgiveness of sin, in Psal. ciii. 3. ‘Who
-forgiveth all thine iniquities: who healeth all thy diseases.’ And, in
-Psal. cxxx. 4. ‘There is forgiveness with thee, that thou mayst be
-feared.’ And, in Isa. xliii. 25. ‘I, even I am he that blotteth out thy
-transgressions for mine own sake, and will not remember thy sins.’
-
-(_9th_,) Is a believer afraid of the last enemy, death, by reason of the
-_fear_ whereof _he is all his life-time subject to bondage_: Heb. ii.
-15. and Psal. xlviii. 14. ‘This God is our God for ever and ever; he
-will be our guide even unto death.’ And, in Psal. xxiii. 4. ‘Yea, though
-I walk through the valley of the shadow of death, I will fear no evil;
-for thou art with me, thy rod and thy staff they comfort me.’ And, in
-Psal. xxxvii. 37. ‘Mark the perfect man, and behold the upright; for the
-end of that man is peace.’ Thus we have considered the promises of God
-as suited to every condition, and, consequently, as affording matter of
-encouragement to us in drawing nigh to him in prayer.
-
-5. Those reproofs for sins committed, and threatenings which are
-contained in the word of God, as a means to deter from committing them,
-may be improved for our direction in prayer.
-
-(1.) As we are hereby induced to hate sin, beg strength to subdue and
-mortify it, and deprecate the wrath and judgments of God against those
-that commit it.
-
-(2.) We are hereby led to see our desert of punishment, while we confess
-ourselves to be sinners, and to bless God that he has not inflicted it
-upon us; but especially if he has given us ground of hope that he has
-delivered us from that condemnation which was due to us for sin.
-
-(3.) They will be of use to us in prayer, as we are thereby led to have
-an awful sense of the holiness and justice of God, and to draw nigh to
-him with fear and trembling, lest we should provoke his wrath by our
-unbecoming behaviour in his presence, and thereby bring on ourselves a
-curse instead of a blessing.
-
-6. The word of God is of use for our direction in prayer, as it contains
-many examples of the performance of this duty in a right manner by the
-saints, whose graces, and the manner in which they have drawn nigh to
-God, are proposed for our imitation in this duty: Thus we read of
-Jacob’s wrestling with God, and his great importunity, when it is said,
-in Hos. xii. 4. ‘He had power over the angel, and prevailed; he wept and
-made supplication unto him;’ as referring to what is mentioned in Gen.
-xxxii. 26, 28. ‘The angel,’ that is, Christ, says, ‘let me go, for the
-day breaketh,’ _q. d._ cease thy importunity, which thou hast maintained
-to the breaking of the day; during which time I have given thee no
-encouragement that I will grant thy request. Jacob persists in his
-resolution, and says, ‘I will not let thee go, except thou bless me;’
-that is, I will not leave off importuning thee, till thou givest me a
-gracious answer: Upon which, our Saviour says, ‘as a prince hast thou
-power with God,’ that is, with me, ‘and with men,’ to wit, with Esau thy
-brother, ‘and hast prevailed:’ So that he shall do thee no hurt, in ver.
-28. but his heart shall be turned toward thee.
-
-Again, we read of Abraham’s humility in prayer, when he says, in Gen.
-xviii. 27. ‘Behold now, I have taken upon me to speak unto the Lord,
-which am but dust and ashes.’ And, in ver. 30. ‘Oh! let not the Lord be
-angry, and I will speak.’
-
-We also read of David’s sincerity, in Psal. xvii. 1. ‘Attend unto my
-cry, give ear unto my prayer that goeth not out of feigned lips;’ and of
-Hezekiah’s addressing himself to God with tears in his sickness; upon
-which, he immediately received a gracious answer, in Isa. xxxviii 3, 5.
-and when he was recovered, he gives praise to God, in ver. 19. ‘The
-living, the living, he shall praise thee as I do this day: The Father to
-the children shall make known thy truth.’
-
-We have an instance of Jonah’s faith in prayer, when his disobedience to
-the divine command, had brought him into the utmost distress, in Jonah
-ii. 2, 4. ‘Out of the belly of hell cried I, and thou heardest my voice.
-Then I said, I am cast out of thy sight; yet will I look again toward
-thy holy temple.’
-
-We have also an instance of Daniel’s drawing nigh to God with an
-uncommon reverence, and awful fear of his divine Majesty, and an account
-of the manner in which he addresses himself to him, with confession of
-those sins which Israel had been guilty of, in Dan. ix. 4, 5. ‘I prayed
-unto the Lord my God, and made my confession, and said, O Lord, the
-great and dreadful God, keeping the covenant, and mercy to them that
-love him, and to them that keep his commandments: We have sinned, and
-committed iniquity, and have done wickedly, and have rebelled, even by
-departing from thy precepts, and from thy judgments.’ And we have this
-humble confession and supplication, continued to ver. 19. and then an
-account of the success thereof, in the gracious answer that God sent him
-by an angel from heaven.
-
-We also read of Joshua’s interceding for Israel, when he ‘fell upon his
-face before the ark of the Lord, with his clothes rent,’ Josh. vii. 6.
-and we have the plea that he makes use of in ver. 9. ‘What wilt thou do
-unto thy great name.’
-
-We have also an instance of fervency in Moses, (when pleading for the
-people, after they had worshipped the golden calf,) who prefers God’s
-glory to his own happiness; and had rather have no name in the church,
-or be _blotted out of the book which_ God had _written_, than that his
-_wrath_ should _wax hot against Israel, to consume them_; of which we
-have an account in Exod. xxxiii. 10, 11, 31, 32.[110]
-
-There are many other instances of this nature mentioned in scripture;
-which, for brevity sake, I pass over; and, indeed, the whole book of the
-Lamentations is of use to direct us in prayer, under pressing
-afflictions, either feared or undergone; and the book of Psalms is a
-directory for prayer to the believer, suited to every condition which he
-may be supposed to be in, and of praise for mercies of all kinds,
-whether temporal or spiritual. And the same may be said of many other
-parts of scripture.
-
-From what has been said concerning the word of God being a direction to
-us in prayer, we may infer,
-
-(1.) That, as reading the scriptures in our families and closets, is a
-great help to raise our affections, and bring us into a praying frame:
-So the application of scripture-doctrines and examples to our own case,
-will supply us with fit matter and expressions upon all occasions, when
-we draw nigh to God in this duty.
-
-(2.) The pretence of some that they know not how to pray, or that they
-cannot do it without a prescribed form, arises, for the most part, from
-an unacquaintedness with, or a neglect to study the scriptures, to
-answer this end.
-
-(3.) Since the word of God is a directory for prayer, we ought not to
-affect modes of expression, or human strains of rhetoric, which are not
-deduced from, or agreeable to scripture; but, on the other hand, we are
-to use such a simplicity of style, and spirituality of expression, as we
-find contained therein; especially in those parts thereof, as are more
-directly subservient to this duty.
-
-(4.) It will be of very great use for us sometimes, in the course of our
-reading scripture, especially in private, to turn what we read into
-prayer, though it do not contain in itself the form of a prayer; as when
-we read of the presumptuous sins committed by some, and the visible
-marks of God’s displeasure that ensued hereupon, we ought to lift up our
-hearts to him, to keep us from them; or, if we have reason to charge
-ourselves as guilty of them, that we may be humbled, and obtain
-forgiveness from him. And when we read, the excellent characters of some
-of the saints, in scripture, we ought to pray that God would enable us
-to be followers of them herein; or when, in some parts thereof,
-believers are represented as praying for particular mercies, we ought,
-at the same time, to lift up our hearts to God for the same: This will
-be a means, not only to furnish us with matter and proper expressions in
-prayer; but to excite our affections when we engage in this duty, in
-those stated times which are set apart for it. This leads us to
-consider,
-
-III. That there is a special rule of direction contained in that form of
-prayer which Christ taught his disciples, commonly called _the Lord’s
-prayer_. This prayer is mentioned only by two of the evangelists, _viz._
-Matthew, in chap. vi. 8,—13. and Luke, in chap. xi. 2, 3, 4. in which we
-may observe, that though there be a perfect harmony between them, as
-there is between all other parts of scripture, as to the matter or sense
-of them; yet it is obvious to all who compare them together, that there
-is some difference as to the mode of expression; particularly as to the
-_fourth_ and _fifth_ petition, (and that not only in the translation, as
-being sufficiently just, but in the original) which there would not have
-been, had it been designed for a form of prayer.
-
-1. In the fourth petition, Luke teaches us to say, _Give us day by day
-our daily bread_: Whereas, in Matthew, it is expressed, _Give us this
-day our daily bread_, in which there are different ideas contained in
-the respective words. This is very common, when the same sense, for
-substance, is laid down in different parts of scripture.[111] _Give us
-this day our daily bread_, contains a petition for what we want at
-present; and, Give us _this, day by day_, implies, that these wants will
-daily recur upon us, in which it will be necessary to desire a supply
-from God; and therefore, if both these accounts of this petition be
-compared together, we are hereby directed to pray, Lord, give us the
-blessings which we want at present; and let these wants be daily
-supplied, as we shall stand in need of a supply from thee.[112]
-
-2. In the fifth petition, Luke directs us to pray, _Forgive us our sins;
-for we also forgive every one that is indebted to us_: Whereas, in
-Matthew, the expression is very different, viz. _Forgive us our debts as
-we forgive our debtors_.
-
-3. The evangelist Luke leaves out the doxology, _For thine is the
-kingdom, and the power, and the glory, for ever. Amen_; which Matthew
-adds.
-
-From hence, I conceive, it may be inferred, that our Saviour’s design,
-in dictating this prayer to his people, was not that they should confine
-themselves wholly to the mode of expression used therein, without the
-least variation; for then, doubtless, the two Evangelists would have
-laid it down in the very same words; but he rather designed it as a
-directory respecting the matter of prayer.
-
-I am sensible it will be objected to this, that the preface, which Luke
-prefixes to it, is, _when we pray, say, Our Father_, &c. which seems to
-intimate that these very words should be used, and no other: But to this
-it may be replied, that the evangelist Matthew, who beyond dispute, laid
-down this prayer more fully than Luke does, says, by way of preface to
-it, _After this manner pray ye_; which seems to be an intimation that it
-was designed rather to be a directory, as to the matter of prayer, than
-a form of words to be used without the least variation; and therefore I
-cannot but think, that what Luke says, _when you pray, say_, &c. imports
-nothing else but, _pray after this manner_.
-
-It farther appears, that our Saviour principally designed this prayer as
-a directory, respecting the matter of our petitions, rather than a form;
-because it does not explicitly contain all the parts of prayer, nor
-particularly, confession of sin, or thankful acknowledgment of mercies.
-I say, it does not contain these explicitly, but only implicitly, as a
-deduction, or inference from the petitions themselves; as when we say,
-_Forgive us our debts_, or sins, this supposes that we acknowledge
-ourselves to be sinners. It cannot be denied, but that there are some
-expressions which contain matter of thanksgiving; as when we pray,
-_Hallowed be thy name_, it implies, a thankful acknowledgment of all
-those instances in which God has sanctified his name, as well as a
-desire that he would do it, _q. d._ thou hast, in the various
-dispensations of thy providence; and in all thine holy institutions, set
-forth the glory of thy perfections that thou mayest be adored and
-magnified by thy creatures; this we own with thankfulness at the same
-time that we desire the continuance thereof. And when we pray, _Give us
-daily bread_; we do, in effect, acknowledge the bounty of his
-providence, from whence we receive all the comforts of life, and the
-large share thereof, which he has communicated to us, whereby our wants
-have hitherto been supplied. This, I say, is an implicit direction for
-thanksgiving. But if our Saviour had designed that it should be a
-perfect form of words, to be used without varying in the least from
-them, he would have given us some more full and direct account of what
-sins we are to acknowledge, and what mercies we are to thank him for,
-which is more plainly contained in some other scriptures, than it can be
-supposed to be in this prayer; therefore, it seems to be principally
-designed as a rule for our direction what we are to ask for; or how that
-part of prayer, which includes in it petition, ought to be performed,
-agreeably to the mind and will of God.
-
-Moreover, there is no explicit mention of the Mediator, in whose name we
-are to pray; nor of his obedience, sufferings, or intercession, on which
-the efficacy of our prayers is founded, which our faith is to have a
-great regard unto. These things therefore are to be supplied by what we
-find in other parts of scripture, all which, taken together, give us a
-perfect directory for prayer; though neither this, nor any other prayers
-used in scripture, sufficiently appear to have been designed as a form
-of words which we are to confine ourselves to, without the least
-variation from them.
-
-As to what is observed in the latter of the answers, under our present
-consideration, _viz._ that the Lord’s prayer is not only for direction,
-as a pattern, but may be used as a prayer, provided it be done in a
-right manner. It is granted that the Lord’s prayer is of use, as a
-pattern and rule for our direction, in common with all other prayers
-contained in scripture; but the main difficulty relating to this matter,
-is, whether our Saviour designed that his disciples, and the church, in
-all following ages, should confine themselves to the words thereof, so
-far as that the mode of expression should not be, in the least, altered,
-or any thing added to the petitions contained therein, how agreeable
-soever it be to the sense, and words of scripture. This does not seem to
-have been his intention therein; and, as it will not be denied by any,
-that every one of the petitions contained in it, may be interspersed and
-joined with other petitions to God in prayer, so, when this has been
-done, or, at least, the sense thereof expressed in other words, it will
-be very hard to prove that it is absolutely necessary that these
-petitions should be recollected, and prayed over again, in the same
-method in which they are laid down in this prayer, barely for the sake
-of our making use of it as a form; especially if this is not expressly
-commanded by our Saviour, as it does not sufficiently appear to be, if
-what was before observed be true, that those words, _When we pray, say,
-Our Father_, &c. implies nothing else but, _pray after this manner_.
-
-However, I would be very far from censuring or blaming the practice
-observed by many of the reformed churches, who conclude their _ex
-tempore_, or premeditated prayers with it, provided it be done with
-understanding, reverence, and suitable acts of faith, as any other
-petition contained in scripture may be made use of by us in prayer; not
-only in words agreeable thereunto, but in the express words thereof. The
-principal thing that I would militate against, is not so much the using
-the words, as doing this in a formal way, supposing that the bare
-recital of them doth, as it were, sanctify our other prayers; which,
-though very agreeable to the sense thereof, are, as some suppose,
-rendered so incomplete, that they will hardly be regarded by God without
-it. And I cannot but conclude the Papists highly to blame, who think the
-frequent repetition of it, though in a tongue unknown to the common
-people, is not only necessary, but, in some measure, meritorious. And
-the practice of some ignorant superstitious persons, who think that it
-may be made use of as a charm; and that the words thereof repeated, as
-the Jews of old did their Phylacteries, as a means to drive away evil
-spirits, is not only to be disapproved, but it is a vile instance of
-profaneness, very remote from the design of our Saviour in giving it.
-
-Footnote 110:
-
- Vide ante vol. I. p. 19. in note.
-
-Footnote 111:
-
- The petition in Luke offered daily, is equivalent to that in Matthew.
-
-Footnote 112:
-
- επιουσιον is found only in this prayer, and rather means _necessary_.
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CLXXXVIII., CLXXXIX.
-
-
- QUEST. CLXXXVIII. _Of how many parts doth the Lord’s prayer
- consist?_
-
- ANSW. The Lord’s prayer consists of three parts, a preface,
- petitions, and a conclusion.
-
- QUEST. CLXXXIX. _What doth the preface of the Lord’s prayer teach
- us?_
-
- ANSW. The preface of the Lord’s prayer [contained in these words,
- _Our Father which art in heaven_] teacheth us, when we pray, to draw
- near to God with confidence of his fatherly goodness, and our
- interest therein, with reverence, and all other child-like
- dispositions, heavenly affections, and due apprehensions of his
- Sovereign power, majesty, and gracious condescension; as also to
- pray with, and for others.
-
-In this prayer we are taught to begin our prayers with a preface, and
-therein to make an explicit mention of the name of God, and some of his
-divine perfections. The preface to this prayer is contained in these
-words; _Our Father which art in heaven_. In which we may observe, that
-we are to draw near to God with reverence, and suitable apprehensions of
-his sovereign power, majesty, and other divine perfections, and with an
-holy confidence of his fatherly goodness; and that we are to pray with,
-and for others, which may be inferred from his being styled, _Our
-Father_; by which we are instructed to begin our prayers with some
-expressions of reverence, agreeable to the nature of the duty that we
-are engaged in, whereby we express the sense we have of his essential or
-relative glory, of which we have various instances in scripture, wherein
-God’s people, in addressing themselves to him, have made mention of his
-glorious names, titles, and attributes, in variety of expressions. Thus
-David, in his Psalms, that contain the matter and form of prayers,
-sometimes begins them with the name of God, to whom they are directed;
-as when he says, _God be merciful unto us, and bless us_, &c. Psal.
-lxvii. 1. And elsewhere, _O God! thou art my God_, Psal. lxiii. 1. And
-sometimes he makes mention of his name _Jehovah_; which we translate
-_Lord_: Thus he says, _O Lord, rebuke me not in thy wrath_, &c. Psal.
-xxxviii. 1. And elsewhere, _I will love thee, O Lord, my strength_,
-Psal. xviii. 1. And, _O Lord, our Lord, how excellent is thy name in all
-the earth_, Psal. viii. 1. And Solomon begins his prayer at the
-consecration of the temple; _Lord God of Israel, there is no God like
-thee in heaven above, or earth beneath; who keepest covenant and mercy
-with thy servants that walk before thee with all their heart_, 1 Kings
-viii. 23. And Ezra begins his prayer, _O my God! I am ashamed, and blush
-to lift up my face to thee, my God!_ Ezra ix. 6. And Daniel expresses
-himself thus, in the preface to his prayer, _O Lord, the great and
-dreadful God, keeping the covenant, and mercy to them that love him, and
-to them that keep his commandments_, Dan. ix. 4. These are all
-expressions, that denote reverence, and adoration; which, together with
-other instances of the like nature, are of use for our direction, as to
-what respects the preface, or beginning of our prayers to God; but the
-preface to the Lord’s prayer is somewhat different; in which we are
-taught,
-
-1. To address ourselves to God as a Father; which relation includes in
-it,
-
-(1.) Something common to mankind in general; in which respect we are to
-adore him as our Creator, our Owner, and Benefactor, _in whom we live,
-and move, and have our being_, Acts xvii. 28. as the prophet says, _Have
-we not all one Father? hath not one God created us?_ Mal. ii. 10. And
-elsewhere it is said, _He formeth the spirit of man within him_, Zech.
-xii. 1. upon which account he is called, _the God of the spirits of all
-flesh_, Numb. xvi. 22. and, _the Father of spirits_, Heb. xii. 9.
-
-(2.) God being a Father to his people, sometimes denotes that external
-covenant-relation which they stand in to him, as a people called by his
-name, favoured with the means of grace, and as such, the objects of that
-care and goodness, which he is pleased to extend to those whom he
-governs by laws given by special revelation from heaven, and encourages
-to wait on him in those ordinances, in which they may hope for his
-presence, and also promises all saving blessings to those that give up
-themselves to him by faith. In this sense we are to understand those
-scriptures, in which God says, _Israel is my son, even my first-born_,
-Exod. iv. 22. And, _I have nourished and brought up children, and they
-have rebelled against me_, Isa. i. 2. And, _Wilt thou not, from this
-time cry to me, My Father, thou art the guide of my youth_, Jer. iii. 4.
-
-(3.) The relation which God stands in to his people, as a Father, is
-sometimes taken in the highest sense, as implying in it discriminating
-grace, or special love, which he is pleased to extend to the heirs of
-salvation. Thus he is called so by right of redemption; in which respect
-Christ is styled, _The everlasting Father_, Isa. ix. 6. as being the
-Head and Redeemer of his people. And the church says, _Thou, O Lord, art
-our Father, our Redeemer; thy name is from everlasting_, chap. lxiii.
-16. And believers are called his children by regeneration; in which
-respect they are said to be _born of God_, John i. 13. and to be _made
-partakers of a divine_, 2 Pet. i. 4. that is, an holy and spiritual
-_nature_, which had its rise from God, when he was pleased to instamp
-his image upon them, consisting in holiness and righteousness. They are
-also called the children of God by adoption; thus he is said to have
-_predestinated them to the adoption of children by Jesus Christ to
-himself_, Eph. i. 5. and they are said to _receive the adoption of
-sons_, Gal. iv. 5. and as such, have a right to the inheritance of
-children, Rom. viii. 17. compared with Col. i. 12.
-
-These various senses in which God is said to be a Father to man, may
-serve for our direction when we style him, _Our Father_, in prayer.
-Unregenerate persons, when they pray to God, can ascend no higher than
-what is contained in their relation to him as a God of nature, and of
-providence; who are obliged to adore him for the blessings which they
-have received from him, as the effects of common bounty, which include
-in them all the blessings which belong to this life, together with his
-patience, forbearance, and long-suffering, which delays to inflict the
-punishment that sin deserves. Therefore, when they say, _Our Father_,
-they acknowledge that they derive their being from him, and though they
-cannot lay claim to the benefits of Christ’s redemption, yet they
-confess their obligations to God as their Creator; and consider him as
-having given them souls capable of spiritual blessings, and themselves
-as daily receiving the good things of this life from him, and dependent
-on him for those things that tend to the comfort and support of life.
-They also stand in need of those blessings which are suited to the
-nature of the soul, and consequently beg that they may not remain
-destitute of those things that may conduce to their everlasting welfare;
-and therefore they may use the Psalmist’s words, _Thy hands have made
-me, and fashioned me: Give me understanding, that I may learn thy
-commandments_, Psal. cxix. 73.
-
-As for those who are God’s children, by an external covenant-relation,
-there is something more implied therein, than barely their being
-creatures; for herein they are led to adore him for those discoveries
-that he has made in the gospel, of the way of salvation by Jesus Christ,
-who calls and invites sinners to come to him, and encourages them to
-hope, that those who are enabled to do so in a right manner, he will, in
-no wise, cast out; therefore, when they call upon God as their Father in
-prayer, it is, in effect, to say; Lord, we cannot conclude ourselves to
-be thy children, as redeemed, effectually called and sanctified; nor can
-we lay claim to the inheritance laid up for thy saints in heaven; yet we
-are encouraged to wait on thee in the ordinances of thine appointment,
-and to hope for thy special presence therein, whereby they may be made
-effectual for our salvation. We are, indeed, destitute of special grace,
-and cannot conclude that we have a right to the saving blessings of the
-covenant; yet, through thy great goodness, we still enjoy the means of
-grace. We have not been admitted to partake of Christ’s fulness, nor to
-eat of the bread of life; yet we are thankful for those blessings of thy
-house, which thou art pleased to continue to us; and since thou still
-includest us in the number of those who are thy children as favoured
-with the gospel, we humbly take leave, upon this account, to call thee
-our Father, and to wait and hope for thy salvation, and continue to
-implore that grace from thee, which will give us a right to the best of
-blessings that we stand in need of.[113]
-
-As for those who are God’s children in the highest sense, by redemption,
-regeneration, and adoption, they may draw nigh to him, with an holy
-boldness; for these have, as the apostle expresseth it, the _Spirit of
-adoption whereby they cry, Abba, Father_; they have reason to adore him
-for privileges of the highest nature, that he has conferred upon them,
-and to encourage themselves that he will bestow upon them all the
-blessings they stand in need of as to this, or a better world. These may
-draw nigh to God with confidence of his fatherly goodness, and their
-interest therein; which they ought to take notice of and improve, in
-order to their drawing nigh to him, in a right manner, in prayer, as
-well as to induce them to behave themselves, in the whole course of
-their conversation, as those who are taken into this honourable relation
-to him. Accordingly,
-
-[1.] This should raise their admiring thoughts of him, that they, who
-were, by nature, strangers and enemies to him, should be admitted to
-partake of this inestimable privilege; as the apostle says, _Behold what
-manner of love the Father hath bestowed upon us, that we should be
-called the sons of God!_ 1 John iii. 1.
-
-[2.] We should also take encouragement from hence, to hope that he will
-hear and answer our prayers, though very imperfect, so far as it may
-tend to his glory and our real advantage. Thus our Saviour says, _If ye
-then, being evil, know how to give good gifts unto your children, how
-much more shall your Father, which is in heaven, give good things to
-them that ask him?_ Matt. vii. 11. Do we pray for spiritual blessings,
-such as the increase of grace, strength against corruption, and to be
-kept from temptation, or falling by it? we have ground to conclude that
-these shall be granted us, inasmuch as they are purchased for us by
-Christ, promised in the covenant of grace, as we have the earnest and
-first-fruits of the Spirit in our hearts, whereby we are sealed unto the
-day of redemption. And when we pray for temporal blessings, we have
-reason to hope they shall be granted, if they be necessary for us, since
-our Saviour says, _Our heavenly Father knoweth that we have need of all
-these things_, Matt. vi. 32.
-
-[3.] This should excite in us those child-like dispositions, which are
-agreeable to this relation, not only when we draw nigh to God in prayer,
-but in the whole conduct of our lives. And it includes in it,
-
-_1st_, Humility and reverence, which is not only becoming those who have
-an interest in his love, and a liberty of access into his presence, with
-hope of acceptance in his sight; but it is what we are obliged to, as
-his peculiar people, and a branch of that honour which is due to him as
-our God and Father. Thus he says, by the prophet, _A son honoureth his
-father_, Mal. i. 6. whereby he intimates that this is the character and
-disposition of those that stand in the relation of children to him. And
-the apostle argues from the less to the greater, when he says, that _we
-have had fathers of our flesh, which corrected us, and we gave them
-reverence, shall we not much rather be in subjection to the Father of
-Spirits_, Heb. xii. 9.
-
-_2dly_, Patience under rebukes, considering our proneness to go astray,
-whereby we not only deserve them, but they are rendered necessary; and
-especially when we consider that they flow from love, and are designed
-for our good; as the apostle says, _Whom the Lord loveth he chastneth,
-and scourgeth every son whom he receiveth_, ver. 6.
-
-_3dly_, Another child-like disposition is being grieved for our Father’s
-frowns; especially that we have incurred his displeasure by our
-misbehaviour towards him; and it contains in it a readiness to confess
-our faults, and a carefulness to avoid them for the future.
-
-_4thly_, Contentment with the provision of our Father’s house, whatever
-it be. We shall never, indeed, have the least cause to complain of
-scarcity, as the returning prodigal in the parable says, that even the
-_hired servants of his father, had bread enough, and to spare_, Luke xv.
-17. It can hardly be supposed that he who is at the fountain head, can
-perish for thirst; nevertheless, though we are not straitened in God,
-yet we are often straitened in our bowels, through the weakness of our
-faith, when we are not inclined to receive what God holds forth to us in
-the gospel; and then we are discontented and uneasy, while the blame
-lies at our own door; whereas, if we behaved ourselves as the children
-of such a Father, we should not only be pleased with, but constantly
-adore and live upon that fulness of grace that there is in Christ; and
-whether he is pleased to give us more or less of the blessings of common
-providence, we should learn, _in whatsoever state we are, therewith to
-be content_, Phil. iv. 11.
-
-_5thly_, Obedience to a father’s commands, without disputing his
-authority, or right to govern us, is another child-like disposition.
-Thus when we draw nigh to God as to our Father, we are to express a
-readiness to do whatever he requires, whereby we not only approve
-ourselves subjects under a law, but, as the apostle styles it, _Obedient
-children_, as being _holy in all manner of conversation_, 1 Pet. i. 14,
-15.
-
-_6thly_, Another disposition of children is, that they have a fervent
-zeal for their father’s honour, and cannot bear to hear him reproached
-without the highest resentment. Thus the children of God, how much
-soever they may be concerned about their own affairs, when injuriously
-treated by the world, are always ready to testify their utmost dislike
-of every thing that reflects dishonour on him, or his ways.
-
-_7thly_, Another child-like disposition is love, which the relation of a
-father engages to. Thus when we draw nigh to God as our Father, we
-express our love to him, which is founded in his divine excellencies,
-which render him the object of the highest delight and esteem.
-
-_8thly_, He that has a child-like disposition, retains a grateful sense
-of the obligations that he is under to his Father. Thus we ought to be
-duly sensible of all the favours which we have received from God, which
-are more than can be numbered; the contrary hereunto, is reckoned the
-basest ingratitude and disingenuity, altogether unbecoming the temper of
-children. Thus Moses says to Israel, _Do ye thus requite the Lord, O
-foolish people and unwise? Is not he thy Father who hath bought thee?
-hath he not made, and established thee?_ Deut. xxxii. 6. A believer’s
-obligations to God are so very great, that he cannot look back upon his
-former state, or consider what he was, how vile and unworthy of any
-regard from him, how miserable and unable to help himself, when he first
-had compassion on him, without seeing himself under the strongest
-engagements to be entirely, and for ever, his; which is a becoming
-behaviour towards such a Father.
-
-_9thly_, Love to all that are related to us as children of the same
-Father, is another child-like disposition. In like manner our love to
-the saints and faithful brethren in Christ, is a temper becoming the
-children of God; and, indeed, it is no other than a loving God in them,
-as we behold his image instamped upon them; and hereby we express the
-high esteem we have for regenerating grace, whereby God is denominated
-our common Father; and we, being acted by the same principle, are
-obliged and inclined to love as brethren. Thus they who love God, are
-induced to love his children, as the apostle says, _Every one that
-loveth him that begat, loveth him also that is begotten of him_, 1 John
-v. 1. and he also assigns this as an evidence that _we are passed from
-death to life, because we love the brethren_, chap. iii. 14. Thus
-concerning our drawing nigh to God, as to a Father, as we are taught to
-do in this prayer.
-
-2. We are directed, in this prayer, to draw nigh to God, as being in
-heaven; which is the most glorious part of the frame of nature, in which
-his power, wisdom, and goodness is eminently displayed, as he designed
-it to be an eternal habitation for the best of creatures, to whom he
-would discover more of his glory than to any others; and in this respect
-it is called his _throne_, Acts vii. 49. And this leads us,
-
-(1.) To have high and awful thoughts of the majesty and greatness of
-God, whom all the hosts of heaven worship, with the utmost reverence,
-and are satisfied with the immense treasure of his goodness. We
-therefore take occasion from hence to admire his infinite condescension,
-that he will look upon creatures here below; thus Solomon, in his prayer
-says, _Will God, indeed, dwell on the earth? behold the heaven, and the
-heaven of heavens cannot contain thee_, 1 Kings viii. 27. will he
-therefore look down upon those, who are so mean, deformed, and destitute
-of his image, as we are, who dwell in houses of clay, and deserve to be
-banished out of his sight?
-
-(2.) It should also be improved by us to teach us humility and modesty,
-in our conceptions and discourse, concerning God, and divine things: It
-is but a little that we know of the affairs of the upper world, and the
-way and manner in which God is pleased to manifest himself to his saints
-and angels there; and we know much less of his divine perfections, which
-the inhabitants of heaven adore, being sensible of the infinite distance
-they stand at from him, as creatures, upon which account they cannot
-comprehend, or find out the Almighty to perfection; and shall we pretend
-to search out the secrets of his wisdom, or express ourselves in prayer,
-as though we were speaking to one that was our equal, or could fathom
-the infinite depths of his unsearchable counsels? Thus Solomon’s advice
-may be well adapted to this case, _Be not rash with thy mouth, and let
-not thine heart be hasty to utter any thing before God; for God is in
-heaven, and thou upon earth; therefore let thy words be few_, 1 Kings
-viii. 27. We are not to think that we may say what we please, or be rash
-and inconsiderate in what we say, when we are _before the Lord; for he
-is in heaven_: And when it is farther inferred, that _therefore our
-words should be few_, that is, we should not think that the efficacy of
-our prayers depends upon the multitude of our words; or if we speak more
-or less to God, our expressions ought not to be bold, rash, hasty, or
-inconsiderate, but with a becoming decency and reverence, as those who
-are speaking to the majesty of heaven.
-
-(3.) It should put us upon meditating frequently on the glory of the
-heavenly state, as those who hope at last, to be joined with that happy
-and numerous assembly, who are, in God’s immediate presence, in heaven:
-and therefore our conversation should be there; and we should profess
-ourselves to be sojourners here on earth, seeking a better country,
-looking and waiting for the glorious appearing of the great God, our
-Saviour; and hoping, that when he comes, he will receive us to heaven,
-where our hearts are at present, as our treasure is there.
-
-3. We are, in this prayer, farther taught, that it is our duty to pray
-with, and for others, as we say, _Our Father_: Hereby we signify our
-relation to, and concern for, all the members of Christ’s mystical body;
-therefore, if we do not join with others in prayer, we are to have them
-upon our hearts, who are the objects of Christ’s special love and care.
-This argues, that we have a sympathy with all those who are exposed to
-the same wants and miseries with ourselves; and we take a great deal of
-delight in considering them as subjects of the same common Lord, joining
-in the same profession with ourselves; concerning whom, we desire and
-hope that we shall be glorified together.
-
-Moreover, if we join with others in prayer, so that the whole assembly
-make their supplications by one that is their mouth, to God; this is
-what we call social worship: Therefore it is our duty to pray with, as
-well as for others; and in this case we must take heed that nothing be
-contained in united prayer, but what the whole assembly may join in, as
-being expressive of their faith, desires, or experiences; otherwise
-there cannot be that beautiful harmony therein, such as the nature and
-design of the duty we are jointly engaged in, calls for: and this is
-agreeable to social or united prayers, in which all the petitions are to
-be adapted to the particular case of every one who addresses himself to
-God, how numerous soever the worshipping assembly may be; and therefore
-we are obliged to make use of that mode of expression, in which we are
-taught to say, _Our Father_.
-
-Thus our Saviour directs us how we should begin our prayers to God; and,
-inasmuch as this ought to be reduced to practice, I shall give a summary
-account of what is contained in this preface; that we may be furnished
-with matter taken from thence, in order to our addressing ourselves to
-God in prayer, in a way agreeable thereunto, when we come into his
-presence with such a frame of spirit as the importance of the duty
-requires; accordingly we are to express ourselves to this purpose, “O
-our God, we desire to draw nigh to thee with a becoming reverence, and
-an awful sense of thine infinite perfections: When we consider thee as a
-jealous God, and ourselves as sinful, guilty creatures, we might well be
-afraid to come before thee; but thou hast encouraged us to approach thy
-presence as to a Father, in, and through the merits and mediation of our
-Lord Jesus Christ; and therefore we come with an humble boldness before
-thy throne of grace, confessing that though we are called thy children,
-we have been very undutiful and rebellious against thee, and therefore
-unworthy of that relation or of the inheritance which thou hast laid up
-for those whom thou hast ordained to eternal life. Thou, O Lord, hast
-established thy throne in the heavens, where there is an innumerable
-company of angels and spirits of just men made perfect, who all behold
-thy face, and are made completely blessed in thine immediate presence:
-As for us, we dwell in houses of clay; but we earnestly beg that we may
-be made meet for, and then admitted into that happy society, that we may
-worship thee in a more perfect manner than we are capable of doing in
-this imperfect state. May all the powers and faculties of our souls be
-renewed, and influenced by thy holy Spirit, that we may have our
-conversation in heaven, whilst we are here below, and in all things, may
-be enabled to approve ourselves thy children, have a constant sense of
-duty, and the manifold obligations thou hast laid us under, that we may
-love, delight in, and submit to thee in all things, and have a fervent
-zeal for the honour of thy name as becomes thy children, that we,
-together with all thy faithful servants, may be under thy safe
-protection here, and be received to thy glory hereafter.”
-
-Footnote 113:
-
- Qu. For _Father_ is designed in its appellative sense, and _our_ as a
- covenant-plea.
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CXC.
-
-
- QUEST. CXC. _What do we pray for the first petition?_
-
- ANSW. In the first petition [which is, _Hallowed be thy Name_,]
- acknowledging the utter inability and indisposition that is in
- ourselves and all men to honour God aright, we pray that God would,
- by his grace, enable and incline us, and others, to know, to
- acknowledge, and highly to esteem him, his titles, attributes,
- ordinances, word, works, and whatsoever he is pleased to make
- himself known by, and to glorify him in thought, word, and deed;
- that he would prevent and remove atheism, ignorance, idolatry,
- profaneness, and whatsoever is dishonourable to him; and, by his
- over-ruling providence, direct and dispose of all things to his own
- glory.
-
-Having considered the preface to the Lord’s prayer, the next part of
-which it consists, is petitions; and these are six, which are laid down
-in this method.
-
-1. We are taught to pray for what concerns God’s glory, which is the
-highest and most valuable end; and therefore ought first to be prayed
-for: And this is the subject-matter of the three first petitions.
-
-2. We are directed to pray for what respects our own advantage, which is
-contained in the three last petitions, in which we are directed to pray
-for outward blessings, as in the fourth petition, and then for
-spiritual, without which outward blessings would afford us no relish or
-savour, nor render us truly happy. These spiritual blessings include in
-them either forgiveness of sin, and this we pray for in the fifth
-petition; or our being sanctified and delivered from the prevalency of
-corruption and temptation, together with all the evils that sin exposes
-us to; this we pray for in the sixth petition. That which we are more
-particularly to consider in this answer, is, what we are taught to pray
-for in the first petition, which is contained in these words, _Hallowed
-be thy name_. By the _name_ of God we are to understand every thing, by
-which he is pleased to make himself known to his creatures, as when he
-discovers himself in his divine perfections, which are either essential
-or personal, absolute or relative; and in his glorious titles, as the
-Lord of Hosts, the God and Rock of Israel, the hope of Israel, the God
-that cannot lye, the Father of mercies, the God of all grace and glory,
-the preserver of man; which have all a tendency to raise in us the
-highest veneration for, and esteem of him. He has also made himself
-known by his ordinances, words, and works: These are the subject-matter
-of this petition; and when we pray that they may be sanctified, we are
-not to understand hereby that they may be made holy; but that the
-holiness and glory thereof may be demonstrated by him, and that we may
-be enabled to adore and magnify him agreeably thereunto.
-
-Now the name of God may be said to be sanctified either by himself or by
-his people in different respects; accordingly,
-
-I. We pray that God would sanctify, that is, demonstrate the glory of
-his own name, or proclaim and make it visible to the world, so as to
-excite that adoration and esteem which is due to him. His name, indeed,
-has been eminently glorified in all ages, in the various methods of his
-providence and grace; whereby his power, wisdom, and goodness have been
-illustrated in the eyes of angels and men; and, in all his works, he has
-appeared to be a God of infinite holiness: We therefore pray that he
-would continue to glorify these perfections, and enable us to improve
-the displays thereof to our spiritual advantage.
-
-This is a subject of the highest importance, without which we cannot
-give to God the glory due unto his name; therefore, as praise is joined
-with prayer, it is necessary for us to take a view of the various ways
-by which God has manifested the glory of his holiness. We might here
-consider how he did this in his creating man at first, without the least
-blemish or disposition in his nature to sin, and enstamped his own image
-upon him, which principally consisted in holiness, which was the
-greatest internal beauty and ornament that he could be endowed with.
-
-But that which we shall principally consider, is, how the holiness of
-God is demonstrated in his dealings with fallen man. His suffering sin
-to enter into the world, was not inconsistent with the holiness of his
-nature, since his providence, as has been observed elsewhere, was not
-conversant about it, by bringing any under a natural necessity of
-sinning; and therefore there is not the least ground to charge him, with
-being the author of sin. We now proceed to shew how the holiness of God
-was glorified in the dispensations of his providence towards fallen man,
-and in the methods he took in order to his recovery.
-
-1. The holiness of God was glorified, or he sanctified his great name,
-in the dispensations of his providence towards fallen man, before he
-gave him any hope of salvation. It cannot be supposed that this
-rebellion against, and apostacy from God, should not be highly resented
-by him; accordingly we read of his proceeding against the rebel as a
-judge, charging his crime upon him, and passing sentence pursuant to the
-demerit of his sin; and all the miseries that we are exposed to, either
-in this life, or that which is to come, are the result of the display of
-his holiness, as a sin-revenging Judge. As soon as ever our first
-parents sinned against him, he charged the guilt thereof on their
-consciences, and thereby filled them with a dread of his wrath: Hence
-proceeded an inclination to flee from his presence; and when they heard
-the voice of the Lord coming to call them to an account for what they
-had done, they were afraid.
-
-This is God’s usual method in dealing with sinful creatures: He first
-convinces them of sin by the law, and awakens the conscience, so that
-his terrors are set in array against it round about, before he speaks
-good and comfortable words by the gospel: And by this means he
-sanctifies his name, and thereby discovers his infinite hatred of all
-sin: but we shall principally consider,
-
-2. How God glorifies his holiness in the method he has taken to deliver
-man from that guilt and misery, under which he had brought himself. The
-terms of reconciliation and salvation, were such as tended to secure the
-glory of his justice; and therefore he insisted on a satisfaction to be
-given, without making the least abatement of any part of the debt of
-punishment that was due for our sin; and accordingly _he spared not his
-own Son_, Rom. viii. 32. but delivered him over unto death, and obliged
-him to drink the bitterest part of that cup which was most formidable to
-nature, and which, had it been possible, he would fain have been excused
-from drinking; therefore he is represented, by one of the evangelists,
-as praying, that God the Father would _take this cup from him_, Mark
-xiv. 35, 36. and by another, that he would _save him from this hour_,
-John xii. 27. Nevertheless, he expresses the utmost resignation to the
-divine will; and being sensible that this was an expedient to glorify
-the holiness of God, he does, as it were, give a check to the voice of
-nature, and submits to bear the punishment he came into the world to
-suffer, how terrible soever it might be; and therefore says, _Father
-glorify thy name_, q. d. ver. 28. take what method is most expedient to
-demonstrate the glory of thy holiness let the whole debt be exacted on
-me, I am willing to pay the utmost farthing: Upon this God says, by a
-voice from heaven, _I have glorified it, and will glorify it again_;
-that is, in every step that has been, or shall be taken, in order to the
-bringing about the work of redemption, I have hallowed my name, and will
-do it hereafter. And, in this respect, God’s holiness was glorified in
-finishing transgression, making an end of sin, bringing in everlasting
-righteousness, and also in the impetration of redemption, by our great
-Mediator and Surety.
-
-3. God has sanctified his name in all the methods which he has taken in
-the application of redemption, in the various dispensations of his
-providence and grace towards his church and people; and in order
-hereunto, he has determined, that _if_ his _children forsake_ his _law,
-and walk not in_ his _judgements; if they break_ his _statutes and keep
-not_ his _commandments, he will visit their transgression with the rod,
-and their iniquity with stripes_, Psal. lxxxix. 30, 32. And this is done
-to manifest the glory of his holiness: Though he is pleased to pardon
-their iniquity for the sake of Christ’s righteousness; yet they shall
-know, by experience, that he hates it; and therefore, whatever be his
-designs of grace, with respect to his redeemed ones, as to the event
-thereof, they shall, notwithstanding, find that their sin shall not
-altogether go unpunished, though this punishment be not of the same kind
-with that which was suffered by Christ, from the hand of vindictive
-justice demanding satisfaction. Moreover, God has sanctified his name,
-in that he has connected sanctification with salvation; therefore he has
-said, _Without holiness no man shall see the Lord_, Heb. xii. 14. He
-first makes his people holy, and then happy; every mercy that he
-bestows, is a motive or inducement to holiness; and all the ordinances
-and means of grace are made subservient to answer this end.
-
-Here we may take occasion to observe the various methods, whereby God
-has sanctified his name, in all his dealings with his church, in the
-various ages thereof, both before and since our Saviour’s incarnation;
-
-(1.) Under the legal dispensation. The people, whom he chose out of all
-the nations of the earth, and called them by his name; among whom he
-designed to magnify his perfections in such a way, as argued them to be
-the peculiar objects of his regard above all others, as he designed to
-make them high in name, in praise, and in honour; these are styled _an
-holy people_, Deut. xxvi. 19. and elsewhere, _holiness unto the Lord_,
-Jer. ii. 3. and the wonderful things that he did for them in destroying
-their enemies, when he brought them out of Egyptian bondage, gave them
-occasion to celebrate his name, as a God _glorious in holiness, fearful
-in praises, doing wonders_, Exod. xv. 11. and the worship that he
-established among them was such, in which he expressly required
-holiness, both in heart and life; and when, at any time, they cast a
-reproach on his perfections, or defiled and debased his holy
-institutions, he testified his displeasure against them in the highest
-degree: Of this we have various instances in the judgments which he has
-executed on particular persons for not performing what he had commanded,
-with the greatest exactness, in those things which related to his
-worship: Thus when Nadab and Abihu _offered strange fire_, they were
-_devoured, before the Lord, by fire from heaven_, Lev. x. 1, 2. And,
-when David was bringing the ark of God to Jerusalem, we read, that Uzzah
-put forth his hand to take hold of it to prevent its falling, when
-shaken by the oxen, which he, doubtless, did with a good design, and it
-is therefore called an _error_, rather than a presumptuous sin; yet it
-is said, that _the anger of the Lord was kindled against him, so that he
-smote him that he died_ by it, 2 Sam. vi. 6, 7. this being contrary to
-an express law which God had given, that the sons of Kohath should _bear
-the ark, but they should not touch it, or any holy thing_ that was
-covered, _lest they die_, Numb. iv. 15. And elsewhere we read, that some
-of the men of Bethshemesh, because they had _looked into the ark of the
-Lord, were smitten, so that fifty thousand, and threescore and ten of
-them died_, 1 Sam. vi. 19. inasmuch as God had forbidden that any should
-indulge their curiosity, so far as to look on the holy things on pain of
-death, Numb. iv. 20. And he also threatened the children of Israel with
-death, if any of them who were not appointed to minister in holy things,
-came nigh the tabernacle of the congregation, so as to perform that
-service which they were not sanctified or called to, since this was
-reckoned no other than an instance of profaneness in them. And if Aaron
-himself, whose office was to go into the holiest of all to perform the
-yearly service, in which he was to make atonement for the sins of the
-whole congregation, presumed to do this, at any other time but that day
-which God had appointed, he was to be punished with death, Lev. xvi. 2.
-
-And, when any thing was brought into the worship of God, contrary to
-what he had instituted, which was reckoned no other than a profaning it,
-God hallowed his own name, by pouring forth his wrath on those who gave
-occasion to, or complied with it. Thus when Jeroboam, set up calves in
-Bethel and Dan, _made priests of the lowest of the people, which were
-not of the sons of Levi, ordained feasts_ like those which God had
-appointed; and, in many other instances, corrupted his worship, whereby
-the people, who complied with him herein, were led aside from God, it is
-said, _This became sin unto the house of Jeroboam, even to cut it off,
-and to destroy it from off the face of the earth_, 1 Kings xii. 29-33.
-compared with chap. xiii. 34. And when Ahaz _erected an altar, according
-to the pattern of that which he saw at Damascus, and sacrificed to the
-gods of the people_, from whom he had took the pattern thereof, this
-brought _ruin_ on him and his kingdom, 2 Kings xvi. 10. compared with 2
-Chron. xxviii. 23. And when Uzziah usurped the priest’s office, by
-offering incense in the temple, God immediately testified his
-displeasure against him, by _smiting him with leprosy_; whereby he was
-separated from the congregation of the Lord, and rendered unfit to
-govern his people to the day of his death, 2 Chron. xxvi. 16, 20, 21.
-And when holy men, in any instance, have not sanctified his name in the
-eyes of the people, God has highly resented it: Thus when Moses and
-Aaron _spake unadvisedly with their lips_, upon which account they are
-said _not to sanctify the name of God at the waters of Meribah_ he tells
-them, that therefore they should not _bring the children of Israel into
-the land of Canaan, but should die in the wilderness_, Numb. xx. 12.
-
-And, as we have many instances of the judgments of God on particular
-persons, for not sanctifying his name; so we have a public and visible
-display of his holiness, in his dealings with the whole nation of
-Israel, after their many revolts from him, when they served other gods,
-and not only corrupted, but laid aside his institutions, and were guilty
-of those vile abominations, which were inconsistent with the least
-pretensions to holiness; God sanctified his own name, not only by
-reproving them by the prophets, but sending those many judgments which
-were the forerunners of that desolation, which they had reason to
-expect, and then by delivering them into the hand of those who carried
-them captive, Israel into Assyria, and Judah into Babylon. This leads us
-to consider,
-
-(3.) How God has, and still continues to sanctify his name, under the
-gospel-dispensation. Our Lord Jesus Christ, who is the Head and Saviour
-of his church, has, in his whole administration, set forth the glory of
-God’s holiness. This appears,
-
-[1.] In that he came into the world, with a commission from his
-Father, to engage in the work of our redemption; and accordingly he
-is said to have been _sanctified and sent into_ it for this very
-purpose, John x. 36. And, when he entered on his public ministry, he
-produced his commission, and gave undeniable proofs that he was the
-Messiah, the person whom God the Father had _sealed_, and set over
-his house to manage this great affair. Every miracle which he
-wrought, was a divine testimony for the confirmation of this truth,
-that the gospel-dispensation took its rise from Christ our great
-Mediator, and was a glorious display of the holiness of God; and the
-world could not have the least ground to think they were imposed on,
-when they concluded that this Jesus was he that was to come into the
-world (according to the predictions of all the holy prophets that
-went before him) to erect that dispensation in which his own and his
-Father’s glory were eminently to shine forth, and thereby the name
-of God was to be hallowed in a greater degree than it had ever been
-before.
-
-[2.] God sanctifies his own name under the gospel-dispensation, in
-raising Christ from the dead, after he had finished the work which he
-came into the world about; in which respect it may be said of him,
-that _for_, or after _the suffering of death, he was crowned with
-glory and honour_, Heb. ii. 9. and put into a capacity of applying the
-redemption which he had purchased, so that God the Father _glorified
-the Son, that the Son also might glorify him_, John xvii. 1. That this
-was not done till he had made a full satisfaction to the justice of
-God, and thereby glorified his holiness to the utmost, has been
-already considered; after this he entered upon his glory; and from
-that time the gospel-dispensation might, by way of eminency, be said
-to begin, upon which occasion we may apply the words of the Psalmist,
-‘Sing unto the Lord ye saints of his, and give thanks at the
-remembrance of his holiness,’ Psal. xxx. 4.
-
-[3.] God sanctified or hallowed his name in the method which he took in
-his dealings with the Jewish nation, after Christ’s ascension into
-heaven, which made way for the establishment of the gospel-church, and
-was in itself an awful display of his holiness. It must be supposed,
-that the treatment, which our Saviour met with from that nation, who
-might be said herein to fill up the measure of their iniquities to the
-utmost, would be followed with some terrible displays of divine
-vengeance; and thus it was, as appeared by the utter ruin of their civil
-and religious liberties, which were the immediate consequence thereof;
-and this is a visible proof of the truth of the Christian religion, and
-a very awful instance of God’s being sanctified in them.
-
-[4.] The holiness of God farther appears in the methods which he took to
-propagate his gospel through the world, which was not to be done by
-might or power, nor by those methods of secular policy, whereby civil
-states are advanced; but by his Spirit, whereby they who were called,
-were sufficiently qualified for this important work; who preached the
-gospel to all nations, according to the commission that was given them,
-confirmed it by miracles, and were instrumental in gathering a people
-out of the world, that yielded themselves willing subjects to Christ, a
-people called by his name, and subjected and entirely devoted to him.
-
-[5.] The holiness of God appears in all those doctrines which were
-preached, on which the faith of the church is built, and those
-ordinances in which they were to express their subjection to Christ, and
-hope of salvation by him.
-
-_1st_, The doctrines of the gospel are all pure and holy; their great
-design is to set forth the harmony of the divine perfections, as
-displayed in the method of salvation by Jesus Christ; and to induce
-those who are made partakers thereof, to serve him in holiness and
-righteousness; and there is no gospel-doctrine that gives the least
-countenance, or leads to licentiousness. None have a right to claim an
-interest in Christ’s righteousness, or to hope for that salvation which
-he has purchased, but they who believe, and none can be said to believe,
-to the saving of the soul, but they who are enabled to perform all those
-duties, whereby it will appear, that they are an holy, as well as an
-happy people.
-
-_2dly_, All those ordinances which Christ has instituted in the gospel,
-have a tendency to set forth the holiness of God. What these are, has
-been considered under foregoing answers; as also, that they were
-instituted by Christ, and that no creature has a right to invent any
-modes of worship, or make any additions to his institutions, without
-incurring the guilt of depraving and sullying the beauty of
-gospel-worship[114]; and therefore all that I shall add under this head,
-is, that as these are set apart, and sanctified by God, to be means of
-grace, and pledges of his presence; so they, who engage herein, are to
-do it with this view, that they may be made holy in all conversation, as
-he who hath called them is holy; and hereby God sanctifies his own name
-in the dispensations of his providence and grace.
-
-Now when we pray, _Hallowed be thy name_, with a particular view to what
-God does in order hereunto, we adore him with an holy trembling, when we
-behold the displays of his vindictive justice in punishing sin; and if
-he sees it necessary to secure his own honour as the governor of the
-world, so that without it he would not appear to be an holy God, nor the
-glory of his truth in those threatenings which he has denounced against
-sin, discovered, we are fully satisfied that all his ways are right, as
-acquiescing in his providence; and when his judgments are made manifest,
-we say, _Hallowed be thy name_.
-
-However, when we put up this petition, with a particular view to God’s
-executing his threatened vengeance on his enemies, several cautions are
-to be used. As,
-
-_1st_, We are to take heed that we do not do this out of hatred to the
-persons of any, for even they who are the monuments of divine justice,
-in whom God will be glorified as a sin-revenging judge, are the objects
-of our compassion, as they are miserable, how much soever that sin,
-which is the cause thereof, is to be hated and detested by us.
-
-_2dly_, We must always pray, that God would rather convert than destroy
-his enemies, were it consistent with his purpose, which must be
-accomplished.
-
-_3dly_, We are never called to pray expressly for the damnation of any
-one, how great an enemy soever he may have been to God or us; but
-rather, on the other hand, that God would glorify his name in his
-salvation by Jesus Christ.
-
-_4thly_, If we pray that God would prevent those evils, which his church
-is exposed to, through the power or malice of its enemies, and, in order
-thereunto, that he would remove them out of the way, that they may not
-be able to hurt them; this is to be considered only as an expedient for
-their safety, so that if one of the two must suffer ruin, we rather
-desire that it may be his enemies than his people. We should be glad if
-God would be pleased to bring about the welfare of his church some other
-way; but if not, when we pray that his name herein may be hallowed, it
-is principally with submission to his will, and an humble acknowledgment
-that all his judgments are right. Thus concerning God’s sanctifying his
-own name, as the subject-matter of our prayer in this petition.
-
-II. When we pray, _Hallowed be thy name_, we signify our desire that we
-may be enabled to glorify God in every thing whereby he makes himself
-known: In which there is something supposed, namely, that all men are
-utterly unable and disinclined, of themselves, to honour God aright, or
-to improve the various displays of his glory, which we behold in his
-word and works: This arises from the sinfulness of our nature, our
-alienation from, and opposition to an holy God; so that without the
-assistance of his Spirit, we are not able to do any thing that is good;
-and therefore we pray that God would make us holy, by rendering the
-means of grace conducive thereunto, that we may give him the glory due
-to his name.
-
-But the thing more especially prayed for, with respect to ourselves and
-others is, that we may be enabled to act suitably to the discoveries
-which God has made of his divine perfections; that we may adore his
-wisdom, power, and goodness in all he does, and worship him in all
-ordinances in an holy manner, or, as the Psalmist expresses it, _Worship
-the Lord in the beauty of holiness_, Psal. xxix. 2. We are also to
-desire that all his holy institutions may be made means of grace to us,
-that we may be sanctified by his truth, that beholding, as in a glass,
-the glory of the Lord, we may be transformed into his image, consisting
-of holiness and righteousness, that we may have an high esteem of every
-thing whereby he makes himself known, and glorify him in thought, word,
-and deed.
-
-1. That we may never think or speak of the divine perfections, but with
-a becoming reverence, and suitable acts of faith, agreeably thereunto;
-that when he discovers himself as a God of infinite wisdom, we may not
-only admire the traces and footsteps thereof, as they are visible in all
-his works, but desire that we may thereby be made wise unto salvation.
-When we conceive of him as a God of infinite power, we are to desire
-that he would enable us to have recourse to him, to work all that grace
-in us which can be effected by none but him with whom all things are
-possible. And, when he discovers himself as a God of infinite goodness
-and mercy, that we may be encouraged to hope that we shall be made
-partakers thereof, by his communicating to us the blessings that
-accompany salvation. And when he reveals himself as a God of infinite
-holiness, that we may be conformed to him, in some measure, so as to be
-enabled to hate and fly from every thing which is contrary thereunto;
-and that all sin, which contains in it a reflection on the purity of his
-nature, as well as a contempt of his authority, may be abhorred and
-detested by us. And when he discovers himself as a God of infinite
-faithfulness, a God that keepeth covenant and mercy, to them that fear
-him, who has made many promises respecting their salvation, and will
-certainly accomplish them, that we may depend upon, and put our trust in
-him; that he would remember his good word unto us, upon which he hath
-caused us to hope. When he makes himself known as our Creator, he the
-Potter, and we the clay, that we may be well pleased with all the
-dispensations of his providence towards us, as considering that he has a
-right to do what he will with his own. And when he reveals himself as
-our Redeemer, we are to pray, that we may be able to conclude, that we
-are bought with that invaluable price, which Christ gave for his elect:
-And if we have a comfortable hope concerning our interest therein, that
-we may walk as becomes those who are hereby laid under the highest
-obligations to love him, and live to him.
-
-2. That we may worship him in a right manner, in all his ordinances:
-Accordingly, when he encourages us to attend to what he imparts therein,
-as in hearing, or reading the word, we pray, that we may be enabled to
-receive the truth in the love thereof, and improve it as that which is
-not _the word of men, but of God, which effectually worketh in them that
-believe_, 1 Thess. ii. 13. that we may esteem it as the only infallible
-rule of faith and duty; that we may be enabled to _hide it in our
-hearts, that we may not sin against him_, Psal. cxix. 11. And when we
-should draw nigh to him in prayer, in which he requires, that we should
-sanctify his name as a God all-sufficient, on whom we depend for the
-supply of our wants; or when we bless and praise him for what we have
-received, that the frame of our spirits may be suited to the
-spirituality and importance of the duty we are engaged in, that we may
-not be like those whom our Saviour speaks of, who _draw nigh to him with
-their mouths, and honour him with their lips, while their heart is far
-from him_, Matt. xv. 8.
-
-3. As God makes himself known to us by his works, we are to beg of him,
-that in the work of creation, we may see and admire his eternal power
-and Godhead, and in his works of common providence, as upholding and
-governing all things, we may take occasion to adore the manifold wisdom
-of God, his almighty power, and the inexhaustible treasure of his
-goodness which appears therein: But more especially when he discovers
-himself in the gracious dispensations of his providence, in those things
-which have an immediate reference to our salvation, we are to beg of
-him, not only that he would enable us to look on them with admiration;
-but, particularly, to express our love and thankfulness to Christ our
-great Mediator and Advocate, as those who humbly trust and hope that we
-have an interest in him by faith. Thus concerning our requesting these
-things for ourselves.
-
-We might here observe something concerning our doing it for others, for
-whom we are to pray, that they may have the highest esteem for God in
-all those respects and consequently that his name may be known
-throughout the whole world, not barely as the God of nature, but as he
-has revealed himself in his word; and therefore we are to pray, that the
-way of salvation, by Christ, may be known, and his name adored and
-magnified as a Redeemer and Saviour in those parts of the world, which
-are, at present, destitute of gospel-light; and that, where the word is
-preached, it may be received with faith and love, that they who are
-called Christians may walk more becoming that relation which they stand
-in to the blessed Jesus. Thus concerning the subject-matter of our
-requests in this petition, respecting God’s enabling us and others, to
-glorify him in every thing by which he makes himself known.
-
-There are two things inferred from hence in the close of this answer.
-
-(1.) That when we pray, that God would sanctify his name, it is, in
-effect, to desire that he would prevent and remove every thing which is
-dishonourable to it. Some things tend to cast so great a reproach on the
-name of God, that sinners are hereby hardened in their opposition to
-him; as David, by his sin, is said to have _given great occasion to the
-enemies of the Lord to blaspheme_, 2 Sam. xii. 14. And God is highly
-dishonoured by those open and scandalous sins which are committed by
-such as make a profession of religion; whereby it appears that they are
-strangers to the power thereof, and lay a stumbling-block in the way of
-those who are too ready to take an estimate of the ways of God, from the
-conversation of them, who in words profess, but in works deny him. Some
-deny the very being, perfections and providence of God, or being
-ignorant of him, worship they know not what; and there are others who
-treat things sacred with profaneness and scurrility; and, instead of
-sanctifying the name of God, openly blaspheme and cast a contempt on all
-his sacred institutions. Therefore,
-
-[1.] We are to pray, that God would prevent and remove atheism. When
-persons not only act as though there were no God, but, with blasphemy,
-and daring insolence, express this in words: These are generally
-hardened in their iniquities, and bid defiance to his justice; as though
-they were, as it is said of the Leviathan, _made without fear_, Job xii.
-33. and were not apprehensive of any ill consequences that will ensue
-hereupon. These are not to be convinced by arguments, though there is
-nothing that occurs in the works of creation and providence, but what
-might confute and put them to silence, did they duly attend to it:
-Therefore we are to pray, that God would assert his divine being and
-perfections, and give them some convincing proof thereof, by impressing
-the dread and terror of his wrath upon their consciences, that hereby
-they may learn not to blaspheme; or that he would give them that
-internal light, by which they may be brought to adore and sanctify his
-name. And whereas there are multitudes of practical atheists, who behave
-themselves as though there were no God to observe what they do, or
-punish them for it, therefore they presumptuously conclude, that they
-may rebel without being called to an account; we are to pray, that God,
-by his grace, would prevent and fence against prevailing impiety, by
-working a thorough reformation in the hearts of men, to the end that
-practical godliness may be promoted, and thereby he may be glorified.
-
-[2.] We are to pray, that God would prevent and remove that ignorance
-which is inconsistent with persons sanctifying his name. This respects,
-more especially the not knowing or enquiring into those great doctrines,
-which are of the highest importance, and more directly tend to the
-advancing the glory of God, and the obtaining eternal life. In these who
-are destitute of divine revelation, this ignorance is invincible;
-therefore, with respect to such, we are to pray, that God would grant to
-them the means of grace, by sending his gospel among them; that they who
-sit in darkness, and in the region and shadow of death, may have a
-glorious light shining about them, whereby they may be made acquainted
-with the way of salvation by Jesus Christ: But there are others who sit
-under the sound of the gospel, and yet remain strangers to the great
-doctrines thereof, who have no love to the truth, and act as though it
-did not belong to them, to study the scriptures; these are wilfully
-ignorant, like those who are said to _hate knowledge, and not to choose
-the fear of the Lord_, Prov. i. 29. We are to pray, with regard to such,
-that in order to their sanctifying the name of God, they may be led into
-the knowledge of those great doctrines, in which the glory of the
-Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, is set forth, as it is in the work of
-redemption by Christ, together with the way in which righteousness and
-life may be attained; and that they may know what are those graces which
-are inseparably connected with, and necessary to salvation.
-
-[3.] We are to pray, that God would prevent or remove idolatry; and that
-either such as is more gross and practised by the Heathen and others,
-who give that worship to creatures, that is due to God alone; or else,
-that idolatry which may be observed in the hearts and lives of many, who
-though they abhor the grosser acts thereof, are, nevertheless, guilty of
-this sin, in that they love the creature more than God. This is what we
-all are either chargeable with, or in danger of, which is directly
-contrary to our sanctifying the name of God: Therefore we are to pray,
-with respect to the former, that he would convince them what they
-falsely call worship, is a dishonour to, and abhorred by him; and, with
-respect to the latter, that he deserves our supreme love, and will not
-admit of any thing to stand in competition with him; and that he would
-enable us to love him with all our heart, soul, mind, and strength: And,
-in order hereunto, that he would deliver us from the iniquity of
-covetousness, or those inordinate affections, whereby we are inclined
-immoderately to pursue after the world, which is inconsistent with an
-heavenly conversation; and that we may be kept from self-seeking, or
-trusting to our own righteousness for justification, or giving that
-glory to any other which is due to God alone.
-
-[4.] We are also to pray for the preventing and removal of that
-profaneness which is contrary to the sanctifying the name of God; that
-persons may not give themselves that liberty, which many do, to treat
-things sacred in a common way, or make religion the subject of wit and
-drollery; which is very disgustful to the ears of those who have an awe
-of God on their spirits, and altogether unbecoming persons professing
-godliness. We are also to beg, that God would deliver us from engaging
-in religious duties in a formal way, as though his name were to be
-sanctified only by an external shew or appearance of religion, without
-that internal frame or disposition of heart which is required in all
-those who draw nigh to him in an holy manner; and also that we may be
-kept from making any innovation in the worship of God, and thereby
-profane it, while we pretend to add to the beauty thereof, and its
-acceptableness in his sight; which is so far from hallowing his name,
-that it is highly provoking to him.
-
-(2.) Another thing inferred from the account we have had of those
-methods by which the name of God is said to be sanctified, is, that we
-are to beg of him, that, by his overruling providence, he would direct
-and dispose of all things to his own glory. This is his immediate work;
-without which his name would not be sanctified by his creatures. And it
-consists in his bringing a revenue of glory to himself, out of those
-things that seem to be subversive of it. It is one of the glories of
-providence, that hereby God brings good out of evil, and renders some
-things subservient to his interest, which, in themselves, have a
-tendency to overthrow it.
-
-This may be observed in several things consequent upon the sins and
-persecutions of the church. Thus when Israel revolted from God, by
-making the golden calf in the wilderness, he first humbled them greatly
-for it, and then spirited them with zeal to execute judgment on those
-who did not repent of it; and afterwards, when, at Moses’s intreaty, he
-forgave this sin, he filled them with a zeal for the establishing his
-worship equal to that which had been expressed before in profaning his
-name; so that, as they then parted with their golden ear-rings, to make
-the idol which they worshipped, Exod. xxxii. 2, 3. now they make a very
-large contribution for the building of the tabernacle, chap. xxxv.
-21-29. and xxxvi. 5, 6. And when, by their abominable idolatry, they had
-provoked God to give them into the hands of those that carried them
-captive into Babylon: This was so far over-ruled by his providence, as
-that they were never guilty of idolatry afterwards, whatever temptations
-they had to it therein; so that when they were returned from captivity,
-how much soever they were chargeable with want of zeal for the building
-the temple, and setting up public worship in it, Hag. i. 9. or, for many
-other crimes, in that the priests sought their secular interest rather
-than the glory of God, in performing several branches of their office in
-a profane manner, and thereby rendering the public worship contemptible,
-and offering the _refuse of the flock_ in sacrifice to God, for which
-they were reproved by him, Mal. i. 10. _& seq._ yet we never find them
-reproved for idolatry after their captivity. This some think to be the
-meaning of that vision which the prophet Zechariah had of the woman who
-was called _wickedness, sitting the midst of Ephah_; and this being
-_born_ by _two women_ that _had wings like the wings of a stork_ into
-_the land of Shinar_, viz. Chaldea, to build an house for it, Zech. v.
-7,-11. so that it might there be _established, and set upon her own
-base_, intimating that the idolatry of the Heathen should not spread
-itself among the Israelites as it had done, but be confined to those
-parts of the world which had set it up before; and therefore this is
-considered as what was the proper seat thereof, and not the church. And
-this seems also to be foretold by the prophet Hosea, when he says, that
-_the children of Israel_, after they had _been many days without a king,
-without a priest, and without a sacrifice_; adds, that _they should be
-without an image_, Hos. iii. 4. The former was an affliction, and
-denotes, that they should have their civil and religious state broken
-and discontinued; the latter seems to intimate, that providence would so
-far over-rule this, that they should be disinclined and averse to
-idolatry, as they are at this day, though, in other respects, altogether
-alienated from God.
-
-And all the persecutions which the church has met with from its enemies,
-with a design to bring about its ruin and destruction, have been
-over-ruled for the furtherance of the gospel. Thus when Saul, before his
-conversion, _made havock of the church, entering into every house, and
-haling men and women, committed them to prison_; so that _a great
-persecution_ was raised against it by his instigation; and the people of
-God could not meet safely at Jerusalem, but were _scattered abroad
-throughout the regions of Judea and Samaria_, Acts viii. 1,-5. this was
-ordered, by the providence of God, for the greater spread of the gospel,
-so that the Samaritans received the word of God. And in following ages,
-we may observe, that whatever attempts have been made against the
-interest of Christ in the world, they have, contrary to the design of
-his enemies, been made subservient to the promoting its greater
-advancement, as some have observed, that the blood of the martyrs has
-been the seed of the church; and herein the Psalmist’s prediction has
-been fulfilled, _Surely the wrath of man shall praise thee_, and _the
-remainder of wrath shalt thou restrain_, Psal. lxxvi. 10. and
-oftentimes, when the gospel has, like the sea, lost ground in one part
-of the world, it has gained it in another.
-
-Moreover, we may observe, that God glorifies his holiness by over-ruling
-the falls and miscarriages of particular believers, as hereby they are
-made more humble, watchful, and circumspect for the future; and, when
-restored from their backslidings, put upon admiring his grace, and
-excited to thankfulness, which the nature of the thing requires. They
-also take occasion from hence, to warn others, lest they be entangled in
-the same snare, out of which they have escaped; or, if fallen, to
-recommend to them those methods of divine grace where they have been
-recovered. This improvement the Psalmist made of the dealings of God
-with him, when he speaks of his being _brought out of an horrible pit,
-out of the miry clay; his feet set upon a rock, and his goings
-established_; he adds, _many shall see it and fear, and shall trust in
-the Lord_, Psal. xl. 2, 3. And when God’s people have been greatly
-dejected under the troubles they have met with; he has over-ruled this
-for the restoring comforts to them, and then enabling them to comfort
-others, in like afflictions, which, as the apostle expresses it,
-_redounds to their consolation and salvation_, 2 Cor. i. 6. Thus
-concerning the first petition of the Lord’s prayer, as it is explained
-in the answer before us.
-
-We shall now consider how it may be reduced into practice, that we may
-be directed in our addressing ourselves to God in those things that
-concern the glory of his name. Accordingly, it is as though we should
-say, “We adore thee, O our God, that thou hast been pleased to make such
-discoveries of thyself to thy people, as thou hast done in all ages; and
-in particular, we give thanks at the remembrance of thine holiness: Thou
-mightest, indeed, have glorified thy name in the everlasting destruction
-of the whole race of fallen man; but thou hast sanctified thy name, and
-advanced thy perfections in bringing about the work of our redemption by
-a Mediator, in which justice and mercy are met together, righteousness
-and peace have embraced each other; and thou hast hereby a greater
-revenue of glory redounding to thy name, than by all thine other works,
-or than could have been brought to thee by the united services of the
-most excellent creatures. We also bless thee that thou hast been pleased
-to make those bright discoveries of thyself in thy word, which thou hast
-magnified above all thy name; that thou hast given us thy gospel, and
-all the ordinances and means of grace, that hereby thou mayest gather to
-thyself a people out of the world, who might be holy in all
-conversation, as thou who hast called them art holy. We confess, that we
-have not sanctified thy name as we ought, nor attended on thine
-ordinances with that reverence and holy fear that is due to thy divine
-Majesty, for which thou hast testified thy displeasure against us, in
-withdrawing thy presence from thine own institutions. We acknowledge
-that herein thou art righteous, and hast punished us less than our
-iniquities have deserved; for thou mightest have removed thy candlestick
-out of its place, or taken thine ordinances from us, as thou hast done
-from many, who once worshipped thee, as we do at this day, but are now
-wholly estranged from thee. Revive thy work, O Lord, we beseech thee,
-and hereby sanctify thy great name: Let thy word have free course, and
-be glorified: Set up thy standard against every thing that opposes thine
-interest in the world; send forth thy light and thy truth, whereby the
-ignorant may be instructed in the way of salvation by Christ. Give a
-check to that atheism, profaneness, and irreligion that abounds among a
-professing people; and let all the dispensations of thy providence have
-a tendency to bring about the work of reformation, that thereby thou
-mayest be glorified, and thy people enabled, more and more, to sanctify
-thee in every thing, whereby thou makest thyself known.”
-
-Footnote 114:
-
- _See Quest. CLIV. page 79._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CXCI.
-
-
- QUEST. CXCI. _What do we pray for in the second petition?_
-
- ANSW. In the second petition, [which is, _Thy kingdom come_,]
- acknowledging ourselves, and all mankind to be, by nature, under the
- dominion of sin and Satan; we pray that the kingdom of sin and Satan
- may be destroyed, the gospel propagated throughout the world, the
- Jews called, the fulness of the Gentiles brought in, the church
- furnished with all gospel officers and ordinances, purged from
- corruption, countenanced and maintained by the civil magistrate,
- that the ordinances of Christ may be purely dispensed and made
- effectual to the converting of those that are yet in their sins, and
- the confirming, comforting, and building up of those that are
- already converted; that Christ would rule in our hearts here, and
- hasten the time of his second coming, and our reigning with him for
- ever; and that he would be pleased so to exercise the kingdom of his
- power in all the world, as may best conduce to these ends.
-
-In this petition there are,
-
-I. Some things supposed, relating to the sovereignty and dominion of God
-over men, and the position that it meets with, which, how great soever
-it be, shall not hinder its advancement in the world.
-
-II. There are several things which we are directed to pray for, relating
-thereunto.
-
-I. As to those things that are supposed, we may consider,
-
-1. That God is a great and glorious King. This is the necessary result
-of his being the Creator of all things; from whence arises an universal
-propriety in them, and a right to dispose of them at his pleasure, in
-the methods of his providence, so that he can no more lose his right to
-govern the world, than he can cease to be God. It may be farther
-observed, that the subjects governed are intelligent creatures; for,
-though all other things are upheld by him, and made use of to fulfil his
-pleasure; yet they cannot be said to be under a law, or the subjects of
-moral government. Therefore God is more especially related to angels and
-men as their King; and as to that branch of his government, which is
-exercised in this lower world, it principally respects men. Now when God
-is said to be their King, the exercise of his dominion is variously
-considered, according to the different circumstances in which they are.
-
-(1.) As men, they are the subjects of his providential kingdom; in which
-respect they are not only the objects of his care and common goodness,
-which extends itself, as the Psalmist says, to _all his works_, Psal.
-cxlv. 9. or, as he _gives to all, life and breath, and all things_, Acts
-xvii. 25. But, whatever he does in the world, is, some way or other,
-designed for their use or advantage, either as subservient to their
-happiness, or as objects, in which they behold the glory of his divine
-perfections that shines forth therein; and, in this respect, as the God
-of nature, he is King over the whole world, whose glory infinitely
-surpasses that of the greatest monarch on earth. When men are said to
-have dominion, they derive it from his will and providence: It is also
-limited; whereas his is universal. And they are accountable to him for
-the administration of that authority, which he commits to them: But he
-giveth no account of his matters to any one; inasmuch as there is none
-superior to him. Moreover, there are many flaws and imperfections in the
-government of the best kings on earth; because their wisdom, holiness,
-power, and justice are imperfect; and sometimes the most desirable ends
-are not attained thereby: But, on the other hand, the divine government
-is such as tends to set forth God’s glorious perfections, and answer the
-highest ends, to wit, the advancement of his own name, in promoting the
-welfare of his creatures. We may also observe, that the greatest
-potentates on earth, are not only mortal, but their government is often
-subject to change, and liable to be resisted and controuled, by other
-kings like themselves: Whereas God has none equal with him; therefore
-his government cannot be controuled; and being all-sufficient, he cannot
-be destitute of what is necessary to fulfil his purpose, or advance his
-glory. Again, none but God has a right to give laws to the consciences
-of men; and, indeed, no government is properly spiritual, and such as
-reaches the heart like his; nor does the honour that is due to any
-other, contain in it, the least right to divine worship or adoration
-which belongs only to him.
-
-(2.) As God has a peculiar people in the world, who are the objects of
-his grace, these are the subjects of Christ’s mediatorial kingdom, in
-which respect he is styled King of saints. This is not only a divine
-honour which we ascribe to him; but it belongs to him in particular as
-our Redeemer: and so it is to be understood whenever he is called a King
-in scripture, as denoting that kingdom which he has received from his
-Father; whereas his right to govern the world, which is styled his
-providential kingdom, necessarily belongs to him as God, and is no more
-conferred upon him by the will of his Father, than his divine nature or
-personality: We do not therefore pray in this petition, that he would
-govern the world; for we may all well address ourselves to him, that he
-would be an infinite Sovereign, and act agreeably to his divine nature,
-which he cannot but be and do. But the kingdom which is here intended,
-which we have a more immediate regard to, as the subject-matter of this
-petition, is, that which belongs to him as Mediator, which he received
-from the Father; who is said, in this respect, to have _set him_ as _his
-King upon his holy hill of Zion_, Psal. ii. 6. concerning whom it was
-foretold, that _the government_ should _be upon his shoulder_, Isa. ix.
-6. This is therefore not only an honour, but an office which he is
-invested with, having received a commission from the Father, to execute
-it; and whenever he is said to do any thing in the methods of his
-providence, which have an immediate reference to the salvation of his
-people, it contains in it the exercise of his dominion, or is a branch
-of the glory of his Mediatorial kingdom; and this is what we have a
-peculiar regard to, when we desire that his kingdom may come. In this
-respect we pray, that all the dispensations of his providence may tend
-to the application of that redemption which is purchased for his people;
-and in particular, that he would subdue them to himself, take possession
-of their hearts, govern them by his laws, defend them by his power,
-restrain and conquer all their enemies, and, at last, admit them to
-inherit the kingdom prepared for them from the foundation of the world.
-
-In the New Testament Christ’s kingdom is generally taken for the
-gospel-dispensation; in which he is represented as sitting on a throne
-of grace, and sinners are invited to come and bow down before him, and
-receive the blessings that he encourages them to expect, as their
-merciful Sovereign. This kingdom of grace shall not cease to be
-administered by him, till all his redeemed ones are made willing, in the
-day of his power, and, pursuant thereunto, brought into a better world;
-and then it will receive another denomination, as called, the kingdom of
-heaven. It is true, the gospel-dispensation is often so called in the
-New Testament, as it respects the administration of his gracious
-government begun and carried on in this world; whereas, in heaven, it
-will be administered in a most glorious manner, agreeably to that state
-of perfection to which his saints shall be brought; But these things
-having been particularly insisted on under a foregoing answer, in which
-Christ’s Kingly office was explained[115]; we shall pass them over at
-present, and proceed to consider another thing supposed in this
-petition, _viz._
-
-2. That though God be the only supreme and lawful Sovereign, yet there
-are some who pretend to stand in competition with, and usurp that
-dominion which belongs only to him. Accordingly man no sooner rebelled
-against him, but he was under the dominion of sin, and was inclined to
-serve divers lusts and pleasures, and willingly gave himself over as a
-vassal of Satan, who, from that time, was styled _the prince_, or god
-_of this world, the spirit that worketh in the children of
-disobedience_, John xii. 31. 2 Cor. iv. 4. Eph. ii. 2. We must not
-suppose that he has the least right to this kingdom, or dominion, in
-which he sets himself against the divine government; yet sinners who
-rebel against God, are said to be Satan’s subjects. Where the gospel is
-not preached, he reigns without controul; and false churches, that
-oppose the faith contained therein, are called, _Synagogues of Satan_,
-Rev. ii. 9. and, indeed, in all those places, where Christ’s kingdom of
-grace doth not extend itself, there persons are said to be subjects of
-Satan’s kingdom; which is opposed to it. These two kingdoms divide the
-world; therefore, when we pray, that Christ’s kingdom may be advanced,
-this includes in it an earnest desire, that whatsoever has a tendency to
-oppose it, may be ruined and destroyed. And this leads us to consider,
-
-II. What we are to pray for in this petition. Here let it be observed,
-that we are not to pray, that God would govern the world, or exercise
-his providential kingdom, for that he cannot but do; neither are we to
-pray that Christ’s kingdom may come, in the same sense in which the
-church prayed for it, before the gospel-dispensation, which is called
-his kingdom, was erected; since that would be, in effect, to deny that
-there is such a kingdom; or, that our Saviour has a church, in which he
-exercises his government in the world: Nevertheless, we are to pray,
-that God would eminently display his perfections for the good of his
-people, in his providential government of the world, and over-rule all
-the dispensations thereof, for the advancement of his own name, and the
-happiness of his church and people; and though (as we have but now
-observed) we are not to pray that the gospel-dispensation may be
-erected; yet we are to pray that Christ’s spiritual kingdom may be
-farther extended, subjects daily brought into it, and the blessed fruits
-and effects thereof, which tend to promote his own glory, and his
-people’s happiness may be abundantly experienced by them: But, that we
-may more particularly explain the several things contained in this
-answer, which respect the subject-matter of our prayers, when we say,
-_Thy kingdom come_, we express our desire,
-
-1. That the kingdom of sin and Satan may be destroyed: This Christ will
-certainly do in his own time, inasmuch as it is directly opposite to his
-kingdom. The Devil’s chief design is to draw Christ’s subjects off from
-their allegiance to him: Therefore he will certainly plead his own
-cause, that his enemies may not take occasion to insult him, as though
-they had gained a victory over the Almighty. Moreover, his holiness and
-justice obliges him to do this; for since Satan’s kingdom is supported
-by sin’s gaining strength, and this tends to cast a reproach on the
-divine perfections; it must be destroyed. And to this we may add, that
-every one who is converted, is, (as the apostle says) _delivered from
-the power of darkness, and delivered into the kingdom of God’s dear
-Son_, Col. i. 13. Therefore we pray, that Christ’s interest may flourish
-in the world, which includes in it a desire, that whatsoever is contrary
-to it, may be thrown down.
-
-There are various steps and degrees whereby Satan’s kingdom has been,
-and shall be weakened, till it shall be, at last, wholly destroyed.
-
-(1.) It met with a great shock when the first gospel promise was given
-to Adam in paradise, relating to the _seed of the woman bruising the
-serpent’s head_, Gen. iii. 15. or Christ’s coming to defeat this
-deep-laid design against the interest of God in the world, by giving him
-a total defeat to him that was at the head thereof. Till this promise
-was given, there could not be the least hope of salvation for fallen
-man; whose condition was not only deplorable, but desperate, and, in all
-appearance, remediless; but by this first display of divine grace, a
-door of hope was opened, and Satan’s kingdom began to be broken and
-demolished.
-
-(2.) It met with a farther shock, when men began to lay hold of, and
-take encouragement from this promise, and public worship was set up in
-the world; and the coming of the Messiah, who was expected to appear in
-our nature, and in the fulness of time, to destroy the works of the
-Devil, was farther made known to the church, and clearer intimations
-given of the glory of his Person, and the offices he was to execute, by
-which means he was regarded as the object of their faith, who waited
-for, and earnestly desired the gospel-day, when all the types and
-prophesies relating thereunto, should have their accomplishment.
-
-(3.) Satan’s kingdom met with a very great defeat, when Christ, who was
-the desire of all nations, took our nature, and dwelt among us, and, in
-the whole course of his ministry, discovered the way of salvation to his
-people, more clearly than it had been in former ages, and finished the
-work of redemption in his death, whereby he paid an infinite price for
-his elect, to divine justice; and at the same time, _destroyed him that
-had the power of death, that is the Devil_, Heb. ii. 14. or, as it is
-expressed elsewhere, _spoiled principalities, and powers, openly
-triumphing over them in his cross_, Col. ii. 17. And when he was raised
-from the dead, whereby the work that he came about was brought to
-perfection, Satan’s kingdom was so effectually destroyed, that he shall
-not be able to maintain that dominion which he had over them, who before
-were his vassals, but are now become Christ’s subjects by right of
-redemption.
-
-(4.) The success of the gospel, in the various ages since our Saviour
-was here on earth; his gathering and building up his church, defeating
-all the attempts of his enemies, who have threatened its ruin; so that
-the gates of hell have not been able to prevail against it; and its
-having been favoured with his special presence, and the means of grace
-bestowed upon, and continued to it, together with the various instances
-of that success that has attended them, have all had a tendency to
-weaken and destroy Satan’s kingdom.
-
-(5.) All the victories that believers are enabled to obtain over sin,
-and Satan’s temptations; and all the graces that they have exercised,
-and comforts that they have experienced, are a gradual weakening of
-Satan’s kingdom, though the victory over him, at present, be not
-complete, inasmuch as he has too great an interest in the hearts of
-God’s people, through the remainders of corruption; yet they shall, at
-last, be made more than conquerors over him; and the fruits and
-consequences of the victory that Christ has obtained over him, shall be
-perfectly applied.
-
-2. In desiring that Christ’s kingdom may come, we pray that the gospel
-may be propagated throughout the world, the Jews called, and the
-fulness of the Gentiles brought in. When the gospel-dispensation,
-which is Christ’s kingdom was first erected; the apostles, who were
-employed in this important work, were to fulfil that commission which
-he gave them, in preaching the gospel to all nations, which
-accordingly they did, and, by the extraordinary hand of God that
-attended it, it was spread, in a short space of time through a
-considerable part of the world; many of the Jews were called, among
-whom all that were ordained to eternal life, believed; and as for the
-Gentiles, who, before this, were unacquainted with the way of
-salvation, they had Christ preached to them, and many churches were
-gathered from among them; by which means his kingdom was advanced, and
-a foundation laid, for the propagation and flourishing state of the
-gospel in all succeeding ages, the effects whereof are experienced at
-this day. Therefore, when this petition relating to the coming of
-Christ’s kingdom, was used by those who lived at this time, when our
-Saviour gave this direction about it; that which was principally
-intended thereby, was, that Christ might be preached to the Gentiles,
-and believed on in the world; that the veil, or the face of the
-covering that was spread over all nations, might be taken away, and
-the way of salvation might be known by them, who, before this, sat in
-the region and shadow of death: Though, when it is used by us, we
-signify our desire that this invaluable blessing may be still
-continued, and the promises relating to the greater success thereof,
-may have a more full accomplishment. The apostles, indeed, in
-executing their commission, are said to have preached the gospel to
-all nations, that is, to a very considerable part of the heathen
-world: However, it does not appear that every individual nation of the
-world has been yet favoured with this privilege; and therefore, what
-was foretold concerning the _earth’s being full of the knowledge of
-the Lord, as the waters cover the sea_, Isa. xi. 9. and other
-predictions to the like purpose, do not seem hitherto to have had
-their full accomplishment[116]. And it is very evident, that many
-nations, who once had the gospel preached to them by the apostles, are
-now wholly destitute of it. And though it is true, a considerable
-number of the Jews at first, believed in Christ; yet the greatest part
-of that nation were cast off, and all remain, at this day, strangers
-and enemies to him: Therefore we cannot but suppose, that those
-prophecies which respect their conversion, in the latter day, together
-with the fulness of the Gentiles being brought in, shall be more
-eminently accomplished than they have hitherto been[117]. This is
-therefore what we are to pray for when we say, _Thy kingdom come_;
-and, in order thereto, we are to be importunate with God,
-
-(1.) That his interest may be still maintained, and the glory may not
-depart from his church; but that it may still enjoy the ordinances of
-his grace, and those privileges by which it is distinguished from the
-world, notwithstanding all the attempts of hell, and persecuting powers
-to undermine and overthrow it. And, though it be brought to a very low
-ebb at this day, that he would revive his work in the midst of the
-years, till he be pleased to cause that glorious day to dawn, which his
-people are now desiring, waiting and hoping for; and in order hereunto,
-we are to pray,
-
-(2.) That there may be a more plentiful effusion of the Spirit, which is
-absolutely necessary to the advancement of Christ’s kingdom; a farther
-reformation of the church, and a greater spread of the gospel in those
-nations where it is not known at present.
-
-(3.) We are to pray, that the church may be furnished with all
-gospel-officers and ordinances that are necessary hereunto. Not that we
-are to pray, that new ordinances may be instituted, which, at present,
-are not known, which we have no warrant from scripture to expect; but
-that God, by the good hand of his providence, would send his ordinances,
-namely, the word, sacraments and prayer, which are his outward and
-ordinary means of salvation, into those parts of the world, which are,
-at present, strangers to them. Accordingly we are to pray,
-
-[1.] That whereever God has a people who thirst after the word, but
-enjoy not the preaching thereof, especially with that zeal and clearness
-as is necessary to their spiritual advantage and edification in Christ,
-that he would send faithful labourers among them, that their souls may
-not pine, starve, and be in danger of perishing, for lack of knowledge.
-
-[2.] That where the word of God has been preached with success, so that
-many believe in Christ, who, nevertheless, have not the advantage of
-walking together, for their mutual edification, in a church-relation,
-that God would over-rule and order matters so, that they who have given
-up themselves to the Lord, may encourage and strengthen the hands of one
-another, by joining together in religious societies, owning Christ’s
-kingly government, and worshipping him in all those ordinances which he
-has given to his churches. And,
-
-[3.] That there may be proper officers, spirited, qualified, and raised
-up, in subserviency thereunto; that there may be a constant supply of
-_pastors according to his heart, which shall feed with knowledge and
-understanding_, Jer. iii. 15. These are necessary to the well-being of a
-church; and though extraordinary gifts are not to be expected, in like
-manner as God was pleased to bestow them on his apostles in the first
-planting of the gospel; yet there are some gifts which Christ has
-purchased, and we are to pray for, that are particularly adapted to the
-furnishing them, who are called to minister as officers in his churches,
-for the promoting his cause and interest therein, and thereby advancing
-his spiritual kingdom.
-
-(4.) We are to pray, that the church may be purged from those
-corruptions that tend to defile, and are a great reproach to it, and
-very unbecoming the relation that it stands in to Christ. It is not,
-indeed, to be supposed, that any church in the world, is so pure that
-there are no corruptions in it, which appear to the eye of the
-heart-searching God: But some are visible to the world, being notorious
-and inconsistent, not only with the purity, but, if allowed of, with the
-very being of a church of Christ; which are matter of lamentation to the
-godly, and a reproach to those who are chargeable therewith; and, as the
-apostle styles them, _a root of bitterness springing up and troubling_
-them, whereby many are _defiled_, Heb. xii. 15. These corruptions are
-either such as respect the faith, or conversation of professors.
-
-[1.] As to what respects corruption in matters of faith. These consist
-in the denying the most important doctrines, which are necessary to be
-known and believed, in order to our salvation; and with respect
-hereunto, we are to pray, that Christians may not depart from the faith,
-which was once delivered to the saints, being _carried about with divers
-and strange doctrines_, chap. xiii. 9. or, as it is said elsewhere,
-_soon removed from him that called them into the grace of Christ unto
-another gospel_, Gal. i. 6. We are also to pray, that he would root out
-those errors and heresies which are inconsistent with the church’s
-purity; and have a greater tendency to bring about its ruin than all the
-persecutions it can meet with from its most enraged enemies.
-
-[2.] There are other corruptions that more especially respect the
-conversation of those who are called Christians, that walk not as
-becomes the gospel of Christ, by which means there is no visible
-difference between the church and the world: Thus the apostle tells the
-church at Corinth, 1 Cor. iii. 3. that some of them were _carnal and
-walked as men_; that is, notwithstanding the profession of religion that
-they made, in their conversation they differed little from the men of
-the world: And he also speaks of others who _profess that they know God,
-but in works deny him, being abominable, disobedient, and unto every
-good work reprobate_, Tit. i. 16. Now, with respect to these, we are to
-pray, that their profession may be adorned by a holy life; that none may
-cast a stumbling-block in the way of these who watch for their haltings,
-and are glad to take all opportunities to improve the falls and
-miscarriages of Christians against them; and that God, by his
-providence, or rather, by his Spirit, poured out from on high, would
-refine and purify his church, _purge away the dross, and take away all
-the tin_, as the prophet expresses it, Isa. i. 25.
-
-(5.) We are farther to pray, that the ordinances of Christ may be purely
-administered, without any mixture of human inventions, which tend to
-debase, and are far from adding any beauty or glory to them. It is
-natural, indeed, for man to be fond of, and pleased with, those
-ordinances, which take their rise from himself; but God, who is jealous
-for the purity of his own worship, can in no wise approve of them, and
-they are so far from advancing Christ’s kingdom, that God reckons it no
-other than _setting our threshold by his thresholds_, and _our post by
-his_, which he calls _a defiling his holy name, by the abominations
-which they_ herein _commit_, which will be the ground and reason of his
-_consuming them in his anger_, Ezek. xliii. 8. Therefore, we are to
-pray, that whatever intrudes itself into any branch of the worship of
-God, as not receiving any warrant or sanction from himself, may be
-removed out of the way, that hereby his church may be reformed, and its
-destruction prevented.
-
-(6.) We are to pray, that the church may be encouraged by civil
-magistrates, that their government may be subservient to Christ’s
-spiritual kingdom; that, according to God’s promise, _kings may be_ its
-_nursing fathers, and their queens_ its _nursing mothers_, Isa. xlix.
-23. that, by this means, it may have peace and safety, and not be
-exposed, as it has often been, to the rage and fury of persecuting
-powers; and also, that magistrates may be guardians, not only of the
-civil, but religious liberties of their subjects, which is necessary to
-complete the happiness of a nation, and bring down many blessings from
-God upon it. We are also to pray, that God would not only incline them
-to advance religion, by rendering the administration of civil
-government, subservient thereunto, but that, by a steady adherence to it
-themselves, they may strengthen the hands of the faithful, and encourage
-many others to embrace it: And if, on the other hand, they are disposed
-to exercise their power, in such a way, as tends to the discountenancing
-religion, and weakening the hands of those who profess it; we are to
-pray, that God would over-rule their counsels, and incline them to deal
-favourably with those who desire stedfastly to adhere to it.
-
-(7.) We are taught, in this petition, to pray, that the means of grace
-may be made effectual to the converting of sinners, and to the
-confirming, comforting, and building up of believers; that a great and
-effectual door may be opened for the success of the gospel, and that it
-may _come not in word only, but also in power_, 1 Thess. i. 3. so that,
-by this means, the Lord would be pleased to add to the church daily,
-such as shall be saved, that hereby Christ’s government, or spiritual
-kingdom, may be promoted in the hearts of his people, and they enabled
-to testify a ready and willing subjection to his authority, and yield
-obedience to him, with all the powers and faculties of their souls.
-
-(8.) We are to pray for the advancement of Christ’s kingdom, at his
-second and glorious coming; when the work of grace shall be brought to
-its utmost perfection; and all the elect, who shall have lived from the
-beginning to the end of time, shall be gathered together, and brought
-into Christ’s kingdom of glory, as they have formerly been into his
-kingdom of grace, when the highest honours shall be conferred upon them,
-and they shall reign with him for ever and ever. As the church, under
-the Old Testament-dispensation, prayed that Christ’s kingdom of grace
-might come, _viz._ be administered, as it has been, and now is, under
-the gospel-dispensation, and, as it is expressed, that he would _be like
-a roe, or like a young hart upon the mountains of Bether_, Cant. ii. 17.
-or, that the desire of all nations would fill his house with glory: So
-the New Testament-church is represented as praying, that Christ would
-_come quickly_, according to his promise, Rev. xxii. 20. and put a final
-period to every thing that has had a tendency to detract from the glory
-of his kingdom, or the happiness of his subjects; and, in order
-hereunto, we must pray, that the elect, who are Christ’s mystical body,
-may be gathered, and brought in to him; and then we may be sure that he
-will hasten his coming. And, till this is done, we are to wait
-patiently, as the _husbandman waiteth for the precious fruit of the
-earth_, in the desired harvest, James v. 7. and, in the mean time, we
-are to pray, that he would be pleased to exert his power, and make the
-dispensations of his providence in the world, conducive to answer these
-ends, and more particularly, with respect to ourselves; that hereby we
-may have, not only an habitual, but an actual meetness for the heavenly
-kingdom; that when our Lord shall come, we may not be like those virgins
-mentioned in the parable, who _all slumbered and slept_, Matt. xxv. 5.
-but, upon the first alarm, may go out to meet him with joy and triumph;
-and, as an evidence hereof, that we may be enabled to walk as _strangers
-and pilgrims on the earth_, or, as those who _desire a better country,
-that is, an heavenly_, Heb. xi. 13, 16. and that we may keep up an
-intercourse with Christ, that we may be ready to entertain him with
-delight and pleasure, whenever he comes; that when he, who is our Life,
-our Hope, and Saviour, as well as our King, shall appear, we may appear
-with him in glory. Thus concerning the administration of Christ’s Kingly
-government, as the subject-matter of this petition: And, that we may be
-farther assisted in directing our prayers to God agreeable thereunto, we
-may consider his children as addressing themselves to him to this
-purpose: “We adore and magnify thee, O God our Saviour, as the Governor
-of the world; who dost according to thy will in the armies of heaven,
-and amongst the inhabitants of the earth. Thy power is irresistible, and
-thy works wonderful: But it is matter of the highest astonishment, that
-thou should exercise that gracious government, in which thou
-condescendest to be called the King of saints. What is man, that thou
-shouldst thus magnify him, and set thine heart upon him; that they, whom
-thou mightest have dealt with as traitors, and enemies to thy
-government, and, as such, have ruled them with a rod of iron, and broken
-them in pieces, like a potter’s vessel, should be admitted to partake of
-the privileges which thou art pleased to bestow on thy servants and
-subjects! Thou hast often invited us, by holding forth thy sceptre of
-grace, to come and acknowledge thee to be our Lord and Sovereign; but
-our hearts have been filled with rebellion against thee. We have served
-divers lusts and pleasures, and been in confederacy with hell and death,
-yielding ourselves slaves to Satan, thine avowed enemy: But now, we
-desire to cast ourselves down before thy foot-stool; and, while we stand
-amazed at thy clemency, we accept of the overture of a pardon which thou
-hast made in the gospel, with the greatest thankfulness, accounting it
-our highest privilege, as well as our indispensable duty, to be thy
-subjects. Write thy law, we beseech thee, in our hearts; bring down
-every high thought and imagination, which sets itself against thine
-interest, and make us entirely willing to be thy servants, devoted to
-thy fear. We also beg, that thou wouldst take to thyself thy great power
-and reign. Let Satan’s kingdom be destroyed, thy gospel propagated
-throughout the world. May thine ancient people, the Jews, who now refuse
-that thou shouldst reign over them, be called and inclined to own thee
-as their King; and may the dark parts of the earth see thy salvation.
-Reform thy churches; let them be constantly supplied with those who
-shall go in and out before them, and shall feed them with knowledge and
-understanding. May they be purged from those corruptions which are a
-reproach to thy government; let not the commandments of men be received,
-instead of thine holy institutions; may thine ordinances be purely
-dispensed, that thy people may have ground to hope for thy presence
-therein; and may they be made effectual for the converting of sinners,
-and establishing thy saints in their holy faith. And let all the
-dispensations of thy providence in the world, have a tendency to advance
-thy kingdom of grace, that, as thou hast, in all ages, appeared in the
-behalf of thy church and people; so it may be preserved and carried
-through all the difficulties that it meets with, and be secured from the
-attempts of thine enemies against it, till they who rejoice in thy
-government here, shall be received into thy heavenly kingdom hereafter.”
-
-Footnote 115:
-
- _See Vol. II Quest. XLV. page 353._
-
-Footnote 116:
-
- _See Vol. II. page 376._
-
-Footnote 117:
-
- _See Vol. II. page 376, &c._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CXCII.
-
-
- QUEST. CXCII. _What do we pray for in the third petition?_
-
- ANSW. In the third petition, [which is, _Thy will be done on earth
- as it is in heaven_] acknowledging that, by nature, we, and all men,
- are not only utterly unable and unwilling to know and do the will of
- God, but prone to rebel against his word, to repine and murmur
- against his providence, and wholly inclined to do the will of the
- flesh, and of the Devil: We pray, that God would by his Spirit, take
- away from ourselves and others, all blindness, weakness,
- indisposedness, and perverseness of heart, and by his grace make us
- able and willing to know, do, and submit to his will in all things,
- with the like humility, cheerfulness, faithfulness, diligence, zeal,
- sincerity, and constancy, as the angels do in heaven.
-
-For the understanding of this petition, we must enquire,
-
-I. What is meant by the will of God, and how it is said to be done by
-us. We have, under a foregoing answer, considered[118], that this is
-distinguished into his secret and revealed will, and shewn that as the
-former of these is the reason of his own actings, and determines the
-event of things; the latter is what we are more especially concerned
-about, as it is a rule of duty to us. It is also farther distinguished
-into his perceptive and providential will; the former of which we are to
-obey; the latter, to admire, submit to, and be well pleased with:
-Accordingly, when we pray, _Thy will be done_, we desire, that his laws
-might be obeyed, and thereby his universal dominion, and right to govern
-the world, practically acknowledged; and that, by this means, sin might
-be prevented, and this earth might not become so much like hell as it
-would be, in this method, which God has taken to direct our actions, and
-give a check to our corruptions, were wholly disregarded by us. When we
-consider God as the Creator of man, the next idea we have of him is,
-that he exercises his dominion and sovereignty in giving laws to him;
-which he is under a natural obligation to obey; otherwise he disowns
-himself to be a creature, or a subject, which is the highest affront
-that can be offered to the divine Majesty, and exposes him to that
-punishment which is due to those who are found in open rebellion against
-him: This is what we are to pray against in this petition, in which
-there is something supposed, namely,[119]
-
-1. That his will must be known by us, otherwise it cannot be obeyed. And
-this supposes the law to be promulgated; which has been already done;
-particularly as it was written by God on the heart of man at first, in
-such legible characters, that our apostacy from him has not wholly
-erased it. But besides this, there must be an internal impression made
-on the minds and consciences of men, whereby they may be brought to see
-the excellency and glory thereof, and their indispensable obligation to
-yield obedience thereunto.
-
-2. It is farther supposed, that the will of man is naturally averse, and
-disinclined, to obey the divine commands, which is the result of our
-fall and apostacy from God; and, through the corruption of our nature,
-we are prone to say, _Who is lord over us_, Psal. xii. 4. and, _What is
-the Almighty, that we should serve him_, Job xxi. 15. This is the source
-of all that opposition which the heart of man expresses against the laws
-of God, while sinners entertain a fixed resolution to give laws to
-themselves; and, on the other hand, are wholly inclined to do the will
-of the flesh and of the Devil: This the apostle calls _fulfilling the
-desires of the flesh and of the mind_; while at the same time, they
-_walk according to the prince of the power of the air, the spirit that
-worketh in the children of disobedience_, Eph. ii. 2, 3. This will of
-the flesh is agreeable to the dictates of Satan, by whom it is content
-to be kept in perpetual bondage; his suggestions are agreeable to the
-corruption of nature; whereas, the command of God being contrary to it,
-as containing in them the signatures of his holiness, are grievous and
-burdensome to fallen man; the law is spiritual, and therefore it cannot
-be agreeable to those who are carnal, and, as it were sold under sin.
-And this discovers itself,
-
-(1.) In that, sinful man is determined to do, not what is lawful, but
-what is pleasing to himself, not considering what he ought to do, as
-being accountable to God, the judge of all for his behaviour in this
-world; but whether it is agreeable to his own inclinations, and affords
-some present delight to his carnal appetite.
-
-(2.) As for Satan, he uses his utmost endeavours to strengthen these
-resolutions, and increase the depravity and corruption of our nature;
-and, for this end, daily presents objects to our imaginations, that are
-agreeable to the desires of the flesh; and these are received with
-pleasure and delight, whereby a snare is laid for the ruin of the soul,
-so that it becomes more and more alienated from the life of God; and not
-only indifferent, as to matters of religion, but utterly averse to them.
-This is the reason of all the dishonour that is brought to God in the
-world; whereby it appears, that his will is not done therein, as it
-ought to be.
-
-Moreover, as the will of man sets itself against the commanding will of
-God, so it expresses the same aversion to his providential will; which
-is not said indeed, to be done, but it ought to be submitted to, by us.
-We are as much inclined to find fault with what God does in the world,
-as we are to rebel against his law. This appears in our being
-discontented and uneasy with the allotments of providence, especially
-when we are under the afflicting hand of God; whereby we are apt to
-charge him as dealing hardly with us, because we have not those
-opportunities, we desire, to fulfil the lusts of the flesh, or some
-check is given to our corrupt appetites or inclinations. How ready are
-we to complain of injuries done us, as though God were obliged to give
-us whatever we would have, how contrary soever it may be to our real
-good and advantage, as well as his own glory! Of this we have many
-instances, in the perverse behaviour of the children of Israel in the
-wilderness, who were frequently complaining of the hardships they
-endured; and, by their murmuring against God, provoked him to send those
-terrible judgments which, as they might have foreseen, would be the
-consequence thereof. This is the most unreasonable behaviour towards
-him, who has a right to do what he will with his own, and directly
-contrary to that temper of mind which the gospel suggests; whereby we
-are taught, in whatsoever state or condition of life we are, therewith
-to be contented. It is, in both these respects, that we are instructed,
-in this petition, to pray, that _the will of the Lord_ may _be done_.
-Which leads us to consider,
-
-II. The subject-matter of what we are taught to pray for in this
-petition, when we say, _Thy will be done_. And,
-
-1. With respect to God’s commanding will, we are to pray, that he would
-incline and enable us to yield obedience to it; and accordingly,
-
-(1.) We are to be earnest with him, that he would remove the ignorance
-and blindness of our minds, that we may see a beauty and glory in every
-thing that he commands; for, next to the Sovereignty of God, which is
-the first motive hereunto, the excellency of what he commands is to be
-considered as an inducement to obedience. Therefore we are to be
-convinced, that his _law is holy, his commandment holy, just, and good_,
-Rom. vii. 12. or, that duty and interest are herein inseparably
-connected, so that the one can never be secured without the other. This
-is the work of the Spirit of God, when he directs and leads us in the
-way wherein we ought to walk.
-
-(2.) We are to pray, that God would take away the obstinacy and
-perverseness of our wills, that our obedience may be matter of choice,
-and performed with delight, otherwise it cannot be pleasing to him; and
-accordingly we are to pray,
-
-[1.] That it may be performed with the utmost sincerity, as approving
-ourselves not to men, but God, who searcheth the heart; and that it may
-proceed from a principle of spiritual life and grace, and be done with a
-single eye, to his glory, whose we are, and whom we desire to serve.
-
-[2.] We are to pray, that our obedience may arise from a filial fear of
-God, and a love to him, and not barely a dread of punishment, or fear of
-his wrath, as the consequence of our rebellion against him; or from a
-mercenary frame of spirit, that looks at nothing farther than some
-advantages which we expect to receive from him; and that it may also
-proceed from a sense of gratitude for the many benefits which we receive
-from him, whereby we are, as it were, constrained to do his will.
-
-[3.] This obedience ought to be universal, with respect to the matter
-thereof, and constant, with respect to our perseverance therein. We are
-not to choose to obey some of the divine commands, and refuse others; or
-to perform those duties which are most easy, and reject those that are
-difficult; or to obey the will of God, so far as it comports with our
-secular interest, and indent with him to be excused in those things that
-are inconsistent therewith: but we must leave it to him alone, to
-prescribe the matter of duty, and express an entire compliance
-therewith, whatsoever it be that he requires. Thus the Psalmist says,
-_Then shall I not be ashamed when I have respect unto all thy
-commandments_, Psal. cxix. 6.
-
-Moreover, this obedience must be constant, without our growing cold and
-indifferent therein, or desisting from it, according as our condition in
-the world is altered, as though we had nothing to do with God and
-religion, but when we are under some pressing difficulties; for that is
-to set our faces heaven-ward for a time, and afterwards to draw back
-unto perdition.
-
-(2.) We are to pray that God would enable us to submit to his disposing
-will, as being satisfied that all the dispensations of his providence
-are right; and accordingly to say, with David, _Here am I, let him do to
-me as seemeth good to him_, 2 Sam. xv. 26. This consists,
-
-[1.] In maintaining a quiet, easy, composed frame of spirit, fitted for
-the exercise of religious duties, though under trying dispensations of
-providence.
-
-[2.] When we justify God, and lay the blame on ourselves, whatever
-afflictions we are exercised with. Thus the Psalmist speaks of himself
-as deserted, and God as _far from helping him_, he acknowledges the
-equity of his dispensations, when he says, _Thou art holy, O thou that
-inhabitest the praises of Israel_, Pal. xxii. 1. 3. or, as he elsewhere
-expresses himself, _The Lord is upright, he is my rock, and there is no
-unrighteousness in him_, Psal. xcii. 15.
-
-[3.] When we are disposed to bless God, at the same time, when he takes
-away outward mercies, as well as when he gives them: Thus Job, when he
-was stripped of all he had at once, says, _The Lord gave, and the Lord
-hath taken away, blessed be the name of the Lord_, Job i. 24. We are now
-to consider,
-
-III. The manner in which the will of God is to be done: Accordingly we
-are taught to pray, that it may be _done in earth as it is in heaven_;
-not that we are to suppose that the best of saints can arrive, while in
-this world, to the perfection of the heavenly state; so that it is
-possible for them to do the will of God in the same manner, or degree,
-as it is done in heaven: Therefore the particle as respects similitude,
-rather than equality, and all that we can infer from hence is, that
-there is some analogy or resemblance between the obedience of the saints
-here, and that of the inhabitants of heaven. This implies in it a
-desire,
-
-1. That it may be done with great humility and reverence. Thus the
-angels, who have the character of Seraphims, are represented, in that
-emblem or vision which the prophet Isaiah saw, of the _Lord sitting on
-his throne_, Isa. vi. 1, 2. and the _Seraphims_ attending him, as having
-their _faces covered with their wings_, in token of reverence and
-humility. And others are described as _casting their crowns before the
-throne_, Rev. vi. 10. intimating, that all the glory that is put upon
-them, is derived from him that sits on the throne, and that their honour
-is not to be regarded or mentioned, when compared with him who is the
-fountain thereof.
-
-2. This expression farther implies in it a desire to do the will of God
-with all cheerfulness. Some think that this is intended in the vision
-which John saw concerning the seven angels, who were employed to inflict
-the seven last plagues on the church’s enemies, when they are
-represented as doing it with _harps in their hands_, and as singing the
-praises of God at the same time, Rev. xv. 1-3.
-
-3. We are said to do the will of God on earth, as it is done by the
-angels in heaven, when we do it with faithfulness: Thus when they are
-represented as ministering to God’s people, and, as such, having the
-charge over them to keep them in all their ways, they are spoken of as
-doing this faithfully; as it is said, _They shall bear thee up in their
-hands, lest thou dash thy foot against a stone_, Psal. xci. 11, 12.
-
-4. The angels are farther represented as a pattern of diligence in doing
-the will of God: Thus it is said of the angel Gabriel, that when the
-word of command was given him to carry a message to Daniel, he _fled
-swiftly_, being expeditious in fulfilling the work he was employed
-about, Dan. ix. 21.
-
-5. They are said to do the will of God, with zeal and fervency; and, for
-this reason, some think they are called, in the scripture but now
-mentioned, _seraphims_; or, as they are elsewhere styled, _A flaming
-fire_, Psal. civ. 4.
-
-6. The angels are said to do the will of God sincerely: Thus the
-inhabitants of heaven are represented, as having _no guile found in
-their mouths_, and _being without fault before the throne of God_, Prov.
-xxii. 2.
-
-7. They are said to do the will of God with constancy: Thus we read of
-them as _serving him day and night in his temple_, chap. vii. 15. and
-the angels, which are ministering spirits, sent forth to minister unto
-the heirs of salvation, are said _always_ to _behold the face of God in
-heaven_, Mat. xviii. 10. that is, they never give out, or are weary of
-his service: We have herein an excellent example set before us, and are
-exhorted to pray, that in our measure we may yield the like obedience to
-God, though we fall very short of doing it, as they do who are in a
-perfect state. We are therefore herein taught to lift up our hearts to
-God, in a way of adoration, confession, and supplication, _q. d._ “We
-acknowledge, O Lord, that thou hast a right to the obedience of all
-creatures, and hast been pleased to give them thy law as the rule
-thereof. It is our glory, as well as our happiness, to be thy servants;
-for thy law is holy, thy commandment holy, just and good: But we
-acknowledge and confess before thee, that we have rebelled against thee,
-and have refused to yield obedience to thy commands: And when we behold
-the universal corruption of human nature, we blush and are ashamed to
-think how little glory is brought to thy name, by the service and
-obedience of thy creatures here below. In heaven thy will is done
-perfectly, by those who serve thee with the greatest delight and
-pleasure; but on earth thou hast but little glory; it is an instance of
-condescending goodness that thou hast not, long since, abandoned and
-forsook it, and thereby rendered it like hell: But, we beseech thee,
-take to thyself thy great power, and reign in the hearts of men; subdue
-their wills thyself, that they may cheerfully and constantly obey thy
-commanding will, and submit to thy providential will, as being satisfied
-that all thy dispensations are right, and shall tend to thy glory, and
-the welfare of all that fear thy name.”
-
-Footnote 118:
-
- _See Vol. I. Quest. xii. p. 471._
-
-Footnote 119:
-
- It has been said, that there cannot be any reason or motive to pray,
- or make any petition, to an _unchangeable God_, whose design cannot be
- altered, and who has fixed all events, without a possibility of any
- change.
-
- Before any attempt is made to remove this objection, and supposed
- difficulty, it must be observed, that it equally lies against the
- _foreknowledge of God_. For if God certainly foreknows every thing
- that will take place, then every event is fixed and certain, otherwise
- it could not be foreknown. “Known unto God are all his works from the
- beginning of the world.” He has determined, and passed an unchangeable
- decree, with respect to all that he will do to eternity. Upon the plan
- of the objection under consideration, it may be asked, What reason or
- motive can any one have to ask God to do any thing for him, or any one
- else, since he infallibly knows from the beginning what he will do,
- and therefore it is unalterably fixed? Therefore if it be reasonable
- to pray to an _omniscient_ God, it is equally reasonable to pray to an
- _unchangeable_ God. For the former necessarily implies the latter. But
- in order to show that the objection is without foundation, the
- following things must be observed.
-
- 1. If God were not omniscient and unchangeable, and had not
- foreordained whatsoever comes to pass, he would not be the proper
- object of worship, and there would be no foundation, reason, or
- encouragement to make any petition to him.
-
- This, it is presumed, will be evident to any one who will well
- consider the following observations.
-
- _First._ If there were no unchangeable, omniscient Being, there would
- be no God, no proper object of worship. A being who is capable of
- change, is necessarily imperfect, and may change from bad to worse,
- and even cease to exist, and therefore could not be trusted. If we
- could know that such a being has existed, and that he was once wise,
- and good, and powerful, we could have no evidence that he would
- continue to be wise or good, or that he is so now, or that he is now
- disposed to pay any regard to our petitions, or is either willing or
- able to grant them; or even that he has any existence. What reason of
- encouragement then can there be to pray to a changeable being? Surely
- none at all. Therefore, if there be no reason to pray to an
- _unchangeable God_, there can be no reason to pray at all.
-
- _Secondly._ If God be infinitely wise, and good, and omnipotent,
- supreme and independent; then he certainly is unchangeable, and has
- foreordained whatsoever comes to pass. This has been proved above, or
- rather is self-evident. But if he be not infinitely wise and good, &c.
- then he cannot be trusted; he cannot be the object of that trust and
- confidence which is implied, and even expressed, in praying to him.
-
- _Thirdly._ The truly pious, benevolent, devout man would not desire,
- or even _dare_, to pray to God for any thing, if he were changeable,
- and disposed to alter his purpose and plan, in order to grant his
- petitions. Therefore he never does pray to any but an _unchangeable
- God_, whose counsel stands forever, and the thoughts of his heart to
- all generations. He is sensible that he is a very imperfect creature;
- that his heart, his will, is awfully depraved and sinful; that he
- knows not what is wisest and best to be done in any one instance; what
- is best for him, for mankind in general, for the world, or for the
- universe; what is most for the glory of God, and the greatest general
- good; and that it would be infinitely undesirable and dreadful to have
- his own will regarded so as to govern in determining what shall be
- done for him or any other being, or what shall take place. If it could
- be left to him to determine in the least instance, he would not dare
- to do it, but would refer it back to God, and say, “Not _my will_, but
- _thine_ be done.” But he could not do this, unless he were _certain_
- that the will of God was unchangeably wise and good, and that he had
- decreed to do what was most for his own glory, and the greatest good
- of the whole; at the same time infallibly knowing what must take
- place, in every instance, in order to answer this end; and
- consequently must have fixed upon the most wise and best plan,
- foreordaining whatsoever comes to pass. Therefore, whatever be his
- petitions for himself, or for others, he offers them to God, and asks,
- _on this condition_, always either expressed or implied, _If it be
- agreeable to thy will_: for _otherwise_ he would not have his
- petitions granted, if it were possible. And he who asks any thing of
- God, without making this condition, but sets up his own will, and
- desires to have it gratified, whether it be for the glory of God, and
- the greatest good of his kingdom, or not; and would, were it in his
- power, compel his Maker to grant his petition, and bow the will of God
- to his own will; he who prays to God with such a disposition, is an
- impious enemy to God, exercises no true devotion, and cannot be heard;
- and it is desireable to all the friends of God that he should be
- rejected. Resignation to the will of God always supposes his will is
- unchangeably fixed and established, which it could not be, unless he
- has foreordained whatsoever comes to pass.
-
- Thus it appears that if God were changeable, and had not foreordained
- whatsoever comes to pass, there would be no foundation for religious
- worship, or reason for praying to him; or that there can be no reason
- or encouragement for prayer and petition to any but an _unchangeable_
- God.—I proceed to observe,
-
- 2. There is good reason, and all desirable and possible encouragement,
- to pray to an unchangeable God, who has from eternity determined what
- he will do, in every instance, and has foreordained whatsoever comes
- to pass.
-
- This will doubtless be evident, to him who will duly, consider the
- following particulars.
-
- _First._ Prayer is as proper, important, and necessary, in order to
- obtain favour from an unchangeable God, as it could be were he
- changeable, and had not foreordained any thing.
-
- Means are as necessary in order to obtain the end, as if nothing were
- fixed and certain. Though it was decreed that Paul and all the men in
- the ship should get safe to land, when they were in a storm at sea;
- yet this must be accomplished by means, and unless the sailors had
- assisted in managing the ship, this event could not take place, and
- they could not be saved. Prayer is a means of obtaining what God had
- determined to grant; for he has determined to give it in answer to
- prayer, and no other way. “Ask, and ye shall receive,” says our
- Saviour. When God had promised to do many and great things for Israel,
- he adds, “Thus saith the Lord God, I will yet for this be inquired of
- by the house of Israel, to do it for them:” [_Ezek._ xxxvi. 37.] The
- granting the favours, which God had determined to bestow, was as much
- suspended on their asking for them, as if there had been nothing
- determined and fixed about it. There is as much regard had to prayer
- in granting favours, and the prayer is heard, and God gives them, as
- really and as much in answer to it, as if there were nothing
- determined and foreordained respecting them: for the decree includes
- and fixes the means, as much as the end; the method and way by which
- events are to take place, as much as those events themselves. The one
- depends on the other, as much as if there were no decree, and nothing
- fixed; yea, much more: for the decree _fixes_ the dependence and
- connexion between the means and the end: whereas if there were no
- decree, and nothing fixed, there would be no established connexion,
- but all would be uncertain, and there would be no reason or
- encouragement to use means, or do any thing to obtain an end.
-
- Surely, then, there is as much reason and encouragement to pray to an
- unchangeable God, and this is as important and necessary, as if there
- were nothing fixed by the divine decrees, and much more: yea, the
- unchangeable purposes of God are the necessary and only proper ground
- and reason of prayer.
-
- _Secondly._ Though prayer is not designed to make any change in God,
- or alter his purpose, which is impossible; yet it is suited and
- designed to have an effect on the petitioner, and prepare him to
- receive that for which he prays. And this is a good reason why he
- should pray. It tends to make the petitioner to feel more and more
- sensibly his wants, and those of others for whom he prays, and the
- miserable state in which he and they are: for in prayer these are
- called up to view, and dwelt upon: and prayer tends to give a sense of
- the worth and importance of the favours asked. It is also suited to
- make persons feel, more and more, their own helplessness, and entire
- dependence on God for the favours for which they petition, of which
- their praying is an acknowledgment: and therefore tends to enhance
- them in the eyes of the petitioner, when given in answer to prayer,
- and make him more sensible of the free, sovereign goodness of God in
- granting them.[120] In sum, this is suited to keep the existence and
- character of God in view, and impress a sense of religious truths in
- general on the mind, and to form the mind to universal obedience, and
- a conscientious watchfulness and circumspection, in all religious
- exercises.
-
- _Thirdly._ It is reasonable, and highly proper and important, and for
- the honour of God, that the friends of God should express and
- acknowledge their entire dependence on him, and trust in him, for all
- they want for themselves and others, and their belief in the power,
- wisdom and goodness of God; and all this is acknowledged, expressly or
- implicity, in prayer to God. It is also reasonable and proper that
- they should express their _desire_ of those things which are needed by
- themselves or others, and which God alone can give or accomplish: and
- such desires are expressed in the best way and manner by petitioning
- for them. And in asking for blessings on others, and praying for their
- enemies, they express their benevolence, which is an advantage to
- themselves, and pleasing to God, even though their petitions should
- have no influence in procuring the favours which they ask. And in
- praying that God would honour himself, and advance his own kingdom,
- and accomplish all the great and glorious things which he has promised
- to do for his own honour, and the good of his people, they do not
- express any doubts of his fulfilling his promises, but are certain he
- will grant their petitions; but they hereby express their acquiescence
- in these things, and their earnest desire that they may be
- accomplished; and also profess and express their love to God, and
- friendship to his people and kingdom; and do that which the feelings
- of a pious, benevolent heart will naturally, and even necessarily,
- prompt them to do.
-
- We have many examples of such petitions and prayers for those things
- and events, which the petitioners, antecedent to their prayers, knew
- would certainly be accomplished. We have a decisive and remarkable
- instance of this in David, the king of Israel, in the following words:
- “And now, O Lord God, the word that thou hast spoken concerning thy
- servant, and concerning his house, establish it for ever, _and do as
- thou hast said_. And let thy name be magnified forever, saying, The
- Lord of hosts is the God over Israel: and let the house of thy servant
- David be established before thee. For thou, O Lord of hosts, God of
- Israel, hast revealed to thy servant, saying, _I will build thee an
- house: therefore hath thy servant found in his heart to pray this
- prayer before thee_. And now, O Lord God, thou art that God, and thy
- words be true, and thou hast promised this goodness unto thy servant.
- Therefore now let it please thee to bless the house of thy servant,
- that it may continue forever before thee; for thou, O Lord God, hast
- spoken it, and with thy blessing let the house of thy servant be
- blessed forever:” [_2 Sam._ vii. 25-29.] Here David not only prays God
- to do that which at the same time he knew and acknowledges God had
- promised to do; and therefore it was established as firm as the throne
- of the Almighty, and decreed that it should take place; but he says
- that this promise of God, making it certain, was the reason, motive,
- and encouragement to him to make this prayer: “Thou, O Lord, hast
- revealed to thy servant, saying, I will build thee an house. And now,
- O Lord God, thou art that God, _and thy words be true, and thou hast
- promised this goodness unto thy servant_; THEREFORE HATH THY SERVANT
- FOUND IN HIS HEART TO PRAY THIS PRAYER BEFORE THEE.” We hence are
- warranted to assert that it is reasonable and proper to pray for that
- which God has promised; and that the certainty that it will be
- accomplished is a motive and encouragement to pray for it. How greatly
- then do they err, who think that if every event is made certain by
- God’s decree, there is no reason or encouragement to pray for any
- thing!
-
- Our Saviour, in the pattern of prayer which he has dictated, directs
- men to pray that God would bring to pass those events which are
- already fixed and decreed, and therefore must infallibly take place;
- “Our Father, who art in heaven, _hallowed be thy name; thy kingdom
- come, thy will be done_,” &c.
-
- Christ himself, in the 17th chapter of John, prays for those whom the
- Father had given to him, that he would keep them through his own name,
- and that they might be _one_, as the Father and Son were one; might be
- kept from the evil in the world, and be sanctified through the truth;
- that they might be with him in heaven forever, and behold his glory.
- At the same time he knew that all this was made certain to them; for
- he had before said, that all that were given to him should come to
- him, and he would raise them up at the last day; that he would give
- unto them eternal life, and not one of them should perish, as none
- should be able to pluck them out of his hands, or his Father’s. He
- prays, “Father, glorify thy name;” not because this event was
- uncertain, but to express his earnest desire of that which he knew was
- decreed, and could not but take place, and his willingness to give up
- every thing, even his own life to promote this. Again, Christ prays in
- the following words: “And now, O Father, glorify thou me with thine
- own self, with the glory which I had with thee before the world was.”
- The event for which Christ prays in these words was decreed from
- eternity, and the decree had been long before published, in the 2d and
- 110th Psalms: “I will declare the decree: The Lord hath said unto me,
- Thou art my Son, this day have I begotten thee. Ask of me, and I will
- give thee the heathen for thine inheritance, and the uttermost parts
- of the earth for thy possession. Sit thou at my right hand, until I
- make thine enemies thy foot-stool.” And he had declared the certainty
- of that for which he here prays, since his incarnation. He had said,
- that all power in heaven and earth was given unto him; that “the
- Father had committed all judgment unto the Son; that all men should
- honour the Son, even as they honour the Father.” St. Paul, when
- speaking of God, often introduces the following words: “To whom be
- glory forever, Amen;” which is not to be considered as a mere
- doxology, by which glory is _ascribed_ to God; but it is rather a
- _wish_, or _desire_, that God may be glorified forever; and the _Amen_
- corroborates it: as if he had said, “Let it be so; this is the most
- ardent desire of my soul, including the sum of all my petitions.” Here
- then the Apostle utters a desire and petition for that which he knew
- was decreed, and would take place.
-
- The last words of Christ to his church are, “Surely I come quickly.”
- Upon which promise the following petition of the church, and of every
- friend of his, is presented to him: “Amen, even so come Lord Jesus.”
- Here is a petition, in which all Christians join, praying Christ to do
- what he has promised; and which therefore was as certain as a declared
- decree could possibly make it; and the petition is grounded on this
- promise and decree published by Christ, in which the petitioners
- express their hearty approbation of the coming of Christ, and earnest
- desire of this important and happy event. And if it be reasonable thus
- to pray for an event which is fixed and made certain by an
- unchangeable decree, and cannot be altered, as in the instance before
- us; then it is reasonable and proper to pray for any thing or any
- event which appears to us desirable and important, though we know God
- is unchangeable, and that all things and every event are fixed by an
- unalterable decree.
-
- The apostle John says, “And this is the confidence that we have in
- him, that if we ask any thing _according to his will_, he heareth us.
- And if we know that he heareth us, whatsoever we ask, we know that we
- have the petitions that we desired of him:” [_1 John_ v. 14, 15.] To
- ask for any thing _according to his will_, is to ask for those things
- which it is agreeable to his will to grant; and this is to be known
- only by what he has revealed. When we ask him to do what he has
- declared he will do, then we know we ask for that which is according
- to his will; and consequently that we have our petitions. But it will
- be asked, What are these things? I answer, that God will glorify
- himself in all things, and make the brightest display of his
- perfections and character forever; that he will promote and effect the
- greatest possible good of the universe; that he will make his church
- and kingdom perfectly happy and glorious forever; that he will
- accomplish all his designs and predictions, and fulfil all his
- promises to his church and people: and cause all things to work for
- the good of those who love him; and give his holy Spirit to all who
- ask him. These, I think, must be the things we ask, when we know that
- we pray for any thing _according to the will of God_, and consequently
- know that he heareth us, and that we have the petitions that we
- desired of him. But in all these instances we ask for that which God
- has said he will do, that is, has decreed that he will do them. And as
- it has been said before, if a decree in these instances does not
- render it unreasonable or improper to pray for their accomplishment;
- then, if God has decreed _whatsoever comes to pass_, this is not in
- the least inconsistent with our praying for whatever appears to us
- desirable and good, and may not be contrary to the will of God to
- grant. But here it must be observed, that when we ask for any
- particular things or events which, though it may not be contrary to
- the will of God to grant, yet he has in no way revealed that it is his
- will to grant our petitions; when we ask for any such thing, we must
- do it with an express or implicit reserve—_If it be according to the
- will of God_. Otherwise, or if it be not according to his will, we
- must withdraw our petition, and not desire to have it granted.
- Resignation to the will of God, whatever it may be, in all such
- instances, is essential to the pious petitions of a benevolent friend
- of God. And by thus referring to the will of God, and resigning to
- that, desiring it may be done in all cases, whatever petitions we may
- make, we do refer to the decrees of God, by which he has determined
- what he will do in every particular instance; for his will and his
- decrees are in this case one and the same, being fixed and
- unchangeable.
-
- _Fourthly._ It is not only proper and important that the worshippers
- of God should express their desires of those things which they want,
- in praying for them; but were this not true, and were not asking for
- them the means and way of obtaining them; yet the pious friends of God
- would esteem it a privilege and enjoyment to be allowed and invited,
- “by prayer and supplication, with thanksgiving, to make known their
- requests unto him.” To them prayer is not a _task_, from which they
- would be glad to be excused, but they practise it with pleasure.—They
- have great support, enjoyment and happiness, in casting their cares
- upon God, and expressing the desires of their hearts to him. While
- others restrain prayer before God, and say, “What is the Almighty,
- that we should serve him? and what profit should we have if we pray
- unto him?” the benevolent friend of God would pray, were it only for
- the enjoyment which he has in the exercise; and says in his heart, “I
- will call upon God as long as I live. And though he is certain that
- God is unchangeable, and that nothing is done, or will come to pass,
- which is not foreordained by him, this does not tend to prevent or in
- the least abate the pleasure and enjoyment he has in making known his
- requests to God, or his desire constantly to practise it: but this
- truth gives him support and consolation, and increases his delight in
- calling upon God, and renders it more desirable and pleasant unto him:
- yea, were not this a truth, he could not find any reason for making
- his requests known to him, or any delight in doing it; and would not
- have any encouragement, or even _dare_, to ask for any thing, as has
- been observed and shewn.”
-
- And now this matter is to be left to the judgment of every one who
- will attend to it. It is hoped that it appears evident, beyond all
- dispute, from the light in which this subject has been now set, that
- the doctrine of God’s decreeing whatsoever comes to pass is not only
- consistent with all the exercises of true piety, but is the proper
- foundation for this, and is suited to excite and promote these
- exercises, and that there can be no real piety which is not consistent
- with this truth.
-
- [HOPKINS’S SERMONS.]
-
-Footnote 120:
-
- A kind and wise father, who designs to give his child some particular
- favour, will bring the child to ask for it before he bestows it, and
- will suspend the gift upon this condition, for the benefit of the
- child, that what he grants may be a real advantage to him, and a
- greater than if it were given before the child was better prepared to
- receive it, by earnestly and humbly asking for it; and that the father
- may hereby receive a proper acknowledgment from the child, and be
- treated in a becoming manner. And in this case, the petition of the
- child is as really regarded, heard and granted, and the child’s
- application and prayer to the father is as much a means of obtaining
- the favour, and as proper, important, and necessary, as if the father
- had not previously determined the whole affair. And when the children
- of such a father know that this is his way of bestowing favours on
- them, they will have as proper motives, and as much encouragement, to
- ask for all they want, as if he had not determined what he would do
- antecedent to their asking him; yea, much more.
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CXCIII.
-
-
- QUEST. CXCIII. _What do we pray for in the fourth petition?_
-
- ANSW. In the fourth petition, [which is, _Give us this day our daily
- bread_,] acknowledging, that in Adam, and by our sin, we have
- forfeited our right to all the outward blessings of this life, and
- deserve to be wholly deprived of them by God, and to have them
- cursed to us in the use of them; and, that neither they of
- themselves are able to sustain us, nor we to merit, or by our own
- industry, to procure them, but prone to desire, get, and use them
- unlawfully; we pray for ourselves and others, that both they and we,
- waiting upon the providence of God from day to day, in the use of
- lawful means, may, of his free gift, and, as to his fatherly wisdom
- shall seem best, enjoy a competent portion of them, and have the
- same continued and blessed unto us in our holy and comfortable use
- of them, and contentment in them; and be kept from all things that
- are contrary to our temporal support and comfort.
-
-In order to our understanding this petition, we must first consider what
-is meant by _bread_. Some have thought that our Saviour hereby intends
-spiritual mercies, as denoting that bread which is suited to the
-necessities of our souls, and particularly that we may have an interest
-in Christ, who is called, _The bread of life_, John vi. 35. _The living
-bread which came down from heaven_, ver. 51. But though it must be
-allowed, that this is a blessing far exceeding all those that are of a
-temporal nature, as much as the happiness of the soul is preferable to
-that of the body; and it is, doubtless, to be made the subject of our
-daily and importunate requests to God, _q. d._ give me an interest in
-Christ, or else I can have no delight or pleasure in any of the
-enjoyments of life: Yet this does not seem to be intended by our Saviour
-in this petition; but that bread which we pray for has a more immediate
-respect to the blessings of this life, which, according to the
-scripture-mode of speaking, are often set forth by _bread_. Thus God
-tells Adam, after his fall, _In the sweat of thy face shalt thou eat
-bread_, Gen. iii. 19. by which we are to understand, that he should take
-a great deal of pains to provide for himself the necessaries of life. So
-when God promises outward blessings to his people, he tells them, that
-_bread shall be given_ them, and their _waters shall be sure_, Isa.
-xxxiii. 16. And elsewhere, _I will abundantly bless her provision; I
-satisfy her poor with bread_, Psal. cxxxii. 15. This is what we are
-taught to pray for in this petition; in which we may observe,
-
-I. That there are some things supposed, namely,
-
-1. That, by our sins, we have forfeited a right to the outward blessings
-of this life. This was the consequence of the forfeiture of life itself;
-and it was a part of the curse, that we were exposed to by our rebellion
-against, and apostacy from God. If he should deprive us of all the
-conveniences of life, and thereby imbitter it to us; so that we should
-be almost inclined to make that unhappy choice that Job did, of
-_strangling and death, rather than life_, Job vii. 15. there would be no
-reason to say, there is unrighteousness with God.
-
-2. It is farther supposed, that outward blessings are God’s free gift to
-us. Whether we have a greater or a smaller portion thereof, they are to
-be acknowledged as the fruits of divine bounty: It is God that spreads a
-table for us; to some he gives a small measure, and to others a larger
-share of temporal good things; but, whatever we enjoy, it is to be owned
-as the effect of his providential goodness. This, indeed, does not
-exclude the use of those means that are ordained for the preserving of
-life, and our obtaining the good things thereof; but we must, at the
-same time, acknowledge, that all that wisdom, industry, and success that
-attends our endeavours, is from God; it is he that _giveth power to get
-wealth_, Deut. viii. 18. or, as it is elsewhere said, _The rich and poor
-meet together_; that is, they both agree in this, that _the Lord is the
-Maker of them all_, Prov. xxii. 2. that is, whatever be their
-circumstances in the world, it is he that provides, what they have, for
-them. And if what we enjoy is sweetened and sanctified to us for our
-good, so that we have not only the conveniences of life, but a blessing
-with them, and are enabled to make a right use and improvement of them,
-to the glory of God and the advantage of ourselves and others; this must
-also be reckoned an instance of divine favour, or the gift of God.
-
-3. It is farther supposed, that temporal good things may lawfully be
-prayed for. As the providence of God does not, as was before observed,
-exclude the use of means; so it is not inconsistent with, but rather an
-inducement to prayer; and, indeed, prayer is an ascribing glory to God,
-as the fountain of all we enjoy; without which, it would be an affront
-to the divine Majesty, to expect any blessing from him. This is
-applicable to prayer in general, and, in particular, to our making
-supplication for outward blessings.
-
-I. We shall consider the subject-matter of the petition, or what we are
-to understand when we say, _Give us this day our daily bread_.
-
-1. The thing prayed for, is _bread_; whereby our Saviour intimates, that
-we are to set due bounds to our desires, when we are pressing after
-outward blessings. He does not order us to importune with God for the
-great things of this life; but rather for those things which are
-necessary, in the enjoyment whereof, we may the better be enabled to
-glorify him: He does not put his followers upon asking for crowns and
-sceptres, as though his kingdom were of this world, as some, who were
-influenced by carnal motives, fondly imagined, being ready to expect
-that many worldly advantages would accrue from their adhering to him;
-and, when they found themselves mistaken, shamefully deserted his cause,
-and relinquished the profession that they once made of him: But Christ
-never gave his people ground to expect that their secular interest
-should be promoted by embracing the gospel: Accordingly, when any one
-seemed desirous of being his disciple, he generally put this trying
-question to him; whether he was content to leave all, and follow him, or
-to lead a mean life in the world, and be hated of all men for his name’s
-sake? His disciples, indeed, were sometimes filled with too great
-solicitude about their future circumstances in life; but he encourages
-them to hope for necessary provisions, when he says, _Your heavenly
-Father knoweth that ye have need of all these things_, Matt. vi. 32. and
-it is always found, that where there is the greatest degree of faith, it
-tends to moderate our affections as to the things of this world; and if
-at any time, they are apt to exceed their due bounds, it gives a check
-to them, as the prophet says to Baruch: _Seekest thou great things for
-thyself? seek them not_, Jer. xlv. 5. We have an admirable instance of
-this in Jacob; who, when he was in a most destitute condition, flying
-from his father’s house, to Padan-aram, did not know what entertainment
-he should meet with there. The principal thing which he desires,
-together with the divine presence and protection, is, that he might have
-_bread to eat, and raiment to put on_, Gen. xxviii. 20. He does not ask,
-that people and nations might bow down to him; or that God would take
-away the life of his brother Esau, whose malicious design against him,
-occasioned his present hazardous journey; he is not anxiously concerned
-for the great things of this world, but only desires that he may have
-the necessaries of life. And Agar’s prayer is not unlike this, who says,
-_Give me neither poverty nor riches; feed me with food convenient for
-me_, Prov. xxx. 8. Such a frame of spirit our Saviour supposes them to
-have, who thus address themselves to God in prayer for bread, or the
-outward accommodations of life.
-
-2. It is called, _our bread_; the meaning of which is, that there is a
-distinct property which every one has, by the allotment of providence,
-in those outward blessings which God has given him, whatever be the
-measure or proportion thereof: This we are taught to acknowledge with
-thankfulness, _q. d._ Thou didst not design that one man should take
-possession of the whole world, or engross to himself all its stores, and
-that the rest should starve and perish for want of the necessaries of
-life; herein thy wisdom and sovereignty appears, and to this it is
-owing, that there are some things which we have a right to, distinct
-from others: not without, but by the gift and blessing of providence.
-And therefore, whatsoever God thinks fit that we should receive, we call
-our own, and as such, pray for it; otherwise we are not in the least to
-desire or covet it, inasmuch as we are taught to pray only for that
-which we may call ours, as having a natural or civil right to it, which
-we have not to that which belongs to another.
-
-Now there are two ways by which we are said to receive outward
-blessings, which we may call our own from the hand of God, which are
-more especially included in this petition.
-
-(1.) As God, by his distinguishing hand, gives us that measure of
-outward blessings which he sees convenient for us, and that either, by
-succeeding our endeavours, or by supplying our wants in some way which
-was altogether unexpected by us, and thereby making provision for the
-comfort of our lives.—There is sometimes a chain of providences
-concurring hereunto; as God speaks of his _hearing the heavens_, Hos.
-ii. 21, 22. that, when they want store of water, he may furnish them
-therewith, and _they may hear the earth_, so as to moisten it with
-showers, when parched, and becoming unfruitful; and _that the earth may
-hear the corn, and the wine, and the oil_, so as to produce them; and
-that _these may hear_, that is, may be distributed among God’s people,
-as he sees they want them; and the Psalmist says, _He watereth the hills
-from his chambers: The earth is satisfied with the fruit of thy works.
-He causeth the grass to grow for the cattle, and herb for the service of
-man; that he may bring forth food out of the earth; And wine that maketh
-glad the heart of man, and oil to make his face to shine, and bread
-which strengthened man’s heart_, Psal. civ. 13-15. So that there are
-various causes and effects, subservient to each other, which are all
-owing to the blessing of providence, whereby we come to possess that
-portion of the good things of this life, which are allotted for us.
-
-(2.) The outward blessings of this life may be called ours when God is
-pleased to make them blessings to us, and give us the enjoyment thereof.
-He must add his blessings to all the mercies he bestows, or else they
-will not conduce to our happiness; nor can the general end, designed
-hereby, be answered; without this, the bread we eat, would no more
-nourish us, than husks or chaff; our garments, without this, could no
-more contribute to our being warm, than if they were put upon a statue;
-and the air we breathe, would rather stifle than refresh us. Thus it is
-said, _Man doth not live by bread only, but by every word which
-proceedeth out of the mouth of God_, Deut. viii. 3. that is, not barely
-by second causes, or the means we use, in order to the maintaining life
-and health, or any of the comforts thereof; but, by the blessing of God,
-or his power and providence, that these ends are answered.
-
-And it is he alone who can give us the comfortable enjoyment thereof:
-This all have not; their tables are plentifully furnished, but they want
-that measure of health which is necessary for their taking in, or
-receiving advantage from them; as it is said of the sick man, that _his
-life abhorreth bread, and his soul dainty meat_, Job xxxiii. 20. Such
-do, as it were, starve in the midst of plenty. And there are others,
-who, though they have a great deal of the world, and are not hindered
-from the enjoyment of it by the weakness or decays of nature; yet they
-are made unhappy by the temper of their minds; as there are some that
-abound in riches, who may, nevertheless be said to be poor, because they
-want an heart to use what they have, which is God peculiar blessing:
-Thus the wise man says, _Every man to whom God hath given riches and
-wealth, and hath given him power to eat thereof, and to take his
-portion, and to rejoice in his labour, this is the gift of God_, Eccl.
-v. 19. For these things we are dependent on him; and this is what we
-intend, when we pray that God would _give us our bread_.
-
-3. We are farther taught to pray, that God would give us our bread _this
-day_, thereby denoting that we are to desire to have our present
-necessities supplied, as those who cannot be certain that we shall live
-till to-morrow. How often does God break the thread of our lives in an
-instant, without giving us any notice of it beforehand? And therefore we
-may truly say in the midst of life, we are in death, and are advised to
-take no thought for the morrow, but to leave that entirely to the
-providence of God: Food nourishes but for a day, so that what we now
-receive will not suffice us to-morrow. Nature is always craving
-supplies, and therefore we are taught to have a continual recourse to
-God by prayer for them: And, if we look farther than this present time,
-it is to be with this condition, that the Lord has determined to prolong
-our lives, and thereby renders it necessary for us to pray for those
-things that will be needful for the support thereof: This seems to be
-the meaning of that variation of expression, which the evangelist Luke
-makes use of, when he says, _Give us day by day our daily bread_, Luke
-xi. 3. And it may obviate an objection, as it will be inferred by some,
-that if we are not to pray for what respects our future condition in
-this world, we are not to make provision for it: Whereas, this is
-contrary to what we are exhorted to do, by being led to consider the
-provision which the smallest insects make for their subsistence; _The
-ant provideth her meat in the summer, and gathereth her food in the
-harvest_, Prov. vi. 8. And the apostle says, _If any provide not for his
-own, and especially for those of his own house, he hath denied the
-faith, and is worse than an infidel_, 1 Tim. v. 8. This therefore we
-ought to do; and accordingly we are to pray, that God would succeed our
-lawful endeavours, in order thereunto; though we must do it with this
-limitation, as maintaining a constant sense that our times are in his
-hand, so that if he should be pleased to grant us a longer or shorter
-lease of our lives, which to us is altogether uncertain, we are to beg
-of him, that we may never be destitute of what is necessary for our
-glorifying him therein.
-
-4. This petition is to be considered as respecting others as well as
-ourselves; _Give us_, &c. whereby we express a concern for their
-advantage in what respects the good things of this life. The blessings
-of providence flow from an inexhaustible fountain; and therefore we are
-not to think that, by desiring that others may have a supply of their
-wants, there will not be enough remaining for us.
-
-And this should always teach us to bear our part in relieving others,
-that they may not, through our neglect, perish for want of the
-necessaries of this life: Thus we are exhorted _to deal our bread to the
-hungry_, to _bring the poor that are cast out to_ our _houses, and when
-we see the naked, to cover them, and not to hide_ ourselves _from_ our
-_own flesh_, Isa. lviii. 7. And Job having been severely accused by his
-friends, as though all those afflictions that befel him, were in
-judgment for his having oppressed and _forsaken the poor_, and
-_violently taken away an house which he builded not_, as Zophar
-insinuates, Job xx. 19. vindicates himself from the charge in the
-strongest terms, when he says, _I have not withheld the poor from their
-desire, nor caused the eyes of the widow to fail; nor eaten my morsel
-myself alone_, so that _the fatherless hath not eaten thereof; nor seen
-any perish for want of clothing, or any poor without covering_, chap.
-xxxi. 16-19. This is not only to pray, that God would give others their
-daily bread; but to help them, so far as it is in our power, which is
-very agreeable to what we pray for in their behalf, as well as our own,
-when we say, as in this petition, _Give us this day our daily bread_.
-
-Thus concerning the matter of this petition, as explained in this
-answer; of which we shall give a summary account in the following
-meditation, which may be of use for the reducing our Saviour’s direction
-into practice: Accordingly we address him in this manner, “Our eyes wait
-on thee, O thou preserver of men, who givest to all their meat in due
-season. We are poor, indigent creatures, whose necessities oblige us to
-request a daily supply, for our outward as well as spiritual wants. Thou
-hast granted us life and favour; and, having obtained help from thee, we
-continue unto this day. Thou preparest a table for us; our cup runneth
-over; we have never been wholly destitute of those outward blessings
-which tend to make our pilgrimage, through this world, easy and
-comfortable: We therefore adore thee for the care and goodness of thy
-providence, which continues to us forfeited blessings. We have, by our
-sins, deserved to be deprived of all the good things we enjoy, which we
-have not used to thy glory, as we ought to have done. We acknowledge
-ourselves less than the least of all thy mercies; yet thou hast
-encouraged us to pray and hope for the continuance thereof: We leave it
-to thine infinite wisdom, to chuse that condition of life which thou
-seest best for us. It is not the great things of this world that we are
-solicitous about, but that portion thereof which is necessary to our
-glorifying thee therein. Thou hast made it our duty, and accordingly we
-desire, to use that industry which is necessary to attain a comfortable
-subsistence in the world; yet we are sensible that the success thereof
-is wholly owing to thy blessing: We therefore beg, that thou wouldst
-prosper our undertaking; since it is thy blessing alone that maketh
-rich, and addeth no sorrow therewith. Keep our desires after the world
-within their due bounds; and enable us to be content with what thou art
-pleased to allot for us, that our hearts may not be turned aside
-thereby, from an earnest pursuit after that bread which perisheth not,
-but endureth to everlasting life. If thou art pleased to give us the
-riches of this world, let not our hearts be set upon them; and if thou
-hast ordained that we should be in low circumstances therein, may the
-frame of our spirits be suited thereunto, and this condition of life be
-sanctified, that it may appear, that we are not too low to be the
-objects of thy special regard and discriminating grace; that having
-nothing, we may really possess all things, in having an interest in thy
-love. As to what concerns our future condition in this world, though
-thou hast made it our duty to use a provident care that we may not be
-reduced to those straits that would render the last stage of life
-uncomfortable; yet we would do this with a constant sense of the
-uncertainty of life, since our times are in thy hand, our circumstances
-in the world at thy disposal, and we rejoice that they are so: Therefore
-we earnestly beg, that if it be thy sovereign will to call us soon out
-of it, that we may be as well pleased to leave, as ever we were to enjoy
-it, as being blessed with a well-grounded hope of a better life: And, if
-it be consistent with thy will, that our lives be prolonged in the
-world, _Give us day by day our daily bread_, that we may, at all times,
-experience, that thou dost abundantly bless our provision, and satisfy
-us with those things which thou seest needful for us, till we come to
-our journey’s end, and are possessed of that perfect blessedness which
-thou hast reserved for thy saints in a better world.”
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CXCIV.
-
-
- QUEST. CXCIV. _What do we pray for the fifth petition?_
-
- ANSW. In the fifth petition, [which is, _Forgive us our debts as we
- forgive our debtors_] acknowledging that we, and all others, are
- guilty both of original and actual sin, and thereby become debtors
- to the justice of God; and that neither we, nor any other creature,
- can make the least satisfaction for that debt. We pray for ourselves
- and others, that God of his free grace would, through the obedience
- and satisfaction of Christ apprehended and applied by faith, acquit
- us both from the guilt and punishment of sin, accept us in his
- Beloved, continue his favour and grace to us, pardon our daily
- failings, and fill us with peace and joy, in giving us daily more
- and more assurance of forgiveness, which we are the rather
- emboldened to ask, and encouraged to expect when we have this
- testimony in ourselves, that we, from the heart, forgive others
- their offences.
-
-Having been directed, in the former petition, to pray for outward
-blessings; we are now led to ask for forgiveness of sin; and it is with
-very good reason that these two petitions are joined together, inasmuch
-as we cannot expect that God should give us the good things of this
-life, which are all forfeited by us, much less, that we should have them
-bestowed on us in mercy, and for our good, unless he is pleased to
-forgive those sins, whereby we provoke him to withhold them from us:
-Neither can we take comfort in any outward blessings, while our
-consciences are burdened with a sense of the guilt of sin, and we have
-nothing to expect, as the consequence thereof, but to be separated from
-his presence; therefore we are taught to pray, that God would _forgive
-us our sins_, as one evangelist expresses it, or our _debts_, as it is
-in the other.
-
-From whence it may be observed, in general, that sin is a debt. As it is
-contrary to the holiness of God, it is a stain and blemish, a dishonour
-and reproach to us; as it is a violation of his law it is a crime; and,
-as to what respects the guilt which we contract hereby, it is called _a
-debt_; which is the principal thing considered in this petition. There
-was a debt of obedience demanded from us as creatures: and, in case of
-the failure hereof, or any other sin committed by us, there was a
-threatening denounced, pursuant to the sanction of the law, from whence
-arises a debt of punishment; and in this respect it is that we are
-directed, more especially, in this petition, to pray for forgiveness.
-There are several things which respect the nature of forgiveness, as
-founded on the satisfaction given by Christ, as our Surety: which have
-been largely insisted on under some foregoing answers[121]: Therefore,
-the method we shall observe, in considering the subject-matter of this
-petition, shall be,
-
-I. To take a view of sinful man as charged with guilt, and rendered
-uneasy under a sense thereof.
-
-II. How he is to address himself to God by faith and prayer for
-forgiveness. And,
-
-III. The encouragement which he has to hope that his prayer will be
-answered. Under which head we shall take occasion to consider how far
-that disposition which we have to forgive others, is an evidence hereof.
-
-I. Concerning the charge of guilt upon us, and that uneasiness which is
-the consequence thereof. Here we consider the sinner as apprehended and
-standing before God, the Judge of all; an accusation brought in against
-him, in which he is charged with apostacy and rebellion against his
-rightful Lord and Sovereign, and, as the consequence thereof, his nature
-is vitiated and depraved, his heart deceitful above all things, and
-desperately wicked; from whence proceed all actual transgressions, with
-their respective aggravations, which, according to the tenor of the law
-of God, deserve his wrath and curse, both in this life, and that which
-is to come[122]. And this charge is made good against him by such
-convincing evidence, that he must be very much unacquainted with
-himself, and a stranger to the law of God, if he does not see it: But if
-we suppose him stupid, and persisting in his own vindication, through
-the blindness of his mind, and hardness of his heart, and ready to say
-with Ephraim, _In all my labours they shall find none iniquity in me,
-that were sin_, Hos. xii. 8. yet the charge will, notwithstanding,
-appear to be just, and every mouth shall be stopped, and they are forced
-to confess themselves guilty before God: Upon this, conscience is
-awakened, and trembles at the thoughts of falling into the hands of an
-absolute God, who appears no otherwise to him than as a consuming fire;
-his terrors set themselves in array against him, and this cannot but
-fill him with the greatest anguish, especially because there is no
-method which he can find out, to free himself from that misery, which he
-dreads as the consequence thereof.
-
-If he pretends to extenuate his crimes, it will not avail him; and if
-his own conscience does not come in as a witness against him, as having
-been a party concerned in the rebellion, it is an argument that it is
-rendered stupid by a continuance therein: Nothing that it can allege in
-its own vindication, will be regarded in the court of heaven, but rather
-tend to add weight to the guilt he has contracted; for the omniscience
-of God will bring an unanswerable charge against him, as being a
-transgressor of his law, and thereby liable to condemnation, upon which,
-vindictive justice will demand satisfaction.
-
-If he makes an overture to pay the debt, he must either yield sinless
-obedience, which is impossible, from the nature of the thing; or bear
-the stroke of justice, and suffer the punishment that is due to him,
-which, if he is content to do, he knows not what it is to fall into the
-hands of the living God, or to be plunged into an abyss of endless
-misery. If he thinks that he shall be secure by flying from justice,
-this would be a vain attempt, since God is omnipresent; and _there is no
-darkness or shadow of death, where the workers of iniquity may hide
-themselves_, Job xxxiv. 52.
-
-Nothing therefore remains, but that he make supplication to his Judge,
-that he would pass by the crimes he has committed, without demanding
-satisfaction: But this is to desire, that he would act contrary to the
-holiness of his nature; which would be such a blemish on his
-perfections, that he is obliged to reject: What is this but to
-relinquish his throne, deny his sovereignty, and act contrary to his own
-law, which is the rule of his government, whereby sinners will take
-occasion to transgress, expecting that they may do this with impunity?
-
-But, is there no intercessor that will plead his cause, or appear for
-him in the court of heaven? this cannot be done but by one who is able
-to make an atonement, and thereby secure the glory of divine justice, by
-having the debt transferred or placed to his account, and giving a full
-satisfaction for it; but this belongs to none but our Lord Jesus Christ,
-who has obtained redemption and forgiveness through his blood; and none
-can take encouragement from hence, but he that addresses himself to God
-by faith, which we are now considering the sinner as destitute of, and
-therefore the charge of guilt remains upon him. And it is certain, that
-the consequence hereof is such, as will tend to fill him with the
-greatest uneasiness under the burthen that lies on his conscience, which
-has a perpetual dread of the execution of the sentence that is in force
-against him. This wounds his spirits; and it is impossible for any one
-to apply healing medicines, but by directing him according to the
-prescription contained in the gospel, to seek forgiveness in that way in
-which God applies it, in and through a Mediator.
-
-II. We are now to consider, how a person is to address himself to God by
-faith and prayer for forgiveness, which is the principal thing designed
-in this petition. Here it is to be acknowledged, that when we draw nigh
-to God, it is with a sense of guilt, and, it may be, with great distress
-of conscience, arising from it; yet it differs very much from what was
-observed under the last head, when we considered a sinner as standing
-before an absolute God, without any hope of obtaining forgiveness, since
-that cannot but fill him with dread and horror; whereas, this is an
-expedient for his obtaining a settled peace of conscience; and, indeed,
-there is nothing of greater importance, than our performing this duty in
-a right manner. And, in order thereunto, let it be considered,
-
-1. That when we pray for forgiveness of sin it is supposed, that none
-can bestow this blessing upon us but God. No one has a right to forgive
-an offence, but he against whom it is committed: This will appear, if we
-consider sin as a neglect or refusal to pay a debt of obedience, which
-is due from us, to God, and consequently it would be an invading his
-right, for any one who had no power to demand it, to pretend to give a
-discharge to the sinner as an insolvent debtor: This would be to act
-like the person mentioned in the parable, who was appointed indeed, to
-receive his lord’s debts, but not to cancel them; and therefore, our
-Saviour calls him an _unjust steward_; and he is said to have _wasted
-his lord’s goods_, by compounding the debts which were owing to him
-without his order, Luke xvi. 1. _& seq._ Now, since obedience, as it is
-a religious duty is due to God alone; it is only he that can give a
-discharge to those who have not performed it: and since it belongs to
-him as a judge and law-giver, to punish offenders, it would be the
-highest affront to him for a creature to pretend to this prerogative;
-and therefore God appropriates it to himself, when he says, _I even I am
-he that blotteth out thy transgressions for mine own sake_, Isa. xliii.
-25. which expression is to be understood of him exclusive of all others;
-accordingly, when the Jews charge our Saviour with blasphemy on his
-forgiving sins, and say, _Who can forgive sins but God only?_ the
-proposition was true, how false soever the inference, which they deduce
-from thence to disprove his Deity, might be. We shall now consider,
-
-2. That all ought to pray for forgiveness, and in what sense this is to
-be done,
-
-(1.) All ought to pray for forgiveness: One would think, that this is so
-evident, and agreeable to the condition of fallen man, as well as
-founded on many scriptures, and expressly commanded in this petition,
-which we are explaining, that it is needless to give a farther proof of
-it; but this we are obliged to do, inasmuch as some have asserted that a
-justified person ought not to pray for pardon of sin, since this is what
-is already done: This is an inference from what they advance, who plead
-for actual justification from eternity; and therefore it is, as they
-suppose, equally absurd for such an one to pray, that God would forgive
-him, as it is to pray that he would choose them to eternal life, or that
-Christ would satisfy divine justice for the sins of his people, which he
-has already done. It is, indeed, not very easy to understand what some
-persons mean, when they insist on this subject, inasmuch as they lay
-down propositions, without sufficiently explaining them; and whatever
-they allege in their vindication, that they intend nothing else hereby
-but what is agreeable to the sentiments of the reformed churches, it is
-certain, that they advance several things, or, at least, make use of
-such unguarded expressions as are altogether disowned by them; and, at
-the same time, give occasion to some, to run into the contrary extreme,
-who, for fear of being thought to assert eternal justification, deny the
-eternal purpose of God relating thereunto.
-
-But whatever they intend when they say, that a justified person ought
-not to pray for pardon of sin; the contrary to this is sufficiently
-evident from scripture. For every believer is a justified person;
-therefore, if we have any instance of believers praying for the pardon
-of sin, this sufficiently confutes that absurd notion which we are
-opposing. Now that many have prayed for pardon of sin, who have, at the
-same time, been true believers, is evident, from David’s praying for the
-pardon of sin, as he often does: Thus he says, in Psal. xxv. 11. _For
-thy name’s sake, O Lord, pardon mine iniquity, for it is great_; and
-yet, at the same time, he expresses himself like a justified person; _O
-my God, I trust in thee_, ver. 2. and ver. 5. _Thou art the God of my
-salvation_: And, in Psal. cxliii. 2. he prays, _Enter not into judgment
-with thy servant, for in thy sight shall no man living be justified_;
-yet, at the same time, he appears to be a believer; for he speaks, in
-ver. 8. of his _trusting in_, and _lifting up his soul to God_, and
-_fleeing to him_, that he would _hide him_, ver. 9. which are all acts
-of justifying faith; and, in Psal. li. 1. he prays, _Have mercy upon me,
-O God, according to thy loving-kindness; according to the multitude of
-thy tender mercies blot out my transgressions_; and, in ver. 9. _Hide
-thy face from my sins, and blot out all mine iniquities_: Whereas he had
-an intimation before from God, that he had pardoned his sin, 2 Sam. xii.
-13. which, as appears by the preface to this Psalm, was the occasion of
-its composure; so that the Spirit of God hereby put words into his
-mouth, and taught him, notwithstanding the assurance he had from him of
-his having obtained forgiveness, to pray for it: And the apostle Paul
-was in a justified state, when he expressed his earnest desire of being
-_found in Christ, not having his own righteousness, but that which is
-through the faith of Christ, the righteousness which is of God by
-faith_, Phil. iii. 9. This might also be argued from all those
-scriptures, that represent believers as praying for salvation, which
-cannot be done without praying for forgiveness of sin, as being
-inseparably connected therewith. I shall therefore add no more
-concerning the obligation which all are under, to pray for the pardon of
-sin, but proceed to consider,
-
-(2.) In what sense we are to pray for it. This may, without much
-difficulty, be determined, if we rightly state the doctrine of
-justification, which, if it be considered as an immanent act in God, or
-the eternal purpose of his will, not to impute sin, which is what
-divines call decretive justification, it is to be allowed, that this is
-no more to be prayed for than eternal election; neither are we to pray,
-that Christ may be constituted the Head and Surety of his elect, or,
-that he might finish transgressions, make an end of sin, and bring in an
-everlasting righteousness, for that is already done. But, inasmuch as
-the scripture often speaks of justification as consisting in the
-application of Christ’s righteousness, or that right we have to lay
-claim to it, which is styled justification by faith, and is the only
-foundation on which we build our hope, that we have an interest in what
-Christ did and suffered, and are thereby discharged from guilt and
-condemnation. This cannot be before we believe; and in this sense we
-pray that God would justify us: Now since forgiveness of sin is a branch
-of justification, it is, in this sense that we pray for the pardon of
-sin. And this includes in it,
-
-[1.] An earnest desire that God would not lay those sins to our charge
-that we daily commit; or, that he would not, as the Psalmist says,
-_enter into judgment_ with us, Psal. cxliii. 2. And, as the consequence
-hereof, we pray, that God would not punish us as our iniquities deserve.
-This is to pray for the application of Christ’s righteousness as the
-ground and foundation of our claim to forgiveness.
-
-[2.] We are to pray for the comfortable fruits and effects of
-forgiveness, that _being justified by faith, we may have peace with God
-through our Lord Jesus Christ_, and _access by faith, into this grace
-wherein we stand_, Rom. v. 1, 2. or, that we may be able to conclude,
-that our persons and services are accepted in the Beloved; and that
-Christ hath loved us, and washed us from our sins in his own blood.
-
-[3.] We are to pray for the assurance or comfortable sense hereof, that
-hereby we may rejoice in hope of the glory of God: And, inasmuch as we
-daily contract guilt, we are to pray that this blessing may be daily
-applied to us, and that, both living and dying, we may be dealt with as
-those who are interested in Christ’s righteousness as our Surety and
-Redeemer.
-
-If it be objected, that pardon of sin is a blessing that every believer
-has; and therefore he ought not to pray for it. To this I answer, that
-there are many privileges which God does, or will certainly bestow upon
-his people, which they are, nevertheless, to pray for; otherwise they,
-who are in a state of grace, are not to pray for perseverance in grace;
-because they are assured that it shall be maintained unto salvation,
-according to God’s promise: And, indeed, whatever promises are contained
-in the covenant of grace, a believer ought not, according to this method
-of reasoning, to pray that God would apply them to him, and so glorify
-his faithfulness in accomplishing them, since he is certainly persuaded
-that he will do it; whereas, all allow that we are to pray for this
-privilege: Therefore, if we have a full assurance that God has forgiven
-our sins; yet, inasmuch as we daily contract guilt, we are daily to
-pray, that he would not lay it to our charge, or deal with us as our
-iniquities deserve.
-
-3. We shall now consider, how we are to address ourselves to God, or
-what views we are to have of him when we pray for forgiveness of sin.
-This depends on the idea we have of those perfections which he glorifies
-in bestowing this privilege; and these are, more especially, his mercy,
-grace and faithfulness, in accomplishing what he has promised in the
-covenant of grace. As for his justice, that is considered, as will be
-observed under a following head, as having received a full satisfaction;
-but this is concerned in the purchase, not in the application of
-forgiveness; and therefore, though God, in this respect, appears with
-the glory of a Judge, resolving to make no abatements of the debt which
-was contracted, that he may thereby express his utmost detestation of
-the sins committed: in this sense forgiveness is not to be obtained by
-entreaty; for it is inconsistent with the character of a Judge, to be
-moved thereby, and contrary to the demands of law and justice. But, on
-the other hand, when we draw nigh to him, we consider him as a Father
-who delights in mercy, as it is particularly intimated in the preface to
-this prayer; and therefore we do not come before him as summoned to
-stand at his tribunal, and to be weighed in the balance by him, in which
-respect we would be found wanting, and, if our iniquities should be
-marked by him, could not stand; but we consider ourselves as invited to
-come into his presence, in hope of obtaining this privilege; and we
-consider him as he has revealed himself in the gospel, in which we are
-told, that there is forgiveness with him, that he may be feared, not as
-the criminal fears his judge, who is ready to pass sentence upon him;
-but as a child comes into his father’s presence with such a fear as
-proceeds from love, and is the result of that encouragement which is
-given him, that he should be accepted in his sight: And, the great
-inducement hereunto, is the intimation that he has given thereof in the
-promises of the covenant of grace, and particularly those that respect
-forgiveness, in which he has discovered himself as a God ready to
-pardon, _gracious and merciful, slow to anger, and of great kindness_,
-Neh. ix. 17. with whom is _plenteous redemption_, Psal. cxxx. 7. he also
-styles himself, _Our God, who will abundantly pardon_, inasmuch as _his
-thoughts and ways are above ours, as the heavens are higher than the
-earth_, Isa. lv. 7-9. and he has likewise promised that he will _cast
-all the sins_ of his people _into the depths of the sea_: Therefore they
-consider him not only as glorifying his mercy, but as _performing his
-truth_, and acting agreeably to his faithfulness, Micah vii. 19, 20.
-and, all this depends entirely on the discoveries he has made of himself
-to us through a Mediator: This leads us to consider,
-
-4. The way in which God bestows this blessing, and we are to seek it at
-his hand by faith and prayer. We have before observed, that it would be
-an affront to the divine Majesty, to suppose that he will extend mercy
-to guilty sinners, without securing the glory of his vindictive justice;
-and this depends wholly on the satisfaction that Christ has given to it:
-Therefore we are to beg forgiveness for his sake, whom God has set forth
-to be a propitiation for his sake, that he might be just, and the
-justifier of him that believeth in Jesus; we are therefore first
-considered as having his righteousness imputed to us, and then this
-blessing, which we pray for, is applied to us. In this method of praying
-for forgiveness, we take occasion to adore the wisdom of God, which has
-found out this expedient to hallow or sanctify his own name, as well as
-secure to us an interest in his love, and, at the same time, we express
-the high esteem we have for the person of Christ, who has procured it
-for us, as also the infinite value of the price he paid in order
-thereunto; and we refer our cause to him, that, as our Advocate, he
-would appear on our behalf, in the merit of his obedience and
-sufferings; that our petition may be granted in such a way, that God
-hereby may have the highest revenue of glory redounding to himself, and
-we receive the blessings consequent thereupon.
-
-5. We are now to consider the frame of spirit with which we are to pray
-for forgiveness. There is no grace but what is to be exercised in
-prayer, agreeably to the subject-matter thereof; and it is evident, from
-the nature of the thing, that when we pray for forgiveness, it ought to
-be with a penitent frame of spirit: Accordingly repentance and
-forgiveness of sins are often connected in scripture. Thus it is said,
-_Repent and be converted, that your sins may be blotted out_, Acts iii.
-19. not that we are to suppose that repentance, or any other grace, is
-the cause of God’s secret purpose or determination to forgive sin, or,
-that he accepts of it as any part of that atonement or satisfaction
-which his justice requires to be made for it; for this is to ascribe
-that to it which belongs entirely to Christ’s righteousness; yet
-repentance is so far necessary to forgiveness, that it would be a very
-preposterous thing for any one to ask this favour either of God or man
-without it. Not to repent of a crime committed, is, in effect, a
-pleading for it, and a tacit resolution to persist in it, which
-disqualifies us from pleading a pardon; and it would be contrary to the
-divine perfections for God to give it to those who hereby do, as it
-were, practically disown their need of it.
-
-Now the necessity of repentance, in those who are praying and hoping for
-forgiveness, appears from the connexion that there is between it, and
-all other graces; which, though distinguished, are not separated from
-it, and they are, all of them, necessary to salvation, which we can, by
-no means attain to, without being forgiven.
-
-III. We proceed to consider, the encouragement that they, who plead for
-forgiveness with the exercise of faith, repentance and other graces,
-have to expect, that they shall be heard and answered; and more
-particularly, how far that disposition, which we have to forgive others
-is an evidence thereof.
-
-1. Grace exercised, is an evidence of forgiveness. This appears, in that
-it is a work and fruit of the Spirit, a branch of sanctification, and an
-earnest of eternal life; and, in this respect, that good work may be
-truly said to be begun, which God will certainly carry on, and perfect
-in glory: of this, I say, every grace, provided it be true and genuine,
-is an evidence, from whence we may conclude our right to forgiveness, or
-justification, which is inseparably connected with it; as the apostle
-says, _Whom he called, them he justified; and whom he justified, them he
-also glorified_, Rom. viii. 30.
-
-2. We are now to consider how far, or in what respect, our exercising
-forgiveness towards others, is an evidence of our having obtained
-forgiveness from God, which is the sense given in those words, _as we
-forgive our debtors_. We may here observe the variation of the
-expression in Matthew and Luke; in the former it is said, _Forgive us
-our debts as we forgive our debtors_; and, in the latter, _Forgive us
-our sins; for we also forgive every one that is indebted to us_. There
-is a little difficulty contained in the sense of the particles, AS and
-FOR, which must be so explained, that the sense of the petition, in both
-evangelists may appear to be the same: Therefore, when Matthew says,
-_Forgive us our debts as we forgive our debtors_, the particle AS, is
-not a note of equality, but of similitude; and accordingly it signifies,
-that we are to forgive others, even as God, for Christ’s sake, has
-forgiven us; or, as we hope to obtain forgiveness from him; though, if
-we compare these two together, there is an infinite disproportion
-between them, as to the injuries forgiven, and other circumstances that
-attend the action. The injuries that are done to us are very small, if
-compared with the crimes that we commit against God; and when we are
-said to forgive them, there is no comparison between it and that
-forgiveness which we desire from the hand of God. God’s forgiving us is,
-indeed, a motive to us to forgive others, but one is not the measure, or
-standard of the other: It therefore implies, that while we ask for
-forgiveness, we ought to do it with a becoming frame of spirit, as those
-who are inclined to forgive others, and, at the same time to bless God,
-that he has wrought this disposition in us; and, so far as we make use
-of it, as an argument in prayer, the meaning thereof is, that since he
-has made it our duty, and we trust, has also given us this grace to
-forgive others; we hope, that he will, in like manner, _forgive us our
-trespasses_.
-
-We are now to consider the petition as laid down by the evangelist Luke;
-_Forgive us our sins; for we also forgive every one that is indebted to
-us_: which is, for substance, the same with that in Matthew, as but now
-explained: Accordingly the particle FOR, is not causal, but
-demonstrative; and therefore we are not to understand it as though our
-forgiving others were the ground and reason of God’s forgiving us, since
-that would be to put it in the room of Christ’s righteousness; but the
-meaning is, that we are encouraged to hope that he will forgive us, from
-this demonstrative evidence; since he has given us that grace which
-inclines and disposes us to forgive others; from whence we have ground
-to conclude, that we shall obtain the blessing we pray for.
-
-This leads us to consider the nature and extent of forgiveness, as
-exercised by us, and our obligation to perform this duty; and when this
-may be said to be an evidence of our obtaining forgiveness from God.
-
-_First_, Concerning the nature and extent of forgiveness, as exercised
-by us; for the understanding of which, let it be premised,
-
-[1.] That the injuries that are done us, are to be considered either as
-they contain an invasion upon, or denying us those rights which belong
-to us, agreeably to that station and condition in life, in which the
-providence of God has fixed us: these must be reckoned injuries, because
-they are detrimental to us, and acts of injustice; or, they may be
-farther considered, as crimes committed against God, inasmuch as they
-infer a violation of the law of nature, which is instamped with his
-authority; whereby the rights of every particular person are determined,
-and to deprive us of them, is a sin against God, in the same sense in
-which sins immediately committed against men, are said to be committed
-against him. And by this we may be farther led to consider,
-
-[2.] That injuries are only to be forgiven by us, as they are against
-ourselves; whereas God alone can forgive them as they are against him;
-and the reason hereof is, because no one can dispense with that
-punishment which is due for the violation of a law, but the supreme
-authority. The precept that is to be obeyed, and the sanction that binds
-over the offender to suffer for his violation of it, must be established
-by the highest authority. And therefore, inasmuch as the creature cannot
-demand that obedience which is due to God alone; for the same reason he
-cannot remit that debt of punishment which belongs only to God to
-inflict. However, we are to desire, that God would pardon, rather than
-punish those that have injured us: And this is the only sense in which
-we may be said to forgive others those crimes that are committed against
-God, if this may be called forgiveness. But, so far as any injury
-respects ourselves, as being detrimental to us, it is our duty to
-forgive it, and not to exercise that private revenge which is
-inconsistent with the subject-matter of this petition.
-
-[3.] So far as an injury, which more especially respects ourselves,
-contains in it a violation of human laws, whereby the offender has
-rendered himself obnoxious to a capital punishment; it does not belong
-to us, as private persons, to forgive the criminal, so as to obstruct
-the course of justice, since this is a matter that does not concern us,
-as not having the executive part of human laws in our power; and to
-pretend to this, would be not only to violate the laws of men, but to
-commit an offence against God, who has established the just rights of
-civil government; therefore, that forgiveness which we are obliged to
-exercise towards others, does not extend itself to this matter. Nor are
-we obliged, when we forgive those that have injured us, to be
-unconcerned about doing justice to ourselves, when it is possible, or at
-least easy, for us to have redress in the course of law or equity;
-especially if the damage we sustain hereby, be, in a very great degree,
-prejudicial to ourselves or families. And if it affects our good name in
-the world, the forgiving those reproaches that are cast upon us, is not
-inconsistent with our using endeavours to vindicate our own reputation;
-though it may be, this can hardly be done without exposing him that has
-done us the injury, to suffer that shame which he brought on himself
-thereby.
-
-These things being premised, we proceed to consider, the nature and
-extent of forgiveness, as it is to be exercised by us, so far as the
-injury committed respects ourselves. This is opposed to our bearing the
-least degree of malice against the offender, or carrying our resentments
-too far, by magnifying lesser injuries, and meditating revenge: Nor
-ought we to be so partial in our own cause, as to deny, or altogether
-overlook those things that are, in other respects commendable in him, as
-though a crime committed against us, were altogether inconsistent with
-the least degree of virtue or goodness in him that has committed it. If
-he has done injustice to us, this does not excuse any act of injustice
-to his person or character in other instances, which have not an
-immediate relation to ourselves; which is to see things through a false
-medium, or to infer consequences that cannot fairly be deduced from any
-thing that he has done, how injurious soever it may have been to us.
-
-Moreover, we are not to take occasion from the ill treatment we have met
-with, from any one, to endeavour to ruin him, as to his estate or
-character in the world; since that is not a proper expedient, either to
-do justice to ourselves, or bring him, who has done us the injury to
-repentance.
-
-Here we may take occasion to enquire, how far a person that is injured
-by another, may demand satisfaction? and, whether it is our duty to
-forgive him, though it be neither in his power nor inclination to make
-it?
-
-The answer that I would give to this, is; that the law of God and
-nature, does not prohibit us from demanding satisfaction in proportion
-to the injury received; since this is a debt we ought to claim, in
-justice to ourselves, and our character in the world: Nevertheless, it
-must be considered,
-
-_1st_, That it may sometimes be out of his power to make full
-satisfaction; in which case we must be content, and forgive the injury
-without it; and we are to deal with him in like manner, as we are
-obliged to do with those who are insolvent in pecuniary debts. But,
-
-_2dly_, We suppose, that the person who has injured us, is able in some
-measure, to make satisfaction; but he is so far from being willing to do
-it, that he refuses to acknowledge his crime, and, which is still worse,
-seems inclined, as occasion may offer, to commit it again, which is the
-worst of tempers, especially if the injury be not barely supposed, but
-real: Yet this is no rule for us to proceed by, in forgiving injuries;
-for the understanding of which let it be considered, that satisfaction
-for injuries committed, consists either in making a compensation in
-proportion to the damage sustained thereby, or else in a bare
-acknowledgment of the fault committed. The former of these we may, in
-justice, insist on; but yet, in most cases, where the injury only
-respects ourselves, it may be dispensed with, or demanded at pleasure;
-but whether it be given or no, it is so far our duty to pass it by, as
-not to bear the least degree of malice against him, that has injured us,
-though he refuses to give it. As to the latter, where no more is
-demanded, than a bare acknowledgment of the offence committed, which
-cannot be supposed to be out of the power of the offender to do; but he
-is resolved that he will not make this small satisfaction, as persisting
-in his own vindication, and determines to do the same again, as occasion
-offers: we are to let him know, that herein he not only sins against us,
-but God, and to exhort him to confess his crime before him; and
-therefore we pity his obstinacy, while we express our readiness to pass
-by the injury he has done us: However, such an one is not to be chosen
-by us as an intimate friend or associate, out of a principle of
-self-preservation, that he may not be in a capacity of doing us the same
-injuries for the future, which his obstinacy discovers him to be
-inclined to do. Thus concerning the nature and extent of this duty of
-forgiving injuries: We proceed to consider,
-
-_Secondly_, The indispensable obligation we are under to perform it;
-otherwise we could not make this appeal to God in prayer, or take
-encouragement to hope, that we shall obtain forgiveness from him. To
-induce us hereunto, let us consider,
-
-_1st_, That if God should deal with us as we do with our
-fellow-creatures, when we refuse to forgive them, we should be for ever
-miserable. This our Saviour illustrates by the parable of the debtor and
-creditor, in Matt. xviii. 24, _& seq._ where a person is represented as
-_owing ten thousand talents_, and _his lord_, upon his entreaty,
-_forgave him the debt_; and afterwards he dealt severely with one that
-owed him but an _hundred pence_, and thereby provoked his lord to
-_deliver him to the tormentors, till he should pay all that was due unto
-him_; which parable, though it does not argue the least mutability in
-the divine purpose relating hereunto, yet we may infer from hence, how
-inconsiderable the injuries that are done us are, if compared with those
-which we have done against God; and how little ground we have to expect
-forgiveness from him, if we are not disposed to forgive others.
-
-_2dly_, An implacable spirit, meditating revenge for injuries done
-against us, will render us altogether unfit for the performance of an
-holy duty, and particularly this of imploring forgiveness from God: It
-also exposes us to many temptations; accordingly the apostle speaks of
-anger retained in our breasts, or _letting the sun go down upon our
-wrath_, as that which _gives place to the Devil_, Eph. iv. 26, 27.
-
-_3dly_, Malice and fury tend to exasperate an enemy; whereas,
-forgiveness melts him into friendship, and very much recommends the
-gospel, which obliges us to shew such instances of brotherly kindness,
-even where they are least deserved.
-
-_4thly_, We have many bright examples for our imitation, of the best of
-men, who have been highly injured, and yet have expressed a forgiving
-spirit. Thus Joseph forgave the injuries done against him by his
-brethren, when, after his father’s death, they were jealous that he
-would hate them, and requite them all the evil that they had done unto
-him; but he not only comforted and spake kindly to them, but made very
-liberal provision for the subsisting of them and their families, Gen. 1.
-15-21. And, Moses, when Miriam was smitten with leprosy, for speaking
-against him, prays for her recovery, Numb. xii. 13. And, when the Syrian
-host was sent on purpose to destroy the prophet Elisha, and God had
-delivered them into his hand, being in the midst of Samaria, and the
-king of Israel was ready to smite them, had he desired it; but this he
-was so far from doing, that he says, _Thou shalt not smite them:
-Wouldest thou smite those whom thou hast taken captive with thy sword,
-and with thy bow, set bread and water before them, that they may eat and
-drink and go to their master_, 2 Kings vi. 22.
-
-And, in the New Testament, we have an instance of a forgiving spirit in
-Stephen, when, in the very agonies of death, having been before
-insulted, and now stoned by his enraged enemies; it is said, _He kneeled
-down, and cried with a loud voice, Lord, lay not this sin to their
-charge_, Acts vii. 60. But the highest instance that can be given of the
-exercise of this grace we have in our Saviour, who prayed for them that
-crucified him; _Father forgive them for they know not what they do_,
-Luke xxiii. 34. These examples are worthy of our imitation; and
-therefore we should reckon ourselves obliged to forgive those who have
-injured us.
-
-_Object._ It will be objected by some, that the injuries done them, are
-so very great, that they are not to be borne; and it would be
-dishonourable for them not to take any notice thereof: Or, it may be,
-the ingratitude that is expressed herein, is such that it deserves the
-highest resentment; and if it should be passed over, it might be
-reckoned a tacit approbation of their crime, and give occasion to them,
-that have committed the injury against them, to despise them, and do the
-like for the future.
-
-_Answ._ To this it may be replied;
-
-_1st_, That if the injury be great, it will be much more commendable,
-and a greater instance of virtue and grace to forgive than to resent it;
-for in this a man overcomes himself, subdues his own passions, and
-thereby lets his enemy know, that he has a due sense of the divine
-command relating thereunto, and that his spirit is sanctified and calmed
-by the power of divine grace. This is reckoned one of the greatest
-victories; as it is said, _He that is slow to anger is better than the
-mighty; and he that ruleth his spirit, than he that taketh a city_,
-Prov. xvi. 32.
-
-_2dly_, As for our honour, which is pretended to be concerned herein,
-they who allege it, are very much mistaken in their sentiments about
-true honour; since it is said, _The discretion of a man deferreth his
-anger, and it is his glory to pass over his transgression_, chap. xix.
-11.
-
-_3dly_, This does not, in the least, argue, that the person who
-forgives, approves of his crime, who has done him the injury, since this
-is not inconsistent with our charging it on his conscience, and
-endeavouring to bring him under a sense of guilt, as having not only
-injured us, but done that which is highly displeasing to God; and he may
-be given to understand, that hereby he has wronged his own soul more
-than us, and therefore has great reason to be humbled before God, and
-repent of his sin committed against us, which, as it is committed
-against God, he only can forgive; though we let him know, that we are
-disposed to forgive him, so far as the crime is directed against us.
-
-_4thly_, As to the pretence, that forgiving injuries will make those who
-have done them grow bold, and be more hardened in their crimes; and that
-they will hereby take occasion to insult, and do the like injuries for
-the future: It may be replied, that this very seldom happens; but if it
-should, we must consider that the ungrateful abuse of a kind and
-generous action, or the possibility of this consequence ensuing
-thereupon, is no sufficient excuse for our not performing it. But if
-there be the least ingenuity of temper, or if it pleases God, by his
-grace, to succeed our kind behaviour toward them for their good, it will
-have a far different effect; as it is observed, _A soft answer turneth
-away wrath, but grievous words stir up anger_, Prov. chap. xv. 1. Thus
-concerning the obligation we are under to forgive the injuries that are
-committed against us: We are now to consider,
-
-_Thirdly_, How this is an evidence, or may afford us ground of hope,
-that we shall obtain forgiveness from God, when we are praying for it.
-Here let it be observed, that forgiving injuries, may be considered
-barely as a virtue, proceeding from a goodness of temper, or the sense
-that persons have of the equity and reasonableness thereof, and from
-other motives which the light of nature may suggest, or, as it is
-recommended by Seneca, Epictetus, and other heathen moralists: And,
-indeed, it must be reckoned a very commendable quality, and a convincing
-evidence that a person is, in a great degree, master of his own
-passions; but we cannot from hence conclude, that such an one is in a
-state of grace; and nothing short of that can be evidence of our right
-to forgiveness: Therefore we must consider this disposition to forgive
-injuries, as a Christian virtue, or as containing in it some
-ingredients, that manifest it to be a grace wrought in us by the Spirit,
-and a branch of sanctification, and, as such, having several other
-graces connected with; and accordingly,
-
-1. When our forgiving injuries is an evidence of our having obtained
-forgiveness, we must do it out of a humble sense of the many crimes that
-we have committed against God; and therefore it is joined with, and
-flows from the grace of repentance.
-
-2. It also contains in it several acts of faith; as hereby we do, in
-effect, acknowledge, that all we have is in God’s hand, who has a right
-to take it away when he pleases; and if he suffers us to be deprived of
-our reputation and usefulness in the world, or our wealth and outward
-estate therein, by the injurious treatment we meet with from those, who,
-without cause are our enemies; we are sensible that this could not be
-done without his permissive providence, which we entirely acquiesce in.
-The injury or injustice we wholly lay to the charge of those who hate
-us, nevertheless, in obedience to our Saviour’s command, we desire to
-express our love to them, in the most valuable instances thereof, and,
-at the same time, to acknowledge and bow down to the sovereignty and
-justice of God, in suffering us to be thus dealt with by men, hoping and
-trusting that he will over-rule this, and all other afflictive
-providences for our good; as David says, when he speaks of God’s
-suffering Shimei to curse him: _It may be, that the Lord will look on
-mine affliction, and that the Lord will requite me good for his cursing
-this day_, 2 Sam. xvi. 12.
-
-3. When we forgive those that have injured us, it is, with an earnest
-desire that God would give them repentance, that thereby his name may be
-glorified, and his interest promoted, whatever becomes of our name and
-usefulness in the world.—When we are enabled to exercise such a frame of
-spirit as this in forgiving those that have injured us, we have ground
-to hope, that when we pray for forgiveness, the great God, who is the
-author of all that grace which we exercise in forgiving others, will
-grant us this invaluable privilege.
-
-Having explained this petition, we shall now consider it as a directory,
-that so we may put up our requests to God, agreeable thereunto:
-Accordingly we are to cast ourselves before his footstool, with humble
-confession of sin, and imploring forgiveness from him, to this purpose:
-“We adore thee, O Lord, as a God of purer eyes than to behold iniquity.
-Thou hast commanded us to keep thy precepts, and hast revealed thy wrath
-from heaven against all ungodliness, and unrighteousness of men: We
-acknowledge that we are, by our transgressions, become debtors to thy
-justice; our iniquities are increased over our head, and our trespasses
-grown up unto the heavens; and thereby we have deserved to be banished
-out of thy sight, and cast into the prison of hell, without hope of
-being released from thence. We are not able to stand in judgment, and
-therefore we dread the thoughts of appearing before thine awful
-tribunal, as an absolute God. If thou shouldest contend with us, we
-cannot answer for the least sin that we have committed; and it would be
-an injury to thy justice, and an increasing of our guilt, to expect or
-desire, that thou shouldest pardon our sins without receiving
-satisfaction for them, which we are sensible that we are not, nor ever
-shall be able to give thee. But we bless thy name, that thou hast sent
-thy well-beloved Son into the world, who gave his life a ransom for thy
-people; by which means thy justice is satisfied, thy law fulfilled, and
-all thy perfections infinitely glorified: He hath finished
-transgression, made an end of sin, made reconciliation for iniquity, and
-brought in everlasting righteousness; which is to and upon all them that
-believe. Thou hast therefore given us leave, and encouraged us to come
-to thee by faith, to plead with thee for redemption and forgiveness
-through his blood, according to the riches of thy grace. In him thou art
-a God, pardoning the iniquity, and passing by the transgressions of the
-remnant of thine heritage: Therefore we pray for this invaluable
-privilege as those who humbly hope and trust that we have those graces
-wrought in us, which are an evidence of our having Christ’s
-righteousness imputed to us, for which we bless thee; and, in
-particular, that thou hast enabled us to forgive all the injuries that
-are done us by our fellow creatures; which are very small and
-inconsiderable, if compared with those affronts which we daily offer to
-thy Majesty. We beseech thee, grant that this, and all other graces, may
-more and more abound in us, that thereby our evidences of an interest in
-Christ’s righteousness may be more strong and clear; that though we
-daily contract guilt by our transgressions, we may be enabled to
-conclude for our comfort, that there is no condemnation to us, and that
-iniquity shall not be our ruin.”
-
-Footnote 121:
-
- _See vol. II. 289-290 and vol. III. 72._
-
-Footnote 122:
-
- _See Quest. CLII._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CXCV.
-
-
- QUEST. CXCV. _What do we pray for in the sixth petition?_
-
- ANSW. In the sixth petition, [which is, _And lead us not into
- temptation, but deliver us from evil_,] acknowledging that the most
- wise, righteous, and gracious God, for divers holy and just ends,
- may so order things, that we may be assaulted, foiled, and for a
- time, led captive by temptations, that Satan, the world, and the
- flesh, are ready, powerfully to draw us aside and ensnare us; and
- that we, even after the pardon of our sins, by reason of our
- corruption, weakness, and want of watchfulness, are not only subject
- to be tempted, and forward to expose ourselves unto temptations; but
- also, of ourselves, unable and unwilling to resist them, to recover
- out of them, and to improve them, and worthy to be left under the
- power of them; we pray, that God would so overrule the world, and
- all in it; subdue the flesh, and restrain Satan; order all things,
- bestow and bless all means of grace, and quicken us to watchfulness
- in the use of them, that we, and all his people may, by his
- providence, be kept from being tempted to sin; or, if tempted, that,
- by his Spirit, we may be powerfully supported and enabled to stand
- in the hour of temptation, or, when fallen, raised again and
- recovered out of it, and have a sanctified use and improvement
- thereof; that our sanctification and salvation may be perfected,
- Satan trodden under our feet, and we fully freed from sin,
- temptation, and all evil for ever.
-
-Our Saviour having, in the foregoing petition, exhorted us to pray for
-forgiveness of sins, whereby the guilt of past crimes may be removed; in
-this he advises us to pray against temptation, lest being overcome
-thereby, we should contract fresh guilt, and walk unbecoming those who
-hope for, or have obtained forgiveness from God. In order to our
-understanding of which it will be necessary for us to premise something
-tending to explain the meaning of the word _Temptation_. Accordingly it
-may be taken in a good sense: Thus God himself is sometimes said to
-_tempt_, or rather, which is all one, to _try_ his people. This he does
-by the various dispensations of his providence, whether prosperous or
-adverse. And sometimes by his commands, when he puts us upon the
-performance of difficult duties, that he might prove us, whether his
-fear is before us: In this respect he is said to have tempted Abraham,
-proved his faith, and discovered his readiness to obey his command in
-offering Isaac; and, after he had tried his faith, he commends him, when
-he says, _Now I know that thou lovest God_, Gen. xxii. 1, 12. And
-sometimes he is said to tempt, or _allure_, to what is good, Hos. ii.
-14. to invite his people to do those things which redound to his glory
-and their real interest; and in this sense we may and ought to tempt
-others, to persuade, and, as much as in us lies, engage their affections
-to the performance of what is good: Thus the apostle advises us to
-_consider one another to provoke unto love and to good works_, Heb. x.
-24.
-
-We are not to understand the word _temptation_ in these senses in this
-petition; but it is to be taken for our being tempted to sin, in which
-respect God never tempts any one: Thus the apostle says, _Let no man
-say, when he is tempted, I am tempted of God; for God cannot be tempted
-with evil; neither tempteth he any man_, James i. 13. neither ought we
-to tempt one another thereunto. This being premised, we come more
-immediately to explain this petition: In which we shall consider some
-things which are supposed; and also the subject-matter thereof.
-
-I. There are several things supposed, when we are taught to pray, _Lead
-us not into temptation_. As,
-
-1. That man, in this imperfect state, is very much exposed to
-temptations. The world is always ready to present its alluring objects,
-which are suited to the corruption of our nature, and therefore too
-easily complied with: And this is farther promoted by Satan’s
-suggestions, who is daily endeavouring to entangle us in the snare that
-is laid for us.
-
-2. As we are daily tempted to sin, so we are in great danger of being
-overcome thereby; which arises not only from the methods used to draw us
-aside from God, and the many secret snares laid for us, that are not
-easily discerned, but principally from the treachery of our own hearts,
-which are deceitful above all things, and very apt to incline us to
-commit those sins which bring a great deal of guilt with them. It also
-proceeds sometimes from a want of watchfulness; whereby the enemy comes
-upon us undiscovered, and we are overcome before we are aware of it; the
-temptation offers itself, and we are unable, but willing, to resist it.
-And, if fallen by it, this tends still more to weaken us, so that we
-cannot recover ourselves from the pit into which we are plunged; we also
-find it very difficult, if God is pleased, at any time, to suffer us to
-fall by temptations, to improve them aright to his glory and our own
-good.
-
-3. It is farther supposed, that God may suffer his people, though their
-sins are pardoned, and their souls sanctified, to be tempted, and
-sometimes even foiled and led captive for a time; which may give us
-occasion to consider,
-
-(1.) In what sense he may be said to tempt, or lead his people into
-temptation. This he does, though without being the author of sin,[123]
-
-[1.] Objectively; when his providential dispensations, which, in
-themselves, are holy, just, and good, offer occasions of sin; which,
-nevertheless, would not ensue hereupon, did not our corrupt nature lay
-hold on them as such, and abuse them: Thus all God’s works of providence
-or grace, may prove temptations to men; as the Psalmist, speaking of the
-_prosperity of the wicked_, intimates, that it raised his envy, Psal.
-lxxiii. 3. and elsewhere he considers the blessings of common providence
-as proving a temptation, to carnal security and indifferency in
-religion, to some of whom it is said, _Because they have no changes,
-therefore they fear not God_, Psal. lv. 19. and, on the other hand,
-afflictive providence sometimes prove temptations to us to murmur and
-entertain hard thoughts of God.—Moreover, his threatenings are
-oftentimes abused, and some thereby tempted to think him severe and
-unmerciful; others complain of his commandments as grievous, because he
-does not give them those indulgencies to sin which their corrupt natures
-desire. In these respects God may be said to lead into temptation;
-nevertheless, we are not to pray, that he would alter the methods of his
-providence, or make abatements as to the duties which he commands us to
-perform; but rather, that he would not suffer us to make a wrong use of
-them.
-
-[2.] God leads into temptation permissively, when he does not restrain
-the tempter, which he is not obliged to do, but suffers us to be
-assaulted by him, and, at the same time, denies the aids and assistance
-of his grace, to prevent our compliance therewith; so that when we pray
-that he would _not lead us into temptation_, we desire that he would
-prevent the assault, or fortify us against it, that, through the
-weakness of our grace, or the prevalency of corruption, we may not
-comply with the temptation.
-
-(2.) We shall now consider the reason why God thus leads his people into
-temptation, or suffers them to be tempted: or what are those holy, wise,
-just, and gracious ends, which he designs thereby; and,
-
-[1.] It cannot be expected that it should be otherwise, when we chuse to
-go in the way of temptation, or indulge those corruptions, whereby we
-are inclined to yield to it: In this case, God’s judicial hand appears,
-as he punishes for one sin, by suffering us to be tempted to another.
-
-[2.] God hereby gives us occasion to see our own weakness, and the
-deceitfulness of our hearts, and the need we have of his grace, to
-prevent our falling by temptation: Thus it is said, that God _left
-Hezekiah_, 2 Chron. xxxii. 31. compared with 2 Kings xx. 15. when he
-sinned in shewing the ambassadors of the king of Babylon the treasures
-that he had in his house, in which this good king discovered too much
-pride; whereas it had been better had he shewn them the bed he lay on,
-when he was nigh unto death, and taken occasion from thence, to give God
-the glory of his miraculous recovery which was the reason of their being
-sent to compliment him upon it: In this respect _God left him to try
-him, that he might know all that was in his heart_.
-
-[3.] God does this, that, when we experience the superior force of our
-spiritual enemies, we may, by faith and prayer, have recourse to his
-almighty power and grace. Thus when the apostle Paul was in danger of
-being _exalted above measure_, through Satan’s temptations, he says,
-_For this I besought the Lord thrice, that it might depart from me_, 2
-Cor. xii. 8.
-
-[4.] He suffers this, that we may herein have an instance of the
-imperfections of this present state, and be induced to press after, and
-long for, that state of perfect freedom, not only from sin, but
-temptation, which is reserved for us in heaven.
-
-[5.] We are led into temptation, that hereby we may see the necessity of
-making use of the whole armour of God, that we may be able to stand our
-ground. As the soldier will not put on his armour but when he is going
-to engage the enemy; so God has ordained that our life should be a
-perpetual warfare, and that we should be continually exposed to the
-assaults of our spiritual enemies, that we may always be prepared for
-them, having _the girdle of truth, the breast-plate of righteousness,
-the shield of faith, the helmet of salvation, and the sword of the
-Spirit, which is the word of God_, Eph. vi. 14-17. He also suffers this,
-that we may, in the end, know what it is to conquer, and have the
-pleasure and satisfaction arising from hence, and that he may have the
-glory of this victory.
-
-[6.] God suffers this, that he may cure our sloth, and excite us to
-greater watchfulness, as those who are never wholly out of danger: Thus
-the apostle says, _Be sober, be vigilant; because your adversary, the
-Devil, as a roaring lion, walketh about, seeking whom he may devour_, 1
-Pet. v. 8. and our Saviour advises his disciples, to _watch and pray,
-that they enter not into temptation_, Matt. xxvi. 41.
-
-[7.] God suffers us to be tempted, that we may know the depths of Satan,
-which we should otherwise be unapprized of; and that thereby we may be
-more prepared to make resistance, and, when we are enabled to overcome,
-may be better furnished to direct others, who are liable to like
-temptations, how they should behave themselves under them, and to
-encourage them to hope that they should be delivered, as we have been.
-
-4. It is farther observed, that though God suffers his people to be
-tempted, and even foiled, and led captive, yet this is only for a time.
-In this the temptations of believers differ from those of the
-unregenerate, who are _taken captive by Satan at his will_, 2 Tim. ii.
-26. Whereas it is said concerning the believer, that it is only _for a
-season_; and that, _if need be, he is in heaviness through manifold
-temptations_, 1 Tim. i. 6. This leads us to consider,
-
-II. The subject-matter of the petition, when we pray that God would _not
-lead us into temptation, but deliver us from evil_. The only difficulty
-in laying down the method in which this is to be insisted on, arises
-from the indeterminateness of the word _evil_; of which, there are
-various senses given by them, that explain the Lord’s prayer.
-
-Some understand by it, the evil one, or the Devil; and then one part of
-this petition may be considered as exegetical of the other: So that, not
-to be led into temptation, is the same as, to be delivered from the
-assaults of Satan, the evil one, that we may not be brought under his
-power, or become vassals to him, as complying with his temptations.
-
-Others understand the word in a more large sense, as an intimation of
-our desire to be delivered from evil of all kinds, and that either from
-the evil of sin, or the evil of afflictions, which are the consequence
-of sin. If we take it for a deliverance from the evil of sin; this
-respects the guilt thereof, and the punishment that is due to it; and
-then it differs little or nothing from the subject-matter of the
-foregoing petition, when we pray, that God would _forgive us our sins_;
-or if, on the other hand, we take it for deliverance from the evil of
-sin, as it includes in it a branch of sanctification, that is, from the
-dominion and slavery of sin, then it is well connected with the former
-petition; for when we pray for pardon of sin, we ought also to pray for
-deliverance from the reigning power thereof. And it is very well
-connected with our praying against temptation; for it is, in effect, to
-desire either that we may not be assaulted by the tempter, or that we
-may not be drawn aside to sin against God thereby.
-
-As for the evil of affliction, I cannot think that this is intended by
-this expression, because the opposition between it and our deliverance
-from temptation, would not appear to be so just as we must suppose it
-is, unless we take temptation itself to be an affliction; and then it is
-the same as though we should say, deliver us from temptation, that we
-may not be afflicted therewith; which we must be supposed to be, by
-reason of the danger we are in of falling thereby.
-
-By passing by these critical remarks on the sense of the words, _Deliver
-us from evil_, we shall consider the subject-matter of this petition,
-under two general heads, _viz._
-
-_First_, We shall enquire what are the temptations which we are exposed
-to.
-
-_Secondly_, How we are to pray that we may not be led into them; or, if
-we are, how we may be delivered from the evil consequences that will
-arise from our compliance with them, which is principally implied in
-those words, _Deliver us from evil_.
-
-_First_, What are those temptations which we are exposed to: These are
-of various kinds, all which take their rise either from the world, the
-flesh, or the Devil. Their manner of acting, indeed, is different; yet
-they are very often united in their assaults, from whence we are in
-perpetual danger of being overcome, if God, by his grace, is not pleased
-to interpose.—And,
-
-1. We shall consider the temptations that we meet with from the world.
-These are either such as arise from the solicitations of those whom we
-converse with therein, who, under a pretence of friendship, persuade us
-to sin: Thus we read of some who _entice others to lay wait for blood_,
-and desire those whom they would ensnare into this crime, to _cast in
-their lot among them_, Prov. i. 10-14. but we are advised, not to
-consent to, or be confederate with them: Or else they arise from those
-things in the world which present themselves to us, and are temptations
-to sin, in an objective way, being not so much the cause as the occasion
-thereof; and, in many instances, the use thereof is lawful, while the
-abuse alone proves hurtful to us: This is what we shall principally
-confine ourselves to at present, and shew how the good and evil things
-of the world, or the various conditions in which we are, whether
-prosperous or adverse, prove temptations to us.
-
-(1.) The good things of the world, or the various conditions in which we
-are, whether prosperous or adverse, prove temptations to us.
-
-(2.) The good things of the world are sometimes a snare to us, or an
-occasion of sin, _viz._ the riches, honours and pleasures thereof: Thus
-our Saviour speaks, Matt. xiii. 22. of the _care of this world_, that
-is, either to gain or increase of it; and the apostle speaks of some who
-had _forsaken the right way, following the way of Balaam, who loved the
-wages of unrighteousness_, 2 Pet. ii. 15. or acted contrary to his
-conscience for gain; and Felix perverted justice to obtain a bribe,
-concerning whom it is said, _He hoped that money should have been given
-him of Paul, that he might loose him_, Acts xxiv. 16. And we read of
-others that _will be rich_, that is, who immoderately pursue the gain of
-the world, that hereby _fall into temptation, and a snare, and many
-hurtful lusts_, 1 Tim. vi. 9. And the honours of the world are a
-temptation to others; Thus our Saviour says, _How can ye believe, which
-receive honour one of another_, John v. 44. And others are ensnared by
-the pleasures of the world, who are stiled _lovers of pleasures more
-than lovers of God_, 2 Tim. iii. 4.
-
-And, indeed, we often find, that the necessary duties or enjoyments of
-life, such as eating, drinking, and recreation; and the various
-relations we stand in to others prove a temptation to us. Many things
-are so, as they are used unseasonably, immoderately, and without a due
-regard to the glory of God, which ought to be our highest end in all
-worldly enjoyments; and, indeed, whatever has a tendency to draw forth
-our corruption, may be said to be a temptation to us: Sometimes the
-prosperous condition of others has this effect upon us: Thus Cain,
-beholding Abel to have a more visible token of the divine regard to his
-person and offering than he had, hated and _slew him_, Gen. iv. 5, 9.
-And Joseph’s being a favourite in his father’s house, and honoured by
-God, in having divine dreams, gave occasion to his brethren to envy him;
-who first designed to slay him, and afterwards, out of malice, sold him
-into Egypt. And when Joshua saw Eldad and Medad prophesying, supposing
-that this belonged only to Moses; and that it was a lessening of his
-honour, for them to pretend to this privilege, he desires that they
-might be _forbid_; but this was plainly a temptation; for Moses gives
-him a check, intimating that he did not well in _envying_ them _for his
-sake_, Numb. xi. 29.
-
-Moreover, we often find, that our own condition in the world, when we
-enjoy the outward blessings of providence, proves a temptation: Some are
-like the vessel that is in danger of being overset by having too much
-sail, and no ballast to keep it steady: In like manner, the abundance of
-this world, without the grace of God, to sanctify and set bounds to our
-affections, will oftentimes prove a snare to us. Some are hereby tempted
-to covetousness, than which, nothing is more preposterous; yet nothing
-more common. This seems to be supposed in the Psalmist’s advice; _If
-riches increase, set not your heart upon them_, Psal. lxii. 10. and it
-is an intimation, that our desires often increase with our substance, so
-that the more we have, the more we want, and are less disposed to
-contribute to the necessities of others: We have an instance of this in
-Nabal, whose answer to the obliging message, sent by David to him, _Say
-ye to him that liveth in prosperity, Peace be both to thee, and peace be
-to thine house, and peace be unto all that thou hast. Give, I pray thee,
-whatsoever cometh to thine hand, unto thy servants, and to thy son
-David_, 1 Sam. xxv. 6, 8, 11. argued him to be of a churlish
-disposition, and that his prosperous circumstances in the world were a
-temptation to his corruptions, having no sense of gratitude for those
-favours that he had received from him and his men, while they resided in
-the wilderness, and were conversant with those that kept his flocks
-there. It would have been a more plausible excuse, had he alleged the
-danger that might accrue to him thereby: or, that it was possible that
-Saul might hear of it, and deal with him as he had done with Abimelech,
-and the other priests, at Nob, for that small respect that he had shewed
-him: But this be takes no notice of, but treats him morosely, when he
-says _Shall I take my bread and my water, and my flesh, that I have
-killed for my shearers, and give it unto men, whom I know not whence
-they be_. This manifested him to be a _man of Belial_, as Abigail
-confesses, when she says, _Nabal is his name, and folly is with him_,
-ver. 25.
-
-Again, we sometimes find, that a prosperous condition in the world, is a
-temptation to God’s people to presumption and carnal security; as the
-Psalmist says, _In my prosperity I said, I shall never be moved_, Psal.
-xxx. 6. and the wicked are hereby tempted to obstinacy and disobedience;
-as God says by the prophet, to the Israelites, _I spake unto thee in thy
-prosperity; but thou saidst, I will not hear; This hath been thy manner
-from thy youth, that thou obeyedst not my voice_, Jer. xxii. 21. And
-sometimes to pride, haughtiness, and oppression; thus the Psalmist
-speaks of those who were _not in trouble, neither plagued like other
-men; therefore pride compasseth them about as a chain, violence covereth
-them as a garment_, Psal. lxxiii. 5, 6. We are not, indeed, to suppose,
-that this is the necessary result of a prosperous state in the world,
-since that temptation, which is only objective, may be fenced against:
-But the pernicious tendency thereof arises from the depravity of our
-nature, and its proneness to abuse the blessings of providence; from
-whence some take occasion to cast off fear, and put the evil day far
-from them: Therefore, when we pray, that the world may not prove a
-temptation to us, we desire, that God would keep us from using any
-indirect means, either to get or increase our worldly substance, but, on
-the other hand, enable us to improve it to his glory; and that our
-affections may not be so much set upon it as to alienate them from him;
-but that we may make it the matter of our deliberate choice, rather to
-be deprived of outward blessings, than receive them as our only portion,
-and, by having our hearts set too much upon them, forfeit, and be denied
-an interest in, his special and distinguishing love.
-
-(2.) The evil things in the world often prove a temptation to us. By
-_evil things_, we mean afflictive providences, which are inseparable
-from this present state; since _man is born unto trouble, as the sparks
-fly upwards_, Job v. 7. These are either personal or relative; some more
-immediately from God, others from men, as instruments in his hand: Some
-arise from the present experience we have of affliction, others from our
-expectation or fear of future troubles: and all these sometimes prove
-temptations to us, unless God is pleased to interpose in a way of
-preventing grace, and make them conducive to our spiritual advantage.
-Now afflictions prove temptations to us,
-
-[1.] When we are discontented and uneasy under the hand of God,
-complaining of the burdens that he is pleased to lay on us, as though
-they were insupportable, and it were impossible for us to bear up under
-them; or, when we are ready to conclude, that no affliction is like
-ours, and are apt to insinuate, that God hereby deals hardly with us.
-
-[2.] When they disturb or disorder our thoughts, weaken our faith, and
-unfit us for spiritual meditations, or attending aright on ordinances of
-God; or when we are more concerned, about our afflictions, than about
-sin, the cause of them.
-
-[3.] When we have unbelieving apprehensions concerning the event
-thereof, concluding that they will certainly end in our ruin;
-notwithstanding the promises, which God has made of their working
-together for good, to them that love him.—This temptation David was
-exposed to, when he said, _I shall now perish one day by the hand of
-Saul_, 1 Sam. xxvii. 1. which was an ungrounded fear, especially
-considering the promises that God had given him, and the many
-experiences he had of his being a help to him in the time of trouble.
-
-[4.] Afflictions are temptations to us, when we take occasion from them
-to question God’s fatherly love, or to conclude, that they are sent in
-wrath, and are intimations that we are cast off by him, when we have no
-reason to think so from any thing that there is in the nature of
-affliction itself; also when we are hindered thereby, from applying
-those suitable promises which God has made to his people, in like cases,
-for their comfort and support.
-
-Now when we pray that God would _not lead us into temptation_, as
-afflictive providences expose us to it, we are to pray against them with
-submission to the divine will, not as though the removal thereof were of
-equal importance, or as necessary to our happiness, as the taking away
-the guilt or power of sin: However, we are to pray, that afflictions may
-be sanctified to us; and that corrupt nature may not take occasion from
-them, to have unbecoming thoughts of God; but that we may hereby be led
-nearer to him, that so they may not prove a temptation to us, or at
-least, that with the temptation, he would make a way for our escape.
-
-2. Another sort of temptations proceed from the flesh, which are the
-greatest and most dangerous of all. The apostle speaks of them as though
-they were the only temptations, when he says, _Every man is tempted when
-he is drawn aside of his own lust, and enticed_, James i. 14. since all
-others might, without much difficulty, be resisted and overcome, were
-there not a corrupt disposition in our nature, which the apostle calls
-_lust_, that inclines us to adhere to, and comply with them. This
-consists in the irregularity and disorder of our passions; which are not
-only prone to rebel against God, but to act contrary to the dictates of
-our own consciences, which is the result of our fallen state; and the
-temptations are oftentimes various, according to the prevailing bias of
-our natural temper. A melancholy constitution sometimes inclines us to
-slavish fears, or distrust of God’s providence; or to have such black
-and dismal apprehensions of our spiritual concerns, that we are led to
-the very brink of despair. A choleric temper prompts us to revenge,
-injustice, and oppression, and puts us upon magnifying small offences,
-and expressing a furious resentment without ground. A sanguine and airy
-constitution often proves a temptation to cast off all serious thoughts
-about God and another world, and to count religion a needless,
-melancholy and distasteful thing, and to make a jest of what is sacred,
-and ought to be treated with the utmost reverence; and this temper
-frequently exposes persons to the pernicious influence of bad company,
-and induces them to be lovers of pleasure more than lovers of God.
-Again, a stupid, phlegmatic and heavy constitution, often proves a
-temptation to negligence in our civil and religious affairs, and not to
-make provision for a time of trial: Hereby persons are often tempted to
-neglect holy duties, especially such as are difficult; or to perform
-them in a careless manner, and so rest in a form of godliness, without
-the power thereof.
-
-This difference of natural tempers is the reason why we behold lust
-appearing in different shapes; so that the same temptation that presents
-itself from without, suits the natural disposition of one who eagerly
-embraces it, while another is not greatly moved by it. This is what we
-understand by those temptations which arise from the flesh; and, when we
-pray against them, it is not to be supposed, that we expect to be
-perfectly freed from them in this world, in which, as has been elsewhere
-observed[124], there are the remnants of sin abiding in every part, even
-in them that are sanctified, and the perpetual lustings of the flesh
-against the spirit. Therefore, when we pray against such-like
-temptations, we desire,
-
-(1.) That God would restrain and prevent the irregularity and pernicious
-tendency of our natural temper, which inclines us to those sins which it
-is most prone to; or that he would keep us from those sins that more
-easily beset us, by reason of the propensity of our nature to commit
-them. And,
-
-(2.) That he would sanctify our affections and bring them under the
-powerful influence of a principle of grace, which may maintain a
-perpetual opposition to those habits of sin that are daily leading us to
-turn aside from God, so that, whatever temptations we meet with from
-objects without us, our souls may be internally fortified against them,
-and disposed to hate and avoid every thing that is contrary to his holy
-law, or tends to his dishonour.
-
-2. We shall now consider those temptations that arise from Satan, who
-is, for this reason, called _the tempter_, Matt. iv. 3. 1 Thess. vi. 3.
-and he is also said to _enter into_, Luke xxii. 3. and _fill the hearts_
-of sinners, Acts v. 3. As for the unregenerate, they are wholly under
-his power: Therefore conversion is called a _turning them from the power
-of Satan unto God_, chap. xxvi. 18. There are, indeed, some who deny
-that Satan has any hand in those temptations, which we are exposed to;
-in which they are too much disposed to give into the error of the
-Sadducees of old. And if they do not expressly deny the existence of
-spirits, yet they will not allow that they have any thing to do in this
-world: And, indeed, they think it impossible for the Devil to give us
-any disturbance, seeing he is shut up in chains of darkness, reserved to
-the judgment of the great day; and, inasmuch as we often read in
-scripture, of those things that he does against men in this world, they
-suppose that all these are to be understood in a metaphorical sense, and
-that nothing else is intended thereby, but the temptations we meet with
-from men, or from our own lusts: These, according to them, are the only
-devils that we need to fear.—This error they are led into under a
-pretence of avoiding the contrary extreme of those who seem to lay all
-the sins they commit, to the Devil’s charge, rather than their own;
-when, probably, he has nothing to do with them, but they wholly proceed
-from their own corruptions: The middle way between these two extremes,
-is, as I conceive, much more consonant to scripture and experience, and
-rather to be acquiesced in. And therefore we shall endeavour to prove,
-that we are often tempted by Satan, as well as our own lusts; which will
-appear, if we consider the following propositions.
-
-_1st_, It is not unreasonable to suppose, that spirits may so far have
-access to our souls, as _to suggest good or bad thoughts_; for, being
-reasonable creatures, it is beyond dispute, that they are able to
-converse with one another; and, if so, it contains no absurdity to
-suppose, that they may, some way or other, have conversation with the
-souls of men, which are capable of having things internally suggested to
-them, as well as receiving ideas from sensible objects, by means of our
-bodies, to which they are united. As to the manner _how this is done_,
-we pretend _not to determine it_, since it is sufficient to our present
-purpose, to make it appear that we are exposed to temptations from
-Satan, as well as our own selves.
-
-_2dly_, It is _obvious from scripture, that the Devil_, and his angels,
-are _conversant in this lower world_: And accordingly he is styled, _The
-prince of the power of the air_, Eph. ii. 2. _the god of this world_, 2
-Cor. iv. 4. And elsewhere he is said, to _walk about, seeking whom he
-may devour_, 1 Pet. v. 8. And whereas it is objected, that this is
-inconsistent with his being shut up in hell: That may respect
-principally his state, as being unchangeably separated and banished from
-God’s favourable and comfortable presence; nevertheless, he may suffer
-him to attempt many things against men in this world, for the trial of
-the graces of his people, and the punishing of his enemies.—There is,
-indeed, a place of misery allotted for them, though they may not be, at
-present, confined to it; which seems to be implied in that request they
-made to our Saviour, that he would not command them to _go into the
-deep_, Luke viii. 31. by which, it is probable, the place of torment is
-intended, in which they expect to be for ever shut up after the day of
-judgment; and therefore they are represented elsewhere, as _crying out,
-Art thou came hither to torment us before the time?_ Matt. viii. 29.
-
-_3dly_, Our _first parent_, in innocency, _was tempted by the Devil_,
-who made use of the serpent, by which he is said to _speak to Eve_, Gen.
-iii. 1. _& seq._ as has been proved elsewhere[125]. And our Saviour was
-also tempted by him, when led by the Spirit into the wilderness for that
-purpose, Matt. iv. 1. but neither of these could be said to be tempted
-by the lusts of the flesh, as being inconsistent with that sinless state
-in which our first parents were before they fell, and our Saviour always
-was; and, it is certain, that the temptation offered to each of them,
-was not only objective; but there were words spoken, and a perverse
-method of reasoning made use of to ensnare them: And they could not be
-tempted by men, for, in this respect, they were alone; it therefore
-follows, that Satan was the tempter to each of them.
-
-_4thly_, There are several other _scriptures_ which expressly _prove,
-that Satan has sometimes tempted_ persons to sin: Thus we read, that _he
-stood up against Israel, and provoked David to number them_, 1 Chron.
-xxi. 1. And elsewhere our Saviour tells the Jews, _Ye are of your father
-the Devil, and the lusts of your father ye will do_; that is, you
-eagerly commit those sins that he tempts you to. It is farther added,
-that he was _a murderer from the beginning_; which cannot be understood
-otherwise than of his murdering man, by tempting him to sin, and
-prevailing; and it is also said, that _he abode not the truth_, and is
-_a liar, and the father of it_, John viii. 44. that is, he deceives us
-by his suggestions, and prevails on us, when complying therewith, to
-deceive ourselves.
-
-This may give us occasion to enquire, how we may distinguish those
-temptations which take their rise from Satan, from others which proceed
-from ourselves. This is a very difficult question to be resolved,
-because our _corrupt nature, for the most part, tempts us to the same
-sins that Satan does_; therefore, where there are _two causes of the
-same action_, it is _hard to distinguish_ one from the other: As when
-two candles are set up in the same room, we cannot distinguish the light
-of one from the light of the other. It is true, if the sins that we are
-tempted to by our lusts, on the one hand, and by Satan on the other, had
-been described, as being of different kinds, we might more easily
-determine the difference that there is between them. Or if we had not
-the least inclination to comply with the temptation, and were able to
-say, as our Saviour did, _The prince of this world cometh, and hath
-nothing in me_, chap. xiv. 30. then we might easily know where to fasten
-the charge of guilt; and it would be no injustice to exculpate
-ourselves, and lay the blame wholly on the Devil: But it is far
-otherwise with us, by reason of the _corruption of our nature_, which
-_would render us prone to sin, though Satan did not tempt_ us to it.
-Therefore, since we often contract guilt by complying with his
-temptations, in like manner as he does by offering them; it is necessary
-that something be said, that we may know when the temptation is to be
-laid at our own door, and when at Satan’s, so far as we are able to
-determine this matter: Therefore, let it be considered,
-
-_1st_, _If we are tempted to those sins which we cannot think of but
-with the utmost abhorrence_; and we are so far from entertaining any
-pleasure in the thing that we are tempted to, that we take occasion from
-hence, to express the greatest aversion to it, and would not comply with
-it for ten thousand worlds; when we count the suggestion an invasion on
-our souls, an affliction grievous to be borne; and, instead of
-compliance therewith, are led hereby to the exercise of those graces
-that are opposite to it: In such-like cases I humbly conceive, we do not
-incur guilt by being tempted; but the sin is wholly to be charged to
-Satan. Nevertheless,
-
-_2dly_, When we are pleased with the temptation, but frequently meditate
-on the subject-matter thereof, and either commit the sin we are tempted
-to; or, if we abstain from the commission thereof, it is only out of
-fear or shame; and when the propensity of our nature leads us, at other
-times, to those sins which bear some resemblance to it; this argues,
-_that our own lusts, as well as Satan, are joint causes of those_ sins
-that ensue hereupon. These things being considered, we shall proceed to
-speak more particularly concerning Satan’s temptations; and, in order
-thereunto, lay down some things, by way of premisal, which relate to
-this matter, and then consider the method he takes in managing them.
-
-1. There are some things to be premised in general, concerning Satan’s
-temptations;
-
-(1.) That, though he may tempt to sin, yet he _cannot force the will_;
-for then the guilt would devolve wholly on himself and not on us. It
-would certainly render our condition very miserable, if it were
-impossible for us to resist his temptations; for this would be to
-suppose, that we lie at the mercy of him, who has more power to destroy
-us than we have to withstand him. Besides this would be to extend the
-servitude of the will of man beyond its due bounds; for, though it be
-not free to what is spiritually or supernaturally good, we do not deny
-but that it is free, as it has a power to avoid many sins, which, upon
-this supposition, it would be inevitably hurried into. And it would be
-_a refection on the providence of God_, so far to _leave man_ in the
-hands of Satan, as that hereby he should be laid _under a necessity of
-sinning_ and perishing without the choice and consent of his own will,
-and consequently, his destruction could not be said to be of himself.
-
-(2.) Satan’s _power is not equal to his malice_; for he is under divine
-restraints, and, indeed, _can do nothing against believers, but by God’s
-permission_. This may be argued from our being obliged to desire that
-God would _keep us from being tempted_, that is, restrain the tempter,
-as well as enable us to resist him; and if it were otherwise, no one
-could be saved; for Satan’s malice is boundless, though he be not
-suffered to do what it prompts him to. And this is a very great blessing
-to God’s people; as it is a comfortable thing to consider, that they are
-in his hands, who is a merciful Father; and not in Satan’s power, who
-breathes forth nothing but revenge and cruelty:
-
-(3.) As it is _not a sin to be tempted_, since our Saviour is said to
-have been _in all points tempted like as we are, yet without sin_, Heb.
-iv. 15. so on the other hand, _when we are pleased_, and comply with the
-temptation, it will be _no sufficient excuse_ for us to allege, that
-_Satan had a great hand in it_, since, as we have before observed, he
-can only tempt, but not force the will; and how formidable soever he may
-be, by reason of the greatness of his power and malice; yet we have this
-expedient to make use of, as it should put us upon saying, the Lord
-rebuke thee Satan.
-
-(5.) There is a _vast difference between_ the condition of those who are
-_converted_, and others, who are in an _unregenerate_ state, as to the
-event and consequence of Satan’s temptations. The former, indeed, by
-reason of the remainders of corruption in them, are _oftentimes foiled_
-and overcome thereby; but yet they shall _not be wholly destroyed_; but
-God will _find out a way for their recovery_ out of the snare, in which
-they may, at any time, be entangled: Whereas the latter are wholly under
-his power, by _their own choice_ and consent, and will remain so, till,
-by the grace of God they are delivered from the dominion of darkness,
-and translated into the kingdom of his dear Son. We shall now consider,
-
-2. The method in which Satan manages his temptations, in order to his
-inducing men to sin. Sometimes he endeavours to ensnare and deceive us
-_by his subtilty_: upon which account he is called _that old serpent,
-which deceiveth the whole world_. Rev. xx. 2. and xii. 9. And elsewhere
-we read of _the depths of Satan_, chap. ii. 24. that is, his deep-laid
-designs, and of his _wiles_, Eph. vi. 11. which it is an hard matter to
-withstand; and he is sometimes said to be _transformed into an angel of
-light_, 2 Cor. xi. 24. when he tempts to sin, under a pretence of our
-bringing glory to God, as well as good to ourselves and others. And
-there are other methods he takes, which, though managed with equal
-subtilty, yet he appears, _not as an angel of light_, pretending to help
-us in the way to heaven, but _as a roaring lion_, rendering himself
-formidable, and not concealing his design to devour, or make a prey of
-us, and to fill us with that distress of conscience, that brings us to
-the very brink of despair: These, as it is probable, the apostle intends
-by his _fiery darts_, as contra-distinguished from his _wiles_. In the
-former he shews himself a _tempter_, in the latter, an _accuser_. These
-are the usual methods which he takes in managing his temptations: and we
-shall consider them under four heads;
-
-1. His endeavouring to produce and strengthen the habits of sin.
-
-2. What he does to prevent conviction of sin, or to hinder the efficacy
-thereof.
-
-3. His discouraging those who are under convictions from closing with
-Christ by faith. And,
-
-4. His injecting blasphemous and atheistical thoughts into the minds of
-men, and using endeavours to drive them to despair.
-
-1. Satan endeavours _to produce and strengthen the habits of sin_. These
-are generally attained by frequent acts, or by making a progress in sin,
-by which the heart is more hardened; and it is with greater difficulty
-that such are reclaimed from it; of them the prophet speaks, when he
-says, _Can the Ethiopian change his skin, or the leopard his spots; then
-may ye also do good, that are accustomed to do evil_, Jer. xiii. 23. And
-in order thereunto, we may observe that he does not usually tempt, at
-first, to the vilest and most notorious acts of sin, especially where he
-has ground to suspect that these temptations will not be readily
-entertained or adhered to; this is the case of those who retain some
-impressions of a religious education, or are, at present, under the
-influence of restraining grace: these are first tempted to commit lesser
-sins before they proceed to greater. He generally begins with tempting
-to sins of _omission_, or to _formality_ and _indifferency_ in the
-performing of religious duties, or by pretending that God gives us some
-indulgencies or allowance to commit those sins that our natural
-constitution most inclines us to, and that we have been mistaken, when
-we have thought that religion is so difficult a matter as some have
-pretended it to be; and that we may safely follow a multitude, though it
-be in doing that, which is in itself sinful; and that we are not to take
-an estimate of religion, from the apprehensions which some melancholy
-persons entertain of it; and that strictness in religion, is being
-righteous overmuch; or striving against the stream, is a needless
-precaution; and therefore we may consult our own honour and reputation
-in the world, and give into that scheme of religion that is uppermost;
-and that denying ourselves, taking up the cross and following Christ;
-though it may be reckoned a safe, yet it is not the only way to heaven.
-By this means the habits of sin are strengthened, the heart hardened
-therein, and persons proceed from one degree of impiety to another, till
-at last, they abandon themselves to every thing that is vile and
-profligate, and run with others, in all excess of riot. And, that his
-design may be more effectually carried on, herein he suits his
-temptations to every age and condition of life. Here we shall consider,
-
-(1.) The method he takes with those who are in the prime and flower of
-their age: Accordingly these he endeavours to persuade, that it is _time
-enough for them to think of being religious hereafter_; and that it is
-too austere and melancholy a thing for them to pretend to it at present,
-as what is inconsistent with those pleasures and youthful lusts, which
-are agreeable to their age and condition of life. If they are children,
-then he suggests to them, that they have time enough before them; and
-when they are more advanced in years, they will have a greater degree of
-understanding, and be better able to take in the force of those
-arguments that are usually brought to induce persons to lead a religious
-life; and then they may make choice of it out of judgment. If they are
-servants, he persuades them, that they have other business on their
-hands, and that they had better stay till they are free from the
-engagements which they are, at present, under, to their masters; and,
-when they are at their own disposal, then it will be the fittest time
-for them to embrace the ways of God. This temptation carries in it the
-highest instance of presumption, tends greatly to harden the heart in
-sin, and has been the ruin of multitudes.
-
-(2.) When persons are come to years of maturity, being no longer
-children or servants, but about to engage in those secular employments,
-which they are called to in the world, then he has temptations of
-another nature to offer to them. He has hitherto kept possession of
-their hearts, and desired them only to wait for this age of life, and
-then they would have a more convenient season to lead a religious life;
-but this convenient season is not yet come; for there are other
-stratagems which he now makes use of, to keep them in subjection to him.
-Youthful lusts are now grown to a greater height, and the impressions of
-a religious education, if they were favoured with it, almost worn out;
-and it is no difficult matter for him to persuade them, that the
-principal thing they are to be concerned about, is their living
-comfortably in the world; and, that they have now an opportunity to
-increase their substance, and make provision for their future happiness
-therein; therefore they ought to converse with those who are in the same
-station of life with themselves: And he generally points out such
-associates, which he tempts them to make choice of, that may be a snare
-to them, whose conversation is very remote from any thing that tends to
-promote religion and godliness. Sometimes he endeavours to make them
-ashamed of the ways of God, as though this were inconsistent with their
-reputation in the world, especially with their present situation or
-condition therein. And, on the other hand, if persons are poor and low
-in the world, and find it difficult to maintain themselves or families,
-then he persuades them that religion is not the business which they are
-called to engage in, but they must rather take pains to live; that God
-does not require more than he gives, or expect, that they should spend a
-great deal of time in religious duties, who have none to spare from that
-business, which is necessary for their getting a livelihood in the
-world; therefore this does not so much belong to them, as to others.
-
-(3.) If persons are arrived to old age, the last stage of life, and
-have, as it were, their latter end in view, as not being far from it,
-according to the course of nature; this is that age of life which was
-formerly pretended, by Satan, to be the most fit and proper season to
-entertain thoughts of religion in; and it was in expectation hereof,
-that, when they were formerly under any convictions, the general method
-they took to stifle them, was by resolving, that they would apply
-themselves to a religious life in old age. By this means the tempter has
-hitherto beguiled them; and now he has other temptations to present to
-them, which are suited to this age of life, whereby he insinuates, that
-the weakness and infirmities of old age render them unfit for religious
-duties. And, indeed, their hearts have contracted such a degree of
-hardness, by a long continuance in sin, that it is difficult for any
-thing to make an impression on them. However, Satan endeavours to
-persuade them, that, notwithstanding all the wickedness of their former
-life, and their present impenitency for it, they may hope for salvation
-from the mercy of God, though they continue still in a state of
-unregeneracy, which is an instance of soul-destructive presumption; or
-else, he tempts them utterly to despair of the mercy of God, and tells
-them, that it is too late for them to begin that work which they have
-put off to the extremity of life; and by either of these methods he
-effectually brings about their ruin. Thus concerning Satan’s suiting his
-temptations to the several ages and conditions of life.
-
-But besides this, we may observe, that there are some methods which he
-takes, that are agreeable to the temper and disposition of those whom he
-assaults, that so he may not shoot his arrows at random, without
-answering the end he designs thereby; in which his subtilty farther
-appears; as,
-
-[1.] He observes those proper times in tempting men to sin, wherein it
-is most likely that his temptations should take effect. Therefore his
-assaults are generally most violent, when they are least upon their
-guard, and give way to sloth and indolence; or when the Spirit of God
-withdraws his influences, as the consequence whereof, their faith is
-weak, and they not able to make great resistance against his
-temptations, he crowds in a great multitude of them at once, and so lays
-hold on this opportunity to improve the success which he has gained
-against them. And if they are afraid of the consequences of a compliance
-therewith, he endeavours to stupify their souls, that they may have no
-present apprehensions of the evil that would ensue hereupon.
-
-[2.] He often takes occasion to raise in our minds some doubts about the
-matter of sin or duty, whether, what he is about to tempt us to, be
-lawful or unlawful; or how far a person may venture to go in the way of
-temptation, and yet maintain his integrity? which is generally the first
-step towards the commission of those sins which we are tempted to.
-
-[3.] If shame or fear are like to hinder the success of the temptation,
-he undertakes to find out some method of secrecy, whereby public scandal
-may be avoided. Thus Joseph’s mistress tempted him to sin, when Potiphar
-was absent, and _there was none of the men of the house there within_,
-Gen. xxxix. 11. and therefore he had no occasion to fear that his crime
-would be detected. And sometimes he proceeds so far, as to insinuate,
-that they may even hide themselves from the all-seeing eye of God, and
-tempts them to say, _How doth God know? Can he judge through the dark
-cloud? Thick clouds are a covering to him, that he seeth not, and he
-walketh in the circuit of heaven_, Job xxii. 13, 14. Thus the prophet
-Isaiah denounces a woe against them that _seek deep to hide their
-counsel from the Lord, and their works are in the dark, and they say,
-Who seeth us? and who knoweth us_, Isa. xxix. 15. and this method seldom
-fails of answering his end, or prevailing against them, who are hereby
-induced to a sinful compliance with it.
-
-[4.] If conscience be awakened, and deters them from adhering to the
-temptation, from a sense of that guilt which they will contract thereby;
-Satan is sometimes content to take the blame hereof upon himself, that
-they may think that they are to be excused, by reason of the violence of
-the temptation, which they could not well withstand.
-
-[5.] Sometimes he persuades them to throw the blame on providence, as
-being the occasion of sin, or rendering it necessary or unavoidable from
-our condition or circumstances in the world, which is the highest injury
-that can be offered to the divine Majesty. Thus Adam tacitly reproaches
-God, when he says, _The woman, whom thou gavest to be with me, she gave
-me of the tree, and I did eat_, Gen. iii. 12.
-
-[6.] He often tempts men to presume on the mercy of God, hoping that
-though they continue in sin, they shall obtain a pardon from him. Or,
-since this is not to be expected without sincere repentance, he tempts
-them to presume, that by the influence of the Holy Spirit, they shall
-have this grace hereafter, whereby their perishing in their iniquities
-may be prevented. Thus concerning the methods which Satan takes to
-produce and strengthen the habits of sin. We proceed,
-
-2. To consider how he endeavours to prevent our being brought under
-conviction of sin; or, if we are convinced thereof, to hinder its making
-any deep or lasting impression on us; and this he does various ways,
-
-(1.) By dissuading others, who ought to deal faithfully with us, from
-reproving sin committed by us. Thus Ezekiel, speaking concerning the
-false prophets, says, that they _strengthened the hands of the wicked,
-that he should not return from his wicked way, by promising him life_,
-Ezek. xiii. 22. Sometimes he improves the consideration of our
-circumstances in the world, to dissuade us from reproving sin in others,
-especially if they are our superiors, or those whom we are dependent on,
-or have some expectations from, lest we should make them our enemies,
-and thereby lose some advantages, which we hope to receive from them.
-And there are others whom he does not wholly dissuade from reproving of
-sin; but there are some circumstances attending the reproof, or the
-person that gives it, that he lays hold of, which hinders it from taking
-effect, whereby his end is no less answered than if sin had not been
-reproved at all. As,
-
-[1.] When we reprove those that are notorious offenders, and ought to be
-treated with a greater degree of sharpness, with too much lenity, as
-though it were only a sin of infirmity, by which means they are more
-hardened in the commission of it. This was Eli’s fault in dealing with
-his sons, when he said unto them, _Why do ye such things? for I hear of
-your evil dealings by all this people: Nay, my sons, for it is no good
-report that I hear; ye make the Lord’s people to transgress_, 1 Sam. ii.
-23, 24. Whereas, he ought to have restrained them by those acts of
-severity, which the nature of the crime demanded.
-
-[2.] Satan often prevents the reproof from taking effect, by inclining
-the reprover to use indecent behaviour in expressing the haughtiness of
-his temper, as though there were no respect due to superiors, as such,
-because they are worthy of reproof; or else by expressing a kind of
-hatred against the person that committed the sin; whereas, hatred ought
-to be principally directed against the crime itself, while we convince
-those whom we are reproving, that it is love to them, as well as zeal
-for the glory of God that moves us to do this.
-
-[3.] Satan often hinders reproofs from taking effect, either by tempting
-those who give them to commit the same sin, or, at least, by persuading
-those against whom they are directed, that there are other sins equally
-great, which they are chargeable with, and therefore they ought to look
-to themselves, rather than take notice of what is done by others.
-
-(2.) Satan hinders the work of conviction, by endeavouring to suppress
-the preaching of the word, or prevent the success thereof when preached.
-As to the preaching of the word, this is God’s ordinary way by which he
-convinces of sin; and Satan sometimes stirs up those that are under his
-power and influence to persecute or suppress the preaching of the
-gospel. Thus the apostles were _commanded_ by the Jews, _not to speak at
-all, nor teach in the name of Jesus_, Acts iv. 18. and when they refused
-to obey this command, they _put them in prison_, chap. v. 18. This
-method has been taken, in all ages, by Satan’s instigation, with a
-design to hinder the spreading of Christ’s interest in this world,
-which, by the blessing of providence, has been, notwithstanding,
-continued unto this day. Therefore, there are other methods which he
-uses to hinder the success of the word. Sometimes he does this by
-perverting them that preach it; so that they endeavour to corrupt the
-word of God, whereby the minds of men are turned away from that
-simplicity that is in Christ; at other times he tempts them to be very
-sparing in reproving sin, or to do this in a more general way, as though
-their only design was to let their hearers know that there are some
-sinners in the world, and not that they should be brought under
-conviction of sin themselves. This is done sometimes in compliance with
-the corruptions of those whom they do not care to disoblige hereby; and
-others shun to declare some of the most important truths of the gospel,
-and affect such a method of preaching as has not a tendency to bring
-that real advantage to the souls of men, as when it is delivered with
-more zeal and faithfulness.
-
-Moreover, Satan endeavours to hinder the success of the word, by
-stirring up the corruptions of those that attend upon it; for which
-reason he is represented, by our Saviour, in the parable of the _seed
-which fell by the way-side_, which the _fowls came and devoured_, as
-_catching away_ the word, Matt. xiii. 4, 19. By this means they are not
-much affected with it, nor endeavour to retain it in their memories;
-and, sometimes he injects vain thoughts under the word preached. This
-our Saviour compares, in the parable but now mentioned, to the _seed
-that fell among thorns_; and explains it of _the care of this world, and
-the deceitfulness of riches, choaking the word_, ver. 7, 22. And
-sometimes he endeavours to raise prejudices in the minds of men, against
-what is delivered; so that the plainness of expression, when addressed
-to the consciences of men, in such a way, as that it has a tendency to
-bring them under conviction, is contemned, and called a low, mean way of
-address, and disliked, because it is not delivered with that elegancy of
-style, or ingenious turn of thought, that is adapted rather to please
-the ear, than affect the hearts of those that hear it. By those methods
-Satan endeavours to hinder persons from being brought under conviction:
-But if their consciences are, notwithstanding this, awakened under the
-word, or, by some providences which God often makes use of for that end;
-then there are methods of another kind, which Satan uses, to prevent
-convictions from making any deep or lasting impression on them. As,
-
-[1.] By endeavouring to make the soul easy, from the consideration of
-the universal depravity of human nature; and accordingly he insinuates,
-that all have reason to accuse themselves of sins that would tend to
-their disquietude, if they made so narrow a search into their hearts as
-these do, or had such formidable thoughts of the consequences thereof as
-they have. Here he produces many examples of those who have been quiet
-and easy in their own minds, though they had as much ground to perplex
-and torment themselves with such-like melancholy thoughts as they have;
-yet they go on in a course of sin, without any checks of conscience,
-and, as Job speaks, _spend their days in wealth_, or, as it is in the
-margin, in mirth, _and in a moment go down to the grave_, Job vii. 22.
-being resolved to give way to nothing that shall disturb their peace, or
-render their lives uncomfortable.
-
-[2.] If this stratagem will not take effect, inasmuch as they are
-sensible, that while they remain in an unconverted state, they can have
-no solid foundation for peace, then he endeavours to persuade them,
-_that the work of conversion is over, and that conviction of sin, though
-destitute of faith, is true repentance_, or that a partial reformation,
-and abstaining from some gross and scandalous sins, or engaging in the
-external duties of religion, especially with some degree of raised
-affections therein, is a sufficient ground for them to conclude, that
-they are in a state of grace; and if they resolve to go on in this way,
-he puts them upon depending and relying on their own righteousness, and
-expecting to be justified thereby, without seeing a necessity of laying
-hold on what Christ has done and suffered, in order to the removing the
-guilt of sin; and, so long as they continue in this way, they shall meet
-with no disturbance from Satan, this not being the method which God has
-prescribed for our attaining justification, or that peace which flows
-from it.
-
-[3.] He puts them _upon making vows and resolutions in their own
-strength_, that they will perform several religious duties with the
-greatest exactness, and abstain from those sins which he is sensible
-they will commit, if not prevented by the grace of God, that so, by too
-great confidence in their own strength, they may provoke him to leave
-them to themselves; and, as the consequence thereof, they soon break
-their resolutions, and bring themselves under greater perplexities than
-they were in before: And, then to make them easy, he endeavours to
-persuade them, that God does not require them to lead so strict a life
-as they seemed determined to do, but has allowed them some innocent
-liberties, as he calls them, in giving way to those sins which their
-condition in life renders necessary; and, as he had before tempted them
-to rely on their own strength, now he tempts them to carnal security,
-and a slothful, stupid frame of spirit, whereby they will be rendered
-more receptive of those temptations he has to offer, to turn them aside
-from that strictness in religion, which they before resolved to
-maintain.
-
-[4.] Satan dazzles _their eyes with the glittering vanities of this
-world_, that he might divert their minds from serious thoughts about, or
-any concern for a better; and if their secular callings are attended
-with some incumbrances, through the multiplicity of business, or the
-constant care they are obliged to take to live in the world; then he
-alleges the inconsistency hereof, with their giving way to those
-convictions of sin which will be an hindrance to the necessary business
-of life. Thus concerning the method which Satan uses to prevent
-conviction of sin, or to hinder the efficacy thereof: But inasmuch as
-this does not always take effect; especially when convictions make a
-deep impression upon us. We proceed to consider,
-
-3. Those methods that are used by Satan, to hinder persons from closing
-with Christ, and believing in him. And this he does,
-
-_1st_, By endeavouring to _keep them in ignorance_ of the great
-doctrines of the gospel; and, as the consequence thereof, turning them
-aside to embrace those errors, which are inconsistent with faith in
-Christ; and in order thereto, he suggests, that it does not belong to
-them, to press after the knowledge of the sense of scripture, but to
-persons of learning, or those who are called to preach or defend the
-truth; and that it is enough for them to have some general notions of
-the doctrines of religion, whereby they may be induced to practise those
-moral virtues which their station in life engages them to, and to leave
-the more abstruse parts thereof, to those whose inclination leads them
-thereunto.
-
-Moreover, he improves the different sentiments of men about the
-doctrines of the gospel, to answer this end, and infers from thence,
-that since one asserts one thing for truth, and another the contrary,
-that therefore there is nothing certain in religion; so that they are
-safest who keep clear of all these controverted matters; and among them
-he includes the doctrine of justification by faith in Christ. This
-method of temptation leads men to scepticism, and, if complied with, is
-inconsistent with faith in Christ; and the consequence hereof is, their
-imbibing those doctrines that tend to sap the very foundation of
-revealed religion. And if they pretend to adhere to any scheme of
-doctrine, it is generally such an one, as has a tendency to strike at
-the divinity and glory of Christ, the necessity of his satisfaction, or
-of our justification, by his imputed righteousness, or denying the
-divinity of the Holy Ghost, and the need we have of his powerful
-operations in the work of regeneration, conversion, and sanctification.
-These are the doctrines on which our faith is built; therefore, to deny
-them, is not only inconsistent with our closing with Christ, as being
-the result of the alienation of our minds from God; but it is agreeable
-to the working of Satan in the children of disobedience, whereby he
-answers his character, as a deceiver, as well as a tempter.
-
-_2dly_, Satan endeavours to hinder men from believing in Christ, by
-_persuading them to hope for salvation from the mercy of God_, without
-any regard to the display of this attribute in Christ, as our Mediator,
-or faith in him, without which we have no ground to conclude, that we
-shall obtain mercy from him: Or, since faith is necessary to salvation,
-he persuades them to take up with such a kind of faith as consists only
-in a general assent to some things contained in scripture, without the
-exercise of other graces that are inseparably connected with, and flow
-from it; and if they have no other notion of saving faith than this, it
-is no wonder that Satan, by his false reasoning, carries on the
-temptation yet farther, and persuades them, that this is in their own
-power, and that it is an easy matter to believe, which is a certain
-indication that they are destitute of saving faith. Thus we have
-considered Satan as endeavouring to strengthen the habits of sin, hinder
-the work of conviction, or prevent its taking effect; and using methods
-to keep those who are under convictions, from closing with Christ by
-faith. We now proceed to consider,
-
-4. His injecting atheistical and blasphemous thoughts into the minds of
-men, and using his utmost endeavours to despair.
-
-(1.) He sometimes _injects atheistical and blasphemous thoughts into the
-minds of men_. His nature inclines him to hate and oppose God; and his
-malice breaks forth in tempting men to blaspheme his perfections: Thus
-some are represented as _opening their mouths in blasphemy against God,
-to blaspheme his name and his tabernacle, and them that dwell in
-heaven_, Rev. xiii. 6. which they do by the instigation of Satan:
-However, there is a vast difference between those blasphemous thoughts,
-which are injected into the minds of wicked men, and those which are
-oftentimes complained of by the believer. In the former, the Devil
-enstamps his own image upon them, and they are like a spark falling into
-combustible matter, which immediately sets it on fire: The latter is
-like a flash of fire that lights upon water, without doing any
-execution. We read of some who are entirely under his dominion, who
-_blaspheme the God of heaven, because of their pains and their sores,
-and repented not of their deeds_, chap. xvi. 11. But there are others
-into whom he injects such-like thoughts, which are a grief and burden to
-them. Some are tempted to deny the being or providence of God; and
-others to have unworthy and injurious thoughts of the divine
-perfections; which cannot be reckoned any other than blasphemy, and, so
-far as they proceed from, us, bring with them a very great degree of
-guilt. That believers themselves have been sometimes guilty hereof,
-appears from what the Psalmist utters in words, when he says, _Is his
-mercy clean gone for ever? Hath God forgotten to be gracious_, Psal.
-lxxvii. 8, 9. And, indeed, it is no uncommon thing for believers to
-complain of their having such injurious and unworthy thoughts of the
-divine perfections, that they dare not utter in words; which fills them
-with the greatest uneasiness; Therefore it is necessary for us to
-enquire, when these blasphemous suggestions take their rise from
-ourselves, and when from Satan?
-
-It is certain, that sometimes they proceed from ourselves: Thus our
-Saviour says, _Out of the heart proceed blasphemies that defile a man_,
-Matt. xv. 19. and we have reason to charge ourselves therewith, when
-they arise from, or are accompanied with other presumptuous sins; or
-when we do not strive against, but rather give way to them, and other
-suggestions of Satan, which tends to God’s dishonour, grieves the Holy
-Spirit, and defiles our own consciences.
-
-But, on the other hand, we may humbly hope and trust, that they are
-rather to be charged on Satan than ourselves, when they are the result
-of some bodily distemper, as in those that are under the prevailing
-power of melancholy, in whom it may be observed, that when by the use of
-natural means, the distemper is abated, and the constitution mended,
-these blasphemous suggestions cease. Moreover, when our souls tremble at
-the temptation, and oppose it with the utmost abhorrence, as our Saviour
-did, when the Devil tempted him to _fall down and worship him_; to whom
-he immediately replies, _Get thee hence, Satan_, chap. iv. 9, 10. Again,
-when we confess, and can appeal to the heart-searching God, that we are
-so far from having any inclination to comply with the suggestion, that
-nothing is more grievous to us, than to be assaulted with it: and
-especially when we take occasion from hence, to exercise that
-reverential fear of the divine Majesty, that is opposite thereunto.
-
-(2.) As Satan gives disturbance by blasphemous suggestions, so he uses
-endeavours to _drive persons to despair_. We observed, under a foregoing
-head, that so long as he can persuade any one to take up with a false
-peace, and fancy himself secure though going on in a course of rebellion
-against God, he gives him but little uneasiness, endeavouring rather to
-increase his stupidity, than awaken his fears. Before this, he attempted
-to bring ruin upon him, by suggesting those temptations that led to
-presumption, and pretended to him, that all things were well, when the
-ground was sinking under him, and his hope built on a sandy foundation:
-But, when the frame of his spirit is somewhat altered, and he is brought
-to a sense of his miserable condition; so that none of those stupifying
-medicines that have been used, will heal the wound; then Satan
-endeavours to persuade him, that his condition is hopeless, or that
-there is no help for him in God. This temptation believers, as well as
-the unregenerate, are sometimes liable to; of which, we have many
-instances in scripture, besides those that are matter of daily
-experience. But it may be observed, that there is this difference
-between the one and the other, in that we scarce ever read of a
-believer’s despair; but we have, at the same time, something added,
-which either argues his faith in God, or, that there was a mixture of
-hope, which was like a beam of light shining in darkness: Thus the
-Psalmist, in Psal. lxxxviii. expresses himself like one in the depths of
-despair; yet it may be observed, that he addresses himself to God, in
-ver. 1. as _the Lord God of his salvation_. And when the church is
-represented in Lam. iii. 18. as saying, _My hope is perished from the
-Lord_; it is considered afterwards as encouraging itself in him, as in
-ver. 24. _The Lord is my portion, saith my soul, therefore will I hope
-in him_; and, in ver. 31. _For the Lord will not cast off for ever_. But
-when unbelievers are tempted to despair, it is attended with an
-obstinate resolution to go on in a course of sin, and a total
-withdrawing themselves from the ordinances, or instituted means of
-grace. Thus when Cain complains that his _punishment was greater than he
-could bear_; it is said concerning him, that _he went out from the
-presence of the Lord_, Gen. iv. 13, 16. In this case despair, especially
-if it does not proceed from a bodily distemper, as it sometimes does, is
-a sad mark of a person’s being under the dominion of Satan, who was
-before a tempter, but now proves a tormentor to him.
-
-Here we may take occasion to consider how Satan proceeds against men in
-tempting them to despair.
-
-_1st._ He _takes the fittest opportunity_, when we are most like to be
-overcome by his temptation; _he observes our constitution when most
-addicted to melancholy_, and therefore more easily led to despair: He
-also takes notice of some circumstances of providence that we are
-brought under, which are more than ordinarily afflictive, and tend to
-deject and render us more receptive of this temptation, in which he
-endeavours to add weight to our burden, and depress our spirits under
-it: He also lays hold on those times, more especially _when we are under
-divine desertion_; and, as the consequence hereof, our faith is weak,
-and very much indisposed to seek help from God. Moreover, he often takes
-occasion, _from some great fall and miscarriage_ which we have been
-guilty of, whereby we have grieved the Holy Spirit, and wounded our own
-consciences, to aggravate our crime, so far that from hence we may
-conclude our state to be altogether hopeless.
-
-_2dly_, He endeavours _to stop all the springs of comfort_, that might
-fortify us against, or afford us any relief under this temptation; and
-accordingly he turns our thoughts from the promises of the covenant of
-grace, and persuades the soul to conclude that they are not made to
-himself; therefore he ought not to apply them to himself for his
-comfort; and to determine peremptorily against himself, that he is not
-elected to salvation; not from any marks of reprobation that he finds in
-himself, but by entering into God’s secret counsels, and pretending to
-search the records of heaven, which he has no warrant to look into, (in
-which respect despair contains in it a mixture of sinful presumption,)
-and, at the same time, he has a secret aversion to converse with those
-who are able to speak a word in season to him; and if any endeavours are
-used to convince him that the mercy of God is infinite, his thoughts are
-not as our thoughts, and that the merit of Christ extends itself to the
-chief of sinners, it is all to no purpose, for his general reply, to
-this and all other arguments of the like nature, is that this belongs
-not to him, or his iniquities have excluded him from the divine favour.
-
-_3dly_, Satan endeavours to _hinder a soul at this time, from waiting on
-God in ordinances_. As for the Lord’s supper, he not only dissuades him
-from attending on it, but endeavours to insinuate, that, in partaking of
-it in times past, he has _eat and drunk_ his own _damnation_, giving a
-perverse sense of that scripture, 1 Cor. xi. 29. which, as appears from
-the context, is not to be applied to weak believers, but to such as
-engage in this ordinance, in a profane and irreverent manner, as though
-it were not a divine institution, and without any desire of obtaining
-spiritual mercies from God therein; and the word which we render
-_damnation_, ought to be rendered _judgment_, denoting that they expose
-themselves to temporal, as well as spiritual judgments in this world for
-this wickedness; not that they are from hence to conclude, that their
-eternal damnation will unavoidably ensue hereupon: And therefore the
-design of this scripture, is to lead to repentance, and not to despair.
-As for the word preached, he concludes, that every thing which is
-delivered therein, contains an indictment against him, and there he
-cannot endure to hear it: And, as for prayer, Satan discourages him from
-it, by pretending that he is not in a right frame for the performance of
-this duty, and by giving a false sense of such scriptures as these, in
-Prov. xxviii. 9. _He that turneth away his ear from hearing the law,
-even his prayer shall be abomination_; and, in chap. xxi. 27. _The
-sacrifice of the wicked is abomination_; the meaning of which is, not
-that the duty itself is sinful because performed by sinners, or that God
-hates them the more for praying, but that he hates the hypocrisy,
-formality, and other sins committed by them, when engaged in this duty;
-so that they should rather strive and pray against this unbecoming frame
-of spirit, than lay aside the duty itself, as they are tempted to do.
-
-_4thly_, Satan also makes use of false reasoning, by which he endeavours
-to answer this end; as,
-
-[1.] He puts them upon concluding, that _because they have no grace,
-therefore they never shall have it_; which method of reasoning, if it
-were just, must be applied to all unregenerate sinners; and then we must
-conclude, that the whole work of conversion in this world, is at an end;
-which, blessed be God, it is not.
-
-[2.] He farther argues, that because they have lived a great while in a
-_course of sin_, and their hearts are _very much hardened thereby_;
-therefore they cannot be broken, or their wound is incurable, and there
-are no healing medicines; which is to set limits to the almighty power
-and grace of God.
-
-[3.] Satan farther induces them to conclude, that there is something
-uncommon in their case, that they are greater sinners than ever obtained
-mercy, which is more than it is possible for them to know; however, they
-are tempted to apply this presumptuous and discouraging suggestion to
-themselves to heighten their despair, and hinder the force of any
-argument that may be brought to the contrary.
-
-[4.] The most common argument which Satan uses to induce persons to
-despair, is, that they have sinned against light, and the convictions of
-their own consciences, grieved and quenched the Spirit of God; and
-therefore they are inclined to think that they have committed the
-unpardonable sin. This is often alleged by persons against themselves,
-though, at the same time, they know not what that sin is, and regard not
-any thing that is said to convince them, that they have committed it;
-and, indeed, their very fears that they have, and the desires they
-express that it were otherwise with them, are an undeniable argument
-that they are mistaken in the judgment which they pass on themselves, by
-adhering to Satan’s suggestions, leading them to despair[126]. Thus we
-have given some account of the great variety of temptations which we are
-exposed to from the world, the flesh and the Devil. We are now to
-consider,
-
-_Secondly_, How we are to pray, that we may not be led into temptation;
-or, if we are, by what means we may be delivered from the evil
-consequences that will arise from our compliance therewith. An hour of
-temptation is not only afflictive, but dangerous, by reason of the
-united assaults of those enemies that we have to deal with. The world
-continually presents objects that are agreeable to corrupt nature; and
-Satan is unwearied in his endeavours, to turn us aside from God thereby,
-that he may have us in his own power, and drive us from one degree of
-impiety to another: Therefore, though it is not impossible to be tempted
-without sin, yet it is exceeding difficult; and therefore, as we are to
-take heed, that we do not go in the way of temptation; so we are to
-address ourselves to God, that he would keep us from it, if it be his
-will.
-
-We are not, indeed, absolutely to pray against it, as we are to pray
-against sin, which it is not possible for us to commit, without
-contracting guilt; whereas we may be tempted to sin, and yet come off
-conquerors over it: But, since the enterprize itself is hazardous, the
-conflict difficult, and the event, with respect to us, uncertain, we
-should rather desire, that, if God has not some gracious ends to answer
-thereby, which are, at present, unknown to us, he would be pleased to
-prevent it. The case is the same as though we were apprehensive of an
-infectious distemper raging amongst us, which we are to pray against;
-though God could, by his power, preserve us, in particular, from the ill
-consequences thereof; or, if we were informed, that an enemy laid wait
-secretly for our lives, it is possible for God to deliver us out of his
-hand; yet if the matter were referred to our own choice, we would rather
-desire that he may not be suffered to assault us. Thus we are to pray,
-that God would keep us from temptation; though we are not, at the same
-time, to question his power, or distrust his providence, as though he
-could not carry us safely through it; which we are to hope that he will
-do, if he suffers us to be tempted. Neither are we to suppose, that we
-can be altogether free from those temptations that arise from the
-imperfection of this present state, in which we must expect to be
-subject to the perpetual lustings of the flesh against the spirit:
-Therefore we are principally to direct our prayers to God, that he would
-keep us from falling by the temptation, or else, that he would recover
-us, when fallen, prevent the evils, that would otherwise ensue, and
-over-rule our sinful compliance therewith, to his own glory, and our
-future advantage.
-
-1. We are to pray, that he would keep us from falling by the temptation,
-that it may be like a wave dashing against a rock, which remains unmoved
-thereby, or like a dart shot against a breast-plate of steel, which only
-blunts the point thereof, and returns it back without doing any
-execution. Now God prevents our failing by temptation, either by his
-restraining or renewing grace: The former of these is common to the
-regenerate and the unregenerate; and where there is nothing more than
-this, it chiefly consists in some alteration made in the natural temper,
-or present inclinations of men, whereby sin, though it remains
-unmortified, is, nevertheless abstained from, like a river that is kept
-from overflowing a country, not by ceasing to be fluid in its own
-nature, but by being contained within its proper banks. These
-restraints, in some, proceed from that change which providence makes in
-their outward condition or circumstances in the world; so that those
-temptations, which, before this, they were so ready to comply with, are
-either discontinued, or offered without success; as when a person is
-bowed down with some affliction, that it gives a different turn to his
-passions, whereby, as Job speaks, the _heart is made soft_, Job xxiii.
-16. in a natural way, by those troubles that tend to depress the
-spirits. Sometimes he is unexpectedly surprized with a fit of sickness,
-which gives him a near view of death and another world, and then the
-violence of the temptation, for the present, ceases, or at least, he is
-deterred from complying with it; and it may be, his spirits are decayed,
-his constitution weakened, and his natural vigour abated hereby, so that
-he has no inclination to commit some sins which he was formerly addicted
-to. Others want leisure to pursue those lusts which they are habitually
-prone to, being engaged in a hurry of business, or conflicting with many
-difficulties for the subsisting of themselves and families: These are
-not exposed to those temptations that often attend a slothful and
-indolent way of living: Or it may be, they are separated from their
-former associates, who have been partners with them in sin, and tempters
-to it. And sometimes there is a sudden thought injected into their
-minds, which fills them with an inward fear and dread of the consequence
-of committing those sins which are more gross and notorious. This is the
-result of an awakened conscience; whereby persons are kept from the
-commission of many sins, by the restraints of common providence, though
-they are, notwithstanding, in a state of unregeneracy, and sin in
-general remains unmortified.
-
-But, on the other hand, the believer is preserved from it by the power
-of sanctifying grace, whereby an habitual inclination is wrought in him,
-to detest the sin that he is tempted to; and the Spirit of God, by his
-immediate interposure, internally disposes him to exercise the contrary
-graces; which proceed from a principle of filial fear and love to God,
-together with a sense of gratitude for all the benefits that he has
-received from him; so that in repelling a temptation, he says, with
-Joseph, _How can I do this great wickedness, and sin against God_, Gen.
-xxxix. 9.
-
-2. We are also to pray, that God would prevent those evil consequences,
-which very often attend such-like temptations; that our hearts may not
-be hardened through the deceitfulness of sin, that we may not willingly
-yield ourselves bond-slaves to Satan, or take pleasure in those sins
-which we have been tempted to commit: and that we may not be exposed
-hereby to divine desertion, how much soever we have deserved it.
-
-3. We are likewise to pray, that God would recover, or bring us out of
-the pit, into which we are fallen, that hereby Satan may not take
-occasion, after he has overcome, to insult us, that we may not be given
-to a perpetual backsliding; but that our souls may be _restored_, and we
-_led in the paths of righteousness for his name’s sake_, Psal. xxiii. 3.
-
-4. If we have fallen by a temptation we are farther to pray, that God
-would over-rule it to his own glory, and our spiritual advantage. Though
-there be nothing good in sin, yet God can bring good out of it; and this
-he does when he humbles the soul for it, and makes him afraid of going
-near the brink of the pit, into which he fell, inclines him to be more
-watchful, that, by indulging some sins, he may not lay himself open to
-those temptations that would lead him to the commission of many others.
-This will also induce him to depend on Christ by faith, as being
-sensible of his inability to resist the least temptation without him.
-And it will excite in him the greatest thankfulness to God, who has
-found a way for his escape out of the snare wherein he was entangled, by
-which means he will receive abundant advantage, and God will be greatly
-glorified.
-
-Thus we have considered God’s people as exposed to various temptations,
-and how they are to direct their prayers to him, agreeably thereunto,
-pursuant to what our Saviour has taught us in this petition; which, that
-we may farther enlarge upon in our meditations, we may express ourselves
-to God in prayer to this purpose; “We draw nigh to thee, O our God and
-Father, as those who are exposed to many difficulties, by reason of the
-snares and temptations that attend us. We find it hard to pass through
-the world without being allured and drawn aside from thee, by the
-vanities thereof, or discouraged and made uneasy by those afflictions
-which are inseparable from this present state: But that which gives us
-the greatest ground of distress and trouble, and makes us an easy prey
-to our spiritual enemies, is, the deceitfulness and treachery of our own
-hearts, whereby we are prone to yield ourselves the servants of sin and
-Satan. Every age and condition of life has been filled with temptations,
-which we have been very often overcome by. We therefore implore the
-powerful aids of thy grace, that we may be kept in the hour of
-temptation. Enable us to overcome the world, to mortify and subdue our
-corrupt inclinations, and to stand against all the wiles and fiery darts
-of the Devil. Let us not be tempted to presume of being happy without
-holiness, or enjoying the benefits that are purchased by Christ, without
-faith in him. May we also be freed from all unbecoming thoughts of thy
-divine perfections, and not give way to any temptations that may lead us
-to despair of thy mercy, which thou art pleased to extend to the chief
-of sinners. We farther beg, though with submission to thy will, that we
-may be kept from the temptations of our grand adversary, because we are
-sensible of our own weakness and inability to resist him; nevertheless,
-we are confident that we can do all things by thine assistance:
-Therefore, if thou sufferest us to be tempted, appear in our behalf at
-that time, that we may be made more than conquerors; and when we fall by
-temptation, let us not be utterly cast down, but upheld with thine hand,
-and let thy strength be made perfect in our weakness; and, in the end,
-bring us safely to that happy state, where there is neither sin nor
-temptation; when we shall be delivered from all the evils of this
-present state, that thou mayest have the glory, and we may praise thee
-throughout the ages of eternity.”
-
-Footnote 123:
-
- In our day and country there are some worthy men, who without fear, or
- scruple, affirm, that God is the _author_, and _cause_ of sin; which
- words they soften to avoid the blasphemy, which they contain. We have
- in a note, I. vol. p. 530, given the sentiments of the late Dr.
- Williams, on the origination of sin. Being a proficient in the study
- of the human mind, he has philosophized a little on, but not
- essentially differed from the representation of the subject, as it is
- found in the writings of sound protestant divines. As some American
- writers advocate with considerable address, such divine causality, and
- publicly affirm it to have been taught by Luther, Calvin, &c. and to
- have found its place in our standards in the words—“foreordained
- whatsoever comes to pass;” it is proper to resort to the ipsissima
- verba of some of the European protestant theologians, as a test of
- such allegations.
-
- The Westminster divines, no doubt, entertained the same views of sin,
- which will be found in the following extracts. In their definition of
- sin, they not obscurely shew, that they did consider it not more a
- _transgression of_, than _a want of conformity unto, the law_. The
- former is the translation of ανομια in I. John iii. 4. which is rather
- _privatio_, _defectus_, or _declinatio_ than _transgressio legis_.
- Also the Greek word αμαρτια, and the Hebrew חטא signify _non
- consecutio scopi_. If they viewed sin as a _qualitas adventitia_, a
- _quiddam non positivum_, a _simplex privatio_, a _quiddam actioni
- inhærens_, they could not have viewed it the proper subject of a
- decree or purpose, but only as foreseen and permitted.
-
- The following quotations are given in the authors’ own words, for the
- satisfaction of those who may not possess the works from which they
- are taken.
-
- “Natura peccato corrupta est...—Aversio quædam voluntatis secuta est,
- ut homo nihil eorum velit aut faciat, quæ Deus vult et præcipit. Item
- quod nescimus, quid Deus, quid gratia, quid justitia, denique quid
- ipsum peccatum sit. Hi sunt profecto horribiles DEFECTUS, quos, qui
- non intelligunt; nec vident, talpa cœciores sunt.” Mart. Lutheri Loc.
- Com. p. 23.
-
- “Hæc Regula certa et vera est; Deum esse natura bonum, ideo nihil a
- Deo proficisci, nisi quod bonum est, mors autem est mala, peccatum
- etiam est malum, &c. Non igitur a Deo proficiscuntur mala hæc, &c.
- Peccati porro quæ causa sit, si roges, sacræ literæ ostendunt, id ex
- Sathana esse, cui contra verbum Dei assenserunt nostri parentes, a Deo
- inobedientes facti, incurrerunt in horribiles pænas. Nam per peccatum
- illud non solum corpora nostra sic infirmata sunt, ut ex immortalibus
- mortalia fierent, sed etiam mens depravata est. Amisit enim homo veram
- Dei notitiam, et voluntas quoque tum admodum est depravata, ut nihil
- quam malum appetat.” Mart. Lutheri Loci Com. p. 22.
-
- “Eant nunc qui Deum suis vitiis inscribere audent, quia dicimus
- naturaliter vitiosos esse homines. Opus Dei perperam in sua pollutione
- scrutantur, quod in integra adhuc et incorrupta Adæ natura requirere
- debuerant. A carnis ergo nostræ culpa, non a Deo nostra perditio est,
- quando non alia ratione periimus, nisi quia degeneravimus a prima
- nostra conditione.”—“Dicimus ergo naturali hominem vitiositate
- corruptum, sed quæ a natura non fluxerit. A natura fluxisse negamus,
- ut significemus adventitiam magis esse qualitatem quæ homini
- acciderit, quam substantialem proprietatem quæ ab initio indita
- fuerit. Vocamus tamen naturalem, nequis ab unoquoque prava
- consuetudine comparari putet, quum hæreditario jure universos
- comprehensos teneat.” _Calvini Institut._ _lib._ II. _cap._ 1. _sect._
- 10, 11.
-
- “Sed cum nihil contingat in mundo, aut contingere possit sine
- justissima et sapientissima Dei providentia, annon, peccati author et
- causa dici potest? Absit, quippe qui illud odit, vetat, & punit, ut
- quod cum summâ ipsius bonitate pugnet.” _Bucani Theolog. p. 165._
-
- “Deus non infundit malitiam in volentates malorum, sicut infundit
- bonitatem in corda piorum, nec impellit aut allicit voluntates ad
- peccandum; sed tantum malas voluntates, seu peccantes, quales invenit
- ex corruptione quæ sequuta est aversionem diabolorum et hominum a Deo,
- movet, ciet, flectit, inclinat, dirigit, sapienter, juste, potenter,
- ubi, quando, quomodo, et quousque vult, sive mediate, sive immediate,
- ad objecta vel persequenda, vel fugienda, ut impleant (quibus tale
- nihil propositum est) quod manus et consilium Domini decrevit. _Bucani
- Theol. p. 153._
-
- “Estne peccatum originis Substantia an accidens?—Non est substantia;
- esset enim anima vel corpus. Jam vero corpus et anima quoad
- substantiam, sunt bonæ Dei creaturæ, quæ etiamnum creantur a Deo. Ergo
- non sunt peccatum. Nec substantialis est proprietas, aut aliquid
- substantiale in homine: sed est adventitia qualitas, quæ tamen
- naturalis dicitur, non quod à natura fluxerit (quatenus creata est)
- sed quia hæreditario jure ut dicitur, suos comprehensos tenet, et in
- ipsa hominis natura, viribus, et facultatibus naturalibus inhæret, et
- ipsi homini innata est.”
-
- _Bucani Theol._ p. 174.
-
- “Estne peccatum aliquid Positivum an Privativum?—Peccatum non est
- positivum, id est, quiddam subsistens a Deo conditum, nec est
- simpliciter et pura privatio, sicut mors est privatio vitæ, aut
- tenebræ sunt privatio lucis; sed est defectus seu destructio rei
- positivæ, videlicit operis et ordinis divini in subjecto, quod culpam
- sustinet suæ depravationis, aversionis a Deo, ut ruina in domo,
- cœcitas et amissio visus in oculis.” _Bucani Theol._ p. 167.
-
- “Permissio est gubernatio Dei, quâ homines vel diabolos, ad peccandum
- pronos, a peccato non retrahit, sed gratiæ suæ auxilio negato vel
- subtracto, in peccata ruere sinit, ita tamen ut ipsorum impetum ad
- judiciorum suorum executionem flectat, et quæ pessimo ab ipsis
- concilio suscipiuntur, in fines optimos dirigat.”
-
- EXPLICATIO.
-
- 1. Deus in permissione mali culpœ seu peccati, non est otiosus
- spectator, sed potens, justus, et sapiens judex: Itaque.
-
- (1.) Efficax gratiæ suæ auxilium, sine quo non possunt non peccare in
- peccatis mortui homines, negat vel subtrahit.
-
- (2.) Homines vel diabolos ad peccandum natura et consuetudine pronos,
- sæpissimè a peccatis non retrahit, quos tamen facillimè posset
- retrahere: sed in peccata ruere sinit.
-
- (3.) Peccatum animis ipsorum susceptum, seu peccandi impetum ita
- moderatur, ut non in quævis objecta eum ferri patiatur, sed flectat et
- dirigat ad ejus modi objecta, vel homines, quos punire, castigare, vel
- explorare vult.
-
- (4.) Quæ ab impiis hominibus, vel diabolis, malo fine, perpetrantur,
- in fines optimos dirigit.
-
- EXEMPLI GRATIA.
-
- Si viator aliquis a latrone in via occidatur, homicidium permississe
- Deus dicitur:
-
- (1.) Quia efficax gratiæ suæ auxilium ei subtraxit vel negavit, sine
- quo infallibiliter homicidium erat perpetraturus.
-
- (2.) Quia animum latronis, naturâ vel consuetudine ad homicidia
- pronum, ab homicidio non retraxit; quem tamen facillimè potuisset
- retrahere: sed in hoc facinus ipsum ruere permisit.
-
- (3.) Quia concilium homicidii perpetrandi, ipsumque latronis impetum
- ita rexit et flexit, ut non quemvis promiscue hominem voluerit aut
- potuerit interficere: sed hunc potius, quam alium interfecerit; Unde
- furori latronis hunc potius viatorem, quam alium hominem objecit:
- justo quodam judicio: cujus ratio plerumque homines latet.
-
- (4.) Quia, quod malo fine a latrone est perpetratum; forte ad pecuniam
- acquirendam, quam nequiter dilapidaret, in finem bonam direxit: quia
- est pœna vel ipsius latronis, vel ejus, qui a latrone est occisus: vel
- alius etiam finis nobis ignotus.
-
- II. Sunt igitur in peccatis hominum, circa quæ divina occupatur
- permissio, quatuor imprimis observanda et distinquenda:
-
- (1.) Actio per se, quatenus est actio.
-
- (2.) Vitium actioni inhærens.
-
- (3.) Directio organi mali et actionis vitiosæ in objectum certum.
-
- (4.) Finis directionis, e quo accidit peccato judicii divini ratio; ut
- per hominum peccata Deus exequatur justa sua judicia: Primum, tertium,
- et quartum a Deo est, Deumque authorem habet. Est enim omnis actio,
- quatenus est actio, bona: directio actionis et ipsa bona: denique
- finis directionis optimus, nempe divini judicii executio. Secundum, in
- quo peccati consistit ratio, non a Deo, sed a solo est homine: adeoque
- solus homo peccati, quatenus est peccatum author est. _Wendel. Theol.
- p. 179._
-
- “Hinc firmiter concludimus, cum permissione Dei concurrere quoque
- efficacem Dei actionem et directionem vitiosi instrumenti in objectum
- certum, adversus quod judicium suum exercere Deo visum.”
-
- “Orthodoxi nominis osor et insignis caluminator Graverus ad art. 19.
- Confess. Aug. p. 112, et sequentibus, portentosum dogma, de Deo
- peccati authore, Ecclesiis nostris non tantum calumniose impingit, sed
- et 15 argumenta nostris affingit quibus thesin hanc suam: Deus est
- peccati, quatenus peccatum est, author: probet: imprimis autem ad
- infame hoc et blasphemum dogma probandum affirmat, a nostris adduci
- scripturæ loca, quæ modo allegata sunt. Nos vero ut tam effrontibus
- calumniatoribus; ita omnibus, qui blasphemum istud dogma vel probant;
- vel profitentur, et defendunt, anathema dicimus, et innocentiæ nostræ
- vindicem mundi judicem, jamjam ad judicium se accingentem,
- imploramus.” _Wendel. Theol. p. 183._
-
-Footnote 124:
-
- _See Quest. LXXVII._
-
-Footnote 125:
-
- _See Vol. II. page 94._
-
-Footnote 126:
-
- _See a particular account what this sin is; and when a person may
- certainly conclude that he has not committed it, ante page 318 to
- 320._
-
-
-
-
- Quest. CXCVI.
-
-
- QUEST. CXCVI. _What doth the conclusion of the Lord’s prayer teach
- us?_
-
- ANSW. The conclusion of the Lord’s prayer, [which is, _For thine is
- the kingdom, the power, and the glory for ever, Amen_] teacheth us
- to enforce our petitions with arguments, which are to be taken, not
- from any worthiness in ourselves, or in any other creature, but from
- God; and with our prayers, to join praises, ascribing to God alone
- eternal sovereignty, omnipotency, and glorious excellency; in regard
- whereof, as he is able and willing to help us, so we, by faith, are
- emboldened to plead with him that he would, and quietly to rely upon
- him that he will fulfil our requests, and to testify this our
- desire, and assurance, we say, _Amen_.
-
-As we are taught to begin our prayers with those expressions of
-reverence, becoming the Majesty of God, when we draw nigh to him; so we
-are to conclude them with a doxology, or an ascription of that glory
-which is due to his name; whereby praise is joined with prayer, and we
-encouraged to hope, that he will hear and answer our petitions.
-
-In the conclusion of the Lord’s prayer, we are directed to ascribe to
-God _the kingdom, the power, and the glory for ever_; and to sum up all
-with that comprehensive word, _Amen_. This may be considered in two
-respects,
-
-1. As we hereby express the due regard we have to the divine
-perfections: And,
-
-2. As we improve or make use of them as so many arguments or pleas in
-prayer.
-
-1. We shall consider this doxology as containing the sense we have of
-the divine perfections. Accordingly,
-
-(1.) We say, _Thine is the kingdom_; whereby his sovereignty and
-universal dominion over all creatures, is acknowledged as he has a right
-to every thing that he gave being to: And, as this is more especially a
-branch of his relative glory, since the idea of a king connotes
-subjects, over whom his dominion is exercised; so it supposes in us an
-humble expression of subjection to him, and dependence on him for all
-things that we enjoy or hope for. We also consider him as having a right
-to make use of all creatures at his pleasure; inasmuch as the earth is
-his, and the fulness thereof: And, as we are intelligent creatures, we
-profess our obligation to yield obedience to his revealed will, and are
-afraid of incurring his displeasure by rebelling against him, with whom
-is terrible Majesty: And when we take a view of him; as seated on a
-throne of grace, and his government as extended to his church, upon
-which account he is adored as _king of saints_, Rev. xv. 3. we hope for
-his safe protection and for all the blessings which he bestows on those
-whom he governs in a way subservient to their everlasting salvation.
-
-(2.) We adore him as a God of infinite power, _Thine is the power_.
-Dominion without power will not be sufficient to maintain its rights;
-therefore, since God is described as having the kingdom belonging to
-him, or being the governor among the nations; his attribute of power
-ought next to be considered, whereby he can, without the least
-difficulty, secure the welfare and happiness of his subjects, and bring
-to nought the designs of his enemies; or, as it is elegantly expressed,
-_look on every one that is proud, and bring him low, and tread down the
-wicked in their place, hide them in the dust together, and bind their
-faces in secret_, Job xl. 12, 13.
-
-(3.) It is farther added, _Thine is the glory_. This may be taken in two
-senses; either as including in it all his perfections, whereby he is
-rendered glorious in the eyes of angels and men; so that there is
-nothing that we esteem beautiful or excellent in the whole system of
-created beings, but what is deformed, and, as it were, vanishes and
-sinks into nothing, when compared with him: Or else, the meaning of the
-expression is, that all the praise and honour that arises from every
-thing that is done in the world, which appears great and excellent, or
-has a tendency to raise our esteem and admiration, is to be ascribed to
-him; whereby we disclaim the least shadow or appearance of divine
-honour, which we are ready, upon all occasions to acknowledge to be due
-to him alone: Thus we adore him as having all divine perfections, when
-we say, _Thine is the kingdom, the power, and the glory_.
-
-And it is farther added, that they belong to him _for ever and ever_;
-whereby it is intimated, that whatever changes there may be in the
-nature or condition of created beings, he is unchangeably the same, and
-therefore will remain glorious in himself, and be for ever admired and
-adored by all his saints, whose happiness depends upon it.
-
-2. We shall consider these divine perfections, as they afford us so many
-arguments, or pleas, in prayer, from whence we take encouragement to
-expect a gracious answer from him, as appears from that _illative_
-particle, FOR, which is prefixed to this doxology. Therefore we may
-consider it as subjoined to the foregoing petitions, as the strongest
-motive to induce us to hope, that the blessings we pray for, shall be
-granted us; accordingly we disclaim all worthiness in ourselves, and
-desire that our name or righteousness should not be mentioned; but that
-the whole revenue of glory may redound to God, as all our expectation is
-from him. We might here apply the several arguments or pleas contained
-herein, to every one of the foregoing petitions; which would tend very
-much to enforce them, and afford matter for our farther enlargement in
-prayer: But I shall rather chuse to reduce the subject-matter thereof to
-the two general heads, under which they are contained; and accordingly
-to shew how we may make use of those arguments that are taken from the
-kingdom, power, and glory, belonging to God, for ever and ever, in our
-praying for those things that concern his glory, agreeably to what we
-are directed to ask for in the three first petitions; or our temporal or
-spiritual advantage, as in the three last.
-
-(1.) As to what respects the glory of God in the world, viz. that his
-name may be hallowed, his kingdom advanced, and his will be done:
-Therein we pray, that, as he is a great King, the blessed and only
-Potentate, the Governor of the world and the church, he would sanctify
-his glorious name; that his interest may be maintained, and prevail
-against every thing that opposes it, that he would take to himself his
-great power and reign; and, since the success of the gospel, and the
-advancement of his kingdom of grace, is a work surpassing finite power,
-and there are many endeavours used to weaken and overthrow it; we trust,
-we hope, we plead with him, for the glory of his name, that he would
-give a check to, and defeat the designs of his and our enemies, that the
-enlargement of his kingdom may not be obstructed, nor his subjects
-disheartened, whilst Satan’s kingdom, that is set in opposition to it,
-makes such sensible advances, and prevails so much against it.
-
-And, that his name may be sanctified by his people, and his kingdom
-advanced in this lower world, we farther pray, that his subjects may be
-inclined to obey, and submit to his will in all things; or, that it may
-be done on earth as it is in heaven: Therefore, when we ascribe the
-kingdom, power, and glory to him, we do, in effect, say, “Lord, what
-would become of this wretched world, if it were not under thy gracious
-government, which is its glory and defence? Thou sittest on the throne
-of thy holiness, which thou hast established of old: Therefore, we are
-encouraged to hope, that thou wilt not forsake thy people, who are
-called by thy name, nor suffer thine interest to be trampled on, nor thy
-name profaned by those who say, Who is the Lord, that we should obey
-him? Thine arm is not shortened, that thou canst not save, since thine
-is the power; and therefore nothing is too hard for thee. Thou hast
-given us ground to expect, that thou wilt shew thy people marvellous
-things; and thou hast promised, that all nations shall bow down before
-thee and serve thee; and that the kingdoms of this world shall become
-the kingdoms of Christ: This thou canst easily accomplish by thine
-almighty power, though it be too hard for man.—Thou art never at a loss
-for instruments to fulfil thy pleasure; for all things are in thy hand:
-Neither, indeed, dost thou need them; for, by thy powerful word, thou
-canst cause light to shine out of darkness, and revive thy work in the
-midst of the years, that thy people may rejoice and be glad in thy
-salvation. Take the work, therefore, into thine own hand, and, thereby,
-give us occasion to admire and ascribe to thee the glory that is due to
-thy name.”
-
-(2.) We are to consider, how we may plead for temporal or spiritual
-blessings, as making use of this argument, that the kingdom, power, and
-glory, belong to God; accordingly, we pray, that he would give us that
-portion of the good things of life, that he sees necessary for us, and
-that we may enjoy his blessing with it, in order to our being prepared
-for a better, _q. d._ “Give us daily bread; for the earth is thine, and
-the fulness thereof: Thou hast subdued us to thyself, and hast told us,
-that thou wilt surely do us good, and bring us, at last, to thy heavenly
-kingdom: Therefore we humbly wait upon thee, that we may not be suffered
-to faint by the way, or be destitute of those blessings that are needful
-for us in our present condition. Thou art able to supply all our wants:
-We have hitherto been upheld by thy power, and thou hast sometimes done
-great things for us, that we looked not for, and hast been our refuge
-and strength, a very present help in every time of trouble. Thou hast
-granted us life and favour, and thy visitations have preserved our
-spirits; what thou hast given us we have gathered; thou hast opened thy
-hand, and filled us with good. And, as the treasures of thy bounty are
-not exhausted, nor thy power diminished; so we desire to exercise a
-constant dependence on thee, and to hope in thy mercy; that, as thou
-hast given us those better things that accompany salvation, thou wilt
-also bestow upon us what thou seest needful for us in our way to it;
-which will not only redound to our comfort, but thy glory; who givest
-food to all flesh; for thy mercy endureth for ever.”
-
-As for those spiritual blessings that we stand in need of, we encourage
-ourselves to hope for them; and accordingly, when we pray for
-forgiveness of sin, we consider God as sitting upon a throne of grace,
-and inviting us to come and receive a pardon from his hand: Therefore we
-say, “Lord, thou art ready to forgive, and thereby to lay eternal
-obligations on thy subjects, to love and fear thee; if thou shouldst
-resolve to display thy vindictive justice in punishing sin, according to
-the demerit thereof, thy kingdom of grace would be at an end; but thou
-encouragest us to hope for forgiveness, that hereby grace may reign
-through righteousness unto life eternal. And, as thou art a God of
-infinite power, we beg that thou wouldst thereby work in us those graces
-that flow from, and are the evidences of our having obtained
-forgiveness, that being delivered from the guilt of sin, we may walk
-before thee in newness of life. We also ask this privilege, as what thou
-bestowest for Christ’s sake, that hereby he may be glorified as the
-purchaser of this blessing, and we laid under the highest obligations to
-love him, as being constrained hereunto by his love, expressed to us in
-washing us from our sins in his own blood.”
-
-When we pray to be kept from temptation, or recovered, when fallen by
-it, we consider ourselves as the subjects of Christ’s kingdom, and his
-enemies as endeavouring to draw us aside from our allegiance to him;
-and, as dreading the consequence thereof, we address ourselves to him,
-to secure us from the danger we are exposed to from them; and
-accordingly, when we say, _Thine is the kingdom, the power, and the
-glory_, we are furnished with arguments adapted to our present
-exigencies, _q. d._ “The power of our spiritual enemies is great, and
-much more formidable, because of the treachery of our own hearts; yet we
-are encouraged to implore thine assistance against them, O our God and
-King, that we may be kept in the hour of temptation; inasmuch as all the
-attempts that are made against us, carry in them an invasion on thy
-sovereignty and dominion over us. We desire always to commit ourselves
-to thy protection, and hope to find it, since there are no snares laid
-for us, but thou art able to detect and prevent our being entangled by
-them, and also canst bruise our enemies under our feet, and, if we are
-at any time overcome by them, recover us from the paths of the
-destroyer: Do this for us, we beseech thee, that thou mayest have all
-the glory: We have no might, but our eyes are upon thee, who art able to
-keep us from falling, and to present us faultless, before the presence
-of thy glory, with exceeding joy.”
-
-As for the word, _Amen_, with which our Saviour concludes this prayer,
-it is of an Hebrew original, and is sometimes prefixed to what is
-asserted with a vehemency of expression, designed not only to confirm,
-but to bespeak the utmost attention to what is said, as being a matter
-of very great importance; in which case it is rendered by the word
-_verily_. And it is sometimes repeated to add greater force to it: Thus
-when our Saviour asserts the necessity of regeneration, he says,
-_Verily, verily, I say unto thee, except a man be born again, he cannot
-see the kingdom of God_, John iii. 3. And elsewhere, _Verily, verily, I
-say unto you, whatsoever ye shall ask the Father in my name, he will
-give it you_, chap. xvi. 23.[127]
-
-It is put in the close of each of the evangelists, as denoting, that
-whatever is contained therein, is to be depended on, as being of
-infallible verity; and almost all the epistles are concluded with it, as
-is also the book of the Revelation, in which it is put after a short
-prayer or doxology; in which respect it signifies, that what is therein
-requested of God, is earnestly desired, and the petition summed up, and
-ratified thereby; or, that the glory which is ascribed, is again
-acknowledged to belong to him, and we rejoice in the discovery that is
-made thereof to us.
-
-Again, sometimes the word is not only used, but explained at the same
-time, as containing a summary account of what we ask for: Thus when
-Benaiah preferred a petition to David in the behalf of Solomon, and had
-a grant from him, that he should reign in his stead; it is said, _He
-answered the king, and said, Amen; the Lord God of my lord the king say
-so too_, 1 Kings i. 36.
-
-Thus then the word, _Amen_, with which this and other prayers are to be
-concluded, signifies, _so it is, let it be so_, or, _so it shall be_;
-each of which respective significations are to be applied to the
-subject-matter of our prayers: As it respects sins confessed, or the
-glory that we ascribe to God for mercies received, it denotes, _so it
-is_: As it refers to the promises which we plead and take encouragement
-from, or the blessings which we desire, it signifies, _so it shall be_,
-and _so let it be_. Thus it is to be applied in this prayer; and in
-particular, as it is joined to the doxology, _Thine is the kingdom, the
-power and the glory, for ever and ever_, we express our faith herein,
-together with our adoration of these divine perfections. And there are
-some prayers or doxologies, in which the glory of Christ and the
-gospel-state is described, which are concluded with the repetition of
-the word: Thus when the Psalmist had been enlarging on this subject, he
-concludes with, _Blessed be his glorious name for ever; and let the
-whole earth be filled with his glory, Amen and Amen_, i. e. God has
-determined that it shall be so, and the whole church is obliged to
-express their faith, and say, _Amen, so let it be_.
-
-Some have thought it expedient in joint prayer, for the whole assembly,
-together with him that is the mouth thereof, to say, _Amen_, with a loud
-voice, and thereby to signify their consent to, and concern in the
-subject-matter contained therein; which appears to have been the
-practice of the church in the early ages thereof; as Justin Martyr
-observes it was in his time[128]; and it was afterwards observed in
-Jerom’s time, who compares the sound they made with their united voices
-to that of thunder[129]; which, though it was done with a pious design,
-and not in the least to be blamed, yet it is not to be insisted on as
-necessary, since all present professedly join in every part of the
-prayer, as much as though they repeated the words with an audible voice;
-and accordingly it is sufficient for every one, when prayer is publicly
-concluded with this comprehensive word, to lift up his heart to God, and
-thereby express the part he bears therein.
-
-As for the contrary extreme, when one, whose office was altogether
-unknown to the primitive churches, is appointed to say, _Amen_, in the
-name of the whole congregation; this is, I think, altogether
-unwarrantable; though several Popish commentators defend it from the
-apostle’s words, who speaks of him that _occupieth the room of the
-unlearned_, as _saying, Amen, at the giving of thanks_, 1 Cor. xiv. 16.
-where, by the unlearned, we are not to understand the Clerk of a
-congregation[130], but one who understands not the subject-matter of
-that prayer, which the apostle supposes to be put to God in an unknown
-tongue: All therefore that can be inferred from hence is, that we ought
-to pray to God with understanding and faith, that hereby we may be able
-to sum up our requests and glorify him by saying, _Amen_.
-
-Footnote 127:
-
- As in John only it is repeated, he wrote it only in the Hebrew
- character, it is presumed, and understood by it “_the truth_;” the
- second Amen was exegetical and in the Greek character, for the sake of
- the unlearned.
-
-Footnote 128:
-
- _Vid. Justin Martyr, Apol. ii. pro Christ. who intimates, that when
- public prayer and giving of thanks was ended, the whole congregation
- testified their approving of it by saying_, Amen; ωᾶς ὄ ωαρωγ λαὸς
- ὀπευφημεὶ λὲγων αμῆν.
-
-Footnote 129:
-
- _Vid. Hieron. in Lib. ii. comment. ad Galat. in Proen. Ad
- similitudinem cælestis tonitrus reboat_, [_scil. Ecclesia._] Amen.
-
-Footnote 130:
-
- _Vid. Whitby in loc._
-
-
-
-
- Theological Questions.
-
-
- _Many theological instructors teach their pupils successfully, by
- requiring them, besides the usual course of systematical reading,
- interrogative examinations, and critical study of the scriptures in
- the original languages, also to write disquisitions on a number of
- Questions in Theology. Hereby they are provided with a store of
- arguments, on the most difficult subjects, and furnished with the
- mature advices of their preceptors; to which they may recur in any
- period of after life. To aid in this important work, the following
- List of Questions has been subjoined to this first American edition
- of_ Ridgley; _and every instructor, or pupil, will select or vary at
- his pleasure_.
-
-QUEST. 1.—How does it appear, that something has existed from eternity?
-
-2. What evidence is there, that the existence of man is derived, and
-dependent?
-
-3. How do you prove the existence of God?
-
-4. What is Theology?
-
-5. What is natural Theology?
-
-6. What does it discover of the Divine character?
-
-7. What arguments prove the genuineness, authenticity; and what, the
-inspiration of the Old and New Testaments?
-
-8. How do you prove the Unity of God?
-
-9. How do you prove the divinity and personality of the Son, and the
-Holy Ghost?
-
-10. What are the Manichean, Arian, Sabellian, Socinian and Unitarian
-heresies, and how are they respectively confuted?
-
-11. How do you prove that there are divine purposes, and that these are
-eternal and immutable?
-
-12. Wherein does the certainty of events, taught in the scriptures,
-differ from the fatality of heathen philosophers and modern sceptics?
-
-13. How do you prove that the world was created?
-
-14. In what estate was man created?
-
-15. What are the acts of God’s providence; or how is it employed about
-created things?
-
-16. What is the difference between a law and a covenant?
-
-17. How do you prove that God did enter into a Covenant with Adam, which
-included him and all his posterity?
-
-18. What are we to understand by Adam’s freedom of will?
-
-19. What is necessary to constitute a moral agent?
-
-20. What is the difference between natural, and moral, power, and
-inability?
-
-21. How is the doctrine of universal absolute decrees consistent with
-the moral agency of man?
-
-22. How do you define sin?
-
-23. Are there venial sins?
-
-24. How do you describe the sin against the Holy Ghost?
-
-25. How do you prove the depravity of unrenewed men to be total?
-
-26. What was implied by the death threatened in case of disobedience?
-
-27. Wherein consists the punishment of the damned?
-
-28. How do you prove the eternity of hell torments?
-
-29. How do you define the Covenant of Grace?
-
-30. Is there any ground for a distinction between the Covenant of
-Redemption and the Covenant of Grace?
-
-31. Wherein do the Covenants of Works, and Grace agree, and differ?
-
-32. Are the Law, and Gospel inconsistent with each other?
-
-33. What is an atonement? And what the nature, and extent of the
-atonement of Christ?
-
-34. Was the sacrifice of Christ Jesus absolutely necessary for our
-salvation?
-
-35. Whence did the obedience, and sufferings of Christ derive their
-efficacy?
-
-36. How was his death consistent, with the justice of God?
-
-37. How do you describe the nature, mode of administration, extent,
-duration and glory of Christ’s kingly office?
-
-38. What is to be understood by his descent into Hell?
-
-39. What are we to understand by the application of Redemption?
-
-40. How do you prove that the influence of the Holy Spirit is of free
-and sovereign grace?
-
-41. What is regeneration, or effectual calling?
-
-42. Whence arises the necessity of it?
-
-43. What are the means of grace, and what their use?
-
-44. What is the utmost the unregenerate do in the use of the means of
-grace?
-
-45. To what are they to be exhorted?
-
-46. Wherein consists the difference of the special call of the Spirit,
-and the more outward call of the gospel?
-
-47. How do you describe the nature of gospel repentance, with the
-difference between this, and conviction of sin, or legal repentance?
-
-48. How do you describe the nature, and necessity of justifying faith;
-and what species of causality has it in our justification?
-
-49. What is included in, and what are the effects of justification?
-
-50. How are full satisfaction and free pardon consistent?
-
-51. What are we to understand by the imputation of Christ’s
-righteousness for justification?
-
-52. What are the absurdities implied in supposing a justifying faith to
-consist in a sure confidence of the pardon of our sins?
-
-53. Point out the nature, privileges and evidences of adoption.
-
-54. How do you describe, and prove the possibility of attaining an
-assurance, of God’s love?
-
-55. How do you describe the believer’s peace of conscience, and point
-out the difference between it, and the false hope of the hypocrite?
-
-56. How do you prove the doctrine of the saint’s perseverance in a state
-of grace unto eternal life? And explain Ezek. xviii. 24. Heb. vi. 4-6,
-and the falls of David, Peter, and Judas?
-
-57. Is sinless perfection attainable in this life?
-
-58. What is the condition of the souls of believers immediately after
-death?
-
-59. How do you prove that there shall be a general resurrection of the
-just and the unjust?
-
-60. How do you prove there shall be a general judgment?
-
-61. What are the consequences of the judgment to the righteous and the
-wicked?
-
-62. How do you prove that the institution of the Sabbath, is of
-perpetual obligation?
-
-63. How do you prove that public worship is to be celebrated on the
-Sabbath?
-
-64. What is the nature of a Christian church?
-
-What are its standing officers?
-
-To whom does the right of ordination belong?
-
-65. What is the nature and import of baptism?
-
-How do you prove that other modes than immersion are lawful?
-
-66. How do you prove the divine right of infant baptism?
-
-67. What is the nature and use, and who are the proper partakers of the
-Lord’s supper?
-
-68. What errors are implied in a prayer, the object of which is a change
-of divine purposes?
-
-69. What is the nature, use and necessity of prayer?
-
-70. How do you prove that family-prayer is a duty?
-
-71. Wherein consist the unity and communion that should subsist in the
-church of Christ, and the benefits or advantages of it?
-
-72. What are the rules and end of church discipline?
-
-What is the nature and design of excommunication?
-
-73. What are the qualifications necessary to a minister of Christ?
-
-74. In what does the happiness of heaven consist?
-
-
-
-
- INDEX.
-
-
-The volumes are denoted by _a_, _b_, _c_, and _d_.
-
-
-
- A.
-
- Abraham offering Isaac, _c_ 544
-
- Absolute free-will, _a_ 498
-
- Adam, his temptation, _b_ 102
- not a mediator, _b_ 164
-
- Acts of faith, direct and reflex, _c_ 132
-
- Actions sinful, _d_ 66
-
- Adoption, _c_ 145
-
- Adultery, _d_ 9
-
- Affections, government of, _d_ 10
-
- Afflictions, relative, _b_ 156
-
- All-sufficiency of God, consolatory, _a_ 129
-
- Amen, _d_ 468
-
- Angels, their creation, _b_ 25
- their nature, _b_ 27
- their power, _b_ 28
- their employment, _b_ 68. 30
- providence of God toward them, _b_ 62
-
- Anger is heart-murder, _c_ 548
-
- Antinomians, _c_ 418
-
- Anti-trinitarians, _a_ 388
-
- Apostacy, considered, _c_ 225
-
- Apostles, _b_ 572
-
- Arius, his error, note, _a_ 208
-
- Arminians, _b_ 128
-
- Ascension of Christ, _b_ 464
-
- Assurance of salvation, _c_ 243
- how lost, _c_ 273
- what essential to faith, _c_ 270
-
- Atheism, its absurdity, _a_ 24. 29. 38 _c_ 439
-
- Atonement, _b_ 187. 275. note. 276. 280
- value of it, _b_ 282. 285
- design of it, _b_ 285
- propriety of it proved, against Deists, _b_ 299
- vindicated against christian errors, _b_ 303
- extent of the purchase, _b_ 301
- for whom specially intended, _b_ 316. 321
- how sufficient for all men, note, _b_ 349
- modern opinions on, _b_ 276. _b_ 280. 292. 297
-
- Author of sin, God is not, in note, _d_ 433. 435
-
-
- B.
-
- Baptism, an ordinance, _d_ 174
- meaning of the word , _d_ 216
- a generic term, in note, _d_ 175
- the right of infants, _d_ 182. 186. _d_ 187. 193
- objections to subjects of, _d_ 200. 206. 186. 194
- by pouring or sprinkling, _d_ 218
- sponsors in, _d_ 228
- sign of the cross in, _d_ 228
- how to be improved, _d_ 229. 234
-
- Backbiting, instances of, _d_ 48
-
- Being of God proved, _a_ 21
-
- Believers, sons of God in Christ, _c_ 146
-
- Benevolence, disinterested, _a_ 19
-
- Blindness of mind, _b_ 146
-
- Borrowing and not paying, _d_ 23
- whether Israel was guilty of it, _d_ 24
-
- Bread, daily to be prayed for, _d_ 407
-
- Burnet, his scheme of the Millenium, _b_ 369
-
-
- C.
-
- Call of the gospel, _c_ 16
-
- Character of sacred writers, _a_ 101
-
- Charity to the poor, _d_ 20
-
- Child-like dispositions required in us, _d_ 364
-
- Christ, typified by Melchizedec, _b_ 264
- his humiliation, _b_ 396
- betrayed, denied, condemned, slain, _b_ 424. 426. 429. 433
- descent into hell _b_ 440
- 1 Pet. iii. 18. explained, note, _b_ 442
- his resurrection, _b_ 444
- his ascension, _b_ 464
- his intercession, _b_ 473
- his coming to judgment, _b_ 481
-
- Christianity, reasonable, note, _a_ 1
-
- Church, the word how used, _b_ 510. note 515
-
- Church, its testimony, _a_ 116
-
- Church, invisible, _c_ 9
- its union to Christ, _c_ 10
-
- Commandments, rules to interpret, _c_ 428
-
- Communion with God, by innocent man, _b_ 77
- with Christ in grace, _c_ 65
- in glory, _c_ 280
-
- Conflagration, _b_ 387
-
- Conflicts of flesh and spirit, _c_ 187
-
- Conscience, horror of, _b_ 153
- distinguished, _b_ 154
-
- Contentment a universal duty, _d_ 50
- motives to it, _d_ 51
-
- Contingency of events, _a_ 517
-
- Corruption of nature, forbidden, _d_ 56
- not from traduction, &c., _b_ 128
- how, _b_ 131
-
- Covenant of grace, divisible or not, _b_ 165
- with whom made, _b_ 167
- how, a testament, _b_ 169
- eternity of it, _b_ 272
- acceptance by elect, _b_ 184
-
- Covenant of works, more than a law, _b_ 78
- its extent, _b_ 80. 88
- its seals, _b_ 88. 90
- violation of, _b_ 74. 93
- not a promise of salvation, _b_ 164
-
- Covetousness and its aggravations, _d_ 58
- excuses for it answered, _d_ 59
-
- Creation, work of, _b_ 6
- immediate, _b_ 7
- mediate, _b_ 7
- time of, _b_ 8
- design of, _b_ 15
- not instantaneous, _b_ 17
- its progression, _b_ 19. 23
- at what season of the year, _b_ 24
- its goodness, or perfection, _b_ 25
- of man, _b_ 34
-
- Creed, account of, _b_ 440
-
- Critical examination of 1 John v. 7, _a_ 329
-
-
- D.
-
- Day of grace, what, _b_ 331
-
- Death, appointed of God, _c_ 293
- its effect on the spirit, _c_ 300
- of Christ, design of it, _b_ 285
- for whom, _b_ 290
- perversion of the doctriner, _b_ 291
- a true and proper sacrifice for sin, _b_ 292
- of some saints, _c_ 285
-
- Decrees of God, _a_ 417. 430
- proved, _a_ 422. 452
- not stoical fate, _a_ 516
- misrepresentations of it, _a_ 465
-
- Deists, _b_ 494
-
- Deity of the Son, proved, _a_ 295
- by divine names, _a_ 296
- by divine attributes, _a_ 342
- by religious worship, _a_ 377
- improved, _a_ 414
-
- Diligence, _d_ 20. 21
-
- Discontent, remedies against, _d_ 61
-
- Dispensations of the covenant, _b_ 199
-
- Delusions, _b_ 147
-
- Dominion of man in innocency, _b_ 74
-
- Duels, _c_ 542
-
-
- E.
-
- Eden, garden of, where situated, _b_ 70
-
- Effectual calling, _c_ 39
-
- Elect, to what chosen, _a_ 438
- included in Christ, _b_ 132
- ransomed by him, _b_ 316
- peculiarly, _b_ 322
-
- Election, what, _a_ 529. 434
- objects of, _a_ 436
- proved, _a_ 447
- its design, _a_ 461
- its properties, _a_ 469
- knowledge of, _a_ 470
- free, _a_ 476
- unchangeable, _a_ 481
- objections to, _a_ 507
- distinct from fate, _a_ 516
-
- Elijah, whether guilty of falsehood, _d_ 36
-
- Elisha reproached at Bethel, _d_ 43
-
- Endor, witch of, _c_ 451
-
- Enlightened conscience, _c_ 184
-
- Errors, of Arius and Sabellius, _a_ 208
-
- Eternal generation of Christ, _a_ 259
-
- Eternity of the covenant of grace, _b_ 172
-
- Eutychus, who he was, note, _b_ 223
-
- Eve, the manner of her temptation, _b_ 100
-
-
- F.
-
- Faith, how, a condition, _b_ 189
- how above natural ability, _b_ 193
- various kinds of, _c_ 121-125
- justifying, _c_ 98. 125
- how it justifies, _c_ 110
- a duty, _b_ 193
- a means of salvation, _d_ 76
-
- Fall of man, _b_ 74-93
-
- Father, God is to men, _d_ 360
- to be addressed as in heaven, _d_ 365
-
- Food of man in innocency, _b_ 72
-
- Foreknowledge of God, _a_ 452
-
- Foreordained whatsoever comes to pass, what is meant, _d_ 433
-
- Forgiveness of sin, _c_ 70. _d_ 417
- of others, what meant by it, _d_ 424
- argument to induce to it, _d_ 426
-
- Freedom of divine decrees, _a_ 432. 433
-
- Free will, absolute, absurd, _a_ 498
- doctrine of, examined, _a_ 501
-
- Frugality, _d_ 17
-
-
- G.
-
- Genealogy of Christ defended, _a_ 88
-
- Genuineness of the scriptures, _a_ 79
-
- Glorifying God, what is meant by it, _a_ 13
-
- Glory of God, how things are disposed, _d_ 382
-
- Glory of Christ as Mediator, _b_ 244
-
- God, proofs of his being, _a_ 22-48
- is a Spirit, _a_ 123
- his unity, _a_ 194
- holy, _a_ 159
- not the author of sin, _a_ 424. 523. 530
- is infinite, _a_ 126
- all-sufficient, _a_ 127
- eternal, _a_ 129
- immutable, _a_ 135
- incomprehensible, _a_ 138
- omnipresent, _a_ 139
- almighty, _a_ 140
- omniscient, _a_ 145
- most wise, _a_ 152
- just, _a_ 164
- true, _a_ 186
- merciful, _a_ 168
- even in punishing, note, _a_ 170
- how glorified, _a_ 14
-
- Goodness, _ibid_
-
- Gospel, how offered to all, _b_ 332
- faith in it the duty of all, _b_ 336
-
- Government, civil, _c_ 524
-
- Grotius, on the authority of the scriptures, in note, _a_ 97
-
- Grace, of God, in providing a Mediator, _b_ 187
-
- Guilt of Adam’s first sin, _b_ 119
- its consequences, _b_ 196-259
-
-
- H.
-
- Happiness of saints, future, _c_ 399
-
- Hardness of heart, _b_ 149
- causes of, _b_ 150
- in believers and unbelievers, _b_ 151
-
- Hearing the word, _d_ 158
-
- Heathens, _b_ 491. _c_ 163
-
- Hell, descent of Christ into, _b_ 440
-
- Heinousness of sins not equal, _d_ 67
-
- Holy Ghost, procession of, _a_ 260
- his Deity proved, _a_ 295
- his titles, _a_ 400
- attributes, _a_ 404
- works, _a_ 405
- worship, _a_ 408. 414
-
- Holiness of God, _a_ 159
- motives to, _c_ 160
-
- Holy places, _c_ 424
- times, _c_ 427
-
- Holy Spirit, implants all graces, _b_ 197
- applies salvation, _b_ 237
-
- Humiliation of Christ, _b_ 396
- in his birth, _b_ 398
- in his life, _b_ 401
- by temptations, _b_ 410
- by sinless infirmities, _b_ 422
- in his death, _b_ 423
- in being betrayed, _b_ 424
- forsaken, _b_ 425
- condemned, _b_ 429
-
- Humiliation of Christ, in being tormented, _b_ 431
- crucified, _b_ 433
- in his burial, _b_ 437
-
- Human nature of Christ, _b_ 421
-
- Hypocrisy, sin of, _d_ 39
- whether Paul and Daniel guilty, _d_ 40
-
-
- I.
-
- Idolatry, _c_ 443. & _a_194
-
- Image-worship, _c_ 461
-
- Immortality of the soul, _c_ 302
- asserted and denied by heathens, _c_ 303
-
- Imputation, what, _c_ 85-95
-
- Imputation of Adam’s sin, _b_ 107. 113
-
- Inability of sinners to believe, note, _b_ 193
- to keep the commandments, _d_ 62
-
- Incarnation of Christ, _b_ 227
- the time of, _b_ 231
- duration of, _b_ 234
-
- Incarnation, necessity for, _b_ 235
-
- Independency of God, _a_ 124
-
- Infants, their state, _b_ 138
-
- Inferiors, duties of, _c_ 520
-
- Innocency, man’s condition in, _b_ 72
-
- Inspiration of scripture, _a_ 110
-
- Integrity of the church in all ages, _b_ 199
-
- Interest in Christ, _b_ 189
-
-
- J.
-
- Jesus, why so called, _b_ 244
-
- Judgment, final, _c_ 359
-
- Justice, in our dealings, _d_ 19
-
- Justification, _c_ 67
- its foundation, _c_ 73
- not before faith, _c_ 117
- not by works, _c_ 101
- not by repentance, _c_ 101
-
-
- K.
-
- Kingdom of Heaven, _c_ 399
- of Providence, _d_ 385
- of grace, _d_ 386
- of Christ, how advanced, _d_ 389
- of glory, _d_ 394
-
- Kingly office of Christ, _b_ 351
- its exercise, _b_ 352
- submission to, _b_ 357
- opposition to, _b_ 360
- times of exercise, _b_ 364
- in the Millenium, _b_ 366
- on earth, _b_ 381
- duration of, _b_ 392
- the two-fold states of, _b_ 396
- in humiliation, _b_ 399
-
-
- L.
-
- Law, moral, _c_ 421
- judicial, _c_ 422
- ceremonial, _c_ 423
-
- Law-suits, when unjust, _d_ 26
-
- Liberty, _c_ 34
-
- Life, bounds of fixed, _a_ 508
- to be preserved, _c_ 540
-
- Light of nature, _a_ 21. 230
-
- Light of revelation, sufficient, _b_ 206
- increased by the gospel, _b_ 214
-
- Long-suffering of God, _a_ 176
- in harmony with justice, _a_ 181
- improvement of, _a_ 183
-
- Lord’s supper, _d_ 234
- a gospel ordinance, _d_ 236
- what the elements and actions, _d_ 237. 238
- to whom to be administered, _d_ 237. 245. 263
- examination previous to, _d_ 246-256
- who to be debarred from, _d_ 263
- meditation at, _d_ 269
- what to be done at, _d_ 270. 273. 275
- vows may be made at, _d_ 278
- frequent attendance on, _d_ 280
- how it differs from baptism, _d_ 281-284
-
- Lie, definition and kinds of, _d_ 33
- whether midwives in Egypt guilty of, _d_ 34
- Rahab’s, _d_ 34
- whether Jacob was guilty of, _d_ 35
- whether Elijah was guilty, _d_ 36
- whether Paul was guilty, _d_ 37
- David’s, _d_ 38
-
-
- M.
-
- Magee’s, two discourses on the atonement, note, _b_ 298. 317
-
- Man, his creation, _b_ 34
- his twofold nature, _b_ 39
- in the divine image, _b_ 42
- his mutability, _b_ 44
- providence of God toward him, _b_ 70
- employment in Paradise, _b_ 72
- fallen, _b_ 117
- his misery, _b_ 136
-
- Marks of grace, _c_ 260-262
-
- Marriage, its institution and design, _b_ 75
-
- Masters, duties of, _c_ 533
-
- Means of salvation, _d_ 76
-
- Mediator, his office generally, _b_ 186
- his intercession or satisfaction, _b_ 186
- who he is, _b_ 216
- his sufficiency, _b_ 218
- his incarnation, _b_ 221
- why called Jesus Christ, _b_ 244
-
- Melchizedec, who he might be, _b_ 264
-
- Messiah of the Old Testament is Christ, _b_ 200
- the substance of the ceremonial law, _b_ 201
- Jesus of Nazareth, _b_ 245
- his commission, _b_ 248
- his offices, _b_ 249
- prophetical, _b_ 252
- priestly, _b_ 259
- kingly, _b_ 351
-
- Millenium, _b_ 366-382
-
- Moral obligation, foundation of, _c_ 405
-
- Moral law, _c_ 421
- civil, its origin, _b_ 127
-
- Mortification, _c_ 155
-
- Moses, no astrologer, _c_ 454
- killing the Egyptians, _c_ 545
-
- Murderers do not escape, _c_ 547
-
- Musical instruments unauthorized in gospel worship, _d_ 85
-
- Mystery, scriptural, _a_ 215. 217
-
- Mysteries, Dr. Bates Aon, in note, _a_ 217
-
-
- N.
-
- Name of God, what meant by it, _d_ 369
- how sanctified, _d_ 370. 373
- when profaned, _c_ 473
- hallowed, what meant by, _d_ 375-381
-
- Natures of Christ, _b_ 235
- why two-fold, _b_ 242
- without confusion, _b_ 243
-
-
- O.
-
- Oaths, religious, _c_ 472
- profane, _c_ 470
-
- Objections, to the harmony of the scriptures, _a_ 88-93
- to the doctrine of election, _a_ 507
- to the divine predetermination, _a_ 509
-
- Obligation, moral, _c_ 405
-
- Offences, their aggravations, _d_ 67
- from the parties, _d_ 68
- from the nature of the offence, _d_ 70
- from the circumstances, _d_ 72
-
- Officers of the, church, _b_ 572
-
- Offices of Christ, their number, _b_ 249
- suited to the state of man, _b_ 250
- not to be confounded, _b_ 251
- their order, _b_ 252
-
- Office, prophetical, _b_ 254
- for whom intended, _b_ 255
- how executed, _b_ 256
- when, _b_ 257
- the priestly, _b_ 259
-
- Officers among the Jews, _d_ 139
-
- Ordinances of the gospel, _d_ 83
-
- Original righteousness lost, _a_ 121
-
- Original, transgression, _b_ 105
- sin, what, _b_ 118
- its transmission, _b_ 129. 132
- its punishment, _b_ 141
-
-
- P.
-
- Parable of the debtor, _c_ 238
-
- Paradise, where, _b_ 71
- after death, _c_ 318
-
- Parents, duties of, _c_ 531
-
- Papal doctrines, _a_ 162, _d_ 315
-
- Pardon of sin is from God only, _d_ 417
-
- Pelagianism, _b_ 125
-
- Perfection, absolute, not in this life, _c_ 178
- at death, _c_ 312
-
- Perfections of God, _a_ 121-142
-
- Perseverance of the saints, _c_ 194-197
- proved, _c_ 201-217
- objections to answered, _c_ 220
-
- Person, Calvin on the word, in note, _a_ 207
-
- Person of Christ, why God and man, _b_ 235
-
- Personality in the Godhead, _a_ 207. 244
-
- Pharisees, _d_ 140
-
- Polygamy was ever unlawful, _d_ 11
- aggravations of, _d_ 13
- the occasions of, _d_ 14
-
- Praise, _d_ 82. 85. 95
-
- Prayer, to be made to God, _d_ 299
- to be in the name of Christ, _d_ 300. 301
- Spirit’s aid in, _d_ 303-306
- for whom to be made, _d_ 309-312
- for whom not to be made, _d_ 315-318
- for what we may pray, _d_ 322
- how we are to pray, _d_ 323
- faith in, _d_ 329
- promises of help, _d_ 331
- to an unchangeable God, in note, _d_ 397-402
- discouragements in, removed, _d_ 336
- rules for our direction in, _d_ 338-356
-
- Predestination to sin, not scriptural, _a_ 530
-
- Preaching the word, how to be done, _d_ 151
-
- Priestly office of Christ, _b_ 259
- like that of Melchizedech, _b_ 264
- necessity of it, _b_ 272
-
- Priestly, Dr. his disingenuity, in a note, _a_ 397
-
- Procrastination, in note, _d_ 78
-
- Procession of the Holy Ghost, _a_ 260
-
- Profanation of the Sabbath, _c_ 508
-
- Promises of temporal and spiritual blessings, _d_ 344-350
- annexed to the fifth commandment, _c_ 537
-
- Prophets, _a_ 56
-
- Prophetical office of Christ, _b_ 252
- when executed, _b_ 257
-
- Providence of God, what, _b_ 45
- immediate or mediate, _b_ 46
- over good actions, _b_ 51
- over evil actions, _b_ 52-58
- objections to answered, _b_ 59-62
- toward angels, _b_ 62-69
- toward man, _b_ 70
-
- Publicans, _d_ 140
-
- Psalms of David, proper to be sung, _d_ 89
- scripture and hymns preferable, _d_ 96
-
- Punishment of sin, _b_ 136
- original, _b_ 137
- in the world to come, _b_ 158
- proved by reason, note, _b_ 161
- when not stayed by sacrifice, _b_ 262
-
- Purgatory, _c_ 313
-
- Purpose, eternal, _a_ 507
-
- Purpose of God, its certainty, _b_ 5
-
-
- Q.
-
- Qualifications of preachers of the word, _d_ 147
-
- Quenching the Spirit, what, _a_ 414
- when committed, _a_ 50
-
-
- R.
-
- Recovery of man, its moving cause, _b_ 162
-
- Redemption, intended, _b_ 161
- for whom, _b_ 316
- for whom not, _b_ 322
- application of it, _b_ 323
- not universal, _b_ 324. 326
- special, _b_ 329. 338
- covenant of, _b_ 178
-
- Regeneration before faith, _c_ 26
- man passive in it, _c_ 48
-
- Remember, import of, in the fourth commandment, _c_ 512
-
- Repentance, what, _c_ 167
- the effect of grace, _c_ 169
- how by the word, _c_ 169
- a means of salvation, _d_ 76
-
- Representation, note, _b_ 77. 103. 114
-
- Reproach, differs from reproof, _d_ 42
-
- Reprobation, decree of, _a_ 486
- not of sovereignty, _a_ 490
- but of justice, _a_ 491
-
- Restitution, a duty, _d_ 27
-
- Resurrection, _b_ 383. 389. _c_ 326
- proved from the Old Testament, _c_ 332
- the first, _b_ 383. 388
-
- Revealed will of God, _c_ 408
-
- Revelation, necessary, _a_ 71
- not impossible, _a_ 71
-
- Righteousness, original, lost in Adam, _b_ 121
-
-
- S.
-
- Sabbath, its institution, _b_ 76
- its morality, _c_ 480
- its change, _c_ 486
-
- Sabellius, his error, note, _a_ 208
-
- Sacraments, _d_ 161
- how seals, _d_ 161
- to whom administered, _d_ 166
- benefits of them, _d_ 167
- by whom administered, _d_ 168
- but two, _d_ 172
-
- Sacrifice of Christ, sufficient for all, note, _b_ 349
-
- Sadducees, _d_ 140
-
- Saints kept by divine power, _c_ 199
-
- Salvation, what, _b_ 162
- its subjects, _b_ 162
- the cause of, _b_ 163
- for whom, _b_ 164
- not universal, _b_ 326
-
- Samaritans, _d_ 140
-
- Samson’s death, _c_ 540
-
- Sanctification, _c_ 152
-
- Sanctifying the Lord’s day, _c_ 497
-
- Satan, the tempter, _b_ 95
- his method and instruments, _b_ 96. 97
- his empire in the unregenerate, _b_ 144
-
- Satisfaction for sin, _b_ 275-293
-
- Scriptures, genuineness of, _a_ 79
- authenticity, _a_ 97
- inspiration of, _a_ 72
- a sufficient rule, _a_ 61
- to be read publickly, _d_ 107
- in families and private, _d_ 108
- how they should be read, _d_ 113
- various translations of, _d_ 117
- to be compared, _d_ 121. 122
- general rules for explaining of, _d_ 144
-
- Self-interest, how far lawful, _a_ 19. 20
-
- Self-murder, _c_ 545
-
- Self-examination, _c_ 256
-
- Sentiment, influence of, _a_ iii
-
- Servants, duties of, _c_ 593
-
- Similitudes of Trinity unlawful, _a_ 235
-
- Singing praises, a divine institution, _d_ 82
-
- Sin, its origin, _a_ 425
- daily committed, _d_ 63
- extent of the first, _b_ 105
- exists in intentions, note, _b_ 145
- its imputation, _b_ 109
- its consequences, _b_ 136
- punishment of, _c_ 377
- its punishment in this world, _b_ 146
- in the world to come, _b_ 158
- what satisfaction is demanded, _b_ 275. 280
- its desert, and the way of escape, _d_ 74
- unto death, what it is, _d_ 318-320
- not from God, _a_ 423. _d_ 433-435
-
- Son, his divinity, _a_ 295
- his personality, _a_ 248
-
- Sonship of Christ, eternal, _a_ 277
-
- Souls, origin of, note, _b_ 41
- pre-existence of, a mere fancy, _b_ 126
- after death, _c_ 318. 325
-
- Spirit, the Holy, his procession, _a_ 260
- his divinity, _a_ 398. 410
- his witness to the word, in the heart, _a_ 118
- his work in applying salvation, _b_ 197
-
- Sufferings of Christ, and the design of them, _b_ 284. 285
- why not eternal, _b_ 296
-
- Sum of relative duties, _c_ 514
-
- Superiors, duties of, _c_ 518
-
- Supper, of the Lord, _d_ 234
-
- Supralapsarians, and Sublapsarians, _a_ 445
-
- Suretyship of Christ, _c_ 77, _b_ 173
-
- Swearing, _c_ 470
-
-
- T.
-
- Tables of the law, _c_ 433
-
- Temptations of Christ, _b_ 404-420
- mental, note, _b_ 420
- from prosperity, _d_ 439
- from adversity, _d_ 441
- from the flesh, _d_ 442
- from Satan, _d_ 443
-
- Testament, and covenant, how the same, _b_ 169
- how different, _b_ 171
- how received, _b_ 181
- implies the death of the testator, note, _b_ 294
-
- Testimony of the Church, _a_ 116
-
- Theatrical amusements, sinful in note, _d_ 15
-
- Theft, _d_ 23
-
- Thoughts, sinful, _d_ 64
-
- Tree of life, _b_ 88
- why so called, _b_ 89
- of knowledge of good and evil, _b_ 92
-
- Trinity of persons, _a_ 206
- important, _a_ 210
- in what respects one, _a_ 243
- not unreasonable, _a_ 226
- proved, _a_ 249-251
- Dr. Jameison, on the, in a note, _a_ 243
-
- Truth of God, _a_ 185
-
- Trust, breach of, _d_ 23
-
- Trust in Christ, _c_ 121
-
- Types of Christ, in ceremonial law, _b_ 202
- errors concerning them, _b_ 203
- in persons and things, _b_ 205
- their spiritual meaning, _b_ 207
- misunderstood by some, _b_ 209
-
-
- U.
-
- Uncleanness forbidden, _d_ 10
-
- Unction, or anointing of the Mediator, _b_ 245
-
- Union, of divine and human natures, _b_ 221
- denied by Nestorius, _b_ 222
- without confusion or mixture, _b_ 223
- by subordination of human will, _b_ 223
- of a divine nature to real human body, _b_ 224
- of a divine nature to real human soul, _b_ 226
- necessary, _b_ 235
-
- Universal redemption, _b_ 326-341
-
- Unitarian objections answered, note, _b_ 292. 297
-
- Unity of God, _a_ 194
- proved by his works, _a_ 197
- light of nature, _a_ 200
- uncompounded, _a_ 203
-
- Universal expressions of limited meaning, _b_ 239
- redemption considered, _b_ 343
-
- Usury, _d_ 27
-
-
- V.
-
- Variety, but no contrariety in the will of Christ, _b_ 226
-
- Vicarious death of Christ, _b_ 292-297
-
- Vile affections described, _b_ 153
-
- Virgin really predicted, Isa. ix. 6., _b_ 228. 229
-
- Vivification, _c_ 159
-
-
- W.
-
- War of plunder and oppression in it, _d_ 25
-
- Wicked, their prosperity, _a_ 45
- how made for the day of evil, _a_ 495
-
- Will of God, secret or revealed, _a_ 471
- sovereign, _a_ 476
- how can we pray for it to be done? _d_ 403
-
- Will, free in our first parents, _b_ 94
- our averse to that of God, _d_ 402
- of the Mediator as man, subordinate, _b_ 226
-
- Williams, Dr. on election, in a note, _a_ 529
-
- Witness of the Spirit, _c_ 266
-
- Words, sinful, _d_ 66
-
- Word of God, _a_ 48
- distinguished from moral obligation, _a_ 48. 49
- understood by Israel, _a_ 53
- Chronology of prophets, _a_ 56
- how a rule, _a_ 60. 61
- complete and entire, _a_ 66
- enlightens and convinces of sin, _d_ 101
- humbles and draws to Christ, _d_ 102. 103
- other instances of its efficacy, _d_ 104
-
- World, not eternal, _b_ 8
- its antiquity, _b_ 11
- false accounts of, _b_ 11
-
- Wrath of God is not passion, _d_ 75
-
- Writing, origin of, _b_ 13
-
-
-
-
- PRESBYTERIAL QUESTIONS FOR EXEGESES.
-
-
-Vid. Form of Gov. c. xiii. sec. 3.
-
-
-1. Quî Deus unus dicitur?
-
-2. Quibus testimoniis probas Trinitatem?
-
-3. Cur Christum verum hominem esse opportuit?
-
-4. Quæ argumenta probant scripturam a Deo profectam esse?
-
-5. Qua ratione peccatum originis transmittitur in posteros?
-
-6. Estne peccatum aliquid positivum an privativum?
-
-7. Quid est peccatum in Spiritum Sanctum?
-
-8. An una et eadem ratio salutis consequendæ post lapsum fuit?
-
-9. Quæ sunt causa efficiens fidei, et objectum?
-
-10. Quo sensu fide justificari dicimur?
-
-11. An opera renatorum bona sunt pura, nulloque vitio contaminata?
-
-12. Qua ratione vita æterna dicitur merces?
-
-13. Quandoquidem mortuus est pro omnibus Christus, annon omnium
-Redemptor?
-
-14. Eruntne damnatorum pœnæ perpetuæ?
-
-15. Quæ sunt veræ et internæ ecclesiæ proprietates?
-
-16. Nullumne est discrimen inter episcopum et presbyterum?
-
-17. Quibus est exhibenda cœna Domini?
-
-18. Quinam sunt baptizandi?
-
-19. Licetne homini christiano, cum vocatur, magistratum gerere?
-
-20. Quinam ad judicium ecclesiasticum vocandi sunt?
-
-
-
-
- NOW IN PRESS
-
-
-_THE REV. DR. JOHN GILL’S COMMENTARY_.
-
-
-The OLD TESTAMENT is now in the press, and the first volume expected out
-in the month of May. To subscribers the price will be 6 dollars per vol.
-sheep; $7 in calf; and $5 25 per vol. in boards. On subscribing, the New
-Testament can be delivered in 3 volumes, being already printed.
-
-The following is taken from the Minutes of the Philadelphia Baptist
-Association—October, 1815.
-
-“Oct. 18.—This association have heard with pleasure, by a communication
-from Mr. Woodward, of his intention to publish Dr. Gill’s Exposition of
-the Old Testament, in six large quarto volumes; one of which he hopes,
-if life and health be spared, to issue every 4 or 5 months, at the price
-originally proposed; that is, $5,25 each vol. in boards—6 in sheep, and
-7 in calf. Resolved that this association recommend to the churches, and
-the brethren of our denomination generally, the encouragement of the
-work, and that each church subscribe at least for a copy for its
-respective minister for the time being, and communicate the result of
-their subscriptions to Mr. Woodward, as early as possible. He hopes to
-issue the first volume in the Spring. Sister associations throughout the
-union are affectionately invited to patronize the publication, and
-should their piety and wisdom approve of the measure, recommend the
-adoption of a plan in their churches generally similar to what is above
-recommended.”
-
-
-_SCOTT’S FAMILY BIBLE._
-
-
-W. W. Woodward is preparing for the press, in 3 vols. quarto, the Rev.
-Dr. SCOTT’S FAMILY BIBLE, on a new arrangement. The work will contain
-every article, except the Marginal References; and the Notes will follow
-immediately after the verses to which they belong, and the Practical
-Observations at the end of each chapter. The first volume will be
-published as speedily as possible.—The flattering encouragement already
-received, induces the publisher to put to press a large edition. A
-copy-right is secured for this popular plan. Price in boards 18 dolls.
-75 cents, bound 21 dolls. Proposals shall be sent to any persons who
-will interest themselves in the work—one copy for every five subscribed
-for. The Royal Octavo Bible, recently printed by W. W. W. contains all
-the Marginal References, all the Introductions to the Books, and also to
-the Chapters, with the General Preface, for $5, common, and $5 50, fine
-paper; plates added, $1 50; David’s Psalms, or Watts’s imitation, 50
-cents; Concordance, 25 cents. It may be had with or without the above;
-with them separately, or all bound in one, or two volumes: one dollar
-advance, if bound in two volumes.
-
-The FIRST VOLUME will be out in the Spring, and the other volumes as
-early after as practicable—this plan is exceedingly popular. The
-following is an extract of a letter from a respectable clergyman:—viz.
-“I am happy to inform you, your edition, on the new plan, meets the
-general approbation. Of this you will be convinced, when I tell you,
-that in obtaining _two hundred subscribers_, I have done little else
-than to follow along after Proposals for other editions of the same
-work. About 40 sets of the above are to be bound in calf.—Many have
-subscribed for _this_, who have absolutely refused to subscribe for
-_others_. I think you may safely conclude, therefore, that many families
-will be blessed with this excellent work, who would, perhaps, have ever
-remained destitute, had it not been for _this edition_.”
-
-
-A new Edition of
-
-_THE POCKET BIBLE_,
-
-Will be ready in January, 1816, in a variety of bindings, from 125 to
-500 cents.
-
-
-_CONFESSION OF FAITH_, or, the Constitution of the Presbyterian Church
-in the United States of America; containing the Catechism, and the
-Directory for the worship of God: together with the Plan of Government
-and Discipline, as amended and ratified by the General Assembly at their
-Session in May, 1805. Price 1 dollar 12-1/2 cents. Sheep gilt 1 dollar
-25 cents.
-
-_The CONFESSION OF FAITH_: the Larger and Shorter Catechisms, with the
-Scripture-proofs at large; the Covenants, national and solemn League;
-the Acknowledgment of Sins, and Engagement to Duties: the Directories
-for Public and Family Worship; and the Form of Church Government; with
-Acts of Assembly and Parliament relative thereto, and approbative of,
-the same, of public authority in the Church of Scotland: and also in the
-Associate Church, and the Reformed Church, in the United States of
-America. Together with the Sum of Saving knowledge, and the practical
-use thereof.—Price 1 dollar 75 cent fine, and 1 dollar 50 cents common.
-
-Pocket Edition of _WATTS’S PSALMS AND HYMNS_.—W. W. Woodward has printed
-a new edition, which may be had at the following prices:—Plain 75 cents.
-Gilt backs, fine paper, 1 dollar 12-1/2 cents. Morocco 2 dollars.
-Morocco with gilt leaves, 2 dollars 25 cents. Red sheep 1 dollar 62-1/2
-cents.
-
-Also, just published—a neat and correct edition of the above, with a
-large type: taken from W. W. W’s last corrected pocket edition. Price,
-fine paper, 1 dollar 25 cents, plain; morocco, gilt leaves, 3 dollars 25
-cents; sheep gilt, 1 dollar 75 cents; common paper, 1 dollar in plain
-binding.
-
-_RIPPON’S SELECTION_ (copy-right) in a neat pocket volume, with a
-variety of New HYMNS, not in former editions; prepared by the Rev. Dr.
-Staughton.—Prices, plain bound and lettered, 75 cents. Gilt backs 1
-dollar 12-1/4 cents. Morocco, yellow leaves, 2 dollars, and gilt leaves,
-morocco, 2 dollars 25 cents.
-
-
-JUST PRINTED,
-
-
-_BUCK’S THEOLOGICAL DICTIONARY_,
-2 vols. in 1, 350 cents.—4th edition, with an account of the Cumberland
-Presbyterians.
-
-Proposals are out for printing the WORKS of
-_The Rev. JOHN B. LINN, D. D._
-Late Pastor of the First Presbyterian Church, Philadelphia.—2 vols.
-octavo.
-
-
-Lately Printed,
-_BUCK’S PRACTICAL EXPOSITOR_,
-Price 112-1/2 cents.
-
-ALSO, _THE PIOUS SELECTION_ 112-1/2 cents.
-
-_PROOF CATECHISM_, revised by the Rev. Dr. James P. Wilson, 50 cents per
-dozen.
-
-Also—a new edition of the _SEQUEL to JANEWAY’S TOKEN FOR CHILDREN_, 19
-cents.
-
-A constant supply of the latest Theological Publications on hand; and
-always a very general Assortment of BOOKS in the various departments of
-Literature. Orders made up for Libraries and Book Stores on the most
-liberal terms.
-
-
-
-
- ● Transcriber’s Notes:
- ○ The author’s archaic and idiosyncratic punctuation, spellings, and
- capitalization have been retained.
- ○ Text that was in italics is enclosed by underscores (_italics_).
- ○ Footnotes have been moved to follow the chapters in which they are
- referenced.
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A BODY OF DIVINITY, VOL. 4 OF 4 ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/65484-0.zip b/old/65484-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 4743128..0000000
--- a/old/65484-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65484-h.zip b/old/65484-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 09b74dd..0000000
--- a/old/65484-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/65484-h/65484-h.htm b/old/65484-h/65484-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 0539acd..0000000
--- a/old/65484-h/65484-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,26506 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=UTF-8" />
- <title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of A Body of Divinity, Vol. 4 of 4, by Thomas Ridgley</title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
- body { margin-left: 8%; margin-right: 10%; }
- h1 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.4em; }
- h2 { text-align: center; font-weight: normal; font-size: 1.2em; }
- .pageno { right: 1%; font-size: x-small; background-color: inherit; color: silver;
- text-indent: 0em; text-align: right; position: absolute;
- border: thin solid silver; padding: .1em .2em; font-style: normal;
- font-variant: normal; font-weight: normal; text-decoration: none; }
- p { text-indent: 0; margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; text-align: justify; }
- sup { vertical-align: top; font-size: 0.6em; }
- .fss { font-size: 75%; }
- .sc { font-variant: small-caps; }
- .large { font-size: large; }
- .xlarge { font-size: x-large; }
- .xxlarge { font-size: xx-large; }
- .index li {text-indent: -1em; padding-left: 1em; }
- .index ul {list-style-type: none; padding-left: 0; }
- ul.index {list-style-type: none; padding-left: 0; }
- ul.ul_1 {padding-left: 0; margin-left: 2.78%; margin-top: .5em;
- margin-bottom: .5em; list-style-type: disc; }
- ul.ul_2 {padding-left: 0; margin-left: 6.94%; margin-top: .5em;
- margin-bottom: .5em; list-style-type: circle; }
- div.footnote {margin-left: 2.5em; }
- div.footnote > :first-child { margin-top: 1em; }
- div.footnote .label { display: inline-block; width: 0em; text-indent: -2.5em;
- text-align: right; }
- div.pbb { page-break-before: always; }
- hr.pb { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-bottom: 1em; }
- @media handheld { hr.pb { display: none; } }
- .chapter { clear: both; page-break-before: always; }
- .figcenter { clear: both; max-width: 100%; margin: 2em auto; text-align: center; }
- .figcenter img { max-width: 100%; height: auto; }
- .id001 { width:600px; }
- @media handheld { .id001 { margin-left:12%; width:75%; } }
- .ig001 { width:100%; }
- .nf-center { text-align: center; }
- .nf-center-c1 { text-align: left; margin: 1em 0; }
- .c000 { margin-top: 1em; }
- .c001 { page-break-before: always; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c002 { margin-top: 4em; }
- .c003 { margin-top: 2em; }
- .c004 { page-break-before:auto; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c005 { margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c006 { margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c007 { margin-left: 5.56%; margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c008 { margin-left: 11.11%; margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c009 { page-break-before:auto; margin-top: 2em; }
- .c010 { margin-left: 5.56%; margin-top: 2em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c011 { margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c012 { text-decoration: none; }
- .c013 { margin-left: 5.56%; margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c014 { margin-top: .5em; }
- div.tnotes { padding-left:1em;padding-right:1em;background-color:#E3E4FA;
- border:1px solid silver;margin:1em 5% 0 5%;text-align:justify; }
- </style>
- </head>
- <body>
-
-<div style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of A Body of Divinity, Vol. 4 of 4, by Thomas Ridgley</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:table'>
- <div style='display:table-row'>
- <div style='display:table-cell; padding-right:0.5em'>Title:</div>
- <div style='display:table-cell; padding-right:0.5em'>A Body of Divinity, Vol. 4 of 4</div>
- </div>
- <div style='display:table-row;'>
- <div style='display:table-cell'></div>
- <div style='display:table-cell'>wherein the doctrines of the Christian religion are explained and defended, being the substance of several lectures on the Assem</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Thomas Ridgley</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: June 1, 2021 [eBook #65484]</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>Character set encoding: UTF-8</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Produced by: Richard Hulse, David King, and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net. (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive.)</div>
-
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A BODY OF DIVINITY, VOL. 4 OF 4 ***</div>
-
-<div class='figcenter id001'>
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_on'>on</span>
-<img src='images/cover.jpg' alt='' class='ig001' />
-</div>
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c000' />
-</div>
-<div>
- <h1 class='c001'>A Body of Divinity</h1>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div><span class='pageno' id='Page_i'>i</span><span class='xxlarge'><b>A BODY OF DIVINITY:</b></span></div>
- <div class='c000'><span class='xlarge'><b>WHEREIN THE DOCTRINES OF THE CHRISTIAN RELIGION ARE EXPLAINED AND DEFENDED.</b></span></div>
- <div class='c000'><span class='large'><b>BEING THE SUBSTANCE OF SEVERAL LECTURES ON THE ASSEMBLY’S LARGER CATECHISM.</b></span></div>
- <div class='c000'><span class='xxlarge'><b>BY THOMAS RIDGLEY, D. D.</b></span></div>
- <div class='c003'><span class='large'>WITH NOTES, ORIGINAL AND SELECTED,</span></div>
- <div><span class='large'>BY JAMES P. WILSON, D. D.</span></div>
- <div class='c000'>IN FOUR VOLUMES.</div>
- <div class='c000'><i>VOL. IV.</i></div>
- <div class='c000'>FIRST AMERICAN, FROM THE THIRD EUROPEAN EDITION.</div>
- <div class='c003'>PHILADELPHIA:</div>
- <div class='c000'>PRINTED BY AND FOR WILLIAM W. WOODWARD, CORNER OF CHESNUT AND SOUTH</div>
- <div>SECOND STREETS.</div>
- <div class='c000'>1815.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_iii'>iii</span>
- <h2 class='c004' title='Contents'>THE CONTENTS OF THE FOURTH VOLUME.</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CXXXVII, CXXXVIII, CXXXIX. An Explication of the Seventh Commandment. <i>Page</i> <a href='#Page_9'>9</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>THE government of the affections</i> <a href='#Page_10'>10</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>All uncleanness forbidden</i> ibid</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Polygamy was ever unlawful</i> <a href='#Page_11'>11</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>The aggravations of uncleanness</i> <a href='#Page_13'>13</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>The occasions of it</i> <a href='#Page_14'>14</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Of Theatres—a note</i> <a href='#Page_15'>15</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CXL, CXLI. An Explication of the Eighth Commandment <a href='#Page_16'>16</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>Of frugality and diligence</i> <a href='#Page_17'>17</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Of justice in our dealings</i> <a href='#Page_19'>19</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Of charity to the poor</i> <a href='#Page_20'>20</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>To whom to be extended</i> ibid</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>And in what proportion</i> <a href='#Page_21'>21</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CXLII. The Sins forbidden in the Eighth Commandment <a href='#Page_22'>22</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>Of theft and breach of trust</i> <a href='#Page_23'>23</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Of borrowing and not paying</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Whether</i> Israel <i>was guilty of it</i> <a href='#Page_24'>24</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Of plunder in war and oppression</i> <a href='#Page_25'>25</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Of unjust law-suits</i> <a href='#Page_26'>26</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Of sinful usury</i> <a href='#Page_27'>27</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Restitution a duty. Objections answered</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CXLIII, CXLIV, CXLV. An Explication of the Ninth Commandment <a href='#Page_28'>28</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>The duties required</i> <a href='#Page_29'>29</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Sins forbidden</i> <a href='#Page_31'>31</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Of bearing false witness</i> <a href='#Page_32'>32</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_iv'>iv</span><i>Of lying. The definition of a lie</i> <a href='#Page_33'>33</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Its various kinds</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c006'><i>The midwives report, in</i> Exod. i. 19. <i>no lie</i> <a href='#Page_34'>34</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Of</i> Rahab’s <i>lie</i>, Josh. ii. 4, 5. ibid</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Of</i> Jacob’s <i>deceit, in</i> Gen. xxvii. 19. <a href='#Page_35'>35</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Elijah’s <i>treatment of the</i> Syrian <i>host</i> <a href='#Page_36'>36</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Paul’s <i>answer relating to the high priest</i> <a href='#Page_37'>37</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>David’s <i>lie to</i> Ahimelech, <i>in</i> 1 Sam. xxi. 2. <a href='#Page_38'>38</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>His feigned madness at</i> Gath, <i>ver.</i> 13-15. ibid</p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Of hypocrisy</i> <a href='#Page_39'>39</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Paul <i>and</i> Daniel <i>vindicated</i> <a href='#Page_40'>40</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Of reproach. It differs from reproof</i> <a href='#Page_42'>42</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Things unjustly made the matter of it</i> <a href='#Page_43'>43</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Aggravations thereof</i> <a href='#Page_44'>44</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'>Elisha <i>reproached at</i> Bethel Ibid</p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Of backbiting. Instances of it</i> <a href='#Page_48'>48</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CXLVI, CXLVII, CXLVIII. An Explication of the Tenth Commandment <a href='#Page_50'>50</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>Contentment required in every state</i> <a href='#Page_50'>50</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Motives to it under various troubles</i> <a href='#Page_51'>51</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>The corruption of Nature forbidden</i> <a href='#Page_56'>56</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Of covetousness and its aggravations</i> <a href='#Page_58'>58</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Excuses for it answered</i> <a href='#Page_59'>59</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Remedies against discontent</i> <a href='#Page_61'>61</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CXLIX. Of man’s inability to keep the Commandments of God <a href='#Page_62'>62</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>How man sins daily</i> <a href='#Page_63'>63</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Of sinful thoughts</i> <a href='#Page_64'>64</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>The kinds, causes and cure of them</i> ibid</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Of sinful words and actions</i> <a href='#Page_66'>66</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CL. All sins not equally heinous <a href='#Page_67'>67</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLI. The aggravations of sin, and whence they arise <a href='#Page_67'>67</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>From the parties offending or offended</i> <a href='#Page_68'>68</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>From the nature and quality of the offence</i> <a href='#Page_70'>70</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>From the circumstances of it</i> <a href='#Page_72'>72</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLII, CLIII. Of the Desert of Sin, and of the means of escaping God’s wrath <a href='#Page_74'>74</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_v'>v</span><i>Wrath of God not passion</i> <a href='#Page_75'>75</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>How faith and repentance are the means of salvation</i> <a href='#Page_76'>76</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Note on procrastination</i> <a href='#Page_78'>78</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLIV. Of the Ordinances, or outward means of grace <a href='#Page_79'>79</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>Ordinances described</i> ibid</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>By what ordinances Christ communicates his benefits</i> <a href='#Page_81'>81</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Singing God’s praises of divine institution</i> <a href='#Page_82'>82</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>A gospel ordinance</i> <a href='#Page_83'>83</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>To be public and united</i> <a href='#Page_84'>84</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Of musical instruments, a note</i> <a href='#Page_85'>85</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>It is necessary to sing with understanding</i> ibid</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>David’s <i>Psalms still proper to be sung</i> <a href='#Page_89'>89</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Imprecations therein how used</i> <a href='#Page_91'>91</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Of hymns of human composure</i> <a href='#Page_95'>95</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Scripture Psalms and hymns preferable</i> <a href='#Page_96'>96</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLV. How the Word is made effectual to salvation <a href='#Page_99'>99</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>It enlightens and convinces of sin</i> <a href='#Page_101'>101</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>It humbles and drives out of self</i> <a href='#Page_102'>102</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>It draws to Christ</i> <a href='#Page_103'>103</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Other instances of its efficacy</i> <a href='#Page_104'>104</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLVL, CLVII. The Word of God to be read by all <a href='#Page_106'>106</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>The Word is to be read publicly</i> <a href='#Page_107'>107</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>In families also, and in private</i> <a href='#Page_108'>108</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>How the Papists oppose this</i> <a href='#Page_109'>109</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Their objections answered</i> <a href='#Page_110'>110</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Translation of scripture vindicated</i> <a href='#Page_112'>112</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>How the scripture should be read</i> <a href='#Page_113'>113</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Expositions to be consulted</i> <a href='#Page_117'>117</a></p>
-<p class='c008'><i>And various translations</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Of marginal references</i> <a href='#Page_118'>118</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Of supplemental additions</i> <a href='#Page_119'>119</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Texts to be compared with their contexts</i> <a href='#Page_121'>121</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>One part of scripture illustrates another</i> <a href='#Page_122'>122</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Parallel scriptures to be compared</i> <a href='#Page_124'>124</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Rhetorical figures used in scripture</i> <a href='#Page_130'>130</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>References there to different governments</i> <a href='#Page_135'>135</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>To the civil affairs of</i> Jews <i>and others</i> <a href='#Page_136'>136</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>To civil and religious officers</i> <a href='#Page_139'>139</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_vi'>vi</span><i>Of</i> Publicans, Pharisees, Sadducees, Samaritans <a href='#Page_140'>140</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>General rules for explaining scripture</i> <a href='#Page_144'>144</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLVIII, CLIX, CLX. Of preaching and hearing the Word <a href='#Page_146'>146</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>The qualifications of ministers</i> <a href='#Page_147'>147</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>How the word is to be preached</i> <a href='#Page_151'>151</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Diligently, plainly, faithfully</i> <a href='#Page_152'>152</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Wisely. Wherein this consists</i> <a href='#Page_154'>154</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Zealously and sincerely</i> <a href='#Page_155'>155</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Duties to be performed</i> <a href='#Page_157'>157</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Before hearing</i> <a href='#Page_158'>158</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>In hearing, and after it</i> <a href='#Page_159'>159</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLXI, CLXII, CLXIII, CLXIV. Of the Sacraments <a href='#Page_160'>160</a></p>
-<p class='c005'>Sacrament. <i>Its meaning</i> <a href='#Page_161'>161</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Its nature and matter</i> ibid</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>How a sign or seal</i> <a href='#Page_163'>163</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>To whom to be administered</i> <a href='#Page_166'>166</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Benefits conveyed therein</i> <a href='#Page_167'>167</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>How effectual to salvation</i> ibid</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>By whom to be administered, in note</i> <a href='#Page_168'>168</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Various sacraments of old</i> <a href='#Page_171'>171</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Now but two</i> <a href='#Page_172'>172</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLXV. Of Baptism. <a href='#Page_174'>174</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>Baptism a gospel ordinance</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Instituted by Christ</i> <a href='#Page_177'>177</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Note</i>, Βαπτιζω <i>a generic term</i> <a href='#Page_175'>175</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>In whose name to be performed</i> <a href='#Page_178'>178</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>What signified in it</i> <a href='#Page_179'>179</a></p>
-<p class='c008'><i>An expectation of privileges</i> <a href='#Page_181'>181</a></p>
-
-<p class='c008'><i>An acknowledgment of obligations</i> ibid</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><i>The right of children to it—in a note</i> <a href='#Page_182'>182</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLXVI. Of the subjects and mode of Baptism <a href='#Page_183'>183</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>To whom Baptism is not to be administered</i> ibid</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Infants of believers, their right to baptism</i> <a href='#Page_186'>186</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>By covenant—a note</i> <a href='#Page_187'>187</a>-193</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>May be dedicated in faith</i> <a href='#Page_187'>187</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Are included in the covenant</i> <a href='#Page_194'>194</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Are termed holy</i> <a href='#Page_196'>196</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_vii'>vii</span><i>Were circumcised</i> <a href='#Page_198'>198</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>And ought to be baptized</i> <a href='#Page_199'>199</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Objections answered, taken</i></p>
-<p class='c008'><i>From infants’ want of grace</i> <a href='#Page_200'>200</a></p>
-
-<p class='c008'><i>From the want of precept or example</i> <a href='#Page_201'>201</a></p>
-
-<p class='c008'><i>From Christ’s own Baptism</i> <a href='#Page_206'>206</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Infant baptism no novelty</i> <a href='#Page_207'>207</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Practised by the ancient church</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Baptism an ordinance of dedication</i> <a href='#Page_186'>186</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>An objection answered</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c006'><i>How believers may dedicate their infants in faith</i> <a href='#Page_187'>187</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>An objection answered</i> <a href='#Page_194'>194</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Of the mode of Baptism</i> <a href='#Page_216'>216</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Baptism, <i>the meaning of the word</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c007'><i>To be performed by pouring or sprinkling</i> <a href='#Page_218'>218</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Objections answered</i> <a href='#Page_219'>219</a></p>
-<p class='c008'><i>Persons going down into the water</i> <a href='#Page_220'>220</a></p>
-
-<p class='c008'>John’s <i>baptizing at</i> Ænon <a href='#Page_222'>222</a></p>
-
-<p class='c008'><i>Our being buried with Christ</i> <a href='#Page_225'>225</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Of the sign of the cross</i> <a href='#Page_228'>228</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Of sureties in Baptism</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLXVII. How Baptism should be improved <a href='#Page_229'>229</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLXVIII, CLXIX, CLXX. Of the Lord’s supper <a href='#Page_234'>234</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>The Lord’s supper is a gospel ordinance</i> <a href='#Page_236'>236</a></p>
-<p class='c008'><i>It was instituted by Christ</i> ibid</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><i>By whom to be administered</i> <a href='#Page_237'>237</a></p>
-
-<p class='c008'><i>Of the elements, how consecrated</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c007'><i>The actions to be performed</i> <a href='#Page_238'>238</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>The gesture to be used</i> <a href='#Page_239'>239</a></p>
-<p class='c008'><i>Of some Popish irregularities</i> <a href='#Page_240'>240</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Things signified in the Lord’s supper</i> <a href='#Page_242'>242</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>What faith should then fix on</i> <a href='#Page_244'>244</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Qualifications of communicants</i> <a href='#Page_245'>245</a>, <a href='#Page_263'>263</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLXXI. Of preparation for the Lord’s supper <a href='#Page_246'>246</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>Of self examination</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Things to be enquired into. Our state</i> <a href='#Page_247'>247</a></p>
-<p class='c008'><i>How this may be known</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Our sense of sin</i> <a href='#Page_248'>248</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Our wants</i> <a href='#Page_249'>249</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_viii'>viii</span><i>Our knowledge of divine things</i> <a href='#Page_251'>251</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>The truth and degree of our graces</i> <a href='#Page_253'>253</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Our love to the brethren</i> <a href='#Page_255'>255</a></p>
-<p class='c008'><i>How this may be discerned</i> <a href='#Page_256'>256</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLXXII, CLXXIII. Who fit to be Communicants <a href='#Page_258'>258</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>Doubting Christians, their case</i> <a href='#Page_259'>259</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Encouragement for them</i> ibid</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Promises made to them</i> <a href='#Page_260'>260</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Advice offered them</i> <a href='#Page_262'>262</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>The wicked to be kept from the Lord’s table</i> <a href='#Page_263'>263</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Objections answered</i> <a href='#Page_264'>264</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLXXIV, CLXXV. Of the duties required <i>in</i> and <i>after</i> receiving the Lord’s supper <a href='#Page_268'>268</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>What meditations proper at this ordinance</i> <a href='#Page_269'>269</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Graces to be then exercised</i> <a href='#Page_270'>270</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>We are to rejoice in Christ’s love</i> <a href='#Page_273'>273</a></p>
-<p class='c008'><i>Properties of his love</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c007'><i>To renew our covenant, and how</i> <a href='#Page_275'>275</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>To express a love to all saints</i> <a href='#Page_276'>276</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>What behaviour unsuitable</i> ibid</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Vows, how to be made there</i> <a href='#Page_278'>278</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>How to be fulfilled</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c006'><i>A frequent attendance, how encouraged</i> <a href='#Page_280'>280</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLXXVI, CLXXVII. Wherein Baptism and the Lord’s supper agree, and wherein they differ <a href='#Page_281'>281</a>-284</p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLXXVIII. Of Prayer <a href='#Page_285'>285</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>Of the kinds and parts of prayer</i> <a href='#Page_287'>287</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Confession of sin the duty of all</i> <a href='#Page_288'>288</a></p>
-<p class='c008'><i>An objection answered</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c007'><i>How to be performed</i> <a href='#Page_290'>290</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>What sins to be confessed</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c008'><i>The sin of our nature</i> ibid</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><i>And all actual transgressions</i> <a href='#Page_291'>291</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Thankfulness for mercies, a duty</i> <a href='#Page_293'>293</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>In every age and condition of life</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c008'><i>For relative and personal mercies</i> <a href='#Page_294'>294</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLXXIX, CLXXX, CLXXXI. To whom, and in whose name we must pray <a href='#Page_298'>298</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_ix'>ix</span><i>We are to pray to God only</i> <a href='#Page_299'>299</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>What it is to pray in Christ’s name</i> <a href='#Page_300'>300</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Why we are to pray in his name</i> <a href='#Page_301'>301</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLXXXII, CLXXXIII, CLXXXIV. Of the Spirit’s help in prayer; for whom and for what we are to pray <a href='#Page_302'>302</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>The Spirits assistance in prayer</i> <a href='#Page_303'>303</a></p>
-<p class='c008'><i>What this supposes</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c007'><i>It respects the matter of prayer</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c008'><i>The inward frame of heart</i> <a href='#Page_304'>304</a></p>
-
-<p class='c008'><i>And the success of the duty</i> <a href='#Page_306'>306</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Of raised affections in prayer</i> <a href='#Page_308'>308</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Persons to be prayed for, are</i></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>The whole church militant</i> <a href='#Page_309'>309</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>The ministers of Christ</i> <a href='#Page_311'>311</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Our enemies, and all men living</i> <a href='#Page_312'>312</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Purgatory a fiction</i> <a href='#Page_315'>315</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>The dead are not to be prayed for</i> <a href='#Page_314'>314</a></p>
-<p class='c008'><i>The opinion of the ancients about it</i> <a href='#Page_315'>315</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Nor they who have sinned the sin unto death</i> <a href='#Page_318'>318</a></p>
-<p class='c008'><i>What that sin is</i> ibid</p>
-
-<p class='c008'><i>Whether now committed</i> <a href='#Page_319'>319</a></p>
-
-<p class='c008'><i>Doubts about it resolved</i> <a href='#Page_320'>320</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>What things we are to pray for</i> <a href='#Page_322'>322</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLXXXV. How we are to pray <a href='#Page_323'>323</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>With a suitable frame</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c007'><i>In the exercise of grace</i> <a href='#Page_324'>324</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>What necessary thereunto</i> <a href='#Page_334'>334</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Of faith in prayer</i> <a href='#Page_329'>329</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Promises of help in prayer</i> <a href='#Page_330'>330</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Promises of God’s hearing prayer</i> <a href='#Page_331'>331</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Objections against praying answered</i> <a href='#Page_332'>332</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Love to God to be exercised in prayer</i> <a href='#Page_333'>333</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Discouragements from praying removed</i> <a href='#Page_336'>336</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLXXXVI, CLXXXVII. Of the Rule for our direction in prayer <a href='#Page_338'>338</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>How the word of God directs herein</i> <a href='#Page_339'>339</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>What expressions equivalent to promises</i> <a href='#Page_342'>342</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Promises of outward blessings</i> <a href='#Page_344'>344</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Of spiritual and temporal</i> <a href='#Page_345'>345</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Promises to the afflicted</i> <a href='#Page_346'>346</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>To the depressed in prayer</i> <a href='#Page_347'>347</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_x'>x</span><i>Respecting ordinances</i> <a href='#Page_349'>349</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Of grace and peace</i> <a href='#Page_350'>350</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>How these are of use in prayer</i> <a href='#Page_351'>351</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Reproofs are of use in prayer</i> <a href='#Page_353'>353</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>So are prayers recorded in Scripture</i> <a href='#Page_354'>354</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Inferences from these directions</i> <a href='#Page_355'>355</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>The Lord’s prayer a special direction</i> <a href='#Page_356'>356</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CLXXXVIII, CLXXXIX. The Preface of the Lord’s Prayer explained <a href='#Page_359'>359</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>God, how a Father to men</i> <a href='#Page_360'>360</a></p>
-<p class='c008'><i>First known, then addressed as such</i> <a href='#Page_362'>362</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>How to be prayed to as being in heaven</i> <a href='#Page_365'>365</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Child-like dispositions required in us</i> <a href='#Page_364'>364</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CXC. The first Petition explained <a href='#Page_368'>368</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>God’s name, what meant by it</i> <a href='#Page_369'>369</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>How he sanctifies it himself</i> ibid</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>How sanctified in redemption</i> <a href='#Page_370'>370</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>How under the legal dispensation</i> <a href='#Page_371'>371</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>How under the gospel</i> <a href='#Page_373'>373</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>What intended by</i>, Hallowed be thy Name <a href='#Page_375'>375</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>What to be prayed for, that we may do it</i> <a href='#Page_376'>376</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>What to be deprecated to that end</i> <a href='#Page_379'>379</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>When God’s name is hallowed</i> <a href='#Page_381'>381</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>How, when things are disposed to his glory</i> <a href='#Page_382'>382</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CXCI. The second Petition explained <a href='#Page_384'>384</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>Of God’s providential kingdom</i> <a href='#Page_385'>385</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Of his kingdom of grace</i> <a href='#Page_386'>386</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Satan’s kingdom, how to be destroyed</i> <a href='#Page_387'>387</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>How we are to pray for its destruction</i> <a href='#Page_388'>388</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Christ’s kingdom, how to be advanced</i> <a href='#Page_389'>389</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>How we are to pray for its advancement</i> <a href='#Page_390'>390</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>And that his kingdom of glory may come</i> <a href='#Page_394'>394</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CXCII, The third Petition explained <a href='#Page_396'>396</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>Of prayer to an unchangeable God—in note</i> <a href='#Page_397'>397</a>-402</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Our averseness to the will of God</i> <a href='#Page_402'>402</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Of praying that his will may be done</i> <a href='#Page_403'>403</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CXCIII. The fourth Petition explained <a href='#Page_407'>407</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>What supposed in praying for daily bread</i> <a href='#Page_407'>407</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_xi'>xi</span><i>What intended in praying for bread</i> <a href='#Page_409'>409</a></p>
-<p class='c008'><i>Why we call it ours</i> <a href='#Page_410'>410</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>What we are to understand by</i> this day <a href='#Page_411'>411</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>This petition respects ourselves and others</i> <a href='#Page_412'>412</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CXCIV. The fifth Petition explained <a href='#Page_414'>414</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>The case of man when charged with guilt</i> <a href='#Page_415'>415</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>Pardon, none but God can give it</i> <a href='#Page_417'>417</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>All are to pray for it</i> <a href='#Page_418'>418</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>How God is to be considered when we pray thus</i> <a href='#Page_420'>420</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Of our forgiving others</i> <a href='#Page_425'>425</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>What meant thereby</i> <a href='#Page_424'>424</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Arguments to induce thereunto</i> <a href='#Page_426'>426</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Of doing it without satisfaction</i> ibid</p>
-<p class='c008'><i>An objection answered</i> <a href='#Page_428'>428</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>When a sign of God’s forgiving us</i> <a href='#Page_429'>429</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CXCV. The sixth Petition explained <a href='#Page_431'>431</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>What this Petition supposes</i> <a href='#Page_432'>432</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>How God tempts, and why</i> <a href='#Page_433'>433</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>God not the cause of sin—in note</i> <a href='#Page_433'>433</a>-435</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Deliver us from evil, <i>how understood</i> <a href='#Page_438'>438</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Temptations arise from prosperity</i> <a href='#Page_439'>439</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>From adversity</i> <a href='#Page_441'>441</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>From the flesh</i> <a href='#Page_442'>442</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>From Satan</i> <a href='#Page_443'>443</a></p>
-<p class='c008'><i>When from him, and when from ourselves</i> <a href='#Page_445'>445</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>Remarks upon Satan’s temptations</i> <a href='#Page_446'>446</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>They increase sin</i> <a href='#Page_448'>448</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Are suited to every age</i> <a href='#Page_449'>449</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>And to the tempers of men</i> <a href='#Page_451'>451</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>He endeavours to prevent conviction</i> <a href='#Page_452'>452</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>To hinder preaching the gospel</i> <a href='#Page_453'>453</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>To prevent closing with Christ</i> <a href='#Page_454'>454</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>He injects blasphemous thoughts</i> <a href='#Page_457'>457</a></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>He tempts to despair</i> <a href='#Page_458'>458</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>How we are to pray against temptation</i> <a href='#Page_461'>461</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CXCVI. What the conclusion of the Lord’s Prayer teacheth <a href='#Page_465'>465</a></p>
-<p class='c005'><i>The Doxology explained</i> <a href='#Page_466'>466</a></p>
-<p class='c007'><i>The pleas contained in it</i> <a href='#Page_467'>467</a></p>
-<p class='c006'><i>The meaning of the word</i> Amen <a href='#Page_468'>468</a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Whether all should say aloud</i>, Amen <a href='#Page_471'>471</a></p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_9'>9</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>THE <i>DOCTRINES</i> OF THE CHRISTIAN RELIGION EXPLAINED AND DEFENDED.</h2>
-</div>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c009'>Quest. CXXXVII., CXXXVIII., CXXXIX.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CXXXVII. <i>Which is the seventh Commandment?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The seventh Commandment is, [<i>Thou shalt not commit
-adultery.</i>]</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CXXXVIII. <i>What are the duties required in the seventh
-Commandment?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The duties required in the seventh Commandment, are,
-chastity in body, mind, affections, words, and behaviour;
-and the preservation of it in ourselves and others; watchfulness
-over the eyes, and all the senses; temperance, keeping
-of chaste company, modesty in apparel, marriage by
-those that have not the gift of continency; conjugal love,
-and cohabitation, diligent labour in our callings, shunning all
-occasions of uncleanness, resisting temptations thereunto.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest.</span> CXXXIX. <i>What are the sins forbidden in the seventh
-Commandment?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The sins forbidden in the seventh Commandment, besides
-the neglect of the duties required, are, adultery, fornication,
-rape, incest, sodomy, and all unnatural lusts, all
-unclean imaginations, thoughts, purposes, and affections, all
-corrupt or filthy communications, or listening thereunto;
-wanton looks, impudent, or light behaviour; immodest apparel;
-prohibiting of lawful, and dispensing with unlawful
-marriages, allowing, tolerating, keeping of stews, and resorting
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_10'>10</span>to them; intangling vows of single life; undue delay of
-marriage, having more wives or husbands than one, at the
-same time; unjust divorce, or desertion; idleness, gluttony,
-drunkenness, unchaste company, lascivious songs, books,
-pictures, dancings, stage plays, and all other provocations
-to, or acts of uncleanness, either in ourselves or others.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>This Commandment respects, more especially, the government
-of the affections, and the keeping our minds and
-bodies in such an holy frame, that nothing impure, immodest,
-or contrary to the strictest chastity, may defile, or be a reproach
-to us, or insinuate itself into our conversation with one
-another. And, in order thereunto, we are to set a strict watch
-over our thoughts and actions, and avoid every thing that may
-be an occasion of this sin, and use those proper methods that
-may prevent all temptations to it. Therefore we ought to
-associate ourselves with none but those whose conversation is
-chaste, and such as becomes Christians, to abhor all words
-and actions that are not so much as to be named among persons
-professing godliness. As for those who cannot, without
-inconveniency, govern their affections, but are sometimes
-tempted to any thing that is inconsistent with that purity of
-heart and life, which all ought religiously to maintain, it is
-their duty to enter into a married state; which is an ordinance
-that God has appointed, to prevent the breach of this
-Commandment. And this leads us to consider the sins forbidden
-therein, together with the occasions thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. Concerning the sins forbidden in this Commandment.
-And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Some are not only contrary to nature, but inconsistent
-with the least pretences to religion; which were abhorred by
-the very Heathen themselves, and, by the law of God, punished
-with death; which punishment, when it has not been inflicted,
-God has, by his immediate hand, testified his vengeance
-against sinners, by raining down fire and brimstone from
-heaven, as he did upon the inhabitants of Sodom and Gomorrha,
-Lev. xviii. 22,—25. chap. xx. 13, 15, 16. Rom. i. 24,
-26, 27, 28. Gen. xix. 24. These sins are called in this answer,
-incest, sodomy, and unnatural lusts. To which we may
-add, offering violence to others, and thereby forcing them to
-do what they could not even think of, but with abhorrence;
-this is called rape; and, by the law of God, the guilty person
-was punished with death, Deut. xxii. 25.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. There are other sins, whereby this Commandment is violated;
-which, though more common, are, nevertheless, such as
-are attended with a very great degree of guilt and impurity.
-These are either, such as are committed by those who are unmarried,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_11'>11</span><i>viz.</i> fornication, or by those who are married, as
-adultery; the latter of which, by the law of God, was punished
-with death, Lev. xx. 10. as contained in it several aggravating
-circumstances; inasmuch as hereby the marriage contract
-is violated; that mutual affection, which is the end of that
-relation broken; and thereby the greatest injury is done to the
-innocent as well as ruin brought on the guilty. However,
-both these sins agree in this, that they proceed from a corrupt
-heart; as our Saviour says, Mat. xv. 19. and argue the person
-that is guilty of them, alienated from the life of God.
-And to this we may add,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. That, another sin forbidden in this Commandment is,
-polygamy, or a having more husbands, or wives, than one, at
-the same time; together with that which often accompanies it,
-<i>viz.</i> concubinage. It is beyond dispute, that many good men
-have been guilty of this sin, as appears by what is recorded,
-in scripture, concerning Abraham, Jacob, David, <i>&amp;c.</i> and we
-do not find that they are expressly reproved for it, which has
-given occasion to some modern writers, to think that it was
-not unlawful in those ages, but was afterwards rendered so by
-being prohibited under the gospel-dispensation<a id='r1' /><a href='#f1' class='c012'><sup>[1]</sup></a>. This, indeed,
-cuts the knot of a very considerable difficulty; but it
-contains another that is equally great; inasmuch as hereby it
-does not appear to be contrary to the law of nature; and therefore
-I would rather chuse to take another method to solve it,
-viz. that many bad actions of good men are recorded in scripture,
-but not approved of, nor proposed for our imitation. Of
-this kind I must conclude the polygamy and concubinage of
-several holy men, mentioned in scripture, to have been. And
-that it may appear that this practice was not justifiable, let it
-be observed,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) That, some sin or other is often expressly mentioned,
-as the occasion hereof. Thus Abraham’s taking Hagar, was
-occasioned by Sarah’s unbelief; because the promise of her
-having a son was not immediately fulfilled, Gen. xvi. 1, 2.
-And Jacob’s taking Rachel to wife after Leah, and his own
-discontent arising from it, was occasioned by Laban’s unjust
-dealing with him, and his going in unto Bilhah, was occasioned
-by Rachel’s unreasonable desire of children; and his taking
-Zilpah, by Leah’s ambitious desire of having pre-eminence
-over Rachel, by the number of her children, chap. xxix, and
-xxx.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) This was generally attended with the breach of that
-peace, which is so desirable a blessing in families, and many
-disorders that ensued hereupon. Accordingly, we read of an
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_12'>12</span>irreconcilable quarrel that there was between Sarah and Hagar;
-and Ishmael’s hatred of Isaac, which the apostle calls <i>persecution</i>,
-Gal. iv. 39. And to this we may add, the contentions
-that were in Jacob’s family, and the envy expressed by the
-children of one of his wives, against those of another; and the
-opposition which one wife often expressed to another as that
-of Peninnah, one of the wives of Elkanah, to Hannah, the
-other. Therefore we must conclude, that Isaac’s example is
-rather to be followed in this matter, who had but one wife,
-and he loved her better than many of the patriarch’s did theirs;
-whose love was divided among several.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Object.</i> 1. If polygamy was a sin against the light of nature,
-it is strange, that it should be committed by good men; and,
-that they should live and die without repenting of it, nor be,
-in the least, reproved for it; as we do not find that they were,
-in scripture.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> It was indeed, a sin, which they might have known
-to be so, had they duly considered it, in all its circumstances
-and consequences; but this they did not; and therefore it was
-not so great a sin in them, as it would be in us, who have
-clearer discoveries of the heinous nature of it. Therefore, if
-we suppose they repented of all sin agreeably to the light they
-had, they might be saved; and this, though unrepented of,
-was no bar to their salvation, supposing they knew it not to
-be a sin; and God’s not having explicitly reproved them for
-it, argues only his forbearance, but not his approbation of it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Object.</i> 2. It is farther objected, that God says, by Nathan,
-to David, <i>I gave thee thy master’s wives into thy bosom</i>, 2
-Sam. xii. 8. therefore, that which God gives, it is not unlawful
-for man to receive.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> The meaning of that scripture in general, is, that
-God made him king; and then, according to the custom of
-the eastern kings, he took possession of what belonged to his
-predecessor, and consequently of his wives. Therefore God
-might be said to give David Saul’s wives providentially, in
-giving him the kingdom; so that they were his property, that
-he might take them for his own, according to custom, if he
-was inclined so to do. And this the kings of Judah generally
-did; though it does not follow from hence that God approved
-of it; in like manner as tyrants may be said to be raised up
-by God’s providence and permission; nevertheless, he does
-not approve of their tyranny.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>All that we shall add, under this head, to what has been
-suggested, concerning the disorders that polygamy has occasioned
-in families, is, that it is contrary to the first institution
-of marriage. God created but one woman as an help-meet
-for Adam; though, if ever there were any pretence for the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_13'>13</span>necessity of one man’s having more wives, it must have been
-in that instance, in which it seemed necessary for the increase
-of the world; but he rather chose that mankind should be
-propagated by slower advances, than to give the least dispensation,
-or indulgence to polygamy, as being contrary to the
-law of nature, Gen. ii. 22,-24. And the prophet, in Mal.
-ii. 15. takes notice of God’s <i>making but one</i>; though he had
-<i>the residue of the Spirit</i>; and therefore could have given Adam
-more wives than one. And the reason assigned for this was,
-that <i>he might seek a godly seed</i>, i. e. that the children that
-should be born of many wives, might not be the result of the
-ungodly practice of their father, as it would be, were this contrary
-to the law of nature; which we suppose it to be. This
-I rather understand by <i>a godly seed</i>, and not that the character
-of <i>godly</i> refers to the children; for these could not be said
-to be godly, or ungodly, as the consequence of their parents
-having one or more wives.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There is one scripture more that I cannot wholly pass over,
-which, to me, seems a plain prohibition of polygamy, in Levit.
-xviii. 18. <i>Thou shalt not take a wife to her sister, to vex her,
-to uncover her nakedness, besides the other in her life-time.</i>
-This respects either incest or polygamy; one of which must be
-meant by <i>taking a wife to her sister</i>. Now it cannot be a
-prohibition of incest; because it is said, <i>Thou shalt not</i> do it
-<i>in her life-time</i>; which plainly intimates, that it might be done
-after her death. Whereas it is certainly contrary to the law
-of God and nature, for a person to take his wife’s sister after
-her decease, as well as in her life-time. Therefore the meaning
-is, Thou shalt not take another wife to her whom thou
-hast married; by which means they will become sisters. And
-here is another reason assigned hereof, <i>viz.</i> the envy, jealousy,
-and vexation that would attend such a practice, as the taking
-another wife would be a means of vexing, or making her uneasy.
-And therefore the sense is, as is observed in the marginal
-reading; <i>Thou shalt not take one wife to another</i>; or,
-Thou shalt not have more wives than one. This is a plain
-prohibition of this sin; but whether some holy men, in following
-ages, understood the meaning of this law, may be questioned;
-and therefore they were not sensible of the guilt they
-hereby contracted. Thus we have considered some of the
-sins forbidden in this Commandment. Every particular instance
-of the breach hereof, would exceed our intended brevity,
-on the subject we are treating of. Therefore,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We shall proceed to consider the aggravations, more especially,
-of the sins of fornication and adultery; which may also
-with just reason, be applied to all other unnatural lusts; which
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_14'>14</span>have been before considered as a breach of this Commandment.
-And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] They are opposite to sanctification, even as darkness is
-to light, hell to heaven; thus the apostle opposes fornication
-and uncleanness, to it, 1 Thes. iv. 3, 7.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] These sins are inconsistent with that relation, we pretend
-to stand in, to Christ, as members of his body; inasmuch
-as we join ourselves in a confederacy with his profligate enemies,
-1 Cor. vi. 15, 16. And to this we may add, that they
-are a dishonour to, and a defilement of our own bodies, which
-ought to be the temples of the Holy Ghost, and therefore should
-be consecrated to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] They bring guilt and ruin on two persons at once, as
-well as a blot and stain on each of their families, and a wound
-to religion by those who make any profession of it, as it <i>gives
-occasion to the enemies of the Lord to blaspheme</i>, Prov. vi. 33.
-2 Sam. xii. 14.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[4.] They bring with them many other sins; as they tend
-to vitiate the affections, deprave the mind, defile the conscience,
-and provoke God to give persons up to spiritual judgments,
-which will end in their running into all excess of riot.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And to this we may add, that many sad consequences
-will ensue on the commission of these sins; as they tend to
-blast and ruin their substance in the world, Job xxxi. 9, 11,
-12. debase and stupify the soul, and deprive it of wisdom,
-Hos. iv. 11. Prov. vi. 32. chap. vii. 22. wound the conscience,
-and expose the person who is guilty hereof, to the utmost hazard
-of perishing for ever, chap. vi. 33. chap. vii. 13, 19, 26,
-27. And if God is pleased to give him repentance, it will be
-attended with great bitterness, Eccl. vii. 26.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. We are now to consider the occasion of these sins to be
-avoided by those who would not break this Commandment,
-and these are,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Intemperance, or excess in eating or drinking; the former
-of which is a making provision for the flesh, to fulfil the
-lusts thereof; the latter confounds and buries the little reason
-a person was master of, and makes him an easy prey to temptation.
-This was Lot’s case, who kept his integrity in Sodom;
-yet being made drunk by his daughters in Zoar, he committed
-the abominable sin of incest with them, Gen. xix. 31.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. Idleness, consisting either in the neglect of business, or
-indulging too much sleep, which occasions many temptations.
-Thus David first gave way to sloth, and then was tempted to
-uncleanness; and it is observed, that <i>at the time when kings go
-forth to battle</i>, 2 Sam. xi. 1, 2. and he ought to have been
-with his army in the field, he tarried at Jerusalem, and slept in
-the middle of the day; for <i>in the evening tide he arose from
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_15'>15</span>off his bed</i>; And the heinous sin he was guilty of, which was
-the greatest blemish in his life, ensued hereupon.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. Pride in apparel, or other ornaments, beyond the bounds
-of modesty, or for other ends than what God, when he clothed
-man at first, intended; when our attire is inconsistent with our
-circumstances in the world, or the character of persons professing
-godliness: This God reproves the Jews for, when
-grown very degenerate, and near to ruin, Isa. iii. 16, <i>&amp;c.</i> <i>seq.</i>
-And Jezebel, when Jehu came in quest of her, <i>painted her
-face, and tired her head</i>; but this did not prevent his executing
-God’s righteous judgments upon her. All these things
-are mentioned as the sins for which Sodom was infamous;
-and gave occasion to those other abominations, which
-provoked God to destroy them, Ezek. xvi. 49. And to this
-we may add,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. Keeping evil company: Thus it is said of the lewd woman,
-<i>she hath cast down many wounded</i>, Prov. vii. 26. This
-will hasten our own ruin; especially if we associate ourselves
-with such persons out of choice: for it is a sign that our
-hearts are exceedingly depraved and alienated from God: Nevertheless,
-if Providence cast our lot amongst bad company,
-we may escape that guilt and defilement, which would otherwise
-ensue, if we bear our testimony against their sin, and are
-<i>grieved</i> for it, as Lot was for the filthy conversation of the Sodomites,
-among whom he dwelt, 2 Pet. ii. 7, 8. Moreover, the
-frequenting those places where there are mixed dancing, masquerades,
-stage-plays, <i>&amp;c.</i> which tend to corrupt the principles
-and practices, and seldom fail of defiling the consciences, and
-manners of those who attend on them: These are nurseries of
-vice, and give occasion to this sin, and many others, Prov. vi.
-27, compared with 32.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As for the remedies against it, these are, an exercising a
-constant watchfulness against all temptations thereunto, chap.
-viii. 9. avoiding all conversation with men or books which tend
-to corrupt the mind, and fill it with levity, under a pretence of
-improving it: But more especially a retaining a constant sense
-of God’s all-seeing eye, his infinite purity and vindictive justice,
-which will induce us to say as Joseph did, in the like case,
-<i>How can I do this great wickedness and sin against God</i>, Gen.
-xxxix. 9.<a id='r2' /><a href='#f2' class='c012'><sup>[2]</sup></a></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_16'>16</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CXL., CXLI.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXL.</span> <i>Which is the eighth Commandment?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The eighth Commandment is, [<i>Thou shalt not steal.</i>]</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXLI.</span> <i>What are the duties required in the eighth
-Commandment?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The duties required in the eighth Commandment are,
-truth, faithfulness, and justice in contracts, and commerce
-between man and man; rendering to every one his due;
-restitution of goods unlawfully detained from the right
-owners thereof; giving, and lending freely, according to our
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_17'>17</span>abilities, and the necessities of others; moderation of our
-judgments, wills, and affections, concerning worldly goods;
-a provident care and study to get, keep, use, and dispose
-those things which are necessary and convenient for the sustentation
-of our nature, and suitable to our condition; a
-lawful calling, and diligence in it; frugality, avoiding unnecessary
-law-suits, and suretyship, or other like engagements;
-and an endeavour, by all just and lawful means, to
-procure, preserve, and further the wealth and outward estate
-of others, as well as our own.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>This Commandment supposes, that God has given to every
-one a certain portion of the good things of this world,
-that he may lay claim to as his own; which no other has a
-right to. The general scope and design thereof, is to put us
-upon using endeavours to promote our own and our neighbour’s
-wealth and outward estate. As to what concerns ourselves,
-it respects the government of our affections, and setting
-due bounds to our desires of worldly things, that they may not
-exceed what the good providence of God has allotted for us, in
-order to our comfortable passage through this world. Thus
-Agar prays, <i>Give me neither poverty nor riches; feed me with
-food convenient for me</i>, Prov. xxx. 8.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to what respects our endeavours to gain the world; it
-requires a due care and diligence, to get, and keep a competency
-thereof; that we may not, through our own default, expose
-ourselves to those straits and necessities which are the consequence
-of sloth and negligence, chap. xxiii. 21. chap. xxiv. 30,
-31. God may, indeed, give estates to some without any pains,
-or care to get them, Deut. vi. 10, 11. yet, even in this case,
-sloth is a sin which brings with it many hurtful lusts, that render
-riches a snare, and hindrance to their spiritual welfare:
-Therefore they, who are in prosperous circumstances in the
-world, ought not to lay aside all care and industry to improve,
-what they have to the glory of God. But, on the other hand,
-they who are in a low condition, ought to use a provident care
-and diligence, in order to their having a comfortable subsistence
-therein. Accordingly this Commandment obliges us to
-use all lawful endeavours to promote our own and our neighbour’s
-wealth, and outward estate.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. To promote our own wealth and estate. This we are
-to do,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. By frugality in our expences, avoiding profuseness; and
-that, either in giving away our substance to unfit objects, to
-wit, those who are in better circumstances than ourselves, who
-ought to be givers rather than receivers, Prov. xxii. 16. or
-else in making large contributions to support a bad cause, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_18'>18</span>in consuming our substance on our lusts. Likewise when we
-are unwarily profuse in those expences, which would be otherwise
-lawful, did they not exceed our circumstances or income
-in the world, which contains a disregard of the future estate of
-our families, and taking a method to reduce ourselves and
-them to poverty, 1 Tim. v. 8. Or, if our circumstances will
-admit of large expenses; yet, to abound therein, merely out
-of ostentation, and at the same time, to withhold our liberality
-from the poor is inconsistent with frugality.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We ought also to be diligent, and industrious in our
-calling; and, in order thereunto,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) We are wisely to make choice of such a calling, in
-which we may glorify God, and expect his blessing, in order
-to the promoting our wealth and outward estate; therefore
-that business is to be chosen which we are most capable of managing,
-and has in itself the fewest temptations attending it;
-especially such wherein the conscience is not burdened by unlawful
-oaths, or prostituting solemn ordinances, not designed
-by Christ as a qualification for them. Moreover, we are not to
-choose those callings wherein the gain is obtained by oppression
-or extortion, and which cannot be managed without danger
-of sinning; which will bring the blast of providence on all
-our undertakings. Therefore we are earnestly to desire God’s
-direction in this weighty concern, as well as depend on him
-for success therein, Eccl. ix. 11. Deut. viii. 18.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) When we have made choice of a lawful calling, we are
-to manage it in such a way, that we may expect the blessing
-of God, in order to the promoting our wealth and outward
-estate. Accordingly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] Let us pursue and manage it with right and warrantable
-ends, to wit, the glory of God; and, in subordination
-thereunto, our providing for ourselves and families, that we
-may be in a capacity of doing good to others, and serving the
-interest of Christ in our day and generation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] Let us take heed that our secular employments do not
-rob God of that time, which ought to be devoted to his worship;
-and that our hearts be not alienated from him, so that while
-we are labouring for the world, we should live without God
-therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] Let us take heed that we do not launch out too far, or
-run too great hazards in trade, resolving that we will be suddenly
-rich or poor, which may tend to the ruin of our own families,
-as well as others, 1 Tim. vi. 9.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[4.] Let us bear disappointments in our callings, with patience
-and submission to the will of God, without murmuring
-or repining at his wise and sovereign dispensations of providence
-herein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_19'>19</span>II. This Commandment obliges us to promote the wealth
-and outward estate of our neighbour. This we are to do, by
-exercising strict justice in our contracts and dealings with all
-men; and by relieving the wants and necessities of those who
-stand in need of our charity.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. As to what respects the exercise of justice in our dealings.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) We must take heed, that we do not exact upon, or take
-unreasonable profit of those whom we deal with, arising from
-the ignorance of some, and the necessities of others, Jer. iii. 15.
-Neither, must we use any methods to supplant and ruin others,
-against the laws of trade, by selling goods at a cheaper rate
-than any one can afford them, thereby doing damage to ourselves
-with a design to ruin them, who are less able to bear such
-a loss.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) Those goods, which we know to be faulty, are not, by
-false arts, or deceitful words, to be sold, as though they were
-not so, Amos viii. 6. And, on the other hand, the buyer is not
-to take advantage of the ignorance of the seller, as it sometimes
-happens; neither is he to pretend that it is worth less than he
-really thinks it to be, Prov. xx. 14.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) Nothing is to be diminished in weight or measure,
-from what was bought, worse goods to be delivered than what
-were purchased, Amos vii. 5. nor the <i>balances to be falsified
-by deceit</i>, Deut. xxv. 13, 14, 15.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We are to promote the good of our poor distressed neighbour,
-in works of charity; and that not only by inward sympathy,
-or bowels of compassion towards him; but according to
-our ability, by relieving him. To induce us hereunto, let us
-consider, that outward good things are talents given us, with
-this view, that hereby we may be in a capacity of helping
-others, as well as be needing help ourselves. And when we
-do this, we may be said to improve what we have received
-from God, as those who are accountable to him for it, and testify
-our gratitude to him for outward blessings. It may also be
-considered, that Christ takes such acts of kindness, when proceeding
-from an unfeigned love to him, as done to himself,
-Matt. xxv. 40. Prov. xix. 17. And, to this we may add, that
-there are many special motives, taken from the objects of our
-charity, namely, the pressing necessities of some, the excelling
-holiness of others; and, in some instances, we may consider,
-that, by an act of charity, whereby we relieve one, we do good
-to many; or the tendency that this may have to promote the
-interest of Christ in general, when we relieve those that suffer
-for the sake of the gospel. This leads us to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Of whom works of charity are required. If this be duly
-weighed, we shall find, that scarce any are exempted from
-this duty, except it be those of whom it may be said, there are
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_20'>20</span>none poorer than themselves, or who have no more than what
-is absolutely necessary to support their families, or such as are
-labouring hard, to spare out of their necessary expenses, what
-will but just serve to pay their debts; or they who are reduced
-to such straits as to depend upon others, so that they can call
-nothing they have their own.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Nevertheless, this duty is incumbent;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] On the rich, out of their abundance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] On those who are in middle circumstances in the world,
-who have a sufficiency to lay out in superfluous expenses:
-And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] Even the poor ought to give a small testimony of their
-gratitude to God, by sparing a little, if they can, out of what
-they get in the world, for those who are poorer than themselves;
-which, if it be but a few mites, it may be an acceptable
-sacrifice to God, Luke xxi. 2, 4. and, if persons have nothing
-before hand in the world, they ought to work for this end, as
-well as to maintain themselves and families, Eph. iv. 28.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We are now to consider, who are to be reckoned objects
-of our charity. To which it may be answered; Not the rich,
-who stand in no need of it, from whom we may expect a sufficient
-requital, Luke xiv. 12, 13, 14. nor those who are strong
-and healthy, but yet make a trade of begging, because it is an
-idle and sometimes a profitable way of living, 2 Thess. iii.
-10-12. But such are to be relieved, who are not able to work;
-especially if they were not reduced to poverty by their own
-sloth and negligence, but by the providence of God not succeeding
-their endeavours; and if, while they were able, they
-were ready to all works of charity themselves, 1 Tim. v. 10. and
-to these we may add, such who are related to us, either in the
-bonds of nature, or in a spiritual sense, Gal. vi. 10. This leads
-us to enquire,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) What part, or proportion of our substance, we are to
-apply to charitable uses? In answer to this, let it be considered,
-that the circumstances of persons in the world being so various,
-as well as their necessary occasions for extraordinary
-expenses, it is impossible to give a general rule, to be observed
-by all. However, it must be premised,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] That our present contributions, ought not to preclude
-all thoughts, about laying up for ourselves or families, for time
-to come.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] Whatever proportion we give of our gain in the world,
-some abatements may reasonably be made for losses in trade;
-especially if what we give was not determined, or laid aside,
-for that use before the loss happened. As to what may farther
-be observed concerning this matter, it ought to be left to
-the impartial determination of every one, who is to act, as being
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_21'>21</span>sensible that he is accountable to God herein. The apostle
-lays down one general rule; <i>Every man, according as he purposeth
-in his heart, so let him give; not grudgingly, or of necessity;
-for God loveth a cheerful giver</i>, 2 Cor. ix. 7. But
-though we pretend not to determine the exact proportion
-which ought to be given, <i>viz.</i> whether it be a tenth part of
-their profits, or more, or less; yet it is highly reasonable, that
-every one should contribute as much in works of charity, as
-he lays out in mere superfluities; or, at least, spare a part out
-of his superfluous expenses, for charitable uses. And there
-are some occasions which may call for large contributions.
-Thus <i>the churches in Macedonia</i> are commended, not only for
-their <i>giving according to</i>, but <i>beyond their power</i>, chap. viii.
-1, 2, 3. <i>Three</i> things may be here considered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, The extreme necessities of those whom we are bound
-to take care of; and, sometimes, the distressed circumstances
-of the church of God, in general, require larger contributions
-than ordinary; which was the occasion of the Command mentioned
-by our Saviour, of selling all, and giving to the poor,
-which was put in practice in the infancy of the church, or the
-first planting of the gospel, at Jerusalem.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, Extraordinary instances of the kindness of God, in
-prospering us, either in worldly or spiritual concerns, beyond
-our expectation, call for extraordinary expressions of gratitude
-to God, in laying by for the poor, 1 Cor. xvi. 2.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, When we have committed great sins, or are under
-very humbling providences, whether personal or national, as
-being exposed to, or fearing the judgments of God, which
-seem to be approaching; this calls for deep humiliation, and,
-together therewith, proportionable acts of charity.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) We are now to consider, with what frame of spirit
-works of charity are to be performed? To which, it may be
-answered, that they are to be performed prudently, as our own
-circumstances will permit, and the necessity of the object requires;
-also seasonably, not putting this duty off till another
-time, when the necessities of those, whom we are bound to relieve,
-call for present assistance, Prov. ii. 28. It is also to be
-done secretly, as not desiring to be seen of men, or commended
-by them for it, Matt. vi. 3, 4, and cheerfully, 2 Cor. ix. 7.
-also with tenderness and compassion to those whose necessities
-call for relief, as considering how soon God can reduce us
-to the same extremity which they are exposed to, who are the
-objects of our charity. It ought to be done likewise with
-thankfulness to God, that has made us givers, rather than receivers,
-Acts x. 35. and, as a testimony of our love to Christ,
-especially when we contribute to the necessities of his members,
-Matt. x. 42.</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_22'>22</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CXLII.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXLII.</span> <i>What are the sins forbidden in the eighth Commandment?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The sins forbidden in the eighth Commandment, besides
-the neglect of the duties required, are, theft, robbery,
-man-stealing, and receiving any thing that is stolen, fraudulent
-dealing, false weights and measures, removing landmarks,
-injustice and unfaithfulness in contracts between man
-and man, or in matters of trust; oppression, extortion, usury,
-bribery, vexatious law-suits, unjust inclosures, and depopulations;
-ingrossing commodities to enhance the price,
-unlawful callings, and all other unjust, or sinful ways of
-taking, or withholding from our neighbour what belongs to
-him, or of enriching ourselves. Covetousness, inordinate
-prizing and affecting worldly goods; distrustful and distracting
-cares and studies in getting, keeping, and using them,
-envying at the prosperity of others. As likewise idleness,
-prodigality, wasteful gaming, and all other ways whereby
-we do unduly prejudice our own outward estate; and defrauding
-ourselves of the due use and comfort of that estate
-which God hath given us.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>This Commandment forbids, in general all kind of theft;
-and may include in it that which is very seldom called
-by this name, to wit, the robbing of ourselves and families;
-which we may be said to do, by neglecting our worldly calling,
-or by the imprudent management thereof. Also, by lending
-larger sums of money than our circumstances will well bear,
-to those who are never like to pay it again; or, which is in effect
-the same, by being surety for such. Moreover we rob
-ourselves and families, by being profuse and excessive in our
-expenses; and by consuming what we have, while pursuing
-our pleasures more than business; or by gaming, whereby we
-run the risque of losing part of our substance, and thereby reducing
-ourselves, or others, to poverty. On the other hand,
-we rob ourselves and families, when, out of a design to lay up
-a great deal for the time to come, we deprive ourselves and
-them, of the common necessaries of life, which is, in effect, to
-starve for the present, to prevent our starving for the future.
-But, passing this by, we shall consider this Commandment
-more especially, as it respects our defrauding others; and this
-is done,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. By taking away any part of their wealth, or worldly substance.
-This is generally known by the name of theft, and
-that, with the greatest severity, in proportion to its aggravations;
-and they who are guilty of it, are, without repentance,
-excluded from the kingdom of God, 1 Cor. vi. 9, 10. However,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_23'>23</span>let it be considered, that every kind of theft does not deserve
-an equal degree of punishment from men; for sometimes
-hereby the owner of what was stolen, receives but little damage;
-though in this case, some punishment, short of death,
-ought to be inflicted, to reform the wicked person, and deter
-him from going on in the breach of this Commandment, from
-less to greater sins.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>By the law of God, a simple theft was punished with restitution
-of double, and sometimes, four times as much as the
-damage amounted to, which was sustained thereby, Exod. xxii.
-1, 4, 7. Yet, in other cases, the theft was punished with death,
-when it had in it some circumstances that aggravated it in an
-uncommon degree; as if an house, which ought to be reckoned
-a man’s castle, be broke open, and that, in the night-time,
-when he is in no condition of defending himself, or his worldly
-substance. In this case the law is not unjust, that punishes
-the thief with death; and this is supposed in that law which
-says, that he that kills such an one who <i>breaks up</i> his neighbour’s
-house by night, shall have <i>no blood shed for him</i>, ver.
-2. But, in other instances, confinement, and hard labour, may
-be as effectual a way to put a stop to this sin; and is rather to
-be chosen than punishment with death. Thus concerning this
-Commandment, as broken by theft.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. It is farther broken, by unfaithfulness, or breach of trust;
-whether the trust he devolved on us by nature, as that of parents
-towards their children; or by contract, as that of servants,
-who are entrusted with the goods and secrets of their masters;
-or, that which is founded in the desire and request of those
-who constitute persons executors to their wills, or guardians
-to orphans, under age, provided they accept of this trust; I
-say, if these violate their trust, by embezzling or squandering
-away the substance of others, defrauding them, to enrich themselves.
-This is not only theft, but perfidiousness, and highly
-provoking to God; and deserves a more severe punishment
-from men, than is usually inflicted.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>III. This Commandment may be said to be broken, by borrowing,
-and not paying just debts; as the Psalmist says, <i>The
-wicked borroweth and payeth not again</i>, Psal. xxxvii. 21. Nevertheless,
-there are some cases in which a man is not guilty
-hereof, though he borrows and does not pay, <i>viz.</i> If, when he
-borrowed, there was a probability of his being able to repay it;
-or otherwise, if he discovered his circumstances fully to him,
-of whom he borrowed, to whom it would hereby appear, whether
-there was any likelihood of paying him or not; or if he
-gave full conviction, when he borrowed, that he was able to
-pay, but the providence of God, without his own default, has
-rendered him unable; in this case mercy is to be shewn him,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_24'>24</span>and he is not to be reckoned a breaker of this Commandment.
-However, a person is guilty of the breach hereof, in borrowing,
-and not paying debts.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. If the borrower pretends his circumstances to be better
-than they are, and so makes the lender believe, that, in a limited
-time, he shall be able to repay him; when, in his own conscience,
-he apprehends that there is no probability hereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. When a person was in such circumstances at the time of
-his borrowing, that by industry in his calling, he might be able
-to pay the creditor; but, by neglect of business, or embezzling
-his substance, he renders himself unable to pay, such an one is
-chargeable with the breach of this Commandment.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. If pity be shewn, by compounding for a part, instead of
-the whole debt, in case of present insolvency; though the
-debtor, in form of law, be discharged, with the creditor’s consent;
-yet the law of God and nature, obliges him to pay the
-whole debt, if providence makes him able hereafter; or else
-he can hardly be excused from the breach of this Commandment.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This leads us to enquire, what judgment we may pass on
-the Israelites <i>borrowing of the Egyptians jewels of silver, and
-jewels of gold</i>; which we read of in Exod. xii. 35. whether
-they were herein guilty of the breach of this Commandment.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> The word<a id='r3' /><a href='#f3' class='c012'><sup>[3]</sup></a> which we render <i>borrowed</i>, might as
-well be rendered <i>asked</i>, or <i>demanded</i>. And so we must suppose,
-that the Egyptians were so desirous that the Israelites
-should be gone, apprehending, that if they continued, they
-were all dead men, that they might have of them whatever
-they demanded, as necessary for this expedition; and, if they
-came back again, as they supposed they should, they would be
-obliged to return them. If this be the sense of the Hebrew
-word, there is no difficulty in the text, nor any appearance of
-the breach of this Commandment.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But since the sense of the word is indeterminate, signifying
-to <i>demand</i>, as well as to <i>borrow</i>, as was before observed, God’s
-order imports the former; though they might understand it in
-the latter, as denoting a borrowing with a design to restore.
-Therefore, let it be considered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) That they did this by God’s command, who has a right
-to take away the goods that one possesses, if he pleases, and
-give them to another; for he takes away nothing but his own.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_25'>25</span>Now, that they had his warrant for borrowing or demanding
-these things of the Egyptians, appears from the second
-verse.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) The reason why God ordered them to do this, if we
-look beyond his absolute sovereignty, was, because the Israelites
-deserved them as wages, for their hard service; and this
-might be reckoned a reward of the good offices that Joseph
-had done to that kingdom; which had been long since forgotten.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) As to what concerns the Israelites, it is probable, they
-expected nothing else but to return again, and restore to the
-owners what they had borrowed of them, after they had sacrificed
-to God in the wilderness; at least, they were wholly passive,
-and disposed to follow the divine conduct, by the hand
-of Moses. And when they were in the wilderness, they could
-not restore what they had borrowed, since the owners thereof,
-as is more than probable, were drowned in the Red Sea, whose
-revenge and covetousness, as well as Pharaoh’s orders, prompted
-them to follow them. Or if some of the owners might have
-been heard of, as yet surviving, their right to what was borrowed
-of them, was forfeited, by reason of the hostile pursuit
-of Pharaoh and his hosts, which put them into a state of war.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This may lead us farther to enquire, what judgment we may
-pass on the many ravages and plunders that are generally made
-by armies engaged in war; whether they may be reckoned a
-breach of this Commandment? And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] It is beyond dispute, that, if the war be unjust, as all
-the blood that is shed, is murder, or a breach of the sixth
-Commandment; so all the damage that is done by burning of
-houses, or taking away the goods of those against whom it is
-carried on, is a breach of this Commandment. But,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] If we suppose the war to be just, and the damage done
-only to those who are immediately concerned in it, and that it
-is an expedient to procure peace; it is unquestionably lawful,
-and no breach of this Commandment. Thus when the Israelites
-were commanded to destroy the inhabitants of the land of
-Canaan, as criminals, they were admitted to seize on the spoil
-of other nations, who were remote from them, Deut. xx. 14,
-15. when conquered by them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] As for those plunders and robberies which are committed
-on private persons, who are not concerned in the war any
-otherwise than as subjects of the government, against which it
-is undertaken; and especially, if their loss has no direct tendency
-to procure peace; this can hardly be justified from being
-a breach of this Commandment.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>IV. This Commandment is also broken by oppression;
-whereby the rich may be said to rob, and even swallow up the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_26'>26</span>poor, Psal. xiv. 4. Psal. x. 9. Micah iii. 2, 3. Now there are
-various ways by which persons may be said to oppress others.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. By engrossing those goods which are necessary for food
-or clothing, thereby to enhance the price thereof, whereby the
-poor are brought into great extremities.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. When persons enrich themselves out of the unmerciful
-labour exacted of their servants, whom they will hardly suffer
-to live, to eat the just reward of their service. Such a master
-was Laban to Jacob, Gen. xxxi. 41, 42.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. When landlords turn their tenants out of their houses or
-farms, when they find that they get a comfortable subsistence
-by their industry, taking occasion from thence, to raise their
-rent, in proportion to the success God gives them therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. When the rich make the poor suffer by long delays, to
-pay their debts, that they may gain advantage by the improvement
-of that money which they ought to have paid them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>V. A person may be said to break this Commandment, by
-engaging in unjust and vexatious law-suits. However, it is
-to be owned, that going to law is not, at all times, unjust; for
-it is sometimes a relief against oppression; and it is agreeable
-to the law of nature for every one to defend his just rights;
-and for this reason God appointed judges, (to determine such-like
-causes) to whom the people were to have recourse, that
-they might <i>shew them the sentence of judgment</i>, Deut. xvii. 8,
-9. Nevertheless, we must sometimes conclude law-suits to
-be oppressive; as,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. When the rich make use of the law, to prevent, or prolong
-the payment of their debts, or to take away the rights of
-the poor, who, as they suppose, will rather suffer injuries than
-attempt to defend themselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. When bribes are either given or taken, with a design to
-pervert justice, 1 Sam. viii. 2. And to this we may add, that
-the person who pleads an unrighteous cause, concealing the
-known truth, perverting the sense of the law, or alleging
-that for law or fact, which he knows not to be so; and the
-judge who passes sentence against his conscience, respecting
-the person of the rich, and brow-beating the poor; these are all
-confederates in oppression; and such methods of proceeding,
-are beyond dispute, a breach of this Commandment.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> Our Saviour forbids going to law, though it were to
-recover our just rights; when he says, <i>If any man will sue thee
-at the law, and take away thy coat, let him have thy cloke also</i>,
-Matt. v. 40.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied; that some things may be
-omitted for prudential reasons, which would not otherwise be
-unlawful to be done. Our Saviour does not forbid using our
-endeavours, in a legal way, to recover our right in all cases;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_27'>27</span>but more especially at that time, when his followers could
-hardly expect to meet with justice. And, it may be, they
-were oppressed by fines, or distress, laid on them, for their
-embracing Christianity; in this case he advises them, patiently
-to bear injuries, when they could hardly expect relief from
-their unjust judges.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>VI. This Commandment is broken by extortion, or oppressive
-usury. Thus it is said of the righteous man, <i>He putteth
-not out his money to usury</i>, Psal. xv. 5. The word<a id='r4' /><a href='#f4' class='c012'><sup>[4]</sup></a> signifies
-<i>biting</i> usury; which is, beyond dispute, unlawful. We
-have elsewhere considered in what cases the Israelites might
-take usury, and when not<a id='r5' /><a href='#f5' class='c012'><sup>[5]</sup></a>. And, upon the whole, it is certainly
-unlawful, to exact more than the legal rate or worth of
-the loan of money; or to exact any usury of the poor; especially
-for that which was borrowed to supply them with the
-necessaries of life.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Having considered in what instances this Commandment is
-broken, we proceed to shew, what a person ought to do, who
-has been guilty of the breach thereof, in any of the forementioned
-instances, in order to his making restitution for the injuries
-he has done to his neighbour. This ought always to
-attend the exercise of sincere repentance in those who have
-been guilty of this sin, of which we have an instance in Zaccheus,
-Luke xix. 8. and the neglect hereof will be like a worm
-at the root of ill gotten estates, and will be little better than a
-continual theft.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> 1. To this it is objected, that this may be a prejudice
-to our reputation, by making our crime public, which before
-was only known to ourselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That, what we do in this matter, is not really a reproach,
-but an honour; and it is hardly to be supposed, that he, to
-whom we perform so just and unexpected a duty, will be so
-barbarous as to divulge or improve this against us, to our disadvantage.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. There are private ways of retaliation, whereby the injured
-party may receive what is sent to him, in a way of restitution,
-and not know from whom it comes; or, good turns may
-be done to him, in a way of compensation for the damages he
-has received, and he not know, that they are done with this
-design; and, by this means, we disburden our consciences,
-perform a necessary duty, and, at the same time, prevent the
-supposed ill-consequences that might attend it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> 2. It is farther objected, that sometimes the making
-restitution is impracticable; as when the person injured is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_28'>28</span>dead, and we know of none that has a right to receive it. And
-sometimes we may have been guilty of so many instances of
-fraud and oppression, and, that to such a great number of persons,
-that it is next to impossible, to make restitution.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied; that when it is impossible
-for us to make restitution to those whom we have injured; or,
-when we know of none that survive them, who have a right
-to receive it, the best expedient, I apprehend, we can make
-use of, is, to give it to the poor; for, since it is not, in justice,
-our own, we do, as it were, hereby give it to the Lord, who
-is the original proprietor of all things.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CXLIII., CXLIV., CXLV.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXLIII.</span> <i>What is the ninth Commandment?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The ninth Commandment is, [<i>Thou shalt not bear false
-witness against thy neighbour</i>.]</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXLIV.</span> <i>What are the duties required in the ninth
-Commandment?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The duties required in the ninth Commandment are,
-the preserving and promoting of truth between man and
-man, and the good name of our neighbour as well as our
-own. Appearing, and standing for, and from the heart,
-sincerely, freely, clearly, and fully, speaking the truth, and
-only the truth, in matters of judgment and justice, and in
-all other things whatsoever; a charitable esteem of our
-neighbours; loving, desiring, and rejoicing in their good
-name, sorrowing for, and covering of their infirmities; freely
-acknowledging their gifts and graces; defending their innocency;
-a ready receiving of a good report, and unwillingness
-to admit an evil report concerning them, discouraging
-tale-bearers, flatterers, and slanderers; love and care of our
-own good name, and defending it when need requireth,
-keeping of lawful promises, studying and practising of whatsoever
-things are true, honest, lovely, and of good report.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXLV.</span> <i>What are the sins forbidden in the ninth
-Commandment?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The sins forbidden in the ninth Commandment, are,
-all prejudicing the truth, and the good name of our neighbours
-as well as our own, especially in public judicature,
-giving false evidence, suborning false witnesses, wittingly
-appearing and pleading for an evil cause, out-facing and
-over-bearing the truth, passing unjust sentence, calling evil
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_29'>29</span>good, and good evil, rewarding the wicked according to the
-work of the righteous; and the righteous according to the
-work of the wicked; forgery, concealing the truth, undue silence
-in a just cause, and holding our peace when iniquity
-calleth for either a reproof from ourselves, or complaint to
-others; speaking the truth unseasonably, or maliciously to a
-wrong end, or perverting it to a wrong meaning, or in doubtful
-and equivocal expressions, to the prejudice of truth or
-justice, speaking untruth, lying, slandering, back-biting, detracting,
-tale-bearing, whispering, scoffing, reviling, rash,
-harsh, and partial, censuring, misconstruing intentions,
-words, and actions, flattering, vain-glorious boasting, thinking
-or speaking too highly or too meanly of ourselves or
-others, denying the gifts and graces of God, aggravating
-smaller faults, hiding, excusing, or extenuating of sins when
-called to a free confession, unnecessary discovering of infirmities,
-raising false rumours, receiving and countenancing
-evil reports, and stopping our ears against just defence, evil
-suspicion, envying or grieving at the deserved credit of any,
-endeavouring or desiring to impair it, rejoicing in their
-disgrace and infamy, scornful contempt, fond admiration,
-breach of lawful promises, neglecting such things as are of
-good report, and practising or not avoiding ourselves or not
-hindering, what we can in others, such things as procure an
-ill name.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>In this Commandment we are to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. What are the duties required? These are,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Our endeavouring to promote truth in all we say or do;
-and that, as to what either concerns ourselves, or others. As
-to what concerns ourselves, we are to fence against every
-thing that savours of deceit or hypocrisy; and, in our whole
-conversation, endeavour to be what we pretend to be; or to
-speak nothing but what we know, or believe to be true, upon
-good evidence, the contrary whereunto is lying. As to what
-concerns others, we must not neglect to reprove sin in them,
-how much soever our worldly interest may lie at stake. Thus
-Azariah reproved Uzziah, 2 Chron. xxvi. 18. and Elijah,
-Ahab; though this could not but be an hazardous attempt in
-each of them. Moreover, we must endeavour to undeceive
-others, who are mistaken; especially if the error, they are
-liable to, be of such a nature, that it endangers the loss of their
-salvation. We are also to vindicate those who are reproached
-by others, to the utmost of our power, according as the cause
-will admit of it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. This Commandment obliges us, to endeavour to promote
-our own, and our neighbour’s good name.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_30'>30</span>(1.) Our own good name; which consists, not in our having
-the applause of the world, but in our deserving the just esteem
-thereof, and in our being loved and valued for our usefulness
-to mankind in general. And this esteem is not to be
-gained by commending ourselves, or doing any thing, but
-what we engage in with a good conscience, and the fear of
-God. And in order hereto, we must, take heed that we do
-not contract an intimacy with those, whose conversation is a
-reproach to the gospel, Prov. xxviii. 7. Also we must render
-good for evil, and not give occasion to those, who watch
-for our halting, to insult us as to any thing, besides unavoidable
-infirmities, 1 Pet. ii. 12. Phil. iv. 8.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This degree of honour in the world, we ought first to endeavour
-to gain, especially so far as it is necessary to our
-honouring God, and being useful to others. And then we
-must be careful to maintain our good name; forasmuch as the
-loss thereof, especially, in those who have made a public profession
-of religion, will reflect dishonour on the ways of God,
-from whence his enemies will take occasion to blaspheme, 2
-Sam. xii. 14. But if all our endeavours to maintain our
-character and reputation are to no purpose; being, nevertheless,
-followed with reproach as well as hatred and malice,
-from an unjust and censorious world; let us look to it, that if
-we <i>suffer reproach</i>, it be <i>wrongfully; not as evil doers, but for
-keeping a good conscience in the sight of God</i>; which may be
-a means to make those that reproach us, <i>ashamed</i>, 1 Pet. iii.
-16. Moreover, let us count the reproach of Christ, that is,
-for his sake, a glory, chap. iv. 14. Acts v. 41. Again, let us
-always value their good opinion most, who are Christ’s best
-friends; and expect little else but ill treatment from his enemies;
-and then we shall be less disappointed, when we are exposed
-to it. And let us not decline any thing that is our duty,
-in which the honour of God, and the welfare of his people, is
-concerned, for fear of reproach; but in this case, leave our
-good name in Christ’s hand; whose providence is concerned,
-for, and takes care of, the honour, as well as the wealth and
-outward estate of his people.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We are to endeavour to maintain the good name of
-others; and in order thereto, we must render to them those
-marks of respect and honour, which their character, and advancement
-in gifts, or grace, calls for; yet without being
-guilty of servile flattery or dissimulation. And if they are in
-danger of doing any thing that may forfeit their good name,
-we are carefully to reprove them, while we have a due regard
-to any good thing that is in them, towards the Lord their God;
-and, in maintaining their good name, we are to conceal their
-faults, when we may do it without betraying the interest of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_31'>31</span>Christ; and especially when the honour of God, and their
-good, is, by this means, better promoted, than by divulging
-them, 1 Pet. iv. 8. Prov. xvii. 9.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>However, this is not without some exceptions; and therefore
-it may be observed, that we are not to conceal the crimes
-committed by others.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] If private admonition for scandalous sins committed,
-prove ineffectual, and the discovering them to others may
-make the offender ashamed, and promote his reformation; then
-we are not to conceal his crimes, though the divulging them
-may lessen the esteem which others have of him, since it is
-better for him to be ashamed before men, than perish in his
-hypocrisy, Matt. xviii. 16, 17.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] If the crime committed be such, that shame, and the
-loss of his good name, be a just punishment due to it, we are
-not to conceal it, thereby to stop the course of justice.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] When the honour and good name of an innocent person
-cannot be maintained, unless by divulging the crimes of
-the guilty, he that, in this case, has forfeited his good name,
-ought to lose it, rather than he that has not.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We shall close this head by considering what reason we
-have to endeavour to maintain the good name of others. To
-take away our neighbour’s good name, is to take away one of
-the most valuable privileges he is possessed of, the loss whereof
-may be inexpressibly detrimental to him. And sometimes
-it may affect his secular interest; so that hereby we may be
-said to take away his wealth and outward estate, and prevent
-his usefulness in that station of life in which providence has
-fixed him. Accordingly we are to express a due concern for
-the honour and reputation of others as well as ourselves.
-Thus concerning the duties required in this Commandment.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. We proceed to consider the sins forbidden therein; which
-are contained in that general expression bearing false witness:
-This may either respect ourselves or others. A person may be
-said to bear false witness against himself; and that either in
-thinking too highly or meanly of himself; in the former respect
-we value ourselves, or our supposed attainments, either in
-gifts or graces, too much, in which we are, for the most part,
-mistaken, and pass a wrong judgment on them, and are ready
-to say, with the church at Laodicea, <i>I am rich and increased
-with goods, and have need of nothing; and know not that we
-are wretched, and miserable, and poor, and blind, and naked</i>,
-Rev. iii. 17. These, on the one hand, mistake the common
-gifts of the Spirit, for grace, and conclude themselves to be
-something, when they are nothing: And, on the other hand,
-many conclude, that they have no grace, and rank themselves
-among hypocrites and unbelievers, when their hearts are right
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_32'>32</span>with God, and they have had large experience of the powerful
-influences of his Spirit, but are not sensible thereof. Thus
-Christ says to the church in Smyrna, <i>I know thy poverty; but
-thou art rich</i>, chap. ii. 9. In these respects persons may be
-said to bear false witness against themselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But that which is principally forbidden in this Commandment,
-is, a person’s bearing false witness against his neighbour;
-and that when he either endeavours to deceive, or do
-him prejudice, as to his reputation in the world; the one is
-called lying, the other back-biting or slandering. As to the
-former of these, when we speak that which is contrary to what
-we know to be truth, with a design to deceive, this is what we
-call telling a lye; and when we act that which is contrary to
-truth, it may be deemed a practical lye; both of which are
-very great sins.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. A person is guilty of lying, when he speaks that which is
-contrary to truth, with a design to deceive: This the old prophet
-at Bethel did, to the prophet of the Lord; upon which
-occasion it is said, that he <i>lyed unto him</i>, 1 Kings xiii. 18.
-That this may be farther considered, let it be observed, that it
-is not barely a speaking what is contrary to truth; for that a
-person may do, and be guiltless; as,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] When there is some circumstance that discovers him to
-speak <i>ironically</i>; and therefore he does not appear to have a
-design to deceive those, to whom he addresses his discourse.
-Thus when the prophet Micaiah said to Ahab, <i>Go and prosper,
-for the Lord shall deliver it</i>, viz. <i>Ramoth-Gilead, into the hands
-of the kings</i>, chap. xxii. 15. it is plain that he spake the language
-of the false prophets, and that Ahab understood him in
-this sense, or suspected that he spake <i>ironically</i>; and therefore
-says, <i>How many times shall I adjure thee, that thou tell me
-nothing but that which is true?</i> ver. 16. Upon which, the
-prophet tells him, without an <i>irony</i>, though in a metaphorical
-way, which Ahab easily understood; <i>I saw all Israel scattered
-upon the hills, as sheep that have not a shepherd: And the
-Lord said, These have no master, let them return every man to
-his house in peace</i>, ver. 17. which was an intimation, that, if
-he went up to Ramoth-Gilead, he should fall in battle: Upon
-which occasion Ahab says to Jehoshaphat, <i>Did I not tell thee,
-that he would prophesy no good concerning me, but evil</i>, ver.
-18. by which it appears, that the prophet did not deceive him,
-notwithstanding the mode of speaking, which he at first made
-use of, without considering it as an irony, seemed to intimate
-as much.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] A person may speak that which is contrary to truth, being
-imposed on himself, without any design to deceive another.
-This cannot, indeed, according to the description before given,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_33'>33</span>be properly called a lie: However, he may sin by asserting
-too positively, that which he thinks to be true from probable
-circumstances, or uncertain information; especially if what he
-reports, carries in it that which is matter of scandal, or censure.
-This was the case of Job’s friends, who did not tell a lie against
-their own consciences: Nevertheless, they were too
-peremptory in charging him with hypocrisy, without sufficient
-ground; therefore God imputes <i>folly</i> to them, in that <i>they had
-not spoken of him the thing which was right</i>, Job xlii. 8.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Here it may be enquired, whether a person, who designs not
-to deceive, nor speaks contrary to the dictates of his own conscience;
-yet if he promises to do a thing, and does it not, is
-guilty of lying? To which it may be replied,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That if a person promises to do a thing, which, at the
-same time he really designs, and afterwards uses all the endeavours
-he could, to fulfil his promise, and something unforeseen
-happens, in the course of providence, which prevents the execution
-thereof, he cannot, properly speaking, be said to be guilty
-of a lie; though we ought not to promise any thing but
-upon this supposition, that God enables us to perform it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, If a person intends to do a thing, and, accordingly,
-promises to do it, but afterwards sees some justifiable reason to
-alter his mind, he is not guilty of a lie; since all creatures are
-supposed to be mutable. Thus the angels told Lot, that they
-would <i>abide in the street all night</i>; but afterwards, upon his
-intreaty, they <i>went into the house with him</i>, Gen. xix. 2,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. And our Saviour, when he walked with his disciples to
-Emmaus, <i>made as though he would have gone farther: But
-they constrained him, saying, abide with us; and he went in to
-tarry with them</i>, Luke xxiv. 28, 29. But, notwithstanding this
-if a person promises to do any thing that is of advantage to another,
-as the paying a just debt, <i>&amp;c.</i> it is not a sufficient excuse,
-to clear him from the guilt of sin, if he pretends that he has
-altered his mind, supposing that it is in his power to fulfil
-it: For this is, indeed, a breach of the eighth Commandment,
-and in some respects, it will appear to him, to be a violation
-of this.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>That we may more particularly speak concerning the sin of
-lying which multitudes are chargeable with, let it be observed,
-that there are three sorts of lies,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, When a person speaks that which is contrary to truth,
-and the dictates of his own conscience, with a design to cover
-a fault or excuse himself or others: This we generally call
-an officious lie<a id='r6' /><a href='#f6' class='c012'><sup>[6]</sup></a>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, When a person speaks that which is contrary to the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_34'>34</span>known truth, in a jesting way; and embellishes his discourse
-with his own fictions, designing hereby to impose on others:
-This they are guilty of, who invent false news, or tell stories
-for truth, which they know to be false. This is to lie in a jesting,
-ludicrous manner<a id='r7' /><a href='#f7' class='c012'><sup>[7]</sup></a>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, There is a pernicious lie, <i>viz.</i> when a person raises
-and spreads a false report with a design to do injury to another;
-which is a complicated crime, and the worst sort of
-lying<a id='r8' /><a href='#f8' class='c012'><sup>[8]</sup></a>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Here there are two or three enquiries which it may not be
-improper to take notice of;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Whether the midwives were guilty of an officious lie,
-when they told Pharaoh, in Exod. i. 19. that <i>the Hebrew women
-were delivered of their children ere they came in unto them</i>;
-concerning whom it is said, in the following verse, <i>that God
-dealt well with the midwives</i> for this report, which carries in it
-the appearance of a lie.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] That they seem not to have been guilty of a lie; for it
-is not improbable, that God in mercy to the Hebrew women,
-and their children, might give them uncommon strength; so
-that they might be delivered without the midwives assistance:
-Or,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] If this was not the case of all the Hebrew women, but
-only of some, or many of them, the midwives report contains
-only a concealing part of the truth, while they related in other
-respects, that which was matter of fact. Now a person is not
-guilty of telling a lie, who does not discover all that he knows.
-There is a vast difference between concealing a part of the
-truth, and telling that which is directly false. No one is
-obliged to tell all he knows, to one, who, he is sure, will make
-a bad use of it. This seems to be the case of the midwives;
-and therefore their action was justifiable, and commended by
-God, they being not guilty, properly speaking, of an officious
-lye.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) Another enquiry is, what judgment we must pass concerning
-the actions of Rahab, the harlot, who invented an officious
-lye, to save the spies from those who pursued them, in
-Josh. ii. 4, 5. it is said, <i>she took the two men and hid them</i>;
-and, at the same time, pretended, so those who were sent to
-enquire of her concerning them, that <i>she wist not whence they
-were</i>; but that they <i>went out of the city about the time of the
-shutting of the gate; though whither they went she knew not</i>.
-The main difficulty we have to account for, is what the apostle
-says, in which he seems to commend this action, in Heb. xi.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_35'>35</span>31. <i>By faith Rahab perished not with them that believed not,
-when she had received the spies with peace.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To which it may be replied, that the apostle says,
-indeed, that she <i>received the spies with peace</i>, that is, she protected,
-and did not betray them into the hand of their enemies:
-But this act of faith does not relate directly to the lie that she
-invented to conceal them; for, doubtless, she would have been
-more clear from the guilt of sin, had she refused to give the
-messengers any answer relating to them, and so had given them
-leave to search for them, and left the event hereof to providence.
-This, indeed, was a very difficult duty; for it might
-have endangered her life; and her choosing to secure them
-and herself, by inventing this lie, brought with it a degree of
-guilt, and was an instance of the weakness of her faith in this
-respect.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But, on the other hand, that faith which the apostle commends
-in her, respects some other circumstances attending this
-action; and, accordingly, it is not said, that <i>by faith</i> she made
-the report to the messengers concerning the spies; but <i>she received
-them with peace</i>: And there are several things in which
-her faith was very remarkable, as,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] That she was confident that <i>the Lord would give them
-the land</i>, which they were contending for, Josh. ii. 9.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] In that she makes a just inference relating to this matter,
-from the wonders that God had wrought for them in the
-red sea, ver. 10. And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] In that noble confession which she makes, that <i>the
-Lord their God, is God in heaven above, and the earth beneath</i>,
-ver. 11.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[4.] Her faith appears, in that she put herself under their
-protection, and desired to take her lot with them; which was
-done at the hazard of her own life; which she might have
-saved, and probably, have received a reward, had she betrayed
-them. This, I conceive to be a better vindication of Rahab’s
-conduct, than that which is alleged, by some who suppose,
-that by entering into confederacy with the spies, she put herself
-into a state of war with her own country-men, and so was
-not obliged to speak truth to the men of Jericho; since this
-would have many ill consequences attending it, and give too
-much countenance to persons deceiving others, under pretence
-of being in a state of war with them. And, as to what the Papists
-say in her vindication, that a good design will justify a
-bad action; that it is not true in fact; and therefore not to be
-applied to her case.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) It might be farther enquired, what judgment ought we
-to pass on the method that Jacob took to obtain the blessing,
-when he told his father, <i>I am Esau, thy first-born; I have
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_36'>36</span>done according as thou badest me</i>, Gen. xxvii. 19. whether he
-was guilty of a lie herein?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> There is not the least doubt but that he was. Some,
-indeed, endeavour to excuse him, by alleging, that he had,
-before this, bought the birth-right of Esau; and, upon this account
-he calls himself Isaac’s first-born. But this will not clear
-him from the guilt of a lye; since it was an equivocation, and
-spoken with a design to deceive. Others own it to have been
-a lye; but extenuate it, from the consideration of God’s having
-designed the blessing for him before he was born, chap.
-xxv. 31. But these do not at all mend the matter: For,
-though God may permit, or over-rule the sinful actions of men
-to bring about his own purpose; yet this does not, in the least,
-extenuate their sin.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>That which may therefore be observed, with reference to this
-action of his, and the consequence thereof, is, that good men
-are sometimes liable to sinful infirmities, as Jacob was; who,
-was followed with many sore rebukes of providence, which
-made the remaining part of his life very uneasy.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, In his living in exile twenty years, with Laban, an hard
-master, and an unjust and unnatural father-in-law.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, In the great distress that befel him in his return; occasioned
-first by Laban’s pursuit of him, and then by the
-tidings that he received of his brother Esau’s <i>coming out to
-meet him</i>; (being prompted hereto by revenge which he had
-long harboured in his breast) <i>with four hundred men</i>, from whom
-he expected nothing less than the destruction of himself, and
-his whole family.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, He did not obtain deliverance from the hand of God
-without <i>great wrestling</i>, chap. xxxii. 24-25. and this attended
-with <i>weeping</i>, as well as <i>making supplication</i>, Hos. xii. 4. and,
-though he prevailed, and so obtained the blessing, and therewith
-forgiveness of his sin; yet God so ordered it, that he
-should carry the mark thereof upon him, as long as he lived,
-by touching the hollow of his thigh, which occasioned an incurable
-lameness.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) Another enquiry is, whether the prophet Elijah did not
-tell a lie to the Syrian host, who were before Dothan, in quest
-of him, when he said, in 2 Kings vi. 19. <i>This is not the way,
-neither is this the city: Follow me, and I will bring you to the
-man you seek. But he led them to Samaria?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> If what he says to them be duly considered, it will
-appear not to be a lie; for he told them nothing but what
-proved true, according to the import of his words; for,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, He does not say, I am not the man ye seek, which would
-have been a lie; neither does he say, the man is not here:
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_37'>37</span>but he tells them, <i>I will lead you to the place where ye shall
-find him</i>, or have him discovered and presented before you.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, When he says, <i>This is not the way; neither is this the
-city</i>; he does not say, this is not the way to Dothan; neither
-is this the city so called; for then they would have been able
-to have convicted him of a lie; for they knew that they were
-at Dothan before they were struck with blindness: But the
-plain meaning of his words is, that this is not your way to find
-him; since the men of this city will not deliver him to you;
-but <i>I will lead you to the place where you shall see him</i>; and <i>so
-he led them to Samaria</i>, upon which their eyes were opened,
-and they saw him: So that this was not a lie. And the reason
-of his management was, that the king of Israel, and the
-Syrian host, might be convinced, that they were poor creatures
-in God’s hand, and that he could easily turn their counsels into
-foolishness, and cause their attempts to miscarry with shame,
-as well as disappointment.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(5.) It may be farther enquired, whether the apostle Paul
-was guilty of a lie; when, being charged, in Acts xxiii. 4, 5.
-with <i>reviling God’s high priest</i>, he says, <i>I wist not that he was
-the high priest</i>? How was it possible that he should entertain
-any doubt concerning his being the high priest; which none,
-who were present, could, in the least, question?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> We may suppose, that the apostle, when he says, <i>I
-wist not that he was the high priest</i>, intends nothing else, but
-I do not own him to be the high priest, as you call him; for
-he is not an high priest of God’s appointing or approving;
-which, had he been, he would have acted more becoming that
-character; and then I should have had no occasion to have told
-him, <i>God shall smite thee, thou whited wall</i>; for that would have
-been a <i>reviling him</i>; since I know that scripture very well, that
-says, <i>Thou shalt not speak evil of the ruler of thy people</i>; therefore
-he intimates, that, though he was an high priest of man’s
-making, he was not one of God’s approving; and accordingly
-he was to be treated with contempt, instead of that regard
-which was formerly paid to the high priests, when they were
-better men, and acted more agreeable to their character. No
-one, that deserves to be called God’s high priest, would have
-ordered a prisoner, who came to be tried for his life, instead
-of making his defence, to be smitten on the mouth.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But, suppose we render the words agreeably to our translation,
-I did not understand that he was the high priest, he may
-be vindicated from the charge of telling a lie, if we consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That this was a confused assembly, and not a regular
-court of judicature, in which the judge, or chief magistrate, is
-known to all, by the place in which he sits, or the part he acts
-in trying causes.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_38'>38</span><i>2dly</i>, The high priest, in courts of judicature, was not known
-by any robe or distinct habit that he wore, as judges now are;
-for he never wore any other but his common garments, which
-were the same that other people wore, except when he ministered
-in offering gifts and sacrifices in the temple. Therefore
-the apostle could not know him by any distinct garment that
-he wore.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Through the corruption of the times, the high priest
-was changed almost every year, according to the will of the
-chief governor, who advanced his own friends to that dignity,
-and oftentimes sold it for money; it is therefore probable,
-that Ananias had not been long high-priest; and Paul was
-now a stranger at Jerusalem, and so might not know that he
-was high priest. Thus, if we take the words in this sense, in
-which they are commonly understood, the apostle may be sufficiently
-vindicated from the charge of telling a lie.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(6.) It may be farther enquired, what judgment we may
-pass concerning David’s pretence, when he came to Abimelech,
-in 1 Sam. xxi. 2. that <i>the king commanded him a business</i>,
-<i>which no one was to know any thing of</i>; and that he had <i>appointed
-his servants to such and such a place</i>; and also of his
-<i>feigning himself mad</i>, before the king of Gath, ver. 13. which
-dissimulation can be reckoned no other than a practical lie.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> In both these instances he must be allowed to have
-sinned, and therefore not proposed as a pattern to us; and all
-that can be inferred from it is, that there is a great deal of the
-corruption of nature remaining in the best of God’s people.
-What he told Abimelech was certainly a lye; and all that he
-expected to gain by it, was only a supply of his present necessities;
-the consequence whereof was, the poor man’s losing his
-life, together with all the priests’, except Abiathar, by Saul’s
-inhumanity. And David seems to be truly sensible of this sin,
-as appears from Psal. xxxiv. which, as is intimated in the title
-thereof, was penned on this occasion; in which he arms others
-against it, in ver. 13. <i>Keep thy tongue from evil, and thy lips
-from speaking guile</i>: And in ver. 18. he seems to relate his
-own experience, when he says, <i>The Lord is nigh unto them
-that are of a broken heart, and saveth such as be of a contrite
-spirit.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to his behaviour before the king of Gath, which was a
-visible lie, discovered in his actions; it can, by no means, be
-excused from being a breach of this Commandment. It is, indeed,
-alleged by some, to extenuate his fault; that he was
-afraid that his having killed Goliah, would have induced
-Achish to take away his life; as appears from what is said in
-ver. 11, 12. Nevertheless, it may be considered as an aggravation
-of his sin,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_39'>39</span>[1.] That his fear seems to have been altogether groundless;
-for, why should he suppose that the king of Gath would break
-through all the laws of arms and honour, since Goliah had
-been killed in a fair duel, the challenge having first been given
-by himself? why then should David fear that he would kill
-him for that, more than any other hostilities committed in war?
-Besides, it is plain from what Achish says, in ver. 15. <i>Have I
-need of mad-men, that ye have brought this fellow to play the
-mad-man in my presence? should this fellow come into mine
-house?</i> that the king of Gath was so far from designing to
-revenge Goliah’s death on him, that he intended to employ
-him in his service, and take him into his house; but this mean
-action of his made him despised by all; for it seems probable,
-by Achish’s saying, <i>Have ye brought this fellow to play the
-mad-man?</i> that he perceived it to be a feigned, and not a real
-distraction. And this was overruled by the providence of God,
-to let the Philistines know, that the greatest hero is but a low-spirited
-man, if his God be not with him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] If we suppose that there had been just ground for his
-fear, the method taken to secure himself, contained a distrust of
-providence; which would, doubtless, have delivered him without
-his dissembling, or thus demeaning himself, or using such
-an indirect method in order thereunto. Thus concerning the
-violation of this Commandment, by speaking that which is
-contrary to truth.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. This Commandment is farther broken, by acting that
-which is contrary to truth; which is what we call hypocrisy:
-And this may be considered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) As that which is a reigning sin, inconsistent with a
-state of grace; in which respect an hypocrite is opposed to a
-true believer. Such make a fair shew of religion; but it is
-with a design to be seen of men, Matt. vi. 5. They are sometimes,
-indeed, represented as <i>seeking</i> God, and <i>enquiring early</i>,
-or with a kind of earnestness after him, when under his afflicting
-hand; but this is deemed no other than a <i>flattering him
-with their mouth, and a lying unto him with their tongues</i>;
-inasmuch as <i>their heart is not right with him</i>, Psal. lxxviii.
-34,-37. And elsewhere, they are said to <i>love the praise of
-men more than the praise of God</i>, John xii. 43.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) It may be farther considered, as that which believers are
-sometimes chargeable with, which is an argument that they are
-sanctified but in part; but this rather respects some particular
-actions, and not the tenor of their conversation: Thus the apostle
-Paul charges Peter with dissimulation, Gal. ii. 11,-13.
-though he was far from deserving the character of an hypocrite,
-as to his general conversation. And our Saviour cautions
-his disciples against hypocrisy, as that which they were
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_40'>40</span>in danger of being overtaken with, Luke xii. 1. though he
-does not charge them with it as a reigning sin, as he did the
-Scribes and Pharisees, whom he compares to <i>painted sepulchres</i>,
-Matt. xxiii. 27, 28. nor were they such as the apostle speaks
-of, whom he calls <i>double-minded men, who are unstable in all
-their ways</i>, James i. 8.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to that hypocrisy which we may call a reigning sin, this
-may be known,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] By a person’s accommodating himself to all those whom
-he converses with, how much soever this may tend to the dishonour
-of Christ and the gospel: And this may give us occasion
-to enquire,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>First</i>, Whether the apostle Paul was in any respects, chargeable
-with this sin, when he says, in 1 Cor. ix. 20-22. <i>Unto
-the Jews, I became as a Jew, that I might gain the Jews; to
-them that are under the law, as under the law, that I might
-gain them that are under the law; to them that are without
-law, as without law, (being not without law to God, but under
-the law to Christ) that I might gain them that are without
-law. To the weak, became I as weak, that I might gain the
-weak; I am made all things to all men, that I might by all
-means save some.</i> For the understanding of this scripture,
-and vindicating the apostle from the charge of hypocrisy, let
-it be considered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That this compliance he here speaks of, was not with
-a design to gain the applause of the world, but to serve the
-interest of Christ; neither did he connive at, or give countenance
-to, that false worship, or those sinful practices of any,
-that were contrary to the faith, or purity of the gospel. Therefore
-when he says, <i>Unto the Jews, I became as a Jew</i>; he does
-not intend that he gave them the least ground to conclude,
-that it was an indifferent matter, whether they adhered to, or
-laid aside the observation of the ceremonial law: For, he
-expressly tells some of the church at Galatia, who were supposed
-to Judaize, that this was contrary to the <i>liberty wherewith
-Christ</i> had <i>made them free, a being again entangled with
-the yoke of bondage</i>; and that <i>if they circumcised, Christ
-should profit them nothing; and</i>, that they were <i>fallen from
-grace</i>; that is, turned aside from the faith of the gospel, Gal.
-v. 1,-4. Therefore, in this sense he did not become as a Jew,
-to the Jews. Neither did he so far comply with the Gentiles,
-as to give them ground to conclude, that the superstition and
-idolatry, which they were guilty of, was an harmless thing, and
-might still be practised by them. Therefore,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, The meaning of his compliance with the Jews or
-Gentiles, is nothing else but this; that whatever he found
-praise-worthy in them, he commended; and if, in any instances,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_41'>41</span>they were addicted to their former rites, or modes of worship,
-he endeavoured to draw them off from them, not by a
-severe, and rigid behaviour as censuring, refusing to converse
-with, or reproaching them, for their weakness; but using kind
-and gentle methods, designing rather to inform than discourage
-them; while at the same time, he was far from approving
-of, or giving countenance to any thing that was sinful in
-them, or unbecoming the gospel.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Secondly</i>, From what has been before said concerning an
-hypocrite’s being one who performs religious duties with a design
-to be seen of men, as our Saviour says of the Pharisees,
-that <i>they love to stand praying in the synagogues, or in the
-corners of the streets, that they may be seen of men</i>, Matth.
-vi. 6. We may enquire, what may be said in vindication of
-the prophet Daniel, from the charge of hypocrisy? concerning
-whom it is said, in Dan. vi. 10. that when Darius had <i>signed
-a decree</i> prohibiting any one from asking <i>a petition of any god
-or man, save of the king, he</i> should <i>be cast into the den of
-lions: He went into his house; and his windows being open
-in his chamber, towards Jerusalem, he kneeled upon his knees
-three times a day, and prayed, and gave thanks before his God,
-as he did aforetime</i>. In answer to this we may observe,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That this was not done to gain the esteem or applause
-of men, which they are charged with, who are guilty of hypocrisy;
-but he did it in contempt of that vile decree of the
-Persian monarch.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, He did it at the peril of his life; and hereby discovered,
-that he had rather be cast into the den of lions, than give
-occasion to any to think that he complied with the king in his
-idolatrous decree.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Though it is said, that <i>he prayed, and gave thanks before
-his God, as he did</i> aforetime; yet this is not to be understood
-as though he set open his windows aforetime; so that
-his praying publicly at this time, was to shew that he was neither
-ashamed, nor afraid to own his God, whatever it cost
-him; therefore he was so far from being guilty of hypocrisy,
-that this is one of the most noble instances of zeal for the
-worship of the true God, that we find recorded in scripture.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] Hypocrisy is a reigning sin when we boast of the high
-attainments in gifts or grace, or set too great a value on ourselves,
-because of the performance of some religious duties,
-while we neglect others, wherein the principal part of true godliness
-consists. Thus the Pharisee <i>paid tithe of mint, annise,
-and cummin</i>, while he <i>omitted the weightier matters of the law;
-judgment, mercy and faith</i>, chap. xxiii. 23, 24.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] It farther consists, in exclaiming against, and censuring
-others, for lesser faults, while we allow of greater in ourselves;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_42'>42</span>like those whom our Saviour speaks of, who <i>behold the mote
-that is in their brother’s eye, but consider not the beam that is
-in their own</i>, Matt. vii. 3, 5. or, according to that proverbial
-way of speaking, <i>strain at a gnat, and swallow a camel</i>. These
-are very fond of exposing the ignorance of others; though
-they have no experimental, saving knowledge of divine truth
-in themselves; or they are very forward, to blame the coldness
-and lukewarmness which they see in some, while at the
-same time, that zeal which they express in their whole conduct,
-is rather to advance themselves, than the glory of God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[4.] When persons make a gain of godliness, 1 Tim. vi. 5.
-or of their pretensions to it. Thus Balaam prophesied for a
-reward; and accordingly it is said, that he <i>loved the wages of
-unrighteousness</i>, 2 Pet. i. 15.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>5. When persons make a profession of religion, because it
-is uppermost, and are ready to despise and cast it off, when it
-is reproached, or they are like to suffer for it. Thus the Pharisees,
-how much soever they seemed to embrace Christ, when
-attending on John’s ministry; yet afterwards, when they saw
-that this was contrary to their secular interest, they were
-<i>offended in him</i>, and prejudiced against him; and therefore
-they say, <i>Have any of the rulers, or of the Pharisees, believed
-on him</i>, John vii. 48.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This sin of hypocrisy, which is a practical lie, has a tendency
-to corrupt and vitiate all our pretensions to religion. It
-is like the <i>dead flie</i>, mentioned by Solomon, <i>that causeth the
-ointment of the apothecary to send forth a stinking savour</i>,
-Eccl. x. 1. and it will, in the end, bring on those who are
-guilty of it, many sore judgments; some of which are spiritual.
-Thus it is said of the Heathen, that <i>because, when they knew
-God, they glorified him not as God</i>, and <i>did not like to retain
-him in their knowledge; he gave them up to a reprobate mind,
-to do those things that are not convenient</i>, &amp;c. Rom. i. 21, 22,
-28. And as for the false hope, and vain confidence, which
-the hypocrite entertains, this shall leave him in despair and
-confusion, Job viii. 13,-15. and be attended with unspeakable
-horror of conscience, chap. xxvii. 18. Isa. xxxiii. 14.
-Upon which account such are said to <i>heap up wrath</i>, and bring
-on themselves a greater degree of condemnation than others,
-Job xxxvi. 13. Matt. xxiii. 14. Thus we have considered
-this Commandment as broken by speaking or acting that
-which is contrary, or prejudicial, to truth; which leads us,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. To consider it as forbidding our doing that which is injurious
-to our neighbour’s good name, either by words or actions;
-and this is done two ways, either before his face, or
-behind his back.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Doing injury to another, by speaking against him, before
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_43'>43</span>his face. It is true, we give him hereby the liberty of vindicating
-himself. Nevertheless, if the thing be false, which is
-alleged against him, proceeding from malice and envy, it is a
-crime of a very heinous nature; and this is done,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) By those, who, in courts of judicature, commence; and
-carry on malicious prosecutions, in which the plaintiff, the
-witness, the advocate that manages the cause, the jury that
-bring in a false verdict, and the judge that passes sentence
-contrary to law, or evidence, as well as the dictates of his own
-conscience, with a design to crush and ruin him, who is maliciously
-prosecuted; these are all notoriously guilty of the
-breach of this Commandment.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) They may be said to do that which is injurious to our
-neighbour’s good name, who reproach them in common conversation;
-which is a sin too much committed in this licentious
-age, as though men were not accountable to God for
-what they speak, as well as other parts of the conduct of life.
-There are several things which persons make the subject of
-their reproach, <i>viz.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] The defect and blemishes of nature; such as lameness,
-blindness, deafness, impediment of speech, meanness of capacity,
-or actions, which proceed from a degree of distraction.
-Thus many suppose that the apostle Paul was reproached for
-some natural deformity in his body, or impediment in his
-speech, which is inferred from what he says, when he represents
-some as speaking to this purpose; <i>His letters, say they,
-are weighty and powerful; but his bodily presence is weak, and
-his speech contemptible</i>, 2 Cor. x. 10. And elsewhere, he
-commends the Galatians for not despising him on this account;
-<i>My temptation which was in my flesh, ye despised nor rejected;
-but ye received me as an angel of God, even as Christ
-Jesus</i>, Gal. iv. 14.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Here we may take occasion to speak something of the childrens
-sin, who reproached Elisha for his baldness, and the
-punishment that ensued upon it; namely, his <i>cursing them in
-the name of the Lord</i>; and <i>two and forty</i> of them being <i>torn
-in pieces by two she-bears out of the wood</i>, in 2 Kings ii. 23,
-24. It may be enquired, by some, whether this was not too
-great an instance of passion in that holy man, and too severe
-a punishment inflicted; inasmuch as they who reproached him,
-are called <i>little children</i>. To this it may be answered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That the children were not so little, as not to be able
-to know their right hand from their left, or to discern between
-good and evil; for such are not usually trusted out of their
-parents sight; nor would they have gathered themselves together
-in a body, or went some distance from the city, on
-purpose to insult the prophet, as it is plain they did, understand
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_44'>44</span>that he was to come there at that time. This argues
-that they were boys of sufficient age, to commit the most presumptuous
-sin; and therefore not too young to suffer such a
-punishment as ensued thereupon.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, Their sin was great, in that they mocked a grave old
-man, who ought to have been honoured for his age, and a
-prophet, whom they should have esteemed for his character;
-and in despising him, they despised God, that called and sent
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Bethel, where they lived, was the chief seat of idolatry,
-in which these children had been trained up; and it was a
-prevailing inclination to it, together with an hatred of the true
-religion, that occasioned their reproaching and casting contempt
-on the prophet.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, The manner of expression argues a great deal of profaneness,
-<i>Go up thou bald head</i>; that is, either go up to Bethel,
-speaking in an insulting way, as though they should say, You
-may go there, but you will not be regarded by them; for they
-value no such men as you are; or rather, it is as though they
-should say, you pretend that your predecessor Elijah is gone
-up to heaven, do you go up after him, that you may trouble
-us no longer with your prophecies; so that those children,
-though young in years, were hardened in sin; and this was
-not so much an occasional mocking of the prophet for his
-baldness, as a public contrivance, and tumultuous opposition
-to his ministry; which is a very great crime, and accordingly,
-was attended with a just resentment in the prophet, and that
-punishment which was inflicted as the consequence thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The aggravations of this sin of reproaching persons for their
-natural infirmities, are very great. For, it is a finding fault
-with the workmanship of the God of nature, the thinking
-meanly of a person for that which is not chargeable on him as
-a crime, and which he can, by no means redress. It is a censuring
-those who are, in some respects, objects of compassion;
-especially if the reproach be levelled against the defects of the
-mind, or any degree of distraction; and it argues a great deal
-of pride and unthankfulness to God, for those natural endowments
-which we have received from him, though we do not
-improve them to his glory.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] Some reproach persons for their sinful infirmities, and
-that in such a way, as that they are styled <i>fools</i>, who <i>make a
-mock of sin</i>, Prov. xiv. 9. This is done,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, When we reflect on persons for sins committed before
-their conversion, which they have repented of, and God has
-forgiven; and accordingly they should not be now charged
-against them, as a matter of reproach. Thus the Pharisee
-reproached the poor penitent woman, who stood weeping at
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_45'>45</span>our Saviour’s feet, and said within himself; <i>If this man were
-a prophet, he would have known what manner of woman this
-is that toucheth him, for she is a sinner</i>, Luke vii. 37-39.
-which respected not her present, but her former condition.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, When they reproach them with levity of spirit, for the
-sins they are guilty of at present; as when the shameful actions
-of a drunken man are made the subject of laughter;
-which ought not to be thought of without regret or pity.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Object.</i> To this it may be objected, that sin renders a person
-vile, and is really a reproach to him; and therefore it may
-be charged upon him as such; especially since it is said, concerning
-the righteous man; <i>in his eyes a vile person is contemned</i>,
-Psal. xv. 4.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> We are far from asserting, that it is a sin to reprove
-sin, and shew the person who commits it his vileness, and the
-reason he has to reproach and charge himself with it, and loath
-himself for it; therefore,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, The contempt that is to be cast on a vile person, does
-not consist in making him the subject of laughter, as though
-it was a light matter for him thus to dishonour God as he
-does; for this should occasion grief in all true believers, as the
-Psalmist says, <i>I beheld the transgressors and was grieved; because
-they kept not thy word</i>, Psal. cxix. 158. But,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, When the Psalmist advises to <i>contemn</i> such an one,
-the meaning is, that we should not make him our intimate, or
-bosom-friend; or if he be in advanced circumstances, in the
-world, we are not to flatter him in his sin; whereby, especially
-when it is public, he forfeits that respect which would otherwise
-be due to him. In this sense we are to understand
-Mordecai’s contempt of Haman, Esther iii. 2.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Here we may take occasion to distinguish, between reproving
-sin, and reproaching persons for it; the former of these is
-to be done with sorrow of heart, and compassion expressed to
-the sinner; as our Saviour reproved Jerusalem, and, at the
-same time, <i>wept over it</i>, Luke xix. 41, 42. But, on the other
-hand, reproach is attended with hatred of, and a secret pleasure
-taken in his sin and ruin. Again, reproof for sin ought
-to be with a design to reclaim the offender; whereas reproach
-tends only to expose, exasperate, and harden him in his sin.
-Moreover, reproof for sin ought to be given with the greatest
-seriousness and conviction of the evil and danger ensuing
-hereupon; whereas they who reproach persons, charge sin on
-them, as being induced hereunto by their own passions, without
-any concern for the dishonour which they bring to God
-and religion hereby, or desire of their repentance and reformation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] Sometimes that which is the highest ornament, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_46'>46</span>greatest excellency of a Christian, is turned to his reproach;
-more particularly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, Some have been reproached for extraordinary gifts,
-which God has been pleased to confer on them. Thus the
-spirit of prophecy was sometimes reckoned, by profane persons,
-the effect of distraction, 2 Kings ix. 11. And Joseph
-was reproached by his brethren, in a taunting way, with the
-character of a dreamer; because of the prophetic intimation
-which he had from God, in a dream, concerning the future
-estate of his family, Gen. xxxvii. 13. And when the apostles
-were favoured with the extraordinary gift of tongues, and
-preached to men of different nations, in their own language;
-<i>Some were amazed, and others mocked them, and said, These
-men are full of new wine</i>, Acts ii. 13.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, Raised affections, and extraordinary instances of zeal
-for the glory of God, have been derided as though they were
-matter of reproach. Thus Michael reproached David, when
-he <i>danced before the ark</i>, 2 Sam. vi. 20. being induced hereunto
-by an holy zeal, and transport of joy on this occasion;
-though he was so far from reckoning it a reproach, that he
-counted that which she called vile, glorious.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Spiritual experiences of the grace of God, have, sometimes,
-been turned by those who are strangers to them to their
-reproach and termed no other than madness. Thus when the
-apostle Paul related the gracious dealings of God with him in
-his first conversion, Festus charged him with being <i>beside
-himself</i>, Acts xxvi. 24.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, A person’s being made use of by God, to overthrow
-the kingdom of Satan, has been charged against him, as though
-it were rebellion. Thus the Jews tell Pilate, when he sought
-to release Jesus, <i>If thou let this man go, thou art not Cesar’s
-friend</i>, John xix. 12. and that reformation which the apostles
-were instrumental in making in the world, by preaching the
-gospel, is styled, <i>turning the world upside down</i>, Acts xvii. 6.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>5thly</i>, Humility of mind in owning our weakness, as not being
-able to comprehend some divine mysteries contained in
-the gospel, is reckoned matter of reproach by many, who call
-it implicit faith, and admitting of the greatest absurdities in
-matters of religion.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>6thly</i>, Giving glory to the Spirit, as the author of all grace
-and peace, and desiring to draw nigh to God in prayer, or engage
-in other holy duties, by his assistance, is reproached by
-some, as though it were enthusiasm, and they who desire or
-are favoured with this privilege, were pretenders to extraordinary
-revelation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>7thly</i>, A being conscientious in abstaining from those sins
-which abound in a licentious age, or reproving and bearing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_47'>47</span>our testimony against those who are guilty of them, is reproached
-with the character of hypocrisy, preciseness, and
-being righteous overmuch.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>8thly</i>, Separating from communion with a false church, and
-renouncing those doctrines which tend to pervert the gospel
-of Christ, is called, by some, heresy. Thus the Papists brand
-the Protestants with the reproachful name of heretics; to
-whom we may answer, that this is rather our glory, and confess,
-that <i>after the way which they call heresy, so worship we
-the God of our fathers</i>, Acts xxiv. 14.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This sin is attended with many aggravations; for God
-reckons it as a contempt cast on himself, Luke x. 16. and it
-is a plain intimation, that they who are guilty of it, pretend not
-to be what they reproach and deride in others, who, if they
-be in the right way to heaven, these discover that they desire
-not to come hither. And, in their whole conduct, they act as
-though they were endeavouring to banish all religion out of the
-world, by methods of scorn and ridicule; which, if it should
-take effect, this earth would be but a small degree better than
-hell.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>However, when we are thus reproached for the sake of God
-and religion, let us not render railing for railing; but look on
-those who revile us, as objects of pity, 1 Cor. iv. 12, 13. 1
-Pet. ii. 23, who do more hurt to themselves than they can do
-to us, thereby. Moreover, let us reflect on our own sins,
-which provoke God to suffer this; and beg of him that he
-would turn this reproach to his own glory, and our good.
-Thus David did, when he was unjustly and barbarously cursed
-and railed at by Shimei, 2 Sam. xvi. 10-12. We ought also
-to esteem religion the more, because of the opposition and
-contempt that it meets with from the enemies of God; which
-may, indeed, afford us some evidence of the truth and excellency
-thereof; as our Saviour says concerning his disciples, <i>If
-ye were of the world, the world would love his own; but because
-you are not of the world, but I have chosen you out of
-the world, therefore the world hateth you</i>, John xv. 19.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, when we are reviled for the sake of Christ and religion,
-let us take encouragement from hence, that herein we
-have the same treatment that he, and all his saints, have met
-with, Heb. xii. 2, 3. chap. xi. 36. And let us also consider
-that there are many promises annexed hereunto, Matt. v. 11,
-12. 1 Pet. iv. 14. It is also an advantage to our character
-as Christians; for hereby it appears, that we are not on their
-side, who are Christ’s avowed enemies; and therefore we
-should reckon their reproach our glory, Heb. xi. 26, or, as the
-apostle says, <i>Take pleasure in reproaches for Christ’s sake</i>, 2
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_48'>48</span>Cor. xii. 10. or, as it is said elsewhere, <i>Rejoice, that we are
-counted worthy to suffer shame for his name</i>, Acts v. 41.
-Thus concerning our doing injury to our neighbour, by speaking
-against him before his face. We shall now consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. The injury that is done to others by speaking against
-them behind their backs. This they are guilty of, who raise
-or invent false reports of their neighbours, or spread those
-which ought to be kept secret, with a design to take away
-their good name; these are called tale-bearers, back-biters,
-slanderers, who offer injuries to others, that are not in a capacity
-of defending themselves, Lev. xix. 16. These malicious
-reports are oftentimes, indeed, prefaced, with a pretence of
-great respect to the person whom they speak against. They
-seem very much surprised at, and sorry for what they are going
-to relate; and sometimes signify their hope, that it may
-not be true; and desire, that what they report may be concealed,
-while they make it their business themselves to divulge it.
-But this method will not secure their own reputation, while
-they are endeavouring to ruin that of another. This is done
-various ways;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) By pretending that a person is guilty of a fault which
-he is innocent of. Thus our Saviour, and John the Baptist
-were charged with immoral practices, which there was not the
-least shadow or pretence for, Matt. xi. 18, 19.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) By divulging a real fault which has been acknowleged
-and repented of, and therefore ought to be concealed, chap.
-xvii. 15. or when there is no pretence for making it public;
-but what arises from malice and hatred of the person.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) By aggravating, or presenting faults worse than they
-are. Thus Absalom’s sin in murdering Amnon, was very
-great; but he that brought tidings thereof to David, represented
-it worse than it was, when he said, that Absalom had
-<i>slain all the king’s sons</i>, 2 Sam. xiii. 30.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) By reporting the bad actions of men, and, at the same
-time, over-looking and extenuating their good ones, and so
-not doing them the justice of setting one in the balance against
-the other.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(5.) By putting the worst and most injurious construction
-on actions that are really excellent. Thus, because our Saviour
-admitted Publicans and sinners into his presence, and
-did them good by his doctrine, the Jews reproached him as
-though he were a <i>friend of publicans and sinners</i>, Matt. xi.
-19. taking the word <i>friend</i> in the worst sense, as signifying an
-approver of them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(6.) By reporting things, to the prejudice of others, which
-are grounded on such slender evidence, that they themselves
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_49'>49</span>hardly believe them, or, at least, would not, had they not a
-design to make use thereof, to defame them. Thus Sanballat,
-in his letter to Nehemiah, tells him, that ‘he and the Jews
-thought to rebel; and built the wall of Jerusalem, that he
-might be their king,’ Neh. vi. 6. which, it can hardly be
-supposed, that the enemy himself gave any credit to. Thus
-concerning the instances in which persons back-bite, or raise
-false reports on others.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, to this we may add, that as they are guilty who raise
-them; so are they who listen to, and endeavour to propagate
-them. It is not, indeed, the bare hearing of a report, which,
-we cannot but think to be attended with malice and slander,
-that will render us guilty; for that we may not be able to
-avoid; but it is our encouraging him that raises or spreads it,
-which renders us guilty; and, particularly, we sin when we
-hear malicious reports.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] If we conceal them from the party concerned therein,
-and so deny him the justice of answering what is said against
-him, in his own vindication.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] When we do not reprove those who make a practice of
-slandering and back-biting others, in order to our bringing
-them to shame and repentance; and, most of all, when we
-contract an intimacy with those who are guilty of this sin, and
-are too easy in giving credit to what they say, though not supported
-by sufficient evidence; but, on the other hand, carrying
-in it the appearance of envy and resentment. Thus concerning
-the sins forbidden in this Commandment. We shall close
-this head by proposing some remedies against it. As,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, If the thing, reported to another’s prejudice, be true,
-we ought to consider, that we are not without many faults
-ourselves; which we would be unwilling, if others knew
-them, should be divulged. And if it be doubtful, we, by reporting
-it, may give occasion to some, to believe it to be
-true, without sufficient evidence, whereby our neighbour will
-receive real prejudice from that, which, to us, is only matter
-of surmize and conjecture. But if, on the other hand, what
-is reported be apparently false, the sin is still the greater; and
-the highest injustice is hereby offered to the innocent, while
-we, at the same time, are guilty of a known and presumptuous
-sin, by inventing and propagating it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, Such a way of exposing men answers no good end;
-nor is it a means of reclaiming them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Hereby we lay ourselves open to the censure of others,
-and by endeavouring to take away our neighbour’s good name,
-endanger the loss of our own.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_50'>50</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CXLVI., CXLVII., CXLVIII.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXLVI.</span> <i>Which is the tenth Commandment?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The tenth Commandment is, [<i>Thou shalt not covet
-thy neighbour’s house, thou shalt not covet thy neighbour’s
-wife, nor his man-servant, nor his maid-servant, nor his ox,
-nor his ass, nor any thing that is thy neighbour’s.</i>]</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXLVII.</span> <i>What are the duties required in the tenth
-Commandment?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The duties required in the tenth Commandment are,
-such a full contentment with our own condition, and such a
-charitable frame of the whole soul toward our neighbour,
-as that all our inward motions and affections touching him
-tend unto and further all that good which is his.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXLVIII.</span> <i>What are the sins forbidden in the tenth
-Commandment?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The sins forbidden in the tenth Commandment, are,
-discontent with our own estate; envying, and grieving at
-the good of our neighbours, together with all inordinate
-motions and affections to any thing that is his.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>The general design of this commandment, is, to regulate
-and set bounds to our desires; and it contains a prohibition
-of coveting those things, that belong not to us. It is not
-to be split into two Commandments, as the Papists pretend;
-supposing that, <i>Thou shalt not covet thy neighbour’s house</i>, is
-the ninth, and, <i>Thou shalt not covet thy neighbour’s wife</i>, &amp;c.
-is the tenth Commandment; since these are only particular
-instances of the breach of the same Commandment, and the
-argument taken from the repetition of the words, <i>Thou shalt
-not covet</i>, is so very weak and inconclusive, that it would
-hardly have been made use of by them, had they not thought
-it necessary, some way or other, to make up the number ten;
-having as was observed, under a foregoing head, determined
-the second Commandment, not to be distinct from, but an appendix
-to the first<a id='r9' /><a href='#f9' class='c012'><sup>[9]</sup></a>. But passing this by, we proceed to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. The duties required therein, which may be reduced to
-two heads;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Contentment with our own condition; by which we are
-not to understand that we are to give way to indolence or stupidity,
-but to exercise a composure of mind, acquiescing in
-the divine dispensations in every condition of life. Thus the
-apostle says, <i>I have learned in whatsoever state I am, therewith
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_51'>51</span>to be content</i>, Phil. iv. 11. And this being applicable to all sorts
-of men, we may consider it,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) As a grace that is to be exercised by those who are in
-prosperous circumstances in the world. Thus the apostle
-says, <i>I know how to abound</i>, ver. 12. and to be <i>full</i>, as well as
-to <i>suffer need</i>. We often find, that they who have the greatest
-share of the good things of this world, are so far from being
-satisfied with it, that their covetousness increaseth in proportion
-to their substance. But such ought to consider, that this
-is most unreasonable and ungrateful; and may justly provoke
-God to take away the blessing which he has given them, or
-add some circumstances thereunto, that will tend to embitter
-them; and it is a giving way to such a temper of mind as renders
-them really miserable in the midst of their abundance.
-But that which we shall principally consider, is,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) How this grace of contentment is to be exercised by
-those who are in an afflicted state, together with the motives
-and inducements leading thereunto. And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] We will suppose persons under bodily weakness or
-pain, which tends much to embitter the comforts of life, by
-which means they are made uneasy; and, indeed, it is impossible,
-from the nature of the thing, for them not to complain,
-or groan under the burdens that are laid on them, as the
-Psalmist did, who speaks of himself as <i>weary of his groaning</i>,
-Psal. vi. 6. nor is it unlawful, provided they do not repine at,
-or find fault with, the methods of God’s providence, in his
-dealing with them. Nevertheless there are some things that
-may induce them to be contented.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, When they consider, that the body gave occasion to the
-first entrance of sin into the world, and bears a part with the
-soul in all the sins committed, and guilt contracted thereby.
-It is therefore no wonder, when we find that it has its share
-in those miseries that attend it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, Bodily diseases are our monitors, to put us in mind
-of the frailty of our present state; and therefore, since they
-are the harbingers of death, we are hereby forwarned, to prepare
-for it, as making sensible advances towards it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, The greatest pains that we are liable to, are far short
-of what Christ endured for us; in which respect our afflictions
-are comparatively light, and a convincing proof, that they are
-not certain indications of our being rejected by God, Eccl.
-ix. 1.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, As God will not lay more on us than he will enable
-us to bear; so none of these afflictive dispensations shall have
-a tendency to separate the soul from Christ. Though we
-sometimes complain that this is a great interruption to the
-exercise of grace; yet this shall not be charged upon us as
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_52'>52</span>our fault, any otherwise than as it is the effect of that sin,
-which is the procuring cause of all affliction.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>5thly</i>, The heavier our afflictions are at present, the more
-sweet and comfortable the heavenly rest will be, to those who
-have a well-grounded hope that they shall be brought to it,
-Job iii. 17. 2 Thess. i. 7. 2 Cor. iv. 17.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] If our condition be low and poor in the world, we are
-not without some inducements to be content. For,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, Poverty is not, in itself, a curse, or inconsistent with
-the love of God, since Christ himself submitted to it, 2 Cor.
-viii. 9. Matt. viii. 20. and his best saints have been exposed
-to it, and glorified God, more than others, under it, 2 Cor.
-vi. 10.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, How poor soever we are, we have more than we
-brought into the world with us, or than the richest person can
-carry out of it, Job i. 21.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, They who have least of the world, have more than
-they deserve, or than God was under any obligation to give
-them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] Suppose we are afflicted in our good name, and do not
-meet with that love and esteem from the world, which might be
-expected; but, on the other hand, are censured, reproached,
-and hated by those with whom we converse. This should
-not make us, beyond measure, uneasy. For,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, We have reason to conclude, that the esteem of the
-world is precarious and uncertain; and they who most deserve
-it, have oftentimes the least of it. Thus our Saviour was one
-day followed with the caresses of the multitude, shouting forth
-their hosannah’s to him; and the next day the common cry
-was, crucify him, crucify him. And when the apostle Paul
-and Barnabas, had healed the cripple at Lystra, they could,
-at first, hardly restrain the people from offering sacrifice to
-them; but afterwards they joined with the malicious Jews in
-stoning them, Acts xiv. 18, 19. And Paul tells the Galatians,
-that ‘if it had been possible, they would have plucked
-out their eyes, and have given them to him;’ but a little after
-this, he complains that he was ‘become their enemy, because
-he told them the truth,’ Gal. iv. 15, 16.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, The esteem of men is no farther to be desired, than
-as it may render us useful to them; and if God is pleased to
-deny this to us, we are not to prescribe to him, what measure
-of respect he shall allot to us from the world, or usefulness
-in it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Let us consider, that we know more evil abounding
-in our own hearts than others can charge us with. Therefore,
-how much soever they are guilty of injustice to us; yet this
-affords us a motive to contentment. Besides we have not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_53'>53</span>brought that honour to God that we ought; therefore, how
-just is it for him to deny us that esteem from men which we
-desire?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[4.] Suppose we are afflicted in our relations; there are
-some motives to contentment. Thus if servants have masters
-who make their lives uncomfortable, by their unreasonable
-demands, or unjust severity, such ought to consider, that their
-faithfulness and industry will be approved of, by God, how
-much soever it may be disregarded, by men; and a conscientious
-discharge of the duties incumbent on them, in the relation
-in which they stand, will give them ground to expect a
-blessing from God, to whom they are herein said to do service,
-which shall not go unrewarded, Eph. vi. 7, 8.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>On the other hand, if masters are afflicted, by reason of the
-stubborn and unfaithful behaviour, or sloth and negligence, of
-their servants; let them enquire, whether this be not the consequence
-of their not being so much concerned for their spiritual
-welfare as they ought, or keeping up strict religion in
-their families? or, whether they have not been more concerned
-that their servants should obey them, than their great master,
-which is in heaven?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, if parents have undutiful children, which are a grief
-of heart to them; let them consider, as a motive to contentment,
-whether they have not formerly neglected their duty to
-their parents, slighted their counsels, or disregarded their reproofs?
-so whether they have not reason to charge themselves
-with the iniquity of their youth? and enquire, whether God
-be not, herein, writing bitter things against them for it? or,
-whether they have not neglected to bring up their children in
-the nurture and admonition of the Lord? These considerations
-will fence against all repining thoughts at the providence
-of God, that has brought these troubles upon them. And, as
-a farther inducement to make them easy, let such consider,
-that if this does not altogether lie at their door, but, they have
-been faithful to their children, in praying for, and instructing
-them, God may hear their prayers, and set home their instructions
-on their hearts, when they themselves are removed
-out of the world.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>On the other hand, if children have wicked parents, whose
-conversation fills them with great uneasiness; let such consider,
-that this has been the case of many of God’s faithful servants;
-such as Hezekiah, Josiah, and others; and they may
-be assured, that they shall have no occasion to use that proverb,
-‘The fathers have eaten sour grapes, and the children’s
-teeth are set on edge,’ Ezek. xviii. 2.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[5.] If we are afflicted, by reason of the treachery and unfaithfulness
-of pretended friends, which wound us in the most
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_54'>54</span>tender part, Psal. lv. 12, 13. we may be induced to be content.
-For,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, We have no ground to expect perfection in the best of
-men, nor that their love and favour is immutable; neither is
-our conduct always such, that we do not often forfeit the respect,
-which we once had from others.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, If our friends deal deceitfully with us, or are unfaithful
-to us, without just ground; this is not without the permission
-of the wise and over-ruling providence of God, who,
-sometimes, orders it to take us off from a dependence upon
-men, or expecting too much happiness from them; which is
-to be sought for only in himself, Isa. ii. 22.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, This is our encouragement, when we find a change in
-the behaviour of friends towards us, that our chief happiness
-consists in the unchangeable love of God, Mal. iii. 6.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[6.] When we are afflicted in the loss of friends, or near relations;
-let us consider, as a motive to contentment,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That there is no reversing or altering the decree of
-God, which fixes the bounds of men’s continuance in this
-world, Job xiv. 9.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, All the comfort we have in friends and relations is a
-peculiar blessing from God; and he sometimes afflicts us in
-the loss of them, that he may draw off our affections from the
-best creature-enjoyments, and we may take up our rest intirely
-in himself. Moreover, we had never any reason to look on
-our friends as immortal, any more than ourselves; and therefore
-ought to say as David did when he lost his child, <i>I shall
-go to him, but he shall not return to me</i>, 2 Sam. xii. 23. and so
-far as self-love is concerned herein, we have reason to give a
-check to the excess thereof, by the exercise of self-denial, and
-say with David, <i>I was dumb, and opened not my mouth, because
-thou didst it</i>, Psal. xxxix. 8. or follow the example of
-Aaron, concerning whom it is said, that, when he lost two of
-his sons at once, by a public and awful stroke of divine justice,
-<i>he held his peace</i>, Lev. x. 3.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[7.] If we are afflicted by the want of success, or the many
-disappointments that attend us, in our lawful callings, in the
-world, we have reason, notwithstanding, to be content, if we
-consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That it is the sovereign hand of God that orders our
-condition therein, as to what respects the success or disappointments
-that attend it; therefore we are not to strive against
-our Maker, or find fault with his will, who may do what he
-pleases with his own.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, A man’s happiness does not really consist in the abundance
-of what he possesses, Luke xii. 15. but rather in his
-having a heart to use it aright; therefore we ought to say to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_55'>55</span>ourselves, as God did to Baruch, <i>Seekest thou great things
-for thyself? seek them not</i>, Jer. xlv. 5.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, The world is a scene of vanity; we have no reason to
-expect too much from it; and therefore ought not to be dejected
-at the loss of it; especially considering that such disappointments
-are the common lot of all sorts of men.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, The providence of God sometimes denies us the good
-things of this world, that we may think it our duty and interest
-to lay up treasures in heaven.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[8.] Suppose we meet with afflictions, as to what relates to
-our spiritual concerns, as being under divine desertion, or
-decays of grace, or want of a sense of the love of God, or
-those spiritual comforts, which we once enjoyed from him; in
-this condition no believer can or ought to be easy, at least,
-stupid and unconcerned about it; but, on the other hand, he
-ought to be humbled for those sins which may give occasion
-to it, and press after the enjoyment of what he is, at present,
-deprived of: Nevertheless, contentment, as it is opposed
-to repining or quarrelling with God, is his present duty;
-and there are some inducements tending thereunto; as,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, A person may have the truth of grace, when he is destitute
-of the comfortable sense thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, There are some great and precious promises made to
-believers, in this condition, Isa. liv. 7, 8. Psal. cxii. 4.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, God has wise ends in this dispensation; for hereby
-he brings sin to remembrance, humbles us for it, fences against
-presumption and confidence in our own strength, Psal. xxx.
-6, 7. He also puts us upon the exercise of suitable graces,
-Psal. xlii. 6. and lxxvii. 6. and when he is pleased to comfort
-us after such afflictions, we are better furnished to comfort
-others in the like case.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. The next thing required in this Commandment, is, a
-charitable frame of spirit towards our neighbour; so that all
-our inward motions and affections should lead us to promote
-and rejoice in his good, 1 Cor. xiii. 4-7. This charitable
-frame of spirit ought to be exercised,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Towards those who excel us in gifts or graces: These
-they receive from the hand of providence, as talents to be
-improved; and therefore, if they have a greater share thereof
-than ourselves, more is required of them in proportion
-thereunto, Luke xii. 48. If they excel us in grace, we ought
-rather to rejoice, that though we bring but little glory to
-God, others bring more; and it will afford us an evidence
-of the truth of grace, if, while we are humbled under a
-sense of our own defects, we are thankful for the honour
-that is brought to God by others, Gal. i. 23, 24. John iii.
-26, 27, 28, 30.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_56'>56</span>(2.) We ought to exercise a charitable frame of spirit towards
-those who are in more prosperous circumstances in the
-world; not envying, grieving, or repining at the providence of
-God, because their condition therein is better than ours. We
-are therefore to consider, that the most flourishing and
-prosperous condition in the world, is not always the best,
-Psal. xxxvii. 16. nor is it without many temptations that often
-attend it, 1 Tim. vi. 9. and if it be not improved to the
-glory of God, this will bring a greater weight of guilt on their
-consciences: Whereas, on the other hand, if we enjoy communion
-with him, and the blessings of the upper springs, this
-is much more desirable than the most prosperous condition
-in the world, without it, Psal. xvi. 5, 6. This leads us to
-consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. The sins forbidden in this Commandment. And these
-include in them, that corrupt fountain from whence the irregularity
-of our desires proceeds; or the streams that flow
-from it, which discover themselves in the lusts of concupiscence
-in various instances, as well as in our being discontented with
-our own estate.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. As to the former of these, to wit, the corruption of nature;
-this must be considered as contrary to the law of God,
-and consequently forbidden in this Commandment. The Pelagians
-and Papists, indeed, pretend that the law of God only
-respects the corruption of our actions which is to be checked
-and restrained thereby; and not the internal habits or principle
-from whence they proceed; accordingly they take an
-estimate hereof from human laws, which only respect the overt
-acts of sin, and not those internal inclinations and dispositions
-which persons have to commit it: But when we speak
-of the divine laws, we must not take our plan from thence;
-for though man can only judge of outward actions, God
-judgeth the heart; and therefore that sin which reigns there,
-cannot but be, in the highest degree, offensive to him; and
-though the corruption of our nature cannot be altogether prevented
-or extirpated, by any prescription in the divine law;
-yet, this is the means which God takes, to reprove and humble
-us for it, Rom. vii. 9.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Object.</i> It is objected that the apostle James, in chap. i.
-15. distinguishes between lust and sin; <i>when lust hath conceived
-it bringeth forth sin</i>; therefore the corruption of nature
-is not properly sin; and, consequently not forbidden by the
-law.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied; that lust may be distinguished
-from sin, as the habit or corrupt principle is from the
-act which it produces; and therefore, the apostle’s meaning in
-this scripture is, that lust, or irregular desires, are first conceived
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_57'>57</span>in the heart; and then actual sins proceed from them in the
-life; and both of them are abhorred by God, and contrary to
-his law: And they seem to be forbidden, in particular, in this
-tenth Commandment.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Here we may observe the various methods that corrupt nature
-takes, in order to its producing and bringing forth sinful
-actions. First, the temptation is offered, either by Satan, or
-the world, with a specious pretence of some advantage which
-may arise from our compliance with it; and, at the same time
-we consider not whether it be lawful or unlawful; and regard
-not the threatnings that should deter us from it. And, we sometimes
-take occasion, from the pernicious examples of the falls
-and miscarriages of others, to venture on the commission of
-the same sins; pretending that they are, many of them, more
-acquainted with scripture, than we are; and there seems
-to be no ill consequence attending their commission of those
-sins: therefore, why may we not give way to them? And
-also, that many, who have had more fortitude and resolution
-than we can pretend to, have been overcome by the
-same temptations; therefore it is in vain for us to strive
-against them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, corrupt nature sometimes fills the soul with a secret
-dislike of the strictness and purity of the law of God; and, at
-other times, it suggests that there are some dispensations allowed,
-in compliance with the frailty of nature; and therefore,
-we may venture on the commission of some sins; At length
-we take up a resolution that we will try the experiment, whatever
-be the consequence thereof. Thus lust brings forth sin;
-which, after it has been, for some time indulged, is committed
-with greediness, and persisted in with resolution; and, in the
-end, brings forth death. And this leads us to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. The irregularity of those actions, which proceed from
-the corruption of our nature, which are sometimes, called the
-lusts of concupiscence; whereby, without the least shew of
-justice, we endeavour to possess ourselves of those things
-which belong to our neighbour. Thus Ahab was restless in
-his own spirit, till he had got Naboth’s vineyard into his
-hand; and, in order thereto, joined in a conspiracy, to take
-away his life, 1 Kings xxi. 4. And David coveted his neighbour’s
-wife; which was one of the greatest blemishes in his
-life, and brought with it a long train of miseries, that attended
-him in the following part of his reign, 2 Sam. xii. 9-12. And
-Achan coveted those goods which belonged not to him, the
-<i>wedge of gold</i>, and the <i>Babylonish garment</i>, Josh. vii. 21.
-which sin proved his ruin.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This sin of covetousness arises from a being discontented
-with our present condition, so that whatever measure of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_58'>58</span>blessings of providence we enjoy, we are notwithstanding,
-filled with disquietude of mind, because we are destitute of
-what we are lusting after. This must be considered as a sin
-that is attended with very great aggravations. For,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) It unfits us for the performance of holy duties; prevents
-the exercise of those graces, which are necessary in order
-thereunto; and, on the other hand, exposes us to manifold
-temptations, whereby we are rendered an easy prey to
-our spiritual enemies.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) It is altogether unlike the temper of the blessed Jesus,
-who expressed an entire resignation to the divine will, under
-the greatest sufferings, John xviii. 11. Luke xxi. 42. And, indeed,
-it is a very great reproach to religion, in general, and a
-discouragement to those who are setting their faces towards it,
-who will be ready to conclude, from our example, that the
-consolations of God are small, or that there is not enough in
-the promises of the covenant of grace, to quiet our spirits under
-their present uneasiness.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) It is to act as though we expected, or desired our portion
-in this world, or looked no farther than these present
-things; which is contrary to the practice of the best of God’s
-saints, 2 Cor. iv. 18.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) It tends to cast the utmost contempt on the many mercies
-we have received or enjoy, at present, which are, as it
-were, forgotten in unthankfulness; and it is a setting aside
-those blessings which the gospel gives us to expect.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(5.) It argues an unwillingness to be at God’s disposal, and
-a leaning to our own understandings, as though we knew better
-than him, what was most conducive to our present and future
-happiness; and therefore, it is a tempting God, and
-grieving his Holy Spirit, which has a tendency to provoke him
-to <i>turn to be our enemy</i>, and <i>fight against us</i>, Isa. lxiii. 10.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(6.) It deprives us of the present sweetness of other mercies;
-renders every providence, in our apprehension, afflictive;
-and those burdens which would otherwise be light, almost insupportable.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(7.) If God is pleased to give us what we were discontented
-and uneasy for the want of, he often sends some great affliction
-with it: Thus Rachel, in a discontented frame, says,
-<i>Give me children, or else I die</i>, Gen. xxx. 1. she had, indeed,
-in some respects, her desire of children; but died in travail
-with one of them, chap. xxxv. 19.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(8.) It is a sin, which they, who are guilty of, will find it
-very difficult to be brought to a thorough conviction of the
-guilt which they contract hereby, or a true repentance for it:
-Thus Jonah, when under a discontented and uneasy frame of
-spirit, justified himself, and, as it were, defied God to do his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_59'>59</span>worst against him; so that when this matter was charged upon
-his conscience; <i>Dost thou well to be angry?</i> he replied, in
-a very insolent manner, <i>I do well to be angry, even unto death</i>,
-Jonah iv. 9. The justifying ourselves under such a frame of
-spirit, cannot but be highly provoking to God; and whatever
-we may be prone to allege in our own behalf, will rather
-aggravate, than extenuate the crime.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There are several things which a discontented person is
-apt to allege in his own vindication, which have a tendency
-only to enhance his guilt. As,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] When he pretends that his natural temper leads him
-to be uneasy, so that he cannot, by any means, subdue his
-passions, or submit to the disposing providence of God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>To which it may be replied; that the corruption of our
-nature, and its proneness to sin, is no just excuse for, but rather
-an aggravation of it; whereby it appears to be more
-deeply rooted in our hearts; and, indeed, our natural inclinations
-to any sin are increased, by indulging it. Therefore,
-in this case, we ought rather to be importunate with God, for
-that grace which may have a tendency to restrain the inordinacy
-of our affections, and render us willing to acquiesce in
-the divine dispensations, than to paliate and excuse our sin;
-which only aggravates the guilt thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] Some, in excuse for their discontented and uneasy frame
-of spirit, allege; that the injuries which have been offered to
-them, ought to be resented, that they are such as they are
-not able to bear; and not to show themselves uneasy under
-them, would be to encourage persons to insult and trample on
-them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But to this it may be replied; that while we complain of injuries
-done us by men, and are prone to meditate revenge
-against them, we do not consider the great dishonour that we
-bring to God, and how much we deserve to be made the monuments
-of his fury, so that we should not obtain forgiveness
-from him, who are so prone to resent lesser injuries done to us
-by our fellow-creatures, Matt. xviii. 23. <i>&amp; seq.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] Others excuse their discontent, by alleging the greatness
-of their afflictions; that their burden is almost insupportable,
-so that they are pressed out of measure, above strength,
-and are ready to say with Job, <i>Even to day is my complaint
-bitter; my stroke is heavier than my groaning</i>, Job xxiii. 2.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But to this it may be replied; that our afflictions are not so
-great as our sins, which are the procuring cause thereof; nor
-are they greater than some that befal others, who are better
-than ourselves; and, indeed, by indulging a discontented frame
-of spirit, we render them heavier than they would otherwise
-be.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_60'>60</span>[4.] Some pretend, that they are discontented and uneasy
-because the affliction they are under, was altogether unexpected;
-and therefore they were unprovided for, and so less able
-to bear it. To this it may be replied;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That a Christian ought daily to expect afflictions in this
-miserable and sinful world, at least, so far as not to be unprovided
-for, or think it strange that he should be exercised with
-them, 1 Pet. iv. 12.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, We have received many unlooked for mercies; and
-therefore, why should we be uneasy because we meet with
-unexpected afflictions, and not rather set the one against the
-other.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, Some of God’s best children have oftentimes been
-surprized with afflictive providences, and yet have been enabled
-to exercise contentment under them. Thus the messengers
-who brought Job heavy and unexpected tidings of one
-affliction immediately following another, Job i. 13, &amp; <i>seq.</i> did
-not overthrow his faith, or make him discontented under the
-hand of God; for, notwithstanding all this, he <i>worshipped</i> and
-<i>blessed the name of the Lord</i>, ver. 20, 21.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[5.] Others allege, that the change which is made in their
-circumstances in the world, from a prosperous to an afflicted
-condition of life, is so great, and lies with such weight upon
-their spirits, that it is impossible for them to be easy under it.
-But to this it may be answered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That when God gave us the good things we are deprived
-of, he reserved to himself the liberty of taking them
-away when he pleased, as designing hereby, to shew his absolute
-sovereignty over us; and therefore, before this affliction
-befel us, it was our duty, according to the apostle’s advice, to
-<i>rejoice as though we rejoiced not</i>, and to <i>use the world as not
-abusing it</i>, 1 Cor. vii. 30. and not to think it strange, that we
-should be deprived of it, inasmuch as <i>the fashion</i> thereof
-<i>passeth away</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, The greater variety of conditions in which we have
-been, or are, in the world, afford more abundant experience
-of those dealings of God with us, which are designed as an
-ordinance for our faith; and therefore, instead of being discontented
-under them, we ought rather to be put hereupon, on
-the exercise of those graces that are suitable to the change of
-our condition, as the apostle says, <i>I know both how to be abased,
-and I know how to abound</i>, Phil. iv. 12.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[6.] Some allege, that they have the greatest reason to be
-discontented, because of the influence which their afflictions
-have on their spiritual concerns, as they tend to interrupt their
-communion with God; and they are often ready to fear, that
-these are indications of his wrath, and, as it were, the beginning
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_61'>61</span>of sorrows; which leads them to the very brink of despair.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>To this it may be replied; that it is certain nothing more
-sharpens the edge of afflictions, or has a greater tendency to
-make us uneasy under them, than such thoughts as these; and
-not to be sensible hereof, would be an instance of the greatest
-stupidity; yet let us consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That if our fears are ill-grounded, as they sometimes
-are, the uneasiness that arises from them is unwarrantable.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, If we have too much ground for them, we are to make
-use of the remedy that God has provided; accordingly we are
-to have recourse by faith, to the blood of Jesus, for forgiveness;
-and this ought to be accompanied with the exercise of
-true repentance, and godly sorrow for sin, without giving way
-to those despairing apprehensions, that sometimes arise from
-a sense of the greatness of the guilt thereof, as though it set
-us out of the reach of mercy; which will add an insupportable
-weight to our burden; and,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, If under the afflicting hand of God, we are rendered
-unfit for holy duties, and have no communion with him therein;
-this may be owing, not to the affliction, but that discontented,
-uneasy frame of spirit which we too much indulge under
-it. Therefore we are not to allege this as an excuse for
-that murmuring, repining frame of spirit which we are too apt
-to discover while exercised therewith.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The last thing to be considered is, the remedies against this
-sin of being discontented with our present condition; and these
-are,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, A due sense of that undoubted right which God has to
-dispose of us, and our condition in this world, as he pleases;
-inasmuch as we are his own, Matt. xx. 15.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, Uneasiness under the hand of God, or repining at his
-dealings, when he thinks fit to deprive us of the blessings we
-once enjoyed, is not the way to recover the possession of them;
-but the best expedient for us to regain them, or some other
-blessings that are more than an equivalent for them, is our exercising
-an entire resignation to the will of God, and concluding
-that all his dispensations are holy, just, and good.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Let us consider, that God oftentimes designs to make
-us better by the sharpest trials, which are an ordinance to
-bring us nearer to himself. Thus David says, <i>Before I was
-afflicted, I went astray; but now have I kept thy word</i>, Psal.
-cxix. 67.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, We ought to consider that God’s design in these dispensations
-is, to <i>try our faith</i>, and that it <i>may found afterwards
-unto praise, honour, and glory</i>, as it will be, with respect
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_62'>62</span>to every true believer, <i>at the appearing of Jesus Christ</i>,
-1 Pet. i. 7. And to this we may add,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>5thly</i>, That there are many promises of the presence of God,
-which have not only a tendency to afford relief against uneasiness
-or dejection of spirit; but to give us the greatest encouragement
-under the sorest afflictions; particularly, that
-comprehensive promise, <i>I will never leave thee, nor forsake
-thee</i>, Heb. xiii. 5.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CXLIX.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXLIX.</span> <i>Is any man able perfectly to keep the Commandments
-of God?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> No man is able, either in himself, or by any grace received
-in this life, perfectly to keep the Commandments of
-God, but doth daily break them in thought, word, and deed.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>Having considered man’s duty and obligation to keep
-the Commandments of God; we are now led to speak of
-him as unable to keep them; and, on the other hand, chargeable
-with the daily breach thereof, which is an argument of
-the imperfection of this present state. We have, under a
-foregoing answer<a id='r10' /><a href='#f10' class='c012'><sup>[10]</sup></a>, endeavoured to prove that the work of
-sanctification is imperfect in this life; so that all the boasts of
-the Pelagians, and others, who defend the possibility of attaining
-perfection therein, are vain and unwarrantable. We have
-also considered the reasons why God orders that it should be
-so. And therefore we shall, without enlarging so much on
-this subject, as otherwise we might have done, principally take
-notice of what is to be observed in this answer, under two
-general heads.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. In what respects, and with what limitations, man is said
-to be unable to keep the Commandments of God; and, accordingly
-it is said, that no man is able, perfectly, to keep them.
-By which we are to understand, as it is observed in the Shorter
-Catechism<a id='r11' /><a href='#f11' class='c012'><sup>[11]</sup></a>, no mere man, whereby our Saviour is excepted,
-who yielded perfect obedience in our nature. This
-is farther explained, with another limitation, namely, that no
-man is able to do this since the fall; to denote that man, in
-his state of innocency, was able, perfectly to keep the Commandments
-of God. For he was made upright, and had the
-image of God instamped on his soul; which consisted in
-knowledge, righteousness, and holiness, Eccl. vii. 29. Gen. i.
-27. having the law of God written in his heart, and power to
-fulfil it<a id='r12' /><a href='#f12' class='c012'><sup>[12]</sup></a>. And, indeed, to suppose the contrary, would be a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_63'>63</span>reflection upon the divine government, and would argue man
-to have been created under a natural necessity of sinning, and
-perishing; which is contrary to the goodness, holiness, and
-justice of God. It is farther observed, that no man is able,
-in this life, thus to keep God’s Commandments, which contains
-an intimation that the glorified saints, in heaven, will be
-enabled to yield perfect obedience; notwithstanding the many
-imperfections they are now liable to. Moreover, as man is
-not able, of himself, or without the aids of divine grace, to
-obey God; so he is not to expect such assistance from him as
-shall enable him to obey him perfectly. There is no doubt
-but the grace of God could free us from all the remainders of
-sin in this world, as well as in our passing from it to heaven;
-but we have no ground to conclude that it will. For,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. <i>The whole creation</i> is liable to the curse,<a id='r13' /><a href='#f13' class='c012'><sup>[13]</sup></a> (which was
-consequent upon man’s first apostasy from God,) under which
-it <i>groaneth</i>, unto this day, Rom. viii. 22, 23. and shall not be
-delivered from it, till the scene of time, and things shall be
-changed, and the saints shall be fully possessed of what they
-are now waiting for, to wit, the <i>adoption</i>, or <i>the redemption of
-their bodies</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. God is pleased to deny his people that perfection of holiness
-here, which they shall attain to hereafter, that he may
-give them daily occasion to exercise the duties of self-denial,
-mortification of sin, faith, and repentance, which redound to
-his own glory, and their spiritual advantage. This leads us,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. To consider that we daily break the Commandments of
-God, in thought, word, and deed.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. In thought; to wit, when the mind is conversant about
-sinful objects, in such away, as that it contracts defilement. It
-is a sign that the wickedness of man is very great, when,
-<i>every imagination of the thoughts of his heart is only evil</i>, and
-that <i>continually</i>, Gen. vi. 5. Now the sinfulness of the
-thoughts of men, consists in four things;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) When they chuse, delight in, and are daily conversant
-about things that are vain, empty of what is good, and have
-no tendency to the glory of God, or the spiritual advantage
-either of ourselves or others. The least vain thought which
-contains an excursion from our duty to God, brings some degree
-of guilt with it; but when the mind is wholly taken up
-with vanity, so that it is turned aside from, or takes no delight
-in those things that are of the highest importance, this
-will have a tendency to vitiate the mind, and alienate it from
-the life of God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) The thoughts of men may be said to be sinful, when
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_64'>64</span>they are not fixed, or intensely set, on God and divine things,
-when engaged in holy duties; and that either, when worldly
-cares or business, how lawful soever they may be at other
-times, have a tendency to divert our thoughts from them, being
-altogether inconsistent therewith. Or when our minds
-are conversant about spiritual things unseasonably, so as to be
-diverted from our present design; as, when we are joining
-with others in prayer, instead of bearing a part with them,
-in having the same exercise of faith, and other graces, which
-supposes that our thoughts are employed about the same object
-with theirs, we are meditating on some other divine subject,
-foreign to the present occasion.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) Our thoughts may be said to be sinful, when they are
-conversant about spiritual things, without suitable affections,
-and, consequently, meditating on them as common things, in
-which we are not much concerned; as when we are destitute
-of those holy desires after, or delight in God, when drawing
-nigh to him in holy duties, which his law requires. And
-this will more evidently appear, when, by comparing the frame
-of our spirit therein, with what we observe it to be in other
-instances, we find, that our affections are easily raised, when
-engaged in matters of less importance, but stupid, and unconcerned
-about our eternal welfare, in holy duties; which is accompanied
-with hardness of heart and impenitency, and sometimes
-with uneasiness and weariness, as though they were a
-burden to us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>On the other hand, our affections may be raised in these
-duties, and yet we be chargeable with a sinfulness of thought
-therein; as,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] When the affections are raised by things of less importance,
-while other things that are more affecting, are not
-regarded. As, supposing a person is meditating on Christ’s
-sufferings, and he is very much affected with, and enraged at
-the treachery of Judas, that betrayed him, or the barbarity of
-the Jews, that crucified him; but not in the least with the sin
-of the world, that was the occasion of it, or the greatness of
-his love, that moved him to submit to it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] When our affections are raised in holy duties, and this
-is all that we depend upon, for justification and acceptance in
-the sight of God, vainly supposing that our tears will wash
-away our sins, being destitute of faith in the blood of Christ.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] When we are concerned about the misery consequent
-on our sins, but are not in the least inclined to hate them, nor
-grieved at the dishonour brought to the name of God thereby.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This leads us to consider the causes hereof, and remedies
-against it. If we do not find that our affections are raised in
-these religious exercises, as they have been in times past, we
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_65'>65</span>ought to enquire into the reason thereof; whether this be not
-attended with some great backslidings from God, which might
-first occasion it. Sometimes it proceeds from a neglect of
-holy duties, either public or private; at other times, from presumptuous
-sins, committed, or continued in, with impenitency.
-And we often find, that our being too much embarrassed with,
-or immoderately engaged in our pursuit of the profits or pleasures
-of this world, stupifies and damps our affections, as to
-religious matters, so that they are seldom or never raised
-therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to the remedies against this stupid and unaffected frame
-of spirit; we must not only repent of, but abstain from those
-sins, that have been the occasion thereof; meditate on those
-subjects, that are most suitable to our case, which have a tendency
-to enflame our love to Christ, and desire after him, and
-our zeal for his glory; and often confess and bewail our stupidity
-and unbecoming behaviour in holy duties; earnestly
-imploring the powerful influence of the Spirit of God, to bring
-us into, and keep us in a right frame of spirit for them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) We have reason to charge ourselves with sin, when
-guilty of blasphemous thoughts; as,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, When we have, by degrees, brought on ourselves a disregard
-of God, either by living in the neglect of holy duties,
-or allowing ourselves in the practice of known sins.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, When, before we were followed with these thoughts,
-we have found that we gave way to some doubts about the
-divine perfections; or, through the ignorance, pride and vanity
-of our minds, have contracted an habitual disregard to, or
-neglect of that holy reverence with which we ought to meditate
-on them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, When we can hear those execrable oaths or curses, by
-which some profanely blaspheme the name of God, without expressing
-our resentment with the utmost abhorrence and detestation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, When we find, that being followed with blasphemous
-thoughts, our hearts are too prone to give in to them, as though
-they were the sentiments of our mind; whereby we do, as it
-were, consent to them, instead of rejecting them with the utmost
-aversion.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But, on the other hand, blasphemous thoughts are not always
-to be charged on us as a sin. Sometimes they are chargeable
-on Satan, who herein acts according to his character, as God’s
-open enemy; and endeavours to instil into us the same ideas
-that he himself has. These thoughts may be charged on him;
-when they are hastily injected into our minds, not being the
-result of choice or deliberation; but are a kind of violence offered
-to our imagination, and, we cannot but discover the greatest
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_66'>66</span>detestation of them, as well as of that enemy of souls, from
-whom they take their rise; and when, at the same time, we
-are enabled to exercise the contrary graces, and betake ourselves
-to God with faith and prayer, that he would rebuke the
-Devil, and preserve our consciences undefiled, under this sore
-temptation, which we cannot but reckon one of the greatest afflictions
-that befal us in the world. Thus concerning the sinfulness
-of our thoughts.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We are farther said, daily to break the Commandments
-of God in word. Thus the apostle James speaks of the <i>tongue</i>
-as <i>an unruly evil full of deadly poison</i>, James iii. 8. Evil-speaking,
-as was before observed concerning the sinfulness of our
-thoughts, is attended with a greater or less degree of guilt, as
-the vanity of the mind, and the wickedness of the heart, more
-or less discovers itself therein. Our Saviour speaks of the accountableness
-of man in the day of judgment, for every <i>idle
-word</i>, Matt. xii. 36. to denote, that there is no sin so small,
-but what is displeasing to an holy God, a violation of his law,
-and brings with it a degree of guilt, in proportion to the nature
-thereof. These indeed, are the lowest instances of the
-sinfulness of words. There are others that are of so heinous a
-nature, that they can hardly be reckoned consistent with true
-godliness. <i>viz.</i> defaming, and malicious words; which are
-sometimes compared to a <i>sword</i>, or <i>arrows</i>, Psal. lvii. 4. or to
-a <i>serpent’s tongue</i>, that leaves a sting and poison behind it, Psal.
-cxl. 3. Again, the sinfulness of our words extends itself yet
-farther, as they are directed against the blessed God; when
-persons <i>set their mouth against the heavens, and their tongue
-walketh through the earth</i>, Psal. lxxiii. 9. when they give themselves
-the liberty to talk profanely about sacred things, and
-openly blaspheme the name and perfections of God. This degree
-of impiety, indeed, all are not chargeable with. Nevertheless,
-we may say, should God mark the iniquity of our
-words, as well as of our thoughts, who could stand?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. We are said to break the Commandments of God, by
-deeds, <i>i. e.</i> by committing those sins which are contrived in
-the heart, and uttered with our tongues. These have been
-considered under their respective heads, as a violation of each
-of the ten Commandments, or doing those things that are forbidden
-therein; and therefore we pass them over in this place,
-and proceed to speak concerning the aggravations of sin.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CL.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CL.</span> <i>Are all transgressions of the law of God equally
-heinous in themselves, and in the sight of God?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> All transgressions of the law of God are not equally
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_67'>67</span>heinous. But some sins in themselves, and by reason of
-several aggravations, are more heinous in the sight of God
-than others.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>Though all sins be objectively infinite, and equally opposite
-to the holiness of God; yet there are some circumstances
-attending them, which are of that pernicious tendency,
-that they render one sin more heinous than another; so
-that it is not to be thought of, without the greatest horror and
-resentment; as well as expose the sinner to a sorer condemnation,
-if it be not forgiven. These are such as strike at the
-very essentials of religion, and tend, as much as in us lies, to
-sap the foundation thereof; as when men deny the being and
-perfections of God, and practically disown their obligation, to
-yield obedience to him. And some sins against the second table,
-which more immediately respect our neighbour, are more
-heinous than others, in proportion to the degree of injury done
-him thereby. Thus the taking away the life of another, is
-more injurious, and consequently more aggravated than barely
-the hating of him; which is, nevertheless, a very great crime.
-Moreover, the same sin, whether against the Commandments
-of the first or second table, may be said to be more or less
-heinous, in proportion to the degree of obstinacy, deliberation,
-malice, or enmity against God, with which it is committed;
-but these things will more evidently appear under the following
-answer; which we proceed to consider,</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 id='quest-151' class='c004'>Quest. CLI.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLI.</span> <i>What are those aggravations which make some
-sins more heinous than others?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> Sins receive their aggravations,</p>
-
-<p class='c007'>I. From the persons offending, if they be of riper age, greater
-experience, or grace, eminent for profession, gifts, place,
-office; guides to others, and whose example is likely to be
-followed by others.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>Sins are greater than otherwise they would be when committed
-by those whose age and experience ought to have
-taught them better. Thus Elihu says, <i>A multitude of years
-should teach wisdom</i>, Job xxxii. 7. Many things would be a
-reproach to such persons, which are more agreeable to the character
-of children, than those who are advanced in age. Again,
-if they have had large experience of the grace of God, and
-been eminent for their profession, or gifts conferred on them.
-These circumstances will render the same sin more aggravated;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_68'>68</span>for where much is given, an improvement is expected in
-proportion thereunto; and where great pretensions are made
-to religion, the acting disagreeable thereunto, enhances the
-guilt, and renders the sin more heinous. Again, if the person
-offending be in an eminent station, or office in the world, or the
-church; so that he is either a guide to others, or the eyes of
-many are upon him, who will be apt to follow and receive prejudice
-by his example. When such an one commits a public
-and open sin, it is more aggravated than if it had been committed
-by another. Thus God bids the prophet Ezekiel <i>see
-what the ancients of the house of Israel do in the dark, every
-man in the chambers of his imagery</i>, Ezek. viii. 12. And the
-prophet Jeremiah speaks of those who ought to have been
-guides to the people, <i>viz.</i> the priests and the prophets, Jer.
-xxiii. 11. 14. who transgressed against the Lord; and charges
-this on them as an extraordinary instance of wickedness; which
-their character in the world, and the church rendered more
-heinous, though it was exceeding heinous in itself.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>II. Sins receive their aggravations, from the parties offended;
-if immediately against God, his attributes, and worship, against
-Christ, and his grace; the holy Spirit, his witness,
-and workings, against superiors, men of eminency, and such
-as we stand especially related and engaged unto; against
-any of the saints, particularly weak brethren, the souls of
-them, or any other, and the common good of all or many.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>There is no sin but what may be said to be committed against
-God; yet,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Some are more immediately against him, as they carry in
-them a contempt of his attributes and worship; whereby his
-name and ordinances are profaned, and the glory that is instamped
-thereon, little set by, Mal. i. 3, 4. Other sins reflect
-dishonour on our Lord Jesus Christ; and that either on his
-person, when we conclude him to be, or, at least, act as if he
-were no other than a mere creature; or, on his offices; when
-we refuse to receive instruction from him as a prophet, or depend
-on his righteousness as a priest, in order to our justification
-and acceptance, in the sight of God; or to submit to him
-as a King, who is able to subdue us to himself, and defend us
-from the assaults of our spiritual enemies; or when we despise
-his grace, and neglect that salvation which he has purchased,
-and offers in the gospel, Heb. ii. 3.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, our sins are aggravated when they are committed against
-the person of the Holy Ghost; when we deny him to be
-a divine Person, or the author of the work of regeneration, as
-supposing that grace takes its rise from ourselves, rather than
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_69'>69</span>him; or when we do not desire to be led by the Spirit, or seek
-his divine influence in order thereunto. But, on the other
-hand, resist his holy motions and impressions, and act contrary
-to those convictions which he is pleased to grant us; by
-which means we are said to <i>grieve</i> and <i>quench the spirit</i>, Eph.
-iv. 7. 1 Thess. v. 19. Also, when we reject and set ourselves
-against the witness of the Spirit, and that, either by concluding,
-that assurance of our interest in the love of God, may be attained
-without it, and reckon all pretences to it no better than enthusiasm;
-or, when on the other hand, we suppose that the
-Spirit witnesses with our spirits, that we are the children of
-God, without regard had to the work of sanctification, that
-always accompanies, and is an evidence thereof; whereby we
-take that comfort to ourselves which does not proceed from
-the Spirit of holiness.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. Sins are aggravated as committed more immediately or
-directly against men, and particularly those, to whom we stand
-related in the bonds of nature, or, who have laid us under the
-strongest obligations, by acts of friendship to us. This is applicable
-to inferiors, who ought to pay a deference to their superiors;
-those sins that are committed by such, contain the
-highest instance of ingratitude, and are contrary to the laws or
-dictates of nature, and therefore aggravated in proportion thereunto.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, if they are committed against the saints; this is
-reckoned, by God, an instance of contempt cast on himself,
-(whose image they are said to bear;) much more, if we oppose
-them as saints, Luke xvi. 16. Matt. xii. 6. And though
-we do not proceed to this degree of wickedness, our crime is
-said to be greatly aggravated, when we lay a stumbling-block
-before those who are weak in the faith, which may tend to discourage
-them in the ways of God; and, by this means, we do
-what in us lies, to <i>destroy those for whom Christ died</i>, Rom.
-xiv. 15. 1 Cor. viii. 11. This is an injury done, not so much
-to their bodies, as their souls; which are wounded, and brought
-into great perplexity thereby.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>However, we must distinguish between an offence given,
-and unjustly taken; or, it is one thing for persons to be offended
-at that which is our indispensible duty, in which case we
-are not to regard the sentiments of those who attempt to discourage
-us from, or censure us for the performance of it; and
-our giving offence in things that are in themselves indifferent,
-and might, without any prejudice, be avoided; in which case
-a compliance with the party offended, seems to be our duty;
-especially if the offence takes its rise from conscience, rather,
-than humour and corruption; and our not complying with him
-herein, would tend very much to discourage and weaken his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_70'>70</span>hands in the ways of God; and therefore may be reckoned an
-aggravation of this sin.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, it is a farther aggravation of sin committed, when
-it appears to be contrary to the common good of all men.
-This guilt may be said to be contracted by them who endeavour
-to hinder the success of preaching of the gospel, 1 Thess.
-ii. 15. or otherwise, when the sin of one man brings down the
-judgments of God on a whole church or body of people; of
-this kind was Achan’s sin, Josh. vii. 20, 21, 25.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>III. Sins are aggravated from the nature and quality of the offence;
-if it be against the express letter of the law, break
-many commandments, contain in it many sins; if not only
-conceived in the heart, but breaks forth in words and actions,
-scandalize others, and admit of no reparation; if against
-means, mercies, judgments, light of nature, conviction of
-conscience; public or private admonition, censures of the
-church, civil punishments, and our prayers, purposes, promises;
-vows, covenants, and engagements to God or men;
-if done deliberately, wilfully, presumptuously, impudently,
-boastingly, maliciously, frequently, obstinately, with delight,
-continuance, or relapsing after repentance.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>1. Sin is aggravated when it is committed against the express
-letter of the law, so that there remains no manner of doubt,
-whether it be a sin or duty. To venture on the commission
-of what plainly appears to be unlawful, is to sin with great
-boldness and presumption, whereby the crime is very much
-aggravated, Rom. i. 32.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. When it contains a breach of several of the Commandments;
-and therefore it may be reckoned a complicated crime.
-Of this kind was the sin of David, in the matter of Uriah; in
-which he was guilty of murder, adultery, dissimulation, injustice,
-<i>&amp;c.</i> Also Ahab’s sin against Naboth; which included in
-it not only covetousness, but perjury, murder, oppression, and
-injustice.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. Sins are more aggravated, when they break forth in words,
-or outward actions, than if they were only conceived in the
-heart. It is true, sin in the heart has some peculiar aggravations,
-as it takes deeper root, becomes habitual, and is entertained
-with a secret delight and pleasure, and as it is the source
-and fountain, from whence actual sins proceed. Nevertheless,
-when that, which was before conceived in the heart, is discovered
-by words or actions, this adds a farther aggravation to it,
-as it brings a more public dishonour to God, and often-times
-a greater injury to men.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. Sins are farther aggravated, when they are of such a nature,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_71'>71</span>that it is impossible for us to repair the injuries done
-thereby, or make restitution for them. Thus nothing can
-compensate for our taking away the life of another, or for our
-casting a reproach on the holy ways of God; and thereby endeavouring
-to bring his gospel into contempt; or, when we
-entice others to sin, by which means we turn them aside from
-God, and endeavour to ruin their souls; which is an injury
-that we cannot, by any means, repair; and therefore the crime
-is exceedingly aggravated.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>5. If the sin committed be contrary to the very light of
-nature, such as would be offensive, even to the Heathen, 1
-Cor. v. 1.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>6. Sins receive their aggravations, when committed against
-means, mercies, and judgments; as when we break through all
-the fences which are set to prevent them; and the grace of
-God, revealed in the gospel, is not only ineffectual, to preserve
-from sin, though designed for that end, Tit. ii. 11, 12. but
-turned into lasciviousness, Jude, ver. 4. When mercies are
-misimproved, undervalued, and, as it were, trampled on,
-Rom. ii. 4. Isa. i. 3, Deut. xxii. 6. and judgments, whether
-threatened or inflicted are not regarded, nor were claimed
-thereby.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>7. Sins are farther aggravated, when they are committed
-against the checks and convictions of conscience; which is a
-judge and a reprover within our own breasts. This is an
-offering violence to ourselves, and making many bold advances
-towards judicial blindness, hardness of heart, and a total
-apostacy.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>8. When the sins committed are against public or private
-admonitions, censures of the church or civil punishments,
-which are God’s ordinance to bring men to repentance; and if
-they prove ineffectual, to answer that end, they will be left
-more stupid than they were before.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>9. Sins are farther aggravated, when they are contrary to
-our own prayers, vows, covenants, and promises made either
-to God or men. When we confess sin, or pretend to humble
-ourselves before God in prayer, and yet, at other times, indulge
-the same sins, and are proud, self-conceited, and exalt ourselves
-against him; or when we pray for strength against corruption,
-or grace to perform holy duties, when, in reality, we
-have no love to, nor desire after them; or when we praise him
-for mercies received, while we are habitually unthankful, and
-forgetful of his benefits. Moreover, when we are very forward
-to make vows, covenants, or engagements, to be the Lord’s;
-whereby we often lay a snare for ourselves, from some circumstances
-that attend this action; and more especially from
-our disregarding it afterwards.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_72'>72</span>10. Sins are aggravated from the manner of our committing
-them, <i>viz.</i> If they are done deliberately, with fore-thought or
-contrivance: As when persons are said to devise mischief upon
-their beds; and then as to their conversation, to set themselves
-against that which is good, Psal. xxxiv. 5. Again, if it
-be done wilfully, that is, with the full bent of the will, making
-it the matter of our choice, and resolving to commit it, whatever
-it cost us. When we do it presumptuously, either when we
-take encouragement hereunto from the grace of God, Rom.
-vi. 1. or when his hand is lifted up against us, or when we
-see his judgments falling very heavy upon others, and are not
-disposed to take warning thereby; but grow more hardened
-and stupid than before.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, when sin is committed maliciously impudently, and
-obstinately; this argues a rooted hatred against God. Or,
-when it is committed with delight arising either from the
-thoughts we entertain thereof, before we commit it; or the
-pleasure we take in what we have done, afterwards. Again,
-when we boast of what we have done, which is to glory in our
-shame, Psal. x. 3. and lii. 1. when we do, as it were, value
-ourselves for having got rid of the prejudices of education, and
-all former convictions of sin, that so we may go on therein
-with less disturbance. And when persons boast of their over-reaching
-others in their way of dealing in the world, Prov.
-xx. 14. which they very often do in their secret thoughts,
-when they are ashamed to let the world know how remote they
-are from the practice of that justice, that ought to be between
-man and man. Again sins are aggravated when they are frequently
-committed, or when we relapse into the same sin, after
-having pretended to repent of it, 2 Pet. ii. 20,-22. Matt.
-xii. 43,-45.</p>
-
-<p class='c013'>IV. Sins are aggravated from circumstances of time, and
-place; if on the Lord’s-day, or other times of divine worship,
-or immediately before, or after these, or other helps,
-to prevent or remedy such miscarriages, if in public, or in
-the presence of others who are thereby likely to be provoked
-or defiled.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>When sins are committed by us on the Lord’s-day, it is a
-profaning that time which he has sanctified for his service, and
-so renders us guilty of a double crime; or, when they are
-committed at any other time, which we occasionally set apart
-for divine worship; or, in those seasons, when God calls for
-fasting and mourning for our own sins, or those that are
-publicly committed in the world, Isa. xxii. 12,-14. or, at
-other times, when we have lately received signal deliverances,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_73'>73</span>either personal or national, Psal. cvi. 7. or, when they are
-committed immediately before or after we have engaged in
-holy duties; the former renders us very unfit for them; the
-latter will effectually take away all those impressions, which
-have been made on our spirits therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, sins receive aggravation from the place in which
-they are committed: As for instance, if they are committed
-in those places, in which the name of God is more immediately
-called on, which if visible, will afford great matter of scandal
-to some, and an ill example to others; and if secretly
-committed, will tend to defile our souls, and argue us guilty
-of great hypocrisy. Moreover, when we commit those sins,
-which are generally abhorred in the place where providence
-has cast our lot: This is to render ourselves a stain and dishonour
-to those with whom we converse. Thus the prophet
-speaks of some, who, <i>in the land of uprightness</i>, will <i>deal unjustly</i>,
-Isa. xxvi. 10. and especially when they are committed
-in the presence of others, who are likely to be provoked or
-defiled thereby; by which means we contract the guilt of other
-men’s sins, as well as our own; and are doubly guilty, in that
-we are, in many respects, the cause of their transgressing.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There are several instances in which we may be said to
-contract the guilt of other men’s sins, which I shall only mention
-briefly, <i>viz.</i> when superiors lay their commands on inferiors,
-or oblige them to do that which is in itself sinful; or,
-when we advise those who stand upon a level with us, to commit
-sin, or give our consent to the commission of it, Acts vii.
-58. chap. vii. 1. Again, when inferiors flatter superiors, or
-commend them for their sin: Thus when Herod had courted
-the applause of the people, by the oration which he made to
-them; they, on the other hand, flattered him, when they <i>gave
-a shout, saying, It is the voice of a god, and not of a man</i>, chap.
-xii. 22. Again, when we have recourse to those places, where
-sin is usually committed, and desire to associate ourselves with
-them, whose conversation is a reproach to religion, Prov. xiii.
-20. or, when we are sharers, or partakers, with others, in their
-unlawful gains; first encouraging, abetting, and helping them
-therein; and then dividing the spoil with them, chap. i. 23,-25.
-Again, when we connive at sin committed; or, if it be in
-our power, do not restrain or hinder the commission of it; or,
-when we conceal it, when the farther progress thereof might
-be prevented by our divulging it. Again, when we provoke
-persons to sin. And hereby draw forth their corruptions; and
-when we extenuate sin, whether committed by ourselves or
-others; which is a degree of vindicating, or pleading for it.
-And lastly, when we do not mourn for, or pray against those
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_74'>74</span>sins which are publicly committed in the world, that are like
-to bring down national judgments<a id='r14' /><a href='#f14' class='c012'><sup>[14]</sup></a>.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLII., CLIII.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLII.</span> <i>What doth every sin deserve at the hands of
-God?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> Every sin, even the least, being against the sovereignty,
-goodness, and holiness of God, and, against his righteous
-law, deserveth his wrath and curse, both in this life, and
-that which is to come, and cannot be expiated, but by the
-blood of Christ.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLIII.</span> <i>What doth God require of us, that may
-escape his wrath and curse due to us by reason of the transgression
-of the law.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> That we may escape the wrath and curse of God due
-to us by reason of the transgression of the law, he requireth of
-us repentance toward God, and faith toward our Lord Jesus
-Christ, and the diligent use of the outward means whereby
-Christ communicates to us the benefits of his mediation.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>In the former of these answers, we have an account of then
-demerit of sin; in the latter, we have the character and
-disposition of those who have ground to conclude that they
-shall be delivered from the wrath and curse of God due to it.
-We have already considered one sin as greater than another,
-by reason of several circumstances that tend to enhance the
-guilt of those who commit them: Nevertheless, there is no
-sin so small but it has this aggravation in it, that it is a violation
-of the law of God, and is opposite to his holiness; and
-therefore it cannot but render the sinner guilty in his sight;
-and guilt is that whereby a person is liable to suffer punishment
-in proportion to the offence committed: Therefore it
-follows, that there is no ground for that distinction which the
-Papists make between <i>mortal</i> and <i>venial</i> sins; whereof the
-former, they suppose, deserves the wrath and curse of God
-both in this and another world; but as for the latter, namely,
-<i>venial</i> sins, they conclude that they may be atoned for by human
-satisfactions, or penances; and that they are, in their own
-nature, so small, that they do not deserve eternal punishment.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_75'>75</span>This is an opinion highly derogatory to the glory of God, and
-opens a door to licentiousness, in a variety of instances; the
-contrary to which, is contained in the answer we are now explaining.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>For the understanding whereof, let it be considered; that it
-is one thing for a sin to deserve the wrath and curse of God,
-and another thing for the sinner to be liable and exposed to it.
-The former of these arises from the heinous nature of sin,
-and is inseparable from it; the latter is inconsistent with
-a justified state. Nothing can take away the guilt of sin,
-but the atonement made by Christ; and that forgiveness or
-freedom from condemnation, which God is pleased to bestow
-as the consequence thereof, Rom. viii. 1, 33. It is this that
-discharges a believer from a liableness to the wrath and curse
-of God. Though one sin be greater than another, by reason
-of various circumstances that attend, or are contained in it, as
-was observed under the last answer: yet the least sin must be
-concluded to be objectively infinite, as it is committed against
-a God of infinite perfection, since all offences are great in
-proportion to the dignity of the person against whom they
-are committed. Thus the same sin that is committed against
-an inferior, or an equal, which deserves a less degree of punishment,
-if it be committed against a king, may be so circumstanced,
-as that it will be deemed a capital offence, and
-render the criminal guilty of high treason; though, at the
-same time, no real injury is done to, but only attempted
-against him. In like manner we must conclude, that though
-it be out of our own power to injure or detract from the
-essential glory of the great God; yet every offence committed
-against him is great, in proportion to his infinite excellency;
-and is therefore said to deserve his wrath and curse. Wrath
-or anger, when applied to God, is not to be considered as a
-passion in him, as it is in men; but denotes his will to punish
-sin committed, which takes its first rise from the holiness of
-his nature, which is infinitely opposite to it. And the degree
-of punishment that he designs to inflict, is contained in
-his law; which, as it denounces threatnings against those who
-violate it, the sinner is hereby said to be exposed to the curse
-or condemning sentence thereof, agreeably to the rules of
-justice, and the nature of the offence. This is what we are
-to understand, in this answer, by sin’s deserving the wrath and
-curse of God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And this is farther considered, as what extends itself to
-this life, and that which is to come. Punishments inflicted in
-this life, are but the beginning of miseries; but they are
-sometimes inexpressibly great, as the Psalmist says, <i>Who
-knoweth the power of thine anger? even according to thy fear,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_76'>76</span>so is thy wrath</i>, Psal. xc. 11. Sometimes there is but a very
-short interval between sin and the punishment; as in the case
-of Nadab and Abihu, Korah, and his company, Achan, and
-many others; whereas, at other times, it is long deferred;
-nevertheless, it will fall with great weight, at last, on the offender.
-Thus God sometimes punishes the sin of youth in old
-age; and when a greater degree of guilt has been contracted,
-writes bitter things against them, Job xiii. 26. But the greatest
-degree of punishment is reserved for sinners in another
-world; which is styled <i>the wrath to come</i>, 1 Thess. i. 10. But
-these things having been insisted on in some foregoing answers<a id='r15' /><a href='#f15' class='c012'><sup>[15]</sup></a>,
-we shall add no more on that head; but proceed to
-what is farther observed, viz. that this punishment cannot be
-expiated any otherwise than by the blood of Christ. This is
-fitly inserted after the account we have had of man’s liableness
-to the wrath of God, by reason of sin: for when we have
-an afflicting sense of the guilt we have exposed ourselves to,
-nothing else will afford us relief.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The next thing to be considered is, how it may be removed,
-or by what means the justice of God may be satisfied, and an
-atonement made for sin. This is said to be done no other way
-but by the blood of Christ, as has been considered elsewhere,
-under a foregoing answer; in which we endeavoured to prove
-the necessity of Christ’s making satisfaction, and the price that
-he paid in order thereto<a id='r16' /><a href='#f16' class='c012'><sup>[16]</sup></a>. We have also considered the fruits
-and effects thereof, as it has a tendency to remove the guilt of
-sin, and procure for us a right to eternal life:<a id='r17' /><a href='#f17' class='c012'><sup>[17]</sup></a> Therefore, we
-shall pass over the consideration thereof in this place; only
-we may observe, that, since this can be brought about by no
-other means but Christ’s satisfaction; it is not inconsistent
-with what is contained in the following words, if rightly understood
-by us, to assert that God requires of us, repentance,
-faith, and a diligent attendance on the outward means of grace;
-though we must not conclude them to be the procuring cause
-of our justification, or a means to expiate sin. They are certainly
-very much unacquainted with the way of salvation by
-Christ, as well as the great defects of their repentance and
-faith, who suppose, that God is hereby induced to pardon our
-sins, or deliver us from the wrath we have deserved thereby;
-nevertheless, we are not to think, that impenitent unbelieving
-sinners have a right to determine that they are in a justified
-state, or have ground to claim an interest in the benefits of
-Christ’s redemption. Therefore, these graces are necessary to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_77'>77</span>evince our interest in what he has done and suffered for us,
-and they are inseparably connected with salvation; though
-they do not give us a right and title to eternal life, as Christ’s
-righteousness doth. We have, in two foregoing answers,
-given a particular account of repentance and faith. Concerning
-repentance, we have observed, that it is a special saving
-grace, wrought in us by the Holy Spirit, and have shewn in
-what way he works it; and also the difference between legal and
-evangelical repentance, as the former is often found in those
-who are destitute of the latter. We have considered the various
-acts of repentance unto life<a id='r18' /><a href='#f18' class='c012'><sup>[18]</sup></a>; what the objects and acts
-of saving faith are; and how it differs from that which is not
-so; and the use of this grace, in the whole conduct of our
-lives, and how it gives life and vigour to all other graces, and
-enables us to perform duties in a right manner<a id='r19' /><a href='#f19' class='c012'><sup>[19]</sup></a>. Therefore
-we shall not insist on this subject at present, but only speak
-of repentance and faith as means appointed by God, in order
-to our attaining compleat salvation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The means conducive hereunto, are either internal or external;
-the former of these are inseparably connected with salvation;
-so that <i>none</i>, who repent and <i>believe, shall perish</i>, John
-iii. 16. These graces, together with all others, that accompany
-or flow from them, are the fruits and effects of Christ’s mediation;
-and therefore they are sometimes called saving graces.
-As they are wrought in the hearts of believers, and have a
-reference to salvation; they may be truly styled internal means
-of salvation; and, as such, they are distinguished from those
-outward and ordinary means of grace, by which God is pleased
-to work them. And these are the ordinances which we
-are diligently to attend on, in hopes of attaining those graces
-under them, till God is pleased to give success to our endeavours,
-and work grace under these means; the efficacy whereof,
-is wholly owing to his power, and is to be resolved into
-his sovereign will.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This may be fitly illustrated by what is said concerning the
-poor, <i>impotent</i>, <i>blind</i>, <i>halt</i>, and <i>withered</i> persons, <i>waiting</i> at
-the <i>pool of Bethesda</i>, for the <i>angels troubling the water</i>; after
-which, he that <i>first stepped in, was made whole</i>, John v. 2-4.
-Nevertheless, we do not find that every one who waited there
-embraced the first opportunity, and received a cure; for some
-were obliged to wait many years; and if they were made
-whole at last, they had no reason to think their labour lost.
-This may be applied to those who have the means of grace.
-Many sit under them who receive no saving advantage thereby,
-till God is pleased, in his accepted time, to work those
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_78'>78</span>graces which render these ordinances effectual to salvation.
-This blessed success attending them, is from God; he could,
-indeed, save his people without them, as he converted Paul,
-when going to Damascus, with a design to persecute the
-church there; being not only unacquainted with, but prejudiced
-against the means of grace. But this is not God’s ordinary
-method. He has put an honour on his own institutions,
-so as to render it necessary for us to pray, wait and hope for saving
-blessings, in attending on them. Thus when he promises
-to <i>put his Spirit</i> within his people, and <i>cause them walk in
-his statutes</i>, he adds; yet <i>for this will I be enquired of by the
-house of Israel, to do it for them</i>, Ezek. xxxvi. 27, 37. accordingly
-we are commanded to <i>seek the Lord while he may be
-found, and to call upon him while he is near</i>, Isa. lv. 6. Hereby
-we testify our approbation of that method which he has
-ordained for the application of redemption; and by our perseverance
-therein, as determining not to leave off waiting till we
-have obtained the blessing expected, we proclaim the valuableness
-thereof, and subscribe to the sovereignty of God, in dispensing
-those blessings to his people, which they stand in need
-of, as well as pray and hope for them in his own time and
-way. Thus we are to wait on the means of grace.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And it is farther observed, that this is to be done with diligence;
-not in a careless and indifferent manner, as though we
-neither expected nor desired much advantage from them. This
-implies in it an embracing every opportunity, and observing
-those special seasons, in which God is pleased, in his gospel,
-to hold forth the golden sceptre of grace; as also our having
-earnest desires and raised expectations of obtaining that grace
-from him which he encourages us to wait and hope for<a id='r20' /><a href='#f20' class='c012'><sup>[20]</sup></a>.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_79'>79</span>Which leads us to speak particularly concerning those outward
-means, as contained in the following answer.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLIV.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLIV.</span> <i>What are the outward means whereby Christ
-communicates to us the benefits of his mediation?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The outward and ordinary means whereby Christ
-communicates to his church the benefits of his mediation,
-are, all his ordinances; especially the word, sacraments, and
-prayer; all which are made effectual to the elect for salvation.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>In explaining this answer, we shall consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. What we are to understand by the ordinances, which
-are here styled outward and ordinary means of grace. The
-first idea contained in them is, that they are religious duties,
-prescribed by God, as an instituted method, in which he will
-be worshipped by his creatures; but that which more especially
-denominates them to be ordinances, is, the promise which
-he has annexed to them of his special presence, and the encouragement
-that he has given to his people in attending on
-them, to hope for those blessings that accompany salvation.
-As God works grace by, and under them, they are called
-means of grace; and because he seldom works grace without
-first inclining persons to attend on him therein, and wait for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_80'>80</span>his salvation; therefore they are called the ordinary means of
-grace; and because they have not in themselves a tendency to
-work grace, without the inward and powerful influences of the
-Holy Spirit, accompanying them, they are distinguished from
-it, and accordingly styled the outward means of grace.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>That which may be observed concerning the ordinances as
-thus described, is,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That they may be engaged in, pursuant to a divine appointment;
-therefore no creature hath a warrant to enjoin any
-modes of worship, pretending that this will be acceptable, or
-well-pleasing to God; since he alone, who is the object of
-worship, has a right to prescribe the way in which he will be
-worshipped. To do this would be an instance of profaneness
-and bold presumption; and the worship performed pursuant
-thereunto would be <i>in vain</i>; as our Saviour says concerning
-that which has no higher a sanction than <i>the commandments
-of men</i>, Matt. xv. 9. and whatever pretence of religion there
-may be therein, God looks upon such worshippers as well as
-those whose prescriptions they follow herein, with the utmost
-contempt, and will punish them for, rather than encourage
-them in it. Thus the prophet reproves Israel, as being guilty
-of defection from God, who engaged in that worship which
-he had not ordained, when he says, <i>The statutes of Omri are
-kept, and all the works of the house of Ahab, and ye walk in
-their counsels, that I should make thee a desolation, and the inhabitants
-thereof an hissing. Therefore shall ye bear the reproach
-of my people</i>, Mic. vi. 16. And Jeroboam is often
-branded with this character, that <i>he made Israel to sin</i>, for instituting
-ordinances of divine worship, and <i>setting up calves
-in Dan and Bethel, making an house of high places, and priests
-of the lowest of the people</i>, and appointing sacred times, in
-which they should perform this worship; all which were of
-his own devising, and became a snare to the people, Exod.
-xx. 24. It is certain, that such appointments cannot be reckoned
-means of grace, or pledges of God’s presence; and it
-would redound to his dishonour, should he be obliged to communicate
-the benefits of Christ’s redemption hereby, to any
-who, (under a pretence of worshipping him in a way of their
-own devising,) offer the highest affront to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. If God is pleased to reveal his will concerning the way
-in which we are to worship him, and hope for his presence, it
-is our indispensable duty to comply with it, and implore his
-acceptance of us herein; and be importunate with him, that he
-would put a glory on his own institutions, and grant us his
-special presence and grace, that we may be enabled to perform
-whatever duty he enjoins, in such a manner, that the most
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_81'>81</span>valuable ends may be answered, and our spiritual edification
-and salvation promoted thereby.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. Though we consider the ordinances as instituted means
-of grace; yet, a bare attendance on them will not, of itself,
-confer grace, as is very evident from the declining state of religion,
-in those who engage in the external part of it, and attend
-upon all the ordinances of God’s appointment, and yet
-remain destitute of saving grace; who are stupid under the
-awakening calls of the gospel, and regard not the invitations
-given therein, to adhere stedfastly to Jesus Christ, whom in
-words they profess to own, though in works they deny him.
-This is a convincing evidence, that it is God alone, who appointed
-those ordinances, that can make them effectual to salvation.
-Thus concerning the nature of an ordinance, and in
-what respect it may be called an outward and ordinary means
-of grace. We are now,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. To consider what are those ordinances by which Christ
-communicates to us the benefits of his mediation. These may
-be considered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. As engaged in by particular persons, as subservient to
-their spiritual welfare, in order to the beginning or carrying
-on the work of grace in their souls; such as meditation about
-divine subjects, self-examination, and all other duties, which
-are performed by them in their private retirement, in hope of
-having communion with God therein. Or,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. There are other ordinances which God has given to worshipping
-assemblies, which are founded in that general promise,
-<i>In all places where I record my name, I will come unto
-thee, and I will bless thee</i>, Exod. xx. 24. Those mentioned in
-this answer, are the words, sacraments and prayer; of which
-the sacraments are particularly given to the churches; the
-word and prayer, to all who are favoured with the gospel-dispensation.
-And to these we may add, singing the praises of
-God; which, though it be not particularly mentioned in this
-answer, is, nevertheless, a duty wherein we may expect to
-meet with his presence and blessing; and accordingly is an
-ordinance which God makes effectual to promote our salvation.
-Therefore, before we enter on the subject-matter of the following
-answers, we shall speak something concerning this
-duty, as an ordinance which he has instituted; together with
-the way and manner in which it is to be performed. And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) We may enquire what ground we have to reckon it
-among the ordinances of God. This must not be taken for
-granted, but proved; because there are many who deny it to
-be so. That it was an ordinance enjoined to, and practised
-by the church, under the Old Testament-dispensation, appears
-from the many songs and psalms given, by divine inspiration,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_82'>82</span>to be used by the church, in their solemn acts of worship;
-some of which were not only sung by particular persons; but
-the whole church is represented as joining therein with united
-voices. Thus when Pharaoh’s host was drowned in the red
-sea, it is said, <i>Moses and the children of Israel sang</i> the song
-that was given by divine inspiration for that purpose, contained
-in Exod. xv. And when he was inspired with that song,
-in Deut. xxxii. he was commanded, in chap. xxxi. <i>to write it
-for them, and teach it to them, and put it in their mouths</i>; that
-they might sing it in their public worship; which he did accordingly,
-ver. 22. And from the days of David, when public
-worship was more settled than it had been before; and
-many things relating to the order, beauty and harmony thereof,
-brought into the church by divine direction, then there was an
-order of men called <i>Singers</i>, who were to preside over, and
-set forward the work. And there was also a book of psalms,
-given by divine inspiration, for the use of the church therein,
-that they might not be at a loss as to the subject-matter of
-praise in this ordinance; as may be inferred from the style
-thereof, the words being often put in the plural number; which
-argues, that they were to be sung, not by one person in the
-church, but by the whole congregation, in their solemn and
-public acts of worship; and accordingly we often find the
-whole multitude of them exhorted to sing the praises of God.
-Thus it is said in Psal. xxx. 4. <i>Sing unto the Lord, O ye
-saints of his, and give thanks at the remembrance of his holiness.</i>
-And elsewhere, <i>Sing aloud unto God our strength.
-Make a joyful noise unto the God of Jacob. Take a psalm</i>, &amp;c.
-<i>For this was a statute for Israel, and a law of the God of Jacob</i>,
-Psal. lxxxi. 1, 2, 3, 4. And sometimes the church are represented
-as exciting one another to this duty. Thus it is said,
-<i>O come let us sing unto the Lord; let us make a joyful noise to
-the rock of our salvation. Let us come before his presence with
-thanksgiving, and make a joyful noise unto him with psalms</i>,
-Psal. xcv. 1, 2.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And it may be observed, that how much soever the use of
-musical instruments, which were in this worship may be concluded
-to be particularly adapted to that dispensation, as they
-were typical of that spiritual joy, which the gospel church
-should obtain by Christ; yet the ordinance of singing remains
-a duty, as founded on the moral law; and accordingly we find,
-that the practice hereof was recommended, not only to the Jews,
-but to all nations. Thus it is said, <i>Make a joyful noise unto
-the Lord all the earth</i>, Psal. xcviii. 4. And he speaks to this
-purpose, when he presses this duty upon <i>all lands</i>, whom he
-exhorts to <i>serve him with gladness; and to come before the Lord
-with singing</i>, Psal. c. 1, 2. And besides, it seems to be preferred
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_83'>83</span>before some other parts of worship, which were merely
-ceremonial. Thus the Psalmist says, <i>I will praise the name
-of God with a song. This also shall please the Lord better than
-an ox or bullock</i>, Psal. lxix. 30, 31. that is, God is more glorified
-hereby than he is by the external rites of ceremonial
-worship; especially when abstracted from those acts of faith,
-which add an excellency and glory to them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And this leads us to consider it as an ordinance practised
-by the New Testament-church. Some had songs given in to
-them by inspiration; as the virgin Mary, Zacharias, and Simeon,
-Luke i. 46, 47, &amp; <i>seq.</i> chap. ii. 28, &amp; <i>seq.</i> and sometimes
-the members of particular churches had a psalm given
-in by extraordinary revelation, 1 Cor. xiv. 26. and we can
-hardly suppose this to have been without a design that it
-should be sung in the church for their edification; especially
-considering it as an extraordinary dispensation of the Spirit:
-And, as the singing of a psalm in the church, is an act of
-public worship, it is reasonable to suppose, that the whole assembly
-joined together therein; and therefore this ordinance
-was not only practised by them, but had also a divine sanction,
-in that the Spirit was the author of the psalm that was
-sung: And we sometimes read of the church’s singing an
-hymn, which was no other than a psalm or spiritual song, at
-the Lord’s-supper: Thus our Saviour, in the close of that
-ordinance, sung an hymn with his disciples, that small church
-with whom he then communicated, Mark xiv. 26. And at
-another time, when he was <i>come nigh to the descent of the
-mount of olives</i>, it is said, that <i>the multitude of the disciples began
-to rejoice, and to praise God with a loud voice</i>, Luke xxix.
-37. where, by <i>the multitude of the disciples</i>, we must understand
-all that followed him, who had, at that time, a conviction
-in their consciences, that he was the Messiah, from the
-miracles which they had seen him work; and we have an account
-of the short hymn which they sang; <i>Blessed be the king
-that cometh in the name of the Lord; peace in heaven, and glory
-in the highest</i>, Luke xix. 38. This was not, indeed, sung
-in a church-assembly; however, it was with a <i>loud voice</i>, and
-herein they gave glory to God: And though some of the Pharisees
-were offended at it, ver. 39. yet our Saviour, in the following
-words, vindicates their practice herein; which argues,
-that it was a branch of religious worship, performed by them
-at that time; and a duty approved of by him. All that I would
-infer from hence, is, that our Saviour gave countenance to the
-singing the praises of God, with united voices. Therefore it
-follows, that we ought, on all occasions, to do the same thing;
-and consequently, singing is an ordinance, whereby the church
-ought to glorify God, and shew forth his praise. Thus we
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_84'>84</span>have considered singing to be an ordinance, or a branch of instituted
-worship.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) There are several things in which this ordinance agrees
-with some others; particularly with prayer in all the parts
-thereof; and with reading and preaching of the word. That
-it has something in common with prayer, appears from the
-subject-matter of several of the psalms of David; some of
-which are called prayers, and accordingly they contain in them
-several petitions, for blessings that the church stood in need of,
-together with various instances of confession of sin, as well as
-thanksgiving for mercies received. As to the agreement of
-this ordinance, with preaching or reading the word; that, I
-think, may be inferred in general, from one of the ends thereof,
-mentioned by the apostle, namely, in that we are herein to
-<i>teach and admonish one another</i>, Col. iii. 16. This is what the
-Psalmist styles <i>talking of all his wondrous works</i>, Psal. cv. 1,
-2. And elsewhere, the church are said to <i>speak to</i> themselves,
-or to <i>one another</i> in this duty, Eph. v. 19. This may be observed
-in the subject-matter of some of the psalms, in which
-the Psalmist is represented as speaking to the church, and they
-as making their reply to him: Thus he advises them to <i>lift
-up their hands in the sanctuary, and bless the Lord</i>, Psal.
-cxxxiv. 2. and answer him, <i>The Lord that made heaven and
-earth bless thee out of Zion</i>, ver. 3. The name may be observed
-in many other psalms, in which there is a frequent
-change of the person speaking; and the subject-matter of the
-whole book contains many admonitions or cautions necessary
-to be observed by others, which they who sing, direct and apply
-to each other. Again, this ordinance agrees with preaching
-and reading the word, in that we are, in singing the praises
-of God, to take notice of, or celebrate the dispensations of his
-providence, either in a way of judgment or mercy; of this we
-have many instances in the book of Psalms, as is very evident
-in all those that are properly historical.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) We must, notwithstanding, suppose singing to be a
-distinct ordinance from preaching, prayer, or reading the
-word; for it is mentioned in scripture, as such; and that
-wherein it principally differs, is, that it is designed to raise the
-affections: and it is certain, that the modulation, or tone of
-the voice, has oftentimes a tendency so to do. And because
-the performing religious worship, with raised affections, is a
-great duty and privilege; therefore God has appointed this as
-an ordinance, in some degree conducive to answer that end.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> 1. If the tone of the voice be to be reckoned an ordinance,
-to raise the affections; then vocal or instrumental music
-may be deemed sufficient to answer this end, without
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_85'>85</span>making use of those words in singing, which God has ordained,
-whereby it may be denominated a religious duty.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied; that to have the affections
-raised, is no branch of religion, unless they are excited by those
-ideas of divine things, in which it principally consists: Therefore,
-that which is a means of raising the affections, may not
-have a tendency to excite religious affections; and, consequently,
-it is not barely singing, but celebrating the praises of
-God therein, with raised affections, that is the duty and ordinance
-which we ought to engage in: These two, therefore,
-must be connected together; and if God is pleased, not only
-to instruct us as to the matter about which our faith is to be
-conversant, but to give us an ordinance conducive to the exciting
-our affections therein, it must be reckoned an additional
-advantage, and an help to our praising him in a becoming
-manner.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> 2. Those arguments that have been taken from the
-practice of the Old Testament-church, to prove singing an ordinance,
-may, with equal justice, be alleged to prove the use
-of instrumental music therein; since we very often read of
-their <i>praising</i> God with the <i>sound of the trumpet, psaltery,
-harp, organ</i>, and other musical instruments, Psal. cl. 3, 4, 5.
-which is the principal argument brought for the use of them
-by those who defend this practice, and conclude it an help for
-devotion.<a id='r21' /><a href='#f21' class='c012'><sup>[21]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_86'>86</span><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied; that though we often
-read of music being used in singing the praises of God under
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_87'>87</span>the Old Testament; yet if what has been said concerning its
-being a type of that spiritual joy which attends our praising
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_88'>88</span>God for the privilege of that redemption which Christ has
-purchased be true; then this objection will appear to have no
-weight, since this type is abolished, together with the ceremonial
-law. And it may be farther observed, that though we
-read of the use of music, in the temple-service, yet it does not
-sufficiently appear, that it was ever used, in the Jewish synagogues;
-wherein the mode of worship more resembled that
-which is, at present, performed by us in our public assemblies.
-But that which may sufficiently determine this matter,
-is, that, we have no precept or precedent for it in the New
-Testament, either from the practice of Christ, or his apostles.
-And inasmuch as this is alleged, by some, to overthrow the
-ordinance of singing, who pretend, that it ought to be no more
-used by us than the harp, organ, or other musical instruments:
-It might as well be objected, that, because incense, which was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_89'>89</span>used under the ceremonial law, together with prayer in the
-temple, Luke i. 9, 10. is not now offered by us; therefore
-prayer ought to be laid aside; which is, as all own, a duty
-founded on the moral law.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) In singing those psalms or songs, which are given by
-divine inspiration, we are not to consider the subject-matter
-thereof, as always expressive of the frame of our own spirits,
-or denoting the dispensations of providence, which we,
-or the church of God are, at present exercised with. This
-is necessary in order to our singing with understanding; and
-it may be inferred from what is observed under the second of
-those heads, before laid down, relating to the agreement which
-there is between singing and reading any of David’s psalms.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It must be allowed by all, that we ought to have the same
-acts of faith in one, as we have in the other. This is evident
-from all composures in prose or verse, whether divine
-or human. If the subject-matter be historical, whatever the
-form be in which it is laid down, the principal things to be
-considered are, those matters of fact which are therein related.
-If an history be written in prose, and the same should be turned
-into verse; its being laid down in the form of a poem,
-though it adds something of beauty to the mode of expression,
-yet the ideas, that are conveyed thereby, or the historical representation
-of things, are the same as though they had not
-been written in verse. It may be, the reading the same history
-in verse, may add something of pleasure and delight to
-those ideas which we have of it, in like manner as singing,
-according to the third head before mentioned, is a distinct
-ordinance from reading (though the matter be the same, as
-it respects the exciting the affections;) yet this does not give
-us different ideas of it; much less are we to take occasion
-from thence, to apply those things to ourselves that are spoken
-of others; unless parallel circumstances require it. If this
-rule be not observed, I do not see how we can sing many of
-the psalms of David. Sometimes the subject-matter thereof
-is not agreeable to every age of life, or the universal experience
-of particular persons. It would be very preposterous
-for a child, in singing those words, <i>I have been young, and
-now am old; yet have I not seen the righteous forsaken, nor
-his seed begging bread</i>, Psal. xxxvii. 25. or what is elsewhere
-said; <i>Now also, when I am old and gray-headed, O God, forsake
-me not</i>, Psal. lxxi. 18. to apply them, in particular to
-himself. And when some other psalms are sung in a public
-assembly, in which God’s people are represented as dejected,
-disconsolate, and, as it were, sinking in the depths of despair;
-as when the Psalmist says, <i>My soul refused to be comforted.
-I remembered God, and was troubled; I complained,
-and my spirit was overwhelmed</i>, Psal. lxxvii. 2, 3. and elsewhere,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_90'>90</span><i>I am counted with them that go down into the pit.
-Thy wrath lieth hard upon me. While I suffer thy terrors, I
-am distracted</i>, Psal. lxxxviii. 4, 7, 15. This cannot be applied
-to every particular person in a worshipping assembly; as denoting
-that frame of spirit in which he is, at present, any more
-than those expressions which we meet with elsewhere, which
-speak of a believer, as having full assurance of God’s love to
-him, and his right and title to eternal life; as when it is said,
-<i>Thou shalt guide me with thy counsel, and afterward receive
-me to glory</i>, Psal. lxxiii. 24. can be applied to those who are
-in a dejected, despairing, or unbelieving frame of spirit.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And those psalms which contain an historical account of
-some particular dispensations of providence towards the church
-of old, cannot be applied to it in every age, or to the circumstances
-of every believer; as when it is said, <i>By the rivers of
-Babylon there we sat down; yea, we wept when we remembered
-Zion</i>, Psal. cxxxvii. 1. This is not to be considered as
-what is expressive of our own case, when we are, in the present
-day, singing that psalm, Or, when, on the other hand, the
-church is represented as praising God for particular deliverances,
-as in Psal. cvii. or expressing its triumphs in the victories
-obtained over its enemies, as in Psal. cxlix. these are
-not to be applied, by particular persons, to themselves; especially
-at all times. And when the Psalmist makes use of
-those phrases which are adapted to the ceremonial law, as
-when he speaks of <i>binding the sacrifice with cords, even unto
-the horns of the altar</i>, Psal. cxviii. 27. or elsewhere, of their
-<i>offering bullocks upon it</i>, Psal. li. 19. this cannot be taken in
-a literal sense, when applied to the gospel-state. And when
-we are exhorted to <i>praise God with the psaltery</i>, &amp;c. Psal. cl.
-we are to express those acts of faith which are agreeable to
-the present gospel-dispensation, which we are under; and the
-general rule, which is applicable to all psalms of the like nature,
-is, that with the same frame of spirit with which we read
-them, we ought to sing them. Sometimes we are to consider
-the subject-matter of them, as containing an account of those
-providences which we are liable to, rather than those which we
-are, at present, under; or what we desire, or fear, rather than
-experience; and improve them so as to excite those graces
-which ought to be exercised in like circumstances, when it
-shall please God to bring us under them. With this frame of
-spirit the psalms of David are to be sung, as well as read;
-otherwise we shall be obliged to exclude several of them as
-not fit to be used in gospel-worship, which I would assert
-nothing that should give the least countenance to,<a id='r22' /><a href='#f22' class='c012'><sup>[22]</sup></a> any more
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_91'>91</span>than I would affirm that such-like psalms are not to be read
-in public assemblies.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> 1. To what has been said concerning our using David’s
-psalms in singing the praises of God, it is objected, that some
-of them contain such imprecation, or desires, that God would
-destroy his enemies, Psal. lv. 15. and lix. 13-15. and lxix.
-22-25, 27, 28. as are inconsistent with the spirit of the gospel,
-or that love which we are, therein, obliged to express towards
-our enemies, agreeably to the command and practice of
-the holy Jesus, Matt. v. 44, 46. Luke xxiii. 34.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Before I proceed to a direct answer to this objection, it
-may be observed, that this is generally alleged, by the Deists,
-with a design to cast a reproach on divine revelation; and
-from hence they take occasion, outrageously to inveigh against
-David, as though he was of a malicious and implacable spirit;
-upon which account they will hardly allow him to have been
-a good man, since these, and such-like imprecations of the
-wrath of God on the church’s enemies, are reckoned by them
-no other than the effects of his passion and hatred of them;
-and therefore it is a preposterous thing to suppose, that his
-psalms were given by divine inspiration.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And there are others, to wit, some among the Socinians,
-who give a different turn to such-like expressions; and pretend,
-that under the Old Testament dispensation, it was not
-unlawful for persons to hate their enemies, or curse, or imprecate
-the wrath of God upon them, whereas, our Saviour
-thought fit, under the New Testament-dispensation, to command
-what was directly contrary thereunto. That it was formerly
-lawful, they argue from what is said in Matt. v. 43.
-<i>Ye have heard that it hath been said, Thou shalt love thy neighbour,
-and hate thine enemy.</i> And the new Commandment
-which he substituted in the room thereof, is contained in the
-following words, in which he obliges them, to <i>love their enemies</i>,
-&amp;c. But this is a gross mistake of the sense of that
-scripture, which speaks of <i>hating</i> their <i>enemies</i>; since our
-Saviour does not, in mentioning it, design to refer to any thing
-said in the Old Testament, but only to expose the corrupt
-gloss of the Scribes and Pharisees, given on some passages
-contained therein. Therefore, we must conclude, that it was
-equally unlawful to hate our enemies before, as it is now, under
-the gospel-dispensation. These things I could not but
-premise, before we come to a direct answer to this objection;
-and, if what is contained therein were true, it would certainly
-be unlawful to sing David’s psalms; yet, at the same time, it
-would be a very difficult matter, to substitute any hymns and
-songs in their room, which would be altogether unexceptionable;
-and then the ordinance of singing would be effectually
-overthrown.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_92'>92</span><i>Answ.</i> But to this it may be replied; that the words being
-spoken by David, under divine inspiration, some of those
-scriptures referred to, may, agreeably to the rules of grammar,
-be understood as a prediction of those judgments which God
-would execute on his implacable enemies; especially when the
-word, that is supposed in the objection, to contain the form of
-an imprecation, is put in the <i>future tense</i>, as it often is. And
-if it be put in the <i>imperative mood</i>, as in other places, in
-which it is said, <i>Let death seize on them; let them go down
-quick into hell; let them be blotted out of the book of the living</i>;
-this mode of speaking, especially when applied to God, contains
-an intimation of what he would do, or the wrath which
-he would pour forth, as a punishment of sin, committed, persisted
-in, and not repented of. And, indeed, in one of these
-psalms, <i>viz.</i> Psal. lxix. in which the righteous judgments of
-God are denounced against sinners, the Psalmist plainly speaks
-in the person of our Saviour, to whom the 9th and 21st verses
-are expressly applied in the New Testament, John ii. 17.
-Matt. xxvii. 34. Therefore, when he says, ver. 22. <i>Let their
-table become a snare</i>, the meaning is, that God would deny
-some of his furious and implacable enemies, that grace, which
-alone could prevent their waxing worse and worse under outward
-prosperity. And when he says, ver. 23. <i>Let their eyes
-be darkened</i>; the meaning is, they shall be given up to judicial
-blindness, as the Jews were; the providence of God permitting,
-though not effecting it. And when it is said, ver. 23.
-<i>Pour out thine indignation upon them</i>, it is an intimation that
-this should come to pass. And, in ver. 25. <i>Let their habitation
-be desolate</i>; the meaning is, that the land, in which they
-dwelt, should be destitute of its former inhabitants, and so
-contains a prediction of the desolate state of the Jewish nation,
-after they were destroyed, and driven out of their country by
-the Romans. And when he farther says, <i>Add iniquity to their
-iniquity</i>; this may be accounted for consistently with the divine
-perfections, and the sense thereof is not liable to any just
-exception; as has been observed elsewhere. This I only
-mention, to shew that it is not necessary to suppose that these
-imprecations are always to be understood as what will warrant,
-or give countenance to private persons to wish, or pray for the
-destruction of their enemies.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, if the evil denounced be of a temporal nature;
-as when the Psalmist is represented as desiring that his enemies
-may be <i>consumed as the stubble before the wind</i>, or as <i>the
-wood that fire burneth</i>, Psal. lxxxiii. 13, 14. these are not the
-desires of one who meditates private revenge, or wishes to
-see the ruin of those whom he hates. But they contain the
-language of the church of God in general, as acquiescing in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_93'>93</span>his righteous judgments, which should be poured forth on
-those that hate him, and persecute his people; and, if either
-the church must be ruined, or those that set themselves against
-it, removed out of the way, they cannot but desire the latter,
-rather than the former. If such expressions be thus understood,
-there would be no sufficient reason for that exception
-that is taken against the book of the psalms; nor will any one
-have just occasion to lay aside a part of them, as what cannot
-be sung by a Christian congregation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Object.</i> 2. It is farther objected, that if singing could be
-proved to be an ordinance, to be used by particular persons;
-it will not follow from thence, that the whole congregation
-ought to join with their voices together. It is sufficient if one
-person sings, and others make melody in their hearts; whereas,
-united voices in singing, will occasion confusion in the
-worship of God; and, when a mixed multitude join in this
-ordinance, it can hardly be supposed that they, all of them,
-sing with the spirit, and with the understanding also. Therefore,
-if one should sing, it is sufficient for them who are qualified
-to join in this ordinance, to say, Amen; or, to have their
-hearts engaged therein; as they have who join in public prayer,
-in which, one is the mouth of the whole assembly.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] That to insinuate that singing with united voices, is
-confusion, is to cast a great reproach on that worship which
-we often read of in scripture, which was performed in this
-manner. Thus Moses and the children of Israel sang the
-praises of God upon the occasion of their deliverance from the
-Egyptians, in Exod. xvi. 1. which was certainly an act of
-public worship, not performed by Moses alone, but by the
-whole congregation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, in the New Testament, there is a very remarkable
-example of singing with united voices, our Saviour himself
-being present, Mark xiv. 26. thus it is said, that he and his
-disciples <i>sang an hymn</i>. The word is in the plural number<a id='r23' /><a href='#f23' class='c012'><sup>[23]</sup></a>;
-therefore they all joined with their voices in singing; and
-some observe, that it is not without design that it is said, <i>He</i>,
-that is, Christ, <i>blessed the bread</i>, and <i>He gave thanks</i>, Mat.
-xxvi. 26, 27. they only joining with him in their hearts, as
-the congregation joins with the minister, who is their mouth
-in public prayer. But when he speaks of the ordinance of singing,
-they all join with their voices therein; and therefore, the
-word, as was but now observed, is in the plural number, ver. 30.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] As to that part of the objection, which respects the congregation’s
-joining in the heart, with one that sings with the
-voice, in like manner as we do in prayer; let it be considered,
-that though he that joins with the heart, with another that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_94'>94</span>prays, may be said to perform the duty of prayer, though he
-does not express his desires with his own voice; yet joining
-with the heart, while one only sings, cannot properly speaking,
-be called singing; much less singing with the voice, or singing
-with a loud voice, as it is often expressed in scripture. The
-apostle, indeed, speaks of <i>singing and making melody in our
-hearts, to the Lord</i>, Eph. v. 19. which, in some measure, seems
-to favour the objection. And it is inferred from hence, that,
-if one sings with the voice, others may make melody in the
-heart. But I take the meaning of that scripture to be this; the
-apostle is pressing the church to sing, that is, to make melody
-to the Lord; and, that this ordinance may be performed in a
-right manner, the heart ought to go along with the voice;
-hereby intimating, that there ought not only to be a melodious
-sound, by which the praises of God are sung, but, together
-with this, suitable acts of faith ought to be put forth, whereby
-we worship him with our hearts, as well as our voices. This
-does not therefore prove, that the melody here spoken of, only
-respects the frame of spirit, as excluding the use of the voice
-in singing.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] As to what is objected against the inexpediency of joining
-in singing, with a mixed multitude, in which, some must
-be supposed to want two necessary qualifications for singing,
-namely, the Spirit and understanding; this is to join in the
-external ordinance, where there is no harmony, as to the internal
-frame of spirit, or the exercise of faith, which alone
-makes it pleasing to God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>To this it may be replied; that, if a mixed multitude may
-join together in prayer, and particularly the Psalms of David,
-may be read in the public congregation; though, perhaps,
-there are many present who do not understand the meaning of
-every particular phrase used therein: yet it does not follow,
-that because we do not fully understand the Psalms of David,
-therefore they ought not to be sung by us. We have before
-observed, that there is no essential difference, especially as to
-what concerns the frame of our spirit, between singing and
-reading<a id='r24' /><a href='#f24' class='c012'><sup>[24]</sup></a>. Therefore it follows, that whatever psalm may be
-read, may be sung. He that is not qualified for the latter is
-not qualified for the former. The apostle, indeed, speaks of
-his <i>praying</i> and <i>singing with the Spirit</i>, as well as <i>with the
-understanding</i>; but the meaning of that is, that we ought to
-desire the efficacious influences of the Spirit, and press after
-the knowledge of the meaning of the words we use, either in
-prayer or singing; yet the defect of our understanding, or
-having a less degree thereof than others, or, than we ought to
-have, does not exempt us from a right to engage in this ordinance.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_95'>95</span>Therefore, we are not to refuse to join with those in
-singing the praises of God, whom we would not exclude from
-our society, if we were reading any of the Psalms of David in
-public.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(5.) We are now to consider the matter to be sung. There
-are very few who allow singing to be an ordinance, that will
-deny it to be our duty to sing the Psalms of David, and other
-spiritual songs, which we frequently meet with in scripture.
-Some, indeed, have contested the expediency of a Christian
-assembly’s making use of several Old Testament-phrases, that
-are contained therein. And others have alleged, that the
-phrase ought to be altered in many instances, (especially in
-those which have a peculiar reference to the Psalmist’s personal
-circumstances,) and others substituted in their room,
-which are matter of universal experience. But, if what has
-been said under the last head, be true, this argument will appear
-to have less weight in it; inasmuch as all the arguments
-that are brought in defence of making these alterations in the
-Psalms, as they are to be sung by us, will equally hold good,
-as applicable to the ordinance of reading them, and, it may be,
-will as much evince the necessity of altering the phrase of
-scripture, in several other parts thereof, as well as in these, if
-what has been said under the second head be allowed of. For
-it will follow from thence, that if some psalms are not to be
-sung by a Christian assembly, in the words in which they
-were at first delivered, and consequently are not to be read by
-them; because the phrase thereof is not agreeable to the state
-of the Christian church; and therefore it is to be altered, when applied
-to our present use; the same may be said concerning other
-parts of scripture; and then the word of God, as it was at first
-given to us, is no more to be read, than to be sung by us<a id='r25' /><a href='#f25' class='c012'><sup>[25]</sup></a>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to what is objected concerning the inexpediency of our
-making use of those words, and applying them to our case, in
-our devotions, that David used in his, with a peculiar view to
-his own condition. What has been said under the fourth
-head, relating to the frame of spirit with which the psalms are
-to be sung, will very much weaken the force of it; and this is
-what, in a great measure, determines my sentiments as to the
-ordinance of conjoint singing, as well as the matter of it; for,
-I am well persuaded, that if the words were to be considered
-as our own, (as they ought to be, when joining with another,
-who is our mouth, to God in prayer,) there are very few
-psalms, or hymns of human composure, that can be sung by
-a mixed assembly. But as a divine veneration ought to be
-paid to the psalms, and they are to be read with those acts of
-faith which are the main ingredients in our devotions; we are
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_96'>96</span>to sing them with the same view, only with this difference; as
-making use of the tone of the voice, as a farther help to the
-raising our affections therein, as has been before observed.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The next thing to be considered is, what version of the
-Psalms is to have the preference in our esteem, as it is subservient
-to the design of this ordinance. It is not my business,
-under this head, to criticise on the various versions of
-the Psalms; nor can it be supposed, that I have a regard to
-those poetical beauties in which one version exceeds another;
-for then I should be inclined to think some of them, which I
-do not make use of in the ordinance of singing, much preferable
-to others, for the exactness of their style and composure.
-But when I am singing the praises of God, in, or as near as I
-can to, the words of David, or any other inspired writer; that
-which I principally regard is, the agreeableness of the version
-to the original; and then they may be sung with the same
-frame of spirit with which they are to be read; and I am not
-obliged in singing, to consider the words as expressive of my
-own frame of spirit, any more than I am in reading them.
-But if the composure cannot properly be called a version, but
-an imitation of David’s Psalms, then I make use of it in the
-ordinance of singing, with the same view as I would an hymn;
-of which, more hereafter<a id='r26' /><a href='#f26' class='c012'><sup>[26]</sup></a>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The versions which, I think, come nearest to the original,
-are the New-England and the Scots; the latter of which, I
-think, much preferable to the former; inasmuch as the sentences
-are not so transposed in this, as in the other, and the
-lines are much more smooth and pleasant to be read. I should
-be very glad to see a version more perfect, that comes as near
-the sense of the original, and excels it in the beauty or elegancy
-of style. And it would be a very great advantage if
-some marginal notes were added, as a comment upon it;
-which would be a help to our right understanding thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I shall now give my thoughts concerning the singing of
-hymns. These, according to the common acceptation of the
-word, are distinguished from psalms, and they generally denote
-a human composure, fitted for singing; the matter
-whereof, contains some divine subjects, in words agreeable to,
-or deduced from scripture. The arguments that are generally
-brought in defence thereof, are, that though scripture be a rule
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_97'>97</span>of faith, from whence all the knowledge of divine things is
-primarily deduced; and therefore it has the preference, as to
-the excellency and authority thereof, to any other composure;
-yet it is not only lawful, but necessary to express our faith in
-the doctrines contained therein, in other words, as we do in
-prayer or preaching. Therefore, if it be a duty to praise God
-with the voice, it is not unlawful to praise him in words agreeable
-to scripture, as well as in the express words thereof; accordingly
-it is argued, that both may be proved to be a duty,
-<i>viz.</i> praising God in the words of David, and by other songs
-contained in scripture, and praising him in words agreeable
-thereunto, though of human composure. This is the best
-method of reasoning that I have met with in defence of the
-lawfulness of singing hymns, not as opposed to, or excluding
-David’s Psalms, but as used occasionally, as providence directs
-us; that so our acknowledgments of benefits received,
-may be insisted on with greater enlargement than they are in
-the book of Psalms; wherein, though it may be, there is something
-adapted to every case, yet the particular occasion of our
-praise is not so largely contained in the same section or paragraph;
-and therefore an hymn may be composed on that occasion,
-in order to our praising God thereby. But, when on
-the other hand, persons seem to prefer hymns to David’s
-Psalms, and substitute them in the room thereof, I cannot but
-disapprove of their practice.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>A late writer<a id='r27' /><a href='#f27' class='c012'><sup>[27]</sup></a> speaks on this subject with a great deal of
-moderation; when, though he proves that scripture psalms
-should be preferred before all others, and more ordinarily
-sung; yet he thinks that hymns of human composure, ought
-not wholly to be excluded, provided they be exactly agreeable
-to, and as much as may be, the words of holy scripture. There
-are other writers whom I pay equal deference to, who have
-concisely, though with a considerable degree of judgment,
-proved singing to be a gospel-ordinance<a id='r28' /><a href='#f28' class='c012'><sup>[28]</sup></a>, who argue against
-singing of <i>hymns</i>: and, indeed, what they say in opposition to
-those who defend the practice thereof from Eph. v. 19. and
-Col. iii. 16. wherein <i>hymns</i> are supposed to be distinct from
-<i>psalms and spiritual songs</i>; and, consequently, that we are to
-understand thereby human composures, agreeable to scripture,
-as by psalms and spiritual songs, we are to understand those
-which are contained in the very words of scripture, seems very
-just. And herein they speak agreeably to the mind of several
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_98'>98</span>judicious and learned men, who assert that these three words
-signify nothing else but those psalms or songs that are contained
-in scripture<a id='r29' /><a href='#f29' class='c012'><sup>[29]</sup></a>. The question in debate with me, is not
-whether the psalms, hymns, or spiritual songs, that are contained
-in scripture, are designed to be a directory for gospel-worship;
-for that, I think, all ought to allow; but, whether it
-be lawful to sing a human composure that is agreeable to
-scripture, either as to the words or sense thereof; especially
-when the subject-matter of our praise is not laid down so
-largely in one particular section of scripture, as we desire to
-express it. In this case, if we were to connect several parts
-of scripture together, so that the design of enlarging on a particular
-subject might be answered thereby; it would render it
-less necessary to compose an hymn in other words. But, inasmuch
-as the occasions of praise are very large and extensive,
-and therefore it may be thought expedient, to adore the divine
-perfections, in our own words in singing, in like manner as we
-do in prayer, considering the one to be a moral duty as well
-as the other; I will not pretend to maintain the unlawfulness
-of singing hymns of human composure, though some of much
-superior learning and judgment have done it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I would, however, always pay the greatest deference to
-those divine composures, which are given as the principal rule
-for our procedure herein. Nevertheless, I cannot but express
-my dislike of several hymns that I have often heard sung; in
-some of which the heads of the sermon have been comprised;
-and others, which are printed, are so very mean and injudicious,
-and, it may be, in some respects, not very agreeable to
-the analogy of faith, that I cannot, in the least, approve of
-them. But if we have ground to conclude the composure, as
-to the matter thereof, and mode of expression, unexceptionable,
-and adapted to raise the affections, as well as excite suitable
-acts of faith in extolling the praises of God, it gives me
-no more disgust, though it be not in scripture-words, than
-praying or preaching do when the matter is agreeable thereunto.
-Yet, inasmuch as when we confess sin, acknowledge
-mercies received, or desire those blessings that are suited to
-our case, we always suppose, that the words, which he, who
-is the mouth of the congregation, uses, ought to be such, in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_99'>99</span>which all can join with him (and in this, the reading one of
-David’s prayers, and putting up a prayer in the congregation,
-differ as to a very considerable circumstance in each of them)
-the same ought to be observed in hymns. But, if an <i>hymn</i> be
-so composed, as that all that sing it are represented as signifying
-their having experienced those things which belong not
-to them, or as blessing God for what they never received:
-this, I conceive, would be an unwarrantable method of singing
-hymns of human composure, as much as if the expressions
-were used in public prayer. There are, indeed, many hymns
-which have in them a great vein of piety and devotion, but
-are not adapted to the experience of the whole assembly that
-sings them; therefore, though they may join in signing some
-hymns, I do not think they can well join in singing all; notwithstanding
-the subject-matter of them may be agreeable to
-the analogy of faith; and this principally depends upon what
-we have before laid down, concerning the difference between
-making use of a divine and human composure, in the former
-of which, the words are not always to be considered as our
-own, or expressive of the frame of our own spirits; whereas
-this is universally true, with respect to the latter.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Thus concerning the ordinance of singing; which we cannot
-but think included among those whereby Christ communicates
-to his church, the benefits of his mediation. And this leads
-us to consider the other ordinances, which are particularly insisted
-on in the remaining part of this work. And that which
-next comes under our consideration, is the word read and
-preached.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLX.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLV.</span> <i>How is the word made effectual to salvation?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The Spirit of God maketh the reading, but especially
-the preaching of the word, an effectual means of enlightening,
-convincing, and humbling sinners, of driving them out
-of themselves, and drawing them unto Christ, of conforming
-them to his image, and subduing them to his will, of
-strengthening them against temptations and corruptions, of
-building them up in grace, and establishing their heart in
-holiness and comfort through faith unto salvation.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>Having had an account, in the foregoing answer, of the
-ordinances by which Christ communicates the benefits of
-redemption to his church, and what they are; as also, that
-singing the praises of God is one of those ordinances. We
-are now to consider another ordinance that is made effectual
-to salvation, <i>viz.</i> the word read, or preached. We have, under
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_100'>100</span>some foregoing answers, had occasion to speak of the
-word of God as contained in the scriptures of the Old and
-New Testament, and considered it as the only rule of faith
-and obedience, and as having all the properties that are necessary
-thereunto, so that we may depend upon it as a perfect
-and infallible revelation of all things necessary to be believed
-and done, in order to our enjoying God here, and attaining
-eternal life hereafter<a id='r30' /><a href='#f30' class='c012'><sup>[30]</sup></a>. And now we are to consider the word
-as made the subject of our study and enquiry; without which
-it would be of no use to us. Accordingly we may observe in
-this answer,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. Something supposed; namely, that the word of God is to
-be read by us, and explained by those who are qualified and
-called hereunto, by whom it is to be preached. We are not,
-indeed, to conclude, that the explications of fallible men, how
-much soever they are fitted to preach the gospel, are of equal
-authority with the sacred oracles, as transmitted to us by those
-who received them, by infallible inspiration from the Spirit of
-God; and therefore, the text is much more to be depended on
-than the comment upon it; the truth whereof is to be tried
-thereby, Isa. viii. 20. 1 Thess. v. 21. Acts xvii. 11. Nevertheless,
-this is to be reckoned a great blessing, which God is
-pleased to bestow upon his church, in order to our understanding
-and making a right use of the written word. Accordingly,
-preaching, as well as the reading of the word, is an
-ordinance which the Spirit of God makes subservient to the
-salvation of them that believe; and in order thereunto, it is
-farther supposed, that the word is to be read by us, and we
-are to attend to the preaching thereof; to neglect either of
-which, is to despise our own souls, and deprive ourselves of
-the advantage of God’s instituted means of grace. Therefore,
-we are not to content ourselves, barely, with the reading of
-the word of God, in our closets or families; but we must embrace
-all opportunities, in which we may hear it preached in
-a public manner, one being no less an ordinance of God than
-the other.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> It is objected, by some, that they know as much as
-ministers can teach them; at least, they know enough, if they
-could but practise it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> This objection, sometimes, savours of pride and self-conceit,
-in those who suppose themselves to understand more,
-of the doctrines of the gospel, than they really do; and it can
-hardly be said, concerning the greatest number of professors,
-that they either know as much as they ought, or that it is not
-possible for them to make advances in knowledge, by a diligent
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_101'>101</span>attendance on an able and faithful ministry. However,
-that we may give the utmost scope to the objection, we will
-allow, that some Christians know more than many ministers,
-who are less skilful than others in the word of truth. Nevertheless,
-it must be observed that there are other ends of hearing
-the word, besides barely the gaining of knowledge, viz.
-the bringing the doctrines of the gospel to our remembrance,
-John xvi. 26. and their being impressed on our affections; and
-for this reason the wisest and best of men have not thought it
-below them, to attend upon the ministry of those who knew
-less than themselves. Our Saviour was an hearer of the word
-before he entered on his public ministry, Luke ii. 46. and
-though it might, I think, truly be said of him, that though he
-was but twelve years old, he knew more than the doctors, in
-the midst of whom he sat, in the temple, yet he <i>heard and asked
-them questions</i>. And David, though he professes himself
-to have <i>more understanding than all his teachers</i>, Psal. cxix.
-99. yet he was glad to embrace all opportunities, to go up
-into the house of the Lord; this being God’s appointed means
-for a believer’s making advances in grace.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. There are several things particularly mentioned in this
-answer, in which the Spirit of God makes the word, read or
-preached, effectual to salvation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Hereby the mind is enlightened and furnished with the
-knowledge of divine truths, which is a very great privilege,
-for as faith is inseparably connected with salvation; the knowledge
-of the doctrines of the gospel is necessary to faith; and
-this is said to <i>come by hearing</i>, Rom. x. 17. Acts viii. 30, 31.
-However, we must not content ourselves with a bare assent
-to what is revealed in the word of God; but must duly weigh
-the tendency thereof, to our sanctification and consolation, and
-admire the beauty, excellency, and glory that there is in the
-great doctrines of the gospel, as the divine perfections shine
-forth therein, to the utmost. We must also duly consider the
-importance of those doctrines that are contained therein, and
-how they are to be improved by us, to our spiritual advantage;
-and when we find our hearts filled with love to Jesus
-Christ, in proportion to those greater measures of light, that
-he is pleased to impart to us, so that we grow in grace as well
-as in the knowledge of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ,
-2 Pet. iii. 18. then the word may be said to be made effectual
-to our salvation, as our minds are very much enlightened and
-improved in the knowledge of those things that lead thereunto.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. The word is made effectual to bring us under conviction,
-by which means we see ourselves sinful and miserable creatures;
-particularly we are hereby led to see those depths of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_102'>102</span>wickedness that are in our hearts, by nature, which otherwise
-could not be sufficiently discerned by us, much less improved
-to our spiritual advantage, Jer. xvii. 9. Rom. vii. 9. Would
-we take a view of the manifold sins committed in our lives,
-with all their respective aggravations, so as to lay to heart the
-guilt that we have contracted hereby, or, if we would be effected
-with the consideration of the misery that will ensue
-hereupon; as that, hereby, we not only deserve the wrath and
-curse of God, but without an interest in forgiving grace, are
-bound to conclude ourselves liable to it: These things we are
-led into by the word of God. And if we would know whether
-these convictions of sin are such as have a more immediate
-reference to salvation; let us enquire, whether they are
-attended with that grief and sorrow of heart for the intrinsic
-evil that there is in sin, as well as the sad consequences thereof?
-Psal. xxxviii. 18. compared with ver. 4. or, whether,
-when we have taken this view thereof, we are farther led to
-enquire after the remedy, and seek forgiveness through the
-blood of Christ, and strength against those corruptions that
-we have ground to charge ourselves with, which have so much
-prevailed over us? Acts xvi. 30. Psal. xix. 13. xxv. 11. Jer.
-viii. 22.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. The word is made effectual to salvation, when what is
-contained therein tends to humble and lay us low at the foot
-of God; when we acknowledge, that all his judgments are
-right, or whatever punishments have been inflicted, pursuant
-to the threatenings which he has denounced, have been less
-than our iniquities deserve, Ezra ix. 13. And when we receive
-reproofs for sins committed, with a particular application
-thereof to ourselves, and are sensible of the guilt we have
-contracted thereby.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But that we may make a right use of the word, to answer
-this great end, let us consider, what humbling considerations
-are contained therein, that may have a tendency to answer this
-end.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) The word of God represents to us that infinite distance
-that there is between him and us; so that the best of creatures
-are, in his sight, as nothing, Isa. xl. 17. <i>less than nothing, and
-vanity</i>. Herein we behold God as infinitely perfect, and men
-as very imperfect, and unlike to him; and in particular, we
-behold him as a God of infinite holiness, spotless purity, and
-ourselves as impure, polluted creatures; which is a very humbling
-consideration, Prov. xxx. 2. Isa. lxiv. 6.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) The word of God discovers to us the deceitfulness and
-desperate wickedness that there is in our hearts, whereby we
-are naturally inclined to rebel against him; and should, had it
-not been for his preventing and renewing grace, have run with
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_103'>103</span>the vilest of men, in all excess of riot. It also leads us into
-the knowledge of the various kinds of sin, which we have
-ground to charge ourselves with, in the course of our lives;
-the frequent omission of those duties which are required of us;
-our great neglect of relative duties, in the station in which
-God has fixed us; and the injury we have done to others
-hereby, whom we have caused to stumble, or fall by our example,
-or, at least, by our unconcernedness about their spiritual
-welfare. It also discovers to us the various aggravations of
-sins committed, as they are against light, love, mercies, and
-manifold engagements, which we are laid under; and the
-great contempt which we have cast on the blessed Jesus, in
-disregarding, or not improving, the benefits of his mediation.
-All these things duly considered, have a tendency to humble
-us, and we are led into the discovery hereof by the word of
-God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. The word of God is made effectual to salvation, as it has
-a tendency to drive sinners out of themselves, and to draw
-them to Jesus Christ. On the one hand, it shews them the
-utter impossibility of their saving themselves, by doing any
-thing that may bring them into a justified state, and so render
-them accepted in the sight of God; and, on the other hand, it
-draws or leads them to Christ, whom they are enabled to behold
-by faith, as discovered in the gospel, to be a merciful and
-all-sufficient Saviour. The former of these is not only antecedent,
-but necessary to the latter: For, so long as we fancy that
-we have a sufficiency in ourselves, to recommend us to God,
-and procure for us a right and title to eternal life, we shall never
-think of committing our souls into Christ’s hand, in order
-to our obtaining salvation from him in his own way. Thus
-the prophet brings in a self-conceited people as saying, <i>We are
-lords, we will come no more to thee</i>, Jer. ii. 31. No one will
-seek help or safety from Christ, who is not sensible of his own
-weakness, and being in the utmost danger without him. The
-first thing then that the Spirit of God does in the souls of men,
-when he makes the word effectual to salvation, is, his leading
-them into a humble sense of their utter inability to do what is
-spiritually good, or acceptable to God, or to make atonement
-for the sins that they have committed against him; that so they
-might be brought into a justified state. It is, indeed, an hard
-matter to convince the sinner of this; for he is very prone to
-be full of himself, sometimes to glory with the Pharisee, Luke
-xviii. 11. in some religious duties he performs; at other times
-in his abstaining from those gross enormities that others are
-chargeable with: Or, if he will own himself to have exceeded
-many in sin; yet he is ready to think, that, by some expedient
-or other, he shall be able to make atonement for it. This sets
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_104'>104</span>him at a great distance from Christ; as it is said, <i>They that
-be whole need not a physician, but they that are sick</i>, Matt. ix.
-12. So these do not see their need of a Saviour, till they are
-convinced that they have nothing in themselves that can afford
-any relief to them, so as to deliver them from the guilt of sin,
-and the misery that will ensue thereupon. On this account our
-Saviour observes, that <i>publicans and harlots go into the kingdom
-of God</i>, chap. xxi. 31. <i>i. e.</i> are more easily made sensible
-of their need of Christ, being convinced of sin, when the <i>chief
-priests and elders</i>, who thought they had a righteousness of
-their own to justify them, and therefore refused to comply with
-the method of the gospel, in having recourse to Christ alone
-for this privilege.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Now the word of God is made use of by the Spirit, to drive
-the sinner out of these strong holds, and to shew him that he
-cannot, by any means recover himself out of that state of sin
-and misery, into which he is plunged. It is a very hard thing
-for a person to be convinced of the truth of what our Saviour
-says, viz. <i>That which is highly esteemed amongst men, is an
-abomination in the sight of God</i>, Luke xvi. 15. when it is put
-in the room of Christ and his righteousness. This is one of
-the great ends to which the word is made subservient when
-rendered effectual to salvation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, the word of God draws the soul to Christ, so that
-it is persuaded and induced, from gospel-motives, to come to
-him; and, at the same time, enabled so to do by the almighty
-power of God, without which he cannot come to him, John
-vi. 44. the former draws objectively, the latter subjectively and
-internally.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to what the gospel does in order hereunto, let it be considered,
-that it sets before us the excellency and glory of Christ,
-as our great Mediator; represents him as a divine person, and,
-consequently, the object of faith, and as such, <i>able to save, to
-the uttermost, them that come unto God by him</i>, Heb. vi. 25.
-It considers him as having purchased salvation for his people;
-so that they may obtain forgiveness through his blood. It also
-discovers him as not only able, but willing to save all that
-come to him by faith; so that he will in no wise cast them out,
-John vi. 37. It also represents him as having a right to us;
-we are his by purchase; and therefore it is our indispensible
-duty to give up ourselves unto him. It also makes known to
-us the greatness of his love, as the highest inducement hereunto;
-the freeness, riches and extensiveness of his grace, as ready
-to embrace the chief of sinners, and pass by all the injuries
-that they have done against him, and as giving them the utmost
-assurance, that, having loved them in the world, he will
-love them to the end. Thus Christ is set forth in the gospel;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_105'>105</span>and when it is made effectual to salvation, the soul is induced,
-or, as it were, constrained hereby, to love him, and yield the
-obedience of faith unto him in all things.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>5. The word is made of use by the Spirit, as a means to
-conform the soul to the image of God, and subdue it to his
-will. The image of God in man, is defaced by sin; so that
-he is not only rendered unlike, but averse to him, stripped of
-all his beauty, and become abominable and filthy in his sight;
-and, as long as he remains so, is unmeet for communion with,
-or obtaining salvation from him. Now, when the Spirit of
-God communicates special grace to sinners, he instamps this
-image afresh upon the soul, which he renews in knowledge,
-righteousness, and holiness, sanctifies all the powers and faculties
-thereof, and subdues the will, so that it yields a cheerful
-obedience to the will of God, and delights in his law after the
-inward man; and its language is, <i>Speak, Lord, for thy servant
-heareth</i>. This change the Spirit of God works in the heart,
-by his internal efficacious influence; as has been formerly observed,
-when we considered the work of conversion and sanctification,
-as brought about by him<a id='r31' /><a href='#f31' class='c012'><sup>[31]</sup></a>. And this effect is also
-ascribed to the word as a moral instrument thereof; so that it
-is not attained without it, it being, indeed, the principal end of
-the preaching the gospel; as the apostle says, <i>The weapons of
-our warfare are not carnal, but mighty through God, to the pulling
-down of strong holds, casting down imaginations, and every
-high thing that exalteth itself against the knowledge of God</i>, 2
-Cor. x. 4, 5. and bringing into captivity every thought to the
-obedience of Christ.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>6. The word is farther said to be made effectual to salvation,
-as hereby we are strengthened against temptation, and corruption.
-By the former, those objects are presented to us that
-have a tendency to alienate our affections from God; by the
-latter, these temptations are complied with, and the affections
-entangled in the snare that is laid for them, Satan, or the world,
-present the bait, and corrupt nature is easily allured and taken
-by it. The tempter uses many wiles and stratagems to ensnare
-us, and our own hearts are deceitful above all things, and without
-much difficulty, turned aside thereby; and so led captive
-by Satan at his will. But when the Spirit of God makes the
-word effectual to salvation, he takes occasion hereby to detect
-the fallacy; lays open the design of our spiritual enemies, and
-the pernicious tendency thereof; and internally fortifies the
-soul against them, whereby it is <i>kept from the paths of the destroyer</i>,
-Psal. xvii. 4. and this he does by presenting other and
-better objects to engage our affections, and leading us into the
-knowledge of those glorious truths, that may prevent a sinful
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_106'>106</span>compliance with the solicitations of the devil. And, according
-to the nature of the temptation that may occur, we are directed
-to the precepts or promises contained in the word of
-God; which, being duly improved by us, have a tendency to
-keep the heart steady, and fixed in the ways of God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>7. The word of God is made effectual by the Spirit, as he
-thereby builds the soul up in grace, and establishes it in holiness
-and comfort, through faith unto salvation. The work of
-grace is not immediately brought to perfection, but is, in a
-progressive way, making advances towards it; and therefore
-we are first made holy by the renovation of our hearts and lives,
-and made partakers of those spiritual consolations that accompany
-or flow from the work of sanctification; and then we are
-built up in holiness and comfort, whereby we go from strength
-to strength, and are more and more established in the ways of
-God; and this is done by the preaching of the word, whereby
-we are said to <i>grow in grace, and the knowledge of our Lord
-and Saviour Jesus Christ</i>, 2 Pet. iii. 18. so that every step we
-take in our way to heaven, from the time that our faces are first
-turned towards it, we are enabled hereby to go on safely and
-comfortably, till the work of grace is perfected in glory.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLVI., CLVII.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLVI.</span> <i>Is the word of God to be read by all?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> Although all are not to be permitted to read the word
-publicly to the congregation, yet all sorts of people are bound
-to read it apart by themselves, and with their families, to
-which end the holy scriptures are to be translated out of the
-original, into vulgar languages.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLVII.</span> <i>How is the word of God to be read?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The holy scriptures are to be read, with an high and
-reverend esteem of them; with a firm persuasion that they
-are the very word of God, and that he only can enable us to
-understand them, with desire to know, believe, and obey the
-will of God revealed in them, with diligence and attention
-to the matter and scope of them; with meditation, application,
-self-denial, and prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>The word’s being made effectual to salvation, which was
-the subject last insisted on, not only supposes that we
-read it as translated into vulgar languages, but that we understand
-what we read, in order to our applying it to our particular
-case, and improving it for our spiritual advantage. These
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_107'>107</span>things are next to be considered as contained in the answers
-we are now to explain. Accordingly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. We have an account, in the former of them, of the obligation
-that all persons are under to read, or at least, attend to
-the reading of the word of God; more particularly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. It is to be read publicly in the congregation, by those who
-are appointed for that purpose. This is evident, inasmuch as
-the church, and all the public worship that is performed therein,
-is founded on the doctrines contained in scripture; and
-every one who would be made wise to salvation, ought to be
-well acquainted with it; and the reading it publicly, as a part
-of that worship that is performed in the church, is not only a
-testimony of the high esteem that we have for it; but it will
-be of great use to those, who, through a sinful neglect to read
-it in families, and their not being disposed to do this in their
-private retirement; or, through the stupidity of their hearts,
-and the many incumbrances of worldly business, will not allow
-themselves time for this necessary duty, by reason whereof
-they remain strangers to those great and important truths contained
-therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>That this is a duty appears from the charge that the apostle
-gives, that the epistle which he wrote to the church at Thessalonica,
-should <i>be read unto all the holy brethren</i>, 1 Thess. v.
-27. And he gives the like charge to the church at Colosse,
-Col. iv. 16. And to this we may add, that the scripture is not
-only to be read, but explained; which is the principal design
-of the preaching thereof. This is no new practice; for the Old
-Testament was not only read, but explained in the synagogues
-<i>every Sabbath-day</i>; which is called, by a metonymy, a <i>reading
-Moses</i>, Acts xv. 21. <i>viz.</i> explaining the law that was given
-by him. Thus Ezra <i>stood upon a pulpit of wood, opened the
-book in the sight of all the people</i>; and he, with some other of
-his brethren that assisted him herein, <i>read in the book in the
-law of God distinctly, and gave the sense, and caused them to
-understand the reading</i>, that is, the meaning thereof, Neh. viii.
-4,-8. In like manner our Saviour <i>went into the synagogue
-the Sabbath-day</i>, and <i>stood up</i> and <i>read</i>, that part of the holy
-scriptures, taken from the prophecy of Isaiah; which, when he
-had done, he applied it to himself, and shewed them how <i>it
-was fulfilled in their ears</i>, Luke iv. 16,-24. So that it is
-supposed that the word is to be publicly read.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The only thing in this answer, that needs explaining is, what
-is meant by those words, all are not to be permitted to read
-the word publicly to the congregation. We are not to suppose
-that there is an order of men that Christ has appointed to be
-readers in the church, distinct from ministers; therefore the
-meaning of this expression may be, that all are not to read the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_108'>108</span>word of God together, in a public assembly, with a loud voice;
-for that would tend rather to confusion than edification. Nor
-ought any to be appointed to do it, but such as are grave, pious,
-and able to read it distinctly, for the edification of others.
-And who is so fit for this work, as the minister whose office is
-not only to read, but explain it in the ordinary course of his
-ministry?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. The word of God is to be read in our families; which
-is absolutely necessary for the propagating religion therein.
-This, indeed, is shamefully neglected; which is one great reason
-of the ignorance and decay of piety in the rising generation;
-and the neglect hereof is contrary to God’s command,
-Deut. vi. 6, 7. as well as the example of those who are highly
-commended for this practice; as Abraham was for <i>commanding
-his children, and his household after him, that they should
-keep the way of the Lord</i>, Gen. xviii. 19. Psal. lxxviii. 3, 4.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. The word of God ought to be read by every one, in private;
-and that not only occasionally, but frequently as one of
-the great businesses of life. Thus God says to Joshua, Josh.
-i. 8. <i>This book of the law shall not depart out of thy mouth;
-but thou shalt meditate therein day and night</i>, Psal. i. 2. And
-our Saviour commands the Jews to <i>search the scriptures</i>, John
-v. 39. and, in some of his discourses with them, though he
-was sensible that they were a degenerate people; yet he takes
-it for granted, that they had not altogether laid aside this duty,
-Matt. xii. 5. chap. xxi. 42. Luke vi. 3. This practice, especially
-where the word of God has not only been read, but the
-meaning thereof sought after, and attended to with great diligence,
-is commended as a peculiar excellency in Christians,
-who are, in this respect, styled more <i>noble</i> than others, who
-are defective in this duty, Acts xvii. 11.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Now it appears, that it is the duty of every one to read the
-word of God, inasmuch as it is given us with this design. If
-God is pleased, as it were, to send us an epistle from heaven,
-it is a very great instance of contempt cast on it, as well as on
-the divine condescension expressed therein, for us to neglect
-to read it. Does he impart his mind to us herein, and is it
-not our indispensable duty, to pay the utmost regard thereto?
-Rev. i. 11. compared with chap. ii. 29. Moreover, our own
-advantage should be a farther inducement to us, to read the
-word of God; since his design in giving it, was, that we might
-believe, and that believing, we may attain life, through the
-name of Christ, John xx. 31. Rom. x. 17. chap. xv. 4. It is
-sometimes compared to a <i>sword</i>, for our defence, against our
-spiritual enemies, Eph. vi. 17. and is therefore designed for
-use; otherwise it is no advantage for us. It is elsewhere
-compared to a <i>lamp to our feet</i>, Psal. cxix. 105. which is not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_109'>109</span>designed for an ornament, but to guide us in the right way;
-therefore we must attend to its direction. It is also compared
-to <i>food</i>, whereby we are said to be <i>nourished up in the words
-of faith and good doctrine</i>, and <i>as new-born babes</i> we are exhorted,
-to <i>desire the sincere milk of the word, that we may
-grow thereby</i>, 1 Pet. ii. 2. but this end cannot be attained,
-unless it be read and applied by us to our own necessities.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This leads us to take notice of the opposition that the Papists
-make hereunto, inasmuch as they deny the common people the
-liberty of reading the scriptures in their own language, without
-leave given them from the bishop, or some other spiritual
-guides, who are authorized to allow or deny this privilege, as
-they think fit; but without this, the reading of it is strictly
-prohibited. And, as an instance of their opposition to it, they
-have sometimes burnt whole impressions of the Bible, in the
-open market-place; as well as expressed their contempt hereof,
-by burning particular copies of scripture, or dragging them
-through the streets, throwing them in the kennels, and stamping
-them under feet, or tearing them in pieces, as though it
-was the vilest book in the world; and some have been burned
-for reading it. And, that it may be brought into the utmost
-contempt, they have cast the most injurious reproaches upon
-it, by calling it a bending rule, a nose of wax, a dumb judge.
-And some have blasphemed it, by saying, that it has no more
-authority than Esop’s fables; and have compared the psalms
-of David to profane ballads. And, they pretend, by all this,
-to consult the good of the people, that they may not be misled
-thereby.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>That which they generally allege in vindication of this practice,
-is, that they do not so much oppose the reading the scripture,
-as the reading those translations of it, which have been
-made by Protestants; and that it is our Bible, not that which
-they allow to be the word of God, that they treat with such
-injurious contempt.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But to this it may be replied; that the objections they bring
-against scripture, are not taken so much from such passages
-thereof, which they pretend to be falsely translated; but their
-design is, plainly, to keep the people in ignorance, that they
-may not, as the consequence of their reading it, imbibe those
-doctrines, that will, as they pretend, turn them aside from the
-faith of the church; and therefore, they usually maintain, that
-the common people ought to be kept in ignorance, as an expedient
-to excite devotion; and that, by this means, they will
-be the more humble, and pay a greater deference to those unwritten
-traditions that are propagated by them, and pretended
-to be of equal authority with scripture, which the common
-people must take up with instead of it. And, indeed, the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_110'>110</span>consequence hereof, is agreeable to their desire; for they appear
-to be grossly ignorant, and think themselves bound to
-believe whatever their leaders pretend to be true, without exercising
-a judgment of discretion, or endeavouring to know
-the mind of God relating thereunto.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>That which they generally allege in opposing the common
-people’s reading the Bible, is, that it contains <i>some things</i> in
-it that are <i>hard to be understood</i>; as the apostle Peter expresses
-it, in 2 Pet. iii. 16. <i>which they that are unlearned and unstable
-wrest, as they do also the other scriptures, unto their destruction</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But to this it may be replied; that it must be allowed that
-some things contained in scripture, are hard to be understood;
-inasmuch as the gospel contains some mysteries which finite
-wisdom cannot comprehend; and the great doctrines of the
-gospel, are sometimes unintelligible by us, by reason of the
-ignorance and alienation of our minds from the life of God,
-as well as from the imperfections of this present state, in which
-we know but in part. Notwithstanding, they, who with diligence
-and humility, desire, and earnestly seek after the knowledge
-of those truths that are more immediately subservient to
-their salvation, shall find that their labour is not lost; but in
-following on to know the Lord, shall know as much of him as
-is necessary to their glorifying and enjoying him, as the prophet
-says, <i>Then shall ye know if ye follow on to know the
-Lord</i>, Hos. vi. 3. It is to be owned, that there are some
-depths in scripture, that cannot be fathomed by a finite understanding;
-which should tend to raise our admiration, and put
-us upon adoring the unsearchable wisdom of God, as well as
-an humble confession that <i>we are but of yesterday, and know</i>,
-comparatively, <i>nothing</i>, Job viii. 9. Yet there are many doctrines
-that we may attain to a clear knowledge of, and improve,
-to the glory of God, in the conduct of our lives. Thus the
-prophet speaks of an <i>high way</i>, that is called <i>the way of holiness</i>;
-concerning which it is said, that <i>way-faring men</i>, who
-walk therein, <i>though fools</i>, that is, such as have the meanest
-capacity, as to other things, <i>shall not err therein</i>, Isa. xxxv. 8.
-that is, they who humbly desire the teaching of the Spirit,
-whereby they may be made acquainted with the mind and will
-of God, shall not be led out of the way by any thing that he
-has revealed to his people in his word. It is very injurious
-to the sacred oracles to infer, that because some things are
-hard to be understood, therefore all that read them, must necessarily
-wrest them to their own destruction. And besides,
-the apostle does not say, that all do so, but only those who are
-<i>unlearned and unstable</i>; <i>unlearned</i>, that is, altogether unacquainted
-with the doctrines of the gospel, as not making them
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_111'>111</span>the matter of their study and enquiry; and <i>unstable</i>, that is,
-such as give way to scepticism, or they whose faith is not
-built on the right foundation, but are inclined to turn aside
-from the truth, with every wind of doctrine. This God’s people
-may hope to be kept from, while they study the holy scriptures,
-and earnestly desire to be made wise thereby unto salvation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to what the Papists farther allege against the common
-people’s being permitted to read the scriptures, because, as
-they pretend, this will make them proud, and induce them to
-enquire into those things that do not belong to them, whereby
-they will soon think themselves wiser than their teachers; and
-that it has been the occasion of all the heresies that are in the
-world.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>To this it may be answered, that whatever ill consequences
-attend a person’s reading of scripture, these are not to be ascribed
-to the use, but the abuse of it. Will any one say, that
-we ought to abstain from eating and drinking, because some
-are guilty of excess therein, by gluttony and drunkenness?
-No more ought we to abstain from reading the scriptures, because
-some make a wrong use of them. But, inasmuch as it
-is supposed that hereby some, through pride, will think themselves
-wiser than their teachers; this, we will allow, they
-may do, without passing a wrong judgment on themselves;
-and it is injurious treatment of mankind, to keep the world in
-ignorance, that they may not detect the fallacies, or expose
-the errors of those who pretend to be their guides in matters
-of faith.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to what is farther alleged, that the reading of scripture
-has been the occasion of many heresies in the world, I am
-rather inclined to think, that this ought to be charged on the
-neglect thereof, or, at least, on their not studying them with
-diligence, and an humble dependence on God for his blessing
-to attend it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It may be observed, that whatever reasons are assigned for
-their denying the people the liberty of reading the scriptures,
-these seem to carry in them a pretence of great kindness to
-them, that they may not, hereby, be led out of the way, and
-do themselves hurt by this means; as it is a dangerous thing
-to put a knife, or a sword, into a child’s, or madman’s hand;
-by which they suppose the common people to be ignorant, and
-would keep them so. But, whatever reasons they assign, the
-true reason why they so much oppose the reading of scripture
-is this, because it detects and exposes the absurdity of many
-doctrines that are imbibed by them, which will not bear to be
-tried by it. If they can but persuade their votaries, that
-whatever is handed down by tradition, as a rule of faith, is to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_112'>112</span>be received, without the least hesitation, though contrary to
-the mind of God in scripture, they are not like to meet with
-any opposition from them, let them advance doctrines never
-so absurd, or contrary to reason.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>If it be enquired, whether they universally prohibit the reading
-of scripture? It must be allowed, that the Vulgar Latin
-version thereof may be read by any one that understands it,
-without falling under their censure. But this they are sensible
-of, that the greatest part of the common people cannot understand
-it; and if they do, it is so corrupt a translation, that
-it seems plainly calculated to give countenance to the errors
-that they advance<a id='r32' /><a href='#f32' class='c012'><sup>[32]</sup></a>. So that it appears from their whole
-management herein, that their design is to deprive mankind
-of the greatest blessings which God has granted to them; and
-to discourage persons from the performance of a duty, which
-is so absolutely necessary to promote the interest of God and
-religion in the world. Therefore we must conclude, that it is
-an invaluable privilege that we are not only permitted, but
-commanded to read the scriptures, as translated into that language
-that is generally understood by us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And this leads us to consider the inference that is deduced
-from hence, contained in the latter part of the answer which
-we are explaining, <i>viz.</i> that the scriptures are to be translated
-out of the original into vulgar languages. This is evident, inasmuch
-as reading signifies nothing, where the words are not
-understood; and every private Christian is not obliged to addict
-himself to the study of the languages in which the scriptures
-were written; and it is, indeed, a work of so much pains
-and difficulty, that few have opportunity, or inclination, to
-apply themselves, to any considerable purpose, to the study
-thereof. Therefore, the words of scripture must be rendered
-intelligible to all, and consequently, translated into a language
-they understand.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This may be argued from the care of providence, that the
-scriptures should be delivered, at first, to the Jews, in their
-own language; as the greatest part of the Old Testament was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_113'>113</span>written in Hebrew, and those few sections or chapters in Ezra
-and Daniel, that were written in the Chaldee language, were
-not inserted till they understood that language<a id='r33' /><a href='#f33' class='c012'><sup>[33]</sup></a>. And, when
-the world generally understood the Greek tongue, so that
-there was no necessity for the common people to learn it in
-schools, and the Hebrew was not understood by those nations,
-for whom the gospel was designed; it pleased God to deliver
-the New Testament in the Greek language. So that it is beyond
-dispute that he intended, that the scriptures should not only be
-read, but understood by the common people. And when the
-gospel was sent to various nations of different languages, the
-Spirit of God, by an extraordinary and miraculous dispensation,
-furnished the apostles to speak to every one in their own
-language, by bestowing on them the gift of tongues; which
-would have been needless, if it were not necessary for persons
-to read or hear the holy scriptures with understanding.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. We are now to consider, how the word of God is to be
-read, that we may understand, and improve what is contained
-therein to our spiritual advantage; and in order thereunto,
-there are several directions given in the latter of the answers
-we are explaining.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. We must read the scriptures with an high and reverent
-esteem of them, arising from a firm persuasion, that they are
-the word of God. That they are so, has been proved by several
-arguments<a id='r34' /><a href='#f34' class='c012'><sup>[34]</sup></a>; therefore we will suppose them that read
-them, to be persuaded of the truth thereof; and this will beget
-an high and reverent esteem of them. The perfections of
-God, and particularly his wisdom, sovereignty, and goodness,
-shine forth with equal glory in his word, as they do in any of
-his works; and therefore it has a preference to all human composures;
-in that whatever is revealed therein, is to be admired
-and depended on for its unerring wisdom and infallible
-verity; so that it is impossible for them, who understand and
-improve it, to be turned aside thereby, from the way of truth.
-We are also to consider the use that God makes of it, to propagate
-his kingdom and interest in the world. It is by this
-means that he convinces men of sin, and discovers to them the
-way of obtaining forgiveness of it, and victory over it, and
-thoroughly furnishes them unto every good work, 2 Tim. iii.
-16. For this reason the wisest and best of men have expressed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_114'>114</span>the highest esteem and value for it. The Psalmist mentions
-the love he had to it, as a person that was in a rapture;
-<i>O how love I thy law! it is my meditation all the day</i>, Psal.
-cxix. 97. And elsewhere he speaks of it as <i>more to be desired
-than gold, yea, than much fine gold; sweeter also than honey
-and the honey comb</i>, Psal. xix. 16. which argues the high veneration
-he had for it. This we all ought to have; otherwise
-we may sometimes be tempted to read it with prejudice, and
-thereby, through the corruption of our nature, be prone to
-cavil at it, as we sometimes do at those writings that are
-merely human, which savour of the weakness and imperfection
-of their authors, and consequently, it will be impossible for us
-to receive any saving advantage thereby.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We must, in reading the word of God, be sensible that
-he alone can enable us to understand it. To read the scriptures
-and not understand them, will be of no advantage to us;
-therefore it is supposed, that we are endeavouring to have our
-minds rightly informed and furnished with the knowledge of
-divine truths: But by reason of the corruption, ignorance, and
-depravity of our natures, this cannot be attained without a peculiar
-blessing from God attending our endeavours; therefore
-we ought to glorify him, by dependence on him, for this
-privilege, (as being sensible that all spiritual wisdom is from
-him,) if we would see a beauty and glory in those things that are
-revealed therein, and be thoroughly established in the doctrines
-of the gospel, so as not to be in danger of being turned aside
-from them; or, especially, if we would improve them to our
-being made wise unto salvation, we must consider this as the
-gift of God. It is he alone who can enable us to understand
-his word aright; this is evident, inasmuch as it is necessary
-that there be an internal illumination, as well as an external
-revelation, which is the subject-matter of our studies and enquiries.
-Thus our Saviour not only repeated the words of
-those scriptures that concerned himself, to the two disciples
-going to Emmaus; but he <i>opened their understandings, that
-they might understand them</i>, Luke xxiv. 45. Without this, a
-person may have the brightest parts, and most penetrating
-judgment in other respects, and yet be unacquainted with the
-mind of God in his word, and inclined to embrace those doctrines
-that are contrary to it; and especially if God is not
-pleased to succeed our endeavours, we shall remain destitute
-of the experimental knowledge of divine truths, which is absolutely
-necessary to salvation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. We must read the word of God with a desire to know,
-believe, and obey his will, contained therein. If we do not desire
-to know, or understand the meaning of scripture, it will
-remain no better than a sealed book to us; and, instead of receiving
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_115'>115</span>thereby, we shall be ready to entertain prejudices against
-it, till we lay it aside, with the utmost dislike; and, as
-the consequence thereof, we shall be utterly estranged from the
-life of God, through the ignorance and vanity of our minds.
-We must also read the word of God with a desire to have our
-faith established thereby, that our feet may be set upon a rock,
-and we may be delivered from all manner of doubts and hesitations,
-with respect to those important truths which are revealed
-therein; and we ought to desire, not only to believe,
-but yield a constant and cheerful obedience to every thing that
-God requires of us therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. Our reading the word of God ought to be accompanied
-with meditation, and the exercise of self-denial. Our thoughts
-should be wholly taken up with the subject-matter thereof, and
-that with the greatest intenseness, as those who are studiously,
-and with the greatest earnestness, pressing after the knowledge
-of those doctrines that are of the highest importance, that
-our profiting herein may appear to ourselves and others,
-1 Tim. iv. 15.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to the exercise of self-denial, all those perverse reasonings
-which our carnal minds are prone to suggest against the
-subject-matter of divine revelation, are to be laid aside. If we
-are resolved to believe nothing but what we can comprehend,
-we ought to consider that the gospel contains unsearchable
-mysteries, that surpass finite wisdom; therefore we must be
-content to acknowledge, that we know but in part. There is a
-deference to be paid to the wisdom of God, that eminently
-appears in every thing which he has discovered to us in his
-word; so that we must adore the divine perfections that are
-displayed therein, whilst we retain an humble sense of the imperfection
-of our own knowledge. Our reason is not to be
-considered as useless; but we must desire that it may be
-sanctified, and inclined to receive whatever God is pleased to
-impart. We are also to exercise the grace of self-denial, with
-respect to the obstinacy of our wills; whereby they are naturally
-disinclined to acquiesce in, approve of, and yield obedience
-to the law of God, so that we may be entirely satisfied,
-that every thing that he commands in his word, is holy, just,
-and good.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>5. The word of God is to be read with fervent prayer; as
-the apostle says, <i>If any man lack wisdom, let him ask of God,
-that giveth to all men liberally, and upbraideth not, and it shall
-be given him</i>, James i. 5. The advantage we expect hereby, is
-as was before observed, his gift; and therefore we are humbly
-to supplicate him for it. There are many things in his
-word that are hard to be understood; therefore we ought to
-say, whenever we take the scriptures into, our hands, as the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_116'>116</span>Psalmist does, <i>Open thou mine eyes that I may behold wondrous
-things out of thy law</i>, Psal. cxix. 18. We may, in this case,
-humbly acknowledge the weakness of our capacities and the
-blindness of our minds, which renders it necessary for us to
-desire to be instructed by him, in the way of truth. We
-may also plead, that his design in giving us this word, was,
-that it may be a lamp to our feet, and a light to our paths;
-therefore we dread the thoughts of walking in darkness, when
-there is such a clear discovery of those things which are so
-glorious and necessary to be known. We may also plead,
-that our Lord Jesus is revealed to his people as the prophet of
-his church; and that whatever office he is invested with, he
-delights to execute it, as his glory is concerned therein;
-therefore we trust, and hope that he will lead us, by his
-Spirit into his truth. We may also plead the impossibility
-of our attaining the knowlege of divine things, without his assistance;
-and how much it would redound to his glory, as well
-as our own comfort and advantage, if he will be pleased to
-lead us into the saving knowlege of the truth, as it is in
-him: This we cannot but importunately desire, as being sensible
-of the sad consequences of our being destitute of it;
-inasmuch as we should remain in darkness, though favoured
-with the light of the gospel.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>6. The word of God is to be read with diligence and attention
-to the matter and scope thereof. We have hitherto
-been directed in this answer, to apply ourselves to the reading
-of scripture, with that frame of spirit which becometh
-Christians, who desire to know the mind and will of God
-therein, viz. that we ought to have our minds disengaged
-from those prejudices which would hinder our receiving any
-advantage from it, and to exercise those graces that the nature
-and importance of the duty requires; that we ought to
-depend upon God, and address ourselves to him by faith and
-prayer for the knowlege of those divine truths contained therein.
-But, in this last head, we are led to speak of some other
-methods conducive to our understanding the scriptures; which
-are the effects of diligence and attendance to the sense of the
-words thereof, and the scope and design of them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This being an useful head, I shall take occasion to enlarge
-on it more than I have done on the former, and to add some
-other things, which may serve as a farther means to direct us,
-how we may read the scriptures with understanding. I might
-here observe, that they who are well acquainted with the languages
-in which they were written, and are able to make just
-remarks on the words, phrases, and particles used therein,
-some of which cannot be expressed in another language without
-losing much of their native beauty and significancy, these
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_117'>117</span>have certainly the advantage of all others: But since this cannot
-be done by the greatest part of mankind, who are strangers
-to the Greek and Hebrew languages; they must have recourse
-to some other helps for the attaining this valuable end. And
-in order thereunto,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) It will be of great use for them to consult those expositions,
-which we have of the whole, or some particular parts of
-scripture; of which some are more large, others concise; some
-critical, others practical. I shall forbear making any remarks
-tending to depreciate the performance of some, or extol the
-judgment of others; only this must be observed, that many
-have passed over some difficulties of scripture, which omission
-has given a degree of disgust to the more inquisitive part of
-Christians: But this may be attributed in some instances, to a
-commendable modesty, which we find not only in those that
-have written in our own, but in other languages; whereby
-they tacitly confess, either that they could not solve the difficulty;
-or, that it was better to leave it undetermined, than to
-attempt a solution, which, at best, would amount to little
-more than a probable conjecture. It may also be observed,
-that others, who have commented on scripture, seem to be
-prepossessed with a particular scheme of doctrine, which, if
-duly considered, is not very defensible; and they are obliged,
-sometimes, to strain the sense thereof, that it may appear to
-speak agreeably to their own sentiments; however, their expositions,
-in other respects, may be used with great advantage.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>To this we may add, that the word preached, being designed
-to lead us into the knowledge of scripture-doctrines, we ought
-to attend upon, and improve it, as a means conducive thereto,
-and to bless God for the great helps and advantages we have
-to attain it; but more of this will be considered under some
-following answers relating to the preaching and hearing the
-word:<a id='r35' /><a href='#f35' class='c012'><sup>[35]</sup></a> therefore we proceed to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) That we ought to make the best use we can of those
-translations of scripture, that we have in our own language;
-which, if we compare together, we shall find, not only that the
-style in which one is written, differs from that of another,
-agreeably to the respective times in which they were written;
-but they differ very much in the sense they give of many places
-of scripture; which may easily be accounted for from the
-various acceptations of the same Hebrew or Greek word, as
-may be observed in all other languages; and there are other
-difficulties relating to the propriety of translating some particular
-phrases, or the various senses in which several particles
-made use of, are to be understood. However, by comparing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_118'>118</span>these translations together, they who are unacquainted with the
-original, will be sometimes led into a sense more agreeable to
-the context and the analogy of faith, by one of them, than by
-another. But we will suppose the English reader to confine
-himself to the translation that is generally used by us; which,
-as it cannot be supposed to be of equal authority with the original,
-nor yet so perfect, as that it is impossible to be corrected,
-as to every word or phrase contained therein; yet I would be
-far from taking occasion from hence to depreciate it, or say
-any thing that may stagger the faith of any, as though we
-were in danger of being led aside thereby, from the way of
-truth, as some have pretended, who plead for the necessity of
-a new translation of the Bible; whereas it is much to be feared,
-that if any such thing should be attempted, it would deviate
-more from the sense of the Holy Ghost, than that which
-we now have, and have reason to bless God for, which, I
-cannot but think, comes as near the original as most that are
-extant. We shall therefore consider how this may be used to
-the best advantage, for our understanding the mind of God
-therein. And here we shall observe,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] That there is another translation of words referred to
-in the margin of our Bibles; which will sometimes give very
-great light to the sense of the text, and appear more emphatical,
-and rather to be acquiesced in. I shall give a short specimen
-of some texts of scripture, that may be illustrated this
-way; in which the marginal reading differs from the words it
-refers to: Thus it is said, in Job iv. 18. <i>He put no trust in
-his servants, and his angels he charged folly</i>: In the margin,
-it is observed, that the words may be read, <i>He put no
-trust in his servants, nor in his angels in whom he put light</i>;
-which denotes the excellency of their nature, and the wisdom
-with which they are endowed: Nevertheless, God put no trust
-in them, not having thought fit to make use of them in creating
-the world, nor committing the government thereof to them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, in Isaiah liii. 3. it is said, <i>We hid, as it were, our
-faces from him</i>, speaking of our Saviour; but in the margin,
-it is, <i>He hid, as it were, his face from us</i>; which implies, that,
-as he bore our grief, so he was charged with our guilt; and
-accordingly is represented, as having his face covered, as an
-emblem hereof; or else it denotes his concealing or veiling
-his glory, as he, who was really in the form of God, appeared
-in the form of a servant.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, in Jer. xlii. 20. the prophet reproving the people,
-says, <i>Ye dissembled in your hearts, when ye sent me unto the
-Lord your God, saying, Pray for us</i>; but, in the margin, it is,
-<i>You have used deceit against your souls</i>; which contains a farther
-illustration of the sense of the words; as it not only denotes
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_119'>119</span>their hypocrisy, but the consequence thereof, to wit, their
-destruction; which agrees very well with the threatning denounced
-in verse 22. that they should <i>die by the sword, the famine,
-and by the pestilence</i>. And the same prophet in chap. x.
-14. speaking of idolaters, says, <i>Every man is brutish in his
-knowlege</i>; but in the margin it is, <i>Every man is more brutish
-than to know</i>; in which their stupidity is rather assigned to
-their ignorance than their knowlege.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, in Zechariah xii. 5. it is said in the text, <i>The governors
-of Judah shall say in their hearts, The inhabitants of Jerusalem
-shall be my strength in the Lord of hosts their God</i>; but
-in the margin it is, <i>The governors of Judah shall say, There is
-strength to me, and to the inhabitants of Jerusalem, in the Lord
-of hosts</i>; and this reading seems more agreeable to what follows;
-which contains several promises of deliverance and
-salvation, which God would work for the inhabitants of Jerusalem;
-So that we are not to suppose them saying, <i>Jerusalem
-shall be our strength</i>; but, the <i>Lord of hosts</i>, who is a safe-guard
-to it, as well as to the governors of Judah.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, in Acts xvii. 23. it is said in the text, <i>As I passed by,
-and beheld your devotions</i>; but, in the margin it is, <i>The gods
-whom you worship</i>, or, the things ye pay divine honour to;
-which is very agreeable to the context, and the design of
-the apostle therein. Again, in chap. xxii. 29. it is said in
-the text, <i>that they departed from him, which should have examined
-him</i>, meaning Paul, in the margin it is, <i>tortured him</i>;
-which is agreeable to the Roman custom of scourging, and
-thereby tormenting one that was under examination for supposed
-crimes.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, in Gal. i. 14. the apostle says, <i>I profited in the
-Jews religion, above many my equals</i>; in the margin it is, <i>My
-equals in years</i>; which seems much more agreeable to the
-apostle’s design.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, in Heb. ii. 7. it is said in the text, <i>Thou madest
-him</i>, viz. our Saviour, <i>a little lower than the angels</i>; in the
-margin it is, <i>A little while inferior to them</i>; as referring to
-his state of humiliation; which continued comparatively, but
-a little while.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] In order to our making a right use of our English
-translation, that we may understand the mind of God contained
-therein, let it be farther observed, that by reason of the
-conciseness of the Hebrew and Greek texts, there are several
-words left out, which must be supplied, to complete the sense
-thereof; which are inserted in an <i>Italic</i> character. And it
-will not be difficult for us to determine whether the insertion
-be just or no; when we consider that the translators
-often take their direction herein from some words, either
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_120'>120</span>expressed or understood in the context; as in Heb. viii. 7. it
-is said, <i>If the first</i> covenant <i>had been faultless</i>, &amp;c. where the
-word <i>covenant</i> is inserted; as it is also in verse 13. because it
-is expressly mentioned, in verses 8, 9, 10.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, in chap. x. 6. it is said, in <i>sacrifices for sin thou
-hadst no pleasure</i>. The word <i>sacrifices</i> is supplied from the
-foregoing verse; and, for the same reason, <i>offerings</i> might as
-well have been supplied, as in ver. 8. And, in ver. 25. we
-are commanded to <i>exhort one another</i>; where <i>one another</i> is
-supplied from the foregoing verse.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, in 1 Pet. iv. 16. it is said, <i>If any man suffer as a
-Christian, let him not be ashamed</i>; where the words, <i>any man
-suffer</i>, are inserted as agreeable to what is mentioned, ver. 15.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, in Eph. ii. 1. <i>You hath he quickened who were dead in
-trespasses and sins</i>; the words, <i>hath he quickened</i>, are supplied
-from ver. 5. and our translators might as well have added,
-<i>you hath he quickened together with him</i>, viz. Christ. These
-things I only mention as a specimen of the insertions, to complete
-the sense in our translation; and we shall find, that the
-words supplied in other scriptures, are for the most part, sufficiently
-just; but if they be not so, they are subject to correction,
-without the least imputation of altering the words of
-scripture, while we are endeavouring to give the true sense
-thereof; and we may be allowed, without perverting of the
-sacred writings, sometimes, to supply other words instead of
-them, which may seem more agreeable to the mind of the
-Holy Ghost therein. Thus, in Eph. vi. 12. it is said, <i>We
-wrestle against spiritual wickedness in high places</i>. The word
-<i>places</i>, is supplied by our translators; and, in the margin, it is
-observed, that it might as well be rendered <i>heavenly places</i>.
-Now because there is no spiritual wickedness in heavenly
-places, therefore they choose, without regard to the proper
-sense of the Greek word, to render it <i>high places</i>. Whereas,
-in chap. iii. 10. where there is no appearance of such an objection,
-they render the same word, <i>heavenly places</i>; though,
-I think, the words in both those scriptures, might better be
-rendered <i>in what concerns heavenly things</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, in 2 Cor. vi. 1. it is said, <i>We, as workers together
-with him, beseech you</i>, &amp;c. where, <i>with him</i>, is supplied to
-complete the sense; but, I think, it might better have been
-left out, and then the sense would have been, ministers, are
-<i>workers together with one another</i>, and not <i>together with God</i>;
-they are honoured to be employed by God, as moral instruments,
-which he makes use of; but they have no other casuality
-in bringing about the work of grace. The principal reason
-why the words <i>with him</i>, are supplied, is because it seems
-agreeable to the apostle’s mode of speaking, in 1 Cor. iii. 9.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_121'>121</span><i>We are workers together with God</i>; but, I think, those words
-might better be rendered, <i>labourers together of God</i><a id='r36' /><a href='#f36' class='c012'><sup>[36]</sup></a>; or we
-are jointly engaged in his work; therefore there is no reason
-from hence to supply the words <i>with him</i>, in the text but now
-referred to.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) If we would understand the sense of a particular text
-of scripture, we must consider its connexion with the context.
-Accordingly we must observe,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, The scope, design, or argument insisted on, in the paragraph,
-in which it is contained. Thus in Rom. viii. the apostle’s
-design in general, is to prove that there is <i>no condemnation
-to them which are in Christ Jesus</i>, and to shew who they
-are, that may conclude themselves to be interested in this privilege;
-together with the many blessings that are connected
-with, or flow from it, which the subject matter of that chapter
-principally relates to.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, in Heb. i. the apostle’s principal design is, to prove
-the excellency and glory of Christ, as Mediator, above the
-angels, as he intimates ver. 4. which argument is principally
-insisted on, and illustrated, in the following part of the chapter.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, in chap. xi. his design is, to give an account of the
-great things the Old Testament church were enabled to do,
-and suffer, by faith, of which, there is an induction of particulars
-in several parts of it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, in Rom. v. the apostle insists on the doctrine of original
-sin, and shews how sin and death first entered into the
-world, and by what means we may expect to be delivered
-from it; and so takes occasion to compare Adam and Christ
-together, as two distinct heads and representatives of those
-who were included in the respective covenants which mankind
-were under; by the former of which, sin reigned unto death,
-and, by the latter, grace and righteousness, unto eternal life.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, in chap. vii. especially from ver. 5. the general argument
-insisted on, is, the conflict and opposition there is between
-sin and grace, and the manner in which corrupt nature
-discovers itself in the souls of the regenerate, together with
-the disturbance and uneasiness that it constantly gives them.
-And, in Psal. lxxxviii. we have an account of the distress that
-a soul is in, when under divine desertion, and brought to the
-very brink of despair. And, in Psal. lxxii. under the type of
-the glory of Solomon’s kingdom, and the advantages his subjects
-should receive thereby, the glory and excellency of
-Christ’s kingdom is illustrated, together with the gospel-state,
-and blessings thereof. And, in Psal. li. David represents a
-true penitent as addressing himself to God for forgiveness;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_122'>122</span>though particularly applied to his own case, after he had sinned
-in the matter of Uriah. Again, the general argument in
-Isa. liii. is to set forth the sufferings of Christ, whereby he
-made satisfaction for sin, together with the glory redounding
-to himself, and the advantages that believers derive from it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, We must consider the method made use of in managing
-the argument; whether by a close way of reasoning and
-consequences deduced from premises, or, by an explication of
-what was designed to inform the judgment, and laid down before
-in a general proposition. Or, whether the principal design
-of the paragraph be, to regulate the conduct of our lives,
-awaken our consciences out of a stupid frame, or excite in us
-becoming affections, agreeable to the subject-matter thereof.
-And, we are to observe how every part of it is adapted to
-answer these ends.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, We are to consider who is the person speaking, or
-spoken to; whether they are the words of God, the church, or
-the inspired writer; and, whether they are directed to particular
-persons, or to all men in general? Here we may often observe,
-that in the same paragraph there is an <i>apostrophe</i>, or
-turning the discourse from one person to another. Nothing is
-more common than this in the poetical writings of scripture.
-Thus, in the Psalms of David, sometimes God is represented
-as speaking to man, and then man as speaking to, or concerning
-God, as we may observe, in Psal. cxxxvii. 1-4. there is
-a relation of the church’s troubles in Babylon; and, in verses
-5 and 6. the Psalmist addresses his discourse to the church;
-<i>If I forget thee, O Jerusalem, let my right hand forget her
-cunning</i>. And, in ver. 7. he speaks to God, praying that he
-would <i>remember the children of Edom, in the day of Jerusalem;
-who said, Raze it, raze it, even to the foundation thereof</i>.
-And, in ver. 8, 9. he turns his discourse to Babylon, as a
-nation destined to destruction.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, in Psal. ii. he speaks concerning the <i>rage</i> of the
-<i>Heathen</i>, against Christ and his church, and that disappointment
-and ruin that they should meet with for it. And, in
-ver. 6. he represents God the Father as speaking concerning
-Christ; <i>yet have I set my King upon my holy hill of Zion</i>.
-And, in ver. 7, 8. Christ is brought in as speaking or making
-mention of the <i>decree</i> of God relating to his character and
-office, as Mediator, and the success of his kingdom, as extended
-to the <i>uttermost parts of the earth</i>, pursuant to his intercession,
-which was founded on his satisfaction. And, in ver. 10-12,
-the Psalmist turns his discourse to those persecuting
-powers, or the kings of the earth, whom he had spoken of in
-the former part of the Psalm, and instructs them what methods
-they should take to escape God’s righteous vengeance. Such-like
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_123'>123</span>change of persons speaking, or spoken to, may be observed
-in many of the Psalms, Psal. xvi. 1, <i>&amp;c.</i> and cxxxiv.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And throughout the whole book of Canticles, there is an
-inter-changeable discourse between Christ and his church,
-which is sometimes called his <i>spouse</i>, at other times his <i>sister</i>;
-sometimes he speaks to the church, and at other times of it.
-And, in other places, the church is represented as speaking to
-him, or to the <i>daughters of Jerusalem</i>, namely, those professors
-of religion, that had little more than a form of godliness.<a id='r37' /><a href='#f37' class='c012'><sup>[37]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, we often find, that there is a change with respect to
-the persons speaking, spoken to, or of, in the writings of the
-prophets, as well as in the poetical writings; as may be observed
-in Isa. lxiii. throughout the whole chapter. And, in Micah
-vii. 18, 19, 20. there is a change of persons in almost every
-sentence; <i>Who is a God like unto thee that pardoneth iniquity</i>,
-&amp;c. <i>He retaineth not his anger for ever; he will subdue our
-iniquities; and thou wilt cast all our sins into the depths of the sea.
-Thou wilt perform the truth to Jacob, and the mercy to Abraham,
-which thou hast sworn unto our fathers from the days of old.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, We are farther to consider the occasion of what is
-laid down in any chapter, paragraph, or book of scripture,
-which we desire to understand. Thus the particular occasion
-of the book of Lamentations, was the approaching ruin of Judah,
-and the miseries that they should be exposed to when
-Jerusalem was besieged by the Chaldeans; as appears by the
-subject-matter thereof; though, it may be, that which was the
-more immediate occasion of its being delivered at that time,
-was, that the prophet might lament the death of good Josiah,
-2 Chron. xxxv. 25. which, probably, he had a peculiar eye to,
-when he says, <i>The crown is fallen from our head</i>, Lam. v. 16.
-as well as the destruction of the whole nation, which would
-ensue soon after it, in which their civil and religious liberties
-would be invaded by their enemies, who would oppress and
-lead them captive.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And the principal occasion of the apostle’s writing the epistle
-to the Galatians, was, that he might establish some among
-them, in the faith of the gospel, who were so much disposed
-to turn aside from him that called them, and embrace another
-scheme of religion that was subversive of it; as he observes,
-in chap. i. 6. where, by this <i>other gospel</i>, which he dissuades
-them from turning aside unto, we are to understand those
-doctrines that they had imbibed from those false teachers who
-endeavour either to re-establish the observation of the ceremonial
-law, or to put them upon seeking righteousness and
-life, from their observing the precepts of the moral law, which
-tended to overthrow the doctrine of justification by Christ’s
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_124'>124</span>righteousness; which is a subject often insisted on by the
-apostle, both in this and his other epistles.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This method of enquiring into the occasion of what is mentioned
-in particular paragraphs of scripture, will often give
-light to some things contained therein. Thus we read, in
-Matt. xxi. 23-27. that the <i>chief priests and elders</i> ask our
-Saviour this question, <i>By what authority dost thou these things?</i>
-which, had it proceeded from an humble mind, desirous to be
-convinced by his reply to it; or, had he not often, in their
-hearing, asserted the authority by which he did those things,
-he would, doubtless, have told them, that he received a commission
-to do them from the Father; and, that every miracle which
-he wrought, was, as it were, a confirming seal annexed to it.
-But our Saviour, knowing the design of the question, and the
-character of the persons that asked it, he does not think fit to
-make any reply to it, rather chusing to put them to silence, by
-proposing another question to them, which he knew they would
-not be forward to answer, relating to the baptism of John, <i>viz.</i>
-whether it was <i>from heaven</i>, or <i>of men</i>. And this was certainly
-the best method he could have taken; for he dealt with
-them as cavillers, who were to be put to silence, and made
-ashamed at the same time.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) In order to our understanding the sense of scripture,
-we must, so far as it is possible, compare the phrases, or modes
-of expression, as well as the subject insisted on, with what occurs
-in other parallel places. Thus, in several of the historical
-parts of scripture, we have the same history, or, at least, many
-things tending to illustrate it; as the history of the reign of
-the kings of Judah and Israel, is the principal subject of the
-book of Kings and Chronicles; one of which often refers to,
-as well as explains the other, and, by comparing them together,
-we shall find, that one gives light to the other. Thus it is
-said, in 2 Kings xii. 2. that <i>Jehoash did that which was right,
-in the sight of the Lord all his days, wherein Jehoiada the
-priest instructed him</i>; by which it is intimated, that, after the
-death of Jehoiada, he did that which was evil in the sight of
-the Lord; but this is not particularly mentioned in this chapter,
-which principally insists on that part of his reign which
-was commendable. But if we compare it with 2 Chron. xxiv. we
-have an account of his reign after the death of Jehoiada, how
-he <i>set up idolatry</i>, ver. 17, 18. being instigated hereunto by
-his princes that flattered, or, as it is expressed, <i>made obeisance
-unto him</i>, and disregarded the prophets sent to testify against
-these practices; and how he <i>stoned Zachariah in the court of
-the house of the Lord</i>, for his faithful reproof and prophetic
-intimation of the consequence of the idolatry, in which he
-shewed the greatest ingratitude, and forgetfulness of the good
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_125'>125</span>things that had been done for him by his father, who set him
-on his throne. We have an account of the time when the Syrians
-came up against him, and how they overcame him with
-a small company of men; and, that <i>the Lord delivered a very
-great host into their hand, because they had forsaken the Lord
-God of their fathers</i>, ver. 23, 24.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, in the book of Kings, we have but a short history
-of the reign of Azariah, otherwise called Uzziah, and of his
-being <i>smitten by the Lord, so that he was a leper until the day
-of his death, and dwelt in a several house</i>, 2 Kings xv. 1-5.
-but in 2 Chron. xxvi. there is a larger account of him, as successful
-in war, and of the honour and riches that he gained
-thereby; and also we have a particular account of the reason
-of the Lord’s smiting him with leprosy, namely, for his invading
-a branch of the priest’s office.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, in the history of the reign of Manasseh, in 2 Kings
-xxi. we have only an account of the vile and abominable part
-thereof; whereas, in 2 Chron. xxxiii. we have not only an account
-of his wickedness, but of his repentance, together with
-the affliction that occasioned it, ver. 12-19.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, when we read the prophetic writings, we must,
-for our better understanding them, compare them with the
-particular history of the reign of those kings, in whose time
-they prophesied, and the state of the church at that time, their
-alliances or wars with neighbouring princes, and the sins that
-they were guilty of, which gave occasion to their being sometimes
-insulted, and overcome by them, till their ruin was completed
-in being carried captive into Babylon. Thus when we
-read Isa. vii. which gives an account of Rezin, king of Syria,
-and Pekah, the son of Remaliah, against Ahaz, and contains
-a prediction of their miscarriage in this attempt; and also, that
-the king of Asyria should be hired to assist Ahaz, but should,
-instead thereof, deal deceitfully with him, so that he should
-deprive Judah of their ornaments, and impoverish, instead of
-being helpful to them. This we have a farther explication of
-in the history of Ahaz’s reign, in 2 Kings xvi. and 2 Chron.
-xxviii.<a id='r38' /><a href='#f38' class='c012'><sup>[38]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, we ought to compare the account of Sennacherib’s
-invading Judah, and the blasphemous insult of Rabshakeh sent
-for that purpose, together with his defeat, and the remarkable
-hand of God that brought this about, as an encouragement of
-Hezekiah’s piety, in the xxxvith and xxxviith chapters of
-Isaiah, with the historal account of the same thing, in 2 Kings
-xviii. and xix. and 2 Chron. xxxii.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, we must compare the Psalms of David with his life,
-or the state of the church, which is particularly referred to in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_126'>126</span>some of them; which may be very much illustrated from other
-scriptures, that have relation to the same dispensations of providence,
-or contain an historical account thereof. As for those
-psalms that were penned on particular occasions, mentioned in
-the respective titles prefixed to them, these will be better understood
-if we compare the subject-matter thereof with the
-history they refer to. Moreover, we shall often find, that
-when the same thing is mentioned in different places of scripture,
-there is something added in one, which farther illustrates
-what is contained in the other. Thus, in the account we have
-of the life of Joseph, in Gen. xxxix. 20. it is said, that he was
-<i>put into the prison, the place where the king’s prisoners were
-bound</i>; and, in chap. xli. 14. that he was kept in the <i>dungeon</i>,
-which is the worst part of the prison. But the Psalmist speaking
-of the same matter, in Psal. cv. 18. adds, that his <i>feet were
-hurt with fetters</i>, and he was <i>laid in iron</i>; which contains a
-farther illustration of the history of his troubles.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, when we read in Numb. xi. 31, 32. of God’s <i>feeding
-Israel</i>, upon their murmuring in the desert, for want of flesh,
-<i>with quails in great abundance</i>; this is mentioned elsewhere,
-in Psal. lxxviii. 27. in which we have an account, that these
-quails were a sort of <i>feathered fowl</i>, which could not have been
-so well understood by the sense of the Hebrew word, which
-we render <i>quails</i><a id='r39' /><a href='#f39' class='c012'><sup>[39]</sup></a>. We have also an account, in Exod. xvii.
-6. of God’s supplying them with <i>water out of the rock in
-Horeb</i>; and if we compare this with Psal. cv. 41. we shall find
-that this water issued from thence in so large a stream, that it
-was like a <i>river</i>. And the apostle Paul gives farther light to
-it, when he says, speaking in a figurative way, that <i>the rock
-followed them</i>, 1 Cor. x. 4. that is, the water that ran from it
-like a river, did not flow in a right line; but, by a continued
-miracle, changed its course, as they altered their stations, in
-their various removes from place to place in the wilderness.
-And he also adds, that God designed this to be a type of Christ.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I might also observe, that there were many things in the life
-of David, after his expulsion from Saul’s court, that would
-argue him an usurper; inasmuch as he did not barely fly to
-secure his life, which he might lawfully do, as a private person;
-but he raised a small army; and accordingly it is said,
-in 2 Sam. xxii. 2. that every one that was ‘in distress, or in
-debt, or discontented, gathered themselves unto him; and he
-became a captain over him; and there were with him about
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_127'>127</span>four hundred men.’ And Jonathan, who was heir apparent
-to the crown, is forced to capitulate with, and take an oath of
-him, that he would grant him his life, as concluding, that he
-would be king after his father’s death, 1 Sam. xx. 14, 15.
-compared with the 42. and Saul’s jealousy hereof, which was
-attended with rage, amounting to a kind of destraction, was
-not altogether without ground; as he intimates to him, when
-he tells him, ‘Behold, I know well that thou shalt surely be
-king,’ chap. xxiv. 20. and accordingly, in the following verses,
-he makes him ‘swear to him, that he would not cut off his
-seed after him, or destroy his name out of his father’s house.’
-Now this could hardly be justified, if we did not consider
-what we read in another part of scripture, that, before that
-time, God had taken away the kingdom from Saul, and anointed
-David to be king in his stead, in 1 Sam. xvi. 13. though
-he had not the actual possession of it till after Saul’s death.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I might farther observe, that when we read the account contained
-in the books of Moses, of the ceremonial law, and the
-various rites and ordinances of divine service contained therein,
-or meet with any expressions in the Old Testament that
-refer to it; these ought to be compared with several things
-that are recorded in the writings of the apostle Paul, and, particularly,
-a very considerable part of his epistle to the Hebrews<a id='r40' /><a href='#f40' class='c012'><sup>[40]</sup></a>,
-in which we have an account of the signification
-thereof, as ordained to be types of the gospel-dispensation.
-And, indeed, there are many scriptures of the Old Testament,
-which will be better understood by comparing them with others
-that refer to them in the New. Thus it is said, in Isa. xvi.
-23. <i>Unto me every knee shall bow</i>; which appears to be very
-agreeable to what is said concerning our Saviour, in Phil. ii.
-10. and it is not only spoken of the divine honour that should
-be paid to him; but it relates, in a peculiar manner, to that
-glory which all shall ascribe to him, when they stand before
-his tribunal, as appears by comparing it with Rom. xiv. 10, 11.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, when we read, in Isa. vi. 10. of God’s sending the
-prophet to <i>make the heart of the people fat, and their ears
-heavy, and shut their eyes, lest they see with their eyes, and
-hear with their ears, and understand with their hearts, and
-convert, and be healed</i>. It is not to be supposed that God is
-represented hereby as the author of their sin; which will plainly
-appear, if we compare it with Matt. xiii. 15. in which this
-text is cited, and farther explained, as it is said, <i>This people’s
-heart is waxed fat, and their eyes have they closed, lest they
-should see with their eyes</i>, &amp;c. And it is also referred to, and
-explained in the same sense as charging their sin, and the consequence
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_128'>128</span>thereof upon themselves, in Acts xxviii. 26, 27. By
-this method of comparing the Old and New Testament together,
-we shall be led to see the beautiful harmony of the
-scriptures, and how the predictions thereof have been accomplished;
-which will tend very much to establish our faith in
-the truth of the Christian religion, that is founded on them.
-But this having been insisted on elsewhere<a id='r41' /><a href='#f41' class='c012'><sup>[41]</sup></a>, we pass it over
-at present, and proceed to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>That there are several places, in the New Testament, which
-being compared together, will give light to one another. Thus,
-in the four Evangelists, which contain the history of the life
-and death of Christ, we may observe, that some things are left
-out, or but briefly hinted at in one of them, which are more
-largely insisted on in another. Thus we read, in Matt. xii.
-14, 15. that ‘the Pharisees went out and held a counsel against
-our Saviour, how they might destroy him;’ upon which occasion
-‘he withdrew himself from thence. And great multitudes
-followed him, and he healed them all.’ But Mark,
-chap. iii. 17, <i>&amp; seq.</i> speaking concerning the same thing, intimates
-that the Herodians were joined with the Pharisees in
-this conspiracy; and that he ‘withdrew himself to the sea,’ <i>viz.</i>
-of Tiberias; where he ordered that ‘a small ship should wait
-on him, lest the multitude should throng him.’ And we have
-also an account of several places from whence they came,
-namely, Galilee, Jerusalem, Idumea, and from beyond Jordan,
-and they about Tyre and Sidon, so that a great part of them
-were Gentiles; and this gives light to what follows in Matt.
-xii. 18, 21. in which it is intimated, that this was an accomplishment
-of what was <i>foretold by the prophet Isaias</i>, that he
-should <i>shew judgment to the Gentiles</i>; and that, <i>in his name
-should the Gentiles trust</i>; therefore he wrought miracles for
-their conviction that he was the Messias.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, it is said, in Matt. xiii. 12. ‘Whosoever hath, to
-him shall be given, and he shall have more abundance. But
-whosoever hath not from him shall be taken away, even that
-he hath.’ Some will be ready to enquire, how can that which
-he hath be said to be taken away, when he is supposed to have
-nothing? or, how can a person be said to lose that which he
-never had? But if compare this with a parallel scripture, in
-Luke viii. 18. there it is said, <i>Whosoever hath not, from him
-shall be taken, even that which he seemeth to have</i>; or, as it is
-in the margin, <i>that which he thinketh he hath</i>. Now, though
-a man cannot lose grace, that had it not; yet an hypocrite,
-who seems to have it, may lose that which he supposeth himself
-to have.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_129'>129</span>This method of comparing the four Evangelists together, is
-attempted by several divines; and, among them, a late writer,
-who is deservedly esteemed by all the reformed churches<a id='r42' /><a href='#f42' class='c012'><sup>[42]</sup></a>,
-thinks, that the inscription, on the cross of Christ, can hardly
-be determined, without what is said of it, by all the four
-Evangelists. Mark says these words were written, <i>The king
-of the Jews</i>, Mark xv. 26. and Luke says, <i>This is the king of
-the Jews</i>, Luke xxiii. 38. and Matthew adds another word,
-<i>This is Jesus, the king of the Jews</i>, Matt. xxvii. 37. and John
-expresses it thus, <i>Jesus of Nazareth, the king of the Jews</i>,
-John xix. 19. So that, by comparing them all together, and
-supplying those words from one, which are left out by others
-of them, we must conclude, that the inscription was, <i>This is
-Jesus of Nazareth, the king of the Jews</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, as the Acts of the Apostles contains a brief history
-of the first planting the gospel-church, and of the travels and
-ministry of the apostle Paul, in particular; this ought to be
-compared with some things, occasionally mentioned in his
-epistles, which will give farther light to them. Thus the
-apostle says, in 1 Cor. xv. 8. <i>Last of all, he was seen of me
-also, as one born out of due time</i>; and speaks of himself in ver.
-9. as the <i>least of the apostles, not meet to be called an apostle;
-because he persecuted the church of God</i>. This ought to be
-compared with Acts ix. 1-6. which gives an account of him
-as a persecutor before his conversion, and shews how our Saviour
-was seen of him; which is not to be taken in the same
-sense as he was seen by the rest of the apostles, before his ascension
-into heaven; but of his being seen of him, after his
-ascension, when, on this occasion, he appeared to him. And,
-if this be compared with 1 Cor. ix. 1. he considers this sight
-of Jesus as a necessary qualification for the apostleship; therefore,
-when he speaks of himself as <i>born out of due time</i>, he
-means, called to, and qualified for the apostleship, out of due
-time; that is, not at the same time in which the other apostles
-were, but by this extraordinary dispensation of providence.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, when the apostle, in 1 Thes. ii. 2. speaks of his
-having been <i>shamefully entreated at Philippi</i>. This will be
-better understood if we compare it with Acts xvi. 16, 21, 22,
-<i>&amp; seq.</i> And when he tells the Thessalonians, in the following
-words, <i>that we were bold in our God, to speak unto you the
-gospel of God with much contention</i>; this should be compared
-with Acts xvii. 1, <i>&amp; seq.</i> Many instances of the like nature
-might be given, by which, the usefulness of comparing one
-scripture with another, would farther appear. But, I design
-this only as a specimen, to assist us in the application of this
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_130'>130</span>direction; which a diligent enquirer into the sense of scripture,
-will be able, in reading it, to make farther improvements
-upon.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(5.) In order to our understanding the scriptures, we must
-take notice of the several figurative modes of speaking that are
-used therein. As,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, The part is often put for the whole<a id='r43' /><a href='#f43' class='c012'><sup>[43]</sup></a>. Thus the soul,
-which is one constituent part of man, is sometimes put for the
-whole man; as in Gen. xlvi. 26. we read of the souls that
-came with Jacob into Egypt; and, in Rom. xii. 1. the body
-is put for the whole man; <i>I beseech you, brethren, by the mercies
-of God, that you present your bodies</i>, that is, yourselves, <i>a
-living sacrifice to God</i>. So the blood of Christ, which is often
-spoken of, in scripture, as that by which we are redeemed,
-justified, and saved, is to be taken for the whole of his obedience
-and sufferings, both in life and death, to which our salvation
-is to be ascribed, as well as to the effusion of his blood.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, The thing containing, is put for that which is contained
-therein<a id='r44' /><a href='#f44' class='c012'><sup>[44]</sup></a>; so the cup in the Lord’s supper, is put for the wine,
-1 Cor. xi. 25. And the thing signified is put for the sign
-thereof. Thus when it is said, <i>This is my body</i>, ver. 24. the
-meaning is, this bread is a sign of my body, to wit, of the sufferings
-endured therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Places are, by way of anticipation, called by those
-names, which in reality, were not given them, or, which they
-were not commonly known by, till some time after. Thus it
-is said, that, as soon as Israel had passed over Jordan, they
-<i>encamped in Gilgal</i>, Josh. iv. 19. that is, in the place which
-was afterwards so called; for it is said, that it was called
-Gilgal because there they were circumcised; and so the <i>reproach
-of Egypt</i>, occasioned by the neglect of that ordinance, <i>was rolled
-away</i>, chap. v. 9. Again, it is said, <i>The kings that came up
-against Sodom</i>, when Lot was taken prisoner, <i>had smitten all
-the country of the Amalekites</i>, Gen. xiv. 7. whereas, the country
-that was afterwards known by that name, could not be so
-called at that time; since Amalek, from whom it took its
-name, was not born till some ages after, he being of the posterity
-of Esau, chap. xxxvi. 11.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, The time past, or present, is often, especially in the
-prophetic writings, put for the time to come; which denotes
-the certain performance of the prediction, as much as though
-it were actually accomplished. Thus it is said, <i>He</i>, that is,
-our Saviour, <i>is despised and rejected of men; he hath born our
-griefs, he was wounded for our transgressions</i>, Isa. liii. 4, 5.
-And elsewhere, <i>The people that walked in darkness have seen
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_131'>131</span>a great light</i>, chap. ix. 2. and <i>unto us a child is born</i>, chap. v.
-9. <i>&amp;c.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>5thly</i>, One of the senses is sometimes put for another. Thus
-it is said, <i>I turned to see the voice that spake to me</i>, Rev. i. 12.
-where seeing is put for hearing, or, understanding the meaning
-of the voice that spake.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>6thly</i>, Positive assertions are sometimes taken in a comparitive
-sense. Thus God says to Samuel, the people in asking
-a king, <i>have not rejected thee, but me</i>, 1 Sam. viii. 7. that is,
-they have cast more contempt on me than they have on thee,
-<i>q. d.</i> they have offered a greater affront to my government,
-who condescended to be their king; though they have been
-uneasy under thine administration, as appointed to be their
-judge. And, in Psal. li. 4. David says, <i>Against thee, thee
-only, have I sinned</i>. Whereas he had sinned against Uriah
-and Bathsheba, as having murdered the one, and tempted the
-other to commit adultery with him; he had sinned against the
-army, whom he occasioned to fall in battle, pursuant to the
-orders he gave Joab, with a design to destroy Uriah; yet says
-he, <i>against thee, thee only, have I sinned</i>; that is, the greatest
-aggravation of my sin is, that it contains rebellion against thee.
-And elsewhere, God says, <i>I desired mercy, and not sacrifice</i>,
-Hos. vi. 6. that is, more than sacrifice.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>7thly</i>, There are several hyperbolical ways of speaking in
-scripture, whereby more is expressed than what is generally
-understood. Thus the vessel in the temple, in which things
-were washed, which was ten cubits from one brim to the other,
-is called <i>a molten Sea</i>, 1 Kings vii. 23. because it contained a
-great quantity of water; though, indeed, it was very small, if
-compared with the dimensions of the sea: And in 1 Kings x.
-27, it is said, that Solomon <i>made silver to be in Jerusalem, as
-stones; and cedars as the sycamore-trees, which are in the vale
-for abundance</i>. Silver was not, strictly speaking, as plentiful
-as stones; but it implies, that there were vast treasures thereof,
-heaped up by the king, and many of his subjects, and no
-lack of it in any one. And, in Judges xx. 16. it is said, there
-were <i>some of the Benjamites left-handed, every one</i> of whom
-<i>could sling stones at an hair-breadth, and not miss</i>; which only
-signifies that they had an uncommon expertness in this matter;
-and when we read of some of the cities in the land of Canaan,
-that were <i>great, and walled up to heaven</i>, Deut. i. 28. it
-only denotes that their walls were very high: And, in Kings
-i. 43. it is said upon the occasion of Solomon’s being anointed
-king, that <i>the people rejoiced with great joy; so that the
-earth rent with the sound of them</i>; the meaning of which is
-only this, that the shouts of the people were so great, that if
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_132'>132</span>the concussion of the air, that was made thereby, could have
-rent the earth, this would have done it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>8thly</i>, We sometimes find ironical expressions, and sarcasms
-used in scripture, with a design to expose the wickedness and
-folly of men. Thus, when our first parents sinned by adhering
-to the suggestions of Satan, who told them, that they
-<i>should be as gods, knowing good and evil</i>, Gen. iii. 5. God says
-in an ironical way, <i>Behold the man is become as one of us, to
-know good and evil, &amp;c.</i> ver. 22. And the prophet Elijah exposes
-Baal’s worshippers; and Micaiah, Ahab’s false prophets,
-by using a sarcastic way of speaking, 1 Kings xviii. 27. and
-chap. xxii. 15. And Job uses the same figurative way of speaking,
-when he reproves the bitter invectives, and false reasonings
-of his friends; <i>No doubt but ye are the people, and wisdom
-shall die with you</i>, Job xii. 2. And Solomon uses the same way
-of address, when he says, <i>Rejoice, O young man, in thy youth,
-and let thy heart cheer thee in the days of youth, and walk
-in the ways of thy heart, and in the sight of thine eyes: But
-know thou, that for all these things God bring thee into
-Judgment</i>, Eccl. xi. 9. And, the man that trusts in his own
-righteousness for justification, is also exposed in the same way,
-‘Behold, all ye that kindle a fire, that compass yourselves
-about with sparks; walk in the light of your fire, and in the
-sparks that ye have kindled: This shall ye have of mine
-hand, ye shall lie down in sorrow,’ Isa. l. 11. And when our
-Saviour says to his disciples, having found them asleep, in
-Matt. xxvi. 45, 46. ‘Sleep on now, and take your rest; behold
-the hour is at hand, and the Son of man is betrayed into
-the hands of sinners,’ it is plain from the following words,
-that he uses this figurative way of speaking; for he immediately
-adds, without an irony, <i>Rise, let us be going</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This, some think to be the method of speaking which our
-Saviour makes use of, when he reproves his disciples for that
-fond conceit that they had, that his kingdom was of this world;
-and contending sometimes among themselves, who should be
-greatest therein: Upon which occasion he bids them make
-provision for war; and take care to secure those two things
-that are necessary thereunto, money and arms: Thus he says,
-in Luke xxii. 36. ‘He that hath a purse, let him take it; and
-he that hath no sword, let him sell his garment, and buy one;’
-they did not, indeed, immediately perceive that he spake in
-an ironical way; and therefore replied, in ver. 38. <i>Lord, behold
-here are two swords</i>: Upon which he says, still carrying
-on the irony, <i>It is enough</i>. So that, whether they understood
-his meaning or no, it seems to be this; if you are disposed to
-contend who shall be greatest, as though my kingdom were of
-a temporal nature, and to be erected and maintained by force
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_133'>133</span>of arms, do you think you have sufficient treasure to hire
-forces to join with you, or buy arms for that purpose? or, do
-you imagine that you have courage enough to attack the Roman
-empire, and gain it by force? You say, you have two
-swords, can you suppose that these are enough? what a ludicrious
-and indifferent figure would you make, if you expected
-to come off conquerors by this means? No, they that take the
-sword shall perish with the sword; for my kingdom is not of
-this world: So that all the advantages and honours that you
-are to expect therein, are of a spiritual nature. This seems
-rather to be the meaning of this scripture, than that which the
-Papists generally acquiesce in, namely, that by the <i>two</i> swords,
-are meant the civil and ecclesiastical; both which, as they pretend,
-are put into the Pope’s hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>9thly, The scripture often makes use of a figurative way of
-speaking, generally called an <i>hendyadis</i>, whereby one complex
-idea, is expressed by two words, which is very common in the
-Hebrew language. Thus in Jer. xxix. 11. when God promises
-his people, that he would <i>give</i> them <i>an expected end</i>, intending
-hereby their deliverance from the Babylonish captivity;
-the words, if literally translated, ought to be rendered, as
-it is observed in the margin, <i>an end and expectation</i>; whereas,
-our translators were apprized that there is such a figurative
-way of speaking contained in them, and therefore they render
-them, <i>an expected end</i>: And this figure is sometimes used in
-the New Testament; as when our Saviour tells his disciples,
-in Luke xxi. 15. <i>I will give you a mouth and wisdom</i>; that is,
-I will give you ability to express yourselves with so much wisdom,
-<i>that all your adversaries shall not be able to gain-say</i> it.
-And some think, that there is the same way of speaking used
-in John iii. 5. ‘Except a man be born of water, and of the
-Spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God;’ that is,
-except a man be born of the Holy Spirit, or regenerated,
-which is signified by being born of water, he cannot, &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>10thly</i>, Nothing is more common than for the Holy Ghost,
-in scripture to make use of metaphors, which are a very elegant
-way of representing things, by comparing them with, and
-illustrating them by others, and borrowing such modes of
-speaking from them, as may add a very considerable beauty
-to them. Thus repentance and godly sorrow, together with the
-blessed privileges which shall hereafter attend them, are compared
-to sowing and reaping, in Psal. cxxvi. 5, 6. ‘They that
-sow in tears, shall reap in joy. He that goeth forth and
-weepeth, bearing precious seed, shall doubtless come again
-with rejoicing, bringing his sheaves with him.’ And the
-prophet sets forth the labour and pains which Israel had taken
-in sin; and exhorts them, by a metaphor taken from husbandry,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_134'>134</span>to be as industrious in pursuing what would turn to
-a better account, in Hos. x. 12, 13. where he speaks of their
-having <i>plowed wickedness, and reaped iniquity</i>; and advises
-them to <i>sow to themselves in righteousness, and reap in mercy</i>;
-which, as he farther adds, they should do by <i>seeking the Lord</i>;
-and <i>it is time</i>, says he, <i>to seek</i> him, <i>till he come and rain righteousness
-upon you</i>; which is necessary to a plenteous harvest
-of blessings, which you may hope for in so doing. And, in
-chap. vii. 4. he reproves their adulteries by a metaphor, taken
-from <i>an oven heated by the baker</i>; and their hypocrisy by
-another, taken from <i>a cake not turned</i>, ver. 8. and their being
-weakened, and almost ruined hereby, he compares to the <i>gray
-hairs</i> of those who are bowed down under the infirmities of
-age, ver. 9. and for their cowardice and seeking help from
-other nations, and not from God, he calls them <i>a silly dove
-without an heart</i>, ver. 11.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And we may observe, that there is oftentimes a chain of
-metaphors in the same paragraph. Of this kind is that elegant
-description of old age, sickness, and death, which Solomon
-gives, in exhorting persons to <i>remember their Creator in the
-days of their youth</i>, Eccl. xii. 1-6. <i>while the sun, or the light,
-or the moon, or the stars be not darkened</i>; by which, it is probable,
-he intends the impairing the intellect, the loss of those
-sprightly parts which once they had, or, of the memory and
-judgment; upon which account men are sometimes said to,
-out-live themselves. And he speaks of <i>the keepers of the house
-trembling</i>; that is, the hands and arms, designed for the defence
-of the body, being seized with paralytic disorders; <i>the
-strong men bowing themselves</i>; that is, those parts which are
-designed to support the body being weakened, and needing a
-staff to bear up themselves; <i>the grinders ceasing because they
-are few</i>, signifies the loss of teeth; <i>and they that look out of
-the windows being darkened</i>, a decay of sight; their <i>rising up
-at the voice of the bird</i>, implies their loss of one of the main
-props of nature, to wit, sleep; so that they may rise early in
-the morning, when the birds begin to sing, because their beds
-will not afford them rest: <i>And the daughters of music being
-brought low</i>, denotes a decay of the voice and hearing, and
-being not affected with those sounds which were once most delightful
-to them. <i>The almond-tree flourishing</i>, plainly signifies
-the hoary head; <i>the grashopper</i> being <i>a burden</i>, is either
-a proverbial speech, importing a want of courage, strength,
-and resolution to bear the smallest pressures; or, as others
-understand it, their stooping, when bowed down with old age.
-<i>The silver cord loosed</i>, or, <i>the golden bowl broken at the fountain,
-or the wheel broken at the cistern</i>, signifies a decay of
-the animal spirits, a laxation of the nerves, the irregular
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_135'>135</span>circulation of the blood, or the universal stoppage thereof;
-and then the frame of nature is broken, and man <i>returns to the
-dust</i><a id='r45' /><a href='#f45' class='c012'><sup>[45]</sup></a>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>In the New Testament there are several metaphors used;
-some of which are taken from the Isthmian and Olympic
-games, practised by the Greeks and Romans. Thus the
-apostle Paul compares the Christian life to <i>a race</i> in which <i>many
-run</i>; but they do not all <i>receive the prize</i>, 1 Cor. ix. 24.
-And, in ver. 25. he alludes to another exercise, to wit, wrestling;
-and recommends temperance as what was practised by
-them, as a means for their obtaining the crown. And, ver.
-26. he uses a metaphor, taken from another of the games, to
-wit, fighting, in hope of victory; by which he illustrates his
-zeal in the discharge of his ministry. And in Heb. xii. 1. he
-speaks of the Christian <i>race</i>, and the necessity of <i>laying aside
-every weight</i>, to wit, allowed sins, which would retard our
-course, or hinder us in the way to heaven. And in Phil. iii.
-13, 14. he speaks of himself both as a minister and a Christian,
-as ‘forgetting those things which are behind, and reaching
-forth unto those things which are before,’ and, ‘pressing
-towards the mark, for the prize of the high calling of
-God in Christ Jesus;’ where he plainly alludes to the purpose,
-industry, and earnestness of those who run in a race.
-And, in Eph. vi. 11-16. he speaks of the difficulties, temptations,
-and opposition that believers are exposed to, in the
-Christian life; and advises them, to <i>put on the whole armour
-of God</i>; and so carries on the metaphor or allegory, by alluding
-to the various pieces of armour, which soldiers make
-use of when engaged in battle, to illustrate the methods we
-ought to take, that we may come off conquerors at last.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(6.) It will be very useful, in order to our understanding
-scripture, for us to know some things, relating to the different
-forms of civil government, and the various changes made
-therein, among the Jews, and other nations, with whom they
-were conversant. At first we find, that distinct families had
-the administration of civil affairs committed unto them, and
-the heads thereof were, as it were, the chief magistrates,
-who had the exercise of civil power, in some instances; especially
-if it did not interfere with that of the country wherein
-they lived. Some think, indeed, that it extended to the
-punishing capital crimes with death; and that Judah, who
-was the head of a branch of Jacob’s family, when he passes
-this sentence concerning Tamar, in Gen. xxxviii. 24.
-<i>Bring her forth, and let her be burnt</i>, does it as a civil magistrate:
-But, if it be not deemed a rash and unjustifiable
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_136'>136</span>expression in him, when he says, <i>Let her be brought forth, and
-burnt</i>, we must suppose the meaning to be, let her first be confined
-till she is delivered of her child, and then tried by the
-civil magistrate, the consequence whereof will be, her being
-burnt, when found guilty of the adultery that was charged
-upon her. So that it does not appear that the heads of families,
-when sojourning in other countries, had a power distinct
-from that of the government under which they lived,
-to punish offenders with death; though, I think, it is beyond
-dispute, that they had a government in their own families,
-that extended, in many respects, to civil affairs, as
-well as obliged them to observe those religious duties which
-God required of them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It may be farther observed, that this government extended
-so far, as that the Patriarchs, or heads of families, had,
-sometimes, a power of making war, or entering into confederacies
-with neighbouring princes, for their own safety,
-or recovering their rights when invaded. Thus when Lot
-and the Sodomites, were taken prisoners by the four kings
-that came up against them, we read, in Gen. xiv. 13, 14.
-that Abraham called in the assistance of some of his neighbours,
-with whom he was in confederacy, and <i>armed his trained
-servants, three hundred and eighteen, born in his house</i>, and
-rescued him, and the men of Sodom from the hands of those
-that had taken them prisoners.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We have little more light as to this matter, so long as
-the government continued domestic, and the church in the
-condition of sojourners: But, when they were increased to
-a great nation, their civil, as well as religious government,
-was settled, by divine direction, under the hand of Moses,
-in the wilderness. The first form thereof, was a theocracy,
-in which God gave them laws in an immediate way; condescended
-to satisfy them, as to some things, which they enquired
-of him about; gave them particular intimations how
-they should manage their affairs of war and peace; and appeared
-for them in giving them victory over their enemies,
-in a very extraordinary, and sometimes, miraculous way.
-But, besides this great honour that God put on them, he
-established a form of government among them, in which they
-were divided into <i>thousands</i>, <i>hundreds</i>, <i>fifties</i>, and <i>tens</i>, Exod.
-xviii. 31. Deut. i. 15. each of which divisions had their respective
-captain or governor; who are, sometimes, styled the
-<i>nobles of the children of Israel</i>, Exod. xxiv. 11. And these
-governors were generally heads of considerable families among
-them; which were also divided in the same way, into thousands,
-fifties, and tens, in proportion to the largeness thereof;
-thus Gideon, speaking of his family, in Judges vi. 25. calls
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_137'>137</span>it, as the Hebrew word signifies, his <i>thousand</i>. And, in the
-same manner, their armies were divided, when engaged in
-war; thus when Jesse sent David with a present, into the
-army, to his brethren, he bade him deliver it to the <i>captain
-over their thousand</i>, 1 Sam. xvii. 18. and chap. xviii. 13. And
-we read, that Saul made David his <i>captain over a thousand</i>;
-which is the same with what we, in our modern way of
-speaking, call a commanding officer over a regiment of soldiers.
-Again, when David’s soldiers went out to war against
-Absalom, it is said, <i>They came out by hundreds and by thousands</i>,
-2 Sam. xviii. 4. each distinct company, or regiment,
-having their commanding officer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Thus the government was settled as to civil and military
-affairs, in such a way, that the head of the respective division,
-had a power of judging in lesser matters. But since there
-were some affairs of the greatest importance to be transacted
-in the form of their government, by divine direction, God appointed
-seventy men of the children of Israel, to assist Moses
-in those matters, in which they had more immediately to do
-with him; and accordingly he <i>gave them the Spirit</i>, Numb. xi.
-16, 17. that is, the extraordinary inspiration of the Spirit;
-whereby he communicated his mind and will to them. This
-was the first rise of the Sanhedrim; and these had a power of
-judging in civil matters, throughout all the ages of the church
-till the Jews were made tributary to the Romans; and after
-that, this body of men were as vile and contemptible as they
-had before been honourable in the eyes of just and good men,
-as appears by their tumultuous and unprecedented behaviour
-in the trial of our Saviour, and the malicious prosecutions, set
-on foot by them, against the apostles, without any pretence or
-form of law.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>After the death of Joshua, and the elders that survived him,
-there was an alteration in the form of government, occasioned
-by the oppression which they were liable to from their enemies,
-who insulted, vexed, and sometimes plundered them of
-their substance. Then God raised up judges, who first procured
-peace for them, by success in war; and afterwards governed
-them; though without the character or ensigns of royal
-dignity. And, this government not being successive, they
-were, on the death of their respective judges, brought into
-great confusion, every one doing that which was right in his
-own eyes, till another judge was raised up, as some future
-emergency required it. Thus the posture of their affairs continued,
-as the apostle observes, <i>about the space of four hundred
-and fifty years</i>, Acts xiii. 20. and then it was altered, when,
-through their unsettled temper, they desired a king, in conformity
-to the custom of the nations round about them;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_138'>138</span>which thing was displeasing to God: nevertheless, he granted
-them their request, 1 Sam. viii. 5-7. and so the government
-became regal. And then followed a succession of kings,
-set over the whole nation, till the division between Judah
-and Israel; when they became two distinct kingdoms, and
-so continued, till their respective captivity. These things being
-duly considered, will give great light to several things
-contained in scripture; especially as to what relates to the
-civil affairs of the church of God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, for our farther understanding thereof, it will be necessary
-that we take a view of the government of other nations,
-with whom they were often conversant. We read almost
-of as many kings in scripture, as there were cities in
-several of those countries which lay round about them; thus,
-in Gen. xxxvi. we read of many dukes and kings, (whose
-power was much the same) who descended from Esau. These
-had very small dominions, each of them being, as it is probable,
-the chief governor of one city, or, at most, of a little
-tract of land round about it; and, indeed, besides the Assyrian,
-and other monarchies, that were of a very large extent,
-and had none who stood in competition with them, under
-that character, while they subsisted; all other kingdoms
-were very small; therefore four kings were obliged to enter
-into a confederacy, to make war with Sodom, and the
-four neighbouring cities, which a very inconsiderable army
-might, without much difficulty, have subdued, Gen. xiv. 1,
-<i>&amp;c.</i> One of them, indeed, is called king of nations; not as
-though he had large dominions, but because he was the chief
-governor of a mixed people, from divers nations, who were
-settled together in one distinct colony; and the king of Shinar,
-there spoken of, is not the king of Babylon, who was
-too potent a prince to have stood in need of others to join
-with him in this expedition; but it was a petty king, who
-reigned in some city near Babylon, and was tributary to the
-Assyrian empire. These four kings, with all their forces,
-were so few in number, that Abraham was not afraid to attack
-them; which he did with success.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, we read, that in Joshua’s time, the kings in the
-land of Canaan, whom he subdued, had, each of them, very
-small dominions, consisting of but one capital city, with a few
-villages round about it. Thus we read of thirty one kings that
-reigned in that country, which was not so big as a fourth part
-of the kingdom of England, Josh. xii. And afterwards most
-of these kingdoms were swallowed up by the Assyrian empire.
-Thus the king of Assyria, as Rabshakeh boasts, had entirely
-conquered the kings of Hamath, Arphad, Gozan, and
-Haran, with several others, 2 Kings xix. 12, 13. these had
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_139'>139</span>very small dominions, and therefore were easily subdued by
-forces so much superior to any that they could raise. Egypt,
-indeed, was more formidable; and therefore we often read in
-scripture of Israel’s having recourse to them for help, and are
-blamed for trusting in them more than God: And, in Arabia,
-there were some kings who had large dominions, as appears by
-the vast armies that they raised: Thus <i>Zerah the Ethiopian
-came forth against Asa, with a thousand thousand men</i>, 2
-Chron. xvi. 19. Nevertheless, the church of God was able to
-stand its ground; for, whether the neighbouring kings were
-many of them, confederate against them, or the armies they
-raised, exceeding numerous, like the sand on the sea shore;
-they had safety and protection, as well as success in war,
-from the care and blessing of providence; of which we have
-an account in the history of scripture relating thereunto.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(7.) It will be of some advantage, in order to our understanding
-the sense of scripture, for us to enquire into the
-meaning of those civil and religious offices and characters, by
-which several persons are described, both in the Old and New
-Testament. Concerning the Priests and Levites, we have had
-occasion frequently to insist on their call and office: Among
-the former of these, one is styled <i>high-priest</i>; who was not
-only the chief minister in holy things under the Jewish dispensation;
-but presided over the other priests in all those
-things that respected the temple-service. There was also another
-priest, who had pre-eminence over his brethren, that was
-next to the high-priest in office, who seems to be referred to,
-in 2 Kings xxv. 18. where we read of <i>Seriah, the chief priest,
-and Zephaniah the second priest</i>. This office is not often mentioned
-in scripture, but is frequently spoken of by Jewish writers:
-They call him, who was employed therein, as the author
-of the Chaldee paraphrase does on that text, the Sagan: And,
-some think, that this office was first instituted in Numb. iii.
-32. in which Eleazar, the son of Aaron the priest was to be
-<i>chief over the chief of the Levites, and to have the oversight of
-them, that kept the charge of the sanctuary</i>: And elsewhere,
-we read of Zadok and Abiathar, being, by way of eminency,
-<i>priests at the same time</i>, 2 Sam. xv. 35. by which, it is probable,
-we are to understand, as many expositors do, that one
-was the <i>high priest</i>, the other the <i>Sagan</i>; who was to perform
-the office that belonged to the high priest in all the branches
-thereof, if he should happen to be incapacitated for it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Besides these, there were others who were styled <i>chief-priests</i>,
-as being the heads of their respective classes, and presided
-over them when they came to Jerusalem, to minister in
-their courses. There was also the president of the Sanhedrim,
-who is generally reckoned one of the chief priests. Moreover,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_140'>140</span>when any one was by the arbitrary will of the governors, in
-the degenerate and declining state of the Jewish church, deposed
-from the high-priesthood, barely to make way for another
-favourite to enjoy that honour, he was, though divested
-of his office, nevertheless called chief priest. This will give
-light to several scriptures in the New Testament, in which we
-often read of many chief priests at the same time, See Luke
-iii. 2. Mark xiv. 53.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, as to the Levites, these were not only appointed to
-be the high priest’s ministers in offering gifts and sacrifices in
-the temple; but many of them were engaged in other offices;
-some in instructing the people, in the respective cities where they
-dwelt, who were to resort to them for that purpose, or in synagogues,
-erected for this branch of public worship. Others
-were employed as judges in determining civil or ecclesiastical,
-matters.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, we often read, in scripture, of Scribes: These were
-of two sorts; some were employed only in civil matters; and
-we sometimes read of one person, in particular, who was appointed
-to be the king’s scribe. Thus in David’s reign, we
-read of Shemaiah the scribe, and in Hezekiah’s of Shebna,
-1 Chron. xxiv. 6. 2 Kings xviii. 18. This seems to have been
-a civil officer, not much unlike a secretary of state among us;
-and we seldom find mention made of more than one scribe at
-a time, except in Solomon’s reign in which there were two,
-1 Kings iv. 4.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But besides this, we often read of scribes who were engaged
-in other works; thus it is generally supposed, that many of
-them were employed in transcribing the whole, or some parts
-of scripture, for the use of those who employed them therein,
-and gratified them for it; which was necessary for the
-propagating religion in those ages, in which printing was
-not known.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There were others who explained the law to the people.
-Thus Ezra is styled, <i>a ready scribe in the law of Moses</i>, Ezra,
-vii. 6. This was an honourable and useful employment,
-faithfully managed by him and many others, in the best ages
-of the church. But, in our Saviour’s time, there were scribes
-who pretended to expound the law, and instruct the people;
-but the doctrines they propagated, were very contrary to the
-mind of the Holy Ghost in Moses’s writings; and their way
-of preaching was very empty and unprofitable: Upon which
-occasion it is said, that our Lord <i>taught as one having authority,
-and not as the scribes</i>, Matt. vii. 29.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, we sometimes read in the New-Testament, of
-Lawyers, against whom our Saviour denounces woes, for opposing
-him and his gospel. This is supposed by some, to be
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_141'>141</span>only a different name given to the scribes; inasmuch as they
-practised the law in public courts of judicature, and pleaded
-causes in the Sanhedrin, or taught in their schools or religious
-assemblies; both which the scribes did. And the evangelist
-Matthew, speaking concerning a lawyer, who asked our Saviour
-a question, <i>Which is the great commandment</i>, chap. xxii.
-35, 36. Mark mentioning the same thing, calls him <i>one of the
-scribes</i>, Mark xii. 28. So that the same thing, for substance,
-seems to be intended by both of them; or if there was any
-difference between them, as others suppose there was, from
-what is said in Luke xi. 44, 45. that when our Saviour had
-been reproving the scribes and Pharisees, <i>One of the lawyers
-said unto him, thus saying thou reproachest us also</i>, where they
-speak as though they were distinct from them: yet it is evident
-from hence, that however they might be distinguished
-from them, in other respects, they agreed with them as engaged
-in expounding the law, and herein are said to lade <i>men
-with heavy burdens and grievous to be born</i>; which they themselves
-would <i>not touch with one of their fingers</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As for those civil officers which we read of in the Old Testament
-before the captivity, especially in David and Solomon’s
-reign, they were either such as were set over the tribute, the
-principal of which was at the head of the treasury, 1 Kings iv.
-6. and others were employed under them, to see that the
-taxes were duly levied and paid: These are called receivers,
-Isa. xxxiii. 18. Others were employed in keeping and adjusting
-the public records, of which, one was the chief; who, by
-way of eminence, is called the recorder: And others were appointed
-to manage the king’s domestic affairs, of which, the
-chief was <i>set over the household</i>, 2 Kings xviii. 18. Another is
-said to be <i>set over the host</i>, 1 Kings iv. 4. who either had the
-chief command of the army, or else was appointed to muster
-and determine who should go to war, or be excused from it.
-And there is another officer we read of once in scripture, <i>viz.</i>
-he that <i>counted the towers</i>, Isa. xxxiii. 18. whose business
-seems to have been to survey and keep the fortifications in repair;
-but these not being so frequently mentioned in scripture
-as others, we pass them over, and proceed more especially
-to consider some characters of persons we meet with in
-the New Testament.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There was one sort of officers who were concerned in exacting
-the public revenues, after the Jews were made tributary
-to the Roman empire: These are called publicans; the
-chief of which were generally persons of great honour and
-substance, who sometimes farmed a branch of the revenue,
-and they were, for the most part, Romans of noble extract, of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_142'>142</span>whom we have an account in Cicero<a id='r46' /><a href='#f46' class='c012'><sup>[46]</sup></a>, and other heathen writers;
-but there is no mention of them in scripture. This honourable
-post was never conferred on the Jews; nevertheless,
-we read of Zaccheus, who is said to have been one <i>of the chief
-among the publicans</i>, though a Jew, Luke xix. 2. the meaning
-of which is, that he was the chief officer in a particular port,
-who had other publicans under him; whose business was,
-constantly to attend at the ports, and take an account of the
-taxes that were to be paid there, by those of whom they were
-exacted. Of this latter sort was Matthew, who is called the
-publican, <i>i. e.</i> one of the lowest officers concerned in the revenue,
-Matt. x. 3. compared with chap. ix. 9. These were
-usually very profligate in their morals, and inclined to oppress
-those of whom they received taxes, probably to gain advantage
-to themselves; and were universally hated by the Jews.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There was another sort of men often mentioned in the New
-Testament, that made the greatest pretensions to religion, but
-were most remote from it, and justly branded with the character
-of hypocrites, to wit, the Pharisees, who made themselves
-popular by their external shew of piety. There is not, indeed,
-the least hint of there being such a sect amongst the Jews before
-the captivity; though, it is true, the prophet Isaiah, Isa.
-lxv. 5. speaks of a sort of people that much resembled them,
-which said, <i>Stand by thyself, come not near to me, for I am holier
-than thou</i>; from whence, it seems, that there were some
-of like principles in his day; unless we suppose that this
-scripture had its accomplishment when the sect of the Pharisees
-appeared in the world in a following age; which was
-not long after the reign of Alexander the great<a id='r47' /><a href='#f47' class='c012'><sup>[47]</sup></a>, between
-two and three hundred years before our Saviour’s time. They
-are generally described in scripture, as pretending to be more
-expert than all others in the knowledge of the law; but, in
-reality, making it void, by establishing those oral traditions,
-which were contrary to the true intent and meaning thereof,
-and, as setting up their own righteousness, and depending on
-the performance of some lesser duties of the law, as that from
-whence they expected a right to eternal life. These were the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_143'>143</span>greatest enemies, in their conduct, as well as their doctrines,
-to Christ, and his gospel.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There was another sect that joined with the Pharisees, in
-persecuting and opposing our Saviour; though otherwise they
-did not, in the least, accord with one another; and these were
-the Sadducees, who appeared in the world about the same
-time with the Pharisees: These were men generally reputed
-as profligate in their morals, and for that reason, as much
-hated by the common people, as the Pharisees were caressed
-by them. They adhered to the Philosophy of Epicurus; and
-took occasion, from thence to deny the resurrection, angels,
-and spirits, as they are said to do in scripture, Acts xxiii. 8.
-It is true they did not desire to be thought irreligious, though
-they were really so; yet our Saviour describes them, as well
-as the Pharisees, as <i>hypocrites</i>, and inveterate enemies of the
-gospel.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There was another sort of people sometimes mentioned
-in the New Testament, <i>viz.</i> the Samaritans, who separated
-from the Jews, out of a private pique, and built a distinct
-temple on mount Gerizzim<a id='r48' /><a href='#f48' class='c012'><sup>[48]</sup></a>; and for this they were excommunicated
-by the Jews, and universally hated, so that
-there was no intercourse between them, John iv. 9, especially
-in those things in which one might be said to be obliged
-to the other: These did very much corrupt the worship of
-God, so that Christ charges them with <i>worshipping they
-knew not what</i>, ver. 12. and it is observed concerning them,
-after the ten tribes were carried captive into Assyria, and
-they who were left in the land <i>feared not the Lord</i>, that he
-<i>sent lions amongst them</i>, 2 Kings xvii. 25. upon which occasion
-a priest was dismissed by the king of Assyria, under pretence
-of <i>instructing them in the manner of the God of the land</i>;
-and he erected a strange medly of religion, consisting partly
-of those corruptions therein, which had been practised by the
-Israelites for some ages past, and partly of the Heathen
-idolatry, which they brought from Assyria; upon which account
-it is said, <i>They feared the Lord, and served their own
-gods after the manner of the nations whom they carried away
-from thence</i>, 2 Kings xvii. 33.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There is another sort of men, mentioned in the New Testament,
-who are called Herodians: These seem to have been a
-political rather than a religious sect. Some of the Fathers, indeed,
-think that they were so called because they complimented
-Herod with the character of the Messiah<a id='r49' /><a href='#f49' class='c012'><sup>[49]</sup></a>, who, as they
-supposed, would be a very flourishing prince, who was to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_144'>144</span>reign over them, according to the ancient prediction of the patriarch
-Jacob, after <i>the sceptre was departed from Judah</i>: But
-this seems to be a very improbable conjecture; for <i>Herod the
-Great</i> was dead, before we read any thing of the Herodians in
-scripture: And the Jews had an opinion, about this time, that
-the Messiah should never die, John xii. 34. Therefore, the
-most probable opinion is, that these Herodians were, in their
-first rise, the favourites and courtiers of Herod, and disposed
-to give into any alterations that he was inclined to make in
-the religious or civil affairs of the Jews<a id='r50' /><a href='#f50' class='c012'><sup>[50]</sup></a>. By what is said
-concerning them in scripture, it is supposed, that they were,
-for thy most part, Sadducees; for if we compare Matt. xvi. 6.
-with Mark viii. 15. our Saviour warns his disciples upon the
-same occasion, to wit, their having <i>forgot to take bread</i>, to <i>beware
-of the leaven of the Pharisees and of the Sadducees</i>; as
-the former evangelist expresses it, and <i>of the leaven of Herod</i>,
-viz. the Herodians, as it is in the latter: Now, though these
-Herodians, or court-parasites, might take their first rise in the
-reign of Herod the Great; yet there was a party of men succeeded
-them, who held the same principles, and were disposed
-to compliment their governors with their civil and religious
-rights; but they more especially distinguished themselves, by
-their propagating principles of loyalty among the people:
-And, whereas the Jews, under a pretence that they were a
-free nation, were very unwilling to give tribute to Cesar,
-(though they would not venture their lives as Judas of Galilee,
-and some others had done, by refusing it;) these Herodians
-laid it down as an article of their faith, that they ought
-to pay tribute to Cesar; and therefore, when they came with
-this question to our Saviour, <i>Is it lawful to give tribute to Cesar,
-or not?</i> Matt. xxii. 17. he soon discovered their hypocrisy,
-and knew the design of that question as he might easily
-do from their being Herodians. Thus concerning the various
-characters of persons mentioned in scripture, as subservient
-to our understanding thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(8.) After all these helps for the understanding the sense of
-scripture, there is one more which is universally to be observed;
-namely, that no sense is to be given of any text, but
-what is agreeable to the analogy of faith, has a tendency to
-advance the divine perfections, stain the pride of all flesh, in
-the sight of God, and, promote practical godliness in all its
-branches.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, Scripture must be explained agreeably to the analogy
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_145'>145</span>of faith. It is supposed that there is something we depend on,
-which we can prove to be the faith of scripture, or demonstrably
-founded upon it: This we are bound to adhere to; otherwise
-we must be charged with scepticism, and concluded not
-to know where to set our feet in matters of religion. Now,
-so far as our faith herein is founded on scripture, every sense
-we give of it must be agreeable thereunto; otherwise we do
-as it were suppose that the word of God in one place destroys
-what, in another, it establishes, which would be a great reflection
-on that which is the standard and rule of our faith. I do
-not hereby intend, that our sentiments are to be a rule of faith
-to others, any farther than as they are evidently contained in,
-or deduced from scripture: Yet that which we believe, as
-thinking it to be the sense of scripture, is so far a rule to us,
-that, whatever sense we give of any other scripture, must be
-agreeable to it; or else, we must be content to acknowledge,
-that we are mistaken in some of those things which we called
-articles of faith, as founded thereon.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, No sense given of scripture, must be contrary to the
-divine perfections: Thus, when human passions are ascribed
-to God, such as grief, fear, desire, wrath, fury, indignation, <i>&amp;c.</i>
-these are not to be explained, as when the same passions are
-ascribed to men, in which sense they argue weakness and imperfection.
-And when any phrase of scripture seems to represent
-him defective in power; as in Jer. xiv. 9. ‘Why
-shouldst thou be as a man astonied, as a mighty man that
-cannot save?’ we are to understand it as a charge that would
-be unjustly brought against God, if he did not appear in the
-behalf of his people, by those who are disposed to reproach
-and find fault with the dispensations of his providence: But,
-since we have taken occasion, in explaining many scriptures
-and doctrines founded upon them, to apply this rule; I shall
-content myself, at present, with the bare mentioning of it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, We are to explain scripture in such a way, as that it
-may have a tendency to promote practical godliness in all its
-branches; which is the main end and design thereof. Many
-instances might be given, in which this rule is to be applied;
-as when we are said, in Rom. vii. 14. <i>not</i> to be <i>under the
-law, but under grace</i>; we are not to understand this as though
-we were discharged from an obligation to yield obedience to
-whatever God commands; but either, as denoting our being
-delivered from the condemning sentence of the law; or, from
-the ceremonial law, to which the gospel-dispensation, which is
-a display of the grace of God, is always opposed. And when
-it is said in Eccl. vii. 16. ‘Be not righteous overmuch, neither
-make thyself overwise: Why shouldst thou destroy thyself?’
-We are not to understand thereby, that there is any
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_146'>146</span>danger of being too holy, or strict in the performance of religious
-duties; but as forbidding an hypocritical appearing to be
-more righteous than we are, or entertaining a proud and vain-glorious
-conceit of our own righteousness, because we perform
-some duties of religion.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, there are other scriptures which are sometimes perverted,
-as though they intimated, that prayer, or other religious
-duties, were not incumbent on wicked men; as when
-it is said, in Prov. xxi. 27. <i>The sacrifice of the wicked is an
-abomination to the Lord</i>: And, chap. xxviii. 9. that his prayer
-is so, or that he has nothing to do with those duties; because
-it is said to such, in Psal. l. 16. <i>What hast thou to do
-to declare my statutes, or, that thou shouldst take my covenant
-in thy mouth.</i> But these scriptures do not imply, that they are
-not obliged to perform religious duties; but, that it is contrary
-to the holiness of God, and a great provocation to him
-when they regard not the frame of spirit with which they
-perform them, who draw nigh to him with their lips, when
-their heart is far from him, or lay claim to the blessings of
-the covenant of grace, while continuing in open hostility against
-him. To apply this rule fully, would be to go through the whole
-scripture, and to shew how all the great doctrines of religion
-which are founded upon it, are conformed thereunto; But
-this we have endeavoured to do in all those instances in
-which we have had occasion to give the sense thereof; and
-therefore shall content ourselves with this brief specimen, and
-leave it to every one to improve upon it in his daily meditations,
-in enquiring into the sense of scripture, in order to
-his being farther established in that religion which is founded
-thereon.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLVIII., CLIX., CLX.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLVIII.</span> <i>By whom is the word of God to be preached?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The word of God is to be preached only by such as
-are sufficiently gifted, and also duly approved and called to
-that office.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLIX.</span> <i>How is the word of God to be preached by
-those that are called thereto?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> They that are called to labour in the ministry of the
-word, are to preach sound doctrine, diligently; in season,
-and out of season; plainly, not in the enticing words of
-man’s wisdom, but in demonstration of the spirit, and
-power, faithfully, making known the whole council of God;
-wisely, applying themselves to the necessities and capacities
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_147'>147</span>of the hearers; zealously, with fervent love to God,
-and the souls of his people; sincerely, aiming at his glory,
-and their conversion, edification, and salvation.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLX.</span> <i>What is required of those that hear the word
-preached?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> It is required of those that hear the word preached,
-that they attend upon it with diligence, preparation, and
-prayer, examine what they hear, by the scripture, receive the
-truth with faith, love, meekness, and readiness of mind, as
-the word of God; meditate, and confer of it; hide it in
-their heart, and bring forth the fruit of it in their lives.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>Having considered, what method we are to take, in our
-private station, or capacity, to understand the word of
-God; we have great reason to be thankful, that he has ordained
-that it should be publicly preached, or explained, as a farther
-means conducive to this end. And accordingly we are led,
-in these answers, to shew, who they are that God has called to
-this work; and how such ought to perform it; and with what
-frame of spirit we ought to attend on it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. The persons by whom the word of God is to be preached;
-and these are only such, whom he has qualified with gifts
-sufficient for it; and they ought also to be duly approved of,
-when called hereunto, by those among whom the providence of
-God directs them to exercise their ministry.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Concerning the qualifications which are necessary, in
-those that are employed in preaching the gospel. Here it is to
-be observed in general, that they must be sufficiently gifted for
-it; which is so evident, that it would be unreasonable for any
-one to deny it, since no one is to attempt any thing that he is
-not able to perform; especially if it be a work of the highest
-importance, and the unskilful managing thereof may have a
-tendency to do prejudice to, rather than advance the interest
-of Christ. It would be a reflection on the wisdom of a master,
-to employ his servant in a work that he has no capacity for, or
-entrust him with an affair that is like to miscarry in his hands.
-In like manner, we are not to suppose that God calls any to
-preach the gospel, but those whom he has, in some measure,
-furnished for it; though, it is true, the best may say, as the
-apostle does, <i>We are not sufficient of ourselves, to think any
-thing as of ourselves; but our sufficiency is of God</i>: Yet he
-adds, that they who are employed by him in this work, are
-made <i>able ministers of the New-Testament</i>, 2 Cor. iii. 5, 6. It
-is, indeed, a difficult matter to determine who are sufficiently
-gifted for it; the work being so great and our natural and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_148'>148</span>acquired endowments very small, if compared with it. But
-that we may briefly consider this matter, it may be observed,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) That some qualifications are moral, without which, they
-who preach the gospel, would be a reproach to it. These respect,
-more especially, the conversation of those who are engaged
-in this work, which ought to be blameless and exemplary;
-not only inoffensive, but such as they, whom they are called to
-instruct, may safely copy after. Thus the apostle makes a solemn
-appeal, when he says, <i>Ye are witnesses, and God also, how
-holily, and justly, and unblameably we behaved ourselves among
-you that believe</i>, 1 Thess. ii. 10. And he advises the Corinthians
-to be <i>followers of him</i>, 1 Cor. iv. 16. and commends the
-church elsewhere, for conforming themselves to his example,
-so far as it was agreeable to that of our Saviour, 1 Thess. i. 6.
-in which respect alone the best of men are to be followed, 1
-Cor. xi. 1. Now this supposes that they have that which we
-call the moral qualifications, necessary to the work of the ministry,
-without which, a person will do more hurt, by his example,
-than he can do good by his doctrine; inasmuch as he will lay a
-stumbling-block in the way of Christians, who would be ready
-to say, as the apostle does to some of those who were teachers
-among the Jews; <i>Thou which teachest another, teachest thou
-not thyself?</i> Rom. ii. 21. or, dost thou live in the practice of
-those crimes, which thou condemnest in others, and exhortest
-them to avoid? This qualification therefore, must be supposed
-to be necessary; and, indeed, an experimental knowledge of divine
-truths, will greatly furnish them to communicate the same
-to others, and spirit them, with zeal, in using their utmost endeavours,
-that they may be made partakers of the same experiences
-which they themselves, have been favoured with. Nevertheless,
-we are not to suppose that this alone will warrant
-a person’s engaging in the work of the ministry; for then every
-one who has experienced the grace of God, might attempt it,
-how unable soever he be to manage it to the glory of God, and
-the edification of the church. Therefore,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) There are other qualifications more directly subservient
-hereunto. These the apostle speaks of, when he describes a
-gospel-minister as one who is <i>apt to teach</i>, 1 Tim. iii. 2. and
-able <i>rightly to divide the word of truth</i>, 2 Tim. ii. 15. and, by
-<i>sound doctrine</i>, to exhort and <i>convince gainsayers</i>, Tit. i. 9.
-They who take upon them to explain scripture, and apply it
-to the consciences of men, ought, certainly, with great diligence
-and hard study, to use their utmost endeavours to understand
-it. And to this we may add, that they ought to be able
-to reason, or infer just consequences from it; whereby they
-may appear to be well versed in those great doctrines, on
-which our faith and religion is founded. This, indeed, must
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_149'>149</span>be confessed to be a work of difficulty; and, they who think
-themselves best furnished in this respect, will have reason to
-conclude, as the apostle says, that they <i>know but in part, and
-prophesy in part</i>, 1 Cor. xiii. 9.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>To this we may add, that there are various parts of learning,
-that may be reckoned, in some respects, ornamental, which
-would tend to secure him that preaches the gospel from contempt;
-and others, that are more immediately subservient to
-our understanding scripture, namely, a being well acquainted
-with those languages, in which the Old and New Testament
-were written, and able to make critical remarks on the style
-and mode of expression used in each of them, and a being conversant
-in the writings of those, whether in our own or other
-languages, who have clearly and judiciously explained the doctrines
-of the gospel, or led us into the knowledge of those
-things that have a tendency to illustrate them. And, inasmuch
-as preaching contains in it an address to the judgments
-and consciences of men, I cannot but reckon it a qualification
-necessary in order hereunto, that all those parts of learning
-that have a tendency to enlarge the reasoning faculties, or help
-us to see the connexion or dependence of one thing upon another,
-should be attended to, that we may hereby be fitted to
-convey our ideas with judgment and method. These qualifications
-are to be acquired. We pass by those that are natural,
-to wit, a sufficient degree of parts, and such an elocution as is
-necessary for those who are to speak to the edification of an
-audience, without which all other endeavours to furnish themselves
-for this work, will be to very little purpose.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. They, by whom the word of God is to be preached, are
-to be duly approved and called to that office. A person may
-think himself qualified for it without sufficient ground; therefore
-this matter ought to be submitted to the judgment of others,
-by whose approbation he is to engage in this work. The
-first thing that is to be enquired into, is; whether he is called
-to it by God, not only by his providence, which opens a door
-for his preaching the gospel, but by the success which he is
-pleased to grant to his endeavours, in order to his being duly
-qualified for it? Notwithstanding, since persons may be mistaken,
-and think they have a divine call hereunto, when they
-have not; it is necessary that they should be approved by those
-who are sufficient judges of this matter, that they may not be
-exposed to temptation, so as to engage in a work which they
-are not deemed sufficient for. Not that it is in the power of
-ministers, or churches, especially according to the present situation
-of things, to hinder an unqualified person who has too
-high thoughts of his own abilities, from preaching to a number
-of people that is disposed to hear him; yet no one is bound
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_150'>150</span>or ought, in prudence, or faithfulness to God or man, to own
-any to be a minister, whose gifts do not render him fit to be
-approved; nor, on the other hand, can any judgment be passed
-on this matter, without sufficient acquaintance or conversation
-with him, that thereby it may be known whether he be a
-workman that needeth not to be ashamed, and able rightly to
-divide the word of truth.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Here, I think, there is some difference between the approbation
-that ought to be passed on those who first engage in the
-work of preaching, and the call to the pastoral office; the latter
-supposes the former; and therefore a person ought first to
-be approved of, as fit to preach the gospel, in the opinion of
-those who are allowed to be competent judges hereof, which is
-necessary to his entrance on that work with reputation and acceptance;
-without which, he is to stand and fall to his own
-master, and acquiesce in the approbation of those who are willing
-to sit under his ministry; while others are not bound (as
-being destitute of sufficient evidence) to conclude him furnished
-for, or called to it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to the call to the pastoral office; though no one has a
-right to impose pastors on churches; yet it is the indispensible
-duty of every church not barely to enquire; whether the
-person, whom they have a desire to call to that office, be such
-an one as is approved by the greater number of them; but,
-whether the step they are taking herein, is such as has a tendency
-to secure their reputation as a church of Christ, without
-exposing them to the just blame and censure of others,
-who are in the same faith and order with themselves? that
-they may do nothing that is in the least offensive, or that has
-a tendency to weaken the interest of Christ in his churches.
-It is true, no one can put a stop to their proceeding, if they
-are resolved to set over them one that is not only scandalous
-in his conversation, but inclined to preach what is subversive
-of the fundamental articles of our faith; yet they cannot hereby
-act as a church that has obtained mercy from God to be
-faithful, or engage in this important work with judgment. It
-is therefore expedient, that churches should set over them ministers
-approved by others as sound in the faith, as well as
-reckoned, by themselves, able to preach to their edification;
-and, in order hereunto, it is expedient that some ministers, and
-members of other churches, should be present at their investiture
-in that office, to which they have called them, not barely
-as being witnesses of their faith and order, in common with
-the whole assembly, but as testifying hereby their approbation
-of their proceedings, and giving ground to the world to conclude,
-that that person, whom they have called, is owned by
-others, as well as themselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_151'>151</span>And, in order thereunto, it is necessary that ministers, who
-are to join in begging the blessing of God on their proceedings,
-and giving a word of exhortation to them, should be satisfied
-concerning the fitness of him whom the church has called to
-that office; which is supposed by their being present, and bearing
-their respective parts therein. This, I think, is intended
-by that expression of the apostle, in which he advises Timothy,
-<i>to lay hands suddenly on no man; nor to be partaker of other
-men’s sins; but to keep himself pure</i>, 1 Tim. v. 22. that is,
-without guilt, as being active in approving those that he ought
-not to approve of. I do not, by this, take the power out of
-the hands of the church, of setting a pastor over themselves;
-but only hereby argue the expediency of their consulting the
-honour of the gospel herein, and acting so, as that they may
-have the approbation of other churches in that solemnity.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. We are now to consider how the word of God is to be
-preached by those who are qualified, approved, and called thereunto;
-and that, both as to doctrines to be insisted on, and the
-manner in which they are to be delivered.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. What they are to preach, ought to be sound doctrine, and
-that not barely what is deemed to be so by him that preaches
-it; since there is scarce any one but thinks himself sound in
-the faith, how remote soever his sentiments may be from the
-true intent and meaning of the word of God. But hereby we
-understand those doctrines which are so called by the apostle,
-Tit. i. 9. such as are agreeable to that <i>form of sound words</i>
-which is transmitted to us by divine inspiration, 2 Tim. i. 13.
-<i>the doctrine which is according to godliness</i>, 1 Tim. vi. 3. as
-having a tendency to recommend and promote it. This is styled
-elsewhere, <i>The faith once delivered to the saints</i>; which is
-not only to be preached, but <i>earnestly contended for</i>, Jude, ver.
-3. These are such doctrines as have a tendency to advance the
-glory of God, and do good to the souls of men, that are relished
-and savoured by sincere Christians, who know the truth, as
-it is in Jesus; and are <i>nourished up</i>, as the apostle says, <i>in the
-words of faith and of good doctrine</i>, 1 Tim. iv. 6. This, as
-it has a peculiar reference to the gospel, and the way of salvation
-contained therein, is called <i>preaching Christ</i>, Col. i. 18.
-or a <i>determining to know nothing</i>; that is, to appear to know,
-or to discover nothing, <i>save Jesus Christ and him crucified</i>, 1
-Cor. ii. 2. or deliver nothing but what tends to set forth the
-person and offices of Christ, either directly, or in its remote
-tendency thereunto. Our Saviour advises the church, to <i>take
-heed what they hear</i>, Mark iv. 24. as signifying, that we are
-to receive no doctrines but what are agreeable to the gospel.
-And this is a sufficient intimation that such only are to be
-preached, the contrary to which method of preaching, the apostle
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_152'>152</span>calls <i>perverting the gospel of Christ</i>; and adds, that <i>though
-we, or an angel from heaven, preach any other gospel than that
-which we have preached, let him be accursed</i>, Gal. i. 7, 8. These
-are the only doctrines that God will own, because they tend to
-set forth his perfections, as they were at first communicated by
-him for that end.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We are now to consider the manner in which these doctrines
-are to be preached. This is laid down in several heads,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Diligently and constantly, in season and out of season,
-considering this work as the main business of life, that which
-a minister is to <i>give himself wholly to</i>, 1 Tim. iv. 15. and all
-his studies are to be subservient to this end. He is to rejoice
-in all opportunities, in which he may lead those whom he is
-called to minister to, in the way to heaven, and be willing to
-lay out his strength, and those abilities which God has given
-him, to his glory. Thus the apostle says, <i>I would very gladly
-spend, and be spent for you</i>, 2 Cor. xii. 14. This argues, that
-the word is not barely to be preached occasionally, as though
-it were to be hid from the world, or only imparted, when the
-leisure or inclination of those who are called thereto, will admit
-of it. The character which the apostle gives of gospel-ministers,
-is, that they <i>watch for the souls of those to whom
-they minister</i>; that is, they wait for the best and fittest seasons
-to inculcate divine truths to them. This is particularly expressed
-<i>by preaching the word</i>, and <i>being instant in season, and
-out of season, reproving, rebuking, and exhorting with all long-suffering
-and doctrine</i>, 2 Tim. iv. 2. which implies, that it
-ought to be preached, not only on that day, which God has
-sanctified for public worship, of which preaching is a part; but
-on all occasions, when they are apprehensive that the people
-are desirous to receive and hear it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) It is to be preached plainly. Thus the apostle says,
-<i>We use great plainness of speech</i>, 2 Cor. iii. 12. This method
-of preaching is inconsistent with the using unintelligible expressions:
-which neither they nor their hearers well understand.
-The style ought to be familiar, and adapted to the
-meanest capacities; which may be done without exposing it
-to contempt. And it is particularly observed, that it ought
-not to be, <i>in the enticing words of man’s wisdom, but in demonstration
-of the Spirit and of power</i>; as the apostle says concerning
-his method of preaching, 1 Cor. ii. 14. The great design
-hereof, is, not to please the ear with well turned periods,
-or rhetorical expressions, or an affectation of shewing skill in
-human learning, in those instances in which it is not directly
-adapted to edification, or rendered subservient to the explaining
-of scripture. A demonstrative way of preaching, is not,
-indeed, opposed to this plainness that is here intended but it is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_153'>153</span>the <i>demonstration of the Spirit</i>; which, though it differs from
-that which the apostles were favoured with (who were led into
-the doctrines they preached, by immediate inspiration;) yet
-we are to endeavour to prove, by strength of argument, that
-what we deliver is agreeable to the mind and will of God therein;
-and yet to do this with that plainness of address, as those
-who desire to awaken the consciences of men, and give them
-the fullest conviction, proving from the scripture, that what we
-say is true. This account the apostle gives of his ministry, 2
-Cor. iv. 2. as what was most adapted to answer the valuable
-ends thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) The word of God is to be preached faithfully; which
-supposes that they who are called to this work, have the souls
-of those whom they preach to, committed to their care; so that,
-if they perish for want of due instruction, they are, for this neglect,
-found guilty before God. Thus God says to the prophet,
-<i>Son of man, I have made thee a watchman to the house Israel</i>,
-Ezek. iii. 17, &amp;c. and therefore he was to <i>give them
-warning</i>, which, if he did, he <i>delivered his</i> own <i>soul</i>; but if
-not, God intimates to him that <i>their blood should be required
-at his hand</i>. This supposes that they are accountable to God
-for the doctrines they deliver; for which reason the apostle
-speaks of them, as <i>stewards of the mysteries of God</i>, of whom
-it was <i>required that</i> they should <i>be found faithful</i>, 1 Cor. iv.
-1, 2. and, as a particular instance thereof, he makes a solemn
-appeal to the elders of the church of Ephesus, that he had <i>kept
-back nothing that was profitable unto them</i>, nor <i>shunned to declare
-all the counsel of God</i>, Acts xx. 27. This faithfulness in
-the exercise of the ministry, is opposed to their having respect
-of persons from some obligation which they are laid under to
-them, or the prospect of some advantage that they expect from
-them, which makes them sparing in reproving those who are
-blame-worthy, for fear of giving offence, or losing their friendship.
-It is also opposed to preaching those doctrines which
-are suited to the humours and corruptions of men, and neglecting
-to insist on the most necessary and important truths; because
-they apprehend that they will be entertained with disgust.
-This is to act as though their main design were to
-please men rather than God. And it is very remote from the
-conduct of the prophet Isaiah; who, when he was informed
-that the people desired that the <i>prophets</i> would <i>prophesy smooth
-things</i> to them, and <i>cause the holy one of Israel to cease from
-before them</i>, Isa. xxx. 10, 11. he takes occasion to represent
-God as the holy one of Israel, in the following words, and to
-denounce the judgments which he would bring upon them,
-how unwilling soever they were to receive this doctrine from
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_154'>154</span>And, to this we may add, that they are to be reckoned no
-other than unfaithful in their method of preaching, who, under
-a pretence of pressing the observance of moral duties, set aside
-the great doctrines of faith in Christ, and justification by his
-righteousness, which is the only foundation of our acceptance
-in his sight. Concerning which we may say, without being
-supposed to have light thoughts of moral virtue; that the one
-ought, in no wise to exclude the other. Neither can they be
-reckoned faithful, who shun to declare those important truths,
-on which the glory of God, and the comfort of his people depend;
-and therefore, if morality be rightly preached, it ought
-to be inculcated from evangelical motives, and connected with
-other truths that have a tendency more directly to set forth the
-Mediator’s glory; which ought not to be laid aside as controverted
-doctrines, which all cannot acquiesce in, as supposing
-that the tempers, or rather the ignorance and corruption of men,
-will not bear them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) The word of God is to be preached wisely. This wisdom
-consists,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] In the choice of those subjects, that have the greatest
-tendency to promote the interest of Christ, and the good of
-mankind in general. There are many doctrines which must
-be allowed to be true, that are not of equal importance with
-others; nor so much adapted to promote the work of salvation,
-and the glory of God therein. There are some doctrines which
-the apostle calls <i>the present truth</i>, 2 Pet. i. 12. in which he instructs
-those to whom he writes. Accordingly, those truths
-are to be frequently inculcated, which are most opposite to the
-dictates of corrupt nature and carnal reason; because of their
-holiness, spirituality, beauty, and glory. Again, those doctrines
-are to be explained and supported by the most solid and judicious
-methods of reasoning, which are very much perverted
-and undermined by the subtle enemies of our salvation. And
-whatever truth is necessary to be known, as subservient to godliness,
-which multitudes are ignorant of, this is to be frequently
-insisted on, that they may not be destroyed for lack of knowledge;
-and those duties, which we are most prone to neglect,
-in which the life and power of religion discovers itself, these
-are to be inculcated as a means to promote practical godliness.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] The wisdom of those that preach the gospel farther appears,
-in suiting their discourses to the capacities of their hearers;
-of whom, it must be supposed,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That some are ignorant and weak in the faith who cannot
-easily take in those truths that are, with much more ease,
-apprehended and received by others; for their sake the word
-of God is to be preached with the greatest plainness and familiarity
-of style. Thus the apostle speaks of some who needed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_155'>155</span>to be <i>fed with milk</i>, being <i>unskilful in the word of righteousness</i>,
-and, as it were, <i>babes</i> in knowledge, Heb. v. 12-14. whereas
-others, that he compares to <i>strong men</i>, were fed with <i>meat</i>,
-that was agreeable to them. By which he doth not intend, as
-I apprehend, a difference of doctrines, as though some were
-to have nothing preached to them but moral duties: while
-others were to have the doctrines of justification, and faith in
-Christ, &amp;c. preached to them; but rather a different way of
-managing them, respecting the closeness and connexion of
-those methods of reasoning by which they are established
-which some are better able to improve and receive advantage
-by, than others.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, Some must be supposed to be wavering, and in danger
-of being perverted from the faith of the gospel; for their
-sakes the most strong and cogent arguments are to be made
-use of, and well managed, in order to their establishment therein,
-and those objections that are generally brought against it,
-answered.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Others are lukewarm and indifferent in matters of religion;
-these need to have awakening truths, insisted on with
-great seriousness and affection, suited to the occasion thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, Others are assaulted with temptations, and subject to
-many doubts and fears, about the state of their souls, and the
-truth of grace; or, it may be, their consciences are burdened
-with some scruples, about the lawfulness or expediency of
-things, and some hesitation of mind, whether what they engage
-in is a sin or duty. Now, that the word may be adapted
-to their condition, the wiles of Satan are to be discovered,
-cases of conscience resolved, evidences of the truth of grace,
-or the marks of sincerity and hypocrisy are to be plainly laid
-down, and the fulness, freeness, and riches of divine grace,
-through a Mediator, to be set forth as the only expedient to
-fence them against their doubts and fears, and keep them from,
-giving way to despair.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>5thly</i>, The word of God is to be preached zealously, with
-fervent love to God, and the souls of his people. Thus it is
-said, in Acts xviii. 25. concerning Apollos, that <i>being fervent
-in the Spirit, he spake and taught diligently in the things of
-the Lord</i>. This zeal doth not consist in a passionate, furious
-address, arising from personal pique and prejudice; or, in exposing
-men for their weakness; or expressing an undue resentment
-of some injuries received from them; but it is such a
-zeal, that is consistent with fervent love to God, and the souls
-of men. The love which is to be expressed to God, discovers
-itself, in the concern they have for the advancing his truth,
-name, and glory, and the promoting his interest in the world,
-which is infinitely preferable to all other interests; and their
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_156'>156</span>love to the souls of men induceth them to preach to them, as
-considering that they have not only the same nature in common
-with themselves, in which they must either be happy or
-miserable, for ever: But they are liable to the same infirmities,
-difficulties, dangers, and spiritual enemies, which should incline
-those that preach the gospel, to express the greatest sympathy
-with them in their troubles, while they are using their utmost
-endeavours to help them in their way to heaven. They are to
-be considered as being, by nature, in a lost, undone condition;
-and the success of the gospel, as being the only means to prevent
-their perishing for ever. And, with respect to those, in
-whom the word of God is made effectual for their conversion,
-ministers are to endeavour to build them up in their holy faith,
-as those who, they hope, will be their <i>crown of rejoicing in
-the presence of our Lord Jesus Christ, at his coming</i>, 1 Thess.
-ii. 19.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>6thly</i>, The word is to be preached sincerely, aiming at the
-glory of God, and the conversion, edification, and salvation of
-his people. Accordingly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, Ministers must firmly believe the doctrines they deliver,
-and not preach them because they are the generally-received
-opinion of the churches; for that is hardly consistent with
-sincerity; at least, it argues a great deal of weakness, or want
-of judgment, as though they were wavering about those important
-truths, which they think in compliance with custom,
-they are obliged to communicate.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, They must have no by and unwarrantable ends in
-preaching, namely, the gaining the esteem of men, or promoting
-their own secular interest. Though what the apostle says
-be true, that the <i>labourer is worthy of his hire</i>, and, <i>they that
-preach the gospel, must live of the gospel</i>, 1 Cor. ix. 14. Yet
-this ought not to be the principal end inducing them hereunto;
-for that is like what is threatened against the remains of the
-house of Eli, who were exposed to such a servile and mercenary
-temper, as to <i>crouch for a piece of silver; and to say, put
-me, I pray thee, into one of the priest’s offices, that I may eat
-a piece of bread</i>, 1 Sam. ii. 36. The glory of God is to be the
-principal end of the ministry; and, accordingly, they are to endeavour
-to approve themselves to him in the whole of their
-conduct therein. Thus the apostle speaks of himself, as <i>not
-seeking to please men; which, if I do</i>, says he, <i>I should not be
-the servant of Christ</i>, Gal. i. 10. This method of preaching
-will be a means to beget, in the minds of men, the highest esteem
-of him. And, more especially, the glory of God is to be
-set forth as it shines in the face of Jesus Christ, or discovers
-itself in the work of salvation, brought about by him. This
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_157'>157</span>is the only expedient to render the preaching of the gospel conducive
-to answer the most valuable ends.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, inasmuch as next to the glory of God, the conversion,
-edification, and salvation of men, is to be aimed at; such a
-method of preaching is to be used, as is best adapted hereunto.
-Therefore,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>1st</i>,) In order to the promoting the conversion of sinners,
-they are to be led into a sense of their guilt and misery, while
-in an unconverted state; together with the necessity of their
-believing on Christ, to the salvation of the soul; as also the
-methods prescribed in the gospel for their recovery, and escaping
-the wrath they are liable to. They are to be made acquainted
-with the gospel-call, in which sinners are invited to
-come to Christ, and his willingness to receive all that repent
-and believe in him. And, since this is the peculiar work of
-the Spirit, they are to pray and hope for his grace, to give success
-to his ordinances, in which they wait for his salvation.
-And if God is pleased to set home these truths on the consciences
-of men, and enable them to comply with this call, then
-the word is preached in a right manner, and their labour is not
-in vain in the Lord.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>2dly</i>,) As for those who are converted, their farther establishment,
-and edification in Christ is designed, together with
-the increase of the work of grace that is begun in them. Accordingly
-they are to be told of the imperfection of their present
-state, and what is still lacking to fill up the measure of
-their faith and obedience; and they are to be warned of the
-assaults that they are like to meet with from their spiritual enemies,
-of the wiles and devices of Satan, to interrupt the actings
-of grace, overthrow their confidence, or disturb their peace.
-They are also to be directed how they may improve the redemption
-purchased by Christ, for the mortifying of sin, obtaining
-the victory over temptation, and increasing their faith
-in him. And, in addressing themselves to them, they are to
-explain difficult scriptures, that they may grow in knowledge,
-and discover to them the evidences of the strength and weakness
-of grace, tending to promote the one, and prevent the other.
-Also, the promises of the gospel are to be applied to them
-for their encouragement, and they excited to go on in the ways
-of God, depending on, and deriving strength from Christ, for
-the carrying on the work that is begun in them. This leads
-us to consider what is contained in the last of the answers we
-are explaining, <i>viz.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>III. What is the hearer’s duty, who desires to receive spiritual
-advantage by the word preached; and this respects his
-behaviour before, in, and after his hearing the word.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Before we hear the word, we are to endeavour to prepare
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_158'>158</span>ourselves for the solemn work which we are to engage in, duly
-considering how we need instruction, or, at least, to have
-truths brought to our remembrance, and impressed on our
-hearts; as also, that this is an ordinance which God has instituted
-for that purpose; and, as it is instamped with his authority,
-so we may depend on it, that his eye will be upon us, to
-observe our frame of spirit under the word. And we ought
-to have an awful sense of his perfections, to excite in us an holy
-reverence, and the exercise of other graces, necessary to our
-engaging in this duty, in a right manner; and inasmuch as these
-are God’s gift, we are to be very importunate with him in
-prayer for them. And, among other things, we are to desire
-that he would assist his ministers in preaching the word; so
-that what shall be delivered by them, may be agreeable to his
-mind and will; and, that this may be done in such a way, that
-it may recommend itself to the consciences of those that hear
-it; that their understandings may be enlightened, and they enabled
-to receive it with faith and love; and that all those corruptions,
-or temptations, that hinder the success thereof, may
-be prevented. These, and such-like things are to be desired
-of God in prayer; not only for ourselves in particular, but for
-all those who shall be engaged with us in this ordinance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We might here consider the arguments or pleas that we may
-make use of, with relation hereunto, viz. such as are taken
-from those promises which God has made of his presence with
-his people, when engaged in public worship, Exod. xx. 24.
-Matt. xviii. 20. We may also plead the insufficiency of man’s
-instructions, without the Spirit’s teaching, or leading us into
-all truth; and that Christ has promised that his Spirit shall be
-given to his people for this end, John xvi. 13, 14. We may
-also plead our own inability to hear the word of God in a right
-manner, and the violent efforts that are made by our corrupt
-nature, to hinder our receiving advantage by it, and what endeavours
-Satan often uses in conjunction with it, by which
-means, as our Saviour expresses it in the parable, Matt. xiii.
-19. he <i>catches away</i> that seed which was sown in the heart;
-whereby it will become unfruitful. And to this we may add,
-the afflictive sense we have of the ill consequences which will
-attend our hearing the word, and not profiting by it, whereby
-the soul is left worse than it was before; as the apostle says,
-that he was, in the course of his ministry, to some, the <i>saviour
-of death unto death</i>, 2 Cor. ii. 16. We may also plead the glory
-that will redound to God, by the displays of his grace, in
-making the word effectual to salvation, and the great honour
-he hereby puts on his own institution, inasmuch as, herein, he
-sets his seal thereunto. We may also plead that this is God’s
-usual way in which he dispenses his grace, and accordingly he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_159'>159</span>has encouraged us, to hope and wait for it therein; and, that
-multitudes of his saints, both in earth and heaven, have experienced
-his presence with them under the word; whereby they
-were first enabled to believe in Christ, and afterwards established
-more and more in that grace, which they were made
-partakers of at first from him. Therefore we hope and trust
-that we may be admitted to participate of the same privilege.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. There are several duties required of us in hearing the
-word; particularly we are to try the doctrines that are delivered,
-whether they are agreeable unto, and founded on scripture,
-that we may not be imposed upon by the errors of men,
-instead of the truths of God. Moreover, we are to endeavour
-to exercise those graces that are suitable to the work we
-are engaged in; and, as the apostle says, <i>mix the word with
-faith</i>, 2 Cor. ii. 16. and express the highest love and esteem
-for the glorious truths which are contained therein, discovering
-the greatest readiness to yield obedience to every thing God
-commands, and thankfulness for whatever he has promised to
-us. Moreover we are to hear the word with a particular application
-of it to our own condition, whether it be in a way of
-admonition, reproof, exhortation or encouragement, and to see
-how much we are concerned to improve it, to our spiritual
-advantage.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. We are now to consider those duties which are to be
-performed by us, after we have heard the word preached.
-Some of these require privacy or retirement from the world;
-by which means we may meditate on, digest, and apply what
-we have heard; and, together with this, examine ourselves,
-and thereby take a view of our behaviour, whilst we have
-been engaged in public worship, in order to our being humbled
-for sins committed, or thankful for grace received. But
-this having been particularly considered under another answer,
-relating to our sanctifying the Sabbath in the evening thereof<a id='r51' /><a href='#f51' class='c012'><sup>[51]</sup></a>,
-I shall pass it over at present.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There is another duty incumbent on us, after we have heard
-the word, which may conduce to the spiritual advantage of
-others, as it is to be the subject of our conversation; upon
-which account we are to take occasion to observe the excellency,
-beauty, and glory of divine truths, that are communicated
-in scripture: We are to hear the word, not merely as critics,
-making our remarks on the elegancy of style, the fluency of
-expression, or other gifts, which we are ready to applaud in
-the preacher, on the one hand, nor exposing and censuring the
-defects which we have observed in his method of address, on
-the other. We are rather to take notice of the suitableness of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_160'>160</span>the truths delivered to the condition of mankind in general,
-or our own in particular, and observe how consonant the word
-preached has been to the holy scriptures, the standard of truth,
-and the agreement thereof, with the experiences of God’s people.
-We are also to take occasion from hence, to enquire into
-the meaning of scripture, especially some particular texts that
-have been insisted on, or, in some measure, explained, in the
-preaching of the word, in order to our farther information and
-improvement in the knowledge of divine things.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The last thing that is observed in this answer, is, that after
-having heard the word of God, we are to endeavour to bring
-forth the fruit of it in our lives: This consists in a conversation
-becoming the gospel; and being induced hereby to <i>deny
-ungodliness and worldly lusts, and to live soberly, righteously,
-and godly in this present world</i>, Tit. ii. 13. And we ought to
-express a becoming zeal for divine truths, defending them when
-opposed, and endeavouring to establish others therein; that so
-we may recommend religion to them, as that which is the most
-solid foundation for peace, and leads to universal holiness, that
-hereby we may adorn the doctrine of God, our Saviour, in all
-things.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLXI., CLXII., CLXIII., CLXIV.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXI.</span> <i>How doth the sacraments become effectual
-means of salvation?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The sacraments become effectual means of salvation;
-not by any power in themselves, or any virtue derived
-from the piety and intention of him by whom they are administered;
-but only by the working of the Holy Ghost,
-and the blessing of Christ, by whom they are instituted.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXII.</span> <i>What is a sacrament?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> A sacrament is an holy ordinance, instituted by Christ
-in his church, to signify, seal, and exhibit, unto those that
-are within the covenant of grace, the benefits of his mediation;
-to strengthen and increase their faith, and all other
-graces; to oblige them to obedience; to testify and cherish
-their love and communion one with another, and to distinguish
-them from those that are without.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXIII.</span> <i>What are the parts of a sacrament?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The parts of a sacrament are two; the one an outward
-and sensible sign, used according to Christ’s own appointment;
-the other, an inward and spiritual grace, thereby
-signified.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='pageno' id='Page_161'>161</span><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXIV.</span> <i>How many sacraments hath Christ instituted
-in his church, under the New Testament?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> Under the New Testament Christ hath instituted in
-his church only two sacraments; Baptism, and the Lord’s
-Supper.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>It has pleased God, in setting forth the glory of his wisdom
-and sovereignty to impart his mind and will to man, various
-ways, besides the discovery which he makes of himself
-in the dispensations of his providence. These are, more especially,
-reducible to two general heads, viz. his making it known
-by words, which is the more plain and common way by which
-we are led into the knowledge of divine truths; or else, by
-visible signs, which are sometimes called types, figures, or sacraments.
-The former of these we have already insisted on;
-the latter we now proceed to consider. And, in order hereunto,
-we are first to explain the nature, and shew what are the
-parts of a sacrament, as we have an account thereof in the two
-last of these answers; and then consider, how the sacraments
-become effectual means of salvation, as contained in the first,
-of them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. Concerning the nature and parts of a sacrament: In order
-to our understanding whereof, we shall consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. The meaning of the word. It is certain, that the word
-<i>sacrament</i> is not to be found in scripture, though the thing intended
-thereby, is expressed in other words; and, for this reason,
-some have scrupled the use of it, and choose rather to
-make use of other phrases more agreeable to the scripture
-mode of speaking: But, though we are not to hold any doctrine
-that is not founded on scripture; yet those which are
-contained therein, may be explained in our own words, provided
-they are consonant thereunto. The Greek church knew
-nothing of the word <i>sacrament</i>, it being of a Latin original;
-but, instead thereof, used the word <i>mystery</i>; thereby signifying,
-that there is in the sacraments, besides the outward and
-visible signs, some secret or hidden mystery signified thereby.
-The Latin church used the word <i>sacrament</i>, not only as signifying
-something that is sacred; but as denoting, that thereby
-they were bound as with an oath, to be the Lord’s; as the
-Psalmist says, <i>I have sworn, and I will perform it, that I will
-keep thy righteous judgments</i>, Psal. cxix. 106. and God, by the
-prophet, says, <i>Unto me every knee shall bow, and every tongue
-shall swear</i>, Isa. xlv. 23.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The word Sacrament was used, indeed, by the Romans, to
-signify that oath which the soldiers took, to be true and faithful
-to their general, and to fight courageously under his banner;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_162'>162</span>but the primitive Christians signified hereby, that, when
-they were called to suffer for Christ, which was, as it were, a
-fighting under his banner, they did in this ordinance, as it
-were, take an oath to him, expressing their obligation not to
-desert his cause. Now, since this is agreeable to the end and
-design of a sacrament, whatever be the first original of the use
-of the word, I think we have no reason to scruple the using
-of it, though it be not found in scripture: Nevertheless, Christians
-ought not to contend, or be angry with one another about
-this matter, it being of no great importance, if we adhere stedfastly
-to the explication given thereof in scripture.<a id='r52' /><a href='#f52' class='c012'><sup>[52]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We shall now consider the nature of a sacrament, as
-described in one of the answers we are explaining. And
-here,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) It is observed, concerning it, that it is an holy ordinance,
-instituted by Christ. What we are to understand by
-an ordinance, and its being founded on a divine institution,
-which is our only warrant to engage therein, has been before
-considered; and, indeed, every duty that is to be performed
-by God’s express command, which he has designed to be a
-pledge of his presence, and a means of grace, is a branch of
-religious worship, and may be truly styled an holy ordinance.
-Now, that the sacraments are founded on Christ’s institution,
-is very evident from scripture. Thus he commanded his apostles,
-to <i>baptize all nations</i>, Matt. xxviii. 19. and, as to the sacrament
-of the Lord’s supper, he commanded them to <i>do</i> what
-is contained therein, <i>in remembrance of him</i>, Matt. xxvi. 26,
-27. compared with 1 Cor. xi. 24, 25.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) The persons, for whom the sacraments were instituted,
-are the church, who stand in an external covenant-relation to
-God, and, as the apostle says, are <i>called to be saints</i>, Rom. i. 7.
-It is to them, more especially, that Christ, when he ascended
-up on high, gave ministers, as a token of his regard to them,
-that hereby they may be edified, who are styled <i>his body</i>, Eph.
-iv. 16. And, though these ministers are authorized to preach
-the gospel to all nations, which is necessary for the gathering
-churches out of the world; yet they are never ordered to administer
-the sacraments to all nations, nor, indeed, to any, especially
-the sacrament of the Lord’s supper, till they profess
-subjection to Christ, and thereby join together in the fellowship
-of the gospel. As the sacraments under the Old Testament
-dispensation, were to be administered to none but the
-church of the Jews, the only people in the world that professed
-the true religion; so, under the gospel dispensation, none
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_163'>163</span>have a right to sacraments but those who are therein professedly
-devoted to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. We are now to consider the matter of the sacraments,
-which is set forth in general terms; and it is also called in one
-of the answers we are explaining, the parts of a sacrament;
-these are an outward and visible sign, and an inward and spiritual
-grace, signified thereby; or, as it is otherwise expressed,
-it signifies, seals, and exhibits to those who are within the covenant
-of grace, the benefits of Christ’s mediation. These
-words are often used, but not so well explained as might be
-desired.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) It is called a sign, in which, by a visible action, some
-spiritual benefits are signified: This is undoubtedly true; and
-it is a reproach cast on God’s holy institutions, in some who
-deny sacraments to be divine ordinances, when they style them
-all carnal ordinances, beggarly elements, or a re-establishing
-the ceremonial law, without distinguishing between significant
-signs, that were formerly ordinances to the Jewish church, but
-are now abolished; and those that Christ hath given to the
-gospel church. In this idea of the sacraments, we must consider,
-that they agree, in some things, with the preaching of the
-word; namely, that hereby Christ and his benefits, are set
-forth as objects of our faith; and the same ends are desired
-and attained by both, <i>viz.</i> our being affected with, and making
-a right improvement of the blessings purchased by him, together
-with our enjoying communion with him; and they are,
-both of them, sacred ordinances, instituted by Christ, and
-therefore to be attended on in an holy manner: But, on the
-other hand, they differ, with respect to the way or means by
-which Christ and his benefits are set forth; inasmuch, as in the
-preaching of the word, there is a narration of what he hath
-done and suffered; and, upon this account the apostle says,
-<i>Faith cometh by hearing, and hearing by the word of God</i>,
-Rom. x. 17. whereas, in the sacraments, there is a representation
-thereof by signs; in which case we may apply the words
-of the prophet, <i>Mine eye afflicteth mine heart</i>, Lam. iii. 51. as
-there is the external symbol of Christ’s dying love, which is
-an inducement to us to love him again. They also differ,
-in that the sacraments are not only designed to instruct;
-but, by our act and deed, we signify our engagement to be
-the Lord’s.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) The sacraments are also said to seal the blessings that
-they signify; and accordingly they are called, not only signs,
-but seals. It is a difficult matter to explain, and clearly to
-state the difference between these two words, or to shew what
-is contained in a seal, that is not in a sign: Some think that
-it is a distinction without a difference. The principal ground
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_164'>164</span>which most divines proceed upon, when they distinguish between
-them is, what we read in Rom. iv. 11. in which the
-apostle, speaking concerning Abraham, says, <i>he received the
-sign of circumcision, a seal of the righteousness of faith</i><a id='r53' /><a href='#f53' class='c012'><sup>[53]</sup></a>. But
-the same thing might have been affirmed concerning it, or any
-other significant ordinance, if the words sign and seal were supposed
-to be of the like import; for it is not said he received
-the ordinance of circumcision, which is not only a sign, but a
-seal; but he received that which was a sign, or a seal of the
-blessing about which his faith was conversant. However, that
-we may explain this matter, without laying aside those words
-that are commonly used and distinguished in treating on this
-subject, it may be observed, that a sign is generally understood
-as importing any thing that hath a tendency to signify or confirm
-something that is transacted, or designed to be published,
-and made visible: Accordingly some signs have a natural
-tendency to signify the things intended by them; as the regular
-beating of the pulse is a sign of health, smoke the sign of
-fire. And other things not only signify, but represent that
-which they give us an idea of, by some similitude that there
-is therein, as the picture doth its original. Other things only
-signify as they are ordained or designed for that use, by custom
-or appointment; thus, in civil matters, a staff is a sign of
-power to exercise an office; the seal of a bond, or conveyance,
-is the sign of a right that is therein conveyed, or made
-over to another to possess: It is in this respect that the sacraments
-are signs of the covenant of grace: They do not naturally
-represent Christ and his benefits; but they signify them,
-by divine appointment.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But, on the other hand, a seal, according to the most common
-acceptation of the word, imports a confirming sign<a id='r54' /><a href='#f54' class='c012'><sup>[54]</sup></a>:
-Yet we must take heed that we do not, in compliance with
-custom, contain more in our ideas of this word, than is agreeable
-to the analogy of faith: Therefore, let it be considered,
-that the principal method God hath taken for the confirming
-our faith in the benefits of Christ’s redemption, is, his own
-truth and faithfulness, whereby the heirs of salvation <i>have
-strong consolation</i>, Heb. iv. 17, 18. or else the internal testimony
-of the Spirit of God in our hearts. The former is an objective
-means of confirmation, and the latter a subjective; and
-this the apostle calls our <i>being established in Christ, and sealed,
-having the earnest of the Spirit in our hearts</i>, 2 Cor. i. 21, 23.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This is not the sense in which we are to understand the word
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_165'>165</span>as applied to the sacraments; since if we call them confirming
-seals, we intend nothing else hereby, but that God has, to the
-promises that are given to us in his word, added these ordinances;
-not only to bring to mind this great doctrine, that
-Christ has redeemed his people by his blood; but to assure
-them, that they who believe in him, shall be made partakers of
-this blessing; so that these ordinances are a pledge thereof to
-them, in which respect God has set his seal, whereby, in an
-objective way, he gives believers to understand, that Christ,
-and his benefits, are theirs; and they are obliged, at the same
-time, by faith, as well as in an external and visible manner, to
-signify their compliance with his covenant, which we may call
-their setting to their seal that God is true; as we may allude
-to that expression of our Saviour, <i>He that hath received his
-testimony, hath set to his seal that God is true</i>, John iii. 33.
-The sacraments are God’s seals, as they are ordinances given
-by him for the confirmation of our faith, that he would be our
-covenant-God; and they are our seals, or we set our seal
-thereunto, when we visibly profess, which ought to be done
-also by faith, that we give up ourselves to him, to be his people,
-and desire to be made partakers of the benefits which
-Christ hath purchased, in his own way. Thus concerning the
-sacraments, as being signs and seals of the covenant of grace.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There is another expression, used in this answer, that needs
-a little explication; namely, when the sacraments are said, not
-only to signify and seal, but to exhibit the benefits of Christ’s
-mediation. <i>To exhibit</i>, sometimes signifies to shew, or present
-to our view; which word, if it be so understood in this place,
-imports the same as when it is said, that the sacraments are
-signs or seals thereof, or significant ordinances for the directing
-and exciting our faith, as conversant about what we are to
-understand thereby. Again, <i>to exhibit</i>, sometimes signifies to
-give, communicate, or convey; and because it is not only distinguished
-from signifying and sealing in the definition which
-we have of a sacrament in the Shorter Catechism; but is described
-as that by which Christ and his benefits are applied
-unto believers; therefore, I am inclined to think, that it is in
-this latter sense that the word is to be taken in the answer
-which we are explaining; and if so, we must distinguish between
-Christ’s benefits being conveyed, made over, exhibited,
-or applied, by the gift of divine grace, through the effectual
-working of the Spirit; and this being done by an ordinance, as
-an external means of grace; accordingly I am bound to conclude,
-that as the Spirit of God gives these blessings to believers,
-who engage in a right manner therein; so this grace
-is represented, and God’s people have ground to expect, as far
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_166'>166</span>as an ordinance can be the means thereof, that they shall be
-made partakers of these benefits.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We may also observe, that, though the sacraments are appointed
-to signify to all that partake of them, that Christ has
-purchased salvation for his people; or, that the work of redemption
-is brought to perfection: Yet it is they alone that
-engage herein by faith, who can look upon them as signs or
-seals to confirm their faith, that they have a right to the benefits
-of Christ’s redemption, as not only signified, but exhibited
-or applied to them: In this sense the sacraments are signs to
-them that believe, in such a way as they are to no others.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. We are now to consider the persons to whom the sacraments
-are given; and these are described as those who are
-within the covenant of grace. To be within the covenant of
-grace, implies in it, either a being externally in covenant with
-God, or a being internally and spiritually so, as interested in
-the saving blessings thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) They who are externally in covenant, are such as are
-visibly so; who are called by his name, professedly devote
-themselves to him, and lay claim to him as their God:
-These, if they are no otherwise in covenant, are said to be in
-Christ, as the branch which beareth no fruit, is said to be in
-the vine, John xv. 2. like those whom the prophet speaks of,
-when he says, <i>Hear ye this, O house of Jacob, which are called
-by the name of Israel, which swear by the name of the Lord,
-and make mention of the God of Israel, but not in truth nor in
-righteousness</i>, Isa. xlviii. 1. they have, indeed, the ordinances
-which must be reckoned a very great privilege; they have the
-external overtures of divine grace, the convictions and strivings
-of the Spirit; and accordingly they are, in God’s way, in which
-he is sometimes pleased to work special grace, which, when he
-does, they may conclude themselves to have more than the
-external blessings of the covenant, which is what we are next
-to consider: Therefore,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) Others are internally or spiritually in covenant, children
-of God by faith: These are such as are true and real members
-of Jesus Christ, by a federal or conjugal union with him: They
-have the same mind as was in him, and receive vital influences
-from him, being made partakers of the Spirit. They have, not
-only professedly, but by faith, embraced him in all his offices,
-surrendered up themselves unto him, to be entirely his; their
-understandings to be guided and directed, their wills and affections
-to be governed by him, and are desirous to be disposed
-of by him, in the whole conduct of their lives. And, as to the
-privileges which they partake of, they have not merely a supposed,
-but a real interest in all the benefits which Christ hath
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_167'>167</span>purchased, have a right to his special care and love, which will
-render them safe and happy, both here and hereafter.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Now, with respect to both these; they are, each of them,
-supposed to attend on the sacraments: The former, indeed,
-have not a right to the saving blessings signified thereby, and
-therefore, if they know themselves to be strangers to the covenant
-of promise, they profess, by engaging in this ordinance,
-to lay claim to that which they have no right to: However, if
-this be not discernible in their conversation, which is blameless
-in the eye of the world, men, who are not judges of their hearts,
-have no warrant to exclude them from the sacraments. But,
-on the other hand, they who are savingly, or internally in covenant,
-have not only a right to those ordinances in common with
-others; but Christ and his benefits, as was before observed,
-are exhibited and applied to them, as they have ground to conclude,
-by faith, that they have an interest in all the blessings
-which he has purchased.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>5. We are now to consider, what those benefits are that Christ
-communicates to his people in the sacraments, which are signified
-thereby: These are either,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Such as are common to the whole church, which are relative
-and external, rather than internal, as hereby they are distinguished
-from those that are without. These are advantages,
-though not of a saving nature: Thus the apostle says,
-<i>What advantage hath the Jew, or, what profit is there in circumcision</i>,
-Rom. iii. 1, 2. To which he replies, <i>much every way</i>, or
-in many respects, <i>q. d.</i> it is an honour which God has put on
-the church, as taking them into a visible relation to himself,
-and giving them the means of grace, in which they are more
-favoured than the rest of the world: Or,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) There are those benefits of Christ’s mediation, which
-are more especially applicable to believers; and, in this respect,
-God makes every ordinance, and the sacraments in particular,
-subservient to the increase of their faith, and all other graces.
-As faith is wrought under the word, it is farther established
-and increased by the Lord’s supper, as will be considered under
-a following answer; and as they have herein an occasion to
-exercise their mutual love to one another, so they have communion
-with Christ, which has a tendency to carry on the work
-of grace begun in the soul, and farther to enhance their love to
-Christ, who is eminently set forth and signified herein; and,
-from the view they have of their interest in him, arises a
-stronger motive and inducement to hate all sin, that tends to
-dishonour him, in the whole course of their lives. We are
-now to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. How the sacraments become effectual means of salvation;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_168'>168</span>or from whence their efficacy is derived, to answer that great
-end.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Negatively. They do not become effectual means of salvation
-by any power in themselves to answer this end; for we
-are not to suppose, that they are more than ordinances, by
-which God works those graces which we receive under them;
-which it is his prerogative alone to confer. Again, it is farther
-observed, that this privilege is not derived from the piety
-or intention of them by whom the sacraments are administered;
-who, though they are styled <i>stewards of the mysteries of
-God</i>, 1 Cor. iv. 1. as persons to whom the administration thereof
-is committed; yet they have not the least power to confer that
-grace which is Christ’s gift and work: Thus the apostle says,
-<i>Who then is Paul, or who is Apollos, but ministers by whom ye
-believed, even as the Lord gave unto every man</i>, chap. iii. 5.<a id='r55' /><a href='#f55' class='c012'><sup>[55]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_169'>169</span>This is contrary to what the Papists maintain, who suppose
-that the efficacy of the sacraments arises, partly from an internal
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_170'>170</span>virtue which there is in them, to confer grace, (which they
-illustrate by a far-fetched similitude, taken from the virtue
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_171'>171</span>which there is in food, to nourish the body, which is nothing
-to the purpose, since no external act of religion can have a tendency
-to nourish the soul, without the internal efficacious grace
-of the Spirit accompanying it;) and partly from the design or
-intention of the priest that administers them, as they are consecrated
-and designed, by him, for that end.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There is also an absurd notion which is maintained by some
-Protestants, as well as the Papists, <i>viz.</i> that the sacrament of
-baptism, administered to infants, washes away the guilt of original
-sin, and gives them a right and title to heaven, so that by
-virtue thereof they are saved, if they happen to die before they
-commit actual sin: But this account of the manner in which
-the sacraments become effectual to salvation, is absurd to the
-last degree; for it puts a sanctifying and saving virtue into
-that which is no more than an outward and ordinary means of
-grace. And as to what respects the efficacy of the sacraments,
-arising from the intention of him that administers them; that
-is, to lay the whole stress of our salvation on the secret design
-of men, in whose power it is supposed to be, to render or prevent
-these ordinances from being means of grace; which is in
-the highest degree derogatory to the glory of God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. Positively. The sacraments become effectual means of
-salvation only by the working of the Holy Ghost, and the
-blessing of Christ, by whom they were instituted. As, <i>without
-Christ we can do nothing</i>, John xv. 5. so without his blessing
-we can receive nothing. Ordinances are only the channel
-through which grace is conveyed; but Christ is the author and
-finisher of faith; and this he does by his Spirit, when he brings
-the heart into a good frame, and excites suitable acts of faith
-and love in those who are engaged in those ordinances, and
-maintains the lively impressions thereof, which have a tendency
-to promote the work of grace in the whole conduct of
-their lives.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>III. We proceed to consider, what sacraments Christ has
-instituted under the New Testament-dispensation. It hath
-pleased God, in every age of the world, to instruct his people
-by sacramental signs, as an addition to those other ways, in
-which he communicates his mind and will to them. Even our
-first parents, in their state of innocency, had the tree of life;
-which was a sacrament or ordinance for their faith, that if they
-retained their integrity, and performed the conditions of the
-covenant which they were under, they might hereby be led into
-a farther conviction that they should certainly attain the blessings
-promised therein: And, some think, that the tree of knowledge,
-of good and evil, was another sacramental sign, whereby
-they were given to understand, that if they sinned, they should
-die. And paradise, in which they were placed, was a sacrament,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_172'>172</span>or a kind of type of the heavenly state; inasmuch as
-there is an allusion to it in that promise, <i>to him that overcometh,
-will I give to eat of the tree of life, that is in the midst of the paradise
-of God</i>, Rev. ii. 7. and heaven is, in another place called
-paradise, Luke xxiii. 43. Others think the Sabbath was a sacramental
-sign to our first parents, of that eternal sabbatism
-which they should celebrate in a better world, in case they
-yielded perfect obedience as being the condition of the covenant
-they were under. However, I desire not to be too peremptory
-as to this matter; it is enough to my present purpose, to consider
-the tree of life as a sacrament; whereby it appears, that
-God instituted such signs from the beginning of the world:
-But this having been insisted on elsewhere<a id='r56' /><a href='#f56' class='c012'><sup>[56]</sup></a>, we pass it over,
-and proceed to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>That, after the fall of man, there were sacramental signs, instituted
-as ordinances for the faith of the church in the promised
-Messiah; especially sacrifices, which signified their expectation
-that he would make atonement for sin, by the shedding
-of his blood. Under the ceremonial law there was a large
-body of sacramental ordinances, or institutions, otherwise called,
-types of Christ, and the way of salvation by him; some of
-which were occasional; as manna, the water of the rock, and
-the brazen serpent in the wilderness, <i>&amp;c.</i> others were standing
-ordinances in the church, as long as the ceremonial law continued;
-as circumcision, the passover, and many things contained
-in the temple-service. These were the sacraments under the
-Old Testament: But, having taken occasion to speak something
-concerning them elsewhere<a id='r57' /><a href='#f57' class='c012'><sup>[57]</sup></a>, I shall confine myself to
-those sacraments which Christ has instituted under the New
-Testament; which are only two, baptism, and the Lord’s
-supper.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The Papists, indeed, have added five more to them, though
-without a divine warrant; to give countenance to which, they
-pervert the sense of some scriptures, occasionally brought for
-that purpose. One of the sacraments which they have added,
-is, what they call <i>holy orders</i>; whereby they authorize persons
-to perform the office of priests, or deacons: This they do
-by the imposition of hands, and at the same time pretend to
-confer the Holy Ghost: The former, they suppose to be the
-sign, the latter the thing signified; but this was not designed
-to be a sacrament given to the church; for the sacraments are
-ordinances that belong to all believers, and not only ministers.
-And, as for the imposition of hands, whether it be considered
-as an ancient form of praying for a blessing on persons, or as
-used in setting others apart to an office; it seems principally to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_173'>173</span>have respect to these extraordinary gifts, which they expected
-to qualify them for the discharge thereof; which gifts being
-now ceased, the imposition of hands cannot be reckoned a sacramental
-sign; and the blessing conferred, to wit, the Holy
-Ghost, from whom they received those extraordinary gifts, is
-no longer to be signified thereby.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Another sacrament which the Papists add, is that of <i>confirmation</i>;
-by which they pretend, that children, who, in baptism,
-were made members of Christ, are strengthened and confirmed
-in the faith; and receive the Holy Ghost, in order to
-their performing their baptismal vow: But, whatever engagement
-they are laid under, by this ordinance, it is God alone
-that can confirm or strengthen, and enable them to walk answerable
-thereunto; which is a grace not in the power of man
-to bestow, nor can it be by any ordinance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Another sacrament they speak of, is <i>pennance</i>; in which,
-after auricular confession made to the priest, and some external
-marks of sorrow expressed by the penitent, he is to perform
-some difficult service enjoined, which they call pennance;
-whereby he makes satisfaction for his sins, upon which, he
-is absolved from them. But this is an abominable practice,
-by which persons are rather hardened in sin, than delivered
-from it. It is derogatory to Christ’s satisfaction, and has not
-the least appearance of a sacrament, or ordinance of God’s
-appointment.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Another sacrament that they have added, is <i>extreme unction</i>;
-taken from James v. 14, 15. where the apostle speaks of
-sick persons being <i>anointed with oil in the name of the Lord</i>;
-and it is said, <i>the prayer of faith shall save the sick, and the
-Lord shall raise him up</i>; and, if he has committed <i>sins</i>, they
-shall be <i>forgiven him</i>. But to this it may be replied, that
-though this practice of anointing the sick with oil, was observed
-in the first age of the church, while the miraculous
-gift of healing was continued; yet it is now ceased; therefore
-no such significant sign is to be used. And, as for forgiveness
-of sins, mentioned by the apostle that seems not to
-have been conferred by the use of that sign; but it was
-humbly expected and hoped for, as an answer of prayer: It
-is therefore a very preposterous thing to reckon this among
-the sacraments, under the gospel dispensation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Another Sacrament that the Papists add, is that of <i>matrimony</i>;
-for which, they have very little shadow of reason;
-but, because, they suppose, the apostle calls it <i>a great mystery</i>,
-Eph. v. 32. which word, the Greek church used to signify
-a sacrament: But he does not intend hereby, that marriage
-is a mystery; but the union between Christ and his
-church, which is illustrated by the conjugal union, is so
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_174'>174</span>called<a id='r58' /><a href='#f58' class='c012'><sup>[58]</sup></a>; and, indeed, it is not an ordinance given to the
-church, but to mankind in general, heathens as well as Christians.
-Therefore nothing can be more absurd than to suppose,
-that it is one of the sacraments Christ hath instituted
-in the gospel-church; and, according to their opinion, the
-priests are excluded from this sacrament, inasmuch as they are
-forbidden to marry, as the laity are excluded from the sacrament
-of holy orders; so that when they pretend to add to those
-institutions, which Christ hath given to the church, or invent
-sacraments, which he hath not ordained, they betray not only
-their own folly, but bold presumption; therefore we must
-conclude, that there are only two sacraments that Christ hath
-given to his church, to wit, baptism, and the Lord’s supper;
-which are particularly considered in some following answers.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLXV.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXV.</span> <i>What is baptism?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> Baptism is a sacrament of the New Testament, wherein
-Christ hath ordained the washing with water, in the name
-of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost, to be
-a sign and seal of ingrafting into himself, of remission of
-sins by his blood, and regeneration by his Spirit; of adoption
-and resurrection unto everlasting life; and whereby
-the parties baptized are solemnly admitted into the visible
-church, and enter into an open and professed engagement,
-to be wholly and only the Lord’s.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>The method in which we shall endeavour to explain this
-answer shall be,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. To prove that baptism is a sacrament of the New Testament,
-instituted by Christ, in which there is to be, some way
-or other, the application of water.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. That this is to be performed in the name of the Father,
-of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost. And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>III. What is signified therein, and what engagements are
-laid upon the person baptized.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. To prove that baptism is a sacrament of the New Testament,
-instituted by Christ, in which there is to be, some
-way or other, the application of water. Here let it be considered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That there must be the application of water; and that
-either by dipping the person that is to be baptized into the
-water, or by pouring or sprinkling water upon him; otherwise
-it doth not answer the proper and literal sense of the word
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_175'>175</span><i>baptize</i>.<a id='r59' /><a href='#f59' class='c012'><sup>[59]</sup></a> It is true, we sometimes find the word used in a
-metaphorical sense; as when our Saviour speaks of the <i>baptism</i>
-that he <i>was to be baptized with</i>, Matt. xx. 22. Luke xii.
-50. whereby he intends the sufferings he was to endure in
-shedding his blood upon the cross: And it is elsewhere taken,
-by a metonymy, for the conferring the extraordinary gifts of
-the Holy Ghost, which they were given to expect after Christ’s
-ascension into heaven, and the apostles were first made partakers
-of at the day of Pentecost, which immediately followed
-it; wherein there appeared unto them cloven tongues, like as
-of fire, that sat upon each of them, as a sign that they should
-be filled with the Holy Ghost, and speak with other tongues,
-and be enflamed with a holy zeal for Christ’s glory and interest;
-which was accordingly fulfilled, and seems to be the
-sense of the word baptism, as taken in this figurative sense;
-but we understand the word in the most proper sense thereof;
-and therefore suppose that it must be performed with
-water.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to what respects the mode of baptism, or the application
-of water, whether the water is to be applied to the person
-baptized, or he put into it, that, I purposely wave the consideration
-of, till we are led to speak concerning the subjects of
-baptism, that we may insist on the several matters in controversy,
-between those that maintain, and others that deny infant
-baptism, together, which we shall have occasion to do under
-the next answer: Whereas, I am ready to persuade myself,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_176'>176</span>that what I shall advance under this, together with that which
-respects the improvement of baptism, will not be much contested
-by those who are in a different way of thinking,
-with respect to the subjects of baptism, and the mode of administering
-it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We are now to consider, that baptism is a sacrament of
-the New Testament; and therefore it differs from those baptisms,
-or washings, that were frequently practised under the
-Old Testament dispensation; concerning which, the apostle
-says, that it <i>stood in meats and drinks, and divers washings</i>,
-Heb. ix. 10. or <i>baptisms</i><a id='r60' /><a href='#f60' class='c012'><sup>[60]</sup></a>. Thus we read of many instances
-in which persons were washed under the ceremonial law:
-This was an ordinance used in the consecration of persons to
-holy offices; as it is said, that <i>Aaron and his sons</i> were to be
-<i>brought to the door of the tabernacle of the congregation, and
-washed with water</i>, Exod. xxix. 4. and Lev. viii. 6. when
-they were consecrated to be priests. Again, when they ministered
-in holy things, or came near unto the altar, it is said,
-they <i>washed, as the Lord commanded Moses</i>, Exod. xl. 32. for
-this reason the laver was set between the tent of the congregation
-and the altar, and water put therein to wash in; and
-they washed their hands and their feet therein, ver. 30, 31.
-And this ceremony was used by them, when they were subject
-to divers uncleannesses; thus, in the method of cleansing
-the leper, he was to <i>wash himself</i>, and, <i>after that</i> might <i>come
-into the camp</i>, Lev. xvi. 8, 9. The same thing was to be done
-by those who were liable to uncleannesses of another nature,
-Deut. xxii. 10, 11.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>These ceremonial washings, when applied to persons, seem
-to be ordained to signify their consecration, or dedication, to
-God, in some of the instances before mentioned; and in others,
-they signified the means which God had ordained to cleanse
-the soul from moral impurity; which was denoted by the ceremonial
-uncleannesses which they desired to be purified from.
-These ordinances, indeed, expired together with the rest of
-the ceremonial law: Nevertheless, it is very evident, from the
-institution of gospel-baptism, that the sign is retained; though
-there are some circumstances in the thing signified thereby, in
-which it differs from those baptisms which were formerly used
-by the Jewish church. They were hereby devoted to God, to
-observe that peculiar mode of worship which he prescribed
-by the hand of his servant Moses; we are devoted to God,
-as those who hereby signify our obligation to walk according
-to the rules prescribed by Christ in the gospel. They also used
-this ordinance, to signify the cleansing virtue of the blood of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_177'>177</span>Jesus, who was to come, and the Spirit that was to be poured
-forth, as consequent thereupon; we use it to signify or express
-our faith in what Christ has accomplished, and in the grace
-which the Spirit works pursuant thereunto; therefore we call
-it an ordinance of the New Testament.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. Baptism was instituted by Christ. This is evident from
-the commission he gave to his apostles, not only to preach the
-gospel to all nations, but to <i>baptize them in the name of the
-Father, of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost</i>, Matt. xxviii. 19.<a id='r61' /><a href='#f61' class='c012'><sup>[61]</sup></a>
-and this he appointed to be a standing ordinance in the church,
-throughout all the ages thereof; on which account he promises,
-in the following words, that he will <i>be with</i> his ministers,
-in fulfilling the commission that he gave them to execute, <i>unto
-the end of the world</i>: Therefore, we must conclude, that it is
-a standing ordinance in the church, and not designed to be observed
-only during the first age thereof, till Christianity universally
-obtained. This we assert in opposition to the Socinians,
-who suppose, that baptism was, indeed, instituted by
-Christ; but the design hereof, was only to be an external
-badge, or sign, of the heathens embracing the Christian religion,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_178'>178</span>as they were formerly initiated into the Jewish church
-by that ceremonial washing that was then in use: But the contrary
-to this will appear from what we shall have occasion to
-speak to, under a following head, when we consider what baptism
-was a sign and seal of; which is equally applicable to
-the church in our day, as it was to those who lived in the first
-planting thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. It is farther observed, that baptism is to be performed
-in the name of the Father, of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.
-This contains in it a professed acknowledgment, in this solemn
-act of dedication of the divine Trinity; and accordingly it is
-an act of religious worship, in which God’s right to the persons
-baptized, is publicly owned, and an intimation given, that
-all saving blessings, which are desired or expected in this ordinance,
-are given by the Father, through a Mediator, purchased
-by the Son, and applied by the Holy Spirit. This includes in
-it much more than a being baptized by the authority of these
-divine persons; which is all that some of the Antitrinitarians
-will allow to be meant by, in their name: For though no ordinance
-can be rightly performed but by a divine warrant, yet
-this warrant is equally extended to the administering, or engaging
-in any other ordinance; and therefore, a being baptized
-in the name of the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, signifies
-more than this; namely, a person’s being dedicated to them;
-in which dedication, a solemn profession is made, that they
-have a right to all religious worship, which we are obliged to
-perform as well as that all our hope of salvation is from them:
-Therefore, some think, that this idea, which is principally intended
-in the form of baptism, would be better expressed, if
-the words of institution<a id='r62' /><a href='#f62' class='c012'><sup>[62]</sup></a> were rendered <i>into the name</i> of the
-Father, &amp;c. as it is rendered elsewhere, Gal. iii. 27. where the
-apostle is speaking of a person’s being <i>baptized into Christ</i><a id='r63' /><a href='#f63' class='c012'><sup>[63]</sup></a>,
-and explains it as denoting a <i>putting on Christ</i>; or a professing,
-as it is said, ver. 29. that <i>we are Christ’s</i>. Thus they who
-are baptized in the name of the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost,
-are denoted hereby, to be professedly their servants and subjects;
-under an indispensible obligation to put their trust in,
-and hope for, all saving blessings from them, according to the
-tenor of the gospel.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It is enquired, by some, whether it be absolutely necessary,
-in the administration of this ordinance, explicitly to make mention
-of the name of the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost? and
-some assert, that it is not; because we read of persons being
-<i>baptized in the name of Jesus</i>, in Acts xix. 5. without any
-mention of the name of the Father, or Holy Ghost; and in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_179'>179</span>chap. viii. 16. the same thing is mentioned, as it is said, <i>They
-were baptized in the name of the Lord Jesus</i>. But to this it
-may be replied, that it does not appear, that this was the express
-form of words used in baptizing those that are here mentioned;
-but it only argues, that the ordinance was administered,
-and that Christ’s name and glory was proclaimed therein:
-So that, though the other divine persons are not particularly
-mentioned, it does not follow from thence, that they did not
-adhere to the express words of institution, which were given
-to the apostles; it might as well be argued, that John did not
-baptize in the name of any of the Divine persons; since when
-we read of his baptism, it is said, <i>I baptize you with water</i>;
-but it does not thence follow, that he did not baptize them in
-the name of God; inasmuch as he plainly confesses that <i>God
-sent him to baptize with water</i>, John i. 33.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But, that this matter may be set in a just light, we must
-distinguish between a person’s omitting to mention the Son or
-Holy Ghost, in the form of baptism, as denying them to be
-divine persons, (in which case the ordinance is invalid;) and
-his doing this for no other reason, but because he thinks that
-we are not to be tied up to a particular form of words, but may
-sometimes baptize in the name of the Father, Son, and Holy
-Ghost; and, at other times, in the name of Jesus: In this case,
-I will not say that the ordinance is invalid; but yet, his manner
-of administering it, will be highly offensive to many serious
-Christians, and can hardly be reckoned an instance of faithfulness
-to Christ; who has, by an express command, intimated what
-words are to be used therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>III. We are now to consider, what is signified in baptism,
-and what engagements are laid on the person baptized. There
-are some, especially among the Socinians, who maintain, that
-it is only an external, or visible badge of Christianity in general,
-signifying a person’s right to be called a Christian, or a
-professor of that religion, which was instituted by our Saviour;
-and their design herein seems to be, that they might evade the
-force of the argument which we bring to prove the divinity of
-the Son and Spirit, from their being the object of that religious
-worship, which according to our explication thereof, is contained
-in it. Did they intend, by being a Christian, the same
-thing as we do, namely, a subjection to Christ, as a divine person,
-or a professed obligation which we are laid under, to worship
-God the Father, through the Son, by the Spirit, we should
-have no contention with them about this matter: But since
-we are not agreed as to the meaning of being a Christian, especially,
-since they intend no more hereby than our being
-obliged to adhere to a certain scheme of religious worship prescribed
-by Christ, of what kind soever it be, in like manner as
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_180'>180</span>a person is called a Mahometan, because he embraces Mahomet’s
-Alcoran as a rule of faith, we cannot think this general
-account of baptism, as an external badge of Christianity, to
-be a sufficient explication of what is intended by it as a sign,
-or significant ordinance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There are several things mentioned in this answer, of which,
-it is said, to be a sign and seal, <i>viz.</i> of our engrafting into
-Christ, and obtaining remission of sins by his blood, of our regeneration
-by his Spirit, our adoption, and resurrection unto
-eternal life, which include in them all the benefits of Christ’s
-mediation; which have been particularly explained under
-some foregoing answers: But there is one that contains in it
-all the rest; and accordingly it is generally expressed, by divines,
-as that which is a sign and seal of the covenant of grace,
-and all the duties, obligations, and privileges that are either
-enjoined or bestowed therein. What this covenant is, together
-with the blessings thereof, and how the grace of God is
-manifested therein, has been likewise considered under some
-foregoing answers<a id='r65' /><a href='#f65' class='c012'><sup>[65]</sup></a>. Therefore all that I shall now add concerning
-it, is, that it contains all the promises in which our salvation
-is included, of which there is one that comprehends all
-the rest, whereby it is often expressed, namely, that God will be
-a God unto his people, Gen. xiv. 1. <i>their shield, and exceeding
-great reward</i>, chap. xvii. And elsewhere that he will <i>put his
-laws into their minds, and write them in their hearts, and will
-be to them a God; and they shall be to him a people</i>, Heb. viii.
-10. There are very great privileges contained in this relation,
-namely, our being under the special care and protection of
-Christ, having a right to what he has purchased, and that inheritance
-which he has laid up in heaven for his children, their
-enjoying communion with him here, and being made happy
-with him hereafter.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Now the main thing to be considered, is, how baptism is a
-sign and seal thereof? To this it may be answered, that we
-are not to suppose that this, or any other ordinance, confers
-the grace of the covenant, as the Papists pretend<a id='r66' /><a href='#f66' class='c012'><sup>[66]</sup></a>; for it is,
-at most, but a significant sign or seal thereof; whereas, the
-grace of the covenant is the thing signified thereby. There
-are, as has been before observed two ways, by which persons
-may be said to be in covenant with God, namely, professedly,
-or visibly, which is the immediate intent and design of this
-ordinance; and there is a being in covenant, as laying hold on
-the grace of the covenant, when we give up ourselves to
-Christ, by faith; and, as the consequence thereof, lay claim to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_181'>181</span>the blessings of his redemption. Now baptism is a sign and
-seal of the covenant of grace in both these senses, though in
-different respects. The ordinance itself is a professed dedication
-to God, or an acknowledgment that the person baptized
-is obliged to be the Lord’s; and signifies his right to the external
-blessings of the covenant of grace, which are contained
-in the gospel-dispensation. There is also more than this contained
-in a person’s being given to God in baptism, whether it
-be by himself as in those who are baptized when adult; or by
-his parents, as in the case of infants, in that the person who
-dedicates, expresses his faith in Christ, the Mediator of the
-covenant, and hopes for the saving blessings which he has
-purchased for his people. It is one thing, for this ordinance
-to confer these blessings, and another, for it to be an instituted
-means, in which we express our faith and hope, that these
-blessings shall be bestowed, the person being devoted to God
-with that view.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There are other two things that are more especially signified
-in baptism, namely, privileges expected, and obligations acknowledged.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. The privileges expected are such as accompany salvation,
-which are the special gift of the Holy Ghost, <i>viz.</i> the taking
-away the guilt and pollution of sin, and our being made partakers
-of all the blessings that Christ hath purchased, and God
-the Father, in him, has promised to the heirs of salvation. I
-do not say, that all who are baptized are made partakers of
-these privileges; but they are given up to God, or give up
-themselves to him in this ordinance, in hope of obtaining them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. Here is a public profession, or acknowledgment of our
-obligation to be the Lord’s. This is, from the nature of the
-thing, implied in its being a dedication to God. When we
-make a surrender of ourselves to him, we do hereby declare,
-that we are willing to be his servants and subjects, and entirely
-at his disposal: This is contained in a fiducial act of self-dedication
-to God, and cannot be done by one in the behalf of
-another: And, it is to be feared, that many, who give up
-themselves to God in this ordinance, when adult, though they
-make a profession of their faith, yet do not give up themselves
-by faith; but that is only known to the heart-searching God:
-Nevertheless, as we express our faith and hope, in this ordinance,
-concerning the privileges but now mentioned; so we,
-in this act of dedication, confess, that God has a right to us,
-and that it is our indispensible duty to be his, so that hereby
-we are, either by our own consent, as in self-dedication, professedly
-the Lord’s; or this is acknowledged by those who
-have a right to dedicate, and thereby to signify this obligation;
-which, because it is highly just and reasonable, the persons devoted
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_182'>182</span>are obliged to stand to, or else are brought under a great
-degree of guilt, in not being stedfast in God’s covenant.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There is one thing more mentioned in this answer, namely,
-that the person baptized, is solemnly admitted into the visible
-church, which I rather choose to pass over; since it is hard to
-understand what some mean by the visible church, and a person’s
-becoming a member thereof by baptism. We have elsewhere
-considered the difficulties that are contained in the
-description of the visible church; together with the qualifications
-for, and admission of persons into church-communion.<a id='r67' /><a href='#f67' class='c012'><sup>[67]</sup></a>
-If, by being admitted into the visible church, we are to understand
-that a person has a right to all the ordinances of the
-church by baptism, without being admitted afterwards into it
-by mutual consent; this is contrary to the faith and practice of
-most of the reformed churches. And if, on the other hand,
-they mean hereby, that here is a public declaration of our
-hope, that the person baptized shall be made partaker of those
-privileges which Christ has purchased for, and given to his
-church: This is no more than what has been already explained
-in our considering the baptismal expectations and obligations;
-but, whether this can be properly called an admission into the
-church, I rather leave to be determined by those who better
-understand what they mean, when they say that this is done in
-baptism, than I do.<a id='r68' /><a href='#f68' class='c012'><sup>[68]</sup></a></p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_183'>183</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLXVI.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXVI.</span> <i>Unto whom is baptism to be administered?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Answ.</i> Baptism is not to be administered to any that are out
-of the visible church, and so strangers from the covenant of
-promise, till they profess their faith in Christ, and obedience
-to him; but infants descending from parents, either
-both, or but one of them, professing faith in Christ, and obedience
-to him, are in that respect within the covenant, and to
-be baptised.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>In this answer, which principally respects the subjects of
-baptism, we have,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. An account of those who are excluded from this privilege,
-<i>viz.</i> such as are out of the visible church, and so strangers
-from the covenant of promise. The visible church is
-here considered in the most large and less proper acceptation
-of the word, as denoting all who profess the true religion; and
-in this respect is opposed to the Jews and heathen, and those
-who, though they live in a Christian nation, are grossly ignorant
-of the gospel, and act as though they thought that it did
-not belong to them, not seeing themselves obliged to make any
-profession thereof: These may be ranked among infidels, as
-much as the heathen themselves; and, according to this sense
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_184'>184</span>of the word, are not members of the visible church; and, consequently,
-while they remain so, are not to be admitted to
-baptism. This is agreeable to the sentiments and practice of
-most of the reformed churches; and it cannot but be reckoned
-highly reasonable, by all who consider baptism as an ordinance
-in which a public profession is made of the person’s being
-devoted to God the Father, Son, and Holy Ghost; and,
-if he be considered as adult (and of such we are now speaking)
-there is a signification, and thereby a profession made, that he
-gives up himself to God; and, if the ordinance be rightly applied,
-there must be an harmony between the inward design of
-the person dedicating, and the true intent and meaning of the
-external sign thereof; which, by divine appointment, is a visible
-declaration of his adhering by faith, to the Father,
-Son, and Holy Ghost, and embracing that salvation which
-takes its rise from them. This therefore must be done by
-faith; or else the ordinance is engaged in after an hypocritical
-manner; which will tend to God’s dishonour, and the prejudice
-rather than the advantage of him, to whom it is administered.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. We are now to consider the necessity of their making a
-profession of their faith in Christ, and obedience to him, who
-being adult, are admitted to baptism. It was supposed, under
-the last head, that if there be not an harmony between the internal
-frame of spirit, in the person baptized, and the intent of
-the external sign thereof, the ordinance is not rightly applied to
-him, inasmuch as he pretends to dedicate himself to God; but,
-in reality does not do this by faith: And now it may be farther
-considered, that it is necessary that he should make it appear,
-that he is a believer, by a profession of his faith; otherwise,
-he that administers the ordinance, together with the assembly,
-who are present at the same time, cannot conclude that they
-are performing a service that is acceptable to God; therefore,
-for their sakes, as well as his own, the person to be baptized,
-ought to make a profession of his subjection to Christ, as what
-is signified in this ordinance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This is agreeable to the words of institution, in Matt. xxviii.
-19. <i>Go ye therefore, and teach all nations, baptizing them</i>, &amp;c.
-and in Mark xvi. 15. <i>Go ye into all the world, and preach the
-gospel to every creature; he that believeth and is baptized, shall
-be saved</i>, &amp;c. I am sensible that some, who have defended
-infant-baptism, or rather attempted to answer objection
-taken from this, and such like scriptures against it, have endeavoured
-to prove the Greek word<a id='r69' /><a href='#f69' class='c012'><sup>[69]</sup></a> signifies, <i>make</i> persons
-<i>disciples</i>; and accordingly it is a metaphor taken from the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_185'>185</span>practice of a person’s being put under the care of one who is
-qualified to instruct him, whose disciple he is said to be, in order
-to his being taught by him; and therefore they suppose,
-that we are made disciples by baptism, and afterwards to be
-<i>taught to observe all things whatsoever Christ hath commanded</i>;
-and this is taken notice of in the marginal reading of our
-Bibles; which supposes that the word may be rendered,
-<i>make disciples of all nations</i>: But, I cannot think this sense of
-the word so defensible, or agreeable to the design of our Saviour,
-as that of our translation, <i>viz.</i> <i>Go teach all nations</i>;
-which agrees with the words of the other evangelist, <i>Go preach
-the gospel to every creature</i>: And besides, while we have recourse
-to this sense to defend infant-baptism, we do not rightly
-consider that this cannot be well applied to adult-baptism,
-which the apostles were first to practise; for it cannot be said
-concerning the heathen, that they are first to be taken under
-Christ’s care by baptism, and then instructed in the doctrines
-of the gospel, by his ministers<a id='r70' /><a href='#f70' class='c012'><sup>[70]</sup></a>.<a id='r71' /><a href='#f71' class='c012'><sup>[71]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, a profession of faith in those who are baptized
-when adult, is agreeable to the practice of the Christian church
-in the first planting thereof: Thus it is said, in Acts ii. 41.
-<i>They that gladly received the word were baptized</i>: And this
-might also be observed in the account we have of the jailor
-and the Eunuch’s being first converted, and then baptized, in
-Acts xvi. 31-33. chap. viii. 37, 38. But, if it be retorted
-upon us, as though we were giving up the cause of infant-baptism,
-it must be observed, that this does not, in the least, affect
-it; for when our Saviour gave forth his commission to the
-apostles, to teach or preach the gospel to all nations, and baptize
-them, it is to be supposed, that their ministry was to be
-exercised among the adult, and that these then were utter
-strangers to Christ and his gospel; therefore it would have
-been a preposterous thing to put them upon devoting themselves
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_186'>186</span>to him, before they were persuaded to believe in him:
-neither could they devote their children till they had first dedicated
-themselves to him, and this leads us to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>III. The right of infants to baptism, provided they, who are
-required to dedicate them to God therein, are believers; and
-particularly, that such may be baptized who descend from parents
-of whom only one is a believer. This will appear,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. If we consider baptism as an ordinance of dedication:
-Accordingly, let it be observed,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) That it is the indispensible duty of believers, to devote
-themselves and all they have, to God, which is founded in the
-law of nature, and is the result of God’s right to us and ours.
-Whatever we have received from him, is to be surrendered or
-given up to him; whereby we own him to be the proprietor of
-all things, and our dependence upon him for them, and that
-they are to be improved to his glory. This is, in a particular
-manner, to be applied to our infant-seed, whom it is our duty
-to devote to the Lord, as we receive them from him: However,
-there is this difference between the dedication of persons,
-from that of things, to God, that we are to devote them to
-him, in hope of their obtaining the blessings which they are
-capable of, at present, or shall stand in need of from him,
-hereafter. This, I think, is allowed, by all Christians. Nothing
-is more common, than for some who cannot see that it is their
-duty to baptize their children, to dedicate or devote them to
-God, by faith and prayer; which they do in a very solemn
-manner; and that with expectation of spiritual blessings, as an
-encouragement of their faith, so far as they apprehend them
-capable of receiving them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We shall now consider, that baptism, in the general
-idea thereof, is an ordinance of dedication or consecration of
-persons to God. If this be not allowed of, I cannot see how
-it can be performed by faith, in the name of the Father, Son,
-and Holy Ghost; or how this can be a visible putting on of
-Christ, as the apostle styles it, Gal. iii. 27.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Object.</i> This proposition would not be denied, if baptism
-were to be considered as an ordinance of self-dedication,
-but then it would effectually overthrow the doctrine of infant-baptism;
-for since infants cannot devote themselves to
-God in this ordinance, therefore it is not to be applied to
-them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied, that as there is no other
-medium, which, I apprehend, can be made use of to prove
-that the solemn acts of consecration or dedication to God in
-baptism, is to be made only by ourselves, but what is taken
-from a supposition of the matter in controversy, by those who
-assert that infants are not to be baptized: So if this method
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_187'>187</span>of reasoning be allowed of, we might as well say, on the other
-hand; infants are to be baptized; therefore baptism is not an
-ordinance of self-dedication, since they cannot devote themselves
-to God; and that would militate against what, I think,
-is allowed of by all, that baptism, when applied to the adult,
-is an ordinance of self-dedication. That which I would therefore
-more directly assert, in answer to this objection is, that
-baptism is an ordinance of dedication, either of ourselves, or
-others; provided the person who dedicates, has a right to that
-which he devotes to God, and can do it by faith. When I do,
-as it were, pass over my right to another, there is nothing required
-in order hereunto, but that I can lawfully do it, considering
-it as my property; and this is no less to be doubted concerning
-the infant-seed of believers than I can question, whether
-an adult person has a right to himself, when he gives up
-himself to God in this ordinance.<a id='r72' /><a href='#f72' class='c012'><sup>[72]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) It follows, from the last head, that parents, who have a
-right to their infant-seed, may devote them to God in baptism,
-provided they can do it by faith; and therefore a profession
-of faith, is only necessary in those who are active, in this ordinance,
-not in them that are merely passive. This we are
-obliged to maintain against those who often intimate that children
-are not to be baptized, because they are not capable of
-believing: Or when it is replied hereunto, that they are capable
-of having the seeds of faith, though not the acts thereof;
-this is generally reckoned insufficient to support our argument,
-by those who are on the other side of the question; inasmuch
-as it cannot well be determined, what infants have the seeds of
-faith, and what not; and, I think those arguments which are
-generally brought to prove that the infants of believing parents,
-as such, have the seeds of faith, on the account whereof
-they are to be baptized can hardly be defended; because
-many good men have wicked children.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Therefore what we insist on in this argument, is, that believing
-parents may give up their children to God in baptism,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_188'>188</span>in hope of their obtaining the blessings of the covenant,<a id='r73' /><a href='#f73' class='c012'><sup>[73]</sup></a>
-whether they are able to conclude that they have the seeds of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_189'>189</span>grace or no; they may devote them to God in hope of regeneration;
-though they cannot know them to be regenerate, as
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_190'>190</span>all ordinances are to be performed with this view, that they
-may be rendered effectual means of grace. And from hence it
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_191'>191</span>may be inferred, as is observed in this answer, that infants descending
-from parents, either both, or but one of them, professing
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_192'>192</span>faith in Christ, are to be baptized; since one parent has as
-much a right to the child as the other: Therefore, the unbelief
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_193'>193</span>of one does not exclude the other from giving it up to
-God by faith, in hope of its obtaining the saving blessings of the
-covenant of grace. 1 Cor. vii. 14.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. The right of the infant-seed of believers to baptism, may
-be farther proved, from their being capable of the privileges
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_194'>194</span>signified therein; and under an indispensable obligation to perform
-the duties which they, who dedicate them to God, make
-a public profession of, as agreeable to the design of this ordinance.
-None are to be excluded from any of those ordinances,
-which Christ has given to the church, but they who are either
-in a natural or a moral sense, to be deemed incapable subjects
-thereof. Some, indeed, are incapable of engaging in ordinances,
-by reason of a natural unmeetness for them, as infants are not
-to be admitted to the Lord’s supper, as being under a natural
-incapacity; and, ignorant and profane persons are not to be admitted
-to it, as being under a moral incapacity; and, for the
-same reason, a wicked man, when adult, is not a proper subject
-of baptism: But if there be neither of these bars to exclude
-persons, they are not to be denied the advantage of any ordinance.
-This, I think will be allowed by all; and therefore,
-the only thing I need prove is, that infants are not incapable of
-the principal things signified in baptism. That they are not incapable
-of being dedicated to God, has been proved under the last
-head; and now we shall consider several privileges that are signified
-therein, which they are equally capable of; as,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Baptism is an external sign of that faith and hope
-which he has, that dedicates a person to God, that the person
-dedicated, shall obtain the saving blessings of the covenant
-of grace; Now, that infants are capable of these blessings,
-none will deny, who suppose them capable of salvation.
-If we suppose infants not to have regenerating grace, which
-is neither to be affirmed or denied, it being a matter, at present,
-unknown to us; yet they are capable of having it, for
-the reason but now assigned; and though they cannot at
-present, put forth any acts of grace, they will be capable
-thereof, as soon as they are able to discern between good
-and evil.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>They are not excluded by their infant-state, from being
-under Christ’s special care; which is, doubtless, to be
-extended to elect infants as well as others; and they are capable
-of being discharged from the guilt of original sin, though
-not of laying claim to this privilege, which they may be enabled
-to do afterwards. Now, if infants are capable of these privileges,
-certainly the person who dedicates them to God, (who
-has a right to do it, inasmuch as they are his property, and he
-is able to do it by faith) may devote them to him, with the exercise
-of this grace, and a fiducial expectation that they shall
-obtain these privileges: And, indeed, when we engage in this
-ordinance, we ought to expect some saving blessings, as the
-consequence hereof, as much as when we engage in any other
-ordinance of divine appointment.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Object.</i> It is objected to this, that though a person may devote
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_195'>195</span>his child to God in hope of his obtaining saving blessings;
-yet he cannot exercise any act of faith, that he shall obtain
-them: Therefore though he may perform this duty with a degree
-of hope, or, at least, with a desire hereof; yet he
-cannot do it by faith: Therefore, if children are to be devoted
-to God by faith, they are not the subjects of this ordinance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied, that some things may be
-said to be done by faith, when we have not a certain ground
-to expect the saving fruits and effects thereof. Suppose an infant
-was expiring and the tender parent concerned about its
-salvation, whether he has a certain expectation that it shall be
-saved or no; yet he may, and ought to be earnest with God
-by faith and prayer, that the child may be happy when taken
-out of the world; and, if he finds that he has the lively exercise
-of faith, with respect to this matter, this will afford him
-some degree of hope, that God, who excited this grace in him,
-will own it by giving the blessings which he desires; which
-is the only comfort that a parent can take in the loss of his infant-seed:
-And, may there not be this act of faith, when he
-dedicates him to God in baptism? Did we assert that giving
-up our children to God by faith, necessarily infers their obtaining
-saving blessings, the objection would have some force
-in it; or if there could be no faith exercised, without our being
-certainly persuaded that this should have a saving effect;
-then it might be argued, that because we are not certain that
-infants shall be saved, therefore we cannot give them up to
-God by faith: But if there may be faith, where there is not
-this certain persuasion, or any ground by which this matter
-may be determined, then, I think, it will follow, that infants
-may be devoted to God by faith, as well as with a desire of
-their obtaining saving blessings, and, consequently, this objection
-does not take away the force of our argument. We are
-far from supposing that baptismal dedication necessarily infers
-these saving blessings, or is inseparably connected with
-them, so that the one cannot be without the other. Therefore,
-it is sufficient to our purpose, to suppose that they are capable
-of those blessings which faith desires, and, it may be,
-hopes for; and, consequently, of those things which are principally
-signified in baptism.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) Infants are under an indispensable obligation to perform
-the duties which are incumbent on those who are given up to
-God in baptism, and signified thereby. This respects some
-things future, (they being, at present, incapable of performing
-any duty) and, indeed, obligations to perform duties may respect
-the time to come, as well as the time present; as when a
-person is bound to pay a just debt, this obligation is valid
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_196'>196</span>though it is not expected that it should be immediately paid.
-Thus infants are professedly bound, when given up to God, to
-be the Lord’s: Whether ever they will give up themselves to
-him by faith, or no, is unknown to us, nevertheless, the obligation
-will take place as soon as they are capable of doing
-good or evil. Therefore it follows, that the parent may bind
-his child to be the Lord’s, inasmuch as the obligation is just,
-as being founded in God’s right to obedience, and when he
-has laid his child under it in this ordinance, he ought afterwards
-strictly to charge him to stand to it, as he would not
-contract double guilt; not only in neglecting to perform an indispensable
-duty, but to pay that debt of obedience which has
-been so solemnly acknowledged in this ordinance. These arguments
-taken from the nature and design of the ordinance of
-baptism, give me the fullest conviction concerning our warrant
-to apply it to infants: But there is one more which is not
-wholly to be passed over, <i>viz.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3). It appears, that the infant-seed of believers, are to be
-consecrated or devoted to God in baptism, because they are
-included in the covenant wherein God has promised that he
-will be a God to his people, and to their seed; who are, upon
-this account, styled <i>holy</i> Ezra. ix. 2. And it is said concerning
-Israel, that <i>they are the seed of the blessed of the Lord, and
-their off-spring with them</i>, Isa. lxv. 23. the <i>branch</i> is said to
-be <i>holy</i>, together with <i>the root</i>, Rom. xi. 16. and <i>the children
-of the promise are counted for the seed</i>, chap. ix. 8. that is included
-in that covenant in which God promised that he would
-be a God to children, together with their parents, as he says
-to Abraham; <i>I will establish my covenant between me and thee,
-and to thy seed after thee, to be a God unto thee, and to thy seed
-after thee</i>, Gen. xvii. 7. And, in this sense, I think, we are to
-understand the apostle’s words, in 1 Cor. vii. 14.<a id='r74' /><a href='#f74' class='c012'><sup>[74]</sup></a> <i>The
-unbelieving husband is sanctified by the believing wife, and the
-unbelieving wife by the believing husband; else were your children
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_197'>197</span>unclean, but now are they holy.</i> By these, and other expressions
-of the like-nature, we are not to understand the special
-saving grace of regeneration and sanctification; for that is
-not a privilege that descends from parents to children by birth,
-as our Saviour says, <i>We are born not of blood, nor of the will
-of the flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God</i>, John i. 13.
-Therefore, when some, who are on the other side of the question,
-think that we intend hereby the saving blessings of the
-covenant, or that holiness which is an internal qualification or
-meetness for heaven, they do not rightly understand our meaning.
-Some, indeed, may have given occasion to conclude that
-they intend this, who speak of the grace of regeneration as
-conferred in baptism; and assert, that it intitles persons to
-salvation, if they happen to die before they are adult: Whereas,
-if afterward they appear to be in an unconverted state, by
-the wickedness of their conversation, they are said to fall from
-that grace. This is what I do not well understand; nor do I
-intend, when I speak of the infants of believers as an holy seed,
-that they are all internally regenerate or sanctified from the
-womb; but they are included in the external dispensation of
-the covenant of grace; which must be reckoned a greater advantage
-than if they had descended from Indians, who are
-strangers to it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I am sensible, indeed, that they who deny infant-baptism,
-suppose that the holiness of the children spoken of by the apostle
-in the scripture but now referred to, who descended
-from parents, of whom one only was a believer, implies nothing
-else but their being legitimate: But that does not seem
-to be his meaning; inasmuch as marriage is an ordinance of
-the law of nature, which all, without distinction, have a right
-to, heathens as much as Christians; and the children of the
-one, are as legitimate as those of the other. Therefore, there is
-something else intended by their being holy, namely, the same
-thing that is meant in those other scriptures that we but now
-referred to, as taken for an external relative holiness, whereby
-God must be supposed to have a greater regard to them than
-to others who are styled unclean; and, if this does not infer,
-as was before observed, their being internally regenerate or
-sanctified: yet it is not a word without an idea affixed to it:
-Therefore we must understand thereby, an holiness in the lowest
-sense of the word; as children, are said to be <i>an heritage
-of the Lord, and the fruit of the womb his reward</i>, Psal. cxxxvii.
-7. or, it denotes the obligation they are laid under, by the
-privilege of their descending from believing parents, to adhere
-to their fathers’ God; which obligation is professed or acknowledged,
-when they are dedicated to him in baptism, as has
-been before observed; and this is the use which I would make
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_198'>198</span>of this account which we have of them in scripture, to prove
-their right to be devoted to God in this ordinance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, I think, we do not assert this without some warrant
-from scripture; for when God told Abraham, in the promise
-but now mentioned, that he would be <i>a God unto him, and to
-his seed</i>, which is the foundation of their federal holiness; this
-is assigned as a reason why they should be devoted to God
-in circumcision, Gen. xvii. 10. for we cannot but conclude
-circumcision, as we do baptism, to have been an ordinance of
-dedication or separation to God: And, in Acts ii. 39. when
-the apostle had been pressing those Jews, amongst the mixed
-multitude, to whom he had preached, to <i>repent and be baptized</i>;
-and encouraged them to hope for the <i>gift of the Holy
-Ghost</i>; he assigns this as a reason, namely, that <i>the promise
-was to them and to their children</i>, which refers to the promise
-of the covenant made with Abraham, and his seed; and it immediately
-follows, <i>and to them that are afar off</i>, that is, the Gentiles,
-who might claim this promise, when they believed, whom
-the apostle calls elsewhere, <i>children of the promise, as Isaac
-was</i>, Gal. iv. 28. These who are styled, before conversion, a
-people <i>afar off</i>, were after it reckoned the spiritual seed of
-Abraham, and so had a right to the blessings of the covenant,
-that God would be a God to them; and, by a parity of reason,
-in the same sense in which the seed of Abraham were children
-of the promise, the seed of all other believers are to be
-reckoned so, till by their own act and deed, they renounce this
-external covenant relation: Now, from hence it may be inferred,
-that if they stand in this relation, to God, this is publicly
-to be owned; and accordingly they are to be given up to
-him in baptism, as there is therein a professed declaration
-thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to what was but now inferred from the infant-seed of believers
-under the Old Testament having a right to circumcision,
-because they were included in the covenant which God
-made with their fathers, that therefore they have a right to
-baptism; this is not to be wholly passed over; though, I am
-sensible, they who deny infant-baptism, will not allow of the
-consequence. Some have argued, in opposition to it, that circumcision
-was ordained to be a sign and seal of that covenant
-of peculiarity, which God made with the Jewish church, or of
-those blessings which they were made partakers of, as a
-nation excelling others, in name, honour, and glory: But this,
-I think, comes far short of what the apostle says on that
-subject, <i>viz</i>. that it was <i>a seal of the righteousness of faith</i>,
-Rom. iv. 11. And, indeed, when we call that dispensation a
-covenant of peculiarity, we intend nothing else thereby, but
-some external privileges annexed to the saving blessings of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_199'>199</span>covenant of grace; and therefore, Abraham’s faith was conversant
-on both of them; the righteousness of faith, which respected
-his own salvation, and that of his spiritual seed; and
-those privileges of a lower nature, which they who were, in
-other respects, his seed, were made partakers of, by virtue of
-the covenant, in which God promised that he would be a God
-to him, and to his seed. Moreover, it is generally denied, by
-those who are on the other side of the question, that baptism
-comes in the room of circumcision. This therefore remains to
-be proved, in order to our establishing the consequence, that
-since children were to be devoted unto God by circumcision
-under the law, they are to be devoted unto him by baptism,
-under the gospel-dispensation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Now, that this may appear, let it be considered, that God
-has substituted some ordinances, under the gospel-dispensation,
-in the room of others, which were formerly observed under the
-ceremonial law. Thus the Lord’s supper is instituted in the
-room of the passover; otherwise the apostle would never have
-alluded to one when he speaks of the other, and says, <i>Christ,
-our passover, is sacrificed for us; therefore let us keep the
-feast</i>, &amp;c. 1 Cor. v. 7, 8. And we have as much ground to
-conclude, that baptism comes in the room of circumcision, as
-we have that any gospel-ordinance comes in the room of another,
-that belonged to the ceremonial law, from what the apostle
-says, <i>in whom ye are circumcised by the circumcision made
-without hands, buried with him in baptism</i>, Col. ii. 11, 12.
-where he speaks of the thing signified by circumcision and
-baptism, as being the same, namely, our communion with
-Christ in his death; so that the thing signified by baptism, is
-styled, as it were, a spiritual circumcision: Therefore, since
-these two ordinances, signify the same thing for substance, and
-are set one against the other in this scripture, we may, I think,
-infer from thence, that baptism comes in the room of circumcision.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, it is farther argued, that baptism being the only initiating
-ordinance, at present, as circumcision was of old; so
-that the first visible profession that was made, especially by
-any significant ordinance, that they were the Lord’s, was made
-therein, which is what we understand by an initiating ordinance
-under the gospel, as circumcision was under the law, then
-it follows, that it comes in the room thereof; or else no other
-ordinance does: But if it be said, that no ordinance comes in
-the room of circumcision, then the privileges of the church
-under this present dispensation, would be, in a very disadvantageous
-circumstance, less than they were under the former;
-and if infants received any advantage by being devoted to
-God by circumcision of old, but are not to be devoted to him
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_200'>200</span>by baptism now, their condition is much worse than that of
-those who were the children of such as lived under the legal
-dispensation; whereas, on the other hand, God has not, under
-this present dispensation, abridged the church of its privileges,
-but rather increased them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> 1. It is objected, that infants have no right to baptism,
-because they cannot believe and repent, since these graces are
-often mentioned in scripture, as a necessary qualification of
-those who have a right to this ordinance, as might be sufficiently
-proved from those scriptures in which persons are said
-first to believe and repent, and then to be baptized; and, in
-order thereunto, <i>the gospel</i> was first to be <i>preached</i>, according
-to our Saviour’s direction, Mark xvi. 15, 16. And we read of
-persons <i>gladly receiving</i> it, and <i>then</i> being <i>baptized</i>, Acts. ii.
-41. therefore Philip would not baptize the Eunuch till he professed
-his faith in Christ, chap. viii. 37, 38. Moreover, this is
-called an ordinance of repentance, as none have a right to it,
-but those who repent: Thus it is said, <i>John preached the baptism
-of repentance for the remission of sins</i>, Mark i. 4. and elsewhere,
-that he <i>baptized with the baptism of repentance, saying
-to the people, that they should believe on him which should come
-after him, that is, on Christ Jesus</i>, Acts. xix. 4.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> We do not deny the necessity of faith and repentance
-to baptism, in them who are adult, as appears by those
-concessions which have been made under a foregoing head;
-in which we considered, that none are to be baptized if adult,
-till they profess faith in Christ and obedience to him; and this
-ought to be accompanied with repentance, otherwise it is not
-true and genuine; therefore we freely owned also, that the
-gospel was to be preached by the apostles, to those who were
-immediately concerned in their ministry, before they were
-either to be baptized themselves, or their infant-seed. Nevertheless
-this does not overthrow the doctrine of infant-baptism,
-since that, as has been before proved, depends upon different
-qualifications. Faith is, no doubt, necessary in the person
-that dedicates, or devotes to God: But, if what has been
-said concerning the obligation which every one that is able to
-dedicate his child to God by faith, is under, to do it, (as much
-as he that is able to dedicate himself to him by faith, when
-adult, is bound to do it,) be true; then we are to have regard
-only to the faith of him that dedicates, and to hope for the
-saving privileges of faith and repentance, and all other graces,
-as divine blessings to be bestowed on the person devoted to
-God, as the great end which we have in view in this solemn
-action.<a id='r75' /><a href='#f75' class='c012'><sup>[75]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_201'>201</span><i>Obj.</i> 2. There is another objection which is concluded, by
-some, to be unanswerable, <i>viz.</i> that there is neither precept,
-nor example in the New Testament, that gives the least countenance
-to our baptizing infants; therefore it cannot be reckoned
-a scripture doctrine, and consequently is not from
-heaven, but of men.<a id='r76' /><a href='#f76' class='c012'><sup>[76]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_202'>202</span><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied, that consequences justly deduced
-from scripture, are equally binding with the words or
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_203'>203</span>examples contained therein. If this be not allowed of, we shall
-hardly be able to prove many doctrines which we reckon not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_204'>204</span>only to be true, but of great importance. It would be endless
-to enter into a detail of particulars, to illustrate and confirm
-this matter; and I cannot but think it unnecessary, since
-they who deny infant-baptism, do not deny the validity of just
-scripture-consequences.<a id='r77' /><a href='#f77' class='c012'><sup>[77]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_205'>205</span>Therefore, all that I need say to this is, that if the method
-we have taken to prove infant-baptism, appears to be just; and
-if the premises be true, the conclusion deduced from them,
-must be allowed of; namely, that the infants of believing parents
-are to be baptized, though this be not contained in so
-many express words in scripture: And, I cannot but think
-that the objection would equally hold good against Christ’s
-dying for infants, as well as others, or of their being capable
-of justification, regeneration, and the saving blessings of the
-covenant of grace; and it might as well be inferred from
-hence, that they are not to be devoted to God in other instances,
-besides that of baptism; or that we have not the least
-ground to expect their salvation; for it would be as hard a
-matter to find this contained in express words of scripture, as
-that which is the matter in controversy, to wit, that they are to
-be baptized.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Here I cannot but take notice of the method which the
-learned Dr. Lightfoot takes to account for the silence of scripture,
-as to this matter<a id='r78' /><a href='#f78' class='c012'><sup>[78]</sup></a>, which is, for substance, as follows,
-<i>viz.</i> that baptism was well enough known to the Jews, as
-practised by them under the ceremonial law; by which he
-means the ordinance in general, as including in it a consecration
-to God, to worship him in that way which he then instituted;
-and accordingly they are said to have been <i>baptized into
-Moses</i>. He also adds, that the apostle speaking concerning
-this matter, as referring to what was done <i>in the cloud, and
-the sea</i>, 1 Cor. x. 2. supposes that the whole congregation, of
-which the infants which they had in their arms, were a part,
-were solemnly devoted to God at that time; which, I cannot
-but conclude to be more agreeable to the sense of the word
-<i>baptize</i>, than that which some critics give, who suppose that
-nothing is intended by it, but their being wet, or sprinkled
-with the water of the sea, as they passed through it; for that
-was only an occasional baptism, which could not be well
-avoided. But, if I may be allowed a little to alter or improve
-on his method of reasoning, I rather think, that the
-apostle’s meaning is, that the whole congregation was <i>baptized
-into Moses</i>, soon after they were delivered from the Egyptians,
-while they were encamped at the sea-shore; at which time,
-God, for their security, spread a cloud for a covering to them;
-and then, as the kind hand of Providence had led the way,
-and brought them under a renewed engagement, they hereupon
-expressed their gratitude and obligation to be God’s people,
-by this universal dedication to him in baptism. But to return
-to the author but now mentioned; he adds, that when
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_206'>206</span>Jacob was delivered from Laban, and set about the work of
-reforming his household, he ordered them, not only to <i>put
-away the strange gods that were among them</i>, but <i>to be clean</i>,
-Gen. xxxv. 2. by which, as he observes, the Jews confess, that
-baptism, or a dedication to God by washing, is intended. He
-also observes, that the ordinance of baptism in general, before
-Christ instituted gospel-baptism, was so well known by the
-Jewish church, that they no sooner heard that John baptized,
-but they came to his baptism; and they did not ask him, why
-dost thou make use of this rite of baptizing? but, what is thy
-warrant, or, <i>who sent thee to baptize</i>? He further adds, that
-both John and Christ took up baptism as they found it in the
-Jewish church; by which he means the ordinance in general,
-without regard to some circumstances, in which Christ’s baptism
-differed from that which was practised under the ceremonial
-law; and this was, as he observes, applied by the Jewish
-church to infants as well as grown persons; therefore, our Saviour
-had no occasion, (when he instituted this ordinance with
-those circumstances, agreeable to the gospel-state, in which it
-differs from the baptism which was before practised,) to command
-them to baptize all nations, that is, all who were the subjects
-of baptism, and infants in particular.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> 3. It is further objected, that our Saviour was not baptized
-in his infancy; therefore his example is to be followed,
-and, consequently, no one is to be baptized till he be adult.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied, that every circumstance
-or action in the life of Christ, is not designed to be an example
-to us; and, indeed, there were some things signified in
-his baptism, that are not in ours, inasmuch as in its application
-to him, it did not signify his being cleansed from the guilt and
-power of sin. The only thing wherein that which was signified
-in his baptism, agrees with ours, is in that he devoted
-himself unto God, not as expecting salvation through a Mediator
-as we do, but as denoting his consent to engage in the
-work that he came into the world about; which he now began
-to perform in a public manner, which he fulfilled in the
-course of his ministry, while he went about doing good. Now
-it was not convenient that this should be done in his infancy;
-for though the work of redemption began from that time; yet
-his proving himself to be the Messiah, especially his doing this
-in a public manner, did not take place till he was thirty years
-of age, and then he was baptized, that this might be an ordinance
-for the faith of his church, that he was engaged in the
-work of our redemption. Moreover, it must be considered,
-that John’s baptism, which circumstantially differed from that
-which was practised in the Jewish church, as well as our Saviour’s,
-was not instituted till the year before Christ was baptized;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_207'>207</span>therefore he could not be baptized agreeably to the alteration
-that was made in baptism at this time, had he been
-baptized in his infancy.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> 4. It is further objected, that infant baptism is a novelty,
-and not practised by the church in the earliest ages
-thereof from the apostles’ time.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied, that if this could be proved
-to be true, I should regard arguments deduced from scripture-consequences,
-much more than the sense of antiquity to determine
-this matter. The principal use of the writings of the
-Fathers, in my opinion, is to lead us into the knowledge of
-what relates to the historical account of the affairs of the church
-in their respective ages. The main thing supposed in this objection
-is, that infant-baptism was not practised in the early
-ages of the church; the contrary to which will appear, if we
-consider some things mentioned by the Fathers concerning this
-matter: Thus Justin Martyr says, we have not received the
-carnal but circumcision by spiritual baptism; and all persons
-are, in like manner, enjoined to receive it, as they were to
-receive circumcision of old, wherein he refers to that of
-the apostle, in Coloss. ii. 11, 12. <i>We are circumcised with
-the circumcision made without hands, buried with him in
-baptism</i>; and, consequently, he supposes that baptism comes
-in the room of circumcision, as has been observed elsewhere;
-and he likewise speaks of their being brought to
-the water, and there regenerated; by which he means, baptized,
-in the same manner as we are, in the name of
-the Father, our Lord and Saviour, and the Holy Ghost<a id='r79' /><a href='#f79' class='c012'><sup>[79]</sup></a>.
-And Cyprian, in a council, wherein there were sixty-six bishops
-convened, delivered it not only as his opinion, but supposes
-it to have been received by them all, that infants ought
-to be baptized before the eighth day, in answer to a question
-under debate, whether the time in which this ordinance was to
-be performed ought to be the same with that in which children
-were circumcised under the law<a id='r80' /><a href='#f80' class='c012'><sup>[80]</sup></a>. And, Irenæus<a id='r81' /><a href='#f81' class='c012'><sup>[81]</sup></a>,
-speaks of Christ’s sanctifying and saving persons of every
-age, infants not excepted; and therefore they are to be regenerated;
-by which he means, baptized; as the Fathers often
-put the thing signified for the sign: And Gregory Nazianzen
-speaks to the same purpose<a id='r82' /><a href='#f82' class='c012'><sup>[82]</sup></a>, that baptism may be performed
-as circumcision was, on the eighth day; but that it ought not
-to be omitted any longer, than till the children are two, or
-three years old. And to this I might add, the testimony of
-Augustin; who asserts, that it had been practised by the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_208'>208</span>church, in foregoing ages, from our Saviour’s time; which,
-had it not been matter of fact, he would, doubtless, have been
-disproved by Pelagius, and his other antagonists<a id='r83' /><a href='#f83' class='c012'><sup>[83]</sup></a>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It is further objected, by those who deny infant-baptism,
-that the practice of many in the ancient church, who deferred
-baptism till they were adult, argues, that they did not think it
-lawful for any to be baptized in infancy. Thus Constantine
-the great, as Eusebius observes, was not baptized till a little
-before his death: And, it is well known, that Gregory Nazianzen,
-and Chrysostom, Ambrose, Augustin, and others of
-the Fathers, were not baptized till they came to a state of manhood;
-and Tertullian, who lived in the second century, exhorts
-persons to defer baptism, and adds, that it is the safest
-way to delay the baptism of infants, till they are capable
-of engaging for themselves, being arrived to years of discretion<a id='r84' /><a href='#f84' class='c012'><sup>[84]</sup></a>.<a id='r85' /><a href='#f85' class='c012'><sup>[85]</sup></a>
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_209'>209</span>But to this it may be answered, that particular instances, or
-the sentiments of some of the Fathers are not sufficient to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_210'>210</span>prove that infant-baptism was not practised by the ancient
-church. As to what is alleged concerning Constantine’s not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_211'>211</span>being baptized till a little before his death, and Gregory Nazianzen,
-Chrysostom, <i>&amp;c.</i> not till they were adult: This may
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_212'>212</span>be accounted for, by supposing that their parents did not embrace
-the Christian religion while they were infants: and, if
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_213'>213</span>that were true, they ought not to be baptized till they could
-give up themselves to God by faith: This a late learned
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_214'>214</span>writer attempts to prove<a id='r86' /><a href='#f86' class='c012'><sup>[86]</sup></a>. Moreover, some who have been
-converted, have neglected baptism, out of a scruple they have
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_215'>215</span>had of their unfitness for it, as many, in our day, do the
-Lord’s supper; and others, it may he, might have neglected to
-baptize their infants, or to be baptized themselves, till they
-apprehended themselves near to death, as being misled by a
-false supposition, which was imbibed by several, that baptism
-washed away sin; therefore, the nearer they were to their end,
-the more prepared they would be, by this ordinance, for a better
-world. However, whether it was neglected for this, or
-any other reason, it does not much affect the argument we are
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_216'>216</span>maintaining, our design being principally to prove, that it was
-practised in the early ages of the church; and, in what instances
-soever it was omitted, it was not because they denied
-that the infants of believing parents had a right to it. As to
-several things mentioned by the authors before cited, and
-others that treat on that subject, whereby they seem to maintain
-the absolute necessity thereof, to wash away the pollution
-of sin; or, when they assert, that it is as necessary to salvation
-as regenerating grace, we have nothing to say as to this method
-of reasoning: However, whatever they speak in defence
-of it, is a sufficient evidence that it is not a practice of late invention.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to what respects Tertullian’s advice to defer baptism till
-persons were capable to engage for themselves; this caution
-argues, that it was practised by some, which is the principal
-thing designed to be proved. And the reason assigned by
-him for the neglect of baptism, being this, because the sureties,
-who undertook to instruct them in the doctrines of religion,
-often promised more than they made conscience of performing,
-and so brought themselves into a snare thereby; therefore,
-for their sakes, infant-baptism, which could not be administered
-without sureties, had better be delayed; this only
-proves that he was against infant-baptism for some prudential
-reasons, as it was attended with this inconvenience, not that he
-thought it was in itself unlawful to be practised by them.
-From hence we may conclude, that the objection taken from
-infant-baptism, being supposed to be a novelty, does not
-weaken the cause we are maintaining<a id='r87' /><a href='#f87' class='c012'><sup>[87]</sup></a>. Thus concerning the
-subjects of baptism.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We are now to consider the mode thereof, or what we are
-to understand by the word baptism. It is said, in the foregoing
-answer, to be the washing with water, in the name of the
-Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost. There has
-been a great dispute in the world, concerning the meaning of
-the word βαπτιζω, by which this ordinance is expressed; from
-whence arises the different mode of the administration thereof.
-Some think, that it only signifies the putting a person, or thing,
-into the water, whereby it is covered, or, as it were, buried in
-it; which is otherwise expressed by the word dipping. Others
-(whose opinion I cannot but acquiesce in) conclude that it may
-as well be performed by the application of water, though it be
-in a different manner, either by pouring or sprinkling; and accordingly,
-that it signifies the using the means of cleansing by
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_217'>217</span>the application of water, whatever be the form or mode thereof.
-This argument depends very much upon the sense in which
-the word is applied to the action intended thereby, either in
-scripture or other writers. And, inasmuch as the sense
-thereof, as used in scripture, and other writings, is well explained
-by the learned and judicious Dr. Owen, agreeably to
-the sense we have given of the word; I have no occasion to
-make any other critical remarks upon it, by referring to those
-writings in which the word is found<a id='r88' /><a href='#f88' class='c012'><sup>[88]</sup></a>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_218'>218</span>But, since the greatest number of christians are not so well
-versed in the Greek language, as to be able to judge whether
-those methods of reasoning that are taken from the use of the
-word which we render <i>baptize</i>, are sufficiently conclusive:
-And, when it is asserted, that many who are undoubtedly very
-good masters of the Greek tongue, have determined that it
-signifies all manner of washing with water, as well as dipping
-into it, this will be reckoned, by them, a very fruitless and
-unprofitable subject; however, we are obliged to mention it,
-because great stress is usually laid on the sense of this word,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_219'>219</span>to establish that mode of baptism which is always used by
-those who are on the other side of the question.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I shall take leave to add, to what that learned author, but
-now quoted, refers to, has observed on this subject; that it
-does not appear to me that the word Βαπτιζω always signifies to
-wash, by dipping into water, but by the application of water
-some other way; because it is sometimes applied to those
-things which were too large and cumbersome, and therefore
-could not well be cleansed that way. Thus it is said, in Mark
-vii. 4. that <i>the Pharisees</i> not only <i>held the washing</i>, or, as it is
-in the Greek, <i>the baptism of cups and pots, and brazen vessels</i>,
-which might, indeed, be washed by immersion, but of <i>tables</i>,
-or, as it may be rendered, of <i>beds</i>, or those seats on which the
-Jews, according to the custom of the eastern nations, lay at
-their ease, when they eat their meals. These, I conceive were
-washed some other way, different from that of dipping or
-plunging in water; And if it was possible that they might be
-washed that way, yet the word may be applied to innumerable
-things, that cannot be baptized by immersion: Therefore, the
-general sense that we have given of it, that it signifies to wash,
-whether by dipping into the water, or by the application of
-water to the thing washed, may justify our practice, with respect
-to the mode of baptism, commonly used by us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Object.</i> 1. It is objected hereunto, that the mode used by us,
-is not properly baptism, but rantism; or, that to sprinkle, or
-pour, is not to baptize.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied, that this method of begging
-the question in controversy, is never reckoned a fair way
-of arguing. If baptism be a using the means of cleansing,
-by the application of water, which is the thing we contend for,
-then the word <i>baptize</i> may as well be applied to it as to any
-other mode of washing. That which may be further replied
-to this objection is, that if the thing signified by the action of
-baptizing, namely, the blood of Jesus, together with those
-gifts and graces of the Spirit, which are applied to those to
-whom God makes this a saving ordinance, be sometimes set
-forth by sprinkling or pouring clean water upon a person, then
-it cannot be well concluded, that sprinkling, or pouring, is not
-baptizing, though it differ very much from that which they
-who contend with us about this matter generally call baptizing.
-That sprinkling or pouring, is sometimes used in scripture, to
-signify the conferring of those spiritual gifts and graces which
-are signified in baptism, is very evident; inasmuch as it is
-said in John i. 17. <i>The blood of Jesus Christ his Son, cleanseth
-us from all sin</i>; and this is called <i>the blood of sprinkling</i>, in
-Heb. xii. 24. 1 Pet. i. 2. Therefore, in a spiritual sense,
-sprinkling is called cleansing from sin; and the graces of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_220'>220</span>Spirit conferred in regeneration, are represented in Ezek.
-xxxvi. 25-27. by <i>sprinkling clean water</i>; which mode of
-speaking would never be used, were not sprinkling a means of
-cleansing. And, some think, that the apostle when he speaks
-of our <i>drawing near to God, having our bodies washed with
-pure water</i>, Heb. x. 22, intends the ordinance of baptism; yet
-it alludes to the ceremonial cleansings that were under the law,
-which were often done by sprinkling: Therefore we cannot
-but assert, that sprinkling water in baptism, is as much cleansing
-as any other mode used therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, sometimes the thing signified in baptism, is represented
-by a metaphor taken from pouring; which, if our
-mode of baptizing be just, will not seem disagreeable to it;
-and, it may be, the explication is taken from it, as the conferring
-the Holy Ghost, which they who were baptized were
-given to expect, is often called <i>pouring out the Spirit</i>, Acts
-ii. 17, 18. chap. viii. 38.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> There is another objection which is concluded by many,
-to be unanswerable, viz. that when we read of baptism in the
-New Testament, the person baptized is said to <i>go down into
-the water</i>. Thus the Eunich did, chap. viii. 38. and immediately
-after this, he is said to <i>come up out of the water</i>; which
-can be applied, as is supposed, to no other mode of baptism
-but that of immersion.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied, that the whole strength of
-this objection depends upon the sense that is given of the
-Greek particles, which we often render <i>into</i>, and <i>out of</i><a id='r90' /><a href='#f90' class='c012'><sup>[90]</sup></a>. But
-this will have no weight with any but those who are unacquainted
-with the Greek language, since it is so well known
-to all that understand it, that the former of these particles often
-signifies <i>to</i>, as well as <i>into</i>; and the latter <i>from</i>, as well as
-<i>out of</i>; as innumerable instances might easily be given, was it
-needful, from scripture, and other Greek authors, in which the
-words are applied to those things, that according to the natural
-signification thereof, cannot be understood as denoting <i>into</i>,
-or <i>out of</i>. There is one scripture which no one can suppose
-is to be taken in any other sense but what is agreeable to our
-present purpose, <i>viz.</i> Mat. xvii. 27. wherein our Saviour bids
-Peter <i>Go to the sea<a id='r91' /><a href='#f91' class='c012'><sup>[91]</sup></a>, and cast an hook, and take the fish that
-first cometh thence</i>, &amp;c. where, by <i>go to the sea</i>, we can understand
-nothing else, but go to the sea-shore; and yet the word
-is the same with that which is, in some other places, rendered
-<i>into</i>. There are other scriptures in which persons are said to
-<i>go to the mountain</i>, or some other places, wherein it would be
-very improper to say, that they went into the place; though
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_221'>221</span>the word be the same with that which in other instances we
-render <i>into</i>. And the word<a id='r92' /><a href='#f92' class='c012'><sup>[92]</sup></a> which is sometimes rendered
-<i>out of</i>, is frequently rendered <i>from</i>, and can be understood in
-no other sense: As when it is said, in Luke xi. 31. <i>The
-queen of the south came from the utmost parts of the earth, to
-hear the wisdom of Solomon</i>; which cannot be understood of
-her coming <i>out of</i>, but <i>from</i> thence. But, this matter being
-so well known to all that read the New Testament in the original,
-it is needless for me to give any other instances.<a id='r93' /><a href='#f93' class='c012'><sup>[93]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to what concerns the Eunuch’s <i>going into the water</i>, I
-cannot think any thing else is intended by it, but that he descended
-or lighted down from his chariot, to the water, that is,
-by a metonymy, to the water-side, in order to his being baptized
-by Philip. It is no uncommon mode of speaking, to
-say, that a person goes down to the river-side, to take water,
-or to the well, to draw it; therefore, this is no strain on the
-sense of the word; and I am the rather inclined to give into
-this opinion, because some modern travellers, taking notice of
-the place where this was done, intimate, that it was only a spring
-of water; and therefore without sufficient depth to plunge the
-body in: And some ancient writers, who lived between three
-and four hundred years after our Saviour’s time, as Jerom and
-Eusebius, intimate the same thing. If it be said, that these
-may be mistaken as to the place, inasmuch as the particular
-spot of ground in which this water was, is not mentioned in
-scripture: I will not lay much stress upon it; however, I cannot
-but observe, that it is represented by a diminutive expression,
-as it is said, they <i>came to a certain water</i>, that is,
-probably, a brook, which was by the way-side; not a river, or
-a great collection of water. And it is further observed, that
-Philip, as well as the Eunuch, <i>went down into the water</i>;
-though none suppose that he was plunged in the water; therefore
-it does not certainly appear, from the sense of the word,
-that the Eunuch was, unless the matter in controversy be taken
-for granted, that baptism can be performed in no other way,
-but by plunging.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, <i>to go down to the water</i>, does not always signify
-in other scriptures, going down to the bottom of the water; as
-when the Psalmist, in Psal. cvii. 23. speaks of them that <i>go down
-to the sea in ships</i>, he does not mean them that go down to the
-bottom of it; therefore, going down to the water does not always
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_222'>222</span>signify being plunged in it. As for what is said concerning
-Philip and the eunuch’s <i>coming up out of the water</i>, it may very
-fairly be understood of their returning from the water-side, and
-the eunuch’s going up again into his chariot. Moreover, I cannot
-but think, that in this, and all other places, where persons
-are said to <i>come up out of the water</i>, it denotes an action performed
-with design, and the perfect exercise of the understanding
-in him that does it; which seems not agreeable to one
-who is at the bottom of the water, and cannot well come up
-from thence, unless by the help of him that baptized him. The
-sense of the words, <i>coming out of the water</i>, is agreeable to
-what is said concerning our Saviour at his baptism, in Matt.
-iii. 16. <i>Jesus went up straightway out of the water</i>; which
-seems to be a mistake in our translation; where the words
-απὸ τοῦ ὑδαλος, have been rendered, <i>from the water</i>; which is of the
-same import with the sense of the Greek particle ἐκ when a
-person is said to <i>come up out of the water</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> 3. It seems very evident, that John the Baptist used
-no other mode but that of immersion; because he chose those
-places to exercise this part of his ministry in, that were well
-supplied with water, sufficient for this purpose. Accordingly,
-we first read of his removing from the <i>wilderness of Judea</i>, in
-which he <i>preached the doctrine of repentance</i>; and told the
-people, that <i>the kingdom of heaven</i>, that is, the gospel-state,
-which was to begin with the appearing of the Messiah, <i>was
-at hand</i>; and then we read of his removing to the banks of the
-river Jordan, for the conveniency of baptizing those who came
-to him for that purpose: And, after that, we read of another
-station in which he resided, <i>viz.</i> <i>Enon, near to Salim</i>; and this
-reason is assigned; <i>because there was much water there</i>, John
-iii. 23. Now, if he had baptized by sprinkling, or pouring a
-little water on the face, he had no need to remove out of the
-<i>wilderness of Judea</i>: For, whatever scarcity of water there
-might be there, it was no difficult matter for him to be supplied
-with enough to serve his occasion, had this been his
-mode of baptizing.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied, that though John removed
-to Jordan and Ænon, that he might be well supplied with
-water, as he daily wanted large quantities thereof; yet it doth
-not necessarily follow from hence, that this was done for the
-sake of immersion therein: And it doth not sufficiently appear
-to me, that Ænon afforded water deep enough for a person to
-be baptized in it after this manner; for it seems to be but a
-small tract of land, in which it is hardly probable, that there
-were many lakes, or rivers of water contained; which is as
-much as can be said concerning a well watered country.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_223'>223</span>Therefore, I think, the words<a id='r94' /><a href='#f94' class='c012'><sup>[94]</sup></a> ought to have been rendered
-<i>many waters</i>; by which we are to understand, as Dr. Lightfoot
-observes, that it was a place of springs<a id='r95' /><a href='#f95' class='c012'><sup>[95]</sup></a>, or small brooks of
-water. This place John chose, that he might be supplied with
-water for his use; but it doth not, I think, necessarily, follow
-from hence, that he baptized by immersion; Besides, if there
-had been a great collection of waters there, there would have
-been some indications thereof at this day; which, I believe, it
-would be hard to prove that there are.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to the other part of the objection, that it was a very easy
-matter for him to have been supplied with water in the wilderness
-of Judea, to baptize by sprinkling or pouring, by his having
-it brought to him in vessels for that purpose: It may be replied,
-that if he had only poured water on the head or face,
-there is no need to suppose that he was so sparing of it, as
-not to use above a spoonful, especially when it was so easy a
-matter for him, by his removing to another station, to be better
-supplied. If there was but a little water poured on every one
-that came to be baptized by him, it would require a very great
-quantity of water to baptize the vast multitudes that came to
-him; inasmuch as it is said, that <i>Jerusalem, and all Judea, and
-all the region round about Jordan, were baptized of him</i>: It is
-one thing for a little water to be brought in a bason to baptize
-a person or two, and another thing for this to be done in the
-case under our present consideration. Moreover, it is certain,
-that in hot countries, and particularly in Judea; and more especially
-in the wilderness thereof, there was a very great scarcity
-of water; accordingly we read, sometimes, that water was so
-valuable a thing, that it was reckoned a very considerable part
-of a man’s estate: Thus Isaac was envied by the Philistines,
-for all the wells his father’s servants had digged; and then we
-read of their stopping them up, and his digging other wells;
-and also of the strife between the herdsmen of Gerar, and his
-herdsmen, for the possession thereof, Gen. xxvi. 14,-20. And
-we read, in Gen. xxi. 14,-16. that when Abraham sent Hagar
-away from him with Ishmael, he gave her <i>bread</i>, and a <i>bottle
-of water</i>; and <i>when the water was spent in the bottle, she cast
-the child under one of the shrubs</i>, despairing of his life; which
-she need not have done, if water was so easy to come by as it
-is supposed in this objection. It is certain, that a person may
-travel many miles without finding water to quench his thirst, in
-those desert places. This farther appears from Samson’s being
-<i>ready to die for thirst</i>, after the great victory he had obtained
-over the Philistines, on which occasion God wrought a miracle
-to supply him, Judges xv. 18, 19, which can hardly be accounted
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_224'>224</span>for, if there had been so great plenty of water in that country,
-as there is in ours; this then, I apprehend to be the reason
-of John’s removal to Jordan and Ænon; therefore it doth not
-necessarily prove that his design was to baptize in that way that
-is pleaded for by those on the other side of the question.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, as it doth not sufficiently appear to me, from any
-thing contained in the objection, that John used immersion in
-baptism, so it seems most agreeable, to some circumstances that
-attended it, to conclude that he did not; inasmuch as there was
-no conveniency for the change of their garments, nor servants
-appointed to help them therein; which seems necessary to answer
-this occasion. And some have supposed, that it might
-endanger the health of those who were infirm among them, and
-John’s much more, who was obliged to stand many days together
-in the water, or, at least, the greatest part thereof, while
-he was administering this ordinance. And they who were
-baptized must immediately retire when the ordinance was over,
-or it would endanger their health; unless we have recourse to
-a dispensation of providence, that is next to miraculous:
-Though I am sensible, some say, that none ever suffered hereby
-in our day; which, if the observation be true, is a kind
-providence that they ought to be thankful for.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But if, after all that has been said on this matter, it will not
-be allowed that baptism signifies any thing else but dipping in
-water: Then I might farther allege, that this might be done by
-dipping the face, which is the principal part of the body, without
-plunging the whole body; and this might answer the design
-of the ordinance as well as the other; since it is not the
-quantity used in a sacramental sign that is so much to be regarded,
-as the action performed, together with the matter of it;
-if the smallest piece of bread, and a spoonful of wine are used
-in the Lord’s supper, this is generally reckoned as well adapted
-to answer the design of the ordinance, as if a great quantity of
-each were received by every one that partakes of it. Now, as
-to what concerns our present argument, the washing a part of
-the body is deemed sufficient to signify the thing intended, as
-much as though the whole body had been washed. Thus when
-our Saviour washed his disciples’ feet, and told Peter, <i>If</i> he
-<i>washed him not, he had no part in him</i>, John xiii. 5. wherein
-(by the way) we may observe, that he calls washing his feet,
-washing him, by a synecdoche, for a part of the whole; upon
-which occasion Peter replies, <i>not my feet only, but also my hands
-and my head</i>; and Jesus answered, <i>He that is washed needeth
-not, save to wash his feet, but is clean every whit</i>, ver. 10. by
-which, I think, he intends, that this signifies that cleansing,
-which is the spiritual meaning thereof, as much as though the
-whole body had been washed with water; for though one design
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_225'>225</span>hereof might be to teach them humility, and brotherly
-kindness; yet it also signifies their being washed or cleansed by
-his blood and Spirit.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> 4. There is another objection on which very much
-stress is generally laid, which I should not do justice to the
-cause I am maintaining, if I should wholly pass it over, taken
-from what the apostle says, in Rom. vi. 3, 4, 5. <i>so many of us
-as were baptized into Christ Jesus, were baptized into his death:
-Therefore we were buried with him by baptism<a id='r96' /><a href='#f96' class='c012'><sup>[96]</sup></a> into death;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_226'>226</span>that, like as Christ was raised up from the dead by the glory of
-the Father, even so we also should walk in newness of life. For
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_227'>227</span>if we have been planted together in the likeness of his death, we
-shall be also in the likeness of his resurrection.</i> From whence
-it is argued, that there ought to be a similitude between the
-sign and the thing signified; and, consequently, that baptism
-should be performed in such a way, that, by being covered
-with water, there might be a resemblance of Christ’s burial;
-and by being lifted up out of the water, a resemblance of his
-resurrection: Therefore this ordinance doth not only signify
-the using the means of cleansing with water, but the mode,
-namely, being plunged, or, as it were, buried in water.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied, that it is not agreeable to
-the nature of a sacramental sign, in any other instance; that
-there should be an analogy between the thing done, and what
-is signified thereby, any otherwise than by divine appointment.
-Accordingly we observed, in the foregoing answer, that a sacrament
-has not a natural tendency to signify Christ, and his
-benefits; as the eating bread and drinking wine doth not signify
-the body and blood of Christ, any otherwise than as this
-signification is annexed by our Saviour, to the action performed;
-the same, I think, may be applied to baptism; especially
-our consecration, and dedication to God therein; and if any
-other external sign had been instituted, to signify the blessings
-of the covenant of grace, we should have been as much obliged
-to make use of it as we were of water. Therefore, I conceive,
-the apostle, in this scripture, mentioned in the objection, doth
-not refer to our being buried in water, or taken out of it, as a
-natural sign of Christ’s burial and resurrection; but our having
-communion with him in his burial and resurrection. This, I
-think, would hardly be denied by many, on the other side of
-the question, did not the objection, but now mentioned, and the
-cause they maintain, render it expedient for them to understand
-the words in another sense. This is all that I shall
-say with respect to this matter in controversy, as to the subjects
-and mode of baptism; in which, as I should have been
-unfaithful, had I said less to it; so I have not the least inclination
-to treat those that differ from me in an unfriendly way,
-as having a just sense of their harmony with us, especially a
-great part of them, in those doctrines that have a more immediate
-reference to our salvation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We shall now proceed to consider, that as there are some
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_228'>228</span>who appear to be grossly ignorant of the thing signified in baptism,
-who seem to engage in it, as though it were not a divine
-institution, concluding it to be little more than an external rite
-or form to be used in giving the child a name, being induced
-hereto rather by custom, than a sense of the obligation they are
-under, to give up their children to God by faith therein; so
-there are others who attribute too much to it, when they assert,
-that infants are hereby regenerated; and that if they die before
-they commit actual sin, they are undoubtedly saved, inasmuch
-as they are hereby made members of Christ, children of God,
-and heirs of the kingdom of heaven: This seems to be an
-ascribing that to the ordinance, which is rather expected or
-desired, than conferred thereby.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As for the child’s being signed with the sign of the cross,
-signifying hereby that he should not be ashamed to confess
-the faith of Christ crucified, but manfully to fight under his
-banner against sin, the world, and the devil; how much soever
-this may be a branch of that baptismal obligation, which he is
-professedly under; yet I cannot see what warrant persons have
-to make use of this external sign and symbol, which can be
-reckoned no other than an ordinance for their faith, though
-destitute of a divine institution.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There is also another thing practised by some in baptism,
-that is greatly abused, namely, the requiring that some should
-be appointed as sureties for the child, by whom it is personated;
-and they engage, in a solemn manner, in its behalf, that it shall
-fulfil the obligation that it is laid under, which is not only more
-than what is in their power to perform; but it is to be feared,
-that the greatest part of these sureties hardly think themselves
-obliged to shew any concern about them afterward. And that
-which is farther exceptionable in this matter, is that the parents,
-who are more immediately obliged to give up their children
-to God, seem to be, as it were, excluded from having any hand
-in this matter.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I have nothing to except against the first rise of this practice;
-which was in the second century, when the church was
-under persecution; and the design thereof was laudable and
-good, namely, that if the parents should die before the child
-came of age; whereby it would be in danger of being seized
-on by the Heathen, and trained up in their superstitious
-and idolatrous mode of worship, the sureties promised, that,
-in this case, they would deal with it as though it were their
-own child, and, bring it up in the Christian religion; which
-kind and pious concern for its welfare, might have been better
-expressed at some other time than in baptism, lest this should
-be thought an appendix to that ordinance: However, through
-the goodness of God, the children of believing parents are not
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_229'>229</span>reduced to those hazardous circumstances; and therefore the
-obligation to do this, is less needful; but to vow, and not perform,
-is not only useless to the child, but renders that only a
-matter of form, which they promise to do in this sacred ordinance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The only thing that I shall add under this answer, is, that
-if we have been baptized, either in our infancy, or when adult,
-we are obliged, in faithfulness, as we value our own souls, to
-improve it to the glory of God, and our spiritual welfare in the
-whole conduct of our lives. And this leads us to what is contained
-in the following answer.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLXVII.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXVII.</span> <i>How is baptism to be improved by us?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The needful, but much neglected duty of improving
-our baptism, is to be performed by us all our life long; especially
-in the time of temptation, and when we are present
-at the administration of it to others, by serious and thankful
-consideration of the nature of it, and of the ends for which
-Christ instituted it, the privileges and benefits conferred and
-sealed thereby, and our solemn vow made therein, by being
-humbled for our sinful defilement, our falling short of, and
-walking contrary to the grace of baptism and our engagements,
-by growing up to assurance of pardon of sin, and of
-all other blessings sealed to us in that sacrament, by drawing
-strength from the death and resurrection of Christ, into
-whom we are baptized, for the mortifying of sin, and quickening
-of grace, and by endeavouring to live by faith, to have
-our conversation in holiness and righteousness, as those that
-have therein given up their names to Christ, and to walk
-in brotherly love, as being baptized by the same Spirit, into
-one body.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>In this answer we may observe,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. That our baptism, together with the engagements which
-we are therein laid under to be the Lord’s, is to be improved
-by us; though this duty be too much neglected. That it ought
-to be improved is evident, inasmuch as it is an ordinance, or
-means of grace, for our attaining spiritual blessings; therefore
-we are not only guilty of a sinful neglect, but we lose the advantage
-that might be expected thereby, if we do not improve
-it so as to answer the valuable end thereof; and when we consider
-it as a professed dedication to God, as has been before
-observed, or a bond and obligation laid on us, to be entirely,
-and for ever, his, it cannot but be reckoned the highest affront
-offered to the divine Majesty, and a being unstedfast in his covenant,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_230'>230</span>for us practically to disown the engagement, or, in effect,
-to deny his right to us. Now, it is farther observed, that
-this duty is much neglected, and the reason hereof is,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Because many have very low thoughts of this ordinance,
-and understand not the spiritual intent or meaning thereof, nor
-what it is to improve it. These reckon it no more than an external
-rite, established by custom, and commonly observed in
-a Christian nation, without duly weighing the end and design
-for which it was instituted, or what is signified thereby.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. Others suppose, that there is nothing in it but a public
-declaration, that the person baptized is made a Christian, or
-has that character put upon him; but they know not what it
-is to be a Christian indeed, being utter strangers to the life
-and power of religion, and the spiritual blessings hoped for,
-or, through the grace of God, consequent upon our baptismal
-dedication.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. Others have, indeed, right apprehensions of the sign and
-the thing signified thereby, yet through the prevalency of corruption,
-and the pride and deceitfulness of their hearts, they
-do not fiducially give up themselves to God, nor desire the spiritual
-and saving blessings of the covenant of grace. These
-therefore do not improve their baptism; and, it is to be feared,
-that this is the condition and character of the greatest number
-of professors: Which leads us to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. How baptism is to be improved by us, and that in several
-cases,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. When we are present, at the administration of it to others.
-We are not, indeed, at that time, so immediately concerned
-in the ordinance, as the person who is publicly devoted
-to God therein. Nevertheless, we are not to behave ourselves
-as unconcerned spectators; and therefore,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) We are to join herein with suitable acts of faith and
-prayer, as the nature of the ordinance calls for them, and to
-adore the persons of the Godhead whose name and glory is
-mentioned therein. And we are to apply ourselves to God,
-for the grace of the covenant, that is signified thereby, that he
-would be our God, as well as the God of the person who is
-particularly given up to him in baptism. We are also to bewail
-the universal depravity of human nature, and that guilt
-which we bring with us into the world, which is signified in
-infant-baptism; and this, together with the habits of sin, which
-we have contracted, is confessed by those who are baptized
-when adult, which we cannot but see a great deal of, in our
-daily experience. We ought also to entertain becoming
-thoughts of the virtue of the blood of Christ, and of the power
-of the Holy Ghost, which alone can take away the guilt of
-sin, and render this ordinance effectual to salvation; which we
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_231'>231</span>are not only to desire with respect to the person baptized, but
-that we ourselves may be made partakers of that grace, which
-we equally stand in need of.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We ought to confess before God, with sorrow and
-shame, how defective we have been, as to the improvement of
-our baptismal engagements; so that, though we have been devoted
-to him, our hearts and affections have been very prone
-to depart from him; and we ought to adore and acknowledge
-the goodness and faithfulness of God, in that, though we have
-been unstedfast in his covenant, through the treachery and deceitfulness
-of our hearts; yet he has been ever mindful thereof,
-and made good the promises contained therein, to all his
-servants who have put their trust in him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. Our baptism is to be improved by us in the time of temptation,
-in order to our resisting it, and preventing our being entangled
-and overcome thereby.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) If the temptation takes its rise from the world, or we
-are thereby induced to lay aside, or be remiss in our duty to
-God, from the prosperous circumstances in which we are therein,
-we should consider, that in having been devoted to God in
-our infancy, or given up ourselves professedly to him, when adult,
-it has been intimated and acknowledged, that he is our
-portion, better to us than all we can enjoy in the world; and
-therefore we ought to acquiesce in him as such, and say, <i>Whom
-have I in heaven but thee; and there is none</i>, or nothing, <i>upon
-the earth that I desire besides thee</i>, Psal. lxxiii. 25.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, if we are tempted to be uneasy, and repine at the
-providence of God, by reason of the many evils that befal us
-in the world, we ought to consider, that when we were given
-up to God, this implied in it an obligation to be content to be
-at his disposal, and to be satisfied with whatever he allots for
-us, as not questioning the care and justice of his providence,
-in which we were under an indispensable obligation to acquiesce.
-Therefore when God tries us, by bringing us under various
-afflictions, our baptismal engagement obliges us to say,
-It is the Lord, let him do with us what seemeth good in his
-sight.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) If we are exposed to the temptations of Satan, or those
-inward suggestions, whereby sinful objects are presented to
-our thoughts, and a false gloss put upon them, to induce us to
-a compliance therewith, we are to improve our baptismal engagement,
-by considering that it contains a solemn acknowledgment
-of God’s right to us, exclusive of all others: therefore,
-we cannot but dread the thoughts of submitting to be vassals
-to Satan, which is, in effect, to disown that allegiance which
-we owe to God, and to say, that other lords shall have dominion
-over us. This will have a tendency to induce us to adhere
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_232'>232</span>stedfastly to God, as the result of our having been devoted
-to him in this ordinance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And if we are afraid of being ensnared by those wiles and
-methods of deceit, which Satan often makes use of, that are
-not always discerned by us, we are to consider ourselves as
-having been devoted to Christ; and, pursuant thereunto, if we
-have, in any instance, improved this solemn transaction, we
-have given up ourselves to him, in hope of being under his protection,
-and interested in his intercession, so that though we
-are <i>sifted as wheat</i>, our <i>faith</i> may <i>not fail</i>, Luke xxii. 31, 32.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, when we are assaulted, and, as it were, wounded
-with Satan’s fiery darts, whereby great discouragements are
-thrown in our way, the guilt of sin magnified, as though it
-were unpardonable, and the stain and pollution thereof such,
-as can never be washed away: And when we are ready to
-conclude from hence, that our state is hopeless, and the comforts
-we once enjoyed, irrecoverably lost; this is, indeed, an
-afflictive case. Nevertheless, our baptism is to be improved
-by us, as considering that remission of sins was the blessing
-desired and hoped for, inasmuch as it was signified thereby;
-so that we are to be sensible that the blood of Christ cleanseth
-from all sin; and that, as we were given up to him, in hope of
-obtaining this privilege, and have been enabled since then, to
-give up ourselves to him by faith, and therein to improve our
-baptismal engagement; we therefore trust, that he will appear
-for us, rebuke the adversary, establish our comforts, and enable
-us to walk as those, who desire to recommend his grace to others,
-that they may be encouraged to adhere to him, by the
-comfortable sense which we have of his love shed abroad in
-our hearts, by the Holy Ghost.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. Our baptismal engagement is to be improved by us, before
-and after we are brought into a converted state.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Unregenerate persons are to improve it, as it should
-afford them matter of deep humiliation, that though they have
-been devoted to God, and thereby were called by his name,
-and made partakers of the external blessings of his covenant;
-yet they have been alienated from the life of God, and strangers
-to the internal saving blessings thereof. There was a profession
-made, in baptism, that they stood in need of Christ’s mediation,
-to deliver them from the guilt of sin, and of being
-cleansed from the pollution thereof, which is of a spreading
-nature; but they have, notwithstanding, given way to it; and,
-how <i>pure</i> soever they have been <i>in their own eyes, are not yet
-washed from their filthiness</i>, Prov. xxx. 12. Now such may
-take occasion from hence to plead earnestly with God for converting
-grace; which is the only means whereby they may
-know that he has accepted of their solemn dedication to him;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_233'>233</span>or that they are not only born of water, but of the Spirit; and
-are made partakers of the thing signified in baptism, without
-which, the external sign will not afford any saving advantage.
-We may also plead with God, that as we are professedly his,
-he would assert his own right to us, overcome us to himself,
-and make us <i>willing in the day of his power</i>, Psal. cx. 3.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) Our baptismal engagement is constantly to be improved
-by us, if we are brought into a state of grace, in order to
-the growth and increase thereof; especially if we are sensible
-of great declension therein, or that it is not, in all respects with
-us, as it once was; if we are sensible of deadness and stupidity,
-in holy duties, and stand in need of being quickened, excited,
-and brought into a lively frame of spirit, or to be restored
-after great back-slidings; if we would have sin mortified,
-and the secret workings thereof in our heart subdued, we
-ought to consider, that having been <i>baptized into Jesus Christ</i>,
-we were <i>baptized into his death</i>; and that we are obliged hereby
-to <i>walk in newness of life</i>; therefore <i>sin should not reign in
-our mortal bodies</i>, Rom. vi. 3, 4, 12. And as we hope and trust,
-that we are made partakers of the saving blessings signified in
-this ordinance, we desire to improve the relation we stand in
-to Christ, as his people, as a matter of encouragement, that
-when we are oppressed, he will undertake for us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>If we are destitute of assurance of his love, and our interest
-in him, we are to improve the consideration of our being his,
-not only by professed dedication, but by a fiducial adherence
-to him; this will encourage us to hope that he will enable us
-to walk holily and comfortably before him, and lift up the light
-of his countenance upon us, as our reconciled God and Father.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, in the whole course of our conversation it will be of
-use, for the promoting the life of faith, which consists in an
-entire dependance on him, as those who are sensible that we
-can do nothing without him, to consider, that when we were
-first devoted to him, it was acknowledged, and from the time,
-wherein we have been enabled to give up ourselves to him by
-faith, we have been always sensible that we stand in need of
-daily supplies of grace from him, as all our springs are in him.
-Moreover, our baptismal engagement is to be improved, as it
-is an inducement to us to have our conversation in holiness
-and righteousness; whereby practical religion will be promoted
-in all its branches, when we consider that we are not our own,
-and therefore dare not think of living as we list, or serving divers
-lusts and pleasures, but that we are obliged to make his
-revealed will (whose we are, and whom we desire to serve,)
-the rule of all our actions.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And lastly, we ought to walk in brotherly love, as being <i>baptized
-by the Spirit into one body</i>, 1 Cor. xii. 13. They who are
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_234'>234</span>partakers of the saving blessings signified by baptism, have
-ground to conclude themselves members of Christ’s mystical
-body, or the invisible church, of which he is the head. This
-is a spiritual baptism, being the effect of divine power, and the
-special work of the Holy Ghost; and certainly this will be an
-inducement to all who are partakers thereof, to walk together
-in brotherly love, as those who are favoured with the same privileges,
-and hope to enjoy that complete blessedness, in which
-they, who are before devoted to Christ, shall be for ever with
-him. Thus concerning the ordinance of baptism.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And now we are led to speak concerning the sacrament of
-the Lord’s supper, which is considered either absolutely in itself,
-or as compared with baptism. And accordingly it is enquired;
-wherein they agree, or differ. In considering the nature
-of the Lord’s supper, it is farther enquired; how they,
-who are to partake of it, ought to prepare themselves for it before
-they engage therein? And there are also two cases of conscience
-answered; the one respecting those who are not satisfied
-concerning their meetness for it; the other respecting those
-who ought to be kept from it. We have also an account of
-the duties of communicants, while they are engaged in this ordinance;
-or those that are incumbent on them, after they have
-attended on it. These things are particularly insisted on in
-several following answers, which we are now led to consider.</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLXVIII., CLXIX., CLXX.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXVIII.</span> <i>What is the Lord’s Supper?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The Lord’s supper is a sacrament of the New Testament,
-wherein by giving and receiving bread and wine, according
-to the appointment of Jesus Christ, his death is shewed
-forth; and they that worthily communicate, feed upon
-his body and blood, to their spiritual nourishment and
-growth in grace, have their union and communion with him
-confirmed, testify and renew their thankfulness, and engagement
-to God, and their mutual love and fellowship each
-with other, as members of the same mystical body.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXIX.</span> <i>How hath Christ appointed bread and wine
-to be given and received in the sacrament of the Lord’s supper?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> Christ hath appointed the ministers of his word, in the
-administration of this sacrament of the Lord’s supper, to set
-apart the bread and wine from common use, by the word of
-institution, thanksgiving, and prayer, to take and break the
-bread, and to give both the bread, and the wine to the communicants,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_235'>235</span>who are, by the same appointment, to take, and
-eat the bread, and to drink the wine, in thankful remembrance,
-that the body of Christ was broken and given, and
-his blood shed for them.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXX.</span> <i>How do they that worthily communicate in
-the Lord’s supper, feed upon the body and blood of Christ
-therein?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> As the body and blood of Christ are not corporally or
-carnally present in, with, or under the bread and wine in the
-Lord’s supper, and yet are spiritually present to the faith of
-the receiver, no less truly and really than the elements themselves
-are to their outward senses; so they that worthily
-communicate in the sacrament of the Lord’s supper, do
-therein feed upon the body and blood of Christ, not after a
-corporal, or carnal, but in a spiritual manner, yet truly and
-really, while by faith they receive and apply unto themselves
-Christ crucified, and all the benefits of his death.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>There are several things contained in these answers, <i>viz.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. The general description of this ordinance, as it is called
-a sacrament of the New Testament; in which we shall be
-led to speak concerning the person by whom it was instituted
-in common with other ordinances; and that is our Lord Jesus
-Christ.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. We shall consider the persons by whom it is to be administered,
-namely, the ministers, or pastors of particular
-churches; inasmuch as it is an ordinance given only to those
-who are in church-communion.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>III. We have an account of the matter thereof, or the outward
-elements, to wit, bread and wine.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>IV. We shall consider the ministers act, antecedent to the
-church’s partaking of this ordinance, in setting apart the elements
-from a common to a sacred use; which is to be done
-by the word and prayer, joined with thanksgiving.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>V. We have an account of the actions, both of the minister
-and people; the one breaks the bread, and pours out the wine.
-In order to their being distributed among those who are to receive
-them; the other, to wit, the communicants, partake of
-them, and join with him in eating the bread, and drinking the
-wine.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>VI. We are to consider what is signified hereby, namely,
-the body and blood of Christ; which are not supposed to be
-corporally and carnally, but spiritually present to the faith of
-the receivers, upon which account they may be said to feed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_236'>236</span>upon the body and blood of Christ, and apply the benefits of
-his death to themselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>VII. We have an account of the persons who hope to enjoy
-these privileges, and partake of the Lord’s supper in a right
-manner; these are said worthily to communicate; as also the
-ends which they ought to have in view, namely, their spiritual
-nourishment, and growth in grace, their enjoying communion
-with Christ; and that love that they are obliged to express to
-each other, as members of the same mystical body.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. It is an ordinance of the New Testament, instituted by
-our Saviour. That it is an ordinance, is evident, in that it is
-founded on a divine command; as appears from the words of
-institution, in Matt. xxvi. 26, 27. <i>Take eat, this is my body;
-and he took the cup, and gave it to them, saying, Drink ye all
-of it</i>, &amp;c. And this is also intimated by the apostle, when,
-speaking particularly concerning it, as also the manner in
-which it is to be performed, he says, <i>I have received of the
-Lord, that which also I delivered unto you</i>, 1 Cor. xi. 23.
-Moreover, there is a blessing annexed to our partaking of it
-in a right manner; which may plainly be inferred from the apostle’s
-distinguishing those who receive it <i>worthily</i>, from others
-that receive it <i>unworthily</i>, or in an unbecoming manner;
-of whom the former are said to <i>come together for the better</i>,
-the latter <i>for the worse</i>, ver. 17. and to partake of the Lord’s
-supper for the better, is to partake of it for our spiritual advantage,
-which supposes, that there are some blessings annexed
-to it, which render it not only a duty, but an ordinance, or
-means of grace. And, that it is a gospel-ordinance of the
-New Testament, appears from the time of its being instituted
-by our Saviour, as well as the end and design thereof. It is
-particularly intimated, that Christ instituted this ordinance immediately
-before his last sufferings, as a memorial of his dying
-love. Thus the apostle says, <i>The same night in which he was
-betrayed, he took bread</i>, ver. 23. And that it was designed to
-continue as a standing ordinance in the church throughout all
-ages, appears from what he farther adds, <i>As often as ye eat
-this bread, and drink this cup, ye do shew the Lord’s death, till
-he come</i>, ver. 26.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The contrary to this is maintained by some modern enthusiasts,
-who deny it to be an ordinance, as they also do baptism;
-concluding that no ceremony, or significant sign, is consistent
-with the gospel-dispensation. And as for what the apostle
-says concerning our <i>shewing forth the Lord’s death till he come</i>,
-they suppose, that hereby is meant, till he comes by the effusion
-of the Spirit; and therefore, if it was an ordinance at
-first, it ceased to be so when the Spirit was poured forth on
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_237'>237</span>the church, in the beginning of the gospel-dispensation. To
-this it may be replied,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That ceremonial institutions are not inconsistent with the
-gospel-dispensation, inasmuch as they may not be designed to
-signify some benefits to be procured by Christ, as they did,
-which were instituted under the ceremonial law; but they may
-be considered as rememorative signs of the work of redemption,
-which has been brought to perfection by him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. When the apostle, in the scripture but now mentioned,
-says, that <i>we shew the Lord’s death till he come</i>, it cannot be
-meant concerning his coming in the plentiful effusion of the
-Spirit; inasmuch as this privilege was conferred on the church
-in the apostle’s days, at the same time, when he speaks of their
-shewing forth his death. Therefore, doubtless, he intends
-thereby Christ’s second coming, when this, and all other ordinances,
-which are now observed in the church, as adapted to
-the present imperfect state thereof, shall cease; we must therefore
-conclude from hence, that it was designed to be continued
-in the church in all ages, as it is at this day.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. We are to consider the persons by whom this ordinance
-is to be administered; and these are only such as are lawfully
-called, and set apart to the pastoral office, whose work is to
-feed the church, not only by the preaching of the word, but
-by the administration of the sacraments, which are ordinances
-for their faith, in which they are said to receive, and spiritually
-feed upon Christ and his benefits; upon which account God
-promises to <i>give his people pastors according to his own heart,
-who should feed them with knowledge and understanding</i>, Jer.
-iii. 15. Now that none but these are appointed to administer
-this ordinance, is evident in that they, who partake of it, are
-said to have communion with him, and with one another therein,
-for their mutual edification and spiritual advantage; therefore
-it doth not belong to mankind in general, but the church
-in particular. And, to prevent confusion therein, Christ has
-appointed one, or more proper officers in his churches, to
-whom the management of this work is committed; who are
-called hereunto, by the providence of God, and the consent and
-desire of the church, to whom they are to minister.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>III. We are now to consider the matter, or the outward elements
-to be used in the Lord’s supper; and these are bread
-and wine. Thus it is said, <i>Jesus took bread</i>, Matt. xxvi. 26.
-and <i>he also took the cup</i>; which, by a metonymy, is put for the
-wine: For, our Saviour referring to this action, speaks of his
-<i>drinking the fruit of the vine</i>, ver. 29. As for the bread that
-is to be used in this ordinance, there was a very warm debate
-between the Latin and Greek church concerning it; the former,
-as the Papists do at this day, concluding it absolutely necessary,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_238'>238</span>that it should be unleavened bread, inasmuch as that
-kind of bread was used by our Lord, when he first instituted
-it, which was at the time of the passover, when no leaven was
-to be found in their houses. And they make it also a significant
-sign of the sincerity and truth with which the Lord’s supper
-ought to be eaten; for which, they refer to what the apostle
-says, in 1 Cor. v. 8. <i>Let as keep the feast, not with old leaven,
-neither with the leaven of malice and wickedness; but with
-the unleavened bread of sincerity and truth.</i> But this seems
-only to be an allusion to the use of unleavened bread in the
-passover; which, it may be, might have a typical reference to
-that sincerity and truth with which all the ordinances of God
-are to be engaged in; but it does not sufficiently appear that
-he intends hereby that the bread used in the Lord’s supper
-should be of this kind, or, that it was designed to signify the
-frame of spirit with which this ordinance is to be celebrated.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>On the other hand, the Greek church thought that the bread
-ought to be leavened, according to our common practice at this
-day, it being the same that was used at other times. And this
-seems most eligible, as it puts a just difference between the
-bread used in the passover, which was a part of the ceremonial
-law, and a gospel-institution, that is distinct from it. But,
-I think, there is no need to debate either side of the question
-with too much warmth, it being a matter of no great importance.
-As for the wine that is to be used in this ordinance, it
-is a necessary part thereof; and therefore the Papists are guilty
-of sacrilege in withholding the cup from the common people<a id='r97' /><a href='#f97' class='c012'><sup>[97]</sup></a>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>IV. We are now to consider what the minister is to do, antecedent
-to the church’s partaking of the Lord’s supper: He
-is to set apart the outward elements of bread and wine from
-a common, to this particular holy use. Upon which account
-it may be said to be <i>sanctified by the word of God and prayer</i>,
-1 Tim. iv. 5. The words of institution contain an intimation
-that these elements are to be used in this ordinance, by Christ’s
-appointment; without which, no significant sign could be used
-in any religious matters. And, as for prayer, this is agreeable
-to Christ’s practice; for, he <i>took bread and blessed it</i>, or prayed
-for a blessing on it; and as the apostle expresses it; this
-was accompanied with thanksgiving, as he says; <i>When he had
-given thanks he brake it</i>, Matt. xxvi. 26. 1 Cor. xi. 24. which
-is agreeable to the nature and design of the ordinance, as herein
-we pray for the best of blessings, and express our thankfulness
-to him for the benefits of Christ’s redemption.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Here I cannot but observe how the Papists pervert this ordinance
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_239'>239</span>in the manner of consecrating the bread, which the
-priest does only by repeating these words in Latin; <i>This is my
-body</i>; and from thence they take occasion to advance the absurd
-doctrine of transubstantiation; and suppose, that, by these
-words pronounced, the bread is changed into the body and
-blood of Christ; which they assert, contrary to all sense and
-reason, as well as the end and design of the ordinance; and
-from hence it will follow, that man has a power to make the
-body and blood of Christ; and another consequence thereof,
-will be, that the human nature of Christ is omnipresent, which
-is inconsistent with a finite nature, and those properties that
-belong to it as such; from whence it is to be concluded, that
-it is no where else but in heaven; and it involves in it the greatest
-contradiction to suppose that it is bread, and having all the
-qualities thereof; and yet our senses must be so far imposed
-on, as that we must believe that it is not so, but Christ’s body.
-It also supposes, that Christ has as many bodies as there are
-wafers in the world; which is a monstrous absurdity. It likewise
-confounds the sign with the thing signified, and is very
-opposite to the sense of those words of scripture, <i>This is my
-body</i>; which implies no more, than that the bread, which is
-the same in itself, after the words of consecration, as it was before,
-is an external symbol of Christ’s body, that is, of the sufferings
-which he endured therein for his people.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>V. We are now to consider the actions both of the minister
-and the church, when engaged in this ordinance, <i>viz.</i> breaking,
-distributing, eating the bread, pouring forth, and drinking the
-wine, for the ends appointed by Christ, in instituting this ordinance.
-Whether our Saviour gave the bread and wine to
-every one of the disciples in particular, is not sufficiently determined
-by the words of institution: For, though Matthew
-and Mark say, <i>He gave the bread and the cup to the disciples</i>,
-Matt. xxvi. 26, 27. and Mark xiv. 22, 23. Yet Luke speaking
-either concerning the cup used in the passover, or that in
-the Lord’s supper, represents our Saviour as saying to his disciples,
-<i>Take this and divide it among yourselves</i>, Luke xxii. 17.
-which seems to intimate that he distributed it to one or more
-of them, to be conveyed to the rest, that they might divide it
-among themselves; which is agreeable to the practice of several
-of the reformed churches in our day, and seems most
-expedient in case the number of the communicants is very
-great, and the elements cannot be so conveniently given by the
-pastor into the hand of every one.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Here I may observe how the Papists pervert this part of the
-Lord’s supper; inasmuch as they will not permit the common
-people to touch the bread with their hands, lest they should
-defile it; but the priest puts it into their mouths; for which
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_240'>240</span>purpose it is made up into small, round wafers; and the people
-are ordered to take great care that they do not use their
-teeth in chewing it; for that would be, as it were, a crucifying
-Christ afresh, as offering a kind of violence to what they call
-his body. But these things are so very absurd and unscriptural,
-that they confute themselves. And their consecrating a
-wafer to be reserved in a case prepared for that purpose, and
-set upon the altar in the church, to be worshipped by all that
-come near it, savours of gross superstition and idolatry.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We may farther observe, that they deny the people the cup
-in this ordinance, but not the priests; for what reason, it is
-hard to determine. And, they mix the wine with water;
-which, though it does not seem to be agreeable to Christ’s institution,
-yet it was often practised by the ancient church, from
-whence they took it; and their making this a sacramental sign
-of Christ’s divine and human nature, united together in one
-person, is much more unwarrantable; nor can I approve of
-what others suppose, viz. that it signifies the blood and water
-that came out of his side when he was pierced on the cross.
-And, I can hardly think some Protestants altogether free from
-the charge of superstition, when they so tenaciously adhere to
-the use of red wine, as bearing some small resemblance to the
-colour of Christ’s blood; for which reason others chuse to bear
-their testimony against this ungrounded opinion, by the using
-of white wine, without supposing that any thing is signified by
-it more than by red; and others chuse to use one sort at one
-time, and another at another, to signify that this is an indifferent
-matter; and these, I think, are most in the right.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, the practice of the Papists, and some others, in
-receiving the Lord’s supper fasting, to the end that the consecrated
-bread may not be mixed with undigested food, is not
-only unwarrantable, but superstitious, as well as contrary to
-what we read concerning our Saviour and his apostles partaking
-of the Lord’s supper in the first institution thereof, immediately
-after having eaten the passover, and to what the apostle
-suggests, when he reproves the church at Corinth, for
-eating and drinking to excess immediately before they partook
-of the Lord’s supper; upon which occasion he advises them
-<i>to eat and drink</i> (though with moderation) <i>in their own houses</i>,
-1 Cor. xi. 21, 22.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, the administring the Lord’s supper privately, as the
-Papists and others do, to sick people, seems to be contrary to
-the design of its being a church-ordinance; and when, to give
-countenance to this practice, it is styled, as by the former of
-these, a viaticum, or means to convey the soul, if it should
-soon after depart out of the body, to heaven, they are much
-more remote from our Saviour’s design in instituting this ordinance;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_241'>241</span>neither do they rightly understand the sense of the
-scripture, from whence they infer the necessity thereof, <i>except
-ye eat the flesh of the Son of man, and drink his blood, ye have
-no life in you</i>, John vi. 53. when they apply it to this purpose.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There is another thing that must not be wholly passed over,
-viz. the various gestures used in receiving the Lord’s supper.
-The Papists not only receive it kneeling; but, they allege, that
-they ought to do so, as being obliged to adore the body and
-blood of Christ, which, as they absurdly suppose, is really present,
-inasmuch as the bread is transubstantiated, or turned into
-it. And the Lutherans, with equal absurdity assert, that
-the body of Christ, is really, though invisibly, present in the
-bread; which is what they call consubstantiation. Some other
-Protestants, indeed, plead for the receiving it kneeling, as supposing
-Christ to be spiritually, though not corporally, present
-therein; and therefore they do not worship the bread and wine,
-but our Saviour; which, they suppose, they ought to do with
-this becoming reverence.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>What I would take leave to say, in answer to this, is, that
-we humbly hope and trust, that Christ, according to his promise,
-is present with his people in all his ordinances; yet, it is
-not supposed that we are obliged to engage in every one of
-them kneeling. But that which determines the faith and practice
-of all other reformed churches, who do not use this gesture
-in the Lord’s supper, is, because it is contrary to the example
-of our Saviour and his apostles, when it was first celebrated;
-which ought to be a rule to the churches in all succeeding ages.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>If it be said, that this is a gesture most agreeable to prayer,
-or, at least, that sitting is not so. To this it may be replied,
-that it is not an ordinance principally or only designed for prayer;
-for, whatever prayers we put up to God therein, are short,
-ejaculatory, and mixed with other meditations, which may be
-performed with an awful reverence of the divine majesty, such
-as we ought to have in other acts of religious worship, though
-we do not use that gesture of kneeling. And besides, we think
-ourselves obliged to receive the Lord’s supper sitting, that being
-a table gesture in use among us, in like manner as that
-which our Saviour and his apostles used, was among the eastern
-nations.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As for the reformed Gallican churches, they receive it for
-the most part, standing; which, being a medium between both
-extremes, they suppose to be most eligible. But this not being
-a table-gesture, nor, in that respect, conformed to that
-which was used by our Saviour and his apostles, I cannot think
-it warrantable. Nevertheless, when the gesture of standing or
-sitting is made a significant sign as some do the former, of our
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_242'>242</span>being servants, ready to obey the will of Christ our great Lord
-and Master; or, as others explain it, as signifying our being
-travellers to the heavenly country; and the latter, <i>viz.</i> sitting,
-of our familiarity, or communion with Christ. These are rather
-the result of human invention, than founded on a divine
-institution, since we have not the least account in scripture, of
-these things being signified thereby. This leads us to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>VI. The thing signified in this ordinance, and in what respect
-Christ is said to be present therein, together with the
-benefits expected from him, as we are said to feed upon him
-by faith for our spiritual nourishment and growth in grace.
-I cannot but think that the general design hereof, is not much
-unlike to that which was ordained under the ceremonial law,
-in which, after the sacrifice was offered, part of it was reserved
-to be <i>eaten in the holy place</i>, Lev. vi. 16. which was a significant
-feast upon a sacrifice. In like manner, the Lord’s supper,
-which comes in the room of the passover, is ordained to
-be a feast on Christ’s sacrifice; so the apostle styles it, when
-he says, <i>Christ, our passover, is sacrificed for us: Therefore let
-us keep the feast</i>, &amp;c. 1 Cor. v. 7, 8. The fiducial application
-of Christ, and the benefits of his death, is the principal thing
-to be considered in this gospel-festival. However, there are
-some cautions necessary to be observed with respect to the
-things signified therein, as what may be useful to us that our
-faith may be exercised in a right manner. Therefore let it be
-considered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That though the Lord’s supper was instituted in commemoration
-of Christ’s love, expressed in his death, which
-was the last and most bitter part of his sufferings for our redemption.
-Yet he did not design hereby to exclude his other
-sufferings in life; nor, indeed, his whole course of obedience
-from his incarnation to his death; since it is very evident that
-the death of Christ is often considered in scripture, by a synecdoche,
-as denoting the whole course of obedience, both active
-and passive, which is the matter of our justification; and therefore
-is to be the object on which our faith is to be conversant
-in the Lord’s supper, as well as his sufferings in, or immediately
-before his death.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. When Christ’s sufferings upon the cross are said to be
-signified by the bread and wine; we are not to conclude that
-these sufferings are to be so distinctly or separately considered,
-as that the bread broken, is designed to signify the pains
-that he endured upon the cross, when his body was as it were
-broken, its tendons, nerves, and fibres snapped asunder, and
-his joints dislocated, by being stretched thereon; and the wine
-poured forth, to signify the shedding his blood when his hands
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_243'>243</span>and feet were pierced with the nails, and his side with the
-spear, as some suppose; since all these things are to be made
-the subjects of our affectionate meditation in every part of this
-ordinance, while we are taken up with the contemplation of his
-last sufferings. And this seems to give countenance to the
-practice of many of the reformed churches, in consecrating and
-distributing the bread and wine together; though it is true,
-many think, on the other hand, that the elements are to be separately
-consecrated, as well as distributed, it being most agreeable
-to what is said concerning Christ’s blessing the bread,
-and giving it to his disciples, and afterwards taking the cup,
-and giving it to them, Matt. xxvi. 26, 27. However, if this be
-allowed of, it is not necessary for us to infer from hence, that
-each of these elements are designed to signify some distinct
-parts of Christ’s sufferings on the cross, but only that the ordinance
-is to be still continued, the whole including in it two external
-and visible signs to be used, each of which signify the
-means whereby he procured our redemption; and, indeed,
-when the wine is poured forth, and set apart for another part
-of this ordinance, we are not so much to enter on a new subject
-in our meditation, though the sign be different from that
-of the bread, as to proceed in thinking on, and improving the
-love of Christ, in his <i>humbling himself, and becoming obedient
-unto death, even the death of the cross</i>, Phil. ii. 8. and all this
-is signified by this sign, as well as the other, neither of which
-are adapted to this end, otherwise than by divine appointment.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. We must take heed that we do not make more significant
-signs in the bread and wine than Christ has done; as some
-suppose, that almost every ingredient or action used in making
-them, is to be applied to signify some things that he has done
-or suffered for our redemption. It is a very great liberty that
-some take in expatiating on this subject, and applying it to this
-ordinance. We have a specimen hereof contained in an hymn,
-composed to be sung as a thanksgiving after the receiving the
-Lord’s supper<a id='r98' /><a href='#f98' class='c012'><sup>[98]</sup></a>; in which the corn, as first living and growing,
-and afterwards cut down, and by threshing, separated
-from the husk, and then ground in the mill, and baked in the
-oven, are all made significant signs of the sufferings and torments
-which our Saviour endured. And the corn being united
-in one loaf, is made a sign of the union between Christ and
-his church. In like manner the grapes being gathered, pressed,
-and made into wine, is supposed to signify our spiritual
-joy, arising from Christ’s shedding his blood. And, as many
-grapes make one vine, so believers should be united by faith
-and love. What lengths is it possible for the wit and fancy of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_244'>244</span>men to run, when they have a fruitful invention, and are disposed
-to make significant signs, and apply them to this ordinance
-without a divine warrant!</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. When we meditate on Christ’s sufferings, our faith is not
-to rest in, or principally be fixed on the grievousness of them,
-as Dr. Goodwin observes<a id='r99' /><a href='#f99' class='c012'><sup>[99]</sup></a>; so that we should only endeavour
-hereby to have our hearts moved to a relenting, and compassion
-expressed towards him, and indignation against the
-Jews that crucified him, together with an admiring of his noble
-and heroical love herein; so that if persons can get their
-hearts thus affected, they judge and account this to be grace;
-whereas, it is no more than what the like tragical story of some
-great and noble personage (full of heroical virtues and ingenuity;
-yet inhumanly and ungratefully used) doth ordinarily work
-in ingenuous spirits, who read or hear of it; which, when it
-reacheth no higher, it is so far from being faith, that it is but
-a carnal and fleshly devotion; and Christ himself, at his suffering,
-found fault with, as not being spiritual, when he says,
-<i>Daughters of Jerusalem weep not for me, but for yourselves
-and for your children</i>, Luke xxiii. 28. that is, not so much for
-this, when you see me thus unworthily handled by those for
-whom I die, as for yourselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, he farther adds, that it was not the malice of the
-Jews, the falseness of Judas, the fearfulness of Pilate, the iniquity
-of the times he fell into, that wrought our Saviour’s
-death; God the Father had an higher design herein: And this
-our faith is constantly to be conversant about, considering it
-as the result of an eternal agreement between the Father and
-the Son, and of that covenant which he came into the world
-to fulfil; and his being made sin for us, to take away our sins
-by the atonement which he made hereby. And, besides this,
-we may add, that the highest and most affecting consideration
-in Christ’s sufferings, ought to contain in it the idea of his being
-a divine person, which is the only thing that argued them
-sufficient to answer the great ends designed thereby, as it rendered
-them of infinite value; and it was upon this account that
-his condescension expressed herein, might truly be said to be
-infinite. These things, I say, we are principally to rest in,
-when we meditate on Christ’s sufferings in this ordinance;
-though the other, which are exceedingly moving and affecting
-in their kind, are not to be passed over; since the Holy Ghost
-has, for this end, given a particular account thereof in the gospels,
-not barely as an historical relation of what was done
-to him, but as a convincing evidence of the greatness of his
-love to us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_245'>245</span>Thus concerning Christ’s death, shewed forth or signified in
-this ordinance. We are farther, under this head, to consider
-how he is present, and they who engage in it aright feed on his
-body and blood by faith. We are not to suppose that Christ
-is present in a corporal way, so that we should be said to partake
-of his body in a literal sense; but he being a divine person,
-and consequently omnipresent; and having promised his presence
-with his church in all ages, and places, when met together
-in his name; in this respect he is present with them, in
-like manner as he is in other ordinances, to supply their wants,
-hear their prayers, and strengthen them against corruption and
-temptation, and remove their guilt by the application of his
-blood, which is presented as an object for their contemplation
-in a more peculiar manner in this ordinance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As for our feeding on, or being nourished by the body and
-blood of Christ, these are metaphorical expressions, taken from,
-and adapted to the nature and quality of the bread and wine
-by which it is signified; but that which we are to understand
-hereby, is, our graces being farther strengthened and established,
-and we enabled to exercise them with greater vigour and
-delight; and this derived from Christ, and particularly founded
-on his death. And, when we are said to feed upon him, in
-order hereunto, it denotes the application of what he has done
-and suffered, to ourselves; and, in order hereunto, we are to
-bring our sins, with all the guilt that attends them, as it were,
-to the foot of the cross of Christ, confess and humble our souls
-for them before him, and by faith plead the virtue of his death,
-in order to our obtaining forgiveness, and, at the same time,
-renew our dedication to him, while hoping and praying for the
-blessings and privileges of the covenant of grace, which were
-purchased by him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, there is another thing signified in this ordinance,
-as a farther end for which it was instituted, namely, in that we
-are to have communion with one another, and thereby express
-our mutual love, as members of Christ’s mystical body, who
-have the same end in view, and make use of the same means,
-<i>viz.</i> Christ crucified, as we attend on the same ordinance in
-which this is set forth, and having the same common necessities,
-infirmities and corruptions, and the same encouragements
-for our faith. Therefore we ought to sympathize with one
-another, and, by faith and prayer, be helpful to them, with
-whom we join in this ordinance, while we are representing
-our own case in common with theirs, before the Lord. This
-leads us to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>VII. What ought to be the qualifications of those who have
-a right to, and are obliged to partake of the Lord’s supper:
-These are expressed in general terms by the apostle, by <i>discerning
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_246'>246</span>the Lord’s body</i>, 1 Cor. xi. 29. Now this a person
-cannot do, who is ignorant of the design of his death; therefore
-there must be some degree of knowledge in those who are
-qualified for this ordinance. There must also be an afflictive
-sense of the weight and burden of the guilt of those sins which
-are daily committed by us, and an apprehension arising from
-thence, of our need of the merits of Christ, to take them away,
-and that his death is designed to answer this end. And, that
-this may be done for our real advantage, as we are said to feed
-on Christ by faith; it is supposed, that this grace is wrought in
-us, or, that we are effectually called out of a state of unregeneracy,
-to partake of gracious communion with Christ; whereby
-we may be said to be fitted to have fellowship with him in
-this ordinance, and so partake of it in a right manner, for our
-spiritual nourishment and growth in grace.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLXXI.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXI.</span> <i>How are they that receive the sacrament of
-the Lord’s supper, to prepare themselves before they come
-unto it?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> They that receive the sacrament of the Lord’s supper,
-are, before they come, to prepare themselves thereunto, by
-examining themselves, of their being in Christ, of their sins,
-and wants, of the truth and measure of their knowledge,
-faith, repentance, love to God and the brethren, charity to
-all men, forgiving those that have done them wrong, of
-their desires after Christ, and of their new obedience; and
-by renewing the exercise of these graces, by serious meditation,
-and fervent prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>The Lord’s supper being a sacred and solemn ordinance,
-it ought not to be engaged in without due preparation
-before-hand, in those who partake of it. The duties mentioned
-in this answer, which are preparatory for it, are self-examination,
-the renewing the exercise of those graces which
-are necessary to our partaking of it aright, serious meditation
-on the work we are going about, and fervent prayer for the
-presence and blessing of God therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. Concerning the duty of self-examination; in order hereunto,
-we must retire from the hurries and incumbrances of the
-world, that our minds may be disengaged from them, and not
-filled with distracting thoughts, which will be an hindrance to
-us in our enquiries into the state of our souls. We must also
-resolve to deal impartially with ourselves, and consider what
-really makes against us, as matter of sorrow, shame, and humiliation,
-as well as those things that are encouraging, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_247'>247</span>occasions of thanksgiving to God. We must also endeavour
-to be acquainted with the word of God, to which our actions
-and behaviour are to be applied; whereby we are to determine
-the goodness or badness of our state in general, or the frame
-of spirit in which we are, in particular.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Now there are several things, concerning which we are to
-examine ourselves before we come to the Lord’s supper.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Whether we are in Christ or no? since persons must be
-first in him before they can have spiritual communion with
-him. There are some things, which, if we find in ourselves,
-would give us ground to determine that we are not in Christ;
-particularly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>That man is not in Christ who is an utter stranger to his
-person, natures, offices, and the design of his coming into the
-world; together with the spiritual benefits purchased by his
-death. Neither is he in Christ, who never saw his need of
-him, or that there is no hope of salvation without him. Again,
-he is not in Christ, who obstinately refuses to submit to his
-government, lives in a wilful contempt of his laws, resolutely
-persists in the commission of known sins, or in the total neglect
-of known duties. Again, he is not in Christ, who is
-ashamed of his doctrine, his gospel, his cross, which a true
-believer counts his glory; as the apostle says, <i>God forbid that
-I should glory, save in the cross of Jesus Christ</i>, Gal. vi. 14.
-He must also be reckoned out of Christ, who is stupid and
-presumptuous; and, though, probably, he may hope to be saved
-by him, yet desires not to have communion with him, but expects
-to be made partaker of his benefits without faith; or if
-he pretends to have faith, it is only an assent to some truths,
-without being accompanied with repentance, and other graces
-which are inseparably connected with that faith which is
-saving.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But, on the other hand, we may know that we are in Christ,
-if we can truly say,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) That we have received a new nature from him, from
-whence proceed renewed actions, which discover themselves in
-the whole course of our lives; <i>If any man be in Christ, he is a
-new creature: Old things are passed away, behold, all things
-are become new</i>, 2 Cor. v. 17.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We must enquire, whether we endeavour constantly to
-adhere to his revealed will, not barely as the result of some
-sudden conviction; but as making it the main business of life,
-to approve ourselves to him in well doing, as our Saviour says,
-<i>If ye continue in my word, then ye are my disciples indeed</i>,
-John viii. 31.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) Converse with Christ in ordinance, is another evidence
-of our being in him: For, as a man is said to be known by the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_248'>248</span>company he keeps, or delights to be in; so a true Christian is
-known, as the apostle says, by his <i>having fellowship with the
-Father, and with his son Jesus Christ</i>, 1 John i. 3.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) We must enquire, whether we have a great concern for
-the glory and interest in our own souls, and an earnest desire
-that his name may be known and magnified in the world; and
-this accompanied with our using the utmost endeavours in
-our various stations and capacities in order thereunto?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. The next thing that we are to examine ourselves about,
-before we come to the Lord’s supper, is, what sense we have
-of sin? whether we are truly humbled for, and desirous to be
-delivered from it? It is not sufficient for us to take a general
-view of ourselves as sinners, in common with the rest of mankind,
-without being duly affected with it; but we must consider
-the various aggravations of sin, with a particular application
-thereof to ourselves; and how much we have exceeded many
-others therein, either before or since we were called by the
-grace of God, by which means we may take occasion to say,
-as the apostle does concerning himself, that we are <i>the chief of
-sinners</i>, 1 Tim. i. 15. and a sense of the guilt hereof, when
-duly considered, will give us occasion to lie very low at the
-foot of God. We are also to take notice of our natural propensity
-and inclination to sin, and the various ways by which
-this has discovered itself in our actions; and accordingly we
-are to enquire,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Whether we have sinned knowingly, wilfully, presumptuously,
-and obstinately? or, whether we have been surprised
-into it, or ensnared by some sudden unforeseen temptation,
-and committed it without the full bent of our wills? whether
-we have striven against it, or given way to it, and suffered ourselves
-to be prevailed upon without making resistance?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We must enquire, whether we have continued in sin,
-or unfeignedly repented of it? whether sin sits light or heavy
-on our consciences? or, if our consciences are burdened with
-it, whether we seek relief against it in that way which Christ
-has prescribed in the gospel?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) We must enquire, whether there are not some sins that
-more frequently and easily beset us? what they are, and whether
-we are daily watchful against them, and use our utmost
-endeavours to avoid them?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) We must also enquire, whether we have not frequently
-relapsed into the same sin which we have resolved against at
-various times, and, in particular, at the Lord’s table, and hereby
-broke our engagements; and if so, whether we did not rely
-too much on our own strength, when we made those resolutions
-against sin?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(5.) We are to enquire, whether sin gets ground upon us,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_249'>249</span>whereby grace is weakened? or, whether, though we commit
-it, we find its strength abated, and we enabled, in some measure,
-to mortify it, though we do not wholly abstain from it? as
-the apostle says, <i>That which I do, I allow not; but what I hate,
-that do I</i>, Rom. vii. 15.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(6.) We are also to enquire, whether our sins have not carried
-in them a great neglect of Christ, his blood, his grace, his
-benefits, as not thinking of them, admiring or prizing them
-above all things, nor laying hold on them by faith, and so not
-making a right use of his dying love, which is signified in the
-Lord’s supper.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. We are to examine ourselves, before we come to the
-Lord’s table, what particular wants we have to be supplied.
-Our Saviour is to be considered in this ordinance, not only as
-signified by the external elements; but as present with his
-people when met together in his name, with earnest expectation
-of enjoying communion with him: And, as he is appointed
-to apply, as well as purchase redemption for us, we must consider
-him as having his hands full of spiritual blessings, to impart
-to his necessitous people, who come to him for them:
-Therefore they ought before they go, to enquire, not only, as
-has been before observed, what are their sins which are to be
-confessed and bewailed before him, but what it is more especially,
-that they stand in need of from him? The question that
-Christ will ask them, when they come there, is, what is thy
-petition, and what is thy request? what are those wants which
-thou desirest a supply of? Accordingly, we are before-hand
-to enquire, whether, though we have some little hope that we
-have experienced the grace of God in truth, yet we do not want
-a full assurance of our interest in Christ, <i>that we may know
-that we have eternal life</i>, 1 John v. 13. together with the joy
-of faith accompanying the actings thereof? and, whether we
-do not want enlargement of heart, and raised affections in holy
-duties? which the Psalmist seems to intend, when he says,
-<i>Bring my soul out of prison, that I may praise thy name</i>, Psal.
-cxlii. 7.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, whether we do not want many experiences, which
-we have formerly had, of the grace of God, and his special
-presence in holy duties; or have not occasion to say with Job,
-<i>O that it were as in months past, as in the days when God preserved
-me: When his candle shined upon my head, and, by his
-light I walked through darkness</i>, Job xxix. 2, 3. Moreover,
-we are to enquire, whether we do not want a greater degree of
-establishment in the great doctrines of the gospel; or to be
-kept steady in a time of temptation? and, whether we do not
-want a greater degree of zeal for the honour of God, in a day
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_250'>250</span>in which many professors are lukewarm? as our Saviour observes
-concerning the church of Laodicea, <i>That they were
-neither cold nor hot</i>, Rev. iii. 15. or, whether we do not want
-together with this zeal, a compassion to the souls of others,
-who make shipwreck of faith, not having a good conscience,
-which may induce us, as the apostle says, <i>In meekness to instruct
-those that oppose themselves, if God peradventure will
-give them repentance to the acknowledging of the truth?</i> 2 Tim.
-ii. 25. and, whether we are duly affected with the degeneracy
-of the age wherein we live, and are not too negligent in bearing
-our testimony against the errors advanced therein? or,
-whether we understand the meaning of those various dispensations
-of providence, which we are under, and what is our
-present duty in compliance therewith? These things are of a
-more general nature, and to be made the subject of our enquiry,
-whenever we draw nigh to Christ in any ordinance in which
-we hope for a supply of our wants.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But there are other things which we ought to have a more
-particular regard to in our enquiries, when we are to engage
-in the ordinance of the Lord’s supper.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) In order to our partaking of it aright, we are to enquire,
-whether we do not want a clear and distinct apprehension of
-the covenant of grace, and the seals thereof, and how we are
-to act faith in a way of self-dedication, and how we ought to
-renew our covenant engagements with God, which we are
-more especially called to do therein?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) Whether we do not want a broken heart, suitably affected
-with the dying love of Jesus Christ, which is signified
-therein, that we may <i>look on him who was pierced, and mourn</i>,
-Zech. xii. 10.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) Whether we do not want to be led into the true way
-of improving Christ crucified, to answer all those accusations
-that are brought in against us, either by Satan or our own consciences,
-and how this is an expedient for the taking away the
-guilt and power of sin?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) Whether we do not want to be made more like to
-Christ, and conformed to his death, that, while we behold him
-represented as dying for us, we may <i>reckon ourselves as dead to
-sin</i>, and to the world; and <i>that our old man is crucified with
-him, that the body of sin might be destroyed, that henceforth we
-should not serve sin</i>? Rom. vi. 6. 10.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(5.) Whether we do not want an abiding impression of the
-love of Christ, and a greater stedfastness in our resolution, to
-adhere to him; that so, whatever grace we may be enabled to
-act, by strength derived from him, may be maintained and exercised,
-not only at that time, but when we are more immediately
-engaged in that ordinance?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_251'>251</span>These things we are to examine ourselves concerning, that
-we may spread our wants before the Lord at his table. And
-to induce us hereunto, we may consider, that our corrupt nature
-is very prone to think ourselves better than we really are;
-so that, how indigent and distressed soever we may be, we are
-ready to conclude, with the church of the Laodiceans, that <i>we
-are rich and increased with goods, and have need of nothing</i>,
-Rev. iii. 17.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, if we are not truly sensible of our necessities,
-we shall not value Christ’s fulness, or the rich provisions he
-has made for his people, and is pleased to dispense in this ordinance;
-as it is said, <i>The whole need not a physician, but they
-that are sick</i>, Matt. ix. 12. and we must consider, that a great
-part of our work therein, consists in ejaculatory prayer, which
-we shall not be able to put up in a right manner, if we are not
-sensible of our wants; and one reason why we are so often at
-a loss in prayer, or go out of the presence of God empty, is,
-because our hearts are not enlarged therein, which they cannot
-be, unless we are affected with a sense of our necessities.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Now, to encourage us to examine ourselves concerning them,
-before we partake of the Lord’s supper, let us consider that
-Christ invites us to draw nigh to him therein; that he may
-take occasion to communicate the blessings of his redemption,
-which are signified thereby; that he may supply our wants, satisfy
-our desires, surmount our difficulties, and apply to us the
-great and precious promises of the covenant of grace, which
-are to be sought for at his hands, by faith and prayer, which
-supposes the performance of this duty of self-examination, with
-respect to the blessings that we stand in need of from him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. We are, before we partake of the Lord’s supper, to examine
-ourselves concerning the truth and measure of our knowledge
-in divine things; inasmuch as without the knowledge
-hereof, the heart cannot be good, nor any spiritual duty engaged
-in, in a right manner. As for a perfect comprehensive
-knowledge of divine truths, that is not to be expected, by reason
-of the weakness of our capacities, and the imperfection of
-this present state; wherein, as the apostle says, <i>we see</i> but
-<i>through a glass darkly</i>, or, as it is said elsewhere, <i>We are but
-of yesterday, and know</i>, comparatively, <i>nothing</i>, Job viii. 9.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>However, there is a degree of knowledge, which is not only
-attainable, but necessary to our right engaging in this ordinance;
-and this does not consist barely in our knowing that
-there is a God, or that he is to be worshipped, or that there
-was such a person as our Saviour, who lived in the world, was
-crucified, rose again from the dead, ascended into heaven, and
-shall come again to judge the quick and the dead: For a person
-may have a general notion of all these things, and yet be
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_252'>252</span>unacquainted with the end and design of Christ’s death, and
-the blessings and privileges of the covenant of grace, which
-he procured thereby, or with the claim that a person may lay
-by faith, to them; without which, there is not a sufficient
-knowledge, such as the apostle calls <i>a discerning the Lord’s
-body</i>, 1 Cor. xi. 29. which we ought to do in this ordinance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Now, that knowledge of divine truths, which ought not
-only to be pressed after, but, we are to examine ourselves,
-whether we have, in some measure attained to, respects,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) The person of Christ, as God-man, Mediator, and the
-offices which he executes as such; and more particularly, the
-manner and end of his executing his priestly office, in which
-he offered himself as a sacrifice for sin, which we are more
-especially to commemorate in this ordinance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We must have an affecting sense or knowledge of the
-guilt of sin; and, as a relief against it, must be acquainted
-with the doctrine of the free grace of God, displayed in the
-gospel, and founded in the blood of Jesus, whereby sin is
-pardoned. We are also to be fully convinced of the almighty
-power of the Holy Ghost, whereby alone it can be subdued,
-and of the method he takes therein to make the redemption
-purchased by Christ, effectual to answer that end.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) We are to endeavour, in some measure, to know God
-as our Father, and covenant-God in Christ, who bestows on
-his people the rich and splendid entertainment of his house,
-and satisfies them with the abundance of his goodness, pursuant
-to what Christ has purchased. And we must also know
-what it is to deal with him as those who see themselves obliged
-herein to devote themselves to him as their God; and what
-large expectations they may have from him, whom he has
-avouched to be his peculiar people; and how this is a foundation
-of that humble boldness with which they are encouraged
-to come <i>unto the throne of grace, that they may obtain mercy,
-and find grace to help in time of need</i>, Heb. iv. 16.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, we are not only to enquire, whether we are apprehensive
-of the excellency, glory, and suitableness of those
-great things, that are revealed in the gospel, to answer our
-particular exigencies, and render us happy in the enjoyment of
-God; but whether the knowledge hereof makes a due impression
-on our hearts, is of a transforming nature, and has a tendency
-to regulate the conduct of our lives, and put us on the
-application of these great things to ourselves?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to the degree of our knowledge we must enquire, whether
-it be only a single apprehension that the doctrines of the
-gospel are true, or, at most, contains in it some general ideas
-of their being excellent and worthy of the highest esteem; but
-whether we can prove them to be true, and render a reason of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_253'>253</span>our faith, without which, it may, indeed, be rightly placed as
-to its object? But it cannot be said to be deeply rooted; and
-therefore it is exposed to greater danger of being foiled,
-weakened, or overthrown by temptation. We must also enquire,
-whether we grow in knowledge in proportion to those
-opportunities or means of grace that we are favoured with,
-which the apostle calls <i>growing in grace, and in the knowledge
-of our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ</i>, 2 Pet. iii. 18.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>5. We are to examine ourselves concerning the truth and
-degree of our faith, and other graces that are inseparably connected
-with it. As for faith, we are to enquire, whether it
-be a living, or what the apostle calls a <i>dead faith</i>, James ii.
-17, 18. as being alone, and destitute of those good works
-which ought to proceed from it? Whether it only contains in
-it an assent to the truth of divine revelation; or, whether it
-puts us upon a closure with Christ, embracing him in all his
-offices, and trusting in him for all those benefits which he has
-purchased by his blood? We must also enquire, what fruits or
-effects it produces, and what other graces accompany or flow
-from it? Whether it inclines us to set the highest value on
-Christ, as being in our esteem, altogether lovely; and gives
-us low thoughts of ourselves, as having nothing but what we
-depend on him for, or derive from him? Whether it be attended
-with some degree of holiness in heart and life, as the
-apostle speaks of the <i>heart’s being purified by faith</i>, Acts xv.
-9. Again, whether it be such a faith as <i>overcomes the world</i>,
-1 John v. 14. and prevents our being easily turned aside from
-God, by the snares that we may meet with in it? Whether we
-are inclined hereby, to confess ourselves to be <i>strangers and
-pilgrims on the earth</i>, Heb. xi. 13. and <i>desire a better country</i>,
-ver. 16.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There are many other fruits and effects of faith, which the
-apostle mentions in Heb. xi. by which we may examine ourselves
-concerning the truth and sincerity of this grace; and
-there are several graces mentioned in this answer, which are
-connected with faith, concerning which, we must enquire, whether
-they are found in us, particularly repentance, which must
-of necessity be exercised in this ordinance as well as faith;
-inasmuch as by the one, we behold Christ’s glory, and, by the
-other, we take a view of sins deformity? And it is such a repentance,
-as inclines us not only to hate sin, but forsake and
-turn from it, as seeing the detestable and odious nature of it,
-in what Christ endured to make satisfaction for it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But since faith and repentance have been particularly considered
-under a foregoing answer, together with the nature, properties,
-and effects thereof<a id='r100' /><a href='#f100' class='c012'><sup>[100]</sup></a>; we shall pass them over, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_254'>254</span>consider the graces of love to God, desire after Christ, and
-our using endeavours to approve ourselves his servants and
-subjects, by constant acts of obedience to him: These things
-are to be the subject-matter of our enquiry, before we engage
-in this ordinance. It is very suitable to the occasion, to enquire,
-whether we love Christ or no; inasmuch as we are to
-behold and be affected with the most amazing instance of love,
-which he has expressed to us; Let us therefore enquire, whether
-our love to him be superlative, far exceeding that which
-we bear to all creatures, how valuable soever they may be to
-us, how nearly soever we may be related to them, or whatever
-engagements we may be laid under to esteem and value
-them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We may also try the sincerity of our love to God, by enquiring,
-whether it puts us on performing the most difficult duties
-for his sake, with the greatest cheerfulness? And, whether
-we are hereby encouraged to bear the most afflictive evils with
-patience; because it is his pleasure that we should be exercised
-therewith, 1 Sam. iii. 18. Let us also enquire, whether
-we love him with all our heart, or, whether our love is divided
-betwixt him and the creature, whereby our affections are often
-drawn aside from him? And, whether it puts us upon improving
-our time, strength, and all our other talents to his
-glory? Whether we have no interest separate from his, which
-we cannot but prefer to our chief joy? whether this be the
-very end of living? As the apostle says, <i>For me to live is
-Christ</i>, Phil. i. 21. and, whether we are earnestly desirous to
-bring others to him, not only by recommending his glory to
-them in words; but by expressing the esteem and value we
-have for him, in the whole course of our conversation? Whether
-we are hereby inclined to hate every thing that he hates;
-as the Psalmist says, <i>Ye that love the Lord hate evil</i>, Psal.
-xcviii. 10. and whether we make those things the object of our
-choice that he delights in?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, we are to enquire, whether we have had any
-communion with him in ordinances, and particularly in this
-ordinance at other times? And when he is pleased to withhold
-this privilege from us in any degree, that hereby we may
-see that all our comforts flow from him; or, when he has a
-design to humble us for those sins that provoke him to depart
-from us, whether we are earnestly desirous of his return, and
-cannot be satisfied with any thing short of him?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As for our desires after Christ, which we are farther to examine
-ourselves about, we must enquire, whether, that, which
-moves or inclines us to desire him, be the view we have of the
-glory of his person, and the delight that arises from our contemplating
-his divine excellencies; or whether we desire him,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_255'>255</span>only for the sake of his benefits, or, that he might deliver us
-from the wrath to come? Whether we desire Christ only when
-his service is attended with the esteem of men, or, as a means
-to gain some worldly advantage from them? Or, whether we
-desire to adhere to him, when we are called to suffer reproach,
-or even the loss of all things for his sake; which will be a
-convincing evidence of the sincerity of our desires after, and,
-consequently, of our love to him?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, we are farther to enquire, whether our love to Christ,
-and desire after him, discovers itself by renewed acts of obedience
-to him; particularly, whether our obedience be universal
-or partial, constant or wavering, performed with delight
-and pleasure or with some reluctancy? And, whether it puts
-us upon universal holiness, as being induced hereunto by
-gospel-motives? Thus concerning our examining ourselves
-about our faith, repentance, love to Christ, desire after him,
-and our endeavour to yield obedience to him in all things.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The next thing we are to examine ourselves concerning, is,
-whether we have such a love to the brethren, and charity to
-all men, whereby we are disposed to exercise forgiveness to
-those that have done us any injuries? The Lord’s-supper being
-an ordinance of mutual fellowship, we are obliged to behave
-ourselves towards one another as members of the same
-body, subjects of the same Lord, engaged in the same religious
-exercise; and consequently, are obliged to love one
-another, whereby it will appear, that we are Christ’s disciples,
-John xiii. 35. This love consists in our desiring and endeavouring
-to promote the spiritual interest of each other, to the end
-that Christ herein may be glorified; and it includes in it that
-charity that casts a veil over their failures and defects, and our
-forgiving those injuries which they have, at anytime, done to
-us. This frame of spirit is certainly becoming the nature of
-the ordinance, in which we hope to be made partakers of the
-fruits and effects of Christ’s love, and to obtain forgiveness
-from him, of all the injuries we have done against him; therefore
-it is very necessary for us to enquire,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] Concerning our love to the brethren, whether it be such
-as is a distinguishing character of those who are Christ’s
-friends and followers; or which, as the apostle expresses it,
-will afford an evidence to us, that we are <i>passed from death to
-life</i>, 1 John iii. 14. And, in order to our discovering this, let
-us examine ourselves, whether we love the brethren, because
-we behold the image of God in them? Which is, in effect, to
-love and <i>glorify God in them</i>, Gal. i. 24. Again, whether our
-love to men leads us to desire and endeavour to be reckoned a
-common good to all, according to the utmost of our ability?
-As it is said of Mordecai, that <i>he was accepted of the multitude
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_256'>256</span>of his brethren, seeking the wealth of his people, and
-speaking peace to all his seed</i>, Esther x. 8.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, we are to enquire, whether our love be more especially
-to the souls of men, as well as their outward concerns?
-This consists in our using all suitable endeavours to bring them
-under conviction of sin, by faithful and well-timed reproofs;
-the contrary to which, or our refusing to rebuke our <i>neighbour
-or brother</i>, and thereby <i>suffering sin upon him</i>, is reckoned no
-other than an <i>hating</i> of him, Lev. xix. 17. We are also to
-express our love to the souls of men, by endeavouring to persuade
-them to believe in Christ, if they are in an unconverted
-state, or to walk as becomes his gospel, if they have been
-made partakers of the grace thereof: Thus the apostle expresses
-his love to those to whom he writes, when he says,
-<i>I travail in birth again till Christ be formed in you</i>, Gal. iv. 19.
-and elsewhere, he signifies to another of the churches, how
-<i>affectionately desirous</i> he was <i>of them</i>; which made him <i>willing,
-not only to impart the gospel of God, but his own soul;
-because they were dear unto him</i>, 1 Thes. ii. 8.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, we must enquire, whether our love puts us upon
-choosing such to be our associates that truly fear the Lord;
-whom we count, as the Psalmist expresses it, <i>The excellent,
-in whom is all our delight</i>? Psal. xvi. 3. and, on the other
-hand, whether we avoid the society of, or intimacy with, those
-that are Christ’s open enemies; the contrary to which, good
-Jehoshaphat was reproved for by the prophet, when he says,
-<i>Shouldest thou help the ungodly, and love them that hate the
-Lord?</i> 2 Chron. xix. 2. Again, let us enquire, whether our
-love to men is then expressed when it is most needed? As it
-is said, <i>A friend loveth at all times, and a brother is born for
-adversity</i>, Prov. xvii. 17. Again, whether we are inclined to
-all those acts of charity which covereth a multitude of faults?
-As the apostle describes it, that it <i>suffereth long, and is kind;
-envieth not; vaunteth not itself; is not puffed up; doth not behave
-itself unseemly; seeketh not her own, is not easily provoked,
-thinketh no evil, rejoiceth not in iniquity, but rejoiceth in the
-truth: Beareth all things, believeth all things, hopeth all things,
-and endureth all things</i>, 1 Cor. xiii. 4,-8.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] We are to enquire, whether our love to men be expressed
-in forgiving injuries; which is a frame of spirit absolutely
-necessary for our engaging in any ordinance; as our Saviour
-says, <i>If thou bring thy gift to the altar, and there rememberest
-that thy brother hath ought against thee</i>, Matt. v. 23, 24. that
-is, if there be a misunderstanding between you, whoever be the
-aggressor, or gave the first occasion for it, <i>leave there thy gift
-before the altar, and go thy way, first be reconciled to thy brother</i>;
-that is, do whatever is in thy power in order thereunto,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_257'>257</span>and <i>then come and offer thy gift</i>. And this is more necessary
-when we engage in this ordinance, in which we hope to obtain
-forgiveness of the many offences which we have committed against
-God; and accordingly the apostle says, <i>Let us keep the
-feast, not with old leaven, neither with the leaven of malice and
-wickedness, but with the unleavened bread of sincerity and
-truth</i>, 1 Cor. v. 8. It is no difficult matter for us to know whether
-we are disposed to forgive those who have injured us;
-therefore the principal thing we are to examine ourselves about,
-is, whether we do this with a right frame of spirit, as considering
-how prone we are to do those things ourselves, which
-may render it necessary for us to be forgiven, both by God
-and man? and whether, as the consequence hereof, though we
-were before this, inclined to over-look those graces which are
-discernable in them; yet now we can love them as brethren,
-and glorify God for what they have experienced, and be earnestly
-solicitous for their salvation as well as our own? Thus
-concerning the first duty mentioned in this answer, <i>viz.</i> our
-examining ourselves before we engage in this ordinance. We
-now proceed to consider some other duties mentioned therein,
-<i>viz.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. The renewing the exercise of those graces, which are
-necessary to our right engaging in it, whereby the sincerity
-and truth thereof may be discerned: Therefore, since faith,
-repentance, and several other graces, ought to be exercised in
-this ordinance, it is necessary for us to give a specimen thereof,
-before we engage in it. As the artificer first tries the instrument
-he is to make use of in some curious work before he uses
-it, so the truth and sincerity of our faith is to be tried before
-it be exercised in this ordinance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There is another duty preparatory to the Lord’s Supper,
-mentioned in this answer, <i>viz.</i> serious meditation, that so we
-may not engage in it without considering the greatness of the
-Majesty with whom we have to do, together with our own
-vileness and unworthiness to approach his presence: We must
-also consider his power, wisdom, and goodness, to encourage
-us to hope for those supplies of grace from him, which we
-stand in need of; and we are to have an awful sense of his
-omnipresence and omniscience, as he is an heart-searching God,
-to excite in us an holy reverence, and prevent the wandering
-of our thoughts and affections from him, or any unbecoming
-behaviour in his presence; and, more particularly we are to
-consider, before-hand, the end and design of Christ’s instituting
-this ordinance, <i>viz.</i> that his dying love to sinners might
-be signified and shewed forth, as an encouragement to our faith,
-and an inducement to thanksgiving and praise, as the nature of
-the thing calls for it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_258'>258</span>After all this it is farther observed, that we are to endeavor
-to prepare for this ordinance by fervent prayer, as being
-sensible, that when we have done our best, we shall be too
-much unprepared for it, unless we have the special assistance
-of God, when engaging in it; to which I may apply Hezekiah’s
-words, <i>The good Lord pardon every one that prepareth his
-heart to seek God, the Lord God of his father; though he be
-not cleansed according to the cleansing of the sanctuary</i>, 2
-Chron. xxx. 18, 19. And we are to be earnest with him, that
-he would give us a believing view of Christ crucified, and especially
-of our interest in him; that we may be able to say as
-the apostle does, <i>He loved me, and gave himself for me</i>, Gal. ii.
-20. and that he would apply to us those blessings which he has
-purchased by his death, which we desire to wait upon him for,
-when engaging in this ordinance, that our drawing nigh to
-him therein may redound to his glory and our spiritual advantage.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLXXII., CLXXIII.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXII.</span> <i>May one who doubteth of his being in
-Christ, and of his due preparation, come to the Lord’s
-Supper?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> One who doubteth of his being in Christ, or of his due
-preparation to the sacrament of the Lord’s Supper, may
-have true interest in Christ, though he be not assured thereof;
-and in God’s account, hath it, if he be duly affected
-with the apprehension of the want of it, and unfeignedly desires
-to be found in Christ, and to depart from iniquity, in
-which case (because promises are made, and this sacrament
-is appointed for the relief even of weak and doubting Christians,)
-he is to bewail his unbelief; and labour to have his
-doubts resolved, and so doing, he may, and ought to come
-to the Lord’s Supper, that he may be farther strengthened.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXIII.</span> <i>May any who profess the faith, and desire
-to come to the Lord’s Supper, be kept from it?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> Such as are found to be ignorant, or scandalous, notwithstanding
-their profession of the faith, and desire to
-come to the Lord’s Supper, may, and ought to be kept from
-that sacrament by the power which Christ hath left in his
-church, until they receive instruction, and manifest their reformation.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>In these answers we have an account of those who are the
-subjects of this ordinance and ought to partake of it, or of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_259'>259</span>those who must be kept from it: the former respects, more especially
-doubting Christians, who desire to receive satisfaction,
-whether they ought to engage in it or no; the latter respects
-those who are ready to presume that they are qualified for it,
-and ought to partake of it; though, indeed, they are to be excluded
-from it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. As to the case of one who doubteth of his being in Christ,
-and duly prepared for the Lord’s Supper: Here are several
-things that may afford matter of encouragement to him; and
-accordingly it is observed,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That though this be a matter of doubt to him, as being
-destitute of assurance of his being in Christ; yet he may be
-mistaken in the judgment which he passes concerning himself:
-since assurance, as has been before observed, is not of the essence
-of saving faith<a id='r101' /><a href='#f101' class='c012'><sup>[101]</sup></a>. For a person may rely on, or give up
-himself to Christ, by a direct act of faith, who cannot at the
-same time, take the comfort that would otherwise arise from
-thence, that Christ has loved him, and given himself for him.
-Many have reason to complain of the weakness of their faith,
-and the great resistance and disturbance which they meet with
-from the corruption of nature: And others, who have assurance,
-at present, of their interest in Christ, may afterwards,
-through divine desertion, lose the comfortable sense thereof;
-so that we must not conclude, that every doubting believer is
-destitute of faith. Such are to be tenderly dealt with, and not
-discouraged from attending on that ordinance, which others,
-who converse with them, cannot but think they have a right
-to, and are habitually prepared for; though they themselves
-very much question, whether they are actually meet for it, as
-being apprehensive that they cannot exercise those graces, that
-are necessary to their partaking of this ordinance in a right
-manner. However, it is observed,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) That there are some things, which, if duly considered
-by such an one, would afford him, ground of hope; though it
-may be, he cannot sufficiently improve them to his own comfort.
-As,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] If he be truly affected with his want of assurance, and,
-as the result thereof, is filled with uneasiness in his own mind,
-laments his condition, and can take no comfort in any outward
-enjoyments, while destitute of it; and, if he be importunate
-with God in prayer, that he would lift up the light of his countenance
-upon him, and grant him the exercise, as well as the joy
-of faith. Moreover, if he frequently examines himself with
-impartiality, and an earnest desire to be satisfied, as to his
-state; and if, notwithstanding this, he still walks in darkness,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_260'>260</span>and his doubts and fears prevail against him, he has some
-ground to conclude, that he is better than he apprehends himself
-to be, if he be truly humbled for those sins that may be
-reckoned the procuring cause thereof, and determines to be
-still waiting, till God shall be pleased to discover to him
-his interest in forgiving grace, and thereby resolve his doubts,
-and expel his fears, which render him so very uneasy.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] A person has some ground of hope, if he can say, that
-he unfeignedly desires Christ and grace above all things, and
-can find satisfaction in nothing short of him; in this respect it
-may be said, that Christ is precious to him, as he is to them
-that believe. And to this we may add, that if he desires to forsake
-all sin, as being offensive, and contrary to him; so that
-when he commits it, he can readily say with the apostle, <i>That
-which I do I allow not of; for what I would, that do I not; but
-what I hate that do I</i>; and from hence he concludes himself
-<i>wretched</i>; and earnestly desires to be <i>delivered from the body
-of this death</i>, Rom. vii. 15, 24.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) There are some promises which a weak Christian may
-lay hold on for his encouragement; as,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, If the guilt of sin lies as an heavy burden upon him,
-and is the occasion of his doubts about his being in Christ;
-there are promises of forgiveness, Mich. vii. 18, 19. Isa.
-lv. 7, 8.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, If he complains of the power of sin, and its prevalency
-over him, there is a promise that is suited to his case, in
-Rom. vi. 14. ‘Sin shall not have dominion over you; for ye
-are not under the law, but under grace.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, If satan’s temptations are very grievous to him, and
-such as he can hardly resist, there are promises suited to this
-case, in 1 Cor. x. 13. that ‘God will not suffer his people to be
-tempted above that they are able, but will, with the temptation,
-make a way to escape;’ and in Rom. xvi. 20. ‘The
-God of peace shall bruise Satan under your feet shortly.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, If he wants enlargement, and raised affections in
-prayer, or other religious duties; which is very discouraging
-to him, that promise may afford him some relief, in Zech. xii.
-10. ‘I will pour upon the house of David, and upon the inhabitants
-of Jerusalem, the spirit of grace and of supplication.’
-And, in Psal. x. 17. ‘Lord, thou hast heard the desire of the
-humble: Thou wilt prepare their heart, thou wilt cause thine
-ear to hear.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>5thly</i> If our doubts arise from frequent backslidings, and
-relapses into sin, we may apply that promise in Psal. xxiii. 3.
-<i>He restoreth my soul</i>, &amp;c. And, Hos. xiv. 4. ‘I will heal their
-backsliding, I will love them freely; for mine anger is turned
-away from them:’ And in Isa. lvii. 17, 18. in which it is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_261'>261</span>supposed, that God was wroth, and hid himself from his people
-for their iniquity; and they are described as <i>going on frowardly
-in the way of their heart</i>; yet God says, ‘I have seen
-his ways, and will heal him: I will lead him also, and restore
-comforts to him, and to his mourners:’ And, in Hos. xi. 7-9.
-where God’s people are described as bent to backslide
-from him; yet he determines not to destroy them, but says, in
-a very moving way, ‘How shall I give thee up Ephraim?
-How shall I deliver thee Israel, <i>&amp;c.</i> Mine heart is turned
-within me, my repentings are kindled together? I will not
-execute the fierceness of mine anger; I will not return to destroy
-Ephraim; for I am God and not man, the holy One in
-the midst of thee.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>6thly</i>, If we want communion with God, or his presence
-with us in his ordinances; which makes us conclude that we
-are not in Christ: Let us consider what is said in Isa. xlv. 19.
-‘I said not unto the seed of Jacob, Seek ye me in vain:’ And,
-in chap. liv. 7, 8. ‘For a small moment have I forsaken thee,
-but with great mercies will I gather thee. In a little wrath I
-hid my face from thee, for a moment; but with everlasting
-kindness will I have mercy on thee.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>7thly</i>, If we are under frequent convictions, but they soon
-wear off, which occasions us to fear that we never experienced
-a thorough work of conversion, let us consider, Isa. lxvi. 9.
-‘Shall I bring to the birth, and not cause to bring forth, saith
-the Lord?’ And, in Zech. iv. 10. ‘Who hath despised the
-day of small things?’ And, in Isa. lxv. 8. ‘As the new
-wine is found in the cluster, and one saith, Destroy it not, for
-a blessing is in it; So will I do for my servants sake, that I
-may not destroy them all.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>8thly</i>, If we are in a withering and declining condition, and
-want reviving; or, if we complain of barrenness under the
-means of grace, so that we may attend upon them, as we apprehend,
-to very little purpose; there are some promises that
-are suited to this case, as Hos. xiv. 7, 8. Isa. xlviii. 17.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>9thly</i>, If our doubts arise from the hardness of our hearts,
-so that we cannot mourn for sin as we ought to do, or would
-do, let us consider what God has promised in Ezek. vii. 16.
-Deut. xxx. 6. Acts v. 31.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>10thly</i>, If we are under the visible tokens of God’s displeasure,
-so that we are ready to conclude, that he distributes terrors
-to us in his anger; and, as the consequence thereof, we
-walk in darkness, and are far from peace: There are many
-promises that are suited to this case, as Jer. iii. 5. Psal. ciii. 8,-10.
-Isa. xii. 1. Joel ii. 13. Isa. l. 10. Psal. lxxix. 15. and
-xlii. 11.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We have a further account how such, who are at present,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_262'>262</span>discouraged from coming to the Lord’s table, ought to
-manage themselves in this case. And here it is observed,
-that they ought to bewail their unbelief, to labour to have their
-doubts resolved; and, instead of being discouraged, they
-should come to the Lord’s supper, to be further strengthened.
-This advice is not given to stupid sinners, or such as are unconcerned
-about their state, or never had the least ground to
-conclude that they have had communion with God in any ordinance;
-and, especially if their distress of conscience arises
-rather from a slavish fear of the wrath of God, than a filial
-fear of him; or, if they are more concerned about the dreadful
-consequences of sin, than the intrinsic evil that is in it, I
-say, this advice is not given to such, but those, as before described,
-who lament after the Lord, earnestly seek him, though
-they cannot, at present, find him; and have fervent desires of
-his presence, though no sensible enjoyment thereof, and appear
-to have some small degrees of grace, though it be very
-weak: In this case a few words of advice ought to be given
-to them; particularly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) That they should take heed of giving way to any hard
-thoughts of God; but, on the other hand, lay the whole blame
-hereof on themselves. Thus God says by the prophet, “Hast
-thou not procured this unto thyself, in that thou hast forsaken
-the Lord thy God, when he led thee by the way?”
-Jer. ii. 17.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) They should give glory to, depend on, and seek relief
-from the Holy Spirit, the Comforter, who glorifies himself by
-sealing believers unto the day of redemption; and, together
-with this, bestows those comforts on them which they stand in
-need of.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) They must endeavour, to their utmost, to act grace, and
-so go forward in the ways of God, though they do not go on
-comfortably, and not say, “why should I wait on the Lord
-any longer?” Are they sometimes afraid they shall not arrive
-safely to the end of their race, they should nevertheless resolve
-not to give out, or to run no longer in it; and because
-their way is attended with darkness, or hedged up with thorns,
-they should not determine, for that reason, to go backward, as
-though they had never set their faces heaven-ward.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) They ought to lie at God’s foot, acknowledging their
-unworthiness of that peace which they desire, but are destitute
-of, and plead for his special presence, that would give an
-happy turn to the frame of their spirits, as that which they
-prefer to all the enjoyments of life; as the Psalmist says,
-‘There be many that say, Who will shew us any good?
-Lord, lift thou up the light of thy countenance upon us,’
-Psal. iv. 6.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_263'>263</span>(5.) It would be adviseable for such to contract an intimacy,
-and frequently converse with experienced Christians, who
-know the depths of Satan, and the deceitfulness of the heart of
-man, and the methods of divine grace in restoring comforts to
-those who are, at present, destitute of them, agreeably to what
-they themselves have experienced in the like case, 2 Cor. i. 4.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(6.) They ought, as a farther means for the strengthening of
-their faith, and establishing their comforts, to wait on God in
-the ordinance of the Lord’s supper, hoping for Christ’s presence
-therein; in which many have found that they have been
-enlivened, quickened, and comforted, while others, through the
-neglect hereof, have had their doubts and fears increased.
-And this leads us to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. What is contained in the latter of the answers we are explaining,
-which is applicable to those who desire to come to the
-Lord’s supper, but are to be kept from it. Here it is taken for
-granted, that all are not to be admitted to this ordinance,
-though it may be, they make a general profession of the Christian
-faith, and are not willing that any should question their
-right to it. These are described in this answer,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. As being ignorant of the great doctrines of the gospel,
-and, consequently, unacquainted with Christ, whom they never
-truly applied themselves to, nor received by faith; and
-therefore they cannot improve this ordinance aright, or have
-communion with Christ therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. They are to be excluded from the Lord’s supper, who
-are scandalous or immoral in their practice, whatever pretensions
-they make to the character of Christians: These are
-described by the apostle, as persons who <i>profess that they
-know God; but in works they deny him, being abominable and
-disobedient and unto every good work reprobate</i>, Tit. i. 16.
-Such ought not to have communion with those whom the
-apostle describes as <i>called to be saints</i>, Rom. i. 7. nor can they
-partake of this ordinance aright, since they are not apprized of
-the end and design thereof, nor are they able, as the apostle
-expresses it, to <i>discern the Lord’s body</i>, 1 Cor. ix. 27. for, if
-they are strangers to themselves, how can they apply the benefits
-of Christ’s redemption to their own case? and, if they
-neglect the preparatory duty of self-examination, so that they
-do not know their own wants, how can they go to Christ in
-this ordinance for a supply thereof? or, if they do not desire
-the spiritual blessings of the covenant of grace, what right can
-they have to make use of the seals thereof? and if they are
-openly and visibly of another family, under the dominion of
-the powers of darkness, what right have they to the privileges
-which Christ has purchased for those who are members of his
-family, and spiritually united to him?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_264'>264</span><i>Object.</i> 1. To what has been said concerning those that are
-to be excluded from this ordinance, it is objected, that it appears,
-that both good and bad have a right to it, from what
-our Saviour says in the parable of the wheat and the tares, in
-Mat. xiii. 29. both which are said to <i>grow together until the
-harvest</i>, when the reapers will be sent to <i>gather first the tares,
-and bind them in bundles to burn them, and the wheat into the
-barn</i>: So that hypocrites, and sincere Christians, are to continue
-together in the same church, and, consequently to partake
-of the same ordinances.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied; this is not the sense of
-the parable; for our Saviour explains it otherwise, when he
-says in ver. 38. <i>The field is the world: the good seed are the
-children of the kingdom, but the tares are the children of the
-wicked one.</i> And from hence we may infer, that good and
-bad men are, through the forbearance of God, suffered to live
-together in the world; but it gives no countenance to this supposition,
-that the wicked ought to be joined with the godly as
-members of the same church: Not but that hypocrites may,
-and often do intrude themselves into the churches of Christ;
-yet since this is not known to them, they are not to blame for
-it, the heart of man being known to God alone; and the
-judgment that we are to pass concerning those who are admitted
-into church-fellowship, or to the Lord’s supper in particular,
-is to be founded on that credible profession which they
-make; in which, though it be possible for them to deceive
-others, yet the guilt and ill consequence thereof, will only affect
-themselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Object.</i> 2. It is further objected, that Judas was at the
-Lord’s supper when it was first instituted by our Saviour,
-though he knew him to be an hypocrite and a traitor, and that
-he would speedily execute what he had designed against his
-life; and if so, then all ought to be admitted to this ordinance.
-And the reason that is generally assigned why he
-was there at that time, is, because it is said, in Luke xxii. 14.
-<i>When the hour was come, he sat down, and his twelve apostles
-with him</i>; and afterwards we read, in ver. 19. that <i>he took
-bread and brake it</i>, &amp;c. <i>and also the cup after supper</i>, &amp;c. ver.
-20. and then it is said, in ver. 21. <i>Behold the hand of him that
-betrayeth me is with me on the table</i>. This is supposed, by
-some, to have been spoken by Christ when they were eating
-the Lord’s supper; from whence it may be concluded that
-Judas was there.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> But to this it may be replied; that it seems much
-more probable that he was not there when the Lord’s supper
-was administered though he joined with Christ and the other
-apostles in eating the passover; for we must consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_265'>265</span>(1.) That the passover and the Lord’s supper were celebrated,
-one immediately after the other, at the same table, or sitting;
-therefore the hand of Judas might be with Christ on the table,
-in the former, though not in the latter: So that, though these
-words, <i>the hand of him that betrayeth me, is with me on the
-table</i>, are inserted after the account of both these ordinances
-being concluded; yet we have ground to suppose, they were
-spoken while they were eating the passover, when Judas was
-present.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) It appears yet more probable that he was not present at
-the Lord’s supper, from the account which John gives of this
-matter, in chap. xiii. 21. wherein our Saviour tells them, that
-<i>one of them should betray him</i>: and, in ver. 26. he discovers
-that he meant Judas, by giving him the sop; and in ver. 30.
-it is said, that <i>having received the sop, he went immediately out</i>.
-Now it is certain there was no sop in the Lord’s supper, as
-there was in the passover, inasmuch as there was no flesh
-therein: Therefore Judas went out when they were eating the
-passover, before they began to partake of the Lord’s supper;
-being, as we may reasonably suppose, in a rage that his hypocrisy
-should be detected, and he marked out as a traitor, who
-was, before this, reckoned as good a man as any of them:
-Therefore we have not sufficient ground from hence to conclude,
-that wicked men ought to be admitted to partake of the
-Lord’s supper.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Object.</i> 3. For Christians to exclude any from the Lord’s
-supper, would argue a great deal of pride, or vain-glorious
-boasting, and it is, as it were, to say to them who are excluded,
-“Stand off, for we are holier than you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> 1. A believer may with thankfulness, acknowledge
-the distinguishing grace of God vouchsafed to him, and not to
-others; and, at the same time, bless him, that he has given
-him a right to the privilege of his house, which all are not admitted
-to partake of, without doing this in a boasting way; he
-may say with the apostle in 1 Cor. xv. 10. <i>By the grace of
-God I am what I am</i>; and yet at the same time, deal faithfully
-with those who are destitute of this grace; he may bless God
-for the right which he hopes he has to this ordinance, and yet
-it is not his duty to admit them to it who have no right.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. It is one thing not to admit persons who are unqualified
-to this ordinance, and another thing to despise them upon this
-account. Our business is not to reproach them, but to treat
-them with meekness; if peradventure God may give them repentance
-to the acknowledgment of the truth, that hereby they
-may appear to have a right to it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Object.</i> 4. If wicked men are to be excluded from one ordinance
-which Christ has instituted in his church, they may, for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_266'>266</span>the same reason be excluded from all; and so they may as well
-be debarred the privilege of hearing the word, and joining
-with the church in public prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> There is not the same reason for excluding wicked
-men from hearing the word, or joining in prayer with the
-church, as there is for refusing to admit them to partake of
-the Lord’s supper. For prayer, and preaching the word, are
-God’s appointed means for the working the grace of faith, instructing
-the ignorant, awakening the stupid and secure sinner,
-and putting him on complying with that method of salvation
-which God has prescribed in the gospel, and embracing
-Christ as offered therein: Whereas, on the other hand, the
-Lord’s supper is an ordinance which supposes the soul to have,
-before this, received Christ by faith; and therefore he is therein
-to feed upon him, and to take comfort from what he has
-done and suffered for him, as conducive to the farther mortification
-of indwelling sin; which supposes that he has had, before
-this, some experience of the grace of God in truth. Thus
-concerning the exclusion of ignorant or immoral persons, as
-being not qualified for the Lord’s supper.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And here we may farther observe, that they who bring
-these and such-like objections, with a design to open the door
-of the church so wide, that all may be received into it, and
-partake of those ordinances by which it is more particularly
-distinguished from the world, are very ready, in defence of
-their own cause, to charge others with being too severe in
-their censures, and refusing to admit any into church-communion,
-unless they can tell the very time in which they were
-converted, and the means by which this work was begun, and
-carried on; and this they are obliged to do in so public a manner,
-as that many are denied the privilege of partaking of this
-ordinance, for a mere circumstance; which is an extreme as
-much to be avoided as the receiving unqualified persons to the
-Lord’s supper.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But it may be replied to this, that since this charge is rather
-the result of surmize than founded on sufficient evidence, it
-deserves to have less notice taken of it: However, this I
-would say in answer to it, that I never knew it to be the practice
-of any church of Christ, to exclude persons from its communion,
-because they knew not the time or means of their conversion;
-which may be sometimes occasioned by their having
-been favored with the blessing of a religious education and restraining
-grace from their childhood, so that they have not
-run those lengths in sin which others have done; and therefore
-the change which is wrought in conversion, especially as
-to what concerns the time and manner thereof, is less discernible.
-Sometimes the work has been begun with a less degree of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_267'>267</span>the terrors of conscience, under a sense of the guilt of sin, and
-the condemning sentence of the law, than others have experienced:
-These have been drawn with the cords of love, and
-the grace of God has descended upon them insensibly, like the
-dew upon the grass; and therefore all that can be perceived
-by them, or that is to be required of them as a necessary qualification
-for their being admitted to the ordinances and privileges
-which belong to believers, is their discovering those fruits
-of faith which are discernible in the conversation of such as
-have experienced the grace of God in truth.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to the other part of the charge, in which some churches
-are pretended to insist on such terms of communion as are
-merely circumstantial, so as to refuse to receive any that cannot
-comply with them: This is to be answered by those who
-appear to be liable to it. All that I shall therefore add under
-this head, is, that since a visible profession of faith in Christ
-is to be made, as necessary to constitute a visible church, and
-the conversation of those who make it, ought to be apparently
-agreeable thereunto: And inasmuch as none are obliged to
-make any thing known to the church, that contains the least appearance
-of dishonour or reflection on their character in the
-world; but are only required to testify and give a proof of
-their steady adherence to Christ, and their desire to embrace
-him in all his offices, as well as worship him in all his ordinances;
-this cannot justly be reckoned an unnecessary circumstance
-or making that a term of communion which Christ has
-not made, and thereby excluding those who have a right to
-the Lord’s supper.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And now we have considered the terms of communion, and
-the qualifications for it, as well as the spiritual privileges that
-are to be expected by those who have a right to it. I cannot
-but observe, how this is abused, and practically disowned, by
-those who engage in this ordinance merely as a qualification
-for a civil employment. A person may certainly be a good
-member of a commonwealth, and very fit to be entrusted with
-the administration of the civil affairs thereof, who has little or
-nothing to say concerning his experiences of the grace of God.
-To assert, that a right to a civil employment is founded on the
-same qualifications that give a person a right to partake of the
-Lord’s supper, would be to advance, not only that which is
-indefensible, but what would be almost universally denied, unless
-it could be proved, that all might partake of it, the contrary
-to which, we have endeavoured to maintain.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, when Christ instituted this ordinance, his people
-were in no expectation of bearing any part in the civil government;
-therefore this was most remote from the first intent and
-design thereof: And we often find that this is a temptation to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_268'>268</span>men to profane this ordinance, and lays a burden on the consciences
-of those who know themselves unprepared for it, who
-had little or nothing in view but the securing their secular interest;
-by which means it is to be feared, that many of them
-eat and drink unworthily, and, instead of receiving advantage
-by it, bring their consciences under such entanglements, that
-they cannot easily extricate themselves from. Thus concerning
-those who are to be admitted to be partakers of the Lord’s
-Supper, though doubting of their meetness for it, and others
-being excluded, who have no right to it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The last thing observed in this answer, is, that they who
-are not, at present, deemed fit for this ordinance, may afterwards
-be admitted to it when they have received instruction,
-and manifested a thorough reformation; or when, by their diligent
-attendance on other ordinances, or means of grace, accompanied
-with the divine blessing, that, which at present
-disqualifies them, being removed, they may humbly and thankfully
-wait on God therein, and hope for his presence and blessing;
-and then the church will have reason, as well as themselves,
-to bless God for that grace which they have experienced,
-whereby they may come to it for the better, and not for
-the worse.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLXXIV., CLXXV.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXIV.</span> <i>What is required of them that receive the
-sacrament of the Lord’s Supper, in the time of the administration
-of it?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> It is required of them that receive the sacrament of
-the Lord’s Supper, that during the time of the administration
-of it, with all holy reverence and attention they wait
-upon God in that ordinance, diligently observe the sacramental
-elements and actions, heedfully discern the Lord’s
-body, and affectionately meditate on his death and sufferings,
-and thereby stir up themselves to a vigorous exercise
-of their graces, in judging themselves and sorrowing for
-sin, in hungering and thirsting after Christ, feeding on him
-by faith, receiving of his fulness, trusting in his merits, rejoicing
-in his love, giving thanks for his grace, in renewing
-of their covenant with God, and love to all the saints.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXV.</span> <i>What is the duty of Christians after they
-have received the sacrament of the Lord’s Supper?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><i>Answ.</i> The duty of Christians after they have received the
-sacrament of the Lord’s Supper, is, seriously to consider
-how they have behaved themselves therein, and with what
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_269'>269</span>success; if they find quickening and comfort, to bless God
-for it, beg the continuance of it, watch against relapses, fulfil
-their vows, and encourage themselves to a frequent attendance
-on that ordinance; but if they find no present benefit,
-more exactly to review their preparation to, and carriage
-at the sacrament; in both which, if they can approve
-themselves to God and their own consciences, they are to
-wait for the fruit of it in due time; but if they see they
-have failed in either, they are to be humbled, and to attend
-upon it afterward with more care and diligence.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>These two answers respect our behaviour in, and after
-our engaging in this ordinance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. We are to consider with what frame of spirit we are to
-engage therein; how our meditations are to be employed, and
-what graces are to be exercised.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Here is something observed, which is common to it with
-all other ordinances, <i>viz.</i> that we are to wait on God with an
-holy reverence arising from a becoming sense of his divine
-perfections, and the infinite distance we stand in from him;
-and we are to impress on our souls an awful sense of his omniscience
-and omnipresence; whereby he knows with what
-frame of spirit we draw nigh to him, better than this is known
-to ourselves; and highly resents every thing that is contrary to
-his holiness, or unbecoming the character of those who are
-worshipping at his footstool.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. There are other things peculiar to this ordinance, that
-are necessary in order to our engaging in it in a right manner;
-as,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) We are diligently to observe the sacramental elements
-and actions, which contain the external part of the duty required
-of us. The bread and wine, together with the actions
-to be performed in our receiving them by Christ’s appointment,
-are, as has been before observed, significant and instructive
-signs of his death, and the benefits which he has procured
-for us thereby, that are to be attended to, and brought to our
-remembrance in this ordinance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, we are to consider, that though the blessings of
-the covenant of grace are signified thereby, as they are instituted,
-not natural signs thereof; yet the gospel, in which we
-have an account of what Christ did, and suffered for us, is a
-large and sufficient explication hereof for the direction of our
-faith, when conversant about them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We are affectionately to meditate on the sufferings and
-death of Christ, which are signified thereby. Meditation is
-a great part of the work we are to be engaged in, and the
-death of Christ is the principal subject thereof; accordingly
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_270'>270</span>we are to consider his condescending love in giving his life a
-ransom for us; and, in order to our being affected therewith,
-and to excite our admiration and thankfulness for it, we must
-contemplate the divine excellency and glory of his Person;
-which adds an infinite value to every part of his obedience and
-sufferings. We must also consider the kind of death he died;
-which is called his being <i>wounded</i>, <i>bruised</i>, Isa. liii. 5. <i>cut off</i>
-Dan. ix. 26. and is represented as that which had the external
-mark of the curse of God annexed to it; upon which account
-he is said to have been made a curse for us, Gal. iii. 13.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We are also to consider the character of the persons for
-whom he laid down his life; who are described as being
-<i>without strength</i>, or ability to do what is good, and <i>ungodly</i>,
-and so open enemies to him, Rom. v. 6, 8, 10. and therefore
-there was nothing in us that could induce him to do this for
-us. We are also to consider, that he died in our room and
-stead, as <i>bearing our griefs, and carrying our sorrows</i>, Isa. liii.
-4. and being <i>delivered for our offences</i>, Rom. iv. 25. And
-we are also to consider the great ends designed thereby, as
-God is hereby glorified, his holiness and justice in demanding
-and receiving a full satisfaction for sin, illustrated in the highest
-degree; so that he declares himself <i>well-pleased</i> in what
-Christ has done and suffered, Matt. iii. 17. and <i>well-pleased</i>
-likewise, as the prophet expresses it, <i>for his righteousness’
-sake</i>, Isa. xlii. 21. We are also to consider the great advantage
-that we hope to receive thereby, as <i>being justified by his
-blood, we shall be saved from wrath through him</i>, Rom. v. 9.
-This is therefore the highest inducement to us, to give up ourselves
-entirely to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. We are, in this ordinance, to stir up ourselves to a vigorous
-exercise of those graces that the nature of the ordinance
-requires: And accordingly we are,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) To judge ourselves; as the apostle says, <i>If we would
-judge ourselves, we should not be judged</i>, 1 Cor. xi. 31. and
-this we ought to do, by accusing, condemning, and passing
-sentence against ourselves, for those sins which we have committed
-against Christ, whereby we were plunged into the utmost
-depths of misery, in which we should for ever have continued,
-had he not redeemed us by his blood. We are also
-to acknowledge our desert of God’s wrath and curse; so that
-<i>if he should mark iniquity, we could not stand</i>, Psal. cxxx. 3.
-and this sense of sin ought to be particular, including in it
-those transgressions which are known to none but God and
-ourselves; as we ought to make a particular application of the
-blood of Christ for the forgiveness thereof. This is certainly
-very suitable to the nature of the ordinance we are engaged
-in, wherein Christ is set forth as a sacrifice for sin, and we
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_271'>271</span>are led, at the same time, to be duly affected with our malady,
-and the great remedy God has provided; which will have a
-tendency to enhance our praise and thankfulness to him, who
-loved us, and gave himself for us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We are to exercise a godly sorrow for sin, which is the
-ground of all that distress and misery which we are liable to:
-This ought to take its rise from the corruption of nature, from
-whence all actual sins proceed; and we are to bewail our sins
-of omission, as well as commission; our neglect to perform
-duties that are incumbent on us, as well as those sins that have
-been committed by us with the greatest presumption, deliberation,
-wilfulness, and obstinacy, which contain in them the
-highest ingratitude and contempt of the blood of Christ, and
-the method of salvation by him. And this sorrow for sin
-ought to produce those good effects of praying and striving
-against it, endeavouring to return to God, from whom we
-have backslidden. The apostle calls it, <i>sorrowing after a
-godly sort</i>; and speaks of it as attended with <i>carefulness</i>, that
-we may avoid it for the future; <i>clearing of ourselves</i>, so that
-we may either be encouraged to hope that we have not committed
-the sins which we are ready to charge ourselves with,
-or, that the guilt thereof is taken away by the atonement that
-Christ has made for us. It ought also to produce an holy <i>indignation</i>,
-and a kind of revenge against sin, as that which
-has been so prejudicial to us; as likewise a <i>fear</i> of offending;
-a <i>zeal</i> for the glory of God, whom we have dishonoured; and
-a <i>vehement desire</i> of those blessings which we have hereby
-forfeited. This sorrow for sin ought to proceed from an inward
-loathing and abhorrence of it; and the degree thereof
-ought to bear some proportion to its respective aggravations,
-and the dishonour we have brought to God thereby; which
-would be an effectual means to incline us to abhor ourselves,
-and repent in dust and ashes.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This is very agreeable to the nature of the ordinance we
-are engaged in, since nothing tends more to enhance the vile
-and heinous nature of sin, than the consideration of its having
-crucified the Lord of glory; which is to be the immediate subject
-of our meditation therein. We read that Christ, in his
-last sufferings, was <i>exceeding sorrowful, even unto death</i>,
-Matt. xxvi. 38. which could not proceed from the afflictive
-view that he had of the pains and indignities he was to suffer
-in his crucifixion; for that would argue him to have a less
-degree of holy courage and resolution than some of the martyrs
-have expressed when they have endured extreme torments, and
-most ignominious reproaches for his sake: Therefore his sorrow
-proceeded from the afflictive sense that he had of the guilt
-of our sins which he bore. If therefore he not only suffered,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_272'>272</span>but his soul was exceeding sorrowful for our sins; this ought
-to excite in us the exercise of that grace in this ordinance, in
-which it is brought to our remembrance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) We are to hunger and thirst after Christ; which implies
-in it an ardent desire of having communion with him:
-Thus the church says, <i>With my soul have I desired thee in the
-night; yea, with my spirit will I seek thee early</i>, Isa. xxvi. 9.
-and the Psalmist compares this to the hunted <i>hart</i>, that is ready
-to die for thirst, which <i>pants after the water-brooks</i>, Psal. xlii.
-1. This arises from a deep sense of our need of Christ, and
-farther supplies of grace from him, and is attended with a
-firm resolution that nothing short of him shall satisfy us, as
-not being adapted to supply our wants. Such a frame of spirit
-is agreeable to the ordinance we are engaged in, since Christ
-is therein represented as having purchased, and being ready to
-apply to his people, those blessings which are of a satisfying
-and comforting nature.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) We are to feed on Christ by faith, and thereby receive
-of his fulness, as he is frequently represented in scripture, under
-the metaphor of <i>food</i>: Thus he styles himself, <i>The bread
-of life</i>, John vi. 35. and the blessings he bestows, are called,
-‘The meat which perisheth not, but endureth to everlasting
-life,’ ver. 27. and the gospel-dispensation is set forth by a
-‘feast of fat things, a feast of wines on the lees, of fat things
-full of marrow, of wines on the lees well refined,’ Isa. xxv.
-6. Thus our Saviour also represents it in the parable, Matt.
-xxii. 4. in which he commands his servants to invite those that
-were bidden to the marriage-feast, by telling them what things
-he had prepared for their entertainment, as an encouragement
-to their faith. Thus we are to consider that fulness of grace
-that is in Christ, (when drawing nigh to him in this ordinance,)
-of merit, for our justification, of strength to enable us to
-mortify sin, and resist temptations, of wisdom to direct us in
-all emergencies and difficulties, of peace and comfort, to revive
-and encourage us under all our doubts and fears, and to
-give us suitable relief when we are ready to faint under the
-burdens we complain of. All these blessings are to be apprehended
-and applied by faith, otherwise we cannot conclude that
-they belong to us; and nothing can be more adapted to this
-ordinance, wherein Christ is represented as having all those
-blessings to bestow, which he has purchased by his blood, and
-these are signified or shewed forth therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(5.) We are, in this ordinance, to trust in the merits of
-Christ, or to exercise an entire confidence in him, who, by his
-death, has purchased for us all spiritual and saving blessings.
-This ought to be attended with an humble sense of our
-own unworthiness, as being <i>less than the least of all God’s mercies</i>,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_273'>273</span>Gen. xxxii. 10. and as deserving nothing but his fierce
-wrath for our iniquities. And, since he has paid a full and
-satisfactory price of redemption for us, and thereby procured
-the blessings that we had forfeited, which have a tendency to
-make us completely happy, we ought to lay the whole stress
-of our salvation on him, as being sensible that <i>he is able to
-save to the uttermost, all that come unto God by him</i>, Heb.
-xii. 25.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(6.) We are to rejoice in Christ’s love, which is infinitely
-greater than what can be in the heart of one creature towards
-another: This love of Christ has several properties;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, It doth not consist merely in his desiring our good, or
-wishing that we were happy, but in making us so; nor does it
-only consist in his sympathizing with us in our miseries, but
-delivering us from them, and discovering himself as our refuge
-and strength, a very present help in trouble.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, As Christ’s love to his people did not take its motive
-at first from any beauty or excellency which he found in them
-who were deformed, polluted, and worthy to be abhorred by
-him, but afterwards adorned and <i>made comely through his
-comeliness put upon them</i>, Ezek. xvi. 14. so when they forfeit
-his love by their frequent backslidings, and deserve to be cast
-off by him, it is nevertheless unchangeably fixed upon them,
-inasmuch as <i>having loved his own which were in the world, he
-loved them unto the end</i>, John xiii. 1.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Christ’s love is infinitely condescending, which arises
-not only from that infinite distance which there is between him
-and his people, but from his remembring them in their low
-estate, having compassion on them whom no eye pitied, and
-saving them when they were in the utmost depths of despair
-and misery, <i>saying to them when they were in their blood, live</i>,
-Ezek. xvi. 6.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, It is not like the love of strangers, which contents itself
-with some general endeavours to do good to them whom
-they design not to contract an intimacy with, but it is attended
-with the highest acts of friendship and communion, imparting
-his secrets to them, as he promises <i>to love, and manifest himself
-to them</i>, John xiv. 21. and tells his disciples, ‘Henceforth
-I call you not servants; for the servant knoweth not what his
-lord doeth: But I have called you friends; for all things that
-I have heard of my Father, I have made known unto you,’
-chap. xv. 15.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>5thly</i>, It is such a love as forgives all former injuries, and
-upbraids not his people for what they have done against him,
-either before or since they believed in him. Thus God is said
-to ‘pardon the iniquity, and pass by the transgression of the
-remnant of his heritage,’ and ‘to cast all their sins into the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_274'>274</span>depths of the sea,’ Micah vii. 18, 19. and ‘to blot out their
-transgressions for his own sake, and not to remember their
-sins,’ Isa. xliii. 25.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>6thly</i>, It is such a love as affords us all seasonable and necessary
-help in times of our greatest straights and difficulties,
-Psal. xlvi. 1. and makes provision for our future necessities;
-as he tells his disciples, <i>I go to prepare a place for you</i>, John
-xiv. 2. that they might be assured of being happy in another
-world; and accordingly he expresses himself in his mediatorial
-prayer, ‘Father, I will that these whom thou hast given
-me, may be with me where I am, that they may behold my
-glory,’ John xvii. 24.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>7thly</i>, It is such a love, as puts him upon reckoning all injuries
-done against his people, as though they were done against
-himself, and the kindnesses expressed to them, as though they
-were expressed to him, as it is said, <i>He that toucheth you,
-toucheth the apple of his eye</i>, Zech. ii. 8. and, <i>he that despiseth
-you, despiseth me</i>, Luke x. 16. And, when he takes notice of
-those expressions of kindness, which his people had shewn
-to one another, he says, <i>Inasmuch as ye have done it unto one
-of the least of these my brethren, ye have done it unto me</i>, Mat.
-xxv. 40.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>8thly</i>, It is such a love as inclines him to interpose himself
-between his people and all danger, whereby he prevents their
-being overcome by their enemies; and indeed, he not only
-hazarded, but as <i>a good shepherd gave his life for his sheep</i>,
-John x. 11.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This is that love which is to be the subject of our meditation
-in this ordinance; accordingly we are first to endeavour,
-to make out our interest in him, by faith, which will be
-evinced by those acts of love to him that flow from it, and
-then we may rejoice in it as a constant spring of peace and
-blessedness.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(7.) The next grace to be exercised in this ordinance, is
-thankfulness, adoring and praising him that he has been pleased
-to extend compassion to us in bestowing those blessings,
-which are the result of his discriminating grace, the instances
-whereof are various, <i>viz.</i> as he delivers us from the ruin that
-sin would have inevitably brought upon us, prevents us with
-the blessings of goodness, and restrains the breaking forth of
-our corruptions, which would otherwise have inclined us to
-commit the vilest abominations; and, more especially, as he
-renews our nature, changes our hearts, creates us unto good
-works, and then quickens and excites that grace in us which
-his own hand wrought, and comforts us when our spirits are
-overwhelmed with sorrow, whereby he enables us to go on in his
-way rejoicing, and so carries on the work which he has begun
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_275'>275</span>in us, till it be completed in glory. There is nothing that we
-have, either in hand or hope, but what will afford matter for
-the exercise of this grace; and more particularly, our hearts
-ought to be excited hereunto from the consideration of the benefits
-that are signified in this ordinance; especially if we are
-enabled to receive them by faith.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(8.) We are, at the Lord’s supper, to renew our covenant
-with God. That this may be rightly understood, we must
-consider what it is for a believer to enter into covenant with
-God, which he is supposed to have done before this; and that
-consists not in our promising that we will do these things that
-are out of our power, or, that we will exercise those graces,
-which none but God, who works in his people, both to will
-and to do, can enable us to put forth; but it consists in our
-making a surrender of ourselves to Christ, and depending on
-him for the supply of all our spiritual wants, humbly hoping
-and trusting that he will enable us to adhere stedfastly to him,
-working in us all that grace which he requires of us; which
-blessing if he is pleased to grant us, we shall be enabled to
-perform all the duties that are incumbent on us, how difficult
-soever they may be. This is an unexceptionable way of entering
-into covenant with God, as it contains an acknowledgement
-of our own inability to do that which is good without
-him, and desire to give the glory of all to him; on whom we
-stedfastly rely, that we may obtain mercy from him to be
-faithful.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, to renew our covenant, is to declare, that through
-his grace, we are inclined stedfastly to adhere to our solemn
-dedication to him, not, in the least, repenting of what we did
-therein; and, that we have as much reason to depend on his
-assistance now, as we had at first, since grace is carried on,
-as well as begun by him alone; and accordingly, while we
-express our earnest desire to be stedfast in his covenant, we
-depend on his promise that he will never fail us, nor forsake
-us: And we take this occasion, more especially, to renew our
-dedication to him, as it is very agreeable to the nature of this
-ordinance, in which we have the external symbols of his love
-to us, which lays us under the highest obligation thereunto.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(9.) We are, in this ordinance, to shew our readiness to
-exercise a Christian love to all saints; which consists, more
-especially, in our earnest desire that all grace and peace may
-abound in them, as in our own souls; that hereby we may
-have occasion to glorify God together, and shew our mutual
-concern for the spiritual welfare of each other. We are to
-bless God for the grace they are enabled to exercise, though,
-it may be, we cannot exercise it in the same degree ourselves:
-And, as for others, we are to sympathize with them in their
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_276'>276</span>weaknesses, grieve for their falls and miscarriages; and be
-very ready to make abatements for those frailties and infirmities
-that we behold in them, which we ourselves are sometimes
-liable to, especially if they are not inconsistent with
-grace, in which case we should cast a mantle of love over
-them, not knowing but we may be exposed to, and fall by
-the same temptations.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This love is to be expressed, more especially in this ordinance;
-inasmuch as we are to consider all saints as members
-of Christ’s mystical body, children of the same God and Father,
-partakers of the same grace with us, fellow travellers to
-the same heavenly country, where we hope to meet with them
-at last, though now they are liable to the same difficulties with
-ourselves, and exposed to those assaults and temptations that
-we often meet with from our spiritual enemies. This expression
-of our love, though it be more immediately and directly
-extended to the same society, that joins in communion with
-us; yet it is not to be confined within such narrow limits, but
-includes in it the highest esteem for all who are sanctified in
-Christ Jesus, called to be saints, though their place of abode
-be remote from, and they are not known to us in the flesh.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. We are now to consider the duty of Christians after they
-have received the sacrament of the Lord’s supper; and that
-consists in enquiring, how they have behaved themselves therein?
-and, whether they have any ground to conclude, that they
-have been favoured with the special presence of God in this
-ordinance, whereby it has been made a means of grace to
-them?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to the former of these enquiries relating to the frame of
-our spirits, while engaging in this solemn duty, we shall sometimes
-find, that it has been such as affords matter for deep humiliation
-and self-abasement, in the sight of God, when we reflect
-upon it; particularly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. When our minds and affections have been conversant
-about those things, which are altogether unsuitable to the work
-we have been engaged in, and, instead of conversing with
-Christ in this ordinance, we have had our thoughts and meditations
-most taken up with worldly matters; or, if they have,
-indeed, been conversant about religious affairs, yet we may, in
-some measure, see reason to blame ourselves, if these have
-been altogether foreign to the great end and design of the ordinance
-we have been engaged in. There are many portions
-of scripture, or heads of divinity founded upon it, which we
-may employ our thoughts about at other times, with great advantage;
-yet they may not be altogether suitable, or adapted
-to our receiving spiritual advantage by, or making a right
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_277'>277</span>improvement of Christ crucified, as the nature of this ordinance
-requires.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. They behave themselves unbecomingly, in this ordinance,
-who meditate on the thing signified therein, to wit, the dying
-love of Jesus Christ, as though they were unconcerned spectators,
-having only an historical faith, and content themselves
-with the bare knowledge of what relates to the life and death
-of Christ, without considering the end and design thereof, <i>viz.</i>
-that he might make atonement for sin, or their particular
-concern herein, so as to improve it, as an expedient for
-the taking away the guilt and power thereof in their own
-souls.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. We may reflect on our behaviour in this ordinance,
-when we have given way to deadness and stupidity, without
-using those endeavours that are necessary for the exciting our
-affections; when a subject so affecting as Christ’s pouring out
-his soul unto death, being wounded for our transgressions, despised
-and rejected of men, bleeding and dying on the cross,
-and, in the midst of his sufferings, crying out, <i>My God, my
-God, why hast thou forsaken me</i>, has not had an efficacy to
-raise our affections, any more than if it were a common
-subject?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. We have reason to blame our behaviour in this ordinance,
-when we have attended on it with a resolution to continue
-in any known sin, without being earnest with God to
-mortify it, or desiring strength and grace from Christ, in order
-thereunto, and improving his death for that end. Thus we
-have reason, sometimes, to reflect on our behaviour at the
-Lord’s supper, with grief, and sorrow of heart, as what has
-been disagreeable to the nature of the ordinance we have been
-engaged in.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But, on the other hand, we may, sometimes, in taking a
-view of our behaviour therein, find matter of encouragement,
-when, abating for human frailties, and the imperfection of
-grace, that inseparably attends this present state, we can say,
-to the glory of God, that we have, in some measure, behaved
-ourselves as we ought to do. Thus when we have found,
-that our hearts have been duly affected with the love of Christ,
-and we have had the exercise of those graces that are suitable
-thereunto; and if we can say, that we have had some communion
-with him, and have not been altogether destitute of his
-quickening and comforting presence, and the witness of his
-Spirit with ours, that we are the children of God; then we
-may conclude, that we have engaged in this ordinance in a
-right manner. And if we have found that it has been thus
-with us, we are to bless God for it, as considering that he
-alone can excite grace in us, who wrought it at first. And
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_278'>278</span>we are farther to consider, that such-like acts of grace will
-be a good evidence of the truth and sincerity thereof; whereby
-our comforts may be more established, and we enabled to
-walk more closely and thankfully with God, by the communication
-of those graces that he is pleased to bestow upon us in
-this ordinance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, if we have had experience of the presence of
-God therein, and have been brought into a good frame, we
-ought to beg the continuance thereof. The best frame of spirit
-will be no longer abiding, than it pleases God to keep up
-the lively exercise of faith and other graces; and this, being
-so valuable a blessing, is to be sought for by fervent prayer and
-supplication, that our good frames may not be like the morning
-cloud, or early dew, that soon passes away: This will discover,
-that we set a value upon them, and glorify God as the
-author of them; and it is the best expedient for our walking
-with God at other times, as well as when engaged in holy ordinances.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, it is farther observed, that they, who have been
-quickened and comforted, when partaking of the Lord’s supper,
-ought to watch against relapses into those sins, that formerly
-they have been overtaken with, but now see reason to
-abhor. This we ought to do, because, though we are sometimes
-brought into a good frame, yet still we have deceitful
-hearts, that, before we are aware, may betray us into the
-commission of those sins which have occasioned great distress
-to us in times past; and, to this we may add, the endeavours
-of Satan to ensnare us by his wiles; so, that when
-we think ourselves the safest, we may be exposed to the greatest
-dangers. When we have been least apprehensive of our
-return to our former sins, and, it may be, have been too secure
-in our opinion, while confiding too much to our own strength,
-we have lost those good frames, and our troubles have been renewed
-thereby: Therefore, it is our duty to watch against the
-secret workings of corrupt nature, and the first motions of sin
-in our hearts, while we earnestly implore help from God, that
-we may be kept from our own iniquities; namely, those sins
-that we have formerly committed, or that more easily beset us
-than any other.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The next duty incumbent on us, after we have received the
-Lord’s supper, is, to fulfil our vows: This will be better unstood,
-if compared with what was before observed concerning
-sacramental vows or covenants: which ought not to contain in
-them a making promises, especially in our own strength, that
-we will be found in the exercise of those graces which are the
-special gift and effects of God’s almighty power. Therefore, I
-always, when occasionally mentioning making religious vows,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_279'>279</span>consider them principally as containing an express declaration,
-that we are under an indispensable obligation to perform those
-duties, and put forth those acts of grace which are incumbent
-on us, as those who desire to approve ourselves Christ’s faithful
-servants, whom he has taken into a covenant-relation with
-himself. We also declare, that without help from God we can
-do nothing: This help we implore from him, at the same time
-when we devote, or give up ourselves to him; so that we do
-this, hoping and trusting that he will bestow upon us that grace
-which is out of our own power; which, if he will be pleased to
-do, we determine that he shall have all the glory that arises
-from it. This is most agreeable to the sense of the Latin
-word<a id='r102' /><a href='#f102' class='c012'><sup>[102]</sup></a>; from whence the word <i>vow</i> is derived; and, I think,
-it is much rather to be acquiesced in, than that general description
-which some give to it, when they exhort those who are
-engaged in this ordinance, first to confess those sins which they
-have committed since they were last at the Lord’s table, so far
-as they occur to their memories; and, as a means of their obtaining
-forgiveness, to make a solemn vow, or promise, that
-they will abstain from them for the future, and walk more
-agreeably to the engagements which they are laid under: This
-they do without an humble sense of the treachery of their own
-hearts, or their need of strength from God, to perform any
-thing that is good; and afterwards, they are as little inclined
-to fulfil their own promises, as they were before forward to
-make them, with too much reliance on their own strength;
-and, by this means, they bring themselves into the greatest
-perplexities, and go on, as it were, in a round of making solemn
-vows and resolutions, and then breaking them, and afterwards
-renewing them again: Whereas, when we intend nothing
-by our vowing, but a confessing that what others promise
-in their own strength, we see ourselves obliged to do; and, at
-the same time, depend on Christ for strength to enable us to
-perform it, and give up ourselves to him, as his covenant-people,
-in hope thereof; this is the safest way of vowing, inasmuch as it
-redounds most to the honour of God, and contains every thing
-in it that may put us upon using our utmost endeavours to perform
-the duties that are incumbent on us, and, at the same time,
-we express our unfeigned desire to glorify him as the God and
-Author of that grace, which is necessary thereunto. And, in
-this sense I would understand what we are exhorted to in the
-answers we are explaining, when it is said, in one of them, that
-while we are receiving the Lord’s supper, we ought to renew
-our covenant with God; and after we have received it, we are
-to fulfil our vows, as it is expressed in the other; as the former
-includes in it such a dedication to God as has been but
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_280'>280</span>now considered; the latter, to wit, the fulfilling our vows,
-implies in it a doing every thing that is in our power, in order
-thereunto; and, at the same time, a waiting on God to
-give success to our endeavours, and to work in us that
-which is well-pleasing in his sight, without which we can do
-nothing.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>After we have waited on the Lord in this ordinance, we are
-to encourage ourselves to a frequent attendance thereon; especially
-if we have ground to conclude, that we have had any
-sensible communications of his grace vouchsafed to us therein.
-As this is an honour which God puts on his own institutions,
-it is certainly an encouragement to us, to persevere in waiting
-on him therein. Thus the Psalmist says, <i>Because he hath inclined
-his ear unto me, therefore I call upon him as long as
-I live</i>, Psal. cxvi. 2. This will effectually remove all those
-doubts and scruples that discourage us from engaging in this
-ordinance, lest we should not behave ourselves in a right manner
-therein, fearing that we are not sufficiently prepared for it,
-and therefore shall be disowned by Christ, when we engage in
-it: I say, this we are fenced against, by having experienced
-his quickening and comforting presence therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But, suppose we have not met with this desirable blessing,
-which the best believers do not experience in a like degree, at
-all times; then we ought, after we have received the Lord’s
-Supper, to endeavour to find out the particular cause of God’s
-withdrawing his special presence from us, and what is that
-root of bitterness which springs up and troubles us. It may be,
-he withholds this privilege from us in a way of sovereignty,
-that we may hereby learn that our comforts are not at our own
-disposal; or, that they are not the necessary result of our attendance
-on ordinances, but arise from the divine blessing accompanying
-them. This, God, it may be, withholds from us
-for the trial of our graces; and that we may see how needful
-it is for us to wait for those spiritual comforts, which, at present,
-he withholds from us; as the prophet says, <i>Therefore
-will the Lord wait, that he may be gracious unto you, and therefore
-will he be exalted, that he may have mercy upon you; for
-the Lord is a God of judgment; blessed are they that wait for
-him</i>, Isa. xxx. 18.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But since we may, for the most part, apprehend some particular
-reason why God denies us his quickening, and comforting
-presence, arising from sins of omission or commission, antecedent
-to, or whilst we have been engaged in this ordinance:
-We must enquire,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Whether there has not been some defect, as to preparatory
-duties? and particularly, whether we have duly examined
-ourselves before we came to the Lord’s table, concerning our
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_281'>281</span>knowledge of Christ, and the benefits of his redemption; or,
-especially, of our being enabled to improve them by faith? and,
-whether we have examined ourselves concerning the sense we
-have of the guilt of sin, and the need we stand in of Christ’s
-righteousness, to take it away, and accordingly resolved to
-wait on him in this ordinance, with earnest desires of obtaining
-this privilege.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We must enquire, whether our behaviour when we have
-been engaged in this ordinance, has not been, in some measure,
-unbecoming the spirituality and importance thereof? whether
-we have not spared, or indulged, some secret corruption, that
-has broke forth therein? or, whether we have not given way
-to some temptation, that has then beset us? whether we have
-not depended on our own righteousness, for the taking away
-the guilt of sin, and procuring for us acceptance in the sight
-of God? or, whether we have not engaged in this ordinance,
-in our own strength, and by this self-confidence, provoked him
-to withdraw from us; which, if we have, it will afford matter
-of deep humiliation in his sight, and call for repentance and
-reformation, if we would be fenced against this inconvenience,
-which, at present we labour under; and then we may hope
-that we shall be enabled to wait on him in this ordinance, in
-such a way, that we may have those comfortable experiences
-of grace from him, which will be an evidence that we have
-waited on him for the better, and not for the worse.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLXXVI., CLXXVII.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXVI.</span> <i>Wherein do the sacraments of Baptism and
-the Lord’s Supper agree?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The sacraments of baptism and the Lord’s Supper,
-agree, in that the author of both is God, the spiritual part
-of both is Christ and his benefits; both are seals of the same
-covenant, are to be dispensed by ministers of the gospel,
-and by none other, and to be continued in the church of
-Christ, until his second coming.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXVII.</span> <i>Wherein do the sacraments of Baptism
-and the Lord’s Supper differ?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The sacraments of baptism and the Lord’s supper
-differ, in that baptism is to be administered but once with
-water, to be a sign and seal of our regeneration, and ingrafting
-into Christ, and that even to infants, whereas the Lord’s
-supper is to be administered often, in the elements of bread
-and wine, to represent and exhibit Christ as spiritual nourishment
-to the soul, and to confirm our continuance and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_282'>282</span>growth in him, and that only to such as are of years and
-ability to examine themselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>These two answers contain little more than a recapitulation
-of some things, that have been occasionally mentioned,
-in explaining the nature of these ordinances; and therefore
-we shall very briefly insist on them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. Concerning those things wherein the sacraments of baptism
-and the Lord’s supper agree; accordingly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. It is observed, that God is the Author of both. This
-may be inferred from what has been said concerning their being
-holy ordinances, or means of grace; in which we are to
-expect his presence and blessing to make them effectual to
-salvation: This we cannot do without engaging in them by his
-own warrant, which he has been pleased to give us, as appears
-from his word, and the experience of many believers, who have
-found sensible advantage thereby; so that the effects of his
-power and grace, that have been produced in their hearts,
-when engaged therein, afford a convincing evidence that God
-is the Author thereof. This, as to what concerns baptism,
-respects more especially, the baptism of those that are adult;
-for when infants are baptized, though God can, and sometimes
-does, as is more than probable, own this ordinance, by regenerating
-them at that time; yet this cannot be known by us, unless
-it be inferred, from those extraordinary communications
-of grace which they may experience, who are enabled, by faith
-to give up their children to God therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. Baptism and the Lord’s supper farther agree, in that
-Christ, and his benefits are signified by both of them: for they
-are, each of them, ordinances for our faith, as they are signs
-and seals of the covenant of grace, in which Christ, and the
-benefits of his redemption, are set forth: Thus the apostle
-says, with respect to baptism, <i>So many of as were baptized
-into Jesus Christ, were baptized into his death, buried with him
-by baptism into death</i>, Rom. vi. 3, 4. accordingly we have
-communion with Christ as crucified, dying and buried, and,
-after this, rising again from the dead, whereby he brought the
-work of redemption to perfection: These things are signified;
-and thus our faith is to make use of this sign in baptism; and
-the apostle says the same thing with respect to the Lord’s
-Supper: <i>As often as ye eat this bread, and drink this cup, ye
-do shew the Lord’s death till he come</i>, 1 Cor. xi. 26.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. Baptism and the Lord’s supper, are farther observed to
-agree, in that they are to be dispensed by none but the ministers
-of the gospel. Under the Old Testament-dispensation,
-where all the parts of the temple-service were significant signs
-of Christ, and the benefits of the covenant of grace; these were
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_283'>283</span>to be administered by none but those who were qualified, called,
-and lawfully set apart to that work, as the apostle says, <i>No
-man taketh this honour unto himself, but he that is called of
-God, as was Aaron</i>, Heb. v. 4. And we may conclude, that the
-moral reason of the thing extends itself to the administration
-of the seals of the covenant, under the gospel-dispensation. It
-is certain, that some must be appointed, or set apart to this
-work, otherwise it would belong to every body, and consequently
-there would be no determinate administrators of these
-ordinances, who might be said to have a special call thereunto,
-from God and man. It may also be inferred from those scriptures
-that speak of <i>pastors after God’s own heart</i>, who are to
-<i>feed</i> his people <i>with knowledge and understanding</i>, as being his
-special <i>gift</i>, Jer. iii. 15. and from what the apostle says, concerning
-gospel-ministers, whether extraordinary or ordinary,
-as being Christ’s <i>gift</i>, when he <i>ascended up on high</i>, Eph. iv.
-8, 11.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. It is farther observed, that these two ordinances agree, in
-that they are both to be continued in the church, until Christ’s
-second coming. Though we look and hope for more of the
-presence of God therein, and a greater effusion of his Spirit,
-to make them more effectual, and render the church more
-bright and glorious, as being favoured with greater degrees of
-the communications of divine grace; yet we have no ground
-to expect new ordinances, or a new dispensation to succeed
-this we are under, till Christ’s second and most glorious coming;
-therefore this is called, <i>The last time</i>, 1 John ii. 18. Upon
-which account the apostle says, that <i>the ends of the world
-are come upon us</i>, 1 Cor. x. 11. by which we are to understand,
-that the present dispensation of the gospel that we
-are under, is the last we are to expect till Christ’s second
-coming.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And this also appears, from the promise which Christ has
-given of his presence with his ministers and churches, when
-faithfully engaging in these ordinances, as he says, <i>Lo, I am
-with you always, even unto the end of the world</i>, Matt. xxviii.
-20. And, as his <i>death</i>, as was before observed, is to be <i>shewed
-forth till he come</i>, 1 Cor. xi. 26. this proves that the Lord’s
-supper is also to be continued in the church till then. This I
-would the rather observe, inasmuch as it is contrary to what
-some maintain, who, while they hope for a greater effusion of
-the Spirit, and a more glorious state of the church in the latter
-day, are ready to extend their thoughts too far, they conclude
-that it will be a new dispensation, as the ordinances which the
-church is favoured with, at present, shall cease, particularly
-baptism and the Lord’s Supper; which we can by no means
-approve of.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_284'>284</span>II. We are now to consider wherein the sacraments of baptism
-and the Lord’s supper differ.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. It is observed that they differ, in that baptism is to be administered
-but once; whereas, the Lord’s supper is to be administered
-often. This appears from two different circumstances
-contained in them. As for baptism, it signifies our first ingrafting
-into, or putting on Christ; and when denominated
-from the thing signified thereby, it is called, the <i>washing of
-regeneration, and the renewing of the Holy Ghost</i>, Titus iii. 5.
-which is hoped for in this ordinance; accordingly it is considered
-as our first solemn dedication to Christ; and, as this is
-signified thereby, it is called an initiating ordinance, in which
-we are bound to be the Lord’s; which bond holds good as
-long as we live, and therefore needs not to be signified, sealed,
-or confirmed by our being baptized a second time: But,
-on the other hand, the Lord’s supper signifies our feeding or
-living upon Christ, and receiving daily supplies of grace from
-him, as our necessities require: Therefore this ordinance
-differs from baptism as it is often to be engaged in.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. They differ, in that the former as has been before proved,
-is not only to be applied to the adult, if they have not been
-baptized before, but to the infants of believing parents, which
-the Lord’s supper is not. In baptism, the person dedicated may
-be considered as being passive, and so devoted to God by the
-faith of another, who has a right to do this: But none are
-to partake of the Lord’s supper but those who have such a
-degree of knowledge, that they are able to discern the Lord’s
-body, and capable of performing that duty which the apostle
-recommends as necessary thereunto, when he says, <i>Let a man
-examine himself, and so let him eat of that bread, and drink of
-that cup</i>, 1 Cor. xi. 28.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I am sensible that some of the ancient church, and particularly
-Cyprian, in the third century, have pleaded for, and practised
-the administration of the Lord’s supper to infants, being
-led into this mistake, by supposing what does not sufficiently
-appear, <i>viz.</i> that infants among the Jews ate the passover, because
-whole families are said to eat it. But this does not appear
-to include infants; for whom another sort of food was
-designed: neither could they reap any advantage by it, not
-being capable of discerning the thing signified, or feeding on
-Christ, the true Paschal Lamb; which could be done no otherwise
-than by faith.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Others were led into this mistake from the wrong sense they
-gave of that scripture, in which Christ says, <i>Except ye eat the
-flesh of the Son of man, and drink his blood, ye have no life in
-you</i>, John vi. 53. thinking that our Saviour meant hereby, the
-bread and wine in the Lord’s supper. Therefore this ordinance
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_285'>285</span>was absolutely necessary to salvation; upon which account
-they thought that it ought to be extended to infants, as a
-means of their obtaining it. But it is certain this cannot be
-the meaning of that scripture, since the Lord’s supper was not
-instituted, or known in the church, when our Saviour spake
-these words: Therefore, he intends nothing else thereby but
-the fiducial application of Christ’s death, as an expedient for
-our obtaining eternal life.</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLXXVIII.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXVIII.</span> <i>Which is Prayer?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> Prayer is an offering up of our desires unto God, in
-the name of Christ, by the help of his Spirit, with confession
-of our sins, and thankful acknowledgment of his mercies.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>Having considered the things that are to be believed
-and done; what remains is, to enquire concerning those
-things that are to be prayed for, and how this great duty of
-prayer is to be performed. This is necessary to be insisted on,
-inasmuch as we are obliged to yield obedience to the revealed
-will of God; nevertheless, by reason of our depravity and
-weakness, we can do nothing that is good without his assistance,
-which is not to be expected, unless it be humbly desired
-of him; and this is what we generally call <i>prayer</i>; which being
-performed by creatures who are not only indigent, but unworthy,
-this is to be acknowledged, and accordingly we are,
-in prayer, to confess sin as the principal ground and reason of
-this unworthiness. And, inasmuch as God has been pleased
-to encourage us to hope, that we shall not seek his face in vain,
-who, in many instances is pleased to grant returns of prayer;
-this obliges us to draw nigh to him with thanksgiving. These
-things are particularly contained in the answer we are explaining;
-and the method in which we shall endeavour to speak to
-it, is to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. What, prayer supposes; and that is,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That we are dependent and indigent creatures, have many
-wants to be supplied, sins to be forgiven, miseries, under which
-we need pity and relief, and weaknesses, under which we want
-to be strengthened and assisted in the performance of the duties
-that are incumbent on us. From hence it may be inferred, that
-though our Lord Jesus Christ is often represented as praying
-to God, this is an action performed by him in his human nature;
-in which alone he could be said to be indigent, who, in
-his divine nature, is all-sufficient.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. It supposes that God, who is the object of prayer, is regarded
-by us, not only as able, but willing to help us; and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_286'>286</span>that he has encouraged us to draw nigh to him for relief: And
-therefore it is a duty that more especially belongs to those who
-are favoured with the hope of the gospel.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. We shall now shew how prayer is to be considered, as
-to the various kinds hereof; and accordingly we are represented
-as drawing nigh to God, with an humble sense of our secret
-sins and wants, which none but God and our own consciences
-are privy to. This kind of prayer our Saviour intends, when
-he says, <i>Thou, when thou prayest, enter into thy closet, and when
-thou hast shut thy door, pray to thy Father which is in secret,
-and thy Father which seeth in secret, shall reward thee openly</i>,
-Mat. vi. 6. and we have an instance hereof in himself; inasmuch,
-as it is said, that <i>when he had sent the multitudes away,
-he went up into a mountain apart to pray</i>, chap. xiv. 23. also,
-<i>Peter went up upon the house-top to pray</i>, Acts x. 9. in which,
-being retired from the world, he had a greater liberty to pour
-forth his soul unto God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, we are to join with others in performing this
-duty, in which we confess those sins, and implore a supply of
-those wants that are common to all who are engaged therein:
-This our Saviour encourages us to do, when he says, <i>If two of
-you shall agree on earth, as touching any thing that they shall
-ask, it shall be done for them of my Father which is in heaven.
-For where two or three are gathered together in my name, there
-am I in the midst of them</i>, Mat. xviii. 19, 20. This is a branch
-of social worship, and is to be performed by every family apart,
-whereof we have an example in Cornelius, concerning whom it
-is said, that he was <i>a devout man, and feared God with all his
-house, and prayed to him always</i>; and that he did this, at certain
-times, <i>in his house</i>, Acts x. 2. compared with ver. 30.
-Moreover, this duty is to be performed publicly in the church,
-or any worshipping assembly met together for that purpose:
-Of this we have an instance in the apostle Paul, who, when he
-had called for the elders of the church at Ephesus, designing
-to take his leave of them, after an affectionate discourse, and
-suitable advice given to them, he <i>kneeled down and prayed with
-them all</i>, chap. xx. 36.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, prayer may be considered as that for which a stated
-time is set apart by us, either alone, or with others; or, that
-which is occasional, short, and ejaculatory, consisting in a secret
-lifting up of our hearts to God, and may be done when we
-are engaged in other business of a different nature, without being
-a let or hindrance to it: Thus it is said that <i>Nehemiah
-prayed</i>, when he has going to <i>deliver the cup into the king’s
-hand</i>, between the king’s asking him a question, and his returning
-him an answer to it; which seems to be the meaning of
-what is said in Neh. ii. 4, 5. <i>Then the king said unto me; for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_287'>287</span>what dost thou make request? so I prayed to the God of heaven,
-and I said unto the king</i>, &amp;c. These ejaculatory prayers are
-either such as we put up to God while engaged in worldly business
-for direction, assistance, or success therein; or when
-attending on the word read or preached, or any other holy
-duties, in which we lift up our hearts to him for his presence
-therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>III. The next thing to be considered, is, the various parts
-of prayer; and these are three, <i>viz.</i> Confession of sin; petition
-for a supply of our wants; and thanksgiving for mercies received.
-Confession of sin supposes that we are guilty, and deserve
-punishment from God; petition supposes, that we are
-miserable and helpless; and thanksgiving implies, a disposition
-to own God, the author of all the good we enjoy or hope
-for, and includes in it a due sense of those undeserved favours
-we have received from him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>From this general account of the duty of prayer, and the
-parts thereof, we may infer,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That the two former of them, namely, confession of sin,
-and petition for relief, under the various miseries and distresses
-which we are liable to, is only applicable to those who
-are in a sinful and imperfect state, as believers are in this
-world. As for glorified saints in heaven, they have no sins to
-be confessed, nor any miseries under which they need help and
-pity. As for that part of prayer which consists of thanksgiving
-for mercies already received, that, indeed, is agreeable to a
-perfect state, and is represented as the constant work of glorified
-saints: Thus the Psalmist says, <i>The heavens</i>, that is, the
-inhabitants thereof, <i>shall praise thy wonders, O Lord, thy faithfulness
-also in the congregation of the saints</i>, Psal. lxxxix. 5.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. Sinners, who have lost their day of grace, against whom
-the door of hope and mercy is shut, who are enduring the
-punishment of sin in hell, these are not properly the subjects
-of prayer; concerning whom it may be said, not only that
-they cannot pray, being destitute of those graces that are necessary
-thereunto; but having no interest in a Mediator, or in
-the promises of the covenant of grace, which are a warrant
-and encouragement for the performance of this duty.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. In this world, wherein we enjoy the means of grace, none
-are the subjects of prayer but man. The Psalmist, indeed,
-speaks of God’s <i>giving to the beast his food, and to the young
-ravens which cry</i>, Psal. cxlvii. 9. and elsewhere it is said, <i>He
-provideth for the raven his food, when his young ones cry unto
-God</i>, Job. xxxviii. 41. The meaning of which is, not that
-brute creatures formally address themselves to God for a supply
-of their wants, having no idea of a divine being; but, that,
-when they complain for want of food, the providence of God
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_288'>288</span>supplies them, though they know not the hand from whence it
-comes.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. Though it be the duty of all men in the world to pray;
-yet none can do this by faith, and, consequently, in an acceptable
-manner, but believers, concerning whom the apostle says,
-<i>Ye have received the spirit of adoption, whereby they cry, Abba,
-Father</i>, Rom. viii. 15.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As for the first part of prayer, <i>viz.</i> petition, or supplication.
-This will be particularly considered under several following
-answers, and especially those that contain an explication of
-the Lord’s prayer; which is a directory for what we are to
-ask of God: Therefore we shall, at present, only consider
-the other two parts of prayer, <i>viz.</i> confession of sin, and thanksgiving
-for mercies.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Concerning confession of sin; and accordingly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] We shall prove, that it is an indispensable duty incumbent
-on all men; and that, not only on those who are in a
-state of unregeneracy, and consequently under the dominion
-of sin, but on believers themselves, who are in a justified state.
-This will appear, if we consider, that not to confess sin, is, in
-effect, to justify ourselves in the commission of it; and, as it
-were, to deny that which is so well known to the heart-searching
-God, as well as to our own consciences. It also contains
-in it a charging God with injustice, when he inflicts on us
-the punishment that is due to it; which is contrary to what
-Ezra says; <i>Thou, our God, hast punished us less than our iniquities
-deserve</i>, Ezra ix. 13.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, none was ever truly humbled in the sight of
-God, or obtained mercy and forgiveness of sin, but he was
-first brought to confess it with suitable affection, and brokenness
-of heart; which are ingredients in true repentance: Thus
-it is said, <i>He looketh upon men, and if any say, I have sinned,
-and perverted that which was right, and it profited me not; he
-will deliver his soul from going into the pit, and his life shall
-see the light</i>, Job xxxiii. 27, 28. It is also said elsewhere,
-<i>He that covereth his sins shall not prosper: But whoso confesseth
-and forsaketh them shall have mercy</i>, Prov. xxviii. 13. This
-duty is so evident, that, one would think, no one, who duly
-considers what he is, or how contrary his actions are to the revealed
-will of God, should have the front to deny it: However,
-it is well known, that many seem designedly to wave all
-confession of sin in prayer; and, others argue against it, more
-especially, as to what concerns the case of believers: Accordingly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Object.</i> It is objected, that believers ought not to confess
-sin; since that is inconsistent with a justified state: It is, in
-effect, to plead guilty, though God has taken away the guilt of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_289'>289</span>sin, by forgiving it for the sake of the atonement which Christ
-has made: It is a laying open the wound that God hath healed
-and closed up, or bringing to remembrance that which he
-hath said, <i>he will remember no more</i>, Heb. x. 67. and it is contrary
-to the grace of God, who hath said, none shall <i>lay any
-thing to the charge of</i> his <i>elect</i>, since <i>it is God that justifieth</i>,
-Rom. viii. 33. for a believer to lay any thing to his own
-charge, which he does when he confesses sin.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That we must distinguish between a believer’s desert of
-punishment or condemnation, and his being actually punished
-by God, as a sin-revenging judge, according as his iniquities
-deserve. That a believer shall not eventually fall under condemnation,
-is true, because his sins are forgiven; and with respect
-to such, the apostle says, <i>There is now no condemnation to
-them which are in Christ Jesus</i>, ver. 1. Nevertheless, though
-he be in a justified state, and, as the consequence hereof, shall
-be undoubtedly saved; yet, according to the tenor of his own
-actions, he being a sinner, contracts guilt in the sight of God;
-and, a desert of punishment is inseparably connected with
-every sin, though a person may be in a justified state who
-commits it. It is one thing to be liable to condemnation, and another
-thing to deserve to be condemned: The former of these is,
-indeed, inconsistent with a justified state; but the latter is not:
-And it is in this sense that we are to understand the Psalmist’s
-words, <i>If thou, Lord, shouldst mark iniquities, O Lord, who shall
-stand</i>, Psal. cxxx. 3. And, accordingly, the best believer on
-earth, though he have a full assurance of his being forgiven by
-God; yet, inasmuch as he is a sinner, he is obliged to confess
-that he deserves to be cast off by him, or, if God should
-deal with him according to what he finds in him, without looking
-upon him as he is in Christ, his head and surety, he would
-be undone and lost for ever.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, Believers are daily sinning, and therefore contracting
-fresh guilt; as it is said, <i>There is not a just man upon earth that
-doeth good and sinneth not</i>, Eccl. vii. 20. and, indeed their sin
-is sometimes so great, that they grieve the Holy Spirit, wound
-their own consciences, and act very disagreeably to their character
-as believers. This therefore ought to be confessed with
-shame and self-abhorrence; as the prophet says, <i>That thou
-mayest remember and be confounded, and never open thy mouth
-anymore, because of thy shame; when I am pacified towards
-thee for all that thou hast done, saith the Lord God</i>, Ezek. xvi.
-63. Moreover, it is certain that believers, when they have
-had a discovery that their sin was pardoned, have, at the same
-time, confessed it with great humility. Thus, immediately
-after Nathan had reproved David for his sin, and told him,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_290'>290</span>upon his repentance, that <i>the Lord had put it away</i>, 2 Sam.
-xii. 13. yet he makes a penitent confession of it before God,
-and says, <i>Against thee, thee only have I sinned, and done this
-evil in thy sight</i>, Psal. li. 4.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] We shall now consider with what frame of spirit sin is
-to be confessed; and this ought to be done,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, With a due sense of the infinite evil thereof, as it reflects
-dishonour on the divine perfections; and particularly as
-it is opposite to the holiness and purity of God, and a contempt
-cast on his law, which expressly forbids it, and a disregarding
-the threatenings denounced thereby against those who
-violate it, and renders us liable to his wrath, as a sin-revenging
-Judge, pursuant to the intrinsic demerit thereof: And therefore
-it is justly styled <i>an evil thing and bitter</i>; the only thing
-that can be called a moral evil; and it is certainly bitter in the
-consequences thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, We are to confess sin with humility, shame, confusion
-of face, and self-abhorrence; and that more especially, by reason
-of the vile ingratitude there is in it, as committed by
-those who are under the greatest engagements to the contrary
-duties.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Sin is to be confessed with the hope of obtaining forgiveness
-through the blood of Christ, as laying hold on the
-promises of mercy, which are made to those who confess and
-forsake it, Prov. xxviii. 13. and, with an earnest desire, to be
-delivered from the prevailing power thereof, by strength derived
-from Christ.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] We shall now consider what sins we are to confess before
-God; and these are, either the sin of our nature, or those
-actual transgressions that proceed from it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, The sin of our nature. As fallen creatures, we are destitute
-of the image of God; and, having contracted corrupt
-habits, by repeated acts of rebellion against him, all the powers
-and faculties of our souls are vitiated thereby, and we not only
-indisposed and disinclined to what is good, but naturally bent
-to backslide from God, and to commit the greatest abominations,
-if destitute of his preventing, restraining, or renewing
-grace: Thus the apostle says, <i>I know that in me, (that is, in
-my flesh) dwelleth no good thing</i>, Rom. vii. 18. And this is
-to be considered as what has universally defiled and depraved
-our nature; and therefore we ought to cry out with the leper,
-<i>Unclean, unclean</i>, Lev. xiii. 45. or, as the prophet say, <i>From
-the sole of the foot even unto the head, there is no soundness in us,
-but wounds, and bruises, and putrifying sores</i>, Isa. i. 6. We are
-to consider it as that which insinuates itself into our best duties;
-and it is like the fly in the precious ointment; and it is
-of such a nature, that when we have been enabled to gain some
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_291'>291</span>advantage against it, it will afterwards recover strength. Notwithstanding
-all our endeavours to the contrary. It is like an
-incurable disease in the body, which, though we endeavour to
-keep it under for a while, yet it will prevail again, till the
-frame of nature is demolished, and thereby all diseases cured
-at once: Nevertheless, when we confess and are humbled for
-this propensity, that is in our nature to sin, we are to pray and
-hope, that the prevailing power thereof may be so far weakened,
-that, by the principle of grace, implanted in regeneration,
-and excited by the Spirit, in promoting the work of sanctification,
-though it dwells in us it may not entirely have dominion
-over us, or we be thereby denominated the servants of sin.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, We are to confess the many actual sins that we daily
-commit, with all their respective aggravations; sins of omission
-and commission, both of which are contained in the apostle’s
-confession; <i>The good that I would do, I do not; but the evil
-which I would not, that I do</i>, Rom. vii. 19. Our sinful neglects
-of duty are numberless; we are to confess our not
-having redeemed our time, but spent it in those trifles and vain
-amusements that profit not; particularly if we have misimproved
-the very flower and best part of our time and strength,
-and not remembered our Creator in the days of our youth.
-This Job reckons the principal ground and reason of the evils
-that befal him in his advanced age, when he says, <i>Thou writest
-bitter things against me; and makest me to possess the iniquities
-of my youth,</i> Job xiii. 26. And we are humbly to confess our
-not having improved, and, thereby, lost many opportunities
-for extraordinary service, either to do, or to get good: Thus
-the prophet says, <i>Yea, the stork the heaven knoweth her appointed
-times, and the turtle, and the crane, and the swallow observe
-the time of their coming, but my people know not the judgment
-of the Lord</i>, Jer. viii. 7. We are also to confess our neglecting
-to comply with the calls and invitations of the gospel;
-upon which account we are said, <i>to receive the grace of God in
-vain,</i> 2 Cor. vi. 1. <i>or not to know the time of our visitation,</i>
-Luke xix. 44. but when God has <i>called, we have refused;
-when he has stretched out his hand, no man regarded, but have
-set at nought all his counsel, and would none of his reproof</i>,
-Prov. i. 24, 25. We are also to confess our neglect of public
-and secret duties, or worshipping of God in a careless indifferent
-manner; as the prophet represents the people, saying,
-<i>Behold, what a weariness is it, and ye have snuffed at it, saith
-the Lord of Hosts; and ye have brought that which was torn,
-and the lame and the sick; should I accept this at your hands?</i>
-Mal. i. 13. We are also to confess our neglect of relative duties,
-in not instructing those under our care, nor reproving
-them for sin committed, nor sympathizing with the afflicted,
-nor warning those who are going out of God’s way; by which
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_292'>292</span>means a multitude of sins might have been prevented, whereby
-many have been ruined through our sinful neglect.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As for sins of commission, which are also to be confessed;
-these are either such as were committed before or after our
-conversion to God; the former of which contain a disowning
-his authority, or right to obedience; the latter, an ungrateful
-disregard to, or forgetfulness of the greatest benefits received
-from him. We are also to confess those sins which are contrary
-to the moral law, or the very light of nature; which we
-are often guilty of: And, that we may be furnished with matter,
-and give scope to our thoughts and affections therein, it
-may be of use for us to consider the sins forbidden under each
-of the Ten Commandments, which have been before particularly
-insisted on. We ought also to confess the various aggravations
-of sin; and, to assist us therein, those things that
-are contained in a foregoing answer<a id='r103' /><a href='#f103' class='c012'><sup>[103]</sup></a>, may be of some use
-to us, especially if we make a particular application thereof to
-our own case, and observe how far we have reason to fall under
-a sense of guilt, or charge ourselves with crimes of the
-like nature.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, we are to confess the sins we have committed
-against the engagements or grace of the gospel; the low
-thoughts we have sometimes had of the person of Christ, his
-love to us, or the benefits we have been made partakers of from
-him, while we have been ready to say, as the daughters of
-Jerusalem are represented speaking, <i>What is thy beloved more
-than another beloved,</i> Cant. v. 9. and how much we have
-hardened our hearts against him, refusing to submit to his
-yoke, or bear his cross; how often we have been ashamed of
-his cause and interest, especially when called to suffer reproach
-for it. Have we not sometimes questioned the truth of
-his promises, refused to submit to his righteousness, and depend
-upon it alone for justification, while we have had too high
-thoughts of ourselves, glorying and valuing ourselves upon the
-performance of some moral duties, which we have put in the
-room of Christ?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We ought to confess how much we have opposed him in
-all his offices; not depending on him as a prophet to lead us
-in the way of truth and peace, but have leaned to our own understanding,
-and therefore have been left to pervert, disbelieve,
-or, at least, entertain some doubts about the great doctrines
-of the gospel; or, if our minds have been rightly informed
-therein, yet we have not made a practical improvement
-thereof, for our spiritual advantage. Have we not opposed
-him as a priest, and neglected to set a due value on that atonement
-he has made for sin, not improving his intercession for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_293'>293</span>us, who is entered into the holy place, made without hands,
-to encourage us to come boldly to the throne of grace? Have
-we not also refused to submit to him as king of saints, or seek
-protection from him against the assaults of our spiritual enemies?
-These things are to be confessed by us in prayer; and
-that with such a sense of our own guilt, that we ought to acknowledge
-ourselves to be, (as the apostle says concerning
-himself,) <i>the chief of sinners,</i> 1 Tim. i. 15.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I am sensible that many will be ready to conclude, that much
-of what has been said concerning sins to be confessed, is applicable
-to none but those that are in a state of unregeneracy;
-and, among them, few can say, that they are the chief of sinners,
-unless they have been notoriously vile and scandalous in
-the eye of the world; and that the apostle Paul, when he applies
-this to himself, has a peculiar reference to what he was
-before his conversion.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But to this it may be replied; that it is impossible we should
-know so much of the sins of others, together with their respective
-aggravations, as we may of those that have been committed
-by ourselves. And if we have not been left to commit
-those gross and scandalous sins, which we have beheld in them
-with abhorrence, this is not owing to ourselves, but the grace
-of God, by which we are what we are; which, if we had been
-destitute of, we should have been as bad as the worst of men;
-and if our hearts have been renewed and changed thereby, so
-that we are kept from committing those sins that are inconsistent
-with a state of grace; yet there are very heinous aggravations
-attending those we have reason to charge ourselves with;
-whereby we have acted contrary to the experience we have had
-of the efficacious influence of the Holy Spirit, and have been
-guilty of very great ingratitude against him, that has laid us under
-the highest obligations. Thus concerning confession of sin,
-when drawing nigh to God in the duty of prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We are now to consider another part of prayer, namely,
-that we are therein thankfully to acknowledge the mercies of
-God: Thus the Psalmist says, <i>Enter into his gates with thanksgiving,
-and into his courts with praise; be thankful unto him,
-and bless his name,</i> Psal. c. 4. And elsewhere, <i>I will offer to
-thee the sacrifice of thanksgiving; and will call upon the name of
-the Lord,</i> Psal. cxvi. 17. that is, I will join prayer and praise
-together. Nothing is more obvious, than that favours received
-ought to be acknowledged; otherwise we are guilty of that
-ingratitude which is one of the vilest crimes. Not to acknowledge
-what we receive from God, is, in effect, to deny our obligation
-to him; which will provoke him to withhold from us
-those other mercies which we stand in need of.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This duty ought to be performed at all times, and on all occasions:
-Thus the apostle says, <i>In every thing by prayer and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_294'>294</span>supplication with thanksgiving, let your request be made known
-unto God,</i> Phil. iv. 6. This is evident, in that there is no condition
-of life but what has some mixture of mercy in it; and that this
-may be more particularly considered, we may observe, that the
-mercies we receive from God, are either outward or spiritual,
-common or special; the former of these he gives to all without
-distinction; as it is said, <i>The Lord is good to all, and his
-tender mercies are over all his works,</i> Psal. cxlv. 9. And elsewhere,
-he is <i>kind unto the unthankful, and to the evil,</i> Luke vi.
-35. <i>and maketh his sun to rise on the evil and on the good, and
-sendeth rain on the just and on the unjust,</i> Matt. v. 45. The
-latter sort of mercies he bestows on the heirs of salvation, in a
-covenant-way, as the purchase of the blood of Christ, and a
-pledge of farther blessings which he has reserved in store for
-them: There are mercies which we have in hand, or in possession,
-and others which we have in hope or in reversion: Thus
-the apostle speaks of the <i>hope</i> which is <i>laid up for</i> the saints <i>in
-heaven,</i> Col. i. 3, 5. which he <i>thanks</i> God for in his prayer for
-the church.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, the mercies of God may be considered either as personal
-or relative; the former we are more immediately the
-subjects of; the latter affect us so far as we stand related to
-others, for whose welfare we are greatly concerned, and whose
-happiness makes a very considerable addition to our own.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] We are to express our thankfulness to God for personal
-mercies; and accordingly we are to bless him for the advantages
-of nature, which are the effects of divine goodness: Thus
-the Psalmist says, <i>I will praise thee; for I am fearfully and
-wonderfully made,</i> Psal. cxxxix. 14. Though the human nature
-falls very short of what it was at first, when the image of
-God was perfectly enstamped on all the powers and faculties
-of the soul; and it is not what it shall be when brought to a
-state of perfection in heaven: Yet there are many natural endowments
-which we have received from God, as a means for
-our glorifying him, and answering the end of our being, in the
-whole conduct of our lives: And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, As to what concerns the blessings of providence, which
-we have received in every age of life. In our childhood and
-youth we have great reason to be thankful, if we have had the
-invaluable blessing of a religious education, and have been
-kept or delivered from the pernicious influence of bad examples,
-from whence that age of life oftentimes receives such
-a tincture as tends to vitiate the soul, and open the way for
-all manner of sin, which will afterwards insinuate itself into,
-and prevail, like an infectious distemper, over all the powers
-and faculties thereof. What reason have we to bless God if
-we have been favoured with restraining or preventing grace,
-whereby we have been kept from youthful lusts, which are
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_295'>295</span>destructive to multitudes, and lay a foundation for their future
-ruin; and especially if it has pleased God to bring us under
-early convictions of sin; so that we have experienced in that
-age of life, the hopeful beginnings of a work of grace, which
-is an effect of more than common providence! We ought to
-take notice, with great thankfulness, of the methods of divine
-grace, if we have been early led into the knowledge of the first
-principles of the oracles of God, especially if they have made
-such an impression on our hearts, that we can say, with
-good Obadiah, <i>I thy servant, fear the Lord from my youth,</i>
-1 Kings xviii. 12.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, we are to express our thankfulness for the mercies
-which we have received in our advanced age, when arrived to
-a state of manhood; and accordingly are to bless him for directing
-and ordering our settlement in the world, in those
-things more especially that relate to our secular callings and
-employments therein, and the advantages of suitable society in
-those families in which our lot has been cast, as well as the
-many instances of divine goodness in our own. We ought
-also to bless him for succeeding our industry and endeavours
-used, to promote our comfort and happiness in the world, together
-with that degree of usefulness which it has pleased God
-to favour us with, therein. We ought also to bless him for
-carrying us through many difficulties that lay in our way, some
-of which we have been almost ready to think insurmountable;
-as also for bringing us under the means of grace, in which the
-providence of God is more remarkable, in those who have not
-been favoured with a religious education in their childhood;
-and more especially if these means have been made effectual
-to answer the highest and most valuable ends.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There are other mercies which some have reason to bless
-God for, who are arrived to old age, which is the last stage of
-life, wherein the frame of nature is declining and hastening
-apace to a dissolution. These, I say, have reason to be thankful,
-if they have not, as it were, outlived themselves, wholly
-lost their memory and judgment, by which means they would
-have been brought back again, as it were, to the state of childhood,
-as some have been; or, if old age be not pressed down
-beyond measure, with pain and bodily diseases, or a multitude
-of cares and troubles about outward circumstances in the world,
-which would tend to embitter the small remains of life, which
-has not much strength of nature to bear up under great troubles,
-nor can those methods be made use of, whereby others, without
-much difficulty, are able to extricate themselves out of
-them: But they, of all others, have most reason to bless God,
-who can look back on a long series of usefulness, in proportion
-to the number of years they have lived; so that that promise
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_296'>296</span>is fulfilled to them, <i>They shall still bring forth fruit in old
-age; they shall be fat and flourishing</i>, Psal. xcii. 14. This is
-more than a common mercy, and therefore requires a greater
-degree of thankfulness, when it may be said of them, <i>The
-hoary head is a crown of glory, being found in the way of
-righteousness</i>, Prov. xvi. 31. and grace keeps equal pace with
-age; and they have nothing to do but to wait for a release,
-from a careful, vain, uneasy life to heaven. Thus concerning
-the occasions we have for thankfulness in every age of life.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, We are now to consider the reason that we have to be
-thankful in the various circumstances or conditions of life;
-particularly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, When we have a great measure of outward prosperity,
-which is more than many enjoy; which calls for a proportionable
-degree of thankfulness, especially if it be sanctified and
-sweetened with a sense of God’s special love, so that it is a
-pledge and earnest of better things reserved for us hereafter.
-When we have the good things of this life for our conveniency,
-that our passage through the world may be more easy and comfortable
-to us; and yet we have ground to hope that this is not
-our portion, or that we are not like those whom the Psalmist
-speaks of, and calls <i>the men of the world, who have their portion
-in this life</i>, Psal. xvii. 14. or, like the rich man in the
-parable, to whom it was said, <i>Son, remember that thou in thy
-life-time receivedst thy good things</i>, Luke xvi. 25. We have
-reason to bless God when outward prosperity is a means of
-our glorifying him, and being more serviceable to promote his
-interest, and not a snare or occasion of sin, when it is not like
-the <i>prosperity of fools</i>, which has a tendency to <i>destroy them</i>,
-Prov. i. 32. or when what is said concerning that murmuring
-generation of men, whom the Psalmist speaks of, that <i>lusted
-exceedingly in the wilderness, and tempted God in the desert</i>:
-so that though <i>he gave them their request, he sent leanness into
-their soul</i>, is not applicable to us, Psal. cvi. 14, 15. Again,
-when we enjoy the outward blessings of providence, and, at
-the same time, live above them; so that our hearts are not too
-much set upon them; but we are willing to part with them,
-when God is about to deprive us of them, or take us from
-them; and when outward enjoyments are helps, and not hindrances
-to us in our way to heaven. These are inducements
-to the greatest thankfulness, and ought to be acknowledged to
-the glory of God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, We have reason to be thankful, though it pleases God
-to follow us with many afflictions and adverse providences in
-the world: These are not, indeed, to be reckoned blessings in
-themselves; nevertheless, they are not inconsistent with a thankful
-frame of spirit; especially,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_297'>297</span><i>1st</i>, When we take occasion from hence to be affected with
-the vanity, emptiness, and uncertainty of all outward comforts,
-which perish in the using.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, When afflictive providences have a tendency to humble
-and make us submissive to the divine will, so that we are
-hereby led to have a deep sense of sin, the procuring cause
-thereof. Thus Ephraim speaks of his being chastised by God,
-and, at the same time, <i>ashamed and confounded</i>, as <i>bearing the
-reproach</i> of former sins committed by him, Jer. xxxi. 18, 19.
-or, when those sins, which before prevailed, are hereby prevented,
-and we enabled to mortify them: Thus the Psalmist
-says, <i>Before I was afflicted, I went astray; but now I have kept
-thy word</i>, Psal. cxix. 67. And when God is pleased to cause
-his grace to abound as outward troubles abound. 2 Cor. iv. 16.
-and when the want of outward mercies makes us see the worth
-of them, and puts us upon improving every instance of the
-divine goodness, as a great inducement to thankfulness.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, We have reason to be thankful under afflictions, when
-we have a comfortable hope that they are evidences of our being
-God’s children, interested in his special love, Heb. xii. 7. so
-that we have ground to conclude, that he is hereby training us
-up, and making us more meet for the heavenly inheritance, so
-that we can say with the apostle, <i>Our light affliction, which is
-but for a moment, worketh for us a far more exceeding and
-eternal weight of glory</i>, 2 Cor. iv. 17.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] We are to express our thankfulness for those mercies
-which we call relative, or for the blessings that others enjoy,
-in whose welfare we are more immediately concerned. As it
-is the duty of every one to desire the good of all men; so we
-ought to bless God for the mercies bestowed on others as well
-as ourselves. The relation we stand in to others, is either more
-general or extensive, and, in this respect, it may include in it
-all mankind; and accordingly we are to be thankful for the
-mercies which our fellow-creatures receive from the hand of
-God, inasmuch as hereby the divine perfections are magnified:
-And, as for those who receive the blessings that accompany
-salvation, the ends of Christ’s death, and the dispensation of
-the gospel, are hereby attained; and whatever mercies God
-bestows on others, we bless him for them, as taking encouragement
-to hope that he will bestow the same blessings upon us,
-when we stand in need of them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As for those who are related to us in the bonds of nature, or
-as members of the family to which we belong, for whose welfare
-we are more immediately concerned, we may, in some
-measure, reckon the mercies they enjoy, our own, and
-therefore should be induced to bless God, and be thankful for
-them, as well as for those which we receive in our persons.—There
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_298'>298</span>is also another relation, which is more large and extensive,
-namely, that which we stand in to all the members of
-Christ’s mystical body, whom the apostle calls <i>the household of
-faith</i>, Gal. vi. 10. and, as such, supposes them to be entitled to
-our more special regard: Accordingly we are to express our
-thankfulness to God, in prayer, for all the mercies they receive,
-especially those that are of a spiritual nature; inasmuch as
-herein Christ is glorified, and his interest advanced, which
-ought to be dearer to us than any thing that relates to our own
-private or personal interest, as the Psalmist speaks of his preferring
-Jerusalem’s welfare above <i>his chief joy</i>, Psal. cxxxvii. 6.
-And that which farther inclines us to do this, is, because we
-hope that we shall be made partakers of the same blessings,
-whereby others will have occasion to bless God on our behalf.
-Thus concerning the inducements we have to thankfulness for
-blessings received, either by ourselves or others.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I shall conclude this head by considering, that thankfulness,
-which ought to be a great ingredient in prayer, is always to be
-accompanied with the exercise of other graces, whereby we
-are disposed to adore and magnify the divine perfections that
-are displayed in the distribution of those favours which we
-bless him for; together with an humble sense of our own unworthiness
-of the least of those mercies which we enjoy, and an
-earnest desire that we may be enabled, not only to do this in
-words, but to express our thankfulness to him by such a frame
-of spirit as is agreeable thereto.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There are two things more, contained in the answer we
-have been explaining, without the due consideration whereof,
-the duty of prayer would be very imperfectly handled, namely,
-its being an offering up of our desires to God in the name
-of Christ, and by the help of the Spirit: But since these are
-particularly insisted on in some following answers, I have purposely
-waved the consideration of them at present.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLXXIX., CLXXX., CLXXXI.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXIX.</span> <i>Are we to pray unto God only?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> God only being able to search the hearts, hear the
-requests, pardon the sins, and only to be believed in, and
-worshipped with religious worship, prayer, which is a special
-part thereof, is to be made by all to him alone, and to none
-other.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXX.</span> <i>What is it to pray the name of Christ?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> To pray in the name of Christ is in obedience to his
-command, and in confidence on his promises to ask mercy
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_299'>299</span>for his sake, not by bare mentioning of his name, but by
-drawing our encouragement to pray, and our boldness,
-strength, and hope of acceptance in prayer, from Christ and
-his mediation.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXXI.</span> <i>Why are we to pray in the name of Christ?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The sinfulness of man, and his distance from God by
-reason thereof, being so great as that we can have no access
-into his presence without a Mediator; and there being none
-in heaven or earth appointed to, or fit for that glorious
-work, but Christ alone; we are to pray in no other name
-but his only.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>In these answers we have a farther explication of what is
-briefly laid down in the last; and that, more especially, as
-to what respects the object of prayer; and the method prescribed
-in the gospel, relating to our drawing nigh to God,
-through a mediator, which is called praying in the name of
-Christ; together with the reason hereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. It is observed, that prayer is to be made to God alone,
-and to none other. This appears,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Because it is an act of religious worship, which is due to
-none but God; as our Saviour says, <i>Thou shalt worship the
-Lord thy God, and him only shalt thou serve</i>, Matt. iv. 10.—This
-can be denied by none who are, in any measure, acquainted
-either with natural or revealed religion; in which we are
-obliged to extol, adore, and admire those divine perfections
-which are displayed in the works of nature and grace, and to
-seek that help from him, and those supplies of grace that we
-stand in need of to make us completely blessed, which supposes
-him to be infinitely perfect and all-sufficient. Now to
-ascribe this divine glory to a creature, either directly, or by
-consequence, is, in effect, to say that he is equal with God,
-and thereby to rob him of that glory that is due to him alone,
-to seek that from the creature, that none but God can give, or
-to ascribe any of the perfections of the divine nature to it, is
-the highest affront that can be offered to the divine Majesty.
-Now as prayer without adoration and invocation, is destitute
-of those ingredients which render it an act of religious worship;
-so to address ourselves, in such a way, to any one but
-God, is an instance of such profaneness and idolatry, as is not
-to be mentioned without the greatest detestation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. Prayer is to be made only to God, inasmuch as he only
-is able to search the heart, which is a glory peculiar to himself,
-in which he is distinguished from all creatures, 1 Kings viii. 39.
-Acts i. 24. It is the heart that is principally to be regarded in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_300'>300</span>prayer: If this be not right with God, there is no glory that
-we can ascribe to him, that will be reckoned any better than
-<i>flattering him with our mouth</i>, and <i>lying to him with our
-tongues</i>, Psal. lxxviii. 36, 37. as the Psalmist says: Therefore,
-the inward frame of our spirit, and the principle, or spring
-from whence all religious duties proceed, being only known
-to God, prayer is only to be directed to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. He alone can hear our requests, pardon our sins, and
-fulfil our desires. Prayer, when addressed to God, is not like
-that in which we desire those favours from men, which are of
-a lower nature, whereby some particular wants are supplied,
-in those respects in which one creature may be of advantage
-to another; but when we pray to God, we seek those blessings
-which are the effects of infinite power and goodness, such as
-may make us completely happy, both in this and a better
-world. Moreover, we are to implore forgiveness of sin from
-him in prayer; which is a blessing none can bestow but God,
-Mark ii. 7. for as his law is the rule by which the goodness or
-badness of actions are determined; and the threatening which
-he has annexed to it, is that which renders us liable to that
-punishment sin deserves; so it is he alone that can remit the
-debt of punishment, which we are liable to, and give us a right
-and title to forfeited blessings; which being the principal thing
-that we are to seek for in prayer, this argues that none but God
-is the object thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. God alone is to be believed in: Accordingly prayer, if
-it be acceptable to him, must be performed by faith. Thus
-the apostle says, <i>How shall they call on him, in whom they have
-not believed?</i> Rom. x. 14. There must be a firm persuasion
-that he can grant us the blessings we ask for; herein faith addresses
-itself to him as God all-sufficient; and is persuaded that
-he will fulfil all his promises, as a God of infinite faithfulness;
-and accordingly we are to give up ourselves entirely to him as
-our proprietor and bountiful benefactor, the only fountain of
-blessedness, and object of religious worship: This is to be done
-by faith in prayer, and consequently it is to be directed to God
-only.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. We are now to consider what it is to pray in the name of
-Christ: This doth not consist barely in a mentioning his name;
-which many do when they ask for favours for his sake, without
-a due regard to the method God has ordained; in which we
-are to draw nigh to him by Christ our great Mediator, who
-is to be glorified as the person by whom we are to have access
-to God the Father as the fountain of all the blessings, which
-are communicated to us in this method of divine grace. To
-come to God in Christ’s name, includes in it the whole work
-of faith, as to what it has to plead with, or hope for, from him,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_301'>301</span>through a Mediator, in that way which he has prescribed to
-us in the gospel. And this more especially consists in our
-making a right use of what Christ has done and suffered for
-us, as the foundation of our hope, that God will be pleased to
-grant us what he has purchased thereby; which contains the
-sum of all that we can desire, when drawing nigh to him in
-prayer. Here let it be considered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That the thoughts of having to do with an absolute God,
-cannot but fill us with the utmost distress and confusion, when
-we consider ourselves as guilty sinners, and God, out of Christ,
-as a sin-revenging Judge, a consuming fire, Heb. xii. 29. in
-which case we may well say, as our first parent did, immediately
-after his fall, <i>I heard thy voice and I was afraid</i>, Gen.
-iii. 10.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. God is obliged, in honour, as a God of infinite holiness,
-to separate and banish sinners from his comfortable presence,
-they being liable to the curse and condemning sentence of the
-law; by reason whereof his terror makes them afraid, and his
-dread falls upon them; nevertheless,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. They have, in the gospel, not only an invitation to come,
-but a discovery of that great Mediator, whom God has ordained
-to conduct his people into his presence, having procured
-liberty of access to him, or, as the apostle expresses it, <i>boldness
-to enter into the holiest by his blood, by a new and living
-way, which he has consecrated for us through the vail, that is
-to say, his flesh</i>, Heb. x. 19, 20. and he has, for this end,
-erected a throne of grace, and encouraged us to come to it,
-and given many great and precious promises, whereby we may
-hope for acceptance in his sight; these being all established in
-Christ, and the blessings contained therein procured by his
-blood, and having liberty, in coming, to plead what he has
-done and suffered, as what was designed to be the foundation
-of our hope of obtaining mercy, we are said to come and make
-our supplications to God in the name of Christ.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>III. We are now to consider the reason why we are to pray
-in the name of Christ; and that we have in one of the answers
-we are explaining. In which it is observed; that man, by sin,
-is set at such a distance from God, that he cannot, by any
-means, come into his presence. God cannot look upon him
-with any delight or complacency; inasmuch as his guilt renders
-him the object of his abhorrence; and he cannot do any
-thing which has a tendency to reconcile God to him, and therefore
-he is speechless, and can ask for no blessing at his hand.
-And it is farther observed, that there is none in heaven or
-earth, that is, no mere creature, that is fit for that glorious
-work; none has a sufficiency of merit to present to God,
-whereby he may be said to make atonement for sin; or, as Job
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_302'>302</span>expresses it, there is <i>no days-man that might lay his hand on
-both</i> parties, Job ix. 33. that is, able to deal with God in paying
-a ransom; which he may, in honour accept of; or with
-man, by encouraging him to hope that he shall obtain the
-blessings which he stands in need of; and bringing him into
-such a frame, that he may draw nigh to God in a right manner.
-This is only owing to our Lord Jesus Christ; and he does it
-as our great Mediator, who alone is fit to manage this important
-work; therefore we are to pray to God, only in his
-name, who is, by divine appointment, an advocate with the Father,
-pleading our cause before his throne, and thereby giving
-us ground of encouragement, that our persons shall be accepted,
-and our prayers answered upon his account, who is
-the only Mediator of redemption and intercession, in whom
-God is well pleased, and gives a believer ground to conclude
-that he shall not seek his face in vain.</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLXXXII., CLXXXIII., CLXXXIV.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXXII.</span> <i>How doth the Spirit help us to pray?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> We not knowing what to pray for as we ought, the
-Spirit helpeth our infirmities, by enabling us to understand
-both for whom, and what, and how prayer is to be made,
-and by working and quickening in our hearts (although not
-in all persons, not at all times in the same measure) those
-apprehensions, affections, and graces, which are requisite
-for the right performance of that duty.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXXIII.</span> <i>For whom are we to pray?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> We are to pray for the whole church of Christ, upon
-earth, for magistrates and ministers, for ourselves, our brethren,
-yea, our enemies, and for all sorts of men living, or
-that shall live hereafter, but not for the dead, nor for those
-that are known to have sinned the sin unto death.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXXIV.</span> <i>For what things are we to pray?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> We are to pray for all things tending to the glory of
-God, the welfare of the church, our own, or other’s good, but
-not for any thing that is unlawful.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>As there is no duty that we can perform in a right manner,
-without help obtained from God—And the same may be
-said, in particular, concerning that of prayer: Accordingly we
-are led,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. To speak of the help that the Spirit of God is pleased to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_303'>303</span>afford believers, in order to their engaging aright in this duty.
-Here we may observe,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That it is supposed that we know not what to pray for as
-we ought, or how to bring our souls into a prepared frame for
-this duty, without the Spirit’s assistance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) We are oftentimes at a loss with respect to the matter
-of prayer; and this may be said to proceed from our being
-unacquainted with ourselves, and not duly sensible of our
-wants, weaknesses, or secret faults: Sometimes we cannot determine
-whether we are in a state of grace or no; or, if we are,
-whether it is increasing or declining; or, if we have ground to
-complain by reason of the hidings of God’s face, and our want
-of communion with him, we are oftentimes hard put to it to find
-out what is that secret sin which is the occasion of it; nor are we
-sufficiently apprized of the wiles of Satan, or the danger we
-are in of being ensnared or overcome thereby. Moreover, we
-are oftentimes not able to know how to direct our prayers to
-God aright, as we know not what is most conducive to his
-glory, or what it is that he requires of us, either in obedience
-to his commanding will, or in submission to his providential
-will. Hence it arises, that many good men, in scripture, have
-asked for some things which have been in themselves unlawful,
-through the weakness of their faith, and the prevalency of
-their corruption: Thus some have desired, that God would
-call them out of this world by death, being impatient under
-the many troubles they met with therein; accordingly we read
-concerning Elijah, that ‘he requested for himself that he might
-die, and said, It is enough; now, O Lord, take away my
-life; for I am not better than my fathers,’ 1 Kings xix. 4.
-and Job says, ‘O that I might have my request! and that God
-would grant me the thing that I long for! Even that it would
-please God to destroy me; that he would let loose his hand,
-and cut me off,’ Job vi. 8, 9. And Jonah says, ‘O Lord, I
-beseech thee, take my life from me; for it is better for me to
-die than to live,’ Jonah iv. 3. And Moses, though he had
-the character of the meekest man upon earth, and doubtless
-excelled all others in his day, in those graces which he had
-received from God, as well as in the great honours conferred
-on him; yet he puts up a most unbecoming prayer, both as to
-the matter and manner thereof; as it is observed, that he said
-unto the Lord, ‘Wherefore hast thou afflicted thy servant?
-and wherefore have I not found favour in thy sight, that thou
-layest the burden of all this people upon me? Have I conceived
-all this people? have I begotten them, that thou shouldest
-say unto me, Carry them in thy bosom (as a nursing-father
-beareth the sucking child) unto the land which thou
-swarest unto their fathers? Whence should I have flesh to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_304'>304</span>give unto all this people? for they weep unto me, saying,
-Give us flesh, that we may eat. I am not able to bear all this
-people alone, because it is too heavy for me. And if thou deal
-thus with me, kill me, I pray thee, out of hand, if I have
-found favour in thy sight; and let me not see my wretchedness,’
-Numb. xi. 11-15. And, in another instance, he asks
-for a thing which he knew before hand, that God would not
-grant him, when he says, ‘I pray thee, let me go over and see
-the good land that is beyond Jordan, that goodly mountain,
-and Lebanon:’ Upon which God says, ‘Let it suffice thee,
-speak no more unto me of this matter,’ Deut. iii. 25, 26.—Many
-instances of the like nature are mentioned in scripture;
-and, indeed, nothing is more obvious from daily experience,
-that what the apostle James observes, that persons ‘ask and
-receive not, because they ask amiss,’ James iv. 3. or what the
-apostle Paul says, ‘We know not what we should pray for as
-we ought,’ Rom. viii. 26.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We are, at other times, straitened in our affections,
-and so know not how to ask any thing with a suitable frame of
-spirit: It is certain we cannot excite our affections, or especially
-put forth those graces which are to be exercised in
-prayer, when we please. Our hearts are sometimes dead,
-cold, and inclined to wander from God in this duty; and, at
-other times, we pray with a kind of indifferency, as though it
-was of no great importance whether our prayer were answered
-or no. How seldom do we express that importunity in this
-duty which Jacob did, ‘I will not let thee go, except thou
-bless me?’ Gen. xxxii. 26. And as for those graces that are
-to be exercised in prayer, we often want that reverence, and
-those high and awful thoughts of the divine Majesty, which
-we ought to have, who draw nigh to a God of infinite perfection;
-nor, on the other hand, do we express those low and
-humble thoughts of ourselves, as our own meanness, the imperfection
-of our best performances, and the infinite distance
-which we stand at from God, ought to suggest; and to this
-we may add, that we are often destitute of that love to Christ,
-and trust in him, which are necessary to the right performance
-of this duty, as also of that hope of being heard, which is a
-very great encouragement to it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We are now to enquire wherein the Spirit is said to help
-our infirmities; and this may be considered as adapted to that
-two-fold necessity which we are often under, respecting the
-matter or frame of spirit with which this duty is to be performed.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) The Spirit helps our infirmities, with respect to the
-matter of prayer. This is not in the least derogatory to his
-divine glory, if he is pleased to condescend thus to converse
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_305'>305</span>with man, and it is not contrary to the nature of things; for
-the Spirit, being a divine Person, searches the heart, and can
-impress those ideas on the souls of his people, whereby they
-may be led into the knowledge of those things that they ought
-to ask in prayer, with as much facility as any one can convey
-his ideas to another by words. If it was impossible for God
-to do this, his providence could not be conversant about intelligent
-creatures, any otherwise than in an objective way, in
-which it would not differ from that which may be attributed to
-finite spirits. And it would have been impossible for God to
-have imparted his mind and will by extraordinary revelation,
-(without which, it could not have been known) if he may not,
-though it be in an ordinary way, communicate those ideas to
-the souls of his people, whereby they may be furnished with
-matter for prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I am not pleading for extraordinary revelation; for that is to
-expect a blessing that God does not now give to his people:
-But I only argue from the greater to the less; whereby it
-may appear, that it is not impossible, or absurd, from the nature
-of the thing, or contrary to the divine perfections, for God
-to impress the thoughts of men in an ordinary way; since he
-formerly did this in an extraordinary, as will be allowed by
-all, who are not disposed to deny and set aside revealed religion.
-Moreover, there was such a thing in the apostle’s days,
-as being led by the Spirit, which was distinguished from his
-miraculous and extraordinary influences, as a Spirit of inspiration;
-otherwise, it is certain, he would not have assigned this
-as a character of the children of God, which he does, Rom.
-viii. 14. And when our Saviour promises his people the <i>Spirit
-to guide them into all truth</i>, John xvi. 13. I cannot think that
-this only respected the apostles, or their being led into the
-truths that they were to impart to the church by divine inspiration;
-but it seems to be a privilege that belongs to all believers:
-Therefore, we conclude, that it is no absurdity to
-suppose that he may assist his people, as to what concerns the
-matter of their prayers, or suggest to them those becoming
-thoughts which they have in prayer, when drawing nigh to
-God in a right manner.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Some have enquired, whether we may conclude that the
-Spirit of God furnishes his people with words in prayer, distinct
-from his impressing ideas on their minds? This I would
-be very cautious in determining, lest I should hereby not put
-a just difference between this assistance of the Spirit, that believers
-hope for, and that which the prophets of old received
-by inspiration. I dare not say, that the Spirit’s work consists
-in furnishing believers with proper expressions, with which
-their ideas are clothed, when they engage in this duty, but
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_306'>306</span>rather with those suitable arguments and apprehensions of
-divine things, which are more immediately subservient thereunto:
-Accordingly the apostle, speaking of the Spirit’s assisting
-believers, when they know not what to pray for as they
-ought, says, that he does this <i>with groanings that cannot be
-uttered</i>: that is, he impresses on their souls those divine
-breathings after things spiritual and heavenly, which they
-sometimes, notwithstanding, want words to express; though,
-at the same time, the frame of their spirits may be under a
-divine influence, which God is said to know the meaning of,
-when he graciously hears and answers their prayers, how imperfect
-soever they may be, as to the mode of expression.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) The Spirit helps our infirmities by giving us a suitable
-frame of spirit, and exciting those graces which are to be exercised
-in this duty of prayer. This the Psalmist calls, <i>preparing
-their hearts</i>; which God does, and then <i>causes his ear
-to hear</i>, Psal. x. 17. which is a very desirable blessing; and,
-in order to our understanding it aright, let it be considered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] That we cannot, without the Spirit’s assistance, bring
-our hearts into a right frame for prayer; and that is the reason
-why we engage in this duty, in such a manner as gives
-great uneasiness to us when we reflect upon it; so that when
-we pretend to draw nigh to God, we can hardly say that we
-worship him as God, but become vain in our imaginations;
-and the corruption of our nature discovers itself more at this
-time than it does on other occasions; and Satan uses his utmost
-endeavours to distract and disturb our thoughts, and take
-off the edge of our affections; whereby we seem not really to
-desire those things which, with our lips, we ask at the hand
-of God. As for an unregenerate man, he has not a principle
-of grace, and therefore cannot pray in faith, or with the exercise
-of those other graces which he is destitute of; and the believer
-is renewed but in part, and therefore, if the Spirit is
-not pleased to excite the principle of grace which he has implanted,
-he is very much indisposed for this duty, which cannot
-be performed aright without his assistance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] We are, nevertheless, to use our utmost endeavours, in
-order thereunto, hoping for a blessing from God to succeed
-them. Accordingly, we are to meditate on the divine perfections,
-and the evil of sin, which is contrary thereunto; whereby
-we are rendered guilty, defiled, and unworthy to come into
-the presence of God; yet we consider ourselves as invited to
-come to him in the gospel, and encouraged by his promise
-and grace, to cast ourselves before his footstool, in hope of obtaining
-mercy from him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We are also to examine ourselves, that we may know what
-sins are to be confessed by us, and what are those necessities
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_307'>307</span>which will afford matter for petition or supplication in prayer,
-together with the mercies we have received; which are to be
-thankfully acknowledged therein. We are also to consider
-the many encouragements which we have, to draw nigh to God
-in this duty, taken from his being ready to pardon our iniquities,
-heal our backslidings, help our infirmities, and grant us
-undeserved favours. We must also impress on our souls a
-due sense of the spirituality of the duty we are to engage in,
-and that we have to do with the heart-searching God, who will
-be worshipped with reverence and holy fear; and therefore
-we are to endeavour to excite all the powers and faculties of
-our souls, to engage in this duty in such a way that we may
-hereby glorify his name, and hope to receive a gracious answer
-from him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] When we have used our utmost endeavours to bring
-ourselves into a praying frame, yet we must depend on the
-Holy Spirit to give success thereunto, that we may be enabled
-to exercise those graces that are more especially his gift and
-work: And, in order thereunto,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, We must give glory to him as the author of regeneration,
-since no grace can be exercised in this duty but what
-proceeds from a right principle, or a nature renewed, and internally
-sanctified, and disposed for the performance hereof;
-which is his work, as the <i>Spirit of grace and of supplication</i>,
-Zech. xii. 10.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, As we are to draw nigh to God in this duty, as a reconciled
-God and Father, if we hope to be accepted by him;
-so we are to consider, that this is the peculiar work of the Spirit,
-whereby we are <i>enabled to cry, Abba, Father</i>, Rom. viii. 15.
-Gal. iv. 6. This will not only dispose us to perform this duty
-in a right manner, so as to enable us to pray in faith; but it
-will afford us ground of hope that our prayers will be heard
-and answered by him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Inasmuch as we often are straitened in our spirits,
-which is a great hindrance to us in this duty, we must consider
-it as a peculiar blessing and gift of the Holy Ghost, to have
-our hearts enlarged; which the Psalmist intends, when he says,
-<i>Bring my soul out of prison, that I may praise thy name</i>, Psal.
-cxlii. 7. and it is a peculiar branch of that liberty which he is
-pleased to bestow on his people, under the gospel-dispensation;
-as the apostle says, <i>Where the Spirit of the Lord is, there is liberty</i>,
-2 Cor. iii. 17. And by this means our affections will be
-raised, and we enabled to pour out our souls before him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This may give us occasion to enquire concerning the difference
-that there is between raised affections in prayer, which
-unregenerate persons sometimes have, from external motives;
-and those which the Spirit excites in us as a peculiar blessing,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_308'>308</span>whereby he assists us in the discharge of this duty. There are
-several things in which they differ; as,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, The former of these oftentimes proceeds from a slavish
-fear and dread of the wrath of God; the latter from a love to,
-and desire after him, which arises from the view we have of
-his glory, as our covenant God, in and through a Mediator.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, Raised affections in unregenerate persons, are seldom
-found, but when they are under some pressing affliction, in
-which case, as the prophet says, <i>They will seek God early</i>, Hos.
-v. 15. but when this is removed, the affections grow stupid,
-cold, and indifferent, as they were before his afflicting hand
-was laid upon them: Whereas, on the other hand, a believer
-will find his heart drawn forth after God and divine things,
-when he is not sensible of any extraordinary affliction that
-gives vent to his passions; or he finds, that as afflictions tend
-to excite some graces in the exercise whereof his affections are
-moved, so when it pleases God to deliver him from them, his
-affections are still raised while other graces are exercised
-agreeably thereunto.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Raised affections, in unregenerate men, for the most
-part, carry them forth in the pursuit of those temporal blessings
-which they stand in need of: Thus when Esau sought
-the blessing carefully with tears, it was that outward prosperity
-which was contained therein, that he had principally in
-view, as disdaining that his brother Jacob should be preferred
-before him; or, as it is said, <i>made his Lord, and his brethren
-given him for servants</i>, Gen. xxvii. 37. but he had no regard
-to the spiritual or saving blessings contained therein: Whereas,
-a believer is most concerned for, and affected with those
-blessings that immediately accompany salvation, or contain in
-them the special love of God, or communion with him, which
-he prefers to all other things: Thus the Psalmist says, <i>There
-be many that say, Who will shew us any good? Lord, lift thou
-up the light of thy countenance upon us</i>, Psal. iv. 6. And to
-this we may add,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, Whatever raised affections unregenerate persons may
-have, they want a broken heart, an humble sense of sin, and
-an earnest desire that it may be subdued and mortified; they
-are destitute of self-denial, and other graces of the like nature,
-which, in some degree, are found in a believer, when assisted
-by the Spirit, in performing the duty of prayer in a right
-manner.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>From what has been said concerning the Spirit’s assistance
-in prayer, we may infer,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That there is a great difference between the gift and the
-grace of prayer: The former may be attained by the improvement
-of our natural abilities, and is oftentimes of use to others
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_309'>309</span>who join with us therein; whereas the latter is a peculiar
-blessing from the Spirit of God, and an evidence of the truth
-of grace.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, They who deny that the Spirit has any hand in the
-work of grace, and consequently disown his assistance in
-prayer, cannot be said to give him that glory that is due to
-him, and therefore must be supposed to be destitute of his
-assistance, and very deficient as to this duty.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Let us not presume on the Spirit’s assistance in prayer,
-while we continue in a course of grieving him, and quenching
-his holy motions.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, Let us desire raised affections, as a great blessing
-from God, and yet not be discouraged from engaging in prayer,
-though we want them; since this grace, as well as all
-others, is dispensed in a way of sovereignty: And if he is
-pleased, for wise ends, to withhold his assistance; yet we
-must not say, why should I wait on the Lord any longer?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>5thly</i>, If we would pray in the Spirit, or experience his help,
-to perform this duty in a right manner, let us endeavour to
-walk in the Spirit, and to maintain a spiritual, holy, self-denying
-frame, at all times, if we would not be destitute of it,
-when we engage in this duty. This leads us to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. The persons for whom we are to pray; and on the other
-hand, who are not to be prayed for.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. As to the former of those: It is observed,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) That we are to pray for the whole church of Christ
-upon earth; by which we are to understand, all those that profess
-the faith of the gospel, especially such whose practice is
-agreeable to their profession; and in particular, all those religious
-societies who consent to walk in those ordinances whereby
-they testify their subjection to Christ, as king of saints.
-The particular members of which these societies consist, are,
-for the most part, unknown to us; so that we cannot pray for
-them by name, or as being acquainted with the condition and
-circumstances in which they are; yet they are not to be wholly
-disregarded, or excluded from the benefit of our prayers:
-Thus the apostle speaks of the <i>great conflict he had</i>, not only
-<i>for them at Laodicea; but, for as many as had not seen his face
-in the flesh</i>, Col. ii. 1. This is a peculiar branch of the communion
-of saints, and it is accompanied with those earnest desires
-which we have, that God may be glorified in them,
-and by them, as well as ourselves; particularly we are to
-pray,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] That they may be united together in love to God and
-to one another, John xvii. 21. That this may be attended with
-all those other graces and comforts which are an evidence
-of their interest in Christ.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_310'>310</span>[2.] That they may have the special presence of God with
-them in all his ordinances, which will be a visible testimony
-of his regard to them, and an honour put on his own institutions,
-as well as an accomplishment of what he promised to
-his apostles just before he ascended into heaven, that he
-would <i>be with them always even unto the end of the world</i>,
-Mat. xxviii. 20.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] That they may be supported under the burdens, difficulties
-and persecutions which they meet with, either from the
-powers of darkness or wicked men, for Christ’s sake, that so
-the promise may be made good to them, that <i>the gates of hell
-shall not prevail against them</i>, chap. xvi. 18.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[4.] That there may be added to particular churches out of the
-world, many such as shall be saved, Acts ii. 47. which shall be
-an argument of the success of the gospel: And when we pray,
-that God would magnify his grace in bringing sinners home
-to himself, we are to pray for the accomplishment of those promises
-that respect the conversion of the Jews: Thus the apostle
-says, <i>Brethren, my heart’s desire and prayer to God for Israel
-is, that they might be saved</i>, Rom. x. 1. and, that there
-may be a greater spread of the gospel throughout the most remote
-and dark parts of the earth, among whom Christ is,
-at present, unknown: This the apostle calls <i>The fulness of
-the Gentiles coming in</i>, chap. xi. 25. and it is agreeable to
-what is foretold by the prophet Isaiah, in chap. lx. which
-seems not as yet to have had its full accomplishment.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[5.] We are to pray that the life of faith and holiness may
-be daily promoted in all the faithful members of the church
-of Christ, that they may be enabled more and more to adorn
-the doctrine of God, our Saviour, and be abundantly satisfied,
-and delighted with the fruits and effects of his redeeming
-love.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[6.] That God would accept of those sacrifices of prayer
-and praise that are daily offered to him by faith, in the blood
-of Christ, in every worshipping assembly, which will redound
-to the advantage of all the servants of Christ, whom they
-think themselves obliged to make mention of in their prayers,
-as well as to the glory of God, which is owned and advanced
-thereby.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[7.] That the children of believers, who are devoted to God,
-may be under his special care and protection, that they may
-follow the footsteps of the flock, and fill up the places of those
-who are called off the stage of this world; that so there may
-be a constant supply of those who shall bear a testimony to
-Christ and his gospel in the rising generation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[8.] That the members of every particular church of Christ
-may acquit themselves so as that they may honour him in the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_311'>311</span>eyes of the world, and be supported and carried safely through
-this waste howling wilderness, till they arrive at that better
-country for which they are bound; and that they may not
-be foiled or overcome while they are in their militant state,
-but may be joined with the church triumphant in heaven.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We are to pray for magistrates. This is not only included
-in the general exhortation given us to <i>pray for all men</i>;
-but they are particularly mentioned by the apostle, and it is
-intimated that it is <i>good and acceptable in the sight of God our
-Saviour,</i> 1 Tim. ii. 1-3. This also may be argued from hence,
-that magistracy is God’s ordinance, Rom. xiii. 1, 2. and there
-is no ordinance which is enstamped with the divine authority,
-though it may principally respect civil affairs; but we are to
-pray that God would succeed and prosper it, that it may answer
-the valuable ends for which it was appointed.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Now there are several things that we are to pray for in
-the behalf of magistrates, <i>viz.</i> that they may approve themselves
-rulers after God’s own heart, to <i>fulfil all his will,</i> Acts
-xii. 26. as was said of David; that their counsels and conduct
-may be ordered for his glory, and the good of his church;
-that they may not be a <i>terror</i> to good <i>works;</i> namely, to persons
-that perform them, but <i>to the evil</i>; and so <i>may not bear
-the sword in vain,</i> Rom. xiii. 3, 4. Accordingly we are to pray,
-that they may be a public blessing to all their subjects, and
-herein that promise may be fulfilled; <i>Kings shall be thy
-nursing-fathers, and their queens thy nursing-mothers,</i> Isa.
-xlix. 23. and, as an instance hereof, that under them <i>we may
-lead a quiet and peaceable life, godliness and honesty,</i> 1
-Tim. ii. 2. And, as to what concerns their subjects, that their
-authority may not be abused and trampled on by them, on the
-one hand, while they take occasion to offend with impunity;
-nor be dreaded as grievous to others who feel the weight thereof,
-in instances of injustice and oppression.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) We are to pray for ministers. This is a necessary duty,
-inasmuch as their work is exceeding great and difficult; so that
-the apostle might well say, <i>Who is sufficient for these things,</i>
-2 Cor. ii. 16. And, indeed, besides the difficulties that attend
-the work itself, there are others that they meet with, arising
-from the unstable temper of professed friends, who sometimes,
-as the apostle says, <i>become their enemies for telling them the
-truth,</i> Gal. iv. 16. or from the restless malice and violent opposition
-of open enemies; which evidently takes its rise from
-that inveterate hatred that they bear to Christ and his gospel.
-Moreover, as they have difficulties in the discharge of the
-work they are called to, so they must give an account to
-God for their faithfulness therein; and it is of the highest
-importance that they do this <i>with joy, and not with grief,</i>
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_312'>312</span>Heb. xiii. 17, 18. as the apostle speaks; and immediately he
-intreats the church’s prayers, as that which was necessary in
-order hereunto. Now there are several things which ought to
-be the subject-matter of our prayers, with respect to ministers.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] That God would send forth a supply or succession of
-them, to answer the church’s necessities; inasmuch as <i>the harvest
-is plenteous</i>, as our Saviour observes, <i>but the labourers are
-few,</i> Matt. xi. 37, 38.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] That they may answer the character which the apostle
-gives of a faithful minister; and accordingly <i>study to shew
-themselves approved unto God, workmen that need not to be
-ashamed, rightly dividing the word of truth,</i> 2 Tim. ii. 15.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] That they may be directed and enabled to impart those
-truths that are substantial, edifying, and suitable to the circumstances
-and condition of their hearers.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[4.] That they may be spirited with zeal, and love to souls,
-in the whole course of their ministry; that the glory of God,
-and the advancement of his truth may lie nearest their hearts,
-and a tender concern and compassion for the souls of men,
-may incline them to use their utmost endeavours, as the apostle
-speaks, <i>to save them with fear, pulling them out of the fire,</i>
-Jude, ver. 23.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[5.] That their endeavours may be attended with success,
-which, in some measure, may give them a comfortable hope
-that they are called, accepted, and approved of by God, which,
-from the nature of the thing will tend to their own advantage,
-who make this the subject of our earnest prayers on their
-behalf; and, indeed, the neglect of performing this duty, may,
-in some measure, be assigned as one reason why the word is
-often preached with very little success; so that this ought to
-be performed, not barely as an act of favour, but as a duty
-that redounds to our own advantage.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) We are to pray, not only for ourselves and our brethren,
-but for our enemies. That we are to pray for ourselves,
-none ever denied, how much so ever many live in the
-neglect of this duty; and as for our obligation to pray for our
-brethren, that is founded in the law of nature; which obliges
-us to love them as ourselves, and, consequently, to desire their
-welfare, together with our own.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>However, it may be enquired, what we are to understand by
-our brethren, for whom we are to express this great concern
-in our supplications to God? For the understanding of which,
-let it be considered, that, besides those who are called <i>brethren</i>,
-in the most known acceptation of the word, as Jacob’s
-sons tell Joseph, <i>We be twelve brethren, sons of one father,</i> Gen.
-xlii. 32. it is sometimes taken, in scripture, for any near kinsman:
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_313'>313</span>Thus Abraham and Lot are called <i>brethren</i>, chap. xiii.
-8. though they were not sons of the same father, for Lot was
-Abraham’s brother’s son, chap. xi. 31. this is a very common
-acceptation of the word in scripture. Again, it is sometimes
-taken in a more large sense, for those who are members of the
-same church: Thus the apostle calls those that belonged to
-the church at Colosse, <i>the saints and faithful brethren in Christ,</i>
-Col. i. 2. and sometimes they who are of the same nation, are
-called brethren: Thus it is said, <i>When Moses was full forty
-years old, it came into his heart to visit his brethren the children,
-of Israel,</i> Acts vii. 23. And it is sometimes taken for those
-who make profession of the same religion with ourselves; and
-also for those who are kind and friendly to us: Thus it is
-said, <i>A friend loveth at all times, and a brother is born for adversity,</i>
-Prov. xvii. 17. and, indeed, the word is sometimes
-taken in the largest sense that can be, as comprizing in it all
-mankind, who have the same nature with ourselves, 1 John
-iv. 21. These are objects of love, and therefore our prayers
-are, especially in proportion to the nearness of the relation
-they stand in to us, to be directed to God on their behalf.
-Some, indeed, are allied to us by stronger bonds than others;
-but none, who are entitled to our love, pity, and compassion,
-are to be wholly excluded from our prayers.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This will farther appear, if we consider that we are also to
-pray for our enemies, as the law of nature obliges us to do
-good for evil; and consequently, as our Saviour says, we are
-to <i>pray for them which despitefully use us, and persecute us,</i>
-Matt. v. 44. We are not, indeed, to pray for them, that they
-may obtain their wicked and unjust designs against us; or that
-they may have power and opportunity to hurt us; for that is
-contrary to the principle of self-preservation, which is impressed
-on our nature; but we are to pray for them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] That however they carry it to us they may be made
-Christ’s friends, their hearts changed, and they enabled to
-serve his interest; that they, together with ourselves, may be
-partakers of everlasting salvation; therefore it is a vile thing,
-and altogether inconsistent with the spirit of a christian, to desire
-the ruin, much more the damnation of any one, as many
-wickedly and profanely do.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] We are to pray that their corruptions may be subdued,
-their tempers softened, and their hearts changed; so that they
-may be sensible of, and lay aside their unjust resentments
-against us. And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] If they are under any distress or misery, we are not to
-insult or take pleasure in beholding it, but to pity them, and
-to pray for their deliverance, as much as though they were not
-enemies to us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_314'>314</span>(5.) We are to pray not only for all sorts of men now living;
-according to what is contained in the last head, but for
-those that shall live hereafter. This includes in it an earnest
-desire that the interest of Christ may be propagated from generation
-to generation; and his kingdom and glory advanced
-in the world until his second coming: Thus the Psalmist says,
-<i>He will regard the prayer of the destitute, and not despise their
-prayer: This shall be written for the generation to come; and
-the people which shall be created, shall praise the Lord</i>, Psal. cii.
-17, 18. and our Saviour says, <i>Neither pray I for these alone,
-but for them also which shall believe on me through their word</i>,
-John xvii, 20.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We are now to consider those who are excluded from
-our prayers; and these are either such as are dead, or those
-who have sinned the sin unto death.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) We are not to pray for the dead. This is asserted in
-opposition to what was maintained and practised by some in
-the early ages of the church, and paved the way for those
-abuses and corruptions which are practised by the church of
-Rome, at this day, who first prayed for the dead, and afterwards
-proceeded farther in praying for them. The first step
-that was taken leading hereunto, seems to have been their being
-guilty of great excesses in the large encomiums they made
-in their public anniversary orations, in commemoration of the
-martyrs and confessors, who had suffered in the cause of
-christianity. This was done at first, with a good design, viz.
-to excite those who survived, to imitate them in their virtues,
-and to express their love to the cause for which they suffered;
-but afterwards they went beyond the bounds of decency in
-magnifying and extolling them; and then they proceeded yet
-farther, in praying for them; This is often excused, by some
-modern writers, from the respect they bear to them, who first
-practised it; though it can hardly be vindicated from the
-charge of will-worship, since no countenance is given to it in
-scripture.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>That which is generally alleged in their behalf, is, that they
-supposed the souls of believers did not immediately enter into
-heaven, but were sequestered, or disposed of in some place inferior
-to it, which they sometimes call <i>paradise</i>, or <i>Abraham’s
-bosom</i>, where they are to continue till their souls are re-united
-to their bodies. Whether this place be above or below the
-earth, all are not agreed; but their mistake arises from their
-misunderstanding those scriptures which describe heaven under
-these metaphorical characters of <i>paradise</i>, or <i>Abraham’s
-bosom</i><a id='r104' /><a href='#f104' class='c012'><sup>[104]</sup></a>. Here they suppose that they are, indeed, delivered
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_315'>315</span>from the afflictions and miseries of this present life; but yet
-not possessed of perfect blessedness in God’s immediate presence.
-Therefore they conclude, that there was some room
-for prayer, that the degree of happiness which they were possessed
-of, might be continued, or rather, that it might in the
-end, be perfected, when they are raised from the dead, and admitted
-to partake of the heavenly blessedness.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Others thought, that at death, the sentence was not peremptorily
-past either on the righteous or the wicked, so that
-there was room left for them to pray for the increase of the
-happiness of the one, or of the mitigation of the torment of the
-other; and therefore, in different respects, they prayed for all,
-both good and bad, especially for those who were within the
-pale or inclosure of the church; and above all, for such as
-were useful to, and highly esteemed by it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The principal thing that is said in vindication of this practice
-(for what has been but now mentioned, as the ground and
-reason thereof, will by no means justify it) is, that though the
-souls of believers are in heaven; yet their happiness will not
-be, in all respects, complete, till the day of judgment: Therefore,
-in their prayers, they chiefly had regard to the consummation
-of their blessedness at Christ’s second coming, together
-with the continuance thereof, till then; without supposing
-that they received any other advantage thereby. And, inasmuch
-as this is not a matter of uncertainty, they farther observe,
-that many things are to be prayed for, which shall certainly
-come to pass, whether we pray for them or no; <i>e. g.</i>
-the gathering of the whole number of the elect, and the coming
-of Christ’s kingdom of glory: Therefore they suppose, that the
-advantage principally redounds to those who put up prayers to
-God for them, as hereby they express their faith in the doctrine
-of the resurrection, and the future blessedness of the
-saints, and the communion that there is between the church
-militant and triumphant.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This is the fairest colour that can be put upon that ancient
-practice of the church, and the many instances that we meet
-with, in the writings of the Fathers, concerning their prayers
-for the dead<a id='r105' /><a href='#f105' class='c012'><sup>[105]</sup></a>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_316'>316</span>Thus concerning the practice of the church, before we read
-of the fictitious place which the Papists call <i>purgatory</i>; where
-they fancy, that separate souls endure some degrees of torment,
-and are relieved by the prayers of their surviving friends;
-which was not known to the church before the seventh century;
-and is without any foundation from scripture, as has been
-before observed under a foregoing answer<a id='r106' /><a href='#f106' class='c012'><sup>[106]</sup></a>. Now since this
-was formerly defended, and is now practised by the Papists,
-the contrary doctrine is asserted in this answer, <i>viz.</i> that we
-are not to pray for the dead; and that this may farther appear,
-let it be considered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>That the state of every man is unalterably fixed, at death;
-so that nothing remains which can be called an addition to the
-happiness of the one, or the misery of the other, but what is the
-result of the re-union of the soul and body at the resurrection;
-and therefore to pray that the saints may have greater degrees
-of glory conferred upon them, or sinners a release from that
-state of misery in which they are, is altogether ungrounded;
-and therefore such prayers must be concluded to be unlawful.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>That the state of man is fixed at death is sufficiently evident
-from scripture: Thus our Saviour, in the parable of the <i>rich
-man</i> and <i>Lazarus</i>, speaks of the one as immediately <i>carried
-by the angels into Abraham’s bosom</i>, Luke xvi. 22, <i>&amp;c.</i> (by
-which, notwithstanding what some ancient writers have asserted
-to the contrary, we are to understand heaven;) and the
-other as being in a place of <i>torments</i>, without any hope or probability
-of the least mitigation thereof; whereby hell, not purgatory
-is intended: And the apostle says, <i>It is appointed unto
-men once to die, and after this the judgment</i>, Heb. ix. 27, by
-which he intends, that all men must leave the world; and when
-they are parted from it, their state is determined by Christ;
-though this is not done in so public and visible a manner, as
-it will be in the general judgment: If therefore the state of
-men be unalterably fixed at death; it may be justly inferred
-from thence, that there is no room for any one to put up prayers
-to God on their behalf: Prayer must have some proof on
-which it relies, otherwise it cannot be addressed to God by
-faith; or, as the apostle expresses it, <i>nothing wavering</i>, James
-i. 6. Now, if we have no ground to conclude that our prayers
-shall be heard and answered; or have any doubt in our spirits
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_317'>317</span>whether the thing prayed for be agreeable to the will of
-God; such a prayer cannot be put up in faith, and therefore
-is not lawful.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> 1. The Papists, in defence of the contrary doctrine,
-are very much at a loss for scriptures to support it: However,
-there is one, taken from a passage in the apocryphal writings,
-in which Judas Maccabeus, and his company, are represented
-as praying and offering a sin-offering, and thereby making reconciliation
-for the dead, <i>i. e.</i> some that had been slain in battle,
-2 Maccab. xii. 43,-45.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> The reply that some make to this, is, that the prayers
-for the dead here spoken of, are of a different nature from those
-which the Papists make use of in the behalf of those whom
-they pretend to be in purgatory, or, that they prayed for
-nothing but what some of the Fathers, as before-mentioned
-did, <i>viz.</i> that they might be raised from the dead, whereby
-they expressed their faith in the doctrine of the resurrection:
-But, I think there is a better reply may be given to it, namely,
-that the argument is not taken from any inspired writing; and
-therefore no more credit is to be given to it than any other human
-composure, in which some things are true, and others false:
-And as for this book in particular, the author himself plainly intimates
-that he did not receive it by divine inspiration; for he
-says, <i>If I have done well, and as it is fitting the story, it is that
-which I desired; but if slenderly and meanly, it is that which
-I could attain unto</i>, chap. xv. 38. which is very honestly said;
-but not like an inspired writer, and therefore nothing that is
-said therein is a sufficient proof of any important article of
-faith or practice, such as that is, which we are now defending.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> 2. It is farther objected, that the apostle Paul puts up
-a short and affectionate prayer for Onesiphorus, in 2 Tim. i.
-18. <i>The Lord grant unto him, that he may find mercy of the
-Lord in that day</i>; whereas, it is concluded by some, that, at
-the time the apostle wrote this epistle, Onesiphorus was dead,
-since there are two petitions put up, one in this verse for him,
-and another in ver. 16. for <i>his house</i>; and in chap. iv. 19.
-when he salutes some of his friends, according to his custom,
-he makes mention of the <i>household of Onesiphorus</i>, not of him.
-This turn Grotius himself gives of this scripture<a id='r107' /><a href='#f107' class='c012'><sup>[107]</sup></a>. And the
-Papists greedily embrace it, as it gives countenance to their
-practice of praying for the dead.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> It is but a weak foundation that this argument is
-built on; for though Paul salutes his household, and not himself,
-in the close of this epistle, it does not follow from hence,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_318'>318</span>that he was dead; for he might be absent from his family at
-this time, as he often was, when engaged in public service, as
-being sent by the church, as their messenger, to enquire concerning
-the progress and success of the gospel in other parts;
-or to carry relief to those who were suffering in Christ’s cause:
-It may be, the apostle might be informed that he was then in
-his way to Rome, where he was himself a prisoner when he
-wrote this epistle; and if so, it would not have been proper to
-send salutations to him, whom he expected shortly to see,
-while, at the same time, he testified the great love he bore to
-him and all his family, as being a man of uncommon zeal for
-the interest of Christ and religion.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) They are not to be prayed for who have sinned the
-sin unto death. This sin we read of, as what excludes persons
-from forgiveness, in scripture, Matt. xii. 32. in which
-such things are said concerning it, as should make us fear and
-tremble, not only lest we should be left to commit it, but give
-way to those sins which border upon it; and there is enough
-expressed therein to encourage us to hope that we have not
-committed it; which is the principal thing to be insisted on,
-when we treat on this subject in our public discourses, or
-any are tempted to fear, lest they are guilty of it. Here let it
-be observed, that though it be called <i>the sin unto death</i>, we are
-not to suppose that it is one particular act of sin, but rather a
-course or complication of sins, wherein there are many ingredients
-of the most heinous nature. And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] That it cannot be committed by any but those who
-have been favoured with gospel light; for it always contains
-in it a rejection of the gospel, which supposes the revelation or
-preaching thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] It is not merely a rejecting the gospel, though attended
-with sufficient objective evidence, in those who have not had
-an inward conviction of the truth thereof, or whose opposition
-to it proceeds principally from ignorance, as the apostle says
-concerning himself, that <i>though he was a blasphemer, a persecutor,
-and injurious; yet he obtained mercy, because he did it ignorantly,
-in unbelief</i>, 1 Tim. i. 13.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] It is a rejecting the gospel which we once professed to
-embrace, and therefore carries in it the nature of apostacy:
-Thus the Scribes and Pharisees, when they attended on John’s
-ministry, professed their willingness to adhere to Christ, and
-afterwards, when he first appeared publicly in the world, they
-were convinced in their consciences, by the miracles which he
-wrought, that he was the Messiah; though, after this they were
-offended in him, and ashamed to own him, because of the humbled
-state and condition in which he appeared in the world;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_319'>319</span>for which reason, they, in particular, were charged with this
-sin in the scripture before-mentioned.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[4.] It also contains in it a rejecting of Christ and the known
-truth, out of envy, and this attended with reviling, persecuting,
-and using their utmost endeavours to extirpate and
-banish it out of the world, and beget in the minds of men the
-greatest detestation of it: Thus the Jews are said to <i>deliver
-Christ out of envy</i>, Matt. xxvii, 18. and with the same spirit
-they persecuted the gospel.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[5.] Such as are guilty of this sin, have no conviction in
-their consciences of any crime committed herein; but stop
-their ears against all reproof, and set themselves, with the
-greatest hatred and malice, against those, who, with faithfulness,
-admonish them to the contrary.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[6.] They go out of the way of God’s ordinances, and wilfully
-exclude themselves from the means of grace, which they
-treat with the utmost contempt, and use all those endeavours
-that are in their power, that others may be deprived of them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[7.] This condition they not only live but die in; so that
-their apostacy is not only total, but final.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>However, I cannot but observe, that some are of opinion
-that this sin cannot be now committed, because we have not
-the dispensation of miracles, whereby the Christian religion
-was incontestibly proved, in our Saviour’s and the apostles’
-time: And the main thing in which it consisted in the scripture
-before-mentioned, in Matt. xii. was, in that the Pharisees
-were charged with saying, that Christ <i>cast out devils by Beelzebub,
-the prince of the devils</i>; whereby they intimate that those
-miracles, which they had before been convinced of the truth
-of, as being wrought by the finger of God, were wrought by
-the devil: which supposes that they were eye-witnesses to
-such-like miracles wrought, which we cannot be: Therefore it
-is concluded by some, that this sin cannot now be committed;
-inasmuch as the dispensation of miracles is ceased. But this
-method of reasoning will not appear so strong and conclusive,
-if we consider, that though, it is true, the gospel is not now
-confirmed to us by miracles; yet we have no less ground to
-believe that the christian religion was confirmed by this means,
-than if we had been present at the working of these miracles.
-Nevertheless, though it should be alleged, that this ingredient
-cannot, in every circumstance, be contained in the sin against
-the Holy Ghost, in our day; yet there are other things included
-in the description of it, before-mentioned, in which it
-principally consists, that bear a very great resemblance to that
-sin which we have been considering: As for instance, if persons
-have formerly believed Christ to be the Messiah, and
-been persuaded that this was incontestibly proved by the miracles
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_320'>320</span>which he wrought, and accordingly, were inclined to
-adhere to him, and embrace the gospel, wherein his person and
-glory are set forth; and yet have afterwards apostatized from
-this profession; and if this had been attended with envy and
-malice against Christ; and if they have treated the evidence
-which they once acknowledged, the Christian religion, to have
-been undeniably supported by, with contempt and blasphemy;
-and have totally rejected that faith which they once professed,
-arising from carnal policy, and the love of this world; and
-when this is attended with judicial hardness of heart, blindness
-of mind, and strong delusions, together with a rooted hatred of
-all religion, and a malicious persecution of those that embrace
-it; This is what we cannot but conclude to bear a very great
-resemblance to that which, in scripture, is called the unpardonable
-sin; and it is a most deplorable case, which should be so
-far improved by us, as that we should use the utmost caution,
-that we may not give way to those sins which bear the least resemblance
-to it: Nevertheless, doubting christians are to take
-heed that they do not apply this account that has been given
-of it to themselves, so as to lead them to despair; which is
-not the design of any description thereof, which we have in
-scripture. Now that these may be fortified against such-like
-objections, let it be considered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That it is one thing peremptorily to determine that it is
-impossible for any one to commit this sin in our day, since the
-dispensation of miracles is ceased, (which is, in effect, to suppose
-that we can have no evidence for the truth of the Christian
-religion, but what is founded on occular demonstration;
-such as they who saw Christ’s miracles;) and another thing to
-determine concerning particular persons, that they are guilty of
-this sin. It is certain that this matter might be determined
-with special application to particular persons in our Saviour’s
-and the apostles’ time, when there was among other extraordinary
-gifts, that of discerning of spirits; and consequently it
-might be known, whether they who apostatized from the faith
-of the gospel, had before this, received a full conviction of the
-truth thereof; and it might then be known, by extraordinary
-revelation, that God would never give them repentance, and
-therefore their apostacy would be final; and, it is more than
-probable, that this was supposed by the apostle, when he
-speaks of some that had committed this sin, who are not to be
-prayed for: But these things cannot be known by us; therefore
-I would not advise any one to forbear to pray for the worst
-of sinners, who seem most to resemble those that are charged
-with this sin, this matter not being certainly known by us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, That which is principally to be considered for the encouragement
-of those who are afraid that they have committed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_321'>321</span>this sin, is, that persons certainly know that they have not
-committed it, though they are in an unregenerate state; as,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, When <i>they have not had opportunity</i>, or those means that
-are necessary to attain the knowledge of the truth, and so remain
-ignorant thereof; or if they have had sufficient means to
-know it, they have not committed this sin, <i>if they desire and
-resolve to wait on God in his ordinances</i>, in order to their receiving
-good thereby.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, They <i>who are under conviction of sin</i>, disapprove of,
-and <i>have some degree of sorrow and shame for it</i>, may certainly
-conclude that they have not committed the sin against the
-Holy Ghost.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, If persons have reason to think that their hearts are
-hardened through the deceitfulness of sin, and that they are
-greatly backslidden from God; yet they ought not to conclude
-that they have committed this sin, <i>if they are afraid lest
-they should be given up to a perpetual backsliding</i>, or dread
-nothing more than a total and a final apostacy; upon which
-account they are induced to pray against it, and to <i>desire a
-broken heart, and that faith, which, at present, they do not experience</i>.
-In this case, though their state be dangerous, yet
-they ought not to determine against themselves, that they have
-committed the sin unto death.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The use which we ought to make of this awful doctrine,
-and the hope that there is that we have not committed this sin
-is,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That we should <i>take heed that we do not give way to wilful
-impenitency, and a contempt of the means of grace</i>, lest we
-should provoke God to give us up to judicial hardness of
-heart, so as to make sad advances towards the commission
-thereof: Let us take heed that we do not sin against the light
-and conviction of our own consciences, <i>and wilfully neglect
-and oppose the means of grace</i>, which, whether it be the sin
-unto death or no, is certainly a crime of the most heinous and
-dangerous tendency.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. Let doubting christians <i>take heed that they do not give
-way to Satan’s suggestions</i>, tempting them to conclude that
-they have committed this sin; which they are sometimes afraid
-that they have, though they might determine that they have
-not, did they duly weigh what has been but now observed concerning
-this matter.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. <i>Let us bless God, that yet there is a door of hope, and resolve
-by his grace</i>, that we will always wait on him in the ordinances
-which he has appointed, till he shall be pleased to give
-us ground to conclude better things concerning ourselves, even
-things that accompany salvation. This leads us to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>III. What we are to pray for; particularly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_322'>322</span>1. For those things which concern the glory of God. And
-that we may know what they are, we are to enquire; whether,
-if God should give us what we ask for, it would have a tendency
-to set forth any of his divine perfections, and thereby
-render him amiable and adorable in the eyes of his creatures,
-so that in answering our prayers, he would act becoming himself?
-We are also to take an estimate of this matter, from the
-intimation he has given us hereof in his word, in which we may
-observe, not only whether he has given us leave, but commands
-and encourages us to ask for it; more especially, whether he
-has promised to give it to us; and, whether our receiving the
-blessing we ask for, has a tendency to fit us for his service,
-that hereby praise that waits for him, may be ascribed to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We are to pray for those things which concern our own
-good, or the good of others. These are particularly insisted on
-in the Lord’s prayer, which is explained in the following answers;
-therefore it is sufficient for us, at present, to consider
-the good we are to pray for in general, namely, temporal blessings,
-which are the effects of divine bounty, concerning which,
-our Saviour says, <i>Your heavenly Father knoweth that ye have
-need of these things</i>, Mat. vi. 32. We are also to pray for
-spiritual blessings, such as forgiveness of sin, strength against
-it, and the sanctifying influences of the Spirit, to produce in
-us holiness of heart and life; as also, for deliverance from, and
-victory over our spiritual enemies. We are also to pray for
-the consolations of the holy Ghost, arising from assurance of
-the love of God, whereby we may have peace and joy in believing;
-and for all those blessings which may make us happy
-in a better world.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. We are to pray for those things which are lawful to be
-asked of God; and accordingly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) The things we pray for, must be such as it is possible
-for us to receive, and particularly such as God has determined
-to bestow, or given us ground to expect, in this present world:
-Therefore we are not to pray for those blessings to be applied
-here, which he has reserved for the heavenly state; such as a
-perfect freedom from sin, tribulation or temptation, or our enjoying
-the immediate views of the glory of God: These things
-are to be desired in that time and order, in which God has determined
-to bestow them; therefore we are to wait for them
-till we come to heaven, and, at present, we are to desire only
-to be made partakers of those privileges which he gives to his
-children in their way thither.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We are not to pray that God would inflict evils on
-others, to satisfy our private revenge for injuries done us;
-since this is, in itself, unlawful, and unbecoming a Christian
-frame of spirit, and contrary to that duty which was before
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_323'>323</span>considered, of our praying for our very enemies, and seeking
-their good.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) We are not to ask for outward blessings without setting
-bounds to our desires thereof; nor are we to ask for them unseasonably,
-or for wrong ends. We are not to pray for them
-as though they were our chief good and happiness, or of equal
-importance with things that are more immediately conducive
-to our spiritual advantage; and therefore, whatever measure
-of importunity we express in praying for them, it is not to be
-inconsistent with an entire submission to the divine will, as
-being satisfied that God knows what is best for us; or, whether
-that which we desire, will, in the end, prove good or hurtful
-to us; much less ought we to ask for outward blessings, that
-we may abuse, and, as the apostle James speaks, <i>Consume them
-upon our lusts</i>, James iv. 3.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLXXXV.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXXV.</span> <i>How are we to pray?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> We are to pray with an awful apprehension of the
-Majesty of God, and deep sense of our own unworthiness,
-necessities, and sins, with penitent, thankful, and enlarged
-hearts, with understanding, faith, sincerity, fervency, love,
-and perseverance, waiting upon him, with humble submission
-to his will.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>This answer respects the manner of performing this duty,
-and the frame of spirit with which we are to draw nigh
-to God. Accordingly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. We are to pray with an awful apprehension of the Majesty
-of God; otherwise our behaviour would be highly resented
-by him, and reckoned no other than a thinking him
-altogether such an one as ourselves. Some of the divine perfections
-have a more immediate tendency to excite an holy
-reverence; accordingly we are to consider him as omnipresent,
-and omniscient, to whom our secret thoughts, and the principle
-from whence our actions proceed, are better known than
-they can be to themselves. We are to conceive of him as a God
-of infinite holiness; and therefore he cannot but be highly
-displeased with that worship that is opposite thereunto, as proceeding
-from a conscience defiled with sin, or performed in an
-unholy manner. Thus the prophet says, <i>Thou art of purer
-eyes than to behold evil, and canst not look on iniquity</i>, Hab. i.
-13. that is, thou canst not behold it without the utmost detestation;
-and therefore, <i>if we regard it in our heart, he will not
-hear</i> our prayers, Psal. lxvi. 18. We are also to have a due
-sense of the spirituality of his nature, that we may worship
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_324'>324</span>him in a spiritual manner; therefore we are not to entertain
-any carnal conceptions, or frame any ideas of him, like those
-we have of finite or corporeal beings; nor are we to think it
-sufficient, that our external mien and deportment have been
-grave, and carried in it a shew of reverence, when our hearts
-have not, at the same time, been engaged in this duty, or disposed
-to give him the glory that is due to his name. We are
-also to draw nigh to him with a due sense of those perfections
-that tend to encourage us to perform this duty, with hope of
-finding acceptance in his sight. Therefore we are to conceive
-of him, as a God of infinite goodness, mercy, and faithfulness,
-with whom is plenteous redemption, in and through a Mediator,
-which is suitable to our condition, as indigent, miserable,
-and guilty sinners; and a God of infinite power, who is <i>able
-to do exceeding abundantly above all we are able to ask or think</i>,
-Eph. iii. 20.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We are to pray to God with an humble sense of our own
-unworthiness. This is the necessary result of those high conceptions
-we have of his divine excellency and greatness;
-whereby we are led to consider ourselves as infinitely below
-him; and, indeed, the best of creatures are induced hereby to
-worship him with the greatest humility: Thus the Seraphim
-are represented in that vision, which the prophet Isaiah had of
-them, as ministering to, and attending upon our Lord Jesus,
-when sitting on a throne on his temple; as <i>covering their faces
-and their feet with their wings</i>, denoting their unworthiness
-to behold his glory, or to be employed by him in his service,
-Isa. vi. 1-4. But when we take a view of his infinite holiness,
-and our own impurity, this should be an inducement to
-us to draw nigh to him, with the greatest humility: As dependent
-creatures, we have nothing but what we derive from
-him; as frail dying creatures, we wither away, and are brought
-to nothing, Job xiii. 25. Job compares this to a leaf that is
-easily broken, and driven to and fro, or to the dry stubble,
-that can make no resistance against the wind that pursues it;
-and the Psalmist, speaking of man in general, says, <i>Lord, what
-is man, that thou takest knowledge of him; or the son of man,
-that thou makest account of him?</i> Psal. civ. 3. And elsewhere
-it is said, <i>What is man, that thou shouldest magnify him, and
-that thou shouldest set thine heart upon him?</i> Job vii. 17. These
-are humbling considerations; but we shall be led into a farther
-sense of our own unworthiness, when we consider ourselves as
-sinful creatures, worthy to be abhorred by God; therefore he
-might justly reject us, and refuse to answer our prayers. But
-since this humble frame of spirit is so necessary for the right
-performance of this duty, let us farther observe, as an inducement
-hereunto.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_325'>325</span>(1.) That the greatest glory we can bring to God can make
-no addition to his infinite perfections: Thus it is said, <i>Can a
-man be profitable unto God, as he that is wise may be profitable
-unto himself? Is it any pleasure, that is, any advantage, to the
-Almighty, that thou art righteous? or is it gain to him, that thou
-makest thy ways perfect?</i> Job xxiii. 2, 3. And elsewhere, <i>If
-thou be righteous, what givest thou him, or what receiveth he of
-thy hand?</i> ch. xxxv. 7. denoting that it is impossible for us,
-by any thing we can do or suffer for his sake, to make him
-more glorious than he would have been in himself, had we
-never had a being: Therefore, if there is nothing by which we
-can lay any obligations on God, we have reason to address ourselves
-to him with a sense of our own unworthiness.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We are so far from meriting any good thing from the
-hand of God, that by our repeated transgressions, notwithstanding
-the daily mercies we receive from him, we give farther
-proofs of our great unworthiness; and, indeed, if we are
-enabled to do any thing in obedience to his will, this is not
-from ourselves; yea, it is contrary to the dictates of corrupt
-nature, and must be ascribed to him as the author of it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) If we could do the greatest service to God by espousing
-his cause, and promoting his interest in the world; it is
-no more than what we are bound to do; and, at the same time
-we must consider, that <i>it is God that worketh in</i> us, <i>both to
-will and to do of his good pleasure</i>, Phil. ii. 13.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) The best believers recorded in scripture, have entertained
-a constant, humble sense of their own unworthiness:
-Thus Abraham, when he stood before the Lord, making supplications
-in the behalf of Sodom, expresses himself thus, <i>Behold,
-now I have taken upon me to speak unto the Lord, who am
-but dust and ashes</i>. And Jacob says, <i>I am not worthy of the
-least of all thy mercies, and of all the truth which thou hast shewed
-unto thy servant</i>, Gen. xxxii. 10. And they who have been
-most zealous for, and made eminently useful in promoting
-Christ’s interest in the world, have had an humble sense of
-their own unworthiness; as the apostle says concerning himself,
-<i>I am the least of the apostles, that am not meet to be called
-an apostle</i>, 1 Cor. xv. 9. And he immediately adds, <i>By the
-grace of God I am what I am</i>, ver. 10. And elsewhere he
-styles himself, <i>less than the least of all saints</i>, Eph. iii. 8.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We have another instance of humility in prayer, in the
-Psalmist’s words, <i>I am a worm, and no man</i>, Psal. xxii. 6.
-which, so far as they have any reference to his own case, may
-give us occasion to infer, that the most advanced circumstances,
-in which any are in the world, are not inconsistent with humility,
-when drawing nigh to God in prayer; but if we consider
-him speaking in the person of Christ, as several expressions
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_326'>326</span>of this Psalm argue him to do, and cannot well be taken
-in any other sense<a id='r108' /><a href='#f108' class='c012'><sup>[108]</sup></a>; then we have herein the most remarkable
-instance of the humble address that was used by Christ
-in his human nature, when drawing nigh to God in prayer;
-which is certainly a great motive to induce us to engage in this
-duty with the utmost humility.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. We are to draw nigh to God in prayer, with a sense of
-our necessities, and the sins that we have committed against
-him. Accordingly, we are to consider ourselves as indigent
-creatures, who are stripped and deprived of that glory, and
-those bright ornaments which were put on man at first in his
-state of innocency; destitute of the divine image, and all those
-things that are necessary to our happiness, unless he is pleased
-to supply these wants, forgive our iniquities, and grant us
-communion with himself; which things we are to draw nigh
-to him in prayer for. We are also, in this duty, to have a
-sense of sin, <i>viz.</i> the guilt that we contract thereby, and the
-punishment we have exposed ourselves to, that we may see
-our need of drawing nigh to God in Christ’s righteousness;
-and also of the stain and pollution thereof, which may induce
-us to fall down before the footstool of the throne of grace, with
-the greatest degree of self-abhorrence. We are also to consider
-how we are enslaved to sin, how much we have been,
-and how prone we are at all times, to <i>serve divers lusts and
-pleasures</i>, Tit. iii. 3. and to <i>walk according to the course of this
-world, according to the prince of the power of the air, the spirit
-that now worketh in the children of disobedience</i>, Eph. ii. 2.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, we are to consider sin as deeply rooted in our
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_327'>327</span>hearts, debasing our affections, and captivating our wills. If
-we are in an unconverted state, we are to look upon it as
-growing and encreasing in us, rendering us more and more
-indisposed for what is good, by which means we are set at a
-farther distance from God and holiness: On the other hand,
-if we have ground to hope we are made partakers of converting
-grace, then we have acted contrary to the highest obligations,
-and been guilty of the greatest ingratitude. These
-things we are to endeavour to be affected with, when drawing
-nigh to God in prayer, in order to our performing this duty
-aright.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. There are several graces that are to be exercised in
-prayer;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Repentance: This is necessary, because we are sinners;
-and as such, are to come into the presence of God with confession,
-joined with supplication which must be made with a
-penitent frame of spirit; the contrary to which, is a tacit approbation
-of sin, and a kind of resolution to adhere to it, which
-is very unbecoming those who are pleading for forgiveness:
-Accordingly, when God promised that he would <i>pour out upon
-the house of David, and upon the inhabitants of Jerusalem, the
-spirit of grace and of supplications</i>, he adds, that <i>they shall
-look upon him, whom they have pierced, and mourn for him</i>, or
-for it, <i>as one mourneth for his only son; and shall be in bitterness,
-as one that is in bitterness for his first-born</i>: And that
-this shall be done by <i>every family apart, and their wives apart</i>,
-Zech. xii. 10. <i>&amp; seq.</i> So when <i>the priests, the ministers of
-the Lord</i>, are commanded to <i>pray</i>, that <i>he</i> would <i>spare his
-people</i>; they, are, at the same time, to <i>weep between the porch
-and the altar, to rent their hearts, and turn unto the Lord their
-God</i>, Joel ii. 13. 17. And when Israel is advised to <i>take with
-them words</i>, and instructed how they should pray, they are
-exhorted to <i>turn unto the Lord</i>; to repent of their seeking help
-from Assyria and Egypt, and of that abominable idolatry
-which they had been guilty of, Hos. xiv. 1, 2, 3, 8.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Now there are several subjects very proper for our meditation;
-which may, through the divine blessing accompanying
-it, excite this grace, when we are engaged in the duty of
-prayer; particularly the multitude of transgressions which are
-charged on the consciences of men by the law, that <i>every mouth
-may be stopped, and all the world become guilty before God</i>,
-Rom. iii. 19. and especially the ingratitude which we have
-reason to accuse ourselves of, and our contempt of Christ, and
-the way of salvation by him, which is discovered in the gospel;
-and our having done many things in the course of our
-lives, which fill us with shame and sorrow, whenever we come
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_328'>328</span>into the presence of God, to pour out our hearts before him
-in this duty.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) The next grace to be exercised in prayer is, thankfulness,
-in which respect prayer and praise ought to be joined
-together: Thus the Psalmist says, <i>Praise waiteth for thee O
-God, in Zion, and unto thee shall the vow be performed, O thou
-that hearest prayer</i>, Psal. lxv. 1, 2. That this is a part of
-prayer has been observed under a foregoing answer; in which
-we considered the many blessings that we have reason to be
-thankful for. I shall only add, at present, that it is matter of
-thankfulness, that we have liberty of access to God, in hope of
-obtaining mercy from him, as sitting on a throne of grace, who
-might have been forever banished from his presence, or have
-been brought before his judgment-seat as criminals, doomed to
-everlasting destruction.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, we are to bless him, not only that we have leave
-to come before him, but have often experienced that he has
-heard, and answered our prayers, and therein has fulfilled that
-promise, <i>I said not to the seed of Jacob, seek ye me in vain</i>,
-Isa. xlv. 19. And that we may be brought into a thankful
-frame, we ought to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] The worth of every mercy; especially those that are
-spiritual, or accompany salvation; and this we may judge of
-by the price that was paid for it, which is no less than the
-blood of Jesus; which the apostle not only styles <i>precious</i>, but
-speaks of it as infinitely preferable to every thing that is <i>corruptible</i>,
-1 Pet. i. 18, 19. And we may, in some measure,
-take an estimate thereof by the worth and excellency of the
-soul, and as it is conducive to promote its eternal welfare.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] We are also to consider every saving blessing, as the
-fruit and result of everlasting love, and as the consequence of
-God’s eternal design, in having chosen those, who are the objects
-thereof, to salvation in Christ, Jer. xxxi. 3. Eph. i. 3, 4.
-We must also consider these mercies as discriminating, whereby
-God distinguishes his people from the world, and herein
-glorifies the riches of his grace, in those who deserve to have
-been, for ever, the monuments of his wrath: We might here
-consider, as an inducement to this grace of thankfulness, the
-aggravations of the sin of ingratitude.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, It is a virtual disowning our obligation to, or dependence
-on God, from whom we receive all mercies, and a behaving
-ourselves in such a manner as though we were not
-beholden to him for them, or could be happy without him; as
-though we were self-sufficient, and did not look upon him as
-the fountain of blessedness.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, It is a refusing to give him the glory of his wisdom,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_329'>329</span>power, goodness, and faithfulness, which are eminently displayed
-in the blessings that he bestows.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, It is disagreeable to the large expectations we have of
-those blessings he has reserved for his people, or promised to
-them, or that hope which he has laid up for them in heaven.
-Therefore we cannot but conclude that ingratitude argues a
-person destitute of that holiness which eminently discovers itself
-in the exercise of the contrary grace: Accordingly the
-apostle joins these two characters together, when speaking
-of the vilest of men, whom he styles, <i>unthankful, unholy</i>, 2
-Tim. iii. 2.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) Another grace, to be exercised in prayer, is faith.
-This implies an habitual disposition of soul, proceeding from
-a principle of regenerating grace, whereby we are led to commit
-ourselves, and all our concerns, into Christ’s hand, depending
-on his merits and mediation for the supply of all our
-wants, considering him as having purchased, and as being
-authorized to apply, all the benefits of the covenant of
-grace, which are the subject-matter of our supplications to
-him. More particularly, faith exerts and discovers itself in
-prayer,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] By encouraging the soul, and giving it an holy boldness
-to draw nigh to God, notwithstanding our great unworthiness.
-If we are afraid to come into the presence of an holy
-God, and, destruction from him is a terror to us, if the threatnings
-he has denounced against sinners, such as we know
-ourselves to be, discourage us from drawing nigh to him, so
-that we are ready to say with Job, ‘Therefore am I troubled
-at his presence; when I consider, I am afraid of him,’
-Job xxiii. 15. If his almighty power, that can easily sink us
-into perdition, overwhelms our spirits, and fills us with the
-utmost distress and confusion, so that we cannot draw nigh
-to him in prayer, considering him as an absolute God; we
-are encouraged by faith, to look upon him as our covenant
-God, and Father in Christ; and then all his divine perfections
-will afford relief to us. His sin-revenging justice is regarded
-by faith, as that which is fully satisfied by Christ’s obedience
-and sufferings; and therefore will not demand that satisfaction
-at our hands, which it has already received from our
-surety, who was ‘made sin for us’ though he ‘knew no sin,
-that we might be made the righteousness of God in him,’ 2
-Cor. v. 21. His infinite power is no longer looked upon, as
-engaged to destroy us, but rather to succour us under all our
-weakness; and therefore, as Job says, ‘He will not plead
-against us with his great power; no, but he will put strength
-in us,’ Job xxiii. 6. We consider it as ready to support us
-under the heaviest pressures, and so enable us to perform the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_330'>330</span>most difficult duties, and to overcome all our spiritual enemies,
-who would be otherwise too strong for us: So that this
-attribute is so far from discouraging us from drawing nigh
-to God in prayer, that, by faith, we behold it as delighting
-to exert and glorify itself, in doing those great things for
-us which we have in view, when we engage in this duty.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] Faith discovers itself in prayer, by enabling us to plead,
-and apply to ourselves, the great and precious promises which
-God has given to his people in the gospel. As prayer cannot
-subsist without a promise, so we are enabled, by faith, to apprehend
-and plead the promises, and to say, ‘Remember the
-word unto thy servant, upon which thou hast caused me
-to hope,’ Psal. cxix. 49. And hereby we look upon God as
-ready to bestow the blessings which he has promised, and
-his faithfulness as engaged to make them good. Accordingly
-the Psalmist says, ‘Hear my prayer, O Lord, give ear
-to my supplications; in thy faithfulness answer me, and in
-thy righteousness,’ Psal. cxliii. 1. There is nothing that we
-want, or ought to pray for, but there are some promises, contained
-in the word of God, which faith improves and takes
-encouragement from in this duty: And since what we pray
-for, respects either temporal, or spiritual, and eternal blessings,
-these are looked upon by faith as promised; as the apostle
-says, <i>godliness has the promise of the life that now is, and of
-that which is to come</i>, 1 Tim. iv. 18. This might be very largely
-insisted on, and many instances given hereof, which are
-contained in scripture; but I shall more especially consider
-those promises which respect God’s enabling us to pray, and
-his hearing and answering our prayers, which faith lays hold
-on, and improves, in order to our performing this duty in a
-right manner.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, There are promises of the Spirit’s assistance to enable
-us to pray. This the apostle calls his <i>making intercession for
-us, according to the will of God</i>, in Rom. viii. 27. And our
-Saviour says, in Luke xii. 13. <i>If ye then, being evil, know
-how to give good gifts to your children, how much more shall
-your heavenly Father give the Holy Spirit to them that ask him?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, There are other promises that respect God’s hearing
-and answering prayer. Thus it is said, in Psal. lxxxvi. 7. <i>In
-the day of my trouble I will call upon thee for thou wilt answer
-me</i>: And elsewhere in Psal. cii. 17. <i>God will regard the
-prayer of the destitute and not despise their prayer.</i> This is
-considered as being of a very large extent: Thus our Saviour
-says, in John xvi. 23. <i>Whatsoever ye ask the Father in my
-name, he will give it you</i>: And in chap. xv. 7. <i>If ye abide in
-me, and my words abide in you, ye shall ask what ye will, and
-it shall be done unto you</i>: Which universal expressions of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_331'>331</span>God’s giving believers <i>what they will</i>, are to be understood of
-his granting their lawful and regular desires; and, indeed,
-faith will never ask any thing but what tends to the glory of
-God, and that with an entire submission to his will; though
-it is far otherwise with respect to those prayers that are not
-put up in faith.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover God has promised to hear and answer all kinds
-of prayer, provided they proceed from this grace; particularly,
-united prayers in the assemblies of his saints, as he says
-to Solomon, after the dedication of the temple, in 2 Chron.
-vii. 15. <i>Mine eyes shall be open, and mine ears attent unto the
-prayer that is made in this place</i>; and those prayers that are
-put up to God in families, where a small number are joined
-together; though it be but <i>two or three</i>, Christ has promised
-to be <i>in the midst of them</i>, xviii. 20. not only to assist them in
-this duty, but to give them what they ask for. There are
-also promises made to secret prayer: Thus when our Saviour
-encourages his people to <i>pray to their Father, which is in secret</i>,
-he tells them, <i>My Father which seeth in secret, shall reward
-thee openly</i>, chap. vi. 6.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Here it will be enquired, whether it be necessary in order
-to our praying by faith, that we be assured, at all times, that
-our prayer shall be heard.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>To this it may be answered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That it is not our duty to believe that every prayer
-shall be heard; for God heareth not sinners, that is, those who
-are under the reigning power of sin, and consequently are destitute
-of the grace of faith; nor will he hear those <i>prayers</i>
-that <i>proceed from feigned lips</i>: Thus it is said, <i>If I regard
-iniquity in my heart, the Lord will not hear me</i>, Psal. lxvi. 18.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, It is not the duty of those who have the truth of
-grace, to believe that their prayer shall be heard, when, by
-reason of their infirmity, or the weakness of their faith, they
-ask for that which is unlawful, and not redounding to the glory
-of God and their real good.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, If what we pray for may be for the glory of God, and
-redound to our advantage; yet it is not our duty to determine,
-with too great peremptoriness, that he will certainly grant
-what we ask for, immediately, or in that particular way which
-we desire; since he may answer prayer, and yet do it in his
-own time and way.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, It is not our duty to believe assuredly, that God
-will give us all those temporal blessings that we ask for;
-especially if they be not absolutely necessary for us, since he
-may answer such-like prayers in value, though not in kind, and
-so give spiritual blessings, instead of those temporal ones,
-which we pray for; in which case none will say, that he is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_332'>332</span>unfaithful to his promise, though we have not those blessings
-in kind that we desire: Therefore it is our duty, and the great
-concern of faith in prayer, to be assured, that as God knows
-what is best for us, so he will make good his promises, in such
-a way, that we shall have no reason to conclude ourselves to
-have been disappointed, or that we have asked in faith, but
-have not obtained.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I am sensible that there is a difficulty in the mode of expression
-used by the apostle James, in chap. i. 6, 7. <i>But let
-him ask in faith, nothing wavering; for let not that man think
-that he shall receive any thing of the Lord</i>: By which, the apostle
-does not intend, that he who doubts whether his prayer
-shall be answered, cannot be said, in any sense, to pray in
-faith; for, as assurance of our salvation is not of the essence
-of faith, so that faith cannot subsist without it; in like manner
-assurance, or a firm persuasion that the very thing we ask
-shall be given, is not such an essential ingredient in prayer, as
-that we should determine, that for want of it, we shall receive
-nothing that is good from the Lord. Therefore, I conceive,
-that the apostle, by <i>wavering</i> in this text, rather respects
-our being in doubt about the object of faith; or else
-our not being stedfast in the grace of faith, but praying with
-hypocrisy, as he illustrates it by the similitude taken from a
-<i>wave driven with the wind</i>; which sometimes moves one way,
-at other times the contrary; and he farther explains it, when
-he says, in ver. 8. <i>a double-minded man, is unstable in all his
-ways</i>; so that the person, whom he describes as wavering is
-the same with a <i>double-minded man</i>, or an hypocrite: Such
-an one cannot ask in faith; therefore the apostle does not
-hereby intend that no one can exercise this grace in prayer,
-but he that has a full assurance that his prayer shall be answered,
-in that particular way and manner as he expects.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> 1. It is objected by some, that they have no faith;
-therefore since this grace must be exercised in prayer, they
-are very often discouraged from performing the duty of
-prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> That though the want of a prepared frame of spirit,
-for any duty affords matter of humiliation, yet it is no
-excuse for the neglect thereof; and as for prayer in particular,
-we are to wait on God therein, for a prepared frame of spirit,
-that by this means, we may draw nigh to him in a right manner,
-as well as for a gracious answer from him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] If we cannot bring glory to God by a fiducial pleading
-of the promises, or applying them to ourselves; we
-must endeavour to glorify him by confessing our guilt and
-unworthiness, and acknowledging that all our help is in him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] It is possible for us to have some acts of faith in prayer,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_333'>333</span>when we are not sensible thereof, and at the same time, bewail
-our want of this grace.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[4.] If none were to pray but those who have faith, then it
-would follow that none must pray for the first grace, which
-supposes a person to be in an unregenerate state; nevertheless,
-such are obliged to perform this duty, as well as they can,
-and therein to hope for that grace which may enable them to
-do it as they ought.<a id='r109' /><a href='#f109' class='c012'><sup>[109]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Obj.</i> 2. It is objected by others, that though they dare not
-lay aside the duty of prayer, yet, inasmuch as they do not
-experience those graces, which are necessary for the right performance
-thereof, nor any returns of prayer, they have no
-satisfaction in their own spirits.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That there may be faith in prayer, and yet no immediate
-answer thereof. God herein acts in a way of sovereignty,
-whereby he will have his people know that if he grants
-their requests, it shall be in his own time and way. Therefore
-it is their duty to wait for him till he is pleased to
-manifest himself as a God hearing prayer, and thereby removing
-the discouragements that, at present, they labour under.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, There are other ways by which the truth of grace is
-to be judged of, besides our having sensible answers of
-prayer. Sometimes, indeed, God may give many intimations
-of his acceptance of us, though, at present we know
-it not.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) The next grace to be exercised in prayer, is, love to
-God: This implies in it an earnest desire of his presence, delight
-in him, or taking pleasure in contemplating his perfections
-as the most glorious and amiable object. Desire supposes
-him, in some measure, withdrawn from us; or that we
-are not possessed of that complete blessedness, which is to
-be enjoyed in him; and delight supposes him present, and, in
-some degree, manifesting himself unto us. Now love to God,
-in both these respects, is to be exercised in prayer. Is he in
-any measure withdrawn from us? we are, with the greatest
-earnestness to long for his return to us, whose loving-kindness
-is better than life. Is he graciously pleased, in any degree,
-to manifest himself to us as the fountain of all we enjoy
-or hope for? this will have a tendency to excite our delight
-in him, and induce us to conclude that our happiness consists
-in the enjoyment of him. These graces are to be exercised
-at all times, but more especially in prayer, which is an offering
-up of our desires to God; in which we first press after
-the enjoyment of himself, and then of his benefits. And, as
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_334'>334</span>we are to bless and praise him for the discoveries we have
-of his glory, in and through our Lord Jesus Christ, in order
-to the securing our spiritual good and advantage; this is to
-express that delight in him, which is the highest instance of
-love.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) Another grace to be exercised in prayer, is submission
-to the will of God; whereby we leave ourselves and our petitions
-in his hand, as being sensible that he knows what is best
-for us. This does not include in it a being indifferent whether
-our prayers are heard or no; for that is to contradict
-what we express with our lips, by the frame of our spirits.
-Whatever may be concluded to be lawful for us to ask, as redounding
-to our advantage, and is expressly promised by God,
-that we ought to request at his hand, in prayer; and if we
-pray for it, we cannot but desire that our prayer may be heard
-and answered; and this is not opposed to that submission to
-the divine will, which we are speaking of, provided we leave
-it to God to do what he thinks best for us, being content that
-the way and manner of his answering us, as well as the time
-of his bestowing those blessings which we want, together with
-the degree thereof; especially if they are such as are of a temporal
-nature, ought to be resolved into his sovereign will.
-Thus concerning the graces that we are to exercise in prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There are other things mentioned in this answer, which are
-necessary to our exercising those graces, <i>viz.</i> our minds being
-enlightened, our hearts enlarged, and our having sincerity in
-the inward part.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] There must be some degree of understanding, since ignorance
-is so far from being, as the Papists pretend, the mother
-of devotion, that it is inconsistent with the exercise of
-those graces, with which we ought to draw nigh to God in
-prayer. The affections, indeed, may be moved, where there
-is but a very little knowledge of the doctrines of the gospel;
-but they will, at the same time, be misled; and this can no
-more be called religious devotion than the words or actions of
-one that is in a phrenzy, can be called rational; therefore, as
-prayer is unacceptable without the exercise of grace, so grace
-cannot be exercised without the knowledge of the truth, as derived
-from the sacred treasury of scripture.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Here we might consider, that we must know something
-of God who is the object of prayer, as well as of all other
-acts of religious worship. We must also know something of
-Christ the Mediator, through whom we have access to, as well
-as acceptance with him; and something of the work and glory
-of the Holy Ghost, on whom we are to depend for his assistance
-in presenting our supplications to God. We must know
-our necessities, otherwise we cannot tell what to ask for; and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_335'>335</span>also the promises of the gospel, otherwise we cannot be encouraged
-to hope for an answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] In order to our exercising grace in prayer, we must
-have some degree of enlargedness of heart; that is, when
-every thing that tends to contract our affections, abate the ferfency
-of our spirits, or hinder that importunity which we
-ought to express for the best of blessings, is removed. Now
-our hearts may be said to be enlarged in prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, When we draw nigh to God in this duty with delight
-and earnest longing after his presence, and an interest in his
-love, which we reckon preferable to all other blessings.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, When we are affected with a becoming sense of his
-glorious perfections, and our own nothingness, in order to our
-adoring him, and coming before him with the greatest humility.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, When we have suitable promises given in, and are
-enabled to plead them with a degree of hope, arising from the
-goodness and faithfulness of God, that he will fulfil them; and
-that more especially as we draw nigh to him as to a covenant-God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, When our thoughts and affections are engaged without
-wandering, weariness, or lukewarmness, and filled with
-importunity, agreeable to the importance of the duty, and our
-absolute need of the blessings we pray for.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] In order to our exercising those graces, which are necessary
-for our drawing nigh to God aright in prayer, we must
-have sincerity of heart: This includes in it much more than
-what is generally so called, as opposed to dissimulation, in
-those who perform some good actions merely to be seen of
-men, or who take up religion to answer some base and vile
-end, which they have in view; in which respect a sincere person
-is one that is no dissembler: But that sincerity, which we
-are speaking of, consists in a person’s acting from a principle
-of grace implanted in regeneration; or when a person can appeal
-to God, as Job does, <i>Thou knowest that I am not wicked</i>,
-Job x. 7. that is, that there is no reigning sin, whereby my
-heart is alienated from, or set against thee. A sincere person
-is such an one as our Saviour describes, when he speaks of
-Nathaniel, and gives him this character, <i>Behold an Israelite
-indeed, in whom is no guile</i>, John i. 48. In this case a person’s
-heart and actions go together; and he may truly say, as
-David does, <i>attend unto my cry, give ear unto my prayer, that
-goeth not out of feigned lips</i>, Psal. xvii. 1. Thus concerning
-the graces that are to be exercised in prayer, and what is necessary
-in order thereunto.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>What is farther observed concerning this duty, is, that we
-are to persevere in prayer; resolving not to desist from waiting
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_336'>336</span>on God therein, whatever seeming discouragements may,
-at present, lie in our way. Prayer is not a duty to be performed
-only at some certain times, as the prophet speaks of
-those who, <i>in their affliction will seek God early</i>, Hos. v. 15. or,
-as the mariners in Jonah, who <i>cried, every man unto his god</i>,
-in a storm; though it is probable, they seldom prayed at other
-times, Jon. i. 5. But we are to <i>pray always with all prayer
-and supplication, and</i> to <i>watch thereunto with all perseverance</i>,
-Eph. vi. 18. that is, we ought always to endeavour to be in a
-praying frame, and, on all occasions, to lift up our hearts to
-God for direction, assistance, and success in every thing we
-do, agreeable to his will, and for a supply of those wants which
-daily recur upon us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, By reason of the deadness and stupidity of our spirits,
-which we cannot bring into a suitable frame for the discharge
-of this duty; and therefore we are ready to conclude, that
-while we draw nigh to God with our lips, our hearts are far
-from him. This is, indeed, a very afflictive case; but we
-ought not from hence, to take occasion to lay aside the duty
-but rather depend on the assistance of the Spirit, to enable us
-to perform it in a right manner.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, Another discouraging circumstance is, God’s denying
-us sensible returns of prayer, which he may do for various reasons.
-Sometimes he sees those defects that we are guilty of
-in prayer, which he is obliged to testify his displeasure against;
-and this he sometimes does by hiding himself, or, as it were,
-withdrawing from us, and, in all appearance, shutting out our
-prayers, that we may take occasion to search out the secret sin
-that lies at the root thereof; which we must confess and be
-humbled for. Thus when Joshua, after a small defeat, which
-Israel had received by the men of Ai, fell upon his face, and
-spread the matter before the Lord in prayer, God condescends
-to tell him the reason of it; ‘Get thee up, wherefore liest
-thou thus upon thy face? Israel hath sinned, and they have
-also transgressed my covenant which I commanded them; for
-they have even taken of the accursed thing; therefore could
-they not stand before their enemies,’ Josh. vii. 10-12. And
-when the sin was discovered, and Achan, who troubled them
-punished, what he asked for was granted. Again, God may
-deny an immediate answer to prayer, out of his mere sovereignty,
-that hereby we may know, that it is not for us to prescribe
-to him the time or way in which he shall dispense those benefits,
-which are not owing to our merit, but his free grace.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Sometimes we pray, but do not use other means, which
-God has appointed for the obtaining the blessing! Thus, when
-Israel was disheartened, being pursued by Pharaoh and his
-host, and did not care to move out of their places, Moses addresses
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_337'>337</span>himself to God in prayer, and <i>the Lord said unto him,
-Wherefore criest thou unto me? speak unto the children of Israel,
-that they go forward</i>; and then he ordered him to <i>lift up his
-rod, and stretch it over the sea, and divide it, that they might
-go through the midst thereof on dry ground</i>, Exod. xiv. 15, 16.
-We are not only to pray, but to use other means that God has
-appointed; without which, we cannot expect that prayer should
-be answered. Thus Hezekiah, when sick, prayed to God,
-who assured him, that he had heard his prayers, and would
-heal him; nevertheless, he was to use the means which God
-had ordered, by <i>taking a lump of figs and laying it on the boil</i>;
-which he did accordingly, and was restored to health, Isa.
-xxxviii. 21. Do we pray for a comfortable subsistence in the
-world? we must, if we expect that God should answer us, use
-industry in our callings, as well as own him by prayer and
-supplications. Do we pray for any of the graces of the Spirit
-in order to the beginning or carrying on the work of sanctification?
-we must, at the same time, attend on the means of
-grace, which God has ordained for that purpose: Or, do we
-pray for assurance of the love of God, and that spiritual comfort
-which is the result thereof? we must be diligent in the
-performance of the work of self-examination; or else we are
-not to expect that God will answer our prayers.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, Sometimes God delays to answer our prayers, because
-we have not given him the glory of former mercies; or
-else he designs hereby to try our patience, whether we are not
-only inclined to wait upon him, but to wait for him; as the
-prophet says, <i>I will stand upon my watch, and set me upon the
-tower, and will watch to see what he will say unto me, and what
-I shall answer when I am reproved</i>, Hab. ii. 1. So the Psalmist
-says, <i>As the eye of servants look unto the hands of their masters,
-and the eyes of a maiden unto the hands of her mistress;
-so our eyes wait upon the Lord our God, until that he have
-mercy upon us</i>, Psal. cxxiii. 2. And elsewhere the Psalmist,
-though he was in great <i>depths</i>, and stood in need of an immediate
-answer, when he cried unto the Lord; yet he determines
-to <i>wait for him</i>, and <i>hope in his word</i>; that is, while he is expecting
-a mercy, he does not despair of having it in the end,
-because he depends on God’s word of promise; but yet he
-resolves to <i>wait as those that watch for the morning</i>, Psal.
-cxxx. 1, 5, 6, which contains a mixture of two graces, namely,
-patiently waiting, and yet earnestly desiring the blessing expected.
-This is our indispensable duty, whereby we glorify
-God, as being sensible that it is not for us to prescribe to him,
-when he should fulfil our desires: Whereas we should say,
-with Jacob, <i>I will not let thee go, except thou bless me</i>, Gen.
-xxxii. 26. I will persevere in prayer till thou art pleased to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_338'>338</span>give me all the blessings I stand in need of, and bring me into
-that state in which I shall be satisfied with thy goodness, and
-my imperfect prayers turned into endless praises.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLXXXVI., CLXXXVII.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXXVI.</span> <i>What rule hath God given for our direction
-in the duty of prayer?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The whole word of God is of use to direct us in the
-duty of praying; but the special rule of direction, is that
-form of prayer, which our Saviour Christ taught his disciples,
-commonly called the Lord’s prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXXVII.</span> <i>How is the Lord’s prayer to be used?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The Lord’s prayer is not only for direction, as a pattern,
-according to which we are to make other prayers, but
-may also be used as a prayer, so that it be done with understanding,
-faith, reverence, and other graces necessary to
-the right performance of the duty.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>As to what is said in the former of these answers, concerning
-the word of God, being a rule for our direction in
-prayer, it may be observed,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. That we need some direction in order to our performing
-this duty; for man is naturally a stranger both to God and
-himself. He knows but little of the glorious perfections of
-the divine nature, and is not duly sensible of the guilt which
-he contracts, or of the mercies which he receives; and without
-the knowledge hereof, we shall be at a loss as to the matter
-of the duty which we are to engage in. It is certain, many
-have a general notion of religion, or of some moral duties,
-which they are sensible of their being obliged to perform:
-Nevertheless, they cannot address themselves to God in such
-a manner as he requires; so that it may truly be said of them,
-that <i>they cannot order their speech by reason of darkness</i>, Job
-xxxvii. 19. We find that the disciples themselves, who were
-intimately conversant with Christ, and, as it must be supposed,
-often joined with him in prayer, were, notwithstanding, at a
-loss, as to this duty; and therefore they say, <i>Lord teach us to
-pray, as John also taught his disciples</i>, Luke xi. 1.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. It is farther observed, that the word of God is to be
-made use of for our direction in prayer. This is evident, inasmuch
-as we are to ask for nothing but what is agreeable to
-his revealed will, which is contained therein; and no one, who
-is well acquainted with it, will have reason to say, that he
-wants sufficient matter for prayer. This is a very useful head,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_339'>339</span>and therefore we shall consider several things which occur to
-us in scripture; which ought to be improved, in order to our
-direction and assistance in the performance of this duty.
-And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. The historical parts of scripture, which contain an account
-of the providences of God in the world, and the church,
-may be of use for our direction in prayer, as we are to pray,
-not only for ourselves, but for others: Therefore his former
-dealings with his people, will furnish us with matter accommodated
-to our present observation of the necessities of the
-church of God in our day: Accordingly we find,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) That the sins which a professing people have committed,
-have been followed with many terrible instances of the divine
-wrath and vengeance: Thus we have an account, of the
-universal apostacy of the world from God, which occasioned
-their being destroyed by a flood; and the unnatural lusts of
-the inhabitants of Sodom, for which they were consumed by
-fire from heaven; and of the idolatry and other abominations
-committed by the Israelites, for which it is said, that <i>God was
-wroth, and greatly abhorred them</i>; upon which they were exposed
-to many temporal and spiritual judgments, so that, as
-the Psalmist says, <i>he forsook the tabernacle of Shiloh, the tent
-which he placed among men; and delivered his strength into captivity,
-and his glory into the enemies hand</i>, Psal. lxxviii. 59-61.
-From hence we may take occasion to enquire, whether we
-have not been guilty of sins equally great, and, it may be, of
-the same kind, which are to be confessed, and the judgments
-which have ensued to be deprecated by us? And when we
-read in the New Testament, of some flourishing churches,
-planted by the apostles, in the beginning of the gospel dispensation,
-that have nothing left but a sad remembrance of the
-privileges which they once enjoyed; in whom, what Christ
-says, concerning his removing <i>his candlestick out of its place</i>,
-was soon fulfilled, Rev. iii. 15. This is of use for our direction
-in prayer, that he would keep his church and people from
-running into the same sins, and exposing themselves to the
-same judgments.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We have an account, in scripture, of the church’s increase
-and preservation, notwithstanding the darkest dispensations
-of providence, and the most violent persecutions which it
-has met with from its enemies. When it was in hard bondage,
-and severely dealt with, in Egypt, it is observed, that
-the more the Egyptians <i>afflicted them, the more they multiplied
-and grew</i>, Exod. i. 12. and when they have, in all appearance,
-been nearest to ruin, God has opened a door for
-their deliverance, and oftentimes done great things in their
-behalf, which they looked not for. We have also an historical
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_340'>340</span>account, in scripture, of God’s owning and encouraging his
-people, so long as they have kept close to him; and of his visiting
-their iniquities with a rod, when backsliding from him;
-and, indeed, whatever we read concerning the providences of
-God towards particular believers in the Old or New Testament,
-the same may be observed therein, which is of very great
-use for our direction in prayer; and accordingly their experiences
-are recorded for our instruction, and their necessities, that
-we may know what to pray for, as far as there is an agreement
-between the account we have of them, and what we find
-in ourselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. The word of God, as it is a rule of faith, contains those
-great doctrines, without the knowledge whereof, we cannot
-pray aright. Thus we have an account in scripture, not only
-of the Being and perfections of God, which may be known by
-the light of nature, but of those glorious truths which cannot
-be known but by divine revelation: And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Of the personal glory of the Father, Son, and Holy
-Ghost; of the Father’s giving all spiritual blessings to his
-people, in and through a Mediator; and the Son is considered
-as invested in this office and character, and, as God incarnate
-procuring for us, by his obedience and death, forgiveness of
-sins, and a right to eternal life. We have also an account of
-the Holy Ghost, as being a divine person, and therefore equal
-with the Father and Son; yet as subservient to them in his
-method of acting, as the application of redemption attains the
-end of the purchase thereof, in like manner as the purchase of
-it was a means to bring about that <i>purpose and grace which
-was given us in Christ before the world began</i>, 2 Tim. i. 9.
-These doctrines are necessary to direct us in those things
-which respect the distinct glory which we are to give to the
-Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, and the method in which we
-are to hope for the blessings which we ask for in prayer.
-Thus the apostle, speaking of this duty, supposes that we are
-acquainted with this doctrine, when he says, <i>Through him</i>,
-that is, Christ, <i>we have an access by one Spirit unto the Father</i>,
-Eph. ii. 18.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) In the word of God, we have not only an account of
-the works of nature and providence, or God’s being the Creator
-and Governor of the world, which we have some knowledge of,
-in a method of reasoning from the divine perfections; but we
-have an account therein of those works which have an immediate
-reference to our salvation, and that special providence in
-which God expresses a greater regard to the heirs of salvation
-than to all the world besides: When we draw nigh to God in
-prayer, we are not barely to consider him as the God to whom
-we owe our being, as men, but our well-being as christians,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_341'>341</span>delivered from that ruin which we brought on ourselves, by
-our apostacy from him; and also, <i>what is the exceeding greatness
-of his power to us-ward, who believe, according to the
-working of his mighty power, which he wrought in Christ,
-when he raised him from the dead</i>, chap. i. 18, 19. as the apostle
-expresses it in that affectionate prayer put up for the church
-at Ephesus. And when we survey the works of providence,
-we are not barely to think of God as the Governor of the world
-in general, but to consider what have been those special acts
-of providence, by which he has governed man before and since
-the fall, and to consider the first covenant as made with him
-in innocency; and the covenant of grace, as being a dispensation
-of grace, established in and with Christ, as the Head of
-the elect, in order to their being delivered from that state of
-sin and misery into which they had brought themselves. These
-doctrines will be of use for our direction in prayer, as hereby
-we are led to acknowledge our fallen state, what we were by
-nature, and what we should have been, had we been left in
-that state; and hereby we are also led to adore the riches of
-God’s grace, as he brings the greatest good to his saints out
-of the greatest evil.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) The word of God gives us a distinct account of the offices
-in which Christ is invested, as they are suited to the necessities
-of his people, which is a means for our direction concerning
-what we are to ask for, with a particular relation to
-each of them, and the hope we have that he will grant our request.
-As he is appointed by the Father, to be our High
-Priest, to make atonement for sin; our Advocate, to plead
-our cause; our Prophet, to lead us in the way of salvation;
-and our King, to subdue us to himself, and defend us from the
-assaults of our spiritual enemies. So we are, in our prayers,
-to improve these discoveries which we have thereof, as a
-means to direct us in those things which are the subject-matter
-both of prayer and praise.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. The word of God is of use for our direction in prayer, as
-we have an account therein of those duties which are to be
-performed by us as men, or christians, in every condition of
-life, and in all those relations which we stand in to one another.
-As for that which is matter of duty in general, or that obedience
-which we owe to God, this cannot be performed but by
-his assistance; which is humbly to be asked in prayer: And
-accordingly we are to say as one does, Lord, work in me that
-which thou requirest, and then require what thou pleasest.
-Here we might shew how all the duties which God has commanded,
-may be of use to direct us in prayer: that hereby we
-may be led to apply ourselves to him, that he would enable us
-to perform them; and all the sins forbidden in scripture, may
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_342'>342</span>be of use to instruct us what to deprecate, when we pray that
-God would keep us from our own iniquities, and what we are
-to confess before him, and implore the forgiveness of; and all
-those commands which respect instituted worship, <i>viz.</i> our attendance
-on the ordinances, or the exercise of various graces
-therein, in the whole course of our conversation: These are
-of use for our direction in prayer, as hereby we know what to
-ask for, with relation thereunto; and particularly as to what
-concerns the advantage we hope to receive, under the means
-of grace, whenever we draw nigh to God in the way which he
-has appointed.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>5. As the word of God contains many promises and predictions,
-together with their accomplishment, for the encouragement
-of our faith and hope in prayer, it is of use to direct us in
-the performance of this duty. As for the predictions that are
-fulfilled, so far as they respect the blessings which God designed
-to bestow on his church, they are equivalent to promises, and
-we are to take occasion from thence, to adore and magnify his
-faithfulness; and hope that whatever remains to be done for
-us, or his people in general, shall, in like manner, have its accomplishment,
-which will afford matter of encouragement to
-us in addressing ourselves to him for it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The promises which are contained in scripture, are also a motive
-and inducement to prayer. These are a declaration of
-God’s will to give the blessings, which he sees necessary for us,
-and therefore are of great use in order to our performing this
-duty aright. Thus God gives an intimation of the great things
-that he will do for, or bestow upon his people, when he says, in
-Jer. xxxi. 33. <i>I will put my law in their inward parts, and write
-it in their hearts, and will be their God, and they shall be
-people</i>: and there are many expressions of the like nature,
-which contain the form of a promise. But besides these,
-there are others which are equivalent to, and may be applied by
-us in like manner as though they were laid down in the same
-form, as the promises generally are; as,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) When God is said, in his word, to be able to do his people
-good, or bestow some particular blessings upon them, this
-gives them ground to conclude, that he will do it, or that his
-power shall be engaged in their behalf: Thus God is said, in
-Jude, ver. 24. to be <i>able to keep</i> them <i>from falling, and to present
-them faultless before the presence of his glory with
-exceeding joy</i>. And elsewhere it is said, 2 Cor. ix. 8. that <i>God is
-able to make all grace abound towards</i> his people, <i>that</i> they <i>always
-having all-sufficiency in all things, may abound to every
-good work</i>: This is the same as though it had been said, that he
-would do this for them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) When God is said to glorify any of his perfections in giving
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_343'>343</span>those blessings that his people want, this is also equivalent to
-a promise: Thus, in Exod. xxxiv. 4, 6. when <i>the Lord passed
-by before Moses, and proclaimed the Lord God, merciful and gracious,
-long-suffering, and abundant in goodness and truth</i>, &amp;c. it
-is the same as though he had said that he would shew mercy
-to them, since the design thereof is to encourage them to hope
-for it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) Whatever blessings are said to be purchased by Christ
-as our Redeemer, or prayed for by him as our Advocate, these
-may be included in the number of promised blessings; for they
-will certainly be applied by him, who will not lose what he has
-purchased by his blood, and is never denied what he asks for.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) The universal experience of believers, relating to the
-blessings that accompany salvation, contains the nature, though
-not the form, of a promise; and therefore, when this is recorded
-in scripture, for the encouragement of others, in all succeeding
-ages, it is as much to be applied by us when we are in like circumstances
-as though it were more directly promised to us:
-Thus when God’s faithful servants are said, 1 Pet. i. 5. to be
-<i>kept by the power of God, through faith unto salvation</i>; or,
-when the Psalmist says, in Psal. xxxvii. 25. <i>I have been young,
-and now am old; yet have I not seen the righteous forsaken, nor
-his seed begging bread</i>; these, and such-like expressions, are
-to be applied by us as promises.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(5.) That which is proposed to us, or which we are to have
-in view, as the end of our attending on ordinances, is equivalent
-to a promise; and accordingly, when we are commanded
-or encouraged to hope and pray for any spiritual blessings,
-when waiting upon God therein, in such a way as he requires,
-it is the same thing as though he had said, that he would give
-us those blessings. If a believer is thirsty, and encouraged to
-come to the waters; or if he wants grace or peace, and is told
-that these are to be attained in ordinances, the bare intimation
-that we are to seek these blessings in such a way is equivalent
-to a promise.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(6.) God’s seeing our distress or knowing our wants, is sometimes
-to be understood in scripture, as containing the nature of
-a promise, relating to the supply thereof: Thus our Saviour
-tells his disciples, in Matt. vi. 32. <i>Your heavenly Father knoweth
-that ye have need of all these things</i>; which is the same as
-though he had told them, that God had promised or designed
-to bestow those outward blessings upon them: And when he
-designed, or promised to deliver his people out of the bondage,
-in which they were in Egypt, he says, <i>I have surely
-seen the affliction of my people: I know their sorrows</i>, &amp;c.
-Exod. iii. 7. Thus concerning the manner in which the promises
-are laid down in scripture.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_344'>344</span>We shall now consider how they are to be made use of in
-order to our direction and encouragement in prayer. And
-here it may be observed, that the promises either respect outward,
-or spiritual blessings, both of which we are to pray for:
-Thus the apostle says, in 1 Tim. iv. 8. <i>Godliness has the promise
-of the life that now is, and of that which is to come</i>; the
-former respects the temporal dispensations of providence; the
-latter, grace and glory, or the things that accompany salvation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] We shall consider the promises that respect temporal or
-outward blessings which we are obliged to pray for, as we
-stand in need of them. These are of various kinds;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, There are promises of health and strength, whereby our
-passage through this world may be made easy and comfortable,
-and we better enabled to glorify God therein: Thus it is
-said, in Prov. iii. 7, 8. <i>Fear the Lord, and depart from evil.
-It shall be health to thy navel, and marrow to thy bones.</i> And
-in Psal. ciii. 5. <i>Who satisfieth thy mouth with good things; so
-that thy youth is renewed like the eagles.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, There are promises of food and raiment, or the necessary
-provisions and conveniences of life, in Psal. xxxvii. 3.
-<i>Trust in the Lord, and do good; so shalt thou dwell in the
-land, and verily thou shalt be fed.</i> And in Deut. x. 18. <i>He
-doth execute the judgment of the fatherless and widow, and
-loveth the stranger, in giving him food and raiment.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, There are promises of comfort and peace in our dwellings,
-in Job v. 24. ‘Thou shalt know that thy tabernacle shall
-be in peace; and thou shalt visit thy habitation, and shalt not
-sin.’ And, in Psal. xci. 10. ‘There shall no evil befal thee, neither
-shall any plague come nigh thy dwelling.’ And in
-Psal. cxxi. 8. ‘The Lord shalt preserve thy going out, and
-thy coming in, from this time forth and forevermore.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, There are promises of quiet and composed rest by
-night, on our beds, in Job xi. 18, 19. <i>Thou shalt take thy rest
-in safety: Also thou shalt lie down, and none shall make thee
-afraid.</i> And in Prov. iii. 24. <i>When thou liest down, thou
-shalt not be afraid; yea, thou shalt lie down, and thy sleep shall
-be sweet.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>5thly</i>, There are promises of success, and a blessing to attend
-us in our worldly callings, in Psal. cxxviii. 2. <i>Thou shalt
-eat the labour of thine hands: Happy shalt thou be, and it shall
-be well with thee.</i> And in Deut. xxviii. 4, 5, 12. ‘Blessed
-shall be the fruit of thy body, and the fruit of thy ground,
-the fruit of thy cattle, and the increase of thy kine, and the
-flocks of thy sheep. Blessed shall be thy basket and thy
-store. The Lord shall open unto thee his good treasure, the
-heaven to give the rain unto thy land, in his season, and to
-bless all the work of thine hand: And thou shalt lend unto
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_345'>345</span>many nations, and shalt not borrow.’ And in Psal. i. 3. ‘He
-shall be like a tree, planted by the rivers of water, that bringeth
-forth his fruit in his season; his leaf also shall not wither,
-and whatsoever he doth shall prosper.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>6thly</i>, There are promises of an intail of blessings on our families,
-in Psal. cxxviii. 3. ‘Thy wife shall be as a fruitful
-vine, by the sides of thine house; thy children like olive-plants
-round about thy table.’ And, in Psal. ciii. 17. ‘The
-mercy of the Lord is from everlasting to everlasting, upon
-them that fear him; and his righteousness unto children’s
-children.’ And, in Psal. cii. 28. ‘The children of thy
-servants shall continue, and their seed shall be established before
-thee.’ And, in Psal. xlv. 16. ‘Instead of thy fathers
-shall be thy children, whom thou mayest make princes in all
-the earth.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I might have mentioned many more promises of outward
-blessings, which God will bestow on his people, though with
-this limitation, so far as it may be for his glory, and their real
-good, viz. such as respect riches, as in Psal. cxii. 3. ‘Wealth
-and riches shall be in his house; and his righteousness endureth
-for ever;’ or honours, as in 1 Sam. ii. 30. and these
-accompanied with long life; as, in Prov. iii. 17. ‘Length
-of days are in her right hand; and in her left hand riches
-and honour.’ And, in Psal. xxxiv. 12, 13. ‘What man is
-he that desireth life, and loveth many days, that he may see
-good? Keep thy tongue from evil, and thy lips from speaking
-guile;’ or, if God does not think fit to give them this, he
-will take them out of the world in mercy, and gather them into
-a better, to prevent their seeing the evil he designs to bring on
-the inhabitants thereof, Isa. lvii. 1. ‘The righteous is taken
-away from the evil to come.’ He has also promised some
-blessings that respect their good name, in Zeph. iii. 20. ‘I
-will make you a name and a praise among all people of
-the earth.’ And in Prov. x. 7. ‘The memory of the just is
-blessed.’ But that which I shall principally add concerning
-these and such-like outward blessings, is, that God has not
-only promised, that he will give them to his people, but that
-he will sanctify them to them for their spiritual advantage, and
-enable them to improve them aright to his glory, which will
-render them more sweet and desirable to them. Thus God
-has promised,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That he will free his people, who enjoy outward good
-things, from the sorrow which is oftentimes mixed therewith,
-and tends greatly to imbitter them, in Prov. x. 22. ‘The
-blessing of the Lord maketh rich, and he addeth no sorrow
-with it.’ He has also promised to give them inward peace,
-together with outward prosperity, in Psal. xxxvii. 11. ‘The
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_346'>346</span>meek shall inherit the earth; and shall delight themselves in
-the abundance of peace.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, He has promised to give them spiritual and heavenly
-blessings, together with the good things of this life, in Job xxii.
-24-26. ‘Thou shalt lay up gold as dust, and the gold of Ophir
-as the stones of the brooks. Yea, the Almighty shall be thy
-defence, and thou shalt have plenty of silver: For then shalt
-thou have thy delight in the Almighty, and shalt lift up thy
-face unto God.’ And in Psal. xxiii. 5, 6. ‘Thou preparest
-a table before me in the presence of mine enemies; thou
-anointest mine head with oil, my cup runneth over. Surely
-goodness and mercy shall follow me all the days of my life;
-and I will, or, I shall, dwell in the house of the Lord for
-ever.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, God has promised together with outward blessings, to
-give a thankful heart, whereby his people may be enabled to
-give him the glory thereof, in Deut. viii. 10. ‘When thou
-hast eaten and art full, then thou shalt bless the Lord thy
-God, for the good land which he hath given thee.’ And, in
-Joel ii. 26. ‘Ye shall eat in plenty, and be satisfied, and praise
-the name of the Lord your God, that hath dealt wondrously
-with you; and my people shall never be ashamed.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, He has not only promised that he will confer outward
-good things on his people, but that he will make them
-blessings to others, and thereby enable them to lay out what
-he gives them for their good, to support his cause and gospel
-in the world; and to relieve those that are in distress, in Gen.
-xii. 2. ‘I will bless thee, and make thy name great; and thou
-shalt be a blessing.’ And, in Deut. xxvi. 11. ‘Thou shalt
-rejoice in every good thing which the Lord thy God hath
-given unto thee and unto thine house, thou and the Levite,
-and the stranger that is among you.’ These promises more
-especially respect those who are in a prosperous condition in
-the world.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But there are others which are made to believers, in an afflicted
-state; and, indeed, there is scarce any affliction which
-they are liable to, but what has some special promises annexed
-to it. Accordingly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) There are promises made to them when lying on a sick
-bed, in Psal. xli. 5. ‘The Lord will strengthen him upon the
-bed of languishing; thou wilt make all his bed in his sickness.’
-And, in Deut. vii. 15. ‘The Lord will take from thee
-all sickness, and will put none of the evil diseases of Egypt
-(which thou knowest) upon thee; but will lay them upon all
-that hate thee.’ And, in Exod. xxiii. 25. ‘I will take sickness
-away from the midst of thee.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) There are other promises made to believers, when poor
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_347'>347</span>and low in this world, in Psal. cxxxii. 15. ‘I will abundantly
-bless her provision; I will satisfy her poor with bread.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) There are other promises that respect God’s giving a
-full compensation for all the losses which his people have sustained
-for Christ’s sake, in Matt. xix. 29. ‘Every one that
-hath forsaken houses, or brethren, or sisters, or father, or
-mother, or wife, or children, or lands for my name’s sake,
-shall receive an hundred-fold, and shall inherit life everlasting.’
-And, in chap. x. 39. ‘He that findeth his life shall
-lose it; and he that loseth his life for my name’s sake shall
-find it.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) There are other promises made to believers under oppression,
-in Psal. xii. 5. ‘For the oppression of the poor, for
-the sighing of the needy, now will I arise (saith the Lord)
-I will set him in safety from him that puffeth at him.’ And
-in Hos. xiv. 3. ‘In thee the fatherless findeth mercy.’ And, in
-Psal. lxviii. 5. ‘A father of the fatherless, and a judge of the
-widows, is God in his holy habitation.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(5.) There are other promises made to believers, when reviled
-and persecuted for righteousness’ sake, Matt. v. 11, 12,
-‘Blessed are ye when men shall revile you, and persecute you,
-and shall say all manner of evil against you falsely for my
-sake. Rejoice and be exceeding glad; for great is your
-reward in heaven.’ And, in 1 Pet. iv. 19. ‘Wherefore
-let them that suffer according to the will of God, commit the
-keeping of their souls to him in well-doing, as unto a faithful
-Creator.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(6.) There are promises made to God’s people, when they
-are in distress, and, at present, see no way of escape: Thus
-when Jeremiah was shut up in the court of the prison, he had
-this promise given him, in Jer. xxxiii. 3. ‘Call unto me, and I
-will answer thee, and shew thee great and mighty things,
-which thou knowest not.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(7.) God has made promises suited to the condition of his
-people, when their lot is cast in perilous times: Thus it is said,
-in Isa. xliii. 2. <i>When thou passest through the waters, I will
-be with thee; and through the rivers, they shall not overflow
-thee: When thou walkest through the fire, thou shalt not be burnt;
-neither shall the flame kindle upon thee.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Now there are several mercies which God has promised to
-his people, under the various afflictions which we are exposed
-to, as,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>1st</i>,) Sometimes he promises to prevent the afflictions which
-we are most afraid of, in Psal. cxxi. 7. ‘The Lord shall preserve
-thee from all evils; he shall preserve thy soul.’ And, in
-Job v. 19. ‘He shall deliver thee in six troubles; yea, in seven
-there shall no evil touch thee.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_348'>348</span>(<i>2d</i>,) He has promised to preserve his people from, or defend
-them in, a time of trouble, in Gen. xv. 1. ‘Fear not Abram:
-I am thy shield, and thy exceeding great reward.’ And, in
-Ezek. xi. 16. ‘Thus saith the Lord; although I have cast them
-far off among the heathen; and although I have scattered
-them among the countries, yet will I be to them a little sanctuary
-in the countries where they shall come.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>3d</i>,) He has promised to moderate their afflictions, in Isa.
-xxvii. 8. ‘In measure when it shooteth forth, thou wilt debate
-with it; he stayeth his rough wind in the day of his east
-wind.’ And, in Jer. xlvi. 28. ‘Fear thou not, O Jacob, my
-servant, saith the Lord, for I am with thee, for I will make a
-full end of all the nations whither I have driven thee, but I
-will not make a full end of thee, but correct thee in measure;
-yet I will not leave thee wholly unpunished.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>4th</i>,) He has also promised, that if need be, he will shorten
-the affliction, in Psal. cxxv. 3. ‘The rod of the wicked shall
-not rest upon the lot of the righteous; lest the righteous put
-forth their hands unto iniquity.’ And, in Mark xiii. 19, 20.
-‘In those days shall be affliction such as was not from the beginning
-of the creation: And except that the Lord had shortened
-those days, no flesh could be saved; but for the elect’s
-sake, whom he hath chosen, he hath shortened the days.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>5th</i>,) God has also promised his people that he will enable
-them to bear those afflictions which he lays upon them, in Psal.
-xxxvii. 24. ‘Though he fall, he shall not be utterly cast down;
-for the Lord upholdeth him with his hand.’ And, in 2 Cor.
-xii. 9. ‘He said unto me, My grace is sufficient for thee; for
-my strength is made perfect in weakness.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>6th.</i>) He has promised to shew his people the particular sin
-that is the cause of the affliction, that they may be humbled
-for it, in Job xxxvi. 8, 9. ‘If they be bound in fetters, and
-be holden in cords of affliction; then he sheweth them their
-work and their transgressions that they have exceeded.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>7th.</i>) He has promised to bring good to them out of their
-afflictions, in Isa. xxvii. 9. ‘By this therefore shall the iniquity
-of Jacob be purged, and this is all the fruit to take away
-his sin.’ And in Psal. xcvii. 11. ‘light is sown for the
-righteous, and gladness for the upright in heart.’ And in
-Zech. xiii. 9. ‘I will bring the third part through the fire, and
-will refine them as silver is refined, and will try them as gold
-is tried: They shall call on my name, and I will hear them:
-I will say, that it is my people; and they shall say, Thou art
-my God.’ Thus concerning the promises that more especially
-respect outward blessings which God bestows on his people.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] There are other promises contained in scripture, that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_349'>349</span>relate more especially to spiritual blessings, which are of great
-use to us, when we are asking them of God in prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, There are promises that relate more especially to the
-ordinances or means of grace: These are various,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Some respect the duty of prayer, and also the event and
-success that shall attend it, in God’s giving gracious returns,
-or answers thereof, in Psal. xci. 15. ‘He shall call upon me,
-and I will answer him.’ And in Jer. xxix. 12, 13. ‘Then
-shall ye call upon me, and ye shall go and pray unto me, and
-I will hearken unto you. And ye shall seek me, and find me,
-when ye shall search for me with all your heart.’ And, in
-Psal. l. 15. ‘Call upon me, in the day of trouble, I will deliver
-thee, and thou shalt glorify me.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. Another ordinance to which promises are also annexed,
-is meditation about spiritual things, in Prov. xiv. 22. ‘Mercy
-and truth shall be to them that devise good.’ And, in Josh.
-i. 8. ‘This book of the law shall not depart out of thy mouth,
-but thou shalt meditate therein day and night, that thou
-mayest observe to do according to all that is written therein;
-for then thou shalt make thy way prosperous, and then thou
-shalt have good success.’ There are also promises made to
-those who read the word of God, to wit, that he will make
-known his words to them, so that they may understand them,
-Prov. i. 23. ‘Turn you at my reproof: Behold, I will pour
-out my Spirit unto you, I will make known my words unto
-you.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. There are promises made to those who attend on the
-public worship of God, in Psal. xxxvi. 8, 9. ‘They shall be
-abundantly satisfied with the fatness of thy house; and thou
-shalt make them drink of the river of thy pleasures.’ And,
-in Psal. cxxviii. 5. ‘The Lord shall bless thee out of Zion;
-and thou shalt see the good of Jerusalem all the days of thy
-life.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. There are promises made to religious fasting on special
-occasions, as in Mat. vi. 17. ‘When thou fastest, anoint thine
-head, and wash thy face; that thou appear not unto men to
-fast, but unto thy Father which is in secret, and thy Father
-which seeth in secret, shall reward thee openly.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>5. There are promises made to alms-giving, in Prov. xi. 25.
-‘The liberal soul shall be made fat; and he that watereth shall
-be watered also himself.’ And, in Eccl. xi. 1. ‘Cast thy bread
-upon the waters; for thou shalt find it after many days.’—And
-in 2 Cor. ix. 6, 7, 8. ‘He which soweth bountifully shall
-also reap bountifully: God loveth a cheerful giver, and is
-able to make all grace abound, <i>&amp;c.</i>’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>6. There are promises made to believers, when they appear
-in the behalf of truth, at those times when it is opposed and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_350'>350</span>perverted, that by this means it may not be run down, nor
-they confounded, or put to silence by its enemies, Luke xxi.
-15. ‘I will give you a mouth and wisdom, which all your adversaries
-shall not be able to gainsay, nor resist.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>7. There are promises made to the religious and strict observation
-and sanctification of the Lord’s day, Isa. lvi. 2.
-‘Blessed is the man that doth this; that keepeth the Sabbath
-from polluting it, and keepeth his hand from doing any evil.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, There are promises, contained in scripture, which
-respect God’s giving his people special grace, together with
-that joy, peace and comfort that flows from it, which will be of
-great use to them, in order to their engaging aright in the duty
-of prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. There are promises of the grace of faith, and others that
-are made to it; as it is said, in John vi. 37. ‘All that the Father
-giveth to me shall come to me; and him that cometh to
-me I will in no wise cast out.’ And, in Eph. ii. 8. ‘By grace
-are ye saved, through faith; and that not of yourselves; it
-is the gift of God.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. There are promises of the grace of repentance, in Rom.
-xi. 26. ‘There shall come out of Zion the deliverer, and shall
-turn away ungodliness from Jacob.’ And, in Ezek. xx. 43.
-‘Ye shall remember your ways, and all your doings, wherein
-ye have been defiled, and ye shall lothe yourselves in your
-own sight, for all your evils that ye have committed.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. There are promises of love to God: Thus in Gal. v. 2.
-‘The fruit of the Spirit is love.’ And, 2 Tim. i. 7. ‘God
-hath not given us the spirit of fear, but of power and love,
-and of a sound mind.’ And, in Rom. v. 5. ‘Hope maketh
-not ashamed, because the love of God is shed abroad in our
-hearts, by the Holy Ghost which is given unto us.’ And, in
-2 Thes. iii. 5. ‘The Lord direct your hearts into the love of
-God, and into the patient waiting for Christ.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. Another grace promised is an holy filial fear of God, in
-Jer. xxx. 39, 40. ‘I will give them one heart, and one way,
-that they may fear them for ever, for the good of them, and
-of their children after them. And I will make an everlasting
-covenant with them, that I will not turn away from them to
-do them good; but I will put my fear in their hearts, that
-they shall not depart from me.’ And, in Hos. iii. 5. ‘They
-shall fear the Lord and his goodness.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>5. Obedience to God’s commands, which is an indispensable
-duty, is also considered as a promised blessing, in Deut. xxx.
-8. ‘Thou shalt return and obey the voice of the Lord, and do
-all his commandments which I command thee this day.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, as there are promises of the graces of the Spirit,
-so the comforts that flow from thence are also promised: Thus
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_351'>351</span>it is said in Isa. li. 12. <i>I, even I, am he that comforteth you.</i>
-And, in chap. xl. 1. <i>Comfort ye, comfort ye my people: Speak
-ye comfortably to Jerusalem</i>, &amp;c. more particularly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) There are promises of peace of conscience, which is a
-great branch of those spiritual comforts which God gives his
-people ground to expect: Thus it is said in Isa. lvii. 18, 19.
-‘I will restore comforts unto him, and to his mourners. I
-create the fruit of the lips; peace, peace to him that is afar
-off, and to him that is near, saith the Lord.’ And, in chap.
-xxvi. 4. ‘Thou wilt keep him in perfect peace, whose mind is
-stayed on thee; because he trusteth in thee.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) God has promised a good hope of eternal life, in 2 Thes.
-ii. 16. ‘Now our Lord Jesus Christ himself, and God, even
-our Father, who hath loved us, and hath given us everlasting
-consolation, and good hope through grace, comfort your hearts.’
-And, in Rom. xv. 4. ‘Whatsoever things were written aforetime
-were written for our learning; that we through patience
-and comfort of the scriptures, might have hope.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) God has promised spiritual joy to his people, in Psal.
-lxiv. 10. ‘The righteous shall be glad in the Lord, and shall
-trust in him; and all the upright in heart shall glory.’ And,
-in Psal. xcvii. 11, 12. ‘Light is sown for the righteous, and
-gladness for the upright in heart. Rejoice in the Lord ye
-righteous; and give thanks at the remembrance of his holiness.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Here we shall consider a believer, when drawing nigh to
-God in prayer, as depressed and bowed in his own spirit, and
-hardly able to speak a word to him in his own behalf, as the
-Psalmist says, in Psal. lxxvii. 3, 4. <i>I complained and my spirit
-was overwhelmed. I am so troubled that I cannot speak</i>; and
-how he may receive great advantage from those promises
-which he will find in the word of God; as,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>1st</i>,) When he complains of the wickedness, hardness and
-perverseness of his heart; in this case God has promised, in
-Ezek. xi. 19. ‘I will put a new spirit within you, and I will
-take the stony heart out of your flesh, and will give you an
-heart of flesh.’ And, in Jer. xxiii. 29. ‘Is not my word like
-a fire, saith the Lord, and like a hammer that breaketh the
-rock in pieces.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>2d</i>,) When a believer is sensible of his ignorance, or, at
-least, that his knowledge of divine truths bears no proportion
-to the means of grace, which he has been favoured with, and
-that he is often destitute of spiritual wisdom, to direct his way,
-and carry him through the difficulties he often meets with, as
-to what concerns his temporal or spiritual affairs: There are
-promises suited to this case, in Prov. ii. 3-6. ‘If thou criest
-after knowledge, and liftest up thy voice for understanding;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_352'>352</span>if thou seekest her as silver, and searchest for her, as for hid
-treasures; then shalt thou understand the fear of the Lord;
-and find the knowledge of God.’ And in James i. 5. ‘If
-any of you lack wisdom, let him ask of God, that giveth
-to all men liberally and upbraideth not; and it shall be given
-him.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>3d</i>,) If they complain of the weakness of their memories,
-that they cannot retain the truths of God when they hear them;
-Christ has promised, in John xiv. 26. that the Holy Ghost
-shall <i>teach</i> them <i>all things, and bring all things to their remembrance</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>4th</i>,) If they complain of their unthankfulness, or that they
-have not hearts disposed to praise God for the mercies they
-receive, he has promised, in Isa. 21. <i>This people have I formed
-for myself, they shall shew forth my praise.</i> And, in Psal.
-cxl. 14. <i>Surely the righteous shall give thanks unto thy name,
-the upright shall dwell in thy presence.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>5th</i>,) There are many who are not altogether destitute of
-hope that they have the truth of grace, but yet are filled with
-trouble, as apprehending that they do not make those advances,
-in grace, as they ought, but seem to be at a stand, which they
-can reckon little other than going backward, and they dread
-the consequences thereof; such may take encouragement from
-those promises that respect a believer’s growing in grace; as
-it is said, in John viii. 7. <i>Though thy beginning was small,
-yet thy latter end shall greatly increase.</i> And, in Isa. xl. 29,
-31. <i>He giveth power to the faint; and to them that have no
-might, he increaseth strength. They that wait upon the Lord
-shall renew their strength; they shall mount up with wings as
-eagles, they shall run and not be weary, and they shall walk and
-not faint.</i> And if they complain of their unprofitableness under
-the means of grace, and not receiving any spiritual advantage
-by the various dispensations of providence which they are
-under; there is a promise adapted to this case, in Isa. xlviii.
-17. <i>Thus saith the Lord thy Redeemer, the holy One of Israel,
-I am the Lord thy God, which teacheth thee to profit, which
-leadeth thee by the way that thou shouldest go.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>6th</i>) Are they afraid that they shall fall away after having
-made a long profession of religion? There is a promise which
-our Saviour himself took encouragement from, though never
-liable to any fear of this nature, which a believer may apply
-to himself, as affording relief against these fears and discouragements,
-in Psal. xvi. 8. ‘I have set the Lord always before
-me; because he is at my right hand, I shall not be moved.’
-And there is another which is more directly applicable
-to this case, in 1 Cor. i. 8. ‘Who shall also confirm you
-unto the end that ye may be blameless in the day of our Lord
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_353'>353</span>Jesus Christ.’ And if he is fallen, and, at the same time,
-afraid that he shall never be able to rise again, and recover
-what he has lost, there is another promise in Psal. xxxvi. 24,
-28. ‘Though he fall, he shall not be utterly cast down; for
-the Lord upholdeth him with his hand. The Lord loveth
-judgment, and forsaketh not his saints:’ And God also
-says, in Heb. xiii. 5. ‘I will never leave thee, nor forsake
-thee.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>7th</i>,) If a believer be under divine desertion, which he
-may be, and yet kept from apostacy; if he is mourning after
-the Lord, and earnestly desiring that he would return to him;
-he may take encouragement from that promise in Psal. xlii.
-5. ‘Why art thou cast down, O my soul; and why art thou
-disquieted in me? hope thou in God, for I shall yet praise
-him for the help of his countenance.’ And, in Jer. xxxi.
-13, 14. ‘Then shall the virgin rejoice in the dance, both
-young men and old together: For I will turn their mourning
-into joy, and will comfort them, and make them rejoice
-from their sorrow. And I will satiate the soul of the priests
-with fatness, and my people shall be satisfied with my goodness,
-saith the Lord.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>8th</i>,) Is he cast down under a sense of the guilt of sin,
-and afraid of the punishment that will ensue? there are many
-promises in the word of God that respect the forgiveness of
-sin, in Psal. ciii. 3. ‘Who forgiveth all thine iniquities: who
-healeth all thy diseases.’ And, in Psal. cxxx. 4. ‘There is
-forgiveness with thee, that thou mayst be feared.’ And, in
-Isa. xliii. 25. ‘I, even I am he that blotteth out thy transgressions
-for mine own sake, and will not remember thy sins.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(<i>9th</i>,) Is a believer afraid of the last enemy, death, by reason
-of the <i>fear</i> whereof <i>he is all his life-time subject to bondage</i>:
-Heb. ii. 15. and Psal. xlviii. 14. ‘This God is our
-God for ever and ever; he will be our guide even unto
-death.’ And, in Psal. xxiii. 4. ‘Yea, though I walk through
-the valley of the shadow of death, I will fear no evil; for
-thou art with me, thy rod and thy staff they comfort me.’
-And, in Psal. xxxvii. 37. ‘Mark the perfect man, and behold
-the upright; for the end of that man is peace.’ Thus we have
-considered the promises of God as suited to every condition,
-and, consequently, as affording matter of encouragement to us
-in drawing nigh to him in prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>5. Those reproofs for sins committed, and threatenings which
-are contained in the word of God, as a means to deter from
-committing them, may be improved for our direction in prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) As we are hereby induced to hate sin, beg strength to
-subdue and mortify it, and deprecate the wrath and judgments
-of God against those that commit it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_354'>354</span>(2.) We are hereby led to see our desert of punishment,
-while we confess ourselves to be sinners, and to bless God that
-he has not inflicted it upon us; but especially if he has given
-us ground of hope that he has delivered us from that condemnation
-which was due to us for sin.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) They will be of use to us in prayer, as we are thereby
-led to have an awful sense of the holiness and justice of God,
-and to draw nigh to him with fear and trembling, lest we should
-provoke his wrath by our unbecoming behaviour in his presence,
-and thereby bring on ourselves a curse instead of a blessing.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>6. The word of God is of use for our direction in prayer,
-as it contains many examples of the performance of this duty
-in a right manner by the saints, whose graces, and the manner
-in which they have drawn nigh to God, are proposed for our
-imitation in this duty: Thus we read of Jacob’s wrestling with
-God, and his great importunity, when it is said, in Hos. xii.
-4. ‘He had power over the angel, and prevailed; he wept and
-made supplication unto him;’ as referring to what is mentioned
-in Gen. xxxii. 26, 28. ‘The angel,’ that is, Christ, says,
-‘let me go, for the day breaketh,’ <i>q. d.</i> cease thy importunity,
-which thou hast maintained to the breaking of the day; during
-which time I have given thee no encouragement that I will
-grant thy request. Jacob persists in his resolution, and says,
-‘I will not let thee go, except thou bless me;’ that is, I will
-not leave off importuning thee, till thou givest me a gracious
-answer: Upon which, our Saviour says, ‘as a prince hast thou
-power with God,’ that is, with me, ‘and with men,’ to wit,
-with Esau thy brother, ‘and hast prevailed:’ So that he shall
-do thee no hurt, in ver. 28. but his heart shall be turned toward
-thee.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, we read of Abraham’s humility in prayer, when he
-says, in Gen. xviii. 27. ‘Behold now, I have taken upon me
-to speak unto the Lord, which am but dust and ashes.’ And,
-in ver. 30. ‘Oh! let not the Lord be angry, and I will speak.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We also read of David’s sincerity, in Psal. xvii. 1. ‘Attend
-unto my cry, give ear unto my prayer that goeth not out of
-feigned lips;’ and of Hezekiah’s addressing himself to God
-with tears in his sickness; upon which, he immediately received
-a gracious answer, in Isa. xxxviii 3, 5. and when he
-was recovered, he gives praise to God, in ver. 19. ‘The living,
-the living, he shall praise thee as I do this day: The Father
-to the children shall make known thy truth.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We have an instance of Jonah’s faith in prayer, when his
-disobedience to the divine command, had brought him into the
-utmost distress, in Jonah ii. 2, 4. ‘Out of the belly of hell cried
-I, and thou heardest my voice. Then I said, I am cast out
-of thy sight; yet will I look again toward thy holy temple.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_355'>355</span>We have also an instance of Daniel’s drawing nigh to God
-with an uncommon reverence, and awful fear of his divine
-Majesty, and an account of the manner in which he addresses
-himself to him, with confession of those sins which Israel had
-been guilty of, in Dan. ix. 4, 5. ‘I prayed unto the Lord my
-God, and made my confession, and said, O Lord, the great
-and dreadful God, keeping the covenant, and mercy to them
-that love him, and to them that keep his commandments:
-We have sinned, and committed iniquity, and have done
-wickedly, and have rebelled, even by departing from thy precepts,
-and from thy judgments.’ And we have this humble
-confession and supplication, continued to ver. 19. and then an
-account of the success thereof, in the gracious answer that
-God sent him by an angel from heaven.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We also read of Joshua’s interceding for Israel, when he
-‘fell upon his face before the ark of the Lord, with his clothes
-rent,’ Josh. vii. 6. and we have the plea that he makes use of
-in ver. 9. ‘What wilt thou do unto thy great name.’</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We have also an instance of fervency in Moses, (when pleading
-for the people, after they had worshipped the golden calf,)
-who prefers God’s glory to his own happiness; and had rather
-have no name in the church, or be <i>blotted out of the book which</i>
-God had <i>written</i>, than that his <i>wrath</i> should <i>wax hot against
-Israel, to consume them</i>; of which we have an account in Exod.
-xxxiii. 10, 11, 31, 32.<a id='r110' /><a href='#f110' class='c012'><sup>[110]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There are many other instances of this nature mentioned in
-scripture; which, for brevity sake, I pass over; and, indeed,
-the whole book of the Lamentations is of use to direct us in
-prayer, under pressing afflictions, either feared or undergone;
-and the book of Psalms is a directory for prayer to the believer,
-suited to every condition which he may be supposed to be in,
-and of praise for mercies of all kinds, whether temporal or spiritual.
-And the same may be said of many other parts of scripture.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>From what has been said concerning the word of God being
-a direction to us in prayer, we may infer,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) That, as reading the scriptures in our families and closets,
-is a great help to raise our affections, and bring us into a
-praying frame: So the application of scripture-doctrines and
-examples to our own case, will supply us with fit matter and
-expressions upon all occasions, when we draw nigh to God in
-this duty.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) The pretence of some that they know not how to pray,
-or that they cannot do it without a prescribed form, arises, for
-the most part, from an unacquaintedness with, or a neglect to
-study the scriptures, to answer this end.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_356'>356</span>(3.) Since the word of God is a directory for prayer, we
-ought not to affect modes of expression, or human strains of
-rhetoric, which are not deduced from, or agreeable to scripture;
-but, on the other hand, we are to use such a simplicity
-of style, and spirituality of expression, as we find contained
-therein; especially in those parts thereof, as are more directly
-subservient to this duty.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) It will be of very great use for us sometimes, in the
-course of our reading scripture, especially in private, to turn
-what we read into prayer, though it do not contain in itself the
-form of a prayer; as when we read of the presumptuous sins
-committed by some, and the visible marks of God’s displeasure
-that ensued hereupon, we ought to lift up our hearts to him,
-to keep us from them; or, if we have reason to charge ourselves
-as guilty of them, that we may be humbled, and obtain
-forgiveness from him. And when we read, the excellent characters
-of some of the saints, in scripture, we ought to pray
-that God would enable us to be followers of them herein; or
-when, in some parts thereof, believers are represented as praying
-for particular mercies, we ought, at the same time, to lift
-up our hearts to God for the same: This will be a means, not
-only to furnish us with matter and proper expressions in prayer;
-but to excite our affections when we engage in this duty, in
-those stated times which are set apart for it. This leads us
-to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>III. That there is a special rule of direction contained in
-that form of prayer which Christ taught his disciples, commonly
-called <i>the Lord’s prayer</i>. This prayer is mentioned
-only by two of the evangelists, <i>viz.</i> Matthew, in chap. vi. 8,—13.
-and Luke, in chap. xi. 2, 3, 4. in which we may observe,
-that though there be a perfect harmony between them, as there
-is between all other parts of scripture, as to the matter or sense
-of them; yet it is obvious to all who compare them together,
-that there is some difference as to the mode of expression; particularly
-as to the <i>fourth</i> and <i>fifth</i> petition, (and that not only
-in the translation, as being sufficiently just, but in the original)
-which there would not have been, had it been designed for a
-form of prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. In the fourth petition, Luke teaches us to say, <i>Give us
-day by day our daily bread</i>: Whereas, in Matthew, it is expressed,
-<i>Give us this day our daily bread</i>, in which there are
-different ideas contained in the respective words. This is very
-common, when the same sense, for substance, is laid down in
-different parts of scripture.<a id='r111' /><a href='#f111' class='c012'><sup>[111]</sup></a> <i>Give us this day our daily bread</i>,
-contains a petition for what we want at present; and, Give us
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_357'>357</span><i>this, day by day</i>, implies, that these wants will daily recur
-upon us, in which it will be necessary to desire a supply from
-God; and therefore, if both these accounts of this petition be
-compared together, we are hereby directed to pray, Lord, give
-us the blessings which we want at present; and let these wants be
-daily supplied, as we shall stand in need of a supply from thee.<a id='r112' /><a href='#f112' class='c012'><sup>[112]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. In the fifth petition, Luke directs us to pray, <i>Forgive us
-our sins; for we also forgive every one that is indebted to us</i>:
-Whereas, in Matthew, the expression is very different, viz.
-<i>Forgive us our debts as we forgive our debtors</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. The evangelist Luke leaves out the doxology, <i>For thine
-is the kingdom, and the power, and the glory, for ever. Amen</i>;
-which Matthew adds.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>From hence, I conceive, it may be inferred, that our Saviour’s
-design, in dictating this prayer to his people, was not
-that they should confine themselves wholly to the mode of expression
-used therein, without the least variation; for then,
-doubtless, the two Evangelists would have laid it down in the
-very same words; but he rather designed it as a directory respecting
-the matter of prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I am sensible it will be objected to this, that the preface,
-which Luke prefixes to it, is, <i>when we pray, say, Our Father</i>,
-&amp;c. which seems to intimate that these very words should be
-used, and no other: But to this it may be replied, that the
-evangelist Matthew, who beyond dispute, laid down this prayer
-more fully than Luke does, says, by way of preface to it,
-<i>After this manner pray ye</i>; which seems to be an intimation
-that it was designed rather to be a directory, as to the matter
-of prayer, than a form of words to be used without the least
-variation; and therefore I cannot but think, that what Luke
-says, <i>when you pray, say</i>, &amp;c. imports nothing else but, <i>pray
-after this manner</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It farther appears, that our Saviour principally designed this
-prayer as a directory, respecting the matter of our petitions,
-rather than a form; because it does not explicitly contain all
-the parts of prayer, nor particularly, confession of sin, or thankful
-acknowledgment of mercies. I say, it does not contain
-these explicitly, but only implicitly, as a deduction, or inference
-from the petitions themselves; as when we say, <i>Forgive
-us our debts</i>, or sins, this supposes that we acknowledge ourselves
-to be sinners. It cannot be denied, but that there are
-some expressions which contain matter of thanksgiving; as
-when we pray, <i>Hallowed be thy name</i>, it implies, a thankful
-acknowledgment of all those instances in which God has sanctified
-his name, as well as a desire that he would do it, <i>q. d.</i>
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_358'>358</span>thou hast, in the various dispensations of thy providence; and
-in all thine holy institutions, set forth the glory of thy perfections
-that thou mayest be adored and magnified by thy creatures;
-this we own with thankfulness at the same time that
-we desire the continuance thereof. And when we pray, <i>Give
-us daily bread</i>; we do, in effect, acknowledge the bounty of
-his providence, from whence we receive all the comforts of
-life, and the large share thereof, which he has communicated
-to us, whereby our wants have hitherto been supplied. This,
-I say, is an implicit direction for thanksgiving. But if our Saviour
-had designed that it should be a perfect form of words,
-to be used without varying in the least from them, he would
-have given us some more full and direct account of what sins
-we are to acknowledge, and what mercies we are to thank him
-for, which is more plainly contained in some other scriptures,
-than it can be supposed to be in this prayer; therefore, it seems
-to be principally designed as a rule for our direction what we
-are to ask for; or how that part of prayer, which includes in
-it petition, ought to be performed, agreeably to the mind and
-will of God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, there is no explicit mention of the Mediator, in
-whose name we are to pray; nor of his obedience, sufferings,
-or intercession, on which the efficacy of our prayers is founded,
-which our faith is to have a great regard unto. These
-things therefore are to be supplied by what we find in other
-parts of scripture, all which, taken together, give us a perfect
-directory for prayer; though neither this, nor any other prayers
-used in scripture, sufficiently appear to have been designed as
-a form of words which we are to confine ourselves to, without
-the least variation from them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As to what is observed in the latter of the answers, under
-our present consideration, <i>viz.</i> that the Lord’s prayer is not
-only for direction, as a pattern, but may be used as a prayer,
-provided it be done in a right manner. It is granted that the
-Lord’s prayer is of use, as a pattern and rule for our direction,
-in common with all other prayers contained in scripture; but
-the main difficulty relating to this matter, is, whether our Saviour
-designed that his disciples, and the church, in all following
-ages, should confine themselves to the words thereof, so
-far as that the mode of expression should not be, in the least,
-altered, or any thing added to the petitions contained therein,
-how agreeable soever it be to the sense, and words of scripture.
-This does not seem to have been his intention therein;
-and, as it will not be denied by any, that every one of the petitions
-contained in it, may be interspersed and joined with other
-petitions to God in prayer, so, when this has been done,
-or, at least, the sense thereof expressed in other words, it will
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_359'>359</span>be very hard to prove that it is absolutely necessary that these
-petitions should be recollected, and prayed over again, in the
-same method in which they are laid down in this prayer, barely
-for the sake of our making use of it as a form; especially
-if this is not expressly commanded by our Saviour, as it does
-not sufficiently appear to be, if what was before observed be
-true, that those words, <i>When we pray, say, Our Father</i>, &amp;c.
-implies nothing else but, <i>pray after this manner</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>However, I would be very far from censuring or blaming
-the practice observed by many of the reformed churches, who
-conclude their <i>ex tempore</i>, or premeditated prayers with it, provided
-it be done with understanding, reverence, and suitable
-acts of faith, as any other petition contained in scripture may
-be made use of by us in prayer; not only in words agreeable
-thereunto, but in the express words thereof. The principal
-thing that I would militate against, is not so much the using
-the words, as doing this in a formal way, supposing that the
-bare recital of them doth, as it were, sanctify our other prayers;
-which, though very agreeable to the sense thereof, are, as
-some suppose, rendered so incomplete, that they will hardly be
-regarded by God without it. And I cannot but conclude the
-Papists highly to blame, who think the frequent repetition of it,
-though in a tongue unknown to the common people, is not only
-necessary, but, in some measure, meritorious. And the practice
-of some ignorant superstitious persons, who think that it
-may be made use of as a charm; and that the words thereof
-repeated, as the Jews of old did their Phylacteries, as a means
-to drive away evil spirits, is not only to be disapproved, but
-it is a vile instance of profaneness, very remote from the design
-of our Saviour in giving it.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CLXXXVIII., CLXXXIX.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXXVIII.</span> <i>Of how many parts doth the Lord’s
-prayer consist?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The Lord’s prayer consists of three parts, a preface,
-petitions, and a conclusion.</p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Quest. CLXXXIX.</span> <i>What doth the preface of the Lord’s prayer
-teach us?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The preface of the Lord’s prayer [contained in these
-words, <i>Our Father which art in heaven</i>] teacheth us, when
-we pray, to draw near to God with confidence of his fatherly
-goodness, and our interest therein, with reverence, and all
-other child-like dispositions, heavenly affections, and due apprehensions
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_360'>360</span>of his Sovereign power, majesty, and gracious
-condescension; as also to pray with, and for others.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>In this prayer we are taught to begin our prayers with a
-preface, and therein to make an explicit mention of the
-name of God, and some of his divine perfections. The preface
-to this prayer is contained in these words; <i>Our Father
-which art in heaven</i>. In which we may observe, that we are
-to draw near to God with reverence, and suitable apprehensions
-of his sovereign power, majesty, and other divine perfections,
-and with an holy confidence of his fatherly goodness;
-and that we are to pray with, and for others, which may be inferred
-from his being styled, <i>Our Father</i>; by which we are instructed
-to begin our prayers with some expressions of reverence,
-agreeable to the nature of the duty that we are engaged
-in, whereby we express the sense we have of his essential or relative
-glory, of which we have various instances in scripture,
-wherein God’s people, in addressing themselves to him, have
-made mention of his glorious names, titles, and attributes, in
-variety of expressions. Thus David, in his Psalms, that contain
-the matter and form of prayers, sometimes begins them
-with the name of God, to whom they are directed; as when he
-says, <i>God be merciful unto us, and bless us</i>, &amp;c. Psal. lxvii. 1.
-And elsewhere, <i>O God! thou art my God</i>, Psal. lxiii. 1. And
-sometimes he makes mention of his name <i>Jehovah</i>; which we
-translate <i>Lord</i>: Thus he says, <i>O Lord, rebuke me not in thy
-wrath</i>, &amp;c. Psal. xxxviii. 1. And elsewhere, <i>I will love thee,
-O Lord, my strength</i>, Psal. xviii. 1. And, <i>O Lord, our Lord,
-how excellent is thy name in all the earth</i>, Psal. viii. 1. And
-Solomon begins his prayer at the consecration of the temple;
-<i>Lord God of Israel, there is no God like thee in heaven above, or
-earth beneath; who keepest covenant and mercy with thy servants
-that walk before thee with all their heart</i>, 1 Kings viii.
-23. And Ezra begins his prayer, <i>O my God! I am ashamed,
-and blush to lift up my face to thee, my God!</i> Ezra ix. 6. And
-Daniel expresses himself thus, in the preface to his prayer, <i>O
-Lord, the great and dreadful God, keeping the covenant, and
-mercy to them that love him, and to them that keep his commandments</i>,
-Dan. ix. 4. These are all expressions, that denote reverence,
-and adoration; which, together with other instances
-of the like nature, are of use for our direction, as to what respects
-the preface, or beginning of our prayers to God; but
-the preface to the Lord’s prayer is somewhat different; in
-which we are taught,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. To address ourselves to God as a Father; which relation
-includes in it,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Something common to mankind in general; in which
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_361'>361</span>respect we are to adore him as our Creator, our Owner, and
-Benefactor, <i>in whom we live, and move, and have our being</i>,
-Acts xvii. 28. as the prophet says, <i>Have we not all one Father?
-hath not one God created us?</i> Mal. ii. 10. And elsewhere it
-is said, <i>He formeth the spirit of man within him</i>, Zech. xii. 1.
-upon which account he is called, <i>the God of the spirits of all
-flesh</i>, Numb. xvi. 22. and, <i>the Father of spirits</i>, Heb. xii. 9.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) God being a Father to his people, sometimes denotes
-that external covenant-relation which they stand in to him, as
-a people called by his name, favoured with the means of grace,
-and as such, the objects of that care and goodness, which he is
-pleased to extend to those whom he governs by laws given by
-special revelation from heaven, and encourages to wait on him
-in those ordinances, in which they may hope for his presence,
-and also promises all saving blessings to those that give up
-themselves to him by faith. In this sense we are to understand
-those scriptures, in which God says, <i>Israel is my son, even
-my first-born</i>, Exod. iv. 22. And, <i>I have nourished and brought
-up children, and they have rebelled against me</i>, Isa. i. 2. And,
-<i>Wilt thou not, from this time cry to me, My Father, thou art
-the guide of my youth</i>, Jer. iii. 4.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) The relation which God stands in to his people, as a
-Father, is sometimes taken in the highest sense, as implying
-in it discriminating grace, or special love, which he is pleased
-to extend to the heirs of salvation. Thus he is called so by
-right of redemption; in which respect Christ is styled, <i>The
-everlasting Father</i>, Isa. ix. 6. as being the Head and Redeemer
-of his people. And the church says, <i>Thou, O Lord, art our
-Father, our Redeemer; thy name is from everlasting</i>, chap. lxiii.
-16. And believers are called his children by regeneration; in
-which respect they are said to be <i>born of God</i>, John i. 13. and
-to be <i>made partakers of a divine</i>, 2 Pet. i. 4. that is, an holy
-and spiritual <i>nature</i>, which had its rise from God, when he was
-pleased to instamp his image upon them, consisting in holiness
-and righteousness. They are also called the children of God
-by adoption; thus he is said to have <i>predestinated them to the
-adoption of children by Jesus Christ to himself</i>, Eph. i. 5. and
-they are said to <i>receive the adoption of sons</i>, Gal. iv. 5. and as
-such, have a right to the inheritance of children, Rom. viii. 17.
-compared with Col. i. 12.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>These various senses in which God is said to be a Father
-to man, may serve for our direction when we style him, <i>Our
-Father</i>, in prayer. Unregenerate persons, when they pray to
-God, can ascend no higher than what is contained in their relation
-to him as a God of nature, and of providence; who are
-obliged to adore him for the blessings which they have received
-from him, as the effects of common bounty, which include
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_362'>362</span>in them all the blessings which belong to this life, together
-with his patience, forbearance, and long-suffering, which delays
-to inflict the punishment that sin deserves. Therefore,
-when they say, <i>Our Father</i>, they acknowledge that they derive
-their being from him, and though they cannot lay claim to the
-benefits of Christ’s redemption, yet they confess their obligations
-to God as their Creator; and consider him as having
-given them souls capable of spiritual blessings, and themselves
-as daily receiving the good things of this life from him, and
-dependent on him for those things that tend to the comfort and
-support of life. They also stand in need of those blessings
-which are suited to the nature of the soul, and consequently
-beg that they may not remain destitute of those things that
-may conduce to their everlasting welfare; and therefore they
-may use the Psalmist’s words, <i>Thy hands have made me, and
-fashioned me: Give me understanding, that I may learn thy
-commandments</i>, Psal. cxix. 73.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As for those who are God’s children, by an external covenant-relation,
-there is something more implied therein, than
-barely their being creatures; for herein they are led to adore
-him for those discoveries that he has made in the gospel, of the
-way of salvation by Jesus Christ, who calls and invites sinners
-to come to him, and encourages them to hope, that those who
-are enabled to do so in a right manner, he will, in no wise,
-cast out; therefore, when they call upon God as their Father
-in prayer, it is, in effect, to say; Lord, we cannot conclude
-ourselves to be thy children, as redeemed, effectually called
-and sanctified; nor can we lay claim to the inheritance laid up
-for thy saints in heaven; yet we are encouraged to wait on
-thee in the ordinances of thine appointment, and to hope for
-thy special presence therein, whereby they may be made effectual
-for our salvation. We are, indeed, destitute of special
-grace, and cannot conclude that we have a right to the saving
-blessings of the covenant; yet, through thy great goodness, we
-still enjoy the means of grace. We have not been admitted
-to partake of Christ’s fulness, nor to eat of the bread of life;
-yet we are thankful for those blessings of thy house, which
-thou art pleased to continue to us; and since thou still includest
-us in the number of those who are thy children as favoured
-with the gospel, we humbly take leave, upon this account,
-to call thee our Father, and to wait and hope for thy
-salvation, and continue to implore that grace from thee, which
-will give us a right to the best of blessings that we stand in
-need of.<a id='r113' /><a href='#f113' class='c012'><sup>[113]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As for those who are God’s children in the highest sense, by
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_363'>363</span>redemption, regeneration, and adoption, they may draw nigh
-to him, with an holy boldness; for these have, as the apostle
-expresseth it, the <i>Spirit of adoption whereby they cry, Abba,
-Father</i>; they have reason to adore him for privileges of the
-highest nature, that he has conferred upon them, and to encourage
-themselves that he will bestow upon them all the
-blessings they stand in need of as to this, or a better world.
-These may draw nigh to God with confidence of his fatherly
-goodness, and their interest therein; which they ought to take
-notice of and improve, in order to their drawing nigh to him,
-in a right manner, in prayer, as well as to induce them to behave
-themselves, in the whole course of their conversation, as those
-who are taken into this honourable relation to him. Accordingly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] This should raise their admiring thoughts of him, that
-they, who were, by nature, strangers and enemies to him, should
-be admitted to partake of this inestimable privilege; as the apostle
-says, <i>Behold what manner of love the Father hath bestowed
-upon us, that we should be called the sons of God!</i> 1 John iii. 1.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] We should also take encouragement from hence, to hope
-that he will hear and answer our prayers, though very imperfect,
-so far as it may tend to his glory and our real advantage.
-Thus our Saviour says, <i>If ye then, being evil, know how to give
-good gifts unto your children, how much more shall your Father,
-which is in heaven, give good things to them that ask him?</i>
-Matt. vii. 11. Do we pray for spiritual blessings, such as the
-increase of grace, strength against corruption, and to be kept
-from temptation, or falling by it? we have ground to conclude
-that these shall be granted us, inasmuch as they are purchased
-for us by Christ, promised in the covenant of grace, as we have
-the earnest and first-fruits of the Spirit in our hearts, whereby
-we are sealed unto the day of redemption. And when we pray
-for temporal blessings, we have reason to hope they shall be
-granted, if they be necessary for us, since our Saviour says,
-<i>Our heavenly Father knoweth that we have need of all these
-things</i>, Matt. vi. 32.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] This should excite in us those child-like dispositions,
-which are agreeable to this relation, not only when we draw
-nigh to God in prayer, but in the whole conduct of our lives.
-And it includes in it,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, Humility and reverence, which is not only becoming
-those who have an interest in his love, and a liberty of access
-into his presence, with hope of acceptance in his sight; but it
-is what we are obliged to, as his peculiar people, and a branch
-of that honour which is due to him as our God and Father.
-Thus he says, by the prophet, <i>A son honoureth his father</i>,
-Mal. i. 6. whereby he intimates that this is the character and
-disposition of those that stand in the relation of children to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_364'>364</span>him. And the apostle argues from the less to the greater,
-when he says, that <i>we have had fathers of our flesh, which corrected
-us, and we gave them reverence, shall we not much rather
-be in subjection to the Father of Spirits</i>, Heb. xii. 9.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, Patience under rebukes, considering our proneness to
-go astray, whereby we not only deserve them, but they are rendered
-necessary; and especially when we consider that they
-flow from love, and are designed for our good; as the apostle
-says, <i>Whom the Lord loveth he chastneth, and scourgeth every
-son whom he receiveth</i>, ver. 6.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Another child-like disposition is being grieved for our
-Father’s frowns; especially that we have incurred his displeasure
-by our misbehaviour towards him; and it contains in it a
-readiness to confess our faults, and a carefulness to avoid them
-for the future.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, Contentment with the provision of our Father’s house,
-whatever it be. We shall never, indeed, have the least cause
-to complain of scarcity, as the returning prodigal in the parable
-says, that even the <i>hired servants of his father, had bread enough,
-and to spare</i>, Luke xv. 17. It can hardly be supposed
-that he who is at the fountain head, can perish for thirst; nevertheless,
-though we are not straitened in God, yet we are
-often straitened in our bowels, through the weakness of our
-faith, when we are not inclined to receive what God holds
-forth to us in the gospel; and then we are discontented and
-uneasy, while the blame lies at our own door; whereas, if we
-behaved ourselves as the children of such a Father, we should
-not only be pleased with, but constantly adore and live upon
-that fulness of grace that there is in Christ; and whether he
-is pleased to give us more or less of the blessings of common
-providence, we should learn, <i>in whatsoever state we are, therewith
-to be content</i>, Phil. iv. 11.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>5thly</i>, Obedience to a father’s commands, without disputing
-his authority, or right to govern us, is another child-like disposition.
-Thus when we draw nigh to God as to our Father,
-we are to express a readiness to do whatever he requires,
-whereby we not only approve ourselves subjects under a law,
-but, as the apostle styles it, <i>Obedient children</i>, as being <i>holy in
-all manner of conversation</i>, 1 Pet. i. 14, 15.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>6thly</i>, Another disposition of children is, that they have a
-fervent zeal for their father’s honour, and cannot bear to hear
-him reproached without the highest resentment. Thus the
-children of God, how much soever they may be concerned
-about their own affairs, when injuriously treated by the world,
-are always ready to testify their utmost dislike of every thing
-that reflects dishonour on him, or his ways.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>7thly</i>, Another child-like disposition is love, which the relation
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_365'>365</span>of a father engages to. Thus when we draw nigh to God
-as our Father, we express our love to him, which is founded
-in his divine excellencies, which render him the object of the
-highest delight and esteem.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>8thly</i>, He that has a child-like disposition, retains a grateful
-sense of the obligations that he is under to his Father. Thus
-we ought to be duly sensible of all the favours which we have
-received from God, which are more than can be numbered;
-the contrary hereunto, is reckoned the basest ingratitude and
-disingenuity, altogether unbecoming the temper of children.
-Thus Moses says to Israel, <i>Do ye thus requite the Lord, O
-foolish people and unwise? Is not he thy Father who hath
-bought thee? hath he not made, and established thee?</i>
-Deut. xxxii. 6. A believer’s obligations to God are so very
-great, that he cannot look back upon his former state, or consider
-what he was, how vile and unworthy of any regard from
-him, how miserable and unable to help himself, when he first
-had compassion on him, without seeing himself under the
-strongest engagements to be entirely, and for ever, his; which
-is a becoming behaviour towards such a Father.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>9thly</i>, Love to all that are related to us as children of the
-same Father, is another child-like disposition. In like manner
-our love to the saints and faithful brethren in Christ, is a
-temper becoming the children of God; and, indeed, it is no
-other than a loving God in them, as we behold his image instamped
-upon them; and hereby we express the high esteem
-we have for regenerating grace, whereby God is denominated
-our common Father; and we, being acted by the same principle,
-are obliged and inclined to love as brethren. Thus they
-who love God, are induced to love his children, as the apostle
-says, <i>Every one that loveth him that begat, loveth him also that
-is begotten of him</i>, 1 John v. 1. and he also assigns this as an
-evidence that <i>we are passed from death to life, because we love
-the brethren</i>, chap. iii. 14. Thus concerning our drawing nigh
-to God, as to a Father, as we are taught to do in this prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We are directed, in this prayer, to draw nigh to God, as
-being in heaven; which is the most glorious part of the frame
-of nature, in which his power, wisdom, and goodness is eminently
-displayed, as he designed it to be an eternal habitation
-for the best of creatures, to whom he would discover more of
-his glory than to any others; and in this respect it is called his
-<i>throne</i>, Acts vii. 49. And this leads us,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) To have high and awful thoughts of the majesty and
-greatness of God, whom all the hosts of heaven worship, with
-the utmost reverence, and are satisfied with the immense treasure
-of his goodness. We therefore take occasion from hence
-to admire his infinite condescension, that he will look upon
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_366'>366</span>creatures here below; thus Solomon, in his prayer says, <i>Will
-God, indeed, dwell on the earth? behold the heaven, and the heaven
-of heavens cannot contain thee</i>, 1 Kings viii. 27. will he
-therefore look down upon those, who are so mean, deformed,
-and destitute of his image, as we are, who dwell in houses of
-clay, and deserve to be banished out of his sight?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) It should also be improved by us to teach us humility
-and modesty, in our conceptions and discourse, concerning
-God, and divine things: It is but a little that we know of the
-affairs of the upper world, and the way and manner in which
-God is pleased to manifest himself to his saints and angels
-there; and we know much less of his divine perfections, which
-the inhabitants of heaven adore, being sensible of the infinite
-distance they stand at from him, as creatures, upon which
-account they cannot comprehend, or find out the Almighty to
-perfection; and shall we pretend to search out the secrets of
-his wisdom, or express ourselves in prayer, as though we were
-speaking to one that was our equal, or could fathom the infinite
-depths of his unsearchable counsels? Thus Solomon’s
-advice may be well adapted to this case, <i>Be not rash with thy
-mouth, and let not thine heart be hasty to utter any thing before
-God; for God is in heaven, and thou upon earth; therefore let
-thy words be few</i>, 1 Kings viii. 27. We are not to think that
-we may say what we please, or be rash and inconsiderate in
-what we say, when we are <i>before the Lord; for he is in heaven</i>:
-And when it is farther inferred, that <i>therefore our words should
-be few</i>, that is, we should not think that the efficacy of our
-prayers depends upon the multitude of our words; or if we
-speak more or less to God, our expressions ought not to be
-bold, rash, hasty, or inconsiderate, but with a becoming decency
-and reverence, as those who are speaking to the majesty
-of heaven.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) It should put us upon meditating frequently on the
-glory of the heavenly state, as those who hope at last, to be
-joined with that happy and numerous assembly, who are, in
-God’s immediate presence, in heaven: and therefore our conversation
-should be there; and we should profess ourselves to
-be sojourners here on earth, seeking a better country, looking
-and waiting for the glorious appearing of the great God, our
-Saviour; and hoping, that when he comes, he will receive us
-to heaven, where our hearts are at present, as our treasure is
-there.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. We are, in this prayer, farther taught, that it is our duty
-to pray with, and for others, as we say, <i>Our Father</i>: Hereby
-we signify our relation to, and concern for, all the members of
-Christ’s mystical body; therefore, if we do not join with others
-in prayer, we are to have them upon our hearts, who are the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_367'>367</span>objects of Christ’s special love and care. This argues, that
-we have a sympathy with all those who are exposed to the
-same wants and miseries with ourselves; and we take a great
-deal of delight in considering them as subjects of the same
-common Lord, joining in the same profession with ourselves;
-concerning whom, we desire and hope that we shall be glorified
-together.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, if we join with others in prayer, so that the
-whole assembly make their supplications by one that is their
-mouth, to God; this is what we call social worship: Therefore
-it is our duty to pray with, as well as for others; and in
-this case we must take heed that nothing be contained in
-united prayer, but what the whole assembly may join in, as
-being expressive of their faith, desires, or experiences; otherwise
-there cannot be that beautiful harmony therein, such as
-the nature and design of the duty we are jointly engaged in,
-calls for: and this is agreeable to social or united prayers, in
-which all the petitions are to be adapted to the particular case
-of every one who addresses himself to God, how numerous
-soever the worshipping assembly may be; and therefore we
-are obliged to make use of that mode of expression, in which
-we are taught to say, <i>Our Father</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Thus our Saviour directs us how we should begin our
-prayers to God; and, inasmuch as this ought to be reduced
-to practice, I shall give a summary account of what is contained
-in this preface; that we may be furnished with matter
-taken from thence, in order to our addressing ourselves to God
-in prayer, in a way agreeable thereunto, when we come into
-his presence with such a frame of spirit as the importance of
-the duty requires; accordingly we are to express ourselves to
-this purpose, “O our God, we desire to draw nigh to thee with
-a becoming reverence, and an awful sense of thine infinite
-perfections: When we consider thee as a jealous God, and
-ourselves as sinful, guilty creatures, we might well be afraid
-to come before thee; but thou hast encouraged us to approach
-thy presence as to a Father, in, and through the
-merits and mediation of our Lord Jesus Christ; and therefore
-we come with an humble boldness before thy throne of
-grace, confessing that though we are called thy children, we
-have been very undutiful and rebellious against thee, and
-therefore unworthy of that relation or of the inheritance
-which thou hast laid up for those whom thou hast ordained
-to eternal life. Thou, O Lord, hast established thy throne
-in the heavens, where there is an innumerable company of
-angels and spirits of just men made perfect, who all behold
-thy face, and are made completely blessed in thine immediate
-presence: As for us, we dwell in houses of clay; but
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_368'>368</span>we earnestly beg that we may be made meet for, and then
-admitted into that happy society, that we may worship thee
-in a more perfect manner than we are capable of doing in
-this imperfect state. May all the powers and faculties of
-our souls be renewed, and influenced by thy holy Spirit, that
-we may have our conversation in heaven, whilst we are here
-below, and in all things, may be enabled to approve ourselves
-thy children, have a constant sense of duty, and the manifold
-obligations thou hast laid us under, that we may love, delight
-in, and submit to thee in all things, and have a fervent
-zeal for the honour of thy name as becomes thy children,
-that we, together with all thy faithful servants, may be under
-thy safe protection here, and be received to thy glory hereafter.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CXC.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXC.</span> <i>What do we pray for the first petition?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> In the first petition [which is, <i>Hallowed be thy Name</i>,]
-acknowledging the utter inability and indisposition that is
-in ourselves and all men to honour God aright, we pray that
-God would, by his grace, enable and incline us, and others,
-to know, to acknowledge, and highly to esteem him, his
-titles, attributes, ordinances, word, works, and whatsoever
-he is pleased to make himself known by, and to glorify him
-in thought, word, and deed; that he would prevent and remove
-atheism, ignorance, idolatry, profaneness, and whatsoever
-is dishonourable to him; and, by his over-ruling providence,
-direct and dispose of all things to his own glory.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>Having considered the preface to the Lord’s prayer, the
-next part of which it consists, is petitions; and these are
-six, which are laid down in this method.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. We are taught to pray for what concerns God’s glory,
-which is the highest and most valuable end; and therefore
-ought first to be prayed for: And this is the subject-matter of
-the three first petitions.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We are directed to pray for what respects our own advantage,
-which is contained in the three last petitions, in which
-we are directed to pray for outward blessings, as in the fourth
-petition, and then for spiritual, without which outward blessings
-would afford us no relish or savour, nor render us truly
-happy. These spiritual blessings include in them either forgiveness
-of sin, and this we pray for in the fifth petition; or
-our being sanctified and delivered from the prevalency of corruption
-and temptation, together with all the evils that sin exposes
-us to; this we pray for in the sixth petition. That which
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_369'>369</span>we are more particularly to consider in this answer, is, what
-we are taught to pray for in the first petition, which is contained
-in these words, <i>Hallowed be thy name</i>. By the <i>name</i>
-of God we are to understand every thing, by which he is
-pleased to make himself known to his creatures, as when he
-discovers himself in his divine perfections, which are either essential
-or personal, absolute or relative; and in his glorious
-titles, as the Lord of Hosts, the God and Rock of Israel, the
-hope of Israel, the God that cannot lye, the Father of mercies,
-the God of all grace and glory, the preserver of man; which
-have all a tendency to raise in us the highest veneration for,
-and esteem of him. He has also made himself known by his
-ordinances, words, and works: These are the subject-matter of
-this petition; and when we pray that they may be sanctified,
-we are not to understand hereby that they may be made holy;
-but that the holiness and glory thereof may be demonstrated
-by him, and that we may be enabled to adore and magnify him
-agreeably thereunto.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Now the name of God may be said to be sanctified either
-by himself or by his people in different respects; accordingly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. We pray that God would sanctify, that is, demonstrate
-the glory of his own name, or proclaim and make it visible to
-the world, so as to excite that adoration and esteem which is
-due to him. His name, indeed, has been eminently glorified
-in all ages, in the various methods of his providence and
-grace; whereby his power, wisdom, and goodness have been
-illustrated in the eyes of angels and men; and, in all his
-works, he has appeared to be a God of infinite holiness: We
-therefore pray that he would continue to glorify these perfections,
-and enable us to improve the displays thereof to our
-spiritual advantage.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This is a subject of the highest importance, without which
-we cannot give to God the glory due unto his name; therefore,
-as praise is joined with prayer, it is necessary for us to
-take a view of the various ways by which God has manifested
-the glory of his holiness. We might here consider how he
-did this in his creating man at first, without the least blemish
-or disposition in his nature to sin, and enstamped his own
-image upon him, which principally consisted in holiness,
-which was the greatest internal beauty and ornament that he
-could be endowed with.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But that which we shall principally consider, is, how the
-holiness of God is demonstrated in his dealings with fallen
-man. His suffering sin to enter into the world, was not inconsistent
-with the holiness of his nature, since his providence, as
-has been observed elsewhere, was not conversant about it, by
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_370'>370</span>bringing any under a natural necessity of sinning; and therefore
-there is not the least ground to charge him, with being
-the author of sin. We now proceed to shew how the holiness
-of God was glorified in the dispensations of his providence towards
-fallen man, and in the methods he took in order to his
-recovery.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. The holiness of God was glorified, or he sanctified his
-great name, in the dispensations of his providence towards
-fallen man, before he gave him any hope of salvation. It cannot
-be supposed that this rebellion against, and apostacy from
-God, should not be highly resented by him; accordingly we
-read of his proceeding against the rebel as a judge, charging
-his crime upon him, and passing sentence pursuant to the demerit
-of his sin; and all the miseries that we are exposed to,
-either in this life, or that which is to come, are the result of
-the display of his holiness, as a sin-revenging Judge. As soon
-as ever our first parents sinned against him, he charged the
-guilt thereof on their consciences, and thereby filled them with
-a dread of his wrath: Hence proceeded an inclination to flee
-from his presence; and when they heard the voice of the
-Lord coming to call them to an account for what they had
-done, they were afraid.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This is God’s usual method in dealing with sinful creatures:
-He first convinces them of sin by the law, and awakens
-the conscience, so that his terrors are set in array against it
-round about, before he speaks good and comfortable words by
-the gospel: And by this means he sanctifies his name, and
-thereby discovers his infinite hatred of all sin: but we shall
-principally consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. How God glorifies his holiness in the method he has
-taken to deliver man from that guilt and misery, under which
-he had brought himself. The terms of reconciliation and salvation,
-were such as tended to secure the glory of his justice;
-and therefore he insisted on a satisfaction to be given, without
-making the least abatement of any part of the debt of punishment
-that was due for our sin; and accordingly <i>he spared not
-his own Son</i>, Rom. viii. 32. but delivered him over unto death,
-and obliged him to drink the bitterest part of that cup which
-was most formidable to nature, and which, had it been possible,
-he would fain have been excused from drinking; therefore
-he is represented, by one of the evangelists, as praying,
-that God the Father would <i>take this cup from him</i>, Mark xiv.
-35, 36. and by another, that he would <i>save him from this hour</i>,
-John xii. 27. Nevertheless, he expresses the utmost resignation
-to the divine will; and being sensible that this was an expedient
-to glorify the holiness of God, he does, as it were, give a check
-to the voice of nature, and submits to bear the punishment he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_371'>371</span>came into the world to suffer, how terrible soever it might be;
-and therefore says, <i>Father glorify thy name</i>, q. d. ver. 28. take
-what method is most expedient to demonstrate the glory of
-thy holiness let the whole debt be exacted on me, I am willing
-to pay the utmost farthing: Upon this God says, by a voice
-from heaven, <i>I have glorified it, and will glorify it again</i>;
-that is, in every step that has been, or shall be taken, in order
-to the bringing about the work of redemption, I have hallowed
-my name, and will do it hereafter. And, in this respect, God’s
-holiness was glorified in finishing transgression, making an end
-of sin, bringing in everlasting righteousness, and also in the
-impetration of redemption, by our great Mediator and Surety.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. God has sanctified his name in all the methods which he
-has taken in the application of redemption, in the various dispensations
-of his providence and grace towards his church and
-people; and in order hereunto, he has determined, that <i>if</i> his
-<i>children forsake</i> his <i>law, and walk not in</i> his <i>judgements; if
-they break</i> his <i>statutes and keep not</i> his <i>commandments, he will
-visit their transgression with the rod, and their iniquity with
-stripes</i>, Psal. lxxxix. 30, 32. And this is done to manifest the
-glory of his holiness: Though he is pleased to pardon their
-iniquity for the sake of Christ’s righteousness; yet they shall
-know, by experience, that he hates it; and therefore, whatever
-be his designs of grace, with respect to his redeemed ones, as
-to the event thereof, they shall, notwithstanding, find that their
-sin shall not altogether go unpunished, though this punishment
-be not of the same kind with that which was suffered by
-Christ, from the hand of vindictive justice demanding satisfaction.
-Moreover, God has sanctified his name, in that he
-has connected sanctification with salvation; therefore he has
-said, <i>Without holiness no man shall see the Lord</i>, Heb. xii. 14.
-He first makes his people holy, and then happy; every mercy
-that he bestows, is a motive or inducement to holiness; and all
-the ordinances and means of grace are made subservient to
-answer this end.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Here we may take occasion to observe the various methods,
-whereby God has sanctified his name, in all his dealings with
-his church, in the various ages thereof, both before and since
-our Saviour’s incarnation;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Under the legal dispensation. The people, whom he
-chose out of all the nations of the earth, and called them by
-his name; among whom he designed to magnify his perfections
-in such a way, as argued them to be the peculiar objects
-of his regard above all others, as he designed to make them
-high in name, in praise, and in honour; these are styled <i>an
-holy people</i>, Deut. xxvi. 19. and elsewhere, <i>holiness unto the
-Lord</i>, Jer. ii. 3. and the wonderful things that he did for them in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_372'>372</span>destroying their enemies, when he brought them out of Egyptian
-bondage, gave them occasion to celebrate his name, as a God
-<i>glorious in holiness, fearful in praises, doing wonders</i>, Exod. xv.
-11. and the worship that he established among them was such,
-in which he expressly required holiness, both in heart and life;
-and when, at any time, they cast a reproach on his perfections,
-or defiled and debased his holy institutions, he testified his displeasure
-against them in the highest degree: Of this we have
-various instances in the judgments which he has executed on
-particular persons for not performing what he had commanded,
-with the greatest exactness, in those things which related to
-his worship: Thus when Nadab and Abihu <i>offered strange
-fire</i>, they were <i>devoured, before the Lord, by fire from heaven</i>,
-Lev. x. 1, 2. And, when David was bringing the ark of God
-to Jerusalem, we read, that Uzzah put forth his hand to take
-hold of it to prevent its falling, when shaken by the oxen,
-which he, doubtless, did with a good design, and it is therefore
-called an <i>error</i>, rather than a presumptuous sin; yet it is said,
-that <i>the anger of the Lord was kindled against him, so that he
-smote him that he died</i> by it, 2 Sam. vi. 6, 7. this being contrary
-to an express law which God had given, that the sons of
-Kohath should <i>bear the ark, but they should not touch it, or any
-holy thing</i> that was covered, <i>lest they die</i>, Numb. iv. 15. And
-elsewhere we read, that some of the men of Bethshemesh, because
-they had <i>looked into the ark of the Lord, were smitten, so
-that fifty thousand, and threescore and ten of them died</i>, 1 Sam.
-vi. 19. inasmuch as God had forbidden that any should indulge
-their curiosity, so far as to look on the holy things on
-pain of death, Numb. iv. 20. And he also threatened the
-children of Israel with death, if any of them who were not appointed
-to minister in holy things, came nigh the tabernacle of
-the congregation, so as to perform that service which they
-were not sanctified or called to, since this was reckoned no
-other than an instance of profaneness in them. And if Aaron
-himself, whose office was to go into the holiest of all to perform
-the yearly service, in which he was to make atonement
-for the sins of the whole congregation, presumed to do this, at
-any other time but that day which God had appointed, he was
-to be punished with death, Lev. xvi. 2.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, when any thing was brought into the worship of God,
-contrary to what he had instituted, which was reckoned no
-other than a profaning it, God hallowed his own name, by
-pouring forth his wrath on those who gave occasion to, or complied
-with it. Thus when Jeroboam, set up calves in Bethel
-and Dan, <i>made priests of the lowest of the people, which were
-not of the sons of Levi, ordained feasts</i> like those which God had
-appointed; and, in many other instances, corrupted his worship,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_373'>373</span>whereby the people, who complied with him herein,
-were led aside from God, it is said, <i>This became sin unto the
-house of Jeroboam, even to cut it off, and to destroy it from off
-the face of the earth</i>, 1 Kings xii. 29-33. compared with chap.
-xiii. 34. And when Ahaz <i>erected an altar, according to the
-pattern of that which he saw at Damascus, and sacrificed to the
-gods of the people</i>, from whom he had took the pattern thereof, this
-brought <i>ruin</i> on him and his kingdom, 2 Kings xvi. 10. compared
-with 2 Chron. xxviii. 23. And when Uzziah usurped
-the priest’s office, by offering incense in the temple, God immediately
-testified his displeasure against him, by <i>smiting him
-with leprosy</i>; whereby he was separated from the congregation
-of the Lord, and rendered unfit to govern his people to
-the day of his death, 2 Chron. xxvi. 16, 20, 21. And when
-holy men, in any instance, have not sanctified his name in the
-eyes of the people, God has highly resented it: Thus when
-Moses and Aaron <i>spake unadvisedly with their lips</i>, upon
-which account they are said <i>not to sanctify the name of God at
-the waters of Meribah</i> he tells them, that therefore they should
-not <i>bring the children of Israel into the land of Canaan, but
-should die in the wilderness</i>, Numb. xx. 12.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, as we have many instances of the judgments of God on
-particular persons, for not sanctifying his name; so we have a
-public and visible display of his holiness, in his dealings with
-the whole nation of Israel, after their many revolts from him,
-when they served other gods, and not only corrupted, but laid
-aside his institutions, and were guilty of those vile abominations,
-which were inconsistent with the least pretensions to holiness;
-God sanctified his own name, not only by reproving
-them by the prophets, but sending those many judgments
-which were the forerunners of that desolation, which they had
-reason to expect, and then by delivering them into the hand of
-those who carried them captive, Israel into Assyria, and Judah
-into Babylon. This leads us to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) How God has, and still continues to sanctify his name,
-under the gospel-dispensation. Our Lord Jesus Christ, who
-is the Head and Saviour of his church, has, in his whole administration,
-set forth the glory of God’s holiness. This appears,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] In that he came into the world, with a commission from
-his Father, to engage in the work of our redemption; and accordingly
-he is said to have been <i>sanctified and sent into</i> it for
-this very purpose, John x. 36. And, when he entered on his
-public ministry, he produced his commission, and gave undeniable
-proofs that he was the Messiah, the person whom God
-the Father had <i>sealed</i>, and set over his house to manage this
-great affair. Every miracle which he wrought, was a divine
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_374'>374</span>testimony for the confirmation of this truth, that the gospel-dispensation
-took its rise from Christ our great Mediator,
-and was a glorious display of the holiness of God; and the
-world could not have the least ground to think they were imposed
-on, when they concluded that this Jesus was he that was
-to come into the world (according to the predictions of all the
-holy prophets that went before him) to erect that dispensation
-in which his own and his Father’s glory were eminently
-to shine forth, and thereby the name of God was to be hallowed
-in a greater degree than it had ever been before.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] God sanctifies his own name under the gospel-dispensation,
-in raising Christ from the dead, after he had finished the
-work which he came into the world about; in which respect it
-may be said of him, that <i>for</i>, or after <i>the suffering of death, he
-was crowned with glory and honour</i>, Heb. ii. 9. and put into a
-capacity of applying the redemption which he had purchased,
-so that God the Father <i>glorified the Son, that the Son also might
-glorify him</i>, John xvii. 1. That this was not done till he had
-made a full satisfaction to the justice of God, and thereby glorified
-his holiness to the utmost, has been already considered;
-after this he entered upon his glory; and from that time the
-gospel-dispensation might, by way of eminency, be said to begin,
-upon which occasion we may apply the words of the
-Psalmist, ‘Sing unto the Lord ye saints of his, and give
-thanks at the remembrance of his holiness,’ Psal. xxx. 4.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] God sanctified or hallowed his name in the method
-which he took in his dealings with the Jewish nation, after
-Christ’s ascension into heaven, which made way for the establishment
-of the gospel-church, and was in itself an awful display
-of his holiness. It must be supposed, that the treatment,
-which our Saviour met with from that nation, who might be
-said herein to fill up the measure of their iniquities to the utmost,
-would be followed with some terrible displays of divine
-vengeance; and thus it was, as appeared by the utter ruin of
-their civil and religious liberties, which were the immediate
-consequence thereof; and this is a visible proof of the truth of
-the Christian religion, and a very awful instance of God’s being
-sanctified in them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[4.] The holiness of God farther appears in the methods
-which he took to propagate his gospel through the world,
-which was not to be done by might or power, nor by those
-methods of secular policy, whereby civil states are advanced;
-but by his Spirit, whereby they who were called, were sufficiently
-qualified for this important work; who preached the
-gospel to all nations, according to the commission that was
-given them, confirmed it by miracles, and were instrumental
-in gathering a people out of the world, that yielded themselves
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_375'>375</span>willing subjects to Christ, a people called by his name, and
-subjected and entirely devoted to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[5.] The holiness of God appears in all those doctrines which
-were preached, on which the faith of the church is built, and
-those ordinances in which they were to express their subjection
-to Christ, and hope of salvation by him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, The doctrines of the gospel are all pure and holy; their
-great design is to set forth the harmony of the divine perfections,
-as displayed in the method of salvation by Jesus Christ;
-and to induce those who are made partakers thereof, to serve
-him in holiness and righteousness; and there is no gospel-doctrine
-that gives the least countenance, or leads to licentiousness.
-None have a right to claim an interest in Christ’s
-righteousness, or to hope for that salvation which he has
-purchased, but they who believe, and none can be said to believe,
-to the saving of the soul, but they who are enabled to
-perform all those duties, whereby it will appear, that they are
-an holy, as well as an happy people.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, All those ordinances which Christ has instituted in the
-gospel, have a tendency to set forth the holiness of God. What
-these are, has been considered under foregoing answers; as
-also, that they were instituted by Christ, and that no creature
-has a right to invent any modes of worship, or make any additions
-to his institutions, without incurring the guilt of depraving
-and sullying the beauty of gospel-worship<a id='r114' /><a href='#f114' class='c012'><sup>[114]</sup></a>; and therefore
-all that I shall add under this head, is, that as these are
-set apart, and sanctified by God, to be means of grace, and
-pledges of his presence; so they, who engage herein, are to do
-it with this view, that they may be made holy in all conversation,
-as he who hath called them is holy; and hereby God
-sanctifies his own name in the dispensations of his providence
-and grace.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Now when we pray, <i>Hallowed be thy name</i>, with a particular
-view to what God does in order hereunto, we adore him
-with an holy trembling, when we behold the displays of his vindictive
-justice in punishing sin; and if he sees it necessary to
-secure his own honour as the governor of the world, so that
-without it he would not appear to be an holy God, nor the
-glory of his truth in those threatenings which he has denounced
-against sin, discovered, we are fully satisfied that all his
-ways are right, as acquiescing in his providence; and when
-his judgments are made manifest, we say, <i>Hallowed be thy
-name</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>However, when we put up this petition, with a particular
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_376'>376</span>view to God’s executing his threatened vengeance on his enemies,
-several cautions are to be used. As,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, We are to take heed that we do not do this out of hatred
-to the persons of any, for even they who are the monuments
-of divine justice, in whom God will be glorified as a sin-revenging
-judge, are the objects of our compassion, as they
-are miserable, how much soever that sin, which is the cause
-thereof, is to be hated and detested by us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, We must always pray, that God would rather convert
-than destroy his enemies, were it consistent with his purpose,
-which must be accomplished.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, We are never called to pray expressly for the damnation
-of any one, how great an enemy soever he may have been
-to God or us; but rather, on the other hand, that God would
-glorify his name in his salvation by Jesus Christ.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, If we pray that God would prevent those evils, which
-his church is exposed to, through the power or malice of its
-enemies, and, in order thereunto, that he would remove them
-out of the way, that they may not be able to hurt them; this
-is to be considered only as an expedient for their safety, so
-that if one of the two must suffer ruin, we rather desire that it
-may be his enemies than his people. We should be glad if
-God would be pleased to bring about the welfare of his church
-some other way; but if not, when we pray that his name herein
-may be hallowed, it is principally with submission to his
-will, and an humble acknowledgment that all his judgments
-are right. Thus concerning God’s sanctifying his own name,
-as the subject-matter of our prayer in this petition.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. When we pray, <i>Hallowed be thy name</i>, we signify our desire
-that we may be enabled to glorify God in every thing
-whereby he makes himself known: In which there is something
-supposed, namely, that all men are utterly unable and
-disinclined, of themselves, to honour God aright, or to improve
-the various displays of his glory, which we behold in
-his word and works: This arises from the sinfulness of our nature,
-our alienation from, and opposition to an holy God; so
-that without the assistance of his Spirit, we are not able to do
-any thing that is good; and therefore we pray that God would
-make us holy, by rendering the means of grace conducive
-thereunto, that we may give him the glory due to his name.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But the thing more especially prayed for, with respect to
-ourselves and others is, that we may be enabled to act suitably
-to the discoveries which God has made of his divine perfections;
-that we may adore his wisdom, power, and goodness
-in all he does, and worship him in all ordinances in an holy
-manner, or, as the Psalmist expresses it, <i>Worship the Lord
-in the beauty of holiness</i>, Psal. xxix. 2. We are also to desire
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_377'>377</span>that all his holy institutions may be made means of grace to
-us, that we may be sanctified by his truth, that beholding, as
-in a glass, the glory of the Lord, we may be transformed into
-his image, consisting of holiness and righteousness, that we
-may have an high esteem of every thing whereby he makes
-himself known, and glorify him in thought, word, and deed.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That we may never think or speak of the divine perfections,
-but with a becoming reverence, and suitable acts of faith,
-agreeably thereunto; that when he discovers himself as a God
-of infinite wisdom, we may not only admire the traces and
-footsteps thereof, as they are visible in all his works, but desire
-that we may thereby be made wise unto salvation. When we
-conceive of him as a God of infinite power, we are to desire
-that he would enable us to have recourse to him, to work all
-that grace in us which can be effected by none but him with
-whom all things are possible. And, when he discovers himself
-as a God of infinite goodness and mercy, that we may be
-encouraged to hope that we shall be made partakers thereof,
-by his communicating to us the blessings that accompany salvation.
-And when he reveals himself as a God of infinite holiness,
-that we may be conformed to him, in some measure, so
-as to be enabled to hate and fly from every thing which is contrary
-thereunto; and that all sin, which contains in it a reflection
-on the purity of his nature, as well as a contempt of his
-authority, may be abhorred and detested by us. And when he
-discovers himself as a God of infinite faithfulness, a God that
-keepeth covenant and mercy, to them that fear him, who has
-made many promises respecting their salvation, and will certainly
-accomplish them, that we may depend upon, and put
-our trust in him; that he would remember his good word unto
-us, upon which he hath caused us to hope. When he makes
-himself known as our Creator, he the Potter, and we the clay,
-that we may be well pleased with all the dispensations of his
-providence towards us, as considering that he has a right to
-do what he will with his own. And when he reveals himself
-as our Redeemer, we are to pray, that we may be able to conclude,
-that we are bought with that invaluable price, which
-Christ gave for his elect: And if we have a comfortable hope
-concerning our interest therein, that we may walk as becomes
-those who are hereby laid under the highest obligations to love
-him, and live to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. That we may worship him in a right manner, in all his
-ordinances: Accordingly, when he encourages us to attend to
-what he imparts therein, as in hearing, or reading the word,
-we pray, that we may be enabled to receive the truth in the
-love thereof, and improve it as that which is not <i>the word of
-men, but of God, which effectually worketh in them that believe</i>,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_378'>378</span>1 Thess. ii. 13. that we may esteem it as the only infallible
-rule of faith and duty; that we may be enabled to <i>hide it in
-our hearts, that we may not sin against him</i>, Psal. cxix. 11.
-And when we should draw nigh to him in prayer, in which he
-requires, that we should sanctify his name as a God all-sufficient,
-on whom we depend for the supply of our wants; or
-when we bless and praise him for what we have received, that
-the frame of our spirits may be suited to the spirituality and
-importance of the duty we are engaged in, that we may not be
-like those whom our Saviour speaks of, who <i>draw nigh to him
-with their mouths, and honour him with their lips, while their
-heart is far from him</i>, Matt. xv. 8.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. As God makes himself known to us by his works, we are
-to beg of him, that in the work of creation, we may see and admire
-his eternal power and Godhead, and in his works of common
-providence, as upholding and governing all things, we
-may take occasion to adore the manifold wisdom of God, his
-almighty power, and the inexhaustible treasure of his goodness
-which appears therein: But more especially when he discovers
-himself in the gracious dispensations of his providence, in those
-things which have an immediate reference to our salvation, we
-are to beg of him, not only that he would enable us to look on
-them with admiration; but, particularly, to express our love
-and thankfulness to Christ our great Mediator and Advocate, as
-those who humbly trust and hope that we have an interest in
-him by faith. Thus concerning our requesting these things
-for ourselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We might here observe something concerning our doing it
-for others, for whom we are to pray, that they may have the
-highest esteem for God in all those respects and consequently
-that his name may be known throughout the whole world, not
-barely as the God of nature, but as he has revealed himself in
-his word; and therefore we are to pray, that the way of salvation,
-by Christ, may be known, and his name adored and magnified
-as a Redeemer and Saviour in those parts of the world,
-which are, at present, destitute of gospel-light; and that,
-where the word is preached, it may be received with faith and
-love, that they who are called Christians may walk more becoming
-that relation which they stand in to the blessed Jesus.
-Thus concerning the subject-matter of our requests in this petition,
-respecting God’s enabling us and others, to glorify him in
-every thing by which he makes himself known.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There are two things inferred from hence in the close of this
-answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) That when we pray, that God would sanctify his name,
-it is, in effect, to desire that he would prevent and remove every
-thing which is dishonourable to it. Some things tend to cast
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_379'>379</span>so great a reproach on the name of God, that sinners are hereby
-hardened in their opposition to him; as David, by his sin, is
-said to have <i>given great occasion to the enemies of the Lord to
-blaspheme</i>, 2 Sam. xii. 14. And God is highly dishonoured by
-those open and scandalous sins which are committed by such
-as make a profession of religion; whereby it appears that they
-are strangers to the power thereof, and lay a stumbling-block
-in the way of those who are too ready to take an estimate of the
-ways of God, from the conversation of them, who in words
-profess, but in works deny him. Some deny the very being,
-perfections and providence of God, or being ignorant of him,
-worship they know not what; and there are others who treat
-things sacred with profaneness and scurrility; and, instead of
-sanctifying the name of God, openly blaspheme and cast a contempt
-on all his sacred institutions. Therefore,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] We are to pray, that God would prevent and remove
-atheism. When persons not only act as though there were no
-God, but, with blasphemy, and daring insolence, express this
-in words: These are generally hardened in their iniquities,
-and bid defiance to his justice; as though they were, as it
-is said of the Leviathan, <i>made without fear</i>, Job xii. 33. and
-were not apprehensive of any ill consequences that will ensue
-hereupon. These are not to be convinced by arguments,
-though there is nothing that occurs in the works of creation
-and providence, but what might confute and put them to silence,
-did they duly attend to it: Therefore we are to pray,
-that God would assert his divine being and perfections, and
-give them some convincing proof thereof, by impressing the
-dread and terror of his wrath upon their consciences, that hereby
-they may learn not to blaspheme; or that he would give
-them that internal light, by which they may be brought to
-adore and sanctify his name. And whereas there are multitudes
-of practical atheists, who behave themselves as though
-there were no God to observe what they do, or punish them
-for it, therefore they presumptuously conclude, that they may
-rebel without being called to an account; we are to pray, that
-God, by his grace, would prevent and fence against prevailing
-impiety, by working a thorough reformation in the hearts of
-men, to the end that practical godliness may be promoted, and
-thereby he may be glorified.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] We are to pray, that God would prevent and remove
-that ignorance which is inconsistent with persons sanctifying
-his name. This respects, more especially the not knowing or
-enquiring into those great doctrines, which are of the highest
-importance, and more directly tend to the advancing the glory
-of God, and the obtaining eternal life. In these who are destitute
-of divine revelation, this ignorance is invincible; therefore,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_380'>380</span>with respect to such, we are to pray, that God would
-grant to them the means of grace, by sending his gospel among
-them; that they who sit in darkness, and in the region and shadow
-of death, may have a glorious light shining about them,
-whereby they may be made acquainted with the way of salvation
-by Jesus Christ: But there are others who sit under the
-sound of the gospel, and yet remain strangers to the great doctrines
-thereof, who have no love to the truth, and act as though
-it did not belong to them, to study the scriptures; these are
-wilfully ignorant, like those who are said to <i>hate knowledge,
-and not to choose the fear of the Lord</i>, Prov. i. 29. We are to
-pray, with regard to such, that in order to their sanctifying the
-name of God, they may be led into the knowledge of those
-great doctrines, in which the glory of the Father, Son, and
-Holy Ghost, is set forth, as it is in the work of redemption by
-Christ, together with the way in which righteousness and life
-may be attained; and that they may know what are those graces
-which are inseparably connected with, and necessary to salvation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] We are to pray, that God would prevent or remove
-idolatry; and that either such as is more gross and practised
-by the Heathen and others, who give that worship to creatures,
-that is due to God alone; or else, that idolatry which may be
-observed in the hearts and lives of many, who though they
-abhor the grosser acts thereof, are, nevertheless, guilty of this
-sin, in that they love the creature more than God. This is
-what we all are either chargeable with, or in danger of, which
-is directly contrary to our sanctifying the name of God:
-Therefore we are to pray, with respect to the former, that he
-would convince them what they falsely call worship, is a dishonour
-to, and abhorred by him; and, with respect to the
-latter, that he deserves our supreme love, and will not admit
-of any thing to stand in competition with him; and that he
-would enable us to love him with all our heart, soul, mind,
-and strength: And, in order hereunto, that he would deliver
-us from the iniquity of covetousness, or those inordinate affections,
-whereby we are inclined immoderately to pursue
-after the world, which is inconsistent with an heavenly conversation;
-and that we may be kept from self-seeking, or trusting
-to our own righteousness for justification, or giving that
-glory to any other which is due to God alone.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[4.] We are also to pray for the preventing and removal of
-that profaneness which is contrary to the sanctifying the name
-of God; that persons may not give themselves that liberty,
-which many do, to treat things sacred in a common way, or
-make religion the subject of wit and drollery; which is very
-disgustful to the ears of those who have an awe of God on
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_381'>381</span>their spirits, and altogether unbecoming persons professing
-godliness. We are also to beg, that God would deliver us
-from engaging in religious duties in a formal way, as though
-his name were to be sanctified only by an external shew or
-appearance of religion, without that internal frame or disposition
-of heart which is required in all those who draw nigh
-to him in an holy manner; and also that we may be kept from
-making any innovation in the worship of God, and thereby
-profane it, while we pretend to add to the beauty thereof, and
-its acceptableness in his sight; which is so far from hallowing
-his name, that it is highly provoking to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) Another thing inferred from the account we have had
-of those methods by which the name of God is said to be
-sanctified, is, that we are to beg of him, that, by his overruling
-providence, he would direct and dispose of all things
-to his own glory. This is his immediate work; without which
-his name would not be sanctified by his creatures. And it
-consists in his bringing a revenue of glory to himself, out of
-those things that seem to be subversive of it. It is one of the
-glories of providence, that hereby God brings good out of
-evil, and renders some things subservient to his interest, which,
-in themselves, have a tendency to overthrow it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This may be observed in several things consequent upon the
-sins and persecutions of the church. Thus when Israel revolted
-from God, by making the golden calf in the wilderness,
-he first humbled them greatly for it, and then spirited them
-with zeal to execute judgment on those who did not repent of
-it; and afterwards, when, at Moses’s intreaty, he forgave this
-sin, he filled them with a zeal for the establishing his worship
-equal to that which had been expressed before in profaning
-his name; so that, as they then parted with their golden ear-rings,
-to make the idol which they worshipped, Exod. xxxii.
-2, 3. now they make a very large contribution for the building
-of the tabernacle, chap. xxxv. 21-29. and xxxvi. 5, 6. And
-when, by their abominable idolatry, they had provoked God
-to give them into the hands of those that carried them captive
-into Babylon: This was so far over-ruled by his providence,
-as that they were never guilty of idolatry afterwards,
-whatever temptations they had to it therein; so that when
-they were returned from captivity, how much soever they
-were chargeable with want of zeal for the building the temple,
-and setting up public worship in it, Hag. i. 9. or, for many
-other crimes, in that the priests sought their secular interest
-rather than the glory of God, in performing several branches
-of their office in a profane manner, and thereby rendering the
-public worship contemptible, and offering the <i>refuse of the
-flock</i> in sacrifice to God, for which they were reproved by him,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_382'>382</span>Mal. i. 10. <i>&amp; seq.</i> yet we never find them reproved for idolatry
-after their captivity. This some think to be the meaning
-of that vision which the prophet Zechariah had of the woman
-who was called <i>wickedness, sitting the midst of Ephah</i>; and
-this being <i>born</i> by <i>two women</i> that <i>had wings like the wings of
-a stork</i> into <i>the land of Shinar</i>, viz. Chaldea, to build an house
-for it, Zech. v. 7,-11. so that it might there be <i>established,
-and set upon her own base</i>, intimating that the idolatry of the
-Heathen should not spread itself among the Israelites as it had
-done, but be confined to those parts of the world which had
-set it up before; and therefore this is considered as what was
-the proper seat thereof, and not the church. And this seems
-also to be foretold by the prophet Hosea, when he says, that
-<i>the children of Israel</i>, after they had <i>been many days without a
-king, without a priest, and without a sacrifice</i>; adds, that <i>they
-should be without an image</i>, Hos. iii. 4. The former was an
-affliction, and denotes, that they should have their civil and religious
-state broken and discontinued; the latter seems to intimate,
-that providence would so far over-rule this, that they
-should be disinclined and averse to idolatry, as they are at this
-day, though, in other respects, altogether alienated from God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And all the persecutions which the church has met with
-from its enemies, with a design to bring about its ruin and destruction,
-have been over-ruled for the furtherance of the gospel.
-Thus when Saul, before his conversion, <i>made havock of
-the church, entering into every house, and haling men and women,
-committed them to prison</i>; so that <i>a great persecution</i> was
-raised against it by his instigation; and the people of God
-could not meet safely at Jerusalem, but were <i>scattered abroad
-throughout the regions of Judea and Samaria</i>, Acts viii. 1,-5.
-this was ordered, by the providence of God, for the greater
-spread of the gospel, so that the Samaritans received the word
-of God. And in following ages, we may observe, that whatever
-attempts have been made against the interest of Christ in
-the world, they have, contrary to the design of his enemies,
-been made subservient to the promoting its greater advancement,
-as some have observed, that the blood of the martyrs
-has been the seed of the church; and herein the Psalmist’s prediction
-has been fulfilled, <i>Surely the wrath of man shall praise
-thee</i>, and <i>the remainder of wrath shalt thou restrain</i>, Psal.
-lxxvi. 10. and oftentimes, when the gospel has, like the sea, lost
-ground in one part of the world, it has gained it in another.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, we may observe, that God glorifies his holiness
-by over-ruling the falls and miscarriages of particular believers,
-as hereby they are made more humble, watchful, and circumspect
-for the future; and, when restored from their backslidings,
-put upon admiring his grace, and excited to thankfulness,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_383'>383</span>which the nature of the thing requires. They also take occasion
-from hence, to warn others, lest they be entangled in the
-same snare, out of which they have escaped; or, if fallen, to
-recommend to them those methods of divine grace where they
-have been recovered. This improvement the Psalmist made
-of the dealings of God with him, when he speaks of his being
-<i>brought out of an horrible pit, out of the miry clay; his feet set
-upon a rock, and his goings established</i>; he adds, <i>many shall
-see it and fear, and shall trust in the Lord</i>, Psal. xl. 2, 3. And
-when God’s people have been greatly dejected under the troubles
-they have met with; he has over-ruled this for the restoring
-comforts to them, and then enabling them to comfort others,
-in like afflictions, which, as the apostle expresses it, <i>redounds
-to their consolation and salvation</i>, 2 Cor. i. 6. Thus concerning
-the first petition of the Lord’s prayer, as it is explained in the
-answer before us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We shall now consider how it may be reduced into practice,
-that we may be directed in our addressing ourselves to God
-in those things that concern the glory of his name. Accordingly,
-it is as though we should say, “We adore thee, O our
-God, that thou hast been pleased to make such discoveries
-of thyself to thy people, as thou hast done in all ages; and
-in particular, we give thanks at the remembrance of thine
-holiness: Thou mightest, indeed, have glorified thy name in
-the everlasting destruction of the whole race of fallen man;
-but thou hast sanctified thy name, and advanced thy perfections
-in bringing about the work of our redemption by a
-Mediator, in which justice and mercy are met together,
-righteousness and peace have embraced each other; and
-thou hast hereby a greater revenue of glory redounding to
-thy name, than by all thine other works, or than could have
-been brought to thee by the united services of the most excellent
-creatures. We also bless thee that thou hast been
-pleased to make those bright discoveries of thyself in thy
-word, which thou hast magnified above all thy name; that
-thou hast given us thy gospel, and all the ordinances and
-means of grace, that hereby thou mayest gather to thyself a
-people out of the world, who might be holy in all conversation,
-as thou who hast called them art holy. We confess,
-that we have not sanctified thy name as we ought, nor attended
-on thine ordinances with that reverence and holy fear
-that is due to thy divine Majesty, for which thou hast testified
-thy displeasure against us, in withdrawing thy presence
-from thine own institutions. We acknowledge that herein
-thou art righteous, and hast punished us less than our iniquities
-have deserved; for thou mightest have removed thy
-candlestick out of its place, or taken thine ordinances from
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_384'>384</span>us, as thou hast done from many, who once worshipped thee,
-as we do at this day, but are now wholly estranged from thee.
-Revive thy work, O Lord, we beseech thee, and hereby sanctify
-thy great name: Let thy word have free course, and be
-glorified: Set up thy standard against every thing that opposes
-thine interest in the world; send forth thy light and
-thy truth, whereby the ignorant may be instructed in the
-way of salvation by Christ. Give a check to that atheism,
-profaneness, and irreligion that abounds among a professing
-people; and let all the dispensations of thy providence have
-a tendency to bring about the work of reformation, that thereby
-thou mayest be glorified, and thy people enabled, more
-and more, to sanctify thee in every thing, whereby thou makest
-thyself known.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CXCI.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXCI.</span> <i>What do we pray for in the second petition?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> In the second petition, [which is, <i>Thy kingdom come</i>,]
-acknowledging ourselves, and all mankind to be, by nature,
-under the dominion of sin and Satan; we pray that the kingdom
-of sin and Satan may be destroyed, the gospel propagated
-throughout the world, the Jews called, the fulness of
-the Gentiles brought in, the church furnished with all gospel
-officers and ordinances, purged from corruption, countenanced
-and maintained by the civil magistrate, that the ordinances
-of Christ may be purely dispensed and made effectual
-to the converting of those that are yet in their sins, and
-the confirming, comforting, and building up of those that are
-already converted; that Christ would rule in our hearts here,
-and hasten the time of his second coming, and our reigning
-with him for ever; and that he would be pleased so to exercise
-the kingdom of his power in all the world, as may
-best conduce to these ends.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>In this petition there are,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. Some things supposed, relating to the sovereignty and
-dominion of God over men, and the position that it meets with,
-which, how great soever it be, shall not hinder its advancement
-in the world.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. There are several things which we are directed to pray
-for, relating thereunto.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. As to those things that are supposed, we may consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That God is a great and glorious King. This is the necessary
-result of his being the Creator of all things; from
-whence arises an universal propriety in them, and a right to
-dispose of them at his pleasure, in the methods of his providence,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_385'>385</span>so that he can no more lose his right to govern the
-world, than he can cease to be God. It may be farther observed,
-that the subjects governed are intelligent creatures; for,
-though all other things are upheld by him, and made use of to
-fulfil his pleasure; yet they cannot be said to be under a law,
-or the subjects of moral government. Therefore God is more
-especially related to angels and men as their King; and as to
-that branch of his government, which is exercised in this lower
-world, it principally respects men. Now when God is said to
-be their King, the exercise of his dominion is variously considered,
-according to the different circumstances in which they
-are.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) As men, they are the subjects of his providential kingdom;
-in which respect they are not only the objects of his care
-and common goodness, which extends itself, as the Psalmist
-says, to <i>all his works</i>, Psal. cxlv. 9. or, as he <i>gives to all, life
-and breath, and all things</i>, Acts xvii. 25. But, whatever he
-does in the world, is, some way or other, designed for their
-use or advantage, either as subservient to their happiness, or as
-objects, in which they behold the glory of his divine perfections
-that shines forth therein; and, in this respect, as the God
-of nature, he is King over the whole world, whose glory infinitely
-surpasses that of the greatest monarch on earth. When
-men are said to have dominion, they derive it from his will and
-providence: It is also limited; whereas his is universal. And
-they are accountable to him for the administration of that authority,
-which he commits to them: But he giveth no account
-of his matters to any one; inasmuch as there is none superior
-to him. Moreover, there are many flaws and imperfections
-in the government of the best kings on earth; because their
-wisdom, holiness, power, and justice are imperfect; and sometimes
-the most desirable ends are not attained thereby: But, on
-the other hand, the divine government is such as tends to set
-forth God’s glorious perfections, and answer the highest ends,
-to wit, the advancement of his own name, in promoting the
-welfare of his creatures. We may also observe, that the
-greatest potentates on earth, are not only mortal, but their
-government is often subject to change, and liable to be resisted
-and controuled, by other kings like themselves: Whereas God
-has none equal with him; therefore his government cannot be
-controuled; and being all-sufficient, he cannot be destitute of
-what is necessary to fulfil his purpose, or advance his glory.
-Again, none but God has a right to give laws to the consciences
-of men; and, indeed, no government is properly spiritual,
-and such as reaches the heart like his; nor does the honour
-that is due to any other, contain in it, the least right to divine
-worship or adoration which belongs only to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_386'>386</span>(2.) As God has a peculiar people in the world, who are the
-objects of his grace, these are the subjects of Christ’s mediatorial
-kingdom, in which respect he is styled King of saints.
-This is not only a divine honour which we ascribe to him; but
-it belongs to him in particular as our Redeemer: and so it is
-to be understood whenever he is called a King in scripture, as
-denoting that kingdom which he has received from his Father;
-whereas his right to govern the world, which is styled his providential
-kingdom, necessarily belongs to him as God, and is
-no more conferred upon him by the will of his Father, than
-his divine nature or personality: We do not therefore pray in
-this petition, that he would govern the world; for we may all
-well address ourselves to him, that he would be an infinite
-Sovereign, and act agreeably to his divine nature, which he cannot
-but be and do. But the kingdom which is here intended,
-which we have a more immediate regard to, as the subject-matter
-of this petition, is, that which belongs to him as Mediator,
-which he received from the Father; who is said, in this
-respect, to have <i>set him</i> as <i>his King upon his holy hill of Zion</i>,
-Psal. ii. 6. concerning whom it was foretold, that <i>the government</i>
-should <i>be upon his shoulder</i>, Isa. ix. 6. This is therefore
-not only an honour, but an office which he is invested with,
-having received a commission from the Father, to execute it;
-and whenever he is said to do any thing in the methods of his
-providence, which have an immediate reference to the salvation
-of his people, it contains in it the exercise of his dominion, or
-is a branch of the glory of his Mediatorial kingdom; and this
-is what we have a peculiar regard to, when we desire that his
-kingdom may come. In this respect we pray, that all the dispensations
-of his providence may tend to the application of
-that redemption which is purchased for his people; and in
-particular, that he would subdue them to himself, take possession
-of their hearts, govern them by his laws, defend them by
-his power, restrain and conquer all their enemies, and, at last,
-admit them to inherit the kingdom prepared for them from the
-foundation of the world.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>In the New Testament Christ’s kingdom is generally taken
-for the gospel-dispensation; in which he is represented as sitting
-on a throne of grace, and sinners are invited to come and
-bow down before him, and receive the blessings that he encourages
-them to expect, as their merciful Sovereign. This
-kingdom of grace shall not cease to be administered by him,
-till all his redeemed ones are made willing, in the day of his
-power, and, pursuant thereunto, brought into a better world;
-and then it will receive another denomination, as called, the
-kingdom of heaven. It is true, the gospel-dispensation is often
-so called in the New Testament, as it respects the administration
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_387'>387</span>of his gracious government begun and carried on in
-this world; whereas, in heaven, it will be administered in a
-most glorious manner, agreeably to that state of perfection to
-which his saints shall be brought; But these things having
-been particularly insisted on under a foregoing answer, in
-which Christ’s Kingly office was explained<a id='r115' /><a href='#f115' class='c012'><sup>[115]</sup></a>; we shall pass
-them over at present, and proceed to consider another thing
-supposed in this petition, <i>viz.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. That though God be the only supreme and lawful Sovereign,
-yet there are some who pretend to stand in competition
-with, and usurp that dominion which belongs only to him.
-Accordingly man no sooner rebelled against him, but he was
-under the dominion of sin, and was inclined to serve divers
-lusts and pleasures, and willingly gave himself over as a vassal
-of Satan, who, from that time, was styled <i>the prince</i>, or god <i>of
-this world, the spirit that worketh in the children of disobedience</i>,
-John xii. 31. 2 Cor. iv. 4. Eph. ii. 2. We must not
-suppose that he has the least right to this kingdom, or dominion,
-in which he sets himself against the divine government;
-yet sinners who rebel against God, are said to be Satan’s subjects.
-Where the gospel is not preached, he reigns without
-controul; and false churches, that oppose the faith contained
-therein, are called, <i>Synagogues of Satan</i>, Rev. ii. 9. and, indeed,
-in all those places, where Christ’s kingdom of grace doth
-not extend itself, there persons are said to be subjects of Satan’s
-kingdom; which is opposed to it. These two kingdoms
-divide the world; therefore, when we pray, that Christ’s kingdom
-may be advanced, this includes in it an earnest desire,
-that whatsoever has a tendency to oppose it, may be ruined
-and destroyed. And this leads us to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. What we are to pray for in this petition. Here let it be
-observed, that we are not to pray, that God would govern the
-world, or exercise his providential kingdom, for that he cannot
-but do; neither are we to pray that Christ’s kingdom may
-come, in the same sense in which the church prayed for it, before
-the gospel-dispensation, which is called his kingdom, was
-erected; since that would be, in effect, to deny that there is
-such a kingdom; or, that our Saviour has a church, in which
-he exercises his government in the world: Nevertheless, we
-are to pray, that God would eminently display his perfections
-for the good of his people, in his providential government of
-the world, and over-rule all the dispensations thereof, for the
-advancement of his own name, and the happiness of his church
-and people; and though (as we have but now observed) we
-are not to pray that the gospel-dispensation may be erected;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_388'>388</span>yet we are to pray that Christ’s spiritual kingdom may be farther
-extended, subjects daily brought into it, and the blessed
-fruits and effects thereof, which tend to promote his own glory,
-and his people’s happiness may be abundantly experienced
-by them: But, that we may more particularly explain the several
-things contained in this answer, which respect the subject-matter
-of our prayers, when we say, <i>Thy kingdom come</i>,
-we express our desire,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That the kingdom of sin and Satan may be destroyed:
-This Christ will certainly do in his own time, inasmuch as it
-is directly opposite to his kingdom. The Devil’s chief design
-is to draw Christ’s subjects off from their allegiance to him:
-Therefore he will certainly plead his own cause, that his enemies
-may not take occasion to insult him, as though they had
-gained a victory over the Almighty. Moreover, his holiness
-and justice obliges him to do this; for since Satan’s kingdom
-is supported by sin’s gaining strength, and this tends to cast a
-reproach on the divine perfections; it must be destroyed.
-And to this we may add, that every one who is converted, is,
-(as the apostle says) <i>delivered from the power of darkness, and
-delivered into the kingdom of God’s dear Son</i>, Col. i. 13. Therefore
-we pray, that Christ’s interest may flourish in the world,
-which includes in it a desire, that whatsoever is contrary to it,
-may be thrown down.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>There are various steps and degrees whereby Satan’s kingdom
-has been, and shall be weakened, till it shall be, at last,
-wholly destroyed.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) It met with a great shock when the first gospel promise
-was given to Adam in paradise, relating to the <i>seed of the woman
-bruising the serpent’s head</i>, Gen. iii. 15. or Christ’s
-coming to defeat this deep-laid design against the interest of
-God in the world, by giving him a total defeat to him that was
-at the head thereof. Till this promise was given, there could
-not be the least hope of salvation for fallen man; whose condition
-was not only deplorable, but desperate, and, in all appearance,
-remediless; but by this first display of divine grace,
-a door of hope was opened, and Satan’s kingdom began to be
-broken and demolished.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) It met with a farther shock, when men began to lay
-hold of, and take encouragement from this promise, and public
-worship was set up in the world; and the coming of the
-Messiah, who was expected to appear in our nature, and in the
-fulness of time, to destroy the works of the Devil, was farther
-made known to the church, and clearer intimations given of
-the glory of his Person, and the offices he was to execute, by
-which means he was regarded as the object of their faith, who
-waited for, and earnestly desired the gospel-day, when all the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_389'>389</span>types and prophesies relating thereunto, should have their accomplishment.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) Satan’s kingdom met with a very great defeat, when
-Christ, who was the desire of all nations, took our nature,
-and dwelt among us, and, in the whole course of his ministry,
-discovered the way of salvation to his people, more clearly than
-it had been in former ages, and finished the work of redemption
-in his death, whereby he paid an infinite price for his elect, to
-divine justice; and at the same time, <i>destroyed him that had the
-power of death, that is the Devil</i>, Heb. ii. 14. or, as it is expressed
-elsewhere, <i>spoiled principalities, and powers, openly triumphing
-over them in his cross</i>, Col. ii. 17. And when he
-was raised from the dead, whereby the work that he came
-about was brought to perfection, Satan’s kingdom was so effectually
-destroyed, that he shall not be able to maintain that dominion
-which he had over them, who before were his vassals,
-but are now become Christ’s subjects by right of redemption.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) The success of the gospel, in the various ages since our
-Saviour was here on earth; his gathering and building up his
-church, defeating all the attempts of his enemies, who have
-threatened its ruin; so that the gates of hell have not been
-able to prevail against it; and its having been favoured with
-his special presence, and the means of grace bestowed upon,
-and continued to it, together with the various instances of that
-success that has attended them, have all had a tendency to
-weaken and destroy Satan’s kingdom.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(5.) All the victories that believers are enabled to obtain
-over sin, and Satan’s temptations; and all the graces that they
-have exercised, and comforts that they have experienced, are
-a gradual weakening of Satan’s kingdom, though the victory
-over him, at present, be not complete, inasmuch as he has too
-great an interest in the hearts of God’s people, through the remainders
-of corruption; yet they shall, at last, be made more
-than conquerors over him; and the fruits and consequences of
-the victory that Christ has obtained over him, shall be perfectly
-applied.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. In desiring that Christ’s kingdom may come, we pray
-that the gospel may be propagated throughout the world, the
-Jews called, and the fulness of the Gentiles brought in. When
-the gospel-dispensation, which is Christ’s kingdom was first
-erected; the apostles, who were employed in this important
-work, were to fulfil that commission which he gave them, in
-preaching the gospel to all nations, which accordingly they
-did, and, by the extraordinary hand of God that attended it, it
-was spread, in a short space of time through a considerable
-part of the world; many of the Jews were called, among
-whom all that were ordained to eternal life, believed; and as
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_390'>390</span>for the Gentiles, who, before this, were unacquainted with the
-way of salvation, they had Christ preached to them, and many
-churches were gathered from among them; by which means his
-kingdom was advanced, and a foundation laid, for the propagation
-and flourishing state of the gospel in all succeeding ages,
-the effects whereof are experienced at this day. Therefore,
-when this petition relating to the coming of Christ’s kingdom,
-was used by those who lived at this time, when our Saviour
-gave this direction about it; that which was principally intended
-thereby, was, that Christ might be preached to the Gentiles,
-and believed on in the world; that the veil, or the face
-of the covering that was spread over all nations, might be taken
-away, and the way of salvation might be known by them, who,
-before this, sat in the region and shadow of death: Though,
-when it is used by us, we signify our desire that this invaluable
-blessing may be still continued, and the promises relating to
-the greater success thereof, may have a more full accomplishment.
-The apostles, indeed, in executing their commission,
-are said to have preached the gospel to all nations, that is, to
-a very considerable part of the heathen world: However, it
-does not appear that every individual nation of the world has
-been yet favoured with this privilege; and therefore, what was
-foretold concerning the <i>earth’s being full of the knowledge of
-the Lord, as the waters cover the sea</i>, Isa. xi. 9. and other predictions
-to the like purpose, do not seem hitherto to have had
-their full accomplishment<a id='r116' /><a href='#f116' class='c012'><sup>[116]</sup></a>. And it is very evident, that many
-nations, who once had the gospel preached to them by the
-apostles, are now wholly destitute of it. And though it is
-true, a considerable number of the Jews at first, believed in
-Christ; yet the greatest part of that nation were cast off, and
-all remain, at this day, strangers and enemies to him: Therefore
-we cannot but suppose, that those prophecies which respect
-their conversion, in the latter day, together with the fulness
-of the Gentiles being brought in, shall be more eminently accomplished
-than they have hitherto been<a id='r117' /><a href='#f117' class='c012'><sup>[117]</sup></a>. This is therefore
-what we are to pray for when we say, <i>Thy kingdom come</i>; and,
-in order thereto, we are to be importunate with God,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) That his interest may be still maintained, and the glory
-may not depart from his church; but that it may still enjoy the
-ordinances of his grace, and those privileges by which it is distinguished
-from the world, notwithstanding all the attempts of
-hell, and persecuting powers to undermine and overthrow it.
-And, though it be brought to a very low ebb at this day, that
-he would revive his work in the midst of the years, till he be
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_391'>391</span>pleased to cause that glorious day to dawn, which his people
-are now desiring, waiting and hoping for; and in order hereunto,
-we are to pray,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) That there may be a more plentiful effusion of the Spirit,
-which is absolutely necessary to the advancement of Christ’s
-kingdom; a farther reformation of the church, and a greater
-spread of the gospel in those nations where it is not known at
-present.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) We are to pray, that the church may be furnished with
-all gospel-officers and ordinances that are necessary hereunto.
-Not that we are to pray, that new ordinances may be instituted,
-which, at present, are not known, which we have no warrant
-from scripture to expect; but that God, by the good hand
-of his providence, would send his ordinances, namely, the
-word, sacraments and prayer, which are his outward and ordinary
-means of salvation, into those parts of the world, which
-are, at present, strangers to them. Accordingly we are to
-pray,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] That whereever God has a people who thirst after the
-word, but enjoy not the preaching thereof, especially with that
-zeal and clearness as is necessary to their spiritual advantage
-and edification in Christ, that he would send faithful labourers
-among them, that their souls may not pine, starve, and be in
-danger of perishing, for lack of knowledge.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] That where the word of God has been preached with
-success, so that many believe in Christ, who, nevertheless, have
-not the advantage of walking together, for their mutual edification,
-in a church-relation, that God would over-rule and order
-matters so, that they who have given up themselves to the
-Lord, may encourage and strengthen the hands of one another,
-by joining together in religious societies, owning Christ’s
-kingly government, and worshipping him in all those ordinances
-which he has given to his churches. And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] That there may be proper officers, spirited, qualified,
-and raised up, in subserviency thereunto; that there may be
-a constant supply of <i>pastors according to his heart, which shall
-feed with knowledge and understanding</i>, Jer. iii. 15. These
-are necessary to the well-being of a church; and though extraordinary
-gifts are not to be expected, in like manner as God
-was pleased to bestow them on his apostles in the first planting
-of the gospel; yet there are some gifts which Christ has purchased,
-and we are to pray for, that are particularly adapted to
-the furnishing them, who are called to minister as officers in
-his churches, for the promoting his cause and interest therein,
-and thereby advancing his spiritual kingdom.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) We are to pray, that the church may be purged from
-those corruptions that tend to defile, and are a great reproach
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_392'>392</span>to it, and very unbecoming the relation that it stands in to
-Christ. It is not, indeed, to be supposed, that any church in
-the world, is so pure that there are no corruptions in it, which
-appear to the eye of the heart-searching God: But some are
-visible to the world, being notorious and inconsistent, not only
-with the purity, but, if allowed of, with the very being of a
-church of Christ; which are matter of lamentation to the
-godly, and a reproach to those who are chargeable therewith;
-and, as the apostle styles them, <i>a root of bitterness springing
-up and troubling</i> them, whereby many are <i>defiled</i>, Heb. xii. 15.
-These corruptions are either such as respect the faith, or conversation
-of professors.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] As to what respects corruption in matters of faith.
-These consist in the denying the most important doctrines,
-which are necessary to be known and believed, in order to our
-salvation; and with respect hereunto, we are to pray, that
-Christians may not depart from the faith, which was once delivered
-to the saints, being <i>carried about with divers and
-strange doctrines</i>, chap. xiii. 9. or, as it is said elsewhere, <i>soon
-removed from him that called them into the grace of Christ unto
-another gospel</i>, Gal. i. 6. We are also to pray, that he would
-root out those errors and heresies which are inconsistent with
-the church’s purity; and have a greater tendency to bring about
-its ruin than all the persecutions it can meet with from its
-most enraged enemies.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] There are other corruptions that more especially respect
-the conversation of those who are called Christians, that walk
-not as becomes the gospel of Christ, by which means there is
-no visible difference between the church and the world: Thus
-the apostle tells the church at Corinth, 1 Cor. iii. 3. that some
-of them were <i>carnal and walked as men</i>; that is, notwithstanding
-the profession of religion that they made, in their conversation
-they differed little from the men of the world: And he
-also speaks of others who <i>profess that they know God, but in
-works deny him, being abominable, disobedient, and unto every
-good work reprobate</i>, Tit. i. 16. Now, with respect to these,
-we are to pray, that their profession may be adorned by a holy
-life; that none may cast a stumbling-block in the way of these
-who watch for their haltings, and are glad to take all opportunities
-to improve the falls and miscarriages of Christians against
-them; and that God, by his providence, or rather, by his Spirit,
-poured out from on high, would refine and purify his
-church, <i>purge away the dross, and take away all the tin</i>, as the
-prophet expresses it, Isa. i. 25.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(5.) We are farther to pray, that the ordinances of Christ
-may be purely administered, without any mixture of human
-inventions, which tend to debase, and are far from adding any
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_393'>393</span>beauty or glory to them. It is natural, indeed, for man to be
-fond of, and pleased with, those ordinances, which take their
-rise from himself; but God, who is jealous for the purity of
-his own worship, can in no wise approve of them, and they are
-so far from advancing Christ’s kingdom, that God reckons it
-no other than <i>setting our threshold by his thresholds</i>, and <i>our
-post by his</i>, which he calls <i>a defiling his holy name, by the
-abominations which they</i> herein <i>commit</i>, which will be the
-ground and reason of his <i>consuming them in his anger</i>, Ezek.
-xliii. 8. Therefore, we are to pray, that whatever intrudes itself
-into any branch of the worship of God, as not receiving
-any warrant or sanction from himself, may be removed out of
-the way, that hereby his church may be reformed, and its destruction
-prevented.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(6.) We are to pray, that the church may be encouraged by
-civil magistrates, that their government may be subservient to
-Christ’s spiritual kingdom; that, according to God’s promise,
-<i>kings may be</i> its <i>nursing fathers, and their queens</i> its <i>nursing
-mothers</i>, Isa. xlix. 23. that, by this means, it may have peace
-and safety, and not be exposed, as it has often been, to the
-rage and fury of persecuting powers; and also, that magistrates
-may be guardians, not only of the civil, but religious
-liberties of their subjects, which is necessary to complete the
-happiness of a nation, and bring down many blessings from
-God upon it. We are also to pray, that God would not only
-incline them to advance religion, by rendering the administration
-of civil government, subservient thereunto, but that, by a
-steady adherence to it themselves, they may strengthen the
-hands of the faithful, and encourage many others to embrace
-it: And if, on the other hand, they are disposed to exercise
-their power, in such a way, as tends to the discountenancing
-religion, and weakening the hands of those who profess it; we
-are to pray, that God would over-rule their counsels, and incline
-them to deal favourably with those who desire stedfastly to
-adhere to it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(7.) We are taught, in this petition, to pray, that the means
-of grace may be made effectual to the converting of sinners,
-and to the confirming, comforting, and building up of believers;
-that a great and effectual door may be opened for the
-success of the gospel, and that it may <i>come not in word only,
-but also in power</i>, 1 Thess. i. 3. so that, by this means, the
-Lord would be pleased to add to the church daily, such as
-shall be saved, that hereby Christ’s government, or spiritual
-kingdom, may be promoted in the hearts of his people, and
-they enabled to testify a ready and willing subjection to his
-authority, and yield obedience to him, with all the powers and
-faculties of their souls.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_394'>394</span>(8.) We are to pray for the advancement of Christ’s kingdom,
-at his second and glorious coming; when the work of
-grace shall be brought to its utmost perfection; and all the
-elect, who shall have lived from the beginning to the end of
-time, shall be gathered together, and brought into Christ’s
-kingdom of glory, as they have formerly been into his kingdom
-of grace, when the highest honours shall be conferred upon
-them, and they shall reign with him for ever and ever. As
-the church, under the Old Testament-dispensation, prayed
-that Christ’s kingdom of grace might come, <i>viz.</i> be administered,
-as it has been, and now is, under the gospel-dispensation,
-and, as it is expressed, that he would <i>be like a roe, or like a
-young hart upon the mountains of Bether</i>, Cant. ii. 17. or, that
-the desire of all nations would fill his house with glory: So
-the New Testament-church is represented as praying, that
-Christ would <i>come quickly</i>, according to his promise, Rev. xxii.
-20. and put a final period to every thing that has had a tendency
-to detract from the glory of his kingdom, or the happiness of
-his subjects; and, in order hereunto, we must pray, that the
-elect, who are Christ’s mystical body, may be gathered, and
-brought in to him; and then we may be sure that he will hasten
-his coming. And, till this is done, we are to wait patiently,
-as the <i>husbandman waiteth for the precious fruit of the
-earth</i>, in the desired harvest, James v. 7. and, in the mean
-time, we are to pray, that he would be pleased to exert his
-power, and make the dispensations of his providence in the
-world, conducive to answer these ends, and more particularly,
-with respect to ourselves; that hereby we may have, not only
-an habitual, but an actual meetness for the heavenly kingdom;
-that when our Lord shall come, we may not be like those
-virgins mentioned in the parable, who <i>all slumbered and slept</i>,
-Matt. xxv. 5. but, upon the first alarm, may go out to meet
-him with joy and triumph; and, as an evidence hereof, that
-we may be enabled to walk as <i>strangers and pilgrims on the
-earth</i>, or, as those who <i>desire a better country, that is, an heavenly</i>,
-Heb. xi. 13, 16. and that we may keep up an intercourse
-with Christ, that we may be ready to entertain him with delight
-and pleasure, whenever he comes; that when he, who is
-our Life, our Hope, and Saviour, as well as our King, shall
-appear, we may appear with him in glory. Thus concerning
-the administration of Christ’s Kingly government, as the subject-matter
-of this petition: And, that we may be farther assisted
-in directing our prayers to God agreeable thereunto, we
-may consider his children as addressing themselves to him to
-this purpose: “We adore and magnify thee, O God our Saviour,
-as the Governor of the world; who dost according to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_395'>395</span>thy will in the armies of heaven, and amongst the inhabitants
-of the earth. Thy power is irresistible, and thy works wonderful:
-But it is matter of the highest astonishment, that
-thou should exercise that gracious government, in which
-thou condescendest to be called the King of saints. What
-is man, that thou shouldst thus magnify him, and set thine
-heart upon him; that they, whom thou mightest have dealt
-with as traitors, and enemies to thy government, and, as
-such, have ruled them with a rod of iron, and broken them
-in pieces, like a potter’s vessel, should be admitted to partake
-of the privileges which thou art pleased to bestow on
-thy servants and subjects! Thou hast often invited us, by
-holding forth thy sceptre of grace, to come and acknowledge
-thee to be our Lord and Sovereign; but our hearts have
-been filled with rebellion against thee. We have served
-divers lusts and pleasures, and been in confederacy with
-hell and death, yielding ourselves slaves to Satan, thine
-avowed enemy: But now, we desire to cast ourselves down
-before thy foot-stool; and, while we stand amazed at thy
-clemency, we accept of the overture of a pardon which
-thou hast made in the gospel, with the greatest thankfulness,
-accounting it our highest privilege, as well as our indispensable
-duty, to be thy subjects. Write thy law, we
-beseech thee, in our hearts; bring down every high thought
-and imagination, which sets itself against thine interest, and
-make us entirely willing to be thy servants, devoted to thy
-fear. We also beg, that thou wouldst take to thyself thy
-great power and reign. Let Satan’s kingdom be destroyed,
-thy gospel propagated throughout the world. May thine
-ancient people, the Jews, who now refuse that thou shouldst
-reign over them, be called and inclined to own thee as their
-King; and may the dark parts of the earth see thy salvation.
-Reform thy churches; let them be constantly supplied with
-those who shall go in and out before them, and shall feed
-them with knowledge and understanding. May they be
-purged from those corruptions which are a reproach to thy
-government; let not the commandments of men be received,
-instead of thine holy institutions; may thine ordinances be
-purely dispensed, that thy people may have ground to hope
-for thy presence therein; and may they be made effectual for
-the converting of sinners, and establishing thy saints in their
-holy faith. And let all the dispensations of thy providence
-in the world, have a tendency to advance thy kingdom of
-grace, that, as thou hast, in all ages, appeared in the behalf of
-thy church and people; so it may be preserved and carried
-through all the difficulties that it meets with, and be secured
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_396'>396</span>from the attempts of thine enemies against it, till they who
-rejoice in thy government here, shall be received into thy
-heavenly kingdom hereafter.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CXCII.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXCII.</span> <i>What do we pray for in the third petition?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> In the third petition, [which is, <i>Thy will be done on
-earth as it is in heaven</i>] acknowledging that, by nature, we,
-and all men, are not only utterly unable and unwilling to
-know and do the will of God, but prone to rebel against his
-word, to repine and murmur against his providence, and
-wholly inclined to do the will of the flesh, and of the Devil:
-We pray, that God would by his Spirit, take away from ourselves
-and others, all blindness, weakness, indisposedness, and
-perverseness of heart, and by his grace make us able and
-willing to know, do, and submit to his will in all things, with
-the like humility, cheerfulness, faithfulness, diligence, zeal,
-sincerity, and constancy, as the angels do in heaven.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>For the understanding of this petition, we must enquire,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. What is meant by the will of God, and how it is said
-to be done by us. We have, under a foregoing answer, considered<a id='r118' /><a href='#f118' class='c012'><sup>[118]</sup></a>,
-that this is distinguished into his secret and revealed
-will, and shewn that as the former of these is the reason of his
-own actings, and determines the event of things; the latter is
-what we are more especially concerned about, as it is a rule of
-duty to us. It is also farther distinguished into his perceptive
-and providential will; the former of which we are to obey; the
-latter, to admire, submit to, and be well pleased with: Accordingly,
-when we pray, <i>Thy will be done</i>, we desire, that his laws
-might be obeyed, and thereby his universal dominion, and right
-to govern the world, practically acknowledged; and that, by
-this means, sin might be prevented, and this earth might not
-become so much like hell as it would be, in this method, which
-God has taken to direct our actions, and give a check to our
-corruptions, were wholly disregarded by us. When we consider
-God as the Creator of man, the next idea we have of him
-is, that he exercises his dominion and sovereignty in giving
-laws to him; which he is under a natural obligation to obey;
-otherwise he disowns himself to be a creature, or a subject,
-which is the highest affront that can be offered to the divine
-Majesty, and exposes him to that punishment which is due to
-those who are found in open rebellion against him: This is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_397'>397</span>what we are to pray against in this petition, in which there is
-something supposed, namely,<a id='r119' /><a href='#f119' class='c012'><sup>[119]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_398'>398</span>1. That his will must be known by us, otherwise it cannot
-be obeyed. And this supposes the law to be promulgated;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_399'>399</span>which has been already done; particularly as it was written
-by God on the heart of man at first, in such legible characters,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_400'>400</span>that our apostacy from him has not wholly erased it. But besides
-this, there must be an internal impression made on the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_401'>401</span>minds and consciences of men, whereby they may be brought
-to see the excellency and glory thereof, and their indispensable
-obligation to yield obedience thereunto.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_402'>402</span>2. It is farther supposed, that the will of man is naturally
-averse, and disinclined, to obey the divine commands, which
-is the result of our fall and apostacy from God; and, through
-the corruption of our nature, we are prone to say, <i>Who is lord
-over us</i>, Psal. xii. 4. and, <i>What is the Almighty, that we should
-serve him</i>, Job xxi. 15. This is the source of all that opposition
-which the heart of man expresses against the laws of God,
-while sinners entertain a fixed resolution to give laws to themselves;
-and, on the other hand, are wholly inclined to do the
-will of the flesh and of the Devil: This the apostle calls <i>fulfilling
-the desires of the flesh and of the mind</i>; while at the
-same time, they <i>walk according to the prince of the power of the
-air, the spirit that worketh in the children of disobedience</i>, Eph.
-ii. 2, 3. This will of the flesh is agreeable to the dictates of
-Satan, by whom it is content to be kept in perpetual bondage;
-his suggestions are agreeable to the corruption of nature;
-whereas, the command of God being contrary to it, as containing
-in them the signatures of his holiness, are grievous and
-burdensome to fallen man; the law is spiritual, and therefore
-it cannot be agreeable to those who are carnal, and, as it were
-sold under sin. And this discovers itself,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) In that, sinful man is determined to do, not what is
-lawful, but what is pleasing to himself, not considering what
-he ought to do, as being accountable to God, the judge of all
-for his behaviour in this world; but whether it is agreeable to
-his own inclinations, and affords some present delight to his
-carnal appetite.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) As for Satan, he uses his utmost endeavours to strengthen
-these resolutions, and increase the depravity and corruption
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_403'>403</span>of our nature; and, for this end, daily presents objects to our
-imaginations, that are agreeable to the desires of the flesh; and
-these are received with pleasure and delight, whereby a snare
-is laid for the ruin of the soul, so that it becomes more and
-more alienated from the life of God; and not only indifferent,
-as to matters of religion, but utterly averse to them. This is
-the reason of all the dishonour that is brought to God in the
-world; whereby it appears, that his will is not done therein, as
-it ought to be.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, as the will of man sets itself against the commanding
-will of God, so it expresses the same aversion to his
-providential will; which is not said indeed, to be done, but it
-ought to be submitted to, by us. We are as much inclined to
-find fault with what God does in the world, as we are to rebel
-against his law. This appears in our being discontented and
-uneasy with the allotments of providence, especially when we
-are under the afflicting hand of God; whereby we are apt to
-charge him as dealing hardly with us, because we have not
-those opportunities, we desire, to fulfil the lusts of the flesh,
-or some check is given to our corrupt appetites or inclinations.
-How ready are we to complain of injuries done us, as though
-God were obliged to give us whatever we would have, how
-contrary soever it may be to our real good and advantage, as
-well as his own glory! Of this we have many instances, in
-the perverse behaviour of the children of Israel in the wilderness,
-who were frequently complaining of the hardships they
-endured; and, by their murmuring against God, provoked him
-to send those terrible judgments which, as they might have
-foreseen, would be the consequence thereof. This is the most
-unreasonable behaviour towards him, who has a right to do
-what he will with his own, and directly contrary to that temper
-of mind which the gospel suggests; whereby we are taught,
-in whatsoever state or condition of life we are, therewith to be
-contented. It is, in both these respects, that we are instructed,
-in this petition, to pray, that <i>the will of the Lord</i> may
-<i>be done</i>. Which leads us to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. The subject-matter of what we are taught to pray for in
-this petition, when we say, <i>Thy will be done</i>. And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. With respect to God’s commanding will, we are to pray,
-that he would incline and enable us to yield obedience to it;
-and accordingly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) We are to be earnest with him, that he would remove
-the ignorance and blindness of our minds, that we may see a
-beauty and glory in every thing that he commands; for, next
-to the Sovereignty of God, which is the first motive hereunto,
-the excellency of what he commands is to be considered as an
-inducement to obedience. Therefore we are to be convinced,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_404'>404</span>that his <i>law is holy, his commandment holy, just, and good</i>,
-Rom. vii. 12. or, that duty and interest are herein inseparably
-connected, so that the one can never be secured without the
-other. This is the work of the Spirit of God, when he directs
-and leads us in the way wherein we ought to walk.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We are to pray, that God would take away the obstinacy
-and perverseness of our wills, that our obedience may be
-matter of choice, and performed with delight, otherwise it
-cannot be pleasing to him; and accordingly we are to pray,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] That it may be performed with the utmost sincerity, as
-approving ourselves not to men, but God, who searcheth the
-heart; and that it may proceed from a principle of spiritual
-life and grace, and be done with a single eye, to his glory,
-whose we are, and whom we desire to serve.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] We are to pray, that our obedience may arise from a
-filial fear of God, and a love to him, and not barely a dread
-of punishment, or fear of his wrath, as the consequence of our
-rebellion against him; or from a mercenary frame of spirit,
-that looks at nothing farther than some advantages which we
-expect to receive from him; and that it may also proceed from
-a sense of gratitude for the many benefits which we receive
-from him, whereby we are, as it were, constrained to do his
-will.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] This obedience ought to be universal, with respect to
-the matter thereof, and constant, with respect to our perseverance
-therein. We are not to choose to obey some of the
-divine commands, and refuse others; or to perform those duties
-which are most easy, and reject those that are difficult; or
-to obey the will of God, so far as it comports with our secular
-interest, and indent with him to be excused in those things that
-are inconsistent therewith: but we must leave it to him alone,
-to prescribe the matter of duty, and express an entire compliance
-therewith, whatsoever it be that he requires. Thus the
-Psalmist says, <i>Then shall I not be ashamed when I have respect
-unto all thy commandments</i>, Psal. cxix. 6.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, this obedience must be constant, without our
-growing cold and indifferent therein, or desisting from it, according
-as our condition in the world is altered, as though we
-had nothing to do with God and religion, but when we are
-under some pressing difficulties; for that is to set our faces
-heaven-ward for a time, and afterwards to draw back unto
-perdition.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We are to pray that God would enable us to submit to
-his disposing will, as being satisfied that all the dispensations
-of his providence are right; and accordingly to say, with David,
-<i>Here am I, let him do to me as seemeth good to him</i>, 2 Sam.
-xv. 26. This consists,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_405'>405</span>[1.] In maintaining a quiet, easy, composed frame of spirit,
-fitted for the exercise of religious duties, though under trying
-dispensations of providence.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] When we justify God, and lay the blame on ourselves,
-whatever afflictions we are exercised with. Thus the Psalmist
-speaks of himself as deserted, and God as <i>far from helping
-him</i>, he acknowledges the equity of his dispensations, when he
-says, <i>Thou art holy, O thou that inhabitest the praises of Israel</i>,
-Pal. xxii. 1. 3. or, as he elsewhere expresses himself, <i>The Lord
-is upright, he is my rock, and there is no unrighteousness in
-him</i>, Psal. xcii. 15.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] When we are disposed to bless God, at the same time,
-when he takes away outward mercies, as well as when he gives
-them: Thus Job, when he was stripped of all he had at once,
-says, <i>The Lord gave, and the Lord hath taken away, blessed be
-the name of the Lord</i>, Job i. 24. We are now to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>III. The manner in which the will of God is to be done:
-Accordingly we are taught to pray, that it may be <i>done in
-earth as it is in heaven</i>; not that we are to suppose that the
-best of saints can arrive, while in this world, to the perfection
-of the heavenly state; so that it is possible for them to do the
-will of God in the same manner, or degree, as it is done in
-heaven: Therefore the particle as respects similitude, rather
-than equality, and all that we can infer from hence is, that
-there is some analogy or resemblance between the obedience of
-the saints here, and that of the inhabitants of heaven. This
-implies in it a desire,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That it may be done with great humility and reverence.
-Thus the angels, who have the character of Seraphims, are
-represented, in that emblem or vision which the prophet Isaiah
-saw, of the <i>Lord sitting on his throne</i>, Isa. vi. 1, 2. and the
-<i>Seraphims</i> attending him, as having their <i>faces covered with
-their wings</i>, in token of reverence and humility. And others
-are described as <i>casting their crowns before the throne</i>, Rev.
-vi. 10. intimating, that all the glory that is put upon them, is
-derived from him that sits on the throne, and that their honour
-is not to be regarded or mentioned, when compared with him
-who is the fountain thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. This expression farther implies in it a desire to do the
-will of God with all cheerfulness. Some think that this is intended
-in the vision which John saw concerning the seven angels,
-who were employed to inflict the seven last plagues on
-the church’s enemies, when they are represented as doing it
-with <i>harps in their hands</i>, and as singing the praises of God at
-the same time, Rev. xv. 1-3.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. We are said to do the will of God on earth, as it is done
-by the angels in heaven, when we do it with faithfulness: Thus
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_406'>406</span>when they are represented as ministering to God’s people, and,
-as such, having the charge over them to keep them in all their
-ways, they are spoken of as doing this faithfully; as it is said,
-<i>They shall bear thee up in their hands, lest thou dash thy foot
-against a stone</i>, Psal. xci. 11, 12.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. The angels are farther represented as a pattern of diligence
-in doing the will of God: Thus it is said of the angel
-Gabriel, that when the word of command was given him to
-carry a message to Daniel, he <i>fled swiftly</i>, being expeditious
-in fulfilling the work he was employed about, Dan. ix. 21.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>5. They are said to do the will of God, with zeal and fervency;
-and, for this reason, some think they are called, in the
-scripture but now mentioned, <i>seraphims</i>; or, as they are elsewhere
-styled, <i>A flaming fire</i>, Psal. civ. 4.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>6. The angels are said to do the will of God sincerely: Thus
-the inhabitants of heaven are represented, as having <i>no guile
-found in their mouths</i>, and <i>being without fault before the throne
-of God</i>, Prov. xxii. 2.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>7. They are said to do the will of God with constancy:
-Thus we read of them as <i>serving him day and night in his
-temple</i>, chap. vii. 15. and the angels, which are ministering spirits,
-sent forth to minister unto the heirs of salvation, are said
-<i>always</i> to <i>behold the face of God in heaven</i>, Mat. xviii. 10.
-that is, they never give out, or are weary of his service: We
-have herein an excellent example set before us, and are exhorted
-to pray, that in our measure we may yield the like obedience
-to God, though we fall very short of doing it, as they
-do who are in a perfect state. We are therefore herein taught
-to lift up our hearts to God, in a way of adoration, confession,
-and supplication, <i>q. d.</i> “We acknowledge, O Lord, that thou
-hast a right to the obedience of all creatures, and hast been
-pleased to give them thy law as the rule thereof. It is our
-glory, as well as our happiness, to be thy servants; for thy
-law is holy, thy commandment holy, just and good: But we
-acknowledge and confess before thee, that we have rebelled
-against thee, and have refused to yield obedience to thy
-commands: And when we behold the universal corruption
-of human nature, we blush and are ashamed to think how
-little glory is brought to thy name, by the service and obedience
-of thy creatures here below. In heaven thy will is
-done perfectly, by those who serve thee with the greatest delight
-and pleasure; but on earth thou hast but little glory;
-it is an instance of condescending goodness that thou hast
-not, long since, abandoned and forsook it, and thereby rendered
-it like hell: But, we beseech thee, take to thyself thy
-great power, and reign in the hearts of men; subdue their
-wills thyself, that they may cheerfully and constantly obey
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_407'>407</span>thy commanding will, and submit to thy providential will,
-as being satisfied that all thy dispensations are right, and
-shall tend to thy glory, and the welfare of all that fear thy
-name.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CXCIII.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXCIII.</span> <i>What do we pray for in the fourth petition?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> In the fourth petition, [which is, <i>Give us this day our
-daily bread</i>,] acknowledging, that in Adam, and by our sin,
-we have forfeited our right to all the outward blessings of
-this life, and deserve to be wholly deprived of them by God,
-and to have them cursed to us in the use of them; and, that
-neither they of themselves are able to sustain us, nor we to
-merit, or by our own industry, to procure them, but prone
-to desire, get, and use them unlawfully; we pray for ourselves
-and others, that both they and we, waiting upon the
-providence of God from day to day, in the use of lawful
-means, may, of his free gift, and, as to his fatherly wisdom
-shall seem best, enjoy a competent portion of them, and have
-the same continued and blessed unto us in our holy and
-comfortable use of them, and contentment in them; and be
-kept from all things that are contrary to our temporal support
-and comfort.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>In order to our understanding this petition, we must first
-consider what is meant by <i>bread</i>. Some have thought that
-our Saviour hereby intends spiritual mercies, as denoting that
-bread which is suited to the necessities of our souls, and particularly
-that we may have an interest in Christ, who is called,
-<i>The bread of life</i>, John vi. 35. <i>The living bread which came
-down from heaven</i>, ver. 51. But though it must be allowed,
-that this is a blessing far exceeding all those that are of a
-temporal nature, as much as the happiness of the soul is preferable
-to that of the body; and it is, doubtless, to be made
-the subject of our daily and importunate requests to God, <i>q. d.</i>
-give me an interest in Christ, or else I can have no delight or
-pleasure in any of the enjoyments of life: Yet this does not
-seem to be intended by our Saviour in this petition; but that
-bread which we pray for has a more immediate respect to the
-blessings of this life, which, according to the scripture-mode
-of speaking, are often set forth by <i>bread</i>. Thus God tells
-Adam, after his fall, <i>In the sweat of thy face shalt thou eat
-bread</i>, Gen. iii. 19. by which we are to understand, that he
-should take a great deal of pains to provide for himself the
-necessaries of life. So when God promises outward blessings
-to his people, he tells them, that <i>bread shall be given</i> them, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_408'>408</span>their <i>waters shall be sure</i>, Isa. xxxiii. 16. And elsewhere, <i>I
-will abundantly bless her provision; I satisfy her poor with
-bread</i>, Psal. cxxxii. 15. This is what we are taught to pray for
-in this petition; in which we may observe,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. That there are some things supposed, namely,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That, by our sins, we have forfeited a right to the outward
-blessings of this life. This was the consequence of the
-forfeiture of life itself; and it was a part of the curse, that we
-were exposed to by our rebellion against, and apostacy from
-God. If he should deprive us of all the conveniences of life,
-and thereby imbitter it to us; so that we should be almost inclined
-to make that unhappy choice that Job did, of <i>strangling
-and death, rather than life</i>, Job vii. 15. there would be no reason
-to say, there is unrighteousness with God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. It is farther supposed, that outward blessings are God’s
-free gift to us. Whether we have a greater or a smaller portion
-thereof, they are to be acknowledged as the fruits of
-divine bounty: It is God that spreads a table for us; to some
-he gives a small measure, and to others a larger share of temporal
-good things; but, whatever we enjoy, it is to be owned
-as the effect of his providential goodness. This, indeed, does
-not exclude the use of those means that are ordained for the
-preserving of life, and our obtaining the good things thereof;
-but we must, at the same time, acknowledge, that all that wisdom,
-industry, and success that attends our endeavours, is from
-God; it is he that <i>giveth power to get wealth</i>, Deut. viii. 18.
-or, as it is elsewhere said, <i>The rich and poor meet together</i>;
-that is, they both agree in this, that <i>the Lord is the Maker of
-them all</i>, Prov. xxii. 2. that is, whatever be their circumstances
-in the world, it is he that provides, what they have, for them.
-And if what we enjoy is sweetened and sanctified to us for our
-good, so that we have not only the conveniences of life, but a
-blessing with them, and are enabled to make a right use and
-improvement of them, to the glory of God and the advantage
-of ourselves and others; this must also be reckoned an instance
-of divine favour, or the gift of God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. It is farther supposed, that temporal good things may
-lawfully be prayed for. As the providence of God does not,
-as was before observed, exclude the use of means; so it is not
-inconsistent with, but rather an inducement to prayer; and, indeed,
-prayer is an ascribing glory to God, as the fountain of all
-we enjoy; without which, it would be an affront to the divine
-Majesty, to expect any blessing from him. This is applicable
-to prayer in general, and, in particular, to our making supplication
-for outward blessings.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. We shall consider the subject-matter of the petition, or
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_409'>409</span>what we are to understand when we say, <i>Give us this day our
-daily bread</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. The thing prayed for, is <i>bread</i>; whereby our Saviour intimates,
-that we are to set due bounds to our desires, when we
-are pressing after outward blessings. He does not order us
-to importune with God for the great things of this life; but
-rather for those things which are necessary, in the enjoyment
-whereof, we may the better be enabled to glorify him: He
-does not put his followers upon asking for crowns and sceptres,
-as though his kingdom were of this world, as some, who were
-influenced by carnal motives, fondly imagined, being ready to
-expect that many worldly advantages would accrue from their
-adhering to him; and, when they found themselves mistaken,
-shamefully deserted his cause, and relinquished the profession
-that they once made of him: But Christ never gave his people
-ground to expect that their secular interest should be promoted
-by embracing the gospel: Accordingly, when any one seemed
-desirous of being his disciple, he generally put this trying question
-to him; whether he was content to leave all, and follow
-him, or to lead a mean life in the world, and be hated of all
-men for his name’s sake? His disciples, indeed, were sometimes
-filled with too great solicitude about their future circumstances
-in life; but he encourages them to hope for necessary
-provisions, when he says, <i>Your heavenly Father knoweth
-that ye have need of all these things</i>, Matt. vi. 32. and it is
-always found, that where there is the greatest degree of faith,
-it tends to moderate our affections as to the things of this
-world; and if at any time, they are apt to exceed their due
-bounds, it gives a check to them, as the prophet says to Baruch:
-<i>Seekest thou great things for thyself? seek them not</i>, Jer.
-xlv. 5. We have an admirable instance of this in Jacob; who,
-when he was in a most destitute condition, flying from his
-father’s house, to Padan-aram, did not know what entertainment
-he should meet with there. The principal thing which he
-desires, together with the divine presence and protection, is,
-that he might have <i>bread to eat, and raiment to put on</i>, Gen.
-xxviii. 20. He does not ask, that people and nations might
-bow down to him; or that God would take away the life of
-his brother Esau, whose malicious design against him, occasioned
-his present hazardous journey; he is not anxiously concerned
-for the great things of this world, but only desires that
-he may have the necessaries of life. And Agar’s prayer is
-not unlike this, who says, <i>Give me neither poverty nor riches;
-feed me with food convenient for me</i>, Prov. xxx. 8. Such a
-frame of spirit our Saviour supposes them to have, who thus
-address themselves to God in prayer for bread, or the outward
-accommodations of life.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_410'>410</span>2. It is called, <i>our bread</i>; the meaning of which is, that
-there is a distinct property which every one has, by the allotment
-of providence, in those outward blessings which God has
-given him, whatever be the measure or proportion thereof:
-This we are taught to acknowledge with thankfulness, <i>q. d.</i>
-Thou didst not design that one man should take possession of
-the whole world, or engross to himself all its stores, and that
-the rest should starve and perish for want of the necessaries
-of life; herein thy wisdom and sovereignty appears, and to
-this it is owing, that there are some things which we have a
-right to, distinct from others: not without, but by the gift and
-blessing of providence. And therefore, whatsoever God thinks
-fit that we should receive, we call our own, and as such, pray
-for it; otherwise we are not in the least to desire or covet it,
-inasmuch as we are taught to pray only for that which we may
-call ours, as having a natural or civil right to it, which we
-have not to that which belongs to another.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Now there are two ways by which we are said to receive
-outward blessings, which we may call our own from the hand
-of God, which are more especially included in this petition.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) As God, by his distinguishing hand, gives us that measure
-of outward blessings which he sees convenient for us, and
-that either, by succeeding our endeavours, or by supplying our
-wants in some way which was altogether unexpected by us,
-and thereby making provision for the comfort of our lives.—There
-is sometimes a chain of providences concurring hereunto;
-as God speaks of his <i>hearing the heavens</i>, Hos. ii. 21, 22.
-that, when they want store of water, he may furnish them
-therewith, and <i>they may hear the earth</i>, so as to moisten it
-with showers, when parched, and becoming unfruitful; and
-<i>that the earth may hear the corn, and the wine, and the oil</i>, so
-as to produce them; and that <i>these may hear</i>, that is, may be
-distributed among God’s people, as he sees they want them;
-and the Psalmist says, <i>He watereth the hills from his chambers:
-The earth is satisfied with the fruit of thy works. He causeth
-the grass to grow for the cattle, and herb for the service of man;
-that he may bring forth food out of the earth; And wine that
-maketh glad the heart of man, and oil to make his face to shine,
-and bread which strengthened man’s heart</i>, Psal. civ. 13-15.
-So that there are various causes and effects, subservient to each
-other, which are all owing to the blessing of providence, whereby
-we come to possess that portion of the good things of this
-life, which are allotted for us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) The outward blessings of this life may be called ours
-when God is pleased to make them blessings to us, and give
-us the enjoyment thereof. He must add his blessings to all
-the mercies he bestows, or else they will not conduce to our
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_411'>411</span>happiness; nor can the general end, designed hereby, be answered;
-without this, the bread we eat, would no more nourish
-us, than husks or chaff; our garments, without this, could no
-more contribute to our being warm, than if they were put upon
-a statue; and the air we breathe, would rather stifle than refresh
-us. Thus it is said, <i>Man doth not live by bread only, but
-by every word which proceedeth out of the mouth of God</i>, Deut.
-viii. 3. that is, not barely by second causes, or the means we
-use, in order to the maintaining life and health, or any of the
-comforts thereof; but, by the blessing of God, or his power
-and providence, that these ends are answered.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And it is he alone who can give us the comfortable enjoyment
-thereof: This all have not; their tables are plentifully
-furnished, but they want that measure of health which is necessary
-for their taking in, or receiving advantage from them;
-as it is said of the sick man, that <i>his life abhorreth bread, and
-his soul dainty meat</i>, Job xxxiii. 20. Such do, as it were,
-starve in the midst of plenty. And there are others, who,
-though they have a great deal of the world, and are not hindered
-from the enjoyment of it by the weakness or decays of
-nature; yet they are made unhappy by the temper of their
-minds; as there are some that abound in riches, who may, nevertheless
-be said to be poor, because they want an heart to
-use what they have, which is God peculiar blessing: Thus the
-wise man says, <i>Every man to whom God hath given riches and
-wealth, and hath given him power to eat thereof, and to take
-his portion, and to rejoice in his labour, this is the gift of God</i>,
-Eccl. v. 19. For these things we are dependent on him; and
-this is what we intend, when we pray that God would <i>give us
-our bread</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. We are farther taught to pray, that God would give us
-our bread <i>this day</i>, thereby denoting that we are to desire to
-have our present necessities supplied, as those who cannot be
-certain that we shall live till to-morrow. How often does God
-break the thread of our lives in an instant, without giving us
-any notice of it beforehand? And therefore we may truly say
-in the midst of life, we are in death, and are advised to take
-no thought for the morrow, but to leave that entirely to the
-providence of God: Food nourishes but for a day, so that
-what we now receive will not suffice us to-morrow. Nature is
-always craving supplies, and therefore we are taught to have a
-continual recourse to God by prayer for them: And, if we look
-farther than this present time, it is to be with this condition,
-that the Lord has determined to prolong our lives, and thereby
-renders it necessary for us to pray for those things that will be
-needful for the support thereof: This seems to be the meaning
-of that variation of expression, which the evangelist Luke
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_412'>412</span>makes use of, when he says, <i>Give us day by day our daily
-bread</i>, Luke xi. 3. And it may obviate an objection, as it will
-be inferred by some, that if we are not to pray for what respects
-our future condition in this world, we are not to make
-provision for it: Whereas, this is contrary to what we are exhorted
-to do, by being led to consider the provision which the
-smallest insects make for their subsistence; <i>The ant provideth
-her meat in the summer, and gathereth her food in the harvest</i>,
-Prov. vi. 8. And the apostle says, <i>If any provide not for his
-own, and especially for those of his own house, he hath denied
-the faith, and is worse than an infidel</i>, 1 Tim. v. 8. This
-therefore we ought to do; and accordingly we are to pray, that
-God would succeed our lawful endeavours, in order thereunto;
-though we must do it with this limitation, as maintaining a constant
-sense that our times are in his hand, so that if he should
-be pleased to grant us a longer or shorter lease of our lives,
-which to us is altogether uncertain, we are to beg of him, that
-we may never be destitute of what is necessary for our glorifying
-him therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. This petition is to be considered as respecting others as
-well as ourselves; <i>Give us</i>, &amp;c. whereby we express a concern
-for their advantage in what respects the good things of this
-life. The blessings of providence flow from an inexhaustible
-fountain; and therefore we are not to think that, by desiring
-that others may have a supply of their wants, there will not be
-enough remaining for us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And this should always teach us to bear our part in relieving
-others, that they may not, through our neglect, perish for want
-of the necessaries of this life: Thus we are exhorted <i>to deal
-our bread to the hungry</i>, to <i>bring the poor that are cast out to</i>
-our <i>houses, and when we see the naked, to cover them, and not
-to hide</i> ourselves <i>from</i> our <i>own flesh</i>, Isa. lviii. 7. And Job
-having been severely accused by his friends, as though all
-those afflictions that befel him, were in judgment for his
-having oppressed and <i>forsaken the poor</i>, and <i>violently taken
-away an house which he builded not</i>, as Zophar insinuates,
-Job xx. 19. vindicates himself from the charge in the strongest
-terms, when he says, <i>I have not withheld the poor from their
-desire, nor caused the eyes of the widow to fail; nor eaten my
-morsel myself alone</i>, so that <i>the fatherless hath not eaten thereof;
-nor seen any perish for want of clothing, or any poor without
-covering</i>, chap. xxxi. 16-19. This is not only to pray,
-that God would give others their daily bread; but to help them,
-so far as it is in our power, which is very agreeable to what
-we pray for in their behalf, as well as our own, when we say,
-as in this petition, <i>Give us this day our daily bread</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Thus concerning the matter of this petition, as explained in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_413'>413</span>this answer; of which we shall give a summary account in the
-following meditation, which may be of use for the reducing our
-Saviour’s direction into practice: Accordingly we address him
-in this manner, “Our eyes wait on thee, O thou preserver of
-men, who givest to all their meat in due season. We are
-poor, indigent creatures, whose necessities oblige us to request
-a daily supply, for our outward as well as spiritual
-wants. Thou hast granted us life and favour; and, having
-obtained help from thee, we continue unto this day. Thou
-preparest a table for us; our cup runneth over; we have
-never been wholly destitute of those outward blessings which
-tend to make our pilgrimage, through this world, easy and
-comfortable: We therefore adore thee for the care and goodness
-of thy providence, which continues to us forfeited
-blessings. We have, by our sins, deserved to be deprived
-of all the good things we enjoy, which we have not used to
-thy glory, as we ought to have done. We acknowledge ourselves
-less than the least of all thy mercies; yet thou hast
-encouraged us to pray and hope for the continuance thereof:
-We leave it to thine infinite wisdom, to chuse that condition
-of life which thou seest best for us. It is not the great
-things of this world that we are solicitous about, but that
-portion thereof which is necessary to our glorifying thee
-therein. Thou hast made it our duty, and accordingly we
-desire, to use that industry which is necessary to attain a
-comfortable subsistence in the world; yet we are sensible
-that the success thereof is wholly owing to thy blessing: We
-therefore beg, that thou wouldst prosper our undertaking;
-since it is thy blessing alone that maketh rich, and addeth
-no sorrow therewith. Keep our desires after the world within
-their due bounds; and enable us to be content with what
-thou art pleased to allot for us, that our hearts may not be
-turned aside thereby, from an earnest pursuit after that bread
-which perisheth not, but endureth to everlasting life. If thou
-art pleased to give us the riches of this world, let not our
-hearts be set upon them; and if thou hast ordained that we
-should be in low circumstances therein, may the frame of our
-spirits be suited thereunto, and this condition of life be sanctified,
-that it may appear, that we are not too low to be the
-objects of thy special regard and discriminating grace; that
-having nothing, we may really possess all things, in having
-an interest in thy love. As to what concerns our future
-condition in this world, though thou hast made it our duty
-to use a provident care that we may not be reduced to those
-straits that would render the last stage of life uncomfortable;
-yet we would do this with a constant sense of the uncertainty
-of life, since our times are in thy hand, our circumstances
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_414'>414</span>in the world at thy disposal, and we rejoice that they
-are so: Therefore we earnestly beg, that if it be thy sovereign
-will to call us soon out of it, that we may be as well
-pleased to leave, as ever we were to enjoy it, as being blessed
-with a well-grounded hope of a better life: And, if it be consistent
-with thy will, that our lives be prolonged in the
-world, <i>Give us day by day our daily bread</i>, that we may, at
-all times, experience, that thou dost abundantly bless our provision,
-and satisfy us with those things which thou seest
-needful for us, till we come to our journey’s end, and are
-possessed of that perfect blessedness which thou hast reserved
-for thy saints in a better world.”</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CXCIV.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXCIV.</span> <i>What do we pray for the fifth petition?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> In the fifth petition, [which is, <i>Forgive us our debts as
-we forgive our debtors</i>] acknowledging that we, and all
-others, are guilty both of original and actual sin, and thereby
-become debtors to the justice of God; and that neither
-we, nor any other creature, can make the least satisfaction
-for that debt. We pray for ourselves and others, that God
-of his free grace would, through the obedience and satisfaction
-of Christ apprehended and applied by faith, acquit us
-both from the guilt and punishment of sin, accept us in his
-Beloved, continue his favour and grace to us, pardon our
-daily failings, and fill us with peace and joy, in giving us
-daily more and more assurance of forgiveness, which we are
-the rather emboldened to ask, and encouraged to expect
-when we have this testimony in ourselves, that we, from the
-heart, forgive others their offences.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>Having been directed, in the former petition, to pray for
-outward blessings; we are now led to ask for forgiveness
-of sin; and it is with very good reason that these two petitions
-are joined together, inasmuch as we cannot expect that
-God should give us the good things of this life, which are all
-forfeited by us, much less, that we should have them bestowed
-on us in mercy, and for our good, unless he is pleased to forgive
-those sins, whereby we provoke him to withhold them
-from us: Neither can we take comfort in any outward blessings,
-while our consciences are burdened with a sense of the
-guilt of sin, and we have nothing to expect, as the consequence
-thereof, but to be separated from his presence; therefore we
-are taught to pray, that God would <i>forgive us our sins</i>, as one
-evangelist expresses it, or our <i>debts</i>, as it is in the other.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_415'>415</span>From whence it may be observed, in general, that sin is a
-debt. As it is contrary to the holiness of God, it is a
-stain and blemish, a dishonour and reproach to us; as it is
-a violation of his law it is a crime; and, as to what respects
-the guilt which we contract hereby, it is called <i>a debt</i>; which
-is the principal thing considered in this petition. There was a
-debt of obedience demanded from us as creatures: and, in
-case of the failure hereof, or any other sin committed by us,
-there was a threatening denounced, pursuant to the sanction of
-the law, from whence arises a debt of punishment; and in
-this respect it is that we are directed, more especially, in this
-petition, to pray for forgiveness. There are several things
-which respect the nature of forgiveness, as founded on the satisfaction
-given by Christ, as our Surety: which have been
-largely insisted on under some foregoing answers<a id='r121' /><a href='#f121' class='c012'><sup>[121]</sup></a>: Therefore,
-the method we shall observe, in considering the subject-matter
-of this petition, shall be,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. To take a view of sinful man as charged with guilt, and
-rendered uneasy under a sense thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. How he is to address himself to God by faith and prayer
-for forgiveness. And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>III. The encouragement which he has to hope that his prayer
-will be answered. Under which head we shall take occasion
-to consider how far that disposition which we have to forgive
-others, is an evidence hereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. Concerning the charge of guilt upon us, and that uneasiness
-which is the consequence thereof. Here we consider the
-sinner as apprehended and standing before God, the Judge of
-all; an accusation brought in against him, in which he is
-charged with apostacy and rebellion against his rightful Lord
-and Sovereign, and, as the consequence thereof, his nature is
-vitiated and depraved, his heart deceitful above all things, and
-desperately wicked; from whence proceed all actual transgressions,
-with their respective aggravations, which, according
-to the tenor of the law of God, deserve his wrath and curse,
-both in this life, and that which is to come<a id='r122' /><a href='#f122' class='c012'><sup>[122]</sup></a>. And this charge
-is made good against him by such convincing evidence, that he
-must be very much unacquainted with himself, and a stranger to
-the law of God, if he does not see it: But if we suppose him stupid,
-and persisting in his own vindication, through the blindness
-of his mind, and hardness of his heart, and ready to say
-with Ephraim, <i>In all my labours they shall find none iniquity in
-me, that were sin</i>, Hos. xii. 8. yet the charge will, notwithstanding,
-appear to be just, and every mouth shall be stopped,
-and they are forced to confess themselves guilty before God:
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_416'>416</span>Upon this, conscience is awakened, and trembles at the thoughts
-of falling into the hands of an absolute God, who appears no
-otherwise to him than as a consuming fire; his terrors set
-themselves in array against him, and this cannot but fill him
-with the greatest anguish, especially because there is no method
-which he can find out, to free himself from that misery, which
-he dreads as the consequence thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>If he pretends to extenuate his crimes, it will not avail him;
-and if his own conscience does not come in as a witness
-against him, as having been a party concerned in the rebellion,
-it is an argument that it is rendered stupid by a continuance
-therein: Nothing that it can allege in its own vindication, will
-be regarded in the court of heaven, but rather tend to add
-weight to the guilt he has contracted; for the omniscience of
-God will bring an unanswerable charge against him, as being
-a transgressor of his law, and thereby liable to condemnation,
-upon which, vindictive justice will demand satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>If he makes an overture to pay the debt, he must either
-yield sinless obedience, which is impossible, from the nature
-of the thing; or bear the stroke of justice, and suffer the punishment
-that is due to him, which, if he is content to do, he
-knows not what it is to fall into the hands of the living God, or
-to be plunged into an abyss of endless misery. If he thinks
-that he shall be secure by flying from justice, this would be a
-vain attempt, since God is omnipresent; and <i>there is no darkness
-or shadow of death, where the workers of iniquity may
-hide themselves</i>, Job xxxiv. 52.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Nothing therefore remains, but that he make supplication
-to his Judge, that he would pass by the crimes he has committed,
-without demanding satisfaction: But this is to desire,
-that he would act contrary to the holiness of his nature; which
-would be such a blemish on his perfections, that he is obliged
-to reject: What is this but to relinquish his throne, deny his
-sovereignty, and act contrary to his own law, which is the rule
-of his government, whereby sinners will take occasion to transgress,
-expecting that they may do this with impunity?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But, is there no intercessor that will plead his cause, or appear
-for him in the court of heaven? this cannot be done but
-by one who is able to make an atonement, and thereby secure
-the glory of divine justice, by having the debt transferred or
-placed to his account, and giving a full satisfaction for it; but
-this belongs to none but our Lord Jesus Christ, who has obtained
-redemption and forgiveness through his blood; and
-none can take encouragement from hence, but he that addresses
-himself to God by faith, which we are now considering
-the sinner as destitute of, and therefore the charge of guilt
-remains upon him. And it is certain, that the consequence
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_417'>417</span>hereof is such, as will tend to fill him with the greatest uneasiness
-under the burthen that lies on his conscience, which has
-a perpetual dread of the execution of the sentence that is in
-force against him. This wounds his spirits; and it is impossible
-for any one to apply healing medicines, but by directing
-him according to the prescription contained in the gospel, to
-seek forgiveness in that way in which God applies it, in and
-through a Mediator.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. We are now to consider, how a person is to address
-himself to God by faith and prayer for forgiveness, which is
-the principal thing designed in this petition. Here it is to be
-acknowledged, that when we draw nigh to God, it is with a
-sense of guilt, and, it may be, with great distress of conscience,
-arising from it; yet it differs very much from what was observed
-under the last head, when we considered a sinner as
-standing before an absolute God, without any hope of obtaining
-forgiveness, since that cannot but fill him with dread and
-horror; whereas, this is an expedient for his obtaining a settled
-peace of conscience; and, indeed, there is nothing of greater
-importance, than our performing this duty in a right manner.
-And, in order thereunto, let it be considered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That when we pray for forgiveness of sin it is supposed,
-that none can bestow this blessing upon us but God. No one
-has a right to forgive an offence, but he against whom it is committed:
-This will appear, if we consider sin as a neglect or refusal
-to pay a debt of obedience, which is due from us, to
-God, and consequently it would be an invading his right, for
-any one who had no power to demand it, to pretend to give a
-discharge to the sinner as an insolvent debtor: This would be
-to act like the person mentioned in the parable, who was appointed
-indeed, to receive his lord’s debts, but not to cancel
-them; and therefore, our Saviour calls him an <i>unjust steward</i>;
-and he is said to have <i>wasted his lord’s goods</i>, by compounding
-the debts which were owing to him without his order,
-Luke xvi. 1. <i>&amp; seq.</i> Now, since obedience, as it is a religious
-duty is due to God alone; it is only he that can give a
-discharge to those who have not performed it: and since it belongs
-to him as a judge and law-giver, to punish offenders, it
-would be the highest affront to him for a creature to pretend
-to this prerogative; and therefore God appropriates it to himself,
-when he says, <i>I even I am he that blotteth out thy transgressions
-for mine own sake</i>, Isa. xliii. 25. which expression is
-to be understood of him exclusive of all others; accordingly,
-when the Jews charge our Saviour with blasphemy on his forgiving
-sins, and say, <i>Who can forgive sins but God only?</i> the
-proposition was true, how false soever the inference, which
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_418'>418</span>they deduce from thence to disprove his Deity, might be. We
-shall now consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. That all ought to pray for forgiveness, and in what sense
-this is to be done,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) All ought to pray for forgiveness: One would think,
-that this is so evident, and agreeable to the condition of fallen
-man, as well as founded on many scriptures, and expressly
-commanded in this petition, which we are explaining, that it is
-needless to give a farther proof of it; but this we are obliged
-to do, inasmuch as some have asserted that a justified person
-ought not to pray for pardon of sin, since this is what is already
-done: This is an inference from what they advance, who
-plead for actual justification from eternity; and therefore it is,
-as they suppose, equally absurd for such an one to pray, that
-God would forgive him, as it is to pray that he would choose
-them to eternal life, or that Christ would satisfy divine justice
-for the sins of his people, which he has already done. It is, indeed,
-not very easy to understand what some persons mean,
-when they insist on this subject, inasmuch as they lay down
-propositions, without sufficiently explaining them; and whatever
-they allege in their vindication, that they intend nothing
-else hereby but what is agreeable to the sentiments of the reformed
-churches, it is certain, that they advance several
-things, or, at least, make use of such unguarded expressions as
-are altogether disowned by them; and, at the same time, give
-occasion to some, to run into the contrary extreme, who, for
-fear of being thought to assert eternal justification, deny the
-eternal purpose of God relating thereunto.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But whatever they intend when they say, that a justified
-person ought not to pray for pardon of sin; the contrary to
-this is sufficiently evident from scripture. For every believer
-is a justified person; therefore, if we have any instance of believers
-praying for the pardon of sin, this sufficiently confutes
-that absurd notion which we are opposing. Now that many
-have prayed for pardon of sin, who have, at the same time,
-been true believers, is evident, from David’s praying for the
-pardon of sin, as he often does: Thus he says, in Psal. xxv.
-11. <i>For thy name’s sake, O Lord, pardon mine iniquity, for it is
-great</i>; and yet, at the same time, he expresses himself like a
-justified person; <i>O my God, I trust in thee</i>, ver. 2. and ver. 5.
-<i>Thou art the God of my salvation</i>: And, in Psal. cxliii. 2. he
-prays, <i>Enter not into judgment with thy servant, for in thy sight
-shall no man living be justified</i>; yet, at the same time, he appears
-to be a believer; for he speaks, in ver. 8. of his <i>trusting
-in</i>, and <i>lifting up his soul to God</i>, and <i>fleeing to him</i>, that he
-would <i>hide him</i>, ver. 9. which are all acts of justifying faith;
-and, in Psal. li. 1. he prays, <i>Have mercy upon me, O God, according
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_419'>419</span>to thy loving-kindness; according to the multitude of
-thy tender mercies blot out my transgressions</i>; and, in ver. 9.
-<i>Hide thy face from my sins, and blot out all mine iniquities</i>:
-Whereas he had an intimation before from God, that he had
-pardoned his sin, 2 Sam. xii. 13. which, as appears by the preface
-to this Psalm, was the occasion of its composure; so that
-the Spirit of God hereby put words into his mouth, and taught
-him, notwithstanding the assurance he had from him of his
-having obtained forgiveness, to pray for it: And the apostle
-Paul was in a justified state, when he expressed his earnest desire
-of being <i>found in Christ, not having his own righteousness,
-but that which is through the faith of Christ, the righteousness
-which is of God by faith</i>, Phil. iii. 9. This might also be argued
-from all those scriptures, that represent believers as praying
-for salvation, which cannot be done without praying for
-forgiveness of sin, as being inseparably connected therewith. I
-shall therefore add no more concerning the obligation which
-all are under, to pray for the pardon of sin, but proceed to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) In what sense we are to pray for it. This may, without
-much difficulty, be determined, if we rightly state the doctrine
-of justification, which, if it be considered as an immanent
-act in God, or the eternal purpose of his will, not to impute
-sin, which is what divines call decretive justification, it is to be
-allowed, that this is no more to be prayed for than eternal
-election; neither are we to pray, that Christ may be constituted
-the Head and Surety of his elect, or, that he might finish
-transgressions, make an end of sin, and bring in an everlasting
-righteousness, for that is already done. But, inasmuch as the
-scripture often speaks of justification as consisting in the application
-of Christ’s righteousness, or that right we have to lay claim
-to it, which is styled justification by faith, and is the only foundation
-on which we build our hope, that we have an interest in
-what Christ did and suffered, and are thereby discharged from
-guilt and condemnation. This cannot be before we believe;
-and in this sense we pray that God would justify us: Now
-since forgiveness of sin is a branch of justification, it is, in this
-sense that we pray for the pardon of sin. And this includes
-in it,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] An earnest desire that God would not lay those sins to
-our charge that we daily commit; or, that he would not, as the
-Psalmist says, <i>enter into judgment</i> with us, Psal. cxliii. 2. And,
-as the consequence hereof, we pray, that God would not punish
-us as our iniquities deserve. This is to pray for the application
-of Christ’s righteousness as the ground and foundation
-of our claim to forgiveness.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_420'>420</span>[2.] We are to pray for the comfortable fruits and effects of
-forgiveness, that <i>being justified by faith, we may have peace
-with God through our Lord Jesus Christ</i>, and <i>access by faith,
-into this grace wherein we stand</i>, Rom. v. 1, 2. or, that we may
-be able to conclude, that our persons and services are accepted
-in the Beloved; and that Christ hath loved us, and washed
-us from our sins in his own blood.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] We are to pray for the assurance or comfortable sense
-hereof, that hereby we may rejoice in hope of the glory of
-God: And, inasmuch as we daily contract guilt, we are to
-pray that this blessing may be daily applied to us, and that,
-both living and dying, we may be dealt with as those who are
-interested in Christ’s righteousness as our Surety and Redeemer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>If it be objected, that pardon of sin is a blessing that every
-believer has; and therefore he ought not to pray for it. To
-this I answer, that there are many privileges which God does,
-or will certainly bestow upon his people, which they are, nevertheless,
-to pray for; otherwise they, who are in a state of
-grace, are not to pray for perseverance in grace; because they
-are assured that it shall be maintained unto salvation, according
-to God’s promise: And, indeed, whatever promises are
-contained in the covenant of grace, a believer ought not, according
-to this method of reasoning, to pray that God would
-apply them to him, and so glorify his faithfulness in accomplishing
-them, since he is certainly persuaded that he will do
-it; whereas, all allow that we are to pray for this privilege:
-Therefore, if we have a full assurance that God has forgiven
-our sins; yet, inasmuch as we daily contract guilt, we are
-daily to pray, that he would not lay it to our charge, or deal
-with us as our iniquities deserve.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. We shall now consider, how we are to address ourselves
-to God, or what views we are to have of him when we pray
-for forgiveness of sin. This depends on the idea we have of
-those perfections which he glorifies in bestowing this privilege;
-and these are, more especially, his mercy, grace and faithfulness,
-in accomplishing what he has promised in the covenant of
-grace. As for his justice, that is considered, as will be observed
-under a following head, as having received a full satisfaction;
-but this is concerned in the purchase, not in the application
-of forgiveness; and therefore, though God, in this
-respect, appears with the glory of a Judge, resolving to make
-no abatements of the debt which was contracted, that he may
-thereby express his utmost detestation of the sins committed:
-in this sense forgiveness is not to be obtained by entreaty; for
-it is inconsistent with the character of a Judge, to be moved
-thereby, and contrary to the demands of law and justice. But,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_421'>421</span>on the other hand, when we draw nigh to him, we consider
-him as a Father who delights in mercy, as it is particularly intimated
-in the preface to this prayer; and therefore we do not
-come before him as summoned to stand at his tribunal, and to
-be weighed in the balance by him, in which respect we would
-be found wanting, and, if our iniquities should be marked by
-him, could not stand; but we consider ourselves as invited to
-come into his presence, in hope of obtaining this privilege; and
-we consider him as he has revealed himself in the gospel, in
-which we are told, that there is forgiveness with him, that he
-may be feared, not as the criminal fears his judge, who is
-ready to pass sentence upon him; but as a child comes into
-his father’s presence with such a fear as proceeds from love,
-and is the result of that encouragement which is given him,
-that he should be accepted in his sight: And, the great inducement
-hereunto, is the intimation that he has given thereof in
-the promises of the covenant of grace, and particularly those
-that respect forgiveness, in which he has discovered himself as
-a God ready to pardon, <i>gracious and merciful, slow to anger,
-and of great kindness</i>, Neh. ix. 17. with whom is <i>plenteous redemption</i>,
-Psal. cxxx. 7. he also styles himself, <i>Our God, who
-will abundantly pardon</i>, inasmuch as <i>his thoughts and ways are
-above ours, as the heavens are higher than the earth</i>, Isa. lv.
-7-9. and he has likewise promised that he will <i>cast all the
-sins</i> of his people <i>into the depths of the sea</i>: Therefore they
-consider him not only as glorifying his mercy, but as <i>performing
-his truth</i>, and acting agreeably to his faithfulness, Micah
-vii. 19, 20. and, all this depends entirely on the discoveries he
-has made of himself to us through a Mediator: This leads us
-to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. The way in which God bestows this blessing, and we are
-to seek it at his hand by faith and prayer. We have before
-observed, that it would be an affront to the divine Majesty, to
-suppose that he will extend mercy to guilty sinners, without securing
-the glory of his vindictive justice; and this depends
-wholly on the satisfaction that Christ has given to it: Therefore
-we are to beg forgiveness for his sake, whom God has set
-forth to be a propitiation for his sake, that he might be just,
-and the justifier of him that believeth in Jesus; we are therefore
-first considered as having his righteousness imputed to
-us, and then this blessing, which we pray for, is applied to us.
-In this method of praying for forgiveness, we take occasion to
-adore the wisdom of God, which has found out this expedient
-to hallow or sanctify his own name, as well as secure to us an
-interest in his love, and, at the same time, we express the high
-esteem we have for the person of Christ, who has procured it
-for us, as also the infinite value of the price he paid in order
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_422'>422</span>thereunto; and we refer our cause to him, that, as our Advocate,
-he would appear on our behalf, in the merit of his obedience
-and sufferings; that our petition may be granted in such
-a way, that God hereby may have the highest revenue of glory
-redounding to himself, and we receive the blessings consequent
-thereupon.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>5. We are now to consider the frame of spirit with which
-we are to pray for forgiveness. There is no grace but what is
-to be exercised in prayer, agreeably to the subject-matter
-thereof; and it is evident, from the nature of the thing, that
-when we pray for forgiveness, it ought to be with a penitent
-frame of spirit: Accordingly repentance and forgiveness of
-sins are often connected in scripture. Thus it is said, <i>Repent
-and be converted, that your sins may be blotted out</i>, Acts iii. 19.
-not that we are to suppose that repentance, or any other grace,
-is the cause of God’s secret purpose or determination to forgive
-sin, or, that he accepts of it as any part of that atonement
-or satisfaction which his justice requires to be made for it; for
-this is to ascribe that to it which belongs entirely to Christ’s
-righteousness; yet repentance is so far necessary to forgiveness,
-that it would be a very preposterous thing for any one to
-ask this favour either of God or man without it. Not to repent
-of a crime committed, is, in effect, a pleading for it, and
-a tacit resolution to persist in it, which disqualifies us from
-pleading a pardon; and it would be contrary to the divine perfections
-for God to give it to those who hereby do, as it were,
-practically disown their need of it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Now the necessity of repentance, in those who are praying
-and hoping for forgiveness, appears from the connexion that
-there is between it, and all other graces; which, though distinguished,
-are not separated from it, and they are, all of them,
-necessary to salvation, which we can, by no means attain to,
-without being forgiven.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>III. We proceed to consider, the encouragement that they,
-who plead for forgiveness with the exercise of faith, repentance
-and other graces, have to expect, that they shall be heard
-and answered; and more particularly, how far that disposition,
-which we have to forgive others is an evidence
-thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Grace exercised, is an evidence of forgiveness. This appears,
-in that it is a work and fruit of the Spirit, a branch of
-sanctification, and an earnest of eternal life; and, in this respect,
-that good work may be truly said to be begun, which
-God will certainly carry on, and perfect in glory: of this, I
-say, every grace, provided it be true and genuine, is an evidence,
-from whence we may conclude our right to forgiveness,
-or justification, which is inseparably connected with it; as the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_423'>423</span>apostle says, <i>Whom he called, them he justified; and whom he
-justified, them he also glorified</i>, Rom. viii. 30.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We are now to consider how far, or in what respect, our
-exercising forgiveness towards others, is an evidence of our
-having obtained forgiveness from God, which is the sense given
-in those words, <i>as we forgive our debtors</i>. We may here observe
-the variation of the expression in Matthew and Luke;
-in the former it is said, <i>Forgive us our debts as we forgive our
-debtors</i>; and, in the latter, <i>Forgive us our sins; for we also
-forgive every one that is indebted to us</i>. There is a little difficulty
-contained in the sense of the particles, <span class='fss'>AS</span> and <span class='fss'>FOR</span>,
-which must be so explained, that the sense of the petition, in
-both evangelists may appear to be the same: Therefore,
-when Matthew says, <i>Forgive us our debts as we forgive our
-debtors</i>, the particle <span class='fss'>AS</span>, is not a note of equality, but of similitude;
-and accordingly it signifies, that we are to forgive
-others, even as God, for Christ’s sake, has forgiven us; or, as
-we hope to obtain forgiveness from him; though, if we compare
-these two together, there is an infinite disproportion between
-them, as to the injuries forgiven, and other circumstances
-that attend the action. The injuries that are done to
-us are very small, if compared with the crimes that we commit
-against God; and when we are said to forgive them, there is
-no comparison between it and that forgiveness which we desire
-from the hand of God. God’s forgiving us is, indeed, a motive
-to us to forgive others, but one is not the measure, or
-standard of the other: It therefore implies, that while we ask
-for forgiveness, we ought to do it with a becoming frame of
-spirit, as those who are inclined to forgive others, and, at the
-same time to bless God, that he has wrought this disposition in
-us; and, so far as we make use of it, as an argument in prayer,
-the meaning thereof is, that since he has made it our duty,
-and we trust, has also given us this grace to forgive others;
-we hope, that he will, in like manner, <i>forgive us our trespasses</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We are now to consider the petition as laid down by the
-evangelist Luke; <i>Forgive us our sins; for we also forgive
-every one that is indebted to us</i>: which is, for substance, the
-same with that in Matthew, as but now explained: Accordingly
-the particle <span class='fss'>FOR</span>, is not causal, but demonstrative; and
-therefore we are not to understand it as though our forgiving
-others were the ground and reason of God’s forgiving us, since
-that would be to put it in the room of Christ’s righteousness;
-but the meaning is, that we are encouraged to hope that he
-will forgive us, from this demonstrative evidence; since he has
-given us that grace which inclines and disposes us to forgive
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_424'>424</span>others; from whence we have ground to conclude, that we
-shall obtain the blessing we pray for.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This leads us to consider the nature and extent of forgiveness,
-as exercised by us, and our obligation to perform this
-duty; and when this may be said to be an evidence of our obtaining
-forgiveness from God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>First</i>, Concerning the nature and extent of forgiveness, as
-exercised by us; for the understanding of which, let it be premised,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] That the injuries that are done us, are to be considered
-either as they contain an invasion upon, or denying us those
-rights which belong to us, agreeably to that station and condition
-in life, in which the providence of God has fixed us:
-these must be reckoned injuries, because they are detrimental
-to us, and acts of injustice; or, they may be farther considered,
-as crimes committed against God, inasmuch as they infer a violation
-of the law of nature, which is instamped with his authority;
-whereby the rights of every particular person are determined,
-and to deprive us of them, is a sin against God, in
-the same sense in which sins immediately committed against
-men, are said to be committed against him. And by this we
-may be farther led to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] That injuries are only to be forgiven by us, as they are
-against ourselves; whereas God alone can forgive them as
-they are against him; and the reason hereof is, because no one
-can dispense with that punishment which is due for the violation
-of a law, but the supreme authority. The precept that is to be
-obeyed, and the sanction that binds over the offender to suffer
-for his violation of it, must be established by the highest authority.
-And therefore, inasmuch as the creature cannot demand
-that obedience which is due to God alone; for the same reason
-he cannot remit that debt of punishment which belongs only to
-God to inflict. However, we are to desire, that God would
-pardon, rather than punish those that have injured us: And
-this is the only sense in which we may be said to forgive
-others those crimes that are committed against God, if this
-may be called forgiveness. But, so far as any injury respects
-ourselves, as being detrimental to us, it is our duty to forgive
-it, and not to exercise that private revenge which is inconsistent
-with the subject-matter of this petition.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] So far as an injury, which more especially respects ourselves,
-contains in it a violation of human laws, whereby the
-offender has rendered himself obnoxious to a capital punishment;
-it does not belong to us, as private persons, to forgive
-the criminal, so as to obstruct the course of justice, since this
-is a matter that does not concern us, as not having the executive
-part of human laws in our power; and to pretend to this,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_425'>425</span>would be not only to violate the laws of men, but to commit an
-offence against God, who has established the just rights of civil
-government; therefore, that forgiveness which we are obliged
-to exercise towards others, does not extend itself to this matter.
-Nor are we obliged, when we forgive those that have injured
-us, to be unconcerned about doing justice to ourselves,
-when it is possible, or at least easy, for us to have redress in
-the course of law or equity; especially if the damage we sustain
-hereby, be, in a very great degree, prejudicial to ourselves
-or families. And if it affects our good name in the world, the
-forgiving those reproaches that are cast upon us, is not inconsistent
-with our using endeavours to vindicate our own reputation;
-though it may be, this can hardly be done without exposing
-him that has done us the injury, to suffer that shame
-which he brought on himself thereby.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>These things being premised, we proceed to consider, the nature
-and extent of forgiveness, as it is to be exercised by us,
-so far as the injury committed respects ourselves. This is opposed
-to our bearing the least degree of malice against the offender,
-or carrying our resentments too far, by magnifying
-lesser injuries, and meditating revenge: Nor ought we to be
-so partial in our own cause, as to deny, or altogether overlook
-those things that are, in other respects commendable in him,
-as though a crime committed against us, were altogether inconsistent
-with the least degree of virtue or goodness in him
-that has committed it. If he has done injustice to us, this
-does not excuse any act of injustice to his person or character
-in other instances, which have not an immediate relation to
-ourselves; which is to see things through a false medium, or
-to infer consequences that cannot fairly be deduced from any
-thing that he has done, how injurious soever it may have been
-to us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, we are not to take occasion from the ill treatment
-we have met with, from any one, to endeavour to ruin him, as
-to his estate or character in the world; since that is not a proper
-expedient, either to do justice to ourselves, or bring him,
-who has done us the injury to repentance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Here we may take occasion to enquire, how far a person that
-is injured by another, may demand satisfaction? and, whether
-it is our duty to forgive him, though it be neither in his power
-nor inclination to make it?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The answer that I would give to this, is; that the law of God
-and nature, does not prohibit us from demanding satisfaction
-in proportion to the injury received; since this is a debt we
-ought to claim, in justice to ourselves, and our character in the
-world: Nevertheless, it must be considered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_426'>426</span><i>1st</i>, That it may sometimes be out of his power to make full
-satisfaction; in which case we must be content, and forgive
-the injury without it; and we are to deal with him in like
-manner, as we are obliged to do with those who are insolvent
-in pecuniary debts. But,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, We suppose, that the person who has injured us, is
-able in some measure, to make satisfaction; but he is so far
-from being willing to do it, that he refuses to acknowledge his
-crime, and, which is still worse, seems inclined, as occasion
-may offer, to commit it again, which is the worst of tempers,
-especially if the injury be not barely supposed, but real: Yet
-this is no rule for us to proceed by, in forgiving injuries; for
-the understanding of which let it be considered, that satisfaction
-for injuries committed, consists either in making a compensation
-in proportion to the damage sustained thereby, or
-else in a bare acknowledgment of the fault committed. The
-former of these we may, in justice, insist on; but yet, in most
-cases, where the injury only respects ourselves, it may be dispensed
-with, or demanded at pleasure; but whether it be given
-or no, it is so far our duty to pass it by, as not to bear the least
-degree of malice against him, that has injured us, though he refuses
-to give it. As to the latter, where no more is demanded,
-than a bare acknowledgment of the offence committed,
-which cannot be supposed to be out of the power of the offender
-to do; but he is resolved that he will not make this
-small satisfaction, as persisting in his own vindication, and determines
-to do the same again, as occasion offers: we are to let
-him know, that herein he not only sins against us, but God,
-and to exhort him to confess his crime before him; and therefore
-we pity his obstinacy, while we express our readiness to
-pass by the injury he has done us: However, such an one is
-not to be chosen by us as an intimate friend or associate, out
-of a principle of self-preservation, that he may not be in a capacity
-of doing us the same injuries for the future, which his obstinacy
-discovers him to be inclined to do. Thus concerning
-the nature and extent of this duty of forgiving injuries: We
-proceed to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Secondly</i>, The indispensable obligation we are under to perform
-it; otherwise we could not make this appeal to God in
-prayer, or take encouragement to hope, that we shall obtain
-forgiveness from him. To induce us hereunto, let us consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That if God should deal with us as we do with our fellow-creatures,
-when we refuse to forgive them, we should be
-for ever miserable. This our Saviour illustrates by the parable
-of the debtor and creditor, in Matt. xviii. 24, <i>&amp; seq.</i> where
-a person is represented as <i>owing ten thousand talents</i>, and <i>his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_427'>427</span>lord</i>, upon his entreaty, <i>forgave him the debt</i>; and afterwards
-he dealt severely with one that owed him but an <i>hundred pence</i>,
-and thereby provoked his lord to <i>deliver him to the tormentors,
-till he should pay all that was due unto him</i>; which parable,
-though it does not argue the least mutability in the divine purpose
-relating hereunto, yet we may infer from hence, how inconsiderable
-the injuries that are done us are, if compared with
-those which we have done against God; and how little ground
-we have to expect forgiveness from him, if we are not disposed
-to forgive others.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, An implacable spirit, meditating revenge for injuries
-done against us, will render us altogether unfit for the performance
-of an holy duty, and particularly this of imploring
-forgiveness from God: It also exposes us to many temptations;
-accordingly the apostle speaks of anger retained in our breasts,
-or <i>letting the sun go down upon our wrath</i>, as that which <i>gives
-place to the Devil</i>, Eph. iv. 26, 27.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Malice and fury tend to exasperate an enemy; whereas,
-forgiveness melts him into friendship, and very much recommends
-the gospel, which obliges us to shew such instances
-of brotherly kindness, even where they are least deserved.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, We have many bright examples for our imitation, of
-the best of men, who have been highly injured, and yet have
-expressed a forgiving spirit. Thus Joseph forgave the injuries
-done against him by his brethren, when, after his father’s
-death, they were jealous that he would hate them, and requite
-them all the evil that they had done unto him; but he not only
-comforted and spake kindly to them, but made very liberal
-provision for the subsisting of them and their families, Gen. 1.
-15-21. And, Moses, when Miriam was smitten with leprosy,
-for speaking against him, prays for her recovery, Numb.
-xii. 13. And, when the Syrian host was sent on purpose to
-destroy the prophet Elisha, and God had delivered them into
-his hand, being in the midst of Samaria, and the king of Israel
-was ready to smite them, had he desired it; but this he was
-so far from doing, that he says, <i>Thou shalt not smite them:
-Wouldest thou smite those whom thou hast taken captive with
-thy sword, and with thy bow, set bread and water before them,
-that they may eat and drink and go to their master</i>, 2 Kings
-vi. 22.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, in the New Testament, we have an instance of a forgiving
-spirit in Stephen, when, in the very agonies of death,
-having been before insulted, and now stoned by his enraged
-enemies; it is said, <i>He kneeled down, and cried with a loud
-voice, Lord, lay not this sin to their charge</i>, Acts vii. 60. But
-the highest instance that can be given of the exercise of this
-grace we have in our Saviour, who prayed for them that crucified
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_428'>428</span>him; <i>Father forgive them for they know not what they
-do</i>, Luke xxiii. 34. These examples are worthy of our imitation;
-and therefore we should reckon ourselves obliged to forgive
-those who have injured us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Object.</i> It will be objected by some, that the injuries done
-them, are so very great, that they are not to be borne; and it
-would be dishonourable for them not to take any notice thereof:
-Or, it may be, the ingratitude that is expressed herein, is
-such that it deserves the highest resentment; and if it should
-be passed over, it might be reckoned a tacit approbation of their
-crime, and give occasion to them, that have committed the injury
-against them, to despise them, and do the like for the
-future.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Answ.</i> To this it may be replied;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, That if the injury be great, it will be much more commendable,
-and a greater instance of virtue and grace to forgive
-than to resent it; for in this a man overcomes himself,
-subdues his own passions, and thereby lets his enemy know,
-that he has a due sense of the divine command relating thereunto,
-and that his spirit is sanctified and calmed by the power
-of divine grace. This is reckoned one of the greatest victories;
-as it is said, <i>He that is slow to anger is better than the
-mighty; and he that ruleth his spirit, than he that taketh a
-city</i>, Prov. xvi. 32.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, As for our honour, which is pretended to be concerned
-herein, they who allege it, are very much mistaken in their
-sentiments about true honour; since it is said, <i>The discretion
-of a man deferreth his anger, and it is his glory to pass over his
-transgression</i>, chap. xix. 11.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, This does not, in the least, argue, that the person who
-forgives, approves of his crime, who has done him the injury,
-since this is not inconsistent with our charging it on his conscience,
-and endeavouring to bring him under a sense of guilt,
-as having not only injured us, but done that which is highly
-displeasing to God; and he may be given to understand, that
-hereby he has wronged his own soul more than us, and therefore
-has great reason to be humbled before God, and repent of
-his sin committed against us, which, as it is committed against
-God, he only can forgive; though we let him know, that we
-are disposed to forgive him, so far as the crime is directed
-against us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, As to the pretence, that forgiving injuries will make
-those who have done them grow bold, and be more hardened
-in their crimes; and that they will hereby take occasion to insult,
-and do the like injuries for the future: It may be replied,
-that this very seldom happens; but if it should, we must
-consider that the ungrateful abuse of a kind and generous action,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_429'>429</span>or the possibility of this consequence ensuing thereupon,
-is no sufficient excuse for our not performing it. But if there
-be the least ingenuity of temper, or if it pleases God, by his
-grace, to succeed our kind behaviour toward them for their
-good, it will have a far different effect; as it is observed, <i>A soft
-answer turneth away wrath, but grievous words stir up anger</i>,
-Prov. chap. xv. 1. Thus concerning the obligation we are under to
-forgive the injuries that are committed against us: We are
-now to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Thirdly</i>, How this is an evidence, or may afford us ground
-of hope, that we shall obtain forgiveness from God, when we
-are praying for it. Here let it be observed, that forgiving
-injuries, may be considered barely as a virtue, proceeding from
-a goodness of temper, or the sense that persons have of the
-equity and reasonableness thereof, and from other motives
-which the light of nature may suggest, or, as it is recommended
-by Seneca, Epictetus, and other heathen moralists:
-And, indeed, it must be reckoned a very commendable quality,
-and a convincing evidence that a person is, in a great degree,
-master of his own passions; but we cannot from hence
-conclude, that such an one is in a state of grace; and nothing
-short of that can be evidence of our right to forgiveness:
-Therefore we must consider this disposition to forgive injuries,
-as a Christian virtue, or as containing in it some ingredients,
-that manifest it to be a grace wrought in us by the Spirit,
-and a branch of sanctification, and, as such, having several
-other graces connected with; and accordingly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. When our forgiving injuries is an evidence of our having
-obtained forgiveness, we must do it out of a humble sense of
-the many crimes that we have committed against God; and
-therefore it is joined with, and flows from the grace of repentance.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. It also contains in it several acts of faith; as hereby we
-do, in effect, acknowledge, that all we have is in God’s hand,
-who has a right to take it away when he pleases; and if he
-suffers us to be deprived of our reputation and usefulness in
-the world, or our wealth and outward estate therein, by the
-injurious treatment we meet with from those, who, without
-cause are our enemies; we are sensible that this could not be
-done without his permissive providence, which we entirely acquiesce
-in. The injury or injustice we wholly lay to the
-charge of those who hate us, nevertheless, in obedience to our
-Saviour’s command, we desire to express our love to them, in
-the most valuable instances thereof, and, at the same time, to
-acknowledge and bow down to the sovereignty and justice of
-God, in suffering us to be thus dealt with by men, hoping and
-trusting that he will over-rule this, and all other afflictive providences
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_430'>430</span>for our good; as David says, when he speaks of
-God’s suffering Shimei to curse him: <i>It may be, that the Lord
-will look on mine affliction, and that the Lord will requite me
-good for his cursing this day</i>, 2 Sam. xvi. 12.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. When we forgive those that have injured us, it is, with
-an earnest desire that God would give them repentance, that
-thereby his name may be glorified, and his interest promoted,
-whatever becomes of our name and usefulness in the world.—When
-we are enabled to exercise such a frame of spirit as
-this in forgiving those that have injured us, we have ground to
-hope, that when we pray for forgiveness, the great God, who
-is the author of all that grace which we exercise in forgiving
-others, will grant us this invaluable privilege.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Having explained this petition, we shall now consider it as
-a directory, that so we may put up our requests to God, agreeable
-thereunto: Accordingly we are to cast ourselves before
-his footstool, with humble confession of sin, and imploring forgiveness
-from him, to this purpose: “We adore thee, O Lord,
-as a God of purer eyes than to behold iniquity. Thou hast
-commanded us to keep thy precepts, and hast revealed thy
-wrath from heaven against all ungodliness, and unrighteousness
-of men: We acknowledge that we are, by our transgressions,
-become debtors to thy justice; our iniquities are
-increased over our head, and our trespasses grown up unto
-the heavens; and thereby we have deserved to be banished
-out of thy sight, and cast into the prison of hell, without hope
-of being released from thence. We are not able to stand in
-judgment, and therefore we dread the thoughts of appearing
-before thine awful tribunal, as an absolute God. If thou
-shouldest contend with us, we cannot answer for the least sin
-that we have committed; and it would be an injury to thy
-justice, and an increasing of our guilt, to expect or desire,
-that thou shouldest pardon our sins without receiving satisfaction
-for them, which we are sensible that we are not, nor
-ever shall be able to give thee. But we bless thy name, that
-thou hast sent thy well-beloved Son into the world, who gave
-his life a ransom for thy people; by which means thy justice
-is satisfied, thy law fulfilled, and all thy perfections infinitely
-glorified: He hath finished transgression, made an end of
-sin, made reconciliation for iniquity, and brought in everlasting
-righteousness; which is to and upon all them that
-believe. Thou hast therefore given us leave, and encouraged
-us to come to thee by faith, to plead with thee for redemption
-and forgiveness through his blood, according to the
-riches of thy grace. In him thou art a God, pardoning the
-iniquity, and passing by the transgressions of the remnant of
-thine heritage: Therefore we pray for this invaluable privilege
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_431'>431</span>as those who humbly hope and trust that we have those
-graces wrought in us, which are an evidence of our having
-Christ’s righteousness imputed to us, for which we bless
-thee; and, in particular, that thou hast enabled us to forgive
-all the injuries that are done us by our fellow creatures;
-which are very small and inconsiderable, if compared with
-those affronts which we daily offer to thy Majesty. We beseech
-thee, grant that this, and all other graces, may more
-and more abound in us, that thereby our evidences of an
-interest in Christ’s righteousness may be more strong and
-clear; that though we daily contract guilt by our transgressions,
-we may be enabled to conclude for our comfort, that
-there is no condemnation to us, and that iniquity shall not
-be our ruin.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CXCV.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXCV.</span> <i>What do we pray for in the sixth petition?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> In the sixth petition, [which is, <i>And lead us not into
-temptation, but deliver us from evil</i>,] acknowledging that the
-most wise, righteous, and gracious God, for divers holy and
-just ends, may so order things, that we may be assaulted,
-foiled, and for a time, led captive by temptations, that Satan,
-the world, and the flesh, are ready, powerfully to draw
-us aside and ensnare us; and that we, even after the pardon
-of our sins, by reason of our corruption, weakness, and want
-of watchfulness, are not only subject to be tempted, and
-forward to expose ourselves unto temptations; but also, of
-ourselves, unable and unwilling to resist them, to recover
-out of them, and to improve them, and worthy to be left
-under the power of them; we pray, that God would so overrule
-the world, and all in it; subdue the flesh, and restrain
-Satan; order all things, bestow and bless all means of grace,
-and quicken us to watchfulness in the use of them, that we,
-and all his people may, by his providence, be kept from
-being tempted to sin; or, if tempted, that, by his Spirit, we
-may be powerfully supported and enabled to stand in the
-hour of temptation, or, when fallen, raised again and recovered
-out of it, and have a sanctified use and improvement
-thereof; that our sanctification and salvation may be perfected,
-Satan trodden under our feet, and we fully freed from
-sin, temptation, and all evil for ever.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>Our Saviour having, in the foregoing petition, exhorted
-us to pray for forgiveness of sins, whereby the guilt of
-past crimes may be removed; in this he advises us to pray
-against temptation, lest being overcome thereby, we should
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_432'>432</span>contract fresh guilt, and walk unbecoming those who hope for,
-or have obtained forgiveness from God. In order to our understanding
-of which it will be necessary for us to premise
-something tending to explain the meaning of the word <i>Temptation</i>.
-Accordingly it may be taken in a good sense: Thus God
-himself is sometimes said to <i>tempt</i>, or rather, which is all one,
-to <i>try</i> his people. This he does by the various dispensations
-of his providence, whether prosperous or adverse. And sometimes
-by his commands, when he puts us upon the performance
-of difficult duties, that he might prove us, whether his fear is
-before us: In this respect he is said to have tempted Abraham,
-proved his faith, and discovered his readiness to obey his command
-in offering Isaac; and, after he had tried his faith, he
-commends him, when he says, <i>Now I know that thou lovest
-God</i>, Gen. xxii. 1, 12. And sometimes he is said to tempt, or
-<i>allure</i>, to what is good, Hos. ii. 14. to invite his people to do
-those things which redound to his glory and their real interest;
-and in this sense we may and ought to tempt others, to persuade,
-and, as much as in us lies, engage their affections to the
-performance of what is good: Thus the apostle advises us to
-<i>consider one another to provoke unto love and to good works</i>,
-Heb. x. 24.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We are not to understand the word <i>temptation</i> in these
-senses in this petition; but it is to be taken for our being
-tempted to sin, in which respect God never tempts any one:
-Thus the apostle says, <i>Let no man say, when he is tempted, I
-am tempted of God; for God cannot be tempted with evil; neither
-tempteth he any man</i>, James i. 13. neither ought we to tempt
-one another thereunto. This being premised, we come more
-immediately to explain this petition: In which we shall consider
-some things which are supposed; and also the subject-matter
-thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I. There are several things supposed, when we are taught
-to pray, <i>Lead us not into temptation</i>. As,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That man, in this imperfect state, is very much exposed
-to temptations. The world is always ready to present its alluring
-objects, which are suited to the corruption of our nature,
-and therefore too easily complied with: And this is farther
-promoted by Satan’s suggestions, who is daily endeavouring
-to entangle us in the snare that is laid for us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. As we are daily tempted to sin, so we are in great danger
-of being overcome thereby; which arises not only from the
-methods used to draw us aside from God, and the many secret
-snares laid for us, that are not easily discerned, but principally
-from the treachery of our own hearts, which are deceitful
-above all things, and very apt to incline us to commit those
-sins which bring a great deal of guilt with them. It also proceeds
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_433'>433</span>sometimes from a want of watchfulness; whereby the
-enemy comes upon us undiscovered, and we are overcome before
-we are aware of it; the temptation offers itself, and we are
-unable, but willing, to resist it. And, if fallen by it, this
-tends still more to weaken us, so that we cannot recover ourselves
-from the pit into which we are plunged; we also find it
-very difficult, if God is pleased, at any time, to suffer us to fall
-by temptations, to improve them aright to his glory and our
-own good.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. It is farther supposed, that God may suffer his people,
-though their sins are pardoned, and their souls sanctified, to
-be tempted, and sometimes even foiled and led captive for a
-time; which may give us occasion to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) In what sense he may be said to tempt, or lead his
-people into temptation. This he does, though without being
-the author of sin,<a id='r123' /><a href='#f123' class='c012'><sup>[123]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_434'>434</span>[1.] Objectively; when his providential dispensations, which,
-in themselves, are holy, just, and good, offer occasions of sin;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_435'>435</span>which, nevertheless, would not ensue hereupon, did not our
-corrupt nature lay hold on them as such, and abuse them:
-Thus all God’s works of providence or grace, may prove
-temptations to men; as the Psalmist, speaking of the <i>prosperity
-of the wicked</i>, intimates, that it raised his envy, Psal. lxxiii. 3.
-and elsewhere he considers the blessings of common providence
-as proving a temptation, to carnal security and indifferency
-in religion, to some of whom it is said, <i>Because they have
-no changes, therefore they fear not God</i>, Psal. lv. 19. and, on
-the other hand, afflictive providence sometimes prove temptations
-to us to murmur and entertain hard thoughts of God.—Moreover,
-his threatenings are oftentimes abused, and some
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_436'>436</span>thereby tempted to think him severe and unmerciful; others
-complain of his commandments as grievous, because he does
-not give them those indulgencies to sin which their corrupt
-natures desire. In these respects God may be said to lead into
-temptation; nevertheless, we are not to pray, that he would
-alter the methods of his providence, or make abatements as to
-the duties which he commands us to perform; but rather, that
-he would not suffer us to make a wrong use of them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] God leads into temptation permissively, when he does
-not restrain the tempter, which he is not obliged to do, but
-suffers us to be assaulted by him, and, at the same time, denies
-the aids and assistance of his grace, to prevent our compliance
-therewith; so that when we pray that he would <i>not lead us into
-temptation</i>, we desire that he would prevent the assault, or
-fortify us against it, that, through the weakness of our grace,
-or the prevalency of corruption, we may not comply with the
-temptation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We shall now consider the reason why God thus leads
-his people into temptation, or suffers them to be tempted: or
-what are those holy, wise, just, and gracious ends, which he
-designs thereby; and,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] It cannot be expected that it should be otherwise, when
-we chuse to go in the way of temptation, or indulge those
-corruptions, whereby we are inclined to yield to it: In this
-case, God’s judicial hand appears, as he punishes for one sin,
-by suffering us to be tempted to another.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] God hereby gives us occasion to see our own weakness,
-and the deceitfulness of our hearts, and the need we have of
-his grace, to prevent our falling by temptation: Thus it is said,
-that God <i>left Hezekiah</i>, 2 Chron. xxxii. 31. compared with
-2 Kings xx. 15. when he sinned in shewing the ambassadors
-of the king of Babylon the treasures that he had in his house,
-in which this good king discovered too much pride; whereas
-it had been better had he shewn them the bed he lay on, when
-he was nigh unto death, and taken occasion from thence, to
-give God the glory of his miraculous recovery which was the
-reason of their being sent to compliment him upon it: In this
-respect <i>God left him to try him, that he might know all that was
-in his heart</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] God does this, that, when we experience the superior
-force of our spiritual enemies, we may, by faith and prayer,
-have recourse to his almighty power and grace. Thus when
-the apostle Paul was in danger of being <i>exalted above measure</i>,
-through Satan’s temptations, he says, <i>For this I besought the
-Lord thrice, that it might depart from me</i>, 2 Cor. xii. 8.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[4.] He suffers this, that we may herein have an instance of
-the imperfections of this present state, and be induced to press
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_437'>437</span>after, and long for, that state of perfect freedom, not only from
-sin, but temptation, which is reserved for us in heaven.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[5.] We are led into temptation, that hereby we may see
-the necessity of making use of the whole armour of God, that
-we may be able to stand our ground. As the soldier will not
-put on his armour but when he is going to engage the enemy;
-so God has ordained that our life should be a perpetual warfare,
-and that we should be continually exposed to the assaults
-of our spiritual enemies, that we may always be prepared for
-them, having <i>the girdle of truth, the breast-plate of righteousness,
-the shield of faith, the helmet of salvation, and the sword
-of the Spirit, which is the word of God</i>, Eph. vi. 14-17. He
-also suffers this, that we may, in the end, know what it is to
-conquer, and have the pleasure and satisfaction arising from
-hence, and that he may have the glory of this victory.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[6.] God suffers this, that he may cure our sloth, and excite
-us to greater watchfulness, as those who are never wholly out
-of danger: Thus the apostle says, <i>Be sober, be vigilant; because
-your adversary, the Devil, as a roaring lion, walketh
-about, seeking whom he may devour</i>, 1 Pet. v. 8. and our Saviour
-advises his disciples, to <i>watch and pray, that they enter
-not into temptation</i>, Matt. xxvi. 41.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[7.] God suffers us to be tempted, that we may know the
-depths of Satan, which we should otherwise be unapprized of;
-and that thereby we may be more prepared to make resistance,
-and, when we are enabled to overcome, may be better furnished
-to direct others, who are liable to like temptations, how they
-should behave themselves under them, and to encourage them
-to hope that they should be delivered, as we have been.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. It is farther observed, that though God suffers his people
-to be tempted, and even foiled, and led captive, yet this is only
-for a time. In this the temptations of believers differ from
-those of the unregenerate, who are <i>taken captive by Satan at
-his will</i>, 2 Tim. ii. 26. Whereas it is said concerning the believer,
-that it is only <i>for a season</i>; and that, <i>if need be, he is in
-heaviness through manifold temptations</i>, 1 Tim. i. 6. This leads
-us to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. The subject-matter of the petition, when we pray that
-God would <i>not lead us into temptation, but deliver us from evil</i>.
-The only difficulty in laying down the method in which this
-is to be insisted on, arises from the indeterminateness of the
-word <i>evil</i>; of which, there are various senses given by them,
-that explain the Lord’s prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Some understand by it, the evil one, or the Devil; and then
-one part of this petition may be considered as exegetical of
-the other: So that, not to be led into temptation, is the same
-as, to be delivered from the assaults of Satan, the evil one, that
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_438'>438</span>we may not be brought under his power, or become vassals to
-him, as complying with his temptations.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Others understand the word in a more large sense, as an intimation
-of our desire to be delivered from evil of all kinds,
-and that either from the evil of sin, or the evil of afflictions,
-which are the consequence of sin. If we take it for a deliverance
-from the evil of sin; this respects the guilt thereof,
-and the punishment that is due to it; and then it differs little
-or nothing from the subject-matter of the foregoing petition,
-when we pray, that God would <i>forgive us our sins</i>; or if, on
-the other hand, we take it for deliverance from the evil of sin,
-as it includes in it a branch of sanctification, that is, from the
-dominion and slavery of sin, then it is well connected with the
-former petition; for when we pray for pardon of sin, we ought
-also to pray for deliverance from the reigning power thereof.
-And it is very well connected with our praying against temptation;
-for it is, in effect, to desire either that we may not be
-assaulted by the tempter, or that we may not be drawn aside
-to sin against God thereby.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As for the evil of affliction, I cannot think that this is intended
-by this expression, because the opposition between it
-and our deliverance from temptation, would not appear to be
-so just as we must suppose it is, unless we take temptation itself
-to be an affliction; and then it is the same as though we
-should say, deliver us from temptation, that we may not be
-afflicted therewith; which we must be supposed to be, by reason
-of the danger we are in of falling thereby.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>By passing by these critical remarks on the sense of the
-words, <i>Deliver us from evil</i>, we shall consider the subject-matter
-of this petition, under two general heads, <i>viz.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>First</i>, We shall enquire what are the temptations which we
-are exposed to.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Secondly</i>, How we are to pray that we may not be led into
-them; or, if we are, how we may be delivered from the evil
-consequences that will arise from our compliance with them,
-which is principally implied in those words, <i>Deliver us from
-evil</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>First</i>, What are those temptations which we are exposed to:
-These are of various kinds, all which take their rise either
-from the world, the flesh, or the Devil. Their manner of acting,
-indeed, is different; yet they are very often united in their
-assaults, from whence we are in perpetual danger of being
-overcome, if God, by his grace, is not pleased to interpose.—And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. We shall consider the temptations that we meet with
-from the world. These are either such as arise from the solicitations
-of those whom we converse with therein, who, under
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_439'>439</span>a pretence of friendship, persuade us to sin: Thus we read of
-some who <i>entice others to lay wait for blood</i>, and desire those
-whom they would ensnare into this crime, to <i>cast in their lot
-among them</i>, Prov. i. 10-14. but we are advised, not to consent
-to, or be confederate with them: Or else they arise from
-those things in the world which present themselves to us, and
-are temptations to sin, in an objective way, being not so much
-the cause as the occasion thereof; and, in many instances, the
-use thereof is lawful, while the abuse alone proves hurtful to
-us: This is what we shall principally confine ourselves to at
-present, and shew how the good and evil things of the world,
-or the various conditions in which we are, whether prosperous
-or adverse, prove temptations to us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) The good things of the world, or the various conditions
-in which we are, whether prosperous or adverse, prove temptations
-to us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) The good things of the world are sometimes a snare to
-us, or an occasion of sin, <i>viz.</i> the riches, honours and pleasures
-thereof: Thus our Saviour speaks, Matt. xiii. 22. of the <i>care
-of this world</i>, that is, either to gain or increase of it; and the
-apostle speaks of some who had <i>forsaken the right way, following
-the way of Balaam, who loved the wages of unrighteousness</i>,
-2 Pet. ii. 15. or acted contrary to his conscience for
-gain; and Felix perverted justice to obtain a bribe, concerning
-whom it is said, <i>He hoped that money should have been given
-him of Paul, that he might loose him</i>, Acts xxiv. 16. And we
-read of others that <i>will be rich</i>, that is, who immoderately pursue
-the gain of the world, that hereby <i>fall into temptation, and
-a snare, and many hurtful lusts</i>, 1 Tim. vi. 9. And the honours
-of the world are a temptation to others; Thus our Saviour says,
-<i>How can ye believe, which receive honour one of another</i>, John
-v. 44. And others are ensnared by the pleasures of the world,
-who are stiled <i>lovers of pleasures more than lovers of God</i>, 2 Tim.
-iii. 4.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, indeed, we often find, that the necessary duties or
-enjoyments of life, such as eating, drinking, and recreation;
-and the various relations we stand in to others prove a temptation
-to us. Many things are so, as they are used unseasonably,
-immoderately, and without a due regard to the glory of
-God, which ought to be our highest end in all worldly enjoyments;
-and, indeed, whatever has a tendency to draw forth
-our corruption, may be said to be a temptation to us: Sometimes
-the prosperous condition of others has this effect upon
-us: Thus Cain, beholding Abel to have a more visible token
-of the divine regard to his person and offering than he had,
-hated and <i>slew him</i>, Gen. iv. 5, 9. And Joseph’s being a favourite
-in his father’s house, and honoured by God, in having
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_440'>440</span>divine dreams, gave occasion to his brethren to envy him;
-who first designed to slay him, and afterwards, out of malice,
-sold him into Egypt. And when Joshua saw Eldad and Medad
-prophesying, supposing that this belonged only to Moses;
-and that it was a lessening of his honour, for them to pretend
-to this privilege, he desires that they might be <i>forbid</i>; but this
-was plainly a temptation; for Moses gives him a check, intimating
-that he did not well in <i>envying</i> them <i>for his sake</i>,
-Numb. xi. 29.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, we often find, that our own condition in the
-world, when we enjoy the outward blessings of providence,
-proves a temptation: Some are like the vessel that is in danger
-of being overset by having too much sail, and no ballast to
-keep it steady: In like manner, the abundance of this world,
-without the grace of God, to sanctify and set bounds to our
-affections, will oftentimes prove a snare to us. Some are hereby
-tempted to covetousness, than which, nothing is more preposterous;
-yet nothing more common. This seems to be supposed
-in the Psalmist’s advice; <i>If riches increase, set not your
-heart upon them</i>, Psal. lxii. 10. and it is an intimation, that
-our desires often increase with our substance, so that the more
-we have, the more we want, and are less disposed to contribute
-to the necessities of others: We have an instance of this
-in Nabal, whose answer to the obliging message, sent by David
-to him, <i>Say ye to him that liveth in prosperity, Peace be both
-to thee, and peace be to thine house, and peace be unto all that
-thou hast. Give, I pray thee, whatsoever cometh to thine hand,
-unto thy servants, and to thy son David</i>, 1 Sam. xxv. 6, 8, 11.
-argued him to be of a churlish disposition, and that his prosperous
-circumstances in the world were a temptation to his
-corruptions, having no sense of gratitude for those favours
-that he had received from him and his men, while they resided
-in the wilderness, and were conversant with those that kept
-his flocks there. It would have been a more plausible excuse,
-had he alleged the danger that might accrue to him thereby:
-or, that it was possible that Saul might hear of it, and deal with
-him as he had done with Abimelech, and the other priests, at
-Nob, for that small respect that he had shewed him: But this
-be takes no notice of, but treats him morosely, when he says
-<i>Shall I take my bread and my water, and my flesh, that I have
-killed for my shearers, and give it unto men, whom I know not
-whence they be</i>. This manifested him to be a <i>man of Belial</i>, as
-Abigail confesses, when she says, <i>Nabal is his name, and folly
-is with him</i>, ver. 25.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, we sometimes find, that a prosperous condition in
-the world, is a temptation to God’s people to presumption and
-carnal security; as the Psalmist says, <i>In my prosperity I said,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_441'>441</span>I shall never be moved</i>, Psal. xxx. 6. and the wicked are hereby
-tempted to obstinacy and disobedience; as God says by
-the prophet, to the Israelites, <i>I spake unto thee in thy prosperity;
-but thou saidst, I will not hear; This hath been thy manner
-from thy youth, that thou obeyedst not my voice</i>, Jer. xxii.
-21. And sometimes to pride, haughtiness, and oppression;
-thus the Psalmist speaks of those who were <i>not in trouble, neither
-plagued like other men; therefore pride compasseth them
-about as a chain, violence covereth them as a garment</i>, Psal.
-lxxiii. 5, 6. We are not, indeed, to suppose, that this is the
-necessary result of a prosperous state in the world, since that
-temptation, which is only objective, may be fenced against:
-But the pernicious tendency thereof arises from the depravity
-of our nature, and its proneness to abuse the blessings of providence;
-from whence some take occasion to cast off fear, and
-put the evil day far from them: Therefore, when we pray,
-that the world may not prove a temptation to us, we desire,
-that God would keep us from using any indirect means, either
-to get or increase our worldly substance, but, on the other
-hand, enable us to improve it to his glory; and that our affections
-may not be so much set upon it as to alienate them from
-him; but that we may make it the matter of our deliberate
-choice, rather to be deprived of outward blessings, than receive
-them as our only portion, and, by having our hearts set
-too much upon them, forfeit, and be denied an interest in, his
-special and distinguishing love.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) The evil things in the world often prove a temptation
-to us. By <i>evil things</i>, we mean afflictive providences, which
-are inseparable from this present state; since <i>man is born unto
-trouble, as the sparks fly upwards</i>, Job v. 7. These are either
-personal or relative; some more immediately from God, others
-from men, as instruments in his hand: Some arise from the
-present experience we have of affliction, others from our expectation
-or fear of future troubles: and all these sometimes
-prove temptations to us, unless God is pleased to interpose in
-a way of preventing grace, and make them conducive to our
-spiritual advantage. Now afflictions prove temptations to us,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] When we are discontented and uneasy under the hand
-of God, complaining of the burdens that he is pleased to lay
-on us, as though they were insupportable, and it were impossible
-for us to bear up under them; or, when we are ready to
-conclude, that no affliction is like ours, and are apt to insinuate,
-that God hereby deals hardly with us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] When they disturb or disorder our thoughts, weaken
-our faith, and unfit us for spiritual meditations, or attending
-aright on ordinances of God; or when we are more concerned,
-about our afflictions, than about sin, the cause of them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_442'>442</span>[3.] When we have unbelieving apprehensions concerning
-the event thereof, concluding that they will certainly end in
-our ruin; notwithstanding the promises, which God has made
-of their working together for good, to them that love him.—This
-temptation David was exposed to, when he said, <i>I shall
-now perish one day by the hand of Saul</i>, 1 Sam. xxvii. 1. which
-was an ungrounded fear, especially considering the promises
-that God had given him, and the many experiences he had of
-his being a help to him in the time of trouble.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[4.] Afflictions are temptations to us, when we take occasion
-from them to question God’s fatherly love, or to conclude, that
-they are sent in wrath, and are intimations that we are cast off
-by him, when we have no reason to think so from any thing
-that there is in the nature of affliction itself; also when we are
-hindered thereby, from applying those suitable promises which
-God has made to his people, in like cases, for their comfort
-and support.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Now when we pray that God would <i>not lead us into temptation</i>,
-as afflictive providences expose us to it, we are to pray
-against them with submission to the divine will, not as though
-the removal thereof were of equal importance, or as necessary
-to our happiness, as the taking away the guilt or power of sin:
-However, we are to pray, that afflictions may be sanctified to
-us; and that corrupt nature may not take occasion from them,
-to have unbecoming thoughts of God; but that we may hereby
-be led nearer to him, that so they may not prove a temptation
-to us, or at least, that with the temptation, he would make a
-way for our escape.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. Another sort of temptations proceed from the flesh,
-which are the greatest and most dangerous of all. The apostle
-speaks of them as though they were the only temptations, when
-he says, <i>Every man is tempted when he is drawn aside of his
-own lust, and enticed</i>, James i. 14. since all others might, without
-much difficulty, be resisted and overcome, were there not
-a corrupt disposition in our nature, which the apostle calls
-<i>lust</i>, that inclines us to adhere to, and comply with them. This
-consists in the irregularity and disorder of our passions; which
-are not only prone to rebel against God, but to act contrary
-to the dictates of our own consciences, which is the result of
-our fallen state; and the temptations are oftentimes various,
-according to the prevailing bias of our natural temper. A
-melancholy constitution sometimes inclines us to slavish fears,
-or distrust of God’s providence; or to have such black and
-dismal apprehensions of our spiritual concerns, that we are led
-to the very brink of despair. A choleric temper prompts us
-to revenge, injustice, and oppression, and puts us upon magnifying
-small offences, and expressing a furious resentment without
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_443'>443</span>ground. A sanguine and airy constitution often proves a
-temptation to cast off all serious thoughts about God and another
-world, and to count religion a needless, melancholy and
-distasteful thing, and to make a jest of what is sacred, and
-ought to be treated with the utmost reverence; and this temper
-frequently exposes persons to the pernicious influence of bad
-company, and induces them to be lovers of pleasure more than
-lovers of God. Again, a stupid, phlegmatic and heavy constitution,
-often proves a temptation to negligence in our civil and
-religious affairs, and not to make provision for a time of trial:
-Hereby persons are often tempted to neglect holy duties, especially
-such as are difficult; or to perform them in a careless
-manner, and so rest in a form of godliness, without the power
-thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This difference of natural tempers is the reason why we
-behold lust appearing in different shapes; so that the same
-temptation that presents itself from without, suits the natural
-disposition of one who eagerly embraces it, while another is
-not greatly moved by it. This is what we understand by those
-temptations which arise from the flesh; and, when we pray
-against them, it is not to be supposed, that we expect to be
-perfectly freed from them in this world, in which, as has been
-elsewhere observed<a id='r124' /><a href='#f124' class='c012'><sup>[124]</sup></a>, there are the remnants of sin abiding in
-every part, even in them that are sanctified, and the perpetual
-lustings of the flesh against the spirit. Therefore, when we
-pray against such-like temptations, we desire,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) That God would restrain and prevent the irregularity
-and pernicious tendency of our natural temper, which inclines
-us to those sins which it is most prone to; or that he would
-keep us from those sins that more easily beset us, by reason of
-the propensity of our nature to commit them. And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) That he would sanctify our affections and bring them
-under the powerful influence of a principle of grace, which may
-maintain a perpetual opposition to those habits of sin that are
-daily leading us to turn aside from God, so that, whatever
-temptations we meet with from objects without us, our souls
-may be internally fortified against them, and disposed to hate
-and avoid every thing that is contrary to his holy law, or tends
-to his dishonour.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We shall now consider those temptations that arise from
-Satan, who is, for this reason, called <i>the tempter</i>, Matt. iv. 3.
-1 Thess. vi. 3. and he is also said to <i>enter into</i>, Luke xxii. 3.
-and <i>fill the hearts</i> of sinners, Acts v. 3. As for the unregenerate,
-they are wholly under his power: Therefore conversion
-is called a <i>turning them from the power of Satan unto God</i>,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_444'>444</span>chap. xxvi. 18. There are, indeed, some who deny that Satan
-has any hand in those temptations, which we are exposed to;
-in which they are too much disposed to give into the error of
-the Sadducees of old. And if they do not expressly deny the
-existence of spirits, yet they will not allow that they have any
-thing to do in this world: And, indeed, they think it impossible
-for the Devil to give us any disturbance, seeing he is
-shut up in chains of darkness, reserved to the judgment of the
-great day; and, inasmuch as we often read in scripture, of
-those things that he does against men in this world, they suppose
-that all these are to be understood in a metaphorical
-sense, and that nothing else is intended thereby, but the temptations
-we meet with from men, or from our own lusts: These,
-according to them, are the only devils that we need to fear.—This
-error they are led into under a pretence of avoiding the
-contrary extreme of those who seem to lay all the sins they
-commit, to the Devil’s charge, rather than their own; when,
-probably, he has nothing to do with them, but they wholly
-proceed from their own corruptions: The middle way between
-these two extremes, is, as I conceive, much more consonant to
-scripture and experience, and rather to be acquiesced in. And
-therefore we shall endeavour to prove, that we are often
-tempted by Satan, as well as our own lusts; which will appear,
-if we consider the following propositions.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, It is not unreasonable to suppose, that spirits may so
-far have access to our souls, as <i>to suggest good or bad thoughts</i>;
-for, being reasonable creatures, it is beyond dispute, that they
-are able to converse with one another; and, if so, it contains
-no absurdity to suppose, that they may, some way or other,
-have conversation with the souls of men, which are capable of
-having things internally suggested to them, as well as receiving
-ideas from sensible objects, by means of our bodies, to which
-they are united. As to the manner <i>how this is done</i>, we pretend
-<i>not to determine it</i>, since it is sufficient to our present
-purpose, to make it appear that we are exposed to temptations
-from Satan, as well as our own selves.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, It is <i>obvious from scripture, that the Devil</i>, and his angels,
-are <i>conversant in this lower world</i>: And accordingly he
-is styled, <i>The prince of the power of the air</i>, Eph. ii. 2. <i>the
-god of this world</i>, 2 Cor. iv. 4. And elsewhere he is said, to
-<i>walk about, seeking whom he may devour</i>, 1 Pet. v. 8. And
-whereas it is objected, that this is inconsistent with his being
-shut up in hell: That may respect principally his state, as being
-unchangeably separated and banished from God’s favourable
-and comfortable presence; nevertheless, he may suffer him to
-attempt many things against men in this world, for the trial of
-the graces of his people, and the punishing of his enemies.—There
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_445'>445</span>is, indeed, a place of misery allotted for them, though
-they may not be, at present, confined to it; which seems to be
-implied in that request they made to our Saviour, that he
-would not command them to <i>go into the deep</i>, Luke viii. 31.
-by which, it is probable, the place of torment is intended, in
-which they expect to be for ever shut up after the day of judgment;
-and therefore they are represented elsewhere, as <i>crying
-out, Art thou came hither to torment us before the time?</i> Matt.
-viii. 29.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Our <i>first parent</i>, in innocency, <i>was tempted by the
-Devil</i>, who made use of the serpent, by which he is said to
-<i>speak to Eve</i>, Gen. iii. 1. <i>&amp; seq.</i> as has been proved elsewhere<a id='r125' /><a href='#f125' class='c012'><sup>[125]</sup></a>.
-And our Saviour was also tempted by him, when led
-by the Spirit into the wilderness for that purpose, Matt. iv. 1.
-but neither of these could be said to be tempted by the lusts
-of the flesh, as being inconsistent with that sinless state in which
-our first parents were before they fell, and our Saviour always
-was; and, it is certain, that the temptation offered to each of
-them, was not only objective; but there were words spoken,
-and a perverse method of reasoning made use of to ensnare
-them: And they could not be tempted by men, for, in this
-respect, they were alone; it therefore follows, that Satan was
-the tempter to each of them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, There are several other <i>scriptures</i> which expressly
-<i>prove, that Satan has sometimes tempted</i> persons to sin: Thus
-we read, that <i>he stood up against Israel, and provoked David to
-number them</i>, 1 Chron. xxi. 1. And elsewhere our Saviour
-tells the Jews, <i>Ye are of your father the Devil, and the lusts of
-your father ye will do</i>; that is, you eagerly commit those sins
-that he tempts you to. It is farther added, that he was <i>a murderer
-from the beginning</i>; which cannot be understood otherwise
-than of his murdering man, by tempting him to sin, and
-prevailing; and it is also said, that <i>he abode not the truth</i>,
-and is <i>a liar, and the father of it</i>, John viii. 44. that is, he deceives
-us by his suggestions, and prevails on us, when complying
-therewith, to deceive ourselves.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This may give us occasion to enquire, how we may distinguish
-those temptations which take their rise from Satan, from
-others which proceed from ourselves. This is a very difficult
-question to be resolved, because our <i>corrupt nature, for the
-most part, tempts us to the same sins that Satan does</i>; therefore,
-where there are <i>two causes of the same action</i>, it is <i>hard to distinguish</i>
-one from the other: As when two candles are set up
-in the same room, we cannot distinguish the light of one from
-the light of the other. It is true, if the sins that we are tempted
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_446'>446</span>to by our lusts, on the one hand, and by Satan on the other,
-had been described, as being of different kinds, we might more
-easily determine the difference that there is between them. Or
-if we had not the least inclination to comply with the temptation,
-and were able to say, as our Saviour did, <i>The prince of
-this world cometh, and hath nothing in me</i>, chap. xiv. 30. then
-we might easily know where to fasten the charge of guilt; and
-it would be no injustice to exculpate ourselves, and lay the
-blame wholly on the Devil: But it is far otherwise with us,
-by reason of the <i>corruption of our nature</i>, which <i>would render
-us prone to sin, though Satan did not tempt</i> us to it. Therefore,
-since we often contract guilt by complying with his temptations,
-in like manner as he does by offering them; it is necessary
-that something be said, that we may know when the
-temptation is to be laid at our own door, and when at Satan’s, so
-far as we are able to determine this matter: Therefore, let it
-be considered,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, <i>If we are tempted to those sins which we cannot
-think of but with the utmost abhorrence</i>; and we are so far from
-entertaining any pleasure in the thing that we are tempted to,
-that we take occasion from hence, to express the greatest aversion
-to it, and would not comply with it for ten thousand
-worlds; when we count the suggestion an invasion on our
-souls, an affliction grievous to be borne; and, instead of compliance
-therewith, are led hereby to the exercise of those
-graces that are opposite to it: In such-like cases I humbly
-conceive, we do not incur guilt by being tempted; but the sin
-is wholly to be charged to Satan. Nevertheless,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, When we are pleased with the temptation, but frequently
-meditate on the subject-matter thereof, and either
-commit the sin we are tempted to; or, if we abstain from the
-commission thereof, it is only out of fear or shame; and when
-the propensity of our nature leads us, at other times, to those
-sins which bear some resemblance to it; this argues, <i>that our
-own lusts, as well as Satan, are joint causes of those</i> sins that
-ensue hereupon. These things being considered, we shall proceed
-to speak more particularly concerning Satan’s temptations;
-and, in order thereunto, lay down some things, by way
-of premisal, which relate to this matter, and then consider the
-method he takes in managing them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. There are some things to be premised in general, concerning
-Satan’s temptations;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) That, though he may tempt to sin, yet he <i>cannot force
-the will</i>; for then the guilt would devolve wholly on himself
-and not on us. It would certainly render our condition very
-miserable, if it were impossible for us to resist his temptations;
-for this would be to suppose, that we lie at the mercy of him,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_447'>447</span>who has more power to destroy us than we have to withstand
-him. Besides this would be to extend the servitude of the will
-of man beyond its due bounds; for, though it be not free to
-what is spiritually or supernaturally good, we do not deny but
-that it is free, as it has a power to avoid many sins, which,
-upon this supposition, it would be inevitably hurried into. And
-it would be <i>a refection on the providence of God</i>, so far to <i>leave
-man</i> in the hands of Satan, as that hereby he should be laid
-<i>under a necessity of sinning</i> and perishing without the choice
-and consent of his own will, and consequently, his destruction
-could not be said to be of himself.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) Satan’s <i>power is not equal to his malice</i>; for he is under
-divine restraints, and, indeed, <i>can do nothing against believers,
-but by God’s permission</i>. This may be argued from our being
-obliged to desire that God would <i>keep us from being tempted</i>,
-that is, restrain the tempter, as well as enable us to resist him;
-and if it were otherwise, no one could be saved; for Satan’s
-malice is boundless, though he be not suffered to do what it
-prompts him to. And this is a very great blessing to God’s
-people; as it is a comfortable thing to consider, that they are
-in his hands, who is a merciful Father; and not in Satan’s
-power, who breathes forth nothing but revenge and cruelty:</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) As it is <i>not a sin to be tempted</i>, since our Saviour is
-said to have been <i>in all points tempted like as we are, yet without
-sin</i>, Heb. iv. 15. so on the other hand, <i>when we are pleased</i>,
-and comply with the temptation, it will be <i>no sufficient excuse</i>
-for us to allege, that <i>Satan had a great hand in it</i>, since, as we
-have before observed, he can only tempt, but not force the
-will; and how formidable soever he may be, by reason of the
-greatness of his power and malice; yet we have this expedient
-to make use of, as it should put us upon saying, the Lord rebuke
-thee Satan.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(5.) There is a <i>vast difference between</i> the condition of those
-who are <i>converted</i>, and others, who are in an <i>unregenerate</i> state,
-as to the event and consequence of Satan’s temptations. The
-former, indeed, by reason of the remainders of corruption in
-them, are <i>oftentimes foiled</i> and overcome thereby; but yet they
-shall <i>not be wholly destroyed</i>; but God will <i>find out a way for
-their recovery</i> out of the snare, in which they may, at any time,
-be entangled: Whereas the latter are wholly under his power,
-by <i>their own choice</i> and consent, and will remain so, till, by the
-grace of God they are delivered from the dominion of darkness,
-and translated into the kingdom of his dear Son. We
-shall now consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. The method in which Satan manages his temptations, in
-order to his inducing men to sin. Sometimes he endeavours to
-ensnare and deceive us <i>by his subtilty</i>: upon which account he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_448'>448</span>is called <i>that old serpent, which deceiveth the whole world</i>. Rev.
-xx. 2. and xii. 9. And elsewhere we read of <i>the depths of Satan</i>,
-chap. ii. 24. that is, his deep-laid designs, and of his <i>wiles</i>,
-Eph. vi. 11. which it is an hard matter to withstand; and he
-is sometimes said to be <i>transformed into an angel of light</i>,
-2 Cor. xi. 24. when he tempts to sin, under a pretence of our
-bringing glory to God, as well as good to ourselves and others.
-And there are other methods he takes, which, though managed
-with equal subtilty, yet he appears, <i>not as an angel of light</i>,
-pretending to help us in the way to heaven, but <i>as a roaring
-lion</i>, rendering himself formidable, and not concealing his design
-to devour, or make a prey of us, and to fill us with that
-distress of conscience, that brings us to the very brink of despair:
-These, as it is probable, the apostle intends by his <i>fiery
-darts</i>, as contra-distinguished from his <i>wiles</i>. In the former
-he shews himself a <i>tempter</i>, in the latter, an <i>accuser</i>. These
-are the usual methods which he takes in managing his temptations:
-and we shall consider them under four heads;</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. His endeavouring to produce and strengthen the habits
-of sin.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. What he does to prevent conviction of sin, or to hinder
-the efficacy thereof.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. His discouraging those who are under convictions from
-closing with Christ by faith. And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. His injecting blasphemous and atheistical thoughts into
-the minds of men, and using endeavours to drive them to despair.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Satan endeavours <i>to produce and strengthen the habits of
-sin</i>. These are generally attained by frequent acts, or by making
-a progress in sin, by which the heart is more hardened;
-and it is with greater difficulty that such are reclaimed from
-it; of them the prophet speaks, when he says, <i>Can the Ethiopian
-change his skin, or the leopard his spots; then may ye also
-do good, that are accustomed to do evil</i>, Jer. xiii. 23. And in
-order thereunto, we may observe that he does not usually
-tempt, at first, to the vilest and most notorious acts of sin,
-especially where he has ground to suspect that these temptations
-will not be readily entertained or adhered to; this is the
-case of those who retain some impressions of a religious education,
-or are, at present, under the influence of restraining
-grace: these are first tempted to commit lesser sins before they
-proceed to greater. He generally begins with tempting to sins
-of <i>omission</i>, or to <i>formality</i> and <i>indifferency</i> in the performing
-of religious duties, or by pretending that God gives us some
-indulgencies or allowance to commit those sins that our natural
-constitution most inclines us to, and that we have been
-mistaken, when we have thought that religion is so difficult a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_449'>449</span>matter as some have pretended it to be; and that we may
-safely follow a multitude, though it be in doing that, which is
-in itself sinful; and that we are not to take an estimate of religion,
-from the apprehensions which some melancholy persons
-entertain of it; and that strictness in religion, is being righteous
-overmuch; or striving against the stream, is a needless
-precaution; and therefore we may consult our own honour
-and reputation in the world, and give into that scheme of religion
-that is uppermost; and that denying ourselves, taking up
-the cross and following Christ; though it may be reckoned a
-safe, yet it is not the only way to heaven. By this means the
-habits of sin are strengthened, the heart hardened therein, and
-persons proceed from one degree of impiety to another, till at
-last, they abandon themselves to every thing that is vile and
-profligate, and run with others, in all excess of riot. And, that
-his design may be more effectually carried on, herein he suits
-his temptations to every age and condition of life. Here we
-shall consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) The method he takes with those who are in the prime
-and flower of their age: Accordingly these he endeavours to
-persuade, that it is <i>time enough for them to think of being religious
-hereafter</i>; and that it is too austere and melancholy a
-thing for them to pretend to it at present, as what is inconsistent
-with those pleasures and youthful lusts, which are agreeable
-to their age and condition of life. If they are children,
-then he suggests to them, that they have time enough before
-them; and when they are more advanced in years, they will
-have a greater degree of understanding, and be better able to
-take in the force of those arguments that are usually brought
-to induce persons to lead a religious life; and then they may
-make choice of it out of judgment. If they are servants, he
-persuades them, that they have other business on their hands,
-and that they had better stay till they are free from the engagements
-which they are, at present, under, to their masters; and,
-when they are at their own disposal, then it will be the fittest
-time for them to embrace the ways of God. This temptation
-carries in it the highest instance of presumption, tends greatly
-to harden the heart in sin, and has been the ruin of multitudes.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) When persons are come to years of maturity, being no
-longer children or servants, but about to engage in those secular
-employments, which they are called to in the world, then
-he has temptations of another nature to offer to them. He has
-hitherto kept possession of their hearts, and desired them only
-to wait for this age of life, and then they would have a more
-convenient season to lead a religious life; but this convenient
-season is not yet come; for there are other stratagems which
-he now makes use of, to keep them in subjection to him.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_450'>450</span>Youthful lusts are now grown to a greater height, and the impressions
-of a religious education, if they were favoured with
-it, almost worn out; and it is no difficult matter for him to
-persuade them, that the principal thing they are to be concerned
-about, is their living comfortably in the world; and, that
-they have now an opportunity to increase their substance, and
-make provision for their future happiness therein; therefore
-they ought to converse with those who are in the same station
-of life with themselves: And he generally points out such associates,
-which he tempts them to make choice of, that may
-be a snare to them, whose conversation is very remote from
-any thing that tends to promote religion and godliness. Sometimes
-he endeavours to make them ashamed of the ways of
-God, as though this were inconsistent with their reputation in
-the world, especially with their present situation or condition
-therein. And, on the other hand, if persons are poor and low
-in the world, and find it difficult to maintain themselves or
-families, then he persuades them that religion is not the business
-which they are called to engage in, but they must rather
-take pains to live; that God does not require more than he
-gives, or expect, that they should spend a great deal of time
-in religious duties, who have none to spare from that business,
-which is necessary for their getting a livelihood in the world;
-therefore this does not so much belong to them, as to others.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) If persons are arrived to old age, the last stage of life,
-and have, as it were, their latter end in view, as not being far
-from it, according to the course of nature; this is that age of
-life which was formerly pretended, by Satan, to be the most
-fit and proper season to entertain thoughts of religion in; and
-it was in expectation hereof, that, when they were formerly
-under any convictions, the general method they took to stifle
-them, was by resolving, that they would apply themselves to
-a religious life in old age. By this means the tempter has
-hitherto beguiled them; and now he has other temptations to
-present to them, which are suited to this age of life, whereby
-he insinuates, that the weakness and infirmities of old age render
-them unfit for religious duties. And, indeed, their hearts
-have contracted such a degree of hardness, by a long continuance
-in sin, that it is difficult for any thing to make an impression
-on them. However, Satan endeavours to persuade them,
-that, notwithstanding all the wickedness of their former life,
-and their present impenitency for it, they may hope for salvation
-from the mercy of God, though they continue still in a
-state of unregeneracy, which is an instance of soul-destructive
-presumption; or else, he tempts them utterly to despair of the
-mercy of God, and tells them, that it is too late for them to
-begin that work which they have put off to the extremity of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_451'>451</span>life; and by either of these methods he effectually brings about
-their ruin. Thus concerning Satan’s suiting his temptations
-to the several ages and conditions of life.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But besides this, we may observe, that there are some methods
-which he takes, that are agreeable to the temper and
-disposition of those whom he assaults, that so he may not
-shoot his arrows at random, without answering the end he designs
-thereby; in which his subtilty farther appears; as,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] He observes those proper times in tempting men to sin,
-wherein it is most likely that his temptations should take effect.
-Therefore his assaults are generally most violent, when they
-are least upon their guard, and give way to sloth and indolence;
-or when the Spirit of God withdraws his influences, as
-the consequence whereof, their faith is weak, and they not able
-to make great resistance against his temptations, he crowds in
-a great multitude of them at once, and so lays hold on this opportunity
-to improve the success which he has gained against
-them. And if they are afraid of the consequences of a compliance
-therewith, he endeavours to stupify their souls, that
-they may have no present apprehensions of the evil that would
-ensue hereupon.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] He often takes occasion to raise in our minds some
-doubts about the matter of sin or duty, whether, what he is
-about to tempt us to, be lawful or unlawful; or how far a person
-may venture to go in the way of temptation, and yet maintain
-his integrity? which is generally the first step towards the
-commission of those sins which we are tempted to.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] If shame or fear are like to hinder the success of the
-temptation, he undertakes to find out some method of secrecy,
-whereby public scandal may be avoided. Thus Joseph’s mistress
-tempted him to sin, when Potiphar was absent, and <i>there
-was none of the men of the house there within</i>, Gen. xxxix. 11.
-and therefore he had no occasion to fear that his crime would
-be detected. And sometimes he proceeds so far, as to insinuate,
-that they may even hide themselves from the all-seeing
-eye of God, and tempts them to say, <i>How doth God know?
-Can he judge through the dark cloud? Thick clouds are a covering
-to him, that he seeth not, and he walketh in the circuit of
-heaven</i>, Job xxii. 13, 14. Thus the prophet Isaiah denounces
-a woe against them that <i>seek deep to hide their counsel from the
-Lord, and their works are in the dark, and they say, Who seeth
-us? and who knoweth us</i>, Isa. xxix. 15. and this method seldom
-fails of answering his end, or prevailing against them,
-who are hereby induced to a sinful compliance with it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[4.] If conscience be awakened, and deters them from adhering
-to the temptation, from a sense of that guilt which they
-will contract thereby; Satan is sometimes content to take the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_452'>452</span>blame hereof upon himself, that they may think that they are
-to be excused, by reason of the violence of the temptation,
-which they could not well withstand.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[5.] Sometimes he persuades them to throw the blame on
-providence, as being the occasion of sin, or rendering it necessary
-or unavoidable from our condition or circumstances
-in the world, which is the highest injury that can be offered
-to the divine Majesty. Thus Adam tacitly reproaches God,
-when he says, <i>The woman, whom thou gavest to be with me,
-she gave me of the tree, and I did eat</i>, Gen. iii. 12.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[6.] He often tempts men to presume on the mercy of God,
-hoping that though they continue in sin, they shall obtain a
-pardon from him. Or, since this is not to be expected without
-sincere repentance, he tempts them to presume, that by the
-influence of the Holy Spirit, they shall have this grace hereafter,
-whereby their perishing in their iniquities may be prevented.
-Thus concerning the methods which Satan takes to
-produce and strengthen the habits of sin. We proceed,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. To consider how he endeavours to prevent our being
-brought under conviction of sin; or, if we are convinced thereof,
-to hinder its making any deep or lasting impression on us;
-and this he does various ways,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) By dissuading others, who ought to deal faithfully with
-us, from reproving sin committed by us. Thus Ezekiel, speaking
-concerning the false prophets, says, that they <i>strengthened
-the hands of the wicked, that he should not return from his
-wicked way, by promising him life</i>, Ezek. xiii. 22. Sometimes
-he improves the consideration of our circumstances in the
-world, to dissuade us from reproving sin in others, especially
-if they are our superiors, or those whom we are dependent on,
-or have some expectations from, lest we should make them
-our enemies, and thereby lose some advantages, which we
-hope to receive from them. And there are others whom he
-does not wholly dissuade from reproving of sin; but there are
-some circumstances attending the reproof, or the person that
-gives it, that he lays hold of, which hinders it from taking effect,
-whereby his end is no less answered than if sin had not
-been reproved at all. As,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] When we reprove those that are notorious offenders,
-and ought to be treated with a greater degree of sharpness,
-with too much lenity, as though it were only a sin of infirmity,
-by which means they are more hardened in the commission
-of it. This was Eli’s fault in dealing with his sons, when
-he said unto them, <i>Why do ye such things? for I hear of your
-evil dealings by all this people: Nay, my sons, for it is no good
-report that I hear; ye make the Lord’s people to transgress</i>, 1
-Sam. ii. 23, 24. Whereas, he ought to have restrained them
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_453'>453</span>by those acts of severity, which the nature of the crime demanded.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] Satan often prevents the reproof from taking effect, by
-inclining the reprover to use indecent behaviour in expressing
-the haughtiness of his temper, as though there were no respect
-due to superiors, as such, because they are worthy of reproof;
-or else by expressing a kind of hatred against the person that
-committed the sin; whereas, hatred ought to be principally directed
-against the crime itself, while we convince those whom
-we are reproving, that it is love to them, as well as zeal for the
-glory of God that moves us to do this.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] Satan often hinders reproofs from taking effect, either
-by tempting those who give them to commit the same sin, or,
-at least, by persuading those against whom they are directed,
-that there are other sins equally great, which they are chargeable
-with, and therefore they ought to look to themselves, rather
-than take notice of what is done by others.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) Satan hinders the work of conviction, by endeavouring
-to suppress the preaching of the word, or prevent the success
-thereof when preached. As to the preaching of the word, this
-is God’s ordinary way by which he convinces of sin; and Satan
-sometimes stirs up those that are under his power and influence
-to persecute or suppress the preaching of the gospel.
-Thus the apostles were <i>commanded</i> by the Jews, <i>not to speak at
-all, nor teach in the name of Jesus</i>, Acts iv. 18. and when they
-refused to obey this command, they <i>put them in prison</i>, chap.
-v. 18. This method has been taken, in all ages, by Satan’s instigation,
-with a design to hinder the spreading of Christ’s interest
-in this world, which, by the blessing of providence, has
-been, notwithstanding, continued unto this day. Therefore,
-there are other methods which he uses to hinder the success
-of the word. Sometimes he does this by perverting them that
-preach it; so that they endeavour to corrupt the word of God,
-whereby the minds of men are turned away from that simplicity
-that is in Christ; at other times he tempts them to be very
-sparing in reproving sin, or to do this in a more general way,
-as though their only design was to let their hearers know that
-there are some sinners in the world, and not that they should
-be brought under conviction of sin themselves. This is done
-sometimes in compliance with the corruptions of those whom
-they do not care to disoblige hereby; and others shun to declare
-some of the most important truths of the gospel, and affect
-such a method of preaching as has not a tendency to bring
-that real advantage to the souls of men, as when it is delivered
-with more zeal and faithfulness.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, Satan endeavours to hinder the success of the
-word, by stirring up the corruptions of those that attend upon
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_454'>454</span>it; for which reason he is represented, by our Saviour, in the
-parable of the <i>seed which fell by the way-side</i>, which the <i>fowls
-came and devoured</i>, as <i>catching away</i> the word, Matt. xiii. 4,
-19. By this means they are not much affected with it, nor endeavour
-to retain it in their memories; and, sometimes he injects
-vain thoughts under the word preached. This our Saviour
-compares, in the parable but now mentioned, to the <i>seed
-that fell among thorns</i>; and explains it of <i>the care of this world,
-and the deceitfulness of riches, choaking the word</i>, ver. 7, 22.
-And sometimes he endeavours to raise prejudices in the minds
-of men, against what is delivered; so that the plainness of expression,
-when addressed to the consciences of men, in such a
-way, as that it has a tendency to bring them under conviction,
-is contemned, and called a low, mean way of address, and disliked,
-because it is not delivered with that elegancy of style,
-or ingenious turn of thought, that is adapted rather to please
-the ear, than affect the hearts of those that hear it. By those
-methods Satan endeavours to hinder persons from being
-brought under conviction: But if their consciences are, notwithstanding
-this, awakened under the word, or, by some providences
-which God often makes use of for that end; then
-there are methods of another kind, which Satan uses, to prevent
-convictions from making any deep or lasting impression
-on them. As,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] By endeavouring to make the soul easy, from the consideration
-of the universal depravity of human nature; and accordingly
-he insinuates, that all have reason to accuse themselves
-of sins that would tend to their disquietude, if they
-made so narrow a search into their hearts as these do, or had
-such formidable thoughts of the consequences thereof as they
-have. Here he produces many examples of those who have
-been quiet and easy in their own minds, though they had as
-much ground to perplex and torment themselves with such-like
-melancholy thoughts as they have; yet they go on in a course
-of sin, without any checks of conscience, and, as Job speaks,
-<i>spend their days in wealth</i>, or, as it is in the margin, in mirth,
-<i>and in a moment go down to the grave</i>, Job vii. 22. being resolved
-to give way to nothing that shall disturb their peace,
-or render their lives uncomfortable.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] If this stratagem will not take effect, inasmuch as they
-are sensible, that while they remain in an unconverted state,
-they can have no solid foundation for peace, then he endeavours
-to persuade them, <i>that the work of conversion is over,
-and that conviction of sin, though destitute of faith, is true repentance</i>,
-or that a partial reformation, and abstaining from
-some gross and scandalous sins, or engaging in the external
-duties of religion, especially with some degree of raised affections
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_455'>455</span>therein, is a sufficient ground for them to conclude, that
-they are in a state of grace; and if they resolve to go on in
-this way, he puts them upon depending and relying on their
-own righteousness, and expecting to be justified thereby, without
-seeing a necessity of laying hold on what Christ has done
-and suffered, in order to the removing the guilt of sin; and,
-so long as they continue in this way, they shall meet with no
-disturbance from Satan, this not being the method which God
-has prescribed for our attaining justification, or that peace
-which flows from it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] He puts them <i>upon making vows and resolutions in their
-own strength</i>, that they will perform several religious duties
-with the greatest exactness, and abstain from those sins which
-he is sensible they will commit, if not prevented by the grace
-of God, that so, by too great confidence in their own strength,
-they may provoke him to leave them to themselves; and, as
-the consequence thereof, they soon break their resolutions, and
-bring themselves under greater perplexities than they were in
-before: And, then to make them easy, he endeavours to persuade
-them, that God does not require them to lead so strict
-a life as they seemed determined to do, but has allowed them
-some innocent liberties, as he calls them, in giving way to
-those sins which their condition in life renders necessary; and,
-as he had before tempted them to rely on their own strength,
-now he tempts them to carnal security, and a slothful, stupid
-frame of spirit, whereby they will be rendered more receptive
-of those temptations he has to offer, to turn them aside from
-that strictness in religion, which they before resolved to maintain.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[4.] Satan dazzles <i>their eyes with the glittering vanities of
-this world</i>, that he might divert their minds from serious
-thoughts about, or any concern for a better; and if their secular
-callings are attended with some incumbrances, through the
-multiplicity of business, or the constant care they are obliged to
-take to live in the world; then he alleges the inconsistency
-hereof, with their giving way to those convictions of sin which
-will be an hindrance to the necessary business of life. Thus
-concerning the method which Satan uses to prevent conviction
-of sin, or to hinder the efficacy thereof: But inasmuch
-as this does not always take effect; especially when convictions
-make a deep impression upon us. We proceed to
-consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. Those methods that are used by Satan, to hinder persons
-from closing with Christ, and believing in him. And this he
-does,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st</i>, By endeavouring to <i>keep them in ignorance</i> of the great
-doctrines of the gospel; and, as the consequence thereof, turning
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_456'>456</span>them aside to embrace those errors, which are inconsistent
-with faith in Christ; and in order thereto, he suggests, that it
-does not belong to them, to press after the knowledge of the
-sense of scripture, but to persons of learning, or those who are
-called to preach or defend the truth; and that it is enough for
-them to have some general notions of the doctrines of religion,
-whereby they may be induced to practise those moral virtues
-which their station in life engages them to, and to leave the
-more abstruse parts thereof, to those whose inclination leads
-them thereunto.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Moreover, he improves the different sentiments of men about
-the doctrines of the gospel, to answer this end, and infers from
-thence, that since one asserts one thing for truth, and another
-the contrary, that therefore there is nothing certain in religion;
-so that they are safest who keep clear of all these controverted
-matters; and among them he includes the doctrine of justification
-by faith in Christ. This method of temptation leads men
-to scepticism, and, if complied with, is inconsistent with faith
-in Christ; and the consequence hereof is, their imbibing those
-doctrines that tend to sap the very foundation of revealed religion.
-And if they pretend to adhere to any scheme of doctrine,
-it is generally such an one, as has a tendency to strike at
-the divinity and glory of Christ, the necessity of his satisfaction,
-or of our justification, by his imputed righteousness, or
-denying the divinity of the Holy Ghost, and the need we have
-of his powerful operations in the work of regeneration, conversion,
-and sanctification. These are the doctrines on which
-our faith is built; therefore, to deny them, is not only inconsistent
-with our closing with Christ, as being the result of the
-alienation of our minds from God; but it is agreeable to the
-working of Satan in the children of disobedience, whereby he
-answers his character, as a deceiver, as well as a tempter.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, Satan endeavours to hinder men from believing in
-Christ, by <i>persuading them to hope for salvation from the mercy
-of God</i>, without any regard to the display of this attribute in
-Christ, as our Mediator, or faith in him, without which we
-have no ground to conclude, that we shall obtain mercy from
-him: Or, since faith is necessary to salvation, he persuades
-them to take up with such a kind of faith as consists only in
-a general assent to some things contained in scripture, without
-the exercise of other graces that are inseparably connected
-with, and flow from it; and if they have no other notion of
-saving faith than this, it is no wonder that Satan, by his false
-reasoning, carries on the temptation yet farther, and persuades
-them, that this is in their own power, and that it is an easy
-matter to believe, which is a certain indication that they are
-destitute of saving faith. Thus we have considered Satan as
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_457'>457</span>endeavouring to strengthen the habits of sin, hinder the work
-of conviction, or prevent its taking effect; and using methods
-to keep those who are under convictions, from closing with
-Christ by faith. We now proceed to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. His injecting atheistical and blasphemous thoughts into
-the minds of men, and using his utmost endeavours to
-despair.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) He sometimes <i>injects atheistical and blasphemous
-thoughts into the minds of men</i>. His nature inclines him to
-hate and oppose God; and his malice breaks forth in tempting
-men to blaspheme his perfections: Thus some are represented
-as <i>opening their mouths in blasphemy against God, to blaspheme
-his name and his tabernacle, and them that dwell in heaven</i>, Rev.
-xiii. 6. which they do by the instigation of Satan: However,
-there is a vast difference between those blasphemous thoughts,
-which are injected into the minds of wicked men, and those
-which are oftentimes complained of by the believer. In the
-former, the Devil enstamps his own image upon them, and
-they are like a spark falling into combustible matter, which
-immediately sets it on fire: The latter is like a flash of fire that
-lights upon water, without doing any execution. We read of
-some who are entirely under his dominion, who <i>blaspheme the
-God of heaven, because of their pains and their sores, and repented
-not of their deeds</i>, chap. xvi. 11. But there are others
-into whom he injects such-like thoughts, which are a grief and
-burden to them. Some are tempted to deny the being or
-providence of God; and others to have unworthy and injurious
-thoughts of the divine perfections; which cannot be reckoned
-any other than blasphemy, and, so far as they proceed from,
-us, bring with them a very great degree of guilt. That believers
-themselves have been sometimes guilty hereof, appears
-from what the Psalmist utters in words, when he says, <i>Is his
-mercy clean gone for ever? Hath God forgotten to be gracious</i>,
-Psal. lxxvii. 8, 9. And, indeed, it is no uncommon thing for
-believers to complain of their having such injurious and unworthy
-thoughts of the divine perfections, that they dare not
-utter in words; which fills them with the greatest uneasiness;
-Therefore it is necessary for us to enquire, when these blasphemous
-suggestions take their rise from ourselves, and when
-from Satan?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It is certain, that sometimes they proceed from ourselves:
-Thus our Saviour says, <i>Out of the heart proceed blasphemies
-that defile a man</i>, Matt. xv. 19. and we have reason to charge
-ourselves therewith, when they arise from, or are accompanied
-with other presumptuous sins; or when we do not strive
-against, but rather give way to them, and other suggestions
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_458'>458</span>of Satan, which tends to God’s dishonour, grieves the Holy
-Spirit, and defiles our own consciences.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But, on the other hand, we may humbly hope and trust, that
-they are rather to be charged on Satan than ourselves, when
-they are the result of some bodily distemper, as in those that
-are under the prevailing power of melancholy, in whom it may
-be observed, that when by the use of natural means, the distemper
-is abated, and the constitution mended, these blasphemous
-suggestions cease. Moreover, when our souls tremble at
-the temptation, and oppose it with the utmost abhorrence, as
-our Saviour did, when the Devil tempted him to <i>fall down and
-worship him</i>; to whom he immediately replies, <i>Get thee hence,
-Satan</i>, chap. iv. 9, 10. Again, when we confess, and can appeal
-to the heart-searching God, that we are so far from having
-any inclination to comply with the suggestion, that nothing is
-more grievous to us, than to be assaulted with it: and especially
-when we take occasion from hence, to exercise that
-reverential fear of the divine Majesty, that is opposite thereunto.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) As Satan gives disturbance by blasphemous suggestions,
-so he uses endeavours to <i>drive persons to despair</i>. We
-observed, under a foregoing head, that so long as he can persuade
-any one to take up with a false peace, and fancy himself
-secure though going on in a course of rebellion against God,
-he gives him but little uneasiness, endeavouring rather to increase
-his stupidity, than awaken his fears. Before this, he attempted
-to bring ruin upon him, by suggesting those temptations
-that led to presumption, and pretended to him, that all
-things were well, when the ground was sinking under him,
-and his hope built on a sandy foundation: But, when the
-frame of his spirit is somewhat altered, and he is brought to a
-sense of his miserable condition; so that none of those stupifying
-medicines that have been used, will heal the wound;
-then Satan endeavours to persuade him, that his condition is
-hopeless, or that there is no help for him in God. This
-temptation believers, as well as the unregenerate, are sometimes
-liable to; of which, we have many instances in scripture,
-besides those that are matter of daily experience. But
-it may be observed, that there is this difference between the one
-and the other, in that we scarce ever read of a believer’s despair;
-but we have, at the same time, something added, which
-either argues his faith in God, or, that there was a mixture of
-hope, which was like a beam of light shining in darkness:
-Thus the Psalmist, in Psal. lxxxviii. expresses himself like one
-in the depths of despair; yet it may be observed, that he addresses
-himself to God, in ver. 1. as <i>the Lord God of his salvation</i>.
-And when the church is represented in Lam. iii. 18. as
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_459'>459</span>saying, <i>My hope is perished from the Lord</i>; it is considered afterwards
-as encouraging itself in him, as in ver. 24. <i>The Lord
-is my portion, saith my soul, therefore will I hope in him</i>; and,
-in ver. 31. <i>For the Lord will not cast off for ever</i>. But when
-unbelievers are tempted to despair, it is attended with an obstinate
-resolution to go on in a course of sin, and a total withdrawing
-themselves from the ordinances, or instituted means
-of grace. Thus when Cain complains that his <i>punishment was
-greater than he could bear</i>; it is said concerning him, that <i>he
-went out from the presence of the Lord</i>, Gen. iv. 13, 16. In
-this case despair, especially if it does not proceed from a bodily
-distemper, as it sometimes does, is a sad mark of a person’s
-being under the dominion of Satan, who was before a tempter,
-but now proves a tormentor to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Here we may take occasion to consider how Satan proceeds
-against men in tempting them to despair.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>1st.</i> He <i>takes the fittest opportunity</i>, when we are most like
-to be overcome by his temptation; <i>he observes our constitution
-when most addicted to melancholy</i>, and therefore more easily led
-to despair: He also takes notice of some circumstances of providence
-that we are brought under, which are more than ordinarily
-afflictive, and tend to deject and render us more receptive
-of this temptation, in which he endeavours to add weight
-to our burden, and depress our spirits under it: He also lays
-hold on those times, more especially <i>when we are under divine
-desertion</i>; and, as the consequence hereof, our faith is weak,
-and very much indisposed to seek help from God. Moreover,
-he often takes occasion, <i>from some great fall and miscarriage</i>
-which we have been guilty of, whereby we have grieved
-the Holy Spirit, and wounded our own consciences, to aggravate
-our crime, so far that from hence we may conclude our
-state to be altogether hopeless.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>2dly</i>, He endeavours <i>to stop all the springs of comfort</i>, that
-might fortify us against, or afford us any relief under this
-temptation; and accordingly he turns our thoughts from the
-promises of the covenant of grace, and persuades the soul to
-conclude that they are not made to himself; therefore he
-ought not to apply them to himself for his comfort; and to determine
-peremptorily against himself, that he is not elected to
-salvation; not from any marks of reprobation that he finds in
-himself, but by entering into God’s secret counsels, and pretending
-to search the records of heaven, which he has no warrant
-to look into, (in which respect despair contains in it a
-mixture of sinful presumption,) and, at the same time, he has
-a secret aversion to converse with those who are able to speak
-a word in season to him; and if any endeavours are used to
-convince him that the mercy of God is infinite, his thoughts
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_460'>460</span>are not as our thoughts, and that the merit of Christ extends
-itself to the chief of sinners, it is all to no purpose, for his general
-reply, to this and all other arguments of the like nature,
-is that this belongs not to him, or his iniquities have excluded
-him from the divine favour.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>3dly</i>, Satan endeavours to <i>hinder a soul at this time, from
-waiting on God in ordinances</i>. As for the Lord’s supper, he
-not only dissuades him from attending on it, but endeavours to
-insinuate, that, in partaking of it in times past, he has <i>eat and
-drunk</i> his own <i>damnation</i>, giving a perverse sense of that scripture,
-1 Cor. xi. 29. which, as appears from the context, is not
-to be applied to weak believers, but to such as engage in this
-ordinance, in a profane and irreverent manner, as though it
-were not a divine institution, and without any desire of obtaining
-spiritual mercies from God therein; and the word which
-we render <i>damnation</i>, ought to be rendered <i>judgment</i>, denoting
-that they expose themselves to temporal, as well as spiritual
-judgments in this world for this wickedness; not that
-they are from hence to conclude, that their eternal damnation
-will unavoidably ensue hereupon: And therefore the design of
-this scripture, is to lead to repentance, and not to despair. As
-for the word preached, he concludes, that every thing which is
-delivered therein, contains an indictment against him, and
-there he cannot endure to hear it: And, as for prayer, Satan
-discourages him from it, by pretending that he is not in a
-right frame for the performance of this duty, and by giving a
-false sense of such scriptures as these, in Prov. xxviii. 9. <i>He
-that turneth away his ear from hearing the law, even his prayer
-shall be abomination</i>; and, in chap. xxi. 27. <i>The sacrifice of
-the wicked is abomination</i>; the meaning of which is, not that
-the duty itself is sinful because performed by sinners, or that
-God hates them the more for praying, but that he hates the
-hypocrisy, formality, and other sins committed by them, when
-engaged in this duty; so that they should rather strive and
-pray against this unbecoming frame of spirit, than lay aside
-the duty itself, as they are tempted to do.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>4thly</i>, Satan also makes use of false reasoning, by which he
-endeavours to answer this end; as,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[1.] He puts them upon concluding, that <i>because they have
-no grace, therefore they never shall have it</i>; which method of
-reasoning, if it were just, must be applied to all unregenerate
-sinners; and then we must conclude, that the whole work of
-conversion in this world, is at an end; which, blessed be God,
-it is not.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[2.] He farther argues, that because they have lived a great
-while in a <i>course of sin</i>, and their hearts are <i>very much hardened
-thereby</i>; therefore they cannot be broken, or their wound is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_461'>461</span>incurable, and there are no healing medicines; which is to set
-limits to the almighty power and grace of God.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[3.] Satan farther induces them to conclude, that there is
-something uncommon in their case, that they are greater sinners
-than ever obtained mercy, which is more than it is possible
-for them to know; however, they are tempted to apply
-this presumptuous and discouraging suggestion to themselves
-to heighten their despair, and hinder the force of any argument
-that may be brought to the contrary.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[4.] The most common argument which Satan uses to induce
-persons to despair, is, that they have sinned against light,
-and the convictions of their own consciences, grieved and
-quenched the Spirit of God; and therefore they are inclined
-to think that they have committed the unpardonable sin. This
-is often alleged by persons against themselves, though, at
-the same time, they know not what that sin is, and regard
-not any thing that is said to convince them, that they have
-committed it; and, indeed, their very fears that they have,
-and the desires they express that it were otherwise with
-them, are an undeniable argument that they are mistaken
-in the judgment which they pass on themselves, by adhering
-to Satan’s suggestions, leading them to despair<a id='r126' /><a href='#f126' class='c012'><sup>[126]</sup></a>. Thus we
-have given some account of the great variety of temptations
-which we are exposed to from the world, the flesh and the
-Devil. We are now to consider,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Secondly</i>, How we are to pray, that we may not be led
-into temptation; or, if we are, by what means we may be
-delivered from the evil consequences that will arise from our
-compliance therewith. An hour of temptation is not only
-afflictive, but dangerous, by reason of the united assaults
-of those enemies that we have to deal with. The world continually
-presents objects that are agreeable to corrupt nature;
-and Satan is unwearied in his endeavours, to turn us aside
-from God thereby, that he may have us in his own power,
-and drive us from one degree of impiety to another: Therefore,
-though it is not impossible to be tempted without sin,
-yet it is exceeding difficult; and therefore, as we are to take
-heed, that we do not go in the way of temptation; so we
-are to address ourselves to God, that he would keep us from
-it, if it be his will.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We are not, indeed, absolutely to pray against it, as we
-are to pray against sin, which it is not possible for us to
-commit, without contracting guilt; whereas we may be tempted
-to sin, and yet come off conquerors over it: But, since
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_462'>462</span>the enterprize itself is hazardous, the conflict difficult, and
-the event, with respect to us, uncertain, we should rather
-desire, that, if God has not some gracious ends to answer
-thereby, which are, at present, unknown to us, he would be
-pleased to prevent it. The case is the same as though we
-were apprehensive of an infectious distemper raging amongst
-us, which we are to pray against; though God could, by
-his power, preserve us, in particular, from the ill consequences
-thereof; or, if we were informed, that an enemy laid
-wait secretly for our lives, it is possible for God to deliver
-us out of his hand; yet if the matter were referred to our
-own choice, we would rather desire that he may not be suffered
-to assault us. Thus we are to pray, that God would
-keep us from temptation; though we are not, at the same
-time, to question his power, or distrust his providence, as
-though he could not carry us safely through it; which we
-are to hope that he will do, if he suffers us to be tempted.
-Neither are we to suppose, that we can be altogether free
-from those temptations that arise from the imperfection of
-this present state, in which we must expect to be subject to
-the perpetual lustings of the flesh against the spirit: Therefore
-we are principally to direct our prayers to God, that
-he would keep us from falling by the temptation, or else,
-that he would recover us, when fallen, prevent the evils, that
-would otherwise ensue, and over-rule our sinful compliance
-therewith, to his own glory, and our future advantage.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. We are to pray, that he would keep us from falling
-by the temptation, that it may be like a wave dashing against
-a rock, which remains unmoved thereby, or like a dart shot
-against a breast-plate of steel, which only blunts the point
-thereof, and returns it back without doing any execution.
-Now God prevents our failing by temptation, either by his
-restraining or renewing grace: The former of these is common
-to the regenerate and the unregenerate; and where there
-is nothing more than this, it chiefly consists in some alteration
-made in the natural temper, or present inclinations of men,
-whereby sin, though it remains unmortified, is, nevertheless abstained
-from, like a river that is kept from overflowing a country,
-not by ceasing to be fluid in its own nature, but by being
-contained within its proper banks. These restraints, in some,
-proceed from that change which providence makes in their outward
-condition or circumstances in the world; so that those
-temptations, which, before this, they were so ready to comply
-with, are either discontinued, or offered without success; as
-when a person is bowed down with some affliction, that it gives
-a different turn to his passions, whereby, as Job speaks, the
-<i>heart is made soft</i>, Job xxiii. 16. in a natural way, by those
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_463'>463</span>troubles that tend to depress the spirits. Sometimes he is unexpectedly
-surprized with a fit of sickness, which gives him a
-near view of death and another world, and then the violence
-of the temptation, for the present, ceases, or at least, he is deterred
-from complying with it; and it may be, his spirits are
-decayed, his constitution weakened, and his natural vigour
-abated hereby, so that he has no inclination to commit some
-sins which he was formerly addicted to. Others want leisure
-to pursue those lusts which they are habitually prone to, being
-engaged in a hurry of business, or conflicting with many difficulties
-for the subsisting of themselves and families: These
-are not exposed to those temptations that often attend a slothful
-and indolent way of living: Or it may be, they are separated
-from their former associates, who have been partners
-with them in sin, and tempters to it. And sometimes there is
-a sudden thought injected into their minds, which fills them
-with an inward fear and dread of the consequence of committing
-those sins which are more gross and notorious. This is
-the result of an awakened conscience; whereby persons are
-kept from the commission of many sins, by the restraints of
-common providence, though they are, notwithstanding, in a
-state of unregeneracy, and sin in general remains unmortified.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But, on the other hand, the believer is preserved from it by
-the power of sanctifying grace, whereby an habitual inclination
-is wrought in him, to detest the sin that he is tempted to; and
-the Spirit of God, by his immediate interposure, internally disposes
-him to exercise the contrary graces; which proceed
-from a principle of filial fear and love to God, together with a
-sense of gratitude for all the benefits that he has received from
-him; so that in repelling a temptation, he says, with Joseph,
-<i>How can I do this great wickedness, and sin against God</i>, Gen.
-xxxix. 9.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. We are also to pray, that God would prevent those evil
-consequences, which very often attend such-like temptations;
-that our hearts may not be hardened through the deceitfulness
-of sin, that we may not willingly yield ourselves bond-slaves
-to Satan, or take pleasure in those sins which we have been
-tempted to commit: and that we may not be exposed hereby
-to divine desertion, how much soever we have deserved it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. We are likewise to pray, that God would recover, or bring
-us out of the pit, into which we are fallen, that hereby Satan
-may not take occasion, after he has overcome, to insult us, that
-we may not be given to a perpetual backsliding; but that our
-souls may be <i>restored</i>, and we <i>led in the paths of righteousness
-for his name’s sake</i>, Psal. xxiii. 3.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_464'>464</span>4. If we have fallen by a temptation we are farther to pray,
-that God would over-rule it to his own glory, and our spiritual
-advantage. Though there be nothing good in sin, yet God can
-bring good out of it; and this he does when he humbles the
-soul for it, and makes him afraid of going near the brink of
-the pit, into which he fell, inclines him to be more watchful,
-that, by indulging some sins, he may not lay himself open to
-those temptations that would lead him to the commission of
-many others. This will also induce him to depend on Christ
-by faith, as being sensible of his inability to resist the least
-temptation without him. And it will excite in him the greatest
-thankfulness to God, who has found a way for his escape
-out of the snare wherein he was entangled, by which means
-he will receive abundant advantage, and God will be greatly
-glorified.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Thus we have considered God’s people as exposed to various
-temptations, and how they are to direct their prayers to him,
-agreeably thereunto, pursuant to what our Saviour has taught
-us in this petition; which, that we may farther enlarge upon
-in our meditations, we may express ourselves to God in prayer
-to this purpose; “We draw nigh to thee, O our God and
-Father, as those who are exposed to many difficulties, by
-reason of the snares and temptations that attend us. We find
-it hard to pass through the world without being allured and
-drawn aside from thee, by the vanities thereof, or discouraged
-and made uneasy by those afflictions which are inseparable
-from this present state: But that which gives us the
-greatest ground of distress and trouble, and makes us an
-easy prey to our spiritual enemies, is, the deceitfulness and
-treachery of our own hearts, whereby we are prone to yield
-ourselves the servants of sin and Satan. Every age and condition
-of life has been filled with temptations, which we
-have been very often overcome by. We therefore implore
-the powerful aids of thy grace, that we may be kept in the
-hour of temptation. Enable us to overcome the world, to
-mortify and subdue our corrupt inclinations, and to stand
-against all the wiles and fiery darts of the Devil. Let us
-not be tempted to presume of being happy without holiness,
-or enjoying the benefits that are purchased by Christ, without
-faith in him. May we also be freed from all unbecoming
-thoughts of thy divine perfections, and not give way to
-any temptations that may lead us to despair of thy mercy,
-which thou art pleased to extend to the chief of sinners.
-We farther beg, though with submission to thy will, that we
-may be kept from the temptations of our grand adversary,
-because we are sensible of our own weakness and inability to
-resist him; nevertheless, we are confident that we can do all
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_465'>465</span>things by thine assistance: Therefore, if thou sufferest us to
-be tempted, appear in our behalf at that time, that we may
-be made more than conquerors; and when we fall by temptation,
-let us not be utterly cast down, but upheld with thine
-hand, and let thy strength be made perfect in our weakness;
-and, in the end, bring us safely to that happy state, where
-there is neither sin nor temptation; when we shall be delivered
-from all the evils of this present state, that thou mayest
-have the glory, and we may praise thee throughout the ages
-of eternity.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>Quest. CXCVI.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><span class='sc'>Quest. CXCVI.</span> <i>What doth the conclusion of the Lord’s
-prayer teach us?</i></p>
-
-<p class='c007'><span class='sc'>Answ.</span> The conclusion of the Lord’s prayer, [which is, <i>For
-thine is the kingdom, the power, and the glory for ever, Amen</i>]
-teacheth us to enforce our petitions with arguments, which
-are to be taken, not from any worthiness in ourselves, or in
-any other creature, but from God; and with our prayers, to
-join praises, ascribing to God alone eternal sovereignty, omnipotency,
-and glorious excellency; in regard whereof, as he
-is able and willing to help us, so we, by faith, are emboldened
-to plead with him that he would, and quietly to rely upon
-him that he will fulfil our requests, and to testify this our
-desire, and assurance, we say, <i>Amen</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'>As we are taught to begin our prayers with those expressions
-of reverence, becoming the Majesty of God, when we
-draw nigh to him; so we are to conclude them with a doxology,
-or an ascription of that glory which is due to his name;
-whereby praise is joined with prayer, and we encouraged to
-hope, that he will hear and answer our petitions.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>In the conclusion of the Lord’s prayer, we are directed to
-ascribe to God <i>the kingdom, the power, and the glory for ever</i>;
-and to sum up all with that comprehensive word, <i>Amen</i>. This
-may be considered in two respects,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. As we hereby express the due regard we have to the divine
-perfections: And,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. As we improve or make use of them as so many arguments
-or pleas in prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. We shall consider this doxology as containing the sense
-we have of the divine perfections. Accordingly,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) We say, <i>Thine is the kingdom</i>; whereby his sovereignty
-and universal dominion over all creatures, is acknowledged
-as he has a right to every thing that he gave being to: And,
-as this is more especially a branch of his relative glory, since
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_466'>466</span>the idea of a king connotes subjects, over whom his dominion
-is exercised; so it supposes in us an humble expression of subjection
-to him, and dependence on him for all things that we
-enjoy or hope for. We also consider him as having a right to
-make use of all creatures at his pleasure; inasmuch as the
-earth is his, and the fulness thereof: And, as we are intelligent
-creatures, we profess our obligation to yield obedience to
-his revealed will, and are afraid of incurring his displeasure
-by rebelling against him, with whom is terrible Majesty: And
-when we take a view of him; as seated on a throne of grace,
-and his government as extended to his church, upon which
-account he is adored as <i>king of saints</i>, Rev. xv. 3. we hope for
-his safe protection and for all the blessings which he bestows
-on those whom he governs in a way subservient to their everlasting
-salvation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We adore him as a God of infinite power, <i>Thine is the
-power</i>. Dominion without power will not be sufficient to
-maintain its rights; therefore, since God is described as having
-the kingdom belonging to him, or being the governor
-among the nations; his attribute of power ought next to be
-considered, whereby he can, without the least difficulty, secure
-the welfare and happiness of his subjects, and bring to
-nought the designs of his enemies; or, as it is elegantly expressed,
-<i>look on every one that is proud, and bring him low, and
-tread down the wicked in their place, hide them in the dust together,
-and bind their faces in secret</i>, Job xl. 12, 13.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) It is farther added, <i>Thine is the glory</i>. This may be
-taken in two senses; either as including in it all his perfections,
-whereby he is rendered glorious in the eyes of angels
-and men; so that there is nothing that we esteem beautiful or
-excellent in the whole system of created beings, but what is
-deformed, and, as it were, vanishes and sinks into nothing,
-when compared with him: Or else, the meaning of the expression
-is, that all the praise and honour that arises from
-every thing that is done in the world, which appears great and
-excellent, or has a tendency to raise our esteem and admiration,
-is to be ascribed to him; whereby we disclaim the least
-shadow or appearance of divine honour, which we are ready,
-upon all occasions to acknowledge to be due to him alone:
-Thus we adore him as having all divine perfections, when we
-say, <i>Thine is the kingdom, the power, and the glory</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And it is farther added, that they belong to him <i>for ever
-and ever</i>; whereby it is intimated, that whatever changes there
-may be in the nature or condition of created beings, he is unchangeably
-the same, and therefore will remain glorious in
-himself, and be for ever admired and adored by all his saints,
-whose happiness depends upon it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_467'>467</span>2. We shall consider these divine perfections, as they afford
-us so many arguments, or pleas, in prayer, from whence we
-take encouragement to expect a gracious answer from him, as
-appears from that <i>illative</i> particle, FOR, which is prefixed to
-this doxology. Therefore we may consider it as subjoined to
-the foregoing petitions, as the strongest motive to induce us
-to hope, that the blessings we pray for, shall be granted us;
-accordingly we disclaim all worthiness in ourselves, and desire
-that our name or righteousness should not be mentioned; but
-that the whole revenue of glory may redound to God, as all
-our expectation is from him. We might here apply the several
-arguments or pleas contained herein, to every one of the
-foregoing petitions; which would tend very much to enforce
-them, and afford matter for our farther enlargement in prayer:
-But I shall rather chuse to reduce the subject-matter thereof
-to the two general heads, under which they are contained; and
-accordingly to shew how we may make use of those arguments
-that are taken from the kingdom, power, and glory, belonging
-to God, for ever and ever, in our praying for those things that
-concern his glory, agreeably to what we are directed to ask
-for in the three first petitions; or our temporal or spiritual advantage,
-as in the three last.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) As to what respects the glory of God in the world, viz.
-that his name may be hallowed, his kingdom advanced, and
-his will be done: Therein we pray, that, as he is a great King,
-the blessed and only Potentate, the Governor of the world and
-the church, he would sanctify his glorious name; that his interest
-may be maintained, and prevail against every thing that
-opposes it, that he would take to himself his great power and
-reign; and, since the success of the gospel, and the advancement
-of his kingdom of grace, is a work surpassing finite
-power, and there are many endeavours used to weaken and
-overthrow it; we trust, we hope, we plead with him, for the
-glory of his name, that he would give a check to, and defeat
-the designs of his and our enemies, that the enlargement of
-his kingdom may not be obstructed, nor his subjects disheartened,
-whilst Satan’s kingdom, that is set in opposition to it,
-makes such sensible advances, and prevails so much against it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And, that his name may be sanctified by his people, and
-his kingdom advanced in this lower world, we farther pray,
-that his subjects may be inclined to obey, and submit to his
-will in all things; or, that it may be done on earth as it is in
-heaven: Therefore, when we ascribe the kingdom, power, and
-glory to him, we do, in effect, say, “Lord, what would become
-of this wretched world, if it were not under thy gracious
-government, which is its glory and defence? Thou
-sittest on the throne of thy holiness, which thou hast established
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_468'>468</span>of old: Therefore, we are encouraged to hope, that
-thou wilt not forsake thy people, who are called by thy name,
-nor suffer thine interest to be trampled on, nor thy name
-profaned by those who say, Who is the Lord, that we should
-obey him? Thine arm is not shortened, that thou canst not
-save, since thine is the power; and therefore nothing is too
-hard for thee. Thou hast given us ground to expect, that
-thou wilt shew thy people marvellous things; and thou hast
-promised, that all nations shall bow down before thee and
-serve thee; and that the kingdoms of this world shall become
-the kingdoms of Christ: This thou canst easily accomplish
-by thine almighty power, though it be too hard for man.—Thou
-art never at a loss for instruments to fulfil thy pleasure;
-for all things are in thy hand: Neither, indeed, dost
-thou need them; for, by thy powerful word, thou canst cause
-light to shine out of darkness, and revive thy work in the
-midst of the years, that thy people may rejoice and be glad
-in thy salvation. Take the work, therefore, into thine own
-hand, and, thereby, give us occasion to admire and ascribe
-to thee the glory that is due to thy name.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) We are to consider, how we may plead for temporal
-or spiritual blessings, as making use of this argument, that the
-kingdom, power, and glory, belong to God; accordingly, we
-pray, that he would give us that portion of the good things
-of life, that he sees necessary for us, and that we may enjoy his
-blessing with it, in order to our being prepared for a better,
-<i>q. d.</i> “Give us daily bread; for the earth is thine, and the
-fulness thereof: Thou hast subdued us to thyself, and hast
-told us, that thou wilt surely do us good, and bring us, at
-last, to thy heavenly kingdom: Therefore we humbly wait
-upon thee, that we may not be suffered to faint by the way,
-or be destitute of those blessings that are needful for us in
-our present condition. Thou art able to supply all our wants:
-We have hitherto been upheld by thy power, and thou hast
-sometimes done great things for us, that we looked not for,
-and hast been our refuge and strength, a very present help
-in every time of trouble. Thou hast granted us life and
-favour, and thy visitations have preserved our spirits; what
-thou hast given us we have gathered; thou hast opened thy
-hand, and filled us with good. And, as the treasures of thy
-bounty are not exhausted, nor thy power diminished; so we
-desire to exercise a constant dependence on thee, and to
-hope in thy mercy; that, as thou hast given us those better
-things that accompany salvation, thou wilt also bestow upon
-us what thou seest needful for us in our way to it; which
-will not only redound to our comfort, but thy glory; who
-givest food to all flesh; for thy mercy endureth for ever.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_469'>469</span>As for those spiritual blessings that we stand in need of,
-we encourage ourselves to hope for them; and accordingly,
-when we pray for forgiveness of sin, we consider God as sitting
-upon a throne of grace, and inviting us to come and receive
-a pardon from his hand: Therefore we say, “Lord, thou art
-ready to forgive, and thereby to lay eternal obligations on
-thy subjects, to love and fear thee; if thou shouldst resolve
-to display thy vindictive justice in punishing sin, according
-to the demerit thereof, thy kingdom of grace would be at an
-end; but thou encouragest us to hope for forgiveness, that
-hereby grace may reign through righteousness unto life
-eternal. And, as thou art a God of infinite power, we beg
-that thou wouldst thereby work in us those graces that flow
-from, and are the evidences of our having obtained forgiveness,
-that being delivered from the guilt of sin, we may walk
-before thee in newness of life. We also ask this privilege,
-as what thou bestowest for Christ’s sake, that hereby he may
-be glorified as the purchaser of this blessing, and we laid
-under the highest obligations to love him, as being constrained
-hereunto by his love, expressed to us in washing
-us from our sins in his own blood.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>When we pray to be kept from temptation, or recovered,
-when fallen by it, we consider ourselves as the subjects of
-Christ’s kingdom, and his enemies as endeavouring to draw us
-aside from our allegiance to him; and, as dreading the consequence
-thereof, we address ourselves to him, to secure us from
-the danger we are exposed to from them; and accordingly,
-when we say, <i>Thine is the kingdom, the power, and the glory</i>,
-we are furnished with arguments adapted to our present exigencies,
-<i>q. d.</i> “The power of our spiritual enemies is great,
-and much more formidable, because of the treachery of our
-own hearts; yet we are encouraged to implore thine assistance
-against them, O our God and King, that we may be
-kept in the hour of temptation; inasmuch as all the attempts
-that are made against us, carry in them an invasion on thy
-sovereignty and dominion over us. We desire always to
-commit ourselves to thy protection, and hope to find it, since
-there are no snares laid for us, but thou art able to detect
-and prevent our being entangled by them, and also canst
-bruise our enemies under our feet, and, if we are at any
-time overcome by them, recover us from the paths of the
-destroyer: Do this for us, we beseech thee, that thou mayest
-have all the glory: We have no might, but our eyes are upon
-thee, who art able to keep us from falling, and to present us
-faultless, before the presence of thy glory, with exceeding
-joy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_470'>470</span>As for the word, <i>Amen</i>, with which our Saviour concludes
-this prayer, it is of an Hebrew original, and is sometimes prefixed
-to what is asserted with a vehemency of expression, designed
-not only to confirm, but to bespeak the utmost attention
-to what is said, as being a matter of very great importance;
-in which case it is rendered by the word <i>verily</i>. And it is
-sometimes repeated to add greater force to it: Thus when our
-Saviour asserts the necessity of regeneration, he says, <i>Verily,
-verily, I say unto thee, except a man be born again, he cannot
-see the kingdom of God</i>, John iii. 3. And elsewhere, <i>Verily,
-verily, I say unto you, whatsoever ye shall ask the Father in
-my name, he will give it you</i>, chap. xvi. 23.<a id='r127' /><a href='#f127' class='c012'><sup>[127]</sup></a></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It is put in the close of each of the evangelists, as denoting,
-that whatever is contained therein, is to be depended on, as
-being of infallible verity; and almost all the epistles are concluded
-with it, as is also the book of the Revelation, in which
-it is put after a short prayer or doxology; in which respect it
-signifies, that what is therein requested of God, is earnestly
-desired, and the petition summed up, and ratified thereby; or,
-that the glory which is ascribed, is again acknowledged to
-belong to him, and we rejoice in the discovery that is made
-thereof to us.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Again, sometimes the word is not only used, but explained
-at the same time, as containing a summary account of what
-we ask for: Thus when Benaiah preferred a petition to David
-in the behalf of Solomon, and had a grant from him, that he
-should reign in his stead; it is said, <i>He answered the king,
-and said, Amen; the Lord God of my lord the king say so too</i>,
-1 Kings i. 36.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Thus then the word, <i>Amen</i>, with which this and other prayers
-are to be concluded, signifies, <i>so it is, let it be so</i>, or, <i>so it
-shall be</i>; each of which respective significations are to be applied
-to the subject-matter of our prayers: As it respects sins
-confessed, or the glory that we ascribe to God for mercies received,
-it denotes, <i>so it is</i>: As it refers to the promises which
-we plead and take encouragement from, or the blessings which
-we desire, it signifies, <i>so it shall be</i>, and <i>so let it be</i>. Thus it is
-to be applied in this prayer; and in particular, as it is joined
-to the doxology, <i>Thine is the kingdom, the power and the glory,
-for ever and ever</i>, we express our faith herein, together with
-our adoration of these divine perfections. And there are some
-prayers or doxologies, in which the glory of Christ and the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_471'>471</span>gospel-state is described, which are concluded with the repetition
-of the word: Thus when the Psalmist had been enlarging
-on this subject, he concludes with, <i>Blessed be his glorious name
-for ever; and let the whole earth be filled with his glory, Amen
-and Amen</i>, i. e. God has determined that it shall be so, and the
-whole church is obliged to express their faith, and say, <i>Amen,
-so let it be</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Some have thought it expedient in joint prayer, for the
-whole assembly, together with him that is the mouth thereof,
-to say, <i>Amen</i>, with a loud voice, and thereby to signify their
-consent to, and concern in the subject-matter contained therein;
-which appears to have been the practice of the church in
-the early ages thereof; as Justin Martyr observes it was in
-his time<a id='r128' /><a href='#f128' class='c012'><sup>[128]</sup></a>; and it was afterwards observed in Jerom’s time,
-who compares the sound they made with their united voices to
-that of thunder<a id='r129' /><a href='#f129' class='c012'><sup>[129]</sup></a>; which, though it was done with a pious design,
-and not in the least to be blamed, yet it is not to be insisted
-on as necessary, since all present professedly join in
-every part of the prayer, as much as though they repeated the
-words with an audible voice; and accordingly it is sufficient
-for every one, when prayer is publicly concluded with this comprehensive
-word, to lift up his heart to God, and thereby express
-the part he bears therein.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As for the contrary extreme, when one, whose office was
-altogether unknown to the primitive churches, is appointed to
-say, <i>Amen</i>, in the name of the whole congregation; this is, I
-think, altogether unwarrantable; though several Popish commentators
-defend it from the apostle’s words, who speaks of
-him that <i>occupieth the room of the unlearned</i>, as <i>saying, Amen,
-at the giving of thanks</i>, 1 Cor. xiv. 16. where, by the unlearned,
-we are not to understand the Clerk of a congregation<a id='r130' /><a href='#f130' class='c012'><sup>[130]</sup></a>,
-but one who understands not the subject-matter of that prayer,
-which the apostle supposes to be put to God in an unknown
-tongue: All therefore that can be inferred from hence is, that
-we ought to pray to God with understanding and faith, that
-hereby we may be able to sum up our requests and glorify him
-by saying, <i>Amen</i>.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_473'>473</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>Theological Questions.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c010'><i>Many theological instructors teach their pupils successfully, by
-requiring them, besides the usual course of systematical reading,
-interrogative examinations, and critical study of the
-scriptures in the original languages, also to write disquisitions
-on a number of Questions in Theology. Hereby they
-are provided with a store of arguments, on the most difficult
-subjects, and furnished with the mature advices of their preceptors;
-to which they may recur in any period of after life.
-To aid in this important work, the following List of Questions
-has been subjoined to this first American edition of</i> Ridgley;
-<i>and every instructor, or pupil, will select or vary at his pleasure</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c011'><span class='sc'>Quest. 1.</span>—How does it appear, that something has existed
-from eternity?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. What evidence is there, that the existence of man is derived,
-and dependent?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. How do you prove the existence of God?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. What is Theology?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>5. What is natural Theology?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>6. What does it discover of the Divine character?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>7. What arguments prove the genuineness, authenticity;
-and what, the inspiration of the Old and New Testaments?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>8. How do you prove the Unity of God?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>9. How do you prove the divinity and personality of the
-Son, and the Holy Ghost?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_474'>474</span>10. What are the Manichean, Arian, Sabellian, Socinian
-and Unitarian heresies, and how are they respectively confuted?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>11. How do you prove that there are divine purposes, and
-that these are eternal and immutable?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>12. Wherein does the certainty of events, taught in the scriptures,
-differ from the fatality of heathen philosophers and modern
-sceptics?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>13. How do you prove that the world was created?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>14. In what estate was man created?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>15. What are the acts of God’s providence; or how is it
-employed about created things?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>16. What is the difference between a law and a covenant?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>17. How do you prove that God did enter into a Covenant
-with Adam, which included him and all his posterity?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>18. What are we to understand by Adam’s freedom of
-will?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>19. What is necessary to constitute a moral agent?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>20. What is the difference between natural, and moral,
-power, and inability?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>21. How is the doctrine of universal absolute decrees consistent
-with the moral agency of man?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>22. How do you define sin?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_475'>475</span>23. Are there venial sins?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>24. How do you describe the sin against the Holy Ghost?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>25. How do you prove the depravity of unrenewed men to
-be total?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>26. What was implied by the death threatened in case of
-disobedience?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>27. Wherein consists the punishment of the damned?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>28. How do you prove the eternity of hell torments?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>29. How do you define the Covenant of Grace?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>30. Is there any ground for a distinction between the Covenant
-of Redemption and the Covenant of Grace?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>31. Wherein do the Covenants of Works, and Grace agree,
-and differ?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>32. Are the Law, and Gospel inconsistent with each other?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>33. What is an atonement? And what the nature, and extent
-of the atonement of Christ?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>34. Was the sacrifice of Christ Jesus absolutely necessary
-for our salvation?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>35. Whence did the obedience, and sufferings of Christ derive
-their efficacy?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>36. How was his death consistent, with the justice of God?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_476'>476</span>37. How do you describe the nature, mode of administration,
-extent, duration and glory of Christ’s kingly office?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>38. What is to be understood by his descent into Hell?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>39. What are we to understand by the application of Redemption?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>40. How do you prove that the influence of the Holy Spirit
-is of free and sovereign grace?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>41. What is regeneration, or effectual calling?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>42. Whence arises the necessity of it?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>43. What are the means of grace, and what their use?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>44. What is the utmost the unregenerate do in the use of
-the means of grace?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>45. To what are they to be exhorted?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>46. Wherein consists the difference of the special call of the
-Spirit, and the more outward call of the gospel?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>47. How do you describe the nature of gospel repentance,
-with the difference between this, and conviction of sin, or legal
-repentance?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>48. How do you describe the nature, and necessity of justifying
-faith; and what species of causality has it in our justification?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>49. What is included in, and what are the effects of justification?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_477'>477</span>50. How are full satisfaction and free pardon consistent?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>51. What are we to understand by the imputation of Christ’s
-righteousness for justification?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>52. What are the absurdities implied in supposing a justifying
-faith to consist in a sure confidence of the pardon of our sins?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>53. Point out the nature, privileges and evidences of adoption.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>54. How do you describe, and prove the possibility of attaining
-an assurance, of God’s love?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>55. How do you describe the believer’s peace of conscience,
-and point out the difference between it, and the false hope of
-the hypocrite?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>56. How do you prove the doctrine of the saint’s perseverance
-in a state of grace unto eternal life? And explain Ezek.
-xviii. 24. Heb. vi. 4-6, and the falls of David, Peter, and
-Judas?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>57. Is sinless perfection attainable in this life?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>58. What is the condition of the souls of believers immediately
-after death?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>59. How do you prove that there shall be a general resurrection
-of the just and the unjust?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>60. How do you prove there shall be a general judgment?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>61. What are the consequences of the judgment to the
-righteous and the wicked?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>62. How do you prove that the institution of the Sabbath,
-is of perpetual obligation?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='pageno' id='Page_478'>478</span>63. How do you prove that public worship is to be celebrated
-on the Sabbath?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>64. What is the nature of a Christian church?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>What are its standing officers?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>To whom does the right of ordination belong?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>65. What is the nature and import of baptism?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>How do you prove that other modes than immersion are
-lawful?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>66. How do you prove the divine right of infant baptism?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>67. What is the nature and use, and who are the proper partakers
-of the Lord’s supper?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>68. What errors are implied in a prayer, the object of which
-is a change of divine purposes?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>69. What is the nature, use and necessity of prayer?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>70. How do you prove that family-prayer is a duty?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>71. Wherein consist the unity and communion that should
-subsist in the church of Christ, and the benefits or advantages
-of it?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>72. What are the rules and end of church discipline?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>What is the nature and design of excommunication?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>73. What are the qualifications necessary to a minister of
-Christ?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>74. In what does the happiness of heaven consist?</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_479'>479</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>INDEX.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c005'>The volumes are denoted by <i>a</i>, <i>b</i>, <i>c</i>, and <i>d</i>.</p>
-<ul class='index c003'>
- <li class='c014'>A.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Abraham offering Isaac, <i>c</i> 544</li>
- <li class='c014'>Absolute free-will, <i>a</i> 498</li>
- <li class='c014'>Adam, his temptation, <i>b</i> 102
- <ul>
- <li>not a mediator, <i>b</i> 164</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Acts of faith, direct and reflex, <i>c</i> 132</li>
- <li class='c014'>Actions sinful, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_66'>66</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Adoption, <i>c</i> 145</li>
- <li class='c014'>Adultery, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_9'>9</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Affections, government of, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_10'>10</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Afflictions, relative, <i>b</i> 156</li>
- <li class='c014'>All-sufficiency of God, consolatory, <i>a</i> 129</li>
- <li class='c014'>Amen, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_468'>468</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Angels, their creation, <i>b</i> 25
- <ul>
- <li>their nature, <i>b</i> 27</li>
- <li>their power, <i>b</i> 28</li>
- <li>their employment, <i>b</i> 68. 30</li>
- <li>providence of God toward them, <i>b</i> 62</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Anger is heart-murder, <i>c</i> 548</li>
- <li class='c014'>Antinomians, <i>c</i> 418</li>
- <li class='c014'>Anti-trinitarians, <i>a</i> 388</li>
- <li class='c014'>Apostacy, considered, <i>c</i> 225</li>
- <li class='c014'>Apostles, <i>b</i> 572</li>
- <li class='c014'>Arius, his error, note, <i>a</i> 208</li>
- <li class='c014'>Arminians, <i>b</i> 128</li>
- <li class='c014'>Ascension of Christ, <i>b</i> 464</li>
- <li class='c014'>Assurance of salvation, <i>c</i> 243
- <ul>
- <li>how lost, <i>c</i> 273</li>
- <li>what essential to faith, <i>c</i> 270</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Atheism, its absurdity, <i>a</i> 24. 29. 38 <i>c</i> 439</li>
- <li class='c014'>Atonement, <i>b</i> 187. 275. note. 276. 280
- <ul>
- <li>value of it, <i>b</i> 282. 285</li>
- <li>design of it, <i>b</i> 285</li>
- <li>propriety of it proved, against Deists, <i>b</i> 299</li>
- <li>vindicated against christian errors, <i>b</i> 303</li>
- <li>extent of the purchase, <i>b</i> 301</li>
- <li>for whom specially intended, <i>b</i> 316. 321</li>
- <li>how sufficient for all men, note, <i>b</i> 349</li>
- <li>modern opinions on, <i>b</i> 276. <i>b</i> 280. 292. 297</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Author of sin, God is not, in note, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_433'>433</a>. <a href='#Page_435'>435</a></li>
- <li class='c003'>B.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Baptism, an ordinance, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_174'>174</a>
- <ul>
- <li>meaning of the word , <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_216'>216</a></li>
- <li>a generic term, in note, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_175'>175</a></li>
- <li>the right of infants, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_182'>182</a>. <a href='#Page_186'>186</a>. <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_187'>187</a>. <a href='#Page_193'>193</a></li>
- <li>objections to subjects of, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_200'>200</a>. <a href='#Page_206'>206</a>. <a href='#Page_186'>186</a>. <a href='#Page_194'>194</a></li>
- <li>by pouring or sprinkling, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_218'>218</a></li>
- <li>sponsors in, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_228'>228</a></li>
- <li>sign of the cross in, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_228'>228</a></li>
- <li>how to be improved, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_229'>229</a>. <a href='#Page_234'>234</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Backbiting, instances of, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_48'>48</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Being of God proved, <i>a</i> 21</li>
- <li class='c014'>Believers, sons of God in Christ, <i>c</i> 146</li>
- <li class='c014'>Benevolence, disinterested, <i>a</i> 19</li>
- <li class='c014'>Blindness of mind, <i>b</i> 146</li>
- <li class='c014'>Borrowing and not paying, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_23'>23</a>
- <ul>
- <li>whether Israel was guilty of it, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_24'>24</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Bread, daily to be prayed for, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_407'>407</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Burnet, his scheme of the Millenium, <i>b</i> 369</li>
- <li class='c003'>C.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Call of the gospel, <i>c</i> 16</li>
- <li class='c014'>Character of sacred writers, <i>a</i> 101</li>
- <li class='c014'>Charity to the poor, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_20'>20</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Child-like dispositions required in us, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_364'>364</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Christ, typified by Melchizedec, <i>b</i> 264
- <ul>
- <li>his humiliation, <i>b</i> 396</li>
- <li>betrayed, denied, condemned, slain, <i>b</i> 424. 426. 429. 433</li>
- <li>descent into hell <i>b</i> 440</li>
- <li>1 Pet. iii. 18. explained, note, <i>b</i> 442</li>
- <li>his resurrection, <i>b</i> 444</li>
- <li>his ascension, <i>b</i> 464</li>
- <li>his intercession, <i>b</i> 473</li>
- <li>his coming to judgment, <i>b</i> 481</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Christianity, reasonable, note, <i>a</i> 1</li>
- <li class='c014'>Church, the word how used, <i>b</i> 510. note 515</li>
- <li class='c014'>Church, its testimony, <i>a</i> 116</li>
- <li class='c014'>Church, invisible, <i>c</i> 9
- <ul>
- <li>its union to Christ, <i>c</i> 10</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Commandments, rules to interpret, <i>c</i> 428</li>
- <li class='c014'>Communion with God, by innocent man, <i>b</i> 77
- <ul>
- <li>with Christ in grace, <i>c</i> 65
- <ul>
- <li>in glory, <i>c</i> 280</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Conflagration, <i>b</i> 387</li>
- <li class='c014'>Conflicts of flesh and spirit, <i>c</i> 187</li>
- <li class='c014'>Conscience, horror of, <i>b</i> 153
- <ul>
- <li>distinguished, <i>b</i> 154</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Contentment a universal duty, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_50'>50</a>
- <ul>
- <li>motives to it, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_51'>51</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Contingency of events, <i>a</i> 517</li>
- <li class='c014'>Corruption of nature, forbidden, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_56'>56</a>
- <ul>
- <li>not from traduction, &amp;c., <i>b</i> 128</li>
- <li>how, <i>b</i> 131</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Covenant of grace, divisible or not, <i>b</i> 165
- <ul>
- <li>with whom made, <i>b</i> 167</li>
- <li>how, a testament, <i>b</i> 169</li>
- <li>eternity of it, <i>b</i> 272</li>
- <li>acceptance by elect, <i>b</i> 184</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Covenant of works, more than a law, <i>b</i> 78
- <ul>
- <li>its extent, <i>b</i> 80. 88</li>
- <li>its seals, <i>b</i> 88. 90</li>
- <li>violation of, <i>b</i> 74. 93</li>
- <li>not a promise of salvation, <i>b</i> 164</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Covetousness and its aggravations, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_58'>58</a>
- <ul>
- <li>excuses for it answered, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_59'>59</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Creation, work of, <i>b</i> 6
- <ul>
- <li>immediate, <i>b</i> 7</li>
- <li>mediate, <i>b</i> 7</li>
- <li>time of, <i>b</i> 8</li>
- <li>design of, <i>b</i> 15</li>
- <li>not instantaneous, <i>b</i> 17</li>
- <li>its progression, <i>b</i> 19. 23</li>
- <li>at what season of the year, <i>b</i> 24</li>
- <li>its goodness, or perfection, <i>b</i> 25</li>
- <li>of man, <i>b</i> 34</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Creed, account of, <i>b</i> 440</li>
- <li class='c014'>Critical examination of 1 John v. 7, <i>a</i> 329</li>
- <li class='c003'>D.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Day of grace, what, <i>b</i> 331</li>
- <li class='c014'>Death, appointed of God, <i>c</i> 293
- <ul>
- <li>its effect on the spirit, <i>c</i> 300</li>
- <li>of Christ, design of it, <i>b</i> 285
- <ul>
- <li>for whom, <i>b</i> 290</li>
- <li>perversion of the doctriner, <i>b</i> 291</li>
- <li>a true and proper sacrifice for sin, <i>b</i> 292</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li>of some saints, <i>c</i> 285</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Decrees of God, <i>a</i> 417. 430
- <ul>
- <li>proved, <i>a</i> 422. 452</li>
- <li>not stoical fate, <i>a</i> 516</li>
- <li>misrepresentations of it, <i>a</i> 465</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Deists, <i>b</i> 494</li>
- <li class='c014'>Deity of the Son, proved, <i>a</i> 295
- <ul>
- <li>by divine names, <i>a</i> 296</li>
- <li>by divine attributes, <i>a</i> 342</li>
- <li>by religious worship, <i>a</i> 377</li>
- <li>improved, <i>a</i> 414</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Diligence, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_20'>20</a>. <a href='#Page_21'>21</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Discontent, remedies against, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_61'>61</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Dispensations of the covenant, <i>b</i> 199</li>
- <li class='c014'>Delusions, <i>b</i> 147</li>
- <li class='c014'>Dominion of man in innocency, <i>b</i> 74</li>
- <li class='c014'>Duels, <i>c</i> 542</li>
- <li class='c003'>E.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Eden, garden of, where situated, <i>b</i> 70</li>
- <li class='c014'>Effectual calling, <i>c</i> 39</li>
- <li class='c014'>Elect, to what chosen, <i>a</i> 438
- <ul>
- <li>included in Christ, <i>b</i> 132</li>
- <li>ransomed by him, <i>b</i> 316
- <ul>
- <li>peculiarly, <i>b</i> 322</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Election, what, <i>a</i> 529. 434
- <ul>
- <li>objects of, <i>a</i> 436</li>
- <li>proved, <i>a</i> 447</li>
- <li>its design, <i>a</i> 461</li>
- <li>its properties, <i>a</i> 469</li>
- <li>knowledge of, <i>a</i> 470</li>
- <li>free, <i>a</i> 476</li>
- <li>unchangeable, <i>a</i> 481</li>
- <li>objections to, <i>a</i> 507</li>
- <li>distinct from fate, <i>a</i> 516</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Elijah, whether guilty of falsehood, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_36'>36</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Elisha reproached at Bethel, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_43'>43</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Endor, witch of, <i>c</i> 451</li>
- <li class='c014'>Enlightened conscience, <i>c</i> 184</li>
- <li class='c014'>Errors, of Arius and Sabellius, <i>a</i> 208</li>
- <li class='c014'>Eternal generation of Christ, <i>a</i> 259</li>
- <li class='c014'>Eternity of the covenant of grace, <i>b</i> 172</li>
- <li class='c014'>Eutychus, who he was, note, <i>b</i> 223</li>
- <li class='c014'>Eve, the manner of her temptation, <i>b</i> 100</li>
- <li class='c003'>F.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Faith, how, a condition, <i>b</i> 189
- <ul>
- <li>how above natural ability, <i>b</i> 193</li>
- <li>various kinds of, <i>c</i> 121-125</li>
- <li>justifying, <i>c</i> 98. 125</li>
- <li>how it justifies, <i>c</i> 110</li>
- <li>a duty, <i>b</i> 193</li>
- <li>a means of salvation, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_76'>76</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Fall of man, <i>b</i> 74-93</li>
- <li class='c014'>Father, God is to men, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_360'>360</a>
- <ul>
- <li>to be addressed as in heaven, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_365'>365</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Food of man in innocency, <i>b</i> 72</li>
- <li class='c014'>Foreknowledge of God, <i>a</i> 452</li>
- <li class='c014'>Foreordained whatsoever comes to pass, what is meant, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_433'>433</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Forgiveness of sin, <i>c</i> 70. <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_417'>417</a>
- <ul>
- <li>of others, what meant by it, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_424'>424</a></li>
- <li>argument to induce to it, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_426'>426</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Freedom of divine decrees, <i>a</i> 432. 433</li>
- <li class='c014'>Free will, absolute, absurd, <i>a</i> 498
- <ul>
- <li>doctrine of, examined, <i>a</i> 501</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Frugality, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_17'>17</a></li>
- <li class='c003'>G.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Genealogy of Christ defended, <i>a</i> 88</li>
- <li class='c014'>Genuineness of the scriptures, <i>a</i> 79</li>
- <li class='c014'>Glorifying God, what is meant by it, <i>a</i> 13</li>
- <li class='c014'>Glory of God, how things are disposed, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_382'>382</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Glory of Christ as Mediator, <i>b</i> 244</li>
- <li class='c014'>God, proofs of his being, <i>a</i> 22-48
- <ul>
- <li>is a Spirit, <i>a</i> 123
- <ul>
- <li>his unity, <i>a</i> 194</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li>holy, <i>a</i> 159</li>
- <li>not the author of sin, <i>a</i> 424. 523. 530</li>
- <li>is infinite, <i>a</i> 126</li>
- <li>all-sufficient, <i>a</i> 127</li>
- <li>eternal, <i>a</i> 129</li>
- <li>immutable, <i>a</i> 135</li>
- <li>incomprehensible, <i>a</i> 138</li>
- <li>omnipresent, <i>a</i> 139</li>
- <li>almighty, <i>a</i> 140</li>
- <li>omniscient, <i>a</i> 145</li>
- <li>most wise, <i>a</i> 152
- <ul>
- <li>just, <i>a</i> 164</li>
- <li>true, <i>a</i> 186</li>
- <li>merciful, <i>a</i> 168</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li>even in punishing, note, <i>a</i> 170</li>
- <li>how glorified, <i>a</i> 14</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Goodness, <i>ibid</i></li>
- <li class='c014'>Gospel, how offered to all, <i>b</i> 332
- <ul>
- <li>faith in it the duty of all, <i>b</i> 336</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Government, civil, <i>c</i> 524</li>
- <li class='c014'>Grotius, on the authority of the scriptures, in note, <i>a</i> 97</li>
- <li class='c014'>Grace, of God, in providing a Mediator, <i>b</i> 187</li>
- <li class='c014'>Guilt of Adam’s first sin, <i>b</i> 119
- <ul>
- <li>its consequences, <i>b</i> 196-259</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c003'>H.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Happiness of saints, future, <i>c</i> 399</li>
- <li class='c014'>Hardness of heart, <i>b</i> 149
- <ul>
- <li>causes of, <i>b</i> 150</li>
- <li>in believers and unbelievers, <i>b</i> 151</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Hearing the word, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_158'>158</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Heathens, <i>b</i> 491. <i>c</i> 163</li>
- <li class='c014'>Hell, descent of Christ into, <i>b</i> 440</li>
- <li class='c014'>Heinousness of sins not equal, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_67'>67</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Holy Ghost, procession of, <i>a</i> 260
- <ul>
- <li>his Deity proved, <i>a</i> 295</li>
- <li>his titles, <i>a</i> 400
- <ul>
- <li>attributes, <i>a</i> 404</li>
- <li>works, <i>a</i> 405</li>
- <li>worship, <i>a</i> 408. 414</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Holiness of God, <i>a</i> 159
- <ul>
- <li>motives to, <i>c</i> 160</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Holy places, <i>c</i> 424
- <ul>
- <li>times, <i>c</i> 427</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Holy Spirit, implants all graces, <i>b</i> 197
- <ul>
- <li>applies salvation, <i>b</i> 237</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Humiliation of Christ, <i>b</i> 396
- <ul>
- <li>in his birth, <i>b</i> 398</li>
- <li>in his life, <i>b</i> 401</li>
- <li>by temptations, <i>b</i> 410</li>
- <li>by sinless infirmities, <i>b</i> 422</li>
- <li>in his death, <i>b</i> 423</li>
- <li>in being betrayed, <i>b</i> 424
- <ul>
- <li>forsaken, <i>b</i> 425</li>
- <li>condemned, <i>b</i> 429</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Humiliation of Christ, in being tormented, <i>b</i> 431
- <ul>
- <li>crucified, <i>b</i> 433</li>
- <li>in his burial, <i>b</i> 437</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Human nature of Christ, <i>b</i> 421</li>
- <li class='c014'>Hypocrisy, sin of, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_39'>39</a>
- <ul>
- <li>whether Paul and Daniel guilty, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_40'>40</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c003'>I.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Idolatry, <i>c</i> 443. &amp; <i>a</i>194</li>
- <li class='c014'>Image-worship, <i>c</i> 461</li>
- <li class='c014'>Immortality of the soul, <i>c</i> 302
- <ul>
- <li>asserted and denied by heathens, <i>c</i> 303</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Imputation, what, <i>c</i> 85-95</li>
- <li class='c014'>Imputation of Adam’s sin, <i>b</i> 107. 113</li>
- <li class='c014'>Inability of sinners to believe, note, <i>b</i> 193
- <ul>
- <li>to keep the commandments, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_62'>62</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Incarnation of Christ, <i>b</i> 227
- <ul>
- <li>the time of, <i>b</i> 231</li>
- <li>duration of, <i>b</i> 234</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Incarnation, necessity for, <i>b</i> 235</li>
- <li class='c014'>Independency of God, <i>a</i> 124</li>
- <li class='c014'>Infants, their state, <i>b</i> 138</li>
- <li class='c014'>Inferiors, duties of, <i>c</i> 520</li>
- <li class='c014'>Innocency, man’s condition in, <i>b</i> 72</li>
- <li class='c014'>Inspiration of scripture, <i>a</i> 110</li>
- <li class='c014'>Integrity of the church in all ages, <i>b</i> 199</li>
- <li class='c014'>Interest in Christ, <i>b</i> 189</li>
- <li class='c003'>J.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Jesus, why so called, <i>b</i> 244</li>
- <li class='c014'>Judgment, final, <i>c</i> 359</li>
- <li class='c014'>Justice, in our dealings, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_19'>19</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Justification, <i>c</i> 67
- <ul>
- <li>its foundation, <i>c</i> 73</li>
- <li>not before faith, <i>c</i> 117</li>
- <li>not by works, <i>c</i> 101</li>
- <li>not by repentance, <i>c</i> 101</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c003'>K.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Kingdom of Heaven, <i>c</i> 399
- <ul>
- <li>of Providence, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_385'>385</a></li>
- <li>of grace, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_386'>386</a></li>
- <li>of Christ, how advanced, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_389'>389</a></li>
- <li>of glory, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_394'>394</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Kingly office of Christ, <i>b</i> 351
- <ul>
- <li>its exercise, <i>b</i> 352</li>
- <li>submission to, <i>b</i> 357</li>
- <li>opposition to, <i>b</i> 360</li>
- <li>times of exercise, <i>b</i> 364</li>
- <li>in the Millenium, <i>b</i> 366</li>
- <li>on earth, <i>b</i> 381</li>
- <li>duration of, <i>b</i> 392</li>
- <li>the two-fold states of, <i>b</i> 396</li>
- <li>in humiliation, <i>b</i> 399</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c003'>L.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Law, moral, <i>c</i> 421
- <ul>
- <li>judicial, <i>c</i> 422</li>
- <li>ceremonial, <i>c</i> 423</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Law-suits, when unjust, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_26'>26</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Liberty, <i>c</i> 34</li>
- <li class='c014'>Life, bounds of fixed, <i>a</i> 508
- <ul>
- <li>to be preserved, <i>c</i> 540</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Light of nature, <i>a</i> 21. 230</li>
- <li class='c014'>Light of revelation, sufficient, <i>b</i> 206
- <ul>
- <li>increased by the gospel, <i>b</i> 214</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Long-suffering of God, <i>a</i> 176
- <ul>
- <li>in harmony with justice, <i>a</i> 181</li>
- <li>improvement of, <i>a</i> 183</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Lord’s supper, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_234'>234</a>
- <ul>
- <li>a gospel ordinance, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_236'>236</a></li>
- <li>what the elements and actions, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_237'>237</a>. <a href='#Page_238'>238</a></li>
- <li>to whom to be administered, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_237'>237</a>. <a href='#Page_245'>245</a>. <a href='#Page_263'>263</a></li>
- <li>examination previous to, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_246'>246</a>-256</li>
- <li>who to be debarred from, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_263'>263</a></li>
- <li>meditation at, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_269'>269</a></li>
- <li>what to be done at, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_270'>270</a>. <a href='#Page_273'>273</a>. <a href='#Page_275'>275</a></li>
- <li>vows may be made at, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_278'>278</a></li>
- <li>frequent attendance on, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_280'>280</a></li>
- <li>how it differs from baptism, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_281'>281</a>-284</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Lie, definition and kinds of, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_33'>33</a>
- <ul>
- <li>whether midwives in Egypt guilty of, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_34'>34</a></li>
- <li>Rahab’s, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_34'>34</a></li>
- <li>whether Jacob was guilty of, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_35'>35</a></li>
- <li>whether Elijah was guilty, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_36'>36</a></li>
- <li>whether Paul was guilty, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_37'>37</a></li>
- <li>David’s, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_38'>38</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c003'>M.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Magee’s, two discourses on the atonement, note, <i>b</i> 298. 317</li>
- <li class='c014'>Man, his creation, <i>b</i> 34
- <ul>
- <li>his twofold nature, <i>b</i> 39</li>
- <li>in the divine image, <i>b</i> 42</li>
- <li>his mutability, <i>b</i> 44</li>
- <li>providence of God toward him, <i>b</i> 70</li>
- <li>employment in Paradise, <i>b</i> 72</li>
- <li>fallen, <i>b</i> 117</li>
- <li>his misery, <i>b</i> 136</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Marks of grace, <i>c</i> 260-262</li>
- <li class='c014'>Marriage, its institution and design, <i>b</i> 75</li>
- <li class='c014'>Masters, duties of, <i>c</i> 533</li>
- <li class='c014'>Means of salvation, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_76'>76</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Mediator, his office generally, <i>b</i> 186
- <ul>
- <li>his intercession or satisfaction, <i>b</i> 186</li>
- <li>who he is, <i>b</i> 216</li>
- <li>his sufficiency, <i>b</i> 218</li>
- <li>his incarnation, <i>b</i> 221</li>
- <li>why called Jesus Christ, <i>b</i> 244</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Melchizedec, who he might be, <i>b</i> 264</li>
- <li class='c014'>Messiah of the Old Testament is Christ, <i>b</i> 200
- <ul>
- <li>the substance of the ceremonial law, <i>b</i> 201</li>
- <li>Jesus of Nazareth, <i>b</i> 245</li>
- <li>his commission, <i>b</i> 248</li>
- <li>his offices, <i>b</i> 249
- <ul>
- <li>prophetical, <i>b</i> 252</li>
- <li>priestly, <i>b</i> 259</li>
- <li>kingly, <i>b</i> 351</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Millenium, <i>b</i> 366-382</li>
- <li class='c014'>Moral obligation, foundation of, <i>c</i> 405</li>
- <li class='c014'>Moral law, <i>c</i> 421
- <ul>
- <li>civil, its origin, <i>b</i> 127</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Mortification, <i>c</i> 155</li>
- <li class='c014'>Moses, no astrologer, <i>c</i> 454
- <ul>
- <li>killing the Egyptians, <i>c</i> 545</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Murderers do not escape, <i>c</i> 547</li>
- <li class='c014'>Musical instruments unauthorized in gospel worship, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_85'>85</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Mystery, scriptural, <i>a</i> 215. 217</li>
- <li class='c014'>Mysteries, Dr. Bates Aon, in note, <i>a</i> 217</li>
- <li class='c003'>N.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Name of God, what meant by it, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_369'>369</a>
- <ul>
- <li>how sanctified, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_370'>370</a>. <a href='#Page_373'>373</a></li>
- <li>when profaned, <i>c</i> 473</li>
- <li>hallowed, what meant by, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_375'>375</a>-381</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Natures of Christ, <i>b</i> 235
- <ul>
- <li>why two-fold, <i>b</i> 242</li>
- <li>without confusion, <i>b</i> 243</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c003'>O.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Oaths, religious, <i>c</i> 472
- <ul>
- <li>profane, <i>c</i> 470</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Objections, to the harmony of the scriptures, <i>a</i> 88-93
- <ul>
- <li>to the doctrine of election, <i>a</i> 507</li>
- <li>to the divine predetermination, <i>a</i> 509</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Obligation, moral, <i>c</i> 405</li>
- <li class='c014'>Offences, their aggravations, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_67'>67</a>
- <ul>
- <li>from the parties, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_68'>68</a></li>
- <li>from the nature of the offence, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_70'>70</a></li>
- <li>from the circumstances, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_72'>72</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Officers of the, church, <i>b</i> 572</li>
- <li class='c014'>Offices of Christ, their number, <i>b</i> 249
- <ul>
- <li>suited to the state of man, <i>b</i> 250</li>
- <li>not to be confounded, <i>b</i> 251</li>
- <li>their order, <i>b</i> 252</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Office, prophetical, <i>b</i> 254
- <ul>
- <li>for whom intended, <i>b</i> 255</li>
- <li>how executed, <i>b</i> 256
- <ul>
- <li>when, <i>b</i> 257</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li>the priestly, <i>b</i> 259</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Officers among the Jews, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_139'>139</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Ordinances of the gospel, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_83'>83</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Original righteousness lost, <i>a</i> 121</li>
- <li class='c014'>Original, transgression, <i>b</i> 105
- <ul>
- <li>sin, what, <i>b</i> 118</li>
- <li>its transmission, <i>b</i> 129. 132</li>
- <li>its punishment, <i>b</i> 141</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c003'>P.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Parable of the debtor, <i>c</i> 238</li>
- <li class='c014'>Paradise, where, <i>b</i> 71
- <ul>
- <li>after death, <i>c</i> 318</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Parents, duties of, <i>c</i> 531</li>
- <li class='c014'>Papal doctrines, <i>a</i> 162, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_315'>315</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Pardon of sin is from God only, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_417'>417</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Pelagianism, <i>b</i> 125</li>
- <li class='c014'>Perfection, absolute, not in this life, <i>c</i> 178
- <ul>
- <li>at death, <i>c</i> 312</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Perfections of God, <i>a</i> 121-142</li>
- <li class='c014'>Perseverance of the saints, <i>c</i> 194-197
- <ul>
- <li>proved, <i>c</i> 201-217</li>
- <li>objections to answered, <i>c</i> 220</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Person, Calvin on the word, in note, <i>a</i> 207</li>
- <li class='c014'>Person of Christ, why God and man, <i>b</i> 235</li>
- <li class='c014'>Personality in the Godhead, <i>a</i> 207. 244</li>
- <li class='c014'>Pharisees, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_140'>140</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Polygamy was ever unlawful, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_11'>11</a>
- <ul>
- <li>aggravations of, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_13'>13</a></li>
- <li>the occasions of, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_14'>14</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Praise, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_82'>82</a>. <a href='#Page_85'>85</a>. <a href='#Page_95'>95</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Prayer, to be made to God, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_299'>299</a>
- <ul>
- <li>to be in the name of Christ, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_300'>300</a>. <a href='#Page_301'>301</a></li>
- <li>Spirit’s aid in, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_303'>303</a>-306</li>
- <li>for whom to be made, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_309'>309</a>-312</li>
- <li>for whom not to be made, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_315'>315</a>-318</li>
- <li>for what we may pray, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_322'>322</a></li>
- <li>how we are to pray, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_323'>323</a></li>
- <li>faith in, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_329'>329</a></li>
- <li>promises of help, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_331'>331</a></li>
- <li>to an unchangeable God, in note, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_397'>397</a>-402</li>
- <li>discouragements in, removed, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_336'>336</a></li>
- <li>rules for our direction in, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_338'>338</a>-356</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Predestination to sin, not scriptural, <i>a</i> 530</li>
- <li class='c014'>Preaching the word, how to be done, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_151'>151</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Priestly office of Christ, <i>b</i> 259
- <ul>
- <li>like that of Melchizedech, <i>b</i> 264</li>
- <li>necessity of it, <i>b</i> 272</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Priestly, Dr. his disingenuity, in a note, <i>a</i> 397</li>
- <li class='c014'>Procrastination, in note, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_78'>78</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Procession of the Holy Ghost, <i>a</i> 260</li>
- <li class='c014'>Profanation of the Sabbath, <i>c</i> 508</li>
- <li class='c014'>Promises of temporal and spiritual blessings, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_344'>344</a>-350
- <ul>
- <li>annexed to the fifth commandment, <i>c</i> 537</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Prophets, <i>a</i> 56</li>
- <li class='c014'>Prophetical office of Christ, <i>b</i> 252
- <ul>
- <li>when executed, <i>b</i> 257</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Providence of God, what, <i>b</i> 45
- <ul>
- <li>immediate or mediate, <i>b</i> 46</li>
- <li>over good actions, <i>b</i> 51</li>
- <li>over evil actions, <i>b</i> 52-58</li>
- <li>objections to answered, <i>b</i> 59-62</li>
- <li>toward angels, <i>b</i> 62-69</li>
- <li>toward man, <i>b</i> 70</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Publicans, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_140'>140</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Psalms of David, proper to be sung, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_89'>89</a>
- <ul>
- <li>scripture and hymns preferable, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_96'>96</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Punishment of sin, <i>b</i> 136
- <ul>
- <li>original, <i>b</i> 137</li>
- <li>in the world to come, <i>b</i> 158</li>
- <li>proved by reason, note, <i>b</i> 161</li>
- <li>when not stayed by sacrifice, <i>b</i> 262</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Purgatory, <i>c</i> 313</li>
- <li class='c014'>Purpose, eternal, <i>a</i> 507</li>
- <li class='c014'>Purpose of God, its certainty, <i>b</i> 5</li>
- <li class='c003'>Q.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Qualifications of preachers of the word, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_147'>147</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Quenching the Spirit, what, <i>a</i> 414
- <ul>
- <li>when committed, <i>a</i> 50</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c003'>R.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Recovery of man, its moving cause, <i>b</i> 162</li>
- <li class='c014'>Redemption, intended, <i>b</i> 161
- <ul>
- <li>for whom, <i>b</i> 316</li>
- <li>for whom not, <i>b</i> 322</li>
- <li>application of it, <i>b</i> 323</li>
- <li>not universal, <i>b</i> 324. 326</li>
- <li>special, <i>b</i> 329. 338</li>
- <li>covenant of, <i>b</i> 178</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Regeneration before faith, <i>c</i> 26
- <ul>
- <li>man passive in it, <i>c</i> 48</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Remember, import of, in the fourth commandment, <i>c</i> 512</li>
- <li class='c014'>Repentance, what, <i>c</i> 167
- <ul>
- <li>the effect of grace, <i>c</i> 169</li>
- <li>how by the word, <i>c</i> 169</li>
- <li>a means of salvation, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_76'>76</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Representation, note, <i>b</i> 77. 103. 114</li>
- <li class='c014'>Reproach, differs from reproof, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_42'>42</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Reprobation, decree of, <i>a</i> 486
- <ul>
- <li>not of sovereignty, <i>a</i> 490</li>
- <li>but of justice, <i>a</i> 491</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Restitution, a duty, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_27'>27</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Resurrection, <i>b</i> 383. 389. <i>c</i> 326
- <ul>
- <li>proved from the Old Testament, <i>c</i> 332</li>
- <li>the first, <i>b</i> 383. 388</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Revealed will of God, <i>c</i> 408</li>
- <li class='c014'>Revelation, necessary, <i>a</i> 71
- <ul>
- <li>not impossible, <i>a</i> 71</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Righteousness, original, lost in Adam, <i>b</i> 121</li>
- <li class='c003'>S.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Sabbath, its institution, <i>b</i> 76
- <ul>
- <li>its morality, <i>c</i> 480</li>
- <li>its change, <i>c</i> 486</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Sabellius, his error, note, <i>a</i> 208</li>
- <li class='c014'>Sacraments, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_161'>161</a>
- <ul>
- <li>how seals, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_161'>161</a></li>
- <li>to whom administered, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_166'>166</a></li>
- <li>benefits of them, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_167'>167</a></li>
- <li>by whom administered, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_168'>168</a></li>
- <li>but two, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_172'>172</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Sacrifice of Christ, sufficient for all, note, <i>b</i> 349</li>
- <li class='c014'>Sadducees, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_140'>140</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Saints kept by divine power, <i>c</i> 199</li>
- <li class='c014'>Salvation, what, <i>b</i> 162
- <ul>
- <li>its subjects, <i>b</i> 162</li>
- <li>the cause of, <i>b</i> 163</li>
- <li>for whom, <i>b</i> 164</li>
- <li>not universal, <i>b</i> 326</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Samaritans, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_140'>140</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Samson’s death, <i>c</i> 540</li>
- <li class='c014'>Sanctification, <i>c</i> 152</li>
- <li class='c014'>Sanctifying the Lord’s day, <i>c</i> 497</li>
- <li class='c014'>Satan, the tempter, <i>b</i> 95
- <ul>
- <li>his method and instruments, <i>b</i> 96. 97</li>
- <li>his empire in the unregenerate, <i>b</i> 144</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Satisfaction for sin, <i>b</i> 275-293</li>
- <li class='c014'>Scriptures, genuineness of, <i>a</i> 79
- <ul>
- <li>authenticity, <i>a</i> 97</li>
- <li>inspiration of, <i>a</i> 72</li>
- <li>a sufficient rule, <i>a</i> 61</li>
- <li>to be read publickly, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_107'>107</a>
- <ul>
- <li>in families and private, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_108'>108</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li>how they should be read, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_113'>113</a></li>
- <li>various translations of, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_117'>117</a></li>
- <li>to be compared, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_121'>121</a>. <a href='#Page_122'>122</a></li>
- <li>general rules for explaining of, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_144'>144</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Self-interest, how far lawful, <i>a</i> 19. 20</li>
- <li class='c014'>Self-murder, <i>c</i> 545</li>
- <li class='c014'>Self-examination, <i>c</i> 256</li>
- <li class='c014'>Sentiment, influence of, <i>a</i> iii</li>
- <li class='c014'>Servants, duties of, <i>c</i> 593</li>
- <li class='c014'>Similitudes of Trinity unlawful, <i>a</i> 235</li>
- <li class='c014'>Singing praises, a divine institution, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_82'>82</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Sin, its origin, <i>a</i> 425
- <ul>
- <li>daily committed, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_63'>63</a></li>
- <li>extent of the first, <i>b</i> 105</li>
- <li>exists in intentions, note, <i>b</i> 145
- <ul>
- <li>its imputation, <i>b</i> 109</li>
- <li>its consequences, <i>b</i> 136</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li>punishment of, <i>c</i> 377</li>
- <li>its punishment in this world, <i>b</i> 146
- <ul>
- <li>in the world to come, <i>b</i> 158</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li>what satisfaction is demanded, <i>b</i> 275. 280</li>
- <li>its desert, and the way of escape, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_74'>74</a></li>
- <li>unto death, what it is, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_318'>318</a>-320</li>
- <li>not from God, <i>a</i> 423. <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_433'>433</a>-435</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Son, his divinity, <i>a</i> 295
- <ul>
- <li>his personality, <i>a</i> 248</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Sonship of Christ, eternal, <i>a</i> 277</li>
- <li class='c014'>Souls, origin of, note, <i>b</i> 41
- <ul>
- <li>pre-existence of, a mere fancy, <i>b</i> 126</li>
- <li>after death, <i>c</i> 318. 325</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Spirit, the Holy, his procession, <i>a</i> 260
- <ul>
- <li>
- <ul>
- <li>his divinity, <i>a</i> 398. 410</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li>his witness to the word, in the heart, <i>a</i> 118</li>
- <li>his work in applying salvation, <i>b</i> 197</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Sufferings of Christ, and the design of them, <i>b</i> 284. 285
- <ul>
- <li>why not eternal, <i>b</i> 296</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Sum of relative duties, <i>c</i> 514</li>
- <li class='c014'>Superiors, duties of, <i>c</i> 518</li>
- <li class='c014'>Supper, of the Lord, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_234'>234</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Supralapsarians, and Sublapsarians, <i>a</i> 445</li>
- <li class='c014'>Suretyship of Christ, <i>c</i> 77, <i>b</i> 173</li>
- <li class='c014'>Swearing, <i>c</i> 470</li>
- <li class='c003'>T.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Tables of the law, <i>c</i> 433</li>
- <li class='c014'>Temptations of Christ, <i>b</i> 404-420
- <ul>
- <li>mental, note, <i>b</i> 420</li>
- <li>from prosperity, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_439'>439</a></li>
- <li>from adversity, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_441'>441</a></li>
- <li>from the flesh, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_442'>442</a></li>
- <li>from Satan, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_443'>443</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Testament, and covenant, how the same, <i>b</i> 169
- <ul>
- <li>
- <ul>
- <li>how different, <i>b</i> 171</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li>how received, <i>b</i> 181</li>
- <li>implies the death of the testator, note, <i>b</i> 294</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Testimony of the Church, <i>a</i> 116</li>
- <li class='c014'>Theatrical amusements, sinful in note, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_15'>15</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Theft, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_23'>23</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Thoughts, sinful, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_64'>64</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Tree of life, <i>b</i> 88
- <ul>
- <li>why so called, <i>b</i> 89</li>
- <li>of knowledge of good and evil, <i>b</i> 92</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Trinity of persons, <i>a</i> 206
- <ul>
- <li>important, <i>a</i> 210</li>
- <li>in what respects one, <i>a</i> 243
- <ul>
- <li>not unreasonable, <i>a</i> 226</li>
- <li>proved, <i>a</i> 249-251</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li>Dr. Jameison, on the, in a note, <i>a</i> 243</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Truth of God, <i>a</i> 185</li>
- <li class='c014'>Trust, breach of, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_23'>23</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Trust in Christ, <i>c</i> 121</li>
- <li class='c014'>Types of Christ, in ceremonial law, <i>b</i> 202
- <ul>
- <li>errors concerning them, <i>b</i> 203</li>
- <li>in persons and things, <i>b</i> 205</li>
- <li>their spiritual meaning, <i>b</i> 207</li>
- <li>misunderstood by some, <i>b</i> 209</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c003'>U.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Uncleanness forbidden, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_10'>10</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Unction, or anointing of the Mediator, <i>b</i> 245</li>
- <li class='c014'>Union, of divine and human natures, <i>b</i> 221
- <ul>
- <li>
- <ul>
- <li>denied by Nestorius, <i>b</i> 222</li>
- <li>without confusion or mixture, <i>b</i> 223</li>
- <li>by subordination of human will, <i>b</i> 223</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li>of a divine nature to real human body, <i>b</i> 224</li>
- <li>of a divine nature to real human soul, <i>b</i> 226
- <ul>
- <li>necessary, <i>b</i> 235</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Universal redemption, <i>b</i> 326-341</li>
- <li class='c014'>Unitarian objections answered, note, <i>b</i> 292. 297</li>
- <li class='c014'>Unity of God, <i>a</i> 194
- <ul>
- <li>proved by his works, <i>a</i> 197
- <ul>
- <li>light of nature, <i>a</i> 200</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li>uncompounded, <i>a</i> 203</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Universal expressions of limited meaning, <i>b</i> 239
- <ul>
- <li>redemption considered, <i>b</i> 343</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Usury, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_27'>27</a></li>
- <li class='c003'>V.</li>
- <li class='c014'>Variety, but no contrariety in the will of Christ, <i>b</i> 226</li>
- <li class='c014'>Vicarious death of Christ, <i>b</i> 292-297</li>
- <li class='c014'>Vile affections described, <i>b</i> 153</li>
- <li class='c014'>Virgin really predicted, Isa. ix. 6., <i>b</i> 228. 229</li>
- <li class='c014'>Vivification, <i>c</i> 159</li>
- <li class='c003'>W.</li>
- <li class='c014'>War of plunder and oppression in it, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_25'>25</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Wicked, their prosperity, <i>a</i> 45
- <ul>
- <li>how made for the day of evil, <i>a</i> 495</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Will of God, secret or revealed, <i>a</i> 471
- <ul>
- <li>sovereign, <i>a</i> 476</li>
- <li>how can we pray for it to be done? <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_403'>403</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Will, free in our first parents, <i>b</i> 94
- <ul>
- <li>our averse to that of God, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_402'>402</a></li>
- <li>of the Mediator as man, subordinate, <i>b</i> 226</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Williams, Dr. on election, in a note, <i>a</i> 529</li>
- <li class='c014'>Witness of the Spirit, <i>c</i> 266</li>
- <li class='c014'>Words, sinful, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_66'>66</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Word of God, <i>a</i> 48
- <ul>
- <li>distinguished from moral obligation, <i>a</i> 48. 49</li>
- <li>understood by Israel, <i>a</i> 53</li>
- <li>Chronology of prophets, <i>a</i> 56</li>
- <li>how a rule, <i>a</i> 60. 61</li>
- <li>complete and entire, <i>a</i> 66</li>
- <li>enlightens and convinces of sin, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_101'>101</a></li>
- <li>humbles and draws to Christ, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_102'>102</a>. <a href='#Page_103'>103</a></li>
- <li>other instances of its efficacy, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_104'>104</a></li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>World, not eternal, <i>b</i> 8
- <ul>
- <li>its antiquity, <i>b</i> 11</li>
- <li>false accounts of, <i>b</i> 11</li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- <li class='c014'>Wrath of God is not passion, <i>d</i> <a href='#Page_75'>75</a></li>
- <li class='c014'>Writing, origin of, <i>b</i> 13</li>
-</ul>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>PRESBYTERIAL QUESTIONS FOR EXEGESES.</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c005'>Vid. Form of Gov. c. xiii. sec. 3.</p>
-<p class='c005'>1. Quî Deus unus dicitur?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. Quibus testimoniis probas Trinitatem?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. Cur Christum verum hominem esse opportuit?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>4. Quæ argumenta probant scripturam a Deo profectam esse?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>5. Qua ratione peccatum originis transmittitur in posteros?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>6. Estne peccatum aliquid positivum an privativum?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>7. Quid est peccatum in Spiritum Sanctum?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>8. An una et eadem ratio salutis consequendæ post lapsum fuit?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>9. Quæ sunt causa efficiens fidei, et objectum?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>10. Quo sensu fide justificari dicimur?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>11. An opera renatorum bona sunt pura, nulloque vitio contaminata?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>12. Qua ratione vita æterna dicitur merces?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>13. Quandoquidem mortuus est pro omnibus Christus, annon omnium Redemptor?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>14. Eruntne damnatorum pœnæ perpetuæ?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>15. Quæ sunt veræ et internæ ecclesiæ proprietates?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>16. Nullumne est discrimen inter episcopum et presbyterum?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>17. Quibus est exhibenda cœna Domini?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>18. Quinam sunt baptizandi?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>19. Licetne homini christiano, cum vocatur, magistratum gerere?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>20. Quinam ad judicium ecclesiasticum vocandi sunt?</p>
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>NOW IN PRESS</h2>
-</div>
-<p class='c005'><i>THE REV. DR. JOHN GILL’S COMMENTARY</i>.</p>
-<p class='c005'>The <span class='sc'>Old Testament</span> is now in the press, and the first volume expected out
-in the month of May. To subscribers the price will be 6 dollars per vol. sheep;
-$7 in calf; and $5 25 per vol. in boards. On subscribing, the New Testament
-can be delivered in 3 volumes, being already printed.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The following is taken from the Minutes of the Philadelphia Baptist Association—October,
-1815.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>“Oct. 18.—This association have heard with pleasure, by a communication
-from Mr. Woodward, of his intention to publish Dr. Gill’s Exposition of the Old
-Testament, in six large quarto volumes; one of which he hopes, if life and health
-be spared, to issue every 4 or 5 months, at the price originally proposed; that
-is, $5,25 each vol. in boards—6 in sheep, and 7 in calf. Resolved that this
-association recommend to the churches, and the brethren of our denomination
-generally, the encouragement of the work, and that each church subscribe at
-least for a copy for its respective minister for the time being, and communicate
-the result of their subscriptions to Mr. Woodward, as early as possible. He
-hopes to issue the first volume in the Spring. Sister associations throughout the
-union are affectionately invited to patronize the publication, and should their
-piety and wisdom approve of the measure, recommend the adoption of a plan
-in their churches generally similar to what is above recommended.”</p>
-<p class='c005'><i>SCOTT’S FAMILY BIBLE.</i></p>
-<p class='c005'>W. W. Woodward is preparing for the press, in 3 vols. quarto, the Rev. Dr.
-<span class='sc'>Scott’s Family Bible</span>, on a new arrangement. The work will contain every
-article, except the Marginal References; and the Notes will follow immediately
-after the verses to which they belong, and the Practical Observations at the end
-of each chapter. The first volume will be published as speedily as possible.—The
-flattering encouragement already received, induces the publisher to put to
-press a large edition. A copy-right is secured for this popular plan. Price in
-boards 18 dolls. 75 cents, bound 21 dolls. Proposals shall be sent to any persons
-who will interest themselves in the work—one copy for every five subscribed
-for. The Royal Octavo Bible, recently printed by W. W. W. contains all the
-Marginal References, all the Introductions to the Books, and also to the Chapters,
-with the General Preface, for $5, common, and $5 50, fine paper; plates
-added, $1 50; David’s Psalms, or Watts’s imitation, 50 cents; Concordance,
-25 cents. It may be had with or without the above; with them separately, or all
-bound in one, or two volumes: one dollar advance, if bound in two volumes.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The <span class='sc'>First Volume</span> will be out in the Spring, and the other volumes as
-early after as practicable—this plan is exceedingly popular. The following is
-an extract of a letter from a respectable clergyman:—viz. “I am happy to inform
-you, your edition, on the new plan, meets the general approbation. Of this
-you will be convinced, when I tell you, that in obtaining <i>two hundred subscribers</i>,
-I have done little else than to follow along after Proposals for other editions of
-the same work. About 40 sets of the above are to be bound in calf.—Many have
-subscribed for <i>this</i>, who have absolutely refused to subscribe for <i>others</i>. I think
-you may safely conclude, therefore, that many families will be blessed with this
-excellent work, who would, perhaps, have ever remained destitute, had it not
-been for <i>this edition</i>.”</p>
-<p class='c005'>A new Edition of</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>THE POCKET BIBLE</i>,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Will be ready in January, 1816, in a variety of bindings, from 125 to 500 cents.</p>
-<p class='c005'><i>CONFESSION OF FAITH</i>, or, the Constitution of the Presbyterian
-Church in the United States of America; containing the Catechism, and the
-Directory for the worship of God: together with the Plan of Government and
-Discipline, as amended and ratified by the General Assembly at their Session in
-May, 1805. Price 1 dollar 12-1/2 cents. Sheep gilt 1 dollar 25 cents.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>The CONFESSION OF FAITH</i>: the Larger and Shorter Catechisms,
-with the Scripture-proofs at large; the Covenants, national and solemn League;
-the Acknowledgment of Sins, and Engagement to Duties: the Directories for
-Public and Family Worship; and the Form of Church Government; with Acts
-of Assembly and Parliament relative thereto, and approbative of, the same, of
-public authority in the Church of Scotland: and also in the Associate Church,
-and the Reformed Church, in the United States of America. Together with
-the Sum of Saving knowledge, and the practical use thereof.—Price 1 dollar 75
-cent fine, and 1 dollar 50 cents common.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Pocket Edition of <i>WATTS’S PSALMS AND HYMNS</i>.—W. W. Woodward
-has printed a new edition, which may be had at the following prices:—Plain
-75 cents. Gilt backs, fine paper, 1 dollar 12-1/2 cents. Morocco 2 dollars.
-Morocco with gilt leaves, 2 dollars 25 cents. Red sheep 1 dollar 62-1/2 cents.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Also, just published—a neat and correct edition of the above, with a large
-type: taken from W. W. W’s last corrected pocket edition. Price, fine paper,
-1 dollar 25 cents, plain; morocco, gilt leaves, 3 dollars 25 cents; sheep
-gilt, 1 dollar 75 cents; common paper, 1 dollar in plain binding.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>RIPPON’S SELECTION</i> (copy-right) in a neat pocket volume, with a
-variety of New <span class='sc'>Hymns</span>, not in former editions; prepared by the Rev. Dr. Staughton.—Prices,
-plain bound and lettered, 75 cents. Gilt backs 1 dollar 12-1/4 cents.
-Morocco, yellow leaves, 2 dollars, and gilt leaves, morocco, 2 dollars 25 cents.</p>
-<p class='c005'>JUST PRINTED,</p>
-<p class='c005'><i>BUCK’S THEOLOGICAL DICTIONARY</i>,<br />
-2 vols. in 1, 350 cents.—4th edition, with an account of the Cumberland Presbyterians.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Proposals are out for printing the WORKS of<br />
-<i>The Rev. JOHN B. LINN, D. D.</i><br />
-Late Pastor of the First Presbyterian Church, Philadelphia.—2 vols. octavo.</p>
-<p class='c005'>Lately Printed,<br />
-<i>BUCK’S PRACTICAL EXPOSITOR</i>,<br />
-Price 112-1/2 cents.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='sc'>Also</span>, <i>THE PIOUS SELECTION</i> 112-1/2 cents.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>PROOF CATECHISM</i>, revised by the Rev. Dr. James P. Wilson,
-50 cents per dozen.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Also—a new edition of the
-<i>SEQUEL to JANEWAY’S TOKEN FOR CHILDREN</i>, 19 cents.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>A constant supply of the latest Theological Publications on hand; and always
-a very general Assortment of BOOKS in the various departments of Literature.
-Orders made up for Libraries and Book Stores on the most liberal terms.</p>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c1'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div><span class='large'>Footnotes</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='footnote' id='f1'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r1'>1</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Vid. Grot. de jur. bell. &amp; pacis, Lib. ii. cap. v. § 9.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f2'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r2'>2</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>The Theatre is said to have commenced at Athens, but to have been so much
-disapproved of, both in Greece and at Rome, that it was allowed no permanency
-till the days of Pompey. Minutius Felix derided the Christians for abstaining
-from this amusement. It is not probable therefore that the first Christians
-required any reproof in any of the Epistles for this vice. But every abuse of it
-may find its correction in scripture. Morals and piety may be thrown into Dialogue
-without reasonable objection. But to turn these things into play, and the
-amusement of the reprobate, cannot be justified.—There is no fairness in arguing
-from what they might be, to prove the lawfulness of plays in the state in
-which they are, always have been, and will probably always be. That they are,
-and tend to evil is proved by the avidity with which they are frequented by even
-the worst members of society. They are calculated to excite the affections and
-passions in the highest manner, and so to render private happiness, domestic enjoyments,
-and religious observances insipid or disgusting. The reiteration of
-scenes of impurity, illicit amours, extravagant passions, jealousy, and revenge,
-will make a silent and secret impression upon the mind, and if they do not promote
-the same wickedness, they will at least render the mind less abhorrent of
-such crimes. True religion requires the exclusion of such imaginations, the immediate
-banishment of such thoughts, that we should mortify and deny ourselves;
-“<i>Blessed are the pure in heart for they shall see God.</i>” The cruelty and
-bloodshed frequently threatened, or resorted to in defence of false honour; the
-pomp, pride, and ambition not unfrequently exhibited upon the stage, must necessarily
-prompt to like feats in vindication of character, or at least lead to self-importance
-and fastidiousness; but the gospel teaches humility, self-denial,
-lowliness of mind; “<i>Blessed are the poor in spirit.</i>” When such representations
-please, they prove the mind corrupt, and become an index of the morals of those
-who are entertained with such spectacles. The Christian duties of meekness, silence,
-forbearance, humility, bearing the cross, faith, and repentance, are either
-incapable of being transferred to the stage, or if seen there are exposed to contempt,
-and ridicule. The addresses to Deity, and prayers there offered, are surely
-Heaven-provoking blasphemies. The Theatre interrupts religious, domestic,
-and public duties; it dissipates and fascinates the mind; weakens conscience,
-grieves the Holy Spirit, wastes property, and time; and unqualifies both for
-this, and the world to come.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Every one who attends is chargeable with the evil which obtains before him,
-for he goes voluntarily, he submits himself as to the matter of his amusement to
-others, and thus with the blessings of Providence, bribes the enemies of God to
-blaspheme him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Some men of character for morals have countenanced, and some have written
-for the stage, perhaps they calculated upon what it might be, and aimed to correct
-the evil by drawing to it the more respectable of society. But the great majority
-of men are enemies to God, these will only be pleased with evil, and their
-pleasure will always be sought, because interest will compel to this. This is
-therefore doing evil that good may come; if indeed it can under any circumstances
-be good, to turn even correct performances, if such there were, into publick
-amusement.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>After all there can be no hope of a total removal of this evil, yet we are on
-this account no more excused from bearing testimony against it, than from opposing
-other crimes which cannot be wholly prevented.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f3'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r3'>3</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>The Hebrew word</i> שאל <i>which is here used, does not only signify</i> commodavit,
-<i>or</i> usui dedit, <i>or</i> accepit, <i>but</i> petiit, <i>or</i> postulavit; <i>in the last of which senses
-it is to be understood, in</i> Deut. x. 12. What doth the Lord require or demand of
-thee, &amp;c. <i>And in</i> Judges v. 25. <i>where the same word is used, it is said, that</i> Sisera
-asked water of Jael; <i>not as one that was borrowing it of her, but as a gratuity for
-former kindness which he had shewn to her</i>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f4'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r4'>4</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>From נשך, momordit.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f5'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r5'>5</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See 3 vol. p. 422.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f6'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r6'>6</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Mendacium officiosum.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f7'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r7'>7</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>This is called <i>mendacium jocosum</i>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f8'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r8'>8</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>This is called <i>mendacium pernitiosum</i>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f9'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r9'>9</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Page 509.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f10'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r10'>10</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Quest. LXXVIII. Vol. III. 170.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f11'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r11'>11</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Quest. LXXXII.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f12'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r12'>12</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Vol. II. 44.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f13'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r13'>13</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Κτίσις these mean the animal part of man.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f14'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r14'>14</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>These several heads, concerning the aggravations of sin, are contained in
-three or four lines, which are helpful to our memories. Most of the heads of
-this answer, are contained in that verse, <i>Quis?</i> <i>Quid?</i> <i>Ubi?</i> <i>Quibus auxiliis?</i>
-<i>Cur?</i> <i>Quomodo?</i> <i>Quando?</i> And those that relate to our contracting the guilt
-of other men’s sins, in the following lines; <i>Jussu.</i> <i>Consilio.</i> <i>Consensu.</i> <i>Palpo.</i> <i>Recursu.</i>
-<i>Participans.</i> <i>Nutans.</i> <i>Non obstans.</i> <i>Non manifestans.</i> <i>Incessans.</i> <i>Minuens.</i>
-<i>Non mærens.</i> <i>Solicitansve.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f15'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r15'>15</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Vol. II. Quest. XXVIII, XXIX, and Vol. III. Quest. LXXXIX.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f16'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r16'>16</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Vol. II. Quest. XLIV. Page 273-290.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f17'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r17'>17</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Quest. LXX, LXXI. Vol. III. p. 66-96. and what was said under those answers,
-to explain the doctrine of justification.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f18'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r18'>18</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Quest. LXXVI. Vol. III. p. 166.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f19'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r19'>19</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Quest. LXXII., LXXIII. Vol. III. p. 98.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f20'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r20'>20</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>To affect to honour the mercy of God, by supposing this is sufficient
-for all our sins, however persevered in, is to disparage his truth which has proposed
-terms of mercy, connected our salvation with them, and pronounced them
-exclusive. It is to imagine that Deity shall change his purposes; it is an affront
-to his wisdom to suppose that after he has placed us in a state of probation and
-made us accountable, no retribution should be made. It indicates insincerity,
-and not a real regard for the divine glory, to set up such a substitute for the
-gospel scheme of salvation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>To excuse sin by alleging our impotency to good, is disingenuous; because
-the party can be conscious of no obstacle, unless his own inclinations to evil can
-be so denominated. This excuse casts the blame on God. To persist in sin
-under such pretences, is <i>to do evil that good may come</i>, which, the Apostle of the
-Gentiles declares renders condemnation just; it is to sin <i>that grace may abound</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>To defer the acceptation of offered mercy, and put off the work of repentance,
-is unwise, as it is heaping sorrows against the day of bitterness; it is imprudent,
-because it is to remain at enmity with Him upon whom we depend, and to be
-liable at every moment of this uncertain life to be involved in everlasting despair.
-It is evidence of a very sordid mind to prefer the base gratifications of the
-senses, to the refined pleasures of virtue, and the beauty, peace, and comforts of
-holiness.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>If the procrastination proceed from a dread of the labour of acquiring the
-knowledge of the truth, this will be increased by every hour’s delay, as the mind
-becomes thereby the less susceptible of religious impressions. The time in
-which the work should be accomplished also becomes the shorter; like a traveler,
-who has mistaken his course, the impenitent has every step to tread back again,
-and his time is proportionally curtailed. The truths of natural science flatter
-our pride and ambition, but those of religion humble and crucify them; the
-latter, being opposed to the carnal mind, disgust; if such disgust produce a delay
-of conversion, the truths which have once excited such aversion will be more
-likely afterwards to do it, because the mind by once having rejected them has
-become more sensual, and opposed to moral good.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The cares and business of life not merely pre-occupy the mind, and exclude
-the thoughts of religion, but augment our addictedness to earthly objects, and
-render progressively the mind more insensible to lessons of piety. In old age
-avarice or sensuality are often at the highest pitch; the man has become more
-impatient and irritable, tenacious even of his errours, and averse to changes, no
-change can be looked for but the great one, when the messenger arrives, who
-brings a scythe in his hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>To defer conversion till death, that its terrors may dissolve the charms of the
-world, besides the hazard of surprise, is unreasonable, as it supposes mercy
-when we have persisted in rebellion as long as we can; it is to expect that God’s
-Spirit shrill always strive with man; it is highly presumptuous; and it exposes
-also to self-deception, as religion in that late hour must be the effect of necessity,
-and destitute of the fruits and proofs of holiness.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f21'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r21'>21</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>I come now to say somewhat of the antiquity of Musical Instruments.
-But that these were not used in the Christian Church in the primitive times, is
-attested by all the ancient writers with one consent. Hence they figuratively
-explain all the places of the Old Testament, which speak of Musical Instruments;
-as I might easily shew by a thousand testimonies, out of <i>Clement</i> of
-<i>Alexandria</i>, <i>Basil</i>, <i>Ambrose</i>, <i>Jerom</i>, <i>Augustine</i>, <i>Chrysostom</i>, and many others. I
-can hardly forbear laughing, when I meet with some of their allegorical interpretations.
-Thus an Instrument with ten strings, according to them, signifies
-the Ten Commandments, as the unknown author of the Commentary upon the
-<i>Psalms</i>, among <i>Jerom’s</i> works, often explains it, <i>In</i> Ps. xxxii. 2. xliii. 4, &amp;c. But
-the pleasantest fancy is the explication of those words: <i>Praise him with stringed
-Instruments and Organs</i>. Ps. cl. 4. “That the guts being twisted by reason of
-abstinence from food, and so all carnal desires being subdued, men are found
-fit for the kingdom of God, to sing his praises.” But <i>Chrysostom</i> talks more
-handsomly; “As the <i>Jews</i> praised God with all kind of Instruments; so we are
-commanded to praise him with all the members of our bodies, our eyes, <i>&amp;c.</i>”
-<i>In</i> Ps. cl. And <i>Clement</i> of <i>Alexandria</i> talks much to the same purpose. Pædag.
-<i>lib. ii. c. 4</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Besides, the ancients thought it unlawful to use those Instruments in God’s
-worship. Thus the unknown author of a Treatise, among <i>Justin Martyr’s</i> works:
-“<i>Q.</i> If songs were invented by unbelievers with a design of deceiving, and were
-appointed for those under the Law, because of the childishness of their minds;
-why do they, who have received the perfect instructions of grace, which are
-most contrary to the foresaid customs, nevertheless sing in the Churches, just
-as they did, who were children under the Law? <i>Answ.</i> Plain Singing is not
-childish, but only the Singing with lifeless Organs, with Dancing and Cym-bals,
-<i>&amp;c.</i> Whence the use of such Instruments, and other things fit for
-children, is laid aside, and Plain Singing only retained.” Resp. ad Orthodox.
-<i>Q.</i> 107.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Chrysostom</i> seems to have been of the same mind, and to have thought, the
-use of such Instruments was rather allowed the <i>Jews</i> in consideration of their
-weakness, than prescribed and commanded. <i>In</i> Ps. cl. But that he was mistaken,
-and that Musical Instruments were not only allowed the <i>Jews</i>, as he thought,
-and <i>Isidorus</i> of <i>Pelusium</i>, (whose testimony I shall mention presently) but were
-prescribed by God, may appear from the Texts of Scripture I have before referred
-to.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Clement</i>, as I have mentioned already, thought these things fitter for beasts,
-than for men. And though <i>Basil</i> highly commends, and stifly defends the way
-of Singing by turns; yet he thought musical Instruments unprofitable and hurtful.
-He calls them, <i>the inventions of</i> Jubal <i>of the race of</i> Cain. And a little after,
-he thus expresses himself: “<i>Laban</i> was a lover of the harp, and of music, with
-which he would have sent away <i>Jacob</i>: <i>If thou hadst told me</i>, said he, <i>I would
-have sent thee away with mirth, and musical instruments, and an Harp</i>. But the
-Patriarch avoided that music, as being a thing that would hinder his regarding
-the works of the Lord, and his considering the works of his hands.” Comment.
-in Is. <i>c.</i> v. <i>p.</i> 956, 957. And a little before, he says thus “In such vain
-arts, as the playing upon the Harp, or Pipe, or dancing, as soon as the action
-ceases, the work itself vanishes. So that really, according to the Apostle’s expression,
-<i>The end of these things is destruction</i>.” <i>page</i> 955.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Isidore</i> of <i>Pelusium</i>, who lived since <i>Basil</i>, held, music was allowed the <i>Jews</i>
-by God, in a way of condescension to their childishness: “If God” <i>says he</i>, “bore
-with bloody sacrifices, because of men’s childishness at that time; why should
-you wonder, he bore with the music of an harp and a psaltery?” Epist. lib.
-2. <i>ep.</i> 176.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Nay, there are some ecclesiastical officers in the Church of <i>England</i>, who, for
-their very profession and employment, would have been kept from the communion
-of the Church, except they desisted from it. So we are informed by the
-<i>Apostolical Constitutions</i>: “If any come to the mystery of godliness, being a
-player upon a pipe, a lute, or an harp; let him leave it off, or be rejected.”
-<i>Lib.</i> viii. <i>c.</i> 32.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>From what has been said, it appears, no musical instruments were used in
-the pure times of the Church. It became Antichristian, before they were received.
-<i>Bellarmine</i> himself does not deny, they were late brought into the
-Church. “The second ceremony,” <i>says he</i>, “are the Musical Instruments, which
-began to be used in the service of the Church, in the time of Pope <i>Vitalian</i>,
-about the year 660, as <i>Platina</i> relates out of the <i>Pontifical</i>; or, as <i>Aimonius</i>
-rather thinks, <i>lib.</i> iv. <i>De gestis Francorum</i>, <i>c.</i> 114. after the year 820, in the
-time or <i>Lewis</i> the Pious.” De Missa, <i>lib.</i> ii. <i>c.</i> 15. Item, De bon. Oper. <i>lib.</i> i. c. 17.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Dr. <i>N.</i> would hardly have denied, the Church of <i>Rome</i> was become Antichristian,
-when they were first brought in; even though we should allow <i>Bellarmine’s</i>
-first date of them to be the true one. But a Reformed Divine may well be ashamed
-of that antiquity, that does not exceed the rise of Antichrist. But I
-am fully satisfied both <i>Bellarmine’s</i> dates are false, and that instrumental music,
-in the worship of God, is much later than either of those accounts allow. For
-as to <i>Platina</i>, he seems to suspect the truth of what he wrote: “<i>Vitalian</i>,” <i>says
-he</i>, “being careful about the worship of God, made an ecclesiastical rule, and
-ordered the singing, with the addition (as some think) of organs.” In Vital.
-Again, <i>Bellarmine’s Aimonius</i> is not the true <i>Aimonius</i>. For (as Dr. <i>Cave</i> says)
-<i>Aimonius of Fleury</i>, who wrote, <i>De gestis Francorum</i>, flourished about the year
-1000; and his History, which begins at the destruction of <i>Troy</i>, is brought down
-as far as the coronation of King <i>Pipin</i>, or to the year 752. For what comes after
-that, and makes up the fifth book, and the latter part of the fourth, is the continuation
-of another hand. Hist. Liter. <i>p.</i> 597.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Farther, that these instruments were not used in God’s worship, in <i>Thomas
-Aquinas’s</i> time, that is, about the year 1250, he himself is witness. “In the old
-Law,” <i>says he</i>, “God was praised both with musical instruments and human voices,
-and according to that <i>Psalm</i> xxxiii. <i>Praise the Lord with harp, sing unto
-him with the psaltery, and an instrument of ten strings.</i> But the Church does not
-use musical instruments to praise God, lest she should seem to judaize.
-Therefore, by parity of reason, she should not use singing.” Secunda secundæ
-Questio 91, <i>art.</i> 4. &amp; <i>conclus.</i> 4. The like objection is made by our author. But
-<i>Thomas</i> answers: “As to this objection, we must say, as the philosopher, <i>Lib.</i>
-viii. <i>Polit.</i> that Pipes are not to be used for teaching, nor any artificial instruments,
-as the harp, or the like: but whatever will make the hearers good men.
-For these musical instruments rather delight the mind, than form it to any
-good disposition. But under the Old Testament such instruments were used,
-partly because the people were harder and more carnal; upon which account
-they were to be stirred up by these instruments, as likewise by earthly promises;
-and partly because these bodily instruments were typical of something.”
-Upon which place Cardinal <i>Cajetan</i> gives us this Comment: “’Tis
-to be observed, the Church did not use organs in <i>Thomas’s</i> time. Whence,
-even to this day, the Church of <i>Rome</i> does not use them in the Pope’s presence.
-And truly it will appear, that musical instruments are not to be suffered
-in the ecclesiastical offices we meet together to perform, for the sake of
-receiving internal instruction from God; and so much the rather are they to
-be excluded, because God’s internal discipline exceeds all human disciplines,
-which rejected these kind of instruments.” <i>Cit.</i> Hoffm. Lex. voce <i>Musica</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>If any one objects the practice of some foreign churches, I answer with Mr.
-<i>Hickman</i>: “They are laid aside by most of the reformed churches; nor would
-they be retained among the <i>Lutherans</i>, unless they had forsaken their own
-<i>Luther</i>; who, by the confession of Eckard, reckoned <i>organs among the ensigns
-of Baal</i>. That they still continue in some of the <i>Dutch</i> churches, is against
-the minds of the Pastors. For in the National Synod at <i>Middleburg</i>, in the
-year 1581, and in the Synod of <i>Holland</i> and <i>Zealand</i>, in the year 1594, it was
-resolved, <i>That they would endeavour to obtain of the magistrate the laying aside
-of organs, and the singing with them in the churches, even out of the time of worship,
-either before or after sermons</i>: so far are those Synods from bearing with
-them in the worship itself.” <i>Apol. p.</i> 139.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The Church of <i>England</i> herself had formerly no very good opinion of these
-musical instruments; as may appear by her Homilies: “Lastly, God’s vengeance
-hath been, and is daily provoked, because much wicked people pass
-nothing to resort unto the church; either for that they are so sore blinded,
-that they understand nothing of God or godliness, and care not with devilish
-malice to offend their neighbours; or else for that they see the church altogether
-scoured of such gay gazing sights, as their gross phantasie was greatly
-delighted with; because they see the false religion abandoned, and the true
-restored, which seemeth an unsavory thing to their unsavory taste, as may
-appear by this that a woman said to her neighbour: Alas! gossip, what shall
-we now do at church, since all the Saints are taken away; since all the goodly
-sights we were wont to have are gone; since we cannot hear the like piping,
-singing, Chaunting, and playing upon the organs that we could before? But,
-dearly beloved, we ought greatly to rejoice and give God thanks, that our
-churches are delivered out of all those things, which displeased God so sore,
-and filthily defiled his holy house, and his place of prayer.” Hom. of the place
-and time of prayer, <i>part.</i> 2. p. 131.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>A great number also of the Clergy in the first convocation of Queen <i>Elizabeth</i>
-in 1562, earnestly laboured to have organs, and that pompous theatrical way of
-singing laid aside, and missed the carrying it but by one vote, as I observe elsewhere.
-And in this Archbishop <i>Parker</i> concurred with them, or at least did not
-oppose them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I will add one or two testimonies of Papists against this cathedral way of
-worship. The first shall be <i>Polydorus Virgilius</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Having taken notice of <i>Austine’s</i> dislike of that way of singing in his time, he
-thus proceeds: “But in our time, it seems much less useful to the commonwealth,
-now our singers make such a noise in our churches, that nothing can
-be heard, beside the sound of the voice; and they who come there (that is all
-that are in the city) are satisfied with the concert of music, which their ears
-itch for, and never mind the sense of the words. So that we are come to that pass,
-that in the opinion of the common people, the whole affair of religious worship
-is lodged in these singers; although, generally speaking, there is no sort of
-men more loose or wicked: and yet a good part of the people run to church,
-as to a theatre, to hear them bawl: they hire and encourage them; and look
-upon them alone as ornaments to the house of God. Wherefore, without
-doubt, it would be for the interest of religion, either to cast these jackdaws
-out of the churches; or else to teach them when they sing, they should do it
-rather in the manner of reading, than bawling; as <i>Austine</i> says <i>Athanasius</i>
-ordered, <i>&amp;c.</i>” De Invent. Rer. <i>lib.</i> vi. <i>c.</i> 2. <i>p.</i> 379.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Next hear the judgment of <i>Erasmus</i>: “Let a man be more covetous than
-<i>Crassus</i>, more foul-mouthed than <i>Zoilus</i>, he shall be reckoned a pious man, if
-he sings those prayers well, though he understands nothing of them. But
-what, I beseech you, must they think of Christ, who can believe he is delighted
-with such a noise of men’s voices? Not content with this, we have brought
-into our churches a certain operose and theatrical music; such a confused disorderly
-chattering of some words, as I hardly think was ever heard in any of
-the <i>Grecian</i> or <i>Roman</i> theatres. The church rings with the noise of trumpets,
-pipes and dulcimers; and human voices strive to bear their part with them.—Men
-run to church as to a theatre, to have their ears tickled. And for this
-end organ-makers are hired with great salaries, and a company of boys, who
-waste all their time in learning these whining tones. Pray now compute how
-many poor people in great extremity might be maintained by the salaries of
-those singers.” In 1 Cor. xiv. 19.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Lastly, <i>Lindanus</i> says: “Who will compare the Music of this present age,
-with that which was formerly used? Whatever is sung now, signifies little for
-informing the people; which ’tis certain the ancients always designed.”
-Panopl. <i>lib.</i> iv. <i>c.</i> 73.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='sc'>Pierce’s Vindication.</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f22'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r22'>22</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>The first hymns of Gospel churches, were neither rythm, nor metre; and
-there was no version of David’s psalms, that could be sung before Calvin’s time.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f23'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r23'>23</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Ὑμνήσαντε.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f24'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r24'>24</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>There is a difference between praising God, and instructing men.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f25'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r25'>25</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>The first christians composed and set to music their hymns.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f26'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r26'>26</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Grotius thought the first Gospel hymns were extemporary. Basnage
-from Tertullian says; “neither the prayers they made to God, nor the hymns
-which they sung to his honour were reduced to rule; every one drew them
-from the Holy Scriptures, or from his own treasure, according to his genius.”
-A council of 70 bishops, A. D. 272. charged among other things against Paulus
-bishop of Antioch, that he abolished the Psalms, which were sung <i>in gloriam
-Christi</i>.—When the Ariam sang the doxology <i>Glory be to the Father</i>, the orthodox
-added, <i>and to the Son and Spirit</i>. Vide Dr. Latta, and Mr. Tod, on Psalmody.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f27'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r27'>27</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Mr. Richard Allein’s essay on singing, chap. iv. who seems, in my opinion,
-in the whole of his short performance, to argue with a considerable degree of candor
-and judgment.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f28'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r28'>28</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Sidenham’s gospel ordinance concerning singing, &amp;c. and Hitchen’s scripture
-proof for singing, &amp;c.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f29'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r29'>29</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>It cannot be denied that the Psalms of David are called indifferently by these
-three names, psalms, hymns, and songs שיר, מזמר, תהלה, ψαλμὸς, ὑμνὴ, ὀδη,
-and sometimes the same psalm is called a song or psalm, as in the title of Psalm.
-lxv. or a song of a psalm [as the LXX. render it, ὀδη ψαλμοῦ.] And in Psalm cv.
-2. when it is said, Sing unto him, sing psalms unto him; שירו לו זמרו לו
-the former word signifies to sing a spiritual song; the latter to sing a psalm; or, as
-the Septuagint render the same word, in 1 Chron. xvi. 9. an hymn [Ἀσατε αυτω και
-υμνησατε.] See Sidenham’s gospel-ordinance, &amp;c. chap. ii. and Ainsworth on the title
-of Psalm liii. whom he therein refers to.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f30'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r30'>30</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Vol. I. 48. 69. Quest. III. and IV.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f31'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r31'>31</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Quest. LXVII, LXVIII. Vol. III. p. 16.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f32'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r32'>32</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Many instances of this might be produced, viz. Gen. iii. 15. instead of, it shall
-bruise thy head, they render it she; by which they understand the Virgin Mary,
-shall bruise thy head, that is, the serpent’s. And, Gen. xlviii. 16. instead of, my
-name shall be named on them, which are the words of Jacob, concerning Joseph’s
-sons; it is rendered, my name shall be invoked, or called upon by them; which favours
-the doctrine of invocation of saints. And, in Psal. xcix. 5. instead of exalt the
-Lord thy God, and worship at his holy hill, they read, worship his footstool;
-which gives countenance to their error of paying divine adoration to places or things.
-And, in Heb. xi. 21. instead of, Jacob worshipped leaning on the top of his staff,
-they render it, he worshipped the top of his staff. And, in Heb. xiii. 16. instead
-of, with such sacrifices God is well pleased, they render it, with such sacrifices
-God is merited; which they make use of to establish the merit of good works.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f33'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r33'>33</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>There is indeed, one verse in Jeremiah, chap. x. 11. that is written in Chaldee;
-which, it is probable, they did not, at that time, well understand; but the prophet, by
-this, intimates to them, that they should be carried into a country where that language
-should be used; and therefore the Holy Ghost furnishes them with a message,
-that they were to deliver to the Chaldeans, from the Lord, in their own language.
-The gods, that have not made the heavens and the earth, even they shall perish
-from the earth, and from these heavens.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f34'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r34'>34</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Vol. I. Quest. IV. p. 69, &amp; seq.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f35'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r35'>35</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Quest. CLIX, CLX.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f36'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r36'>36</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Θεοῦ και ἐσμεν συνεργο.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f37'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r37'>37</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Vide T. Williams on the Song of Solomon.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f38'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r38'>38</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Vide Table of the Order of the Prophecies. Vol. I. p. 55.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f39'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r39'>39</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>The word is שלו, which being neither a root to any other word, nor derived
-from any other root, by which the sense of Hebrew words is generally known, nor
-found any where in scripture, excepting in those two or three places which refer to
-this particular dispensation of providence; it is an hard matter to determine the
-sense of it, without comparing these two scriptures together.—It occurs Numb. xi.
-31, 32. Exod. xvi. 13. Psa. cv. 40.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f40'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r40'>40</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See the epistle to the Hebrews, chap. v. to the x. inclusive, and 2 Cor. x. 1-6.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f41'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r41'>41</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Vol. I. p. 78.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f42'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r42'>42</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Lightfoot’s Harmony of the Four Evangelists. And his Harmony of the New
-Testament, Vol. I. p. 268.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f43'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r43'>43</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>This is called Synecdoche.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f44'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r44'>44</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>This is called a Metonymy.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f45'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r45'>45</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See more of this in an ingenious discourse on this subject by Smith in Solomon’s
-portraiture of old age.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f46'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r46'>46</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Vid. Cic. in Orat. pro Planc. florem equitum Romanorum ornamentum civitatis,
-firmamentum reipublicæ publicanorum ordine contineri. And in his oration, ad
-Quintum Fratrem, he has many things concerning the dignity of the publicans, and
-their advantage to the commonwealth: accordingly he says, Si publicanis adversemur
-ordinem do nobis optime meritum, &amp; per nos cum republica conjunctum, &amp; a
-nobis, &amp; a republica disjungimus. And, in his familiar epistles, Lib. xix. Epist. x.
-he calls them, Ordinem sibi semper commendatissimum; &amp; ad Atticum, Lib. vii.
-Epist. vii. he says, Cæsari amicissimos fuisse publicanos.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f47'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r47'>47</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Joseph. Antiquit. Lib. xiii. Cap. ix. And we have an account of their pride
-and insolence in the same author, chap. xviii. and of the great disturbance that they
-made in civil governments, if chief magistrates did not please them.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f48'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r48'>48</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Joseph. Antiquit. Lib. xi. Cap. viii.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f49'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r49'>49</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Tertull. in præscrip. adv. Hær. Cap. xlv. and Epiphanius, in Hær. Cap. xx.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f50'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r50'>50</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>That Herod was disposed to make alterations in the Jews religion, by adding
-to it a mixture of several rites and ceremonies, taken from the Heathen, is affirmed
-by some. See Cunæus de Rep. Hœb. Lib. i Cap. xvi. who quotes Josephus as
-saying, that he altered the ancient laws of their country.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f51'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r51'>51</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Vol. III. p. 495.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f52'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r52'>52</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Sacrament is the word used by the Vulgate for mystery, and this is a
-much more probable meaning of the term as used by the early christians.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f53'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r53'>53</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Και σημειον ελαβε περιτομης, σφραγιδα της δικαιοσυνης της πίστεως.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f54'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r54'>54</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>When these two are distinguished by divines, the one is generally called, signum
-significans; the other signum confirmans; or, the former is said, significare; the
-latter, obsignare.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f55'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r55'>55</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>It were to be wished, the inspired books had been more generally
-honoured, as the only sufficient rule of judgment, by those who have wrote in
-favor of episcopacy, upon the plan of a <span class='fss'>DIVINE RIGHT</span>; and the rather, as they
-speak of it, not merely as an institution of the gospel, but an essentially necessary
-one: insomuch, that gospel ordinances will be invalid, unless administered
-by those, who have been episcopally vested with holy orders.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>In a matter of such momentous concern, they would not have acted an unworthy
-part, if they had confined their pleas to the sacred writings; producing
-such passages from them as speak to the point, not implicitly and darkly; but
-in peremptory and express terms, so as to leave no reasonable room for hesitation
-or doubt. It would be dishonourary to the <span class='fss'>BIBLE</span>, and a gross reflection on
-the penman of it, to call that an “appointment of Christ,” and an “essentially
-necessary” one, which is not contained in this sacred volume, and with such
-clearness and precision, that sober and impartial inquirers may readily perceive
-it to be there, without foreign help to assist their sight. And yet, such help is
-made necessary by episcopal writers. They scarce ever fail of turning us to the
-<span class='fss'>FATHERS</span> in vindication of their cause; hereby virtually reflecting disgrace on
-the scriptures, as though they were insufficient, simply of themselves, to bring
-this controversy to an issue.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>In order to reconcile the appeal that is so often made to the <span class='fss'>FATHERS</span> with
-that honour which is due to the scriptures, the episcopalian plea is, that they
-consider these fathers, not as <i>judges</i>, but <i>witnesses</i> only in their cause. But
-what are they brought to witness? Is it, that episcopacy is an institution of
-Jesus Christ? If this is witnessed to in the sacred books, of which we, having
-these in our hands, are as good judges as they, it is sufficient. There is no
-need of any foreign testimony. If it is not, no other testimony can supply this
-defect. Are these fathers cited as witnesses to what was the practice in their
-day? This is now generally the pretence. They may, say the episcopalians,
-be properly appealed to, in order to know the truth of <span class='fss'>FACT</span> in the ages in which
-they lived. And if, from their unanimous testimony, even from the first days
-of Christianity, it appears, that <span class='fss'>GOVERNING</span> and ordaining <span class='fss'>AUTHORITY</span> was exercised
-by Bishops <span class='fss'>ONLY</span>, in distinction from Presbyters, and as an order in the
-church above them, it would argue great arrogance, if not obstinate perverseness,
-to dispute the divine original of episcopacy. But we must be excused,
-however perverse we may be accounted, if we cannot bring ourselves to think,
-that the practice of the church, since the apostles’ days, however universal, will
-justify our receiving that as an institution of Christ, and an essentially important
-one, which he himself hath not clearly and evidently made so, either in his
-own person, or by those inspired writers, whom he commissioned and instructed
-to declare his will: nor can we believe the great Author of christianity would
-have put the professors of it to the difficult, I may say, as to most of them, the
-impossible task of collecting any thing essential to their salvation from the voluminous
-records of antiquity. We are rather persuaded, he has ordered every
-article that is necessary, either in point of faith or practice, to be so fairly and
-legibly wrote by the sacred penman, as that there should be no need of having
-recourse to the ancient Fathers as <span class='fss'>WITNESSES</span>, any more than judges, to ascertain
-his mind. To suppose the contrary, would, in reality of construction, substitute
-<span class='fss'>TRADITION</span> the rule of essential truth, in the room of the <span class='fss'>SCRIPTURES</span>,
-which were “given by inspiration of God;” or, at least make the former so
-much a part of this rule, as that the latter, without it, would not be sufficiently
-complete. Such dishonour ought not to be cast on the one only standard of the
-real mind of Christ.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The Bishop, in whose defence an appeal is made to antiquity, is not related,
-by his office, to a single congregation of christians only, with one or more Presbyters
-belonging to it; but his charge is a diocess, consisting of a number of
-congregations, greater or less, with their respective Presbyters. The inquiry
-therefore is, whether it be an <span class='fss'>UNIVERSALLY ATTESTED FACT</span>, that episcopacy, in
-this sense, took place in, and through, the two first ages? A Bishop, at the head of
-a number of congregations, greater or less, is an officer in the church of Christ
-quite different from the pastor of a single congregation; though he should be
-called Bishop, as being the <span class='sc'>Head-Presbyter</span>, or vested with the character of
-<span class='fss'>PRIMUS INTER PARES</span>. It should be particularly noted, which of these kinds of
-episcopacy has the voice of the specified antiquity in its favour. It is willingly
-left with every man of common understanding, after he has gone over the following
-testimonies, to say, whether he thinks, that Bishops, after the <span class='fss'>DIOCESAN-MODE</span>,
-were known in the first ages of the church?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The Bishop, for whom the fathers are called in as <span class='fss'>WITNESSES</span>, is an officer in
-the church of an <span class='fss'>ORDER SUPERIOR</span> to that of Presbyters, and as distinct from it
-as the order of Presbyters is from that of Deacons; the pretence being this,
-that Presbyters were thought to have, in primitive times, no more right to meddle
-with the peculiar work of Bishops, than Deacons have to concern themselves
-with the peculiar work of Presbyters. The question therefore is, Whether it
-will appear from the following evidence, to be at all a <span class='fss'>FACT</span>, much less an <span class='fss'>UNIVERSALLY</span>
-known, and certainly attested one, that there were Bishops, in this
-sense, in any church, in any part of the christian world, within the two first
-centuries?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The Bishop, in whose favour the ancient Fathers are said universally to speak,
-is one to whom the <span class='fss'>EXCLUSIVE RIGHT OF GOVERNMENT</span> has been committed by
-the appointment of Jesus Christ, or his apostles as commissioned by him. Says
-the famous Bishop Hoadly, treating of the government of the church, as belonging
-to Bishops only, in the above appropriated sense, “And here—I think I
-may say, that we have as universal and as unanimous a testimony of all
-writers, and historians from the apostles’ days, as could reasonably be expected
-or desired: every one, who speaks of the government of the church, in
-any place, witnessing, that episcopacy was the settled form; and every one,
-who hath occasion to speak of the original of it, tracing it up to the apostles’
-days, and fixing it upon their decree.—Were there only testimonies to be produced,
-that this was the government of the church in all ages, it would be but
-reasonable to conclude it of apostolical institution;—but when we find the
-same persons witnessing, not only that it was episcopal, but that it was of
-apostolical institution, and delivered down from the beginning as such, this
-adds weight to the matter, and makes it more undoubted. So that here are
-two points to which they bear witness, that this was the government of the
-church in their days, and that it was of apostolical institution. And in these
-there is such a constancy and unanimity, that even St. Jerom himself traces up
-episcopacy to the very apostles, and makes it of their institution.”—He adds,
-“All churches and christians, as far as we know, seem to have been agreed, in
-this point, amidst all their other differences, as universally as can well be imagined.”
-One would suppose, from the peremptory manner in which this citation
-is expressed, that the <span class='fss'>FACT</span> it affirms was so evidently clear, as to leave
-no room for the least doubt. Those, who may think it worth while to look
-over the <i>testimonies</i> brought to view, in the following pages, will perhaps, by critically
-observing their real and just import, be surprized, that any man of learning,
-who professes a regard to truth, should speak of it, and with such a degree
-of assurance, as the <span class='fss'>UNIVERSAL DECLARATION OF ALL AGES</span> from the apostles, that
-episcopacy, in the impleaded sense, was the “form of government in the church
-in their day,” and that it was by “apostolical institution;” especially, if they
-should not be able to find, as it is certain they will not, so much as a single witness,
-for two hundred years, whose evidence is clear, direct, express, and full, in
-affirming, either that this was the form of government in the church, or that it
-was ever instituted by Christ, or his apostles: so far is it from the truth, that
-this is a <span class='fss'>FACT UNANIMOUSLY</span> and <span class='fss'>CONSTANTLY TESTIFIED TO</span>, even from the beginning,
-and through all ages.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The Bishop, for the support of whose claims antiquity is repaired to, is one
-with whom the <span class='fss'>SOLE POWER</span> of <span class='fss'>ORDINATION</span> is lodged; insomuch, that he only
-can convey holy orders conformably to the appointment of Jesus Christ; and
-should Presbyters presume to do this, they would take that upon them which
-they have no more a right to, than Deacons have to baptise, or administer the
-Lord’s supper. This part of the <span class='fss'>UNANIMOUS</span> report of <span class='fss'>ALL AGES</span> concerning
-the <span class='fss'>EXCLUSIVE RIGHT</span> of Bishops deserves most of all the special notice of
-the reader; and he is particularly desired, as he goes along, to point out to
-himself, for his own satisfaction; or to others, for their information, any one
-among all the testimonies he will have placed before his view, that plainly and
-directly affirms the <span class='fss'>RIGHT OF ORDINATION</span> to be peculiar to Bishops as a distinct
-order from Presbyters, and superior to them; or that this right was ever
-thus exercised by them. If he should not be able to do this, as unquestionably
-he will not, how strange must that affirmation appear, which says in the most
-positive terms, not only that this is <span class='fss'>FACT</span>, but a fact <span class='fss'>CONSTANTLY</span> and <span class='fss'>UNANIMOUSLY</span>
-witnessed to by the fathers, in <span class='fss'>ALL AGES</span> from the days of the apostles.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The Bishop, in whose defence antiquity is pleaded, is vested with the power
-of <span class='fss'>CONFIRMATION</span>, according to the mode of the church of England; and it is
-appropriated to him as his right in distinction from all others. But I need not
-assure the reader, he will in vain look to find it a <span class='fss'>FACT</span>, within the two first ages,
-that Bishops were either vested with, or ever exercised this power. For he
-must come down below these ages, before a word is said, by any one of the
-fathers, relative to this superstitious practice. Tertullian is the first that mentions
-it; and he mentions likewise some other corruptions, which had got
-mingled with christianity in that day.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>In short, the question in debate, so far as it relates to <span class='fss'>FACT</span>, is, not whether
-there were officers in the christian church, known by the name of Bishops in the
-apostolic age, and down along through the two first centuries? We join with
-the episcopalians in affirming this to be a truth universally testified to in those
-times: but the proper question is, what is <span class='fss'>FACT</span> with reference to the <span class='fss'>ORDER</span> of
-these Bishops, and the <span class='fss'>POWERS PECULIAR TO THEIR OFFICE</span>, and as <span class='fss'>EXERCISED</span> by
-them in it? The name of Bishop is one thing, and the <span class='fss'>POWER</span> claimed for, or
-exercised by him, is another. The dispute is, not about the name, but the
-power appropriated to it. This therefore should be heedfully attended to by
-all, in their examination of the evidences that will be produced; and they may,
-in this way, clearly and satisfactorily determine, each one for himself, whether it
-be at all an attested <span class='fss'>FACT</span>, much less a <span class='fss'>CONSTANT</span> and <span class='fss'>UNANIMOUSLY ATTESTED
-ONE</span>, from the apostles days, and down along through the two first ages, as
-well as after ones, that Bishops were vested with, and did actually exercise, the
-above specified powers, which are at this day claimed for them, as the appropriate
-work of their office by divine appointment?</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>CHAUNCY’S VIEW OF EPISCOPACY.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f56'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r56'>56</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See vol. II. page 86.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f57'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r57'>57</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See vol. III. page 424-426. and vol. II. page 205.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f58'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r58'>58</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Vol. III. p. 12.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f59'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r59'>59</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Βαπτιζω, has been said to signify immergo and <i>exclusively</i> when applied
-to sacred baptism. And this is necessary to establish immersion as the only
-mode. The question is not, therefore, whether Βαπτιζω, sometimes signifies to
-immerse, but <i>whether it never signifies any thing else</i>. This can be proved, it is
-presumed, by no Lexicographer, and no version of the New Testament. In the
-New Testament it is taken in different senses, for example we read of a Baptism
-with <i>the Holy Ghost and with fire</i>. It is therefore a <i>generic</i> term and not <i>specific</i>,
-as <i>immerse</i> cannot be substituted for it in all places. If a specific Greek term signifying
-to <i>plunge</i> had occasionally been used for it, in the New Testament, yet
-baptism being in our Saviour’s commission to his disciples, should not have been
-confined to one mode, but this is never the case. The numerous admissions of
-our divines, that Βαπτιζω, primarily signifies to <i>immerse</i>, and which are disingenuously
-collected to impose on the ignorant; do not weaken our cause, as
-they did neither influence the practice nor sentiments of those who used them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>If Βαπτιζω, signifies to <i>immerse totally</i>, or <i>partially</i>; to dip, to cleanse, or purify,
-&amp;c. it leaves the mode to our convenience or choice; and reason also accords,
-that the mode is unimportant with respect to moral defilement.—Porphery has
-“Βαπτιζεται μεχρι κεφαλης.” The oracle said “Βαπτιζη <i>him as a bottle</i>” (of leather,
-which could swim) “<i>but it is not lawful to plunge him wholly under water</i>.” Strabo
-says, “Βαπτιζομενων <i>up to the waist</i>.” Aristotle says “Βαπτεικαι ανθιζει τηνχειρα,”
-<i>it stains and renders florid the hand</i>. Aristophanes says, “Βαπτομενος Βραχειοις,”
-<i>stained with tawny colours</i>. Homer says, “¨Εβαπτετο δ᾽᾽ αιματι λιμνω,” <i>And the fountain
-was tinged with blood</i>. Rev. xix. 13. “Ιματων Βεβαμενον αιματι.” Isaiah xxi. 4.
-“<i>Fearfulness</i> Βαπτιζει <i>me</i>.”</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f60'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r60'>60</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Διαφοροις βαπτισμοις.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f61'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r61'>61</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>The promulgation of this command marks a new and important era in
-the history of the church and of the world. These words may be considered as
-the public and formal abrogation of the Mosaic economy; and the authoritative
-annunciation of the new order of things under the gospel.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The first communications of divine truth, through Adam and Noah, were made
-indiscriminately to the human family; but, in both instances, the precious deposit
-was generally adulterated, and nearly lost. The wisdom of God, therefore,
-saw it to be necessary to select and separate from the idolatrous world, a particular
-family which might serve as a repository of the divine oracles and institutions;
-until that ‘<i>Seed of the woman</i>’ should come, of whom it was predicted,
-that he should ‘<i>bruise the serpent’s head</i>:’ and that <i>‘seed of Abraham’ in whom
-all the families of the earth should be blessed</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>But when <span class='sc'>Jesus Christ</span>, <i>our great high-priest of good things to come, had,
-through the eternal Spirit, offered himself without spot to God, to bear the sins of
-many</i>; and had <i>by this one offering of his own body, perfected them that are sanctified</i>,
-the service of the first tabernacle was set aside, and as to any utility, or divine
-authority, ceased forever; as an emblem of which, the veil of the temple
-was rent in twain from the top to the bottom, at the very moment of expiation;
-when Christ our high-priest, by sheding his vital blood and pouring out his
-soul unto death, <i>offered his one great sacrifice for sins</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>So great, however, was the power of early and national prejudice, that the
-apostles did not, for some time, understand the extent of their commission. They
-had, before, been sent on a short mission, on which occasion it was ordered, that
-they should not go <i>into the way of the Gentiles</i>, nor even <i>enter into any city of the
-Samaritans</i>; and they seem to have thought, that by going <i>into all the world</i>, and
-<i>preaching to every creature</i>, no more was intended, than that they should go to
-the seed of Abraham now widely dispersed among the nations. But this veil was
-soon removed, by a particular revelation made to Peter in a vision; and by the
-calling of Paul to the apostleship, who, from the beginning, received commission
-to go to the Gentiles, and was, in a peculiar manner, designated and directed,
-<i>to preach among the Gentiles the unsearchable riches of Christ</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='sc'>Dr. Alexander’s Missionary Sermon.</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f62'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r62'>62</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Εις τὸ ὁνομα.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f63'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r63'>63</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Εις Χριστόν.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f65'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r65'>65</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See vol. II. Quest. XXXI, XXXII. Page 167, &amp; 185.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f66'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r66'>66</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>There is a common aphorism among them, that the sacraments, and baptism in
-particular, confer grace, ex opere operato.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f67'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r67'>67</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See vol. II. page 166-216.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f68'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r68'>68</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>The Gospel is glad tidings of great joy, not a system of new and terrifying
-restrictions and exclusions; so far from retracting formerly conceded privileges,
-and confining the church within narrower limits, it publishes peace and
-salvation, and invites the whole human family to participate in these blessings.
-It must either be referred to the impressions it has made, or to uninterrupted
-usage that females have, by a general consent, been deemed to possess an unquestionable
-right to approach the holy communion, though neither precept for
-it is found, nor an example of it recorded in the Scriptures. This baptism of
-infants was still less necessary to be enjoined by, and less likely to have been noticed
-in the short history given us of apostolical transactions.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>He who gave parental affection, and is the Lord of his church under every
-dispensation, conferred on children at an early age of the world the privilege of
-sharing with their parents in the seals of grace, and bearing the tokens of his
-covenant. Jewish christians having themselves experienced such benignity, and
-been given to the same God, whom they now served under brighter displays of
-his eternal and unchangeable love, could not have expected, that, an entrance
-into the milder gospel-church would have been denied to the seed whom God
-had given them, and whom they had devoted to him not only in prayer, but in
-that ordinance which he had appointed for the purpose. An ordinance which
-being now obsolete was supplied by another, apparently as proper for their
-children as themselves. Because infants are incapable of repenting and believing,
-these duties were not required nor expected of them, either under the
-old, or new dispensation; but though incapable of actual sin, and therefore free
-from obligations of obedience unto the law, yet their nature is not pure, and
-consequently needs the sanctifying influence of divine grace, which can correct
-the latent enmity, and renew the soul. They are capable, therefore, of spiritual
-blessings, and may consequently be members of the invisible church, and
-received into the church triumphant. The obvious reasonableness of the privilege
-of being received with their parents into the society of the worshippers
-of God, a privilege publicly known to have been conferred by the great Head of
-the church, equally prevented the supposition of an implied repeal, and the necessity
-of a renewal of the right.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>If indeed there had been a different religion introduced; if christians were not
-engrafted into the old stock; if they worshipped some other than the God of
-Israel; if there was another moral law, another Christ than he whose day the
-fathers anticipated, and another faith; this privilege of receiving infants into the
-church might have been interrupted; and in that case unless expressly again
-enjoined, it ought not to have been regarded in practice. But if the christian
-religion is founded upon the prophets; if the peculiarities of the Jewish worship
-were but shadows of gospel things; if both were directed to the same glory of
-God and salvation of men; if they both enjoined the same holiness and presented
-the same object of faith; if those who were saved under the Old Testament shall
-be associated with those who are saved under the New; the privileges formerly
-granted to children will remain the same; and it is not wonderful that the first
-christian should obey the dictates of parental tenderness; and that desiring the
-salvation of their children as well as their own, should cause their households to
-be baptized as well as themselves. To have affirmed in the gospel history expressly,
-that children were a part of the household, could have answered no
-purpose in the first days of christianity, but would have been thought repetitions
-and unmeaning until modern times. In the fifth, in the third and even so
-early as in the second century, the baptism of infants was the established usage
-of the church, and it was then thought, and not disputed, to have been the practice
-of the apostles themselves.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f69'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r69'>69</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Μαθητεισατε.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f70'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r70'>70</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Vid Whitby in Loc.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f71'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r71'>71</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>This then is a repetition; go, <i>teach</i>, baptize, <i>teach</i>. This commission
-was to <i>disciple</i> the world, baptizing and teaching are the specification, and are
-participles agreeing with the nomination.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It is no inference from the position of baptizing before teaching are that adults
-might be first baptized. This was the institution of the ordinance of baptism
-as well as the apostolic commission; yet it neither contains any direction
-either as to the mode or subjects; because Christ spoke to Jews, who knew that
-adult proselytes were carefully examined, whilst infants were circumcised with
-their parents without such examination. They also knew the various modes of
-religious purifications among the Jews; both John the Baptist, and they having
-under that dispensation baptized. Neither is faith essential to the validity
-of baptism, nor is the profession of it required of such as are incapable of
-making it.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f72'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r72'>72</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>To be brought into the visible church, is a high privilege, of which infants
-are as capable now, as under the former dispensation. Consent is not necessary;
-for infants receive inheritances. <i>This is by force of municipal laws.</i> But
-are not the laws of God of equal force?—<i>Baptism implies obligations, which can
-be founded only on consent.</i> Then it will follow that infants are not bound by human
-laws, for they have not assented to the social compact; they are under no
-obligation to obey parents, guardians, or masters, because they either did not
-choose them, or were incompetent to make such choice; they are not bound by
-the laws of God himself, which is this very case, because they have not consented
-to his authority; and if they never consent, they will be always free equally
-from all obligations, and all sin. Such are the consequences of the above objection.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f73'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r73'>73</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>The dictates of nature, uncontrouled by revelation, are the will of Christ,
-and our rule of duty. The <i>will of Christ</i>, expressed in these dictates, requires us to
-benefit our children as they are capable. <i>Baptism</i>, as the initiatory seal of God’s
-covenant, is a <i>benefit</i> of which infants are <i>capable</i>.—This evidence is not <i>eclipsed</i>,
-but <i>brightened</i>, by scripture authority, as we shall see in the sequel of this
-chapter.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Let the reader carefully notice, that we do not suppose, by insisting on this
-argument, the insufficiency of <i>direct scripture</i> evidence: for <i>this</i> has been frequently
-urged with advantage, to satisfy persons of the best dispositions and abilities.
-That is, reader, “some of the most eminent Pœdobaptists that ever filled
-the Professor’s chair, or that ever yet adorned the Protestant pulpit.” But
-since our opponents insist, that what has been so often urged, is not conclusive;
-and <i>modestly</i> affirm, it is only calculated to catch “the eye of a <i>superficial</i> observer;”
-they are desired once more impartially to weigh this reasoning, and
-then, if they are able, to refute it. Let them know, however, that hackneyed
-phrases without meaning—principles taken upon trust—and empty declamation—must
-not be palmed on us instead of solid arguments.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Were it necessary, it would be easy to shew, that the principles above urged
-are no <i>novelty</i>; but are perfectly agreeable to experience,—and to the practical
-judgment of the most serious Pœdobaptists, both illiterate and learned. But
-waving this, we proceed next to another corroborating proof of the main proposition.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>What we contend for is. That it is the <i>will of Christ</i> we should <i>baptize</i> our infant
-children. In proof of this we have shewn, first, that the <i>dictates of right reason</i>
-require us to <i>benefit</i> them, and consequently to <i>baptize</i> them; as baptism is always
-a benefit when administered to <i>capable</i> subjects. We come, secondly, to shew—That
-God has constantly approved of <i>this principle</i>, in all <i>preceding</i> dispensations.
-In other words—That the <i>principle</i> of the last argument is so far from being
-<i>weakened</i> by scripture evidence, that the Lord’s <i>approbation</i> of <i>it</i>, in his conduct
-towards the offspring of his professing people, in all the dispensations of
-true religion, is abundantly <i>illustrated</i> and <i>confirmed</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Mr. B’s misapplied but favourite maxim—“Positive laws imply their negative,”
-has no force in the baptismal controversy, until he demonstrates, in opposition
-to what is advanced, that the dictates of right reason must be <i>smothered</i>,
-or else, that revelation countermands their influence. But to <i>demonstrate</i> the
-former, in matters about which, on the supposition, scripture is silent, is no easy
-task. And the difficulty will be <i>increased</i> in proportion as the sacred oracles
-corroborate reason’s verdict. Let us now appeal to these oracles.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We appeal to that period of the church, and dispensation of grace, which extended
-from Adam to Noah. The inspired narrative of this long space of time is
-very short: on which we make the following remarks. We then assert,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Whatever exhibition of grace was made to antediluvian <i>parents</i>, was constantly
-made to their <i>offspring</i>; and consequently whatever seals of grace were granted
-to the former, must equally appertain to the latter if not voluntary <i>rejectors</i>
-of them. Therefore, all such parents had a <i>revealed</i> warrant to regard their offspring
-as entitled to the <i>seals</i> of the covenant, in <i>like manner</i> as themselves, according
-to their capacity. For,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>All allow that Gen. iii. 15. contains the promulgation of gospel grace; nor are
-we authorised to question the interest of <i>children</i> therein with their parents,
-without an express contravention. For, it were <i>unnatural</i> for a parent to <i>confine</i>
-such a <i>benefit</i> to his own person to the exclusion of his children, who are not only
-parts of his family but of <i>himself</i>. To which we may add, that the phrase <i>thy
-seed</i>, though principally referring to the Messiah, respected Eve’s <i>natural seed</i>
-as sharers in common with herself in the exhibition of mercy; and we suppose
-not less so than her <i>husband</i>. For this application of the phrase <i>thy seed</i>, compare
-Gen. xvii. 7. and Gal. iii. 16. Again,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It is generally agreed, that not only the institution of <i>sacrifices</i>, but also the
-<i>coats</i> of skin, (Gen. iii. 21.) were <i>emblematic</i> of covenant blessings; and not only
-so, in common with mere types, but <i>seals</i> of the covenant, as earnests and
-pledges of exhibited favour. “Who will deny,” says Witsius, “that God’s
-cloathing our first parents was a <i>symbolical</i> act? Do not Christ’s own words
-(Rev. iii. 18.) very clearly allude to this?” As for <i>sacrifices</i>, they were slain at
-God’s command after the promulgation of the covenant. For, if Abel <i>offered by
-faith</i>, (Heb xi. 4.) it presupposes the divine <i>institution</i> of them. And this institution,
-most probably, took place when God—taking occasion from the insufficiency
-of the aprons of fig-leaves, which the fallen pair sewed together, to cover
-the shame of their nakedness—himself cloathed them with coats of skins. And
-most divines agree, that it is very probable, these were the skins of those beasts
-which were slain for <i>sacrifices</i>. However, God gave testimony to these oblations
-of the ancient patriarchs, that they were <i>acceptable</i> to him; but this cannot be
-supposed without admitting them to be <i>divinely instituted</i>. Besides, a distinction
-of <i>clean</i> and <i>unclean</i> animals was observed before the deluge; which was
-not from <i>nature</i>, but the mere divine pleasure; and may we not add, with a particular
-respect to <i>sacrifices</i>? Now,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>If, according to Witsius and others, these <i>skins of beasts</i>, and <i>sacrifices</i>, were
-appointed <i>seals of the righteousness of faith</i>; I would ask—Was the <i>covenant</i> directed
-for the use of their <i>seed in common</i> with the parents, and not the <i>seal</i> in
-like manner? For, if the seals be affixed to the covenant for <i>confirmation</i> of its
-contents, as well as, in another view, for signification; I would fain know, by
-what rule of construction we can infer, that the covenant <i>itself</i> belongs to the
-parents and their seed <i>in common</i>, while the <i>confirmation</i> of it belongs <i>exclusively</i>
-to the former? Is it not contrary to <i>custom</i> and <i>unreasonable</i> to conclude, that a
-charter of privileges, or a testamentary instrument, (which by the way express
-the nature of the covenant) belongs to a man and his heirs <i>alike</i>, but the confirming
-seal respects the former <i>only</i>; while on the supposition, the sovereign,
-or the testator, has given <i>no ground</i> for such partiality? Besides,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>If the covenant itself be a benefit to the persons to whom it is directed, as it
-certainly is in <i>every</i> dispensation of it, it follows that the <i>confirmation</i> of it is so;
-for parents, therefore, to <i>deny</i> their offspring all the share in such common benefits
-they are capable of, without a divine warrant, is <i>unnatural</i>, and an act of <i>injustice</i>.
-We may therefore conclude—that from Adam to Noah, the <i>covenant</i>
-and its <i>seals</i> appertained to <i>infants</i> in common with their parents.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We appeal next to that period of the church which extended from Noah to
-Abraham: On which we observe,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Whatever benefits and privileges belonged to the former dispensation, continue
-to flow on to the present, if not <i>expressly</i> repealed; for the change of a dispensation
-<i>of itself</i>, is no adequate cause of their abrogation. That would be as unreasonable
-as to suppose that the bare change from night to day was, <i>of itself</i>,
-an adequate cause of a man’s being disinherited. Or we may as well say, that
-the abstract notion of an epoch in chronology has a real influence on the sequence
-of events. Whatever covenant privileges, therefore, belonged to Noah and his family
-<i>before</i> the deluge, if not expressly repealed, must belong to them <i>after</i> the
-deluge. But,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>So far were these privileges from being abridged at this period, that they
-were greatly enlarged and confirmed, by additional discoveries. For thus we
-read, Gen. vi. 18. <i>But with thee will I establish my covenant; and thou shall come
-into the ark, thou, and thy sons, and thy wife, and thy sons’ wives with thee.</i> Again,
-chap. vii. 1. <i>And the Lord said unto Noah, Come thou, and all thy house into the
-ark; for thee have I seen righteous before me in this generation.</i> And again, chap.
-viii. 20. <i>And Noah builded an altar unto the Lord; and took of every clean beast,
-and of every clean fowl, and offered burnt-offerings on the altar.</i> Once more, chap.
-ix. 8, 9, 12, 13. <i>And God spake unto Noah, and to his sons with him, saying, And
-I, behold, I establish my covenant with you, and with your seed after you. And God
-said, This is the token of the covenant I do set my bow in the cloud.</i> Hence we further
-learn,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>That the covenant or divine charter, first given to Noah, <i>included</i> the preceding;
-it was the <i>same covenant</i> with <i>additional grants</i>: for the Lord says, “I
-will <i>establish</i> my covenant.” Lest Noah should infer that the drowning of the
-world in wrath disannulled the well known covenant, God dissipates his fears,
-by saying, “I will <i>establish</i> my covenant.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>On Noah’s <i>account</i>, or <i>as belonging</i> to him, <i>all his house</i> or family was privileged.
-The privilege is,—“Come thou, and <i>all thy house</i> into the ark.” The ground
-and reason of that privilege—“<i>for thee have I seen righteous</i>.” It is true, the natural
-dictates of reason and affection, whereby a <i>father pitieth his children</i>, and
-whereby an infidel <i>careth for his own, especially those of his own house</i>, would have
-prompted this righteous person to bring <i>all his family</i>, (except any adults <i>refused</i>
-compliance) into the ark, (<i>the like figure whereunto is baptism</i>, as an inspired
-teacher assures us, 1 Pet. iii. 21.) yet the Lord was pleased to brighten his evidence
-and strengthen his obligations of duty by express revelation.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>After the flood the institution of <i>sacrifices</i> continued as the seal of the <i>first</i>
-part of the covenant; and the <i>rainbow</i> was instituted as the seal of the <i>additional</i>
-part, or, as Pareus calls it, “<i>appendix</i> of the covenant of grace.” And here
-it is worthy of notice, that as the first exhibition of the covenant and its seals respected
-the offspring of <i>fœderati</i>, and the <i>renewal</i> or <i>establishment</i> of it to Noah
-retained that privilege in full force: so also the <i>appendix</i> of the covenant comprehended
-his <i>seed</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Respecting this appendix of the covenant of which the rainbow was the seal,
-though we suppose, with Witsius, it was not formally and precisely the covenant
-of grace; yet we observe, with the same excellent author, “it does not
-seem consistent with the divine perfections, to make such a covenant with every
-living creature, but on <i>supposition</i> of a covenant of grace, and having a <i>respect</i>
-to it.” And as this covenant, in its universality, implied the covenant of
-grace, we are not to deny, but the promises of it were also <i>sealed</i> to Noah and
-his seed by the rainbow. See Rev. iv. 3. x. 8.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It is observable, finally, that Noah his <i>sons</i>, and <i>their seed</i> were <i>fœderati</i>, in
-this ratification of the covenant; consequently whatever <i>seals</i> of the covenant
-belonged to Noah, belonged to <i>his sons</i>, and <i>their seed</i>, while non-dissentients.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Appeal we next to a very important period of sacred history, viz. From Abraham
-to Moses. On this also we make the following remarks.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The Abrahamic covenant <i>included</i> the preceding dispensations, on the general
-principle—that grants and privileges continue in force until <i>repealed</i>. Which
-repealing, if it be not either <i>express</i>, or arise from the nature of the case, in itself
-<i>plain</i>, can have no binding influence, that is to say, no existence at all: except
-we maintain, that we are <i>bound</i> to resign an important good without an assignable
-cause; which is in fact to maintain that we ought to <i>deny</i> that to be,
-which is.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I suppose it will be granted, that the <i>principal blessing</i> exhibited in the foregoing
-dispensations was <i>the righteousness of faith</i>; the great importance of which
-to the human race, in every age of the world, no one will deny who considers
-things <i>as they are</i>. This covenant, therefore, was in force to Abraham <i>prior</i> to
-what is called the Abrahamic dispensation; and in this connexion we might
-mention Lot and his family. But, behold,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>A most explicit ratification of it, with <i>superadded</i> favours, Gen. xii. 3.—<i>In
-thee shall all families of the earth be blessed. And I will</i> establish my covenant
-<i>between me and thee, and thy</i> seed <i>after thee in their generations, for an everlasting
-covenant</i>; To be a God unto thee and to thy seed after thee. <i>ver.</i> 10. <i>This is my
-covenant which ye shall keep between me and you</i>, and thy seed <i>after thee</i>: every
-man-<i>child among you shall be</i> circumcised, <i>ver.</i> 12. <i>He that is</i> eight days old <i>shall
-be circumcised among you, every</i> man-<i>child in your generations; he that is born in
-the house</i>, or bought with money of any stranger, <i>which is not of thy seed</i>. <i>ver.</i>
-24-27. <i>And Abraham was</i> ninety years old and nine, <i>when he was circumcised in
-the flesh of his foreskin. And Ishmael his son was</i> thirteen years old, <i>when he was
-circumcised in the flesh of his foreskin. In the</i> self-same day <i>was Abraham circumcised,
-and Ishmael his son. And</i> all the men of his house, <i>born in the house, and</i>
-bought with money of the stranger, <i>were circumcised with him</i>. Hence we learn,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The <i>nature</i> and <i>extent</i> of the <i>Abrahamic covenant or promise</i>. Whatever <i>blessings</i>
-are <i>promised</i> to ruined man, must be <i>in virtue</i> of the covenant of grace. All
-promised blessings, therefore, must <i>imply</i> an <i>exhibition</i> of <i>gospel grace</i>. And the
-glad tidings of salvation through Christ preached to the <i>gentile world</i>, is expressly
-called—<i>The blessing of Abraham</i> (Gal. iii. 14.) Not that this <i>link</i> is the
-<i>first</i> in the chain of exhibited mercy to the fallen race <i>in general</i>, or with an universal
-and unlimited aspect, if the reasoning in the last sections be just: but
-for its <i>explicitness</i>, and <i>precious</i> (because expressly diffusive) intendment, it
-may be justly termed a <i>golden link</i>. In this respect Abraham may well be styled—<i>The
-Father of us all</i>; not to the disavowal of Noah, with whom the covenant
-was before ratified, or Eve, who received the <i>first</i> intimation of it, and who
-in <i>this</i> respect eminently may be called—<i>The mother of all living</i>. The <i>covenant</i>
-of grace, in its external manifestation, containing <i>an exhibition of exceeding
-great and precious promises</i> to every human being on the face of the globe, to
-whom providence directs the joyful news, may be compared to a flowing stream:
-it proceeds ultimately from the immense ocean of sovereign grace in Christ;
-its <i>first</i> visible source we trace to paradise, where it rises in a small spring, and
-glides on to Noah. During this part of its progress, there were but few comparatively
-who participated of its cleansing and healing virtues, though none were
-debarred from it. This continuing to glide along, without interruption, (notwithstanding
-God’s awful visitation of a corrupt world by the deluge) we discern
-through the person of Noah <i>another</i> source, whence is poured forth a second
-stream which empties itself into the former channel. The streams thus
-<i>united</i> become a river, which flows on to Abraham—a river to which <i>all</i> are invited,
-but <i>few</i> come, and these made willing by the omnipotent energy of <i>divine
-influence</i> which observes the laws of another—a <i>hidden</i> dispensation, running parallel
-as it were with the former; which was also the case in the preceding period.
-Then, through the highly honoured person of Abraham we behold another
-mighty spring copiously pouring forth the waters of salvation, and again uniting
-itself to the former river; and from him to Christ, with a wide majestic flow,
-it proceeds along the consecrated channel of the Jewish nation; gradually increasing
-by the accession of other streams, till it arrives at the Saviour’s finished
-work; where, impatient of confinement, it breaks over its banks on every
-side, and the healing waters flow to the most distant regions—<i>That the blessing
-of Abraham might come upon the Gentiles</i>. (Gal. iii. 14, 8. compared with Gen. xii.
-3. xviii. 18. xxii. 18.) Paul expressly says, that “the <i>Gospel</i>” (even the very same
-as the New Testament contains—<i>salvation by Grace</i>) “was preached to Abraham:”
-And (Heb. iv. 2.) it was preached to his unbelieving descendants in
-the wilderness.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>As it is <i>natural</i> to expect, that whatever exhibition of privileges the parents
-enjoyed should be extended to their children, in common with themselves; so
-we find that <i>in fact</i> they are <i>expressly included</i> in <i>this</i> dispensation as well as the
-preceding. The covenant is established between God and Abraham’s <i>seed, in the
-very same sense</i> as with Abraham <i>himself</i>; the essence of which is—<i>to be a God
-to him and his seed</i>. And lest it should be objected that the term <i>seed</i> refers to his
-<i>adult posterity</i> who should tread in his steps, to the exclusion of infants, all doubt
-is dissipated by the appointment of applying the <i>seal</i> of the covenant in early infancy.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Sacrifices</i> continuing in full force to <i>seal</i> the covenant, till the divine oblation
-should be made; and the <i>bow</i> of the covenant continuing as a token and <i>seal</i> of
-it, until the Messiah’s <i>second</i> coming; at the commencement of this period is
-given an <i>additional</i> seal—<i>circumcision</i>. The very <i>nature</i> of the rite shews that all
-<i>females</i> are excluded from being the subjects of it; as well as the discriminating
-specification—<i>every man-child</i>. Here observe in general, that children, in this rite,
-have the same privileges as their parents. The males are treated as Abraham,
-and the females as Sarah: <i>These</i> therefore, had the covenant sealed in the same
-manner as their honoured mother. Again: though Sarah and her sex were not
-the <i>subjects</i> of this rite, they were constant <i>witnesses</i> to the institution; and
-therefore there was an important sense in which circumcision was a seal to Sarah
-and her daughters; a sense analagous to that in which sacrifices were.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Every domestic head being, in truth, a prophet, priest, and king, in his own
-family; a question must arise, Whether the covenant and its seals are restricted
-to the parent head of the family, and his children, or else extended to the <i>other
-domestics</i>? Nor would the question be unimportant; for his <i>instructions</i>, his
-<i>prayers</i>, and <i>commands</i>, answerable to his three-fold office, must be directed accordingly.
-To this question right reason replies: If the covenant and its seals
-are <i>beneficial</i> to all capable subjects, benevolence requires that they should be
-extended to the other <i>non-dissenting</i> members—except forbidden by indisputable
-authority. This is the voice of reason; and we find that this is the voice of God.
-The privilege is common to the seed, and <i>to him that is born in the house, or
-bought with money of any stranger</i>, which is not of the seed, Gen. xvii. 12.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It has been objected, “that the covenant with Abraham was a covenant of <i>peculiarity</i>
-only, and that circumcision was no more than a token of <i>that</i> covenant;”
-but if so, as Mr. Henry observes, “how came it that all <i>proselytes</i>, of what nation
-soever, even <i>the strangers</i>, were to be circumcised; though not being of any
-of the tribes, they had no part or lot in the land of Canaan? The extending the
-seal of circumcision to <i>proselyted strangers</i>, and to <i>their seed</i>, was a plain indication,
-that the New Testament administration of the covenant of grace would
-reach, not to the covenanters only, but their <i>seed</i>.” But it has been proved
-that circumcision <i>sealed</i> to Abraham and his seed <i>the righteousness of faith</i>; and
-therefore it does not affect the point in debate to contend that temporal promises
-were sealed <i>also</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We next appeal to the long and interesting period from Moses to Christ, On
-which let the following observations be considered.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Whatever appertained to the Abrahamic covenant was not disannulled by the
-Mosaic dispensation. This St. Paul asserts in plain terms, Gal. iii. 17.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It may not be amiss to take notice, before we proceed, of Job’s family; who,
-being as is generally supposed, cotemporary with Moses, and unconnected with
-his history, deserves a previous regard. Of him it is said, that “he <i>sanctified</i> his
-children, and rose up early in the morning, and <i>offered burnt-offerings</i>, according
-to the <i>number of them all</i>—Thus did Job <i>continually</i>,” or, all the days. (Job
-i. 5.) On this I would only observe, let the <i>sanctifying</i> be what it may, the <i>sacrifices</i>
-must have been of divine institution; and used by Job, being an eminently
-righteous man, as the <i>seals</i> of the covenant of grace; with respect to his children
-<i>separately</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Superadded to the foregoing seals of the covenant, is the <i>passover</i>; a divine
-rite of the nature of a sacrifice, instituted in memory of Israel’s deliverance out
-of Egypt, representing and sealing spiritual blessings. “As to the <i>guests</i>, says
-Witsius, they were, first, all native <i>Israelites</i>, who were not excluded by legal
-uncleanness. For <i>all the congregation of Israel</i> is commanded to solemnize the
-passover. And, next, the <i>Proselytes</i> circumcised and become Jews; whether
-bondmen born in the house or bought with money, &amp;c. Exod. xii. 48. <i>When a</i>
-stranger <i>will sojourn with thee, and keep the passover to the Lord, let</i> all his
-males <i>be circumcised, and then let him come near and keep it, and he shall be as
-one that is born in the land</i>.” On this passage in Exodus, Dr. Jennings observes
-these two things; “<i>First</i>, That when a man thus became a Proselyte, <i>all his
-males</i> were to be circumcised <i>as well as himself</i>, whereby his <i>children</i> were admitted
-into the visible church of God, <i>in his right</i>, as their father. <i>Secondly</i>,
-That upon this, he should be <i>entitled to all the privileges</i> and immunities of the
-Jewish church and nation as well as be subject to the whole law: He should
-be as one born in the land.” In short; not only men and women, but also young
-children partook of this ordinance, <i>as soon as they were capable</i> of answering the
-revealed design of it, for—no <i>positive</i> rule was given them on this head, like that
-of circumcision. It is manifest that since the injunction respected not only individuals
-of such a description, but also families <i>as such</i>, every member without
-exception had a <i>legal right</i> to the ordinance; and nothing prevented <i>infants</i> from
-a participation, but what lay in the <i>natural</i> incapacity to answer the design of it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>“Besides the <i>ordinary</i> and <i>universal</i> sacraments of <i>circumcision</i> and the <i>passover</i>,
-some <i>extraordinary</i> symbols of divine grace were granted to the Israelites
-in the wilderness, which in the New Testament are applied to Christ and his
-benefits, and said to have the same signification with our sacraments. And
-they are in order these—The <i>passage</i> in the cloud <i>through the Red Sea</i>—the
-<i>manna</i> which was rained from heaven—The <i>water</i> issuing out of the <i>rock</i>—and
-the <i>brazen serpent</i> erected by Moses for the cure of the Israelites.” To
-this we may add, among other things, with the author now referred to—the clear
-and familiar display of the <i>divine majesty</i>—and the adumbration of divine mysteries
-daily <i>sealed</i> by religious <i>ceremonies</i>. Our subject does not call for an investigation
-of these particulars, but I would remark in general, that the principle for
-which we contend, is so far from being weakened, that it is abundantly corroborated
-by the inspired testimony of every dispensation, and the Mosaic in particular—That
-it is a common dictate of right reason, children should from their
-earliest infancy share in their parents’ privileges, as far as they are capable, when
-no positive authority contravenes it.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>From the preceding induction of sacred evidence in favour of children being
-sharers of the seals of grace in common with their parents, we conclude, that
-for the space of four thousand years, that is to say, <i>from the creation to Christ</i>, it
-was a rule <i>universally</i> incumbent on parents to treat their children as entitled to
-religious privileges <i>equally</i> with themselves, according to their capacity.—And
-as a counterpart of what was observed of privileges, we may remark that, in virtue
-of the same uniform principle, often when the parents were punished with
-excommunication or death, their infant children were included with them. As
-might be instanced in—the deluge—the destruction of Sodom and Gomorrah—the
-case of Achan the Son of Zerah (Josh. vii. 24.)—the matter of Korah, Dathan,
-and Abiram—the case of the conquered nations (Deut. xx. 16, 17.)—and many
-more instances, down to the destruction of Jerusalem. Far be it from us to suppose,
-that the parents’ crimes and impenitence made their suffering children incapable
-of <i>mercy</i>—that mercy which proceeds on an invisible plan, and belongs
-to a purely spiritual dispensation. Yet, that children, during their <i>dependence</i> on
-their parents, should share equally with them in judgment and mercies externally,
-is the effect of an all-wise constitution coeval with mankind.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='sc'>Dr. Williams on Baptism.</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f74'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r74'>74</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Tertullian observes on this passage, that if either parent were christians,,
-the children were enrolled in Jesus Christ by early baptism. And it fairly
-implies infant baptism in the days of Paul. For, having declared that the unbelieving
-partner was not to be divorced according to the law of Moses, which held
-the heathen to be unclean; he pronounces the unbelievers set apart by such
-marriage to God, as far as regarded that marriage; and in proof of this he refers
-to a fact as known to the Corinthians, namely that the children of such marriages
-were received into the church, and treated as holy, that is devoted to
-God. Now if the children of such marriages were not treated as heathens, but
-owned by the church, and this could be in no other way than by receiving them
-by baptism, there can be no doubt, that this was the case when both parents
-were believers.—Ακαθαρτος &amp; αλιος never mean <i>illegitimate</i> and <i>legitimate</i>; and
-if they did, this would be no proof that the unbelieving party was consecrated
-to God, so as that the children should be clean and devoted to him.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f75'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r75'>75</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>All these scriptures which require faith, that is, the credible profession of
-it, to precede baptism, are certainly directed only to those who are at years capable
-of it, and not to infants. These scriptures do not exclude infants whose
-claim is through the church-membership of their parents, by which they are not
-“<i>unclean</i>,” 1 Cor. vii. 14. but <i>holy</i>, entitled to the promises made to the seed of
-Abraham; and also by virtue of the commission to disciple <i>all nations</i>, of which
-they are a part as much as their believing parents; and by the practical exposition
-of that commission in the universal baptism of infants in the christian
-churches for the first four hundred years.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f76'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r76'>76</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>It may be objected, “If the preceding account be true, that baptism is
-not an institution <i>merely positive</i>, as much so as any enacted under the Mosaic
-dispensation; then the present economy hath no institutions at all of that kind.”
-This objection supposes,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That precepts of a positive nature under the Mosaic dispensation, were absolutely
-so in all their circumstances; so as not to leave any thing to be inferred
-by the person or persons concerned, in the discharge of the duty enjoined.—But
-if these things were so, if the Jewish ritual was so express as to leave nothing
-to be determined by inference, one might well wonder whence could spring so
-many <i>Targums</i> and <i>Talmuds</i>, so many voluminous works intended to explain and
-illustrate the various circumstances attending the performance of these <i>positive
-duties</i> among others. Are not these <i>unprescribed circumstances</i> of ritual worship,
-and other positive injunctions, what in a great degree swell the interpretations
-of the <i>Rabbins</i>?—The truth is, that there were many precepts under the Jewish
-economy positive in a <i>considerable degree</i>, relative to the <i>subject</i> as well as the
-mode of an institute, and respecting the former, it was sometimes particularly
-scrupulous, for reasons already assigned; but it does not follow that <span class='fss'>ANY ONE</span>
-of these were so strictly positive, as not to take some things for <i>granted</i> respecting
-the circumstances of the duty, such as national custom, the common
-dictates of sense and reason, traditionary knowledge, the general principles of
-the law of nature, &amp;c. And it should not be forgotten, that the administrator
-of the Jewish rites had the subjects distinguished and characterized in a <i>sensible
-manner</i>, which qualification was to be determined by the same sort of evidence
-as any <i>facts</i> in common life; but the administrator of the Christian rites
-has no such grounds to proceed on; his commission is of a <i>discretionary</i> nature,
-arising from the nature and design of the institutions themselves, as before
-shewn.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. The objection again supposes, that there is some <i>excellency</i> in an institution
-being merely and absolutely positive, more than in one of a mixed nature. But
-this supposition is vain and erroneous. For what conceivable superior excellency
-can there be in any precept or duty on account of its <i>positiveness</i>? Were
-there any force in the objection, it would imply that the Christian dispensation
-is <i>less excellent</i> than the Mosaic; as having fewer positive rites, and their proportion
-of positiveness being also smaller. And it would also imply, that the
-reasonable duties of prayer and praise, as founded on the law of nature, as well
-as more fully enjoined by revelation, were <i>less excellent</i> than baptism and the
-Lord’s supper; and it would follow, that the services of the church triumphant
-are in their own nature <i>less excellent</i> than those of the church militant; which
-are consequences from the force of the objection equally genuine and absurd.
-Our Lord’s answer respecting the first and great commandment, shews at once
-that what is the most <i>important</i> duty, is also the most <i>natural</i>, and therefore the
-most remote from what is merely positive; and that is the <i>love of God</i>. This
-matter has been fully shewn before. In one word, the spirit of the objection is
-truly pharisaic.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Some may perhaps object, “that this has been always admitted as true, that
-baptism and the Lord’s supper are positive institutions of the New Testament;
-and that many pædobaptists have availed themselves of this fort, in ascertaining
-the nature and enforcing the obligation of the latter, and particularly bishop
-Hoadly. And as his lordship’s principle, in his <i>Plain Account of the Sacrament
-of the Lord’s Supper</i>, has been deemed unanswerable, Mr. Foot, Dr. Stennett,
-and others, have taken but the same method in treating about baptism.” To
-this I reply,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>That, as principles taken upon trust, dignified titles, and lawn sleeves, are
-light as a feather in the scale of argument; so, on the other hand, I am satisfied
-the bishop of Winchester’s positions, taken in a sound sense, nay, the <i>only</i> consistent
-sense in which they can be taken, are evidently true and important. The
-sum is this; that all positive duties, or duties made such by institution alone,
-depend entirely upon the will and declaration of the person who institutes or
-ordains them, with respect to the real design and end of them, and consequently,
-to the due manner of performing them. This is strictly true, <i>in the degree that
-any duties are positive</i>, but no further. And to denominate a precept or duty
-<i>positive</i>, though but <i>partially</i> so, I have no objection, for the sake of distinguishing
-them from such as are merely moral, and evidently founded on the reason
-and nature of things. “Except we observe this caution,” as bishop Butler observes,
-“we shall be in danger of running into endless confusion.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It may be said, “If we resign this maxim, that a positive precept or duty excludes
-all moral reasoning, analogy and inference, we open a door to numberless
-innovations, and deprive ourselves of a necessary barrier against the encroachments
-of popery, &amp;c.” In reply to this specious objection let it be observed,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. That this maxim, whatever confidence our opponents place in it, is a very
-<i>insufficient</i> barrier for the defence of truth, if the objection implies, that it is calculated
-to defend truth against error, and not error against truth as well. For
-it is notorious, that there is hardly any extravagance, in the whole compass of
-the distinguishing peculiarities of religious practice, that is not barricadoed by
-this very maxim. If <i>Protestants</i> use it against Papists, <i>Papists</i> in their turn use
-it against Protestants. If the Quakers are pursued and foiled when they
-occasionally quit this fort, they soon rally their controversial forces, and,
-entrenching themselves behind the strength of this maxim, become again
-victorious. Whence passive obedience and non-resistance? Whence an opposition
-to all <i>forensic</i> swearing, in common with profane? Whence the
-Quakers’ nonconformity to what other serious Christians consider as lawful?
-Their peculiar mode of salutation and address? Their method of conducting
-religious worship? The little stress they lay on the observance of the christian
-Sabbath? &amp;c. Whence the popish absurd figment of transubstantiation, apostolical
-succession, extreme unction? &amp;c.—On the contrary,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. Not to distinguish between the <i>positiveness</i> and <i>morality</i> of a precept, ordinance
-or duty, and not to ascertain their respective <i>degrees</i>; and to deny that
-the <i>latter</i> distinction admits of moral reasoning, inference and analogy, open a
-wide door to <i>bigotry</i>, and numberless glaring abuses of the sacred oracles. By
-rejecting the analogy of faith and the <i>design</i> of scripture herein, we give the
-most effectual encouragement to every senseless intrusion. And what is still
-more remarkable is, that the <i>more firmly</i> any one adheres to the undistinguishing
-positive scheme, in reference to any christian ordinance whatever, the more
-closely will he be allied to the interest of genuine bigotry. For it has a direct
-tendency to make the unprescribed circumstances of a positive rite, <i>essential</i> to
-the rite itself, and consequently to make that necessary and essential which the
-institutor has not made so. How far this is applicable to the antipædobaptist’s
-cause, will be further considered.—The doctrine that teaches the propriety of
-yielding our reason to positive institutions <i>as such</i>, or in the <i>degree</i> they are so,
-is just and proper, as founded on the sovereign, absolute and manifest authority
-of the Supreme Legislator; and in this view it has been of singular service in
-refuting the cavils of deistical impiety. But to carry the principle any further,
-tends to betray the cause of christianity into the hands of infidels, and to breed
-unhallowed party zeal and uncharitable animosities among its sincerest professors.
-“For who are most likely to put weapons into the hands of <i>infidels</i>;
-they, who seem to discard <i>reason</i> in the investigation of truth, or they, whose
-researches are founded on her most vigorous exertions, and most rational decisions?—They,
-who make scripture bow to their preconceived notions, in direct
-opposition to the dictates of reason and common sense, or they, whose arguments
-are founded on a <i>coalition</i> of scripture and right reason?” Once more,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. The objection, as it includes Mr. B.’s favourite maxim, and tends to oppose
-the distinction above stated, involves a great inconsistence with itself. For on
-what principle, except what they affect to discard, do our opponents retain
-<i>some</i> of the positive rites of the New Testament and reject <i>others</i>? Why regard
-<i>baptism</i> and the <i>eucharist</i> as of standing obligation; while the <i>pedilavium</i> and
-<i>feasts of charity</i> (the <i>former</i> enjoined expressly by our Lord, and <i>both</i> practised
-by the disciples of the apostolic age, see John xiii. 14, 15. 1 Tim. v. 10. Jude
-12.) are judged unworthy of continuance? Why receive <i>females</i> to communion,
-or adopt the <i>first</i> day of the week for the christian sabbath? How can they
-justify their conduct in these matters, these circumstances of <i>positive</i> institutions,
-without undermining their own avowed hypothesis? With regard to the
-sabbath, indeed, the antipædobaptists are divided among themselves; while
-some are content with the <i>first</i> day of the week, others observe the <i>seventh</i>. On
-this point Dr. S. is very open and ingenious; Mr. Addington appeals to an objecting
-antipædobaptist, “whether he does not think himself sufficiently authorized
-to keep the christian sabbath, though Christ has no where said in so many
-words, <i>Remember the first day of the week to keep it holy</i>?” To this the Dr. replies,
-“There is, I acknowledge, some weight in this objection: and all I can
-say to it is, that not having yet met with any passage in the New Testament
-that appears to me to have repealed the fourth commandment, and to have required
-the observation of the first day, I cannot think myself sufficiently authorized
-to renounce that, and to keep this.” If the doctor is professedly an
-observer of the Jewish sabbath, he is consistent with himself, however different
-from so great a part of the christian world; if <i>not</i>, he and his tenet are at variance:
-analogy and inferential reasoning have got the better of the positive system,
-which nevertheless must not be resigned, for fear of worse consequences.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Another objection much insisted on is, “If our Lord has left any thing to be
-<i>inferred</i> relative to the <i>subject</i> and <i>mode</i> of baptism, being a positive institute;
-or if he has not delivered himself <i>expressly</i> and <i>clearly</i> in every thing, respecting
-the question <i>who</i> are to be baptized, and the manner <i>how</i>; it implies a reflexion
-on his wisdom and goodness.” But this objection is impertinent on different
-accounts. For,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Its force is derived from the supposition that the Institutor was somehow
-<i>obliged</i> to make his will known to men by <i>one</i> method only. But is the Great
-Supreme under any such obligations to his absolutely dependent creatures?
-What should we say of a philosopher, who, having to judge of any important
-phenomenon in physics, should quarrel with the author of nature, because he
-had not confined his method of information to <i>one</i> source only, to the exclusion
-of all others? That his evidence, for instance, was not confined to the information
-of <i>sense</i>, to the exclusion of <i>reason</i> and <i>analogy</i>? Or what should we say of
-a person, who having to decide on the truth and reality of a miracle, should impeach
-the wisdom and goodness of his Maker, because he did not appeal to <i>one</i>
-sense only of his dependent and unworthy creatures, that of <i>seeing</i>, for instance,
-to the exclusion of that of <i>hearing</i>? The answer is plain, and the application
-easy.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. The objection is guilty of another impertinence, nearly allied to the former:
-it unreasonably requires <i>positive</i> evidence for what is discoverable by <i>other</i>
-means. It is demonstrable, and I think has been demonstrated, that the qualifications
-of the subjects of baptism (the <i>mode</i> also will be examined in its place)
-is what cannot possibly be determined by any positive rule whatever as such,
-but must be resolved to the <i>discretionary</i> nature of the commission, or the supposed
-<i>wisdom</i> and <i>prudence</i> of the administrators, in common with other parts
-of the same commission, such as the choice of an <i>audience</i>, the choice of a concionatory
-<i>subject</i>, &amp;c. Preach the <i>gospel</i> to <i>every creature</i>, is a part of the commission,
-but the execution has no <i>positive</i> rule. Nor does this commission of
-preaching the <i>gospel</i> prohibit preaching the <i>law</i>, for a lawful use, or any branch
-of natural religion, notwithstanding Mr. B.’s excluding standard, that “positive
-laws imply their negatives.” In like manner, the commission to baptize <i>believers</i>,
-and the <i>taught</i>, we contend and prove, does not mean to include <i>all sorts</i>
-of believers and taught persons, but such of them as the administrators judge
-fit, according to the rules of christian prudence and discretion. And we further
-insist, as shall be more fully shewn hereafter, that the terms of the commission,
-<i>believers</i> and <i>taught</i>, stand <i>opposed</i>, not to <i>non-believers</i> and <i>untaught</i>,
-but to <i>unbelievers</i> and persons <i>perversely ignorant</i>. What, therefore, falls <i>necessarily</i>
-to the province of inferential reasoning, is impertinently referred to a positive
-standard.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>3. The objection implies an <i>ungrateful</i> reflexion on the Institutor’s wisdom
-and goodness, contrary to what it pretends to avoid. And this it does, by counteracting
-and vilifying those natural dictates of reason, prudence and common
-sense, that our all-wise and beneficent Creator has given us—his <i>goodness</i>, in not
-suspending their operations, but leaving them in full force, as to these circumstances
-of positive duties—his <i>wisdom</i>, in grafting what is positive of his laws on
-these common principles—and finally, the favourable circumstance of his diminishing
-the degree of positiveness in New Testament institutions, as well as
-their number.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Let us now recapitulate what has been said in this chapter—From an investigation
-of the <i>nature</i> of positive precepts and duties, as distinguished from
-<i>moral</i> ones, together with their <i>comparative</i> obligations and importance, we have
-seen, that, in any case of supposed competition, the <i>latter</i> claims an undoubted
-<i>preference</i>. We have also seen, that nothing but absolute, decisive, <i>discernible
-authority</i> can turn the scale in favor of the <i>former</i>, or, indeed, place any law or
-duty in the rank of <span class='fss'>POSITIVE</span>. Moreover, it has been shewn, that every duty resulting
-from any discernible <i>moral relation</i>, must needs be classed among <i>moral
-duties</i>; that some things appertaining to the very <i>essence</i> of baptism, on our opponents’
-own principles, are of moral consideration; particularly the qualifications
-of proper subjects; consequently, that baptism is an ordinance of a <i>mixed
-nature</i>, partly positive and partly moral. Of all which an unavoidable consequence
-is, that our opponents’ outcry against all <i>moral</i> and <i>analogical reasons</i> in
-our enquiries respecting the subjects and mode of baptism, is impertinent and
-absurd, and to a demonstration contradictory to their own avowed principles.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='sc'>Dr. Williams on Baptism.</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f77'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r77'>77</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span> The commission to disciples <i>baptizing all nations</i> is both a positive and
-express authority for the baptism of the infants of such as are themselves discipled.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f78'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r78'>78</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See his works: vol. II. pag. 1129, 1132, 1133.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f79'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r79'>79</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Vid. Just. Martyr, Quest. &amp; Resp. Quest. CII. &amp; ejusd. Apol. II.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f80'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r80'>80</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Vid. Cyp. in Epist. ad Fid. Lib. iii. Epi. viii.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f81'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r81'>81</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Vid. Iren. Lib. ii. xxxix.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f82'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r82'>82</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Vid. Ejusd. Orat. xl.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f83'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r83'>83</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Vid. Augustin. de peccat. merit. &amp; remiss. Lib. i. Cap. xxviii. parvulos baptizandos
-esse concedunt qui contra autoritatem universæ ecclesiæ proculdubio per dominum,
-&amp; Apostolos traditam venire non possunt; and in Sermon. x. de verbis
-Apostol, speaking concerning infant-baptism, he says, Nemo vobis susurret doctrinas
-alienas. Hoc ecclesia semper habuit. semper tenuit; hoc a majorum fide
-percepit: hoc usque in finem perseveranter custodit.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f84'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r84'>84</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Vid. Tertul. Lib. de Baptism, Cap. xviii.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f85'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r85'>85</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>It is very remarkable, that in those ages and countries, <i>where</i> the <i>mode</i>
-of dipping has been, or still is, the most prevalent, <i>there infant-baptism</i> has been
-the most generally practised, and <i>there</i> the <i>mode</i> of baptizing has not been
-deemed essential. Instead, therefore, of finding <i>all</i> these people Baptists, but
-<i>very few, if any</i>, of that denomination, are to be found among them. Dr. Wall,
-who was himself an advocate for dipping, tells us, “that all christians in the
-world, <i>who never owned the pope’s authority</i>, do now, and ever did, dip their
-infants, in the ordinary use.” They always baptized their infants; and, ordinarily,
-by dipping, but not universally, for they, occasionally, sprinkled them.
-The mode of dipping was of ordinary use; but the practice of infant-baptism,
-in those churches who <i>were never under the influence of popery</i>, appears to have
-been <i>universal</i>, both in ancient and modern times.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We do not pretend to rest the proof of infants’ right to baptism upon historical
-evidence, relative to the ancient practice of the church in this respect. However,
-if it should appear, that the churches, soon after the apostles, did admit
-the infant children of believing parents to baptism—if no account can be produced,
-of any church that rejected them—if no individual can be named, who
-pretended that the practice was unlawful, or an innovation—these facts will certainly
-furnish a very weighty argument in favour of the aforesaid doctrine.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Baptism is an important transaction of a public nature. Those christians,
-who lived and wrote in the earliest times after the apostles, must have known
-what <i>their</i> practice was, with reference to the infant children of believers. The
-testimony of these ancient writers, as historians or witnesses, respecting this
-plain matter of fact, justly claims our most impartial and attentive consideration.
-It is not, however, my intention to write a complete history of infant-baptism.
-A history of this kind has been written a century ago, by Dr. Wall, a very
-correct and judicious historian. This history is highly approved and recommended
-by the best judges, being a work of great merit, candour and impartiality.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>On February 9th, 1705, the clergy of England, assembled in general convention,
-“<i>ordered</i>, that the thanks of this house be given to Mr. Wall, vicar of
-Shoreham in Kent, for the learned and excellent book he hath lately written
-concerning infant-baptism; and that a committee be appointed to acquaint
-him with the same.” Dr. Atterbury, a leading member in said convention,
-says, “that the history of infant-baptism was a book, for which the author deserved
-the thanks, not of the English clergy alone, but of all the Christian
-churches.” Mr. Whiston also, a very learned man, well acquainted with the
-writings of the Fathers of the four first centuries, and a professed Baptist, in his
-address to the people of that denomination, declares to them, “that Dr. Wall’s
-history of <i>infant-baptism</i>, as to facts, appeared to him most accurately done,
-and might be depended on by the Baptists themselves.” <i>Mem. of his life</i>, part
-2, page 461.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The aforesaid history is still extant in two volumes. The same author has
-since published another volume, which is a defence of the two former volumes,
-against the reflections of Dr. Gale and others. In these publications, he has
-favoured us with the testimony and sayings of the ancient Fathers, with respect
-to infant-baptism, a few of which I shall produce, as authorities on the present
-occasion.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Justin Martyr, who wrote about forty years after the apostolic age, says, “We
-have not received the carnal but spiritual circumcision, by baptism. And it
-is enjoined on all persons to receive it in the same way.” He here evidently
-considers baptism as being in the place of circumcision, and, consequently, like
-that ancient rite, designed for infants as well as for adults. In one of his apologies
-for the christians, he observes, “Several persons among us, of sixty or
-seventy years old, who were made disciples to Christ from their childhood,
-do continue uncorrupt.”—<i>Who were made disciples.</i>—Take notice; for he
-makes use of the very same word that was used in the commission given to the
-apostles. <i>Disciple all nations, baptizing them</i>, &amp;c. Now, if infant children were
-made disciples, they were undoubtedly baptized. Justin wrote about 105 years
-after the ascension of Christ. Those persons whom he mentions were then 70
-years old; and consequently born and made disciples, in the times of the
-apostles.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Irenæus, who wrote about sixty-seven years after the apostles, and was then
-an aged man, says, concerning Christ, “he came to save all persons who by
-him are regenerated (or baptized) unto God, <i>infants</i>, little ones, youths and
-elderly persons.” He speaks of <i>infants</i> and <i>little ones</i> as being regenerated.
-It is evident from his own words that he had reference to their baptism; for he
-tells us, “When Christ gave his apostles the command of <i>regenerating</i> unto
-God, he said, go and teach all nations <i>baptizing</i> them.” The ancient Fathers
-as customarily used the word regeneration for baptism, as the church of England
-now use the word christening. Justin Martyr, whose name and testimony
-we have already mentioned, speaking of some particular persons who had been
-baptized, says, “they are regenerated in the same way of regeneration, in which
-we have been regenerated, for they are <i>washed with water in the</i> name of the
-Father, and of the Son, and of <i>the Holy Ghost</i>.” In this short sentence, the
-word regeneration, or regenerated, is put for baptism no less than three times.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It is a matter of <i>no</i> importance in the present dispute, whether the primitive
-Fathers used the aforesaid word properly or improperly. We certainly know
-in what sense they did use it, and this is all the information needed. I would
-however repeat a former observation, viz. that by a common figure, the thing
-signified is often substituted for the sign, and the sign for the thing signified.
-Thus, the Abrahamic covenant is sometimes put, by God himself, for circumcision;
-and circumcision, the sign and token thereof, is sometimes put for the
-covenant. Accordingly, baptism has been put for regeneration; and regeneration,
-for baptism.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We have already shown, that the Jews were in the habit of baptizing the Gentile
-proselytes, even before the time of John and of Christ. They considered
-these proselytes as being, by baptism, born the children of Abraham; and
-therefore expressed their baptism, by regeneration. Accordingly, Christ and
-his apostles, on some particular occasions, adopted a similar language. Our Saviour
-said to Nicodemus, <i>except one be born again—except he be born of water
-and of the Spirit, he cannot enter the kingdom of God</i>. By this new birth, Christ
-evidently had reference to water baptism, as truly as to the renewing of the Holy
-Ghost. The apostle Paul styles baptism, <i>the washing of regeneration</i>. The ancients
-commonly expressed baptism with water, by regeneration; for they considered
-this external sacrament as a sign of internal, spiritual renovation and purification,
-Irenæus expressly calls baptism regeneration, and says that <i>infants</i> were <i>regenerated</i>,
-that, is baptized. His testimony is plain and full; and cannot be doubted
-by any person acquainted with the phraseology and writings of the Fathers. He
-mentions not only old persons and youths, but also little ones, and even infants.
-This Irenæus was bishop of Lyons in France. According to Mr. Dodwell, he
-was born before the death of St. John—was brought up in Asia, where that
-apostle had lived and died. He was acquainted with Polycarp; and in his
-younger years, had often heard him preach. Polycarp was John’s disciple, had
-been chosen by him to be bishop of Smyrna—and probably that angel of the
-church, so highly commended in the 2d chapter of Rev. Irenæus, and those
-Christians who lived in an age so near the apostles, and in a place where one of
-them had so lately resided, could not be ignorant—they must have known what
-the apostolic practice was, with respect to infant-baptism—a matter of the most
-notorious and public nature.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Dr. Lathrop observes, “that Tertullian, who flourished about one hundred
-years after the apostles, gives a plain testimony, that the church admitted infants
-to baptism in his time. It is true, he advises to <i>delay</i> their baptism; not
-because it was <i>unlawful</i>, for he allows of it in cases of necessity; but because
-the <i>sponsors</i> were often brought into a snare; and because he imagined that
-sins, committed <i>after baptism</i>, were next to unpardonable. He accordingly advises
-that unmarried persons be kept from this ordinance, until they either
-marry or are confirmed in continence. His advising to a delay, supposes that
-infant-baptism was practised, for otherwise there would have been no room for
-the advice. He does not speak of it as an <i>innovation</i>, which he would certainly
-have done, had it <i>begun</i> to have been practised in his time. His words rather
-imply the contrary. His speaking of <i>sponsors</i>, who engaged for the education of
-the infants that were baptized, shows that there had been such a custom. And
-his asking, ‘why that innocent age <i>made such haste</i> to baptism,’ supposes that
-infants had usually been baptized, soon after their birth. So that he fully
-enough witnesses to the <i>fact</i>, that it had been the practice of the church to baptize
-infants. And his advice to delay their baptism, till they were grown up and
-married, was one of those odd and singular notions for which this father was
-very remarkable.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This quotation agrees well with the account given of Tertullian, by Dr. Wall
-and other approved writers. Tertullian was evidently a man of abilities and
-learning, and in some respects an useful writer. His integrity and veracity were
-never questioned. But as has been hinted, he held to some strange and peculiar
-notions. He was not deemed perfectly orthodox by the ancient Christians. Being
-a person of warm imagination, he expressed himself, very strongly, on different
-subjects, at different times; and some have thought, in a manner that
-was not consistent. Some of the later Baptists have even pretended that he denied
-infant-baptism. But these considerations do not disqualify him as a witness
-in the present case. Instead of invalidating, they serve to confirm his testimony.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Dr. Gill says, that Tertullian is the first man who <i>mentions</i> infant-baptism, and
-speaks against it; and infers that it had not come into use before his time. To
-this, Mr. Clark, in his answer, replies, “So he is the first man, I suppose, that
-mentions the baptism of unmarried people, virgins, and widows, and speaks
-against it, and as earnestly pleads for its delay till the danger of temptation is
-past; till marriage, or the abatement of lust. But will it thence follow, that
-the baptism of such unmarried persons did not obtain in the church till Tertullian’s
-time? Or that it then first began to be in use? Our author might as
-reasonably have inferred the latter opinion, as the former. But the very
-words, in which he expresses his advice against baptizing infants, plainly imply
-that it was a common practice. After all, what is it that Tertullian has
-said against infant-baptism? He has given it as his judgment, that it would
-be more profitable to defer their baptism, until they come to riper years, and
-were able to understand something of its nature and design; but he does not
-like the anti-pædobaptists, condemn it as unlawful; which he would have
-done, if it had been a novel practice—an innovation, contrary to the rule of
-scripture, or without the approbation or direction of the apostles. On the
-contrary, he allows it in case of necessity, of sickness, and danger of death.
-Dr. Gill, instead of saying, that Tertullian was the first man who mentioned
-infant-baptism, and spoke against it, ought to have said, that he was the <i>only
-man</i>, in all antiquity, whose writings have come down to us, who has said any
-thing at all against the practice of baptizing infants.” The very advice, however,
-which he gave, plainly shows, that infant-baptism was then commonly
-practised. He does not intimate, that the practice was of human invention, or
-not authorized by the apostles. His private opinion, with respect to the expediency
-of delaying baptism in several cases, and the reasons which he offered,
-are nothing to us. We have only cited him as a voucher to an ancient fact; and
-the testimony which he has given affords clear and incontestable proof of said
-fact, viz. that infants were baptized in his times.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Origen, who flourished in the beginning of the third century, and was for
-some time contemporary with Tertullian, in his 8th homily on Levit. 12, observes,
-“David, speaking concerning the pollution of infants, says, <i>I was conceived
-in iniquity, and in sin did my mother bring me forth</i>. Let it be considered
-what is the reason, that whereas the baptism of the church is given for forgiveness,
-infants also, by the usage of the church, are baptized; when if there
-were nothing in infants, which wanted forgiveness and mercy, the grace of
-baptism would be needless to them. And again, infants are baptized for the
-remission of sin. Of what sin? Or when have they sinned? Or how can any
-reason of the laver hold good in their case? But according to that sense before
-mentioned, none is free from pollution, though his life be only the length
-of one day upon the earth. It is for this reason that infants are baptized, because
-by the sacrament of baptism, our pollution is taken away.” In another
-treatise, he says, “the church had a tradition, or command from the apostles, to
-give baptism to infants! for they, to whom the divine mysteries were committed,
-knew that there is, in all persons, the natural pollution of sin, which
-ought to be washed away by water and the spirit; by reason of which pollution,
-the body itself is also called <i>the body of sin</i>, &amp;c. &amp;c.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>These testimonies of Origen are full and unequivocal. They put the matter
-in debate beyond all reasonable doubt, if any credit can be given to them; and
-no reason appears, why they should not be credited. It is true, they are taken
-from Latin translations. Origen wrote in the Greek language. But the fidelity
-of the translators and authenticity of these passages, have been sufficiently vindicated
-by Dr. Wall, even to the entire satisfaction of all impartial enquirers.
-None will object, but those persons who are disposed to cavil.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I perceive that you have admitted the aforesaid facts; but have made an unusual
-outcry against the tradition and order from the apostles, mentioned by
-Origen. There is, I suspect, more policy and popularity in your remarks, than
-real weight. It will not do for us to turn those weapons against the ancient
-Fathers and holy apostles, which the protestants have used with so much success,
-in their disputes with the Papists.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Let us hear what St. Paul says, with respect to traditions. 2 Thess. ii. 15.
-“Therefore, brethren, <i>stand fast, and hold the traditions</i> which ye have been
-taught, whether <i>by word</i>, or our epistle.” And in the 3d chap. 6th verse, he
-says, “Now we <i>command</i> you, brethren, in the name of our Lord Jesus Christ,
-that ye withdraw yourselves from every brother that walketh disorderly, and
-not after the <i>tradition</i> which he received of us.” So also in 1 Corin. 11th
-chap. 2d verse. “Now I praise you, brethren, that ye remember me in all
-things, and keep the <i>ordinances</i> (the <i>traditions</i>, paradoseis) as I delivered
-them to you.” The apostle was here speaking of christian ordinances, which
-he calls <i>traditions</i>. The original word signifies <i>traditions</i>, and is so rendered by
-our translators in the other aforecited passages.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Thus, sir, you see in what a solemn manner—<i>in the name of Christ</i>, the holy
-apostle charged the primitive christians, <i>to hold and keep the</i> traditions—not
-merely such as had been written by the pen of inspiration, but also those which
-were delivered to them <i>by word</i>, or in an oral and verbal manner, and with particular
-reference to the rules and ordinances of the gospel. The traditions and
-commandments of mere men, which pretend to divine authority, are to be rejected.
-But those traditions are not to be treated with sneer and ridicule,
-which were delivered by the apostles to the primitive christians—recorded and
-authenticated by the ancient Fathers—and transmitted down to us, by the
-faithful historian.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Origen has expressly informed us, that infant-baptism was practised in his
-time. With respect to this matter of fact, Origen was certainly a competent
-witness; and he had every opportunity, and advantage for knowing what had
-been the practice of his predecessors and even of the apostles. Many of the
-ancient Fathers were illiterate, and descended from heathen parents; and being
-the first of their family who embraced christianity, must have been baptized
-when adults. But Origen was one of the most learned men of the age. He was
-born and educated at Alexandria in Egypt, but travelled into Rome, and
-Greece, and Capadocia, and Arabia. He resided for some time in several of the
-most eminent churches, and spent the greatest part of his life in Syria and Palestine.
-His ancestors were christians. Eusebius tells us, that his forefathers
-had been christians, for several generations. His father was martyred, in the
-persecution under Severus.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It is very remarkable, that his pedigree should have been so accurately ascertained.
-The occasion was this: Porphyry, a great enemy to christianity, had
-represented the christians as being an ignorant people, destitute of science; but
-not being able to conceal the repute of Origen, for his uncommon skill in human
-literature, pretended that he had been at first a heathen, and had learned
-their philosophy. In order to confute this falsehood, Eusebius enquired into
-his ancestry, and set forth his christian descent.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Origen was born in the year of our Lord 185, that is, eighty-five years after
-the apostles. He was seventeen years old when his father suffered martyrdom.
-He had himself, undoubtedly, been baptized in his infancy; and must have been
-informed concerning the practice of the apostles, respecting the baptizing of
-infants; for his grandfather, or at least his great-grandfather, lived in the apostolic
-times, and they both were christians. This is the man, who has expressly
-declared, that infants were baptized in his day, and that the church was directed
-by an order or tradition from the apostles, to baptize them. His circumstances
-were such as afforded him all the necessary and suitable means for obtaining
-information. We have no reason to suspect his credibility as a witness;
-and nothing can be more unreasonable, than to reject or treat his testimony
-with contempt. It is a circumstance worthy of our <i>very particular notice</i>, that
-Origen and the other ancient Fathers do not speak of infant-baptism as being a
-practice that was denied or opposed by any one. They mention it as a practice
-generally known and approved, and for the purpose of illustrating and confirming
-other points that were then disputed.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>I shall now produce the testimony of the blessed martyr Cyprian, who was
-for some time contemporary with Origen; and next to him, the most noted
-Christian writer of that age. Cyprian was constituted bishop or minister of
-Carthage, in the year 248, and Origen died in the year 252. The testimony of
-this ancient saint, to which I now have an immediate reference, was occasioned
-by a question proposed to him, by one Fidus, a <i>presbyter</i>, or minister in the
-country, viz. Whether <i>an infant might be baptized before he was eight days old</i>?
-The reason of his doubt, it seems, was an article in the law respecting circumcision,
-which, under the Old Testament dispensation, required that infants
-should be circumcised on the eighth day from their birth. Pursuant to the
-aforesaid question, an ecclesiastical council of sixty-six bishops, having convened
-at Carthage, A. D. 253, Cyprian proposed a resolution of the following import,
-viz. “that an infant might be baptized on the second or third day, or at
-any time after its birth; and that circumcision, besides being a sacramental
-rite, had something in it of a typical nature; and particularly, in the circumstance
-of being administered on the eighth day, which ceased at the coming of
-Christ, who has given us baptism, the spiritual circumcision; in which ordinance,
-we are not thus restricted, with respect to the age or time of administration.”
-To this resolution the council agreed unanimously; as it appears
-from the testimony of Cyprian in his epistle to Fidus, from which I shall extract
-a few paragraphs, in order to show the sentiments of those venerable and ancient
-saints relative to infant-baptism.—The inscription is as follows:</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>“Cyprian and the rest of the colleagues, who are present in council, in number
-sixty-six, to Fidus our brother,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>“Greeting.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>“As to the case of infants, whereas <i>you judge that they must not be baptized
-within two or three days after they are born; and that the law of the ancient circumcision
-is to be observed; so that you think none should be baptized and sanctified,
-until the eighth day after their birth</i>; we were all in our assembly of a quite
-different opinion. For in this matter, with respect to that which you thought
-fitting to be done, there was not one of your mind. But all of us rather judged,
-that the grace and mercy of God is not to be denied to any person born. For
-whereas our Lord in his gospel, <i>the Son of Man came not to destroy men’s souls</i>
-(or lives) <i>but to save them</i>.—That the eighth day, appointed to be observed in
-the Jewish circumcision, was a type going before in a shadow, or resemblance,
-but on Christ’s coming was fulfilled in the substance; for because the eighth
-day, that is the next after the Sabbath, was to be the day on which the Lord
-was to rise from the dead, and quicken us, and give us the spiritual circumcision.
-This eighth day, that is, the next to the Sabbath, or the Lord’s day,
-went before in the type, which type ceased when the substance came, and the
-spiritual circumcision was given to us. So that we judge, no person is to be
-hindered from obtaining the grace, (that is <i>of baptism</i>) by the law which is
-now established; and that the spiritual circumcision ought not to be restrained
-by the circumcision which was according to the flesh; but that all
-are to be admitted to the grace of Christ; since Peter, speaking in the Acts
-of the apostles, says, <i>the Lord hath shown me that no person is to be called common
-or unclean</i>. This, therefore, dear brother, was our opinion in the assembly,
-that it is not for us to hinder any person from baptism, and from the grace of
-God, who is merciful, and kind, and affectionate to all. Which rule, as it
-holds for all, so we think it is more especially to be observed in reference to
-infants, and those that are newly born, to whom our help and the divine mercy
-is rather to be granted, because by their weeping and wailing at their first entrance
-into the world, they do intimate nothing so much as that they implore
-compassion,” &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Saint Ambrose, who wrote about 274 years after the apostles, declares expressly,
-“that infant-baptism was practised in his time, and in the time of the
-apostles.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Saint Chrysostom observes, “that persons may be baptized either in their infancy,
-in middle age, or in old age.”—He tells us, infants were baptized, although
-they had no sin; and that the sign of the cross was made upon their
-foreheads at baptism.—Saint Hierome says, “if infants be not baptized, the
-sin of omitting their baptism is laid to the parent’s charge.”—Saint Austin,
-who wrote at the same time, about 280 years after the apostles, speaks “of infant-baptism
-as one of those practices which was not <i>instituted by any council</i>, but
-had <i>always</i> been in use.” The <i>whole church of Christ</i>, he informs us, <i>had constantly
-held</i> that infants were baptized for the forgiveness of sin.—That he
-“had <i>never read or heard</i> of <i>any Christian, Catholic</i> or <i>sectary</i>, who held otherwise.”—“That
-no christian, of any sort, ever denied it to be useful or necessary.”
-“If any one,” saith he, “should ask for divine authority in this matter,
-though that, which the whole church practises, and which has not been instituted
-by councils, but was ever in use, may be believed, very reasonably, to be
-a thing delivered or ordered by the apostles, yet we may, besides, take a true
-estimate, how much the sacrament of baptism does avail infants, by the circumcision
-which God’s former people received.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>No one of these ancient Fathers ever wrote directly in favour of, or against,
-infant-baptism. In their various discourses and writings, they often mention it,
-occasionally and transiently, when discoursing on some other subject.—They
-mention it as a general practice of universal notoriety, about which there was
-no controversy, in order to confute some prevailing heresy, or establish certain
-doctrines, that were then disputed. Similar testimonies might easily be produced
-from the writings of many other ancient witnesses, but this would unnecessarily
-add to the prolixity of the present work. I will therefore conclude, by
-stating very briefly, the incontestible and conclusive evidence in proof of infant-baptism,
-arising out of the well-known Pelagian controversy respecting original
-sin, which happened about three hundred years after the apostles.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Pelagius held, that infants were born free from any natural and sinful defilements.
-The chief opposers of him and his adherents were Saint Hierome, and
-Saint Austin, who constantly urged, very closely, in all their writings upon the
-subject, the following argument, viz. “<i>That infants are, by all christians, acknowledged
-to stand in need of baptism, which must be in them for original sin,
-since they have no other</i>.” “If they have no sin, why are they then baptized,
-according to the rule of the church, <i>for the forgiveness of sins? Why are they
-washed in the laver of regeneration, if they have no pollution?</i>” Pelagius, and
-also Celestius, one of his principal abettors, were extremely puzzled and embarrassed
-with this argument. They knew not how to evade or surmount its force,
-but by involving themselves in greater absurdities and difficulties. Some persons
-aggravated the supposed error, by charging upon them the denial of infant-baptism,
-as a consequence that followed from their tenet. Pelagius disclaimed
-the slanderous imputation with abhorrence, declaring that he was accused
-falsely. In the confession of faith, Pelagius then exhibited, which Dr.
-Wall has recited, he owns, “<i>that baptism ought to be administered to infants,
-with the same sacramental words which are used in the case of adult persons</i>.”—He
-vindicates himself in the strongest terms, saying, “<i>that men slander him as
-if he denied the sacrament of baptism to infants, and did promise the kingdom of
-heaven to any person without the redemption of Christ; and affirms that he never
-heard of any, not even the most impious heretic, that would say such a thing of infants</i>.”
-Now these difficulties would have been instantly removed, and the battery,
-which so greatly annoyed them, been demolished at once, by only denying that
-infants were to be baptized. But they did not suggest or entertain any doubt at
-all respecting this doctrine. Pelagius readily avowed, in the most explicit manner,
-the incontested right, and the established immemorial practice of infant-baptism.
-Celestius also confessed, “that infants were to be baptized according
-to the <i>rule of the universal church</i>.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>One of these men was born and educated in Britain, and the other in Ireland.
-They both lived a long time at Rome, the centre of the world and place to which
-all people resorted. Celestius settled at Jerusalem, and Pelagius travelled over
-all the principal churches of Europe, Asia and Africa. If there had been any
-number of churches, or a single church, in any part of the world, not only in
-that but in the two preceding ages, who denied the baptism of infants, these
-learned, sagacious persons must have known or heard of it; and certainly they
-would have mentioned it, in order to check the triumph of their opponents, and
-to wrest from them that argument, by which, above all others, they were most
-grievously pressed. It is evident there was no society of Baptists then in the
-world, nor had there been any of that denomination, within the memory of man.
-The confession of Pelagius and Celestius amounts almost to demonstration. It
-proves, beyond all reasonable doubt, that infant-baptism had universally obtained,
-and had always been practised among christians, even from the apostolic
-times.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Dr. Wall, who enjoyed the best advantages for being acquainted with the
-history of infant-baptism, and who made this the principal subject of his studies
-and enquiries, briefly sums up the evidence on both sides, in the following
-words: “Lastly, for the first four hundred years, there appears only one man,
-Tertullian, who advised the <i>delay</i> of infant-baptism in some cases, and one
-Gregory, who did <i>perhaps</i> practise such <i>delay</i> in the case of his own children;
-but no society of men so thinking or so practising; or any one man saying it
-was unlawful to baptize infants. So in the next seven hundred years, there is
-not so much as <i>one</i> man to be found, who either spoke for or practised any
-such delay, but all the contrary. And when about the year 1130, one sect
-among the Waldenses or Albigenses declared against the baptizing of infants,
-<i>as being incapable of salvation</i>, the main body of that people rejected their opinion;
-and they of them who held that opinion, quickly dwindled away and
-disappeared, there being no more persons heard of, holding that tenet, until
-the rising of the German anti-pædobaptists in the year 1522.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='sc'>Reed’s Apology.</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f86'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r86'>86</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Wall’s History of Infant-Baptism, Part II. page 52-86.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f87'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r87'>87</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>They that would see more on this subject may consult G. J. Voss, de baptismo
-disput. xiv. Forbes. instruct. hist. theol. Lib. x. cap. v. and Wall’s history of infant-baptism,
-vol. I.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f88'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r88'>88</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>See Dr. Owen’s complete Collection of Sermons, page 580, 581. of dipping;
-in which he observes, that βαπτω, when used in these scriptures, Luke xvi. 24.
-and John xiii. 26. is translated to <i>dip</i>; and in Rev. xix. 13. where we read of a
-<i>vesture dipped in blood</i>; it is better rendered <i>stained</i>, by sprinkling blood upon
-it; and all these scriptures denote only a touching one part of the body, and not
-plunging. In other authors, it signifies, <i>tingo</i>, <i>immergo</i>, <i>lavo</i>, <i>abluo</i>; but in no
-author it ever signifies to dip, but only in order to washing, or as the means of
-washing. As for the Hebrew word טבל, rendered, by the LXX. in Gen.
-xxxvii. 31. by μολύνω, <i>to stain by sprinkling</i>, or otherwise mostly by βαπτω: In 2
-Kings v. 14. they render it by βαπτιζω, and no where else: In ver. 10. Elisha commands
-Naaman to <i>wash</i>; and accordingly, ver. 14. pursuant to this order, it is
-said, he <i>dipped himself seven times</i>; the word is ויטבל; which the LXX. render
-εβαπτισατω; and in Exod. xii. 22. where the word טבל is used, which we render
-<i>dip</i>, speaking concerning the dipping the bunch of hyssop in the blood, the
-LXX. render it by the word βαπτω: And, in I Sam. xiv. 27; it is said, that Jonathan
-dipped the end of his rod in an honey-comb; the word here is also ויטבל,
-and the LXX. render it εβαψεν; in which place it cannot be understood of his
-dipping it by plunging: And in Lev. iv. 6. 17. and chap. ix. 9. the priest is said
-to dip his finger in the blood, which only intends his touching the blood, so as
-to sprinkle it; and therefore does not signify plunging.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This learned author likewise observes, that βαπτιζω signifies to wash; as instances
-out of all authors may be given; and he particularly mentions Suidas,
-Hesychius, Julius Pollux, and Phavorinus and Eustachius. And he further
-adds, that it is first used in the scripture, in Mark i. 8. John i. 33. and to the
-same purpose, Acts i. 5. in which place it signifies to pour; for the expression is
-equivocal; <i>I baptize you with water, but he shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost</i>:
-which is an accomplishment of that promise, that <i>the Holy Ghost should be poured
-on them</i>. As for other places, in Mark vii. 2. 4. νίπτω, which signifies to <i>wash</i>,
-and is so translated, is explained in the words immediately following, as signifying
-<i>to baptize</i>. And, in Luke xi. 38. it is said, that the Pharisee marvelled that
-our Saviour had not <i>washed before dinner</i>: The word in the Greek is ἐβαπτισθη,
-to whom he replies in the following verse, <i>Ye Pharisees make clean the outside</i>,
-&amp;c. so that the word, βαπτιζω signifies there to <i>cleanse</i>, or to use the means of
-cleansing.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>He also observes, that though the original and natural signification of the
-word imports, to <i>dip</i>, to <i>plunge</i>, to <i>dye</i>; yet it also signifies to <i>wash</i> or <i>cleanse</i>:
-Nevertheless, he thinks that it is so far from signifying nothing else but to <i>dip</i>
-or <i>plunge</i>, that when it is to be understood in that sense, the words ought to be
-εμβάπτω, or εμβαπτιζω, rather than βαπτω, or βαπτίζω; and also that it no where
-signifies to <i>dip</i>, but as denoting a mode of, and in order to washing; and that it
-signifies to <i>wash</i>, in all good authors. He also refers to Scapula and Stephanus,
-as translating the word βαπτιζω by <i>lavo</i>, or <i>abluo</i>; and Suidas, as rendering it by
-<i>madefacio</i>, <i>lavo</i>, <i>abluo</i>, <i>purgo</i>, <i>mundo</i>: And he speaks of some authors, that he
-had searched in every place wherein they mention baptism, and that he found
-not one word to the purpose; and therefore concludes, that he was obliged to
-say, and was ready to make it good, that no honest man, who understands the
-Greek tongue, can deny the word to signify to <i>wash</i>, as well as to <i>dip</i>.<a id='r89' /><a href='#f89' class='c012'><sup>[89]</sup></a></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f89'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r89'>89</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Dr. Wall, in the appendix of his reply to Dr. Gale, mentions a remarkable instance, in
-which the mode of wetting or of applying water was certainly that of pouring, and not that
-of dipping. It is as follows:—St. Origen, when commenting on the Baptism of John, enquires
-thus of the Pharisees; “How could you think that Elias, when he should come, would <i>baptize</i>,
-who did not in Ahab’s time <i>baptize</i> the wood upon the altar, which was to be washed before
-it was burnt by the Lord’s appearing in fire? But he ordered the priest to do that; not once
-only, but he says, do it the second time; and they did it the second time. And do it the
-third time; and they did it the third time. Therefore, how could it be likely that this man,
-who did not then <i>baptize</i>, but assigned that work to others, would himself <i>baptize</i>, when he
-should, according to the prophecy of Malachi, again appear here on earth?”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We find in the first book of Kings, xviii. 33, that the order given by Elijah was to fill four
-barrels with water, and <i>pour</i> it on the wood and on the burnt offering. This <i>pouring of water</i>,
-Origen, that accurate scholar, who lived in the second century, and was well acquainted with
-the Greek classics, and Greek Testament, calls baptizing. In the very same sentence, he makes
-use of the Greek word <i>Baptizo</i> four times; twice with express reference to the <i>Baptism</i> of
-John; and twice with express reference to that <i>Baptism</i> which took place in the days of the
-Prophet Elijah; which baptism, we are expressly told, was not performed by <i>dipping</i> the
-wood and sacrifice into water, but by <i>pouring</i> water upon them.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It is also evident, even from the frequent use of the word baptizo, by heathen authors, that it
-does not always signify a total immersion. Mr. Walker tells us, “that Porphyrie mentions
-a river in India, into which if an offender enters, or attempts to pass through it, he is immediately
-<i>baptized</i> up to his head:” (<i>baptizetai mechri Kephales</i>.) Here a person is said to be
-baptized, although his head did not go under, but remained above the water. This certainly
-was not a total immersion.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>“He also instances a case from Mr. Sydenham, as delivered by the oracle (viz. <i>askos baptize,
-dunai de toi ou themis esti</i>.”) In which instance, if <i>dunai</i> signifies to plunge wholly under
-water, as it certainly does, then <i>baptize</i> must signify something less than a total immersion.—“<i>Baptize
-him as a bottle, but it is not lawful to plunge him wholly under the water.</i>” The
-baptism here described, resembles that of a blown bladder or bottle of leather, which when put
-into the water, will not sink to the bottom, but swim upon the top.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The same critical author mentions an instance from Schrevelii’s and Robertson’s Lexicons,
-19th chapter, in which case, the primitive word <i>bapto</i> signifies a wetting with water, that was
-certainly less, and very different from a total dipping or immersion. The sentence is this.
-(“<i>Baptei men askon, udor de ugron dunei pote.</i>”) “<i>He indeed baptizeth a bladder or bottle, but it
-never goeth under the liquid water.</i>”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>To these instances, we might add a well known case, taken from a poem attributed to Homer,
-called the battle of the frogs and the mice, in which the lake is said to be <i>baptized</i> by the blood
-of a frog. (<i>Ebapteto de aimati limne porphureo.</i>) This lake was not <i>dipped</i> into the blood of
-a frog; it was only <i>bespattered</i> and tinged therewith.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We could easily multiply authorities if it were necessary. It appears undeniably evident
-from the Greek classicks, and from learned writers and commentators, both ancient and modern,
-that the word <i>baptizo</i> has other significations besides that of a total dipping or immersion.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The most celebrated and respectable Lexicographers and criticks have often translated
-baptizo into the following Latin words, viz. <i>baptizo</i>, <i>mergo</i>, <i>immergo</i>, <i>tingo</i>, <i>intingo</i>, <i>lave</i>, <i>abluo</i>,
-<i>madefacio</i>, <i>purgo</i>, <i>mundo</i>. No one, I presume, will pretend that all these words are mentioned
-as being perfectly synonimous—of the same meaning exactly. And certainly if the word baptizo
-signify any thing less or different from a total immersion, then persons may be baptized in
-some other mode.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Besides, if it had been the intention of Christ and of his Apostles, to specify the mode, or to
-have restricted all christians to one and the same mode of baptizing, they might, for this purpose,
-have selected from the Greek language words of the most unequivocal and definite signification.
-If it had been their intention to specify the mode of <i>sprinkling</i>, they might have used
-the word <i>Rantizo</i>; if the mode of <i>pouring</i>, they might have used the word <i>Ekcheo</i>; if that
-mode of <i>bathing</i> or <i>washing</i>, which is performed by the application of water with friction or
-rubbing, they might have used the word <i>Louo</i>; and if it had been their intention to specify the
-mode of <i>dipping</i>, they might have used the word <i>Dupto</i> or <i>Duno</i>, &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='sc'>Reed’s Apology.</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f90'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r90'>90</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Ἐις and ἐκ.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f91'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r91'>91</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Ἐις τὴν Θαλασσαν.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f92'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r92'>92</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Ἐκ.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f93'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r93'>93</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>If any one has a mind to see how these particles ἐις and ἐκ, are used in the
-New Testament, he may consult Schmid. concord. in voc. ἐις and ἐκ, where there are
-a great number of places mentioned, in which these words are used; and, it will
-hardly be thought, by any impartial reader, that the greatest part of them can be
-rendered by, into or out of; but rather to, or from.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f94'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r94'>94</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Γδατκ πολλα.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f95'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r95'>95</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Lightfoot’s works, Vol. I. Page 500.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f96'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r96'>96</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>In Col. ii. 12. and context, is a succession of figures, designed, in different
-ways, to illustrate and enforce the same fact. Verse 11. “In whom also
-ye are circumcised with the circumcision, <i>made without hands</i>, in putting off
-the body of the sins of the flesh by the circumcision of Christ.” That is, in
-putting off the old man, you are circumcised without hands; the work is effected
-by the Holy Spirit—You are born again, which is spiritual circumcision.
-“Circumcision is that of the <i>heart</i>.” This renewing of the Holy Spirit consists
-in putting off the body of sin, in renouncing sin, and reforming the life. Or,
-we are “buried with him in baptism.” As the burial of Jesus Christ gave
-evidence, that he had really died, the just for the unjust; that he had yielded
-himself a sacrifice for sin; so we in our spiritual circumcision or baptism, the
-figure now used, show ourselves to be really dead to sin, crucified in the lusts
-of our minds. As Christ, when buried, was dead and separated from the world;
-so in regeneration we become separate from sin. We are new creatures, having
-put off the old man. We are buried from the wicked indulgences and pursuits of
-the world.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The death, burial, and resurrection of Christ, are, not only causes, but types
-and symbols to represent the death of our sins, our putting off the old man, and
-becoming new creatures.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>No reference is made in the text to the water of baptism, any more than to
-the knife of circumcision in the preceding verse. The writer is speaking of
-that baptism, and of that alone, in which we “are risen with Christ, through
-the faith, which is the operation of God.” This certainly can be nothing less
-than <i>spiritual</i> baptism, or regeneration; for the most violent advocate for
-dipping, or plunging, or burying, will not pretend, that this, necessarily, is
-connected with “faith;” he will allow it may be <i>possible</i> for a man to be plunged
-and buried in <i>water</i>, and yet not have “the faith, which is the operation of God.”
-If he allow this, and allow this he must and will, then our text is no support of
-his cause. It cannot be water baptism which is mentioned.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Were not this the fact, nothing could be inferred respecting the <i>mode</i> of
-baptism. It would then only signify that, as Christ was buried and separated
-from the world; so we in baptism are buried and separated from a world of sin.
-The zeal for the literal construction of this figure may, perhaps, be extinguished
-by indulging it in other instances. St. Paul says, “I am crucified with
-Christ.” Would any person suppose from this, that he had been led to Calvary,
-nailed to the cross, and pierced by the soldier’s spear? Christians are said to
-be “circumcised in Christ.” Does any one infer from this that all Christians experience
-the bloody rite of the Jews? Or, because Christians “are partakers
-of Christ’s sufferings,” are all christians, therefore, betrayed by Judas, spit
-upon, buffeted, and crowned with thorns? Or, because St. Paul says the Philippians
-were his “<i>crown</i>,” were they, therefore, formed into a crown of honor,
-and worn as a badge of future glory? Or, because the sacrament represents
-the sufferings and death of Christ, are all worthy communicants crucified?
-Were our baptist brethren consistent with themselves, such would be their
-explanation of these passages of scripture.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>It immediately follows our text; “wherein also you were risen with him
-through the faith of the operation of God, who hath raised him from the dead.”
-Wherein, or in which baptism “we are risen,” actually “risen with Christ by
-the faith” which God gives to the new creature. You, who have this spiritual
-baptism, rise like Christ above the selfish motives, and sensual pursuits of a
-fallen world. You seek the kingdom of God; you aspire after divine good.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Persons, born again, like Jesus Christ, separate their hearts from the world,
-and rise to a divine life. That this is the only true construction of the text,
-may be inferred from a corresponding passage, Rom. vi. 4. “Therefore we are
-buried with him by baptism into death, that like as Christ was raised from the
-dead by the glory of the Father, even so we also should walk in newness of life.”
-By spiritual baptism we partake the privileges of Christ’s death. By dying to
-sin ourselves, as we do in the new birth, we resemble Jesus Christ in his death,
-who died “to make an end of sin.” As Christ was raised from the grave; so
-we, not in water baptism, but in regeneration or spiritual baptism, are “raised”
-to walk in newness of life. Old things are done away; <i>all</i> things are become
-new. If we have experienced this spiritual baptism, we shall have the Spirit of
-Christ, We shall be separate from the world of sin, as Christ was in the grave,
-and we shall like him rise to a holy, a new life. We obey a new master, seek a
-new way of salvation, act from new motives, to accomplish new designs; we
-choose new companions, experience new sorrows, and new joys. As if buried,
-we are separate from our former lives.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>St. John says, “He [Christ] shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost and with
-<i>fire</i>.” The Selucians and Hermians understood this literally, and maintained
-that material fire was necessary in the administration of baptism. Valentinus,
-like our baptists, rebaptized those, who had received baptism out of the sect,
-and <i>drew them through the fire</i>. Herculian, cited by Clemens Alexandrinus, says
-that some applied a red hot iron to the ears of the baptized. St. Paul says, we
-are buried with Christ in baptism. This also has been understood literally;
-but such persons forget that to be consistent, on their plan, they should continue
-“buried” three days and three nights, the time Christ lay in the earth. Should
-any object that this would drown them, the baptist, in his way of treating
-figures, would have an easy answer, and readily prove that drowning was the
-very design of baptism. Rom. vi. 4. “We are buried with him by baptism
-into his death.” We are not merely buried, for this is only a part, any more
-than sprinkling; but we are buried to death, “buried into his death.” Thus he
-has scripture for drowning all whom he baptizes, and precisely as much scripture
-for drowning, as for burying. The very same passage, might he say,
-which commands burying, commands drowning, commands “death.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>In the present mode of plunging, the resemblance is almost entirely lost.
-What is the difference between laying a dead body in a rock, covering it with
-a great stone; sealing it in a solemn manner; all things continuing in this state,
-three days and three nights, what is the resemblance between this, and suddenly
-plunging a living body into water, and instantly lifting it out of the water?
-What possible likeness is there between a <i>living person</i> in the <i>water</i>, and a <i>dead
-body</i> in a <i>rock</i>? The similitude is little better than that of the blind man, who
-supposed the light of the sun was like the noise of a cannon. We have accordingly
-endeavoured to show in the introduction, that the elegant scholar,
-the christian orator of Tarsus, had no thought of any such resemblance; his
-object was to show, that in regeneration or spiritual baptism, which is followed
-“with newness of life,” or, a new life, “through faith which is the operation of
-God,” we are dead and buried to sin, and raised or made alive to God, as Christ
-was. The evident design of the text is to illustrate the preceding verse, which
-speaks of spiritual circumcision made without hands. This <i>baptism</i> is that by
-which we are <i>raised with Christ</i>; but in water baptism we are not always raised
-with Christ. If men are plunged they may generally be raised from the water;
-but this has no necessary connexion with “rising with Christ.” This baptism
-is also effected “through faith which is the operation of God;” but a man may
-be raised out of an ocean of water, every day of his life, and remain destitute of
-faith; therefore, the text has no reference to water baptism.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='sc'>Rev. E. Parish’s Sermon</span>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f97'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r97'>97</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>This was done by the council at Constance, A. D. 1415, before which time there
-were, indeed, several disputes about the matter or form of the cup, in which the wine
-was contained; but it was never taken away from the common people till then.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f98'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r98'>98</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>This hymn is inserted after Sternhold and Hopkin’s version of the Psalms.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f99'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r99'>99</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Dr. Goodwin’s Christ set forth, § 2. Chap. ii.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f100'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r100'>100</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Quest. LXXII. Vol. III. page 97, &amp; seq. and Quest. LXXVI, LXXXV, LXXXVII.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f101'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r101'>101</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Quest. lxxxi. Vol. III. page 268.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f102'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r102'>102</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Voveo.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f103'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r103'>103</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Quest.</i> <a href='#quest-151'>CLI</a>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f104'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r104'>104</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See page <a href='#Page_317'>317</a>.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f105'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r105'>105</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>That several of the Fathers practised and pleaded for praying for the dead, is
-evident from what Cyprian says, Epist. xxxix. concerning the church’s offering sacrifices,
-by which he means prayers for the martyrs; among whom, he particularly
-mentions Laurentius and Ignatius, on the yearly return of those days, on which the
-memorial of their martyrdom was celebrated. And Eusebius, in the life of Constantine,
-Lib. iv. Cap. lxxi. when speaking concerning the funeral obsequies performed
-for that monarch, says, that a great number of people, with tears and lamentations
-poured forth prayers to God for the emperor’s soul. And Gregory Nazianzen
-prayed for his brother Cæsarius after his death. Vid. Ejusd in Fun. Cæsar, Orat.
-x. Also Ambrose prayed for the religious emperors, Valentinian and Gratian, and
-for Theodosius, and for his brother Satyrus. Vid. Ejusd. de obit. Valentin. Theodos.
-&amp; Satyr. And Augustin speaks of his praying for his mother Monica, after her
-decease, in Confess. Lib. ix. Cap. xiii. And Epiphanius defends this practice with
-so much warmth, that he can hardly forbear charging the denial hereof as one of
-Aerius’s heresies. Vid. Epiphan. hæeres. lxxv. And some Popish writers, when defending
-their praying for the dead, have, with more malice than reason, charged the
-Protestants with being Aerians, upon this account.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f106'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r106'>106</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Quest. lxxxvi. page <a href='#Page_313'>313</a>.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f107'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r107'>107</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Vid. Grot. in loc.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f108'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r108'>108</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Many suppose that all those Psalms, in which some particular expressions are
-referred to in the New Testament, as having their accomplishment in Christ, are
-to be understood as containing a double reference, namely, to David, as denoting his
-particular case, and to Christ, of whom he was an eminent type. But as for Psalm
-xxii. there are several expressions in it, not only applied to Christ in the New Testament;
-but they cannot well be understood of any other but him. In the first verse
-he uses the same words that were uttered by Christ on the cross, Matt. xxvii. 46.
-My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me? and in ver. 8. he trusted in the
-Lord that he would deliver him; let him deliver him: This was an expression
-used by those who mocked and derided him, Matt. xxvii. 41, 45. And what is said
-in verses 14, 17. All my bones are out of joint; I may tell them, they look and
-stare upon me; does not seem to be applicable to David, from any thing said concerning
-him elsewhere; but they are a lively representation of the torment a person
-endures, when hanging on a cross, as our Saviour did; which has a tendency to disjoint
-the bones, and cause them to stick out. And when it is said, ver. 16, 18.
-they pierced my hands and my feet; and they part my garments among them, and
-cast lots upon my vesture; the former was fulfilled in Christ’s being nailed to the
-cross, and his side pierced with a spear; and the latter is expressly referred to as
-fulfilled in the parting of Christ’s garments, and casting lots upon his vesture,
-Matt. xxvii. 35. as an accomplishment of what was foretold, by the royal prophet in
-this Psalm. These expressions cannot, in the least, be applied to David, but are to
-be understood of our Saviour; therefore, we may conclude that those words in ver.
-6. I am a worm, &amp;c. are particularly applied to him.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f109'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r109'>109</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>What under one aspect is grace, under another is duty.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f110'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r110'>110</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Vide ante vol. I. p. 19. in note.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f111'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r111'>111</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>The petition in Luke offered daily, is equivalent to that in Matthew.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f112'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r112'>112</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>επιουσιον is found only in this prayer, and rather means <i>necessary</i>.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f113'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r113'>113</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>Qu. For <i>Father</i> is designed in its appellative sense, and <i>our</i> as a covenant-plea.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f114'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r114'>114</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Quest. CLIV. page <a href='#Page_79'>79</a>.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f115'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r115'>115</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Vol. II Quest. XLV. page 353.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f116'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r116'>116</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Vol. II. page 376.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f117'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r117'>117</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Vol. II. page 376, &amp;c.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f118'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r118'>118</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Vol. I. Quest. xii. p. 471.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f119'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r119'>119</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>It has been said, that there cannot be any reason or motive to pray, or
-make any petition, to an <i>unchangeable God</i>, whose design cannot be altered, and
-who has fixed all events, without a possibility of any change.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Before any attempt is made to remove this objection, and supposed difficulty,
-it must be observed, that it equally lies against the <i>foreknowledge of God</i>. For
-if God certainly foreknows every thing that will take place, then every event
-is fixed and certain, otherwise it could not be foreknown. “Known unto God
-are all his works from the beginning of the world.” He has determined, and
-passed an unchangeable decree, with respect to all that he will do to eternity.
-Upon the plan of the objection under consideration, it may be asked, What
-reason or motive can any one have to ask God to do any thing for him, or any
-one else, since he infallibly knows from the beginning what he will do, and
-therefore it is unalterably fixed? Therefore if it be reasonable to pray to an
-<i>omniscient</i> God, it is equally reasonable to pray to an <i>unchangeable</i> God. For the
-former necessarily implies the latter. But in order to show that the objection
-is without foundation, the following things must be observed.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. If God were not omniscient and unchangeable, and had not foreordained
-whatsoever comes to pass, he would not be the proper object of worship, and
-there would be no foundation, reason, or encouragement to make any petition to
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This, it is presumed, will be evident to any one who will well consider the
-following observations.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>First.</i> If there were no unchangeable, omniscient Being, there would be no
-God, no proper object of worship. A being who is capable of change, is necessarily
-imperfect, and may change from bad to worse, and even cease to exist,
-and therefore could not be trusted. If we could know that such a being has
-existed, and that he was once wise, and good, and powerful, we could have no
-evidence that he would continue to be wise or good, or that he is so now, or
-that he is now disposed to pay any regard to our petitions, or is either willing
-or able to grant them; or even that he has any existence. What reason of encouragement
-then can there be to pray to a changeable being? Surely none at
-all. Therefore, if there be no reason to pray to an <i>unchangeable God</i>, there can
-be no reason to pray at all.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Secondly.</i> If God be infinitely wise, and good, and omnipotent, supreme and
-independent; then he certainly is unchangeable, and has foreordained whatsoever
-comes to pass. This has been proved above, or rather is self-evident. But if
-he be not infinitely wise and good, &amp;c. then he cannot be trusted; he cannot be
-the object of that trust and confidence which is implied, and even expressed, in
-praying to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Thirdly.</i> The truly pious, benevolent, devout man would not desire, or
-even <i>dare</i>, to pray to God for any thing, if he were changeable, and disposed
-to alter his purpose and plan, in order to grant his petitions. Therefore he
-never does pray to any but an <i>unchangeable God</i>, whose counsel stands forever,
-and the thoughts of his heart to all generations. He is sensible that he is a very
-imperfect creature; that his heart, his will, is awfully depraved and sinful; that
-he knows not what is wisest and best to be done in any one instance; what is
-best for him, for mankind in general, for the world, or for the universe; what
-is most for the glory of God, and the greatest general good; and that it would
-be infinitely undesirable and dreadful to have his own will regarded so as to
-govern in determining what shall be done for him or any other being, or what
-shall take place. If it could be left to him to determine in the least instance,
-he would not dare to do it, but would refer it back to God, and say, “Not <i>my
-will</i>, but <i>thine</i> be done.” But he could not do this, unless he were <i>certain</i> that
-the will of God was unchangeably wise and good, and that he had decreed to do
-what was most for his own glory, and the greatest good of the whole; at the
-same time infallibly knowing what must take place, in every instance, in order
-to answer this end; and consequently must have fixed upon the most wise and
-best plan, foreordaining whatsoever comes to pass. Therefore, whatever be his
-petitions for himself, or for others, he offers them to God, and asks, <i>on this condition</i>,
-always either expressed or implied, <i>If it be agreeable to thy will</i>: for
-<i>otherwise</i> he would not have his petitions granted, if it were possible. And he
-who asks any thing of God, without making this condition, but sets up his own
-will, and desires to have it gratified, whether it be for the glory of God, and the
-greatest good of his kingdom, or not; and would, were it in his power, compel
-his Maker to grant his petition, and bow the will of God to his own will; he
-who prays to God with such a disposition, is an impious enemy to God, exercises
-no true devotion, and cannot be heard; and it is desireable to all the friends of
-God that he should be rejected. Resignation to the will of God always supposes
-his will is unchangeably fixed and established, which it could not be,
-unless he has foreordained whatsoever comes to pass.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Thus it appears that if God were changeable, and had not foreordained whatsoever
-comes to pass, there would be no foundation for religious worship, or
-reason for praying to him; or that there can be no reason or encouragement for
-prayer and petition to any but an <i>unchangeable</i> God.—I proceed to observe,</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>2. There is good reason, and all desirable and possible encouragement, to
-pray to an unchangeable God, who has from eternity determined what he will
-do, in every instance, and has foreordained whatsoever comes to pass.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>This will doubtless be evident, to him who will duly, consider the following
-particulars.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>First.</i> Prayer is as proper, important, and necessary, in order to obtain favour
-from an unchangeable God, as it could be were he changeable, and had not foreordained
-any thing.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Means are as necessary in order to obtain the end, as if nothing were fixed and
-certain. Though it was decreed that Paul and all the men in the ship should
-get safe to land, when they were in a storm at sea; yet this must be accomplished
-by means, and unless the sailors had assisted in managing the ship, this
-event could not take place, and they could not be saved. Prayer is a means of
-obtaining what God had determined to grant; for he has determined to give it
-in answer to prayer, and no other way. “Ask, and ye shall receive,” says our
-Saviour. When God had promised to do many and great things for Israel, he
-adds, “Thus saith the Lord God, I will yet for this be inquired of by the house
-of Israel, to do it for them:” [<i>Ezek.</i> xxxvi. 37.] The granting the favours,
-which God had determined to bestow, was as much suspended on their asking
-for them, as if there had been nothing determined and fixed about it. There is
-as much regard had to prayer in granting favours, and the prayer is heard, and
-God gives them, as really and as much in answer to it, as if there were nothing
-determined and foreordained respecting them: for the decree includes and fixes
-the means, as much as the end; the method and way by which events are to
-take place, as much as those events themselves. The one depends on the other,
-as much as if there were no decree, and nothing fixed; yea, much more: for the
-decree <i>fixes</i> the dependence and connexion between the means and the end:
-whereas if there were no decree, and nothing fixed, there would be no established
-connexion, but all would be uncertain, and there would be no reason or
-encouragement to use means, or do any thing to obtain an end.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Surely, then, there is as much reason and encouragement to pray to an unchangeable
-God, and this is as important and necessary, as if there were nothing
-fixed by the divine decrees, and much more: yea, the unchangeable purposes
-of God are the necessary and only proper ground and reason of prayer.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Secondly.</i> Though prayer is not designed to make any change in God, or alter
-his purpose, which is impossible; yet it is suited and designed to have an effect
-on the petitioner, and prepare him to receive that for which he prays. And this
-is a good reason why he should pray. It tends to make the petitioner to feel
-more and more sensibly his wants, and those of others for whom he prays, and
-the miserable state in which he and they are: for in prayer these are called up
-to view, and dwelt upon: and prayer tends to give a sense of the worth and
-importance of the favours asked. It is also suited to make persons feel, more
-and more, their own helplessness, and entire dependence on God for the favours
-for which they petition, of which their praying is an acknowledgment: and therefore
-tends to enhance them in the eyes of the petitioner, when given in answer to
-prayer, and make him more sensible of the free, sovereign goodness of God in
-granting them.<a id='r120' /><a href='#f120' class='c012'><sup>[120]</sup></a> In sum, this is suited to keep the existence and character of
-God in view, and impress a sense of religious truths in general on the mind,
-and to form the mind to universal obedience, and a conscientious watchfulness
-and circumspection, in all religious exercises.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Thirdly.</i> It is reasonable, and highly proper and important, and for the honour
-of God, that the friends of God should express and acknowledge their entire dependence
-on him, and trust in him, for all they want for themselves and others,
-and their belief in the power, wisdom and goodness of God; and all this is acknowledged,
-expressly or implicity, in prayer to God. It is also reasonable and
-proper that they should express their <i>desire</i> of those things which are needed by
-themselves or others, and which God alone can give or accomplish: and such
-desires are expressed in the best way and manner by petitioning for them. And
-in asking for blessings on others, and praying for their enemies, they express
-their benevolence, which is an advantage to themselves, and pleasing to God,
-even though their petitions should have no influence in procuring the favours
-which they ask. And in praying that God would honour himself, and advance
-his own kingdom, and accomplish all the great and glorious things which he has
-promised to do for his own honour, and the good of his people, they do not express
-any doubts of his fulfilling his promises, but are certain he will grant their
-petitions; but they hereby express their acquiescence in these things, and their
-earnest desire that they may be accomplished; and also profess and express their
-love to God, and friendship to his people and kingdom; and do that which the
-feelings of a pious, benevolent heart will naturally, and even necessarily, prompt
-them to do.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>We have many examples of such petitions and prayers for those things and
-events, which the petitioners, antecedent to their prayers, knew would certainly
-be accomplished. We have a decisive and remarkable instance of this in David,
-the king of Israel, in the following words: “And now, O Lord God, the word
-that thou hast spoken concerning thy servant, and concerning his house, establish
-it for ever, <i>and do as thou hast said</i>. And let thy name be magnified forever,
-saying, The Lord of hosts is the God over Israel: and let the house of thy
-servant David be established before thee. For thou, O Lord of hosts, God of
-Israel, hast revealed to thy servant, saying, <i>I will build thee an house: therefore
-hath thy servant found in his heart to pray this prayer before thee</i>. And now, O
-Lord God, thou art that God, and thy words be true, and thou hast promised
-this goodness unto thy servant. Therefore now let it please thee to bless the
-house of thy servant, that it may continue forever before thee; for thou, O Lord
-God, hast spoken it, and with thy blessing let the house of thy servant be blessed
-forever:” [<i>2 Sam.</i> vii. 25-29.] Here David not only prays God to do that which
-at the same time he knew and acknowledges God had promised to do; and
-therefore it was established as firm as the throne of the Almighty, and decreed
-that it should take place; but he says that this promise of God, making it certain,
-was the reason, motive, and encouragement to him to make this prayer:
-“Thou, O Lord, hast revealed to thy servant, saying, I will build thee an house.
-And now, O Lord God, thou art that God, <i>and thy words be true, and thou hast
-promised this goodness unto thy servant</i>; <span class='fss'>THEREFORE HATH THY SERVANT FOUND IN
-HIS HEART TO PRAY THIS PRAYER BEFORE THEE</span>.” We hence are warranted to
-assert that it is reasonable and proper to pray for that which God has promised;
-and that the certainty that it will be accomplished is a motive and encouragement
-to pray for it. How greatly then do they err, who think that if every
-event is made certain by God’s decree, there is no reason or encouragement to
-pray for any thing!</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Our Saviour, in the pattern of prayer which he has dictated, directs men to
-pray that God would bring to pass those events which are already fixed and
-decreed, and therefore must infallibly take place; “Our Father, who art in
-heaven, <i>hallowed be thy name; thy kingdom come, thy will be done</i>,” &amp;c.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Christ himself, in the 17th chapter of John, prays for those whom the Father
-had given to him, that he would keep them through his own name, and that
-they might be <i>one</i>, as the Father and Son were one; might be kept from the
-evil in the world, and be sanctified through the truth; that they might be with
-him in heaven forever, and behold his glory. At the same time he knew that
-all this was made certain to them; for he had before said, that all that were
-given to him should come to him, and he would raise them up at the last day;
-that he would give unto them eternal life, and not one of them should perish, as
-none should be able to pluck them out of his hands, or his Father’s. He prays,
-“Father, glorify thy name;” not because this event was uncertain, but to express
-his earnest desire of that which he knew was decreed, and could not but
-take place, and his willingness to give up every thing, even his own life to promote
-this. Again, Christ prays in the following words: “And now, O Father,
-glorify thou me with thine own self, with the glory which I had with thee before
-the world was.” The event for which Christ prays in these words was decreed
-from eternity, and the decree had been long before published, in the 2d
-and 110th Psalms: “I will declare the decree: The Lord hath said unto me,
-Thou art my Son, this day have I begotten thee. Ask of me, and I will give
-thee the heathen for thine inheritance, and the uttermost parts of the earth for
-thy possession. Sit thou at my right hand, until I make thine enemies thy foot-stool.”
-And he had declared the certainty of that for which he here prays,
-since his incarnation. He had said, that all power in heaven and earth was
-given unto him; that “the Father had committed all judgment unto the Son;
-that all men should honour the Son, even as they honour the Father.” St. Paul,
-when speaking of God, often introduces the following words: “To whom be glory
-forever, Amen;” which is not to be considered as a mere doxology, by which
-glory is <i>ascribed</i> to God; but it is rather a <i>wish</i>, or <i>desire</i>, that God may be
-glorified forever; and the <i>Amen</i> corroborates it: as if he had said, “Let it be
-so; this is the most ardent desire of my soul, including the sum of all my petitions.”
-Here then the Apostle utters a desire and petition for that which he
-knew was decreed, and would take place.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The last words of Christ to his church are, “Surely I come quickly.” Upon
-which promise the following petition of the church, and of every friend of his,
-is presented to him: “Amen, even so come Lord Jesus.” Here is a petition, in
-which all Christians join, praying Christ to do what he has promised; and which
-therefore was as certain as a declared decree could possibly make it; and the
-petition is grounded on this promise and decree published by Christ, in which
-the petitioners express their hearty approbation of the coming of Christ, and
-earnest desire of this important and happy event. And if it be reasonable thus
-to pray for an event which is fixed and made certain by an unchangeable decree,
-and cannot be altered, as in the instance before us; then it is reasonable and
-proper to pray for any thing or any event which appears to us desirable and important,
-though we know God is unchangeable, and that all things and every
-event are fixed by an unalterable decree.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The apostle John says, “And this is the confidence that we have in him, that
-if we ask any thing <i>according to his will</i>, he heareth us. And if we know that he
-heareth us, whatsoever we ask, we know that we have the petitions that we
-desired of him:” [<i>1 John</i> v. 14, 15.] To ask for any thing <i>according to his will</i>,
-is to ask for those things which it is agreeable to his will to grant; and this is
-to be known only by what he has revealed. When we ask him to do what he
-has declared he will do, then we know we ask for that which is according to his
-will; and consequently that we have our petitions. But it will be asked, What
-are these things? I answer, that God will glorify himself in all things, and
-make the brightest display of his perfections and character forever; that he will
-promote and effect the greatest possible good of the universe; that he will make
-his church and kingdom perfectly happy and glorious forever; that he will accomplish
-all his designs and predictions, and fulfil all his promises to his church
-and people: and cause all things to work for the good of those who love him;
-and give his holy Spirit to all who ask him. These, I think, must be the things
-we ask, when we know that we pray for any thing <i>according to the will of God</i>,
-and consequently know that he heareth us, and that we have the petitions that
-we desired of him. But in all these instances we ask for that which God has
-said he will do, that is, has decreed that he will do them. And as it has been
-said before, if a decree in these instances does not render it unreasonable or improper
-to pray for their accomplishment; then, if God has decreed <i>whatsoever
-comes to pass</i>, this is not in the least inconsistent with our praying for whatever
-appears to us desirable and good, and may not be contrary to the will of God to
-grant. But here it must be observed, that when we ask for any particular things
-or events which, though it may not be contrary to the will of God to grant, yet
-he has in no way revealed that it is his will to grant our petitions; when we ask
-for any such thing, we must do it with an express or implicit reserve—<i>If it be
-according to the will of God</i>. Otherwise, or if it be not according to his will, we
-must withdraw our petition, and not desire to have it granted. Resignation to
-the will of God, whatever it may be, in all such instances, is essential to the
-pious petitions of a benevolent friend of God. And by thus referring to the will
-of God, and resigning to that, desiring it may be done in all cases, whatever petitions
-we may make, we do refer to the decrees of God, by which he has determined
-what he will do in every particular instance; for his will and his decrees
-are in this case one and the same, being fixed and unchangeable.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Fourthly.</i> It is not only proper and important that the worshippers of God
-should express their desires of those things which they want, in praying for them;
-but were this not true, and were not asking for them the means and way of obtaining
-them; yet the pious friends of God would esteem it a privilege and enjoyment
-to be allowed and invited, “by prayer and supplication, with thanksgiving,
-to make known their requests unto him.” To them prayer is not a <i>task</i>, from
-which they would be glad to be excused, but they practise it with pleasure.—They
-have great support, enjoyment and happiness, in casting their cares upon
-God, and expressing the desires of their hearts to him. While others restrain
-prayer before God, and say, “What is the Almighty, that we should serve him?
-and what profit should we have if we pray unto him?” the benevolent friend of
-God would pray, were it only for the enjoyment which he has in the exercise;
-and says in his heart, “I will call upon God as long as I live. And though he is
-certain that God is unchangeable, and that nothing is done, or will come to pass,
-which is not foreordained by him, this does not tend to prevent or in the least
-abate the pleasure and enjoyment he has in making known his requests to God,
-or his desire constantly to practise it: but this truth gives him support and
-consolation, and increases his delight in calling upon God, and renders it more
-desirable and pleasant unto him: yea, were not this a truth, he could not find
-any reason for making his requests known to him, or any delight in doing it;
-and would not have any encouragement, or even <i>dare</i>, to ask for any thing, as
-has been observed and shewn.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>And now this matter is to be left to the judgment of every one who will attend
-to it. It is hoped that it appears evident, beyond all dispute, from the light
-in which this subject has been now set, that the doctrine of God’s decreeing
-whatsoever comes to pass is not only consistent with all the exercises of true
-piety, but is the proper foundation for this, and is suited to excite and promote
-these exercises, and that there can be no real piety which is not consistent with
-this truth.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>[<span class='sc'>Hopkins’s Sermons.</span>]</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f120'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r120'>120</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>A kind and wise father, who designs to give his child some particular favour, will bring
-the child to ask for it before he bestows it, and will suspend the gift upon this condition, for
-the benefit of the child, that what he grants may be a real advantage to him, and a greater than
-if it were given before the child was better prepared to receive it, by earnestly and humbly
-asking for it; and that the father may hereby receive a proper acknowledgment from the
-child, and be treated in a becoming manner. And in this case, the petition of the child is as
-really regarded, heard and granted, and the child’s application and prayer to the father is as
-much a means of obtaining the favour, and as proper, important, and necessary, as if the father
-had not previously determined the whole affair. And when the children of such a father know
-that this is his way of bestowing favours on them, they will have as proper motives, and as
-much encouragement, to ask for all they want, as if he had not determined what he would
-do antecedent to their asking him; yea, much more.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f121'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r121'>121</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See vol. II. 289-290 and vol. III. 72.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f122'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r122'>122</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Quest. CLII.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f123'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r123'>123</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>In our day and country there are some worthy men, who without fear,
-or scruple, affirm, that God is the <i>author</i>, and <i>cause</i> of sin; which words they
-soften to avoid the blasphemy, which they contain. We have in a note, I. vol. p. 530,
-given the sentiments of the late Dr. Williams, on the origination of sin. Being
-a proficient in the study of the human mind, he has philosophized a little on, but
-not essentially differed from the representation of the subject, as it is found in
-the writings of sound protestant divines. As some American writers advocate
-with considerable address, such divine causality, and publicly affirm it to
-have been taught by Luther, Calvin, &amp;c. and to have found its place in our
-standards in the words—“foreordained whatsoever comes to pass;” it is proper
-to resort to the ipsissima verba of some of the European protestant theologians,
-as a test of such allegations.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The Westminster divines, no doubt, entertained the same views of sin, which
-will be found in the following extracts. In their definition of sin, they not obscurely
-shew, that they did consider it not more a <i>transgression of</i>, than <i>a want
-of conformity unto, the law</i>. The former is the translation of ανομια in I. John iii.
-4. which is rather <i>privatio</i>, <i>defectus</i>, or <i>declinatio</i> than <i>transgressio legis</i>. Also
-the Greek word αμαρτια, and the Hebrew חטא signify <i>non consecutio scopi</i>. If
-they viewed sin as a <i>qualitas adventitia</i>, a <i>quiddam non positivum</i>, a <i>simplex privatio</i>,
-a <i>quiddam actioni inhærens</i>, they could not have viewed it the proper subject
-of a decree or purpose, but only as foreseen and permitted.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>The following quotations are given in the authors’ own words, for the satisfaction
-of those who may not possess the works from which they are taken.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>“Natura peccato corrupta est...—Aversio quædam voluntatis secuta est, ut
-homo nihil eorum velit aut faciat, quæ Deus vult et præcipit. Item quod
-nescimus, quid Deus, quid gratia, quid justitia, denique quid ipsum peccatum sit.
-Hi sunt profecto horribiles <span class='fss'>DEFECTUS</span>, quos, qui non intelligunt; nec vident, talpa
-cœciores sunt.” Mart. Lutheri Loc. Com. p. 23.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>“Hæc Regula certa et vera est; Deum esse natura bonum, ideo nihil a Deo
-proficisci, nisi quod bonum est, mors autem est mala, peccatum etiam est malum,
-&amp;c. Non igitur a Deo proficiscuntur mala hæc, &amp;c. Peccati porro quæ
-causa sit, si roges, sacræ literæ ostendunt, id ex Sathana esse, cui contra verbum
-Dei assenserunt nostri parentes, a Deo inobedientes facti, incurrerunt in horribiles
-pænas. Nam per peccatum illud non solum corpora nostra sic infirmata
-sunt, ut ex immortalibus mortalia fierent, sed etiam mens depravata est.
-Amisit enim homo veram Dei notitiam, et voluntas quoque tum admodum est
-depravata, ut nihil quam malum appetat.” Mart. Lutheri Loci Com. p. 22.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>“Eant nunc qui Deum suis vitiis inscribere audent, quia dicimus naturaliter
-vitiosos esse homines. Opus Dei perperam in sua pollutione scrutantur, quod in
-integra adhuc et incorrupta Adæ natura requirere debuerant. A carnis ergo
-nostræ culpa, non a Deo nostra perditio est, quando non alia ratione periimus,
-nisi quia degeneravimus a prima nostra conditione.”—“Dicimus ergo naturali
-hominem vitiositate corruptum, sed quæ a natura non fluxerit. A natura
-fluxisse negamus, ut significemus adventitiam magis esse qualitatem quæ
-homini acciderit, quam substantialem proprietatem quæ ab initio indita fuerit.
-Vocamus tamen naturalem, nequis ab unoquoque prava consuetudine comparari
-putet, quum hæreditario jure universos comprehensos teneat.” <i>Calvini Institut.</i>
-<i>lib.</i> II. <i>cap.</i> 1. <i>sect.</i> 10, 11.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>“Sed cum nihil contingat in mundo, aut contingere possit sine justissima
-et sapientissima Dei providentia, annon, peccati author et causa dici potest?
-Absit, quippe qui illud odit, vetat, &amp; punit, ut quod cum summâ ipsius bonitate
-pugnet.” <i>Bucani Theolog. p. 165.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>“Deus non infundit malitiam in volentates malorum, sicut infundit bonitatem
-in corda piorum, nec impellit aut allicit voluntates ad peccandum; sed tantum
-malas voluntates, seu peccantes, quales invenit ex corruptione quæ sequuta est
-aversionem diabolorum et hominum a Deo, movet, ciet, flectit, inclinat, dirigit,
-sapienter, juste, potenter, ubi, quando, quomodo, et quousque vult, sive mediate,
-sive immediate, ad objecta vel persequenda, vel fugienda, ut impleant (quibus
-tale nihil propositum est) quod manus et consilium Domini decrevit. <i>Bucani
-Theol. p. 153.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>“Estne peccatum originis Substantia an accidens?—Non est substantia;
-esset enim anima vel corpus. Jam vero corpus et anima quoad substantiam,
-sunt bonæ Dei creaturæ, quæ etiamnum creantur a Deo. Ergo non sunt peccatum.
-Nec substantialis est proprietas, aut aliquid substantiale in homine:
-sed est adventitia qualitas, quæ tamen naturalis dicitur, non quod à natura fluxerit
-(quatenus creata est) sed quia hæreditario jure ut dicitur, suos comprehensos
-tenet, et in ipsa hominis natura, viribus, et facultatibus naturalibus inhæret,
-et ipsi homini innata est.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><i>Bucani Theol.</i> p. 174.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>“Estne peccatum aliquid Positivum an Privativum?—Peccatum non est positivum,
-id est, quiddam subsistens a Deo conditum, nec est simpliciter et pura
-privatio, sicut mors est privatio vitæ, aut tenebræ sunt privatio lucis; sed est
-defectus seu destructio rei positivæ, videlicit operis et ordinis divini in subjecto,
-quod culpam sustinet suæ depravationis, aversionis a Deo, ut ruina in domo,
-cœcitas et amissio visus in oculis.” <i>Bucani Theol.</i> p. 167.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>“Permissio est gubernatio Dei, quâ homines vel diabolos, ad peccandum
-pronos, a peccato non retrahit, sed gratiæ suæ auxilio negato vel subtracto, in
-peccata ruere sinit, ita tamen ut ipsorum impetum ad judiciorum suorum executionem
-flectat, et quæ pessimo ab ipsis concilio suscipiuntur, in fines optimos
-dirigat.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='sc'>Explicatio.</span></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>1. Deus in permissione mali culpœ seu peccati, non est otiosus spectator, sed
-potens, justus, et sapiens judex: Itaque.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Efficax gratiæ suæ auxilium, sine quo non possunt non peccare in peccatis
-mortui homines, negat vel subtrahit.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) Homines vel diabolos ad peccandum natura et consuetudine pronos,
-sæpissimè a peccatis non retrahit, quos tamen facillimè posset retrahere: sed
-in peccata ruere sinit.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) Peccatum animis ipsorum susceptum, seu peccandi impetum ita moderatur,
-ut non in quævis objecta eum ferri patiatur, sed flectat et dirigat ad ejus
-modi objecta, vel homines, quos punire, castigare, vel explorare vult.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) Quæ ab impiis hominibus, vel diabolis, malo fine, perpetrantur, in fines
-optimos dirigit.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'><span class='sc'>Exempli Gratia.</span></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>Si viator aliquis a latrone in via occidatur, homicidium permississe Deus
-dicitur:</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Quia efficax gratiæ suæ auxilium ei subtraxit vel negavit, sine quo infallibiliter
-homicidium erat perpetraturus.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) Quia animum latronis, naturâ vel consuetudine ad homicidia pronum, ab
-homicidio non retraxit; quem tamen facillimè potuisset retrahere: sed in hoc
-facinus ipsum ruere permisit.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) Quia concilium homicidii perpetrandi, ipsumque latronis impetum ita
-rexit et flexit, ut non quemvis promiscue hominem voluerit aut potuerit interficere:
-sed hunc potius, quam alium interfecerit; Unde furori latronis hunc potius
-viatorem, quam alium hominem objecit: justo quodam judicio: cujus ratio plerumque
-homines latet.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) Quia, quod malo fine a latrone est perpetratum; forte ad pecuniam
-acquirendam, quam nequiter dilapidaret, in finem bonam direxit: quia est pœna
-vel ipsius latronis, vel ejus, qui a latrone est occisus: vel alius etiam finis nobis
-ignotus.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>II. Sunt igitur in peccatis hominum, circa quæ divina occupatur permissio,
-quatuor imprimis observanda et distinquenda:</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(1.) Actio per se, quatenus est actio.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(2.) Vitium actioni inhærens.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(3.) Directio organi mali et actionis vitiosæ in objectum certum.</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>(4.) Finis directionis, e quo accidit peccato judicii divini ratio; ut per hominum
-peccata Deus exequatur justa sua judicia: Primum, tertium, et quartum
-a Deo est, Deumque authorem habet. Est enim omnis actio, quatenus est
-actio, bona: directio actionis et ipsa bona: denique finis directionis optimus,
-nempe divini judicii executio. Secundum, in quo peccati consistit ratio, non
-a Deo, sed a solo est homine: adeoque solus homo peccati, quatenus est peccatum
-author est. <i>Wendel. Theol. p. 179.</i></p>
-
-<p class='c006'>“Hinc firmiter concludimus, cum permissione Dei concurrere quoque efficacem
-Dei actionem et directionem vitiosi instrumenti in objectum certum, adversus
-quod judicium suum exercere Deo visum.”</p>
-
-<p class='c006'>“Orthodoxi nominis osor et insignis caluminator Graverus ad art. 19. Confess.
-Aug. p. 112, et sequentibus, portentosum dogma, de Deo peccati authore,
-Ecclesiis nostris non tantum calumniose impingit, sed et 15 argumenta nostris
-affingit quibus thesin hanc suam: Deus est peccati, quatenus peccatum est,
-author: probet: imprimis autem ad infame hoc et blasphemum dogma probandum
-affirmat, a nostris adduci scripturæ loca, quæ modo allegata sunt. Nos
-vero ut tam effrontibus calumniatoribus; ita omnibus, qui blasphemum istud
-dogma vel probant; vel profitentur, et defendunt, anathema dicimus, et innocentiæ
-nostræ vindicem mundi judicem, jamjam ad judicium se accingentem,
-imploramus.” <i>Wendel. Theol. p. 183.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f124'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r124'>124</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Quest. LXXVII.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f125'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r125'>125</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See Vol. II. page 94.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f126'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r126'>126</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>See a particular account what this sin is; and when a person may certainly
-conclude that he has not committed it, ante page <a href='#Page_318'>318</a> to 320.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f127'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r127'>127</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span>As in John only it is repeated, he wrote it only in the Hebrew character,
-it is presumed, and understood by it “<i>the truth</i>;” the second Amen was
-exegetical and in the Greek character, for the sake of the unlearned.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f128'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r128'>128</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Vid. Justin Martyr, Apol. ii. pro Christ. who intimates, that when public
-prayer and giving of thanks was ended, the whole congregation testified their approving
-of it by saying</i>, Amen; ωᾶς ὄ ωαρωγ λαὸς ὀπευφημεὶ λὲγων αμῆν.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f129'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r129'>129</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Vid. Hieron. in Lib. ii. comment. ad Galat. in Proen. Ad similitudinem cælestis
-tonitrus reboat</i>, [<i>scil. Ecclesia.</i>] Amen.</p>
-</div>
-<div class='footnote' id='f130'>
-<p class='c006'><span class='label'><a href='#r130'>130</a>.&nbsp;&nbsp;</span><i>Vid. Whitby in loc.</i></p>
-</div>
-<div>
-
- <ul class='ul_1 c002'>
- <li>Transcriber’s Notes:
- <ul class='ul_2'>
- <li>The author’s archaic and idiosyncratic punctuation, spellings, and capitalization
- have been retained.
- </li>
- <li>Footnotes have been collected at the end of the text, and are linked for ease of
- reference.
- </li>
- </ul>
- </li>
- </ul>
-
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK A BODY OF DIVINITY, VOL. 4 OF 4 ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/65484-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/65484-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 1c006a8..0000000
--- a/old/65484-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ